Skip to main content

Full text of "The complete works of Thomas Manton, D.D. : with memoir of the author"

See other formats


V 


• 


Shell  No. 


NO  *<>•:>*? 


i 


. 


THE 


WORKS  OF  THOMAS  MANTON,  D.D. 


VOL.  VIII. 


COUNCIL  OF  PUBLICATION, 


W.  LINDSAY  ALEXANDER,  D.D.,  Professor  of  Theology,  Congregational 
Union,  Edinburgh. 

JAMES  BEQG,  D.D.,  Minister  of  Newington  Free  Church,  Edinburgh. 

THOMAS  J.  CRAWFORD,  D.D.,  S.T.P.,  Professor  of  Divinity,  University, 
Edinburgh. 

D.  T.  K.  DRUMMOND,  M.A.,  Minister  of  St  Thomas's  Episcopal  Church, 
Edinburgh. 

WILLIAM  H.  GOOLD,  D.D.,  Professor  of  Biblical  Literature  and  Church 
History,  Reformed  Presbyterian  Church,  Edinburgh. 

ANDREW  THOMSON,  D.D.,  Minister  of  Broughton  Place  United  Presby 
terian  Church,  Edinburgh. 

General  tfDitor. 
REV.  THOMAS  SMITH,  D.D.,  EDINBURGH. 


THE  COMPLETE   WORKS 


OF 


THOMAS  MANTON,  D.D. 


VOLUME  VIII 


CONTAINING 


SEVERAL  SERMONS  UPON  THE  CXIX.  PSALM. 


LONDON: 
JAMES  NISBET  &  CO.,  21  BEENEES   STEEET. 

1872. 


PRINTED  BV  BALLANTYNE  AND  COMPANY 
EDINBURGH  AND  LONDON 


CONTENTS. 


SEVERAL  SERMONS  UPON  THE  cxix.  PSALM. 

SERMON  CIV.  "  Thou,  through  thy  commandments,  hast  made 
me  wiser  than  mine  enemies  ;  for  they  are  ever 
with  me,"  ver.  98,  ,  .  .3 

„  CV.   "  I  have  more  understanding  than  all  my  teachers : 

for  thy  testimonies  are  my  meditation,"  ver.  99,         9 

„         CVI.  "  I  understand  more  than  the  ancients,  because  I 

keep  thy  precepts,"  ver.  100,    .  .  .14 

„       CVII.   "  I  have  refrained  my  feet  from  every  evil  way, 

that  I  might  keep  thy  word,"  ver.  101,  .       25 

„      CVIII.   "  I  have  not  departed  from  thy  judgments  :  for 

thou  hast  taught  me,"  ver.  102,  .  .       36 

;,         CIX.   "  How  sweet  are  thy  words  unto  my  taste  !  yea, 

sweeter  than  honey  to  my  mouth,"  ver.  103,    .       43 

„          CX.  "  Through   thy   precepts    I    get    understanding : 

therefore  I  hate  every  false  way,"  ver.  104,  .       53 

„        CXI.   "  Therefore  I  hate  every  false  way,"  ver.  104,        .       59 

„       CXII.   "  Thy  word  is  a  lamp  unto  my  feet,  and  a  light 

unto  my  path,"  ver.  105,          .  .  .64 

„     CXIII.   "  Thy  word  is  a  lamp  unto  my  feet,  and  a  light 

unto  my  path,"  ver.  105,  .  .  .74 

„     CXIV.   "  I  have  sworn,  and  I  will  perform  it,  that  I  will 

keep  thy  righteous  judgments,"  ver.  106,         .       80 

„        CXV.   "  I  have  sworn,  and  I  will  perform  it,  that  I  will 

keep  thy  righteous  judgments,"  ver.  106,         .       88 


CONTENTS. 

PAGE 

SERMON        CXVI.  "  I  am  afflicted  very  much :  quicken  me,  0 

Lord,  according  unto  thy  word,"  ver.  107,       94 

CXVII.  "Quicken  me,  0  Lord,  according  unto  thy 

word,"  ver.  107, .  .100 

CXVIII.  "  Accept,  I  beseech  thee,  the  free-will-offer 
ings  of  my  mouth,  0  Lord,  and  teach  me 
thy  judgments,"  ver.  108,  .  106 

GXIX.  "  My  soul  is  continually  in  my  hand :  yet  do 

I  not  forget  thy  law,"  ver.  109,  .  .     114 

CXX.  "  The  wicked  have  laid  a  snare  for  me  ;  yet  I 

erred  not  from  thy  precepts,"  ver.  110,  .     127 

„  CXXI.  "  Thy  testimonies  have  I  taken  as  an  heri 

tage  for  ever  :  for  they  are  the  rejoicing 
of  my  heart,"  ver.  Ill,  .  .  .134 

„  CXXII.  "Thy  testimonies  have  I  taken  as  an  heri 

tage  for  ever  :  for  they  are  the  rejoicing 
of  my  heart,"  ver.  Ill,  .  .  -141 

,,  CXXIII.  "  I  have  inclined  my  heart  to  perform  thy 

statutes  always  to  the  end,"  ver.  112,     .     148 

„  CXXIV.  "  I  hate  vain  thoughts :  but  thy  law  do  1 

love,"  ver.  113,  .  .  .155 

„  CXXV.  "  Thou  art  my  hiding-place  and  my  shield  : 

I  hope  in  thy  word,"  ver.  114,    .  .     166 

„  CXXVI.  "  Depart  from  me,  ye  evil-doers :  for  I  will 

keep  the  commandments  of  my  God," 
ver.  115,  .  .  .  .177 

,,  CXX VII.  "Uphold  me  according  unto  thy  word,  that 
I  may  live ;  and  let  me  not  be  ashamed 
of  my  hope,"  ver.  116,  .  .  .188 

„  CXX VIII.  "And  let  me  not  be  ashamed  of  my  hope. 
Hold  thou  me  up,  and  I  shall  be  safe ; 
and  I  will  have  respect  unto  thy  statutes 
continually,"  ver.  116,  117,  .  .  198 

„  CXXIX.  "  Thou  hast  trodden  down  all  them  that  err 

from  thy  statutes  :  for  their  deceit  is  false 
hood,"  ver.  118,  .  .  .  208 

„  CXXX.  "  Thou  puttest  away  all  the  wicked  of  the 

earth  like  dross  :  therefore  I  love  thy 
testimonies,"  ver.  119,  .  220 


CONTENTS.  VI 1 

SERMON      CXXXI.  "My  flesh  trembleth  for  fear  of  thee,  and 

I  am  afraid  of  thy  judgments,"  ver.  120,     230 

„  CXXXII.  "  I  have  done  judgment  and  justice  :  leave 

me  not  to  mine  oppressors,"  ver.  121,     .     238 

„         CXXXIII   "Be  surety  for  thy  servant  for  good:  let 

not  the  proud  oppress  me,"  ver.  122,      .     248 

„          CXXXIV.  "Be  surety  for  thy  servant  for  good:  let 

not  the  proud  oppress  me,"  ver.  122,      .     257 

„  CXXXV.  "Mine  eyes  fail  for  thy  salvation,  and  for 

the  word  of  thy  righteousness,"  ver.  123,    263 

„         CXXXVI.  "Deal  with  thy  servant  according  to  thy 
mercy,  and  teach  me  thy  statutes,"  ver. 

124,  .  .  .  .  .     273 

„        CXXXVII.  "  I  am  thy  servant ;  give  me  understanding, 
that  I  may  know  thy  testimonies,"  ver. 

125,  .  .  .  t.     285 

„       CXXXVIII.  "It  is  time  for  thee,  Lord,   to  work;  for 

they  have  made  void  thy  law,"  ver.  126,     296 

„          CXXXIX.  "  Therefore  I  love  thy  commandments  above 

gold;  yea,  above  fine  gold,"  ver.  127,     .     307 

„  CXL.  "Therefore  I  esteem  all  thy  precepts  con 

cerning   all  things  to  be  right ;  and  I 
hate  every  false  way,"  ver.  128, .  .     320 

„  CXLI.  "Thy  testimonies  are  wonderful:  therefore 

doth  my  soul  keep  them,"  ver.  129,        .     333 

„  CXLII.  "Thy  testimonies  are  wonderful:  therefore 

doth  my  soul  keep  them,"  ver.  129,        .     342 

,.  CXLIII.   "  The  entrance  of  thy  word  giveth  light ;  it 

giveth   understanding   to   the   simple," 
ver.  130,  .  .  .  .     346 

„  CXLIV.  "  I  opened  my  mouth,   and  panted  :  for  I 

longed    for    thy   commandments,"   ver. 
131,        .  .  .  .  .357 

»  CXLV.  "  Look  thou  upon  me,  and  be  merciful  unto 

me,  as  thou  usest  to  do  unto  those  that 
love  thy  name,"  ver.  132,  .  .     365 


vili  p  CONTENTS. 

PAGB 

SERMON      CXLVI.  "  As  thou  usest  to  do  unto  those  that  love 

thy  name,"  ver.  132,  .  .371 

„  CXLVII.  "  Order  my  steps  in  thy  word  :  and  let  not 

any  iniquity  have  dominion  over  me," 
ver.  133,  .  .  .  .381 

„         CXLVIII.  "And  let  not  any  iniquity  have  dominion 

over  me,"  ver.  133,  .  .     389 

„  CXLIX.  "Deliver  me  from  the  oppression  of  man:  so 

will  I  keep  thy  precepts,"  ver.  134,         .     398 

„  CL.  "  Make  thy  face  to  shine  upon  thy  servant ; 

and  teach  me  thy  statutes,"  ver.  135,     .     408 

„  CLI.  "Eivers  of  water  run  down  mine  eyes,  be 

cause  they  keep  not  thy  law,"  ver.  136,       420 

„  GUI.  "  Eivers  of  water  run  down  mine  eyes,  be 

cause  they  keep  not  thy  law,"  ver.  136,       431 

„  CLIII.  "Kighteous  art  thou,  0  Lord,  and  upright 

are  thy  judgments,"  ver.  137,     .  .     437 

.,  ,  CLIV.  "Kighteous  art  thou,  0  Lord,  and  upright 

are  thy  judgments,"  ver.  137,     .  .     447 

CLV.  "Thy  testimonies,  which  thou  hast  com 
manded,  are  righteous  and  very  faith 
ful,"  ver.  138,  .  .  .  .454 

.,  CLVI.  "  My  zeal  hath  consumed  me,  because  mine 

enemies  have  forgotten  thy  words,"  ver. 
139,        .  .  .  .465 

CLVIL   "  Thy  word   is   very  pure :    therefore  thy 

servant  loveth  it,"  ver.  140,        .  .     477 

CLVIII.  "I  am  small  and  despised;  yet  do  I  not 

forget  thy  precepts,"  ver.  141,    .  489 


SEVERAL    SERMONS    UPON   THE 
CXIX.    PSALM. 


VOL.  VIII. 


SEVERAL  SERMONS  UPON  THE 
CXIX.  PSALM. 


SEKMON  CIV. 

Thou,  through  thy  commandments,  hast  made  me  wiser  than  mine 
enemies;  for  they  are  ever  with  me. — VER.  98. 

I  COME  now  to  the  second  consideration,  they  are  wiser  than  their 
enemies  as  to  security  against  their  attempts,  and  that  enmity  and 
opposition  that  they  carry  on  against  them  ;  they  are  far  more  safe  by 
walking  under  the  covert  of  God's  protection,  than  their  enemies  can 
possibly  be,  to  have  all  manner  of  worldly  advantages.  I  shall  prove 
it  by  this  argument,  because  they  are  more  prepared  and  furnished  as 
to  all  events.  A  godly  wise  man  is  careful  to  keep  in  with  God  ;  he  is 
more  prepared  and  furnished,  can  have  a  higher  hope,  more  expectation 
of  success,  than  others  have  ;  or  if  not,  he  is  well  enough  provided 
for,  though  things  fall  out  never  so  cross  to  his  desires. 

1.  As  to  success.  Who  hath  made  wiser  provision,  think  you,  he 
that  hath  made  God  his  friend,  or  he  that  is  borne  up  with  worldly 
props  and  dependences  ?  they  that  are  guided  by  the  Spirit  of  God,  or 
they  that  are  guided  by  Satan  ?  those  that  make  it  their  business  to 
walk  with  God  step  by  step,  or  those  that  not  only  forsake  him,  but 
provoke  him  to  his  face  ?  those  that  break  with  men  and  keep  in  with 
God,  or  those  that  break  with  God  ?  Surely  a  child  of  God  hath  more 
security  from  piety  than  his  enemies  can  have  by  secular  policy, 
whereby  they  think  to  overreach  and  ruin  him.  The  safety  of  a 
child  of  God  lieth  in  two  things — (1.)  God  is  his  friend ;  (2.)  As 
long  as  God  hath  work  for  him  to  do,  he  will  maintain  him  and  bear 
him  out  in  it. 

[1.]  God  is  his  friend ;  and  that  must  needs  be  a  man's  wisdom 
when  he  complies  with  the  will  of  him  upon  whom  he  depends.  All 
things  do  absolutely  depend  upon  the  providence  of  God ;  he  hath  wis 
dom^  strength  and  dominion  over  all  events.  The  wisdom  of  God  is 
on  his  side,  and  therefore  it  is  but  the  wisdom  of  men  against  him.  If 
the  difference  only  lay  between  men  and  men,  the  craft  and  policy  of 
their  enemies  and  their  own  craft  and  policy,  the  scales  would  soon 
break  of  their  enemies'  side,  for  they  are  wiser  in  their  generation,  Luke 
xvi.  They  have  great  abilities  and  great  malice,  which  sharpens  men's 


4  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CX1X.  [SEB.  CIV. 

understandings  ;  they  have  a  large  conscience,  and  more  liberty  to  do 
what  they  will ;  so  that  a  child  of  God  is  gone  if  it  were  to  oppose 
craft  with  craft;  and  usually  they  carry  their  matters  more  subtilly, 
laying  hidden  snares  and  profound  counsels ;  whereas  the  children  of 
God  carry  it  simply  and  plainly.  But  then  there  is  a  wise  God  to  act 
for  a  foolish  people,  and  sometimes  God  may  give  his  people  great 
abilities  ;  as  Joseph  was  wiser  than  his  brethren,  Moses  wiser  than  the 
Egyptians,  Daniel  than  all  the  magicians  of  Babylon.  But  yet  usually 
parts  and  secular  wisdom  are  given  to  the  enemies.  Only  a  child  of 
God  hath  this  point  of  wisdom  above  the  enemies,  he  taketh  in  with 
the  wise  God,  which  is  the  ready  and  compendious  way  to  success  ; 
whereas  secular  wisdom  takes  a  long  way  about,  and  must  work  through 
many  mediums  and  subordinate  causes  before  the  intended  effect  can 
be  brought  about :  Ps.  xxxvii.  12, 13,  '  The  wicked  plotteth  against  the 
just.'  God  is  the  other  party  :  '  The  Lord  shall  laugh  at  him  ;  for  he 
seeth  that  his  day  is  coming/  He  doth  not  say  the  just  counterbalance 
the  wicked,  or  strains  his  wit  to  match  his  enemy  with  craft,  but  God 
hath  a  providence  and  love,  ever  waking  on  his  behalf ;  therefore  it  lies 
not  between  policy  and  piety,  but  between  men's  craft  and  God's  wis 
dom.  Then  he  hath  the  power  of  God  on  his  side,  and  therefore  he  is 
wiser  than  his  enemies,  he  is  of  the  stronger  side :  Gen.  xvii.  1,  '  I  am 
God  all-sufficient ;  walk  before  me  and  be  thou  perfect/  All  warping 
comes  from  doubting  of  God's  all-sufficiency,  evidenced  by  our  carnal 
fear,  and  our  distrustful  care  what  shall  become  of  us  and  how  we  shall 
do  to  live.  Certainly,  if  God  be  able,  we  need  not  doubt,  or  run  to  in 
direct  courses.  Again,  he  hath  him  of  his  side  who  hath  dominion  over 
all  events.  Carnal  policy  is  full  of  jealousies  ;  they  know  not  what 
will  succeed,  they  have  no  sure  bottom  to  stand  upon ;  they  are  not 
sure  of  events,  when  their  business  is  never  so  well  laid.  But  now  a 
child  of  God  is  wiser,  and  hath  much  the  more  comfortable  course,  as 
well  as  successful ;  he  can  do  his  duty,  and  leave  the  event  to  God. 
When  a  business  is  never  so  well  and  cunningly  laid,  yet  God  loves  to 
dispose  of  events,  and  to  « take  the  wise  in  their  own  craft,'  Job  v.  12, 
13.  They  are  outwitted,  and  they  outreach  themselves,  that  so  Christ 
may,  as  it  were,  get  upon  the  devil's  shoulders,  and  even  be  beholden 
to  Jhis  enemies.  Never  are  they  such  fools  as  when  they  seem  to  say 
things  wisely  against  God  and  his  people.  Carnal  wisdom  is  the 
greatest  folly  :  it  brought  Moses  to  the  flags,  but  Pharaoh  to  the  bot 
tom  of  the  sea.  The  devil  was  the  first  fool  of  all  the  creation,  and 
ever  since  his  first  attempts  against  his  God  he  hath  been  playing  the 
fool  for  these  thousands  of  years.  The  tempting  our  first  parents 
seemed  a  masterpiece  of  wit,  but  it  was  indeed  the  ruin  of  his  king 
dom.  So  in  the  attempts  of  wicked  men  against  his  people,  God  still 
disposeth  of  the  event  contrary  to  their  aim. 

[2]  As  long  as  God  hath  work  for  him  to  do,  he  will  maintain  him 

and  bear  him  out  in  the  midst  of  all  dangers;  that  is  certain;  as  he 

did  David  in  the  very  face  of  Saul.    There  is  an  invisible  guard  set 

upon  plain-hearted  and  zealous  Christians;  every  day  they  do   as  it 

were,  by  their  pleading  against  the  corruptions  of  wicked  men'  exas- 

•ale  them ;  they  are  in  the  secret  of  God's  presence,  and  are  kept 

lone  know  how ;  none  so  nigh  to  dangers,  yet  none  so  free  from  them  ; 


YER.  98.]  SERMONS  UPON -PSALM  cxix.  5 

in  the  lion's  mouth,  yet  preserved,  as  Christ  lived  in  the  midst  of  his 
enemies,  yet  they  could  not  touch  him  till  his  hour  was  come,  John 
xi.  8-10.  Christ  had  work  to  do  in  Judea:  'Master/  say  the  dis 
ciples,  '  the  Jews  of  late  sought  to  stone  thee,  and  goest  thou  thither 
again  ?  And  Jesus  answered,  Are  there  not  twelve  hours  in  the  day  ? 
If  any  man  walk  in  the  day  he  stumbleth  not,  because  he  seeth  the 
light  of  this  world  ;  but  if  a  man  walk  in  the  night  he  stumbleth,  be 
cause  there  is  no  light  in  him/  In  the  disciples'  question  is  bewrayed 
the  true  genius  of  carnal  fear.  Oh,  men  say,  why  will  you  go  run 
yourself  into  the  mouth  of  danger  ?  They  think  the  discharge  of  duty 
will  cost  them  their  utter  ruin  :  '  Master,  the  Jews  sought  to  kill  thee/ 
Now  Christ's  answer  showeth  that  men  should  not  choose  their  way 
according  to  their  apprehensions  of  danger  and  safety,  but  as  God 
cleareth  a  call  to  them ;  he  answers  by  a  similitude  taken  from  God's 
order  in  the  course  of  nature.  God  made  the  day  for  work,  and  the 
night  for  rest  and  sleep  ;  now  as  long  as  men  have  daylight  they  will 
not  stumble,  but  if  they  set  forth  in  the  night,  then  they  would 
stumble.  The  meaning  is,  as  long  as  a  man  hath  a  clear  call  from 
God  (for  a  call  from  God  is  compared  to  the  day),  and  can  say,  This 
is  a  duty  God  hath  put  upon  me,  he  hath  daylight,  he  shall  not 
stumble  ;  though  he  doth  come  and  go  in  the  face  and  teeth  of  enemies 
on  God's  cause,  and  plead  against  their  corruptions  and  base  miscar 
riages,  he  shall  not  stumble.  Indeed,  when  a  man  is  in  the  dark,  and 
knows  not  what  God's  mind  is,  then  he  is  ever  and  anon  stumbling. 
A  Christian  is  to  study  his  duty  rather  than  his  danger,  and  then  leave 
t  he  care  of  all  events  to  God ;  he  is  in  a  safe  course  when  he  is  in 
God's  way,  and  shall  not  be  interrupted  till  he  have  finished  his  work: 
Luke  xiii.  31,  32,  '  The  Pharisees  said  unto  him,  Get  thee  out,  and 
depart  hence,  for  Herod  will  kill  thee.  And  he  said,  Go  tell  that  fox, 
Behold,  I  cast  out  devils,  and  I  do  cures  to-day  and  to-morrow,  and  the 
third  day  I  shall  be  perfected.'  If  he  cast  himself  into  troubles,  he  is 
sure  they  are  not  sinfully  procured ;  but  men  that  run  on  danger  with 
out  a  calling  may  meet  with  many  a  snare,  or  he  that  doth  not  observe 
his  call  meet  with  more  difficulties  than  ever  he  thought  of:  1  Peter 
iii.  13,  '  And  who  is  he  that  will  harm  you,  if  ye  be  followers  of  that 
which  is  good  ?  '  The  best  way  to  eschew  trouble  is  to  adhere  closely 
to  what  is  right  in  the  sight  of  God  ;  he  can  allay  their  fury,  putting 
convictions  upon  their  conscience.  A  man  would  think  to  stand  nicely 
upon  terms  of  duty  is  to  run  in  harm's  way ;  and  there  are  none  so 
much  harmed,  maligned,  and  opposed  in  the  world  as  those  that  follow 
that  which  is  good,  as  those  that  will  have  no  fellowship  with  the  un 
fruitful  works  of  darkness,  but  will  reprove  them  rather  ;  possibly  they 
may  hate  and  malign  you  if  you  keep  to  that  which  is  good,  but  they 
cannot  harm  your  consciences.  God  can  allay  the  rage  of  men,  by 
putting  convictions  upon  their  consciences,  evidencing  your  sincerity  ; 
as  the  history  saith,  when  the  Arians  persecuted  the  orthodox  Chris 
tians,  they  durst  not  meddle  with  Paulinus  out  of  reverence.  There 
fore  who  will  harm  you  if  you  be  followers  of  that  which  is  good  ? 

2.  In  case  things  succeed  ill  with  him,  and  contrary  to  his  expecta 
tion,  yet  they  are  wiser  than  their  enemies  can  be,  because  they  have 
provided  for  the  worst.  Carnal  policy  is  but  wisdom  in  opinion  for  a 


Ij  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CIV. 

time,  not  always,  while  they  have  matter  to  work  upon  in  the  world ; 
but  these  always,  in  prosperity  and  adversity. 

[1.]  Because  he  hath  secured  his  great  interest,  which  lies  in  the 
favour  of  God  and  in  hopes  of  eternal  life.  God,  by  his  command 
ment,  hath  taught  him  this  wisdom,  to  make  sure  of  the  kingdom  of 
God,  and  then  a  man  is  safe ;  whatever  happens,  nothing  can  befall 
him  that  doth  endanger  his  hopes,  or  endamage  his  interest  in  Christ ; 
if  they  kill  him,  they  do  but  put  him  there  where  he  would  be ;  he 
hath  secured  his  great  interest ;  persecutors  cannot  reach  the  better 
part :  Luke  xii.  4,  they  '  kill  the  body,  after  that  they  can  do  no  more/ 
A  good  man,  let  them  do  what  they  can,  can  come  to  no  hurt ;  he  is 
indeed  like  a  die ;  cast  him  high  or  low,  still  he  falls  upon  his  square  ; 
he  hath  a  bottom  to  stand  upon,  hopes  to  support  him. 

[2.]  Because  he  hath  fitted  his  spirit  for  all  kind  of  conditions.  A 
man  that  is  to  go  a  long  journey  must  prepare  for  all  weathers  ;  so  a 
Christian  must  learn  to  be  abased  as  well  as  to  abound,  Phil.  iv.  Now 
a  mortified  man  hath  the  advantage  of  all  the  world  ;  a  man  that  is 
dead  to  worldly  interests  hath  the  advantage  of  all  others  for  doing 
and  suffering  for  God,  and  in  noble  and  generous  actions.  It  is  our 
affections  that  increase  our  afflictions,  that  make  us  so  base  and  pusil 
lanimous  :  1  Cor.  vii.  31,  '  Rejoice  as  if  you  rejoiced  not,  weep  as 
though  ye  wept  not/  If  our  hearts  did  not  rejoice  so  much  in  the 
creature,  if  we  were  in  a  greater  indifferency  to  worldly  .things,  the 
loss  and  miscarriage  of  them  would  not  surprise  us  with  so  great  ter 
ror.  A  mortified  man  is  wiser  than  other  men,  because  he  hath 
plucked  out  the  root  of  all  trouble,  which  is  an  inordinate  affection  ; 
and  then  let  his  condition  be  never  so  bad,  he  is  fortified.  Temper 
ance  makes  way  for  patience :  2  Peter  i.  6,  '  Add  to  temperance, 
patience/  Temperance,  or  a  moderation  in  the  enjoyment  of  all 
things,  tends  to  patience  in  the  loss  of  them.  A  man  that  possesseth 
them  without  love  can  lose  them  without  grief.  They  may  lessen  his 
estate,  but  cannot  lessen  his  comfort.  Therefore  this  is  the  man  that 
can  'pray  always,  rejoice  evermore,  in  everything  give  thanks/  for 
giving  and  taking,  for  the  word  of  God  hath  taught  him  this  holy 
weanedness  from  worldly  things. 

[3.]  He  can  look  to  the  end  of  all  things,  not  only  to  the  present, 
but  the  future :  Heb.  xi.  1,  '  Faith  is  the  substance  of  things  hoped 
for,  the  evidence  of  things  not  seen/  He  can  see  victories  in  a  down 
fall  ;  and  this  is  a  wisdom  proper  to  faith,  to  see  the  overthrow  of  the 
church's  enemies  when  they  rise  up  and  prosper.  A  natural  man  may 
look  above  his  condition  as  long  as  he  seeth  any  probability  in  second 
causes,  but  '  faith  is  the  evidence  of  things  not  seen/  When  there  is 
no  probable  way,  then  it  can  look  above  them.  Eeason  usually  is 
short-sighted,  it  'cannot  see  afar  off,'  2  Peter  i.  9  ;  it  cannot  look  be 
yond  the  cloud  and  veil  of  present  discouragement.  But  now  faith 
can  see  one  contrary  in  another,  see  a  good  end  in  bad  means,  and 
those  things  that  make  against  them  to  make  for  them ;  and  what  in 
itself  is  hurtful,  is  altogether  tempered  by  God's  hand,  and  to  the 
greatest  good,  Rom.  viii.  28  ;  Ps.  xxxvii.  37,  38, '  Mark  the  perfect  man, 
and  behold  the  upright ;  for  the  end  of  that  man  is  peace  •  but  the 
end  of  the  wicked  shall  be  cut  off;'  and  Ps.  Ixxiii.  17,  '  I  went  into 


VER.  98.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  7 

the  sanctuary,  and  there  I  understood  their  end.'  Those  that  are 
governed  by  sense,  will,  and  passion,  cannot  be  wise,  for  they  do  not 
see  to  the  end ;  but  he  that  lives  by  faith  looks  not  to  appearances, 
but  seeth  the  end ;  therefore  this  man  can  bear  up  with  hope  and 
courage  in  the  midst  of  all  difficulties  and  troubles. 

Use  1.  Caution  against  two  things — carnal  fear  and  carnal  policy. 

1.  Against  carnal  fear.     Many  are  troubled  when  they  consider  the 
power  and  cunning  of  the  enemies  of  God's  people.     Ay !   but  you 
need  not  be  dismayed  when  you  do,  in  the  simplicity  of  your  hearts, 
give  up  yourselves  to  the  direction  of  God's  word  ;  you  need  not  fear 
all  their  craft ;  when  they  are  confounded  and  broken  to  pieces  by 
their  own  devices,  you  shall  stand  firm.    It  seemeth  to  be  the  greatest 
folly  in  the  world  to  keep  at  a  distance  from  the  rising  side ;  in  time  it 
will  be  found  to  be  the  greatest  wisdom.     You  think  they  carry  their 
matters  with  a  great  deal  of  cunning,  whilst  they  slight  God  and  tread 
the  unquestionable  interests  of  Christ  under  foot,  and  that  the  cause 
of  God  will  never  get  up  again.     Since  they  reject  the  word  of  God, 
what  wisdom  have  they  ?  Jer.  viii.  9.   When  you  fail,  will  you  believe 
the  word  of  God,  or  the  doubtful  face  of  outward  things  ?     Be  sure 
once  you  are  in  God's  way,  and  then  you  cannot  miscarry  finally.  Will 
not  Christ  uphold  the  ministry  in  despite  of  the  devil  and  evil  men  ? 
Have  we  not  the  word  of  God  to  secure  these  hopes  for  us  ?     There 
fore  what  need  we  fear  what  wicked  wretches  attempt  against  us? 
Doth  not  God  love  righteousness  ?   Will  he  not  take  vengeance  ?  And 
in  their  highest  prosperity,  may  not  we  see  their  downfall  ?     There 
fore  why  should  we  be  afraid  ? 

2.  Then  take  heed  of  carnal  policy ;  for  we  are  made  wiser  than  our 
enemies  through  the  commandment.     We  must  not  oppose  craft  with 
craft,  for  so  Satan  will  be  too  hard  for  us  in  the  use  of  his  own  wea 
pons.     That  is  not  wisdom  to  run  to  shifts,  and  to  carnal  and  sinful 
devices.     There  is  a  wisdom  that  is  necessary  for  the  children  of  God : 
Mat.  x.  16,  'I  send  you  forth  as  sheep  in  the  midst  of  wolves  ;  be  wise 
as  serpents,  simple  as  doves.'     Ever  it  was  so  with  God's  people ;  they 
are  sheep  in  the  midst  of  wolves,  destitute  of  all  outward  support :  '  Be 
ye  therefore  wise  as  serpents  and  harmless  as  doves/   Carry  yourselves 
prudently  and  holily  in  my  service.     That  wisdom  and  knowledge 
which  doth  not  agree  with  justice,  but  puts  upon  doing  things  that  are 
unjust,  that  is  craft,  not  wisdom.     Now  though  Christ  hath  bid  us  be 
wise,  yet  he  hath  forbidden  us  to  be  crafty.    When  you  run  to  carnal 
shifts,  you  think  to  be  wiser  than  God.     All  the  mischiefs  of  the  pre 
sent  age  have  merely  been  occasioned  by  unbelief.    We  durst  not  trust 
God  in  his  own  way,  but  will  run  to  carnal  practices  merely  to  prevent 
evil,  and  you  see  how  we  are  entangled  in  all  manner  of  confusion. 
Jeroboam  would  be  wiser  than  God ;  God  would  have  settled  the  king 
dom  upon  him,  but  he  ran  to  a  way  of  his  own,  and  that  was  his  un 
doing.     Take  heed  of  this  fleshly  wisdom :  2  Cor.  i.  12,  '  Not  in  fleshly 
wisdom,  but  in  simplicity  and  godly  wisdom.'     The  more  simple  and 
plain  a  Christian  walks  according  to  the  direct  letter  of  the  scripture, 
the  more  safe  he  is ;  but  when  he  doth  run  to  those  baser  courses, 
merely  out  of  distrust  to  God,  all  things  come  to  ruin.     Carnal  policy 
never  succeeds  well  with  the  children  of  God ;  never  did  a  Christian 


8  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SflR.  CIV. 

thrive  by  carnal  policy,  or  using  carnal  fetches  for  carnal  ends  ;  God 
crosseth  them.  A  man  that  will  walk  by  the  light  of  his  own  fire  is 
sure  to  be  led  out  of  the  way  of  peace  and  happiness.  When  they  for 
sake  the  light  of  God's  word  and  Spirit,  and  follow  a  false  light,  they 
run  into  sorrow  and  inconvenience  ;  and  therefore  weaker  Christians  are 
sometimes  safer  than  those  of  stronger  parts,  that  lean  to  their  own 
understandings  and  trust  to  carnal  policy. 

Use  2.  To  prize  the  scriptures,  because  of  this  wisdom,  that  is  to  be 
gotten  in  them.  A  very  poor  creature  that  walks  in  the  fear  of  God 
is  wise  to  avoid  the  chiefest  danger,  to  secure  the  greatest  interest,  to 
avoid  hell  beneath,  Prov.  xv.  24  ;  that  wisdom  hath  escaped  the  greatest 
danger,  the  wrath  of  God,  and  made  sure  of  heaven,  Christ,  and  salva 
tion,  his  great  interest.  He  that  gives  up  himself  to  be  governed  by 
God's  word,  though  never  so  plain  and  simple,  will  be  found  to  be  the 
wisest  in  the  issue  :  Ps.  cxix.  24,  '  Thy  testimonies  are  my  delight  and 
iny  counsellors/  When  God's  testimonies  are  the  men  of  our  counsel, 
this  is  that  which  will  give  true  wisdom.  All  things  in  this  world 
are  mutable  and  uncertain,  they  continue  not  long  ;  we  cannot  foresee 
all  changes,  therefore  a  wise  man  may  be  mistaken  sometimes,  and  do 
things  he  could  wish  were  never  done  if  he  had  consulted  with  God. 
Therefore  now  be  wise ;  this  will  tell  you  when  to  act  and  when  to 
forbear,  not  to  be  over-wise  nor  over-foolish. 

Use  3.  To  get  this  wisdom  from,  the  word  of  God  that  will  make 
you  wiser  than  your  adversaries  :  Prov.  iv.  7,  '  Get  wisdom,  that  is  the 
principal  thing,  and  with  all  thy  gettings  get  understanding.'  There 
are  some  maxims  (if  we  would  have  this  wisdom  so  as  to  be  wiser  than 
our  enemies)  and  some  graces. 

First,  Some  maxims  : — 

1.  Season  the  heart  with  this  principle,  that  it  concerns  you  to 
secure  your  interest  in  Christ  rather  than  the  world,  Mat.  vi.  34  • 

T.f-ll'-rt         V^TT-  O£? 


Luke  xiv.  26. 
or 


2.  That  we  should  not  be  solicitous  about  events  so  much  as  duty 
about  dangers  so  much  as  sin,  1  Chron.  xix.  13  ;  2  Tim.  iv.  17,  18.' 

3.  That  in  a  way  of  duty  it  is  better  to  depend  upon  Christ's  care 
over  us,  without  using  any  carnal  reaches  to  secure  ourselves  1  Peter 
v.  7,  iv.  19. 


Horn  iii  eaS  Pe°Pe  °  °d  1S  either  g°°dj  °r  tends  t0  g°°d' 
5.  That  when  deliverance  is  more  for  our  turn  than  bondage,  yokes, 

and  oppression,  we  shall  be  sure  to  have  it.     God  hath  engXed  him 

self  by  covenant  that  <  he  will  withhold  no  good  thing/  Ps.  Ixxxiv.  11. 
6  Close  adherence  to  God,  and  constancy  in  obedience,  is  the  surest 

way  to  present  ease  and  future  deliverance  Ps  cxxv  3 

•*'«*-  trouble  by 
he 


, 

olnenfffpOU1'  frrSaiT,  wiser  tha?  we'  when  his  opposition  draws 
us  to  sin    then  and  then  only  are  we  foiled  by  our  adversary 
Secondly,  There  are  some  graces  also  make  us  wise 

this  wisdom  faith  is  necessary.     If  we  could  but  depend  upon 


VER.  99.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  9 

God  in  a  good,  plain,  and  downright  course,  we  would  not  run  to 
shifts,  nor  change  ourselves  into  all  shapes  and  colours,  cameleon-like 
(unless  it  be  white)  ;  but  you  would  support  yourselves  with  this,  that 
he  would  maintain  you  and  bear  you  out. 

2.  Fear  of  God,  which  makes  us  tender  of  spirit,  that  we  dare  not 
offend  God  nor  break  a  rule  for  all  the  world ;  he  fears  a  command 
ment  more  than  a  thousand  dangers  :  Prov.  xiii.  13, '  He  that  fears  the 
commandment  shall  be  safe  from  fear  of  danger.'  If  a  commandment 
stand  in  his  way,  he  dares  not  go  through ;  it  is  more  than  if  all  the 
terrors  of  the  world  stand  in  his  way ;  he  will  endure  all  hazards  rather 
than  break  through  a  command. 


SERMON  CV. 

I  have  more  understanding  than  all  my  teachers  :  for  thy  testimonies 
are  my  meditation. — VER.  99. 

DAVID  had  spoken  of  his  affection  to  the  word  of  God,  and  then  men 
tioned  one  special  ground  thereof,  which  was  the  wisdom  that  he  got 
thereby  ;  now  this  wisdom  is  amplified,  by  comparing  it  with  the  wis 
dom  of  others.  Three  sorts  of  men  he  mentioneth — enemies,  teachers, 
ancients.  The  enemies  excel  in  policy,  teachers  in  doctrine,  and 
ancients  in  counsel ;  and  yet  by  the  word  was  David  made  wiser  than 
all  these.  Malice  sharpens  the  wit  of  enemies,  and  teacheth  them  the 
arts  of  opposition  ;  teachers  are  furnished  with  learning  ;  but  ancients, 
they  grow  wise  by  experience  :  yet  David,  by  the  study  of  the  word, 
excelled  all  these.  In  the  text  we  may  observe  two  things : — 

1.  David's  assertion  concerning  his  profiting  by  the  word  of  God,  / 
have  more  understanding  than  all  my  teachers. 

2.  The  reason,  taken  from  his  diligent  use  of  the  means,  for  thy 
testimonies  are  my  meditation. 

For  the  first  of  these,  '  I  have  more  understanding  than  all  my 
teachers,'  to  clear  the  words  : — 

1.  It  is  certain  that  he  speaks  not  this  of  his  extraordinary  revela 
tions  as  a  prophet,  but  of  that  wisdom  which  he  got  by  ordinary  means. 
The  holy  men  of  God  in  the  Old  Testament,  considered  as  prophets, 
so  they  had  extraordinary  visions  and  revelations.     Now  David  speaks 
of  that  kind  of  knowledge  got  by  the  ordinary  means,  not  those  special 
revelations  made  to  the  prophets  ;  for  he  renders  the  reason  of  it, '  Thy 
testimonies  are  my  meditation.' 

2.  It  is  certain  he  speaks  not  this  by  way  of  boasting  ;  for  this  is  a 
psalm  of  instruction,  not  a  history  or  narrative.     Now  the  children  of 
God  would  not  commend  their  failings  to  the  imitation  of  others,  and 
this  which  David  speaks  is  rendered  as  a  reason  of  his  respect ;  by  the 
word  he  got  wisdom  above  his  teachers,  enemies,  and  ancients. 

_  Briefly,  the  intent  and  use  of  this  assertion  will  be  known  by  con 
sidering  the  quality  of  these  teachers  here  mentioned.  You  may  look 
upon  them  either— (1.)  As  faulty  or  defective  in  their  duty;  (2.)  As 


10  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiR.  CV. 

performing  their  duty.     In  both  these  notions  David  was  wiser  than 
they,  or  a  man  of  a  better  understanding. 

1.  If  you  look  upon  them  under  a  diminishing  notion;  so  some 
would  understand  it  thus,  that  those  which  instructed  him  in  human 
learning  and  civil  discipline  had  not  understanding  as  he  that  medi 
tated  in  God's  testimonies.     If  this  were  the  sense,  there  is  no  boast 
ing,  but  only  comparing  knowledge  with  knowledge,  the  knowledge  of 
the  word  with  the  knowledge  of  ordinary  sciences ;  and  it  gives  us 
this  lesson,  that  the  great  sages  of  the  world  that  do  excel  in  secular 
wisdom  are  but  fools  to  a  child  of  God ;  they  know  the  secrets  of 
nature,  and  he  knows  the  God  of  nature  ;  they  dispute  about  the  chiefest 
good,  and  he  enjoys  it ;  they  know  the  use  of  natural  things,  and  he 
knoweth  the  use  of   spiritual.      This  wisdom  and  skill  in  outward 
things,  compared  with  the  fear  of  God,  is  but  vanity  ;  and  the  wisest 
man  must '  become  a  fool  that  he  may  be  wise '  with  this  kind  of 
wisdom,  1  Cor.  iii.  18. 

2.  You  may  look  upon  them  as  corrupt  and  sinful.     In  those  days 
of  Saul,  the  teachers  might  be  corrupt  as  well  as  other  ranks  and  orders 
of  men  ;  and  then  it  only  implies  this,  that  God  gives  greater  under 
standing  to  his  people  than  to  their  corrupt  guides  :  Luke  xi.  52,  '  Woe 
unto  you  lawyers  ;  for  ye  have  taken  away  the  key  of  knowledge  :  ye 
entered  not  in  yourselves,  and  them  that  were  entering  in  ye  hindered.' 
The  expounders  of  the  law  were  corrupt,  and  hindered  others  from 
entering  into  the  kingdom  of  God.     It  is  a  great  evil  when  the  church 
of  God  is  given  up  to  such  kind  of  guides.     But  now,  in  such  a  case, 
they  that  make  conscience  of  God's  ordinances,  use  private  means  with 
diligence,  have  more  understanding  than  their  teachers :  Mat.  xxiii. 
2, 3,  '  The  scribes  and  Pharisees  sit  in  Moses'  seat.     Whatsoever  they 
bid  you  observe,  that  observe  and  do ;  but  do  not  ye  after  their  works  ; 
for  they  say,  and  do  not.'     Though  they  were  naught  and  corrupt 
themselves,  yet  if  they  bring  God's  message,  it  should  not  be  slighted, 
because  of  the  office  and  lawful  authority  with  which  they  are  invested, 
though  not  every  way  qualified  for  their  station  ;  and  in  this  sense  a 
child  of  God  may  be  wiser  than  his  teachers. 

3.  We  may  look  upon  them  as  contenting  themselves  with  the  naked 
theory  of  God's  law,  without  making  conscience  of  practice  ;  that  they 
were  such  kind  of  guides  that  never  tasted  themselves  what  they  com 
mended  to  others,  or  practised  what  they  taught ;  then  '  I  have  more 
understanding  than  my  teachers/     He  that  excels  in  practice  hath  the 
best  understanding.     Practical  knowledge  is  to  be  preferred  before 
speculative,  as  much  as  the  end  is  to  be  preferred  before  the  means ; 
the  end  is  more  noble  than  the  means.     Now  speculative  knowledge  is 
the  means  to  the  end  :  Ps.  cxi.  10,  '  A  good  understanding  have  all 
they  that  do  his  commandments.'     Not  only  know  what  is  to  be  done, 
but  do  what  is  to  be  known.     As  for  others,  whatever  light  they  seem 
to  have,  they  have  not  wisdom  and  understanding :  Jer.  viii.  9,  '  Lo, 
they  have  rejected  the  word  of  the  Lord,  and  what  wisdom  is  in  them  ?' 
They  were  boasting  of  the  knowledge  of  the  law,  yet  there  was  no  wis 
dom  in  them.     A  mean  Christian,  that  fears  God,  is  a  man  of  more 
understanding  than  he  that  hath  a  great  deal  of  head-light  •  and  in 
this  sense  may  it  be  well  said,  the  children  of  God  are  wiser  than  their 


VER.  99.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  11 

teachers.  Many  times  those  that  are  unlearned  rise  up  and  take  heaven 
by  violence,  when  others,  by  all  their  literal  and  speculative  knowledge, 
are  thrust  down  to  hell. 

Suppose  it  spoken  no  way  in  diminution  to  these  teachers,  but  that 
they  did  their  duty. 

4.  Some  comment  thus  ;  that  David  had  more  understanding  than 
all  his  teachers  who  taught  him  the  first  rudiments  of  religion,  that  he 
transcended  them  by  far,  by  God's  blessing,  in  making  further  progress 
in  this  kind  of  knowledge.  If  this  were  the  sense,  it  would  teach  us  not 
always  to  keep  to  our  milk  and  to  the  first  principles  of  religion,  but 
to  wade  further  and  further  into  these  mysteries,  Heb.  v.  12, 13.  We 
should  go  on  still,  and  grow  up  to  a  greater  fulness  in  knowledge  ac 
cording  as  we  have  more  means  and  advantages.  But  this  is  not  the 
sense,  for  he  saith,  c  than  all  my  teachers/  Why  then,  secondly,  take 
it  for  his  godly  teachers  that  were  every  way  qualified ;  and  it  is  no 
new  thing  for  a  scholar  to  exceed  his  master,  and  Christians  of  a  pri 
vate  station  many  times  to  excel  those  that  are  in  office.  Look,  as  in 
secular  things  among  the  heathens,  Aristotle  was  wiser  than  Plato  his 
master,  and  opposed  him  in  many  things,  and  therefore  is  called  an 
ass's  colt,  that  as  soon  as  he  was  full  with  the  dam's  milk,  he  kicks 
her  ;  he  forgot  that  he  was  his  father.  We  should,  if  we  can,  exceed 
our  teachers,  but  not  despise  them  ;  and  Daniel,  chap.  i.  20,  was  wiser 
in  civil  arts  than  all  his  teachers,  so  also  it  is  true  as  to  holy  things. 
Jesus  Christ  at  twelve  years  of  age  puzzled  the  doctors.  Eli  brought 
up  Samuel  in  the  fear  of  God,  but  he  proved  wiser  than  Eli ;  Paul, 
brought  up  at  the  feet  of  Gamaliel,  Acts  xxii.  3,  proved  a  more  nota 
ble  instrument  of  God's  glory  >  and  Austin  was  taught  by  Ambrose, 
but  grew  afterwards  more  eminent  than  he.  Thus  David  was  wiser 
than  his  teachers,  and  yet  they  might  be  faithful  and  holy.  Now  he 
mentions  this  partly  to  commend  the  Lord's  grace,  '  Thou  hast  made 
me  wiser  than  my  teachers  ; '  and  partly  to  commend  meditation  in  the 
word,  the  means  by  which  he  got  it ;  not  to  boast  of  his  own  attain 
ments,  but  to  commend  grace,  and  commend  the  means  of  grace  to 
others. 

What  may  we  observe  from  this  assertion  of  David,  '  I  am.  wiser  than 
my  teachers '  ? 

06s.  1.  The  freeness  of  God's  grace  in  making  a  difference  between 
men  and  men  as  to  measures  and  degrees  of  knowledge :  1  Cor.  iv.  7, 
'  Who  made  thee  to  differ  from  another  ?  and  what  hast  thou  that  thou 
hast  not  received  ?'  Some  have  more  and  some  less  understanding, 
and  all  is  as  God  gives  out.  There  is  not  only  a  difference  between 
men  and  men  as  to  their  great  distinction  of  election  and  reprobation, 
but  within  the  sphere  of  election  as  to  measures  of  grace.  God  mani 
fests  himself  to  some  more  than  to  others ;  they  are  admitted  to  this 
favour,  to  see  more  than  others  into  the  mind  of  God,  though  they  have 
the  same  teacher,  God's  Spirit ;  the  same  rule  and  direction,  God's 
word  ;  the  same  principles  of  grace ;  yet  they  have  greater  measures 
of  knowledge :  the  reasons  lie  in  God's  bosom  and  grace.  Now  this 
should  be  noted,  that  those  which  excel  should  be  kept  humble,  as 
being  more  indebted  to  grace  than  others  are.  and  surely  none  should 
be  proud  because  more  in  debt ;  and  that  those  who  are  excelled  might 
submit,  and  be  contented  to  be  outshined :  John  iii.  30,  '  Ho  must 


12  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SBR.  CV. 

increase,  but  I  must  decrease.'  It  should  be  a  rejoicing  to  them  that 
God  is  likely  to  be  glorified  more  by  others ;  especially  teachers  should 
rejoice  that  God  should  give  such  a  blessing  to  the  ministry,  that  they 
which  seem  to  be  under  them  should  see  more  than  they.  ^  When  those 
two  quarrelling  pronouns,  meum  et  tuum,  mine  and  thine,  have  no 
more  use,  as  in  heaven,  then  we  shall  fully  rejoice  in  one  anothers' 
gifts  and  graces,  and  what  they  enjoy  it  will  be  our  comfort :  as, 
in  a  choir  of  voices,  one  sings  the  treble,  another  the  bass  ;  they  are 
refreshed,  and  every  one  delights  not  only  in  his  own  part  and  per 
formance,  but  in  the  part  of  each  other  ;  all  concurs  to  the  harmony  ; 
so  one  hath  this  measure  of  grace,  another  another,  and  all  concur  to 
the  glory  of  God. 

Obs.  2.  Not  only  the  freeness  of  God's  grace  in  giving  wisdom  to 
one  more  than  to  another,  but  observe  also  the  sovereignty  of  God's 
distribution.  The  treasures  of  grace  are  at  his  free  disposing,  and  he 
will  not  be  tied  to  any  order ;  he  gives  to  every  one  that  measure  of 
understanding  which  he  sees  fit.  Indeed  his  ordinary  course  is  to 
bless  the  teachers  of  his  people  with  an  increase  of  knowledge,  for  he 
hath  promised  a  more  especial  presence  with  the  public  gift  than  with 
private :  Mat.  xxviii.  20,  '  I  am  with  you  to  the  end  of  the  world/ 
Yet  many  times  private  believers  excel  their  godly  teachers  in  wisdom 
and  piety.  Wisdom  is  not  so  tied  to  the  teachers  but  that  God  is  free 
to  the  giving  as  much,  nay,  more,  to  those  that  are  taught.  Though 
the  general  course  is,  in  the  ordinary  way,  that  teachers  should  know 
more  than  the  taught,  yet  God  sometimes  doth  work  extraordinarily, 
to  show  his  prerogative,  and  absolute  sovereignty;  and  things  revealed 
to  babes  may  be  hid  from  the  wise  and  prudent,  to  show  that  it  is  at 
his  disposing,  to  hide  and  manifest  as  he  pleaseth. 

Obs.  3.  The  equity  and  proportion  that  he  observes  in  the  dispensa 
tion  of  his  sovereignty,  for  David  ascribes  it  to  God,  but  observes  that 
this  came  to  him  as  a  blessing  upon  the  use  of  means,  '  For  thy  testi 
monies  are  my  meditation.'  God  gives  knowledge  to  whom  he  pleas 
eth,  but  those  that  meditate  most  thrive  most. 

There  are  three  sorts  of  meditation— (1.)  Of  observation  ;  (2.)  Of 
study  and  search  ;  (3.)  Of  consideration  or  inculcative  application ; 
and  all  these  conduce  to  make  us  wise. 

1.  There  is  a  meditation  of  observation,  when  a  man  compares  the 
word  and  providence,  and  is  still  taking  notice  how  such  a  promise 
is  accomplished,  such  a  threatening  made  good  ;  this  man  will  grow 
more  wise  and  more  understanding  than  others:  Ps.  cvii.  43,  'Whoso 
is  wise,  and  will  observe  those  things,  even  they  shall  understand  the 
loving-kindness  of  the  Lord.'     That  is,  he  that  is  comparing  the 
prediction  and  event,  God's  proceedings  either  in  justice  or  mercy 
according  to  his  word,  how  he  doth  punish  and  reward  his  people,  and 
what  visible  comments  his  works  are  upon  his  word,  he  hath  a  clearer 
discerning  than  others,  and  they  will  see  more  cause  to  adhere  to  God, 
and  yield  him  more  faithful  obedience  than  others. 

2.  There  is  the  meditation  of  study  and  search,  they  that  are  inquir 
ing  into  the  word  of  God  to  find  out  his  mind  :  Eph.  v.  17,  '  Be  ye  not 
unwise,  but  understanding  what  the  will  of  the  Lord  is.'  '   They  that 
exercise  themselves  in  the  word  to  find  out  his  mind  shall  have  more 


VER.  99.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  13 

of  his  blessing  than  those  that  rest  in  hearing  and  reading :  *  For 
with  what  measure  ye  mete,  it  shall  be  measured  to  you  ;  and  unto 
you  that  hear,  shall  more  be  given,'  Mark  iv.  24.  It  is  spoken  of 
measuring  to  God  in  ordinances  ;  as  we  measure  to  God  in  the  use  of 
means,  so  the  Lord  will  measure  out  to  us  in  his  blessing  and  the  in 
fluences  of  his  grace. 

3.  There  is  a  meditation  of  consideration,  when  we  consider  that 
which  we  read  and  hear,  how  it  may  be  for  use  and  practice,  and  of 
what  moment  it  is  for  our  eternal  weal  or  woe.  The  scripture  calls  it 
consideration  :  2  Tim.  ii.  7,  '  Consider  what  I  say,  and  the  Lord  give 
thee  understanding  in  all  things ;'  Ps.  1.  22,  '  Consider  this,  ye  that 
forget  God,  lest  I  tear  you  in  pieces,  and  there  be  none  to  deliver/ 
The  more  men  consider  things  with  application  to  their  own  soul,  the 
more  wise  will  they  grow,  and  the  more  understanding  in  the  things 
of  God,  and  able  to  apply  all  for  their  own  direction ;  he  will  see  more 
than  the  teacher  ever  could  express  when  he  gives  forth  the  general 
doctrine  of  faith  and  manners.  But  let  any  meditate  upon  it,  and 
urge  his  own  heart,  and  he  shall  find  something  the  teacher  thought 
not  of  ;  and  this  principally  is  the  sense  spoken  of  in  this  place.  A 
man  that  urgeth  his  own  heart  with  what  is  taught,  when  he  hath  a 
general  doctrine  applies  it  to  his  own  soul,  and  reflects  the  light  of  it 
upon  his  own  heart,  meditates  upon  it  by  serious  and  inculcative 
thoughts,  will  ever  find  something  either  the  teacher  saw  not,  or  seeing 
expressed  not,  see  further  into  this  truth  than  the  teacher  was  aware 
of.  The  life  and  success  of  all  means  doth  lie  in  this  meditation. 

Obs.  4.  '  I  have  more  understanding  than  my  teachers.'  We  learn 
this,  that  private  means  is  a  duty,  and  meditation  must  be  joined 
with  public  hearing.  Many  content  themselves  with  public  ordi 
nances,  but  make  no  conscience  of  private  means,  as  secret  prayer,  and 
debating  with  themselves  by  serious  inculcative  thoughts  returning 
upon  their  own  heart.  Oh !  make  conscience  of  this  private  duty. 
You  may  prosper  and  thrive  more  in  a  way  of  grace.  When  the 
apostle  laid  down  the  privileges  of  a  justified  estate,  Kom.  viii.  31,  he 
concludes,  '  Now  what  shall  we  say  to  these  things  ? '  implying  we 
should  urge  our  own  heart  upon  every  general  doctrine,  or  rouse  up 
ourselves  with  such  a  smart  question,  Heb.  ii.  3,  '  How  shall  we 
escape  if  we  neglect  so  great  salvation  ? ; 

06s.  5.  We  learn,  again,  that  it  is  good  to  submit  to  God's  insti 
tutions  ;  though  the  persons  employed  in  them  be  never  so  mean,  yet 
if  they  be  clothed  with  lawful  authority,  by  a  conscientious  attending 
upon  God's  ordinance,  we  may  get  a  great  deal  of  wisdom  more  than 
the  teacher  ever  had,  as  they  set  your  thoughts  awork.  Surely,  if 
teachers  be  corrupt,  as  they  sit  in  Moses'  chair,  though  they  are  cor 
rupt,  yet  as  far  as  they  do  God's  message  they  are  to  be  regarded. 
Certainly  we  are  not  to  turn  back  upon  one  meaner  gifted  if  godly,  or 
be  a  discouragement  to  those  that  are  weak,  though  they  are  not  so 
able,  and  have  not  so  strong  a  gift.  God  may  make  a  mean  teacher  a 
means  for  the  increasing  of  knowledge. 

06s.  6.  We  learn  the  glory  of  all  profiting ;  it  must  not  be  given  to 
the  instruments,  but  to  God,  for  the  scholar  may  become  wiser  than  the 
teacher  ;  that  is,  God  may  give  more  grace  by  an  instrument  than  the 


14  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiB.  CVI. 

instrument  hath  in  himself,  to  show  that  all  is  of  him,  that  it  doth 
not  lie  in  the  teacher's  gift.  All  profiting  must  be  ascribed  to  God ; 
therefore  the  glory  of  all  must  redound  to  him,  to  his  grace  :  1  Cor. 
xv.  10,  '  By  the  grace  of  God  I  am  what  I  am  ;  and  his  grace  which 
was  bestowed  upon  me  was  not  in  vain  :  I  laboured  more  abundantly 
than  they  all,  yet  not  I,  but  the  grace  of  God  which  was  with  me.'  If 
never  so  able,  it  is  still  from  God. 

Secondly,  The  reason,  'I  have  more  understanding  than  all  my 
teachers :  for  thy  testimonies  are  my  meditation.' 

Point.  That  meditation  is  a  great  help  towards  gracious  improve 
ment.  David  grew  in  such  a  manner  as  that  he  did  excel  all  his 
teachers,  and  he  giveth  this  reason  of  it :  '  For  thy  testimonies  are 
my  meditation.'  The  scripture  calleth  for  this  :  1  Tim.  iv.  15,  'Medi 
tate  upon  these  things,  give  thyself  wholly  to  them,  that  thy  profit 
ing  may  appear  to  all.  So  consider  what  I  say,  and  the  Lord  give  thee 
understanding  in  all  things ; '  and  Ps.  1.  22,  '  Consider  this,  ye  that 
forget  God,  lest  I  tear  you  in  pieces,  and  there  be  none  to  deliver ; ' 
and  Luke  ii.  19,  '  Mary  kept  all  these  things,  and  pondered  them  in 
her  heart.'  Here  I  might  show— (1.)  What  this  is ;  (2.)  What  a 
notable  means  this  is  for  spiritual  improvement  and  growth  in  know 
ledge  ;  to  debate  things  with  himself,  Who  made  him,  and  for  what  end 
he  was  made.  But  of  this  you  may  see  at  large,  ver.  15. 


SEKMON  CYL 

/  understand  more  than  the  ancients,  because  I  keep  thy  precepts. — 

VER.  100. 

MAN  is  a  rational  being,  and  should  close  with  things  more  or  less  as 
they  do  perfect  and  polish  his  understanding.  Now  among  all  the 
inventions  of  mankind  to  remedy  the  defects  of  nature,  not  one  of  them 
can  compare  with  the  means  which  God  offers  for  curing  of  the  blind 
ness  and  darkness  of  the  mind  which  is  introduced  by  the  fall.  Man 
hath  found  out  grammar  to  rectify  his  speech,  rhetoric  to  adorn  it  and 
make  it  more  cogent  and  powerful  in  persuasion,  logic  to  revive  reason, 
medicine  or  physic  to  preserve  the  health  of  the  body,  politics  for  go 
vernment  of  human  societies,  and  for  ordering  our  converse  with  others 
in  the  world,  economics  for  prudent  ordering  of  families,  ethics  for 
the  tempering  of  each  man's  spirit,  that  it  may  live  under  the  domin 
ion  of  natural  reason.  But  mark,  for  commerce  and  communion  with 
God,  wherein  our  happiness  lies,  there  all  the  inventions  of  man  are 
very  short,  and  only  the  word  of  God  can  guide  us,  and  furnish  us 
with  this  wisdom ;  and  because  of  this  is  the  word  so  desirous-1 
and  precious  to  the  saints.  <  Oh,  how  they  love  the  law  of  God  !  '  for 
it  is  their  wisdom.  Well,  David  having  showed  how  it  prevailed 
with  his  own  heart,  Oh,  how  I  love  thy  law  ! '  for  thereby  I  get  spiri 
tual  wisdom  and  understanding;  to  draw  in  other  men  to  love  and 
s  udy  the  word,  and  to  make  this  motive  strong  and  pressing  upon 
iem,  he  doth  compare  the  wisdom  that  men  may  get  by  the  word 

1  That  is,  "desirable,"  or  " desired."— ED. 


VER.  100.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  15 

with  other  things  that  look  like  wisdom  ;  he  compares  it  with  the 
sagacity  of  enemies,  the  speculation  and  knowledge  of  the  teacher, 
and  the  prudence  we  get  by  age  and  experience. 

1.  With  the  sagacity  of  enemies,  whose  wit  was  sharpened  with 
their  own  malice.     There  he  shows  that  a  man  that  taketh  counsel 
of  the  word  to  secure  his  great  interest,  by  getting  into  the  favour  of 
God,  and  walketh  by  the  plain  rule  of  the  word,  without  consulting 
with  flesh  and  blood,  hath  the  advantage  of  all  other  men,  and  will  be 
found  to  be  the  wisest  man  at  length.     He  compares  this  wisdom  he 
got  by  the  word  with  the  speculations  and  knowledge  of  teachers.     He 
that  doth  not  content  himself  with  the  naked  rules  delivered  by  them, 
but  labours  with  his  own  conscience  to  make  them  profitable  to  his 
own  soul,  he  will  see  more  by  his  own  eyes  as  to  the  particular  duties 
and  concernments  of  the  spiritual  life  than  his  teachers  could  ever 
direct  him  unto. 

2.  He  compares  it  here  in  the  text  with  the  wisdom  of  the  ancients, 
or  men  of  long  experience.      By  the  elders  or  ancients  may  be  meant 
either  men  of  former  times,  or  aged  men  of  the  same  time. 

[1.]  Men  of  former  times :  Heb.  xi.  2,  '  By  it  the  ancients  or  elders 
obtained  a  good  report ; '  that  is,  the  holy  patriarchs  of  their  time. 
If  this  be  meant  of  men  in  former  times,  then  tliou  hast  made  me 
u'iser  than  the  ancients  recommends  this  observation  to  us,  viz.,  the 
church  of  God  is  growing  always,  and  one  age  sees  more  than  an 
other.  A  dwarf  upon  a  giant's  shoulders  may  see  further  than  he. 
The  ancients  had  their  measures  of  light,  so  hath  the  present  age : 
Joel  ii.  28-30, '  In  the  latter  days  ' — meaning  the  times  of  the  gospeL 
all  that  efflux  of  time  which  was  between  Christ's  ascension  and  his 
second  coming,  is  called  '  the  latter  days  ' — '  I  will  pour  out  my  Spirit 
upon  all  flesh,  and  your  sons  and  your  daughters  shall  prophesy,  your 
old  men  shall  dream  dreams,  and  your  young  men  shall  see  visions,' 
&c.  The  knowledge  which  younger  ones  shall  get  under  the  New 
Testament  is  expressed  by  visions,  dreams,  and  prophecy.  These  three 
were  the  ways  of  God's  revealing  himself  to  the  old  prophets ;  there 
fore  it  implies  that  those  very  truths  which  the  prophets  and  holy 
men  of  God  had  by  visions,  dreams,  and  prophecies,  by  such  extra 
ordinary  ways  of  revelation,  will  then  be  commonly  known  by  preach 
ing  and  catechising  and  other  means  of  instruction  in  the  church  of 
God :  and  thus,  '  I  have  more  understanding  than  the  ancients.'  Suc 
ceeding  ages  may  see  more  into  the  mind  of  God  ;  therefore  antiquity 
should  not  sway  against  truth,  and  former  ages  should  not  prescribe  to 
succeeding,  which  grow  up  to  a  further  latitude  and  increase  in  know 
ledge. 

[2.]  Bather  let  us  take  it,  '  I  have  more  understanding  than  the 
ancients;'  that  is,  than  many  old  men  of  the  same  age.  They  that 
are  ^slow  and  dull  of  conceit,  yet  by  long  use  they  grow  wise  ;  and 
having  smarted  often,  they  learn  by  their  own  harms  to  become  cir 
cumspect.  But  here  is  the  excellency  of  the  word,  that  it  made  a 
young  man  wiser  than  those  that  are  men  of  age  and  experience. 
Youths  well  studied  in  God's  law  may  exceed  men" of  great  experience 
and  knowledge  in  arts  and  sciences.  True  zeal  and  piety,  and  the 
defects  of  his  age  and  want  of  experiences,  are  recompensed  by  the 


IQ  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CVI. 

exactness  of  his  rule  that  he  takes  to  guide  him  ;  if  he  will  but  wholly 
subject  and  give  up  himself  to  the  directions  of  this  rule,  he  will  not 
need  much  experience  ;  he  hath  enough  to  guide  him  :  '  I  understand 
more  than  the  ancients :  because  I  keep  thy  precepts/  In  which  words 

you  have — 

1    The  benefit  that  we  get  by  God's  precepts,  that  is  understanding. 

2.  This  benefit  is  amplified  by  comparing  it  with  the  understanding 
that  is  gotten  by  age  and  experience,  /  understand  more  than  the 

ancients. 

3.  The  manner  of  obtaining  this  more  excellent  benefit,  by  a  dili 
gent  heed  and  practice,  '  I  understand  more  than  the  ancients.'    Why  ? 
^Because  I  keep  thy  precepts.     So  that  from  hence  three  points  are  to 
be  observed : — 

1.  That  understanding  gotten  by  the  precepts  of  the  word  is  better 
than  understanding  gotten  by  long  experience.     I  observe  this,  because 
David  doth  not  speak  this  so  much  to  commend  his  own  proficiency, 
as  to  set  forth  the  exactness  of  our  rule  and  goodness  of  the  word  of 
God ;  therefore  this  point  lies  couched  here. 

2.  That  young  ones  may  sometimes  have  more  of  spiritual  wisdom 
than  those  that  are  ancient.     I  observe  that,  because  David  instanceth 
in  his  own  person,  though  young,  that  he  exceeded  many,  not  only  of 
his  equals,  but  of  his  seniors. 

3.  The  way  to  increase  in  spiritual  understanding  is  to  be  studious 
in  practical  holiness.     I  observe  this,  because  the  reason  rendered  was 
his  own  diligent  practice,   '  I  understand  more  than  the  ancients/ 
Why  ?  '  Because  I  keep  thy  precepts/ 

Doct.  1.  That  understanding  gotten  by  the  precepts  of  the  word  is 
better  than  understanding  gotten  by  long  experience.  It  is  better  in 
four  regards  : — 

1.  It  is  more  exact.  Our  experience  reacheth  but  to  a  few  things, 
but  the  word  of  God  reacheth  to  all  cases  that  concern  true  happiness. 
The  word  is  the  result  of  God's  wisdom,  who  is  the  Ancient  of  days, 
therefore  exceeds  the  wisdom  of  the  ancients,  or  experience  of  any 
man,  or  all  men.  God  is  more  ancient  than  they,  sees  all  things  that 
have  been,  are,  and  shall  be,  at  one  view  and  sight ;  and  therefore,  if 
he  will  give  us  a  rule,  certainly  that  is  more  than  all  our  experience. 
Experience  will  show  us  the  evils  of  this  world,  and  give  us  some  rules 
to  escape  it ;  but  the  word  of  God  tells  us  of  evils  in  the  next,  and 
that  with  more  persuasiveness  and  evidence  than  if  one  came  from  the 
dead,  and  had  been  wallowing  in  those  devouring  flames  that  had  been 
kindled  in  the  other  world,  Luke  xvi.  30,  31.  There  is  more  exact 
ness  and  completeness  in  this  rule  than  possibly  can  be  in  experience  : 
2  Tim.  iii.  17,  *  The  word  is  profitable  for  doctrine,  for  reproof,  for 
correction,  for  instruction  in  righteousness  ;  that  the  man  of  God  may 
be  perfect,  thoroughly  furnished  unto  all  good  works/  By  the  man  of 
God  is  meant  the  teacher ;  the  prophets  are  called  men  of  God,  and 
the  public  teacher  is  the  man  of  God.  If  there  be  enough  to  furnish 
the  teacher  to  every  good  work,  surely  there  is  enough  to  furnish  the 
practiser.  There  is  enough  to  furnish  the  maw  of  God,  who  is  to 
consult  not  only  for  his  own  private  necessity,  but  the  necessities  of 
others. 


VER.  100.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  17 

2.  As  it  is  a  more  exact,  so  a  more  sure  way  of  learning  wisdom, 
whereas  experience  is  more  uncertain.     Many  have  much  experience, 
yet  have  not  a  heart  to  see  and  to  gather  wisdom  from  what  they  feel : 
Beat.  xxix.  2,  3,  '  Ye  have  seen  all  that  the  Lord  did  before  your  eyes 
in  the  land  of  Egypt.     Yet  the  Lord  hath  not  given  you  an  heart  to 
perceive,  and  eyes  to  see,  and  ears  to  hear,  unto  this  day.'     They  saw 
it,  that  is,  had  experience  of  it,  yet  not  a  heart  to  improve  it :  Ps.  xlix. 
13,  *  This  their  way  is  their  folly,  yet  their  posterity  approve  their 
sayings/     The  father  gets  an  estate  ;  when  gotten,  he  thinks  to  enjoy 
it ;  God  takes  him  off ;  their  posterity  live  by  their  carnal  maxims, 
and  do  not  profit  by  their  experience.     Though  they  stand  upon  the 
graves  of  many  that  made  a  great  bustle  in  the  world  to  compass  their 
worldly  ends,  yet  they  are  never  the  wiser  for  all  this.     Therefore  it 
is  a  great  advantage  to  have  a  stated  fixed  rule  to  our  hands,  to  have 
a  rule  of  wisdom  and  principles  given  us  by  God  himself,  wherewith 
to  steer  and  guide  our  course. 

3.  It  is  a  safer  and  cheap  way  of  learning,  to  learn  by  rule,  than  to 
come  home  by  Weeping  Gross,  and  to  learn  wisdom  by  our  own  smart. 
Experience  is  too  expensive  a  way ;  and  if  we  had  nothing  else  to 
guide  us,  into  how  many  thousand  miseries  should  we  run  !    how 
would  a  man's  life  be  exposed  to  inevitable  hazards  and  soul-dangers ! 
And  if  by  chance  he  should  get  out  of  the  snare  (which  is  uncertain), 
yet  the  taint  of  former  practices  will  remain  in  him  a  long  time  ; 
therefore  it  is  God's  mercy  he  will  teach  us  by  precept  rather  than  by 
experience ;  that  he  doth  not  teach  us,  as  Gideon  taught  the  men  of 
Succoth,  by  briars  and  thorns,  but  that  we  may  learn  wisdom  at  a 
cheaper  rate.     If  we  were  only  to  know  (as  God  saith  of  his  people, 
Jer.  ii.  19,  'Thine  own  wickedness  shall  correct  thee,  and  thy  back- 
slidings  shall  reprove  thee ')  when  we  had  smarted  for  it,  this  were  an 
expensive  costly  way;  but  if  we  will  hearken  to  God's  precepts,  all  this 
smart  and  trouble  and  bitterness  of  affliction  may  be  saved.     There 
fore  the  precepts  of  God  are  better. 

4.  The  way  by  age  and  experience  is  a  long  way,  and  so  for  a  long 
time  all  a  man's  younger  age  must  needs  be  miserable  and  foolish. 
Now  here  you  may  come  betimes  to  be  wise,  by  studying  the  word  of 
God  :  Prov.  i.  22,  '  How  long,  ye  simple  ones,  will  ye  love  simplicity, 
and  ye  fools  hate  knowledge  ?  '     It  concerns  a  man  not  only  to  be  wise 
at  length,  but  to  be  wise  betimes.     The  foolish  virgins  were  wise  too 
late,  but  never  any  were  wise  too  soon.     Therefore  surely  that  is  better 
which  will  make  us  wise  betimes,  as  soon  as  we  come  to  be  exposed  to 
dangers.     In  these  respects  he  that  applies  himself  to  God's  precepts 
will  get  more  wisdom  than  he  that  gets  wisdom  by  age  and  experience  ; 
he  hath  it  in  a  shorter  way,  a  safer  way,  a  less  expensive  way,  and  in  a 
more  certain  and  exacter  way. 

Use  I .  To  reprove  the  folly  of  men  that  will  not  take  God's  direc 
tions,  but  will  be  trying  experiments  at  their  own  cost ;  as  Solomon 
gave  out  his  heart  to  a  critical  search,  he  would  find  where  happiness 
and  comfort  was,  and  at  length  was  forced  to  come  home  by  Weeping 
Cross,  to  the  fear  of  God  and  keeping  of  his  commandments.  This  is 
the  whole  of  man,  he  had  tried  pleasure,  profit,  and  all  things.  The 
prodigal  would  be  running  out  of  his  father's  house,  and  we  all  would 

VOL.  VIII.  B 


lg  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiB.  CVI. 

be  trying  because  we  will  not  take  God's  word.  God  hath  given  his 
word  here  to  man,  we  need  not  search  elsewhere ;  and  it  is  a  thousand 
to  one  that,  when  you  are  trying,  that  ever  you  recover  yourselves  out 
of  the  snare.  Here  or  there  a  man  returns;  I  found  them,  saith 
Solomon,  but  there  are  very  few;  and  therefore,  as  the  prophet  saith, 
Jer  xxxi  32  'How  long  wilt  thou  go  about,  0  thou  backsliding 
daughter?'  'Why  do  you  compass  about  ?  There  is  a  shorter  way 
to  true  happiness,  if  we  had  a  heart  to  take  it.  Oh,  but  we  must  have 
our  swing  and  our  scope,  and  then  come  home  by  shame  and  sorrow: 
Mat  xi.  28,  'Come  to  me,  all  ye  that  labour  and  are  heavy  laden. 
Mark,  they  that  come  to  Christ,  come  not  only  laden  with  their  sins, 
but  weary  with  vain  pursuits.  But  this  is  the  fashion  of  man,  to  be 
running  about,  to  be  wearying  himself,  and  contract  weariness  and 
thirst,  as  the  prophet  speaks,  Jer.  ii.  13. 

Use  2.  To  recommend  the  study  of  the  word.  0  Christians  ! 
hath  provided  for  us  better  than  the  heathens,  who  were  forced  to  hunt 
up  and  down  to  find  a  spark  of  wisdom  here  and  there ;  it  is  all  brought 
home,  and  suited  to  your  hands  in  the  word  of  God ;  there  is  more 
wisdom  to  be  gotten  there  for  the  guiding  of  your  affairs  and  course 
of  life  in  order  to  true  happiness  than  by  age  and  long  experience  you 
can  possibly  reach.  Two  ways  doth  this  appear  : — 

1.  Because  the  word  doth  sufficiently  instruct  us  in  our  duty :  Prov. 
ii.  9,  '  Then  shalt  thou  understand  righteousness,  and  judgment,  and 
equity ;  yea,  every  good  path.'     Then  I  when  ?     When  you  give  up 
yourselves  to  God's  direction,  and  take  the  law  from  his  mouth,  and 
walk  in  the  way  that  is  pointed  out  by  his  word  and  Spirit ;  you  shall 
have  enough  to  direct  you  in  all  your  ways. 

2.  It  doth  warn  us  of  all  our  dangers.     It  doth  not  only  in  the 
general  call  upon  us  '  to  watch/  Mat.  xiii.  37,  and  '  walk  circumspectly,' 
Eph.  v.  15,  but  it  discovers  all  those  deceits  particularly  whereby  we 
may  be  surprised,  diverted,  and  turned  out  of  the  way.     There  are 
snares  in  prosperity,  snares  in  adversity ;  temptations  you  meet  with 
in  praying,  trading,  eating,  drinking,  in  your  public  undertakings,  and 
in  your  private  converse ;  it  shows  your  danger  in  all  your  ways,  before 
you  feel  the  smart  of  them.     Therefore  give  up  yourselves  to  God's 
direction,  reading,  hearing,  meditating,  believing,  and  practising ;  read, 
hear  it  often,  then  the  deceits  of  Satan  will  be  laid  open,  and  the  snares 
of  your  own  hearts.     Christians  !  an  exact  rule  is  of  little  use  if  you 
do  not  consult  it :  Gal.  vi.  16,  '  Peace  and  mercy  be  upon  all  them 
that  walk  according  to  this  rule  ;'   that   order  their    conversations 
exactly.     The  word  signifies,  that  try  their  work  as  a  carpenter  doth 
by  his  square  ;  they  examine  their  actions  by  the  word  of  God,  what 
they  are  now  a-doing,  therefore  consult  with  it  often ;  then  meditate 
of  it,  ponder  it  seriously :  2  Tim.  ii.  7,  '  Consider  what  I  say,  and  the 
Lord  give  thee  understanding  in  all  things/     If  we  would  have  under 
standing  by  the  word,  there  must  be  consideration.     Man  hath  a 
discursive  faculty  to  debate  things  with  himself.     Why !  this  is  my 
duty.    What  would  become  of  me  if  I  step  out  of  God's  way  ?     Here 
is  danger  and  a  snare ;  what  if  I  should  run  into  it  now  it  is  laid 
before  me  ?     And  then  believe  it  surely  :  Heb.  iv.  2,  '  The  word  pro 
fited  not,  not  being  mixed  with  faith  in  them  that  heard  it.'     Believe 


VER.  100.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  19 

God  upon  his  word  without  making  trial.  You  hear  much  of  living 
by  sense  and  by  faith ;  living  by  faith  is  when  we  bear  up  upon  the 
bare  word  of  God,  and  encourage  ourselves  in  the  Lord ;  but  living  by 
sense  is  a  trying  whether  it  be  so  or  no  ;  as  they  that  will  not  believe 
hell  shall  feel  hell,  and  they  that  will  not  believe  the  word  of  God 
shall  smart  for  it :  Heb.  xi.  7,  '  Noah,  being  warned  of  God  of  things 
not  seen  as  yet,  moved  with  fear,  prepared  an  ark.'  It  may  be  there 
were  no  preparations  to  the  accomplishment  of  the  curse  and  judgment ; 
the  word  threatened,  it  is  a  thing  not  seen,  yet  he  prepared  an  ark. 
When  a  man  is  walking  in  an  unjust  course,  all  things  prosper  for 
a-while,  the  misery  the  word  threatens  is  unseen.  Ay !  but  if  you 
would  grow  wiser  by  the  word  than  'men  can  by  experience,  you  must 
look  to  the  end  of  things :  Ps.  Ixxiii.  17,  '  I  went  into  the  sanctuary 
of  God,  then  understood  I  their  end/  And  then  practise  it  diligently. 
A  young  practiser  hath  more  understanding  than  an  ancient  notion 
alist  :  Ps.  cxi.  10,  '  A  good  understanding  have  all  they  that  do  his 
commandments/  It  is  not  they  that  are  able  to  speak  of  things,  and 
savour  what  the  word  requires,  but  they  that  do  what  they  hear  and 
discourse  of,  Gregory  saith,  we  know  no  more  than  we  practise,  and 
we  practise  as  we  know ;  these  two  always  go  together.  The  word 
doth  us  no  good  unless  there  be  a  ready  obedience ;  therefore  this  is 
wisdom,  when  we  give  up  ourselves  to  God's  direction,  whatever  it  cost 
us  in  the  world. 

Doct.  2.  That  young  ones  may  have  many  times  more  of  this  wisdom 
than  those  that  are  ancient. 

Divers  instances  there  are.     Joseph  was  very  young,  sold  into  Egypt 
about  seventeen  years  of  age  ;  and  when  he  was  in  Egypt,  Ps.  cv.  22, 
'  He  taught  his  senators  wisdom/  speaking  of  the  senators  of  Egypt. 
With  how  much  modesty  did  he  carry  himself  when  his  mistress  laid 
that  snare  !     Isaac  was  young,  and  permitted  himself  to  be  offered  to 
God  as  a  sacrifice.    Samuel  was  wise  betimes  :  1  Sam.  ii.  26,  it  is  said, 
'  The  child  Samuel  grew  on,  and  was  in  favour  both  with  the  Lord  and 
also  with  men/     From  his  infancy  he  was  dedicated  to  God,  and  God 
gives  him  wisdom  to  walk  so  that  he  was  in  favour  with  God  and  men  ; 
yea,  God  reveals  himself  to  Samuel  when  he  did  not  to  Eli.     David, 
when  he  was  but  fifteen  years  of  age,  fought  with  the  lion  and  bear  ;  and 
some  while  after  that  with  Goliath,  when  he  was  a  ruddy  youth.    Josiah, 
when  he  was  but  eight  years  old,  administered  the  kingdom ;  before 
he  was  twelve,  sets  upon  serious  reformation.    Jeremiah  was  sanctified 
from  the  womb,  Jer.  i.  5  ;  and  John  the  Baptist  leaped  in  his  mother's 
womb,  Luke  i.  35.     In  the  32d  of  Job,  the  ancients,  Job's  friends,  are 
spoken  of  pleading  their  cause ;  wise  young  Elihu  brings  wiser  words 
and  better  arguments  than  those  that  came  to  comfort  Job.     Solomon 
asked  wisdom  of  God  when  he  was  young.     Daniel  and  his  com 
panions,  those  four  children  as  they  are  called  :  Dan.  i.  17, 18,  it  is 
said,    'The   Lord  filled  them  with   wisdom  above   all  the  ancient 
Chaldeans.'     And  Timothy,  the  apostle  speaks  of  his  youth,  and  bids 
him  '  flee  youthful  lusts ; '  he  was  young,  yet  very  knowing,  and  set 
over  the  church  of  God.     Our  Lord  Jesus  at  twelve  years  old  puzzled 
the  doctors.    In  ecclesiastical  stories  we  read  of  one  who  at  fifteen  years 
of  age  died  with  great  constancy  for  religion  in  the  midst  of  sundry  tor- 


20  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiR.  CVI. 

tures.  Ignatius  pleads  the  cause  of  the  bishop  when  he  was  but  a 
very  youth,  but  a  man  powerful  in  doctrine  and  of  great  wisdom ;  and 
therefore  he  saith,  he  would  have  them  not  look  to  his  appearing 
youth,  but  to  the  age  of  his  mind,  to  his  wisdom  before  God.  And  he 
saith,  there  are  many  that  have  nothing  to  show  for  their  age  but 
wrinkles  and  grey  hairs.  So  there  are  many  young  ones  m  whom 
there  is  an  excellent  spirit ;  and  in  all  ages  there  are  instances  given 
of  youth  of  whom  it  may  be  said  that  they  are  wise  beyond  their  years. 
For  the  reasons,  why  many  times  young  ones  may  have  more  wisdom 
than  those  that  are  aged  :  God  doth  so — 

1.  That  he  might  show  the  freedom  and  sovereignty  of  his  grace. 
He  is  not  bound  to  years,  nor  to  the  ordinary  course  of  nature,  but  can 
work  according  to  his  own  pleasure,  and  give  a  greater  measure  of 
knowledge  and  understanding  to  those  that  are  young,  and  otherwise 
green,  than  he  will  to  those  that  are  of  great  age  and  more  experience 
in  the  world.     You  have  this  reason  rendered :  Job  xxxii.  7-9,  '  I 
said,  Days  should  speak,  and  multitude  of  years  should  teach  wisdom.' 
There  is  the  course  :  '  But  there  is  a  spirit  in  man,  and  the  inspiration 
of  the  Almighty  giveth  them  understanding.      Great  men  are  not 
always  wise,  neither  do  the  aged  understand  judgment/     Though  all 
men  have  reason  and  a  spirit,  yet  the  Spirit  of  God  is  a  wind  that  blows 
where  he  lists.     Those  that  exceed  others  in  time,  may  come  behind 
them  in  grace.    He  gives  a  greater  measure  many  times  of  grace  and 
knowledge,  to  show  his  freedom  and  sovereignty. 

2.  Sometimes  to  manifest  the  power  of  his  grace,  both  in  the  person 
that  is  endued  with  it,  and  the  power  of  his  grace  upon  others.     As  to 
to  the  person  himself  in  whom  this  wisdom  is  found,  when  they  are 
young,  the  Lord  doth  show  he  can  subdue  them  by  his  Spirit,  and  make 
their  prejudices  vanish,  enlarge  their  understanding,  and  overrule  their 
heart :  1  John  ii.  14,    '  I  write  to  you,  young  men,  because  ye  are 
strong,  and  the  word  of  God  abideth  in  you,  and  ye  have  overcome  the 
wicked  one.'     In  that  slippery  age,  when  lusts  are  boisterous,  tempta 
tions  most  violent,  and  they  usually  uncircumspect  and  headstrong, 
and  give  up  themselves  to  an  ungoverned  license,  yet  then  can  God 
subdue  their  hearts,  and  make  them  stand  out  against  the  snares  of 
the  devil.     And  then  with  respect  to  others,  when  by  the  foolish  he 
will  confound  the  wisdom  of  the  wise,  and  blast  the  pride  of  man,  and 
cast  down  all  conceit  in  external  privileges,  and  give  young  ones  a 
more  excellent  spirit  than  the  aged,  as  the  apostle  intimates  such  a 
thing,  1  Cor.  i.  26,  '  Not  many  wise  men  after  the  flesh,  not  many 
mighty,  not  many  noble  are  called  ;  but  God  hath  chosen  the  foolish 
things  of  the  world  to  confound  the  wise  ;  and  God  hath  chosen  the 
weak  things  of  the  world  to  confound  the  things  that  are  mighty.' 
And  our  Lord  :  Mat.  xi.  25,  26,  '  Thou  hast  hid  these  things  from  the 
wise  and  prudent,  and  revealed  them  unto  babes.     Even  so,  Father, 
for  so  it  seemed  good  in  thy  sight.'     Usually  God  will  do  so,  when  he 
will  punish  the  unfaithfulness  of  those  that  are  in  public  place  and 
office :  '  The  law  shall  perish  from  the  priest,  and  counsel  from  the 
ancient/     God  will  not  take  the  usual  way  and  course,  but  will  give 
his  Spirit  and  graces  of  his  Spirit  to  them,  and  deny  it  to  those  that 
should  be  builders. 


VER.  100.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  21 

Now  what  use  shall  we  make  of  this  ?     There  may  be  an  abuse  of 
such  a  point  as  this,  and  there  may  be  a  very  good  use. 
To  prevent  the  abuse — 

1.  This  is  not  to  be  taken  so  but  that  there  should  be  reverence 
shown  to  the  aged,   Job  xxxii.  4-6.      Elihu  had  waited  till  Job's 
friends  had  spoken,  because  they  were  elder  than  he.     It  is  an  abuse 
of  men  of  a  proud  persuasion  of  their  own  knowledge  and  learning  to 
despise  the  aged,  especially  when  they  also  have  a  competent  measure 
of  the  same  spirit.     The  scripture  speaks  of  '  Paul  the  aged  ; '  cer 
tainly  there  is  a  reverence  due  to  grey  hairs.     And  it  argues  a  great 
disorder  when  the  staff  of  government  is  broken,  and  the  established 
order   is  overturned  ;  when  '  a  child  shall  behave  himself  proudly 
against  the  ancient,'  Isa.  iii.  5,  and  young  men  shall  peak  up  to  the 
despising  of  their  elders,  Deut.  xxviii. 

2.  This  is  not  to  be  applied  so  as  to  prejudice  the  general  case  of 
consulting  with  the  ancients,  which  was  Kehoboam's  sin.    Though  God 
sometimes  giveth  wisdom  to  young  men,  yet  the  usual  course  is  that, 
Job  xxxii.  7,   '  I  said,  Days  should  speak,  and  multitude  of  years 
should  teach  wisdom/    Certainly  those  that  are  old  they  are  freer  from 
passions,  bettered  by  use  and  experience,  and  long  continuance  in  study, 
have  more  advantages  to  add  to  their  knowledge ;  therefore  usually, 
though  the  bodily  eyes  be  dim,  the  understanding  may  be  most  clear 
and  sharp. 

Use  2.  The  use  in  general  is  twofold — that  young  men  should  not 
be  discouraged  nor  despised. 

1.  Not  discouraged.    We  use  to  say  Youth  for  strength  and  age  for 
wisdom :  but  if  they  apply  their  hearts  to  religion  and  the  study  of 
God's  will,  and  with  knowledge  join  practice,  they  may  profit,  and  so 
as  they  may  be  a  means  to  shame  those  that  are  elder,  while  they  come 
behind  them  in  many  gracious  endowments.     They  are  not  to  be  dis 
couraged,  as  if  it  were  too  soon  for  them  to  enter  into  a  strict  course, 
or  grow  eminent  therein  ;  for  God  may  glorify  himself  in  their  sobriety, 
temperance,  chastity,  zeal,  courage,  and  the  setting  their  strong  and 
eager  spirits  against  sin  is  a  mighty  honour  to  God  :  Ps.  viii.  2,  '  Out 
of  the  mouth  of  babes  and  sucklings  hast  thou  ordained  strength, 
because  of  thine  enemies,'  &c.     The  graces  of  God  in  young  ones  do 
mightily  turn  to  the  praise  of  his  glorious  grace,  and  God  is  admired 
in  them,  and  it  is  an  honour  and  comfort  to  you,  also  :  Eph.  i.  12,  '  In 
Christ  before  me : '  it  is  a  just  upbraiding  to  elder  people  that  lie 
longer  in  sin. 

2.  Nor  yet  should  youth  be  despised  :  1  Tim.  iv.  12,  '  Let  no  man 
despise  thy  youth/     God's  gifts  should  not  be  despised  in  any,  nor  stir 
up  rancour.     God  may  speak  by  them  as  he  spoke  by  Samuel,  and  to 
Samuel  when  he  spoke  not  to  old  Eli. 

Having  premised  this,  let  me  come  to  apply  it  particularly,  though 
briefly.  It  coriduceth  then — 

1.  To  the  encouragement  of  youth  to  betake  themselves  to  the  ways 
of  God.  Oh,  consider !  let  us  begin  with  God  betimes ;  do  not  spend 
your  youth  in  vanity,  but  in  a  serious  mortified  course.  This  is  your 
sharp  and  active  time,  when  your  spirits  are  fresh :  therefore,  if  your 
watch  is  set  right  now,  you  may  understand  more  than  the  ancients. 


22  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CX1X.  [SBB.  CVI. 

Give  up  your  hearts  to  a  religious  course ;  let  not  the  devil  feast  upon 
the  flower  of  your  youth,  and  God  be  put  off  with  the  fragments 
and  scraps  of  "Satan's  table.  While  you  are  young  take  in  with 
God ;  it  is  a  great  honour  to  God,  and  it  will  be  an  honour  and  an 
advantage  to  you.  Mat.  xxi.  15,  16,  when  the  children  cry  '  Hosanna 
to  the  Son  of  David/  and  the  Pharisees  reproved  him  for  it,  Christ 
approves  of  it,  saying,  '  Have  ye  never  read,  Out  of  the  mouth  of  babes 
and  sucklings  thou  hast  perfected  praise  ? '  When  young  ones  take 
kindly,  it  is  a  great  blessing.  Therefore  is  judgment  hanging  over 
this  nation,  that  youth  is  so  degenerated  ;  whereas  formerly  they  were 
addicted  to  religion,  now  they  are  addicted  to  all  manner  of  lusts  and 
vanity.  Then  it  would  be  an  honour  and  comfort  to  you ;  the  sooner 
we  begin  with  God,  the  more  we  glorify  God,  and  the  more  praise  to 
God  :  Eph.  i.  12,  '  That  we  should  be  to  the  praise  of  his  glory,  who 
first  trusted  in  Christ/  They  that  get  into  Christ  above l  others,  they 
glorify  grace  above  others :  Kom.  xvi.  7,  '  They  were  in  Christ  before 
me.'  He  that  first  gets  into  Christ,  he  hath  the  advantage  of  others ; 
seniority  in  grace  is  a  preferment,  as  well  as  in  nature.  And  then  it 
is  a  great  advantage:  Eccles.  xii.  1,  '  Kemember  thy  Creator  in  the 
days  of  thy  youth.'  When  we  begin  betimes  with  God,  we  have  more 
opportunity  of  serving  and  enjoying  God  than  others  have.  A  man 
should  'bear  the  yoke  in  his  youth,'  Lam.  iii.  If  the  bent  of  our  in 
clinations  were  set  right  in  our  youth,  it  would  prevent  much,  and 
hinder  the  growth  of  sin.  Though  a  man  cannot  plant  grace  in  his 
heart — that  is  the  Lord's  own  work — yet  it  keeps  sin  in,  and  pre 
vents  inveterate  custom,  for  they  will  grow  upon  us ;  and  therefore  it 
makes  for  the.  encouragement  of  you  that  they  should  sooner  begin 
with  God. 

2.  It  makes  for  the  encouragement  of  those  that  have  the  education 
of  youth ;  as  masters  of  families,  parents,  and  the  like.  Do  not  say 
it  is  too  soon  for  them  to  learn  ;  no  age  is  too  soon  for  God :  2  Tim. 
iii.  15,  '  Thou  hast  from  thy  infancy  learned  the  scriptures.'  When 
we  suck  in  religion  with  our  milk,  it  is  a  great  advantage  ;  those  things 
we  keep  with  us  that  we  learn  young :  Prov.  xxii.  6,  '  Train  up  a  child 
in  the  way  he  should  go,  and  when  he  is  old  he  will  not  depart  from 
it/  When  the  new  vessel  is  seasoned  with  this  precious  liquor,  it  will 
keep  the  taste ;  tender  twigs  are  bent  this  way  when  they  are  as  wax, 
capable  of  any  impression. 

Use.  3.  Caution  for  young  ones.  If  young  men  should  obtain  this 
benefit,  to  grow  wiser  than  the  ancients,  notwithstanding  this,  yet  they 
should  learn  to  show  reverence  to  the  aged,  Job  xxxii.  4-6 ;  and  then  to 
ascribe  it  to  God.  Saith  he,  ver.  8,  '  There  is  a  spirit  in  man,  and  the 
inspiration  of  the  Almighty  giveth  them  understanding/  It  is  not  the 
sharpness  of  our  wit,  but  the  inspiration  of  his  grace  ;  he  is  the  author 
of  all  this  wisdom  that  is  wrought  in  us. 

Use  4.  To  humble  the  aged,  that  have  not  made  conscience  of  their 
time  and  ways,  and  therefore  are  more  blockish  than  many  children : 
Isa.  Ixv.  20,  '  There  shall  be  no  more  an  infant  of  days,  nor  an  old 
man  that  hath  not  filled  his  days ; '  old  men  that  are  ignorant  of  the 
mysteries  of  faith,  after  they  have  long  sat  under  the  word  of  God,  and 

1  Qu.  « before  '  ?— ED. 


VER.  100.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  23 

had  many  advantages  to  improve  their  youth :  Heb.  v.  12,  '  When 
for  the  time  ye  ought  to  be  teachers,  ye  have  need  that  one  teach  you 
again  which  be  the  first  principles  of  the  oracles  of  God ;  and  are 
become  such  as  have  need  of  milk,  and  not  of  strong  meat.'  In  this 
sense  God  is  said  to  take  away  the  understanding  of  the  aged  ;  that  is, 
by  a  just  judgment  for  their  unfruitfulness  and  unprofitableness  under 
the  means  of  grace.  They  that  are  much  younger  than  you  are  wise 
in  comparison  of  you,  when  they  excel  you  for  ripeness  in  wisdom,  for 
solidness  and  settledness  in  manners,  in  a  course  of  godliness.  Those 
old  men  that  draw  near  to  the  grave  before  they  have  considered  either 
the  end  wherefore  they  came  into  the  world,  or  the  state  into  which  they 
shall  be  translated  when  they  go  out  of  it,  those  are  children  of  one 
hundred  years  old,  that  have  nothing  to  reckon  age  by,  but  wrinkles 
and  grey  hairs. 

Doct.  3.  That  the  way  to  increase  in  spiritual  understanding  is  to 
be  studious  in  practical  holiness. 

The  word,  that  will  give  you  understanding,  will  keep  you  out  of 
all  snares,  sufficiently  direct  you  to  true  happiness.  But  how  shall  we 
get  it  ?  Kefer  it  to  practice ;  practise  what  you  know,  and  you  shall 
know  more :  it  must  needs  be  so  : — 

1.  Because  these  are  such  as  have  God's  promise:  John  vii.  17,  'If 
any  man  will  do  his  will,  he  shall  know  of  the  doctrine,  whether  it  be 
of  God,  or  whether  I  speak  of  myself.'     They  that  make  conscience  of 
their  ways,  season  their  course  in  the  fear  of  God,  that  take  God's 
direction  with  them,  God  will  tell  them,  they  shall  know  what  doctrine 
is  of  God. 

2.  They  have  a  greater  clearness  of  mind  and  understanding,  there 
fore  must  needs  discern  holy  things.     Why  ?     Because  they  are  freed 
from  the  clouds  of  lust  and  passion,  which  do  insensibly  blind  and 
make  them  stay  in  generals  :  Mat.  v.  8, '  Blessed  are  the  pure  in  heart, 
for  they  shall  see  God.'      Saith  Nazianzen,  W^here  there  is  purity 
there  is  brightness ;  where  there  is  a  pure  heart,  there  is  a  great  deal 
more  clearness  in  the  understanding.     Keason  and  fancy  are  dark, 
unless  a  man  have  a  command  over  his  passions  and  affections ;  over 
his  passions,  of  anger,  fear,  grief ;  and  over  his  affections,  of  love  and 
joy,  and  appetite  towards  sensual  delights  ;  unless  he  be  able  to  govern 
these  things,  he  will  never  truly  discern  the  mind  of  God  for  the  sea 
soning  his  course  in  living  a  holy  life,     That  of  the  apostle  is  notable, 
2  Peter  i.   5,  '  Add  to  your  faith,  virtue ;  and  to  virtue,  knowledge ; 
and  to  knowledge,  temperance.'     Unless  they  be  able  to  govern  their 
affections  in  the  use  of  worldly  delights,  pleasures,  and  profits,  they 
will  never  have  this  practical  knowledge ;  and  therefore  the  only  way 
to  know  divine  things,  as  Nazianzen  well  observes,  is  conscientiously  to 
keep  the  commandments  of  God.'     If  you  would  know  the  will  of  God, 
do  not  spend  your  time  in  heaping  up  notions,  but  framing  your  heart 
to  obedience,  governing  your  affections  by  the  fear  of  God,  and  suiting 
your  hearts  to  the  word  of  God.     Alas !  those  that  seek  knowledge 
out  of  ambition,  curiosity,  and  vain  ostentation,  and  lie  under  the 
power  of  vile  affections,  get  but  very  little  true  spiritual  light ;  they 
may  have  the  understanding  of  teachers,  but  not  the  understanding 
to  season  them,  and  guide  them  in  their  communion  with  God. 


24  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [&ER.  CVI. 

3.  The  more  we  practise,  the  more  religion  is  exemplified  and  made 
sensible,  so  that  we  come  to  understand  more  of  the  jsweetness  of  it ; 
and,  on  the  other  hand,  the  more  of  difficulty  is  in  it  when  there  i» 
nothing  but  bare  notions  and  naked  apprehensions.     There  we  have  a 
double  advantage,  an  exact  rule,  and  more  experience  of  the  sweetness- 
of  religion :  Prov.  iii.  17,  '  All  her  ways  are  ways  of  pleasantness.' 
When  we  practise  what  we  know,  then  we  come  to  know  the  sweetness 
of  entertaining  communion  with  the  Lord ;  and  they  know  more  of 
the  difficulty  of  religion,  they  know  where  their  hearts  are  more  averse, 
and  more  in  danger :  whereas  others  that  soar  aloft  in  notions,  and  idle 
and  lofty  speculations,  have  not  this  experience. 

4.  They  that  practise,  study  things  with  more  affection  than  others, 
mightily  help  the  understanding.     The  more  piety  and  zeal  any  man 
hath,  the  more  will  the  Lord  bless  his  studies.     Paul  profited  in  the 
Jewish  religion  above  many  of  his  equals.     Why  ?     Gal.  i.  14, '  Being 
more  exceedingly  zealous  of  the  tradition  of  my  fathers.'     A  man  that 
hath  a  zeal  in  anything  will  profit  more  than  others  ;  so  he  that  hath 
a  zeal  for  the  things  of  God  profits  above  others.     A  blunt  iron,  if  red 
hot,  will  pierce  through  an  inch  board  sooner  than  a  cold  tool,  though 
never  so  sharp  ;  so  those  that  have  blunt  parts  in  comparison  of  others, 
yet  if  they  have  zeal  and  good  affections,  they  will  pierce  deep  into  the 
mysteries  of  religion ;  they  that  have  sharper  parts,  want  the  fire  of 
zeal. 

5.  The  more  fruitful  any  grace  is,  the  more  doth  it  abound  with 
us ;  and  therefore  when  your  knowledge  is  fruitful  you  will  find  it 
increased  by  laying  out  your  talents  :  Col.  i.  10,  '  Be  fruitful  in  every 
good  work,  always  increasing  in  the  knowledge  of  God/     First  he 
presseth  knowledge  in  order  to  practice,  then  he  presseth  practice  in 
order  to  knowledge.     Saving  knowledge  is  the  cause  of  practice,  and  it- 
is  the  effect  of  it. 

Use  1.  Learn  how  much  practice  exceeds  speculation,  and  whereby 
a  man's  understanding  is  to  be  valued.  Who  is  to  be  accounted  a 
spiritual  understanding  man  ?  Not  he  that  hath  finer  notions,  but  he 
that  is  most  skilful,  and  '  ready  to  every  good  work/  Do  not  content 
yourselves  with  a  few  fine  opinions  well  dressed  and  curiously  set  forth, 
for  all  this  is  nothing  to  practice.  It  must  needs  be  so,  for  practice 
is  the  end  of  knowledge.  Now  the  end  is  always  more  worthy  than 
the  means ;  all  the  means  have  their  loveliness  from  their  end,  and  all 
the  means  have  their  order  and  measure  from  their  end ;  that  is,  we 
must  so  use  the  means  that  we  may  come  to  such  an  end.  Well,  then, 
knowledge  is  worthy  for  practice  sake,  and  only  to  be  sought  after  in 
order  to  practice ;  not  to  soar  aloft,  but  we  are  to  be  wise  to  sobriety  ; 
nor  as  wanton  fancies,  such  as  affect  conceits  of  wit,  and  empty  frothy 
notions ;  all  should  be  suited  to  practice. 

Use  2.  Again,  I  might  apply  it,  how  ill  they  do  that  sever  know 
ledge  and  a  good  conscience.  When  the  age  grew  more  knowing  they 
were  less  moral  in  Seneca's  time ;  as  it  was  so  with  them,  so  it  is  with 
Christianity  many  times.  It  was  the  saying  of  one,  When  I  compare 
iormer  times  with  ours,  times  of  ignorance,  darkness,  superstition,  they 
liaci  more  zeal,  we  have  more  light ;  where  there  was  less  knowledge 
there  was  more  practice.  Now  we  have  notions  like  a  carbuncle, 


VER.  101.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  25 

which  seems  at  a  distance  to  be  all  fire,  though  it  is  quite  cold ;  so  we 
seem  to  have  high  floating  notions  concerning  godliness ;  the  head  is 
stored  with  these,  but  hearts  empty  of  grace,  hands  idle,  less  circum 
spect,  more  careless  and  loose,  fruitless  in  good  works.  It  shows  us 
the  cause  why  many,  that  have  great  dexterity  in  wit  and  excellent 
gifts  in  other  things,  yet  are  very  stupid  and  blockish  in  the  things  o£ 
God.  There  is  now  a  decay  of  gifts  and  knowledge.  Why  ?  Because 
professors  do  riot  refer  all  to  practice ;  and  then  ungodliness  and  less 
practice  provokes  the  Lord  to  withdraw  the  light.  God  punished  the 
heathens  with  spiritual  blindness,  because  they  did  not  improve  their 
knowledge  ;  and  we  may  justly  fear  it  may  prove  so  with  us,  who  are 
all  head,  little  heart ;  much  in  speculations,  little,  very  little  in  practical 
holiness. 


SERMON  CVII. 

/  have  refrained  my  feet  from  every  evil  way,  that  I  might  keep 
thy  word — VER.  101. 

THE  great  work  of  a  fast-day  is  to  put  away  the  evil  of  our  doings  ;  as 
when  a  fire  is  kindled  in  a  house,  and  begins  to  rage  and  burn  fiercer, ' 
it  concerns  those  that  would  stop  the  fury  of  it  to  remove  the  combus 
tible  matter.  The  fire  of  God's  wrath  hath  been  kindled  amongst  us, 
and  is  not  yet  quenched.  I  suppose  none  of  you  doubt  your  business 
is  to  remove  the  combustible  matter,  to  put  away  your  sins ;  this  scrip 
ture  will  be  of  some  use  to  you  to  that  purpose. 

David  had  spoken  of  that  wisdom  which  he  had  got  by  the  word  of 
God  above  enemies,  teachers,  ancients.  It  was  not  such  a  wisdom  as 
consisted  in  speculation,  but  practice ;  not  only  such  as  did  enable  him 
to  talk  high,  and  set  his  tongue  awork.  No ;  it  was  such  as  did  enable 
him  to  do  things  worthy  of  God,  as  did  set  his  feet  awork.  Our  feet 
are  slow  and  heavy  in  God's  ways,  but  very  swift  to  that  which  is  evil ; 
and  therefore  herein  did  David's  wisdom  consist,  to  bridle  himself, 
to  refrain  his  feet,  that  he  might  not  run  headlong  into  all  manner  of 
evil ;  and  not  only  so,  but  that  he  might  be  also  more  ready  to  that 
which  is  good :  '  I  have  refrained  my  feet  from  every  evil  way,  that  I 
might  keep  thy  word.'  Where — 

1.  We  have  David's  practice,  /  have  refrained  my  feet  from  every 
evil  way. 

2.  His  end  or  motive,  that  I  might  keep  thy  word;  that  he  might 
be  exact  and  punctual  with  God  in  a  course  of  obedience. 

1.  In  his  practice.  You  may  note  the  seriousness  of  it,  '  I  refrained 
my  feet/  By  the  feet  are  meant  the  affections :  Eccles.  v.  1,  '  Keep 
thy  foot  when  thou  goest  into  the  house  of  God.'  Our  affections, 
which  are  the  vigorous  bent  of  the  soul,  do  engage  us  to  practise, 
therefore  fitly  resembled  by  the  feet,  by  which  we  walk  to  any  place 
that  we  do  desire,  so  that  '  I  refrained  my  feet ; '  the  meaning  is,  I 
keep  a  close  and  strict  hand  over  my  affections,  that  they  might  not 
lead  me  to  sin.  Then  you  may  note  the  extent  of  it.  He  doth  not 
only  say,  '  I  refrained  from  evil,'  but  universally,  '  from  every  evil  way/ 


26  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CYIL 

But  how  could  David  say  this  in  truth  of  heart,  because  of  his  offence 
in  the  matter  of  Uriah  ?  Ans.  This  was  the  usual  frame  and  temper 
of  his  soul,  and  the  course  of  his  life ;  and  such  kind  of  assertions 
concerning  the  saints  are  to  be  interpreted  voce 1  et  conatu,  licet  non 
semper  eventu.  This  was  his  errand  and  drift,  his  purpose  and  endea 
vour,  his  usual  course,  though  he  had  his  failings. 

2.  What  was  his  motive  and  end  in  this  ?  '  That  I  might  keep 
thy'word ; '  that  I  might  be  exact  and  punctual  with  God  in  a  course  of 
obedience,  and  adhere  to  his  word  uniformly,  universally,  impartially. 

Doci.  He  that  would  keep  the  word  must  refrain  his  feet ;  that  is, 
stand  at  a  great  distance  in  heart  and  practice  from  all  sin. 

For  the  illustration  of  the  point  observe— 

1.  A  Christian  must  do  both  ;  he  must  stand  at  a  distance  from  sin, 
and  he  must  keep  the  word.     There  is  a  negative  and  an  affirmative 
part  in  every  commandment,  precepts  and  prohibitions ;    we  need 
both  the  bridle  and  the  spur ;  the  bridle,  to  refrain  the  feet  from  sin ; 
and  the  spur,  to  quicken  us  to  walk  closely  with  God,  according  to  the 
direction  of  his  holy  word.     A  simple  abstinence  from  sin,  without 
exercising  ourselves  unto  godliness,  will  not  serve  the  turn  :  Ps.  xxxiv. 
15,  '  Depart  from  evil,  and  do  good/     So  Ps.  xxxvii.  27.     There  is  a 
double  principle  in  every  renewed  man,  flesh  and  spirit,  Gal.  v.  17 ; 
and  his  work  is  to  restrain  the  one,  to  keep  in  the  flesh  that  would  fain 
break  out,  and  range  abroad  in  unseemly  actions ;  and  to  encourage  and 
put  forth  the  other,  the  spirit  in  its  necessary  operation,  with  vigour  and 
life.     There  is  a  double  estate  laid  before  us,  heaven  and  hell ;  there 
fore  we  are  not  only  to  forbear  sin,  which  is  walking  to  hell,  but  we 
must  walk  worthy  of  God  in  all  well-pleasing,  and  be  fruitful  in  good 
works,  which  is  our  way  to  heaven,  Eph.  ii.  10,  '  Forbearing  evil,  and 
doing  good/   The  Pharisee's  religion  ran  upon  negatives  :  '  I  am  not  an 
adulterer,  an  extortioner,'  &c.,  Luke  xviii.  11.     Many  are  not  vicious 
rather  than  godly,  they  keep  themselves  in  a  middle  lukewarm  estate ; 
and  though  they  be  not  defiled  with  foul  sins,  yet  do  not  set  themselves 
seriously  to  serve  the  Lord. 

2.  Both  must  be  done  with  the  whole  man,  or  regarded  both  in 
heart  and  practice.     It  is  not  enough  to  leave  off  evil,  but  to  hate  it, 
nor  to  do  good,  but  we  must  do  it  with  a  love  and  an  affection.    Com 
pare  three  places :  Isa.  i.  16,  *  Cease  to  do  evil,  learn  to  do  well ;'  Amos 
v.  15,  '  Hate  the  evil,  love  the  good/     And  it  is  expressed  with  a  fur 
ther  emphasis,  Eom.  xii.  9,  '  Abhor  that  which  is  evil,  cleave  to  that 
which  is  good/    These  places  compared  together  will  show  that  the 
outward  act  is  not  only  to  be  regarded,  but  the  frame  of  the  heart. 
There  should  not  only  be  an  abstinence  from  the  act  of  sin,  but  morti 
fying  of  the  love  of  it ;  for  there  are  many  that  outwardly  forbear  sin, 
but  yet  do  not  inwardly  hate  it.     On  the  other  side,  we  are  not  only 
to  do  good,  but  there  must  be  a  love  to  good  ;  for  many  may  externally 
do  good  when  the  heart  abhors  it.     And  on.  the  other  "side,  if  there  be 
a  love  to  good,  God  passeth  by  many  failings ;  it  should  not  be  a  bare 
hatred,  or  a  cold  love,  but  such  as  hath  life  and  vehemency  in  it, 
abhorring  that  which  is  evil,  and  cleaving  to  that  which  is  good— the 
soul  of  Jonathan  cleaved  to  David— it  must  be  a  knitting  love.    There 
is  Hainan's  refraining,  Esther  v.  10,  and  David's  refraining.    It  is  said 

1  Ou.  { rotn  '  ?—  TCr> 


VER.  101.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  27 

Haman  refrained  himself,  when  his  heart  boiled  with  rancour  and 
malice  against  Mordecai ;  and  there  is  David's  refraining  in  the  text, 
1 1  refrained  my  heart  from  every  evil  way/  His  heart  is  engaged, 
when  the  heart  cleaves  to  him,  not  easily  to  separate. 

3.  Both  are  regarded,  and  both  with  the  whole  man.     Now  the  one 
is  required  in  order  to  the  other  ;  we  must  refrain  from  evil  that  we 
may  do  good,  and  do  good  that  we  may  refrain  from  evil ;  mortifica 
tion  and  vivification  do  mutually  help  each  other.      The  more  lively 
grace  is  the  more  sin  droopeth,  the  more  lively  sin  is  the  more  is  the 
new  nature  oppressed.     Without  refraining  our  feet  from  evil  there  is 
no  doing  of  good,  for  vivification  is  increased  according  to  the  degree 
of  mortification:  1  Peter  ii.  24,  '  That  we,  being  dead  to  sin,  might  be 
alive  to  righteousness.'      As  long  as  we  are  alive  to  sin,  active  and 
delighting  in  the  commission  thereof,  we  are  dead  to  righteousness. 
But  now,  as  the  love  and  life  of  sin  is  weakened  in  our  hearts,  so  is 
grace  introduced,  and  we  are  quickened  and  carried  on  with  more 
strength  in  holy  duties ;  the  strength  and  fervour  of  the  soul  is  diverted, 
and  runs  in  another  channel ;  the  same  affections  that  are  carried  out 
to  sin,  the  same  current  and  stream  of  soul  that  ran  out  towards  our 
selves,  then  is  carried  in  a  way  of  grace,  the  same  affections,  but 
carried  out  to  other  objects.     And  so  on  the  other  side,  wherever  there 
is  an  affection  to  good,  there  will  be  a  cordial  detestation  to  evil ;  the 
affection  to  the  one  will  awaken  and  increase  the  hatred  of  the  other ; 
for  still  the  soul  draws  that  way  which  our  affections  carry  them. 

4.  As  the  one  must  be  done  in  order  to  the  other,  so  our  care  in  the 
first  place  must  be  to  avoid  evil,  or  to  stand  at  a  distance  from  every 
known  sin.      He  begins  with  that  as  necessary  to  the  other  ;  first,  '  I 
refrained  my  feet/  and  then,  '  that  I  might  keep  thy  law ; '  he  was  to 
be  more  exact  in  a  course  of  obedience.      In  planting  of  grace  God 
keeps  this  method,  he  roots  up  the  weeds,  and  then  plants  us  wholly 
with  a  right  seed,  and  so  far  as  we  are  active  under  God  in  the  work, 
we  first  '  put  off  the  old  man  with  his  deceitful  lusts,'  and  then,  c  put 
on  the  new  man,'  Eph.  iv.  22.      We  put  off  the  rags  of  sin  before  we 
put  on  the  garments  of  salvation.     The  plants  of  righteousness  will 
not  thrive  in  an  unhumbled,  proud,  impenitent  heart ;  therefore  God's 
first  work  is  the  destruction  of  sin,  and  then  the  introduction  of  grace. 
The  heart  is  purified  for  faith,  as  well  as  purified  by  faith.      First,  It 
must  be  purified  for  faith,  that  being  the  work  of  the  Spirit  of  God ; 
for  John  v.  44,  '  How  can  ye  believe  that  seek  honour  one  of  another  ? ' 
As  long  as  any  fleshly  lust  remains  unmortified,  be  it  ambition,  vain 
glory,  affecting  honour,  reputation,  esteem  in  the  world,  the  heart  is 
not  purified.      Secondly,  The  heart  is  purified  by  faith,  Acts  xv.  9; 
more  and  more  this  corruption  is  wrought  out.     And  then  the  heart 
is  purified  for  fear :  '  I  will  give  a  new  heart,'  Jer.  xxxii.  40.     And 
then  purified  by  fear,  as  Job  feared  God,  Job  i.  1.      So  the  heart  is 
purified  for  love  and  by  love  ;  for  love  :  Deut.  xxx.  6,  'And  the  Lord 
will  circumcise  thine  heart,  and  the  heart  of  thy  seed,  to  love  the  Lord 
thy  God  with  all  thine  heart  and  with  all  thy  soul/     A  believer  is  to 
be  considered  in  the  act  of  conversion  and  in  the  state  of  conver 
sion  ;  in  the  act  of  conversion,  so  first  we  turn  from  evil  by  a  sound 
remorse  :  true  grace  is  first  planted,  first  purified  for  grace,  then  puri- 


28  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CVIL 

fied  by  grace  :  Job  feared  God,  then  eschewed  evil.  Preparing  grace 
is  implanted  in  us,  then  it  hath  an  exercise  upon  us  for  the  weakening 
of  sin  more  and  more. 

5.  Keeping  at  a  distance  from  evil ;  it  must  be  as  it  is  evil  and 
contrary  to  the  holy  nature  and  will  of  God.      I  observe  this,  because 
David  did  not  refrain  his  feet  from  evil  upon  any  foreign  and  acciden 
tal  reasons,  for  fear  of  men,  or  any  sinister  and  by  respect,  but  merely 
out  of  tender  love  and  respect  to  the  law  of  God,  to  testify  his  obedience 
to  him :  '  I  refrained  my  feet  from  every  evil  way/     And  what  was 
his  motive  ?    '  That  I  might  keep  thy  word/      A  child  of  God  hates 
sin,  as  it  is  contrary  to  his  drift  and  purpose.     If  we  do  not  love  good 
for  good's  sake,  it  is  not  good  we  love,  but  some  other  thing  that 
cleaves  to  it,  the  temporal  benefit  that  we  think  will  come  thereby. 
So  if  we  do  not  hate  evil  as  evil,  but  because  of  the  loss  and  detriment 
that  attends  the  practice  of  it,  it  is  not  sin  that  we  hate,  but  incon 
veniences.     As  Austin  saith  of  the  eternal  reward,  There  are  many 
non  peccare  metuunt,  sed  ardere — they  are  not  afraid  to  sin,  but  are 
afraid  to  be  damned.     So  a  natural  conscience  may  upon  foreign  and 
accidental  reasons    stand   aloof  from  sin,  as   a  dog  may  forbear  a 
morsel  for  fear  of  the  cudgel ;  convinced  men  may  forbear  sin  out  of 
horror  of  conscience,  and  not  out  of  any  serious  dislike  of  heart  against 
it.     Briefly,  there  is  custom,  education,  penalty  of  law,  infamy,  shame 
of  the  world,  difficulty  of  compassing  sin,  shame  in  practising.     These 
are  but  accidental  reasons,  these  may  make  us  refrain,  they  may  breed 
a  casual  dislike,  but  not  a  natural  hatred  ;  for  a  gracious  refraining 
must  be  upon  a  religious  reason.     David  gives  an  account,  not  only  of 
his  practice,  but  his  motive  :    '  I  refrained  my  feet  from  every  evil 
way.'     And  why  ?     '  That  I  might  keep  thy  word.' 

6.  This  refraining  must  be  from  every  sinful  course.     The  grace  of 
justification  will  teach  this,  and  the  grace  of  sanctification  ;  the  grace 
of  justification,  that  pardoneth  all  sin,  will  teach  us  to  deny  all,  Titus  ii. 
12 ;  and  the  grace  of  sanctification  will  teach  us  to  deny  not  one,  but 
all,  for  that  introduceth  a  settled  hatred  against  sin  in  the  soul.     Now 
hatred  is  TT/DO?  TO.  yevrjt  to  the  whole  kind ;  he  that  hates  one  sin  as 
sin,  hates  all  sin,  as  Haman  thought  scorn  to  lay  his  hands  upon 
Mordecai  alone,  but  sought  to  destroy  all  the  seed  of  the  Jews,  Esther 
iii.  6.     So  this  hatred  is  universally  carried  out  against  all  sin.  Indeed 
they  do  not  mortify  any  sin  that  do  not  mortify  every  sin ;  one  lust 
remaining  urimortified  keeps  the  devil's  interest  afoot  in  the  soul. 
Pharaoh,  when  the  Israelites  would  have  gone,  would  fain  have  a  pawn  of 
their  return,  their  flocks,  their  herds,  or  their  children,  that  they  might 
be  sure  to  come  back  again.     So  Satan,  if  a  man  be  touched  in  con 
science,  and  will  bethink  himself,  and  look  after  religion,  if  he  can  get 
but  a  pawn,  a  corner  of  the  heart,  one  sin,  he  knows  his  interest  is  still 
kept.    Herod  did  many  things,  but  he  had  his  Herodias,  and  that  held 
him  fast  and  sure  to  Satan.     The  young  man  had  a  sense  of  eternal 
life  upon  him,  Mat.  xix.  22,  and  he  did  many  things,  'All  these  have 
L  kept  from  my  youth,'  but  he  was  worldly.     There  are  certain  tender 
parts  in  the  soul  that  are  loath  to  be  touched  ;  but  now  if  we  would  be 
sincere  .with  God,  we  must  refrain  from  every  evil  way.     Any  one  man 
entertained  besides  the  husband,  it  breaks  the  marriage  covenant ;  any 


VER.  101.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  29 

one  sin  allowed  in  the  soul,  be  it  never  so  small,  it.  forfeits  our  privi 
leges  by  grace. 

But  now,  because  particulars  are  more  effective,  and  do  strike  upon 
the  soul  with  the  more  smart  blow  than  generals,  briefly  consider  : — 

1.  We  must  refrain  from  every  evil  way ;  not  only  notorious  sins, 
but  those  that  are  plausible  and  of  more  reputation  in  the  world,  that 
are  not  so  rank  in  the  nostrils  of  men,  and  expose  us  to  such  disgrace 
and  dishonour.      There  are  open  sins  that  are  found  hateful,  that 
have  a  turpitude  in  them,  and  bring  shame  :  Gal.  v.  19,  epya   rfjs 
a-ap/cbs, '  the  works  of  the  flesh  are  manifest ; '  such  as  murder,  adultery, 
gross  oppression,  these  are  rank  weeds  of  an  ill  savour,  that  stink  in 
nature's  nostrils,  and  are  accompanied  with  shame  and  disgrace.     To 
refrain  from  these  is  little  thanks,  Luke  xviii.  11.      The  Pharisee 
wipes  his  hand  of  these,  '  I  am  not  an  adulterer/  &c.     Ay !  but  he 
was  proud,  censorious,  and  covetous.     There  are  pride,  censoriousness, 
covetousness,  and  worldliness,  cloaked  sins  that  are  not  of  such  disgrace 
in  the  world,  all  these  should  be  hated  by  you.     Many  times  those 
sins  that   are  majoris  in/amice,  of   greater  infamy,  are  not  always 
majoris  reatus,  they  do  not  leave  the  greatest  guilt  upon  you.      Un 
belief  is  not  infamous  in  the  world,  neglect  of  the  gospel  of  grace, 
want  of  love  to  Christ  Jesus,  these  are  great  sins :  and  therefore  you 
must  not  only  abstain  from  notorious  sins,  but  those  which  are  more 
plausible,  and  are  not  of  such  ill  fame  in  the  world. 

2.  You  must  abstain  from  sins  outward  and  inward,  Isa.  Iv.  7.     The 
sinner  must  not  only  forsake  his  way,  but  his  thought ;  by  his  way  is 
meant  his  outward  course  and  practice,  but  he  must  make  conscience 
of  his  thoughts,  and  secret  workings  of  heart.     Practices  may  be  over 
ruled  by  by-ends,  but  thoughts  and  desires,  these  are  the  genuine 
immediate  motions  and  issues  of  the  soul,  that  do  come  immediately 
out  of  the  fountain,  and  are  restrained  only  by  grace. 

3.  Sins  profitable  and  pleasant,  as  well  as  those  that  have  no  such 
allurement  and  blandishment  in  them.     There  are  many  sins  that 
have  nothing  of  allurement  in  them,  that  are  entertained  only  upon 
sin's  account  and  evil  custom,  as  rash  swearing,  blasphemy,  malice  and 
the  like ;  but  there  other  sins  that  allure  and  entice  the  soul  by  the 
promise  of  profit  and  pleasure,  those  two  bastard  goods  that  do  make 
us  often  quit  the  good  of  honesty  and  duty.     Now,  you  are  to  '  deny 
all  ungodliness  and  worldly  lusts/  Titus  ii.  12 ;  worldly  lusts,  whatever 
would  endanger  the  soul,  all  inordinate  inclinations  that  carry  you  out 
to  these  things  of  pleasing  the  flesh  and  gratifying  worldly  interests. 

4.  In  refraining  the  feet  from  every  evil  way,  that  is,  from  sins 
against  either  table,  Rom.  i.  18.     Mark,  God  hath  owned  both  tables, 
not  only  revealed  his  wrath  against  ungodliness,  breaches  of  the  first 
table ;  but  against  unrighteousness,  breaches  of  the  second  table.    Many 
indeed  will  not  be  unjust,  intemperate,  unkind  to  their  neighbours; 
ay !  but  they  express  no  affection  to  God  by  worshipping  him  in  their 
hearts,  by  faith,  fear,  and  love,  or  in  their  houses  by  constant  prayer 
morning  and  evening,  and  secret  and  familiar  in  closet  converses  with 
God ;  they  are  guilty  of  ungodliness  though  not  of  unrighteousness. 
And  there  are  many  that  would  be  much  in  worship,  in  praying,  fasting, 
and  hearing,  but  they  forget  their  neighbours ;  they  are  unrighteous, 


30  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.   CVII. 

they  do  not  make  conscience  in  their  dealings  with  men,  and  in  the 
duties  of  their  relations  are  unfaithful,  many  times  to  the  great  dis 
honour  of  God ;  they  do  things  heathens  would  boggle  at. 

5.  There  are  great  sins  and  small  sins.     Many  make  not  conscience 
of  small  offences,  count  these  venial.     Certainly  he  that  would  have 
a  tender  regard  to  God's  law,  no  sin  should  seem  little  to  him  that 
is  an  offence  to  the  great  God.     It  is  Satan's  custom  by  small  sins  to 
draw  us  to  greater,  as  the  little  sticks  do  set  the  great  ones  on  fire, 
and  a  wisp  of  straw  enkindles  a  block  of  wood  ;  and  by  small  sins  we 
are  enticed  by  Satan.     The  least  sin  allowed  of  is  of  a  deadly  and 
dangerous  consequence:  Mat.  v.  19,  'Whosoever  shall  break  the  least 
of  these  commandments,  and  teach  men  so.'     It  is  treason  to  coin  a 
penny  as  well  as  a  pound.     To  break  the  least  of  God's  command 
ments,  to  make  no  conscience  of  them,  because  it  is  a  small  thing, 
argues  a  naughty  heart.     Bodkins  may  wound  and  stab  as  well  as 
swords.     Look,  as  we  read  of  the  prophet,  he  was-  devoured  of  lions,  so 
we  read  of  Herod,  he  was  eaten  up  by  lice.     Small  sins  may  be  a  very 
great  mischief  to  the  soul.     Little  sins  are  often  the  mother  of  great 
sins,  and  the  grandmother  of  great  punishments  and  of  plagues  from 
God ;  and  therefore  these  lesser  sins  we  must  refrain  from :  '  I  kept 
myself  from  every  evil  way/ 

6.  We  must  not  commit  anything  that  is  evil  out  of  a  good  intention, 
if  it  be  an  evil,  but  stand  at  a  distance  from  it.     Do  not  turn  aside  to 
any  crooked  path  upon  any  pretence  soever.     Some  have  a  good  action 
but  a  bad  aim.    Now  these  do,  as  it  were,  make  God  serve  the  devil ; 
they  do  the  action  which  God  hath  required,  but  their  aim  is  that 
which  gratifies  Satan.     There  are  others  that  have  a  good  aim  but  a 
bad  action.     These  make  the  devil  serve  God,  as  if  God  could  not 
provide  for  his  own  glory  well  enough  without  their  sin.     Therefore, 
if  it  be  an  evil  way,  refrain  it,  though  you  think  you  may  bring  good 
out  of  it.     Saul  would  be  offering  sacrifice,  an  unwarrantable  action 
for  him  to  invade  the  priestly  office,  1  Sam.  xiii.  13,  14,     He  was 
loath  to  go  to  battle  until  he  had  sacrificed,  and  would  not  tarry  till 
Samuel  came.     What  then?     See  what  Samuel  saith,  'Thou  hast 
done  foolishly  ;  thou  hast  not  kept  the  commandment  of  the  Lord  thy 
God  which  he  commanded  thee/     Here  was  a  good  aim,  but  a  bad 
action,  and  you  see  how  severe  judgment  fell  upon  him.     I  say,  he 
forfeited  his  kingdom  by  doing  an  undue  action,  though  for  a  good 
end.     Uzzah  he  put  forth  his  hand  to  stay  the  ark,  which  was  an 
undue  circumstance ;  he  had  a  good  aim  in  it,  that  the  ark  of  God 
might  not  be  shaken,  that  it  might  not  fall  and  be  shattered  in  pieces, 
and  the  mysteries  of  their  religion  prostituted:  2  Sam.  vi.  7,  'And 
the  anger  of  the  Lord  was  kindled  against  Uzzah,  and  God  smote 
him  there  for  his  error,  and  he  died/    Many  think  to  bear  out  them 
selves  by  good  intentions  that  are  drawn  into  an  evil  way  ;  they  hope 
to  bring  things  to  a  better  pass.     It  is  dangerous  to  step  out  of  God's 
way;  God's  ends  can  best  be  brought  about  by  God's  way.     The 
judgments  of  the  Lord  upon  these  nations  have  been  mainly  for  un 
warrantable  actions  upon  good  intentions ;  and  though  usually  we 
have  committed  one  sin  to  help  another,  yet  there  hath  been  a  pretence 
of  a  good  intention,  a  good  aim. 


VER.  101.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  31 

7.  We  are  not  only  to  avoid  such  sins  as  seem  to  lie  remote  from 
our  temper  and  course  of   our  business  and  interest,  but  our  own 
special  sins  ;  those  sins  which  suit  better  with  our  condition,  constitu 
tion,  calling,  employment:  Ps.  xviii.  23,  '  I  was  upright  before  thee, 
and  kept  myself  from  mine  iniquity.'     Every  man  hath  his  iniquity ; 
as  every  man  hath  his  particular  temper,  so  he  hath  his  particular 
sins,  and  if  he  belong  to  God  he  hath  his  particular  graces.     The 
saints  have  their  particular  graces  ;  Timothy  for  abstinence  and  tem 
perance,  Job  for  patience,  Abraham  for  faith,  therefore  styled  the 
father  of  the  faithful ;  Moses  was  eminent  for  meekness.     So  there  are 
particular  sins ;  men  are  passionate,  worldly,  voluptuous,  ambitious, 
and  as  the  channel  is  cut,  so  corrupt  nature  finds  a  vent  and  passage : 
Isa.  liii.  6,  '  All  we  like  sheep  have  gone  astray,  we  have  turned  every 
one  to  his  own  way/    We  are  all  out  of  the  way,  but  every  man  hath 
a  particular  way  of  sin.     Look,  as  in  the  natural  body,  every  man 
hath  all  the  faculties  of  a  man,  yet  some  this  faculty  more  vigorous 
and  lively  than  other,  some  for  memory,  judgment,  invention,  quick 
ness  of  wit,  so  it  is  as  to  particular  sins.     Now  these  should  be  most 
resisted  and  most  opposed  by  us.     The  scripture  requires  of  us,  Mat. 
v.  19,  '  To  cut  off  our  right  hand,  and  pluck  out  our  right  eye ; '  these, 
if  they  be  not  watched,  will  run  into  scandal ;   our  particular  sins 
make  us  dishonour  God,  dishonour  our  profession,  and  become  a  re 
proach  to  the  gospel.     It  is  notable,  when  our  Saviour  dissuaded  from 
giving  scandal,  Mat.  xviii.  8,  9,  he  revives  those  sentences  of  cutting 
off  the  right  hand  and  plucking  out  the  right  eye.     These  sins  will 
make  you  a  dishonour  to  the  gospel  if  you  do  not  watch  over  them. 

8.  There  are  the  sins  of  the  times  wherein  we  live,  vitium  seculi. 
Indeed  it  is  hard  to  keep  our  ground  in  a  great  flood  ;  when  a  stream 
is  strong  it  is  ready  to  carry  us  away  ;  but  he  that  would  be  punctual 
with  God  should  keep  from  the  sins  of  the  times.     Peter  dissembled 
with  the  Jews,  and  the  godly  Jews  fell  a-dissembling  of  their  religion, 
insomuch  that  Barnabas  was  carried  away  with  their  dissimulation, 
Gal.  ii.  13.     When  sin  seems  to  be  authorised  by  a  general  practice, 
it  concerns  you  to  stand  at  a  distance,  to  have  nothing  to  do  there. 
Noah  was  an  upright  man,  feared  God,  and  served  him  in  a  corrupt 
age,  Gen.  vi.  9.     They  are  dead  fishes  that  are  carried  away  with  the 
stream.     We  are  not  to  walk  Kara  rrjv  alwva,  '  according  to  the  course 
of  this  world/  Eph.  ii.  2,  but  '  to  walk  according  to  the  rule/  Gal.  vi. 
16.     In  many  ages  there  are  certain  sins,  until  light  disprove  them, 
and  the  Lord  clears  up  his  will,  that  men  run  into,  and  are  carried 
away  by  violence  of  the  stream,  while  the  stream  runs  that  way  in 
their  age.     But  this  will  be  no  excuse,  you  are  to  be  upright,  and  not 
carried  away  by  vitium  seculi,  the  evil  way  of  the  times. 

9.  We  are  not  only  to  refrain  our  feet  from  evil,  but  from  all  the 
occasions  and  appearances  of  evil ;  and  not  to  stand  so  much  as  within 
the  scent  of  a  temptation  ;  as  crows  and  ravens,  when  they  are  beaten 
away  from  the  carrion,  will  stand  within  the  scent.     We  are  to  stand 
at  a  great  distance  from  all  that  seems  to  tend  to  sin,  not  only  from 
evil,  but  the  appearanco  of  it,  1  Thes.  v.  22.     Sin  should  be  so  hateful 
to  us,  that  the  very  picture  of  it  should  be  abhorred.     Many  times 
some  sins  are  the  occasion  of  others,  as  covetousness  is  occasioned  by 


32  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiR.  CVII. 

distrust  there  certainly  we  are  to  avoid  occasions  as  well  as  sins  them 
selves.  Ay  !  but  if  the  thing  be  lawful,  and  we  know  our  weakness, 
we  sliould  not  easily  ride  into  the  devil's  quarters,  and  run  into  the 
mouth  of  temptation.  Look,  as  Solomon  in  that  particular  sin  adviseth 
the  young  man,  Prov.  v.  8,  '  Remove  thy  way  far  from  her,  and  come 
not  nigh  the  door  of  her  house.'  He  would  not  have  the  young  ^man 
venture  upon  the  occasion.  And  God's  strictness  to  the  Nazarite  is 
very  notable,  Num.  vi.  3,  4,  as  he  was  to  drink  no  wine  or  strong 
drink,  so  no  vinegar  of  wine,  or  vinegar  of  strong  drink,  nor  drink  any 
liquor  of  grapes,  nor  eat  moist  grapes,  or  dried ;  and  afterwards  he 
was  not  so  much  as  to  eat  either  the  husk  or  kernel  of  the  grape. 
Thus  God  would  have  us  stand  at  a  distance.  This  was  a  typical 
figure,  to  show  at  how  great  a  distance  we  should  stand  from  sin,  and 
refrain  ourselves  from  all  evil ;  as  the  apostle  saith,  '  Hate  the  gar 
ments  spotted  with  the  flesh/  Jude  23,  an  allusion  to  those  that 
touched  an  unclean  thing.  Bushing  upon  snares  and  occasions  of 
evil,  we  hazard  the  surprisal  of  our  souls.  As  Ceesar  said  of  his  wife, 
Oportet  Ccesaris  uxorem  non  solum  castam  esse,  &c, — she  should  not 
only  be  chaste,  but  free  from  all  suspicion ;  so  God  will  have  his 
people  to  be  void  of  suspicion,  and  to  be  clear  and  innocent  from  all 
kind  of  transgressions.  Thus  you  see  how  we  are  to  refrain  from  every 
evil  way. 

The  reasons  of  this  are  two — (1.)  Because  sins  will  weaken  our 
graces;  (2.)  They  will  weaken  our  comfort ;  both  which  are  necessary 
to  the  keeping  of  God's  law.  Therefore,  if  we  would  keep  the  law, 
and  be  punctual  and  close  with  God  in  a  course  of  obedience,  we  must 
stand  at  a  great  distance  in  heart  and  practice  from  all  sin. 

1.  Sins  will  weaken  our  graces.  There  are  several  graces  necessary 
to  the  keeping  of  God's  law,  as  faith,  fear,  love,  hope.  You  know,  at 
conversion  God  puts  a  vital  principle  into  us,  that  is  diversified  and 
called  by  these  several  names.  These  graces  are  planted  in  us  as 
principles  of  operation,  and  as  these  decay,  our  acts  of  obedience  will 
be  more  or  less ;  a  sickly  faith  can  produce  but  weak  operations ;  as 
if  the  root  wither  and  decay,  the  branches  will  not  long  flourish.  So 
when  our  fear  and  reverence  of  God  is  lessened,  as  it  is  by  every  act 
of  sin,  the  spiritual  life  will  not  be  carried  on  with  that  exactness  and 
care.  So  when  our  love  waxeth  cold,  we  will  not  be  so  diligent  and 
serious,  for  these  are  the  principles  of  operations,  Bev.  iii.  3.  When 
they  left  their  first  love,  they  left  their  first  works.  If  there  be  a 
decay  and  diminution  of  our  graces,  then  there  will  be  an  intercession 
of  acts  and  operations  ;  these  graces  will  suffer  a  shrewd  loss  ;  they  are 
qualities,  and  therefore  capable  of  increase  and  remission,  being  more 
or  less.  As  love  may  wax  cold,  Mat.  xxiv.  26  ;  fear  may  be  greater 
or  less ;  soiaith  ;  though  there  be  some  seed  of  grace,  remains  to  pre 
serve  the  interest  of  the  soul,  yet  things  may  be  ready  to  die  and 
faint.  How  do  they  decay  ?  By  sins.  Gal.  v.  17.  These  things  are 
contrary  —  flesh  and  spirit;  that  is,  always  warring  upon  one 
another  and  weakening  one  another;  and  here  lies  the  Christian's 
advantage,  to  observe  which  is  up  and  which  is  down.  By  every  act 
of  deliberate  sin  the  flesh  is  strengthened  and  grace  weakened  ;  these 
are  up  and  down  in  a  renewed  heart ;  therefore  it  is  good  to  see  which 


VER.  101.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  33 

prevails,  that  you  may  not  weaken  your  strength.  If  you  gratify  the 
flesh,  you  hearten  your  enemy,  and  strengthen  your  clog,  and  so  grace 
languisheth. 

2.  It  weakens  our  comfort.  Comfort  is  necessary  to  make  us  lively 
and  cheerful  in  God's  service.  The  Lord  knows  we  drive  on  heavily 
when  we  have  not  that  peace  of  conscience,  serenity  of  mind,  and  want 
the  comforts  of  God's  Spirit.  The  more  our  hearts  are  enlarged  the 
more  we  run  the  way  of  God's  commandments,  Ps.  cxix.  32.  What 
is  an  enlarged  heart  ?  Chiefly  by  joy  and  comfort ;  it  is  joy  that 
enlargeth  the  heart.  Now  sin  weakens  this  joy,  this  comfort  which 
is  our  strength.  When  Adam  sinned,  his  soul  was  filled  with  horror, 
Gen.  iii.  10 ;  and  David,  when  he  had  been  tampering  with  sin,  lost 
his  comfort :  Ps.  li.  8,  '  Make  me  to  hear  of  joy  and  gladness,  that  the 
bones  which  thou  hast  broken  may  rejoice ; '  and  ver.  12,  '  Restore  to 
me  the  joy  of  thy  salvation/  He  that  pricks  himself  with  a  needle  or 
sharp  thing  must  needs  feel  pain ;  so  whosoever  gives  way  to  sin. 
certainly  will  have  trouble  of  soul,  confusion,  grief,  fear,  sorrow,  and 
loseth  his  sense  of  salvation  for  a  time,  and  sins  away  his  peace. 
Always  the  more  exact  our  walking,  the  more  is  our  peace  of  con 
science:  2  Cor.  i.  12,  'This  is  our  rejoicing,  the  testimony  of  our 
conscience,'  &c.  Well,  then,  if  we  would  be  punctual  with  God,  we  see 
how  much  it  concerns  us  to  stand  at  a  distance  from  every  evil  way. 

Use  1.  To  show  how  far  they  are  from  a  course  of  obedience  that 
live  under  a  full  power  of  their  sins.  Never  think  you  seek  after  that 
which  is  good  while  your  evil  scent  remains  with  you,  and  your  former 
evils  are  in  life  and  strength  to  this  very  day.  All  those  that  wallow 
in  brutish  sins  of  drunkenness  and  adultery,  so  those  that  are  guilty 
of  common  swearing,  Sabbath-breaking,  and  such  like  gross  sins,  these 
have  good  thoughts  of  themselves,  they  have  sincerity  towards  God  ; 
but  such  have  a  spot  that  is  not  the  spot  of  God's  people.  Twice  there 
is  a  caution  interposed  that  such  should  not  be  deceived,  1  Cor.  vi.  9  ; 
Eph.  vi.  6.  You  will  say,  Where  lies  the  danger  of  any  deceit  ?  The 
worst  are  apt  to  deceive  their  own  hearts.  There  is  a  world  of  these 
deceivings  in  the  hearts  of  men  ;  the  best  of  saints  have  fallen  into  as 
great  sins.  They  think  these  are  but  petty  slips  and  human  infirmities, 
and  God's  patience  will  suffer  all ;  grace  will  pardon  all  at  length, 
and  no  man  is  perfect ;  therefore  they  have  some  hopes  to  even  those 
that  are  drunkards,  adulterers,  and  abusers  of  themselves  with  man 
kind  ;  though  their  sins  be  as  Sodom,  those  that  fall  into  the  grossest 
sins ;  they  are  apt  to  be  deceived.  Be  not  deceived  ;  these  things  are 
not  consistent  with  grace. 

2.  It  shows  how  far  they  are  from  the  temper  of  God's  children  that 
are  not  punctual  with  God  in  a  course  of  obedience,  that  hate  one  kind 
of  evil,  not  another.  Many  hate  prodigality,  yet  not  covetousness  ;  hate 
covetousness,  and  are  given  up  to  sensuality ;  hate  an  epicure,  and  such 
a  one  as  squanders  away  his  estate,  think  as  evil  of  him  as  can  be,  but 
not  hard  hearts,  such  as  shut  up  their  bowels,  and  do  no  good  in  their 
places  j  and  some  hate  sensuality,  but  not  pride,  but  cherish  that ; 
there  is  some  sweet  bit  under  his  tongue,  as  Zophar  speaks,  Job  xx. 
12.  Christians !  though  we  can  subdue  no  sin  as  we  should,  yet  we  are 
to  resist  every  sin,  and  especially  to  bend  all  the  force  and  strength  of 

VOL.  VIII.  C 


34  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEE.  CVII. 

your  souls  against  your  sins,  that  sin  which  is  most  apt  to  prevail  with 
you :  this  is°a  sign  of  uprightness,  Ps.  xviii.  23.  And  therefore,  if  you 
would  know  whether  you  have  given  up  yourselves  to  walk  with  God, 
to  keep  his  word,  what  labouring  hath  there  been  with  your  own  hearts? 
what  pains  have  you  taken  to  set  against  your  own  sins?  are  you 
most  jealous  of  it,  pray  most  against  it,  often  turn  the  edge  of  the 
word  upon  it  ?  are  you  observing  the  decays,  or  do  you  keep  it  under 
the  tongue  ?  Keason  with  yourselves  upon  the  world  to  come  ;  is  it 
reserved  corruption  or  remaining  corruption  ?  Have  you  never  been 
dealing  with  your  hearts  to  suppress  such  a  corrupt  inclination  as  you 
have  been  often  foiled  with  ? 

Use  2.  To  press  those  that  would  be  exact  with  God,  to  stand  at  a 
distance  in  heart  and  practice  from  every  known  sin ;  whatever  urging 
and  solicitations  you  have  within  yourselves,  though  it  would  break  out, 
yet  have  you  refrained.  To  this  end  let  me  commend  two  graces 
and  two  duties.  The  two  graces  are  love  to  God  and  his  word,  and 
fear  to  God  and  his  word. 

For  the  graces  : — 

1.  A  love  to  God,  a  love  to  the  word  of  God.  A  love  to  God :  Ps. 
xcvii.  10,  'Ye  that  love  the  Lord,  hate  evil/  It  is  as  natural  and  as 
kindly  to  the  new  nature  to  hate  the  chiefest  evil,  as  it  is  to  love  the 
chiefest  good.  Do  you  talk  of  love  and  communion  with  God,  and 
never  exercise  yourselves  in  refraining  your  feet  from  every  evil  way  ? 
Certainly  if  you  have  any  love  to  God,  you  will  hate  that  which  God 
hates ;  for  idem  velle  et  nolle,  to  will  and  nill  the  same  things,  that  is 
true  friendship ;  therefore  if  God  be  your  friend,  you  will  hate  as  he 
hates,  that  which  makes  a  breach  between  you  and  God,  and  makes 
you  grow  shy  of  God,  and  lose  your  familiarity  with  him.  As  love 
to  God,  so  love  to  his  word :  Ps.  cxix.  113,  'I  hate  vain  thoughts,  but 
thy  law  do  I  love.'  Certainly  if  a  man  hath  a  love  to  the  law,  he  will 
not  only  hate  sin  in  practice,  but  vain  thoughts,  what  tends  to  break 
ing  the  law  in  his  thoughts,  any  lesser  contrariety,  contradiction,  or 
defiance  of  God's  law;  for  our  hatred  is  engaged  by  love.  Well, 
get  this  love,  set  it  a-work,  improve  it  by  reason  (for  every  affection  is 
fed  by  discourses  of  the  mind).  All  sins  are  set  a-work  by  some  dis 
course,  so  graces  are  set  a-work  by  discoursing^  of  our  minds.  Now 
set  this  love  a-work.  Oh !  shall  I,  that  have  tasted  so  much  of  the  love 
of  God,  or  that  do  pretend  to  love  God  and  Christ,  and  enjoy  com 
munion  with  him,  yield  to  follow  sin  ?  Ezra  ix.  13,  '  What  I  after 
such  a  deliverance  as  this,  should  we  again  break  thy  commandment  ?' 
When  God  hath  delivered  us,  not  only  out  of  Babylon,  but,  you  may 
say,  out  of  hell,  how  should  we  set  love  a-work  ?  The  great  instance 
of  God's  love  was  the  giving  his  Son :  1  John  iv.  9,  10,  '  Herein  is 
love/  &c.  Now,  then,  if  God  hate  and  resist  sin,  reason  and  argue 
from  this  love :  What !  shall  God  give  his  Son  for  me,  and  I  not  spare 
a  lust  for  God  ?  When  God  did  not  stand  upon  his  Son,  that  was  so 
dear  and  precious  to  him,  shall  I  stand  upon  my  sin  ?  What !  shall 
Christ  die  for  me,  to  ransom  me  from  hell  ?  is  this  my  kindness  to  my 
friend  ?  Cyprian  brings  in  Satan  pleading  thus,  as  vaunting  against 
Christ :  I  never  spilt  one  drop  of  blood,  my  back  was  never  mangled 
with  wkpa  and  scourges,  I  never  had  a  heaven  to  bestow  upon  them ; 


VEK.  101.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  35 

yet  among  all  thy  beneficiaries,  show  me  any  so  busy,  painful,  diligent, 
exact  in  thy  service,  as  these  are  in  mine.  Thou  hast  shed  thy  blood, 
and  endured  a  painful  and  an  accursed  death  for  them  ;  yet  they  are 
not  so  dutiful  to  thee  as  to  me.  You  see  whereto  this  tends ;  and 
shall  Christ  do  so  much  for  us,  and  we  not  deny  our  lusts  for  him  ? 
Surely  if  we  have  any  sense  of  the  love  of  Christ  Jesus,  it  will  work 
this  hatred,  this  abhorrency  and  refraining  ourselves  from  every  evil 
way.  Thus  set  love  a-work. 

2.  Another  grace  is  a  fear  of  God  and  his  word.  A  fear  of  God : 
Prov.  viii.  13,  '  The  fear  of  the  Lord  is  to  depart  from  evil ;'  Job  i.  1, 
'  Job  feared  God,  and  eschewed  evil.'  Surely  a  fear  of  God  will  make 
you  refrain  yourselves  from  every  evil  way.  And  not  only  so,  but  a 
fear  of  his  word,  that  is  useful :  Prov.  xiii.  12,  '  He  that  feareth  a 
commandment  shall  be  rewarded/  It  is  not  said  he  that  fears  a  judg 
ment,  but  he  that  fears  a  commandment.  If  the  word  stands  in  his 
way,  it  is  more  than  if  all  the  inconveniences  in  the  world  stand  in  his 
way.  This  also  should  be  improved  by  holy  reasoning  and  discourse. 
You  may  reason  as  Joseph :  The  Lord  seeth  me,  and  '  how  can  I  do  this 
wickedness  and  sin  against  God  ?  '  Gen.  xxxix.  9.  Shall  I  break  the 
Lord's  laws  before  his  face  ?  What !  when  my  heavenly  father  hath 
forbidden  me  ?  The  sons  of  Jonadab  the  son  of  Bechab,  Jer.  xxxiv. 
5,  6,  they  were  afraid  to  drink  wine  when  the  prophet  brought  pots 
before  them.  No,  we  dare  not ;  our  father  hath  commanded  us  the 
contrary.  Their  father  was  dead,  and  could  not  take  cognisance  of 
their  actions,  to  call  them  to  account  for  breaking  the  rule  of  the 
institution  ;  but  there  was  an  awe  upon  them.  But  our  Father's  eyes 
run  to  and  fro  throughout  the  whole  earth.  Therefore  when  you  are 
tempted  to  sin  and  folly,  say,  I  dare  not ;  God  hath  commanded  me 
in  his  word  to  the  contrary.  Set  fear  a-work  ;  here  is  a  command 
ment  stands  in  my  way  ;  the  great  God  he  sees  all  things,  and  will  one 
day  call  us  to  an  account. 

The  two  duties  into  which  these  graces  do  run  and  issue  themselves 
are  watchfulness  and  resistance.  Watchfulness  ;  we  are  poor  creatures, 
in  the  midst  of  snares,  very  easily  may  miscarry,  partly  through  our 
constitution  ;  there  is  flesh  as  well  as  spirit,  and  the  flesh  doth  always 
stir,  and  not  lie  idle.  Old  sins,  that  seemed  to  be  laid  asleep,  may 
easily  waken  again.  The  devil  suits  the  bait  to  the  season  and  affec 
tions  we  are  under,  as  angels  furnish  their  hook  with  a  proper  bait. 
Oh !  saith  Bernard,  here  are  fears,  there  snares ;  that  which  pleases 
is  apt  to  tempt  me,  that  which  frightens  is  apt  to  terrify  me.  What 
should  a  poor  creature  do  ?  Be  watchful,  stand  upon  your  guard, 
that  you  be  not  surprised  by  the  craft  of  Satan,  that  you  may  not 
swallow  the  hook  when  he  sets  the  bait  to  your  appetite.  And  then 
powerful  resistance  of  evil,  that  sin  may  not  prevail,  and  we  more  and 
more  drawn  off  from  God.  Do  not  yield  a  little  ;  smaller  sins  make 
way  for  greater  ;  when  the  gap  is  once  open,  it  is  wider  and  wider  ;  if 
sin  be  not  stifled  at  first,  it  will  increase. 


36 


SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CVIII. 


SEKMON  CVIII. 


I  have  not  departed  from  tliy  judgments  :  for  tliou  hast  taught  me.— 

VER.  102. 

IN  the  former  verse  he  had  spoken  of  his  vigilancy  against  evil,  as  the 
result  of  that  wisdom  which  he  got  by  the  word  ;  now  he  speaketh  of 
his  constant  adherence  to  God's  direction.  Here  you  may  take  notice 

of  two  thino-s (1.)  David's  exactness  and  constancy  in  obedience,  / 

have  not  departed  from  thy  judgments.  (2.)  The  reason  of  it,  for  thow 
hast  taught  me. 

Branch  1.  By  misphalim,  judgments,  is  meant  b-od  s  law^ior  there 
by  he  will  judge  the  world.  And  the  word  departed  not  intimateth 
both  his  exactness  and  constancy ;  his  exactness,  that  he  did  not  go 
an  hair's-breadth  from  his  direction :  Deut.  v.  32,  '  Ye  shall  observe  to 
do  what  the  Lord  your  God  hath  commanded  you :  ye  shall  not  turn 
aside  to  the  right  hand  or  to  the  left.'  And  his  constancy  is  employed 
in  it ;  for  then  we  are  said  to  depart  from  God  and  his  law  when  we 
fall  off  from  him  in  judgment  and  practice,  Jer.  xxxii.  40. 

Branch  2.  God's  institution  and  continual  instincts.  The  Septua- 
gint,  evofjioOeTyo-ds  /-te  ;  and  thence  the  vulgar,  Legem  posuisti  mild— 
thou  hast  given  me  that  law ;  and  so  the  reason  would  be  drawn  from 
God's  authority  ;  but  rather  it  is  meant  of  his  internal  illumination 
and  constant  direction.  Observe — 

1.  A  man  that  would  show  love  to  the  word  must  show  it  by  a 
constant  and  exact  adherence  to  the  directions  thereof,  whatever 
temptations  he  meet  with  to  the  contrary.  David  produceth  this  as 
one  evidence  of  that  affection  in  the  first  verse  of  this  section  or  part : 
'  Oh,  how  I  love  thy  law  !'  I  shall  show  you — 

1.  What  temptations  there  are  to  the  contrary. 

2.  What  reason  there  is  to  be  exact  and  constant. 
First,  What  temptations  to  the  contrary. 

1.  From  the  natural  instability  of  our  own  hearts  ;  nothing  is  so 
changeable  as  man.  We  have  certain  heats  for  the  present,  but  we 
soon  cool  again  ;  and  when  temptations  arise,  are  carried  off  from  God, 
and  that  exactness  and  care  that  we  were  wont  to  show  in  our  obed 
ience  to  him.  What  was  said  of  Keuben  is  true  of  every  man  in  some 
degree,  Gen.  xlix.  4,  '  Unstable  as  water.'  It  is  carried  hither  and 
thither,  in  various  and  uncertain  motions.  So  are  we  up  and  down, 
off  and  on,  ebbing  and  flowing,  not  steadfast  in  any  good  frame  ;  some 
times  seen  to  have  strong  motions  towards  God  and  holiness,  but  anon 
grow  cold  and  careless,  or  as  a  bird  is  now  upon  the  top  of  a  tree,  by 
and  by  upon  the  under  branches,  and  then  upon  the  ground.  Such  a 
different  posture  or  spirit  may  every  one  observe  in  himself,  and  some 
times  in  the  same  duty.  God  is  always  the  same,  and  so  are  his  ways  ; 
they  have  the  same  loveliness  which  they  had  before,  but  we  are  not; 
always  the  same.  The  rock  standeth  where  it  did,  but  the  waters  flow 
to  and  again.  The  least  blast  of  a  temptation  maketh  us  break  off 
our  course.  Now  this  natural  levity  of  spirit  is  a  great  hindrance 
to  us.  We  do  not  always  see  with  the  same  eyes,  nor  have  we  the 


VER.  102.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  37 

same  degree  of  affection.  'You  did  run  well,  who  hindered  you?' 
Gal.  v.  7.  There  may  be  a  ready  forwardness,  and  yet  a  great  defec 
tion  afterwards.  This  uncertainty  is  not  only  at  first,  before,  we  are 
settled  by  grace,  or  have  any  sound  acquaintance  with  God's  ways. 
Then  it  is  most,  James  i.  8.  But  after  conversion  it  remaineth  with 
us  in  part.  Those  measures  of  affection  and  zeal  which  we  once 
obtained  are  not  constant  with  us,  but  suffer  some  notable  decay,  and 
our  edge  is  often  taken  off  and  blunted.  Especially  our  first  love  is 
not  of  long  standing,  and  our  after-carriage  not  answerable  to  our 
promising  beginnings.  Now,  there  is  no  satisfying  reason  for  this 
change,  why  we  should  make  a  halt,  and  grow  remiss  and  lag  in  the 
profession  of  godliness,  and  leave  off  our  first  works  ;  nothing  but  our 
changeableness  of  spirit. 

2.  From  the  furious  oppositions  and  malice  of  Satan  and  his  instru 
ments. 

[1.]  Satan  pursueth  after  men  that  would  cleave  to  God's  ways,  as 
Pharaoh  did  after  the  Israelites  ;  either  to  bring  them  back  again,  or 
to  weary  them  and  vex  them,  and  make  their  present  course  un 
comfortable  to  them.  Now,  the  violent  assault  of  multiplied  tempta 
tions  is  apt  to  make  us  stagger  and  depart  from  that  good  course  that 
we  have  propounded  to  ourselves ;  as  the  Israelites  were  running  back 
to  Egypt  because  of  the  inconveniences  of  the  wilderness.  But  it 
should  not  be  so  ;  a  Christian  should  stand  his  ground,  '  Whom  resist, 
steadfast  in  the  faith;  knowing  that  the  same  afflictions  are  accomplished 
in  your  brethren  that  are  in  the  world/  1  Peter  v.  9.  They  that  make 
conscience  of  their  duty,  and  are  most  set  to  serve  and  honour  God, 
must  reckon  upon  the  hottest  battle,  and  sorest  conflict  from  Satan,  to 
hinder  or  discourage  them  therein :  he  watcheth  all  advantages,  and 
is  still  in  action  against  them.  Now  this  should  not  shake  us,  or 
loosen  our  adherence  to  the  truths  of  the  gospel ;  for  so  it  is  with 
every  one  that  goeth  to  heaven  :  he  must  be  watching,  praying,  striv 
ing.  Yielding  is  not  the  way  to  be  quiet,  but  resisting  ;  if  you  yield  to 
him  in  the  least,  he  will  carry  you  farther  and  farther,  till  he  hath 
left  thee  under  a  stupefied  or  terrified  conscience  :  stupefied  till  thou 
hast  lost  all  thy  tenderness.  A  stone  at  the  top  of  a  hill,  when  it 
beginneth  to  roll  down,  ceaseth  not  till  it  come  to  the  bottom.  Thou 
thinkest  it  is  but  yielding  a  little,  and  so  by  degrees  art  carried  on,  till 
thou  hast  sinned  away  all  thy  profession,  and  all  principles  of  con 
science,  by  the  secret  witchery  of  his  temptations :  and  of  the  other 
side,  terrified,  till  thy  peace,  comfort,  and  sweet  sense  of  God's  love 
be  gone  ;  and  thou  brought  under  the  black  horrors  of  a  dreadful 
despair.  Therefore  a  stout  and  peremptory  resistance  is  the  only 
means  of  safety.  Consider,  your  case  is  not  singular,  your  lot  is 
no  harder  than  the  rest  of  God's  children  therefore  do  not  depart 
from  God. 

[2.]  Satan's  instruments  may  rage  against  us,  and  yet  we  must  not 
depart :  Ps.  xliv.  17,  18,  '  All  this  is  come  upon  us,  yet  have  we  not 
forgotten  thee,  neither  have  we  dealt  falsely  in  thy  covenant :  our 
heart  is  not  turned  back,  neither  hath  our  steps  declined  from  thy 
way.'  All  this  !  What  ?  Scorn,  disgrace,  bloody,  cruel,  reproved, 
maligned,  butchered,  yet  steadfast  with  God  in  the  profession  of  the 


38  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CVIII. 

faith.   Hazards  and  troubles  are  no  excuse ;  this  is  but  a  time  to  show 
our  love  to  God,  our  duty  to  God  is  the  same  still. 

3.  From  the  example  of  others,  especially  who  are  of  esteem  for 
godliness.     Example  hath  a  mighty  force  upon  men.     Man  is  a  duc 
tile  creature  ;  like  sheep,  they  run  for  company ;  not  what  we  ought 
to  do,  but  what  others  do.     There  are  three  reasons— of  natural  cor 
ruption,  the  flesh,  the  devil.     But  first,  example  of  others  :  Eph.  ii.  2, 
'  In  time  past  ye  walked  according  to  the  course  of  this  world.'     The 
universal  corrupt  course  and  custom  of  those  among  whom  we  live  is  a 
great  snare.     Te  follow  a  multitude  to  do  evil  is  a  strong  excitement, 
but  no  sufficient  excuse,  especially  of  good  men.     They  that  are  gra 
cious  may  stagger  strangely  in  reeling  times,  and  be  overtaken  with 
dangerous  mistakes.    Now  their  sins  authorise  others,  and  draw  them 
into°the  snare :   Gal.  ii.  12,  '  Carried  away  with  their  dissimulation.' 
A  strong  stream  or  current  impetuously  doth  carry  all  things  away 
with  it.     They  take  all  for  current  that  they  do,  without  examining 
their  actions,  and  so  run  away  from  the  rule  by  their  errors. 

4.  From  the  providence  of  God,  which  may  seem  to  be  against 
those  that  are  exact  right,  or  the  sure  way  pointed  out  to  us  in  his 
word,  two  ways: — 

pL]  In  the  manifold  disappointments  as  to  his  favouring  a  good 
cause;  their  endeavours  blasted,  many  troubles  befall  them.  God's 
people  are  often  put  to  trials  by  God  himself,  to  try  the  sincerity  of  their 
love.  Blind  Bartimeus  rebuked  by  the  disciples :  Mark  x.  48,  '  Many 
charged  him  that  he  should  hold  his  peace,  but  he  cried  the  more  a 
great  deal,  Thou  Son  of  David,  have  mercy  upon  me/  And  so  Christ  to 
the  woman  of  Canaan,  Mat.  xv.  22-27,  puts  her  off.  And  are  not  we 
put  to  such  trials  in  these  latter  times  ?  When  we  own  him,  God  seemeth 
to  put  us  off ;  providence  appeareth  with  a  doubtful  face.  They  that 
take  to  the  better  part  may  be  reduced  to  great  straits;  therefore 
sometimes  it  may  '  happen  to  the  righteous  according  to  the  work  of 
the  wicked,  and  to  the  wicked  according  to  the  work  of  the  righteous/ 
Eccles.  viii.  4.  So  variously  doth  God  dispense  external  good  and  evil, 
and  may  seem  to  frown  upon  those  that  are  faithful  now ;  yet  we 
should  not  depart  from  his  judgments :  Job  xiii.  14,  '  Though  he  kill 
me,  yet  will  I  trust  in  him.'  We  should  wrestle  through  many  dis 
appointments  here,  or  hereafter  God  will  not  own  us. 

[2.]  By  giving  success  to  a  wrong  party,  that  layeth  claim  to  him, 
to  his  favour  in  an  evil  way,  and  interpret  when  his  providence 
seems  to  be  an  approbation  of  an  evil  course.  It  is  a  great  tempta 
tion.  God's  choicest  servants  have  been  staggered  by  it ;  yet  it  is  but  a 
temptation  :  Ps.  1.  21, '  I  kept  silence,  and  thou  thoughtest  that  I  was 
altogether  such  an  one  as  thyself.'  God  may  hold  his  hand,  though 
they  strangely  transform  him  in  their  thoughts,  and  entitle  their 
actions  to  his  patronage.  God  trieth  you  :  Deut.  xiii.  2,  3,  c  The 
Lord  your  God  proveth  you,  to  know  whether  ye  love  the  Lord  your 
God,  with  all  your  heart  and  with  all  your  soul.'  God's  word  is  so 
clear  and  satisfactory,  that  by  a  righteous  judgment  he  may  permit  it, 
to  try  our  steadfastness  and  obedience,  not  as  chaff,  but  as  solid  grain. 
But  must  we  not  regard  providences  ?  Yes,  but  not  interpret  them 
against  the  word,  but  with  it.  It  is  comfortable  to  see  the  word 


VER.  102.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  39 

backed  with  a  providence,  Kom.  ii.  18  ;  Heb.  ii.  2  ;  and  Hosea  vii.  12 ; 
when  the  word  is  made  good,  and  they  feel  that  which  they  would  not 
believe.  Not  interpret  it  against  the  word.  Providence  is  never  against 
the  word ;  it  is  an  exact  comment  upon  it,  if  we  had  eyes  to  see  it ;  and 
when  we  see  it  altogether  we  shall  find  it  so.  But  now  we  view  it  by 
pieces,  and  so  mistake  :  Eom.  viii.  28,  '  For  we  know  that  all  things 
work  together  for  good  to  them  that  love  God,  to  them  who  are  called 
according  to  purpose;'  Ps.  Ixxiii.  17,  'Until  I  went  into  the  sanc 
tuary,  then  understood  I  their  ends/  When  we  look  to  the  end  of 
things,  all  hazards  are  over. 

Secondly,  The  reasons  why  we  must  be  exact  and  constant,  not 
withstanding  these  temptations. '  I  will  name  but  two,  implied  in  the 
two  words  of  the  text,  '  Thy  judgments ' — (1.)  It  is  God's  word  ;  (2.) 
God's  word  is  judgment. 

1.  It  is  God's  direction,  who  cannot  deceive  or  be  deceived;  you 
may  venture  your  soul's  temporal  and  eternal  estate,  and  all  upon  it, 
upon  God's  bare  word ;  for  it  is  impossible  for  him  to  lie  in  his  pro 
mises,  Heb.  vi.  18,  or  to  be  deceived  in  his  directions.  The  word  of 
the  Lord  is  a  pure  rule  :  1  John  ii.  27,  *  The  unction  teacheth  you  all 
things,  and  is  truth,  and  is  no  lie.'  There  is  no  erring  while  we  walk 
by  this  direction,  the  Spirit  of  God  teaching  us  by  his  word;  and  in 
deed  this  is  the  effect  of  that  great  faith,  to  believe  God  upon  his  bare 
word,  to  believe  what  he  hath  spoken  is  true,  and  to  act  accordingly. 
If  this  were  rooted  in  our  hearts,  we  should  not  be  so  unstable,  so 
easily  foiled  by  Satan,  discouraged  by  the  oppositions  of  evil  men,  or  live 
by  example,  but  by  rule,  and  would  interpret  the  providence  of  God 
to  the  advantage,  and  not  the  prejudice  of  obedience  :  '  Whom  resist, 
steadfast  in  the  faith,'  1  Peter  v.  9.  Adhere  to  the  truth  of  the  word  : 
I  know  here  is  my  direction,  and  in  the  issue  will  be  my  safety  and 
happiness.  But  either  we  do  not  believe  this  is  God's  word,  or  do  not 
urge  the  heart  with  God's  authority  and  veracity,  and  therefore  we  are 
up  and  down.  But  now,  when  we  determine  this  is  God's  word,  and 
so  receive  it,  1  Thes.  ii.  13,  '  When  ye  received  the  word  of  God, 
which  ye  heard  of  us,  ye  received  it  not  as  the  word  of  men,  but  as  it 
is  in  truth,  the  word  of  God/  And  then  it  is  my  rule  ;  whatever  it 
cost  me.  There  you  urge  the  heart  with  the  authority  of  God,  Mat. 
xvi.  24 :  a  resolute  giving  up  ourselves  to  God's  direction,  and  to  re 
ceive  the  law  from  his  mouth.  And  it  is  a  certain  rule,  whatever  cross 
accidents  fall  out,  it  should  be  received  with  such  certainty  and  absolute 
authority  as  nothing  should  move  us.  So  assured  of  it, '  that  if  an  angel 
should  preach  any  other  doctrine,  let  him  be  accursed/  Gal.  i.  8 ;  2  Tim. 
iii.  16;  and  2  Peter  i.  2.  When  it  is  believed  to  be  the  Lord's  mind,  it 
is  a  sure  ground  for  faith  to  rest  upon  ;  it  is  not  a  doctrine  found  out 
by  the  wit  of  man,  no  private  invention  of  others,  but  God's  inspira 
tion.  God  hath  wisdom  to  direct  me  the  safest  way,  and  goodness  and 
faithfulness  enough  not  to  mislead  me  :  '  Good  and  upright  is  the  Lord, 
therefore  will  he  teach  sinners  in  the  way/  Ps.  xxv.  8.  It  is  not  the 
devices  of  their  heads  that  wrote  it,  but  the  public  mind  of  God.  And 
saith  the  apostle,  c  Knowing  this  first ;'  this  is  the  first  and  supreme 
principle  :  he  had  said,  ver.  19,  that  we  should  consult  with  the  word  for 
direction  and  comfort  before  we  can  get  any  saving  light  or  true  comfort. 


40  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CVIII. 

2  It  is  judgments.  Every  man's  doom  is  contained  in  the  word, 
and  if  you  can^but  stay  a  little,  you  shall  see  it  verified  by  sensible  and 
plain  experiences.  Do  but  wait  and  observe  how  God  maketli  good 
his  promises,  and  accomplished  his  threatenings,  and  you  will  see  no 
cause  to  depart ;  you  will  find  you  have  done  right  in  the  issue,  and 
that  close  obedience  is  the  only  way  of  safety  and  happiness  here  and 
hereafter.  David  did  so  as  to  his  own  case :  Ps.  xvm.  21,  '  L  have 
kept  the  ways  of  the  Lord,  and  have  not  wickedly  departed  from  my 
God.'  And  was  he  a  loser  by  it  ?  No ;  '  God  hath  recompensed  me 
according  to  the  cleanness  of  my  hands/  On  the  other  side,  those  that 
depart  from  God  are  destroyed ;  his  word  will  be  made  good  against 
them :  Ps.  cxix.  119,  '  Thou  puttest  away  the  wicked  of  the  earth  like 
dross.' 

Use  1.  Direction  to  us  both  in  public  and  private  cases.  Be  sure 
you  follow  such  ways  as  God's  word  doth  allow,  for  otherwise  it  is  not 
constancy,  but  obstinacy  ;  and  then  whatever  troubles  and  discourage 
ments  you  meet  with,  this  will  be  a  comfort  to  you,  that  you  are  in 
God's  way. 

First,  As  to  your  private  case,  be  not  discouraged  by  the  instability 
of  your  heart  and  the  temptations  of  Satan.  You  will  be  up  and  down 
with  God  ;  but  observe  these  two  rules : — 

1.  It  is  necessary  to  watch  against  your  first  declinings,  lest  by 
little  and  little  the  heart  be  stolen  away  from  God.     When  you  lose 
your  savour  of  holy  things,  lessen  your  diligence,  and  are  not  so  exact 
•and  watchful,  you  begin  to  depart  from  God.     The  gap  once  made^in. 
the  conscience  groweth  wider  and  wider  every  day.     The  first  declin 
ings  are  a  cause  of  all  the  rest ;  remitting  your  watch  and  spiritual 
fervour,  by  degrees  you  do  not  walk  with  such  a  straight  foot :  he 
that  looketh  to  the  house  to  keep  it  tight  and  in  constant  repair,  pre 
vents  the  fall  of  it. 

2.  If  through  our  infirmity  we  miscarry  at  any  time,  we  must  not 
persist  in  a  wrong  course,  but  reclaim  speedily,  not  depart  wickedly, 
Ps.  xviii.  21,  not  lie  in  the  dirt  when  we  have  caught  a  fall.     There  is 
a  departing  out  of  infirmity,  and  a  departing  wickedly.     A  candle 
sucketh  light  if  presently  kindled  again  ;  the  longer  we  lie  in  our  sins 
the  worse ;  the  more  care,  the  more  speedy,  the  more  likely  to  succeed, 
when  there  is  any  breach  between  us  and  God  ;  not  lie  in  it. 

Secondly,  As  to  public  actions.  We  live  in  changeable  times,  but 
it  is  well  that  we  have  a  sure  rule  ;  this  may  stablish  your  hearts.  If 
governed  by  sense  and  interest,  with  what  a  gracious  face  shall  we  ap 
pear  to  the  world  ?  Though  you  meet  with  troubles  for  being  exact 
and  punctual  as  to  principles  of  conscience,  and  many  disappoint 
ments  from  God,  yet  in  the  issue  that  will  be  found  to  be  the  best 
course  for  you  and  yours.  Now,  when  you  see  your  duty,  for  which 
you  must  consult  both  with  word  and  Spirit,  take  heed  of  two 
things : — 

1.  Unbelief :  Heb.  iii.  12,  '  Take  heed  lest  there  be  in  any  of  you  an 
evil  heart  of  unbelief,  in  departing  from  the  living  God.'  The  cause 
of  apostasy  is  unbelief ;  they  do  not  look  upon  God's  directions  as 
judgments.  Men  that  look  to  the  present  face  of  things  cannot  see 
things  to  come,  and  so  miscarry.  Hezekiah,  in  the  midst  of  dangers 


VER.  102.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  41 

and  difficulties,  was  steady  to  God  :  2  Kings  xviii.  5,  6,  '  He  trusted 
in  the  Lord  God  of  Israel :  he  clave  to  the  Lord,  and  departed  not 
from  following  him,  but  kept  his  commandments,  which  the  Lord 
commanded  Moses.'  Every  duty  hath  a  sanction,  invested  with  pro 
mises  and  threatenings  ;  therefore,  as  there  needeth  obedience  to  make 
conscience  of  the  precept,  so  faith  to  believe  the  sanction,  which  doth 
enliven  the  duty,  and  keep  our  hearts  under  the  awe  of  it. 

2.  Mortification ;  for  till  there  be  an  indifferency  to  all  events  in 
temporal  things,  we  shall  ever  be  departing  and  turning  off  from  God  ; 
sometimes  allured  out  of  our  obedience,  sometimes  affrighted  out  of  it ; 
therefore,  till  dead  to  worldly  accidents  and  interests,  we  are  easily  turned 
out  of  the  way  :  Heb.  xii.  13,  '  Lest  that  which  is  lame  be  turned  out  of 
the  way ;'  that  which  is  lame,  feeble,  and  fearful.  Good  men  may 
be  carried  away  thus,  as  Peter.  Too  weak  and  inconstant  are  the  best 
of  men  ;  the  least  blast  of  temptation  will  make  them  leave  off  the 
course  of  well-doing,  and,  without  respect  had  to  conscience  or  credit, 
openly  desert  it.  For  fear  of  man's  offence  Peter  slipped  from  his 
duty.  Fear  of  losing  applause,  or  incurring  hatred  with  men;  maketh 
us  venture  on  God's  dishonour  ;  unmodified  lusts  make  us  more  tender 
of  ourselves  than  of  God. 

Second  point.  That  divine  teaching  causeth  constancy  ;  for  there 
fore  David  saith,  '  I  departed  not,  for  thou  hast  taught  me.'  Here — 

1.  What  it  is  to  be  taught  of  God  ;  it  is  often  spoken  of  in  scrip 
ture  :  Isa.  liv.  13,  '  All  thy  children  shall  be  taught  of  the  Lord'; 
John  vi.  45,  *  All  taught  of  God/  Now  God  teacheth  outwardly  by 
his  word,  but  inwardly  by  his  Spirit ;  these  two  must  not  be  severed. 
Our  hearing  is  necessary:  Eph.  iv.  21,  'If  so  be  ye  have  heard  him, 
and  have  been  taught  by  him,  as  the  truth  is  in  Jesus ; '  the  ordi 
nary  means  of  hearing  him  preached,  and  set  forth  in  the  gospel 
and  public  ministry,  and  by  that  means  doth  Christ  make  use  of 
it  to  teach  us  by  his  Spirit.  So  John  vi.  45,  '  Heard  and  learned 
of  the  Father ; '  it  doth  not  seclude  a  teaching  ministry  in  the 
gospel ;  but  it  is  said,  1  Thes.  iv.  9,  '  Ye  yourselves  are  taught  of 
God  to  love  one  another ; '  and  1  John  ii.  27,  '  But  the  anointing 
which  ye  have  received  of  him  abideth  in  you  ;  and  ye  need  not 
that  any  man  teach  you,  but  as  the  same  anointing  teacheth  you 
of  all  things,  and  is  truth,  and  is  no  lie  ;  and  even  as  it  hath  taught 
you,  ye  shall  abide  in  him.'  It  is  a  rhetorical  insinuation,  the  nega 
tive  to  be  understood  comparatively ;  man's  teaching  is  nothing  to 
what  you  have  already  by  the  Spirit.  On  the  other  side,  much  more 
doth  it  not  exclude  the  Spirit,  upon  whom  the  efficacy  dependeth. 
God  teacheth  by  men,  but  the  effect  is  from  his  grace:  Mark  xvi.  20, 
'  They  went  forth  preaching  the  word,  the  Lord  working  with  them  ; ' 
1  Cor.  iii.  6,  '  Paul  may  plant,  and  Apollos  water,  but  God  giveth  the 
increase.'  The  internal  efficacy  worketh  by  external  means :  Docet 
Spiritus  Sanctus,  sed  per  verbum,  saith  Ferus,  docent  apostoli;  sed  per 
co-operationem  Spiritus  Sancti — God  worketh  in  and  by  the  means. 

2.  Inwardly  God  teacheth  two  ways — (1.)  By  common  illumination ; 
(2.)  Special  operation. 

1.  Common  illumination,  barely  enlightening  the  mind  to  know  or 
understand  what  he  propoundeth  by  his  messengers.     So  Kom.  i.  20, 


42  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CVIII. 

God  showed  it  to  the  heathen,  '  For  the  invisible  things  of  him  from 
the  creation  of  the  world  are  clearly  seen,  being  understood  by  the 
things  that  are  made,  even  his  eternal  power  and  godhead ;  so  that 
they  are  without  excuse.' 

2.  But  then,  by  way  of  special  operation,  effectually  inclining  the 
will  to  embrace  and  prosecute  duties  so  known  :  Jer.  xxxi.  33, '  I  will 
put  my  law  in  their  inward  parts,  and  write  it  in  their  hearts.'  This 
way  of  teaching  is  always  effectual  and  persuasive.  Now  in  this 
sense  they  are  taught  of  God,  that  they  do  not  only  get  an  ear  to  hear, 
but  a  heart  to  understand,  learn,  and  practise. 

Secondly,  Why  this  teaching  is  the  ground  of  constancy. 

1.  They  that  are  thus  taught  of  God  see  things  more  clearly  than 
others  do :  God  is  the  most  excellent  teacher.     One  man  seeth  a  thing 
by   candlelight,  another  by  daylight;    he   seeth  most   clearly  that 
seeth  by  noonday.      The  light  of  the   Spirit  doth   clearly  manifest 
things,  both  object  and  faculty.      The  unction  teacheth  us  all  things, 
1  John  ii.  20,  2  Cor.  iii.  18.— a  distinct,  clear,  abiding  light.     Carnal 
men  are  blind,  2  Peter  i.  9.     How  sharp-sighted  soever  in  other 
things,  yet  blind  ;  they  do  not  see  so  as  to  affect  their  hearts. 

2.  They  know  things  more  surely,  and  with  certainty  of  demonstra 
tion;  whereas   others  have  but  dubious  conjectures,  and  loose  and 
wavering  opinions  about  the  things  of  God  :  John  vi.  69,  *  We  believe, 
and  are  sure  that  thou  art  that  Christ,  the  Son  of  the  living  God ; ' 
John  xvii.  8,  '  Known  surely  that  I  came  out  from  thee.'     The  many 
temptations  and  assaults  we  meet  with  need  such  a  certain  appre 
hension. 

3.  This  teaching  is  so  efficacious  and  powerful,  as  that  the  effect 
followeth  :  Ps.  Ixxxvi.  11,  '  Teach  me  thy  way,  0  Lord  ;  I  will  walk 
in  thy  truth  ;'  1  Cor.  ii.  4.  It  is  a  lovely  teaching,  causing  us  to  cleave 
to  what  is  taught. 

4.  God  reneweth  this  teaching,  and  is  always  at  hand  to  guide  us,  and 
give  counsel  to  us,  which  is  cause  of  our  standing.     We  need  this  con 
tinual  teaching  to  keep  us  mindful,  that  we  may  not  forget  things 
known.     The  Spirit  puts  us  in  remembrance,  because  of  the  decay  of 
fervency,  and  dulness  of  spirit  that  groweth  upon  us ;  therefore  are 
truths  revived  to  keep  us  fresh  and  lively,  that  we  may  not  neglect  our 
duty.  Because  of  incogitancy  and  heecllessness  we  mistake  our  way,  and 
are  apt  to  run  into  sin  in  the  time  of  trial  and  temptation.    Therefore 
we  need  a  monitor  on  all  occasions,  Isa.  xxx.  31,  that  we  may  not  be 
carried  away  with  the  corrupt  bent  of  our  own  hearts.      Well,  then, 
this  abiding  in  us  is  the  cause  of  perseverance,  1  John  ii.  27. 

Use.  To  show  the  reason  of  men's  fickleness  and  inconstancy,  both 
in  opinion  and  practice.  He  that  is  led  by  man  unto  man,  both  as 
to  opinion  and  practice,  may  be  led  off  by  man  again,  when  we  take 
up  truth  upon  tradition  and  human  recommendation.  Oh!  seek  it 
of  God :  Isa.  xlviii.  17,  '  I  am  the  Lord  your  God,  that  teacheth  you 
to  profit.'  Not  our  own  ability,  but  the  light  of  the  Holy  Ghost ; 
wait  upon  God,  learn  something  of  him  every  day,  and  give  God  all 
the  glory. 


VEB.  103.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  43 


SEKMON  CIX. 

How  sweet  are  thy  words  unto  my  taste !  yea,  sweeter  than  honey 
to  my  mouth. — VER.  103. 

IN  this  verse  you  have  another  evidence  of  David's  affection  to  the 
word,  and  that  is  the  incomparable  delight  which  he  found  therein,  as 
being  suitable  to  his  taste  and  spiritual  appetite.  This  pleasure  and 
delight  he  found  in  the  word  is  propounded — (1.)  By  way  of  interro 
gation  or  admiration,  '  How  sweet  are  thy  words  unto  my  taste ! ' 
As  if  he  said,  So  sweet  that  I  am  not  able  to  express  it.  (2.)  By  way 
of  comparison,  '  Yea,  sweeter  than  honey  to  my  mouth.'  To  external 
sense  nothing  is  sweeter  than  honey ;  honey  is  not  so  sweet  to  the 
mouth  and  palate  as  the  word  of  God  is  to  the  soul.  It  is  usual  to 
express  the  affections  of  the  mind  by  words  proper  to  the  bodily 
senses,  as  taste  is  put  here  for  delight,  and  elsewhere  eating  is  put  for 
believing  and  digesting  the  truth :  *  Thy  word  was  sweet,  and  I  did 
eat  it/  Jer.  xv.  16.  Again,  in  all  kind  of  writers,  both  profane  and 
sacred,  it  is  usual  to  compare  the  excellency  of  speech  to  honey.  The 
poet  describes  an  eloquent  man,  that  his  speech  flowed  from  him 
sweeter  than  honey.  And  the  like  we  may  observe  in  scripture  :  Prov. 
xvi.  24,  '  Pleasant  words  are  as  an  honeycomb,  sweet  to  the  soul,  and 
health  to  the  bones/  He  means  words  of  wisdom,  such  words  as 
come  from  "a  pure  heart;  now  these  are  sweeter  than  honey.  So  the 
spouse ;  because  of  her  gracious  doctrine,  it  is  said,  Cant.  iv.  11,  *  Thy 
lips,  0  my  spouse,  drop  as  the  honeycomb ; '  and  Ps.  xix.  10,  *  More 
to  be  desired  are  they  than  gold ;  yea,  than  much  fine  gold :  sweeter 
also  than  honey,  and  the  honeycomb/  For  profit,  he  esteemed  them 
more  than  gold ;  for  pleasure,  more  than  honey  or  the  honeycomb. 
And  David  saith  here,  '  Thy  words  are  sweet  unto  my  taste/  He 
doth  not  say  in  general,  They  are  sweet  unto  the  taste,  but  sweet 
unto  my  taste.  Holy  men,  that  have  much  communion  with  God, 
such  as  David  was,  they  that  have  his  Spirit,  find  this  delight  in  the 
word  of  God ;  nothing  so  sweet,  or  so  full  of  pleasure  to  the  soul. 
Two  points  : — • 

1.  That  there  is  such  a  thing  as  spiritual  taste. 

2.  That  to  a  spiritual  taste  the  word  of  God  is  sweeter  than  all 
pleasures  and  delights  whatsoever. 

Doct.  1.  That  there  is  such  a  thing  as  spiritual  taste. 

I  shall  show  that  it  is,  and  what  it  is ;  the  use  of  it,  and  what  is 
requisite  to  it. 

First,  It  appears  that  there  is  such  a  thing ;  the  soul  hath  its  senses 
as  well  as  the  body.  We  do  not  only  know,  but  feel  things  to  be 
either  hurtful  or  comfortable  to  us ;  so  the  new  nature  doth  not  only 
know  it,  but  doth  seem  to  feel  it,  that  some  things  are  hurtful,  and 
others  are  comfortable  to  it ;  and  hence  the  apostle's  expression,  Heb. 
v.  14,  '  Such  have  their  senses  exercised,  to  discern  both  good  and 
evil/  Christians,  if  there  be  such  a  thing  as  spiritual  life,  certainly 
there  must  be  spiritual  sense ;  for  all  life  is  accompanied  with  a  sense 
of  what  is  good  or  evil  for  that  life,  and  the  higher  the  life  the  greater 


44  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SBB.  CIX. 

the  sense.  Beasts  feel  more  than  a  plant  when  hurt  is  done  to  them, 
because  they  have  a  nobler  life,  and  a  man  than  a  beast ;  and  the  life 
of  o-race  being  above  the  life  of  reason,  there  is  a  higher  sense  joined 
with  it  and  therefore  the  pain  and  pleasure  of  that  life  is  greater 
than  the  pain  or  pleasure  of  any  other  life;  for  spiritual  things,  as  they 
are  greater  in  themselves,  so  they  do  more  affect  us  than  bodily :  A 
wounded  conscience,  who  can  bear  it  ?'  Prov.  xviii.  14.  What  a  sense 
doth  the  evil  of  the  spiritual  life  leave  upon  the  soul !  And  then  for 
the  comforts  of  the  spiritual  life,  the  joys  and  pleasures  of  it  are 
unspeakable  and  glorious,  1  Peter  i.  8,  such  joy  as  no  tongue  or  words 
can  sufficiently  express.  A  taste  of  the  first-fruits  of  glory,  how  sweet 
is  it !  Briefly,  let  me  tell  you  there  are  three  internal  senses  spoken 
of  in  scripture— seeing,  tasting,  and  feeling.  Sight  implies  faith: 
John  viii.  56,  'Abraham  rejoiced  to  see  my  day;'  and  Heb.  xi.  27, 
'  By  faith  Moses  saw  him  that  was  invisible.'  There  is  a  seeing  ^not 
only  with  the  eyes  of  the  body,  but  with  the  eyes  of  the  mind,  things 
that  cannot  be  seen  with  the  outward  sense :  '  Abraham  saw  my  _  day/ 
at  so  great  a  distance.  As  there  is  sight,  so  also  taste  ;  which,  if  we 
refer  it  to  good,  is  nothing  else  but  spiritual  experience  of  the  sweet 
ness  of  God  in  Christ,  and  the  benefits  which  flow  from  communion 
with  him :  Ps.  xxxiv.  8,  '  Oh,  come,  taste  and  see  that  the  Lord 
is  gracious/  Do  not  only  come  and  see,  but  come  and  taste.  The 
third  sense  is  feeling  or  touch ;  that  relates  to  the  power  of  grace : 
Phil.  iii.  10,  '  That  I  might  know  him,  and  the  power  of  his  resurrec 
tion/  &c.  There  is  a  sense  that  a  Christian  hath  of  the  power  of  grace 
and  of  Christ  upon  his  soul ;  so  2  Tim.  iii.  5,  '  Having  a  form  of  god 
liness,  but  denying  the  power  thereof.'  When  men  resist  the  force 
and  virtue  of  that  religion  which  they  profess,  then  they  are  said  to 
deny  the  power  of  those  principles.  Well,  then,  there  are  spiritual 
senses. 

Now,  that  we  might  know  what  they  are,  let  me  show— 

1.  How  these  spiritual  senses  differ  from  the  external. 

2.  That  in  some  sense  they  differ  from  the  understanding. 

1.  These  spiritual  senses  differ  from  the  external  sense;  that  I  shall 
prove  by  three  arguments : — 

[1.]  Because  in  those  things  that  are  liable  to  external  sense,  a  man 
may  have  an  outward  sense  of  them  when  he  hath  not  an  inward. 

[2.]  There  are  certain  things  that  cannot  be  discerned  by  external 
senses,  yet  a  Christian  may  have  a  feeling  of  them  by  internal  sense. 

[3.]  The  outward  senses  sometimes  set  the  inward  senses  awork. 

[l.J  Because  in  those  things  which  are  liable  to  external  sense,  a 
man  may  have  an  outward  sense  of  them  when  he  hath  not  an  inward, 
as  in  seeing,  tasting,  touching. 

In  seeing :  Deut  xxix.  2,  compared  with  ver.  4,  '  Ye  have  seen  all 
that  the  Lord  did  before  your  eyes  in  the  land  of  Egypt ;  and  yet  the 
Lord  hath  not  given  you  a  heart  to  perceive,  and  eyes  to  see,  and  ears 
to  hear  unto  this  day.'  They  saw,  yet  had  not  a  heart  to  see ;  they 
saw  those  wonders  with  the  eyes  of  their  body ;  they  had  a  sense  out 
ward  and  natural,  but  not  a  sense  inward  and  spiritual. 

So  for  taste ;  there  is  a  taste  of  God's  goodness  in  the  creature ;  all 
taste  it  by  their  outward  senses :  Ps.  cxlv.  9,  '  The  Lord  is  good  to  all, 


VER.  103.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxrx.  45 

and  his  tender  mercies  are  over  all  his  works.'  The  wicked  are  not 
excepted  from  his  taste ;  for  the  creatures  are  as  useful  for  the  preser 
vation  of  their  lives,  as  the  lives  of  others.  They  do  not  mind  God's 
love  in  it,  and  so  do  rather  taste  the  creature,  than  God's  goodness  in 
the  creature ;  but  the  child  of  God  tasteth  his  love  therein.  The  fly 
finds  no  honey  in  the  flower,  but  the  bee  doth.  A  fleshly  palate 
relisheth  only  the  gross  pleasure  of  the  creature,  not  that  refined 
delight  which  a  spiritual  palate  hath,  who  hath  a  double  sweetness ;  it 
doth  not  only  receive  the  creature  for  its  natural  use,  but  it  tastes  God, 
and  feels  the  love  of  God  in  the  conscience  as  well  as  the  warmth  of 
the  creature  in  his  bowels. 

So  for  feeling :  Jer.  iii.  25,  '  We  lie  down  in  our  shame,  and  our 
confusion  covereth  us ;  for  we  have  sinned  against  the  Lord  our  God/ 
Men  may  feel  the  blows  of  his  providence,  and  be  sensible  of  the  natural 
inconvenience,  yet  they  have  not  a  spiritual  feeling  so  as  to  be  affected 
with  God's  displeasure,  and  have  a  kindly  impression  left  upon  the 
soul,  that  may  make  them  return  to  God. 

[2.]  It  differs  from  the  outward  senses,  because  they  can  by  a  spiritual 
sense  discern  that  which  cannot  be  discerned  by  the  outward  sense  ;  as 
in  that  place,  Heb.  xi.  27,  '  By  faith  Moses  saw  him  that  was  invisible  ; ' 
see  the  invisible  God,  and  are  as  much  affected  with  his  eye  and  pre 
sence  as  if  he  were  before  the  eyes  of  the  body,  as  others  are  awed  by 
the  presence  of  a  worldly  potentate ;  this  is  matter  of  internal  sense. 
So  for  taste  ;  they  have  meat  which  the  world  knows  not  of,  invisible 
comforts,  John  iv.  37.  They  have  hidden  manna  to  feed  upon,  and 
are  as  deeply  affected  with  a  sense  of  God's  love,  and  hopes  of  eternal 
life,  as  others  are  with  all  outward  dainties.  Then  as  to  feeling ;  many 
things  the  outward  sense  cannot  discern ;  sometimes  they  feel  spiritual 
agonies,  heartbreakings :  when  all  is  well  and  sound  without,  a  man 
would  wonder  what  they  should  be  troubled  about,  that  abound  in 
wealth  and  all  worldly  comforts  and  accommodations.  They  have  an 
inward  feeling,  they  feel  that  which  worldly  men  feel  not ;  when  they 
are  afflicted  in  their  spirits,  carnal  comforts  can  work  nothing  upon 
them;  when  they  are  afllicted  outwardly,  spiritual  comforts  ease  their 
heart.  And  as  they  feel  soul  agonies  and  soul  comforts,  so  they  feel  the 
operations  of  the  spiritual  life ;  they  have  a  feeling  of  the  power  of  the 
Spirit  working  in  them  ;  they  live,  and  know  that  they  live,  Now  no 
man  knows  that  he  lives  but  by  sense ;  therefore  if  a  child  of  God 
knows  he  lives,  he  hath  internal  sense  as  well  as  external.  We  know 
we  live  naturally  by  natural  sense,  and  we  know  we  live  spiritually  by 
spiritual  sense  :  Gal.  ii.  20,  '  I  live,  yet  not  I,  but  Christ  liveth  in  me;* 
he  lived,  and  knew  that  he  lived.  They  have  a  life  which  they  feel 
within  themselves,  the  operations  and  motions  of  the  spiritual  life; 
they  feel  its  impulsions  to  duty,  its  abhorrences  from  sin ;  tendency 
of  soul  to  God,  and  spiritual  supports ;  and  they  feel  the  stirrings  of  the 
old  nature,  workings  of  heart  towards  sin  and  vanity,  which  the  out 
ward  senses  cannot  discover. 

[3.]  The  outward  senses  sometimes  set  the  inward  senses  awork. 
The  sweetness  of  those  good  things  which  are  liable  to  sense,  puts  us 
in  mind  of  the  sweetness  of  better  things ;  as  the  prodigal's  husks  put 
him  in  mind  of  the  bread  in  his  father's  house ;  or  as  the  priests  of 


46  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEB.  CIX. 

Mercury  among  the  heathen,  when  they  were  eating  figs,  they  were  to 
cry,  Truth  is  sweet,  because  the  god  whom  they  worshipped  was  sup 
posed  to  be  the  inventor  of  arts,  and  the  discoverer  of  truth.  So 
Christians,  when  by  the  outward  taste  they  find  anything  sweet,  the 
inward  sense  is  set  awork,  and  they  have  a  more  lively  feeling  of 
spiritual  comforts ;  as  David,  honey  is  sweet,  but  the  word  of  God  was 
'  sweeter  than  honey  to  him,  or  the  honeycomb.'  Thus  Christ,  when 
he  was  eating  bread,  '  Blessed  is  he  that  shall  eat  bread  in  the  king 
dom  of  God/  Luke  xiv.  15;  and  they  that  have  Christ's  spirit,  they  act 
suitably. 

2.  This  sense  differs  from  a  bare  and  simple  act  of  the  understand 
ing.  Why?  For  a  man  may  know  things  that  he  doth  not  feel. 
Simple  apprehension  is  one  thing,  and  an  impression  another.  An 
apprehension  of  the  sharpness  of  pain  is  not  a  feeling  of  the  sharpness 
of  pain.  Jesus  Christ  had  a  full  apprehension  of  his  sufferings  all  his 
life-long,  but  felt  them  not  until  his  agonies,  therefore  he  said,  John 
xii.  27,  '  Now  is  my  soul  troubled,  and  what  shall  I  say  ? '  We  have 
notions  of  good  and  evil,  when  we  neither  taste  the  one  nor  the  other. 
It  is  one  thing  to  know  sin  to  be  the  greatest  evil,  and  another  thing 
to  feel  it  to  be  so ;  to  know  the  excellency  of  Christ's  love,  and  to  taste 
the  sweetness  of  it,  this  doth  not  only  constitute  a  difference  between 
a  renewed  and  carnal  man,  but  sometimes  between  a  renewed  man  and 
himself. 

[1.]  Between  renewed  men  and  carnal  men ;  they  know  the  same 
truths,  yet  have  not  the  same  affections.  A  carnal  man  may  talk  of 
truths  according  to  godliness,  and  may  dispute  of  them,  and  hold 
opinions  about  them,  but  doth  not  taste  them ;  so  he  does  but  know 
the  grace  of  God  in  conceit,  not  in  truth  and  reality,  as  the  expression 
is,  Col.  i.  6.  As  a  man  only  that  hath  read  of  honey  may  have  a  fancy 
and  imagination  of  the  sweetness  of  it,  but  he  that  tastes  it  knows  it 
in  truth  and  in  effect ;  they  know  the  grace. of  God,  and  the  happiness 
of  being  in  communion  with  God,  by  the  light  of  nature,  in  conceit, 
but  not  in  reality ;  but  the  other  they  taste  it :  'If  so  be  you  have 
tasted  that  the  Lord  is  gracious/  1  Peter  ii.  3.  There  is  an  impression 
of  sweetness  left  upon  the  soul,  and  real  experience  of  the  goodness  of 
God  in  Christ,  so  as  to  make  them  affect  him  with  all  their  hearts,  to 
choose  him  for  their  portion,  and  to  make  his  will  their  only  rule,  and 
obey  and  serve  him,  whatever  it  cost  them.  They  have  such  a  taste 
of  this  sweetness,  as  doth  engage  their  hearts  to  a  close  and  constant 
adherence  to  Christ.  Carnal  men  have  only  a  naked  knowledge  of 
these  things,  weak  and  ineffectual  notions  and  apprehensions  about 
them  ;  and  if  the  sublimity,  reasonableness  and  suitableness  of  these 
truths  to  soul  necessities  cause  any  taste,  it  is  but  slight,  slender,  and 
insufficient.  So  indeed  temporaries  and  hypocrites  are  said  to  '  taste 
the  heavenly  gift,  the  good  word  of  God,  and  powers  of  the  world  to 
come/  Heb.  vi.  4.  They  have  some  languishing  apprehensions,  but 
they  do  not  so  taste  them  as  to  "relish  and  feed  upon  them.  They  do 
not  relish  Christ  himself,  but  only  some  benefit  which  they  hope  to 
get  by  him  upon  slight  and  easy  terms  ;  have  not  such  experience  and 
sweetness  of  God  in  Christ,  as  that  their  souls  should  constantly  cleave 
to  him.  It  may  be  their  fancy  may  be  pleased  a  little  in  a  supposition 


VER.  103.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  47 

and  possibility  of  salvation  by  Christ,  or  in  some  general  thought  of 
those  large  promises  and  great  offers  which  God  makes  in  the  gospel, 
not  as  it  enforceth  duty  and  subjection  to  God  ;  well,  then,  it  differs 
from  a  bare  understanding  of  the  goodness  of  God's  ways. 

2.  This  constitutes  a  difference  sometimes  between  a  renewed  man 
and  himself,  as  to  some  things  ;  his  inward  senses  are  not  always  alike 
quick  and  lively ;  he  is  still  like-minded  as  he  was,  but  yet  not  alike 
affected  ;  his  sight  is  not  so  clear,  nor  taste  so  acute,  nor  his  feeling  so 
tender ;  though  he  hath  the  same  thoughts  of  things  he  had  before, 
yet  his  spiritual  sense  is  benumbed,  and  is  not  at  all  times  affected  alike, 
while  he  keeps  his  spiritual  eye  clear  from  the  clouds  of  lust  and 
passion  ;  he  is  otherwise  affected  with  things  to  come  than  he  is  when 
his  eye  is  blinded  with  inordinate  passion  and  love  to  present  things ; 
and  while  he  keeps  his  taste,  how  sweet  and  welcome  is  this  to  his 
stful,  the  remembrance  of  Christ,  and  salvation  by  him  !  And  so, 
while  he  keeps  his  heart  tender,  he  is  sensible  of  the  least  stirring  of 
sin,  and  is  humbled  for  it ;  and  the  least  impulsion  of  grace,  to  be 
thankful  for  it.  Those  instructions,  reproofs,  consolations,  which  at 
some  times  either  wound  or  revive  their  spirits,  at  other  times  do  not 
move  them  at  all ;  their  senses  are  benumbed,  not  kept  fresh  and  lively. 
And  thus  in  the  general  I  have  proved  that  there  is  such  a  thing  as 
spiritual  taste. 

Secondly,  What  is  this  spiritual  sense  ?  It  is  an  impression  left 
upon  our  hearts,  which  gives  us  an  ability  to  relish  and  savour  spiritual 
things ;  but  it  cannot  be  known  by  description  so  much  as  by  these 
two  questions : — 

1.  The  use  of  it,  what  doth  this  taste  serve  for  ? 

2.  What  are  the  requisites  that  we  may  have  such  a  taste  and  relish 
of  divine  and  spiritual  things  ? 

1.  What  doth  this  taste  serve  for  ?  There  is  a  threefold  use  of 
them : — 

[1.].  To  discern  things  good  and  wholesome  from  things  noxious 
and  hurtful  to  the  soul ;  that  is  the  use  of  spiritual  sense  in  general, 
to  discern  things  good  and  evil,  Heb.  v.  14 ;  Job  vi.  30,  '  Is  there 
iniquity  in  my  tongue  ?  Cannot  my  taste  discern  perverse  things  ?  ' 
God  hath  given  all  sensitive  creatures  a  taste,  whereby  they  may  dis 
tinguish  between  things  pleasant  or  bitter,  sweet  or  sour,  wholesome 
or  unwholesome,  savoury  or  unsavoury,  that  they  may  choose  what  is 
convenient  to  nature  ;  so  the  new  creature  hath  a  taste  to  know  things, 
things  contrary  to  the  new  nature,  and  things  that  will  keep  it  in  life : 
Job  xii.  11,  'Doth  not  the  ear  try  words,  and  the  mouth  taste  his 
meat  ?'  or,  as  it  is  more  plain,  Job  xxxiv.  3,  '  For  the  ear  trieth 
words,  as  the  mouth  tasteth  meat.'  Spiritual  taste  distinguisheth 
between  what  is  salubrious  and  profitable  to  us,  that  which  is  the  pure 
word,  milk  agreeable  to  the  new  nature  ;  and  what  is  frothy,  garnished 
out  with  the  pomp  of  eloquence,  it  is  tasteless  to  a  gracious  soul,  if  it 
suiteth  not  with  the  interests  of  the  new  nature  :  they  have  a  faculty 
within  them,  whereby  they  distinguish  between  men's  inventions  and 
God's  message.  A  man  of  spiritual  taste,  when  reason  is  restored  ^  to 
its  use,  he  comes  to  a  doctrine,  and  many  times  smells  the  man ;  saith 
he,  this  is  not  the  breast-milk  that  must  nourish  me,  the  pure  milk  of 


48  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CX1X.  [SlB.  CIX. 

the  word  by  which  I  must  grow  in  strength  and  stature  ;  and  if  he 
finds  anything  of  God,  he  owns  God  ;  he  discerns  what  is  human  and 
what  is  divine. 

[2.]  The  use  of  this  taste  is  also  to  refresh  and  comtort  the  soul  m 
the  sweetness  of  spiritual  things  :  Cant.  ii.  3,  '  I  sat  down  under  his 
shadow  with  great  delight,  and  his  fruit  was  sweet  to  my  taste  ;'  the 
taste  of  Christ's  fruit  in  the  comforts  of  redemption ;  the  fruit  that 
grows  there  is  sweet  and  pleasant  to  the  new  nature.  When  the  love 
of  God  to  sinners  in  Christ  is  not  only  heard  but  believed,  not  only 
believed  but  tasted,  it  ravisheth  and  transports  the  soul  with  sweet 
delight  and  content,  that  excels  all  the  pleasures  of  the  world. 

[3.]  It  serves  for  this  use,  to  preserve  the  vitality  of^  grace,  that  is, 
to  keep  it  alive  and  in  action.  Omnis  vita  gustu  ducitur — every  life 
hath  its  food,  and  the  food  must  be  tasted.  This  grace  quickeneth  us 
to  look  after  that  food ;  it  keeps  the  new  creature  free  for  its  operations, 
helps  it  to  grow  :  1  Peter  ii.  3,  '  As  new-born  babes  desire  the  sincere 
milk  of  the  word,  that  ye  may  grow  thereby  ;  if  so  be  ye  have  tasted 
that  the  Lord  is  gracious.'  The  truths  of  the  gospel  are  as  necessary 
and  natural  for  the  cherishing  and  strengthening  the  spiritual  life  as  the 
milk  of  the  mother  is  to  the  new-born  babe,  and  taste  is  necessary  that 
we  may  relish  it.  They  that  have  a  taste  have  an  appetite,  and  they 
delight  in  the  word  more  than  in  any  other  thing ;  whereas  those  that 
have  no  taste  or  appetite,  grow  not  up  to  any  strength,  they  thrive 
not. 

2.  What  is  requisite  to  cause  this  taste  ?  (1.)  Something  about  the 
object ;  (2.)  Something  about  the  faculty. 

[1.]  Something  about  the  object,  which  is  the  word  of  God.  Eating, 
or  taking  into  the  mouth,  that  is  vecessary  before  tasting;  for  the 
tongue  is  the  instrument  of  taste ;  the  outward  part  of  the  tongue  that 
serves  for  meats,  the  inward  part,  towards  the  root,  for  drink.  So  for 
this  spiritual  taste  there  is  required  eating,  or  taking  in  the  object, 
therefore  we  read  often  of  eating  the  word  of  God :  Jer.  xv.  16,  'Thy 
word  was  sweet,  and  I  did  eat  it;'  and  Ezek.  iii.  3,  we  read  of 
eating  the  roll ;  it  is  interpreted  spiritually,  '  I  did  eat  it ;'  then  fol 
lows  his  taste,  '  it  was  in  my  mouth  as  honey  for  sweetness.'  So  Rev. 
x.  10,  *  I  took  the  little  book  and  ate  it,  and  it  was  in  my  mouth  as 
sweet  as  honey/  There  was  somewhat  of  prophetical  vision  in  these 
things,  but  generally  it  is  carried  not  an  outward  and  literal  eating, 
but  a  spiritual  taste,  relishing  the  sweetness  of  it.  Well,  then,  the 
word  must  not  only  be  read  and  heard,  but  eaten.  What  is  this 
spiritual  eating  of  the  word  ?  Three  things  are  in  it,  and  all  make 
way  for  this  taste.  (1.)  Sound  belief;  (2.)  Serious  consideration  ;  (3.) 
Close  application.  He  that  would  have  a  taste  of  spiritual  things, 
these  three  things  are  necessary. 

(1.)  That  there  be  a  sound  belief  of  it.  Men  have  not  taste, 
because  they  have  not  faith ;  we  cannot  be  affected  with  what  we  do 
not  believe  :  Heb.  iv.  2,  '  The  word  profited  not,  not  being  mixed  with 
faith  in  them  that  heard  it.'  What  is  the  reason  men  have  no  taste 
in^the  doctrine  of  God,  and  in  the  free  offers  of  his  grace  ?  It  is  not 
mingled  with  faith,  and  then  it  wants  one  necessary  ingredient  towards 
this  taste.  So  1  Thes.  ii.  13,  '  Ye  received  the  word  of  God,  which 


VER.  103.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  .  49 

effectually  worketh  also  in  you  that  believe.'  If  you  would  have 
spiritual  sense,  faith  makes  way  for  it :  we  must  take  the  word  as  the 
word  of  God.  When  we  read  in  feigned  stories  of  enchanted  castles 
and  golden  mountains,  they  affect  us  not,  because  we  know  they  are 
but  witty  fictions,  pleasant  fables,  or  idle  dreams ;  and  such  atheism 
.and  unbelief  lies  in  the  hearts  of  men  against  the  very  scriptures,  and 
therefore  the  apostle  seeks  to  obviate  and  take  off  this :.  2  Peter  i.  16, 
'  We  have  not  followed  cunningly  devised  fables ;'  intimating  there 
is  such  a  thought  in  man's  heart.  Certainly  if  men  did  believe  the 
mystery,  that  is  without  controversy  great,  that  God  hath  indeed  sent 
his  Son  to  redeem  the  world,  and  would  indeed  bestow  heaven  and 
eternal  happiness  upon  them,  they  would  have  a  greater  taste ;  but 
they  hear  of  these  things  as  a  dream  of  mountains  of  gold,  or  rubies 
falling  from  the  clouds.  If  they  did  believe  these  glorious  things  of 
eternity,  their  hearts  would  be  ravished  with  them. 

(2.)  As  faith  is  necessary,  so  serious  consideration,  by  which  we 
concoct  truths,  and  chew  them,  and  work  them  upon  the  heart,  that 
-causeth  this  sweetness ;  by  knocking  on  the  flint  the  sparks  fly  out : 
those  ponderous  and  deep  inculcative  thoughts  of  divine  and  heavenly 
things  make  us  taste  a  sweetness  in  them.  When  wre  look  slightly 
and  superficially  into  the  word,  no  wonder  we  do  not  find  this  comfort 
and  sweetness  ;  but  when  we  dig  deeply  into  the  mines  of  the  word, 
and  work  out  truths  by  serious  thoughts,  and  search  for  wisdom,  when 
we  come  to  see  truth  with  our  own  eyes  in  its  full  nature,  order,  and 
dependence,  this  is  that  which  gets  this  taste:  Prov.  xxiv.  13,  14, 
*  My  son,  eat  thou  honey,  because  it  is  good,  and  the  honeycomb, 
which  is  sweet  to  thy  taste.  So  shall  the  knowledge  of  wisdom  be 
unto  thy  soul,  when  thou  hast  found  it.'  When  men  are  serious,  look 
into  the  nature,  and  see  all  truths  in  their  order  and  dependence,  then 
they  will  be  like  honey  and  the  honeycomb  ;  this  makes  way  for  this 
.sweet  taste. 

(3.)  There  is  necessary  to  this  taste  close  application ;  for  the 
nearer  and  closer  things  touch  one  another,  the  greater  their  efficacy ; 
so  the  more  close  you  set  the  word  home  upon  your  own  hearts,  the 
more  it  works  :  Job  v.  27,  '  Know  it  for  thy  good ;'  break  out  thy 
portion  of  the  bread  of  life,  look  upon  these  promises  and  offers  of 
grace  as  including  thee,  these  commands  speaking 'to  thee,  and  these 
threatenings  as  concerning  thee ;  look  upon  it  not  only  as  God's 
message  in  common,  but  urge  it  upon  thy  soul :  Jer.  xv.  16,  'It  was 
unto  me  the  rejoicing  of  my  heart.'  There  must  be  a  particular 
.application  of  these  things.  These  things  are  necessary  to  this  taste 
with  respect  to  the  object ;  as  there  must  be  eating,  a  taking  into 
the  mouth,  if  we  would  taste,  so  there  must  be  a  digesting  or  work 
ing  upon  the  word,  by  sound  belief,  serious  consideration,  close 
application. 

[2.]  As  to  this  taste,  there  is  somewhat  necessary  as  to  the  soul  or 
faculty ;  we  must  have  a  palate  qualified  for  these  delicates.  Now 
there  is  a  double  qualification  necessary  to  this  taste — a  hungry  con 
science  and  mortified  affections. 

(1.)  A  hungry  conscience.  Without  this,  a  man  hath  a  secret 
loathing  of  this  spiritual  food,  his  taste  is  benumbed ;  but  to  a  hungry 

VOL.  VIII.  D 


50  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEB.  CIX. 

conscience  the  word  is  sweet,  when  he  is  kept  in  a  constant  hungering 
after  Christ  and  his  grace  :  Prov.  xxvii.  7,  '  The  full  soul  loatheth  the 
honeycomb,  but  to  the  hungry  soul  every  bitter  thing  is  sweet.'  ^  Cor 
dials,  they  are  nauseous  things  to  a  full  stomach  ;  oh  but  how  reviving, 
comfortable,  and  sweet  are  they  to  a  poor  broken  heart !  The  first 
time  that  we  got  this  taste,  it  was  when  we  were  under  the  stings  of 
a  guilty  conscience,  then  God  came  and  tendered  his  grace  to  us  in 
Christ ;  he  sent  a  messenger,  one  of  a  thousand,  to  tell  us  he  hath 
found  a  ransom,  and  that  we  shall  be  delivered  from  going  down  into 
the  pit ;  that  he  will  spare  us,  and  do  us  good  in  Christ  Jesus,  then 
the  man's  flesh  recovers  again  like  a  child's,  Job  xxxiii.  25.  When 
men  have  felt  the  stings  of  the  second  death,  and  God  comes  with  a  sen 
tence  of  life  and  peace  by  Christ,  how  sweet  is  it  then  !  Now,  though 
we  have  not  always  a  wounded  conscience,  yet  we  must  always  have  a 
tender  conscience,  always  sensible  of  the  need  of  gospel  support ;  we 
came  to  this  first  relish  of  the  doctrine  of  eternal  life  and  salvation  by 
Christ  when  we  lay  under  the  sentence  of  eternal  death. 

(2.)  The  heart  must  be  purged  from  carnal  affections  ;  for  until  we 
lose  our  fleshly  savour  we  cannot  have  this  spiritual  taste :  Kom.  viii. 
5,  *  They  that  are  after  the  flesh,  do  savour  the  things  of  the  flesh  ; ' 
the  word  may  be  translated  so.  A  carnal  heart  relishes  nothing  but 
carnal  things,  worldly  pleasures,  worldly  delights;  now  this  doth 
exceedingly  deaden  your  spiritual  taste.  Spiritual  taste  is  a  delicate 
thing,  therefore  the  heart  must  be  purged  from  fleshly  lusts  ;  for  when 
fleshly  lusts  bear  sway,  and  you  relish  the  garlic  and  onions  and  flesh- 
pots  of  Egypt,  your  affections  will  carry  you  elsewhere,  to  the  vanities 
of  the  world,  and  contentments  of  the  flesh.  Look,  as  sick  men  have 
lost  their  taste,  and  that  which  is  sweet  seems  sour  and  ungrateful  to 
a  distempered  appetite,  so  a  carnal  appetite  hath  not  this  taste  from 
the  word  of  God ;  to  a  carnal  heart  it  is  no  more  savoury  than  the 
white  of  an  egg ;  yea,  it  is  as  gall  to  them,  but  now  to  others  it  is 
exceeding  sweet,  it  is  their  joy,  the  life  of  their  souls.  Well,  then, 
you  see  what  is  this  spiritual  taste,  that  relish  which  a  renewed  soul 
hath  for  spiritual  comforts. 

Use.  To  persuade  you  to  get  this  taste ;  and  when  once  you  have 
got  it,  take  heed  you  do  not  lose  it. 

1.  It  concerns  you  very  much  to  get  this  taste ;  take  these  argu 
ments  : — 

[1.]  It  is  a  good  evidence  of  the  new  nature  ;  it  is  a  sign  you  have 

fotten  that  other  heart,  that  new  spirit,  which  must  have  new  com- 
)rt,  new  supports :  1  Peter  ii.  3,  4,  'As  new-born  babes  you  desire 
the  sincere  milk  of  the  work ;  if  so  be  you  have  tasted  that  the  Lord 
is  gracious.'     Hereby  we  may  know  the  new  man,  by  his  appetite  and 
savour.     Life  is  known  by  this,  as  much  as  by  any  one  thing  else. 

[2.]  This  will  give  you  a  more  assured  knowledge  of  the  truth  and 
worth  of  spiritual  and  heavenly  things,  whereas  otherwise  we  shall  but 
talk  of  them  by  rote,  until  we  experiment  the  comfort  and  sweetness 
of  them  in  our  own  souls ;  then  we  will  see  there  is  more  than  notions 
in  promises,  the  word  of  God  is  not  a  well-devised  fable  and  golden 
dream,  for  our  taste  will  be  our  confirmation.  The  greatest  demon 
stration  is  from  the  senses,  1  John  v.  10,  the  believer  hath  a  testimony 


VER.  103.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  51 

of  the  truth  of  religion  within  himself,  in  his  own  heart.  Oh !  it  is  a 
great  advantage  to  have  our  remedy  there  where  our  danger  lies,  in 
the  heart ;  where  atheism  and  disbelief  lurks,  to  have  spiritual  sense 
there :  when  you  have  a  real  experience  of  them,  then  Satan  cannot 
have  such  advantage,  and  atheistical  and  unbelieving  thoughts  such 
advantage,  for  you  have  felt  the  benefit  of  spiritual  things.  It  is  a 
great  advantage  against  temptation,  when  you  have  had  a  sense,  when 
you  do  not  only  know  by  hearsay  and  guess  that  the  word  is  sweet, 
but  you  have  had  a  taste,  as  a  man  that  hath  been  at  the  fire  knows  it 
warms ;  when  we  can  not  only  say  with  him,  *  We  have  heard  the  kings 
of  Israel  are  merciful  kings,'  but,  with  the  men  of  Samaria,  '  We  have 
seen  him  ourselves/ 

[3.]  The  life  of  grace  mightily  depends  upon  it ;  all  your  liveliness 
in  grace  depends  upon  this  taste,  therefore  get  it.  When  you  have  no 
taste,  you  lose  your  appetite ;  and  when  you  lose  your  appetite,  you 
lose  your  strength ;  and  when  you  lose  your  strength,  all  goes  to  ruin 
in  the  soul ;  sin' prevails,  and  deadness  increaseth  upon  the  soul.  All 
the  strength,  comfort,  and  vitality  of  your  lives  depend  upon  your 
taste. 

[4.]  It  is  this  taste  that  will  make  you  more  useful  to  others.  That 
which  we  have  seen,  heard,  and  tasted,  that  we  commend  to  others. 
A  report  of  a  report  and  tradition,  it  may  be  or  not ;  that  is  a  cold 
thing,  this  is  not  a  valid  testimony.  Ay !  but  when  you  can  speak  of 
that  which  you  '  have  felt  and  tasted,  your  eyes  have  seen,  and  hands 
handled  of  the  word  of  life/  1  John  i.  1 ;  when  it  is  matter  of  sense, 
then  we  can  speak  boldly  and  affectionately,  as  the  apostle,  2  Cor.  i.  4r 
'  That  we  might  comfort  them  which  are  in  trouble  by  the  comfort 
wherewith  we  ourselves  are  comforted  of  God/  When  we  ourselves 
are  comforted  of  God,  and  that  which  we  speak  is  the  result  of  our 
own  experience,  it  makes  us  more  useful  in  our  Christian  converse. 
The  prophet  Ezekiel  was  to  eat  his  own  prophecies,  and  St  John  to  eat 
the  book;  the  meaning  is,  they  must  digest  it.  What  we  communicate 
to  others,  we  must  digest  it  ourselves,  that,  finding  it  sweet,  we  may 
speak  the  more  effectually  for  God. 

2.  Do  not  lose  this  taste.  Oh!  it  is  a  sad  thing  to  lose  these  spiritual 
senses.  Hypocrites,  their  taste  doth  lightly  come  and  lightly  go;  they 
have  a  little  vanishing  sweetness  now  and  then,  but  it  is  soon  gone ;  it. 
is  a  sad  thing  to  lose  our  spiritual  taste.  It  may  be  lost  in  a  great 
measure ;  sometimes  a  Christian  hath  it,  and  sometimes  he  hath  it  not,, 
at  least  not  in  such  a  degree  as  formerly.  Experience  shows  it  may 
be  lost  too  too  often ;  all  the  business  will  be  to  discern  the  first  ten 
dencies  of  this  evil  when  we  begin  to  lose  our  taste  and  spiritual 
senses.  This  may  be  discerned  with  respect  to  the  threefold  object  of 
this  taste — heavenly  gift,  the  good  word  of  God,  and  powers  of  the 
world  to  come. 

[1.]  Heavenly  gift,  that  is  Christ  Jesus.  When  we  do  not  so  highly 
value  the  love  of  God  in  Christ,  and  prize  his  blood,  and  the  precious 
effects  of  it;  when  we  do  not  so  earnestly  beg  pardon  of  sin,  and 
hunger  and  thirst  after  his  righteousness;  when  we  have  not  that 
former  earnestness  and  strength  of  desire  to  enjoy  Christ.  Time  was 
when  thou  thoughtest  no  terms  too  dear  for  him,  when  thy  heart  made 


52  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEE.  CIX. 

hard  pursuit  after  him ;  but  now  thou  art  grown  cold  and  careless,  and 
so  pass  him  by  lightly,  as  a  full  stomach  with  meat,  with  which  it  is 
cloyed ;  when  you  are  not  so  earnest  and  zealous  for  Christ,  it  is  a  sign 
you  have  lost  your  taste. 

[2.]  Your  tasting  of  the  good  word  of  God.  When  you  slight  the 
word,  either  in  not  reading,  hearing,  meditating  in  it  so  frequently  as 
you  were  wont  to  do.  Oh,  time  was  when  you  could  say,  No  honey  or 
honeycomb  so  sweet  as  this  to  my  poor  soul !  Ps.  xix.  10 ;  when  you 
could  hardly  call  off  your  thoughts.  Now  you  are  more  infrequent  in 
these  godly  exercises,  or  else,  if  conversant  about  it,  not  with  that  life 
and  that  affection ;  in  a  more  customary  manner  you  can  read  of  the 
love  of  God  and  sufferings  of  Christ  Jesus,  without  any  love  to  him 
again  ;  can  read  the  promises,  and  they  seem  to  be  but  like  dry  chips 
and  withered  flowers,  and  not  yield  that  marrow  and  fatness  to  you. 
You  can  read  the  promises  of  eternal  life,  and  have  not  that  joy, 
thankfulness,  and  blessing  of  God.  You  could  hardly  contain  your 
selves  before,  but  cry  out,  '  Blessed  be  the  God  and  Father  of  our  Lord 
Jesus  Christ,  and  blessed  be  God  that  hath  visited  and  redeemed  his 
people.'  Now  your  affections  are  more  flat  and  cold,  and  have  not  that 
relish  in  holy  conference,  sweetness  in  hearing,  and  that  contentment 
of  soul  in  meditating. 

[3.]  You  may  lose  your  taste  in  the  powers  of  the  world  to  come, 
when  you  grow  more  mindless  of  God,  and  eternal  blessedness,  when 
you  have  not  such  fresh  and  warm  thoughts  as  you  were  wont  to  have; 
when  your  desires,  hopes,  expectations  of  the  life  to  come  is  abated, 
you  have  not  that  lively  hope,  1  Peter  iii.  3,  to  quicken  you  for  the 
..attaining  of  eternal  blessedness.  While  this  taste  is  fresh  upon  the 
•^hearts  of  Christians,  they  are  for  heaven,  for  God,  carried  on  with 
-vigour  and  strength  in  the  way  of  holiness  ;  but  when  your  hearts  are 
•  carried  out  to  worldly  vanity,  and  you  relish  more  the  honour,  applause, 
-fulness  of  estate,  worldly  increase,  and  you  are  grown  more  cold  in 
iieavenly  things,  you  have  lost  this  taste  of  the  powers  of  the  world  to 
^come,  Heb.  vi.  4. 

The  causes  of  this.  One  is,  want  of  a  due  esteem,  not  an  esteem 
>in  an  idea,  naked  or  abstract  notion  from  those  thoughts  out  of  a 
temptation.  No  man  is  so  unreasonable,  but,  if  he  be  a  little  enlight 
ened  with  Christianity,  will  say,  the  favour  of  God  is  better  than  all 
things.  Ay!  but  want  of  that  practical  esteem,  when  they  can  forfeit 
this  taste  for  every  trifle  and  flesh-pleasing  vanity ;  or  when  they  care 
lessly  look  after  him,  are  indifferent  as  to  communion  with  God,  and 
think  it  not  much  whether  they  are  accepted  of  God,  yea  or  no ;  or 
manifest  himself  to  you  in  Christ,  when  the  comforts  of  the  Spirit  are 
things  you  can  spare,  and  the  consolations  of  God  seem  to  be  small,  it 
is  all  one  to  you  whether  you  have  experiences  from  God  in  duty  or 
no,  your  souls  are  satisfied  ;  this  is  a  cause  of  decaying.  Then  negli 
gence  in  duties;  pray  lazily,  hear  carelessly,  not  meditate  often. 
Inordinate  savour  of  carnal  pleasure,  that  is  another  cause.  What  is 
the  reason  the  temporary  seems  to  be  so  affected  ?  He  loseth  his  taste 
altogether ;  carnal  things  have  the  first  possession  of  his  heart,  and 
being  confirmed  there  by  long  use  and  custom,  being  so  suitable  to  us, 
and  so  long  rooted  in  us,  and  we  have  such  a  vanishing  glance  of 


VER.  104.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  53 

things  to  come,  this  will  work  out  that  taste,  the  love,  the  sense  we 
have  of  better  things.  Godly  men,  when  they  turn  out  to  the  content 
ments  of  the  flesh,  they  lose  their  taste,  it  becomes  dead.  This  is  a 
considerable  loss  as  to  the  vitality  of  your  graces ;  for  without  a  taste 
of  good  or  evil,  we  shall  neither  eschew  the  evil,  nor  follow  that  which 
is  good,  with  that  serious  constancy  and  diligence  that  is  necessary.  A 
man  that  hath  tasted  of  the  poison  of  asps,  and  the  bitterness  of  the 
gall  and  wormwood  that  is  in  sin,  will  be  afraid  of  it,  Rom.  vi.  21.  So 
a  man  that  hath  tasted  of  the  sweetness  of  communion  with  God  in 
Christ,  he  is  quickened  and  carried  on  with  life,  courage,  and  con 
stancy.  That  is  a  dreadful  place,  Heb.  vi.  4,  5 ;  the  loss  of  their  taste 
is  a  degree  to  final  apostasy.  Oh,  how  many  lose  their  taste,  their 
relish  of  Christ,  the  good  word  of  God,  the  powers  of  the  life  to  come, 
and  are  fallen  foully,  some  forward  into  error,  some  backward  into  a 
licentious  course,  so  that  it  is  impossible  to  recover  themselves  by 
repentance ! 


SERMON  CX.  ] 

TJirough  iJiy  precepts  I  get  understanding :  therefore  I  hate  every 
false  iuay. — VER.  104. 

IN  the  former  verse,  the  man  of  God  had  spoken  of  the  pleasure  that 
was  to  be  had  by  the  word,  now  of  the  profit  of  it.  There  is  a  great 
deal  of  pleasure  to  spiritual  sense ;  if  we  could  once  get  our  appetite,, 
we  should  nnd  a  world  of  sweetness  in  it ;  and  there  is  as  much  profit 
as  pleasure.  As  the  pleasure  is  spiritual,  so  also  is  the  profit  to  be- 
measured  by  spiritual  considerations.  To  escape  the  snares  of  the 
devil,  and  the  dangers  that  waylay  us  in  our  passage  to  heaven,  is  a? 
great  advantage.  Now  the  word  doth  not  only  warn  us  of  our  danger,, 
but  where  it  is  received  in  the  love  of  it,  breedeth  a  hatred  of  all  these- 
things  that  may  lead  us  into  it :  '  Through  thy  precepts  I  get  under 
standing*  therefore  I  hate  every  false  way.' 

In  which  sentence,  the  prophet  seems  to  invert  the  order  set  dowrr, 
ver.  101.  He  had  said,  '  I  refrained  my  feet  from  every  evil  way,  that 
I  might  keep  thy  word,'  where  the  avoiding  of  evil  is  made  the 
means  of  profiting  by  the  word.  Here  his  profiting  by  the  word  is 
made  the  cause  of  avoiding  evil.  In  the  one  verse  you  have  an  account 
of  his  beginning  with  God,  in  the  other  of  his  progress. 

In  this  verse  there  is — • 

1.  The  benefit  he  received  by  the  word,  and  that  is  sound  and  saving 
Imoivledge. 

2.  The  fruit  and  effect  which  this  knowledge  produceth  in  his  heart, 
therefore  I  hate  every  false  luay. 

Mark,  first,  The  firmness  of  this  effect,  /  hate.  He  doth  not  say  I 
abstain,  but  /  hate. 

Secondly,  The  note  of  universality,  every. 

Thirdly,  The  object,  false  way.  It  is  not  said  evil  way,  but  false 
way ;  or,  as  it  is  in  the  original,  '  every  path  of  lying  and  falsehood.' 


54  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEB.  CX. 

Falsehood  is  either  in  point  of  opinion  or  practice.  If  you  take  it 
in  the  first  sense,  for  falsehood  in  opinion,  or  error  in  judgment,  or 
false  doctrine,  or  false  worship,  this  sentence  holds  good.  Those  that 
get  understanding  by  the  word  are  established  against  error ;  and  not 
only  established  against  error,  or  against  the  embracing  or  profession 
of  it,  but  they  hate  it. 

1.  They  are  established.  All  error  cometh  from  ignorance,  or  else 
judicial  blindness. 

[1.]  From  ignorance,  or  unacquaintedness  with  the  word  of  God ; 
so  Christ  said  to  the  Sadducees,  '  Ye  do  err,  not  knowing  the  scrip 
tures,'  Mat.  xxii.  29.  When  men  study  not  the  word,  which  is  the 
rule  of  truth,  no  wonder  if  they  lie  open  to  every  fancy ;  they  take  up 
things  hand  over  head,  and  by  a  fond  credulity  are  led  away  by  every 
suggestion  presented  to  them.  So  it  is  said,  2  Peter  iii.  16,  that  '  the 
unstable  and  unlearned  wrest  the  scriptures  to  their  own  destruction.' 
By  the  unlearned,  is  meant  not  those  that  are  unskilful  in  human 
literature,  though  that  be  a  great  help ;  but  those  that  are  unskilful 
in  the  word  of  righteousness,  poor  deluded  souls  that  lie  under  a  great 
uncertainty. 

[2.]  Judicial  blindness.  For  men  that  have  great  parts,  and  a  pre 
sumption  of  their  own  wit,  are  given  up  to  be  blinded  by  their  own 
lusts ;  and  though  they  know  the  scriptures,  yet  they  wrest  them  to 
speak  according  to  the  sense  of  their  carnal  interest,  1  Thes.  ii.  12. 
And  so  they  see  not  what  they  see,  being  given  up  to  the  witchery  and 
enchantment  of  error  :  Gal.  iii.  1,  '  0  foolish  Galatians  !  who  hath  be 
witched  you?'  So  that  all  false  ways  proceed  from  the  want  of 
reason  and  the  pride  of  reason.  The  one  is  the  cause  of  the  simple's 
erring,  who  believeth  every  word ;  the  other  of  those  that  are 
knowing,  and  are  otherwise  of  great  parts,  but  they  make  their 
wit  their  idol,  and  so  would  be  wise  above  the  scriptures,  or  else  are 
swayed  by  their  own  lusts.  They  do  not  fix  themselves  in  the  power, 
love,  and  practice  of  truths  revealed  in  the  scriptures,  and  so  are 
given  up  to  hellish  delusions.  Now,  in  this  sense,  I  might  speak  with 
great  profit  of  these  words,  especially  now  when  so  many  errors  are 
broached,  and  all  the  errors  of  Christianity  come  abreast  to  assault  it 
at  once ;  and  such  changeable  times  as  produce  several  interests, 
whereby  men  are  blinded,  and  such  levity  in  the  professors  of  religion. 
Why,  then,  study  the  word  with  a  teachable  heart ;  that  is,  renounc 
ing  your  own  wit,  and  giving  up  yourselves  to  God's  direction,  and 
practise  what  is  plain,  without  being  swayed  with  the  profits  and 
pleasures  of  the  world,  and  you  may  come  to  know  what  is  the  mind 
of  God.  Men  think  all  is  uncertain  in  religion,  and  are  apt  to  say 
with  Pilate,  'What  is  truth?'  John  xviii.  38.  No;  the  scriptures 
are  not  obscure,  but  our  hearts  are  dark  and  blind  with  worldly 
lusts.  Otherwise  the  counsel  is  plain,  and  you  might  say  with  David, 
'  Through  thy  precepts  I  get  understanding ;  therefore  I  hate  every 
false  way.' 

(1.)  Where  the  Spirit  of  God  doth  affect  men  with  an  earnest  de 
sire  of  knowledge,  and  so  affect  them  as  to  desire  to  know  the  will  of 
God,  for  no  other  reason  but  that  they  may  avoid  what  is  displeasing  to 
God,  and  do  what  is  pleasing  in  his  sight ;  and  therefore  hear,  pray 


VER.  104.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  55 

read,  meditate,  and  study  the  holy  scriptures  ;  they  are  sure  to  be  right 
for  the  main. 

(2.)  Not  only  avoid  the  belief  and  profession  of  falsehood,  but  hate 
it :  *  I  hate  every  false  way.'  Not  the  persons,  but  pity  them  :  Phil, 
iii.  19,  '  I  tell  you  weeping/  It  should  be  the  grief  of  our  hearts  to 
see  them  misled ;  but  as  for  the  error,  hate  it,  whatever  is  not  agree 
able  to  the  rule  of  truth,  or  dissenteth  from  the  purity  of  the  word. 
There  is  too  great  a  coldness  and  indifferency  about  the  things  of 
religion,  as  if  truth  were  not  to  be  stood  upon.  Carnal  men  hate  the 
truth :  Ps.  1.  17,  '  They  hate  instruction,  and  cast  my  laws  behind 
their  backs.'  Truly  we  have  much  more  reason  to  hate  error,  without 
which  we  cannot  be  safe,  it  is  so  catching  with  our  natures. 

2.  In  point  of  practice,  and  so  every  falsehood  may  be  applied — 
[1.]    To  craft,  or  carnal  wisdom.    I  hate  fraud  and  deceit ;  true  under 
standing  makes  us  hate  false  wisdom.      A  simple,  honest  conversa 
tion  suits  best  with  Christians  :  2  Cor.  i.  12,  'In  simplicity  and  godly 
sincerity  we  have  had  our  conversation  in  the  world.' 

[2.]  Carnal  or  worldly  vanities,  and  flattering  or  fallacious  pleasures, 
these  entice  us  with  a  fair  outside,  and  promise  a  great  deal  of  happi 
ness  and  comfort  to  us ;  but  when  we  neglect  better  things,  and  run 
after  them,  they  deceive  us  in  the  issue.  They  are  called  '  deceitful 
riches,'  Mark  iv.  19.  And  '  beauty  '  is  said  to  be '  deceitful/  Prov.  xxxi. 
30.  And  those  that  run  after  these  things  are  said  to  '  run  after  lying 
vanities/  Jonah  ii.  8  ;  those  that  fail  when  we  hope  to  enjoy  them. 

3.  I  take  it  more  generally  for  all  sin.     Sinful  ways  are  false  ways, 
and  will  surely  deceive  those  that  expect  good  from  them  or  walk  in 
them  :  Heb.  iii.  13,  '  Deceitfulness  of  sin  ; '  and  '  deceitful  lusts/  Eph. 
iv.  22 ;  and  *  sin  hath  deceived  me,  and  slew  me/  saith  Paul,  Rom. 
vii.  11.     Sin  is  false  and  deceitful  many  ways — 

[1.]  It  presents  itself  in  another  dress  than  its  own,  proposing  evil 
under  the  name  of  good,  calling  light  darkness,  and  darkness  light, 
Isa.  v.  20,  or  shadows  of  good  for  that  which  is  really  good,  gilded 
trash  for  perfect  gold. 

[2.]  As  it  promiseth  happiness  and  impunity  which  it  never  per- 
formeth  or  maketh  good,  Deut.  xxix.  19,  20  ;  and  so  the  poor  sinner 
is  led  as  an  ox  to  the  slaughter,  Prov.  vii.  22,  23.  And  we  do  not 
see  the  danger  of  it  till  it  be  too  late  to  help  it,  and  it.appeareth  in 
its  own  colours  in  the  foulness  of  the  act  and  the  smartness  of  the 
punishment.  Esau,  when  he  had  sold  the  birthright,  bewailed  it  with 
tears  when  it  was  too  late,  Heb.  xii.  16,  17.  The  foolish  virgins 
tarried  till  the  door  was  shut,  Mat.  xxv.  11,  12.  It  is  good  to 
have  our  eyes  in  our  head,  to  see  a  plague  when  we  may  prevent  it, 
Prov.  xxii.  3.  The  foulness  of  the  act  terrifieth,  as  it  did  Judas 
when  he  betrayed  his  master,  Mat.  xxvii.  4.  Their  hearts  give  evi 
dence  against  them,  Rom.  ii.  15  'Excusing  or  accusing  one  another;' 
as  Cain,  Gen.  iv.  14,  '  My  punishment  is  greater  than  I  can  bear.' 
The  unclean  person  shall  '  mourn  at  the  last,  when  his  flesh  and  his 
body  shall  be  consumed,'  Prov.  v.  11.  Adam  and  Eve  were  sensible 
too  late,  when  their  eyes  were  opened. 

Doct.  By  the  word  of  God  we  get  that  true,  sound  wisdom  which 
inaketh  us  to  hate  every  false  way. 


56  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CX. 

Four  things  are  implied  in  the  point  and  in  the  text : — 

1.  A  hatred  of  sin. 

2.  The  universality  of  this  hatred,  every  false  way. 

3.  That  this  is  a  part  and  fruit  of  wisdom,  /  get  understanding, 
therefore  I  hate. 

4.  This  wisdom  and  understanding  is  gotten  ly  God's  precepts. 
First,  That  it  is  our  duty  to  hate  sin.     It  is  not  enough  to  reform 

our  practice,  or  to  abstain  from  the  act,  or  to  avoid  the  occasions  that 
may  lead  to  it,  but  it  must  be  hated  :  Ps.  xcvii.  10,  '  Ye  that  love  the 
Lord,  hate  evil/  He  doth  not  say  forbear  it,  but  hate  it.  Love  to 
the  chiefest  good  is  fitly  accompanied  with  hatred  of  the  chief est  evil. 
God,  he  is  our  chiefest  good  :  you  love  the  Lord,  and  you  must  also 
hate  evil.  The  one  is  as  natural  to  grace  as  the  other  ;  for  the  new 
nature  hath  its  slight  and  aversation,  as  well  as  its  choice  and  pro 
secution.  As  it  inclines  us  to  choose  God  for  our  portion,  and  to  pur 
sue  after  things  that  lead  to  God,  so  it  hath  a  disposition  to  make  us 
avoid  that  which  is  evil.  There  are  things  hurtful  to  the  new  nature 
as  well  as  any  other  being  ;  now  hatred  is  to  arm  us  against  it.  In 
short,  this  hatred  is  required — 

1.  Because  this  is  the  true  principle  of  resistance  against  sin. 
Until  a  man  hate  sin,  he  is  never  truly  set  against  it ;  as  a  man  is- 
never  thoroughly  gained  to  that  which  is  good  until  he  loves  holiness 
for  holiness'  sake.     His  affections  may  be  bribed  with  other  considera 
tions,  but  then  he  is  rooted  in  holiness  when  he  loves  holiness  for  its 
own  sake.     So  a  man  that  is  not  resolved  against  sin,  that  will  not 
hate  it  for  its  own  sake,  may  be  frighted  out  of  sin  for  a  fit,  or  by  the 
interposings  of  conscience  put  out  of  humour,  but  his  heart  falls  in 
again  with  his  old  lusts,  until  there  be  an  envy  and  detestation  of  sin ; 
but  when  it  comes  to  this  hatred,  then  temptations  cannot  easily  over 
come — examples  draw  not,  nor  difficulties  compel  us  to  that  which  is 
evil     Persuasions  and  allurements   formerly  were   of  great  force; 
straightway  they  followed ;  but  when  the  bent  is  another  way,  they 
are  not  so  easily  drawn  by  force  and  examples,  which  seem  to  have 
such  cogency.     Before  men  did  easily  swim  with  the  stream,  but  here 
is  a  counter  motion  when  they  hate  that  which  is  evil.     This  is  the 
fence  of  the  soul,  and  draws  us  to  an  indignation,  Hosea  xiv.  8. 

2.  Partly  because  this  is  a  true  distinctive  evidence  between  those 
that  are  good  and  those  that  are  evil.     Many  may  forbear  sin  that 
yet  do  not  hate  it ;  they  forbear  it  out  of  restraint,  out  of  fear  of  pun 
ishment,  shame,  worldly  ends,  yet  they  '  regard  iniquity  in  their  hearts,' 
Ps.  Ixvi.  18  ;   as  a  dog  loves  the  bone,  yet  fears  the   blows.     God 
judgeth  not  as  man  ;  man  is  blameless,  he  abstains  from  sin,  but  God 
hateth  sin.     Man  judgeth  according  to  the  action,  but  God  judgeth 
according  to  the  frame  of  the  heart,  1  Sam.  xvi.  7 ;  for  he  is  able  to 
look  to  the  inward  springs,  and  poise  our  spirits.     So  on  the  other  side, 
good  men  may  slip  into  an  evil  action,  but  their  hearts  are  against  it ; 
it  is  the  evil  which  they  hate,  Eom.  vii.  15.     They  may  be  foiled, 
but  their  hearts  are  bent  another  way. 

But  what  is  this  hatred  of  sin  ? 

1.  It  implies   a  universal  repugnancy   in  every  part  of  a  man 
against  sin,  not  only  in  his  reason  and  conscience,  but  will  and  affec- 


VER.  104.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  57 

lions.  There  is  not  a  wicked  man,  but  in  many  cases  his  conscience 
bids  him  do  otherwise  ;  ay !  but  a  renewed  man,  his  heart  inclines 
him  to  do  otherwise  ;  his  heart  is  set  against  sin,  and  taken  up  with 
the  things  of  God  :  Rom.  vii.  22,  '  I  delight  in  the  law  of  God  accord 
ing  to  the  inner  man.'  It  is  in  the  whole  inward  man,  which  consists 
of  many  parts  and  faculties.  Briefly,  then,  it  notes  the  opposition,  not 
from  enlightened  conscience  only,  but  from  the  bent  of  the  renewed 
heart.  Reason  and  conscience  will  take  God's  part,  and  quarrel  with 
sins,  else  wicked  men  could  not  be  self-condemned. 

2.  Hatred  ;  it  is  a  fixed  rooted  enmity.     Many  a  man  may  fall  out 
with  sin  upon  some  occasion,  but  he  hath  not  an  irreconcilable  enmity 
against  it.     The  transient  motions  of  the  soul  are  things  quite  distinct 
from  a  permanent  principle  that  abides  in  a  renewed  heart ;  he  hath 
that  same  '  seed  of  God  remaining  in  him/  1  John  iii.  9.     A  habit 
notes  a  habitual  aversation.     A  brabble  many  times  falls  out  between 
us  and  sin  upon  several  occasions,  when  it  hath  sensibly  done  us  wrong, 
destroyed  our  peace,  blasted  our  names,  or  brought  temporal  incon 
venience  upon  us.    In  time  of  judgment  and  fears,  and  present  troubles 
and  dangers,  men  think  of  bewailing  their  sins  and  returning  to  God. 
but  they  fall  out  and  fall  in  again ;  this  is  anger,  not  hatred  ;  like  the 
rising  of  the  heart  against  a  drawn  sword,  when  it  is  flashed  in  our 
faces,  wrhereas  afterwards  we  can  take  it  up  without  any  such  com 
motion  of  spirit. 

3.  Hatred ;  it  is  an  active  enmity,  warring  upon  sin  by  serious  and 
constant   endeavours,  manifested   by  watching,   striving,   groaning ; 
watching  before  the  temptation  comes,  resisting  in  the  temptation, 
groaning  under  it,  and  bemoaning  ourselves  after  the  temptation  hath 
prevailed  over  us. 

[1.]  There  is  a  constant  jealousy  and  watchfulness  before  the  temp 
tation  comes.  They  that  hate  sin  will  keep  at  a  distance  from  what 
ever  is  displeasing  unto  God :  Prov.  xxviii.  14,  '  Happy  is  the  man 
that  feareth  alway/  A  hard  heart,  that  knows  not  the  evil  of  sin, 
rusheth  on  to  things  according  to  the  present  inclination.  Ay  !  but  a 
man  that  hath  a  hatred  against  sin,  that  hath  felt  the  evil  of  it  in  his 
conscience,  that  hath  been  scorched  in  the  flames  of  a  true  conviction, 
will  not  come  near  the  fire.  A  broken  heart  is  shy  and  fearful,  there 
fore  he  weighs  his  thoughts,  words,  and  actions,  and  takes  notice  of 
the  first  appearance  of  any  temptation  ;  they  know  sin  is  always  pre 
sent,  soon  stirred,  and  therefore  live  in  a  holy  jealousy.  Certainly 
they  that  walk  up  and  down  heedlessly  in  the  midst  of  so  many  snares 
and  temptations  wherewith  we  are  waylaid  in  our  passage  to  heaven, 
they  have  not  this  active  enmity  against  sin,  and  therefore  hatred  is 
seen  by  watching. 

[2.]  It  is  seen  by  striving,  or  serious  resistance  in  the  temptation. 
A  Christian  is  not  always  to  be  measured  by  the  success,  but  by  con 
flict  ;  he  fights  it  out :  Rom.  vii.  15,  '  The  evil  which  I  hate,  that 
do  I/  Though  they  be  foiled  by  sin,  yet  they  hate  it.  An  enemy 
may  be  overcome,  yet  he  retains  his  spite  and  malice.  Sin  doth  not 
freely  carry  it  in  the  heart,  neither  is  the  act  completely  willing :  Gal. 
v.  17,  '  Walk  in  the  Spirit,  and  ye  shall  not  fulfil  the  lust  of  the  flesh ; 
for/  saith  he,  'the  flesh  lusteth  against  the  Spirit,  and  the  Spirit 


58  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CX. 

against  the  flesh,  and  these  are  contrary  the  one  to  the  other,  so  that 
ye  cannot  do  the  things  that  ye  would  ;'  that  is,  you  cannot  sin  with 
such  proneness  and  full  consent  and  bent  of  heart  as  others  ;  they  have 
a  principle  of  opposition,  a  rooted  enmity  in  their  souls  against  sin. 

[3.]  By  a  bitter  grief  after  the  temptation  ;  as  Peter,  when  he  had 
fallen  foully,  '  he  went  out  and  wept  bitterly,'  Mat.  xxvi.  75.  They 
do  not  lie  in  sin,  but  recover  themselves  by  a  kindly  remorse  ;  it  is  the 
grief  of  their  souls  that  they  have  fallen  into  God's  displeasure,  grieved 
his  Spirit,  and  hazarded  their  communion  with  him.  Oh !  sin  is 
grievous  to  a  gracious  heart,  and  this  makes  them  groan  and  complain 
to  God,  '  0  wretched  man ! '  &c. 

4.  It  is  such  an  enmity  against  sin  as  aims  at  the  utter  extermina 
tion  and  expulsion  of  it,  that  endeavoureth  to  destroy  it  both  root  and 
branch.  Hatred  is  all  for  mischief ;  annihilation,  that  is  that  which 
hatred  aims  at.  Anger  worketh  trouble,  but  hatred  mischief.  It  is 
an  implacable  affection,  that  continues  to  the  death,  that  will  not  be 
appeased  till  the  thing  which  we  hate  be  abolished.  So  where  there 
is  this  hatred  of  sin,  it  follows  sin  close  till  it  hath  gotten  the  life  of 
it.  As  by  the  grace  of  justification  they  have  obtained  such  favour 
with  God,  ne  damnet,  it  shall  not  damn;  by  the  grace  of  sanctifi- 
cation,  ne  regnet,  sin  shall  not  reign ;  and  still  they  are  aspiring  and 
looking  after  the  grace  of  glorification,  ne  sit,  that  sin  may  no  longer 
be ;  therefore  they  are  longing  and  groaning  under  the  relics  of  cor 
ruption  :  Horn.  vii.  24,  '  0  wretched  man  ! '  &c.  Many  scratch  the  face 
of  sin,  but  they  do  not  seek  to  root  it  up,  to  destroy  the  body  of  death ; 
it  is  their  constant  grief  that  anything  of  sin  is  left  in  the  heart,  as 
enemies  are  not  satisfied  till  they  have  the  blood  of  each  other.  Where 
there  is  hatred  it  is  not  enough  to  stop  the  spreading,  weaken  the 
power  of  sin,  but  labouring  to  destroy  the  being  of  sin  ;  as  David  said 
of  his  enemies,  '  I  pursued  them  till  they  were  destroyed ;'  so  when  we 
set  against  sin  with  an  aim  not  to  give  over  till  we  have  the  life  of  it ; 
or  as  God  said  concerning  the  Canaanites,  Deut.  vii.  23,  *  I  will  destroy 
them  with  a  mighty  destruction,  until  they  be  destroyed ;'  so  doth  a 
renewed  heart  war  against  sin,  that  he  may  leave  neither  root  nor 
fruit  within  them. 

Use.  If  this  be  to  hate  sin,  how  few  can  say  with  David,  '  I  hate 
every  false  way'!  how  few  are  of  David's  temper!  Some  love  sin 
with  all  their  heart,  that  '  hide  it  as  a  sweet  morsel  under  their  tongue/ 
Job  xx.  12.  The  love  of  sin,  that  is  the  life  of  it;  it  dies  when  it 
begins  to  be  hated ;  but  when  you  have  a  love  to  it,  it  lives  in  the  soul 
and  prevails  over  us.  And  as  they  testify  their  love  of  sin,  so  they 
misplace  their  _  hatred.  What  do  they  hate  ?  Not  sin,  but  the  word 
that  discovers  it.  They  '  hate  the  light,  because  their  deeds  are  evil/ 
John  iii.  20.  They  do  not  hate  sin,  but  God's  messengers  that  plead 
against  it:  1  Kings  xxii.  8,  *  I  hate  him/  saith  Ahab  concerning 
Micaiah,  'for  he  doth  not  prophesy  good  concerning  me,  but  evil.' 
They  hate  the  faithful  brother  that  reproves  them ;  he  is  hated  because 
he  will  not  hate  his  brother,  to  see  sin  upon  him.  They  hate  the 
magistrate  that  would  reform,  the  faithful  Christian  that  condemns 
them  by  his  exact  walking:  Johnxv.  19,  '  Because  I  have  chosen  you 
out  of  the  world,  therefore  the  world  hateth  you/  They  hate  God's 


VER.  104.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  59 

image  in  his  people,  and  cannot  endure  to  be  condemned  by  the  light- 
that  shines  out  from  their  conversations.  Godly  men  are  objects 
reviving  guilt,  therefore  they  hate  them.  Thus  shamefully  are  a 
man's  affections  transposed ;  we  love  where  we  should  hate,  and  hate 
where  we  should  love.  And  then  if  we  come  to  the  other  sort  of 
men,  a  degree  above  these,  many  are  frightened  out  of  their  sins  by 
slavish  fear,  but  yet  their  hearts  are  in  league  with  them  still ;  and  as 
they  get  out  of  the  stocks  of  conscience  they  enlarge  themselves  in  all 
manner  of  carnal  liberty :  these  are  not  changed,  but  awed ;  sin  is  not 
mortified,  but  only  lurks  to  watch  a  safe  opportunity  when  it  may 
discover  itself  with  more  advantage. 


SEKMON  CXI. 

Therefore  I  hate  every  false  way. — VER.  104. 

THE  second  proposition  is  the  universality  of  this  hatred,  every  false 
ivay.     They  that  hate  sin  must  hate  all  sin. 

1.  This  doth  necessarily  follow  upon  the  former;  for  if  we  hate  sin 
-especially  as  sin,  for  the  intrinsic  evil  that  is  in  it,  not  upon  foreign 
accidental  reasons,  then  we  will  hate  all  sin,  for  hatred  is  et?  TO,  761/77, 
to  the  whole  kind ;  as  Haman,  when  he  hated  the  Jews,  he  thought 
scorn  to  lay  his  hand  only  on  Mordecai,  but  would  have  destroyed  all 
the  Jews,  Esther  v.  6.     It  is  but  a  casual  dislike,  and  not  a  hatred. 
Certainly  if  we  hate  sin  as  sin,  we  shall  hate  all  sin.     The  same 
reasons  that  incline  us  to  hate  one  sin  will  incline  us  to  hate  all. 
Why  !  what  is  it  to  hate  sin  as  sin  ?    As  it  is  a  violation  of  God's  law, 
as  it  is  a  contempt  of  God's  authority,  a  breach  of  spiritual  friendship, 
it  grieves  the  Spirit ;  these  are  the  reasons  to  incline  us  to  hate  one  as 
well  as  another.     Well,  then,  private  reservation  and  indulgences,  or 
setting  up  a  toleration  in  our  own  hearts,  will  not  stand  with  the  hatred 
of  all  sin.     Some  sins  may  shame  and  trouble  us  more,  but  all  are  alike 
contrary  to  the  will  of  God ;  therefore  if  we  hate  them  upon  reasons  of 
duty  to  God,  we  should  hate  them  universally,  '  every  false  way/ 

2.  Every  sin  is  hateful  to  God,  therefore  every  sin  should  be  hateful 
to  us.     The  reason  of  this  is,  we  should  hate  what  he  hates,  and  love 
what  he  loves.     There  is  a  perfect  friendship  between  God  and  those 
in  covenant  with  him.     Now  that  is  true  friendship,  to  will  and  nill 
the  same  thing ;  it  is  built  upon  likeness,  and  suitableness  of  disposi 
tion.     This  argument  is  urged  by  the  Holy  Ghost :  Prov.  viii.  13, 
'  The  fear  of  the  Lord  is  to  hate  evil ;  pride,  and  arrogance,  and  the 
evil  way,  and  the  fro  ward  mouth,  do  I  hate/     This  is  friendship  with 
God,  to  hate  what  God  hates :  I  hate  it,  therefore  they  hate  it.     Sins 
of  thought  are  intended  by  pride  and  arrogance,  for  that  puts  us  upon 
vain  musings  and  imaginations;   and  sins  of  word  by  the  froward 
mouth  ;  and  sins  of  action  by  the  evil  way,  outward  practice.   All  this 
God  hates,  so  should  we :  Eev.  ii.  6,  '  Thou  hatest  the  deeds  of  the 
Nicolaitans,  which  I  also  hate/     If  we  be  in  the  same  covenant  with 
God,  we  will  have  the  same  love,  the  same  hatred.    Nay,  as  we  have 


GO  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEE.  CXI. 

the  same  nature  with  God,  the  saints  are  '  made  partakers  of  the  divine 
nature/  2  Peter  i.  4.  The  divine  nature  shows  itself  by  suitable  dis 
positions. 

3.  From  our  covenant  relation  with  God,  which  implies  an  entire 
surrender  of  soul,  which  is  without  any  reservation.     When  you  give 
up  yourselves  to  God,  he  will  have  all.     If  you  say,  God  be  merciful 
to  me,  and  spare  me  in  this,  then  you  forfeit  all  the  blessings  of  the 
covenant.    God  will  have  all  or  none  ;  therefore  all  sin,  without  excep 
tion,  must  be  hated  by  us,  for  otherwise  God  is  not  our  chief  good  :  if 
anything  be  loved  besides  him,  or  against  his  will,  it  is  love  above  him. 
One  man  allowed  besides  the  husband  is  a  violation  of  the  marriage 
covenant ;  so  one  sin  allowed  in  the  heart  breaks  all  the  covenant 
between  God  and  us  :  James  ii.  10,  '  If  a  man  keep  the  whole  law,  and 
yet  offend  in  one  point,  he  is  guilty  of  all.'     That  sentence  is  not  a 
legal  sentence  belonging  to  the  covenant  of  works ;  that  were  a  mistake 
of  it :  it  is  not  only  true  in  the  sense  of  the  covenant  of  works,  one  sin 
undoes  us  for  ever,  but  it  is  true  in  the  evangelical  covenant.     Thus 
one  sin  allowed  with  full  consent  of  heart  makes  void  the  gospel  cove 
nant,  as  one  article  not  consented  to  disannuls  the  whole  treaty  and 
agreement  between  us  and  God.   It  is  not  consistent  with  sincerity  that 
we  should  bring  down  the  gospel  covenant,  to  allow  any  one  sin. 

4.  From  the  damage  and  mischief  that  it  doth  to  our  souls.     One 
sin  keeps  up  the  devil's  interest ;  it  is  like  a  nest  egg,  left  there  to 
draw  a  new  temptation.     You  continue  his  empire  in  you  ;  this  is  his 
great  design,  to  keep  a  part.     Conscience  begins  to  work,  they  must 
have  something ;  all  then  that  he  pleads  for  is  but  a  part,  and  he 
knows  that  will  bring  the  whole  ;  as  Pharaoh  would  have  a  pawn, 
either  their  flocks,  herds,  or  children,  that  this  might  bring  them  back 
again.     One  sin  reserved  gives  Satan  an  interest ;  one  leak  in  the  ship, 
though  all  the  rest  be  stopped,  if  that  be  neglected,  will  sink  it  in  time. 

Use.  Let  us  lay  this  branch  also  to  heart.  There  is  something 
usually  wherein  we  would  be  excused  and  expect  favour.  We  all  have 
a  tender  part  of  our  soul,  and  loathe  it  should  be  touched ;  some  vain 
fashions,  customs,  or  ways,  and  outgoings  of  soul,  which  we  are  unwill 
ing  to  leave,  though  we  have  often  smarted  for  them.  Consider,  it  is 
not  consistent  with  your  obedience  and  your  love  to  God,  nor  with  the 
power  of  grace  in  your  hearts,  to  allow  any  false  way.  Herod  did  many 
things,  yet  perished  for  all  that.  A  man  may  do  many  things  that  are 
good,  upon  sin's  account,  When  you  allow  any  one  thing,  it  is  only  to 
hide  and  feed  your  lusts  with  greater  pretence;  so  many  religious 
things  may  be  fuel  of  lusts,  as  well  as  carnal  comforts.  It  is  not  for 
the  interest  of  the  flesh  or  indwelling  corruption  that  men  should  have 
no  religion ;  sin  cannot  be  served  in  such  a  cleanly  way,  unless  there 
be  something  done  in  compliance  with  God's  will,  under  some  disguise, 
or  conformity  to  the  will  of  God.  Say  then,  Shall  I  do  and  suffer  so 
many  things  in  vain  ?  Bring  your  hearts  thus  to  hate  every  false  way. 

Thirdly,  This  _  is  a  part  and  fruit  of  true  wisdom. 

1.  That  this  is  a  chief  part  of  wisdom  and  understanding,  to  hate 
every  false  way,  appears  from  Job  xxviii.  28,  '  The  fear  of  the  Lord, 
that  is  wisdom  ;  and  to  depart  from  evil,  that  is  understanding.'  So 
much  as  we  hate  sin,  so  much  of  spiritual  wisdom  and  spiritual  under- 


YER.  104.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  61 

standing.  Certainly  to  hate  sin  is  wisdom  ;  I  prove  it  from  the  nature 
of  sin.  All  disobedience  is  the  greatest  folly  that  can  be  in  the  world ; 
and  therefore,  if  to  sin  be  to  do  foolishly,  to  hate  sin  is  to  be  wise ;  and 
not  to  have  understanding  certainly  is  a  fruit  of  folly,  for  a  man  to  do 
that  which  will  condemn  himself,  if  ever  he  comes  to  himself.  Now, 
when  a  man  comes  to  himself,  as  when  he  dies  or  repents,  oh  !  how 
will  his  heart  condemn  and  reproach  him  for  the  vanity  of  his  worldly 
course,  when  he  is  rilled  with  his  own  ways  !  Especially  repentance, 
that  is  a  coming  to  ourselves.  As  a  man  when  he  hath  slept  out  his 
drunkenness  and  excess,  and  begins  to  look  back  upon  his  follies  com 
mitted  under  that  distemper  ;  such  is  repentance,  it  is  an  after-wisdom, 
and  therefore  it  argues  that  there  was  an  imprudence  and  inconsidera- 
tion  of  the  things  we  repent  of,  and  therefore  we  condemn  ourselves. 
That  is  folly  which  gratifies  those  that  are  our  utter  enemies.  Now 
sin  it  gratifies  the  devil,  which  seeks  our  ruin  :  he  '  goes  about,  seek 
ing  whom  he  may  devour,'  1  Peter  v.  8.  You  please  him  that  seeks 
your  utter  destruction  ;  and  will  you  grieve  God  and  please  the  devil  ? 
That  is  folly  which  brings  no  disadvantage  upon  him  whom  you  dis 
obey,  but  upon  you  it  brings  the  greatest  mischief  imaginable.  God 
is  not  hurt  by  your  sins ;  he  is  above  our  injury :  Prov.  ix.  12,  *  If 
thou  be  wise,  thou  shalt  be  wise  for  thyself  ;  but  if  thou  scornest,  thou 
alone  shalt  bear  it.'  There  is  no  hurt  done  to  God  ;  all  the  hurt  is  to 
our  own  souls  :  Prov.  viii.  36,  *  He  that  sinneth  against  me,  wrongs 
his  own  soul ;  and  he  that  hateth  me,  loveth  death.'  Every  sinner  is 
his  own  murderer  and  his  own  destroyer.  All  those  arrows  we  shoot 
up  against  heaven,  they  fall  down  with  more  violence  upon  our  own 
heads.  That  is  folly  for  a  man  to  hazard  a  jewel  for  a  trifle,  to  stake 
his  soul,  and  heaven,  and  eternal  happiness,  against  a  little  flesh-pleasing 
and  carnal  satisfaction :  Jonah  ii.  8,  *  They  that  observe  lying  vanities 
forsake  their  own  mercies.'  Poor  fugacious  comforts,  lying  vanities, 
to  follow  after,  and  forsake  their  own  mercy ;  that  is,  all  that  happiness 
which  might  have  been  their  own.  A  sinner  is  a  mad  gamester,  that 
throws  away  the  kingdom  of  heaven  at  every  cast  for  a  little  momen 
tary  short  delight  and  vain  contentment.  That  is  folly  to  break  with 
him  upon  whom  our  all  depends,  our  life,  being,  comfort,  happiness  ; 
so  doth  sin  make  us  break  with  God :  Isa.  lix.  2,  '  Your  iniquities  have 
separated  between  you  and  your  God.'  Well,  then,  if  sin  be  to  do 
foolishly,  to  depart  from  sin,  this  is  wisdom,  this  is  understanding. 
Certainly  he  that  provides  against  the  greatest  mischief  doth  escape 
the  greatest  danger ;  he  is  the  wise  man,  and  not  he  that  provides 
against  temporal  inconveniences  only,  as  poverty  and  disgrace.  He 
that  escapes  sin,  escapes  hell,  the  wrath  of  God,  the  extremest  misery 
that  can  light  upon  a  poor  creature :  Prov.  xv.  24,  '  The  way  of  the 
wise  is  above,  to  avoid  hell  beneath ;'  and  therefore  it  is  a  high  point 
of  wisdom  to  hate  sin. 

2.  As  it  is  a  high  point  of  understanding,  so  it  is  a  fruit  and  effect 
of  understanding.  According  to  the  degree  of  understanding  that  we 
have,  so  will  our  hatred  of  sin  be  ;  for  he  saith,  '  Through  thy  precepts 
I  get  understanding  ;  therefore  I  hate  every  false  way.  To  prove  this 
by  two  reasons  : — 

[1.]  Our  affections  follow  our  apprehensions.    There  is  no  way  to 


62  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXI. 

come  to  the  heart  but  by  the  mind,  by  the  understanding.  Look,  as 
there  is  no  way  to  come  to  the  bowels  to  purge  our  distempers  that 
are  there  but  by  the  mouth,  stomach,  and  other  passages  that  lead  to 
the  bowels,  so  there  is  no  way  to  come  to  the  heart  and  affections  but 
by  the  understanding.  Knowledge  begets  all  other  affections,  those 
which  belong  to  choice  and  pursuit,  or  those  that  belong  to  slight  or 
aversation.  Those  that  belong  to  choice  and  pursuit,  desire,  delight. 
There  is  no  desire  of  that  which  is  unknown  ;  so  in  those  things  that 
belong  to  slight  and  aversation,  those  affections,  be  it  grief  or  shame 
for  sin  already  committed,  or  fear  or  hatred  that  sin  may  not  be  com 
mitted.  Grief  or  shame :  Jer.  xxxi.  19,  '  After  I  was  instructed,  I 
smote  upon  my  thigh ;  I  was  ashamed,  yea,  even  confounded,  because 
I  did  bear  the  reproach  of  my  youth/  It  is  light  which  humbles,  and 
the  soul  is  affected  according  to  the  sight  it  hath  of  things ;  or  go  to 
those  affections  which  serve  to  prevent  the  commission  of  sin,  as  hatred 
and  fear.  Hatred  in  the  text ;  a  good  understanding  goes  before,  a 
thorough  hatred  will  follow. 

[2.]  Second  reason ;  that  when  the  mind  is  fraught  with  truths,  and 
gotten  a  good  stock  of  knowledge  by  God's  precepts,  then  it  will  be 
checking  and  urging  the  soul  to  caution  against  sin ;  and  therefore  the 
more  understanding  you  yet  by  God's  precepts,  the  more  are  you  warned 
and  put  in  mind  of  things :  Ps.  cxix.  II,  *  I  have  hid  thy  word  in 
mine  heart,  that  I  might  not  sin  against  thee.'  When  the  word  hath 
laid  up  in  the  heart  a  good  stock  of  knowledge,  there  will  be  one 
thought  or  other  that  will  be  rising  up  and  defying  all  temptations 
wherewith  you  are  assaulted :  Eph.  vi.  17,  *  Take  unto  you  the  helmet 
of  salvation  and  the  sword  of  the  Spirit,  which  is  the  word  of  God/ 
In  the  spiritual  conflict  we  need  weapons  not  only  defensive  but 
offensive ;  not  only  the  shield  of  faith,  but  the  sword  of  the  Spirit, 
that  we  may  destroy  and  slay  sin,  and  withstand  temptation,  and  chase 
away  Satan  from  us.  What  is  this  sword  of  the  Spirit?  The  word 
of  God.  The  more  seasonable  relief  the  more  fresh  thoughts  you 
have  to  withstand  temptations  which  are  apt  to  come  in  upon  you : 
Prov.  vi.  21,  22,  '  Bind  them  upon  thine  heart :  when  thou  goest,  it 
shall  lead  thee  ;  when  thou  sleepest,  it  shall  keep  thee ;  and  when  thou 
awakest,  it  shall  talk  with  thee/  This  will  always  be  urging  him  to 
duty,  and  warning  him  of  his  danger. 

A  word  of  use.  (1.)  Get  understanding ;  (2.)  Never  count  your 
selves  to  understand  anything  but  as  you  increase  in  hatred  of  sin. 

1.  Get  understanding.  Partly— (1.)  Because  there  are  many  false 
ways  you  will  never  discern  without  much  understanding.  There 
are  many  false  ways  that  are  palliated  and  represented  under  the  show 
of  good,  and  we  are  easily  ensnared  unless  we  have  light  to  choose  our 
way :  1  Cor.  ii.  8,  '  Had  they  known  it,  they  would  not  have  crucified 
the  Lord  of  glory/  A  man  will  be  carried  on  with  a  great  deal  of 
life  and  activity  in  a  way  contrary  to  God:  Acts  xxvi.  9,  '  I  verily 
thought  with  myself  that  I  ought  to  do  many  things  contrary  to  the 
name  of  Jesus  of  Nazareth.'  Oh  1  the  tyranny  and  madness  of  an 
erring  conscience  and  an  ignorant  zealot !  What  a  ready  prey  is  a 
man  to  Satan,  and  is  carried  headlong  to  destroying  courses,  when  a 
man  hath  more  zeal  and  earnestness  of  spirit  than  knowledge  to  guide 


VER.  104.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  63 

him !  How  will  he  stumble  and  dash  upon  things  that  are  very  con 
trary  to  the  will  of  God.  (2.)  If  they  can  discern  them,  they  shall  not 
have  a  heart  and  skill  to  remedy  them  without  understanding.  We 
shall  not  have  a  heart,  for  light  will  be  urging,  calling  upon  us,  mind 
ing  us  of  our  duty,  warning  us  of  danger ;  whereas  otherwise  we  shall 
go  on  tamely,  like  an  ox  to  the  slaughter,  and  like  a  fool  to  the  correc 
tion  of  the  stocks.  We  shall  not  have  this  restless  importunity  of 
conscience,  which  is  a  great  restraint  of  sin  ;  and  then  we  shall  not 
have  the  skill,  for  all  is  misapplied  and  misconceived  by  an  ignorant 
spirit,  for  the  whole  business  of  his  religion  is  making  cordials  instead 
of  purges,  and  potions  instead  of  antidotes,  catching  at  promises  when 
threatenings  belong  to  him,  lulling  his  soul  asleep  with  new  strains  of 
grace,  when  he  should  awaken  himself  to  duty. 

2.  Never  count  yourselves  to  have  profited  in  anything  till  your 
hearts  are  awakened  into  a  further  hatred  of  sin.  Christians !  they 
are  but  notions ;  it  is  not  saving  knowledge  unless  it  be  ia  order  to 
practice ;  men  have  no  understanding  that  have  not  this  active  and 
rooted  enmity  against  sin :  Ps.  cxi.  10,  '  A  good  understanding  have 
all  that  they  do  his  commandments ;'  they  that  hate  sin  more,  and  are 
more  weary  of  corruption.  He  is  made  wiser  by  the  word  that  is 
made  better  by  it.  It  is  not  the  talker  against,  but  the  hater  of 
iniquity  that  is  the  wise  man.  If  wisdom  enters  upon  the  heart,  and 
breaks  out  in  our  practice,  by  that  is  our  thriving  in  knowledge  to  be 
measured :  1  John  ii.  3,  '  Hereby  we  know  that  we  know  him,  if  we 
keep  his  commandments/ 

This  was  God's  scope  in  giving  the  word,  not  to  make  trial  of  men's 
wits,  who  could  most  sharply  conceive,  or  of  their  memories,  who  could 
most  faithfully  retain,  or  of  their  eloquence,  who  could  most  nimbly 
discourse ;  but  of  the  sincerity  of  the  heart,  who  could  most  obediently 
submit  to  the  will  of  God.  Jer.  xxii.  16,  when  he  had  spoke  of  hating 
of  sin,  and  doing  good,  '  Was  not  this  to  know  me  ?  saith  the  Lord/ 
This  is  to  know  God  to  hate  sin.  Outward  things  were  not  made  for 
sight  only,  but  for  use,  as  herbs,  plants,  and  stars.  So  our  reason,  and 
the  scriptures  the  Lord  hath  given  us ;  it  is  not  only  for  sight,  but  for 
use,  that  we  may  be  wise  to  salvation ;  not  that  we  may  please  our 
selves  with  acute  notions  about  the  things  of  God,  but  seriously  set 
our  hearts  to  practise. 

The  fourth  thing  in  this  general  point  is,  that  this  wisdom  and 
understanding  is  gotten  by  God's  precepts.  Mark,  '  I  hate  every  false 
way/  Why  ?  '  Because  by  thy  precepts  I  get  understanding/  Where 
have  we  it  ?  By  studying  God's  word/  Kom.  iii.  20, '  By  the  law  is  the 
knowledge  of  sin/  How  is  the  knowledge  of  sin  by  the  law  ?  Three 
ways:  according  to  the  nature  of  the  sin,  according  to  who  is  the 
sinner,  and  according  to  the  guilt  and  dreadful  estate  of  them  that  lie 
in  a  state  of  sin.  So  the  knowledge  of  sin,  that  is,  the  nature  of  it, 
and  where  it  lives,  and  where  it  reigns,  and  what  will  be  the  effects  of 
it,  all  this  knowledge  is  by  the  law. 

1.  By  the  law  is  the  knowledge  of  sin,  quoad  naturam  peccati. 
There  are  many  things  we  should  never  know  but  by  the  law  of  God, 
though  we  have  some  general  notions  of  good  and  evil.  Rom.  vii.  7, 
saith  the  apostle,  '  I  had  not  known  sin  but  by  the  law ;  for  I  had  not 


£4  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXII. 

known  lust,  except  the  law  had  said,  Thou  shalt  not  covet.'  Those  first 
stirrings  and  secret  lingerings  of  heart  and  inclinations  to  that  which  is 
cross  to  the  will  of  God,  that  they  go  before  all  consent  of  will,  and  all 
delight,  these  things  we  could  never  discern  by  the  light  of  nature. 

2.  Quoad  subjectum,  what  is  the  sinner,  and  who  is  guilty  of  it  ? 
So  Kom.  vii.  9,  '  I  was  alive  without  the  law  once,  but  when  the  com 
mandment  came,  sin  revived,  and  I  died.'     He  saw  his  lost,  miserable, 
undone  condition  by  the  law  of  God.     The  acts  of  sin  are  discovered 
by  the  word  of  God ;  it  discovers  the  thoughts  and  intents  of  the 
heart,  Heb.  iv.  12,  and  state  of  sin ;  our  natural  face,  the  condition 
wherein  we  are,  is  to  be  seen  in  this  glass. 

3.  Quoad  realum  et  magnitudinem  peccati,  what  will  be  the  effects 
of  it?     Rom.  v.  20,  '  The  law  entered,  that  the  offence  might  abound.' 
Therefore  the  law  was  given,  that  it  might  work  a  deep  sense  of  the 
evil  consequents  of  sin,  and  what  wrath  man  was  bound  over  to  for 
violating  the  righteous  law.     The  law  represents  the  heinous  nature 
of  sin  as  it  is  avopia,  a  transgression  of  the  law,  as  it  strikes  at  God's 
being  or  at  God's  authority,  seeks  to  jostle  him  out  of  the  throne ;  as 
it  contradicts  his  sovereignty,  and  plucks  the  sceptre  out  of  his  hand 
and  the  crown  from  his  head,  and  makes  men  to  say,  *  Who  is  lord 
over  us  ? '     As  if  we  had  nothing  to  guide  us  but  our  own  lusts.     The 
word  of  God  discovers  this  pride  of  heart,  and  then  the  manifold  mis 
chiefs  of  sin  are  discovered ;  we  get  this  understanding  by  the  word. 
It  is  better  to  know  these  mischiefs  of  sin  by  the  threatenings  of  the 
word,  than  by  our  own  bitter  experience.     It  is  sin  that  separates  from 
God,  and  renders  us  incapable  of  all  blessings. 

Use  1.  Study  yourselves,  and  take  a  view  of  the  case  and  state  of 
your  souls  by  the  glass  of  the  word  ;  see  what  you  gain  by  every  read 
ing,  hearing,  every  time  you  converse  with  him,  what  is  given  out  to 
convince  you  of  sin,  or  awaken  your  soul  against  sin. 

Use  2.  When  you  consult  with  the  word,  beg  the  light  of  the  Spirit, 
which  is  only  lively  and  efficacious.  The  apostle  speaks  of  knowing 
things  in  the  evidence  and  '  demonstration  of  the  Spirit  and  of  power,' 
1  Cor.  ii.  4.  There  is  the  same  demonstration  of  the  Spirit.  There  is  a 
manifest  difference  between  the  evidence  of  reason  and  arguments  held 
out  from  a  natural  understanding,  and  between  the  illumination  or  the 
demonstration  of  the  Spirit.  There  are  many  that  may  have  a  full 
knowledge  of  the  letter  and  the  sense  of  the  words,  as  they  lie  open  to 
the  evidence  of  reason,  yet  be  without  the  light  and  power  of  those 
truths,  for  that  is  a  fruit  of  the  demonstration  of  the  Spirit,  the  lively 
light  of  the  Holy  Ghost  that  goes  along  with  the  word. 


SERMON  CXII. 

Thy  word  is  a  lamp  unto  my  feet,  and  a  light  unto  my  path. — 
VER.  105. 

THE  present  world,  as  much  as  it  suits  with  our  carnal  nature,  it  is 
but  like  a  howling  wilderness  with  respect  to  Canaan,  in  which  there 


VER.  105.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  65 

are  many  crooked  paths  and  dangerous  precipices,  yea,  many  privy 
snares  and  secret  ambushes  laid  for  us  by  the  devil  and  his  instru 
ments  ;  so  that  unless  we  have  a  faithful  guide,  a  clear,  full,  and  sure 
direction,  we  shall  certainly  miscarry,  and  every  day  run  into  the 
mouth  of  a  thousand  mischiefs.  Now  God,  out  of  his  abundant 
mercy,  hath  given  us  a  light,  a  rule  to  walk  by,  to  set  us  clear  from 
these  rocks  and  precipices,  and  to  guide  us  safe  to  true  happiness. 
And  what  is  this  light  ?  It  is  his  word  ;  so  David  acknowledged  in 
this  verse,  thy  word  is  a  lamp  unto  my  feet,  and  a  light  unto  ym 
path. 

Here  you  may  observe — (1.)  The  double  notion  by  which  the  direc 
tion  of  the  word  is  set  forth.  (2.)  You  have  the  object,  or  the  matter 
wherein  we  are  directed ;  that  also  is  expressed  by  a  double  notion, 
1  It  is  a  lamp  to  my  feet,  and  a  light  to  my  path/  Let  me  explain 
these  a  little. 

1.  The  two  notions  whereby  the  direction  is  expressed,  it  is  a  light, 
that  is  a  more  general  expression ;  the  other  is  more  particular,  it  is  a 
lamp,  possibly  with  allusion  to  the  lamp  of  the  sanctuary.    The  use  of 
a  lamp  is  to  light  in  the  night,  and  the  light  shines  in  the  day.     The 
word  of  God  is  both  a  light  and  lamp ;  it  is  of  use  to  us  by  day  and 
night,  in  all  conditions,  in  adversity,  in  prosperity,  in  all  the  conditions 
we  pass  through  in  this  world.     Chrysostom  hath  an  observation,  but 
I  doubt  a  little  too  curious,  6  z/6//,o?  Xu/cz/o?  ovofjLd^erai,  6  Xpto-ro?  ino?1 
T%  SiKdiocrvvrjs,  saith  he — The  law  shineth  in  narrow  limits,  within 
small  bounds,  therefore  that  is  called  a  lamp;  but  Christ,  in  the  gospel, 
is  called  a  son  *  of  righteousness. 

2.  Let  us  come  to  the  term  by  which  the  object  is  expressed,  path 
snd  feet.     By  path  is  meant  our  general  choice  and  course  of  life  ;  the 
law  will  direct  to  that ;  not  only  so,  but  it  is  a  light  to  our  feet,  that 
is,  will  direct  us  in  every  step,  in  every  particular  action. 

Doct.  That  the  word  of  God  is  a  clear  and  a  full  rule  to  direct  us  in 
all  the  conditions  and  affairs  of  the  present  life. 

It  is  a  clear  rule,  for  it  is  called  a  lamp ;  and  it  is  a  full  rule,  for  it 
is  a  lamp  not  only  for  our  path,  but  for  our  feet.  I  shall  speak  of  both 
severally,  that  it  is  a  lamp  and  a  light. 

First,  It  is  a  clear  rule,  and  therefore  called  a  light,  and  that  in 
three  regards : — 

1.  By  reason  of  its  direction,  as  it  shows  us  the  right  way  to  our 
desired  end.  He  that  would  come  to  his  journey's  end  needs  a  way, 
and  needs  a  light  to  see  and  find  it  out.  Our  end  is  eternal  life,  and 
that  to  be  enjo}7ed  in  heaven :  Prov.  vi.  123,  '  The  commandment  is  a 
lamp,  and  the  law  is  light,  and  reproofs  of  instruction  are  the  way  of 
life.'  God  hath  stated  the  way  that  leads  to  eternal  happiness  by  his 
wisdom  and  justice,  and  revealed  it  in  the  scriptures.  See  that  place, 
Ps.  xliii.  3,  'Oh,  send  out  thy  light  and  thy  truth ;  let  them  lead  me, 
let  them  bring  me  unto  thy  holy  hill,  and  to  thy  tabernacles.'  We 
should  have  wandered  up  and  down  in  various  uncertainties,  and  have 
neither  pitched  upon  the  right  end  nor  way,  but  have  lost  ourselves  in 
a  maze  of  perplexities,  if  God  had  not  sent  forth  his  light  and  truth. 
Austin  reckons  up  two  hundred  and  eighty-eight  opinions  about  the 

1  Qu.  ijXios,  and  '  sun  '  ? — ED. 
VOL.  VIII.  E 


66 


SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXII. 


chiefest  good.     Men  are  seeking  out  many  inventions,  looking  here 
and  there  to  find  happiness,  but  God  hath  showed  the  true  way. 

2.  It  is  a  light  in  regard  of  conviction,  as  it  convinceth  of  all  errors 

and'  mistakes  both  in  judgment  and  practice—  Verum  est  index  sui  et 

obliqui.     In  this  respect  it  is  said,  Eph.  v.  13,  because  of  this  con- 

vincino-  light  that  is  in  the  word,  '  All  things  that  are  reproved,  are 

" 


made  "manifest  by  the  light  ;  for  whatsoever  doth  make  manifest  is 
lie-lit/  It  discovereth  to  us  our  sins  as  well  as  our  duties  ;  light  doth 
manifest  itself,  and  make  all  other  things  manifest.  Now  this  convic- 
tive  power  of  the  world  is  double—  by  way  of  prevention,  and  by  way 
of  reproof. 

[1.]  By  way  of  prevention.  The  word  of  God  shows  us  our  danger, 
pits,  'precipices,  and  stumbling-blocks  that  lie  in  our  way  to  heaven; 
it  shows  us  both  our  food  and  our  poison,  and  therefore  he  that  walks 
according  to  the  direction  of  the  word  is  prevented  from  falling  into  a 
great  deal  of  mischief  :  1  John  ii.  10,  11,  'He  that  abideth  in  the 
light,  there  is  none  occasion  of  stumbling  in  him:  but  he  that  hateth 
rns  brother  is  in  darkness,  and  walketh  in  darkness,  and  knoweth  not 
whither  he  goeth,  because  that  darkness  hath  blinded  his  eyes.'  The 
meaning  of  that  place  is  this,  he  that  walks  according  to  the  light  of 
scripture,  and  lives  in  obedience  thereto,  avoids  stumbling  ;  but  he 
that  is  blinded  by  his  own  passion,  he  wants  his  light,  knows  not 
whither  he  goes,  neither  in  what  way  he  goes  —  respectu  vice,  et  respectu 
termini.  What  will  be  'the  end  of  his  going  ?  He  mistakes  the  way, 
sins  for  duties,  and  good  for  evil;  or  he  mistakes  the  end,  thinking  he 
is  going  to  heaven,  when  he  is  in  the  highway  to  hell. 

[2.]  By  way  of  humiliation  and  reproof,  it  discovers  our  sins  to  us 
in  their  own  colours,  so  as  to  affect  the  heart,  yea,  our  secret  sins, 
which  could  not  be  found  out  by  any  other  light  :  1  Cor.  xiv.  24, 
4  When  he  that  believeth  not,  or  is  unlearned,  cornes  in,  he  is  convinced 
of  all,  he  is  judged  of  all.'  The  light  of  the  word  it  brings  a  sinner 
upon  his  face,  makes  him  fall  down,  acknowledging  the  majesty  of 
God  in  his  word.  God's  word  it  hath  his  signature  upon  it,  it  is  like 
himself,  and  bewrayeth  its  author  by  its  convict!  ve  power  and  majesty. 
So  it  is  notable,  Heb.  iv.  12,  13,  '  The  word  of  God  is  quick  and 
powerful,  &c.,  and  is  a  discerner  of  the  thoughts  and  intents  of  the 
heart/  Mark  what  he  had  said  of  the  word.  He  proves  the  proper 
ties  of  the  word  by  the  properties  of  God  ;  that  God  searcheth  all 
things,  God's  word  is  like  himself. 

3.  It  is  light  in  regard  of  comfort  :  Eccles.  xi.  7,  '  Truly  the  light 
is  sweet,  and  a  pleasant  thing  it  is  for  the  eyes  to  behold  the  sun  ;  ' 
especially  to  those  that  have  been  shut  up  in  darkness,  and  kept  in  a 
dungeon.  Oh,  it  is  a  pleasant  thing  to  behold  the  light  again  !  So  is 
the  word  of  God  light  in  this  sense,  to  relieve  us  in  all  the  dark  and 
gloomy  passages  of  the  present  life. 

[1.]  In  outward  darkness.  When  all  outward  comforts  fail,  and 
have  spent  their  allowance,  the  comforts  of  the  word  are  left  ;  there  is 
enough  to  support  and  strengthen  our  hearts  in  waiting  upon  God  : 
Ps.  xxiii.  4,  '  When  I  walk  through  the  valley  of  the  shadow  of  death, 
I  will  fear  no  evil  ;  for  thou  art  with  me,  thy  rod  and  thy  staff  they 
comfort  me/  The  staff  and  rod  they  are  instruments  of  a  shepherd, 


VER.  105.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  67 

and  Christ  is  our  spiritual  shepherd,  so  that  this  staff  and  rod  are  his 
word  and  Spirit,  they  are  the  instruments  of  the  spiritual  shepherd ; 
and  this  comforts  us  when  we  are  in  the  shadow  of  death ;  in  our 
crosses,  in  confusions  and  difficulties,  when  we  have  nothing  else  left 
but  the  promises,  this  is  a  reviving  to  the  soul. 

[2.]  It  is  a  comfort  and  refreshing  to  us  in  spiritual  troubles,  that 
arise  from  the  guilt  of  sin,  arid  want  of  the  sense  of  God's  love :  Isa.  1. 
10,  '  Who  is  among  you  that  feareth  the  Lord,  that  obeyeth  the  voice 
of  his  servant,  that  walketh  in  darkness,  and  hath  no  light  ?  Let  him 
trust  in  the  name  of  the  Lord,  and  stay  upon  his  God.'  What  shall 
he  do  ?  Shall  he  compass  himself  about  in  his  own  sparks  ?  Oh,  how 
miserable  are  we  then  !  No ;  but  let  him  depend  upon  God  according 
to  his  promise.  The  word  of  God  is  a  great  part  of  his  name  ;  let  him 
stay  his  heart  upon  the  word  of  God,  when  he  walketh  in  darkness, 
and  seeth  no  light. 

Now,  that  the  word  of  God  is  such  a  light,  such  a  sure  and  clear 
direction,  I  shall — (1.)  Give  a  direct  proof  of  it  from  scripture ;  (2.) 
Some  types  of  it ;  (3.)  Prove  it  by  experience  ;  (4.)  By  reason. 

1.  For  the  proof  from  scripture,  you  have  the  notions  of  the  text. 
So  Prov.  vi.  23,  '  The  commandment  is  a  lamp,  arid  the  law  is  light.' 
It  is  that  which  keeps  us  from  stumbling.    So  2  Peter  i.  19,  '  We  have 
also  a  more  sure  word  of  prophecy,  whereunto  ye  do  well  that  ye  take 
heed,  as  unto  a  light  that  shineth  in  a  dark  place/     The  world  is  a 
dark  place.     Ay  !  but  now  here  is  a  light  that  shines  in  a  dark  place, 
and  that  is  the  Holy  Scripture, '  the  sure  word  of  prophecy ; '  it  showeth 
us  our  way  to  heaven,  and  prevents  us  from  stumbling  into  hell. 

2.  To  prove  it  by  types.     Two  types  I  shall  mention  ;  one  is,  Israel 
being  directed  by  the  pillar  of  a  cloud ;  the  other  is,  the  lamp  of  the 
sanctuary. 

[1.]  The  type  of  Israel's  being  directed  by  the  pillar  of  the  cloud  by 
day,  the  pillar  of  fire  by  night,  till  they  came  into  the  land  of  Canaan, 
Exod.  xiii.  21.  Still  they  moved  up  and  down,  hither  and  thither,  as 
the  pillar  of  cloud  and  pillar  of  fire  went  before  them.  Thus  our 
whole  course  is  to  be  ordered  by  God's  direction.  See  how  this  type 
is  expressed,  Neh.  ix.  19,  '  The  pillar  of  the  cloud  departed  not  from 
them  by  day  to  lead  them  in  the  way,  neither  the  pillar  of  fire  by  night 
to  show  them  light,  and  the  way  wherein  they  should  go.'  Mark,  when 
they  were  in  the  wilderness,  the  pillar  of  cloud  and  fire  showed  them 
the  way  where  they  were  to  go  ;  this  is  an  emblem  of  the  safe  conduct 
the  church  may  expect  from  Christ  Jesus  in  all  ages ;  God's  pillar 
departed  not  from  them  by  night  nor  day.  So  while  we  are  travelling 
in  the  wilderness  of  this  our  pilgrimage,  his  word  and  Spirit  is  con 
tinued  to  us.  When  they  entered  into  Canaan,  that  was  a  type  of 
heaven,  then  this  pillar  of  cloud  was  removed.  It  is  notable,  Josh, 
xiv.,  when  Israel  passed  over  Jordan,  we  do  not  read  the  pillar  went 
before  them,  but  the  ark  of  God  was  carried  before  them.  So  when 
the  church  comes  to  heaven,  the  resting-place,  then  this  conduct  ceaseth ; 
the  word  hath  no  more  use.  Jesus  Christ,  as  the  great  shepherd,  leads 
his  flock  into  their  everlasting  fold. 

[2.]  The  other  type  was  the  lamp  of  the  sanctuary;  we  read  of  that, 
Exod.  xxvii.  20,  21.  There  was  a  great  lamp  hung  upon  the  veil,  to 


(Jg  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXII. 

distinguish  the  holy  of  holies  from  the  other  part  of  the  tabernacle,  and 
was  fed  with  pure  oil-olive,  and  this  lamp  was  prepared  and  trimmed 
up  by  the  priest  daily.  Now  what  did  this  lamp  signify  ?  Mark  the 
application.  This  pure  olive-oil  signified  God's  pure  word  ;  without 
the  mixture  of  human  traditions  ;  this  hung  up  in  the  veil,  shined  in 
the  church,  and  every  day  it  was  prepared,  furnished,  set  forth  by  them 
that  are  called  thereunto,  for  the  use  of  the  faithful. 

3.  Let  me  prove  it  by  experience,  that  the  word  is  such  a  sure 
direction. 

[1.]  Because  natural  men  have  a  sense  of  it,  and  upon  that  account 
fear  it.  See  John  iii.  20,  21,  '  Every  one  that  doeth  evil,  hateth  the 
light,  neither  cometh  to  the  light,  lest  his  deeds  should  be  reproved/ 
Natural  men  will  not  come  to  the  word,  they  fear  it  as  discovering, 
and  therefore  never  feel  it  as  refreshing.  Evil-doers  hate  the  light ; 
they  are  afraid  of  the  word  lest  it  should  convince  them,  and  discover 
them  to  themselves  ;  therefore  they  stand  off,  and  shun  all  means  of 
closing  with  it ;  there  is  such  conviction  in  the  oar,1  a  secret  jealousy 
of  the  searching  power  that  is  in  the  word  of  God. 

[2.]  Godly  men  do  find  a  great  deal  of  comfort  and  satisfaction  from 
this  light  as  to  all  the  doubts  and  fears  of  the  soul :  Ps.  xix.  8,  '  The 
statutes  of  the  Lord  are  right,  rejoicing  the  heart ;  the  commandment 
of  the  Lord  is  pure,  enlightening  the  eyes.'  All  their  scruples  vanish  ; 
here  is  an  apt  and  fit  doctrine  accommodated  to  the  heart  of  man.  A 
man  hath  never  true  and  rational  delight  till  he  is  fully  satisfied  in 
point  of  religion,  till  he  can  have  rest  for  his  soul,  and  commodious 
notions  of  God.  Now,  if  you  would  have  rest  for  your  souls,  Jer.  vi. 
16,  here  it  is,  the  children  of  God  find  it.  There  is  a  fair  compliance 
in  this  doctrine  with  all  those  natural  principles  and  ingrafted  notions 
within  us  concerning  God  and  his  will ;  they  find  satisfaction  in  it  to 
conscience,  though  not  to  fond  curiosity  ;  the  one  is  necessary,  the 
other  dangerous  and  unprofitable.  Christians  I  there  is  a  great  deal 
of  difference  between  these  two,  satisfying  conscience  and  satisfying 
curiosity,  as  much  as  between  quenching  the  thirst  of  a  sober  man  and 
satisfying  the  lust  and  appetite  of  a  drunkard.  Here  is  enough  to 
satisfy  conscience,  a  fair  accommodation  of  excellent  truths  to  a  reason 
able  nature,  truths  becoming  God,  truths  suiting  with  the  heart  of 
man,  and  therefore  here  they  find  it  to  be  light,  that  is  a  sure  direc 
tion.  The  wicked  feel  the  discovery  of  it,  and  the  saints  feel  the 
impression  of  it. 

[3.]  We  have  this  external  and  outward  experience  to  assure  us  of 
our  rule  and  light  that  shines  in  the  word  of  God,  because  those  that 
go  against  this  light  and  direction  do  sensibly  miscarry,  and  are  sure 
to  split  themselves  upon  some  rock  or  other.  Our  first  parent,  Adam, 
when  he  hearkened  to  the  voice  of  the  serpent  rather  than  the  voice  of 
the  Lord,  destroyed  himself  and  all  his  posterity.  As  long  as  he  obeyed 
the  word  of  God,  he  remained  in  a  blessed  estate  in  paradise,  but  when 
he  gave  heed  to  other  counsels,  he  was  cast  out  of  paradise,  and  ren 
dered  liable  to  many  sorrows,  yea,  eternal  death.  So  all  that  walk  in 
the  imagination  of  their  own  hearts,  and  have  not  light  from  the  word, 
they  presently  run  themselves  into  sundry  mischiefs.  The  young  pro- 
1  Qu.  'ore'  ?  That  is,  in  a  rudimentary  state.— ED. 


VER.  105.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  69 

phet  is  an  instance  of  this,  1  Kings  xiii.  21.  To  go  to  particular 
instances  would  be  innumerable,  every  day's  experience  will  furnish  us 
with  enough  of  this  ;  they  that  will  not  take  the  light  of  God's  word, 
stumble  upon  dark  mountains,  for  God  hath  owned  his  word  to  a  tittle, 
owned  both  the  tables  :  Rom.  i.  18,  '  The  wrath  of  God  is  revealed 
from  heaven,'  &c. ;  from  heaven,  by  the  effects  of  his  wrath.  If  men 
be  ungodly  and  unrighteous,  they  are  punished  ;  nay,  not  only  in  the 
general,  but  in  particular  :  Heb.  ii.  2,  '  For  if  the  word  spoken  by  angels . 
were  steadfast ' — why  ? — '  for  every  transgression  and  disobedience 
received  a  just  recompense  of  reward.'  By  every  transgression  he 
means  a  sin  of  omission  ;  by  every  disobedience,  a  sin  of  commission. 
And  as  he  will  do  so  for  sins  against  the  law,  so  sins  against  the 
gospel ;  that  place  where  the  gospel  was  first  propounded  smarted  for 
the  neglect  of  it :  1  Thes.  ii.  16,  '  Wrath  is  come  upon  them  to  the 
uttermost/  for  despising  the  gospel.  And  still  God  secures  the  certainty 
of  our  direction  by  new  judgments  ;  those  that  will  go  contrary  to  the 
word,  turn  aside  to  paths  of  their  own,  they  perish  in  their  devices. 

4.  Let  me  prove  it  by  reasons  that  certainly  the  word  must  needs  be 
light,  that  is,  a  clear  and  sure  direction.  I  prove  it  from  the  author, 
the  instruments,  and  penmen,  and  from  the  ends  why  God  hath  given 
the  word. 

[1.]  From  the  author  of  it,  it  is  God's  word.   Everything  that  comes 
from  God  hath  some  resemblance  of  his  majesty  :  '  God  is  light,  and 
in  him  there  is  no  darkness  at  all/  1  John  i.  5.    His  word  is  light.    If 
God  would  give  us  anything  to  direct  us,  it  must  needs  be  clear  and 
sure,  it  must  have  light.     As  at  first  God  gave  reason  to  direct  man : 
John  i.  4,  '  That  life  was  the  light  of  men;'  as  it  came  from  God,  before 
it  was  weakened  by  the  fall,  it  was  a  full  direction,  it  discovered  its 
author ;  arid  now  since  the  fall,  still  it  discovers  its  author.    Conscience, 
which  remains  with  us,  it  is  called  f  the  candle  of  the  Lord/  Prov.  xx. 
27.     From  a  glorious  sun  now  it  is  dwindled  to  a  candle,  yet  it  is 
called  the  candle  of  the  Lord  ;  it  is  a  candle  lighted  by  God  himself. 
The  understanding  and  conscience  that  is  privy  to  our  most  secret 
motions,  thoughts,  and  actions ;  though  it  may  be  maimed  and  lessened 
by  sin,  it  is  sensible  of  some  distinction  between  good  and  evil,  and 
acts  God's  part  in  the  soul,  sometimes  condemning,  sometimes  approv 
ing,  accusing  and  excusing  by  turns,  Rom.  ii.  15.     But,  alas  I  if  we 
were  only  left  to  this  light,  we  should  be  for  ever  miserable.    The  light 
of  reason  is  too  short  for  us  now,  and  there  is  a  double  reason  ;  partly, 
because  our  chief  good  and  last  end  being  altered  by  sin,  we  shall 
strangely  mistake  things,  if  we  weigh  them  in  the  balance  of  the  flesh, 
which  we  seek  to  please.     Now  our  chief  good  is  altered,  or  rather  we 
are  apt  to  mistake  it ;  all  our  business  is  to  please  the  flesh,  and  to 
gratify  lust  and  appetite,  Ps.  xlix.  12.     Therefore  go  to  a  man  led  by 
carnal  and  unsanctified  reason,  he  shall  '  put  light  for  darkness,  and 
darkness  for  light ;  good  for  evil,  and  evil  for  good/  Isa.  v.  20.     He 
shall  confound  the  names  and  natures  of  things,  so  miserably  grope  in 
the  dark,  and  not  find  out  the  way  to  true  happiness,  either  stumbling, 
dashing  his  foot  against  a  stone,  or  wander  out  of  the  way  in  a  maze 
of  a  thousand  uncertainties  ;  therefore  it  is  a  blessed  thing  not  to  be 
left  to  this  candle  of  reason,  the  light  within  us,  for  that  will  not  guide 


70  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiB.  CXII. 

us,  but  God  heath  drawn  a  straight  line  for  us  to  heaven,  which  if  we 
follow  we  cannot  miss.  Again,  partly  because  man's  condition  since 
the  fall  is  such  that  he  needs  a  supernatural  remedy ;  before  he  can  be 
happy,  he  needs  a  redeemer.  Now  the  gift  of  a  redeemer  depending 
upon  the  free  grace  of  God,  cannot  be  found  out  by  natural  light,  for 
that  can  only  judge  of  things  necessary,  and  not  of  such  things  as 
depend  upon  the  arbitrary  love  of  God,  therefore  this  light  cannot 
guide,  John  iii.  16.  Well,  then,  because  the  candle  of  the  Lord  that 
is  within  us  is  not  enough  to  direct  us,  God  hath  set  up  a  lamp  in  the 
sanctuary  to  give  us  light,  and  to  guide  us  in  the  pursuit  of  true  happi 
ness,  and  that  is  the  scripture.  Now,  if  they  have  God  for  their  author, 
surely  they  must  needs  be  clear  and  full,  for  nothing  indited  by  his 
Spirit  can  be  dark,  confused,  and  inconveniently  expressed,  either  with 
respect  to  the  things  revealed,  or  to  the  persons  to  whom  this  revelation 
is  made.  For  if  God  should  speak  darkly  (here  is  my  argument),  espe 
cially  in  necessary  things,  it  is  either  because  God  could  not  speak 
otherwise,  or  would  not.  The  former  is  direct  blasphemy;  he  that 
made  the  eye,  cannot  he  see  ?  and  he  that  made  the  mouth,  cannot  he 
speak  plainly  and  intelligibly  to  his  people,  so  as  to  be  understood  by 
them  ?  And  the  latter  cannot  be  said,  that  God  would  not,  for  that  is 
contrary  to  his  goodness  and  love  to  mankind  :  Ps.  xxv.  8,  '  Good  and 
upright  is  the  Lord  ;  therefore  will  he  teach  sinners  in  the  way.'  If 
this  be  true,  that  God  is  a  just  good  God,  he  will  teach  us  plainly ;  the 
Psalmist  infers  it,  he  is  just,  and  will  not  lead  us  wrong ;  he  is  an 
upright  God,  and  he  is  a  good  God  ;  and  therefore,  though  we  have 
fallen  from  the  state  of  our  creation,  though  the  candle  of  the  Lord 
burn  dim  in  our  hearts  since  the  fall,  yet  he  is  a  good  God,  therefore 
he  will  show  us  the  way.  Now  it  is  not  to  be  imagined  that  there 
should  not  be  light  in  the  word  of  God,  that  that  should  be  dark,  con 
fused,  and  unintelligible  ;  that  the  most  powerful  and  wise  monarch, 
and  most  loving  of  all,  that  he  should  write  a  book  to  teach  men  the 
way  to  heaven,  and  do  it  so  cloudily,  that  we  cannot  tell  what  to  make 
of  it.  Therefore  if  God  be  the  author,  this  book  must  be  true  ;  here 
must  be  light,  a  clear  and  sure  direction  to  guide  us  in  all  our  ways. 

[2.]  I  prove  it  by  reason  again,  from  the  instruments  used  in  this 
work.  Shall  I  take  those  words  for  my  groundwork?  2  Peter  i.  21, 
'  For  the  prophecy  came  not  in  old  time  by  the  will  of  man,  but  holy 
men  of  God  spake  as  they  were  moved  by  the  Holy  Ghost ;'  that  is,  it 
is  not  the  fancies  or  dictates  of  men,  but  the  word  of  God ;  for  they 
were  holy  men,  and  holy  men  guided  by  the  Holy  Ghost,  and  so 
guided  as  that  they  were  moved,  borne  up  by  the  special  motion  of  the 
Spirit.  Let  me  reason  thus :  those  that  God  hath  employed  to  deliver 
his  mind  to  the  world,  look  either  to  the  prophets  of  the  Old  Testa 
ment  or  apostles  of  the  New,  and  you  will  find  them  to  be  holy  men, 
burning  with  zeal  for  God  and  love  to  souls ;  and  it  is  not  to  be 
imagined  that  they  would  deliver  God's  mind  so  darkly  that  nobody 
could  understand  their  meaning.  Christians  they  were,  not  men  that 
were  to  act  a  part  of  their  own  upon  the  stage  of  the  world,  not  men 
that  aimed  at  ostentation  of  wisdom  and  curiosity  of  science  ;  but  they 
were  holy  men,  they  were  free  from  ambition  and  envy,  and  other  such 
vile  affections,  which  are  wont  to  make  writers  to  affect  obscurity ; 


VER.  105.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  71 

therefore  in  all  simplicity  of  style,  plainness  of  heart,  and  faithfulness 
to  their  message,  they  minded  their  master's  honour  and  the  people's 
good ;  they  renounced  pomp  of  words  and  lofty  speculations,  minded 
that  people  might  understand  the  mind  of  God  published  lay  them. 
As  they  were  holy  men,  so  they  were  acted  by  the  Spirit  of  God. 
Now  the  Spirit  of  God  is  not  a  spirit  of  darkness  but  a  spirit  of  light, 
which  gives  understanding  to  all  men,  therefore  they  spake  luminously 
and  clearly.  Nay,  they  were  not  only  acted  by  the  Spirit,  but  they 
were  borne  up  by  the  Spirit,  carried  by  the  Holy  Ghost  while  they 
were  employed  in  this  work,  publishing  the  mind  of  God  to  the 
church  ;  they  were  carried  beyond  the  line  of  their  natural  spirits,  by 
an  extraordinary  impulse  infallibly  borne  up,  so  that  they  could  not 
err  and  miscarry.  Now  from  such  holy  men  that  were  not  swayed 
by  ambition  and  private  aims,  so  guided,  so  acted  by  the  Spirit,  what 
can  be  expected  but  what  is  sure,  clear,  and  plain  ? 

[3.]  I  argue  and  reason  again  from  the  end  of  God  in  giving  us 
the  scriptures ;  all  which  doth  clearly  infer  that  here  is  a  sure  and 
plain  direction  that  will  lead  you  to  heaven.  There  is  a  fourfold  end 
wherefore  God  hath  given  us  the  scriptures  : — 

(1.)  That  by  this  means  heavenly  doctrine  might  Be  kept  free  from 
corruption,  that  men  might  not  obtrude  articles  of  faith  upon  us  and 
fancies  of  their  own  brain,  that  heavenly  doctrine  might  be  put  into  a 
stated  course  and  kept  pure  from  corruption.  When  mankind  sat  in 
darkness  and  in  the  shadow  of  death,  it  was  necessary  that  one  way 
or  other  they  should  have  light,  that  God  by  some  way  or  other  would 
reveal  his  mind  to  them,  either  by  word  of  mouth  or  by  writing.  Now 
God  did  it  by  oracles  and  extraordinary  messages  at  first,  while  there 
were  but  few  truths  revealed,  and  such  as  did  not  much  burden  thte 
memory,  and  while  men  were  Jong-lived,  and  so  could  a  great  while 
avouch  their  message  from  God,  and  while  they  were  of  great  sim 
plicity,  and  the  church  was  confined  to  a  few  men,  to  a  few  families, 
within  a  small  compass  of  ground,  not  liable  to  those  miseries  and 
changes  now  in  latter  days.  Before  Christ  came  it  was  fit  God  should 
send  his  messengers ;  but  now  in  these  latter  days,  when  he  hath 
spoken  to  us  by  his  Son,  Heb.  i.  1,  it  is  fit  the  rule  of  faith  should  be 
closed  up.  It  is  not  for  the  honour  of  the  Son  of  God  that  after  him 
should  come  any  extraordinary  nuncio  or  ambassador  from  heaven,  as 
if  he  had  not  fully  discovered  his  Father's  mind.  Well,  then,  there 
fore  God  hath  put  all  his  messages  into  writing  for  the  use  of  after- 
ages,  and  for  this  end  that  there  might  be  some  public  standard  for 
trying  of  things  by.  Now  God's  end  would  not  be  accomplished  if 
this  writing  were  not  clear.  Here  is  the  argument,  the  world  would 
be  left  at  great  uncertainties,  far  more  than  in  old  time,  and  so  this 
end  for  preserving  truth  for  the  use  and  direction  of  the  church  would 
be  wholly  lost.  Well,  then,  if  God  will  make  a  writing  serve  instead 
of  extraordinary  messages,  which  brought  their  own  evidence  with 
them,  certainly  he  will  not  put  it  into  words  liable  to  mistake,  but  that 
are  intelligible.  Wisdom  saith,  Prov.  viii.  9,  '  They  are  all  plain  to 
him  that  understandeth,  and  right  to  them  that  find  knowledge/  Cer 
tainly  they  that  come  in  simplicity  of  heart,  with  a  mind  to  learn 
God's  will,  not  to  cavil,  they  may  know. 


72  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER  CXII. 

(2.)  God's  end  in  setting  forth  the  scripture  was  that  it  might  be 
read  of  all  ages  and  of  all  sexes,  as  the  book  of  the  law  was  to  be  read 
in  the  congregation  before  the  men,  women,  little  ones,  and  strangers, 
Deut.  xxi. ;  from  day  to  day  it  was  read  in  the  synagogue,  Acts  xv. 
21 ;  and  God  would  have  them  teach  their  children,  Deut.  vi.  6  ;  and 
Timothy  is  commended  for  reading  the  scriptures  from  his  youth, 
2  Tim.  iii.  5.  And  the  apostles  do  express  themselves  to  be  '  debtors 
both  to  the  wise  and  unwise,  to  Greeks  and  barbarians/  Rom.  i.  14, 
to  speak  wisdom  to  the  wise  and  plainness  to  the  simple  ;  and  St  John 
he  writes  to  children  and  young  men  and  fathers,  1  John  ii.  13.  Well, 
then,  here  is  my  argument,  if  God  would  write  a  book  to  be  read  by 
men,  women,  children,  all  sorts,  surely  it  is  that  all  might  understand, 
not  that  they  might  repeat  it  by  rote,  and  toss  the  words  of  it  in  their 
mouths  as  parrots  do  words  they  understand  not ;  surely,  then,  they 
are  compiled  to  profit  all. 

(3.)  God's  end  in  giving  the  word  was  for  converting  of  men,  or 
leaving  them  without  excuse.  Now  take  either  end,  and  it  shows 
there  must  be  a  plain  direction.  If  for  converting  of  men,  then  it 
must  be  so  plain  that  it  may  be  understood  by  them,  for  there  is 
nothing  gets  to  the  heart  but  by  the  understanding :  '  After  I  was 
instructed  I  smote  upon  my  thigh/  And  all  influences  are  conveyed 
by  light,  and  if  God  gains  any  heart  it  is  by  teaching  and  by  light. 
Or  if  it  were  for  leaving  them  without  excuse,  it  must  be  by  a  clear 
revealing  of  his  will,  otherwise  they  might  pretend  obscurity.  The 
apostle  pleads  this,  2  Cor.  iv.  2—4 ;  saith  the  apostle,  there  is  such 
plain  truth  in  the  gospel  that  every  man's  conscience  may  take  it  up 
if  he  will ;  and  if  they  cannot  see  the  majesty  of  God  in  this  doctrine 
they  are  blinded  by  Satan  ;  the  fault  is  not  in  gospel  light,  but  in  their 
own  eyes;  they  cannot  complain  of  God,  but  of  themselves. 

(4.)  The  end  is,  that  it  might  be  a  rule  of  faith  and  manners  by 
which  all  doctrines  are  to  be  tried.  A  rule  of  faith :  Tsa.  viii.  20,  *  To 
the  law  and  to  the  testimony :  if  they  speak  not  according  to  this  word, 
it  is  because  there  is  no  light  in  them/  And  Acts  xvii.  11,  *  They 
received  the  word  with  all  readiness  of  mind,  and  searched  the  scrip 
tures  daily,  whether  these  things  were  so/  So  to  be  a  rule  of  manners : 
Gal.  vi.  16,  'As  many  as  walk  according  to  this  rule/  &c.  There 
are  many  actions  which  God  requireth  of  us  that  expose  us  to  great 
difficulty  and  hazard.  Now,  before  the  heart  be  gained  to  them,  we 
had  need  have  a  plain  proof  that  it  is  the  will  of  God  ;  for  who  will 
venture  his  all  unless  he  have  a  clear  warrant,  that  knows  whither  he 
goes,  and  whither  to  look  for  amends,  if  he  suffer  the  loss  of  all  things  ? 
Thus  there  is  light  in  the  word. 

Secondly,  But  now  it  is  a  full  direction,  for  David  speaks  it  of  his 
feet  and  path. 

1.  In  general  observe  this:  it  is  not  a  light  to  our  brains  to  fill  us 
with  empty  notions,  but  a  light  to  our  feet  to  regulate  our  practice 
and  to  guide  our  actions,  Jer.  vi.  16.  He  doth  not  say,  hearken  after 
the  true  religion,  but  walk  therein.  For  a  man  to  study  the  scripture 
only  to  satisfy  curiosity,  only  to  know  what  is  right  and  good,  and  not 
follow  it  with  all  his  heart,  is  but  to  make  a  rod  for  his  own  back,  and 
doth  but  cause  his  own  condemnation  to  be  sore  and  terrible,  Luke 


VER.  105.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  73 

xii.  47.  To  be  able  to  dispute  for  truth  and  not  lie  under  the  power 
of  it,  to  avoid  heresy  and  live  in  vice,  will  never  bring  him  to  heaven, 
Gal.  vi.  16.  It  is  not  them  that  are  able  to  talk  of  it,  but  to  'walk 
according  to  this  rule  ;'  not  to  play  with  it,  but  to  work  with  it.  Know 
ledge  and  practice  must  be  joined  together ;  they  do  never  well  asunder, 
but  excellent  together. 

2.  In  our  practice. 

[1.]  Our  path,  our  general  choice.  A  man  that  consults  with  God's 
word,  '  The  Lord  will  teach  him  the  way  that  he  shall  choose,'  Ps. 
xxv.  12.  Everything  appointed  to  an  end  must  have  all  things  abso 
lutely  necessary  to  that  end,  else  it  is  not  perfect  in  its  kind ;  though 
perfect  to  guide  us  to  eternal  life ;  therefore  it  must  contain  all  things 
that  belong  or  conduce  to  that  end.  It  is  not  a  rule  given  us  to  be  rich 
or  safe,  but  to  be  eternally  happy. 

[2.]  As  it  is  a  light  to  our  path,  so  to  our  feet.  How  ?  In  the 
particular  actions  that  we  perform,  and  in  the  particular  conditions 
that  we  pass  through. 

(1.)  In  the  particular  actions  that  we  perform.  Every  action  we 
go  about  must  be  guided  by  the  word.  Why  ?  Because  obedience 
in  particular  actions  we  are  most  apt  to  miscarry  in.  Many  are  wise 
in  generals,  but  in  particulars  they  quite  mistake  their  way.  We  have 
general  notions  that  we  must  be  holy  ;  ay  !  but  we  are  not  '  holy  in  all 
mariner  of  conversation,'  1  Peter  i.  15.  In  every  creek  and  turning  of 
our  lives,  in  all  our  actions  of  eating,  drinking,  sleeping,  and  waking, 
we  are  to  be  mindful  and  respect  the  command  of  God  in  all  these. 
No  path  of  a  Christian's  conversation  but  ought  to  savour  of  grace  and 
holiness ;  not  only  his  religious,  but  his  common  and  civil  actions. 
Every  action  is  a  step  to  heaven  or  hell,  for  this  life  is  compared  to  a 
walk,  and  in  a  walk  every  step  brings  us  onward  in  our  way.  Briefly, 
in  every  act,  either  sin  or  grace  interposeth,  therefore  we  had  need 
look  to  every  step,  and  still  to  walk  according  to  rule. 

(2 )  It  guides  us  in  all  the  conditions  that  we  pass  through.  In 
every  age ;  here  is  milk  for  the  weak,  and  strong  meat  for  men  of  ripe 
age.  In  every  calling,  from  the  king  to  the  lowest  beggar.  In  every 
state  of  life,  adversity,  prosperity,  still  here  is  light  for  you. 

There  are  two  parties  whose  interest  it  is  to  decry  the  clearness  of 
scripture,  papists  and  libertines.  Papists,  they  are  afraid  to  stand  to 
this  trial,  they  would  bring  all  to  the  judgment  of  the  church ;  there 
fore,  it  is  for  their  interest  that  the  scriptures  were  not  a  clear,  safe, 
and  a  full  direction.  Libertines,  they  decry  the  clearness  of  scripture 
upon  several  grounds.  Those  that  plead  for  a  boundless  toleration, 
what  is  their  great  argument  ?  Nothing  is  certain  in  religion.  If 
the  word  be  a  clear  rule,  then,  &c. 


74  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEE.  CXIII. 


SERMON  CXIII. 

TJie  word  is  a  lamp  unto  my  feet,  and  a  light  unto  my  path. — 
VER.  105. 

HERE  I  shall  answer  five  objections  that  are  made  by  cavillers. 

Object  1.  First,  If  it  be  so  clear  a  light,  why  do  men  so  often  mis 
take  that  have  the  scriptures,  and  consult  with  them?  yea,  why  is 
there  such  differences  among  good  men  ? 

Ans.  I  answer,  in  general,  there  is  light  in  the  scriptures,  but  there 
is  darkness  in  men  that  are  conversant  about  them.  The  object  may 
be  well  represented  when  the  faculty  is  not  well  disposed.  There  are 
defects  in  them  to  whom  this  discovery  is  made ;  though  they  have 
light,  yet  they  want  eyes.  The  sun  giveth  light  enough,  though  blind 
men  cannot  see  it ;  the  word  doth  whatsoever  is  necessary  on  its  own 
part.  To  the  beholding  of  anything  by  the  outward  sense,  there  must 
not  only  be  light  to  make  the  object  conspicuous,  but  also  a  faculty  of 
seeing  in  the  eye ;  blind  men  cannot  see  at  noonday,  nor  the  sharpest- 
sighted  at  midnight.  There  is  light  in  the  scriptures  surely,  for  God 
would  not  deal  hypocritically  with  us  that  are  his  people ;  if  he  hath 
given  us  a  rule,  he  would  not  wrap  it  up  in  darkness,  so  as  we  should 
not  know  his  meaning ;  so  that  the  defect  is  in  us.  This  in  general. 

But,  secondly,  there  are  many  causes  of  men's  mistake. 

1.  Some  come  to  the  word  with  a  presumption  of  their  own  wit, 
and  leaning  upon  their  own  understanding,  as  if  that  should  discover 
the  whole  counsel  of  God,  and  these  God  never  undertook  to  teach : 
Ps.  xxv.  9,  '  The  meek  will  he  guide  in  judgment,  and  the  meek  will 
he  teach  his  way.'     Those  that,   in  a  humble  sense  of  their  own 
nothingness,  depend  upon  his  direction,  them  will  he  teach : .  James  i. 
21,  '  Eeceive  with  meekness  the  ingrafted  word  of  God.'     We  have 
caution  given  us,  and  admonitions  against  pride  and  arrogance  and 
self-dependence,  Prov.  iii.  3-6. 

2.  Many  bring  their  prejudicate  opinions  along  with  them,  and  are 
biassed  and  prepossessed  before  they  come  to  the  word  of  God,  and  so 
do  not  so  much  take  up  the  sense  which  the  scriptures  offer,  as  seek  to 
impose  their  own  sense  on  them,  and  regulate  the  scriptures  to  their 
own  hearts,  not  regulating  their  hearts  and  principles  and  senses 
according  to  the  word  of  God.     Optimus  ille  lector  est,,  saith  Hilary, 
qui  dictorum  intelligentiam  expectat,  &c.     That  mind  which  is  pre 
occupied  with  evil  opinions,  and  enslaved  to  preconceived  conclusions, 
they  do  not  take  anything  from  the  word,  but  impose  something  upon 
it  which  God  never  revealed  there.     If  the  weights  be  equal,  yet  if 
the  balance  be  not  equipendent,  wrong  may  be  done.     They  come  with 
an  idol  in  their  own  hearts,  Ezek.  xiv.  2,  as  those  that  would  ask 
counsel  of  the  Lord,  that  were  resolved  beforehand,  Jer.  xlii.     While 
we  look  through  the  spectacles  of  our  own  fancies  and  preconceptions, 
the  mind,  poisoned  with  error,  seemeth  to  see  what  we  see  not. 

3.  Some  search  the  scriptures  not  out  of  any  love  to  the  truth,  or 
to  know  the  mind  of  God,  but  to  oppose  it  rather,  and  so  seek  a  pre 
tence  from  thence  to  justify  their  private  faction  in  way  of  opposition 


VER.  105.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  75 

against  God.  The  devil  gets  scripture  to  wrest  it  to  his  own  purpose, 
Mat.  iv.  6.  They  read  not  to  be  better,  but  to  cavil,  and  put  a  greater 
varnish  upon  the  devil's  cause,  as  Julian  did  search  the  scriptures  to 
pick  an  advantage  against  the  true  religion,  and  scoff  at  them  that 
professed  it ;  and  Herod  inquired  after  the  place  where  Jesus  was  born, 
not  to  adore  him,  but  to  kill  him,  Mat.  ii.  8.  Our  great  rule  is,  John 
xvii.  17,  '  Sanctify  them  by  thy  truth ;  thy  word  is  truth.'  When  you 
come  to  study  the  scriptures,  to  be  the  better  for  them,  and  not  to 
cavil,  then  you  are  in  the  way  to  find  profit  from  them. 

4.  Some  come  to  the  word  leavened  with  some  carnal  affections, 
and  so  their  hearts  are  blinded  by  their  lusts  and  passion  :  2  Cor.  iv. 
3,  4,  'If  our  gospel  be  hid,  it  is  hid  to  them  that  are  lost ;  in  whom 
the  God  of  this  world  hath  blinded  the  minds  of  them  which  believe 
not.'     There  is  evidence  enough  in  the  truth,  but  their  hearts  are 
wedded  to  their  sins,  and  so  cannot  see  it ;  they  are  ambitious,  and  seek 
after  honour  and  worldly  greatness ;  and  the  whole  bent  and  scope  of 
the  scripture  being  against  their  design,  they  can  never  have  a  perfect 
understanding  of  it ;  their  hearts  are  full  of  avarice,  earthly-minded- 
ness,  and  some  other  beloved  sin  that  they  cherish,  which  doth  defile 
all  that  they  touch,  even  the  very  word  of  God.     Hag.  ii.  13,  A  man 
that  was  unclean  by  a  dead  body,  whatsoever  he. touched  was  also 
unclean,  even  holy  things  ;  and,  Titus  i.  15,  '  To  the  impure  all  things 
are  impure;'  and  so  by  the  just  judgment  of  God  are  blinded  and 
hardened  in  their  own  prejudices,  fcr  the  light  they  have  hindereth 
them  from  discerning  the  truth. 

5.  Some  content  themselves  with  some  superficial  apprehensions, 
and  do  not  dig  deep  in  the  mines  of  knowledge,  and  therefore  no 
wonder  they  mistake  in  many  things :  Prov.  ii.  4,  5,  '  If  thou  seekest 
her  as  silver,  and  searchest  for  her  as  for  hid  treasures,  then  shalt  thou 
understand  the  fear  of  the  Lord,  and  find  the  knowledge  of  God.'     No 
excellent  things  are  to  be  had  without  pain  and  industry  and  search ; 
certainly  the  knowledge  of  God's  word  must  cost  us  great  pains. 

6.  Where  men  are  right  in  the  main,  and  give  diligence  to  know 
God's  mind,  there  will  be  mistakes  in  lesser  things.     All  have  not 
parts  alike,  and  gifts  and  graces  alike,  and  therefore  there  is  some 
variety  of  opinions  and  interpretations  of  scripture  among  the  godly 
wise.     Every  man  is  not  so  happy  to  be  so  well  studied,  nor  hath  not 
that  ability  to  understand,  nor  so  furnished  with  acquired  helps  of  arts 
and  tongues,  nor  such  a  degree  of  the  Spirit.     There  is  a  difference  in 
age,  growth,  and  experience  among  good  men ;  some  are  babes,  and 
some  grown  in  years  in  Christianity,  Phil.  iii.  15.     Grace  is  bewrayed 
in  knowledge,  as  well  as  in  holiness. 

Object.  2.  If  there  be  such  a  light  in  the  scriptures,  what  need  is 
thereof  the  Spirit? 

Ans.  I  answer — The  scriptures  are  the  means  of  light,  the  Spirit  is 
the  author  of  light,  both  together  enlighten  the  eyes,  Ps.  xix.  8. 
These  two  must  be  taken  in  conjunction,  not  in  exclusion.  To  pretend 
to  the  Spirit  and  neglect  the  scriptures,  makes  way  for  error  and  fond 
conceits :  Isa.  viii.  20,  '  To  the  law  and  to  the  testimony,  if  they  speak 
not  according  to  this  word,  it  is  because  there  is  no  light  in  them.' 
Light  is  not  contrary  to  light ;  so  to  study  the  scriptures,  and  neglect 


76  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXIII. 

the  Spirit,  who  'searcheth  out  the  deep  things  of  God,'  1  Cor.  ii.  11, 
leaveth  us  in  darkness  about  God's  mind.  The  object  to  be  known  is 
fixed  in  the  scriptures,  but  the  faculty  that  knoweth  must  be  enlight 
ened  by  the  Spirit.  There  is  a  literal  understanding  of  the  scriptures 
and  a  spiritual  understanding,  1  Cor.  ii.  14.  Now,  as  to  the  spiritual 
understanding  of  them,  there  needs  the  Spirit,  '  for  the  natural  man 
cannot  understand  the  things  of  the  Spirit;'  so  that  here  is  a  fair  cor 
respondence  between  the  word  and  the  Spirit. 

Object.  3.  If  the  scriptures  be  so  plain,  what  need  of  the  ministry  ? 

Ans.  1.  I  answer — It  is  God's  institution,  and  we  must  submit  to 
it,  though  we  could  see  no  reason  for  it.  That  it  is  God's  institution 
is  plain,  for  he  hath  set  some  in  the  church,  not  only  apostles  and  pro 
phets,  but  pastors  and  teachers,  to  apply  scriptures  to  us ;  and,  1  Cor. 
i.  21,  '  It  pleased  God  by  the  foolishness  of  preaching  to  save  them  that 
believe/  If  there  were  no  reason  but  this,  because  it  is  God's  institu 
tion,  we  should  submit  to  it. 

2.  The  use  of  the  ministry  is  to  explain  and  vindicate  truth.     Men 
darken  counsel  with  words,  and  render  plain  things  obscure  by  their 
litigations  and  unprofitable  debates.    Now  they  are  set  for  the  defence 
of  the  truth,  et?  a7ro\6yi,av,  Phil.  i.  7.     And  the  ministry  must  be 
ai'Te^oyitej'o?,  Titus  i.  9,  *  Able  to  convince  the  gainsayers ;'  good  at 
holding  and  drawing ;  it  is  the  human  help  for  weak  understandings. 
The  eunuch  was  reading,  and  could  not  tell  what  to  make  of  it,  then 
God  sent  him  an  interpreter,  Acts  viii.     Now  God's  help  should  not 
be  despised  ;  when  he  will  employ  men  to  solve  doubts,  to  guide  us  in 
our  way  to  heaven,  we  should  thankfully  accept  of  it,  rather  than 
quarrel  at  the  institution. 

3.  They  are  of  use  to  apply  generals  to  particular  cases,  and  to  teach 
us  how  to  deduce  genuine  inferences  from  those  truths  laid  down  in 
the  scriptures.     Mai.  ii.  7,  in  this  sense  it  is  said,  '  The  priest's  lips 
should  preserve  knowledge,  and  they  should  seek  the  law  at  his  mouth; 
for  he  is  the  messenger  of  the  Lord  of  hosts.'     God  hath  appointed 
this  office  to  some,  to  solve  the  doubts  that  do  arise  about  particular 
exigencies  and  cases,  and  to  make  out  the  mind  of  God  to  his  people, 
otherwise  they  need  go  no  farther  than  the  tables  and  books  of  Moses 
to  seek  the  law ;  but  God  hath  appointed  some  in  the  church  that  are 
skilled  m  consequences  and  deductions,  to  raise  matter  therefrom,  so 
that  it  is  a  minister's  work  to  open  and  explain  scripture. 

4.  There  is  a  use  of  the  ministry  to  keep  doctrines  still  afoot  in  the 
church,  and  to  keep  us  in  remembrance.     Ministers  are  the  Lord's  re 
membrancers  ;  it  is  a  great  part  of  their  office  to  mind  people  of  their 
duty.     The  word  is  a  light,  but  it  must  be  set  in  the  candlestick  of  the 
church ;  they  are  to  hold  out  the  light  for  our  direction  and  guidance. 

5.  There  is  a  peculiar  blessing  and  efficacy  to  a  Christian  from  their 
calling :   Mat.  xxviii.  20,  '  Lo,  I  am  with  you  to  the  end  of  the 
world.' 

Object.  4.  It  is  said,  2  Peter  iii.  16,  that  there  are  some  things  hard 
to  be  understood,  therefore  how  should  it  be  a  clear  rule  to  us  ?  There 
upon  many  take  occasion  to  tax  the  scriptures  of  obscurity,  and  cry 
out  that  nothing  is  certain  in  religion,  and  so  hinder  and  discourage 
men  from  the  study  of  the  word. 


VER.  105.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  77 

Ans.  1.  I  answer  —  The  apostle  saith  there  are  Sva-vorjra,  some 
things  hard  to  be  understood,  but  doth  not  say  there  are  dvorjra,  things 
that  cannot  be  understood ;  not  there  are  things  impossible  to  be 
understood,  but  there  is  some  difficulty  in  them,  to  exercise  our  dili 
gence,  to  subdue  our  pride,  for  the  humbling  of  us,  for  the  prevention 
of  the  contempt  of  things  easy  and  plain,  that  are  soon  despised,  to 
excite  us  to  prayer  for  knowledge,  to  avoid  satiety  in  this  holy 
banquet. 

2.  The  second  thing  that  I  answer  is  this ;  he  doth  not  say  there 
are  7ro\\a,  but  riva ;  many  things,  but  some.  Though  there  are  some 
things  propounded  which  are  difficult,  to  exercise  our  diligence,  yet 
other  things  are  plainly  delivered,  to  invite  our  search.  Multa  sunt 
aperta  et  manifesta  (saith  Austin)  unde  aperiuntur,  &c.  Though 
there  are  some  things  obscure,  there  are  many  things  will  help  to  clear 
them,  and  \thatsoever  is  necessary  to  salvation  is  clear.  There  are 
some  things  hidden  like  spots  in  the  moon  and  storfes  in  the  earth, 
things  that  serve  for  plenitude  of  knowledge  and  curiosity.  He  saith 
these  things  are  hid,  but  now  things  necessary  to  salvation  are  made 
obvious  to  us ;  as  water  and  bread,  they  are  not  hard  to  come  by,  but 
gold  and  silver  is  hid  in  the  bowels  of  the  earth ;  and  therefore  though 
there  be  some  things  hard  to  be  understood,  he  doth  not  say  they  are 
not  to  be  understood.  Now  the  question  between  us  and  the  papists 
is  not,  whether  some  things  in  the  scripture  be  obscure,  but  whether 
they  be  so  obscure  as  that  people  ought  not  to  read  them,  or  cannot 
with  any  profit,  and  that  there  can  be  no  certainty  thence  deduced  ? 
As  to  the  defining  things  controverted  in  matters  necessary  to  salva 
tion,  we  say  there  are  some  things  hard  to  be  understood,  to  keep  us 
humble,  to  quicken  us  to  pray  for  the  Spirit,  yet  for  the  most  part 
God's  mind  is  plain  and  easy  to  be  understood  by  them  that  humbly 
depend  upon  Christ  teaching  in  the  use  of  the  appointed  means. 

Object.  5.  Another  objection  is  from  experience  ;  a  poor  Christian 
complaineth,  as  Job  xix.  8,  '  He  hath  set  darkness  in  my  path  that  I 
cannot  pass/  They  would  fain  know  the  mind  of  God  in  some  parti 
cular  cases,  but  they  cannot  see  it. 

Ans.  I  answer — This  darkness  of  ours  should  not  be  urged  to  the 
disparagement  of  the  word.  We  are  under  many  doubts,  we  are 
divided  between  light  and  interest,  we  puzzle  and  grope,  and  would 
reconcile  the  light  of  the  scriptures  and  our  interests  together,  but  this 
should  not  disparage  the  word.  The  scriptures  complain  of  our  dark 
ness,  not  of  its  own,  and  the  saints  always  say,  Lord,  do  not  make  a 
plainer  law  ;  but  open  our  eyes,  in  the  18th  verse  of  this  psalm ;  this 
is  Chrysostom's  gloss  upon  that  place.  When  a  man  walketh  in  the 
way  of  his  own  heart,  his  way  may  be  darkness,  and  he  may  stumble, 
and  know  not  whither  he  goeth.  But  you  that  give  up  yourselves 
sincerely  to  the  directions  of  his  word,  he  will  make  your  path  clear 
and  plain  before  you ;  that  is,  when  you  seek  nothing  but  God's  glory, 
and  your  own  eternal  salvation  for  your  end,  and  come  with  a  humble 
meek  mind  to  seek  God's  counsel,  being  free  from  the  preoccupations 
of  self-conceits,  being  resolved  to  follow  God's  directions  whatever  they, 
be,  and  use  that  diligence  which  is  necessary ;  you  will  not  be  long 
kept  in  the  dark. 


78  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEE.  CXIII. 

jjse  i — [1.]  To  inform  us  how  to  answer  this  question,  how  to 
know  whether  the  scriptures  be  the  word  of  God.  It  shows  itself, 
and  evidenceth  itself  to  be  so  ;  for  it  is  a  light  that  discovers  itself, 
and  all  things  else,  without  any  other  testimony.  When  the  sun  is 
up,  there  needs  no  witness  and  proof  that  it  is  light.  Let  the  least 
child  bring  a  candle  into  a  room,  and  as  it  discovers  other  things,  so 
it  discovers  itself.  So  the  word  of  God  is  that  which  discovers  itself 
to  us,  yea,  it  hath  a  self-evidencing  light. 

[2:1  If  the  word  be  a  light,  it  informs  us,  then,  there  is  none  that 
are  above  the  scriptures.  There  is  a  fond  conceit  that  men  take  up, 
that  the  scriptures  are  for  novices  and  young  beginners,  not  for  strong 
Christians.  David  was  no  novice,  yet  he  saith,  '  Thy  word  is  a  light.' 
And  Daniel  was  no  novice,  yet  he  got  understanding  by  the  prophecy 
of  the  prophet  Jeremiah,  Dan.  ix.  2.  Timothy  was  no  novice,  who 
was  to  '  give  attendance  to  reading,  and  exhortation,  and  doctrine/  1 
Tim.  iv.  13.  Aye !  but  what  is  meant  by  that  place,  2  Peter  i.  19  ? 
'  We  have  a  more  sure  word  of  prophecy,  whereunto  ye  do  well  that 
ye  take  heed,  as  unto  a  light  that  shineth  in  a  dark  place.'  From 
thence  many  gather  that  as  soon  as  Christ  is  revealed  in  us,  we  should 
not  look  after  the  scriptures,  for  it  is  said,  *  until  the  day  dawn,  and 
the  day-star  arise  in  your  hearts.'  Some  understand  this  place  of  the 
light  of  glory,  and  others  of  the  light  of  the  gospel ;  you  do  well  to 
take  heed  to  the  Old  Testament  light,  till  you  have  the  New  Testa 
ment  light,  which  is  most  agreeable  to  the  mind  of  God.  For  my 
part,  I  pitch  upon  the  former,  and  shall  understand  it  of  the  dawning 
of  eternity,  or  Christ's  second  coming,  which  is  called  in  scripture  a 
day  which  shall  then  begin  and  never  be  ended,  after  which  there  is 
no  night,  nor  any  other  day,  but  a  blessed  eternity ;  and  sometimes  it  is 
called  *  the  day;  2  Tim.  iv.  8,  and  'that  day,'  1  Thes.  v.4  ;  and  Christ 
is  called  'the  bright  morning  star/  Eev.  xxii.  16,  and  'the  glorious1 
shall  shine  like  the  morning  stars/  Dan.  xii.  3,  and  Rev.  ii.  28.  Our 
happiness  is  expressed  by  a  day-star ;  so  that  the  meaning  is,  take 
heed  unto  this  word  until  the  day  of  eternity  dawn  upon  you,  till  you 
come  to  the  light  of  glory,  till  you  have  a  greater  light  than  that  of 
the  gospel. 

Now,  I  rather  pitch  upon  this  interpretation,  because  they  to  whom 
the  apostle  wrote  were  converted  Jews,  and  did  not  only  own  the  Old 
Testament,  but  had  already  received  the  gospel  light,  the  day-star  was 
risen  upon  their  hearts,  so  that  he  bids  them  take  heed  to  the  sure 
word  of  prophecy,  till  the  light  of  glory  was  revealed  to  them.  I  know 
there  are  some  divines  understand  it  of  a  more  clear  and  plentiful 
knowledge  of  the  gospel,  who  take  prophecy  to  be  the  scriptures  of 
the  Old  Testament  that  they  were  to  take  heed  to,  till  the  gospel  light 
did  arise  upon  them  ;  and  the  times  of  the  Old  Testament  were  called 
night,  Eom.  xiii.  12,  but  now  the  gospel  time  is  called  day.  But  if  it 
be  understood  thus,  then  some  say  that  the  law  must  be  cast  off  when 
the  gospel  appeared  to  them,  because  it  is  said,  '  until  the  day/ 
Those  divines  explain  themselves  safely  enough  herein,  for,  say  they, 
until  doth  not  always  note  terminum  temporis,  the  end  of  time,  but 
continuationem  actus,  the  continuation  of  the  act,  until  the  time,  and 

1  Qu.  '  wise  '  ?— ED. 


VER.  105.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  79 

afterwards,  as  it  is  spoken  in  other  scriptures,  '  their  sin  shall  not  be 
blotted  out  till  they  die,'  that  is  never  ;  but  for  the  former  reason  that  I 
have  given  before,  I  think  it  is  meant  of  the  light  of  glory. 

Use  2.  Reproof. — [1.]  Of  those  that  walk  in  the  midst  of  this 
light,  and  yet  perceive  no  more  of  the  things  of  God,  than  if  they  were 
in  darkness,  these  lose  the  benefit  which  God  vouchsafe  th  to  them : 
John  i.  5,  '  The  light  shineth  in  darkness,  and  the  darkness  compre- 
hendeth  it  not ;'  and  John  iii.  19,  '  The  light  is  come  into  the  world, 
and  men  loved  darkness  rather  than  light/  It  had  been  better  for 
them  they  had  never  heard  of  the  scriptures,  and  that  God  had  never 
set  up  such  a  lamp  in  the  church.  These  men  believe  the  word  of  God 
is  a  light  and  a  lamp,  yet  never  take  care  of,  nor  give  heed  to  it ;  they 
are  careless,  and  never  measure  their  actions  according  to  this  rule. 

[2.]  It  reproves  those  that  set  up  another  rule,  and  look  for  an 
infallible  interpreter. 

(1.)  Those  that  set  up  reason  instead  of  the  word  of  God.  Alas ! 
this  is  an  imperfect  rule  ;  these  men  would  bring  down  all  things 
before  the  tribunal  of  their  own  reason  ;  these  are  not  disciples  of 
Christ,  but  masters  ;  they  will  not  be  taught  by  the  directions  of  the 
word,  but  by  their  own  dark  hearts.  I  have  told  you  the  candle  of 
the  Lord  did  burn  bright  within  us  ;  but  alas !  now  it  is  weakened  by 
sin,  it  is  an  imperfect  irrational  thing,  we  can  never  be  saved  by  it. 

(2.)  Others  are  guided  by  their  passions  and  lusts  ;  this  is  their 
direction  and  their  lamp ;  this  will  surely  lead  them  to  utter  darkness : 
'If  you  live  after  the  flesh,  you  shall  die,'  Rom.  viii.  13. 

(3.)  Some  take  the  counsel  and  example  of  others,  this  will  leave 
them  comfortless,  and  make  them  fall  into  the  snare. 

(4.)  Some  go  to  witches  in  straits,  as  the  prophet  reproves  such, 
Isa.  viii.  19,  20,  '  Should  not  a  people  seek  unto  their  God  ?  ' 

(5.)  Others  expect  new  revelations  from  heaven  to  counsel  them  ; 
they  would  converse,  with  angels  now  God  hath  spoken  to  us  by  his 
Son  :  Gal.  i.  8,  '  If  an  angel  from  heaven  should  bring  another  gospel 
than  that  which  we  have  preached  unto  you,  let  him  be  accursed.' 

Use  3.  Caution  to  enterprise  nothing  but  what  you  have  a  warrant 
for  out  of  the  word  of  God.  When  you  are  going  about  any  action, 
say,  Where  is  my  warrant?  If  I  do  it  upon  my  own  brain,  I  must 
stand  to  my  own  hazard  ;  and  ail  the  evil  that  comes  upon  me,  it  is 
the  fruit  of  my  own  counsel.  Num.  xxvii.  21,  the  priest  was  to  ask 
counsel  of  the  Lord,  who  shall  go  out,  and  who  shall  go  in  ;  and  1 
Sam.  xxiii.  9.  10.  To  do  things  with  a  doubting  conscience,  with  an 
uncertainty,  whether  it  be  good  or  bad,  it  is  a  sin  ;  for  '  whatsoever  is 
not  of  faith,  is  sin  ;'  still  seek  your  direction  from  the  word. 

Use  4. — [1.]  It  exhorts  us  to  bless  God,  and  be  thankful  for  this 
light:  Isa.  ix.  2,  'The  people  that  sat  in  darkness  saw  great  light.'. 
There  is  the  same  difference  between  the  church  and  other  places,  as 
there  was  between  E^ypt  and  Goshen,  Exod.  x.  23.  Here  is  light, 
and  in  other  places  thick  darkness.  What  a  mercy  it  is  that  we  have 
present  direction,  a  light  to  guide  us  here  in  grace,  that  will  bring  us 
to  glory.  Give  thanks  to  God  for  so  great  a  benefit. 

[2.]  Walk  according  to  the  directions  of  the  word  ;  walk  in  the 
light,'  Eph.  v.  8  ;  believe  it,  Heb.  iv.  2,  the  true  and  infallible  truth 


80  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXIV, 

that  came  out  of  God's  rnouth  ;  and  then  apply  it ;  say,  This  truth 
which  is  spoken  is  spoken  to  me,  Mat.  xiii.  37,  and  urge  thy  heart 
with  the  duties  of  it ;  this  was  spoken  for  our  learning,  be  persuaded 
of  this  truth,  and  so  walk  and  so  do,  and  you  shall  not  find  any 
miscarriage,  1  Cor.  xv.  58.  Here  is  my  warrant  and  my  direction,  I 
will  keep  to  it,  though  it  expose  me  to  many  hazards  and  straits,  I 
know  it  will  be  made  up  at  last,  it  will  not  be  lost  labour  to  do  what 
God  biddeth  thee  to  do. 


SEEMON  CXIY. 

I  have  sworn,  and  I  will  perform  it,  that  I  will  keep  tliy  righteous 
judgments. — VER.  106. 

IN  the  former  verse  David  had  commended  the  word  for  a  sure  di 
rection  ;  it  is  a  light  and  a  lamp.  How  so  ?  Not  only  by  God's 
designation  and  appointment,  but  by  David's  choice,  '  It  was  a  light 
to  my  feet,  and  a  lamp  to  my  steps/  Now,  in  this  verse,  he  speaks 
of  his  firmness  and  constancy  to  that  choice  ;  I  have  taken  thy  word 
for  my  guidance  and  direction,  and  there  he  did  resolve  to  stick.  His 
constancy  was  grounded  upon  a  vow,  or  upon  a  promissory  oath, 
which  he  saw  no  cause  to  retract  or  repent  of :  '  I  have  sworn,  and  I 
will  perform  it/  &c. 

In  which  words  you  may  observe — 

1.  The  strength  of  David's  resolution  and  purpose,  expressed  in  his 
oath ;  not  I  must,  or  I  will  keep,  but  /  have  sivorn,  '&c. 

2.  The  matter  of  this  purpose  or  oath,  and  that  was  to  keep  God's 
judgments. 

3.  One  great  motive  and  reason  that  inclined  him  so  to  do,  in  the 
word,  thy  righteous  judgments;  the  marvellous  equity  that  was  to  be 
observed  in  the  things  commanded  by  God. 

4.  The  conscience  that  lay  upon  him  of  observing  this  oath,  /  will 
perform  it.     As  if  he  had  said,  I  saw  a  great  deal  of  reason  to  make 
the  promise  so  solemnly  to  God,  and  I  see  no  reason  at  all  to  retract  it. 

Four  points  I  shall  observe  : — 

1.  That  it  is  not  only  lawful,  but  good  and  profitable,  to  bind  our 
selves  to  our  duty  by  a  vow,  solemnly  declared  purpose,  and  holy 
oath  ;  so  David,  /  have  sivorn. 

2.  That  this  help  of  an  oath  or  vow  should  be  used  in  a  matter 
lawful,  weighty,  and  necessary,  '  I  have  sworn/  saith  David  ;  but  what 
hath  he  sworn?     To  keep  thy  righteous  judgments.     A  great  duty 
which  God  had  enjoined  him  in  his  covenant. 

3.  Those  that  are  entered  into  the  bond  of  a  holy  oath  must  re 
ligiously  observe  and  perform  what  they  have  sworn  to  God :  I  have- 
sworn,  and  I  will  perform. 

4.  That  we  may  perform  our  oaths,  and  lie  under  a  sense  and 
conscience  of  our  engagements  to  God,  it  is  good  that  they  should  be 
often  revived  and  renewed  upon  us ;  for  so  doth  David  here  recognise 
his  oath,  /  have  sivorn  that,  &c. 


VER.  106.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  81 

Doct.  1.  That  it  concerns  us  sometimes  to  bind  ourselves  to  God, 
and  the  duty  that  we  owe  to  him,  by  an  oath. 

1.  That  it  is  lawful  so  to  do  appears  from  God's  injunction,  and  the 
practice  of  the  saints. 

[1.]  From  God's  injunction.  He  hath  commanded  us  to  accept  of 
the  gospel  covenant,  and  not  barely  so,  but  to  submit  unto  the  seals 
and  rites  by  which  it  is  confirmed,  which  submission  of  ours  implieth 
an  oath  made  to  God.  Baptism  is  our  sacramentum  militare,  sacra 
mental  vow,  our  oath  of  allegiance  to  God  ;  and  therefore  it  is  called, 
1  Peter  iii.  21,  eTre/xor^a,. '  The  answer  of  a  good  conscience  towards 
God,'  an  answer  upon  God's  demands  in  the  covenant.  God  does,  as 
it  were,  in  the  covenant  of  grace,  put  us  to  the  question,  Will  you 
renounce  all  your  sins,  and  all  the  vanities  you  have  doted  upon  ? 
And  we  answer  to  God,  enter  into  a  solemn  oath,  that  we  will  re 
nounce  sin,  that  we  will  accept  of  Christ  as  our  Saviour,  and  will  walk 
before  him  in  all  holy  obedience.  Among  the  Romans,  when  any 
soldier  was  pressed  for  war,  he  took  an  oath  to  serve  his  captain  faith 
fully,  and  not  to  forsake  him,  and  then  he  was  called  miles  per  sacra 
mentum,  a  soldier  by  sacrifice  or  by  oath  ;  and  sometimes  one  took 
an  oath  for  all  the  rest,  and  the  others  only  said,  The  same  oath  he 
took,  the  same  do  I ;  and  these  were  called  milites  per  conjurationem, 
et  milites  evocati.  Thus  every  Christian  is  a  professed  soldier  of 
Christ ;  he  hath  sworn  to  become  the  Lord's,  to  cleave  faithfully  to 
him  ;  and  this  oath,  that  it  may  not  be  forgotten,  is  renewed  at  the 
Lord's  supper,  where  again  we  solemnly  engage,  by  the  public  rites 
that  are  there  used,  to  stand  to  our  covenant.  We  do  not  only  come 
and  take  God's  enfeoffment,  take  a  pledge  out  of  God's  hands,  to  be 
assured  of  the  privileges  of  the  covenant,  but  we  bind  ourselves  to 
perform  the  duty  thereof ;  for  as  the  blood  of  the  beast.  Exod.  xxiv. 
7,  8,  that  was  offered  in  the  sacrifice,  which  is  called  there  the  blood 
of  the  covenant,  was  sprinkled  not  only  upon  the  altar,  to  show  that 
God  was  engaged  to  bless,  but  sprinkled  half  upon  the  people,  to  show 
they  were  engaged  to  obey  ;  there  was  a  confirmation  of  that  promise 
made  to  God,  '  All  that  the  Lord  hath  commanded  us,  that  will  we 
do.'  Well,  now,  if  God  thought  such  a  course  necessary  and  profitable 
for  us,  certainly  we  may  upon  occasion  use  the  like  means  for  our  con 
firmation,  for  our  strengthening  in  the  work  of  obedience.  That  there 
is  such  a  vow  expressed  or  implied  in  every  prayer  may  be  easily 
made  good  in  the  whole  tenor  of  our  Christianity  ;  therefore  certainly 
it  is  lawful  so  to  do,  to  make  our  duty  more  urgent  and  explicit  upon 
our  souls,  by  solemn  vow  and  serious  oath  of  dedication  of  ourselves 
to  God's  use  and  service. 

[2.]  The  practice  of  the  saints,  who  have  publicly  and  privately 
engaged  themselves  to  God,  do  show  the  lawfulness  of  it.  Public 
instances :  2  Chron.  xv.  12-14,  'They  entered  into  a  covenant  to  seek 
the  Lord  God  of  their  fathers,  with  all  their  heart  and  soul ;  and  they 
sware  unto  the  Lord/  &c.  So  in  Josiah's  time :  2  Chron.  xxxiv.  31, 
'  And  the  king  stood  in  his  place,  and  made  a  covenant  before  the 
Lord  to  walk  after  the  Lord,  and  keep  his  commandments,'  &c.  So 
Neh.  x.  29,  '  They  entered  into  an  oath  to  walk  in  God's  laws.'  And 
for  private  oaths,  we  have  David's  instance  here  in  the  text ;  and  Job 

VOL.  VIII.  F 


82  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEE.  CXIV. 

xxxi.  1,  '  I  made  covenant  with  mine  eyes/  He  had  bound  himself 
by  a  holy  vow  and  purpose  to  guard  his  senses,  and  take  heed  his 
heart  did  not  take  fire  by  the  gazing  of  his  eye,  that  it  was  not  inflamed 
with  lust  and  sin. 

2.  That  it  is  convenient  so  to  do. 

[1.]  To  answer  God's  love  and  condescension  to  us  in  the  covenant. 
God  thinks  he  can  never  be  bound  fast  enough  to  us,  and  therefore 
interposeth  by  an  oath.  An  oath  is  properly  conversant  about  a 
doubtful  matter,  of  which  there  is  some  question  or  scruple,  which 
cannot  otherwise  be  decided  ;  then  the  law  saith,  he  should  give  his 
oath  to  his  neighbour.  Why  then  doth  the  Lord  swear  ?  Is  there 
any  doubtfulness  in  his  promises  ?  No  ;  the  apostle  saith,  Heb.  vi.  18, 
the  Lord  swears,  being  willing  over  and  above  to  give  '  the  heirs  of 
promise '  ample  satisfaction.  Now  for  God,  that  cannot  lie,  and  whose 
word  is  above  all  assurance,  to  stoop  to  us,  and  put  himself  to  an  oath, 
certainly  this  should  work  upon  our  hearts,  and  draw  from  us  some 
answerable  return  on  our  part,  there  being  great  and  visible  danger  of 
our  breaking  with  God,  none  of  God's  breaking  with  us  ;  therefore, 
that  we  may  not  play  fast  and  loose  with  him,  we  should  come  under 
this  engagement  to  him  of  vow  and  public  promise  to  God. 

[2.]  To  testify  our  affection  to  his  service,  we  should  put  ourselves 
under  the  most  high  and  sacred  bonds  that  can  be  found  out. 
Many  have  some  slight  and  wandering  motions  towards  God,  and  cold 
purposes  of  serving  him,  which  soon  vanish,  and  come  to  nothing  ;  but 
now  it  argueth  the  heart  is  more  thoroughly  bent  and  set  towards  God, 
and  that  we  have  a  deep  sense  of  our  duty,  when  we  seriously  confirm 
our  purpose  by  a  vow  and  holy  oath.  There  are  divers  sorts  of  men 
in  the  world,  some  that  are  of  that  spirit  as  to  break  all  bonds,  cast 
away  all  cords,  and  think  they  can  never  be  loose  enough  in  point  of 
religion,  Ps.  ii.  3.  They  seek  to  deface  and  blot  out  of  their  conscience 
the  natural  sense  which  they  have  of  religion  and  of  their  duty  to  God, 
and  so  give  up  themselves  headlong  to  all  manner  of  impiety.  There 
are  others  have  some  cold  approbation  of  the  way  of  God,  and  which 
manifests  itself  by  some  faint,  weak,  and  wavering  purposes,  and  slight 
attempts  upon  religion,  but  are  soon  discouraged,  and  never  come  to  a 
fixed  resolution,  or  serious  dedication  or  surrender  of  themselves  to 
the  Lord's  use.  Now,  a  gracious  heart  thinks  it  can  never  be  bound 
fast  enough  to  God,  therefore  doth  not  only  approve  the  ways  of  God, 
or  desire  to  walk  therein,  but  issues  forth  a  purpose,  a  practical  decree 
m  his  soul.  Besides  the  approbation  of  conscience,  there  is  a  desire 
of  heart,  _and  this  desire  backed  with  a  purpose,  and  this  promise 
backed  with  an  oath,  which  is  the  highest  way  of  obligation  ;  and 
thus  doth  he  dedicate  himself  to  the  Lord  and  his  service,  in  the 
strictest  way  of  expressing  his  consent,  for  an  oath  binds  more  than  a 
promise. 

3.  It  is  very  profitable  so  to  do,  because  of  our  backwardness,  lazi 
ness,  and  fickleness. 

[1.]  Because  of  our  backwardness  ;  we  need  to  thrust  forth  the  heart 
into  the  ways  of  obedience,  for  we  hang  off  from  God.  Though  we  are 
his  by  every  kind  of  right  and  title,  yet  we  are  very  slow  of  heart  to  do 
his  will,  and  therefore  an  oath  is  profitable  to  increase  the  sense  of  our 


VER.  106.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  83 

duty ;  a  threefold  cord  is  not  easily  br6ken.     Now  there  is  a  triple  tie 
and  bond  upon  a  man. 

(1.)  There  is  God's  natural  right  that  he  hath  over  us  and  to  our 
service,  the  sovereignty  and  dominion  that  he  hath  over  us.  We  are 
not  free  as  to  obedience  before  the  oath,  but  are  bound  by  creation ; 
for  God  hath  created  us,  not  only  as  he  created  other  things,  ultimately 
and  terminatively,  but  immediately,  for  his  service.  All  things  were 
created  for  his  glory,  so  that  ultimately  they  are  for  his  use  ;  but 
the  proper  end  and  use  wherefore  man  was  created  was  for  the  imme 
diate  service  of  God.  He  that  planteth  a  vine  expecteth  fruit  from  it. 
By  continual  preservation  ;  he  giveth  us  maintenance,  and  therefore 
justly  expecteth  service.  By  redemption,  as  having  bought  us  with  a 
dear  price,  1  Cor.  vi.  20.  From  all  which  there  resulteth  a  natural 
duty  which  we  owe  to  him  as  our  sovereign,  and  he  may  command  us 
what  he  will. 

(2.)  There  is  the  bond  of  voluntary  consent,  that  our  duty  may  be 
more  active  and  urging  upon  our  hearts.  God  doth  not  only  inter 
pose  his  own  authority  and  command  us  to  keep  his  laws  diligently, 
Ps.  cxix.  4,  but  requires  a  consent  on  the  creature's  part.  All  the 
treaties  and  tenders  of  grace  are  made  to  draw  us  to  this  consent,  that 
we  may  voluntarily  and  by  the  inclination  of  our  own  hearts  present  our 
selves  before  the  Lord,  and  yield  up  ourselves  to  his  service,  Rom.  vi.  13. 
(3.)  Besides  this  there  is  the  bond  of  an  oath,  which  is  the  strictest 
way  of  voluntary  resolution  and  highest  engagement  that  a  man  can 
make ;  therefore  when  the  heart  is  so  backward,  and  hangs  off  from 
God  and  duties  we  owe  to  him,  it  is  good  to  declare  our  assent  in  the 
most  solemn  way.  That  the  saints  have  made  use  of  purposes  thus 
solemnly  declared  in  case  of  backwardness  appears  in  scripture.  David, 
when  his  heart  was  shy  of  God's  presence,  and  had  sinned  away  his 
liberty  and  peace,  and  so  could  not  endure  to  come  to  God,  what  course 
doth  he  take?  He  issues  forth  a  practical  decree  in  his  soul,  and 
binds  his  heart  by  a  fixed  purpose  that  he  would  come  to  God,  Ps. 
xxxii.  5.  So  Acts  xi.  23 ;  he  exhorteth  them  with  full  purpose  of 
heart  to  draw  nigh  to  God ;  it  should  be  the  fixed  resolution  of  the 
soul.  And  Jer.  xxx.  21,  'Who  is  this  that  engaged  his  heart  to 
approach  unto  me  ?  saith  the  Lord.'  We  should  lay  the  strongest 
bonds  and  engagements  we  possibly  can,  whereby  God's  authority  may 
be  backed,  and  his  right  confirmed,  by  the  most  solemn  assent  that  we 
can  make. 

[2.]  In  regard  of  our  fickleness  and  inconstancy ;  we  are  slippery, 
off  and  on  with  God :  '  A  double-minded  man  is  unstable  in  all  his 
ways/  James  i.  8.  We  have  unsettled  hearts,  and  when  we  meet  with 
temptations  from  without  we  shall  soon  give  up  at  the  first  assault,  and 
so  be  now  for  God,  anon  for  Satan  ;  therefore  this  is  a  lawful  and  sanc 
tified  means  to  help  us  to  constancy.  Indeed,  before  we  come  to  this 
fixed  settled  purpose  we  lie  open  to  temptation ;  and  when  our  first 
heats  are  spent  we  tire  and  wax  weary  in  the  Lord's  service,  therefore 
we.  had  need  make  the  most  sacred  engagements  to  God,  that  we  may 
keep  to  God  and  persist  in  our  duty.  Now  a  solemn  oath  seems  to 
be  the  most  serviceable  for  this  use.  Why  ?  For  it  implies  a  severe 
and  dreadful  imprecation.  In  an  oath  God  is  not  only  invoked  as  a 


g4  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiR.  CXIV. 

witness  but  as  a  judge.  We  appeal  to  his  omnisciency  for  the  sincerity 
of  our  hearts  in  making  promise,  and  to  his  vindictive  power  as  a 
iudge  if  we  shall  act  contrary  to  what  we  have  sworn.  Saith  Plutarch, 
JBvery  oath  implies  a  curse,  or  a  desire  of  vengeance,  in  case  of  the 
breach  of  that  oath ;  therefore  it  is  said,  Neh.  x.  29,  '  They  entered 
into  a  curse  to  walk  in  God's  law ;'  that  is,  a  curse  in  case  of  dis 
obedience.  And  this  was  supposed  to  be  the  meaning  of  that  rite  by 
which  they  were  wont  to  confirm  their  covenants.  Jer.  xxxiv.  18, 
when  the  "calf  was  cut  in  twain  they  did  as  it  were  devote  them 
selves  thus  to  be  cut  in  twain  and  torn  in  pieces,  and  to  be  destroyed 
as  that  creature  was,  if  they  violated  the  covenant  thus  solemnly  sworn  ; 
and  though  this  imprecation  or  execration  should  not  be  expressed, 
yet  every  promissory  oath  necessarily  implies  a  curse  in  case  of  unfaith 
fulness.  Well,  now,  this  is  a  good  means  to  keep  us  constant  when 
we  have  bound  ourselves  to  God  upon  such  strict  terms;  therefore 
some  derive  op/co?  from  etjoya),  to  hedge,  because  it  is  as  a  hedge  to 
keep  us  within  the  compass  of  our  duty,  and  confirm  our  hearts  in  that 
which  is  good.  Well,  then,  because  of  our  fickleness  it  is  not  enough 
to  leave  the  soul  to  the  mere  bonds  of  duty,  but  confirm  our  resolu 
tion  by  an  oath.  I  may  illustrate  this  by  that  passage,  when  Hooper 
the  blessed  martyr  was  at  the -stake,  and  the  officers  came  to  fasten 
him  to  it,  saith  he,  Let  me  alone ;  God  that  hath  called  me  hither,  he 
will  keep  me  from  stirring ;  and  yet,  because  I  am  but  flesh  and  blood, 
I  am  willing ;  tie  me  fast,  lest  I  stir.  So  we  may  say  in  this  case, 
though  the  authority  of  God  commanding  his  right  in  us  and  sove 
reignty  over  us  is  reason  enough  to  enforce  the  duty  we  owe  to  him, 
and  bind  the  heart  and  sway  the  conscience,  yet  because  of  the  weak 
ness  of  our  hearts  we  should  make  this  bond  the  more  urging  upon  us 
by  a  solemn  consent,  thus  ratified  and  confirmed  by  the  solemnity  of 
an  oath,  vow,  or  promise  made  to  God. 

[3.]  It  will  be  very  profitable  because  of  our  laziness ;  by  resolution  we 
are  quickened  to  more  seriousness  and  diligence.  When  a  man  hath 
the  bond  of  an  oath  upon  him,  then  he  will  make  a  business  of  religion, 
whereas  otherwise  he  will  make  but  a  sport  and  a  thing  he  only 
regards  by  the  by.  Oh  !  but  when  his  heart  is  fixed  this  is  the  thing 
he  will  look  after,  Ps.  xxvii.  4.  When  our  heart  is  set  upon  a  thing 
we  follow  it  close ;  and  when- it  is  so  set  upon  a  thing  as  that  we  have 
bound  ourselves  by  the  strictest  bonds  we  can  lay  upon  our  heart,  it 
will  engage  us  more  seriously. 

Doct.  2.  That  this  help  of  an  oath  or  holy  vow  should  be  used  in  a 
matter  lawful,  weighty,  necessary. 

1.  In  a  matter  lawful.  There  is  a  vow  and  covenanting  in  that 
which  is  evil ;  as  those  that  '  bound  themselves  with  a  curse  that  they 
would  not  eat  nor  drink  until  they  had  killed  Paul/  Acts  xxiii.  12. 
And  many  will  make^  a  vow  and  promise  with  themselves  that  they 
will  never  forgive  their  neighbour  such  an  offence.  Arid  we  read  of  a 
covenant  made  with  death  and  hell :  whether  it  be  meant  of  the  king 
of  Babylon  or  no,  as  he  is  called  death  and  hell  by  the  prophet,  some 
evil  covenant  is  intended  thereby ;  and  thus  a  vow  is  made  the  bond 
of  iniquity,  and  must  be  broken  rather  than  kept,  or  indeed  it  must 
not  be  made.  To  vow  that  which  is  sinful,  this  is  like  the  hire  of  a 


VER.  106.J  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  85 

whore,  or  the  price  of  a  dog  offered  to  the  Lord  for  a  vow,  Deut. 
xxiii.  18. 

2.  It  must  be  in  a  matter  weighty,  necessary,  and  acceptable  unto 
God.  There  are  two  things  come  under  our  vow  and  oath : — 

[1.]  That  which  is  our  necessary  work,  religious  obedience  to  God 
in  the  way  of  his  commandment ;  for  this  is  not  a  rash  and  unneces 
sary  vow,  but  that  we  were  sworn  to  in  baptism ;  this  is  that  which 
David  promiseth  here,  '  I  have  sworn,  and  I  will  perform  it,  to  keep 
thy  righteous  judgments.'  And  this  is  the  vow  which  Jacob  made, 
though  there  was  something  of  a  particularity  he  adds  to  it,  Gen. 
xxviii.  20,  21 ;  but  the  substance  of  it  was  this,  '  If  the  Lord  will  be 
with  me,  and  keep  me  in  this  way  that  I  go,  then  shall  the  Lord  be 
my  God/  There  are  many  that  will  vow  and  promise  trifles,  and  so 
infringe  their  own  Christian  liberty,  and  needlessly  bind  themselves 
in  chains  of  their  own  making,  where  God  hath  left  them  free.  This 
help  is  for  the  weighty  things  of  Christianity,  not  for  by-matters. 
Those  monkish  by-laws  have  filled  the  world  with  superstition,  not  with 
religion,  while  they  have  been  only  conversant  about  some  indifferent 
things,  as  pilgrimages,  abstinences  from  meats  and  marriages,  wherein 
they  place  the  height  of  Christian  perfection. 

[2.]  Helps  to  obedience.  Such  things  as  we  shall  find  to  be  helps, 
and  do  conduce  to  the  removal  of  impediments,  such  should  come  under 
a  vow  and  solemn  promise  to  God:  Job  xxxi.  1,  '  I  made  a  covenant 
with  my  eyes  ; '  that  was  a  help  to  the  preserving  of  his  chastity,  thai 
he  would  not  allow  himself  to  gaze,  to  take  a  view  of  the  beauty  of 
others.  And  the  apostle,  when  it  was  for  the  glory  of  God,  makes  a 
vow  or  kind  of  solemn  promise  that  he  would  take  no  maintenance  im 
Achaia,  2  Cor.  xi,  10 ;  he  solemnly  binds  himself,  that  he  might  not 
hinder  the  progress  of  the  gospel.  So  when  we  find  our  heart  ready 
to  betray  us  by  this  or  that  evil  occasion,  we  may  in  this  case  inter 
pose  a  vow  and  promise,  but  then  with  this  caution,  that  we  do  not 
unreasonably  destroy  our  Christian  liberty,  and  so  occasion  a  snare  to 
our  souls,  and  that  we  do  not  think  this  to  be  a  perfect  cure  of  these 
distempers,  while  we  neglect  the  main  things ;  as  many  will  make  a 
vow  to  play  no  more  at  such  a  game,  or  drink  no  more  at  such  a 
house,  or  use  such  a  creature,  or  come  into  such  a  particular  company, 
and  so  place  all  their  religion  in  these  things  ;  this  is  but  like  cutting 
off  the  branches  when  the  root  remains,  or  stopping  one  hole  in  a 
leaky  or  ruinous  ship  and  vessel,  when  everywhere  it  is  ready  to  let  in 
water  upon  us,  and  to  be  broken  in  pieces.  Therefore  when  you  rest 
in  those  by-matters,  without  resolving  to  cleave  to  God  in  a  course  of 
obedience,  it  but  like  mending  a  hole  in  the  wall  of  a  house  when  the 
whole  building  is  on  fire,  or  troubling  ourselves  with  a  sore  finger 
when  we  are  languishing  of  a  consumption ;  it  is  but  stopping  this 
or  that  particular  sin  when  the  whole  soul  lies  under  the  power  and 
slavery  of  the  kingdom  of  Satan. 

Object.  But  here  is  a  doubt  may  arise,  How  can  I  promise  to  keep 
God's  law,  since  it  is  not  in  my  power  to  do  it  exactly?  it  is  impossible. 

Ans.  I.  When  David  saith,  '  I  have  sworn,'  &c.,  he  speaks  not 
from  a  presumption  of  his  own  strength,  but  only  declareth  the  sense 
of  his  duty,  and  useth  his  oath  as  a  sanctified  means  to  bind  his  heart 


86  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXIV. 

to  God ;  and  therefore  it  is  not  to  exclude  the  power  of  God's  grace, 
or  to  presume  of  his  own  strength  :  God's  assistance  is  best  expected  in 
God's  way. 

2.  Such  vows  and  promises  they  are  always  to  be  interpreted  to  be 
made  in  the  sense  of  the  covenant  of  grace,  for  no  particular  voluntary 
or  accessory  covenant  of  ours  can  take  away  the  general  covenant 
wherein  we  stand  engaged  to  God,  but  rather  it  must  be  included  in  it. 
Therefore  when  David  saith,  '  I  will  keep  thy  righteous  judgments/ 
he  means  according  to  the  sense  of  the  covenant  of  grace,  that  is,  ex 
pecting  help  for  duties  and  pardon  for  failings. 

[1.]  As  expecting  help  from  God,  for  so  the  new  covenant  gives 
strength  to  observe  what  it  requires.  Lex  jubet,  evangelium  juvat — 
the  law  enforceth  duty,  the  covenant  of  grace  helps  us  to  perform  the 
duty  required  of  us.  The  gospel  it  is  a  '  ministration  of  the  Spirit/ 
2  Cor.  iii.  8,  and  therefore  promissory  oaths,  according  to  the  sense 
of  the  new  covenant,  are  made  with  a  confidence  upon  the  Lord's 
strength  and  assistance. 

[2.]  Seeking  pardon  for  his  failings.  Infirmities  may  stand  with 
the  covenant  of  grace,  provided  we  crave  mercy  and  recover  ourselves 
by  repentance,  and  so  make  no  final  breach  with  God  ;  therefore  this 
is  a  keeping  according  to  the  measure  of  grace  received,  and  as  human 
frailty  will  permit. 

Briefly,  then,  when  are  sins  to  be  looked  upon  as  infirmities,  and 
not  as  perjuries  and  breach  of  covenant  ? 

Ans.  When  we  would  not  voluntarily  yield  to  the  least  sin  ;  but  in 
case  of  great  sin,  we  grow  more  watchful,  more  humble,  more  holy  ; 
when  our  falls  are  such  as  David's  when  he  had  fallen  foully :  Ps. 
Ivi.  6,  '  Now  thou  shalt  make  me  to  know  wisdom/  When  upon  our 
failings  we  are  more  ashamed  of  ourselves,  more  afraid  of  our  weak 
ness,  more  earnest  to  renew  our  former  resolutions,  more  careful  to 
wait  upon  God  for  grace  to  perform  what  he  hath  required  of  us, 
more  watchful,  more  circumspect ;  when  we  begin  to  grow  wise  by 
our  own  smarting,  in  such  cases  an  oath  is  not  broken.  Look,  as- 
every  failing  of  the  wife  doth  not  dissolve  the  marriage  covenant,  so 
every  failing  on  our  part  doth  not  dissolve  the  covenant  between  God 
and  us  ;  and  therefore,  though  there  will  be  some  infirmities,  but  yet 
when  we  are  careful  to  sue  out  our  pardon  in  the  name  of  Christ 
Jesus,  and  you  shall  by  your  failings  be  more  watchful,  circumspect, 
then  we  keep  the  covenant  in  a  gospel  sense. 

Doct.  3.  That  when  we  have  sworn  obedience  to  God,  we  must 
religiously  perform  and  observe  what  we  have  sworn  to  God. 

So  Ps.  Ixxvi.  11,  'Vow  and  pay  unto  the  Lord.'  When  we  come 
under  the  bond  of  a  vow,  we  must  be  careful  to  make  payment ;  it  is 
a  binding  upon  the  heart.  See  how  it  is  expressed,  Num.  xxx.  2,  '  If 
a  man  vow  a  vow  unto  the  Lord,  or  swear  an  oath  to  bind  his  soul 
with  a  bond,  he  shall  not  break  his  word.'  When  we  have  bound 
ourselves  with  a  bond,  that  is,  when  we  have  increased  our  bonds  (for 
the  ingeminating  words  in  the  Hebrew  doth  exceedingly  increase  the 
sense).  When  a  man  is  bound  upon  a  bond  he  should  not  play  fast 
and  loose  with  God,  but  be  very  careful  to  perform  what  he  hath 
sworn.  God,  on  his  part,  hath  sworn  to  the  covenant,  and  he  is  con- 


VEK.  106.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  87 

stant  in  all  his  promises,  and  he  certainly  expects  the  like  constancy 
from  us,  especially  when  we  are  so  deeply  bound,  not  only  by  his  laws  and 
obligation  of  his  mercies,  but  by  the  solemn  consent  of  our  own  vows. 
We  have  bound  ourselves,  then,  to  keep  them,  whether  we  will  or  no. 
Now,  what  reasons  are  there  why  we  must  perform  ? 

1.  The  same  motives  that  inclined  us  at  first  to  take  our  oath  should 
persuade  us  to  keep  it  whatever  falls  out.     After  trial  we  shall  see  no 
cause  to  repent  of  our  resolution,  for  God  is  ever  the  same  that  he 
was,   and   his    commands  are   ever  the  same   in  all  his   righteous 
judgments,  holy,  just,  good,  profitable  to  the  creature.     Christians  ! 
if  we  meet  with  any  change  in  our  outward  condition,  any  new  im 
pediments,  oppositions,  and  discouragements  that  we  were  not  aware 
of  when  we  first  entered  into  our  oath,  it  was  our  rashness,  for  we 
should  sit  down  and  count  the  charges,  we  should  allow  for  it.      The 
first  article  of  the  new  covenant  was  that  we  should  deny  ourselves, 
Mat.  xvi.  24 ;  and  after  vows  we  should  not  make  inquiry,  but  before, 
Prov.  xx.  25.     When  we  are  bound  we  must  take  our  lot  and  hazard, 
and  whatever  comes  we  must  perform  them  to  God. 

2.  Because  our  oath  is  a  further  aggravation  of  our  sin,  therefore 
better  never  swear  than  not  to  keep  it :  Eccles.  v.  5,  '  Better  it  is  that 
thou  shouldest  not  vow,  than  vow  and  not  pay.'     God  is  mocked  by 
an  oath  and  a  covenant  when  it  is  not  observed.     A  man  that  refuseth 
to  be  listed  doth  not  meet  with  the  like  punishment  as  he  that  runs 
from  his  colours;  so  he  that  never  came  under  the  oath  of  God, 
doth  not  sin  so  much  as  he  that  hath  sworn  to  his  covenant.     That 
which  is  but  simple  fornication  in  the  Gentiles,  in  Christians  it  is 
adultery,  breach  of  vow.     Indeed,  in  things  that  are  absolutely  and  in 
dispensably  necessary  to  salvation,  we  are  bound  to  consent.     Ay ! 
but  when  a  consent  thus  solemnly  made  is  broken,  it  aggravates  the 
sin ;  but  when  we  shall  be   like  the  man  in  the  Gospel  that  was 
possessed  with  the    devil,  whom  no  chains   could  hold  fast,  when 
neither  the  bond  of  duty,  nor  the  bonds  of  our  own  oaths  and  engage 
ments  will  hold  us,  but  we  break  all  cords,  the  greater  is  our  rebellion 
and  disobedience  to  God. 

3.  Therefore  must  we  perform  the  obedience  that  we  have  sworn  to 
God,  because  God  hath  ever  been  a  severe  and  just  avenger  of  breach 
of  covenants.     By  way  of  argument,  a  minori  ad  majus,  those  made 
with  man ;  and  therefore  certainly  he  will  avenge  his  covenant  so 
solemnly  made  with  himself,  and  everywhere  in  scripture  you  will  find 
it  is  propounded  as  a  sure  mark  of  vengeance.     When  one  man  hath 
sworn  to  another,  and  hath  called  upon  the  most  high  God  to  con 
firm  that  covenant  that  he  makes  with  him,  if  there  be  a  failure,  a 
trespass,  though  it  be  in  point  of  omission,  God  hath  avenged  that 
covenant.     An  instance  for  this  you  have  Amos  i.  9,  '  For  three  trans 
gressions  of  Tyrus,  and  for  four,  I  will  not  turn  away  the  punishment 
thereof ;  because  they  delivered  up  the  whole  captivity  to  Edom,  and 
remembered  not  the  brotherly  covenant.'      Tyrus  and  Judah  they 
were  in  covenant  one  with  another,  a  mutual  league  offensive  and  de 
fensive  that  were   solemnly  sworn.     Now    though  God  had  many 
causes  of  his  vengeance,  and  many  quarrels  with  Tyrus  because  of 
their  idolatries,  but  chiefly  because  of  breach  of  covenant,  they  forgat 


88  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiR.  CXV. 

the  friendship  that  was  between  the  children  of  Israel  and  Judah,  and 
did  not  assist  the  people  of  Judah  as  they  should,  and  were  bound  to 
do,  but  suffered  them  to  be  led  into  captivity,  and  spoiled  by  the 
Edomites  and  other  nations.  So  for  a  sin  of  commission  ;  it  is  spoken 
of  as  a  mark  of  sore  vengeance  :  Ps.  Iv.  20,  'He  hath  put  forth  his  hand 
against  such  as  be  at  peace  with  him;  he  hath  broken  his  covenant/ 
In  those  federal  transactions  and  oaths  that  pass  between  man  and  man, 
God  takes  himself  to  be  specially  interested,  and  will  see  that  the 
breach  of  them  be  severely  punished.  The  next  step  is,  not  only 
between  equals,  but  when  a  covenant  hath  been  made  with  servants 
and  poor  underlings,  and  would  not  set  them  free  at  the  year  of  jubilee, 
see  how  severely  God  threatens  them,  Jer.  .xxxiv.  16-18,  for  the 
breach  of  it ;  nay  a  covenant  made  with  enemies,  Ezek.  xvii.  18,  19. 
Nay,  carry  it  one  gradation  higher,  though  the  covenant  were  extorted 
by  fraud,  as  the  covenant  made  with  the  Gibeonites,  Josh.  ix.  ID, 
20.  They  were  part  of  the  Canaanites,  and  God  severely  enjoined 
the  Israelites  that  they  should  cut  off  all  those  nations ;  yet  when 
they  craftily  got  them  into  covenant,  when  this  people  were  wronged 
by  Saul,  the  Lord  takes  notice  of  it,  2  Sam.  xxi.  1-3.  See  how  God 
judgeth  for  them ;  there  were  three  years'  famine  and  pestilence, 
which  was  not  appeased  until  Saul's  sons  were  hanged  before  the  sun. 
Now  the  Lord  hath  ever  been  such  a  severe  avenger  of  an  oath 
between  man  and  man,  between  his  people  and  their  servants,  between 
his  people  and  their  enemies,  and  when  extorted  from  them,  certainly 
in  such  a  solemn  covenant  as  he  hath  made  between  us  and  himself, 
and  that  in  things  absolutely  necessary,  in  things  enjoined  before  the 
covenant  was  made,  it  is  not  safe  to  break  with  God.  Ananias, 
when  he  vowed  a,  thing  to  the  Lord,  though  he  was  free  before,  God 
strikes  him  dead.  It  is  not  free  with  us,  whether  we  will  obey,  yea 
or  nay,  what  is  enjoined  upon  us  ;  therefore  when  we  will  break  with 
God,  what  shall  we  expect  but  that  he  should  avenge  the  quarrel  of 
his  covenant  ? 


SERMON  CXY. 

/  have  sworn,  and  I  will  perform  it,  that  I  will  keep  tliy  righteous 
judgments.  —  VER.  106. 

DOCT.  4.  I  now  come  to  the  fourth  point,  that  our  oath  of  obedience  to 
God  should  be  often  revived  and  renewed  upon  us. 

David  recognises  and  takes  notice  of  the  oath  wherein  he  was  bound 
to  God,  and  here  he  renews  it  again,  '  I  will  perform  it.'  It  should 
be  so : — 

1.  Because  we  are  apt  to  forget,  and  not  have  such  a  lively  sense  of 
a  thing  long  since  done,  so  that  we  either  break  the  oath,  or  perform 
our  duty  very  negligently.  Our  old  baptismal  covenant  we  are  apt  to 
forget  it,  especially  by  being  under  the  bond  of  it  in  innocency,  and 
dedicated  to  God  by  the  act  of  another,  viz.,  our  parents.  The  apostle 
instanceth  in  those  that  were  baptized  in  grown  years,  2  Peter  i.  9 ; 


YER.  106.]  (SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  89 

he  intimates  they  were  apt  to  '  forget  they  were  purged  from  their  old 
sins/  I  suppose  it  relates  to  baptism  in  that  clause,  forgotten  his 
baptismal  vow  and  obligation  of  renouncing  his  sin,  and  giving  himself 
to  the  service  of  the  Lord ;  and  therefore  there  should  be  a  purpose  to 
revive  it  upon  our  heart,  and  the  obligation  should  ever  and  anon  be 
made  new  and  fresh  to  quicken  us  to  our  duty. 

2.  This  forgetfulness  it  will  cost  us  dear,  it  will  be  an  occasion  of 
many  and  great  troubles.  Jacob  had  forgotten  his  vows  of  building 
an  altar  at  Bethel ;  God  quickens  him  to  his  duty  by  sharp  affliction : 
Gen.  xxxv.  1,  '  Arise,  go  up  to  Bethel/  &c.  God  was  fain  to  quicken 
him  with  a  scourge.  Samson,  when  his  vow  was  broken,  how  many 
dangers  is  he  thrown  into  ?  taken,  and  bound,  and  made  a  sport  of 
by  the  Philistines.  God  will  rub  up  the  memories  of  his  servants 
by  some  sharp  and  severe  dispensations  of  his  providence,  when  they 
are  not  sensible  of  their  vow  arid  faith  plighted  to  God.  Never  forget 
your  obligation  to  God :  Deut.  iv.  23,  *  Take  heed  to  yourselves,  lest 
ye  forget  the  covenant  of  the  Lord  your  God/ 

Quest.  But  when  should  we  renew  our  covenant,  or  our  oath  of 
allegiance  to  God  ? 

1.  Partly  when  we  stand  in  need  of  some  special  favour  from  God, 
or  when  we  draw  nigh  to  him  in  some  special  duty ;  as  Jacob,  when 
God  manifested  himself  to  him,  and  he  had  communion  with  him  at 
Bethel,  then  he  vowed  a  vow,  Gen.  xxviii.  21.    So  Num.  xxi.  2,  Israel 
vowed  a  vow  to  the  Lord  when  they  were  in  some  distress ;  and  Ps. 
Ixvi.  14,  '  I  will  pay  the  vows  of  my  distress,  which  I  made  when  I  was 
in  trouble/ 

2.  Again,  after  some  special  mercy,  when  under  some  love  pang  of 
spiritual  rejoicing,  and  we  have  a  deep  sense  of  God's  love  to  us,  or  a 
new  pledge  of  his  love  to  us  either  in  spiritual  or  temporal  benefits, 
and  our  soul  melted  out  towards  God  in  acts  of  spiritual  rejoicing :  Ps. 
cxvi.  8,  9,  '  For  thou  hast  delivered  my  soul  from  death,  mine  eyes 
from  tears,  and  my  feet  from  falling  :  I  will  walk  before  the  Lord  in 
the  land  of  the  living/     And  when  God  breaks  the  force  and  power  of 
enemies,  when  he  makes  the  wrath  of  man  turn  to  his  praise,  then  Ps. 
Ixxvi.  11,  'Vow  and  pay  unto  the  Lord  your  God/     Those  pagan 
mariners  they  made  their  vows  to  God  when  the  Lord  delivered  them 
from  the  storm,  Jonah  i.  16. 

3.  When  all  things  go  to  ruin,  when  the  state  of  religion  is  collapsed, 
either  in  a  nation  or  in  our  hearts,  after  some  notable  breaches  of  cove 
nant  by  a  people,  or  by  a  person,  and  we  have  warped  from  God,  seem 
to  have  wrested  ourselves  out  of  his  arms,  then  to  bind  ourselves  to  him 
again,  and  to  renew  our  vows ;  for  upon  this  occasion  doth  Josiah  enter 
into  covenant  with  God,  and  '  cause  the  people  to  stand  to  the  oath/ 
2  Chron.  xxxiv. 

4.  When  we  are  to  draw  nigh  to  God  in  the  use  of  the  seals  of  the 
new  covenant,  when  a  man  is  to  revive  his  own  right  in  the  covenant 
of  grace  ;  so  when  we  are  to  draw  nigh  to  God  in  the  Lord's  Supper, 
which  is  the  New  Testament  in  Christ's  blood,  which  is  the  seal  of  the 
covenant,  then  we  should  solemnly  bind  ourselves  to  the  duty  of  it, 
and  swear  to  the  Lord  anew. 

Use.  To  press  you  with  all  earnestness  to  enter  into  covenant  with 


90  SEEMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXY. 

God,  and  then  to  keep  it  and  make  it  good ;  to  be  sensible  of  the  vow 
of  God  upon  you,  and  to  keep  firm  in  the  bond  of  the  holy  oath. 

First,  To  enter  into  solemn  obligation  to  God,  a  purpose  of  holy  and 
close  walking  with  God.     I  shall  press  you  hereunto : — 

1.  God's  laws  are  holy,  just,  and  good,  therefore  certainly  we  should 
not  be  backward  to  swear  to  him  ;  because  we  cannot  bring  ourselves 
seriously  to  give  up  ourselves  to  the  Lord,  they  are  righteous  judg 
ments.     Suppose  you  could  be  free,  yet  subjection  to  God  were  to  be 
chosen  before  liberty;  therefore,  when  Christ  invites  us  to  take  his 
yoke  upon  ourselves,  he  doth  not  so  much  urge  his  authority,  '  All 
things  are  given  to  me  of  my  Father,'  therefore  come  to  me ;  but  he 
urgeth  the  sweetness  of  obedience,  and  the  pleasure  we  may  find  in 
coming  to  him:  Mat.  xi.  29,  'My  yoke  is  easy,  and  my  burden  is 
light.'     If  a  man  were  free  to  choose  whether  he  would  be  for  God  or 
no,  yet  the  perfection  or  well-being  of  the  reasonable  nature  being  so 
much  concerned  in  obedience  to  God,  you  should  choose  those  laws 
before  liberty.     What  doth  the  Lord  require  of  you  ?     To  be  holy, 
just,  temperate,  often  praying,  and  praising  his  name ;  and  are  these 
things  hard  ?     A  man  is  not  a  man  if  he  do  not  yield  to  these  things, 
Titus  ii.  12.     All  our  duties  are  comprised  in  those  three  adverbs, 
'  soberly,  righteously,  godly.'     By  being  sober,  a  man  delights  himself; 
and  by  being  just  and  righteous,  a  man  delights  others  :  without  this, 
the  world  would  be  but  like  a  den  of  thieves ;  and  by  being  godly,  he 
doth  delight  God.     If  we  had  only  leave  to  love  God  and  serve  him, 
much  more  when  we  have  a  command  to  serve  him,  to  be  often  in  com 
munion  with  him,  it  is  the  happiest  life  in  the  world.    There  is  a  great 
deal  of  pleasure,  sweetness,  and  rational  contentment  doth  accompany 
the  exercise  of  these  three  graces,  sobriety,  righteousness,  godliness. 

2.  We  are  already  obliged  by  God's  command,  so  that  whether  you 
resolve  or  no,  you  are  bound.     There  are  some  things  that  are  left  free 
in  our  own  power  before  the  vow  passeth  upon  us  ;  as,  Acts  v.  4,  '  Was 
it  not  in  thy  power  ? '     Ay !  but  there  are  other  things  that  are  not  in 
our  power.    God's  right  over  the  creature  is  valid,  whether  he  consent 
to  it  or  no  ;  as  the  natural  relation  doth  infer  and  enforce  duty  without 
consent.     This  is  the  difference  between  voluntary  and  natural  rela 
tions.     Look,  as  a  father  is  a  father,  whether  the  child  own  him  or  no 
in  that  quality  and  relation,  and  without  his  consent ;  a  father  as  a 
father  hath  a  right  to  command  the  child.     But  there  are  duties  that 
depend  upon  our  consent,  as  in  the  choice  of  a  husband  or  master.    So 
here  is  a  natural  relation  between  God  and  us,  he  our  creator,  we  his 
creatures,  he  our  superior,  and  we  his  inferiors,  by  reason  of  his  autho 
rity  and  eternal  right;  and  God  may  urge  this,  '  I  am  the  Lord/  though 
he  do^not  urge  that,  '  I  am  the  Lord  thy  God.'    Sometimes,  '  I  am  the 
Lord/  Lev.  xviii.  5,  his  own  sovereignty ;  sometimes,  '  The  Lord  thy 
God/  ver.  2  ;  which  argues  our  choice  and  consent  to  choose  him  for 
our  God  ;  therefore  thou  art  not  free. 

3.  Actual  consent  and  resolution  on  our  part  is  required,  that  the 
sense  of  our  duty  may  be  more  explicit  upon  our  heart :  2  Chron.  xxx. 
8,  'Yield  yourselves  to  the  Lord.'     In  the  original,  Give  the  Lord  the 
hand ;  that  is,  strike  hands  with  him,  enter  into  covenant  with  him, 
say,  Lord,  I  will  be  for  thee,  and  thou  for  me ;  choose  him  for  your 


VEE.  106.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  91 

portion,  and  give  up  yourselves  to  be  the  Lord's  people  :  Kom.  xii.  1, 
'  Present  your  bodies  a  living  sacrifice,  holy,  acceptable  unto  God, 
which  is  your  reasonable  service.'  He  alludes  to  the  eucharistical 
sacrifices.  All  our  offerings  must  not  be  sin-offerings,  but  thank-offer 
ings  ;  so  present  yourselves.  Under  the  law,  a  man  he  brought  his 
thank-offering,  and  laid  his  hand  upon  it,  '  Lord,  I  am  thine/  It  was 
implied  in  your  baptism,  and  it  is  but  reason  that  you  should  own  your 
baptismal  vow  when  you  come  to  years  of  discretion.  A  bargain 
that  is  made  for  an  heir  during  his  nonage,  it  is  confirmed  by  him 
when  he  comes  to  age.  You  were  dedicated  to  God's  service  when  you 
were  young,  and  knew  not  what  you  did ;  now  when  you  come  to  choose 
your  own  way,  and  at  years  of  discretion,  you  should  stand  to  what  was 
done  in  your  name  to  God;  therefore  there  must  be  a  serious  and 
solemn  consent  of  your  heart. 

4.  It  is  for  your  profit  to  choose  the  strictest  engagements ;  not  only 
to  approve  the  ways  of  God,  but  purpose ;  not  only  purpose,  but  put  it 
into  a  promise  or  declared  resolution ;  and  not  only  resolve,  but  bind 
this  resolution  by  an  oath.     Why  ?     For  you  have  more  reason  to 
expect  God's  assistance  this  way  than  any  other,  because  this  is  the 
appointed  means  practised  by  all  the  people  of  God  when  they  expected 
the  grace  of  the  covenant.     Surely  God's  blessing  is  best  expected  in 
his  own  way,  and  the  greatest  engagement  to  God  the  more  apt  to  hold 
us  to  our  duty  than  a  looser  engagement. 

5.  Consider  the  necessity  as  well  as  the  profit. 

[1.]  Laziness  is  the  cause  of  our  backwardness  and  hanging  off  from 
God.  We  are  loath  to  come  to  God,  are  off  and  on,  hang  between 
heaven  and  hell ;  we  have  many  loose  and  wavering  thoughts,  until  we 
come  to  a  firm  purpose  and  determination;  but  that  engageth  the 
heart — Jer.  xxx.  21,  '  Who  is  this  that  engageth  his  heart  to  draw  nigh 
to  me  ? ' — when  you  lay  a  command  upon  yourselves.  We  are  weak 
and  wavering  in  our  purposes  and  wishes,  but  it  puts  an  end  to  this 
when  we  come  once  to  a  full  and  firm  purpose :  Acts  xi.  23,  '  He 
exhorted  them  all,  that,  with  purpose  of  heart,  they  would  cleave  unto 
the  Lord.'  Austin,  in  his  Confessions,  tells  us  how  he  would  dally 
with  God,  and  how  long  he  struck l  in  the  new  birth,  until  he  was  re 
solved,  until  he  bound  himself  firmly  to  shake  off  all  his  carnal  courses, 
and  mind  the  business  of  religion. 

[2.]  Because  of  our  fickleness,  and  the  strength  of  temptations  that 
will  draw  us  off  from  God.  He  that  is  not  resolved  cannot  be  con 
stant  :  James  i.  8,  '  Tfye  double-minded  man  is  unstable  in  all  his 
ways/  Christians !  when  an  unconstant  and  rebelling  heart  meets 
with  temptation  without,  all  our  wishes  and  cold  purposes  will  come 
to  nothing,  but  we  shall  give  out  at  the  first  assault,  and  be  unstable 
in  all  our  ways ;  but  when  we  are  firmly  and  habitually  resolved,  then 
Satan  is  discouraged.  While  we  are  thinking  and  deliberating  what 
we  shall  do,  the  devil  hath  some  hope  of  us,  we  lie  open  to  temptation; 
but  when  he  seeth  the  bent  of  the  heart  is  fixed  and  settled,  and  we 
have  firmly  bound  ourselves  to  God,  his  hopes  are  gone.  He  that  is 
in  a  wavering  condition  is  easily  overborne  when  temptation  comes, 
but  a  fixed  man  is  safe.  Papers,  feathers,  and  things  that  lie  loose 

1  Qu.  '  stuck '  ?— ED. 


92  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CX1X.  [SEK.  CXV. 

upon  the  ground,  are  tossed  up  and  down  by  every  blast  and  puff  of 
wind,  but  those  things  that  are  fastened  to  the  ground,  though  the 
wind  blows  never  so  strongly,  they  remain.  Many  set  out  towards  the 
ways  of  salvation,  but  are  discouraged,  and  turn  back  again  to  a  course 
of  sin ;  but  when  you  solemnly  give  up  yourselves  to  God,  then  you 
will  not  have  so  many  temptations  as  before.  Look,  as  Naomi  was 
ever  dissuading  Kuth  that  she  should  not  be  a  companion  with  her  in 
her  sorrows,  but  go  back  to  her  own  country ;  but  when  she  saw  she 
was  resolved,  and  steadfastly  minded  to-  go  with  her,  then  she  left 
speaking  unto  her,  Ruth  i.  18.  Of  let  me  take  another  instance,  Acts 
xxi.  14.  The  disciples  were  persuading  Paul  that  he  should  not  go  to 
Jerusalem,  though  they  did  even  break  his  heart,  they  could  not  break 
his  purpose  ;  but  when  they  saw  that  he  was  so  set  that  he  went  bound 
in  the  spirit,  then  they  said,  *  The  will  of  the  Lord  be  done/  Thus  will 
tempters  be  discouraged  from  importuning  and  setting  upon  us  to 
draw  us  off  from  God,  when  once  our  bent  is  fixed.  By  resolution  we 
are  quickened  to  more  seriousness  and  diligence,  for  when  once  we 
come  under  the  bond  of  the  holy  oath,  the  awe  of  an  oath  will  still  be 
upon  us,  and  quicken  us  to  more  diligence  and  seriousness,  to  make  a 
business  of  religion,  whereas  otherwise  we  make  but  a  recreation  and 
sport  of  it,  and  but  a  business  by  the  by :  Ps.  xxvii.  4,  '  One  thing 
have  I  desired  of  the  Lord ;  that  will  I  seek  after/  When  we  have 
laid  firm  bonds  upon  ourselves,  this  makes  us  awe-ful,  serious,  and  reso 
lute  in  a  course  of  obedience. 

Thus  it  directeth  us  to  resolve.     For  the  manner  of  entering  :— 

1.  It  must  be  a  resolution  of  heart  rather  than  of  the  tongue :  Jer. 
xxx.  21,  'Who  is  this  that  engageth  his  heart  to  seek  the  Lord?' 
Acts  xi.  23,  '  He  exhorted  them,  that,  with  purpose  of  heart,  they 
would  cleave  unto  the  Lord/     Resolutions  are  not  determined  by  the 
tenor  of  our  language  so  much  as  by  the  bent  of  the  heart ;  therefore 
empty  promises  signify  nothing,  unless  they  be  the  result  of  our  very 
souls,  and  not  only  of  a  natural  conscience.     Deut,  v.  29,  the  people 
did  not  dissemble  certainly  when  the  Lord  appeared  to  them  by  the 
sound  of  a  trumpet  and  those  mighty  earthquakes ;  but  saith  the  Lord, 
'  Oh,  that  there  were  such  a  heart  in  them  to  fear  me  always  ! '    That 
there  were  a  heart,  and  such  a  heart ;  that  is,  that  this  were  not  merely 
the  result  of  an  awakened  conscience,  but  the  resolution  of  a  renewed 
heart.    So  Ps.  Ixxviii.  37,  '  Their  heart  was  not  right  with  him,  neither 
were  they  steadfast  in  his  covenant.'    Surely  they  did  not  dissemble  in 
their  distress,  but  their  heart  was  not  right  with  him  ;  that  is,  it  was 
not  a  sanctified  heart,  it  was  only  the  dictate  of  an  awakened  conscience 
for  the  present. 

2.  When  you  thus  engage  yourselves  to  God,  let  it  not  be  a  weak, 
broken,  but  full  resolution;  cold  wishes  are  easily  overcome  by  the  love 
of  the  world  and  a  half  purpose :  Acts  xxvi.  28,  '  Almost  thou  peiv 
suadest  me  to  be  a  Christian/     Carnal  men,  although  they  are  not 
converted,  yet  they  have  a  kind  of  half  turn,  almost,  but  not  altogether. 
Upon  a  lively  sermon,  or  in  sickness,  they  have  their  purposes  and 
wishes ;  but  it  is  not  a  full  strong  bent  of  heart,  and  love  must  be  a 
serious  bent :  1  Chron.  xxii.  19,  '  Now  set  your  heart  and  your  soul  to 
seek  the  Lord  your  God/ 


VEIL  106.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  93 

3.  It  must  not  be  a  wish,  but  a  serious  resolution,  such  as  is  advised, 
all  difficulties  well  weighed.     In  a  fit  and  pang  of  devotion  men  will 
resolve  for  God,  but  it  will  never  hold:  Josh.  xxiv.  19,  'Ye  cannot 
serve  the  Lord,  for  he  is  a  holy  God;  he  is  a  jealous  God,  he  will 
not  forgive  your  transgressions  nor  your  sins  ;'  and  therefore  you  must 
reckon  what  it  is  to  serve  this  holy  God ;  you  must  sit  down  and 
count  the  charges,  what  it  is  likely  to  cost  you,  that  this  dedication  of 
yourselves  to  God  may  be  grounded  upon  serious  consideration.     Do 
you  know  what  lust  of  the  flesh  you  must  renounce,  what  interest  of 
yours  you  must  lay  at  his  feet  ? 

4.  It  must  be  a  thorough,  absolute,  and  perfect  resolution,  whatever 
it  cost,  as  he  that  sold  all  for  the  pearl  of  price,  Mat.  xiii.  46.     A 
marriage  even  made  may  be  broken  off ;  some  will  take  up  religion 
by  way  of  essay,  to  try  how  they  like  it,  as  men  go  to  sea  for  pleasure, 
but  will  not  launch  so  far  into  the  deep  but  that  they  may  be  sure 
easily  to  get  to  shore  again ;  but  a  man  for  a  voyage  resolves  upon  all 
weathers.     So,  whatever  disappointment,  here  is  my  business,  thus  will 
I  do;  and  'though  he  should  kill  me,  yet  will  I  trust  in  him/  Job 
xiii.  15. 

5.  It  must  be  a  resolution  for  the  present,  not  for  the  future  ;  for 
all  resolutions  for  the  future  are  false :  Ps.  xxvii.  8,  '  When  thou  saidst, 
Seek  ye  my  face;'  like  a  quick  echo,  *  My  heart  answered,  Thy  face, 
Lord,  will  I  seek.'     And  we  must  resolve  so  to  engage  presently,  for 
what  we  do  for  hereafter  it  is  but  a  cheat  we  put  upon  ourselves, 
merely  to  elude  the  workings  of  heart,  to  avoid  the  present  impulse. 

6.  It  must  be  a  resolution  according  to  the  covenant  of  grace,  in  a 
sense  of  our  insufficiency  and  dependence  upon  Christ,  not  in  a  con 
fidence  of  our  own  strength.     Peter  went  forth  in  a  confidence  of  his 
own  resolution,  and  how  soon  did  he  miscarry !    Therefore  we  must 
resolve  in  the  strength  of  God  :  Ps.  cxix.  8,  '  I  will  keep  thy  precepts ; 
0  forsake  me  not  utterly/     If  God  forsake,  all  will  come  to  nothing. 
Thus  we  should  solemnly  dedicate  ourselves  to  his  use  and  service. 

Secondly,  Having  entered  into  such  a  solemn  engagement  to  be  the 
Lord's,  keep  this  covenant  and  oath  made  with  God.  For  motives  : — 

1.  From  the  nature  of  such  a  solemn  engagement;  it  hath  more  in 
it  than  a  single  promise.  There  is  in  every  solemn  dedication  or 
vowing  of  ourselves  to  God  an  attestation  or  calling  upon  God  to  take 
witness,  and  there  is  an  imprecation.  An  attestation,  a  calling  God 
to  witness  of  our  serious  intentions  to  perform,  and  will  you  call  God 
to  be  witness  to  a  lie  ?  And  an  imprecation,  a  calling  upon  God  to 
punish  us  if  we  do  the  contrary  ;  therefore,  being  entered  into  the 
bond  of  such  a  holy  oath,  how  should  we  tremble  to  break  it !  For 
lie  that  renews  his  oath  of  allegiance  to  God,  he  doth  as  it  were  dare 
God  to  do  his  worst,  for  you  thereby  wish  some  heavy  plague  to  fall 
upon  your  heads  if  you  do  not  fulfil  the  duty  of  your  oath  ;  that  is, 
he  that  eats  and  drinks  the  body  and  blood  of  Christ  unworthily,  he 
is  guilty  of  damnation,  guilty  of  the  Lord's  blood,  because  these 
solemn  rites  do  not  only  confirm  the  promises,  but  confirm  the 
threatening ;  and  there  is  implied  not  only  an  invocation  of  blessing, 
but  an  imprecation  upon  ourselves ;  that  is,  if  you  do  not  fulfil  the 
duty  of  the  covenant,  you  offer  yourselves  as  it  were  to  God's  curse. 


94  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXVI. 

2.  Consider  the  tenderness  of  God's  people  in  case  of  any  oath  or 
solemn  promise,  though  it  concerned  their  duty  to  man.     Josh.  ix.  19, 
20,  it  is  spoken  of  the  league  with  the  Gibeonites,  'We  have  sworn 
unto  them  by  the  Lord  God  of  Israel :  now  therefore  we  may  not 
touch  them,  lest  wrath  be  upon  us,  because  of  the  oath  which  we 
sware  unto  them/     They  looked  upon  it  as  horrible  impiety  to  break 
an  oath.     Now  much  more  doth  this  hold  in  our  engagements  to 
God.     Shall  we  not  look  upon  it  as  a  horrid  impiety  to  break  a 
solemn  oath  so  solemnly  renewed,  and  our  faith  so  solemnly  plighted  ? 
Every  sin  of  ours  is  made  the  more  heinous  because  of  this  oath. 

3.  Remember  the  great  quarrel  that  God  hath  against  the  Christian 
world  and  all  the  professors  of  his  name  is  about  his  covenant  and 
oath  taken.     What  is  the  reason  God  doth  visit  Christendom  with 
famines,  pestilences,  inundations,  and  wars  ?   Because  they  do  not  stand 
to  the  oath  of  God  that  is  upon  them.     Every  professor  of  the  name 
of  Christ,  he  is  supposed  to  be  in  covenant  with  God :  Heb.  x.  29, 
'Of  how  much  sorer  punishment  shall  he  be  thought  worthy,  who 
hath  counted  the  blood  of  the  covenant  wherewith  he  was  sanctified 
an  unholy  thing?'     All  visible  professors  of  Christianity  are  under  a 
covenant  with  God,  to  take  God  for  their  God,  and  to  live  as  his 
people ;  now  because  of  their  looseness  and  profaneness,  they  do  not 
stand  to  their  engagement,  therefore  so  many  plagues  are  upon  them  : 
Lev.  xxvi.  25,  '  I  will  bring  a  sword  upon  you,  that  shall  avenge  the 
quarrel  of  my  covenant ;'  that  is,  because  they  did  not  perform  the 
duties  sworn  to  him. 


SERMON  CXVI. 

I  am  afflicted  very  much  :  quicken  me,  0  Lord,  according  unto  tliy 
ivord. — VER.  107. 

HERE  we  have — (1.)  A  representation  of  his  case  and  condition,  /  am 
afflicted  ;  his  condition  was  calamitous,  and  here  is  the  degree  of  it, 
very  much.  (2.)  His  prayer,  quicken  me,  0  Lord,  according  unto  tliy 
word;  wherein  we  have  the  nature  of  his  request,  quicken  me,  0 
Lord ;  then  the  argument,  according  unto  thy  luord. 

For  the  first,  'I  am  afflicted  ;'  it  may  be  understood  of  outward 
pressures,  or  soul  troubles.  From  thence  note — 

Doct.  God's  people  are  liable  to  sad  and  sore  afflictions  here  in  the 
world. 

He  doth  not  so  fondly  and  delicately  bring  up  his  children  but  that 
he  exerciseth  them  with  sharp  afflictions.  David,  a  man  dear  to  God, 
much  in  communion  with  him,  ever  and  anon  you  hear  him  com 
plaining  of  trouble.  It  is  the  church's  name,  Isa.  liv.  11,  '0  thou 
afflicted,  and  tossed  with  tempest,  and  not  comforted/  God's  people 
are  sometimes  afflicted  in  the  outward,  sometimes  in  the  inward  man. 
In  the  outward  man,  either  by  enemies,  the  more  because  they  are 
godly:  2  Tim.  iii.  12,  'All  they  that  will  live  godly  in  Christ  Jesus 
must  suffer  persecution/  They  must  not  dream  of  worldly  ease,  and 


VER.  107.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  95 

think  to  go  to  heaven  upon  a  bed  of  roses,  but  sometimes  their  way  is 
strewed  with  thorns,  and  they  have  fiery  trials  :  1  Peter  iv.  12,  '  Think 
it  not  strange  concerning  the  fiery  trial  which  is  to  try  you,  as  though 
some  strange  thing  happened  unto  you ;'  no  more  than  you  would  to 
see  a  shower  of  rain  fall,  or  a  cloudy  day  succeed  a  fair :  we  would 
laugh  at  one  that  should  be  troubled  to  see  a  shower  fall.  So  some 
times  by  sickness  under  God's  immediate  hand.  In  the  3d  epistle  of 
John,  the  apostle  saith  of  Grams,  '  I  wish  that  thou  mayest  prosper, 
and  be  in  health,  even  as  thy  soul  prospereth.'  It  seems  he  had  a 
healthful  soul  in  a  very  sickly  crazy  body.  And  Paul's  thorn  in  the 
flesh  notes  some  racking  pain,  stone  or  gout,  which  he  alludes  to 
thrusting  up  a  stake  in  the  body  of  slaves.  The  inward  man,  that 
hath  its  affliction  too,  anguish,  sorrow  of  heart,  sometimes  by  reason 
of  God's  desertion.  Christ  Jesus  drunk  of  this  cup  :  Mat.  xxvii.  46, 
'  My  God,  my  God,  why  hast  thou  forsaken  me  ?'  And  the  cup  goes 
round ;  his  people  pledge  him  in  this  bitter  cup,  and  often  complain 
of  a  withdrawing  God,  that  they  cannot  find  God  as  they  were  wont 
formerly.  Many  times  perplexing  lusts  and  prevalency  of  sore  dis 
tempers  :  '  0  wretched  man/  &c.,  Rom.  vii.  24,  so  Paul  groans  ;  and 
sometimes  from  temptations  and  assaults  from  Satan  :  Luke  xxii.  31, 
32,  '  Satan  hath  desired  to  have  you,  that  he  may  sift  you  as  wheat ; 
but  I  have  prayed  for  thee,  that  thy  faith  fail  not.'  Christ  did  not 
pray  to  exempt  him  from  it,  but  to  preserve  him  in  it. 

If  you  ask  why  God's  children  are  thus  afflicted,  I  answer — It  is  not 
heaven  we  now  enjoy. 

1.  We  are  not  in  our  eternal  rest,  therefore  here  we  must  be  exer 
cised,  tried,  afflicted.     The  world  is  a  middle  place  between  heaven  and 
hell,  therefore  hath  somewhat  of  both ;  their  principles  and  actions  are 
mixed,  so  their  condition  is  mixed,  intermixed  with  sorrows  and  joys, 
until  they  come  there  where  they  shall  rest  from  all  their  labours.     So 
it  must  be. 

2.  God  doth  it  to  purge  out  sin :  Isa.  xxvii.  9,  (  By  this  shall  the 
iniquity  of  Jacob  be  purged,  and  this  is  all  the  fruit  to  take  away  his 
sin.'     Gold  is  cast  into  the  fire.     Why  ?     To  have  its  dross  consumed. 
Cora  is  beaten  with  the  flail.     Why  ?     To  be  severed  from  its  chaff, 
husks,  and  straw  ;  and  iron  is  filed  to  get  off  its  rust ;  so  this  is  the 
fruit  of  all — the  taking  away  sin.     Afflictions  are  a  necessary  cure  for 
sin  :  John  xv.  2,  '  Every  branch  that  beareth  fruit,  he  purgeth  it,  that 
it  may  bring  forth  more  fruit.'     Look,  as  in  a  vine  there  are  certain 
superfluous  luxuriant  leaves  and  branches  that  grow  up  with  the  fruit, 
and  hindereth  the  increase  of  it,  which  the  vine-dresser  pares  off,  not 
to  destroy  the  vine,  but  to  cultivate  and  manure  it,  so  it  is  with  no  ill 
intent ;  so  corruption  grows  up  with  our  graces,  and  hindereth  us  that 
we  cannot  bear  fruit,  when  w,e  are  in  a  flourishing  condition  ;  there 
fore  these  need  to  be  purged  away. 

3.  God  doth  it  to  humble  us.     This  was  that  which  God  aimed  at 
in  all  his  afflictive  dispensations  towards  the  people  of  Israel,  Deut. 
viii.  2.   God's  eminent  servants  need  affliction  to  humble  them.   David 
had  many  things  to  puff  him  up,  his  royal  dignity,  the  gift  of  pro 
phecy,  familiarity  with  God,  great  opulency,  many  victories,  pride 
of  life,  &c. ;  and  he  needed  many  afflictions  to  keep  him  humble, 
Ps.  cxxxii.  1.     Paul,  he  was  apt  to  be  lifted  up  with  abundance  of 


96  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXYI. 

revelations,  therefore  God  humbled  him  with  '  a  thorn  in  the  flesh/ 
2  Cor.  xii.  7. 

Use  1.  If  we  he  out  of  affliction,  let  us  provide  for  a  time  of  exer 
cise.  David,  a  saint,  is  afflicted.  God's  hosom-friends  may  feel  his 
hand  sore  upon  them.  David,  a  king,  is  afflicted  ;  those  in  the  highest 
station  have  their  incident  cares  and  troubles.  David,  an  Old  Testa 
ment  believer,  saith,  'I  am  afflicted/  I  observe  this,  because  God 
then  dispensed  himself  to  his  people  in  and  by  temporal  promises,  and 
yet  even  then  they  had  great  mixtures  of  trouble,  to  show  that  which 
they  had  in  the  world  was  not  all  they  had  to  expect  from  God.  The 
promises  now  in  the  New  Testament,  now  life  and  immortality  is 
brought  to  light,  they  run  to  us  in  another  strain,  not  of  temporal, 
but  spiritual  things  ;  therefore  we  must  expect  our  portion  of  sorrow 
before  we  go  to  heaven.  Be  not  of  such  a  woman-like  nature,  and  so 
delicately  brought  up,  as  never  to  see  evil  days  ;  for  aught  I  see,  we 
are  entering  upon  our  trial.  The  strain  of  our  ministry  is  mainly  con 
solatory  usually,  but  there  comes  a  time  of  expense  and  laying  out, 
.when  such  comforts  are  to  be  laid  up  in  our  heart,  therefore  let  us  be 
provided. 

Use  2.  If  we  be  for  the  present  under  affliction,  let  us  bear  it  with 
patience,  observing  how  God's  ends  are  accomplished.  It  is  smart  and 
grievous  now,  Heb.  xii.  11,  but  it  will  be  salutary  and  healthful  ;  it 
will  yield  to  you  righteousness,  and  that  righteousness  will  yield  you 
peace  —  give  the  peaceable  fruit  of  righteousness.  If  God  will  take 
away  the  fuel  of  our  sin,  empty  us  of  our  pride,  self-conceit,  weaken 
the  security  of  the  flesh,  let  us  'be  content,  only  let  us  take  heed  that 
the  time  of  mortifying  sin  be  not  the  time  of  discovering  sin,  arid  that 
we  do  not  trespass  the  more.  To  be  sinning  and  suffering  is  the  case 
of  the  damned.  Take  heed  you  do  not  sin  in  your  suffering;  especially 
take  heed  of  those  sins  that  are  proper  to  affliction.  Fainting: 
'If  thou  faint  in  the  day  of  adversity,  thy  strength  is  but  small.' 
Distrust  of  God's  providence  :  '  I  shall  one  day  perish  by  the  hands  of 
Saul/  Despair  of  God's  promises  :  '  I  said  I  am  cut  off,'  &c.  Then 
you  lose  the  benefit  of  God's  family  discipline  when  you  yield  to  these 
sins.  But  see  how  it  drives  you  out  of  the  way  of  hell,  for  affliction  is 
a  gentle  remembrance  of  hell  ;  for  look,  as  those  whose  garments  were 
singed,  as  when  they  threw  the  three  children  into  the  furnace,  their 
own  garments  were  singed  by  the  force  of  the  flame,  they  knew  what  it 
was  to  be  thrown  into  the  pit  ;  so  the  Lord  in  effect  doth  tell  you  what 
will  be  in  hell  ;  this  is  a  gentle  remembrance,  stand  farther  off,  that 
ye  may  not  be  condemned  with  the  world,  1  Cor.  xi.  32.  Arid  then, 
how  it  quickens  you  to  look  after  heavenly  things  ;  for  when  the  out 
ward  man  decays,  then  look  to  things  not  seen^2  Cor.  iv.  17  ;  when 
you  are  fitted  more  and  more  for  your  change,  when  you  grow  more 
humble,  mortified,  as  stories  are  hewn  and  squared  for  the  building. 
^  Let  us  come  to  the  degree,  '  I  am  afflicted  very  much  ;  the  Septua- 
int  renders  it,  foaarcunUhp  eW  afoSpa,  '  I  am  afflicted  very  sore/ 


^ 
gint  renders  it,     aarcunUhp  eW  afoSpa,  '  I  am  afflicted  very 

Doct  The  afflictions  of  God's  people  may  not  only  be  many,  but 
very  sore  and  heavy. 

So  David  here,  and  Ps.  Ixxi.  20,  '  Thou  hast  showed  me  great  and 
sore  troubles/     Why  many? 


VER.  107.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  97 

1.  Many  and  strong  lusts  are  to  be  subdued,  and  we  need  great 
afflictions  to  subdue  many  and  great  corruptions.     Some  stains  are  not 
easily  washed  out,  but  need  much  rubbing.     When  pride  is  deeply 
rooted  in  the  heart,  God  brings  down  even  to  the  grave,  that  a  man 
goes  up  and  down  like  a  walking  ghost,  and  like  a  skeleton  or  dry  bones. 
There  is  such  an  one  described,  Job  xxxiii.  17  with  22;  and  why? 
To  bring  down  pride  in  his  heart  ?     The  physic  must  be  according  to 
the  distemper ;  if  the  distemper  be  more  rooted,  the  physic  must  be 
more  strong  :  Ps.  cvii.  11, 12, '  Because  they  rebelled  against  the  word 
of  the  Lord,  and  contemned  the  counsel  of  the  Most  High,  therefore 
he  brought  down  their  heart  with  labour;  they  fell  down,  and  there  was 
none  to  help/    When  people  begin  to  grow  high  and  stomachful,  con 
temptuous  against  God  and  his  ordinances,  then  God  brings  them  into 
sore  distresses,  to  break  their  pride  and  stoutness  of  heart. 

2.  That  God  may  have  the  more  experience  and  trial  of  his  people. 
In  daily  and  little  afflictions  there  is  no  trial  of  their  courage,  faith, 
patience,  and  submission,  and  all  other  graces.     The  trial  of  faith  is  in 
extremity.     Graces  are  exercised  to  the  life,  when  we  are  even  at  the 
point  of  death  :  2  Cor.  i.  9, '  We  had  the  sentence  of  death  in  ourselves, 
that  we  should  not  trust  in  ourselves,  but  in  God,  which  raiseth  the 
dead.'     So  patience,  it  is  not  tried  but  by  sharp  affliction  ;   therefore 
the  apostle  saith,  '  Let  patience  have  its  perfect  work,'  James  i.  4.    So 
Christian  courage  and  resolution,  that  is  tried  in  deep  affliction,  when 
we  are  'slain  all  the  day  long,'  Heb.  xi.  35,  36  ;  Kom.  viii.  37,  '  In  all 
these  things  we  are  more  than  conquerors.'     The  strength  of  a  man's 
back  is  not  tried  by  a  small  weight,  but  by  a  heavy  burden,  how  much 
he  can  bear  ;  so  the  sharper  the  affliction,  the  greater  the  trial. 

3.  That  they  may  have  the  more  experience  of  God,  for  the  sharper 
the  affliction  the  sweeter  their  comfort,  and  the  more  glorious  their 
deliverance :  Ps.  Ixxi.  20,  '  Thou  which  hast  showed  me  great  and 
sore  troubles,  thou  shalt  quicken  me  again,  and  shalt  bring  me  up 
again  from  the  depths  of  the  earth.'     God's  power  in  raising  them 
up  is  more  seen :  2  Cor.  i.  10,  '  Who  delivered  me  from  so  great  a 
death.' 

Use  1.  If  we  be  under  sore  troubles — 

1.  Let  us  not  faint ;  remember  it  is  no  more  than  we  have  deserved. 
God  will  not  afflict  a  man  above  his  deserts ;  he  cannot  complain  of 
wrong,  Ezra  ix.  13.     It  is  never  more,  it  may  be  less  ;  when  our  afflic 
tions  are  great,  our  deserts  are  far  greater :  Isa.  xl.  1,  '  Comfort  ye, 
comfort  ye,  my  people,  saith  your  God.'     Why  ?     '  For  she  hath 
received  of  the   Lord's   hand  double  for  all  her  sins/     God  saith 
double ;  he  relents  presently. 

2.  Consider  the  degree  of  affliction  ;  it  is  not  measured  out  by  your 
selves,  but  measured  out  by  a  wise  God  ;  though  afflicted  very  much 
and  very  sore,  the  measure  it  is  ordered  by  God,  as  well  as  the  kind  of 
it.     If  it  were  measured  out  by  ourselves,  it  would  be  too  light,  it 
would  be  too  gentle  ;  the  patient  must  not  be  trusted  in  searching  his 
own  wounds  ;  and  if  it  were  left  to  our  enemies,  they  would  know  no 
bounds:  Zech.  i.  15,  'I  was  but  a  little  displeased,  and  they  helped 
forward  the  affliction.'     But  it  is  left  to  the  wise,  just,  and  gracious 
God  and  Father ;  he  tempers  the  cup  in  his  own  hand  ;  and  therefore 

VOL.  VIII.  G 


98  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SBR.  CXVI. 

when  the  affliction  is  grown  sore  and  strong,  it  comes  not  only  from  a 
wise  God,  but  a  tender  Father,  that  best  knows  what  is  good  for  us. 
Job  xxxiv.  23,  that  is  a  notable  place,  '  For  he  will  not  lay  upon  man 
more  than  right,  that  he  should  enter  into  judgment  with  God  ; '  that 
is,  the  party  afflicted  hath  no  just  complaint  against  God,  can  take  no 
exception  against  God's  proceedings,  for  he  perfectly  understands  our 
need,  and  understands  our  strength.  God  perfectly  understands  our 
need  :  1  Peter  i.  6,  *  If  need  be,  ye  are  in  heaviness  through  manifold 
temptations.'  And  understands  our  strength:  1  Cor.  x.  13,  '  Faithful 
is  he,  who  will  not  suffer  you  to  be  tempted  above  that  ye  are  able.' 
Many  parents  do  not  correct  their  children  in  measure,  being  ignorant 
of  their  nature  and  disposition.  Many  physicians  mistake  their 
patients'  constitution,  therefore  the  physic  may  work  too  strongly  and 
too  violently  for  them ;  but  God  understands  our  need  and  our  strength, 
and  so  suits  all  his  remedies  accordingly. 

Use  2.  To  reprove  those  fond  complaints  that  are  extorted  from  us 
in  deep  and  pressing  afflictions  ;  as  if — 

1.  Sometimes,  there  was  never  any  so  afflicted  as  I  am.     God's 
people  have  been  sore  troubled  :  Lam.  i.  12,  '  Is  it  nothing  to  you,  all 
ye  that  pass  by  ?     Behold  and  see  if  there  be  any  sorrow  like  unto 
my  sorrow,  wherewith  the  Lord  hath  afflicted  me/     Yes,  others  have 
been  afflicted  in  the  same  kind  and  degree,  if  not  worse  :  1  Peter  v.  9, 
'  All  these  things  are  accomplished  in  your  brethren  that  are  in  the 
world.'     You  think  it  is  such  as  the  like  hath  never  been  known  or 
heard  of,  for  every  man's  own  pain  seemeth  most  grievous  :  Lam.  iii. 
1 ,  *  I  am  the  man  that  hath  seen  affliction  by  the  rod  of  his  wrath.' 
Other  prophets  foretold  them,  I  see  them  executed.      The  best  of 
God's  people  have  their  measures  of  hardships  ;  you  are  not  singular, 
do  not  stand  alone.     This  is  one  of  Satan's  deceits.     Satan  will  suggest 
this  to  a  child  of  God,  that  he  may  question  his  Father's  affection,  lose 
the  comfort  of  his  adoption,  and  put  yourselves  out  of  the  number  of 
God's  children.    Your  lot  is  not  harder  than  the  rest  of  God's  children ; 
all  that  are  in  the  world  have  the  same  trials,  troubles,  pressing  evils 
upon  their  hearts  now  and  then. 

2.  Another  you  find  complaining,  taxing  God  of  unfaithfulness,  as 
if  he  would  break  trust,  and  lay  upon  you  more  than  you  are  able  to 
bear,  and  you  deceive  yourselves  ;  for  if  you  cannot  bear  your  present 
burden,  you  would  bear  none,  you  do  not  improve  Christ's  strength : 
Phil.  iv.  13,  '  I  can  do  all  things  through  Christ  which  strengthened 
me.'    Christ  doth  not  help  us  in  such  a  degree,  or  one  trouble,  and 
no  more,  but  in  all. 

3.  Another  we  find  complain,  I  am  cut  off;  God  will  be  merciful 
arid  gracious  no  more,  Ps.  Ixxvii.  8,  9,  &c. ;  he  hath  forsaken  me  and 
forgotten  me.     God's  children  have  been  brought  thus  low,  yet  have 
been  raised,  as  the  church :  Ps.  cxviii.  18,  '  Lord,  thou  hast  chastened 
me  sore,  yet  hast  not  given  me  over  unto  death.'     Within  a  little 
while  he  will  show  this  was  but  our  infirmity ;  this  would  stop  these 
idle  complaints  by  which  we  give  vent  to  our  daily  impatience. 

We  have  seen  David's  case,  but  what  doth  he  do  ?  He  goes  to  God 
about  comfort  and  relief,  '  I  am  afflicted  very  sore :  0  Lord,  quicken 
me,  according  to  thy  word.'  There  observe — 


VER.  107.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  99 

1.  That  he  prays,  and  makes  his  addresses  to  God. 

2.  For  what  he  prays. 

Doct.  First,  That  he  prays.  Observe,  affliction  should  put  us  upon 
prayer  and  serious  address  to  God.  Thus  God's  people  are  wont  to 
do:  Isa.  xxvi.  16,  'Lord,  in  trouble  have  they  visited  thee ;  they 
poured  out  a  prayer  when  thy  chastening  was  upon  them.'  They  that 
have  neglected  God  at  other  times,  will  be  dealing  with  him  then,  and 
this  God  expects  :  Hosea  v.  15,  '  I  will  go  and  return  to  my  place, 
till  they  acknowledge  their  offence,  and  seek  my  face  ;  in  their  afflic 
tion  they  will  seek  me  early.'  It  will  be  the  first  thing  they  will  do, 
the  greatest  thing  they  will  take  care  of ;  as  that  which  we  most  care 
for,  most  is  thought  of  in  the  morning.  Nay,  it  is  that  which  God 
enjoins :  Ps.  1. 15,  '  Call  upon  me  in  the  time  of  trouble.'  Some  might 
hang  off  when  God's  rod  is  upon  their  backs,  or  be  discouraged  by  the 
bitter  sense  of  a  trouble  ;  therefore  God  doth  not  only  give  us  leave, 
but  commands  us  to  call  upon  him.  This  is  the  special  season  when 
this  duty  is  performed  with  life  and  vigour :  '  Is  any  man  afflicted  ? 
let  him  pray/  James  v.  13.  Let  him  thus  give  vent  to  his  trouble,  it 
doth  mightily  ease  the  heart.  An  oven  stopped  up  is  the  hotter  within  ; 
the  more  we  keep  down  grief,  and  do  not  unburden  ourselves,  the 
more  it  presseth  upon  the  heart.  Wind  imprisoned  in  the  bowels  of 
the  earth  makes  a  terrible  shaking  there  till  it  gets  vent ;  so  till  our 
sorrow  gets  a  vent  it  rends  and  tears  the  heart.  The  throne  of  grace 
was  appointed  for  such  a  time,  Heb.  iv.  16  ;  when  need  comes,  then 
it  is  a  time  to  improve  our  interest,  to  put  promises  in  suit ;  when  God 
seems  to  be  an  enemy  to  us,  when,  to  appearance,  he  executes  the 
curse  of  the  old  covenant,  oh  !  then  we  should  work  through  all  dis 
couragements,  then  we  should  hold  God  to  his  second  grant  and 
charter,  and  come  to  his  throne  of  grace,  and  keep  him  there. 

For  the  reasons  : — 

1.  God  is  the  party  with  whom  we  have  to  do ;  whencesoever  the 
trouble  doth  arise,  there  is  his  hand  and  his  counsel  in  it ;  therefore 
it  is  best  dealing  with  him  about  it,  in  all  afflictions,  public  or  private  : 
Amos  iii.  6,  '  Is  there  evil  in  the  city,  and  the  Lord  hath  not  done  it  ?' 
Let  men  but  awaken  their  reason  and  conscience,  who  is  it  that  is  at 
the  upper  end  of  causes,  that  casts  our  lot  upon  such  troublesome  and 
distracted  times  ?     So  in  private  afflictions,  David  owned  God's  hand; 
Shimei  had  mocked  him,  but  he  looks  higher  ;  the  Lord  hath  bid  him 
curse.     So  Job  ;  he  doth  not  say  the  Chaldean  and  Sabean  hath  taken 
away,  but  the  Lord  hath  taken,  Job  i.  21.     Afflictions  have  a  higher 
cause  than  men  ordinarily  look  at ;  they  do  not  come  out  of  the  dust, 
but  come  from  God.     See  what  inference  Eliphaz  draws  from  this 
principle,  Job  v.  8,  '  I  would  seek  unto  God,  and  unto  God  would  I 
commit  my  cause  ; '  that  is,  I  would  go  and  deal  with  him  about  it ; 
it  was  Eliphaz's  advice  to  Job,  and  it  is  seasonable  to  us  all. 

2.  It  is  God  only  that  can  help  us  and  relieve  us,  either  by  giving 
support  under  the  trouble,  or  removing  it  from  us ;  so  saith  David, 
Ps.  Ivii.  2,  '  I  will  cry  unto  God  most  high,  unto  God  that  performeth 
all  things  for  me.'     A  believer  looks  for  all  things  from  God  ;  when 
all  things  go  well  with  him,  God  is  his  best  friend  ;  when  all  things 
go  ill  with  him,  God  is  his  only  friend  ;  he  runs  to  none  so  often  as  to 


100  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiR.  CXVII. 

God.     Now  upon  these  principles  we  go  to  God  ;  but  for  what  end  ? 
Let  us  see  what  we  go  to  God  for. 

[1.]  That  we  may  know  his  mind  in  all  his  providences.  The 
affliction  hath  some  errand  and  message  to  us,  something  to  deliver  us 
from  God ;  now  we  need  to  ask  of  God  to  know  his  mind  :  Micah  vi. 

9,  '  Hear  the  rod,  and  who  hath  appointed  it.'     We  should  not  only 
be  sensible  of  the  smart,  but  look  to  the  cause ;  therefore,  if  we  would 
know  the  cause,  let  us  go  and  expostulate  with  God  about  it ;  as 
Joab,  when  Absalom  set  his  corn-field  on  fire ;  he  sent  for  him  once 
and  twice,  but  he  comes  not,  until  he  sets  his  corn'-field  on  fire,  and 
then  he  comes  and  expostulates  with  him,  '  Who  hath  done  this  ? ' 
2  Sam.  xiv.  30,  31.     So  when  we  make  bold,  and  will  not  come  to 
God,  nor  take  notice  of  his  messages,  God  comes  and  lets  out  his 
wrath  upon  our  comforts  and  conveniences  ;  now  let  us  deal  with  God 
about  it ;  wherefore  is  all  this  ? 

[2.]  That  we  may  have  strength  to  bear  it.  Alas  !  we  can  bear  or 
do  little  of  ourselves,  for  that  doing  refers  to  bearing :  Phil  iv.  13,  '  I 
can  do-all  things  through  Christ  that  strengtheneth  me  ;'  that  is,  I  can 
suffer  want,  need,  hunger,  thirst,  nakedness,  and  run  through  all  con 
ditions,  '  through  Christ  that  strengtheneth  me.'  Now  you  must  ask 
it  of  God  :  James  i.  5,  '  If  any  man  lack  wisdom,  let  him  ask  it  of  God/ 
Jt  is  wisdom  to  bear  affliction,  if  he  would  wisely  carry  himself  under 
the  rod ;  that  he  may  not  discover  his  folly,  he  must  ask  this  strength 
arid  grace  of  God. 

[3.]  Wisdom  to  improve  our  chastisements,  that  we  may  have  the 
benefit  and  fruit  of  them  :  Isa.  xlviii.  17,  '  I  am  the  Lord  thy  God, 
which  teacheth  thee  to  profit;'  that  is,  to  profit  by  afflictions,  to  reap 
the  fruit  of  them.  So  Job  xxxiii.  16,  '  He  openeth  the  ears  of  men, 
and  sealeth  their  instruction/  God,  by  a  powerful  work  upon  the 
heart,  impresseth  their  duty  upon  them,  that  they  may  see  wherefore 
it  is  that  he  hath  afflicted  them. 

[4.]  We  go  to  God  for  deliverance  and  freedom  from  the  trouble  : 
Ps.  xxxiv.  19,  '  Many  are  the  troubles  of  the  righteous,  but  out  of 
them  all  the  Lord  will  deliver  them/  It  is  God's  prerogative  to  set  us 
free.  We  break  prison  when  we  attempt  to  escape  merely  by  our  own 
means  ;  therefore  either  we  shall  have  no  deliverance,  or  no  kindly  one. 
God  hath  delivered,  doth  deliver,  and  we  trust  will  deliver.  This  must  be 
sought  out  of  God  ;  God  helping  together  with  your  prayers,  2  Cor.  i. 

10,  11.    Prayer  must  fetch  it  out  from  God,  or  it  is  no  kindly  deliver 
ance.     Well,  then,  in  our  affliction,  we  need  to  be  often  with  God. 


SERMON  CXVII. 
Quicken  me,  0  Lord,  according  unto  tliy  word — VER.  107. 

USE  1.  To  reprove  the  stupidness  and  carelessness  of  them  that 
neglect  God  in  their  troubles :  Dan.  ix.  13,  'All  this  evil  is  come  upon 
us,  yet  made  we  not  our  prayer  before  the  Lord  our  God/  A  very 
senseless  slight  spirit,  that  when  they  are  under  the  blows  of  God's 


VER.  107.]  SERMONS  urox  PSALM  cxix.  101 

heavy  hand,  they  will  not  be  much  in  calling  upon  God  ;  this  is  con 
trary  to  God's  injunction,  who  expects  now  with  earnestness  they  will 
seek  him.  God  reckons  upon  it ;  he  could  not  hear  from  them  before, 
but  now  they  will  pray  hard,  and  will  make  up  their  former  negli 
gence.  When  God  sends  a  tempest  after  you,  as  on  Jonah,  yet  will 
you  keep  off  from  him  ?  It  is  contrary  to  the  practice  of  the  saints  ; 
in  their  chastisements,  troubles,  and  afflictions,  they  are  much  with 
God,  opening  their  hearts  to  him.  Nay,  it  is  worse  than  hypocrites, 
for  they  will  have  their  pangs  of  devotion  at  such  a  time,  Job  xxvii. 
10,  11.  In  short,  you  lose  the  comfort  of  your  affliction.  Seasons  of 
affliction  are  happy  seasons  if  they  prove  praying  seasons  ;  when  they 
bring  you  nearer  to  God,  it  is  a  sign  God  is  not  wholly  gone,  but  hath 
left  somewhat  behind  him,  when  the  heart  is  drawn  into  him.  This  is 
the  blessing  of  every  condition,  when  it  brings  God  nearer  to  you,  and 
you  are  more  acquainted  with  him  than  before. 

Use  2.  Then  it  takes  off  the  discouragements  of  poor  disconsolate 
ones,  who  mis-expound  his  providence  when  they  think  afflictions  put 
us  from  God  rather  than  call  us  to  him.  Oh  no !  it  is  not  to  drive 
you  from  him,  but  to  draw  you  to  him.  Do  not  think  God  hath  no 
mercy  for  thee,  because  he  leaves  thee  to  such  pressures,  wants,  and 
crosses.  This  is  the  way  to  acquaint  yourselves  with  God,  yea,  though 
you  have  been  hitherto  strangers  to  him ;  he  hath  invited  you  to  call 
upon  him  in  time  of  trouble,  he  is  willing  to  have  you  upon  any  terms. 
A  man  will  say,  You  come  to  me  in  your  necessities  ;  God  delights  to 
hear  from  you,  and  is  glad  any  occasion  will  bring  you  into  his  pre 
sence  ;  and  therefore  be  much  with  God. 

Secondly,  I  observe,  when  this  affliction  was  sore  and  pressing,  yet 
then  he  hath  a  heart  to  pray,  '  I  am  afflicted  very  sore,  0  Lord, 
quicken  me.' 

Doct.  We  must  not  give  over  prayer,  though  our  afflictions  be  never 
so  great  and  heavy.  Why  ?  Because — 

1.  Nothing  is  too  hard  for  God  ;  he  hath  ways  of  his  own  to  save 
and  preserve  his  people  when  we  are  at  a  loss.     This  was  the  glory  of 
Abraham's  faith,  that  he  accounted  God  was  able  to  raise  up  Isaac 
from  the  dead,  Heb.  xi.  19.     Difficult  cases  are  fit  for  God  to  deal  in, 
to  show  his  divine  power.     When  means  have  spent  their  allowance, 
then  is  it  time  to  try  what  God  can  do  :  Ps.  cxlii.  4,  5,  'I  looked  on 
my  right  hand,  and  beheld,  but  there  was  no  man  that  would  know 
me  :  refuge  failed  me  ;  no  man  cared  for  my  soul.     I  cried  unto  thee, 
0  Lord ;  I  said,  Thou  art  my  refuge,  and  my  portion  in  the  land  of  the 
living.'     When  all  things  fail,  God  faileth  not. 

2.  We  must  still  pray.    Faith  must  express  something  above  sense, 
or  else  living  by  faith  and  living  by  sense  cannot  be  distinguished. 
In  desperate  cases  then  is  the  glory  of  faith  seen :  Job  xiii.  15,  '  Though 
he  should  kill  me,  yet  I  will  trust  in  him/     In  defiance  of  all  dis 
couragement,  we  should  come  and  profess  our  dependence  upon  God. 

Use.  To  condemn  those  that  despond,  and  give  over  all  treaty  with 
God,  as  soon  as  any  difficulty  doth  arise  ;  whereas  this  should  sharpen 
prayer,  rather  than  discourage  us.  This  is  man's  temper,  when 
troubles  are  little  and  small,  then  to  neglect  God ;  when  great,  then 
to  distrust  God.  A  little  headache  will  not  send  us  to  the  physician, 


102  SJSJJMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEE.  OX VII. 

nor  the  scratch  of  a  pin  to  the  chirurgeon  ;  so  if  our  troubles  be  little, 
they  do  not  move  us  to  seek  after  God,  but  we  are  secure  and  careless  ; 
but  when  our  troubles  are  smart,  sore,  and  pressing,  then  we  are  dis 
couraged,  and  give  over  all  hopes  ;  so  hard  a  matter  is  it  to  bring  man 
to  God,  to  keep  an  even  frame,  neither  to  slight  the  hand  of  God,  nor 
to  faint  under  it,  as  we  have  direction  to  avoid  both  extremes,  Heb. 
xii.  5,  to  cherish  a  due  sense  of  our  troubles,  with  a  regular  confidence 
in  God. 

That  he  prays  you  have  seen.  Now  what  he  prays  for.  He  doth 
not  say  deliver  me,  but  quicken  me. 

Doct.  Strength  and  support  under  afflictions  is  a  great  blessing,  to 
be  sought  from  God,  and  acknowledged  as  a  favour,  as  well  as  deliver 
ance. 

1.  You  shall  see  this  is  promised  as  a  favour  :  Isa.  xl.  31,  'They 
that  wait  upon  the  Lord  shall  renew  their  strength  ; '  that  is,  shall  not 
faint  nor  be  weary,  but  mount  up  as  it  were  with  wings  as  eagles ;  they 
shall  have  a  new  supply  of  grace,  enabling  them  to  bear  and  hold  out 
till  the  deliverance  cometh.     They  that  wait  upon  the  Lord  do  not 
always  see  the  end  of  their  troubles,  but  are  quickened,  comforted, 
and  strengthened  in  them  ;  they  shall  renew  their  strength. 

2.  This  is  accepted  by  the  saints  with  thanksgiving,  and  valued  by 
them  as  a  special  answer  of  prayer ;  they  value  it  more  than  temporal 
deliverance  itself  many  times ;  as  2  Cor.  xii.  9,  10,  Paul  prays  for 
the  removal  of  the  thorn  in  the  flesh  thrice,  when  God  only  gives  him 
this  answer,  '  My  grace  is  sufficient  for  thee  ; '  saith  Paul  then, '  I  will 
rejoice  in  mine  infirmities,'  so  I  might  have  strength  and  support  in 
grievous  weaknesses,  reproaches,  and  afflictions,  whatever  they  be.     So 
Ps.  cxxxviii.  3,  '  In  the  day  when  I  cried,  thou  answeredst  me,  and 
strengthenedst  me  with  strength  in  my  soul/     That  is  noted  as  a 
special  answer  of  prayer.     How  did  he  hear  him  ?     With  strength  in 
my  soul.     Though  he  did  not  give  him  deliverance,  he  gave  him  -sup 
port,  so  that  was  acknowledged  as  a  very  great  mercy. 

3.  There  are  many  cases  wherein  we  cannot  expect  temporal  de 
liverance,  then  we  must  only  go  for  quickening  and  support ;  when  by 
a  lingering  disease  we  are  drawing  down  to  the  chambers  of  death , 
and  our  outward  strength  is  clean  spent  and  gone,  then  have  we  sup 
port;  that  is  a  great  mercy:  Ps.  Ixxiii.  26,  when  strength  fail  and 
heart  fail,  'God  is  the  strength  of  my  heart,  and  portion  for  ever;' 
that  is,  to  have  his  heart  quickened  by  God  in  the  languishing  of  a 
mortal  disease.     So  2  Cor.  iv.  16,  '  Though  our  outward  man  perish, 
yet  our  inward  man  is  renewed  day  by  day.'    There  are  many  troubles 
that  cannot  be  avoided,  and  therefore  we  are  then  to  be  earnest  with 
God  for  spiritual  strength. 

Use.  Well,  then,  you  see  upon  what  occasion  we  should  go  for  grace 
rather  than  for  temporal  deliverance.  We  should  pray  from  the  new 
nature;  not  deliver  me,  but  quicken  me;  and  if  the  Lord  should 
suspend  deliverance,  why,  that  will  be  our  strength  in  time  of  trouble: 
Ps.  xxxvii.  39,  '  The  salvation  of  the  righteous  is  of  the  Lord ;  he  is 
their  strength  in  the  time  of  trouble.' 

But  more  particularly,  let  us  take  notice  of  this  request :  '  Quicken 
me,'  saith  he. 


VER.  107.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  103 

Doct.  Quickening  grace  must  be  asked  of  God. 

1.  What  is  quickening  ? 

2.  Why  asked  of  God  ? 

First,  What  is  this  quickening  ?  Quickening  in  scripture  is  put  for 
two  things : — 

1.  For  regeneration,  or  the  first  infusion  of  the  life  of  grace  ;  as 
Eph.  ii.  5,  '  And  you  that  were  dead  in  trespasses  and  sins  hath  he 
quickened ;'  that  is,  infused  life,  or  making  to  live  a  new  life. 

2.  It  is  put   for  the  renewed  excitations  of   God's  grace,  God's 
breathing  upon  his  own  work.     God,  that  begins  life  in  our  souls, 
carries  on  this  life,  and  actuates  it.     Now  this  kind  of  quickening  is 
twofold  spoken  of  in  this  psalm ;  there  is  quickening  in  duties,  and 
quickening  in  afflictions.     Quickening  in  duties,  that  is  opposite  to 
deadness  of  spirit ;  quickening  in  affliction,  that  is  opposite  to  faintness. 

[1.]  Quickening  in  duties,  that  is  opposite  to  that  deadness  of  spirit 
which  creeps  upon  us  now  and  then,  and  is  occasioned  either  by  our 
negligence  or  by  our  carnal  liberty,  that  deadness  of  spirit  that  doth 
hinder  the  activity  of  grace. 

(1.)  By  out  negligence  and  slothfulness  in  the  spiritual  life,  when 
we  do  not  stir  up  ourselves  :  Isa.  Ixiv.  7,  '  There  is  none  that  stirreth 
up  himself  to  take  hold  on  thee ;'  when  men  grow  careless  and  neg 
lectful  in  their  souls.  An  instrument,  though  never  so  well  in  tune, 
yet  if  hung  up  and  laid  by,  soon  grows  out  of  order ;  so  when  our 
hearts  are  neglected,  when  they  are  not  under  a  constant  exercise  of 
grace,  a  deadness  creeps  upon  us.  Wells  are  sweeter  for  the  draining. 
Our  graces  they  are  more  fresh  and  lively  the  more  they  are  kept 
a-work,  otherwise  they  lose  their  vitality.  A  key  rusts  that  is  seldom 
turned  in  the  lock,  and  therefore  negligence  is  a  cause  of  this  dead- 
ness  :  2  Tim.  i.  6,  '  Stir  up  the  gift  that  is  in  thee.'  We  must  blow 
up  the  ashes.  There  needs  blowing  if  we  would  keep  in  the  fire  ;  we 
grow  dead  and  lukewarm,  and  cold  in  the  spiritual  life,  for  want  of 
exercise. 

(2.)  This  deadness  is  occasioned  by  carnal  liberty :  Ps.  cxix.  37, 
'  Turn  away  mine  eyes  from  beholding  vanity,  and  quicken  thou  me  in 
thy  way/  When  we  have  been  too  busy  about  the  vanities  of  the 
world,  or  pleasures  of  the  flesh,  when  we  have  given  contentment  to 
the  flesh,  and  been  intermeddling  with  worldly  cares  and  delights,  it 
brings  a  brawn  and  deadness  upon  the  heart :  Luke  xxi.  34,  '  Take 
heed  that  your  hearts  be  not  overcharged  with  surfeiting  and  drunken 
ness,  and  the  cares  of  this  world,'  &c.  I  say,  by  this  the  soul  is  dis 
tempered,  and  rendered  inapt  for  God.  Christians  !  this  is  a  disease 
very  incident  to  the  saints,  this  deadness  that  creeps  upon  them.  We 
have  not  such  lively  stirrings,  nor  a  like  influence  of  grace  ;  we  have 
not  those  earnest  and  lively  motions  we  were  wont  to  have  in  prayer. 
Now  God  he  quickeneth  us.  How  ?  By  exciting  the  operative 
graces,  as  faith,  love,  hope,  and  fear,  when  these  are  kept  pregnant 
and  lively,  as  we  read  of  '  lively  hope/  1  Peter  i.  3.  There  is  living 
faith  and  lively  faith,  and  living  fear  and  lively  fear  of  God,  and  living 
hope  and  lively  hope.  All  graces  God  makes  them  lively  and  viva 
cious,  that  they  may  put  forth  their  -operations  the  more  readily. 
Well,  this  is  quickening  in  duties. 


104  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXVII. 

[2.]  There  is  quickening  in  afflictions,  and  so  it  is  opposed  to 
fainting,  that  fainting  which  is  occasioned  by  too  deep  a  sense  of 
present  troubles,  or  by  unbelief,  or  distrust  of  God  and  his  promises, 
and  the  supplies  of  his  grace.  Oh !  when  troubles  press  upon  us  very 
sore,  our  hearts  are  like  a  bird,  dead  in  the  nest,  overcome,  so  that  we 
have  no  spirit,  life,  nor  aptness  for  God's  service  :  '  My  soul  droopeth 
for  very  heaviness  ;'  we  have  lost  our  life  and  our  courage  for  God. 

Well,  how  doth  God  quicken  us  ?  By  reviving  our  suffering  graces, 
as  our  hope  of  eternal  life  and  eternal  glory,  patience  and  faith,  and 
so  puts  life  into  us  again,  that  we  may  go  on  cheerfully  in  our  service. 
By  infusion  of  new  comforts.  He  revives  the  spirit  of  his  contrite 
ones ;  so  the  prophet  saith,  Isa.  Ivii.  15.  He  doth  revive  our  spirits 
again  when  they  are  dead  and  sunk  under  our  troubles.  Oh !  it  is  very 
necessary  for  this  :  Ps.  Ixxx.  18,  '  Quicken  us,  and  we  will  call  upon 
thy  name.'  Discomfort  and  discouragement  they  weaken  our  hands ; 
until  the  Lord  cheers  us  again  we  have  no  life  in  prayer.  By  two 
things  especially  doth  God  quicken  us  in  affliction — by  reviving  the 
sense  of  his  love,  and  by  reviving  the  hopes  of  glory.  By  reviving 
the  sense  of  his  love :  Kom.  v.  5,  '  The  love  of  God  is  shed  abroad,' 
like  a  fragrant  ointment  that  doth  revive  us,  when  we  are  even  ready 
±o  give  up  the  ghost ;  Ps.  Ixxxv.  6,  '  Wilt  thou  not  revive  us  again, 
that  thy  people  may  rejoice  in  thee?'  I  say,  when  he  restores  the 
:sense  of  his  love  after  great  and  pressing  sorrow,  then  he  is  said  to 
•quicken.  So  when  he  doth  renew  upon  us  the  hopes  of  glory  :  Kom. 
v.  2,  3,  *  We  rejoice  in  hope  of  the  glory  of  God/  Well,  you  see 
what  this  quickening  is. 

Secondly,  This  quickening  must  be  asked  of  God. 

1.  Because  it  is  his  prerogative  to  govern  the  heart  of  man,  especially 
-to  quicken  us.    God  will  be  owned  as  the  fountain  of  all  life:  1  Tim.  vi. 
13,  *  I  charge  thee  in  the  sight  of  God,  who  quickeneth  all  things.' 
It  is  God  that  quickeneth  all  things.     All  the  life  that  is  in  the 
creature,  all  the  life  that  is  in  new  creatures,  it  comes  from  God  ;  it  is 
he  that  giveth  us  life  at  first,  and  he  must  keep  in  this  life  in  the  soul, 
and  restore  it.     The  meanest  worm,  all  the  life  it  hath,  it  hath  from 
God.     When  John  would  prove  the  Godhead  of  Christ,  he  brings  this 
argument,  John  i.  4,  '  In  him  is  life/     There  is  not  a  gnat  but  receives 
this  benefit  from  Christ  as  God.     He  hath  the  life  of  all  things,  and 
this  life  is  the  light  of  men  ;  much  more  the  noble  creature  man  hath 
this^life  from  God  ;  much  more  the  new  creature  ;  greater  operation  of 
spiritual  life,  more  depends  upon  his  influence ;  and  therefore,  if  we 
would  be  quickened,  and  carried  out  with  any  life  and  strength,  we 
must  go  to  God  for  it. 

2.  God  as  our  judge,  he  must  be  treated  with  about  it,  for  he  smites 
us  with  deadness ;  therefore  till  he  takes  off  his  sentence,  we  cannot 
get  rid  of  this  distemper  ;  it  is  one  of  God's  spiritual  plagues,  which 
must  be  removed  before  we  can  hope  for   any   liveliness,  and  any 
activity  of  grace  again.     Under  the  law,  God  punished  sins  more 
sensibly  ;   as   unhallowed  addresses,  he  punished  them  with  death. 
Under  the  gospel,  he  punisheth  sins  with  deadness  of  heart.     When 
they  seem  careless  in  the  worshipping  of  God,  they  have  a  blow  and 
breach,  as  he  smote  Uzzah  and  Nadab  and  Abihu  dead  in  the  place ; 


VER.  107.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  105 

and  now  he  smites  with  deadness,  Bev.  iii.  7.  He  '  hath  the  key  of 
David,  that  openeth  and  no  man  shutteth,  and  shutteth  and  no  man 
openeth  ; '  without  his  permission  we  can  never  recover  our  former 
lively  estate  again,  for  there  is  a  judicial  sentence  passed  upon  us. 

Use,  To  press  us  to  be  often  with  God  for  quickening,  that  we  may 
obtain  this  benefit.  I  have  spoken  of  it  at  large  upon  another  verse  ;  if 
you  would  have  this  benefit,  rouse  up  yourselves  :  Isa.  Ixiv.  7,  '  There  is 
none  that  stirreth  up  himself;'  and  2  Tim.  i.  6,  '  Stir  up  the  gift  that 
is  in  th.ee/  A  man  hath  a  faculty  to  work  upon  his  own  heart,  to 
commune  and  reason  with  himself ;  and  we  are  bidden  to  'strengthen 
the  things  that  are  ready  to  die/  Kev.  iii.  2.  When  things  are  dying 
and  fainting  in  the  soul,  we  are  to  strengthen  ourselves  ;  therefore,  if 
we  would  have  God  to  quicken  us,  thus  must  we  do,  chide  the  heart 
for  its  deadness  in  duty ;  we  can  be  lively  enough  in  a  way  of  sin ; 
chide  the  heart  for  its  deadness  in  affliction  :  Ps.  xlii.,  '  Why  art 
thou  cast  down,  0  my  soul?  still  trust  in  God.'  And  after  you  have 
done  this,  then  look  up,  and  expect  this  grace  from  God  in  and 
through  Christ  Jesus.  It  is  said,  John  x.  10,  '  I  am  come  that  they 
may  have  life,  and  have  it  more  abundantly/  Jesus  Christ,  he  came 
not  only  that  we  might  have  life  enough  to  keep  body  and  soul 
together,  but  that  we  might  not  only  be  living  but  lively,  full  of  life, 
strength,  and  cheerfulness  in  the  service  of  God.  He  is  come  into  the 
world  for  this  end  and  purpose :  expect  it  through  Christ,  who  hath 
purchased  it  for  us.  And  then  plead  with  God  about  it,  according  to 
his  promise,  Ah  !  Lord,  according  to  thy  word  ;  hast  thou  not  said, 
I  will  quicken  a  dead  heart  ?  When  thou  art  broken  and  tossed  with 
affliction,  remember  it  is  the  high  and  lofty  one  that  hath  said  he 
will  '  revive  the  heart  of  the  contrite  ones,'  Isa.  Ivii.  15  ;  and  plead 
thus  with  God,  Ah !  Lord,  dost  not  thou  delight  in  a  cheerful  spirit  ? 
'Wilt  thou  not  revive  us  again,  that  thy  people  may  rejoice  in  thee  ?' 
Ps.  Ixxxv.  6.  And  then  humble  yourselves  for  the  cause  of  the  dis 
temper.  What  is  the  matter  ?  how  comes  this  deadness  upon  me  ? 
Isa.  Ixiii.  17, '  Why  hast  thou  caused  us  to  err  from  thy  ways,  and 
hardened  our  heart  from  thy  fear?'  Inquire  what  is  the  cause  of 
this  deadness  that  grows  upon  me,  that  you  may  humble  yourselves 
under  the  mighty  hand  of  God. 

The  argument  only  is  behind,  according  to  thy  word.  David, 
when  he  begs  for  quickening,  he  is  encouraged  so  to  do  by  a  promise. 
The  question  is,  where  this  promise  should  be  ?  Some  think  it  was 
that  general  promise  of  the  law,  '  If  thou  do  these  things,  thou  shalt 
live  in  them,'  Lev.  xviii.  5  ;  and  that  from  thence  David  drew  this 
particular  conclusion,  that  God  would  give  life  to  his  people.  But 
rather  it  was  some  other  promise,  some  word  of  God  he  had  to  bear 
him  out  in  this  request.  We  see  he  hath  made  many  promises  to  us 
of  sanctifying  our  affliction  :  Isa.  xxvii.  9,  '  The  fruit  of  all  shall  be 
the  taking  away  of  sin  ;'  of  bettering  and  improving  us  by  it,  Heb.  ii. 
11 ;  of  moderating  our  affliction  ;  that  he  will  '  stay  his  rough  wind  in 
the  day  of  the  east-wind,'  Isa.  xxvii.  8 ;  that  he  will  '  lay  no  more 
upon  us  than  he  will  enable  us  to  bear/  1  Cor.  x.  13.  He  hath 
promised  he  will  moderate  our  affliction,  so  that  we  shall  not  be 
tempted  above  our  strength.  He  hath  promised  he  will  deliver  us 
from  it,  that  '  the  rod  of  the  wicked  shall  not  always  rest  on  the  back 


106  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEE.  CXVIIT. 

of  the  righteous?'  Ps.  cxxv.  3;  that  he  will  be  with  us  in  it,  and 
never  fail  us,  Heb.  xiii.  5.  Now,  I  argue  thus  :  if  the  people  of  God 
could  stay  their  hearts  upon  God's  word  when  they  had  but  such 
obscure  hints  to  work  upon,  that  we  do  not  know  where  the  promise 
lies,  ah  !  how  should  our  hearts  be  stayed  upon  God  when  we  have  so 
many  promises  !  When  the  scriptures  are  enlarged  for  the  comfort 
and  enlarging  of  our  faith,  surely  we  ^should  say  now  as  Paul,  when 
he  got  a  word,  Acts  xxvii.  25,  '  I  believe  God  ; '  I  may  expect  God 
will  do  thus  for  rne,  when  his  word  speaks  it  everywhere.  Then  you 
may  expostulate  with  God  :  I  have  thy  word  for  it,  Lord ;  as  she, 
when  she  showed  him  the  jewel,  ring,  and  staff,  Whose  are  these  ? 
So  we  may  cast  in  God  his  promises :  Whose  are  these  according  to 
thy  word  ?  And  mark,  David,  that  was  punctual  with  God,  '  I  have 
sworn,  and  I  will  perform  it ;  and  quicken  me  according  to  thy 
word.'  Sincere  hearts  may  plead  promises  with  God :  Isa.  xxxviii, 
3,  '  Lord,  remember  I  have  walked  before  thee  with  an  upright  heart.' 
These  may  look  up  and  wait  upon  God  for  deliverance. 


SEKMON  CXVIII. 

Accept,  I  beseech  thee,  the  free-ivill-offer  ings  of  my  mouth,  0  Lord,  and 
teach  me  thy  judgments. — VEK.  108. 

IN  this  verse  two  things  are  asked  of  God — God's  acceptance  ;  then, 
secondly,  instruction. 

First,  He  begs  acceptation.  Therein  take  notice — (1.)  Of  the  matter, 
object,  or  thing  that  he  would  have  to  be  accepted,  the  free-will-offer 
ings  of  my  mouth.  (2.)  The  manner  of  asking  this  acceptation,  accept, 
I  beseech  thee,  0  Lord.  In  the  former,  you  may  observe  the  general 
nature  of  the  thing,  and  then  the  particular  kind ;  they  were  free 
will-offerings  ;  and  yet  more  express,  they  were  free-will-offerings 
of  his  hands  ;  not  legal  sacrifices,  but  spiritual  services,  free-will- 
offerings  of  his  mouth,  implying  praises.  Our  praises  of  God  are 
called  '  the  calves  of  our  lips/  Hosea  xiv.  2,  rendered  there  by  the 
Septuagint,  '  the  fruit  of  our  lips/  and  accordingly  translated  by  the 
apostle,  Heb.  xiii.  15,  *  The  fruit  of  our  lips,  giving  thanks  to  his 
name.'  He  was  in  deep  affliction,  wandering  up  and  down  the  desert; 
he  was  disabled  to  offer  up  to  God  any  other  sacrifice,  therefore  he 
desires  God  would  accept  the  free-will-offerings  of  his  mouth ;  he  had 
nothing  else  to  bring  him. 

Secondly,  He  begs  of  God  instruction  in  his  way,  teach  me  thy 
judgments.  By  misphalim,  'judgments/  are  meant  both  God's  sta 
tutes  and  God's  providences.  If  you  take  them  in  the  former  sense, 
for  God's  statutes,  so  he  begs  grace  to  excite,  direct,  and'  assist  him  in 
a  course  of  sincere  obedience  to  God,  practically  to  walk  according  to 
God's  will.  If  you  understand  it  in  the  latter  sense,  only  for  the  ac 
complishment  of  what  God  had  spoken  in  his  word,  for  God's  provi 
dence,  for  his  corrective  dispensation,  '  Teach  me/  he  begs  under 
standing  and  profiting  by  them. 


VER.  108.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  .  107 

I  shall  begin  with  his  first  request,  which  offereth  four  observa 
tions  : — 

1.  That  God's  people  have  their  spiritual  offerings. 

2.  That  these  spiritual  offerings  must  be  free-will-offerings. 

3.  That  these  free-will-offerings  are  graciously  accepted  by  God. 

4.  That  this  gracious   acceptance   must  be  earnestly  sought  and 
valued  as  a  great  blessing,  '  I  beseech  thee  accept/  &c. 

Doct.  1.  First,  That  God's  people  have  their  spiritual  offerings.     I 
shall  give  the  sense  of  this  point  in  five  propositions. 

1.  That  all  God's  people  are  made  priests  to  God,  for  every  offering 
supposeth  a  priest ;  so  it  is  said,  Rev.  i.  6,  that  Christ  Jesus  '  hath 
made  us  kings  and  priests.'     All  Christians,  they  have  a  communion 
with  Christ  in  all  his  offices  ;  whatever  Christ  was,  that  certainly  they 
are  in  some  measure  and  degree.     Now,  Christ  was  king,  priest,  and 
prophet ;  and  so  is  every  Christian,  in  a  spiritual  sense,  a  king,  priest, 
and  prophet ;  for  they  have  their  anointing,  their  unction  from  the  Holy 
One,  and  he  communicates  with  them  in  his  offices.     So  also  do  they 
resemble  the  priesthood  under  the  law.   In  1  Peter  ii.  5,  they  are  called 
'a  holy  priesthood  to  offer  sacrifices  to  God;'  and  1  Peter  ii.  9,  they 
are  called  '  a  royal  priesthood.'     They  are  a  holy  priesthood,  like  the 
sons  of  Aaron,  who  were  separated  from  the  people,  to  minister  before 
the  Lord  ;  and  they  are  a  royal  priesthood,  in  conformity  to  the  priest 
hood  of  Melchisedec,  who  was  '  king  of  Salem,  and  also  priest  of  the 
most  high  God.'     There  is  a  mighty  conformity  between  what  is  done 
by  every  Christian  and  the  solemnities  and  rites  used  by  the  priests 
under  the  law.     The  priests  of  the  law  were  separated  from  the  rest  of 
the  people  :  so  are  all  God's  people  from  the  rest  of  the  world.     The 
priests  of  the  law  were  to  be  anointed  with  holy  oil,  Exod.  xxviii.  41 ; 
so  all  Christians  they  receive  '  an  unction  from  the  Holy  One/  1  John 
ii.  20.     By  the  holy  oil  was  figured  the  Holy  Spirit,  which  was  the 
unction  of  the  Holy  One,  by  which  they  are  made  fit  and  ready  to 
perform  those  duties  which  are  acceptable  to  God.     After  the  priest 
was  thus  generally  prepared  by  the  anointing  to  their  services,  before 
they  went  to  offer,  they  were  to  wash  in  the  great  laver  which  stood  in 
the  sanctuary  door,  Exod.  xxix.  4  ;  Lev.  viii.  4,  5.     So  every  Christian 
is  to  be  washed  in  the  great  laver  of  regeneration,  Titus  iii.  5.     And 
when  they  are  regenerated,  born  again,  purged  and  cleansed  from 
their  sins,  then  they  are  priests  to  offer  sacrifices  to  God  ;  for  till  this 
be  done,  none  of  their  offerings  are  acceptable  to  him  :  for  '  they  that 
are  in  the  flesh  cannot  please  God/  Eom.  viii.  8  ;  and  *  the  sacrifices  of 
the  wicked  are  an  abomination  unto  the  Lord/  Prov.  xv.  8.     Thus  you 
see  in  all  these  correspondences,  and  in  many  more,  Christians  they  are 
priests.     What  the  priests  of  the  law  were  to  God,  that  is  every  Chris 
tian  now  to  God,  to  offer  spiritual  sacrifices  by  Christ  Jesus  our  Lord. 

2.  They  have  their  offerings.     The  great  work  of  the  priest  was  to 
offer  sacrifice,  and  this  is  our  employment,  to  offer  sacrifices  to  God. 
What  sacrifices  do  we  offer  now  in  the  time  of  the  gospel  ?     Not  sin- 
offerings,  but  thank-offerings.     A  sin-offering  can  be  offered  but  once : 
Heb.  x.  14,  '  By  one  offering  Jesus  Christ  hath  perfected  for  ever  them 
that  are  sanctified/     And  there  needs  no  more  of  that  kind ;  that  was 
but  to  be  once  offered,  Heb.  vii.  27;  and  therefore  there  remains 


108  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXVIII. 

nothing  more  to  be  done  by  us  but  the  offering  of  thank-offerings,  and 
this  is  to  be  done  continually :  Heb.  xiii.  15,  '  By  him  therefore  let  us 
offer  the  sacrifice  of  praise  to  God  continually,  that  is,  the  fruit  of  our 
lips,  giving  thanks  to  his  name.' 

3.  These  offerings  must  be  spiritual  thank-offerings.  Under  the 
law  the  thank-offering  was  that  of  a  beast,  but  now  under  the  gospel 
we  offer  spiritual  sacrifices ;  therefore  the  apostle  saith.  1  Peter  ii.  5, 
'  Ye  are  built  up  a  spiritual  house,  an  holy  priesthood,  to  offer  up 
spiritual  sacrifices,  acceptable  to  God  by  Jesus  Christ.'  The  sacrifice 
must  suit  with  the  nature  of  the  priesthood.  The  priesthood  is 
spiritual,  and  not  after  the  law  of  a  carnal  commandment,  and  not  by 
an  external  consecration,  but  the  inward  anointing  of  the  Holy  Ghost. 
And  herein  we  differ  from  the  priests  of  the  law,  because  the  very 
nature  and  substance  of  our  worship  is  more  pleasing  to  God  than  the 
nature  of  theirs";  for  moral  worship  is  better  and  more  suited  to  the 
nature  of  God  than  ceremonial :  '  God  is  a  spirit,  and  will  be  wor 
shipped  in  spirit,'  John  iv.  24.  And  therefore,  when  ceremonial 
worship  was  in  force,  they  that  rested  in  external  ceremonies,  and  did 
not  look  to  the  spiritual  intent  and  signification  of  them,  were  not 
accepted  by  God  ;  though  the  ceremony  was  performed  with  never  so 
much  pomp,  though  they  came  with  their  flocks  and  herds,  yet  praying 
to  God,  and  praising  God  with  a  willing  mind,  which  was  the  soul  of 
their  offering,  was  that  alone  which  was  acceptable  to  God ;  therefore 
it  is  said,  Ps.  Ixix.  30,  31,  *  I  will  praise  the  name  of  God  with  a  song, 
and  will  magnify  him  with  thanksgiving :  this  also  shall  please  the 
Lord  better  than  an  ox  or  bullock  that  hath  horns  and  hoofs ; '  that  is, 
which  is  perfect  and  exact  according  to  the  institutions  of  the  law,  for 
there  was  to  be  no  blemish  in  the  sacrifice  of  the  law ;  yet  calling  upon 
the  name  of  God,  and  praising  him,  is  better  than  the  service  performed 
with  the  exactest  conformity  to  legal  rites:  Ps.  1.  13-15,  'Will  I  eat 
the  flesh  of  bulls,  or  drink  the  blood  of  goats  ?  Offer  unto  God 
thanksgiving,  and  pay  thy  vows  unto  the  Most  High,  and  call  upon 
me  in  the  day  of  trouble,  I  will  deliver  thee,  and  thou  shalt  glorify  me.' 
The  Lord  draws  them  off  from  ceremonies  to  the  spiritual  service ;  it 
is  more  becoming  the  nature  of  God,  and  it  is  more  reasonable  service. 
The  offering  of  a  beast  hath  not  so  much  of  God's  nature,  nor  of  man's 
nature  in  it,  only  God  would  keep  it  up  for  a  while ;  therefore  now 
these  are  the  great  offerings. 

4.  The  two  great  sacrifices  required  of  us,  prayer  and  praise ;  there 
are  many  others,  but  they  are  implied  in  these.  To  instance,  "under 
the  gospel  there  is  this  thank-offering,  presenting  ourselves  to  the 
Lord,  dedicating  ourselves  to  the  Lord's  use  and  service :  Eom.  xii.  1, 


the  Lord,  and  unto  us  by  the  will  of  God.'  And  then  there  is  alms : 
Heb.  xiii.  16,  'To  do  good  and  communicate  forget  not,  for  with  such 
sacrifices  God  is  well  pleased.'  And  when  the  Philippians  had  made 
contribution  to  Paul's  necessities,  he  saith  it  was  '  a  sacrifice  of  a  sweet- 
smelling  savour  unto  God/  Phil.  iv.  18.  Ay !  but  now  both  these  are 
included  in  the  other  two,  namely,  as  they  are  evidences  of  our  thank- 


VEK.  108.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  109 

fulness  to  God,  and  the  sense  of  his  love  and  favour  which  we  have 
received  by  Christ.  The  great  and  usual  offerings  are  '  the  fruit  of 
our  lips/  '  the  calves  of  our  lips/  here  called  '  the  free- will-offerings  of 
our  mouth/  prayer  and  praise.  That  prayer  is  a  sacrifice,  see  Ps.  cxli. 
2,  '  Let  my  prayer  be  set  before  thee  as  incense,  and  the  lifting  up  of 
my  hands  as  the  evening  sacrifice.'  The  daily  offering  was  accom 
panied  with  incense,  and  he  mentions  the  evening  sacrifice,  because 
then  was '  a  more  perfect  atonement  for  the  day,  therefore  when  the 
evening  sacrifice  came,  it  was  to  be  understood  they  were  perfectly 
reconciled  to  God.  And  then  that  praise  is  a  sacrifice,  see  Ps.  liv.  6, 
'  I  will  freely  sacrifice  unto  thee  ;  I  will  praise  thy  name,  0  Lord,  for 
it  is  good.3  And  in  that  other  place  where  the  Lord  rejects  the  flesh 
of  bulls  and  blood  of  goats,  praise  is  substituted,  '  Will  I  eat  the  flesh 
of  bulls  and  blood  of  goats?'  No :  Ps.  1.  14,  '  Offer  to  me  thanks 
giving,  and  pay  thy  vows  unto  the  Most  High.'  So  Ps.  cxvi.  17,  18. 
So  that  prayers  and  praises  are  the  oblations  which  we  offer  unto  God 
under  the  gospel,  either  acknowledgments  for  former  mercies,  or  peti 
tions  for  future  deliverances.  These  are  the  two  duties  which  contain 
the  substance  of  the  ceremonies  under  the  law,  and  are  daily  and  con 
stantly  to  be  performed  by  us. 

5.  Whatever  was  figured  in  the  old  sacrifices,  it  must  be  spiritually 
performed  in  the  duty  of  prayer  and  praise.  In  those  legal  rites,  there 
was  an  evangelical  equity,  or  something  that  was  moral  and  spiritual 
for  us  still  to  observe. 

As,  first,  in  prayer,  truth  was  the  inward  part  of  the  sacrifice,  for 
the  mere  external  oblation  was  of  no  significancy  with  God.  There 
were  three  things  wherein  it  symbolizeth  with  prayer  ;  in  prayer  there 
is  required  brokenness  of  heart,  owning  of  Christ,  renewing  covenant 
with  God. 

[1.]  One  thing  that  was  required  in  sacrifices  was  brokenness  of 
heart ;  for  when  a  man  came  to  present  his  beast  before  the  Lord,  he 
was  to  consider  this  beast  was  to  be  slain  and  burnt  with  fire ;  and  to 
consider,  All  this  was  my  case  ;  I  might  have  been  consumed  with  his 
wrath,  and  be  burnt  with  fire ;  and  so  come  with  a  compunctionate 
spirit,  with  brokenness  of  heart,  to  bemoan  his  case  before  the  Lord ; 
therefore  it  is  said,  Ps.  li.  17,  *  The  sacrifices  of  God  are  a  broken 
spirit :  a  broken  and  a  contrite  heart,  0  God,  thou  wilt  not  despise/ 
This  is  required  in  every  one  that  comes  to  prayer,  brokenness  of 
heart ;  that  is,  a  sensibleness  of  his  want  of  those  good  things  for  which 
he  comes,  and  his  inability  to  supply  himself  with  anything  without 
God ;  nay,  his  ill-deservings,  how  justly  he  might  be  denied  of  God,  and 
cursed  by  all  manner  of  plagues ;  how  he  hath  forfeited  all  manner  of 
blessings ;  this  must  be  at  the  bottom. 

[2.]  The  sacrifices  implied  an  eying  of  the  Redeemer,  by  virtue  of 
whose  oblation  and  intercession  we  are  accepted  with  God ;  for  every 
one  that  came  with  his  sacrifice  was  to  lay  his  hand  upon  the  head  of 
the  beast,  to  put  his  sins  there,  to  show  Christ  bore  the  iniquity  of  us 
all ;  and  in  every  prayer  we  make,  there  is  this  evangelical  equity,  by 
virtue  of  the  old  sacrifice  remaining  upon  us,  that  we  should  eye  the 
Kedeemer,  even  Christ  Jesus,  our  Lord,  '  Who  hath  given  himself  for 
us,  an  offering  and  a  sacrifice  to  God  for  a  sweet-smelling  savour/  Eph. 


110  SERMONS  UPOS  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiR.  CXVIII. 

v.  2.  He  is  the  expiatory  sacrifice,  and  therefore  in  all  our  supplicatory 
or  gratulatory  offerings  to  God  we  must  still  look  to  him.  The  word, 
an  offering,  relates  to  things  destitute  of  life  that  were  dedicated  to 
God,  as  flour,  oil,  frankincense ;  that  which  was  signified  thereby  was 
accomplished  in  Christ.  And  for  the  other  word,  sacrifice,  gave  him 
self  as  an  offering  and  sacrifice ;  the  beasts  whose  blood  was  shed, 
those  things  which  had  life  in  them,  were  called  a  real  sacrifice  offered 
to  God  to  appease  his  justice.  Thus  Christ  Jesus  was  given  as  a 
sacrifice,  to  obtain  all  manner  of  blessings  for  us. '  We  should  look 
upon  God  as  an  all-sufficient  fountain  of  grace,  and  the  author  of  every 
good  gift,  depending  upon  him  for  his  goodness  and  bounty  for  Christ's 


[3.]  In  sacrifices  there  was  implied  a  renewing  of  covenant ;  so  the 
Lord  saith,  Ps.  1.  5,  '  Gather  my  saints  together,  that  have  made  a 
covenant  with  me  by  sacrifice.'  As  they  did  dedicate  the  beast  offered 
to  God,  so  was  the  worshipper  to  dedicate  himself  to  God.  Now  we 
must  renew  this  dedication  of  ourselves  to  the  Lord's  service ;  all  this 
was  morally  in  the  sacrifices,  and  is  to  be  done  every  day  in  our  future 
prayers,  with  brokenness  of  heart,  eying  our  Eedeemer,  casting  our 
whole  dependence  upon  him,  and  in  a  sense  of  his  love  dedicating  and 
devoting  ourselves  to  God. 

Secondly,  For  the  other  duty,  of  thanksgiving  and  praise  for  mercies 
received.  Every  point  and  passage  of  his  undeserved  favour  to  be 
owned,  and  praise  thereof  to  be  given  to  God,  and  still  to  look  on  all 
done  not  for  our  sakes,  but  for  the  sake  of  Christ  Jesus.  You  read 
under  the  law,  Lev.  iii.  3,  when  the  thank-offering  was  brought  to 
God,  it  was  to  be  laid  upon  the  top  of  the  burnt-offering.  First  they 
were  to  bring  the  burnt-offering,  and  offer  that  to  God,  then  to  lay 
upon  it  the  peace  or  thank-offering,  to  show  that  first  we  must  be 
reconciled  to  God,  and  by  virtue  of  that  all  mercies  descend  and  come 
down  upon  us ;  and  then  upon  this  solemn  occasion  they  were  to  give 
up  themselves  anew  to  the  Lord.  So  the  apostle  presseth  this,  Eom. 
xii.  1,  '  I  beseech  you,  brethren,  by  the  mercies  of  God,  that  ye  present 
your  bodies  a  living  sacrifice,  holy,  acceptable  unto  God,  which  is  your 
reasonable  service.'  And  this  is  one  part  of  the  offering  of  our  lips, 
namely,  when  we  come  solemnly  by  virtue  of  every  mercy  received,  and 
promise  obedience  anew  and  afresh  to  God.  To  apply  this — (1.)  Are 
you  priests  ?  (2.)  Do  you  offer  sacrifices  of  prayer  and  praise  to  God 
continually  ? 

[1.]  Are  you  priests  unto  God?  Are  you  priests  by  separation? 
Hath  God  called  you  out  from  amongst  men  ?  Ps.  iv.  3,  '  The  Lord 
hath  set  apart  the  man  that  is  godly  for  himself.'  Hath  God  called 
you  off  from  sin  to  holiness,  from  self  to  Christ,  from  the  creature  to 
God  ?  for  these  are  the  three  things  wherein  conversion  consists.  From 
the  creature  to  God,  as  our  last  end ;  from  self  to  Christ,  as  the  only 
means  to  come  to  God ;  and  from  sin  to  holiness,  as  the  only  way  to 
get  an  interest  in  Christ.  Are  you  called  off  from  the  common  course 
of  living,  wherein  most  men  are  involved,  that  you  may  live  and  act 
for  God?  Are  you  priests  by  unction?  Are  you  anointed  by  the 
Spirit  as  to  gifts  and  graces,  and  qualified  and  made  meet  for  this  holy 
ministration  unto  God  ?  Christ  hath  purchased  gifts  in  some  measure 


VER.  108.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  Ill 

for  his  people ;  for  as  we  were  maimed  in  Adam,  not  only  as  to  graces 
but  also  as  to  gifts,  so  is  our  restitution  by  Christ,  that  the  plaster 
may  be  as  broad  as  the  sore.  We  have  necessary  gifts  given  us  by 
virtue  of  his  ascension,  whereby  we  may  lay  open  our  state  and  case 
to  God.  Indeed,  all  God's  people  have  not  a  like  measure  of  gifts,  and 
carnal  men  may  come  behind  in  no  gift,  therefore  have  you  the  grace 
of  prayer :  Zech.  xii.  10,  '  I  will  pour  upon  them  the  Spirit  of  grace 
and  supplication/  Have  you  a  heart  qualified  by  grace,  made  meet 
to  converse  with  God?  the  tendency  and  disposition  of  your  souls  that 
carrieth  you  to  God  ?  grace  that  seeks  a  vent  and  utterance  in  prayer 
and  holy  converses  with  God?  and  are  you  priests  by  purgation? 
Every  priest  was  to  be  washed  in  the  great  laver ;  are  you  washed  and 
purged  from  sin,  that  you  may  serve  God  acceptably  ?  Mai.  iii.  3, 
first  they  must  be  purified,  then  offer  unto  the  Lord  an  offering  in 
righteousness.  God  will  not  take  a  gift  out  of  a  carnal  man's  hand ; 
and  therefore  you  should  look  to  this,  that  you  be  purified  and  purged. 

[2.]  Do  you  offer  spiritual  sacrifices  to  God,  of  prayer  and  praise  ? 

(1.)  Prayer,  a  duty  very  kindly  to  the  saints.  It  is  natural  to 
them ;  it  is,  as  it  were,  the  sphere  of  their  activity,  the  Spirit  dis 
covers  himself  to  men  in  prayer.  As  soon  as  they  are  converted  to 
God  they  will  fall  a-praying,  and  be  dealing  with  God  often  in  this 
kind ;  therefore  the  children  of  God  are  described  by  this,  as  a  duty 
wherein  they  are  most  exercised  :  Zeph.  iii.  10,  '  My  suppliants ;'  and 
Ps.  xxiv.  6,  '  This  is  a  generation  of  them  that  seek  thee ;'  to  show 
this  is  a  vital  act,  a  usual  and  constant  expressing  of  the  new  nature 
that  is  put  into  them.  Surely  they  that  love  God  will  be  always  seek 
ing  him,  and  a  broken  heart,  sensible  of  its  condition,  can  never  want 
an  errand  to  the  throne  of  grace.  You  are  to  offer  sacrifices  as  they 
did  under  the  law.  Now  under  the  law  there  was  a  daily  sacrifice, 
every  morning  they  were  to  offer  a  lamb  without  spot,  Num.  xxviii.  3, 
to  show  that  every  morning  they  should  come  and  sue  out  their  pardon 
by  Christ,  and  every  evening  to  look  to  the  Messiah,  the  lamb  of  God, 
that  takes  away  the  sins  of  the  world ;  that  was  the  intent  of  the  type. 
Now  I  reason  thus :  certainly  we  have  as  much  need  as  they ;  we  are 
sinners  as  well  as  that  people  which  lived  under  that  dispensation ; 
therefore  every  morning  we  must  look  to  the  lamb  of "  God.  Nay,  we 
have  more  reason,  for  they  could  not  clearly  discern  the  meaning  of 
that  type ;  but  now  all  things  are  open,  we  can  behold  the  lamb  of 
God,  therefore  must  be  often  with  God,  suing  out  our  pardon'  in  the 
name  of  Christ. 

(2.)  The  sacrifice  of  praise.  It  is  notable  when  the  apostle  had 
spoken  of  Christ  as  a  sin-offering  he  mentions  this  as  the  main  thing 
in  the  gospel :  Heb.  xiii.  15,  'By  him  therefore  let  us  offer  the  sacri 
fice  of  praise  to  God  continually/  Praise,  it  ought  continually,  fre 
quently,  and  upon  all  occasions  to  be  offered  to  Ged,  for  this  is  a  more 
noble  duty  than  prayer.  Self-love  may  put  us  upon  prayer,  but  love 
to  God  puts  us  upon  praise  and  thanksgiving ;  we  pray  because  we 
need  God,  and  we  praise  because  we  love  him.  In  prayer  we  become 
beggars,  that  God  would  bestow  something  upon  us ;  but  in  praise  we 
come,  according  to  poor  creatures,  to  bestow  something  upon  God, 
even  to  give  him  the  glory  due  to  his  name,  and  tell  him  what  he 


112  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEE.   CXVIII. 

hath  done  for  our  poor  souls.  This  is  the  most  noble  among  all  the 
parts  of  Christian  worship.  We  have  more  cause  to  give  thanks  than 
to  pray,  for  we  have  many  things  more  to  praise  God  for  than  to  pray 
to  him  for.  There  are  many  favours  which  go  before  all  thought  of 
desert,  and  many  favours  still  bestowed  upon  us  beyond  what  we  can 
either  ask  or  think. 

Doct.  2.  Secondly,  These  spiritual  offerings  must  be  free-will-offer 
ings  to  God.  This  expression  is  often  spoken  of  in  the  law,  Lev.  xxil 
18  •  Num.  xxix.  39  ;  2  Chron.  xxxi.  14 ;  Amos  iv.  5.  What  are  these 
free-will-offerings  ?  They  are  distinguished  from  God's  stated  worship, 
and  distinguished  from  that  service  which  fell  under  a  vow.  Besides 
the  stated  peace-offerings  there  were  certain  sacrifices  performed  upon 
certain  occasions  to  testify  God's  general  goodness,  and  upon  receipts 
of  some  special  mercy ;  and  you  will  find  these  sacrifices  to  be  expressly 
distinguished  from  such  services  as  men  bound  themselves  to  by  vow, 
Lev.  vii.  16.  What  is  there  that  answers  now  to  these  free-will-offer 
ings  ?  Certainly  this  is  not  spoken  to  this  use,  that  a  man  should 
devise  any  part  of  worship  of  his  own  head,  whatever  pretence  of  zeal 
he  hath ;  but  they  serve  to  teach  us  two  things  :— 

1.  They  are  to  teach  us  how  ready  we  should  be  to  take  all  occa 
sions  of  thankfulness  and  spiritual  worship;  for  besides  their  vowed 
services  and  instituted  services  they  had  daily  sacrifices  and  set  feasts 
commanded  by  God ;  they  had  their  free- will-offerings  offered  to  God 
in  thankfulness  for  some  special  blessing  received  or  deliverance  from 
danger. 

2.  It  shows  with  what  voluntariness  and  cheerfulness  we  should  go 
about  God's  worship  in  the  gospel,  and  what  a  free  disposition  of  heart 
there  should  be,  and  edge  upon  our  affections  in  all  things  that  we 
offer  to  God.     And  in  this  latter  sense  I  shall  speak,  that  our  offerings 
to  God,  prayer  and  praise,  should  be  free-will-offerings,  come  from  us 
not  like  water  out  of  a  still  forced  by  the  fire,  but  like  water  out  of  a 
fountain,  with  native  freeness,  readily  and  freely. 

[1.]  God  loves  a  cheerful  giver;  constrained  service  is  of  no  value 
and  respect  with  him.  Under  the  law,  when  sacrifice  of  beasts  was 
in  fashion,  wherefore  did  God  choose  the  purest  and  fattest  of  every 
thing  offered  to  him,  but  as  a  testimony , of  a  willing  mind  ?  And  still 
he  looks  to  the  affections  rather  than  the  action.  God  weighs  the 
spirit,  Prov.  xvi.  2.  When  God  comes  to  put  them  into  the  balance 
of  the  sanctuary,  what  doth  he  weigh  ?  External  circumstances  of 
duty,  or  the  pomp  and  appearance  wherein  men  go  ?  No ;  but  he  con 
siders  with  what  kind  of  heart  it  is  done ;  and  the  love  of  sin,  God 
takes  notice  of  that,  as  well  as  the  practice  of  sin.  So  in  our  duties, 
God  takes  notice  of  the  love,  the  inclination  of  our  souls,  as  well  as 
the  outward  service  ;  therefore  our  offerings  must  be  free  and  voluntary. 

[2.]  God  deserves  it,  he  doth  us  good  with  all  his  heart,  and  all  his 
givings  come  to  us  from  his  love.  Why  did  he  give  Christ  for  us  and 
to  us  ?  '  He  loved  us.'  Why  gave  he  him  for  us  ?  '  God  so  loved  the 
world,'  John  iii.  16.  Why  doth  he  give  Christ  to  us  ?  Eph.  ii.  4,  5, 
*  Godr  who  is  rich  in  mercy,  for  his  great  love  wherewith  he  loved  us, 
even  when  we  were  dead  in  sins,  hath  quickened  us  together  with 
Christ.'  That  which  moved  God  to  bestow  his  saving  grace  upon  us 


VER.  108.  J  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  113 

was  his  great  love,  and  all  the  good  we  receive  from  him.  Why, 
mercy  pleaseth  him  :  '  I  will  rejoice  over  them  to  do  them  good/  If 
he  deliver  us  out  of  any  danger,  he  hath  '  loved  us  from  the  grave/ 
Isa.  xxxviii.  7.  Now  love  should  season  all  our  services  to  God. 

[3.]  Where  a  day  of  grace  hath  passed  upon  our  hearts,  so  it  will  be ; 
the  soul  will  come  off  readily  and  freely  to  the  duties  God  hath  required 
of  us :  Ps.  ex.  3,  '  Thy  people  shall  be  a  willing  people  in  the  day  of 
thy  power.'  We  are  naturally  backward,  slow  of  heart  to  do  anything 
that  is  good,  hang  off  from  God,  will  not  be  subject  to  him  ;  but  when 
the  day  of  his  power  passeth  upon  us,  then  we  are  a  willing  people,  we 
are  more  delighted  in  communion  with  God,  less  averse  from  him,  the 
bent  of  our  hearts  is  altered,  and  the  stream  of  our  affections  is  turned 
another  way.  and  our  converses  with  God  are  more  delightful,  and  we 
are  as  earnest  in  serving  God  as  before  we  were  in  serving  sin. 

Use.  To  press  us  to  serve  God  with  a  perfect  heart  and  with  a 
willing  mind,  1  Chron.  xxix.  9.  Thus  when  we  give  God  any  spiritual 
sacrifice,  when  we  pray  to  or  praise  him,  we  should  do  it  willingly,  not 
customarily,  or  by  constraint,  or  for  by-ends,  nor  by  the  compulsion  of 
a  natural  conscience  ;  and  when  we  feel,  as  we  shall  now  and  then,  any 
tediousness  and  irksomeness  in  prayer,  we  should  quicken  ourselves 
by  this  motive :  Christ  Jesus,  who  was  our  sin-offering,  he  willingly 
offered  up  himself  upon  the  service  of  our  salvation.  I  might  urge 
other  arguments,  as  the  nobleness  of  our  service,  the  greatness  of  our 
reward,  the  many  sweet  experiences  we  shall  gain  in  our  converse  with 
God ;  but  this  should  be  as  the  reason  of  reasons,  and  instead  of  all. 
Christ  Jesus  did  not  grudgingly  go  about  the  work  of  our  salvation, 
but  willingly  offered  himself :  Ps.  xl.  8,  '  I  delight  to  do  thy  will,  0 
my  God ;  yea,  thy  law  is  within  my  heart.'  When  God  would  have 
no  more  legal  sin-offerings,  but  the  great  sin-offering  of  the  gospel  was 
to  be  produced  and  brought  forth  in  the  view  of  the  world,  '  Lo,  I 
come ;  in  the  volume  of  the  book  it  is  written  of  me/  Now  our  thank- 
offering  should  be  carried  on  with  the  same  willingness.  Christ  will 
be  served  now  out  of  gratitude,  and  therefore  his  love  should  constrain 
us.  Surely  if  we  believe  this  great  mystery  of  Christ,  that  he  did 
willingly  offer  himself  upon  the  service  of  our  souls,  and  if  we  have 
any  faith  in  him,  '  faith  will  work  by  love,'  Gal.  v.  6.  The  soul  may 
reason  and  discourse  thus  with  itself,  Do  I  believe  Christ  Jesus  did 
thus  willingly  give  himself  for  my  soul  ?  how  can  I  be  backward  in 
God's  service  and  hang  off  from  him  ?  Oh !  let  me  live  to  Christ,  '  who 
loved  me,  and  gave  himself  for  me,'  Gal.  ii.  20.  What !  shall  I  be 
more  backward  to  do  for  God  than  Christ  was  to  die  for  me,  to  go  to 
the  throne  of  grace  than  Christ  Jesus  was  to  go  to  the  cross  ?  Can  I 
hang  him  off  from  such  pleasing  noble  service,  when  Jesus  Christ  my 
Lord  refused  not  the  hard  work  of  my  redemption  ?  If  his  will  was 
in  it,  certainly  so  should  be  yours. 

Doct.  3.  The  third  point,  that  these  free- will-offerings  are  accepted 
with  God.  *  They  shall  come  with  rams,'  speaking  of  the  conversion  of 
the  Gentiles  in  terms  proper  to  the  old  legal  dispensation,  '  and  they 
shall  come  with  acceptance/  Isa.  Ix.  7 ;  and  Mai.  iii.  4,  '  Then  shall 
the  offering  of  Judah  and  Jerusalem  be  pleasant  unto  the  Lord/ 
Upon  what  grounds,  and  what  way  our  acceptance  with  God  is  brought 

VOL.  VIII.  H 


114  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEK.  CXIX. 

about  ?   Our  works  in  themselves  cannot  please  God,  they  are  accepted- 
not  as  merits,  but  as  testimonies  of  thankfulness. 

1.  Our  persons  are  by  Christ  reconciled  to  God,  and  in  worship  he 
delights.     This  is  the  proper  importance  ^pf  laying  the  peace-offering 
upon  the  top  of  the  burnt- offering,  Lev.^iii.^10. 

2.  Our  infirmities  are  covered  with  his  righteousness  ;  for  Christ  is 
the  propitiation,  the  mercy-seat  that  interposeth  between  the  law  and 
God's  gracious  audience.     We  come  to  the  throne  of  grace  when  we 
come  to  God  in  and  by  him,  Heb.  iv.  16. 

3.  By  his  intercession  our  c[uties  are  commended  to  God  ;  as  Aaron 
was  to  stand  before  the  Lord  with  his  plate  upon  his  forehead,  where 
in  was  writ,  '  Holiness  to  the  Lord.'     Why  ?     '  That  he  might  bear 
the  iniquity  of  the  people,  that  they  might  be  accepted  of  the  Lord/ 
All  our  acceptance  comes  from  Christ's  intercession  ;   and  alas !    our 
prayers  and  praises  are  unsavoury  eructations,  belches  of  the  flesh,  as 
they  come  from  us  ;  a  great  deal  of  infirmity  we  mingle  with  them,  we 
mingle  brimstone  with  our  incense  and  sweet  spices,  therefore  provoke 
the  Lord  to  abhor  and  despise  us  ;  but  there  is  an  angel  stands  by  the 
altar  that  perfumes  all  our   prayers  and  praises.     How  should  this 
encourage  us  against  the  slightings  of  the  world  and  discouragements 
of  our  own  hearts,  and  to  look  after  the  testimony  of  our  acceptance 
with  God  ! 

Doct.  4.  The  fourth  point,  that  this  gracious  acceptance  must  be 
sought  and  valued  as  a  great  blessing  :  Ps.  xix.  14,  '  Let  the  words  of 
my  mouth  and  the  meditations  of  my  heart  be  acceptable  in  thy  sight, 
0  Lord/  And  it  must  be  valued  as  a  great  blessing,  if  we  consider 
either  who  the  Lord  is,  or  what  we  are,  or  what  it  is  we  go  to  him  for. 
If  we  consider  who  the  Lord  is,  God  all-sufficient,  that  standeth  in  no 
need  of  what  we  can  do,  that  cannot  be  profited  by  us  ;  he  is  of  so  great 
a  majesty,  that  his  honour  is  rather  lessened  than  greatened  by  any 
thing  we  can  do ;  the  great  author  of  all  blessings,  all  our  offerings 
come  from  himself  first :  '  Of  thine  own  have  we  given  thee/  And  if 
we  consider  what  we  are,  poor,  impotent,  sinful  creatures,  will  God 
take,  an  offering  at  our  hands  ?  And  if  we  consider  what  we  do, 
nothing  but  imperfection;  there  is  more  of  us  in  it,  of  our  fleshly  part, 
in  anything  we  do,  yet  that  these  things  should  be  accepted  with  God. 


SEKMON  CXIX. 

My  soul  is  continually  in  my  hand :  yet  do  I  not  forget  thy 
law.—Vm.  109. 

IN  this  verse  and  the  next,  David  asserts  his  integrity  against  two  sorts 
of ^ temptations  and  ways  of  assault — the  violence  and  craft  of  his  ene 
mies.  ^  Their  violence  in  this  verse,  my  soul  is  in  my  hand  ;  and  their 
craft  in  the  next  verse,  they  laid  snares  for  me.  And  yet  still  his  heart 
is  upright  with  God. 


VER.  109.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  115 

In  this  verse  observe — (1.)  David's  condition,  my  soul  is  continually 
in  my  hand.  (2.)  His  constancy  and  perseverance,  notwithstanding 
that  condition,  yet  do  I  not  forget  tliy  law. 

First,  Let  me  speak  of  the  condition  he  was  now  in,  in  that  expres 
sion,  '  My  soul  is  continually  in  my  hand/  The  soul  in  the  hand  is  a 
phrase  often  used  in  scripture;  it  is  said  of  Jephthah,  Judges  xii.  3, '  I  put 
my  life  in  my  hands,  and  passed  over  against  the  children  of  Ammon/ 
So  Job  xiii.  14,  '  Wherefore  do  I  take  my  flesh  in  my  teeth,  and  put 
my  life  in  my  hand  ?  '  And  when  David  went  to  encounter  Goliath, 
1  Sam.  xix.  5,  it  is  said,  '  He  put  his  life  in  his  hand,  and  slew  the 
Philistine.'  In  exposing  ourselves  to  any  hazard  and  dangers  in  any 
great  attempt,  it  is  called  the  putting  of  our  life  in  our  hand.  And  the 
witch  of  Endor,  when  she  ventured  against  a  law  to  please  Saul,  and  so 
had  exposed  her  life,  this  form  of  speech  is  used  concerning  her,  1  Sam. 
xxviii.  21,  '  I  have  put  my  life  in  my  hand/  Briefly,  then,  by  soul  is 
meant  life,  and  this  is  said  to  be  in  his  hand  ;  I  go  in  danger  of  my 
life  day  by  day  ;  as  if  he  should  say,  I  have  my  soul  ready  divorced 
when  God  calls  for  it.  It  not  only  notes  liableness  to  danger,  but 
resolution  and  courage  to  encounter  it.  In  a  sense,  we  always  carry 
our  souls  in  our  hands ;  our  life  hangs  by  a  single  thread,  which  is 
soon  fretted  asunder,  and  therefore  we  should  every  day  be  praying 
that  it  may  not  be  taken  from  us,  as  the  souls  of  wicked  men  are,  Job 
xxvii.  8 ;  Luke  xii.  20,  but  yielded  up,  and  resigned  to  God.  But 
more  especially  is  the  expression  verified  when  we  walk  in  the  midst 
of  dangers  and  in  a  thousand  deaths  :  '  My  soul  is  in  my  hand  ; '  that 
is,  I  am  exposed  to  dangers  that  threaten  my  life  every  day. 

Secondly,  Here  is  his  affection  to  God's  word,  notwithstanding  this 
condition,  '  Yet  do  I  not  forget  thy  law/  There  is  a  twofold  remem 
brance  of  things — notional  and  affective  ;  and  so  there  is  a  twofold 
forgetfulness : — 

1.  Notional.     We  forget  the  word,  when  the  notion  of  things  writ 
ten  therein  has  either  wholly  or  in  part  vanished  out  of  our  minds. 

2.  Affectively.  We  are  said  to  forget  the  word  of  God  when,  though 
we  still  retain  the  notion,  yet  we  are  not  answerably  affected,  do  not 
act  according  thereunto,  and  this  is  that  which  is  understood  here,  '  I 
do  not  forget  thy  law/     Law  is  taken  generally  for  any  part  of  the 
word  of  God,  and  implies  the  word  of  promise,  as  well  as  the  word  of 
command.     As  for  instance  : — 

[1.]  If  we  interpret  it  of  the  promise,  the  sense  will  be  this  :  I  do 
not  forget  thy  law  ;  that  is,  I  take  no  discouragements  from  my  dan 
gers  to  let  fall  my  trust,  as  if  there  were  no  providence,  no  God  to  take 
care  of  those  that  walk  closely  with  him.  Heb.  xii.  5,  when  they  fainted, 
they  are  said  to  have  forgotten  the  consolation  which  spake  unto  them 
as  unto  children. 

^  [2.]  If  we  interpret  this  word  '  law '  of  the  commandments  and 
directions  of  the  word,  and  so  I  do  not  forget  it ;  that  is  either  by  way 
of  omission,  I  do  not  slacken  my  diligence  in  thy  service  for  all  this ; 
or  by  way  of  commission,  I  do  not  act  contrary  to  conscience ;  and  the 
effect  of  the  whole  verse  is  this :  Though  I  walk  in  the  midst  of  dangers 
and  a  thousand  deaths  continually,  yet  at  such  a  time,  when  a  man 
would  think  he  should  not  stand  upon  nice  points,  even  then  he 


SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXIX. 

should  keep  up  a  dear  and  tender  respect  to  God's  law.  And  he  doth 
the  rather  express  himself  thus,  I  do  not  forget  it,  because  great  temp 
tations  blind  and  divert  the  mind  from  the  thought  of  our  duty.  Our 
minds  are  so  surprised  with  the  dangers  before  us,  that  God's  law  is 
quite  forgotten  as  a  thing  out  of  mind,  and  we  act  as  if  we  had  no  such 
comfort  and  direction  given  us.  The  points  are  two  :— 

1.  That  such  things  may  befall  God's  children  that  they  may  carry 
their  lives  in  their  hands  from  day  to  day. 

2.  When  we  carry  our  lives  in  our  hands,  no  kind  of  danger  should 
make  us  warp  and  turn  aside  from  the  direction  of  God's  word. 

Doct.  1.  That  such  things  may  befall  God's  children  that  they  may 
carry  their  lives  in  their  hands  from  day  to  day. 

That  this  is  often  the  lot  of  God's  people,  we  may  prove :  1  Cor.  xv. 
31,  *  I  protest,  by  our  rejoicing  which  I  have  in  Christ  Jesus  our  Lord, 
I  die  daily.'  How  can  that  be,  I  die  daily,  since  we  die  but  once  ? 
The  meaning  is,  I  go  still  in  danger  of  my  life.  Such  times  may 
come  when  we  run  hazards  for  Christ  every  day,  so  that  in  the  morning 
we  do  not  know  what  may  fall  out  before  night :  2  Cor.  xi.  23,  '  In 
deaths  often ; '  that  is,  in  danger  of  death.  So  1  Peter  iv.  19,  '  Let 
those  that  suffer  according  to  the  will  of  God,  commit  the  keeping  of 
their  souls  to  him  in  well-doing,  as  unto  a  faithful  Creator/  Let 
them  commit  their  souls,  that  is,  their  lives  ;  the  soul  is  sometimes 
put  for  life,  for  life  spiritual  or  life  eternal,  but  there  it  is  put  for  life 
natural ;  so  let  them  commit  their  souls  to  God,  that  is,  in  times  of 
danger  and  hazard.  Let  them  go  on  in  well-doing  cheerfully,  and 
though  there  be  no  visible  means  of  safety  and  defence,  let  them 
commit  their  lives  to  God  in  well-doing  ;  when  they  carry  their  lives 
in  their  own  hands,  let  them  be  careful  to  put  them  into  the  hands  of 
God.  Let  God  do  what  he  pleaseth,  for  he  is  a  faithful  Creator  ;  that 
is,  as  once  he  created  them  out  of  nothing,  so  he  is  able  to  preserve 
them  when  there  is  nothing  visible,  nothing  to  trust  to.  Often  this 
may  be  the  case  of  God's  people,  that  they  carry  their  lives  in  their 
hands  from  day  to  day.  That  you  may  take  the  force  of  the  expres 
sion,  consider  when  the  people  of  Gpd  are  in  the  midst  of  their 
enemies,  then  they  carry  their  lives  in  their  hands  :  Mat.  x.  16, '  Behold 
I  send  you  forth  as  sheep  in  the  midst  of  wolves ; '  when  they  are 
among  men  no  better  affected  to  them  than  wolves  to  sheep,  and  when 
men  have  them  in  their  power,  and  there  is  no  outward  restraint  of 
laws  and  government ;  for  whatever  enmity  they  have  or  act  against 
them,  laws  and  government  are  a  great  restraint ;  as  Gen.  xxvii.  41, 
*  The  days  of  mourning  for  my  father  are  at  hand,  then  will  I  slay  my 
brother  Jacob.'  Till  Isaac  was  dead,  there  was  a  check  upon  him ; 
but  sometimes  it  is  in  the  power  of  their  hands  to  do  them  mischief : 
Micah  ii.  1,  *  They  practise  iniquity,  because  it  is  in  the  power  of  their 
hand.'  When  men  are  ill  affected,  no  restraint  upon  them,  no  im 
pediment  in  their  way,  yea,  when  they  begin  to  persecute  and  rage 
against  the  servants  of  God,  and  we  know  not  when  our  turn  comes, 
then  we  are  said  to  have  our  lives  in  our  hand ;  as  Korn.  viii.  36, 
'  For  thy  sake  are  we  killed  all  the  day  long ; '  that  is,  some  of  that 
body  killed,  now  one  picked  up,  then  another  ;  in  these  cases  they 
are  said  to  carry  their  lives  in  their  hands,  when  they  are  in  the  power 


VER.  109.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  117 

of  men  that  h£ave  no  principle  of  tenderness  to  us,  no  restraint  upon 
them,  these  begin  to  vex,  molest,  and  trouble  the  Church. 

For  the  reasons  why  God  permits  it  so,  that  his  people  should  carry 
their  lives  in  their  hands. 

1.  God  doth  it  to  check  security,  to  which  we  are  very  subject.    We 
are  apt  to  forget  changes  ;  if  we  have  but  a  little  breathing  from 
trouble,  we  promise  ourselves  perpetual  exemption  therefrom  ;  as  Ps. 
xxx.  6,  '  My  mountain  stands  strong,  I  shall  never  be  moved.'   When 
we  have  got  a  carnal  pillow  under  our  heads  to  rest  upon,  it  is  hard 
to  keep  from  sleep,  and  dreaming  of  temporal  felicity  to  be  perpetuated 
to  us ;  then  we  forget  by  whom  we  live,  and  by  whose  goodness  we 
subsist ;  yea,  this  may  be  when  trials  are  very  near  :  the  disciples  slept 
when  their  master  was  ready  to  be  surprised  and  they  scattered,  Mat. 
xxvi.  40 ;  when  we  are  in  the  greatest  dangers,  and  matters  which 
most  concern  us  are  at  hand.     Now,  to  prevent  this  security,  God 
draws  away  this  pillow  from  under  our  heads,  and  suffers  us  to  be 
waylaid  with  dangers  and  troubles  everywhere,  that  we  might  carry 
our  lives  in  our  hands,  for  this  makes  us  sensible  of  our  present  con 
dition  in  the  world,  and  that  we  subsist  upon  God's  goodness  and 
providence  every  moment. 

2.  To  wean  us  from  creature  confidences  and  carnal  dependences  : 
2  Cor.  i.  9,  '  We  received  the  sentence  of  death  in  ourselves,  that  we 
should  not  trust  in  ourselves,  but  in  God  which  raiseth  the  dead.' 
Paul,  that  went  up  and  down  everywhere  to  hunt  the  devil  out  of  his 
territories,  and  to  alarm  the  carnal  sleepy  world,  this  Paul  was  very 
prone  to  trust  in  himself ;  a  man  that  was  whipped,  imprisoned,  stoned, 
opposed  everywhere  by  unreasonable  men,  what  had  he  to  trust  to  but 
God's  providence  ?     And  yet  he  needs  to  be  brought  to  this,  to  take 
his  life  in  his  hands,  that  he  might  learn  to  trust  in  God  that  raiseth 
from  the  dead.     The  best  are  prone  to  trust  in  themselves,  and  to  lean 
to  a  temporal,  visible  interest.     We  would  fain  have  it  by  any  means, 
therefore  sometimes  we  take  a  sinful  course  to  get  it.     Well,  now, 
God,  to  cure  his  people  of  this  distemper,  breaks  every  prop  and  stay 
which  they  are  apt  to  lean  upon,  breaks  down  the  hedge,  the  fence  is 
removed,  and  lays  them  open  to  dangers  continually,  so  that  from  day 
to  day  they  are  forced  to  seek  their  preservation  from  him. 

3.  To  check  their  worldliness.     We  are  very  apt  to  dote  upon 
present  things,  and  to  dream  of  honours  and  great  places  in  the  world, 
and  seek  great  things  for  ourselves,  when  we  should  be  preparing  for 
bitter  sufferings.     As  the  two  sons  of  Zebedee  employed  their  mother 
to  speak  to  Christ ;  being  near  of  kin  to  him,  she  comes  in  a  cunning 
manner,  under  pretence  to  worship  him,   and  propounds  a  general 
question  to  him;   she  does  not  at  first  propose  the  particular,  but 
says  in  general,  '  I  have  a  certain  thing  to  request  of  thee.'    And 
what  was  her  request  ?     '  That  one  of  my  sons  may  sit  on  thy  right 
hand,  and  the  other  on  the  left,  in  thy  kingdom/     Saith  Christ,  '  To 
sit  on  my  right  hand  and  on  my  left  is  not  mine  to  give>  but  it  shall 
be  given  to  them  for  whom  it  is  prepared  of  my  father.'     Mark,  out  of 
this  story  you  learn  how  apt  Christ's  own  disciples  are  to  dote  upon 
worldly  honour  and  greatness.    The  sons  of  Zebedee,  James  and  John, 
those  two  worthy  disciples,  employ  their  mother  to;  Christ  in  such  a 


118  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SBB.  CXIX. 

message  ;  they  were  dreaming  of  earthly  kingdoms  and  worldly  honour 
that  should  be  shared  between  them,  notwithstanding  Christ  taught 
them  rather  to  prepare  for  crosses  in  this  world.  Do  but  reflect 
the  light  of  this  upon  your  own  hearts.  Do  we  think  we  are 
better  °than  those  apostles  ?  and  that  it  is  an  easy  thing  to  shut 
the  love  of  the  world,  and  the  honour  thereof,  out  of  our  hearts, 
since  they  were  so  enchanted  with  the  witchery  of  it?  Therefore 
Christ  tells  them,  Mat.  xx.  22,  '  Alas !  poor  creatures,  ye  know  not 
what  ye  ask  :  can  you  pledge  me  in  my  cup,  and  be  baptized  with  the 
baptism  that  I  am  baptized  with  ?  '  We  know  not  what  we  do  when 
we  are  hunting  after  high  places  in  the  world  ;  we  are  to  pledge  Christ 
in  his  bitter  cup  before  our  advancement  come.  Nay,  to  prove  this 
is  not  only  the  worldling's  disease,  but  it  is  very  incident  to  the 
choicest  of  God's  people  ;  for  after  Christ  had  suffered  and  rose  again, 
the  apostles  were  not  dispossessed  of  this  humour,  but  still  did  dream 
of  worldly  ease  and  honour,  therefore-  they  come  to  Christ  with  this 
question,  Acts  i.  6,  '  Lord,  wilt  thou  at  this  time  restore  again  the 
kingdom  to  Israel  ? '  meaning,  in  the  Jewish  sense,  break  the  Koman 
yoke,  and  give  them  power  and  dominion  over  the  nations,  hoping  for 
a  great  share  to  themselves  when  this  work  was  done.  Thus  you  see 
human  weakness  and  the  love  of  worldly  honour  bewrays  itself  in 
Christ's  own  disciples.  One  instance  more,  in  Jer.  xlv.  5,  of  Baruch, 
'  Seekest  thou  great  things  for  thyself  ?  seek  them  not.'  Baruch,  he 
was  Jeremiah's  scribe,  had  written  his  prophecy,  and  believed  it,  that 
dreadful  roll,  written  it  over,  yet  he  was  seeking  some  great  thing  for 
himself.  The  best  are  apt  to  think  they  shall  shift  well  enough  for 
themselves  in  the  world  ;  therefore  saith  Jeremiah,  For  thou  to  have 
thoughts  of  honour  and  credit,  and  a  peaceful  and  prosperous  estate, 
when  all  is  going  to  rack  and  ruin,  never  dream  upon  such  a  matter. 
Now  judge  whether  there  be  not  great  cause  that  God  should  bring 
his  people  to  such  a  condition  that  they  should  carry  their  life  in  their 
hands  from  day  to  day,  that  he  might  cure  them  of  this  distemper. 

4.  That  they  may  value  eternal  life  the  more,  which  they  would  not 
do  if  they  had  a  stable  condition  here  in  the  world.  After  death  there 
will  be  a  life  out  of  all  danger,  and  a  life  that  is  not  in  our  hands,  but 
in  the  hands  of  God  ;  none  can  take  that  life  from  us  which  God  keepeth 
in  heaven.  Now  that  they  might  look  after  this  life,  and  value  and 
prize  it  the  more,  they  are  exposed  to  hazards  and  dangers  here.  The 
apostle  saith,  1  Cor.  xv.  19,  '  If  in  this  life  only  we  have  hope  in  Christ, 
we  are  of  all  men  most  miserable.'  When  they  find  the  present  life 
encumbered  with  so  many  sorrows,  and  exposed  to  so  many  dangers, 
then  they  conclude  surely  there  is  a  better  and  safer  estate  for  the 
people  of  God  elsewhere  in  heaven.  God's  people  cannot  be  of  all 
men  most  miserable  ;  there  is  another  life  ;  they  have  hopes  in  Christ, 
and  for  other  things ;  therefore  they  long  for  it,  and  look  for  it :  Heb. 
xiii.  14,  '  Here  we  have  no  abiding  city,  but  we  seek  one  to  come.' 
All  things  are  liable  to  uncertainties  and  apparent  troubles,  that  we 
might  look  after  that  estate  where  the  sheep  of  Christ  shall  be  safely 
lodged  in  their  eternal  fold.  Now  God  by  their  condition  doth,  as  it 
were,  say  to  them,  as  Micah  ii.  10,  'Arise,  this  is  not  your  rest.'  Your 
stable  comforts,  your  everlasting  enjoyments  are  not  here  ;  here  all 


VER.  109.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  119 

our  comforts  are  in  our  hands,  ready  to  deliver  them  up  from  day  to 
day. 

5.  God  doth  by  his  righteous  providence  cause  it  to  be  so,  that  his 
people  carry  their  life  in  their,  hands,  to  try  their  affections  to  him 
and  his  word.     When  we  sail  with  a  full  stream  of  prosperity,  we  may 
be  of  God's  side  and  party  upon  foreign  and  accidental  reasons.    Now 
God  will  see  if  we  love  Christ  for  his  own  sake,  and  his  ways  as  they 
are  his  ways  when  separated  from  any  temporal  interest,  yea,  when 
exposed  to  scorn,  disgrace,  and  trouble.     It  is  easy  to  be  good  when  it 
costs  us  nothing,  and  the  wind  blows  in  our  backs  rather  than  in  our 
faces,  the  state  of  affairs  is  for  us  rather  than  against  us.     Halcyon 
times   and   times   of   rest   are  '  times  of  breeding   the  church,   but 
stormy  times  are  times  of  trying  the  church :  1  Peter  iv.  12,  '  Be 
loved,  think  it  not  strange  concerning  the  fiery  trial  which  is  to 
try  you,  as  though  some  strange  thing  happened  unto  you.'      God 
will  put  'us  into  his  furnace,  there  will  a  fiery  trial  come,  to  see  if  we 
have  the  same  affection  to  truth  when  it  is  safe  to  own  it,  and  when 
it  is  dangerous  to  own  it,  when  it  is  hated  and  maligned  in  the  world. 
Few  professors  can  abide  God's  trial :  Zech.  xiii.  9,  '  I  will  bring  the 
third  part  through  the  fire,  and  will  refine  them  as  silver  is  refined, 
and  will  try  them  as  gold  is  tried.'     When  two  parts  fall  away,  there 
is  a  third  part  refined  and  tried  by  trials.    When  the  generality  proves 
dross,  or  chaff,  or  stubble  in  the  furnace,  there  is  some  good  metal 
preserved,  to  shine  brighter,  for  trial  as  their  zeal  is  increased  and 
their  grace  kept  more  lively,  and  their  faith  and  dependence  upon  a 
continual  exercise.     God  will  try  whether  we  can  live  upon  invisible 
supports,  and  go  on  cheerfully  in  the  performance  of  our  duty  in  the 
midst  of  all  difficulty,  without  these  outward  encouragements.     They 
are  proved  that  they  may  be  improved. 

6.  God  doth  cause  such  things  to  befall  his  people,  to  show  his 
power  both  in  their  preservation  and  in  overruling  all  those  cross 
providences  for  their  good. 

[1.]  His  power  in  their  preservation ;  when  they  have  no  temporal 
interests  to  back  them,  God  will  show  he  can  preserve  his  people : 
Ps.  xcvii.  1,  '  The  Lord  reigneth,  let  the  earth  rejoice,  let  the  multi 
tude  of  isles  be  glad  thereof/  It  is  well  that  the  Lord  reigns,  else 
how  could  his  people  stand  ?  The  Lord  reigns,  and  the  multitude  of 
isles  they  have  a  share  in  the  joy  and  benefit.  One  benefit  that  we 
have  by  his  reign  is  this,  ver.  10,  compared  with  ver.  1,  he  preserveth 
the  souls  of  his  saints  ;  that  is,  their  lives  ;  he  delivereth  them  out  of 
the  hand  of  the  wicked.  There  is  an  overruling,  a  secret  and  in 
visible  providence,  by  which  they  are  kept  and  hidden  as  in  a  pavilion, 
so  they  have  often  experience  of  wonderful  preservation  in  the  midst 
of  all  their  troubles. 

[2.]  God  shows  his  power  for  overruling  all  these  accidents  for  the 
increase  and  benefit  of  his  church  and  people.  When  the  believers 
were  scattered,  and  driven  up  and  down,  when  exposed  to  hazards  and 
inconveniences,  it  is  said,  Acts  xi.  21,  '  The  hand  of  the  Lord  was 
with  them  ;  and  a  great  number  believed  and  turned  unto  the  Lord/ 
God  can  make  their  loss  turn  to  their  increase.  Christ  often  gets  up 
upon  the  devil's  shoulders,  and  is  beholden  more  to  his  enemies  than  to 


120  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEB.  CXIX. 

his  friends  in  this  sense,  because  that  which  would  seem  to  stop  his 
course,  and  to  obscure  his  glory,  doth  advance  it  so  much  the  more : 
Phil.  i.  12,  '  The  things  which  happened  unto  me,  have  fallen  out 
rather  unto  the  furtherance  of  the  gospel.'  The  gospel  was  not  ex 
tinguished  by  Paul's  imprisonment,  but  propagated.  I  say,  Paul's 
sufferings  were  as  necessary  as  Paul's  preaching,  that  the  truth  might 
gain,  and  that  it  might  be  known  and  heard  of.  God  overrules  all 
these  actions  for  his  glory,  and  for  the  benefit  of  his  church. 

Use  1.  First,  if  we  be  not  in  this  condition,  let  us  look  for  it  and 
prepare  for  it.  Religion  is  a  stranger  in  the  world,  and  therefore  it  is 
often  ill-treated ;  we  have  a  stable  happiness  elsewhere,  and  here  we 
must  expect  changes.  All  the  comforts  and  hopes  of  the  scriptures 
is  suited  to  such  a  condition  ;  a  great  part  of  the  Bible  would  be  need 
less,  and  would  be  but  as  bladders  given  to  a  man  who  stands  upon 
dry  land,  and  never  means  to  go  into  the  waters ;  the  comforts  and 
provisions  God  hath  made  for  us  in  the  word  would  be  useless,  it' 
such  things  did  not  befall  us.  Why  hath  God  laid  in  so  many  sup 
ports,  if  we  think  never  to  be  put  to  distress  and  troubles  ?  Oh  I 
then,  think  of  these  things  beforehand,  and  make  them  familiar  to 
you.  '  The  evil  which  I  feared  is  come  upon  me,'  saith  Job.  When 
the  back  is  fitted,  the  burden  will  not  be  so  dreadful.  Think  of  these 
things  beforehand,  that  you  may  provide  and  prepare  for  them.  Now, 
that  you  may  not  be  strange  at  such  kind  of  providences,  consider  four 
things  : — 

1.  The  world  will  be  the  world  still.     There  is  a  natural  enmity 
between  the  two  seeds,  which  will  never  be  wholly  laid  aside,  between 
the  seed  of  the  woman  and  the  seed  of  the  serpent,  Gen.  iii.  15  ;  as 
natural  an  enmity  as  between  the  wolf  and  the  lamb,  the  raven  and 
the  dove :  1  John  iii.  12,  '  Cain  was  of  that  wicked  one,  and  slew  his 
brother  ;  and  wherefore  slew  he  him  ?     Because  his  own  works  were 
evil,  and  his  brother's  righteous/     Separation  and  estrangement  in 
course  of  life  is  a  provoking  thing.     Men  that  live  in  any  sinful  course 
are  loath  any  should  part  company  with  them,  that  there  might  be  none 
to  make  them  ashamed ;  therefore  when  they  draw  from  their  sins,  and 
do  not  run  with  them  into  the  same  excess  of  riot,  they  think  it  strange  ; 
3rour  life  is  a  reproof  to  them  :  John  vii.  7,  '  The  world  hateth  me, 
because  I  testified  of  it  that  the  works  thereof  are  evil ; '  and  Heb.  xi. 
7,  '  Noah  condemned  the  world  ;  being  moved  with  fear,  prepared  an 
ark.'     Strictness  is  an  object  reviving  guilt.     Every  wicked  man  loves 
another — Vdut  factorem,  adjutorem  et  excusatorem  sui  criminis,  as 
one  that  favours   his  actions,  and  helps  to  excuse  his  actions.     One 
wicked  man  doth  not  put  another  to  the  blush.     It  is  no  shame  to  be 
black  in  the  country  of  the  negroes.     But  when  there  is  a  distinction, 
some  walk  with  God  humbly  and  closely,  certainly  your  life  is  a 
reproach  to  others  that  do  not  so,  therefore  they  will  hate  you. 

2.  This  enmity  hath  ever  been  working :  the  prophets  and  holy 
men  of  God  have  had  experience  of  it.     Abel  was  slain  by  Cain,  Gen. 
iv.  18 ;  Isaac  scoffed  at  by  Ishmael,  Gen.  xxi.  11 ;  which  example 
the  apostle  allegeth,  Gal.  iv.  29,  '  He  that  was  born  after  the  flesh 
persecuted  him  that  was  born  after  the  spirit,'     So  it  was  then,  so  it 
is  now,  and  so  it  will  ever  be  to  the  world's  end.     Ever  it  hath  been 


VEE.  109.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  121 

the  lot  of  God's  children  to  suffer  hard  things  from  the  men  of  this 
world,  though  they  are  related  to  them  in  the  nearest  bonds  of  kindred 
and  acquaintance.  Jacob,  because  of  the  blessing  and  birthright,  was 
pursued  to  death  by  Esau,  and  driven  out  of  his  father's  house,  Gen. 
xxvii. ;  Moses  driven  out  of  Egypt  by  his  unkind  brethren,  Acts  vii.  25- 
27 ;  David  hunted  up  and  down  like  a  partridge  upon  the  mountains  ; 
Jezebel  sought  Elijah's  life  ;  Micaiah  thrown  into  prison,  and  hardly 
used ;  Elisha  pursued  by  Jehoram  for  his  head.  Instances  are  end 
less  of  this  kind  ;  ever  there  hath  been  an  enmity,  and  ever  will  be. 

3.  Persecutions  are  more,  greater,  and  longer  in  the  New  Testament 
than  in  the  Old.     Why  ?     Partly  because  the  Old  Testament  church 
was  under  tutors  and  governors,  Gal.  iv.  1,  2  ;  neither  for   light   of 
knowledge,  nor  ardour  of  zeal  to  be  compared  with  the  New  Testa 
ment  church,  when  'the  kingdom  of  heaven  suffers  violence/  Mat.  xi. 
11.    Look,  as  Christ  spared  his  disciples  until  they  were  fit  for  greater 
troubles,  till  fit  for  the  new  wine,  Mat.  ix.   17,  so  God  spared  that 
church.      The  church  then  had  troubles,  but  for  the  most  part  they 
were  not  for  religion,  but  for  defection  from  God,  for  their  sins.     And 
partly,  too,  because  the  church  of  the  Old  Testament  was  not  so  dis 
persed,  but  confined  within  the  narrow  bounds  of  one  province  or 
country,  not  mixed  with  the  profane  idolatrous  nations,  nor  exposed  to 
their  hatred,  contradiction,  and  rage  ;  but  of  Christians,  the  apostle  tells 
us,  this  sect  is  everywhere  spoken  against.     And  partly  because  Satan 
then  had  quiet  reign  over  the  blind  world  for  a  long  time ;  but  now,  when 
Christ  comes  to  dispossess  him,  to  turn  out  the  strong  man — the  goods 
were  in  peace  before,  and  now  he  hath  but  a  short  time — he  hath  great 
wrath,  Rev.  xii.  11.     When  Christ  came  to  seize  upon  the  world,  it 
was  quick  and  hot  work,  his  force  and  violence  was  greater.     Again 
temporal   promises  were  more  in  the  eye  of  the  covenant,  where  all 
things  were  wrapped  up  in  types  and  figures  ;  when  prosperity  signi 
fied   happiness,  and  long  life  signified  eternity,  there  wrere  not  such 
exercises  and  trials  then.     But  now,  *  All  those  that  will  live  godly  in 
Christ  Jesus  must  suffer  persecution/  2  Tim.  iii.  12.     But  since  Christ 
hath  set  up  his  church,  and  brought  light  and  immortality  to  the  world, 
now  troubles  are  greater. 

4.  Persecutions  from  pseudo-Christians  will  also  be  hot  and  violent: 
Rev.  xiv.  13,  '  Write  from  henceforth,  saiththe  Spirit,  Blessed  are  the 
dead  that  die  in  the  Lord.'    Why,  the  dead  that  die  in  the  Lord  ?  they 
were  always  blessed  from  the  beginning  of  the  world  ;  why  such  a 
solemn  notice  from  heaven  ?     Why  from  henceforth  ?      The  meaning 
is  this:  those  that  suffered  under  pagan  persecutions,  all  Christians 
would  call  them  blessed  that  died  in  the  Lord.      Ay  !  but  now,  when 
the  persecutions  began  under  the  pseudo-Christians,  blessed  are  the 
dead  that  die  in  the  Lord  from  henceforth  still.     Nay,  the  persecu 
tions  here  are  greater  than  the  pagan,  and  of  longer  continuance..  Why? 
Because  they  have  a  show  of  Christ's  authority, as  the  beast  in  the  Reve 
lations  had  horns  like  a  lamb ;  that  beast  which  spake  like  a  dragon, 
deceived  the  nations,  enchanted  the  world  with  her  witchery  and  sorcery, 
that  beast  had  a  pretence  of  the  authority  of  Christ,  Rev.  xiii.  11. 
And  the  purity  of  Christians  is  greater,  and  so  more  enraging;  and 
the  great  quarrel  in  the  latter  ages  of  the  world  is  about  a  temporal 


122  SERMONS  UPON  TSALM  CXIX.  [SflR.  CXIX. 

interest.  The  spirit  of  the  world  is  the  spirit  of  antichristianism,  and 
all  those  that  hang  upon  her  are  of  the  spirit  of  the  world  :  1  John 
iv.  5,  'They  are  of  the  world,  therefore  speak  they  of  the  world,  and 
the  world  heareth  them.'  Now,  when  these  are  contending  for  the 
world,  this  doth  exceedingly  inflame  and  heighten  the  rage  against 
those  that  would  endanger  their  worldly  interest.  You  see  there  is 
cause  to  think  that  God  will  expose  us  also  to  our  trials  ;  therefore  we 
should  be  forewarned  and  prepared  for  these  things  that  they  may  not 
come  upon  us  unawares. 

Use  2.  If  God's  people  are  put  into  such  a  condition  that  they  carry 
their  lives  in  their  hands,  then  learn  from  hence,  that  if  we  have 
greater  security  for  our  lives  and  interests,  we  ought  more  to  bless  God 
and  to  improve  the  season.  It  is  a  great  mercy  that  we  have  laws  to 
secure  our  religion  and  our  interests,  that  we  have  Christian  and  Pro 
testant  magistrates  to  execute  those  laws,  that  we  may  in  safety  worship 
God  in  the  public  assemblies,  and  we  ought  to  bless  God.  But  then, 
if  this  be  our  condition,  there  are  three  duties  required  of  us  :— 

1.  To  acknowledge  God  in  this  mercy,  for  it  is  he  that  hath  the 
hearts  of  magistrates  in  his  own  hands:  Prov!  xxi.  1,  '  The  king's 
heart  is  in  the  hand  of  the  Lord  ;  as  the  river  of  waters,  he  turneth  it 
whithersoever  he  will.'     Their  thoughts,  their  designs,  inclinations  and 
aversations  are  in  God's  hands.     And  as  God  hath  power,  so  hath  he 
promised  this  blessing,  Isa.  xlix.  23,  that  he  will  give  '  kings  to  be 
nursing  fathers,  and  queens  nursing  mothers/     Well,  there  is  a  power 
and  a  promise.     What  follows  then  ?     Only  that  we  praise  God  for  so 
much  of  it  as  we  have,  and  that  we  pray  to  God  still  for  more,  that  we 
may,  under  our  kings  and  governors,  'lead  godly  and  quiet  lives,'  1  Tim. 
ii.  1,  2 ;  and  therefore,  if  we  have  greater  security  for  our  lives  and 
interests,  God  must  be  acknowledged. 

2.  Be  so  much  the  more  in  active  obedience :  Acts  ix.  31,  'Then 
had  the  churches  rest/     And  what  then  ?     '  And  they  walked  in  the 
fear  of  God,  and  in  the  comfort  of  the  Holy  Ghost/     When  you  have 
a  good  day,  you  should  improve  it  well ;  when  we  may  walk  up  and 
down  in  the  security  of  laws,  and  serve  God  freely,  oh  1  let  us  serve 
him  much  ;  we  are  not  called  to  renounce  our  interests,  therefore  let 
us  mortify  our  lusts.     Fires  are  not  kindled  about  us  to  consume  our 
bodies,  therefore  let  the  fire  of  God  burn  up  our  lusts.     If  the  saints 
are  to  quit  their  well-being,  certainly  it  should  not  be  grievous  to  us 
to  part  with  our  ill-being,  with  our  sins  for  God's  service.     Look,  as 
Salvian  de  Gub.  lib.  iii.,  saith,  when  our  kings  are  Christians,  and 
religion  is  not  troubled  by  them,  now  God  calls  us  to  be  more  pure 
and  holy  in  our  conversations  ;  now  we  do  not  shift  for  our  lives,  let  us 
avoid  occasions  of  evil ;  now  we  are  not  cast  into  prisons,  let  us  con 
fine  ourselves  to  our  closets,  that  we  may  serve  God  more  cheerfully 
there. 

3.  Bear  the  lesser  troubles  with  more  patience,  when  this  is  not  our 
condition,  that  our  lives  are  carried  in  our  hands  from  day  to  day.     It 
was  never  so  well  with  the  people  of  God,  that  if  not  in  kingdoms,  yet 
in  families,  in  parishes,  in  lesser  societies  there  will  be  some  conflict ; 
now  these  we  should  bear  with  more  patience,  because  the  children  of 
God  are  exposed  to  that  condition  that  they  have  carried  their  lives  in 


VER.  109.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  123 

their  hands  from  day  to  day  :  Heb.  xii.  3,  '  Consider  him  that  endured 
such  contradiction  of  sinners  against  himself,  lest  ye  be  wearied  and 
faint  in  your  minds/  You  are  not  called  unto  a  '  resistance  to  blood.' 
As  Julian  the  apostate  said  to  one,  If  he  was  so  offended  with  their 
taunts,  what  would  he  be  with  the  darts  of  the  Persians  ?  If  we  can 
not  suffer  a  reproach,  and  an  angry  word  for  Christ ;  if  we  murmur 
when  we  are  a  little  slighted  and  forgotten  by  men,  and  left  out  of  the 
tale  of  the  world,  oh  !  what  would  we  do  if  we  were  called  to  suffer 
greater  things  ?  Jer.  xii.  5,  '  If  thou  hast  run  with  the  footmen,  and 
they  have  wearied  thee,  then  how  canst  thou  contend  with  horsemen  ? ' 
that  is,  if  thou  canst  not  endure  the  scorn,  reproach,  and  opposition  of 
a  few  private  wicked  men  that  stand  upon  even  ground  with  thee, 
how  canst  thou  contend  with  horses,  when  there  are  other  manner  of 
oppositions  ? 

Use  3.  If  this  should  now  befall  you,  as  it  hath  befallen  God's 
choicest  servants,  and  very  likely  so  to  do  for  those  reasons  I  gave, 
then  shrink  not,  but  resolve  to  endure  any  extremity  rather  than  take 
any  sinful  course  for  your  ease ;  nay,  be  not  dejected  if  it  should 
happen  :  Acts  xxi.  13,  '  I  am  ready  not  only  to  be  bound,  but  also  to 
die  for  the  name  of  the  Lord  Jesus.'  There  was  one  that  had  his  life 
in  his  hand  indeed,  that  had  the  courage  to  lay  it  down.  To  quicken 
you  hereto,  let  me  give  a  few  considerations : — 

1.  God  hath  given  you  greater  things  than  possibly  you  can  lose  for 
his  sake ;  though  we  should  lose  life  and  all,  yet  he  hath  given  us  his 
Christ.    Saith  Ambrose,  We  are  indebted  for  a  person  of  the. Godhead  ; 
and  shall  we  stick  at  our  personal  interests  and  concernments  ?     Shall 
we  not  die  for  his  honour  who  died  for  our  salvation  ?  die  temporally 
for  him  who  maketh  us  to  live  eternally  ?  and  give  that  body  as  a 
sacrifice  to  the  honour  of  Christ,  which  otherwise  by  the  law  of  nature 
will  become  meat  for  the  worms  ?  therefore  every  Christian  should 
carry  his  life  in  his  hand,  Phil.  i.  20,  either  by  martyrdom  or  minis 
terial  labours. 

2.  No  evil  is  like  to  that  evil  which  will  befall  us  in  forsaking  God : 
Mat.  x.  28,  '  Fear  not  them  which  can  but  kill  the  body,'  &c.     Shall 
we,  rather  than  run  hazards  with  the  sheep  of  Christ,  be  contented  to 
howl  with  wolves  in  everlasting  darkness,  when  we  for  a  little  tem 
poral  danger  refuse  to  run  hazard  with  Christ's  sheep,  shall  be  cast  into 
hell-fire  for  evermore  ?     If  we  are  so  tender  of  suffering,  what  will  it 
be  to  suffer  hell-fire  ? 

3.  All  that  we  can  lose  is  abundantly  made  up  in  the  other  world. 
Heb.  xi.  35,  it  is  said,  they  'would  not  accept  deliverance,  having 
obtained  a  better  resurrection.'     There  is  a  resurrection  from  death  to 
life,  when  we  come  out  upon  ill  terms,  by  accepting  the  enemy's 
deliverance.    Ay  !  but  there  is  a  better  resurrection  when  we  come  out 
upon  God's  terms,  a  resurrection  to  life  and  glory  hereafter.    Violence 
doth  but  open  the  prison  door,  and  let  out  the  soul  that  long  hath 
desired  to  be  with  Christ ;  and  therefore  we  should  endure,  as  expect 
ing  this  better  resurrection. 

4.  Consider  upon  what  slight  terms  men  will  put  their  lives  in  their 
hands  for  other  things,  and  shall  we  not  run  hazards  for  Christ? 
Many  venture  their  lives  for  a  humour,  a  little  vainglory,  to  show  a 


124  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [$ER.  CXIX. 

greatness  of  spirit ;  or  they  venture  their  lives  upon  revenges,  upon  a 
punctilio  of  honour.  Some  will  venture  their  lives  in  the  wars  for  one 
shilling  a  day,  and  shall  we  not  carry  our  lives  in  our  hands  for 
Christ  ?  Scipio  boasted  of  his  soldiers,  that  they  loved  him  so  as  to 
venture  their  lives  for  him,  to  leap  into  the  sea,  and  cast  themselves 
down  a  steep  rock  :  There  are  none  of  these  but  if  I  spake  the  word, 
shall  go  upon  a  tower,  and  throw  himself  down  into  the  sea  if  I  bid  him. 
So  Fulgentius'  story  of  those  that  would  obey  their  chief,  whom  they 
called  Vetus,  the  old  man  of  the  mountain,  if  he  bid  them  fall  down  a 
steep  rock,  to  show  their  obedience  ;  and  shall  not  we  venture  our  lives 
for  Christ  ? 

Doct.  2.  That  when  our  souls  are  continually  in  our  hands,  no  kind 
of  danger  should  make  us  warp  and  turn  aside  from  the  direction  of 
God's  word.  Why  ? 

1.  A  Christian  should  be  above  all  temporal  accidents  ;  above  carnal 
grief,  carnal  joy,  worldly  hope,  worldly  fear;  he  should  be  dead  to  the 
world,  or  else  he  is  not  thoroughly  acquainted  with  the  virtue  of  Christ's 
cross,  Gal.  vi.  14. 

2.  God  can  so  restrain  the  malice  of  wicked  men,  that  though  we 
carry  our  lives  in  our  hands,  we  shall  be  safe  enough  for  all  that : 
Prov.  xvi.  7,  '  When  a  man's  ways  please  the  Lord,  he  maketh  even 
his  enemies  to  be  at  peace  with  him/     Mark,  the  Lord  can  secure 
you  against  men,  when  a  man  pleaseth  the  Lord ;  but  when  a  man 
pleaseth  men,  they  cannot  secure  you  against  the  Lord,  they  cannot 
save  you  harmless  from  the  wrath  of  God,  or  answer  for  you  to  the 
Almighty,  nor  give  you  safety  from  the  terrors  of  conscience.     But  on 
the  other  side,  many  a  man  by  pleasing  God  finds  more  safety  and 
comfort  in  opposing  the  lusts  and  the  humours  of  men  than  in  com 
plying  with  them.     God's  providence  is  wonderfully  at  work  for  his 
children  when  they  are  reduced  to  these  extremities ;  either  he  can 
allay  their  fury,  turn  in  convictions  upon  their  consciences  of  the 
righteousness  of  those  whom  they  molest  and  trouble,  as  when  Saul 
hunted  for  David,  1  Sam.  xxiv.  17,  '  Thou  art  more  righteous  than  I/ 
God  puts  conviction  upon  him.     Nay,  sometimes  such  a  fear  and  rever 
ence  that  they  dare  not :  Mark  vi.  20,  '  Herod  feared  John  because  he 
was  a  strict  man/     Or  some  check  or  bridle,  some  contrary  interest 
that  God  can  set  up,  that  their  hands  are  withered  when  they  are 
stretched  out   against  them,  as   was   Jeroboam's  hand  ;   and  there 
fore  a  Christian,  though  his  life  be  in  his  hand,  he  should  not  warp. 
Why  ?     For  God  can  mightily  provide  for  him  as  to  his  temporal 
safety:  1  Peter  iii.  13,  *  Who  is  he  that  will  harm  you,  if  ye  be  fol 
lowers  of  that  which  is  good  ?'     It  is  an  indefinite  proposition,  some 
times  it  will  be  true.    Let  a  man  follow  that  which  is  good,  who  dares 
harm  him  ?    There  is  an  awe,  and  he  is  kept  safe,  though  not  always. 

3.  We  renounced  all  at  our  first  coming  to  Christ.  Estate,  credit, 
liberty,  life,  it  was  all  laid  at  Christ's  feet,  if  our  hearts  were  really 
upright  with  him.  A  man  must  lay  down  self,  whatever  it  be,  else 
he  cannot  be  Christ's  disciple,  Mat.  xvi.  24 ;  Luke  xiv.  26.  This  was 
done  in  vow,  in  a  time  of  peace ;  therefore  it  must  be  actually  done 
and  made  good  in  a  time  of  trouble.  Your  interests  are  God's,  and  are 
only  given  back  to  God  again ;  your  estate,  life,  liberty,  and  credit,  all 


YER.  109.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  125 

given  up.     Why  ?     That  you  may  have  something  of  value  to  esteem 
as  nothing  for  Christ. 

4.  Our  sufferings  shall  be  abundantly  recompensed  and  made  up  in 
the  world  to  come :  Kom.  viii.  18,  '  I  reckon  that  the  sufferings  of  this 
present  time  are  not  worthy  to  be  compared  with  the  glory  which  shall 
be  revealed.'     For  a  man  to  stand  comparing  his  interest  or  sufferings 
here  in  this  world  with  the  glory  revealed,  is  as  foolish  a  thing  as  if  a 
man  should  set  a  thousand  pound  weight  with  a  feather.     So  2  Cor. 
iv.  17,  '  Our  light  affliction,'  &c.     We  are  often  saying,  If  we  lose  this 
and  that,  what  will  become  of  us?  what  shall  we  have?  Mat.  xix. 
27-29,  '  We  have  left  all.'     A  great  all  they  had  left  for  Christ ;  it 
may  be  a  net,  a  fisher-boat,  a  cottage ;  yet  he  speaks  magnificently  of 
it,  and  '  what  shall  we  have  ? '     Have !     You  shall  have  enough  ;  *  in 
the  regeneration  you  shall  sit  upon  twelve  thrones,  judging  the  twelve 
tribes  of  Israel/ 

5.  You  should  not  warp,  though  you  carry  your  lives  in  your  hands, 
because  constancy  is  necessary.     How  necessary  ?     For  our  credit  and 
good  name  as  we  are  men :  '  Do  I  use  lightness  ?  '  saith  the  apostle, 
2  Cor.  i.   17.     Men  lose  their  authority  and  esteem,  they  are  not 
accounted  grave,  serious,  and  weighty,  when  they  shift  and  change, 
and  appear  with  a  various  face  to  the  world  ;  and  certainly  it  is  for  our 
comfort,  for  our  right  to  everlasting  blessedness  is  most  sensibly  clear 
by  constancy  in  God's  cause :  Phil.  i.  28,  '  And  in  nothing  terrified  by 
your  adversaries,  which  is  to  them  an  evident  token  of  perdition,  but 
to  you  of  salvation,  and  that  of  God/    Oh!  what  would  a  man  give  for 
to  clear  this,  that  he  is  an  heir  of  God  ?     This  is  an  evident  token ; 
and  it  is  necessary  for  the  credit  of  the  truth  which  we  profess.    When 
we  shift,  turn,  and  wind,  we  bring  a  dishonour  upon  it;  but,  saith  the 
apostle,  Phil.  i.  14,  '  They  waxed  confident  by  my  bonds ;'  this  puts 
heart  and  courage.     And  it  is  for  the  honour  of  God  :  1  Peter  ii.  14, 
'  On  your  part  he  is  glorified ;'  and  John  xxi.  19,  '  Signifying  by  what 
death  he  should  glorify  God/    Since  constancy  is  so  necessary,  either  we 
should  not  take  up  principles,  or  suffer  for  them  if  called  thereunto. 

Use  1.  Caution  to  the  people  of  God.  Take  heed  you  do  not  forget 
the  word,  when  you  carry  your  lives  in  your  hand.  Many  of  God's 
people  may  do  so  sometimes,  as  when  we  deny  the  truth :  Mat.  xxvi. 
72,  '  Peter  denied  before  them  all,  saying,  I  know  not  the  man/  Or 
when  we  take  any  sinful  course  for  temporal  safety,  as  when  David 
feigned  himself  mad  before  Achish,  1  Sam.  xxi.  13.  Or  when  our 
spirits  are  filled  with  passion  against  the  instruments  of  our  trouble, 
and  with  uncomely  heats,  as  Peter  drew  a  sword  in  a  rash  zeal,  and 
had  no  thanks  for  it,  but  a  rebuke  from  Christ.  Or  when  we  suffer  in 
a  heartless  and  comfortless  manner,  as  God's  children  sometimes  are 
in  dejections  of  spirit.  David  took  notice  of  his  drooping  and  discon- 
solateness,  Ps.  xlii.  5 ;  when  he  flitted  up  and  down  in  the  wilderness, 
pursued  with  Saul's  army,  he  had  his  droopings  and  discomforts.  In 
these  cases  we  forget  the  word  of  God. 

Use  2.  To  press  you  to  courage  and  constancy  in  a  time  of  danger ; 
to  endure  all  extremities,  rather  than  do  anything  against  the  word  of 
God.  Here  I  shall  inquire  : — 

1.  What  is  this  Christian  courage?     There  is  military  valour  and 


126  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEE.  CXIX. 

Christian  valour.  The  one  consists  in  doing,  the  other  in  suffering, 
great  things.  Peter,  at  Christ's  death,  had  more  of  the  military  valour 
and  fierceness  than  of  the  passive  valour,  for  he  that  could  venture  on 
a  band  of  men  was  foiled  by  a  damsel's  question.  The  one  dependeth 
on  hastiness  of  temper,  greatness  of  blood  and  spirits  ;  the  other  upon 
faith  and  submission  to  God's  will :  Acts  vii.  55,  '  He  being  full  of  the 
Holy  Ghost,  looked  up  steadfastly  into  heaven,  and  saw  the  glory  of 
God,  and  Jesus  standing  at  the  right  hand  of  God.'  It  is  spoken  when 
the  people  gnashed  on  him  with  their  teeth,  then  full  of  the  Holy 
Ghost.  There  is  the  habit  of  fortitude,  and  the  act  of  it  when  led  on. 
There  is  a  great  deal  of  difference  between  the  courage  of  wicked  men, 
and  the  faith  and  fortitude  of  good  Christians.  We  see  rude  men  are 
undaunted  in  the  face  of  danger,  but  the  fortitude  of  Christians  con- 
sisteth  in  lifting  up  their  eyes  and  hearts  to  heaven ;  others  not,  for  as 
soon  as  they  think  of  God,  their  courage  faileth ;  the  more  brave,  the 
more  they  shut  out  the  thought  of  divine  things,  all  sense  of  God  and 
immortality :  1  Cor.  xv.  32,  '  Let  us  eat  and  drink,  for  to-morrow  we 
shall  die/  It  is  a  brutish  fury,  inflamed  by  wine,  stirred  up  by  trum 
pets  and  drums,  not  stirred  up  by  the  consolations  of  God,  or  remem 
brance  of  his  covenant ;  then  they  are  dejected,  Kev.  vi.  15-17. 

2.  To  remove  such  objections  as  may  hinder  your  courage  and 
constancy. 

[1.]  It  is  a  sore  temptation  to  keep  our  service,  but  we  must  stand 
to  God's  providence,  to  honour  him  by  service  or  suffering,  as  he  shall 
think  good.  We  are  to  honour  God  in  his  own  way,  we  are  not  to 
stretch  conscience  in  the  least  degree  to  continue  it.  God  hath  no  need 
of  thy  sin ;  when  God  hath  a  mind  to  lay  you  aside,  submit. 

[2.]  The  smallness  of  the  difference  is  another  objection.  If  it  were 
to  turn  Turk,  or  heathen,  or  papist,  men  will  say,  they  would  not  do 
so  and  so.  God  standeth  upon  every  peek  of  his  word,  every  dust  of 
truth  is  precious. 

[3.]  Another  objection  is  this,  we  shall  be  interpreted  to  hinder  the 
public  peace. 

I  answer — '  If  it  be  possible,  as  much  as  lieth  in  you,  live  peaceably 
with  all  men/  Rom.  xii.  18.  But  be  sure  not  to  betray  the  cause  of 
God,  nor  lose  the  interest  of  Christ ;  that  is  not  possible  which  is  not 
lawful  in  a  moral  sense. 

[4.]  Another  objection  is,  that  we  shall  be  accounted  peevish,  rash, 
stubborn. 

I  answer — We  must  be  led  to  credit.  There  is  a  difference  between 
men  stubborn  and  obstinate  and  zealous.  Many  may  sacrifice  a  stout 
body  to  a  stubborn  mind,  but  be  courageous  and  constant  in  the  service 
of  God. 

3.  What  is  necessary  to  this  well-tempered  courage,  that  we  may 
suffer  not  out  of  humour,  but  out  of  conscience  towards  God  ?    Not 
because  formerly  engaged  by  profession,  or  out  of  a  desire  of  a  name 
and  esteem  among  religious  persons,  but  out  of  obedience  to  God,  who 
cpmmandeth  us  to  choose  afflictions,  rather  than  sin.     To  this  resolu 
tion  there  is  necessary — 

[I.]  A  heart  weaned  from  the  world,  Mat.  vi.  24,  otherwise  a  man 
will  act  very  uncertainly,  and  his  zeal  for  God  be  very  uneven. 


YER.  110.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  127 

[2.]  A  heart  entirely  devoted  to  God.  Every  one  that  cometh  to 
Christ  must  be  thus  resolved,  Luke  xiv.  26. 

[3.]  A  heart  purged  from  sin,  or  else  our  zeal  is  not  uniform,  besides 
that  our  lusts  will  weaken  our  courage.  A  carnal  person,  suffering  in 
a  good  cause,  is  of  no  account  with  God.  The  priests  were  to  search 
the  burnt-offering  if  sound,  or  had  any  defect  or  blemish  upon  them. 
He  that  keepeth  the  commandments  is  best  able  to  suffer  for  them : 
Mat.  v.  10,  '  Blessed  are  they  that  suffer  for  righteousness'  sake.'  A 
martyr  must  have  all  the  precedent  graces. 

[4.]  A  heart  that  lieth  under  a  deep  sense  of  eternity,  and  things  to 
come :  1  John  v.  4,  '  This  is  the  victory  we  have  over  the  world,  even 
our  faith.'  Not  any  looking  backward,  but  forward. 


SERMON  CXX.1 

The  wicked  have  laid  a  snare  for  me  ;  yet  I  erred  not  from  thy 
precepts. — VER.  110. 

HERE  is  the  second  assault  made  upon  David's  integrity,  the  secret 
snares  laid  for  him.  The  enemies  of  God's  people  do  not  always  go 
to  work  in  the  way  of  open  persecution,  and  directly  for  righteousness' 
sake  ;  but  then  they  lay  snares ;  what  they  cannot  do  by  open  force, 
they  seek  to  do  by  fraud.  Many  that  have  stood  out  with  courage 
against  the  shock  k of  violence,  have  been  taken  in  a  snare;  as  the 
prophet  that  resisted  the  king  was  enticed  by  the  blandishments  of 
the  old  prophet,  1  Kings  xiii.  Persecution  is  a  more  gross  way,  and 
liable  to  exception,  and  therefore  they  must  go  secretly  to  work. 
Sometimes  this  life  is  a  continued  temptation,  and  a  Christian  that 
walketh  in  the  world  walketh  in  the  midst  of  snares  set  for  him,  by 
his  enemies  bodily  and  spiritual.  The  devjl  is  the  great  snare-layer, 
and  wicked  men  learn  it  of  him  :  '  The  wicked  have  laid  a  snare  for 
me,'  &c.  In  the  words  observe — 

1.  David's  temptation,  a  snare  laid  for  him. 

2.  The  persons  who  managed  the  temptation,  the  wicked. 

3.  The  success  and  issue,  yet  I  erred  not  from  thy  precepts. 

Dock  The  godly  have  often  snares  laid  for  them,  not  only  by  Satan, 
but  by  wicked  men. 

Now  snares  are  to  entice,  or  endanger,  or  of  a  mixed  nature. 

1.  Snares  to  entice  them  from  their  duty.     Thus  the  blandishments 
of  the  whorish  woman  are  called  a  snare  :  Prov.  vii.  23,  '  As  the  bird 
hasteth  unto  the  snare,  and  knoweth  not  that  it  is  for  his  life/     Of 
this  nature  are  crafty  insinuations,  baits  of  preferment,  profit,  pleasure, 
or  any  carnal  advantage,  to  pervert  our  judgments,  and  draw  us  off 
from  our  duty. 

2.  ^  Snares  to  endanger    their  safety,   clogged   with   some   spiteful 
condition  to  entrap  others,  or  when  there  is  a  plot  laid  to  endanger 
others,  as  Jeremiah  complaineth,  Jer.  xviii.  22,  '  They  have  digged  .a 
pit  to  take  me,  they  have  hid  snares  for  my  feet ;'  secretly  conspired 

1  On  the  Fifth  of  November. 


128  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXX. 

and  practised  his  destruction.  And  David,  Ps.  cxl.  5,  '  The  proud 
have  hid  a  snare  for  me,  and  cords ;  they  have  spread  a  net  by  the 
wayside,  and  set  gins  for  my  feet.  Selah.'  Hunters  and  fowlers  did 
never  go  more  cunningly  to  work  to  catch  the  prey,  than  those  proud 
men  had  laid  their  design  to  bring  his  life  under  their  power.  And 
in  Ps.  xxxv.  7,  '  For  without  cause  they  have  hid  for  me  their  net  in 
a  pit,  which  without  cause  they  have  digged  for  my  soul ;'  and  Ps. 
Ivii.  6,  '  They  have  prepared  a  net  for  my  steps ;  my  soul  is  bowed 
down :  they  have  digged  a  pit  for  me,  into  the  midst  whereof  they  are 
Mien  themselves.  Selah.'  Now  of  this  sort  are  St  Bartholomew's 
matins,  and  the  plot  and  contrivance  to  out  the  Protestants  in  France, 
when  they  were  invited  to  a  wedding,  that  they  might  destroy  them  ; 
and  of  this  nature  was  the  Gunpowder  Treason ;  there  was  a  snare 
laid.  When  Orestes  had  plotted  Clytemnestra's  death,  Euripides 
expresseth  it,  fcd\a)s  ap  apicvv  e?  pearjv  Tropeverai — she  fitly  cometh 
into  the  snare. 

3.  Of  a  mixed  nature,  both  to  entice  by  endangering,  and  endanger 
by  enticing. 

[1.]  As  when  they  put  them  upon  such  conditions  as  may  ternpt 
them  to  folly  and  sin.  Some  think  the  text  verified  in  David,  at  that 
time  when  he  said,  1  Sam.  xxvi.  19,  '  They  have  driven  me  out  from 
abiding  in  the  inheritance  of  the  Lord,  saying,  Go  serve  other  gods;' 
meaning,  they  excited  Saul  to  pursue  him  and  persecute  him,  and 
forced  him  to  flee  into  an  idolatrous  country,  and  so  a  snare  laid  to 
endanger  his  steadfastness  in  the  true  faith.  It  is  a  great  temptation. 
Necessitas  cogit  ad  turpia — necessity  is  but  an  evil  counsellor  ;  and 
this  joined  with  the  other  temptation  of  bad  company :  Ps.  cxx.  5, 
'  Woe  is  me  that  I  sojourn  in  Mesech,  that  I  dwell  in  the  tents  of 
Kedar.' 

[2.]  When  they  enact  a  law  or  statute,  whereby  to  force  them  to 
sin  or  trouble  ;  as  they  had  a  plot  against  Daniel,  either  to  make  him 
neglect  his  God,  or  render  kim  obnoxious  to  authority,  Dan.  vi.  7,  8. 
When  they  burden  them  with  such  laws  and  statutes  as  the  godly 
cannot  obey  without  sin,  or  refuse  without  danger ;  they  have  their 
ends  either  to  draw  them  to  sin  or  suffer. 

Now  snares  are  laid  by  the  wicked  : — 

1.  Because  usually  they  excel  in  policy,  craftiness,  and  worldly  wit, 
are  superior  to  God's  children  therein  ;  their  whole  hearts  run  that 
way,  and  their  principle  is  entire  and  unbroken ;  and  therefore  our  Lord 
Christ  telleth  us,  Luke  xvi.  8,  '  For  the  children  of  this  world  are  in 
their  generation  wiser  than  the  children  of   light.'     They  applaud 
themselves  in  their  artifices,  idolise  their  wit :  Hab.  i.  16,  '  Sacrifice  to 
their  net,  and  burn  incense  to  their  drag ; '  therefore  use  it  to  the 
saints'  destruction. 

2.  Because  they  are  acted  by  Satan,  who  will  ever  be  doing  against 
the  church,  though  to  little  purpose.     Luke  xxii.  3,  the  devil  entered 
into  Judas  when  he  plotted  against  Christ.     They  learn  their  wiles 
from  Satan,  and  conceive  mischief  by  copulation  with  the  great  incu 
bus  of  hell. 

3.  Their  own  hatred  and  malice  against  the  people  of  God.    Malice 
is  a  laying  snares.     Anger  vents  itself  in  a  storm  of  words,  or  in 


VER.  110.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  129 

some  sudden  violent  action  ;  but  hatred  lurketh  in  the  soul,  and  puts 
them  that  harbour  it  upon  plots  and  contrivances  of  revenge.  The 
historian  observeth  of  Tiberius,  In  malitiam  statim  invectus  est,  &c. 
When  Absalom  hated  Amnon,  because  he  forced  his  sister,  he  plotteth 
how  to  take  away  his  life,  2  Sam.  xiii.  22. 

Now,  whence  cometh  this  malice  against  the  children  of  God  ? 
Either  by  envy  at  their  interests,  or  hatred  at  their  holiness. 

1.  Envy  at  their  interests,  their  esteem  and  respect  in  the  world, 
when  they  come  to  be  of  any  regard  among  men.     Esther  v.  9,  Hainan 
plotteth  against  Mordecai,  because  he  sat  in  the  king's  gate  :  Ps.  cxii. 
9,  10,  '  His  horn  shall  be  exalted  with  honour ;  the  wicked  shall  see  it, 
and  be  grieved,  and  gnash  with  their  teeth/     When  the  gospel  was 
like  to  get  credit,  Acts  xvii.  5,  the  envious  Jews  raised  an  uproar. 
Pride  is  loath  to  stoop  ;  to  see  opposites  in  glory  and  power  whets  their 
malice,  and  they  contrive  how  to  root  them  out.     Every  man  would 
have   himself   and  his   own   faction  admired  and   magnified.     The 
Pharisees  conspired  to  take  Christ:  John  xii.  19,  'All  the  world  is 
gone  after  him/    When  religion  prevaileth,  and  groweth  in  credit  and 
fashion,  it  is  deeply  resented  by  naughty  men. 

2.  Hatred  at  their  holiness.    Men  cannot  endure  to  be  outstripped 
in  religion,  and  therefore  hate  what  they  will  not  imitate.     Hatred  is 
quick-sighted  in  revenge,  full  of  plots  and  contrivances,  and  tickleth 
the  soul  with  a  delight  in  them  ;  but  especially  religious  hatred,  when 
a  man  hateth  another  for  his  godliness,  when  religion,  instead  of  a 
party,  becomes  a  judge,  that  which  should  restrain  our  passions  feeds 
them  ;   no  hatred  so  great  as  that  against  the  power  of  godliness. 
Cain,  when  he  saw  Abel  so  punctual  in  God's  service,  he  plotteth  to 
draw  him  into  the  field,  1  John  iii.  12,  and  beginneth  a  discourse  with 
him  about  providence  and  judgment  to  come,  and  rewards  and  punish 
ments,  and  while  Abel  maintained  God's  part,  Cain  fell  upon  him  and 
slew  him. 

To  apply  this.  As  these  snares  tend  to  our  temporal  destruction, 
so  there  is  a  double  use  to  be  made  of  them. 

1.  To  trust  God  with  our  safety  in  the  rnidst  of  so  many  snares. 
What  shall  we  do  ?  Whatever  remedy  we  have  against  violence,  no 
man  by  his  own  foresight  can  find  out  all  the  snares  that  are  laid  for 
him ;  therefore  commit  your  safety  spiritual  and  temporal  to  the 
Lord ;  go  to  him  and  say,  Ps.  cxli.  9,  '  Keep  me  from  the  snare  they 
have  laid  for  me,  and  the  gins  of  the  workers  of  iniquity/  Constant 
dependence  upon  God  is  necessary,  for  there  can  be  no  snare  hidden 
from  him  who  watcheth  over  us  and  our  safety  by  night  and  by  day. 
There  is  a  double  argument  why  we  should  trust  God  with  our  safety  ; 
because  of  his  wisdom,  and  because  of  his  watchful  providence. 
Because  of  his  wisdom.  Alas  !  we  are  foolish  and  simple,  and  often 
betray  ourselves  into  an  evil  condition;  but  God  is -wise  for  them  that 
are  foolish  :  Ps.  xxxvii.  12, 13,  '  The  wicked  plotteth  against  the  just, 
and  gnasheth  upon  him  with  his  teeth  :  the  Lord  shall  laugh  at  him, 
for  he  seeth  that  his  day  is  coming/  There  is  a  wise  God  acting  for 
a  foolish  people.  I  tell  you,  the  wisdom  of  God  for  us  is  much  greater 
than  the  wisdom  of  God  in  us.  Where  enemies  deal  proudly,  God  is 
above  them ;  where  they  deal  craftily,  God  is  beyond  them.  The 

VOL.  VIII.  I 


130  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEE.  CXX. 

wisdom  of  God  for  us  is  greater  than  ^  the  wisdom  of  any  against  us. 
And  also  because  of  his  watchful  providence  ;  he  hath  a  waking  love 
and  care  of  us  night  and  day  :  Ps.  cxxi.  4,  '  Behold  he  that  keepeth 
Israel  shall  neither  slumber  nor  sleep.'  He  will  be  so  far  from  sleep 
ing,  that  he  will  not  so  much  as  slumber.  When,  we  know  nothing, 
his 'providence  finds  out  the  secret  contrivances  that  are  against  us. 
I  tell  you,  God  is  our  father ;  he  will  maintain  us  and  take  care  for 
us,  when  we  live  by  faith,  and  not  by  shifts,  in  a  good  plain  downright 
course  of  honesty :"  Gen.  xvii.  1,  '  I  am  God  all-sufficient :  walk  before 
me,  and  be  thou  perfect ;'  that  is,  they  should  go  on  doing  their  duty, 
and  refer  the  care  of  their  safety  to  God.  Oh  !  then,  cast  yourselves 
upon  the  Lord  ;  he  will  either  direct  your  way  to  eschew  these  snares, 
or  pluck  your  feet  out  of  them  if  you  be  taken  therein  :  Ps.  xxv.  15, 
*  Mine  eyes  are  ever  towards  the  Lord  ;  he  shall  pluck  my  feet  out  of 
the  snare/  Look  to  him  for  direction  and  counsel. 

2.  Bless  God  for  your  safety  and  preservation;  it  is  a  mercy  to 
have  a  being,  in  the  midst  of  so  many  dangers  and  snares  as  waylay 
us  everywhere ;  especially  should  we  bless  God  when  we  have  escaped 
some  notable  trap  and  pit  that  was  digged  for  us  :  Ps.  cxxiv.  7,  '  Our 
soul  is  escaped  like  a  bird  out  of  the  snare  of  the  fowler  :  the  snare  is 
broken,  and  we  are  escaped.'  This  is  a  passage  we  may  use  to  God 
this  day.  There  are  two  grounds  usually  of  thanksgiving  for  this 
deliverance : — 

[1.]  That  their  devices  came  to  nought :  Job  xv.  35,  '  They  con 
ceive  mischief  and  bring  forth  vanity.'  It  discovereth  the  wisdom, 
power,  goodness,  and  watchfulness  of  God,  that  this  dark  and  hellish 
machination,  that  they  thought  so  wisely  laid  that  all  devils  in  hell 
could  not  discover  it,  yet  the  God  of  heaven  brought  it  to  light :  Prov. 
xxi.  30,  '  There  is  no  wisdom,  nor  understanding,  nor  counsel  against 
the  Lord.' 

Those  three  words  set  out  the  quintessence  of  parts.  Wisdom 
noteth  a  quick  apprehension ;  understanding  a  wise  foresight  grounded 
upon  experience  ;  counsel  a  designation  of  some  rare  artifice :  Isa. 
viii.  9,  10,  '  Associate  yourselves,  O  ye  people,  and  ye  shall  be  broken 
in  pieces ;  and  all  ye  of  far  countries :  gird  yourselves,  and  ye  shall  be 
broken  in  pieces.  Take  counsel  together,  and  it  shall  come  to  nought ; 
speak  the  word,  and  it  shall  not  stand  :  for  God  is  with  us.' 

[2.]  The  mischief  returned  back  upon  themselves :  Ps.  vii.  15,  '  He 
made  a  pit,  and  digged  it,  and  is  fallen  into  the  ditch  which  he  made. 
Higgaion.  Selah.'  Their  instruments  ;  it  is  a  high  note  that  we  may 
observe  it.  An  iron  heated  red-hot  burneth  their  fingers  that  hold  it ; 
they  are  taken  in  their  own  pit,  poisoned  in  their  own  cup,  holden  in 
cords  of  their  own  vanity,  so  that  in  the  issue  it  appeareth  they  laid  a 
snare  for  themselves  rather  than  for  us. 

Use  2.  As  they  are  enticements  to  sin ;  so  we  may  make  many  uses  of  it. 

1.  You  ought  to  ask  God's  counsel,  for  you  walk  in  the  midst  of 
snares,  that  he  would  guide  you  and  lead  you  :  Ps.  xxvii.  11,  '  Teach 
me  thy  way,  0  Lord ;  lead  me  in  a  plain  path,  because  of  mine  enemies.' 
Those  that  watch  for  our  halting  are  many,  their  craft  is  great; 
therefore  go  to  the  wise  God  for  counsel ;  ask  of  him  what  your 
way  and  course  shall  be,  for  he  seath  that  which  you  see  not. 


VER.  110.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  131 

2.  Get  spiritual  wisdom  and  understanding.    An  ignorant,  credulous 
heart  is  soon  seduced,  but  a  man  of  understanding,  that  seeth  his 
danger,  is  not  easily  drawn  and  allured  into  it :  Prov.  i!  17,  '  In  vain 
is  the  snare  laid  in  the  sight  of  any  bird/     The  vain,  credulous, 
simple  young  man  is  soon  enticed  by  the  lewd  woman,  in  the  7th  of 
the  Proverbs. 

3.  Keep  the  highway  of  duty,  and  walk  by  a  sure  rule,  and  then 
you  are  safe.     David  saith  here,  '  I  erred  not  from  thy  precepts.'     In 
a  time  of  snares,  often  consult  with  your  rule.     It  is  Satan's  aim  to 
put  us  out  of  our  way  ;  as  when  the  fisherman  would  get  the  fishes 
into  the  net,  he  seeketh  to  rouse  them  out  of  their  place.     Take  a 
man  out  of  God's  way,  and  he  becometh  a  ready  prey  to  Satan.     In 
doubtful  cases  there  is  no  man  chooseth  the  worst,  but  first  he  breaketh 
some  known  rule  and  clear  moral  precept.     Therefore  be  punctual, 
and  keep  close  to  God's  directions  in  clear  and  known  cases,  and 
you  are  safe. 

4.  There  needs  a  mortified  heart  to  worldly  interests ;  our  temporal 
interest  is  to  be  shaken  off.    A  man  of  carnal  affections  seeketh  but  the 
snare  :  Job  xviii.  8,  '  He  is  cast  into  a  net  by  his  own  feet,  and  he 
walketh  upon  a  snare.'     If  we  will  find  the  sin  and  disposition  of 
heart,  God  will  find  the  occasion  ;  and  a  man  that  hath  a  commodity 
to  put  off  (faith  and  a  good  conscience),  will  soon  find  a  chapman  to 
truck  with  him.      Judas  was  thinking  of  betraying  Christ,  and  the 
high   priests  were   plotting   how  to  do  it  just   at   the   same  time. 
Worldliness  layeth  us  open  to  the  snare  :  1  Tim.  vi.  9,  '  But  they  that 
will  be  rich,  fall  into  temptation  and  a  snare,  and  into  many  foolish 
and  hurtful  lusts,  which  drown  men  in  destruction  and  perdition.' 
But  he  that  is  dead  to  worldly  interests  remaiueth  firm,  whatever  bait 
be  proposed. 

Secondly,  We  come  to  the'  persons  that  managed  the  temptation, 
the  wicked  :  '  The  wicked  have  laid  a  snare  for  me/ 

Doct.  It  is  the  property  of  a  wicked  heart  to  plot  and  lay  snares 
for  the  mischief  and  ruin  of  others,  especially  God's  people.  David 
saith  here,  '  The  wicked  have  laid  snares  for  me/ 

1.  It  is  a  deliberate,  voluntary  sin  ;  and  the  more  will  and  advised- 
ness  in  any  sin,  the  greater  it  is.    Laying  of  snares  is  not  a  thing  done 
in  passion,  but  in  cool  blood ;  there  is  art  and  cunning  in  it,  and  the 
heart  dwelleth  long  upon  it.     The  will  sets  the  wit  a-work,  to  weave 
the   net  and  frame  the  device.    Involuntarium  minuit  de  ratione 
peccati — when  a  thing  is  involuntary  it  lesseneth  sin  ;  a  man  may  be 
overtaken  with  a  fault,  Gal.  vi.  1.      But  when  he  studieth  it,  it  is 
much  the  worse.     God's  children  are  surprised  through  unwariness, 
and  made  to  stumble  in  a  fit  of  temptation  ;  but  when  men's  wits  are 
bended  to  project  and  plot  sin,  it  is  not  an  infirmity  but  an  iniquity  : 
Prov.  vi.  14,  '  Frowardness  is  in  his  heart ;  he  deviseth  mischief  con-* 
tinually,  he  soweth  discord/    It  is  the  description  of  a  naughty  heart ; 
so  the  prophet,  Micah  ii.  1,  'Woe  to  them  that  devise  iniquity,  and 
work  evil  upon  their  beds :  when  the  morning  is  light,  they  practise  it, 
because  it  is  in  the  power  of  their  hands/     Their  wickedness  is  pre 
meditated,  then  woe  to  them. 

2.  It  is  a  sign  that  evil  is  connatural  to  them,  when  they  are  plotting, 


132  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEE.  CXX. 

as  poison  is  to  a  spider ;  they  are  always  working  it,  never  out  of  their 
way  by  night  and  by  day,  their  hearts  run  upon  it :  Prov.  iv.  16, 
'  Whenever  they  are  abroad,  they  sleep  not  unless  they  have  done 
mischief,  and  their  sleep  is  taken  away  unless  they  cause  some 
to  fall.'  Then  when  others  cannot  rest,  they  examine  themselves. 
Ps.  iv.  4,  'Commune  with  your  hearts  upon  your  beds/  When  our 
reins  should  instruct  us,  and  suggest  wholesome  thoughts  to  us,  Ps. 
xvi.  7 ;  or  when  we  should  direct  our  prayer  to  God  in  the  morning, 
Ps.  v.  3,  then  they  employ  their  thoughts  and  musings  on  evil.  The 


hurt  arid  mischief  those  who  are  broken  loose  from  him ;  it  is  his 
business  to  lay  snares :  2  Tim.  ii.  26,  '  And  that  they  may  recover 
themselves  out  of  the  snare  of  the  devil,  who  are  taken  captive  by  him 
at  his  will/  When  Judas  plotteth  against  Christ,  the  devil  entereth 
into  him.  So  Acts  xiii.  10,  it  is  said  to  Elymas  the  sorcerer,  '  0  thou 
full  of  all  subtlety  and  mischief,  the  child  of  the  devil/  They  are  like 
the  devil  in  their  hatred  of  God  and  the  truth,  and  the  persecution 
of  the  church,  and  like  him  for  subtlety  and  politic  contrivance. 
Bloody  designs  and  inventions  are  the  venom  and  poison  of  the  old 
serpent  sunk  into  men's  hearts;  there  are  both  cruelty  and  lying: 
John  viii.  44,  '  Ye  are  of  your  father  the  devil,  and  the  lusts  of  your 
father  ye  will  do  :  he  was  a  murderer  from  the  beginning,  and  abode 
not  in  the  truth,  because  there  is  no  truth  in  him :  when  he  speaketh 
a  lie,  he  speaketh  of  his  own  ;  for  he  is  a  liar,  and  the  father  of  it.' 

4.  It  is  a  sin  contrary  to  the  love  of  God  and  man,  against  double 
light  and  double  obligations,  from  both  the  tables  :  grace  arid  nature 
condemneth  it.     It  is  against  God,  for  if  we  did  love  him,  we  would 
love  his  image ;  the  saints  that  are  so  near  and  dear  to  him,  they  are 

*  his  jewels/  Mai.  iii.  17  ;  they  cost  him  dear ;   he  gave  an  infinite 
price  for  them,  the  blood  of  Christ :  they  are  the  apple  of  his  eye ;  to 
strike  at  them  is  to  strike  at  God  himself.     And  it  is  against  man  ;  if 
reasons  of  grace  do  not  restrain  such,  yet  reasons  of  nature  should. 
To  plot  mischief  against  one  that  is  of  the  same  nature  with  us, 
natural  light  will  teach  us  we  should  do  as  we  would  be  done  by. 
Oh  !  what  a  cruel  creature  is  man  to  man,  when  God  lets  him  alone 
to  the  sway  of  his  own  heart  and  natural  fierceness ! 

5.  It  is  contrary  to  the  gentleness  and  simplicity  of  the  Christian 
religion.     Christian  religion  is  a  simple  and  harmless  thing  :  Phil.  ii. 
15,  '  That  ye  be  holy  and  harmless,  the  sons  of  God,  without  rebuke, 
in  the  midst  of   a  crooked   and  perverse  generation;'  2  Cor.  1.  12, 

*  This  is  our  rejoicing,  that  in  simplicity  and  godly  sincerity  we  have 
had  our  conversation  in  the  world/     It  is  a  sign  men  have  drunk  in 
a  false  religion  when  their  spirits  are  efferated,  and  grow  monsters  in 
wickedness.      Men  addicted  to  false  worship  are  subtle  and  cruel ; 
subtle,   for  where   there  is  real    worth  there  is   no   dissimulation; 
they  carry  things  open  and  fair;  they  have  a  God  and  conscience 
to  bear  them  out,  and  this  is  worth  all  the  world  ;  and  if  things 
do  not  suit  to  their  minds,  they  can  tarry  God's   leisure,  without 
base  and  creeping  acts,  and  underhand  designs   and  machinations  > 


VER.  110.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  133 

but  a  false  religion,  that  hath  not  a  God  to  depend  upon,  breedeth 
fears,  and  fear  and  pusillanimity  puts  men  upon  plots  and  bloody 
designs,  as  Herod,  when  afraid,  seeketh  craftily  to  murder  Christ, 
Mat.  ii.  And  as  a  false  religion  is  crafty,  so  it  is  mischievous 
and  cruel :  Jude  11,  '  These  walked  in  the  way  of  Cain  ;'  for  a  false 
religion  cannot  subsist  without  the  plots  of  blood  and  tyranny  and 
cruelty.  When  Judaism  began  to  fall,  the  Jews  bound  themselves 
under  an  oatli  that  they  would  neither  eat  nor  drink  till  they  had 
killed  Paul.  False  worships  put  men  upon  a  blind  zeal,  that  breaketh 
out  in  tragical  effects.  Tantum  religio  potuit  suadere  malorum.  So 
much  of  truth,  so  much  of  meekness,  openness,  and  plainness,  as  the 
other  is  of  spite  and  malice. 

Use.  Oh  !  then,  let  the  children  of  God  abhor  this  hateful  disposi 
tion  ;  take  heed  of  those  kind  of  sins  that  have  subtlety  and  malice  in 
them ;  these  are  the  devil's  sins,  the  cursed  old  serpent,  that  hath 
been  a  murderer  from  the  beginning  ;  take  heed  of  plotting  mischief, 
and  secretly  designing  the  ruin  of  others.  I  would  have  you  Chris 
tians,  that  are  of  the  true  religion,  carry  it  meekly  towards  others  ; 
beware  of  deliberate  sins.  It  is  possible  in  some  great  temptation  the 
children  of  God  may  fall  into  these  kind  of  sins,  as  David  plotted  Uriah's 
death ;  but  that  sin  was  laid  to  his  charge  more  than  all  the  sins 
that  ever  he  committed.  These  sins  are  accompanied  with  some 
notable  affliction  and  judgment,  as  on  David's  sad  house  ;  they  leave 
an  indelible  stain  and  blemish,  and  cost  us  dear :  1  Kings  xv.  5, 
'  David  did  that  which  was  right  in  the  eyes  of  the  Lord,  and  turned 
not  aside  from  anything  that  he  commanded  him  all  his  days,  save  in 
the  matter  of  Uriah.' 

How  many  failings  have  we  left  upon  record  ?  His  distrust :  '  I 
shall  one  day  perish  by  the  hand  of  iSaul.'  His  dissimulation,  with 
his  rash  vow  to  destroy  Nabal ;  his  injustice  in  the  matter  of  Ziba 
and  Mephibosheth  ;  indulgence  to  Absalom,  numbering  the  people, 
wherein  he  showed  his  carnal  confidence.  All  these  are  passed  over 
in  silence,  as  his  infirmities,  save  only  in  the  matter  of  Uriah.  And 
they  will  cost  dear  ;  there  is  always  some  eminent  trouble  and  afflic 
tion  that  accompany  such  sins.  When  David  had  sinned  in  the 
matter  of  Uriah,  what  troubles  were  there  in  his  house;  his  daughter 
ravished,  Amnon  slain  in  his  drunkenness,  Absalom  driveth  him  from 
his  palace  royal,  and  then,  poor  man,  his  subjects  deserted  him,  he 
forced  to  go  weeping  up  and  down,  and  shift  for  his  life ;  all  Israel 
came  to  Absalom,  his  wives  defiled  by  his  own  son.  Thus  you  see 
what  is  the  fruit  of  deliberate  sins. 

These  sins  cost  us  a  great  deal  of  bitter  sorrow,  sighs,  and  tears,  to 
recover  our  peace  and  God's  love  and  favour.  Again,  how  bitterly 
did  David  remember  his  sin,  and  beg  that  God  would  'restore  to  him 
the  joy  of  his  salvation ! '  Ps.  li.  Therefore  take  heed  of  deliberate 
sins,  when  we  have  time  enough  to  have  serious  and  sufficient  con 
sideration  of  the  evil,  and  yet  do  it ;  when  a  man  knoweth  a  thing  to 
be  evil,  and  yet  resolveth  to  go  forward  with  it.  Sin  is  not  done 
suddenly,  in  heat  of  blood,  but  at  leisure  ;  not  limited  to  a  minute, 
or  an  hour,  or  any  short  space  of  time  ;  and  yet  to  do  it,  this  grieves 
the  Spirit,  and  will  cost  us  dear. 


134  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [&ER.  CXXI. 


SERMON  CXXI. 

Thy  testimonies  have  I  taken  as  an  heritage  for  ever :  for  they  are 
the  rejoicing  of  my  heart. — VER.  111. 

IN  this  notable  psalm  there  are  many  independent  sentences  expressing 
David's  affection  to  the  word  of  God.  .  In  this  verse  you  have— (1.) 
David's  choice,  '  Thy  testimonies  have  I  taken  as  an  heritage  for  ever.' 
(2.)  The  evidence  of  that  choice,  '  For  they  are  the  rejoicing  of  my 
heart.'  I  call  it  the  evidence,  for  so  it  is  a  proper  demonstration  that 
he  took  God's  precepts  for  his  heritage ;  this  is  the  mark  and  sign  of 
it,  '  They  are  the  rejoicing  of  my  heart.'  It  did  his  heart  good  to 
think  of  his  heritage,  and  what  an  ample  portion  he  had  in  his  God. 

First,  Let  me  speak  of  his  choice,  whence  this  observation.  It  is 
the  property  of  believers  to  take  God's  testimonies  for  their  heritage. 
In  the  management  of  which  truth,  I  shall  show — 

1.  What  are  God's  testimonies. 

2.  What  it  is  to  take  them  for  an  heritage. 

3.  The  reason  why  it  is  their  property  to  do  so. 

1.  What  are  God's  testimonies.  Any  declaration  of  his  will,  in 
doctrine,  precepts,  threatening^,  promises.  The  whole  word,  it  is  the 
testimony  which  God  hath  proposed  for  the  satisfaction  of  the  world. 
It  is  God's  deposition  or  testimony,  to  satisfy  men  what  is  his  mind 
and  will  concerning  their  salvation.  God's  testimony  is  the  public 
record,  that  may  be  appealed  unto  in  all  cases  of  doubt,  Ps.  xix.  8, 
'  The  statutes  of  the  Lord  are  right,  rejoicing  the  heart,'  &c. ;  '  The 
testimonies  of  the  Lord  are  sure,  making  wise  the  simple.'  By  the 
statutes  of  the  Lord,  is  meant  in  general  the  whole  counsel  of  God 
delivered  in  the  word.  But  then  more  specially  and  chiefly  they  imply 
the  evangelical  or  gospel  part  of  the  word,  the  promises  of  the  covenant 
of  grace,  Isa.  viii.  20,  '  To  the  law  and  to  the  testimonies/  Testimony 
in  this  sense  is  contradistinguished  to  the  law  or  God's  precepts,  what 
is  required  of  us;  thus  'the  ark  of  his  testimony'  is  called  by  that 
name.  Mark  this  notion  of  calling  the  word  God's  testimony ;  it  shows 
us  what  regard  we  should  have  to  the  precepts  and  promises  of  God  ; 
you  need  regard  them,  it  is  God's  testimony  to  you  and  then  against 
you.  Christ  would  have  his  word  preached  '  as  a  testimony  against 
them,'  Mat.  xxiv., — a  testimony  to  them  that  they  might  know  God's 
mind,  and  then,  if  it  were  not  received,  a  testimony  against  them  at 
the  last  day  ;  when  God  comes  to  judgment,  the  sinner  will  be  with 
out  an  excuse,  but  will  not  be  without  a  testimony ;  every  sermon  will 
rise  up  against  him  in  judgment ;  it  will  be  a  testimony  for  their  con 
viction. 

And  as  we  should  regard  his  precepts,  so  it  shows  in  what  regard 
his  promises  are,  which  are  chiefly  his  testimony  ;  therefore  it  is  said, 
John  iii.  33,  '  He  that  hath  received  his  testimony  hath  set  to  his  seal 
that  God  is  true.'  You  give  God  the  glory  of  his  truth  by  venturing 
your  souls  upon  his  testimony,  whereas  otherwise  you  'make  him  a 
liar,'  a  blasphemy  which  is  most  contrary  to  the  glory  of  his  being : 
1  John  v.  10,  '  He  that  believeth  not  makes  God  a  liar/  Look  upon 


VER.  111.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  135 

the  promises  as  God's  testimonies,  you  may  urge  it  to  your  own  heart 
and  to  God.  We  may  urge  it  to  our  own  heart  when  we  are  full  of 
doubts  and  troubles ;  here  we  have  God's  testimony  to  show  for  it, 
'  Why  do  ye  doubt,  0  ye  of  little  faith?'  Here  is  God's  testimony. 
Nay,  it  is  a  testimony  under  an  oath,  that  the  heirs  of  promise  might 
want  no  satisfaction,  Heb.  vi.  18.  If  we  had  but  God's  bare  word  it 
should  beget  faith,  for  God  stands  much  upon  his  truth ;  but  we  have 
his  oath,  his  hand  and  seal.  Why  !  after  such  a  solemn  assurance  shall 
I  make  God  a  liar,  as  being  in  doubtful  suspense  ?  And  they  are  a 
testimony  which  you  may  produce  to  God  himself :  Lord,  thou  hast 
said,  and  here  is  a  promise  wherein  thou  hast  caused  me  to  hope ;  I 
expect  nothing  but  what  thou  wilt  perform.  Look,  as  Tamar  showed 
the  tokens  to  Judah  when  he  was  about  to  condemn  her,  showed  him 
the  ring  and  the  staff  as  a  testimony,  and  said,  Whose  are  these? 
Gen.  xxxviii.  25,  you  put  God  in  mind  of  his  promise ;  here  is  the 
testimony  he  hath  called  you  to  these  hopes  whereby  you  should  wait 
upon  him.  How  shall  we  take  it  here  ?  for  the  precepts  of  God,  or  the 
promises,  or  both  ?  Surely  the  precepts  of  the  word  are  the  heritage, 
or  the  gospel  and  treasure  of  the  church,  a  treasure  not  to  be  valued ; 
and  every  single  believer  is  to  take  up  his  share,  and  count  them  his 
treasure  and  his  heritage.  No  man  can  take  the  promissory  part  of 
the  word  for  his  heritage,  but  he  is  to  take  the  mandatory  part  also ; 
as  in  every  bond  and  indenture  the  conditions  must  be  kept  on  both 
sides.  So  if  you  should  take  it  for  the  whole  covenant  of  God,  wherein 
God  is  bound  to  us  and  we  to  God,  there  were  no  incongruity.  Yet 
the  notion  of  an  heritage  is  most  proper  to  the  promises,  and  these  are 
the  rejoicing  of  our  soul,  the  foundation  of  our  solid  comfort  and  hope. 
The  promises  are  a  witness  in  our  hearts  how  he  stands  affected  to  us, 
of  which  we  are  most  apt  to  doubt  through  our  unbelief.  Natural 
light  will  convince  us  of  the  justice  and  equity  of  his  precepts  ;  there 
fore  by  the  special  use  of  the  word  the  promises  of  God  are  called  his 
heritage.  Again,  the  promises  are  put  for  the  things  promised,  and 
testimonies  for  the  things  contained  and  revealed  in  them ;  for  the 
promises  properly  are  not  our  heritage,  but  they  are  the  evidences,  the 
charters  which  we  have  to  show  for  our  heritage.  The  blessings  of 
the  covenant  are  properly  our  heritage,  and  the  promises  are  the  assur 
ance  and  conveyances  by  which  this  heritage  is  made  over  to  us.  As 
we  say  a  man's  estate  lies  in  bonds  and  leases,  meaning  he  hath  these 
things  to  show  as  his  right  to  such  an  estate ;  so  the  promises,  that  is 
the  blessings  contained,  or  the  testimony  revealed  there,  they  are  the 
things  a  believer  takes  for  his  portion.  Thus  I  have  showed  what  is 
meant  by  the  testimonies  of  God. 

2.  What  is  it  to  take  them  for  our  heritage  ?  There  are  two  words, 
heritage,  and  I  have  taken  them.  The  word  heritage  first  notes  the 
substance  of  our  portion,  or  what  we  count  our  solid  and  principal 
estate ;  secondly,  it  notes  our  right  and  propriety  in  it ;  thirdly,  the 
kind  of  tenure  by  which  wre*  hold  it ;  fourthly,  many  times  actual 
possession.  Now  saith  David,  I  have  taken ;  that  implies  actual  choice 
on  our  part.  We  are  not  born  heirs  to  this  estate,  but  we  take  it,  we 
choose  it  for  our  portion.  And  mark,  he  doth  not  say  they  are,  but  I 
have  taken  them  for  iny  heritage.  Every  believer  cannot  say,  These  are 


136  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXXI. 

mine,  they  are  my  heritage,  for  everyone  hath  not  assurance;  but  yet 
every  one  should  say,  '  I  have  taken  them,'  there  I  look  for  my  happi 
ness;  for  every  believer  is  alike  affected,  though  not  alike  assured. 
David  doth  not  here  so  expressly  mention  his  interest,  though  that  is 
implied,  as  his  choice.  Briefly,  to  take  God's  testimony  for  our  heri 
tage  implies  four  things : — 

[1.]  To  count  them  our  choicest  portions.  Let  others  do  what  they 
will,  this  is  my  share,  my  lot,  my  portion,  saith  David ;  that  which  I 
esteem  to  be  my  happiness ;  this  is  as  lands,  goods,  treasures  to  me, 
dearer  and  nearer  than  all  temporal  things  whatsoever.  Look,  as  a 
believer  in  the  duty  part  of  religion  takes  the  precepts  for  his  coun 
sellor,  so  David  saith,  Ps.  cxix.  24,  '  Thy  testimonies  also  are  my 
delight  and  my  counsellors,'  or  the  men  of  my  counsel.  Answerably 
in  the  happy  part,  they  are  my  heritage  and  the  rejoicing  of  my  soul ; 
it  is  my  wealth,  my  treasure,  my  chief  estate.  Every  man  is  known 
by  the  choice  of  his  portion ;  now  David  was  not  taken  up  with  any 
worldly  thing,  so  as  to  make  that  his  heritage,  or  account  it  his  solid 
happiness,  wherein  his  soul  could  find  complacency  and  contentment. 

[2.]  It  signifies  to  make  it  our  work  to  get  and  keep  up  an  interest 
in  God's  testimonies  ;  this  is  to  take  them  for  our  heritage.  Esteem 
is  manifested  by  prosecution.  That  which  is  our  chiefest  work,  that 
shows  us  what  we  take  to  be  our  heritage.  What  1  is  it  to  grow  great 
in  the  world,  to  shine  in  pomp,  to  flow  in  pleasure,  or  to  get  and  main 
tain  an  interest  in  the  covenant?  What  do  we  seek  first?  Is  it  '  the 
kingdom  of  God  and  his  righteousness'  ?  Mat.  vi.  33.  The  main  care 
is  to  make  sure  an  interest  in  the  covenant,  to  get  a  right  and  pro 
priety  in  it. 

[3.]  To  hold  all  by  this  tenure  :  heritage  is  a  child's  tenure.  We  do 
not  come  to  this  right  by  our  own  purchase,  but  as  heirs  of  Christ ;  not 
by  our  own  merits,  but  by  adoption,  God  making  us  children  and 
'joint-heirs  with  Christ,'  Bom.  viii.  17;  '  and  if  children,  then  heirs; 
heirs  of  God,  and  joint-heirs  with  Christ.'  Adam's  tenure  was  that  of 
a  servant ;  the  blessings  that  he  expected  from  God,  by  virtue  of  the 
covenant  of  works,  he  looked  upon  them  as  wages  of  obedience ;  but 
now,  we  take  the  promises  as  an  heritage,  as  a  right  devolved  upon  us 
as  heirs  of  Christ,  because  believers  are  called  the  seed  of  Christ,  and 
upon  the  account  of  that  are  possessed  of  the  privileges  of  the  cove 
nant  :  Isa.  liii.  10,  '  He  shall  see  his  seed,  and  the  pleasure  of  the  Lord 
shall  prosper  in  his  hands/  This  is  a  heritage  purchased  for  us  before 
we  were  born,  before  we  had  done  either  good  or  evil ;  and  we  have 
the  right  and  title  of  sons,  John  i.  12  ;  he  hath  given  us  this  privilege 
to  be  the  sons  of  God.  Whatever  we  receive,  we  receive  it  from  God 
as  a  child's  portion. 

[4.]  Heritage  signifies  actual  use  and  possession,  and  living  upon 
them  ;  and  so  I  have  taken  thy  testimonies  for  my  heritage  ;  that  is, 
I  mean  to  live  upon  them,  and  fetch  all  my  comforts  thence.  A  be 
liever's  interest  is  not  an  imaginary  thing.  We  do  enjoy  somewhat  by 
virtue  of  the  promises.  It  is  true  our  full  fruition  is  suspended  till 
hereafter,  but  we  begin  here.  The  testimonies  of  the  Lord  they  are  of 
present  use  in  the  present  life ;  therefore  we  are  said  to  be  '  Heirs 
according  to  the  hope  of  eternal  life/  Titus  iii.  7.  God  doth  not  take 


TEH.  111.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXTX.  137 

us  to  heaven  presently  upon  our  spiritual  nativity  or  new  birth.  It 
pleaseth  God  to  exercise  us  for  a  while  in  our  nonage,  under  tutors 
and  governors,  and  to  make  us  differ  little  from  servants ;  but  for  the 
present  we  have  maintenance,  we  live  by  faith,  Gal.  ii.  20.  We  live 
upon  our  heritage,  and  fetch  thence  not  only  peace  and  righteousness 
and  grace,  but  meat,  drink,  and  clothing,  protection,  and  defence.  So 
that  to  take  God's  testimonies  for  our  heritage  is  to  live  upon  them  as 
far  as  the  present  state  will  permit,  to  fetch  out  all  our  supplies  from 
the  covenant ;  otherwise  we  should  make  the  promises  to  be  but  a  con 
ceit  and  imagination,  if  they  did  not  afford  present  support.  A 
believer  doth  not  live  upon  outward  supplies  only,  but  upon  the  cove 
nant  ;  not  upon  meat  and  drink,  food  and  raiment,  but  he  fetcheth  all 
from  the  covenant,  by  the  exercise  of  faith,  and  so  these  things  are 
sanctified  to  him.  So  that  to  take  them  as  our  heritage  is  to  make 
them  the  grounds  of  our  future  hopes,  and  the  storehouse  from  whence 
we  receive  our  present  supply.  And  this  is  that  which  is  called  living 
by  faith,  fetching  all  our  supports  and  supplies  out  of  the  promises  : 
Gal.  ii.  20,  'All  that  Hive  in  the  flesh7  (so  in  the  original),  '  I  live  by 
the  faith  of  the  Son  of  God/ 

3.  For  the  reasons,  why  it  is  the  property  of  believers  to  take  the 
testimony  of  God  for  their  heritage;  before  I  come  to  that,  first,  I 
must  show  what  kind  of  heritage  it  is  ;  secondly,  How  believers  only, 
and  no  others,  can  take  them  from  their  heritage. 

[1.]  What  kind  of  heritage  it  is.  It  is  a  heritage  which  exceeds  all 
others  in  three  particulars — it  is  full,  it  is  sure,  it  is  lasting ;  therefore 
we  must  pitch  upon  it  for  our  solid  happiness. 

(1.)  It  is  a  full  heritage,  and  nothing  can  be  added  to  the  complete 
ness  of  our  portion  ;  for  in  the  promises  here  is  God,  heaven,  earth, 
providences,  ordinances,  all  made  ours,  and  all  inward  comforts  and 
graces  they  are  a  part  of  our  portion  ;  and  what  can  a  soul  desire  more  ? 
Here  is  God  made  over  to  us  ;  the  great  blessing  of  the  covenant  is,  I 
am  thy  God.  Other  men  say  (and  they  will  think  it  a  great  matter  when 
they  can  say),  This  kingdom  is  mine,  this  lordship  is  mine,  this  house,  these 
fields  are  mine  ;  but  a  believer  can  say,  this  God,  this  Christ,  this  Holy 
Spirit  is  mine.  Alas  !  riches  and  honour  and  worldly  greatness  are  poor 
things  to  a  God  made  ours  in  covenant.  Nay,  mark  the  emphasis  ;  God 
is  not  only  ours,  but  ours  as  an  heritage  :  Ps.  xvi.  5,  '  The  Lord  is  the 
portion  of  mine  inheritance.1  They  may  claim  a  title  to  God,  and 
enjoy  the  possession  of  God  as  freely  as  a  man  would  do  his  own 
inheritance.  I  say,  they  have  as  sure  a  right  to  God,  and  all  that  he  is 
and  can  do,  as  a  man  can  have  to  the  patrimony  whereunto  he  is  born. 
And  as  the  Lord  is  theirs,  so  heaven  and  earth  are  both  theirs.  Heaven 
is  theirs  :  let  a  believer  be  never  so  despicable  in  the  world,  yet  he  is 
an  heir-apparent  to  the  kingdom  of  heaven,  James  ii.  15.  Though,  it 
may  be,  you  are  poor  persons,  nothing  to  live  upon  ;  poor  apprentices, 
nothing  to  set  up  withal,  yet  '  God  hath  chosen  the  poor  of  this  world 
to  be  heirs  of  a  kingdom/  Poor  believers  are  but  princes  in  disguise, 
princes  in  a  foreign  country,  and  under  a  veil ;  they  have  a  large 
patrimony ;  it  lies  indeed  in  an  unknown  land  to  the  world,  it  is  in 
terra  incognita  to  them  ;  but  believers  know  what  an  ample  portion 
God  hath  laid  up  for  them,  heirs  of  a  kingdom.  If  that  be  not  enough, 


138  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [&ER.  CXXI. 

take  that  other  expression,  Born.  viii.  17,  '  Heirs,  co-heirs  with  Christ/ 
Christ  as  mediator,  and  we  as  members  of  his  body,  possess  the  same 
God,  one  father,  one  husband,  one  estate ;  we  dwell  together,  live 
together ;  where  he  is  we  are.  Besides  God  and  heaven  there  is  the 
world  too.  Here  is  the  difficulty,  how  a  Christian,  that  hath  not 
a  foot  of  land,  yet  should  be  heir  of  all  the  world.  All  things  are 
theirs,  saith  the  apostle,  1  Cor.  iii.  21.  And  it  is  said  of  Abraham, 
who  was  '  the  father  of  the  faithful/  and  whose  blessing  comes  upon 
us,  that  through  the  righteousness  of  faith  he  became  '  heir  of  the 
world/  He  was  re-established  in  the  right  which  Adam  had  before 
the  fall,  that  wherever  God  should  cast  his  portion,  he  should  look 
upon  it  as  made  over  to  him  by  grace,  as  a  sanctified  portion  belonging 
to  the  covenant ;  and  in  this  sense  he  was  heir  of  the  whole  world. 
All  creatures  are  sanctified  to  a  believer,  and  the  comfortable  enjoy 
ment  of  them  fall  to  our  lot  and  share  ;  and  therefore,  1  Tim.  iv.  5,  it 
is  said,  '  commanding  to  abstain  from  meats,  which  God  hath  created 
to  be  received  with  thanksgiving,  to  them  that  believe  and  know  the 
truth/  Mark,  believers  only  have  a  covenant  right  to  meat,  drink, 
land,  money,  and  the  things  that  are  possessed  in  the  world,  to  make 
use  of  the  good  creatures  God  hath  bestowed  upon  them.  Others  are 
not  usurpers  ;  I  dare  not  say  so.  All  men  have  a  providential  right ; 
it  is  '  their  portion  God  hath  given  them  in  this  world  ; '  but  they  have 
not  a  covenant  right.  Whatever  of  the  world  falls  to  their  share  comes 
to  them  in  a  regular  way  of  providence,  that  shall  be  sanctified,  and 
truly  without  this  covenant  right,  if  we  had  all  earthly  possessions,  it 
would  be  a  mere  nothing,  and  no  blessing.  Once  more,  providence  is 
theirs,  even  those  things  which  are  against  us,  afflictions,  death  ;  not 
only  life,  but  death,  1  Cor.  iii.  22,  as  part  of  their  portion.  Ordi 
nances  are  theirs,  all  the  gifts  of  the  church,  Paul,  Apollos,  Cephas, 
all  for  their  benefit.  And  graces  are  theirs  ;  the  righteousness  of  Christ 
and  the  graces  of  the  Spirit,  they  are  all  a  part  of  their  portion,  made 
over  to  them  by  virtue  of  God's  testimony.  As  to  the  righteousness  of 
Christ,  it  is  said  of  Noah,  Heb.  11,  7,  that  he  '  became  an  heir  of  the 
righteousness  which  is  by  faith.'  The  great  legacy  which  Christ  hath 
left  is  his  righteousness.  As  Elijah  when  he  went  to  heaven  leftElisha 
his  cloak  or  mantle,  so  when  Christ  went  to  heaven,  he  left  the  garment 
of  his  righteousness  behind  him  as  a  legacy  to  the  church,  in  confi 
dence  whereof  we  appear  before  God.  Look,  as  fathers  leave  lands  to 
their  children,  and  such  as  they  have,  so  Christ  hath  left  us  what  he  had. 
In  the  outward  estate  we  are  despicable.  Silver  and  gold  he  hath  not 
left  us,  that  is  no  solid  portion ;  but  he  hath  left  us  his  righteousness 
and  obedience,  as  a  ground  of  our  acceptance  with  God.  No  monarch 
in  the  world  can  leave  us  such  a  portion ;  it  cost  Christ  very  dear  to 
purchase  it  for  us.  Then  the  graces  of  the  Spirit ;  we  have  grace 
enough  to  maintain  our  expenses  to  heaven,  and  carry  us  on  till  we 
come  to  the  full  enjoyment  of  our  portion.  Thus  God  in  covenant, 
heaven,  earth,  whatever  is  great  and  magnificent,  the  ordinances  of  the 
church,  the  graces  of  the  Spirit,  all  these  belong  to  our  heritage;  it  is 
a  full  portion. 

(2.)  It  is  a  sure  portion,  both  on  God's  part  and  ours.     On  God's 
part,  there  we  have  his  word,  and  that  is  better  than  all  the  assurance 


VER.  111.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  139 

in  the  world :  '  He  hath  magnified  that  above  all  his  name,'  Ps. 
cxxxviii.  2.  If  we  had  but  God's  single  word,  that  is  enough,  for  God 
is  very  tender  of  his  word,  more  than  of  heaven  and  earth  ;  and  all 
things  he  hath  made :  '  Heaven  and  earth  shall  pass  away,  but  my  word 
shall  not  pass  away.'  Then  we  have  it  confirmed  with  an  oath,  Heb. 
vi.  6,  7.  God  thought  our  heritage  could  never  stand  upon  terms  sure 
enough,  therefore  he  condescended  to  give  us  an  oath  over  and  above 
his  word.  An  oath  is  given  in  a  doubtful  matter.  But  now  because 
unbelief  possibly  might  not  be  satisfied  with  God's  bare  word,  he  hath 
interposed  by  an  oath,  and  pawned  all  his  holiness  and  glory,  laid 
them  at  pledge  with  the  heirs  of  promise,  'that  they  might  have 
strong  consolation,'  for  that  is  the  effect  of  God's  oath,  when  the  Lord 
swears,  '  As  I  live,  saith  the  Lord ; '  as  if  he  should  say,  Take  my  life 
in  pawn,  count  me  not  an  excellent,  glorious,  holy  God,  if  I  do  not 
accomplish  this  for  you  :  I  will  make  good  this  promise.  There  is  no 
inheritance  in  the  world  so  sure  as  this,  made  over  to  the  heirs  of  pro 
mise.  And  then  on  our  part,  there  it  is  made  sure.  God  will  main 
tain  our  right  to  this  inheritance.  We  should  embezzle  our  inherit 
ance,  lose  it  every  hour,  if  it  were  wholly  committed  to  us ;  but  mark, 
'  Thou  art  the  portion  of  mine  inheritance,  thou  shalt  maintain  my  lot, 
0  Lord/  Ps.  xvi.  5.  A  heritage  is  either  wasted  by  the  prodigality  of 
the  owner,  or  else  wrested  from  us  by  the  violence  and  cunning  of 
others.  Now,  for  the  prodigal  disposition  of  the  owner  :  indeed  we 
should  spend  our  patrimony  apace,  soon  embezzle  our  portion,  if  we 
had  the  sole  keeping  of  it,  for  we  are  prodigals.  But  mark,  under  the 
law,  Exod.  xxv.  23,  an  Israelite,  though  he  might  alienate  his  inherit 
ance  for  a  while,  till  the  year  of  jubilee  came,  yet  God  forbids  him  to  sell 
it  away  for  ever.  So  we  blot  our  evidences  often,  we  cannot  read  our 
title ;  there  is  an  interruption  of  comfort,  a  kind  of  sequestration  from 
the  privileges  of  the  covenant  for  a  while ;  but  Jesus  Christ  is  our 
guardian  to  look  after  them  that  take  the  promises  for  their  heritages. 
And  then  it  cannot  be  wrested  from  us  by  the  violence  of  others.  All 
heritages  in  the  world  are  liable  to  violences.  Princes  have  been 
driven  from  their  kingdoms,  and  men  from  their  heritages ;  but  this  is 
a  heritage  God  will  maintain  ;  he  hath  engaged  his  own  power  :  John 
x.  28,  '  No  man  is  able  to  pluck  them  out  of  my  hand.'  It  shall  not 
be  wrested  from  us  by  any  pleas  in  law.  The  devil  would  soon  pick  a 
flaw  in  our  title,  there  are  so  many  temptations  and  accusations  ;  but 
now  God  will  maintain  our  right  and  possession  of  the  privileges  of 
the  covenant.  He  is  deeply  engaged  to  maintain  their  right  whose 
hearts  depend  upon  him  :  they  may  take  away  life,  but  not  the  favour 
of  God. 

(3.)  It  is  a  most  lasting  and  durable  inheritance,  as  being  eternal : 
'I  have  taken  thy  testimonies  for  my  heritage  for  ever'  You  know 
all  estates  are  valuable  according  as  they  last.  A  lease  for  years  is 
better  than  to  be  tenant  at  will,  an  inheritance  is  better  than  a  lease. 
Our  inheritance  lasts  for  ever  and  ever.  All  other  heritages  determine 
with  life,  but  then  ours  begins — this  heritage  of  God's  testimonies. 
A  worldly  portion  may  crumble  away  and  waste  to  nothing  before  we 
die,  but  these  testimonies  will  give  us  a  good  estate  when  all  things 
else  fail.  A  believer,  when  he  is  stripped  of  all,  and  reduced  to  bare 


140  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXXI. 

promises,  is  a  happy  man ;  and  when  he  is  reduced  to  exigencies,  then 
is  the  time  to  put  the  bonds  in  suit.  God  by  promise  hath  made  him 
self  a  debtor :  '  As  having  nothing,  yet  possessing  all  things/  2  Cor. 
vi.  10.  They  have  all  things  in  the  promise,  though  nothing  in  sense. 
If  we  have  but  one  gracious  promise  left  to  subsist  upon,  we  cannot 
be  poor  ;  it  is  better  riches  than  all  the  world,  for  then  our  right  to 
God  and  eternal  life  still  remaineth.  If  an  estate  here  should  last  till 
death,  yet  then  certainly  men  try  the  weakness  of  their  portion.  When 
other  men  find  the  worthlessness  and  baseness  of  their  portion,  you  find 
the  sweetness,  fulness,  and  comfort  of  yours.  Carnal  men  have  but 
an  estate  for  life  at  best :  Luke  xvi.  25,  '  Son,  in  thy  lifetime  thou 
receivedst  thy  good  things  ; '  when  they  come  to  die  they  can  look  for 
no  more;  then  they  find  the  gnawing  worm  of  conscience  prove 
matter  of  vexation  and  torment ;  but  then  your  heritage  comes  to  the 
full :  Ps.  Ixxiii.  26,  '  My  flesh  and  my  heart  faileth  ;  but  God  is  the 
strength  of  my  heart,  and  my  portion  for  ever/  Not  only  when  all 
outward  comforts  fail,  all  creatures  in  the  world  have  spent  their 
allowance,  but  when  the  flesh  begins  to  fail,  when  we  consume  and 
faint  away,  and  hasten  to  the  grave :  Lord,  then  thou  failest  not,  thou 
art  the  strength  of  my  heart,  and  my  portion  for  ever.  We  have  an 
interest  in  the  eternal  God,  and  we  shall  live  eternally  to  enjoy  him. 
God  lives  for  ever,  and  we  live  for  ever,  that  we  may  enjoy  God. 

[2.]  Now  I  come  to  give  the  reasons  why  it  is  the  property  of  be 
lievers  to  choose  this  for  their  portion,  and  why  no  others  can  do  it. 
It  is  the  property  of  believers  to  do  so  upon  two  grounds : — 

(1.)  Because  of  the  wisdom  that  is  in  faith.  Faith  is  a  spiritual 
prudence.  You  shall  see  faith  is  opposed  not  only  to  ignorance,  but  to 
folly,  because  it  teacheth  us  to  make  a  wise  choice.  Eeason  makes  us 
wise  to  choose  a  good  portion  in  this  world  :  '  The  children  of  this 
world  are  wiser  in  their  generation  than  the  children  of  light/  Luke 
xvi.  9.  But  faith  is  for  the  inward  and  spiritual  life.  Worldly  men 
are  wise  in  worldly  employments,  to  make  a  wise  choice,  and  accomplish 
such  things  they  affect,  turn  and  wind  in  the  world  ;  there  they  excel 
the  children  of  God  ;  but  faith  makes  us  wise  for  eternity,  and  there 
fore  it  chooseth  the  better  portion.  Faith  is  a  spiritual  light,  and 
seeth  a  worth  in  other  things.  It  is  a  notable  saying,  Prov.  xxiii.  4, 
'  Labour  not  to  be  rich  :  cease  from  thine  own  wisdom/  How  came 
these  two  things  to  be  coupled  ?  If  we  had  no  better  wisdom  than 
our  own,  we  should  spend  our  time,  strength,  and  care  to  labour  to  be 
rich.  Human  wisdom  doth  only  incline  and  enable  us  to  the  affairs 
of  the  present  life,  but  God  infuseth  a  supernatural  light  into  the 
saints  ;  they  have  counsel  from  the  Lord  :  Ps.  xvi.  7,  '  I  will  bless  the 
Lord,  who  hath  given  me  counsel :  my  reins  also  instruct  me  in  the 
night  seasons.'  As  if  he  had  said,  Ah  !  Lord,  if  I  am  left  to  myself, 
and  the  workings  of  my  own  natural  spirit,  I  should  be  as  vain  and 
foolish  as  others  are  ;  but  thou  hast  given  me  counsel. 

(2.)  The  next  reason  is,  because  of  the  nobleness  and  height  of 
spirit  that  is  in  faith.  Faith  will  not  be  satisfied  with  any  slight 
fancies ;  it  must  have  better  things  than  the  world  yieldeth.  The 
great  privilege  of  the  covenant  and  work  of  grace  is  to  give  us  a  new 
heart ;  that  is,  another  manner  of  spirit  than  we  had  before.  Our 


VER.  111.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  141 

natural  spirit  is  the  spirit  of  the  world,  a  cheap,  vile,  low  spirit,  that 
will  be  satisfied  with  every  base  thing.  Every  man  seeketh  something 
for  his  portion,  for  no  man  hath  sufficiency  in  himself,  but  seeketh  it 
without.  Natural  men  go  no  further  than  the  world,  riches,  honour, 
pleasure ;  they  seek  it  some  in  one  thing,  some  in  another.  There  is 
none  more  unsatisfied  than  a  worldly  man,  for  his  heart  cannot  find 
rest,  and  yet  none  are  sooner  satisfied.  A  worldly  man  is  not  dainty, 
but  taketh  up  what  is  next  at  hand.  You  think  there  is  no  such  ex 
cellent-spirited  men  as  they  that  have  high  designs  in  the  world,  and 
can  achieve  greatness  and  honour.  But  a  poor  Christian  is  of  a  more 
excellent  spirit ;  these  things  will  not  give  him  contentment,  nothing 
on  this  side  God.  Faith  yieldeth  a  man  a  choice  spirit,  it  maketh  us 
take  the  testimonies  of  the  Lord  for  our  heritage.  A  renewed  soul 
it  hath  its  aspirings  ;  it  gets  up  to  God,  and  will  not  be  satisfied  with 
worldly  delights  ;  but  '  thou  art  my  portion,  saith  my  soul/  Lam.  iii. 
24.  Others  hunt  after  other  things  beneath  God,  heaven,  the  graces 
of  the  Spirit,  the  righteousness  of  Christ.  Therefore  thus  it  must  needs 
be  the  property  of  God's  children,  because  they  have  another  under 
standing  and  another  heart.  And  then  none  but  the  children  of  God 
can  have  these  privileges.  Why?  Because  though  they  are  very 
magnificent  and  glorious,  yet  they  are  invisible,  and  for  the  most  part 
future  and  to  come ;  they  make  no  fair  show  in  the  flesh ;  this  is 
hidden  manna,  meat  and  drink  the  world  knows  not  of.  Carnal  men 
look  upon  an  estate  that  lies  in  the  covenant  to  be  but  a  notion  and 
mere  conceit,  and  they  cannot  believe  they  shall  be  provided  for  if 
God  bears  the  purse  for  them ;  they  cannot  live  immediately  upon 
God,  they  must  have  something  visible,  outward,  and  glorious :  and 
partly  this  inheritance  is  to  come,  therefore  they  cannot  have  this 
property :  Heb.  vi.  12,  *  Be  ye  followers  of  them  who  through  faith 
and  patience  inherit  the  promises.'  The  testimonies  of  the  Lord  are 
an  inheritance  we  cannot  come  at  presently,  there  needs  a  great  deal 
of  faith  and  patience  in  waiting  upon  God  :  as  a  hired  servant  must 
have  money  from  quarter  to  quarter,  and  cannot  with  the  child  expect 
when  the  inheritance  will  befall  him.  A  carnal  heart  dares  not  trust 
God,  cannot  tarry  his  leisure  ;  wicked  men  '  have  their  reward/  Mat. 
vi.  2  ;  they  must  have  present  wages,  glory,  honour,  and  profit  here  ; 
they  discharge  God  of  other  things,  because  it  is  a  thing  which  costs 
them  much  waiting.  A  humble  dependence  upon  God  conflicts  with 
many  difficulties  and  hardships.  Carnal  men  see  no  beauty  in  it,  and 
because  it  is  to  come,  it  turns  their  stomachs. 


SEKMON  CXXII. 

Thy  testimonies  have  I  taken  as  an  heritage  for  ever :  for  they  are 
the  rejoicing  of  my  heart. — VER.  111. 

USE  1.  It  informs  us  what  is  the  reason  why  a  believer,  that  hath 
nothing  in  hand,  nothing  to  live  upon,  yet  is  not  only  patient,  but  com 
fortable  and  joyful,  as  the  men  of  the  world  when  their  corn,  wine,  and 


142  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CX1X.  [SER.  CXXII. 

oil  increase.  Whence  are  these  men  maintained,  supplied,  and  kept  at 
such  a  rate  of  cheerfulness  ?  Their  inheritance  lies  in  the  promise. 
As  Christ  said,  '  I  have  meat  and  drink  the  world  knows  not  of ;'  so 
they  have  land  and  estate  the  world  knows  not  of ;  they  have  all  in 
God.  You  account  him  a  richer  man  that  hath  much  land,  and  a 
thousand  pounds  in  bonds,  than  he  that  hath  only  a  hundred  pounds 
in  ready  money;  so  a  child  of  God  that  hath  one  promise  is  richer 
than  all  the  world :  he  hath  bonds,  and  his  debtor  cannot  fail  him. 
Let  me  tell  you,  a  man  may  not  only  live  by  faith,  but  he  may  grow 
rich  by  faith.  You  read  of  living  by  faith,  Gal.  ii.  20 ;  this  is  that 
which  supports  and  keeps  up  a  believer  in  heart  and  life.  This  will 
not  only  keep  body  and  soul  together,  but  help  us  to  grow  rich. 

Use  2.  For  examination.  You  have  heard  much  what  it  is  to  have 
an  heritage  in  the  testimonies  of  the  Lord.  Oh  1  but  who  is  the  man  ? 
Try  yourselves.  Let  me  propound  a  few  plain  questions. 

1.  Were  you  ever  chased  out  of  yourselves  in  the  sense  of  the 
insufficiency  of  your  worldly  portion,  and  the  curse  due  to  you  ?     Are 
you  driven  out  of  yourselves  ?     Heb.  vi.  18,  there  is  a  comfortable 
place :  '  God,  willing  to  show  unto  the  heirs  of  promise  the  immuta 
bility  of  his  counsel,  confirmed  it  by  an  oath,  that  by  two  immutable 
things,  in  which  it  was  impossible  for  God  to  lie,  we  might  have  a 
strong  consolation.'     Oh  !  who  are  these  heirs  of  promise  ?     If  we 
could  find  out  that,  we  are  sure  there  is  enough  in  God  ;  there  they 
are  named  who  have  fled  for  refuge  to  lay  hold  upon  the  hope  set 
before  us.     There  is  none  ever  took  the  testimony  of  the  Lord  for  their 
portion,  but  they  came  first  to  take  hold  of  it  as  men  in  danger,  ready 
to  sink  and  perish  and  be  undone.     Our  first  redress  is  to  take  sanc 
tuary  in  the  covenant,  to  flee  to  Christ,  represented  there  as  a  city  of 
refuge,  that  we  may  be  safe.     It  is  an  allusion  to  a  man  which  fled 
from  the  avenger  of  blood.     When  taken  out  of  the  city  of  refuge, 
under  the  law  he  was  to  die  without  remedy.     So  a  poor  soul  that 
first  takes  hold  of  the  covenant  runs  for  sanctuary  there  first,  before 
he  comes  to  take  possession  of  the  comforts  of  it. 

2.  What  do  you  take  to  be  your  main  and  your  great  work  ?     Do 
you  make  it  your  main  care  to  keep  up  your  interest  in  the  promises  ? 
the  great  business  you  drive  on,  you  would  sit  down  in  as  your  work 
and  employment  ?    What  do  you  wait  upon  as  your  great  project  and 
design  in  the  world  ?     Mary  chose  the  better  part,  Luke  x.  42 ;  do 
you  make  this  your  choice,  your  work  and  business  you  drive  on,  that 
you  may  be  possessed  of  the  whole  land  of  promise,  and  enjoy  eternal 
life,  and  clear  up  your  right  and  title  to  heaven  ?  1  Tim.  vi.  19, 
'  Laying  up  in  store  a  good  foundation  against  the  time  to  come,  that 
they  may  lay  hold  of  eternal  life/ 

3.  Are   you  very  chary  of  your  Interest  ?      Oh !  you  would  not 
hazard  it  upon  such  easy  terms.     This  is  that  all  your  happiness  de 
pends  upon.     What !  shall  I  break  with  God  for  such  a  trifle  ?     Are 
you  afraid  to  lose  your  inheritance  by  sin,  as  a  man  his  treasure  by 
theft  ?     Are  you  careful  and  wary  in  this  kind,  that  you  may  not 
hazard  your  interest  ?     1  Kings  xxi.  3,  said  Naboth,  '  God  forbid  that 
I  should  sell   mine  inheritance.'      Mark,  there  was   a  king  would 
traffic  with  him,  and  that  inheritance  was  but  a  poor  vineyard  of  the 


VER.  111.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  143 

earth,  but  it  was  that  which  was  descended  from  his  father :  now 
God  forbid  I  should  sell  it.  Thus  will  be  the  disposition  of  God's 
children.  Oh  !  here  lies  my  all,  my  happiness,  my  daily  supplies  from 
God.  God  forbid  that  upon  every  trifle  and  carnal  satisfaction  I 
should  break  with  God.  It  was  a  great  profaneness  in  Esau,  Heb. 
xii.  16,  '  who  for  one  morsel  of  meat  sold  his  birthright/  It  is  an 
argument  that  God  is  little  valued,  or  the  covenant  and  testimony  of 
the  Lord,  when  you  can  part  with  them  for  a  mess  of  pottage,  when 
the  consolations  of  God  are  so  cheap,  and  you  can  part  with  them  for 
a  little  temporal  satisfaction,  and  sell  your  part  in  Christ  at  a  very 
easy  rate. 

4.  What  respect  do  you  bear  to  the  promises  of  God  ?    Do  you  often 
meditate  upon  them  ?     Have  you  recourse  to  them  in  straits  ?     Do 
you  keep  them  up  as  the  choicest  things  upon  your  heart,  upon  which 
all  your  comfort  depends,  as  a  man  would  keep  the  key  safe  which 
opens  to  all  his  treasure  ?     Do  you  carry  the  promises  as  a  bundle  of 
myrrh  in  your  bosom  ?     Because  this  is  the  key  that  gives  you  ad 
mission  to  the  blessings  promised.     A  man  will  keep  his  bonds  chary, 
and  will  be  often  looking  over  them  and  considering  them.     So  are 
you  meditating  upon  the   promises  ?      Are   they   the  rejoicing  and 
delight  of  your  souls  ?     Do  you  keep  them  near  and  dear  to  you  ? 
When  alone,  do  your  hearts  run  upon  them  ?     For  a  man  may  know 
his  heritage  by  his  musing  and  imagination.     When  Nebuchadnezzar 
was  alone,  '  Is  not  this  great  Babel  which  I  have  built  for  the  honour 
of  my  majesty  ?'     He  was  thinking  of  his  large  territories.     So  if  you 
have  taken  the  testimonies  of  the  Lord  for  your  heritage,  your  heart 
will  be  running  upon  them.     Oh  !  what  a  happiness  is  it  tor  God  to 
be  my  God,  and  my  interest  cleared  up  in  eternal  life,  and  the  great 
things  of  the  covenant !     Many  times  the  flesh  interposeth  :  Ps.  cxliv. 
15,  '  Happy  is  that  people  that  is  in  such  a  case.'     You  will  be  ad 
miring  carnal  excellency  sometimes,  but  then  you  will  check  your 
souls  :  '  Yea,  rather,  happy  is  that  people  whose  God  is  the  Lord.' 

5.  If  the  testimonies  of  the  Lord  be  your  heritage,  then  you  will 
live  upon  them,  and  make  them  the  storehouse  from  whence  you 
fetch  all  your  supplies,  as  righteousness,  peace,  comfort,  and  spiritual 
strength  ;  nay,  all  your  outward  maintenance.     This  will  be  comfort 
in  straits,  strength  in  duty,  provision  for  your  families.     There  are 
two  sorts  of  the  children  of  God,  either  those  that  are  in  prosperity,  or 
those  that  are  in  want,  and  both  live  on  the  covenant.     A  child  of  God 
that  hath  a  plentiful  affluence  of  outward  comforts,  yet  he  doth  live 
upon  God,  1  Tim.  iv.  5,  to  them  that  believe,  for  everything  is  sanc 
tified  by  the  word  and  prayer.     Though  God  hath  supplied  them  with 
mercy,  yet  they  have  their  right ;  all  comforts  and  blessings  owe  their 
rise  from  the  promise.     I  take  them  immediately  out  of  God's  hand, 
from  a  God  in  covenant  with  me  ;  and  so  I  use  the  blessing  and  praise 
God.     Otherwise,  if  you  look  only  to  present  supplies,  you  live  by 
sense,  not  by  faith.     Every  one  is  to  say,  '  Give  us  this  day  our  daily 
bread/  to  fetch  out  his  supplies   from  God  every  day,  rich  men  as 
well  as  others,  when  you  see  you  have  a  right  and  liberty  by  Christ.    So 
God's  leave  and  God's  blessing  go  along  with  all ;  by  this  means  rich 
men  live  upon  the  covenant.     Ay  !    but  chiefly  in  want ;  the  word 


144  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXXII. 

quickened  and  strengthened  him  when  he  was  in  distress  and  in  want 
of  all  things.  Do  you  find  the  word  afford  maintenance  in  distress 
and  want  of  all  things  ?  The  covenant  is  a  storehouse  that  never  foils. 
When  all  else  fails,  God  is  alive  still,  and  the  promises  are  the  same  ; 
when  the  field  yields  no  meat,  when  there  are  no  calves  in  the 
stall,  &c.,  yet  then  you  can  live  upon  your  covenant  interest,  and 
comfort  yourselves  in  the  Lord  your  God,  Hab.  iii.  18.  Though  the 
course  of  nature  may  fail,  yet  the  covenant  of  God  doth  not  fail,  for 
that  is  beyond  the  course  of  nature,  or  beyond  the  common  providence 
of  God.  When  you  can  see  that  all  the  accidents  which  fall  out  in 
the  world  can  never  take  your  portion  from  you,  you  have  enough  to 
live  upon  ;  when  you  see  more  in  the  promises  than  the  creature  can 
take  away  from  you,  and  can  see  all  made  up  in  God.  As  the  children 
of  Israel  in  the  wilderness  had  no  house,  but,  Lord,  '  thou  art  our 
dwelling-place/  Ps.  xc.  1.  Faith  gets  a  living  from  promises  when 
nothing  comes  to  hand  in  sense  and  outward  feeling  ;  and  nothing  can 
be  taken  from  us  but  what  the  covenant  can  restore  again,  and  to 
fetch  quickening  arid  support  from  heaven. 

Use  3.  For  exhortation,  to  press  you  to  take  God's  promises  for  an 
heritage  ;  the  poorest,  that  are  born  to  nothing,  may  put  in  for  a 
share.  Take  those  motives  : — 

1.  Consider  every  man  hath  an  heritage,  he  hath  a  chief  good  :  Ps. 
iv.  6,  '  Many  say,  Who  will  show  us  any  good  ?'     There  is  something 
that  man  takes  to  be  his  happiness.     The  soul  in  itself  is  a  chaos  of 
desires  ;  like  a  sponge  that  sucks  and  thirsts,  it  hath  not  sufficiency 
in  itself ;  it  was  made  for  something  without  ourselves.     Now  man. 
being  such  a  needy  creature,  is  always  looking  abroad  for  a  happiness, 
for  a  portion  to  maintain  and  keep  him  up  in  comfort  and  life,    Every 
man  must  have  a  portion.     Men  are  not  men  without  looking  after 
something  to  maintain  them  as  a  portion.     Now  there  is  no  portion 
like  this,  like  the  testimony  of  the  Lord  ;  there  is  none  so  full  as  this, 
God's  covenant  notion  is  all-sufficiency  ;  here  is  all  things  to  be  found 
in  God.     When  God  came  to  indent  with  Abraham,  '  I  am  God  all- 
sufficient.'     He  that  hath  the  testimony  of  the  Lord  for  his  portion, 
hath  God's  all-sufficiency  engaged  to  give  him  everything  he  stands  in 
need  of. 

2.  This  is  a  portion  will  go  along  with  you  wherever  you  go.     If 
you  go  into  exile,  a  foreign  land,  into  prison,  into  the  grave,  your 
heritage  will  follow  you  there.     Your  estate,  though  it  lay  in  jewels, 
cannot  be  carried  safe  with  you  ;  but  this  portion  you  may  carry  with 
you,  they  cannot  plunder  and  deprive  you  of  it.     There  is  a  notable 
expression  :  Prov.  xiv.  14,  '  A  good  man  shall  be  satisfied  from  him 
self/   A  very  strange  expression  :  it  is  the  highest  sacrilege  and  usurp 
ation  that  can  be  to  be  sufficient  to  ourselves  ;  it  is  an  encroachment 
upon  God.     Man,  when  he  first  fell  from  God,  self  was  the  next  pre 
tender.     To  seek  that  in  ourselves  which  is  only  found  in  God,  now 
is  it  meant  a  good  man  shall  be  satisfied  from  himself  ?    'What !  shall 
the  Lord  be  laid  aside  ?  shall  he  be  sufficient  to  his  own  happiness  ? 
No ;  it  is  not  meant  in  opposition  to  God,  but  in  opposition  to  external 
things  that  lie  without  him.     He  is  satisfied  from  himself ;  that  is, 
from  the  comfort  God  lets  into  his  own  heart.     A  godly  man  is  in- 


VER.  111.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  145 

dependent,  his  comfort  doth  not  hang  upon  the  creature  ;  if  you  take 
away  the  creature,  you  do  not  take  away  his  portion.  As  the  philo 
sopher  could  say,  when  all  were  he  wail  ing  the  loss  and  spoil  of  the 
enemy,  I  carry  all  mine  with  me  ;  so  a  Christian  carries  all  his  trea 
sure  about  him.  There  is  the  same  expression,  Heh.  x.  34,  *  Ye  took 
joyfully  the  spoiling  of  your  goods,  knowing  in  yourselves  that  ye  have 
in  heaven  a  better  and  an  enduring  substance.'  A  Christian  hath  a 
substance  that  is  out  of  the  reach  of  spoiling,  since  inward  comfort  is 
far  better  than  riches,  and  all  this  lumber  that  is  without. 

3.  All  other   things  will  never  give  you  satisfaction.     A  worldly 
heritage  may  give  us  a  bellyful,  but  cannot  give  us  a  heartfal  :  Ps. 
xvii.  14,  '  Their  bellies  are  rilled  with  hid  treasure.'     They  which  are 
rich   and  great  in  the  world  have  more  dishes  at  their  tables,  but 
those  have  a  more  delicious  feast  in  their  souls  that  have  chosen  God 
for  their  portion.     All  other  heritages  do  but  yield  more  matter  for 
sin,  more  fuel  for  wickedness,  to  be  spent  upon  lust,  pride,  luxury, 
appetite  ;  that  is  all  the  difference.     The  heart  of  man  is  not  satis 
fied  with  these  things ;  and  yet  if  the  heart  could  be  satisfied,  con 
science  could  not,  for  that  is  a  sore  place  ;  still  our  sore  will  run  upon 
us.     Thus  you  see  there  is  no  heritage  like  this,  that  lieth  out  of  the 
reach  of  the  world,  and  that  will  fill  up  the  whole  heart,  and  yield 
satisfaction.     You  know  all   other  things   cannot  help  us  in  many 
worldly  cases.     In  sickness  spiritual  comfort  doth  only  relish  of  sweet 
ness.     A  man  doth  never  relish  the  comfort  of  the  covenant  as  when 
he  is  under  sickness,  and-deprived  of  other  things.     For  all  other  heri 
tages,  we  know  the  best  of  them  at  first,  but  this  is  a  heritage  that  grows 
upon  us  ;  here  we  have  the  pledge  and  earnest  of  our  inheritance  :  an 
earnest  is  a  small  thing  to  bind  the  bargain  in  lieu  of  a  greater  sum. 

4.  This  heritage  sanctifies  all  our  heritages.     Oh  !  it  is  a  sad  thing 
to  enjoy  a  heritage  with  a  curse  and  the  wrath  of  God.     '  First  seek 
the  kingdom  of  God  and  his  righteousness,  and  all  other  things  shall 
be  added  ;'  then  they  are  cast  in  over  and  above,  as  paper  and  pack 
thread  into  the  bargain,  and  are  cast  in  in  a  sanctified  way.     A  man 
may  grow  worse  for  every  other  portion,  all  the  world  will  not  bring 
one  dram  of  grace  ;  but  this  improves  the  world,  and  betters  us. 

5.  Again,  this  is  a  good  sign  of  adoption,  when  we  have  the  spirit 
of  God's  children,  both  in  God's  gift  and  our  choice.     When  men 
take  the  promises  for  their  portion,  it  is  a  sign  they  have  a  good  spirit. 
There  is  no  mark  put  upon  them  that  have  an  excellent  disposition 
and  dexterity  to  grow  great  in  the  world ;  but  to  be  labouring  and 
striving  after  an  interest  in  the  testimony  of  the  Lord,  it  is  a  sign  we 
have  a  child's  spirit. 

6.  Again,  this  is  a  peculiar  portion,  and  always  goes  along  with  the 
favour  of  God.     Other  things  a  man  may  have  with  the  hatred  of  God  ; 
God  giveth  gifts  to  all  his  creatures.     Isaac  had  the  inheritance,  but 
the  children  of  the  concubines  had  gifts.     So  every  creature  may  have 
common  gifts,  a  common  portion,  abundance  of  supplies  in  outward 
things,  but  no  right  in  the  promises  of  God ;  and  all  this  may  be  with 
out  the  love  of  God. 

7.  Again,  they  that  refuse  this  heritage  the  Lord  will  cause  his 
vengeance  to  seize  upon  them.     It  is  not  arbitrary  whether  you  will 

VOL.  VIII.  K 


146  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEE.  CXXII. 

take  the  testimony  of  the  Lord  for  your  heritage  or  no.  God  cannot 
endure  to  be  despised.  When  Nabal  despised  David's  kindness,  '  I 
will  cut  off  every  one  that  pisseth  against  the  wall.'  So  when  the 
Lord  hath  made  such  an  offer  of  himself  and  his  Christ  in  covenant, 
and  love  hath  gone  to  the  uttermost  to  save,  and  we  turn  hack,  then 
'  snares,  and  brimstone,  and  a  horrible  tempest,  this  shall  be  the  por 
tion  of  their  cup,'  Ps.  xi.  6.  It  would  make  a  man's  heart  tremble 
to  think  of  the  heirs-apparent  of  the  land  of  darkness,  that  is,  wicked 
men :  God  will  give  them  their  portion  with  hypocrites  in  '  everlasting 
burnings.'  Therefore  take  heed  of  refusing  this  portion  ;  you  can 
look  for  nothing  but  terrible  things  from  God,  for  his  love  is  despised. 
Well,  then,  go  in  God's  name,  and  take  hold  of  the  covenant. 

Again,  this  may  be  of  use  to  press  believers  to  live  answerable  to 
such  an  heritage.  Am  I  an  heir  of  heaven,  and  so  uncomfortable  and 
dejected  ?  Can  I  have  an  interest  in  the  promises  and  be  no  more 
affected  ?  This  returning  upon  our  hearts,  Kom.  viii.  31.  When  the 
apostle  had  spoken  that  we  should  be  co-heirs  with  Christ,  and  laid 
forth  the  privileges  of  the  covenant,  he  concludes,  '  What  shall  we  say 
to  these  things  ? '  So,  Christians,  go  home,  return  upon  your  heart, 
and  say,  Have  I  an  interest  in  him,  and  live  at  such  a  low  rate  both  for 
comfort  and  grace  ?  Do  I  walk  in  such  a  low  and  unsuitable  manner  ? 
Do  I  look  upon  this  as  the  only  sure  heritage  for  my  soul.  Urge  your 
heart  with  such  questions  as  these. 

Doct.  2.  The  taking  of  God's  testimonies  for  our  heritage  breeds 
joy  and  rejoicing  in  the  heart. 

Now  this  joy  ariseth  partly  from  the  portion  itself,  partly  from  the 
disposition  of  the  saints,  and  partly  from  the  dispensation  of  God. 

1.  From  the  portion  itself.     It  is  a  portion  that  deserves  to  be  re 
joiced  in,  it  is  so  full,  and  God  cannot  be  possessed  without  great 
joy.     A  man  cannot  think  of  a  little  pelf  and  worldly  riches  that  is 
his  own  without  some  comfort ;  and  can  a  man  think  of  these  great 
things  without  comfort  ?     Consider  both  what  we  have  in  hand  and 
hope,  and  still  it  is  matter  of  joy.     In  hand,  there  is  reconciliation 
with  God.     Oh,  to  have  God  in  amity  with  us  !  Rom.  v.  1.     If  one 
have  but  a  great  man  to  his  friend,  it  comforts  him  that  he  hath 
such  a  prop  and  stay.     Oh,  but  now  to  have  God  reconciled  !     And 
then  to  have  the  care  of  providence,  to  have  God  engaged  as  a  father 
— God  caring  for  us — to  be  under  a  promise  that  he  will  never  fail  us 
till  he  hath  brought  us  to  heaven.     And  then  to  have  heaven  kept  for 
us,  those  glorious  things  :  '  We  rejoice  in  the  hope  of  the  glory  of  God.' 
Joy  is  pitched  upon  our  hopes  in  many  places,  something  in  possession, 
and  something  in  reversion ;  this  must  needs  breed  a  joy  in  our  soul : 
Heb.  iii.  6,  'The  rejoicing  of  hope;'  and  Eom.  xii.  12,  'Rejoice  in 
hope.'     A  Christian  hath  cause  to  rejoice  for  what  he  hath  in  hand. 
God  is  at  peace  with  him,  he  can  go  to  him  as  a  friend,  as  a  God  in 
covenant  with  him ;  he  is  bound  to  provide  for  him  as  a  father ;  and 
then,  at  the  end  of  all,  a  glorious  happiness  that  is  to  be  enjoyed. 

2.  It  ariseth  from  the  disposition  of  the  hearts  of  God's  people ; 
partly  from  their  esteem,  their  faith,  their  assurance  ;  they  take  it  for 
their  heritage,  they  esteem  it  as  their  portion,  they  believe  it,  and  re 
flect  upon  their  own  interest ;  and  all  this  causeth  joy.    It  comes  from 


VER.  111.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  147 

their  esteem;  that  which  I  esteem  I  will  delight  in:  Mat.  vi.  21.  'Where 
the  treasure  is,  there  will  the  heart  be.'  Affection  follows  esteem, 
and  above  all  the  affection  of  delight.  A  man  may  desire  a  thing  that 
is  nothing  worth  ;  when  he  comes  to  enjoy  it,  then  he  slights  it.  We 
are  not  acquainted  with  the  imperfection  of  all  worldly  things  until  we 
come  to  enjoy  them  ;  but  delight,  that  is  an  argument  of  esteem,  the 
choicest  affection.  And  then  it  comes  from  faith.  Many  hear  of  such 
great  promises,  but  they  hear  like  men  in  a  dream.  But  now  a  believer, 
that  hath  a  piercing  sight,  that  seeth  the  reality  and  truth  of  them, 
his  heart  leaps  within  him.  Heb.  xi.  13,  it  is  said,  '  These  all  died 
in  faith,  not  having  received  the  promises,  but  having  seen  them  afar 
off,  and  were  persuaded  of  them,  and  embraced  them/  When  a  man 
is  persuaded  of  the  truth,  the  reality,  and  goodness  of  the  promise,  oh ! 
his  heart  leaps.  They  hugged  the  promises.  Here  is  a  promise  that 
will  yield  glory,  heaven,  and  happiness,  and  all  that  I  stand  in  need 
of.  Spiritual  sight  makes  way  for  spiritual  persuasion,  and  spiritual 
persuasion  for  holy  rejoicing ;  that  is  the  order :  '  In  whom  believing, 
we  were  filled  with  joy/  Faith  is  the  immediate  ground  ;  and  that  is 
the  reason  why  carnal  men  do  not  feel  such  lively  joy,  they  do  not  be 
lieve  it.  Then  it  comes,  too,  from  assurance  and  reflection  upon  their 
own  interest,  when  they  can  challenge  it  as  theirs,  when  it  is  made 
over  to  them.  The  rejoicing  of  faith  is  not  only  good  in  common,  but 
propriety  is  a  ground  of  rejoicing,  and  delight  is  nothing  but  a  com 
placency  in  our  portion :  1  Sam.  xxx.  6,  '  David  encouraged  himself 
in  the  Lord  his  God/ 

3.  It  comes  from  the  dispensation  of  God  ;  for  when  we  esteem  the 
promises  and  delight  in  them,  then  the  Lord  fills  the  heart  with  sweet 
ness  :  Kom.  xv.  13,  '  The  God  of  hope  fill  you  with  all  joy  and  peace  in 
believing/  The  Lord  rewards  delight  with  delight.  Thou  shalt  '  call 
the  Sabbath  thy  delight'  in  one  place,  then,  presently  'Thou  shalt 
delight  thyself — there  is  the  promise.  There  is  a  delight  and  rejoicing 
that  is  our  duty,  and  a  delight  and  rejoicing  that  is  God's  dispensation. 
God  loves  to  reward  grace  with  grace.  Look,  as  in  a  way  of  judgment 
he  punisheth  sin  with  sin,  as  when  security  is  punished  with  sottish 
obstinacy  and  hardness  of  heart ;  so  it  is  a  sweet  mercy  when  grace  is 
rewarded  with  grace,  when  our  delight  in  the  promises  is  rewarded 
with  a  sweetness  and  taste  of  the  promises. 

Use  1.  The  portion  of  God's  children  and  religion  is  no  dark  gloomy 
thing.  The  people  of  God  have  hidden  joys.  As  the  sun  shines  many 
times  when  it  rains,  so,  though  they  be  under  affliction,  yet  they  have 
the  shine  of  God's  face,  the  comfort  of  God's  promises.  Let  me  show 
the  excellency  of  the  spiritual  heritage  above  the  carnal.  A  carnal 
heritage,  alas  !  that  is  a  poor  thing ;  there  is  no  strong  consolation  in 
it.  The  comforts  of  wicked  men  are  poor,  weak  comforts,  they  can 
not  comfort  us  in  any  affliction,  poor  things  soon  overcome;  but  to 
God's  people  their  heritage  affords  strong  consolation,  in  overcoming 
worldly  lusts,  in  spoiling  the  relish  of  other  pleasures,  overcoming 
worldly  care  and  worldly  sorrow,  in  bearing  us  out  in  all.  afflictions ; 
nay,  the  strength  of  it  is  seen  in  overcoming  the  terrors  of  the  Lord, 
death,  hell,  judgment  to  come,  the  fears  and  doubts  of  our  own 
conscience.  It  will  not  only  swallow  up  the  sense  of  poverty,  dis- 


148  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXXIII. 

grace,  and  affliction,  but  will  bear  us  out  in  life  and  death  ;  they 
have  a  joy  that  will  make  them  to  do  and  to  suffer  the  will  of  the 
Lord.  When  once  they  have  tasted  the  comforts  of  God's  presence, 
other  things  will  go  down  easy.  I  might  press  you  to  look  after  this 
rejoicing  of  heart.  It  makes  much  for  the  glory  of  God,  for  the 
honour  of  our  portion,  that  we  do  not  repent  us  of  our  choice,  that 
we  bear  up  cheerfully.  And  it  is  of  abundant  profit:  the  joy 
of  the  Lord  is  a  Christian's  strength ;  it  bears  him  out  in  doing  for 
God.  To  this  purpose  you  should  beware  of  sin  ;  that  is  a  clouding, 
darkening  thing.  Men  or  angels  cannot  keep  their  hearts  comfortable 
that  sin  against  God.  Sin  takes  away  all  joy,  peace,  and  the  whole 
strength  of  men  ;  and  an  angel  cannot  make  the  conscience  of  a  sinner 
rejoice  :  therefore  the  children  of  God  must  take  heed  that  they  do 
not  allow  sin.  In  Acts  ix.  31,  '  They  walked  in  the  fear  of  God  and 
comfort  of  the  Holy  Ghost.'  Usually  these  two  go  together,  and  the 
oil  of  grace  makes  way  for  the  oil  of  gladness;  and  usually  obedience 
concurs  to  the  establishing  of  our  joy.  Above  all,  look  after  com 
munion  with  God,  for  he  is  the  fountain  of  joy  ;  and  the  more 
communion  we  have  with  him,  the  more  we  rejoice.  The  more 
communion  in  prayer :  1  Sam.  i.  6,  when  Hannah  prayed,  '  she  was 
no  more  sad.'  Prayer  hath  a  pacifying  virtue  in  it.  And  then  in  the 
use  of  the  seals,  for  these  are  assuring  ordinances.  Now  the  more  we 
revive  the  grounds  of  assurance,  the  stronger  the  consolation ;  that 
appears  Heb.  vi.  18,  Acts  viii.  39.  The  eunuch  when  he  was  baptized 
'  went  away  rejoicing.'  When  a  man  hath  an  inheritance  made  over 
to  him,  passed  in  court,  all  things  done,  the  title  not  to  be  made  void, 
then  he  goes  and  rejoiceth.  So  when  the  promises  have  been  con 
firmed  by  a  solemn  ratification,  it  nmkes  joy.  Then  meditation  and 
thanksgiving  keep  this  joy  alive  ;  thanksgiving  gives  vent,  and  medita 
tion  that  maintains  it. 


SEKMON  CXXIII. 

/  have  inclined  my  heart  to  perform  thy  statutes  always  to  the  end. — 

VER.  112. 

DAVID  did  not  only  feast  his  soul  with  comforts,  but  also  minded  duty 
and  service.  In  the  former  verse  he  had  professed  his  comfort  and 
joy,  resulting  from  an  interest  in  the  promise ;  now  he  expresses  the 
bent  of  his  heart  to  God's  statutes.  Ephraim  is  represented  as  an 
heifer  that  is  taught,  that  would  tread  out  the  corn,  but  not  break  the 
clods.  It  is  a  fault  in  Christians  when  they  only  delight  to  hear  of 
privileges,  but  entertain  coldly  enforcements  of  duty  and  obedience. 
David  was  of  another  temper ;  first  he  said,  '  I  have  taken  thy  testi 
monies  for  an  heritage,'  and  then,  '  I  have  inclined  my  heart  to  perform 
thy  statutes  always  to  the  end.' 

In  which  words  you  have  all  the  requisites  of  God's  service. 

1.  The  principle  of  obedience,  I  have  inclined  my  heart. 

2.  The  matter  of  obedience,  thy  statutes. 


VER.  112.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  149 

3.  The  manner  of  doing — (1.)  Accurately  to  perform;  (2.)  The 
universality  and  uniformity,  always  ;  (3.)  Constantly,  to  the  end. 

First,  That  which  the  Psalmist  bringeth  in  evidence  for  himself  is 
the  frame  of  his  heart ;  he  beginneth  there,  not  with  eyes  or  hands  or 
feet,  but  my  heart.  Second!}7,  This  heart  is  spoken  of  as  inclined, 
poised,  and  set,  to  show  his  proneness  and  readiness  to  serve  God  ;  not 
compelled  but  inclined.  The  heart  of  man  is  set  between  two  objects ; 
corruption  inclineth  it  one  way  and  grace  another  ;  the  law  of  sin  on  the 
one  side  and  the  law  of  grace  on  the  other  ;  when  the  scales  are  cast 
on  grace's  side,  then  the  heart,  is  inclined  to  God's  statutes.  Now  he 
saith,  '  I  have  inclined/  It  is  the  work  of  God's  Spirit  to  incline  and 
bend  our  hearts,  as  David  expresseth  himself,  ver.  36.  But  it  is  not 
unusual  in  scripture  to  ascribe  to  us  what  God  worketh  in  us,  because 
of  our  subservient  endeavours  to  grace  as  we  pursue  the  work  of  God. 
Cerium  est  nosfacere  quodfacimus,  sed  Deusfacit  ut  faciamus,  saith 
Augustine.  It  is  our  duty  to  incline  our  hearts  to  God's  law,  which 
naturally  hang  sin  ward,  but  it  is  God's  work.  God  beginneth  by  his 
preventing  grace,  and  the  soul  obeyeth  the  impression  left  upon  it : 
'  Turn  me  and  I  shall  be  turned,'  Jer.  xxxi.  18.  Yea,  he  still  followeth 
us  with  his  subsequent  and  co-operating  grace ;  we  do  but  act  under 
him :  I  inclined  my  heart  after  thou  hadst  filled  it  with  thy  Spirit ; 
when  I  felt  the  motions  of  thy  grace,  my  consent  followed  ;  preventing 
grace  made  me  willing,  and  subsequent  grace  that  I  should  not  will  in 
vain.  Now,  what  was  his  heart  inclined  to  ?  To  '  perform  thy  statutes  ;' 
not  to  understand  them  only,  or  to  talk  of  them,  but  inclined  to  per 
form  them,  to  go  through  with  the  work  ;  that  is  the  notion  of  perform 
ing  :  Kom.  vii.  18, '  How  to  perform.'  We  render  Ka-repydtfa-OaL  by  it ; 
to  be  complete  in  God's  will,  to  do  his  utmost  therein  ;  this  not  by  fits 
and  starts,  but  always,  a  continual  care  and  conscience  to  walk  in 
God's  law,  not  suffering  ourselves  for  any  respect  to  be  turned  out  of 
the  way.  Many  have  good  motions  by  starts,  temporise  a  little  ;  their 
goodness  is  like  the  morning  dew ;  it  is  thus  not  for  a  time,  but  to  the 
end.  A  holy  inclination  while  the  fit  lasteth  is  no  such  great  matter ; 
this  was  to  the  last.  Some  stop  in  the  middle  of  the  journey,  or  faint 
before  they  come  to  the  goal,  but  David  held  out  to  the  last.  Or  this 
is  brought  as  an  evidence  of  his  sincerity  (the  sum  is  a  bent  of  heart 
carrying  him  out  to  perform  whatsoever  God  doth  command  all  the 
days  of  his  life).  I  shall  speak  of  what  is  most  material,  and  observe 
this  point — 

Doct.  They  that  would  sincerely  and  thoroughly  obey  God  must 
have  a  heart  inclined  to  his  statutes. 

Here  I  shall  show — 

1.  What  is  this  heart  inclined. 

2.  The  necessity  of  it. 

First,  What  is  this  heart  inclined.  God  expects  the  heart  in  all 
the  service  that  we  do  him  :  Prov.  xxiii.  26,  '  My  son,  give  me  thy 
heart ;'  not  the  ear  or  the  eyes  or  the  tongue,  but  the  heart.  The  most 
considerable  thing  in  man  is  his  heart ;  it  is  terminus  actionum  ad 
intra,  and  fans  actionum  ad  extra — it  is  the  bound  of  those  actions 
that  look  inward.  The  senses  report  to  the  fancy,  that  to  the  mind, 
and  the  mind  counsels  the  heart:  Prov.  ii.  10,  '  If  wisdom  enter  upon 


150  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiB.  CXXIII. 

thy  heart.'  It  is  also  the  well-spring  of  those  actions  that  look  out 
ward  to  the  life,  Prov.  iv.  23  ;  Mat.  xv.  19.  You  have  both  these  in 
one  place :  *  Let  thy  heart  keep  my  precepts,  let  thine  heart  receive 
my  words/  Prov.  iv.  4.  In  taking  in  we  end  with  the  heart ;  the 
statutes  of  God  they  are  never  well  lodged  till  they  are  laid  up  in  the 
heart.  In  giving  out  duty  and  service,  we  begin  with  the  heart ;  we 
must  go  so  deep,  or  else  all  that  we  do  is  of  no  worth.  The  heart  is  the 
spring  of  motion,  that  sets  all  the  wheels  a- working:  Ps.  xlv.  1,  '  My 
heart  inditeth  a  good  matter,  my  tongue  is  as  the  pen  of  a  ready 
writer,'  ready  to  praise  God  and  serve  him.  When  the  prophet  would 
cure  the  brackishness  of  the  water,  he  cast  salt  into  the  spring.  Our 
heart  is  blind:  1  Chron.  xxii.  19,  'Now  set  your  heart  to  seek  the 
Lord/  There  is  a  setting  and  fixing  the  heart  which  is  the  fruit  of 
grace  and  ground  of  obedience. 

1.  It  is  the  fruit  of  grace.     By  nature  the  heart  is  averse  from  God, 
desireth  not  to  serve  or  enjoy  him.     See  what  the  scripture  saith  of 
man's  heart :  Prov.  x.  20,  '  The  heart  of  the  wicked  is  nothing  worth,' 
a  sty  and  nest  of  unclean  birds ;  Gen.  vi.  5,  '  Every  imagination  of  the 
thoughts  of  his  heart  are  only  evil  continually.'     The  scripture  doth 
much  set  out  the  heart  of  man ;  it  is  foolish,  vain,  deceitful,  Jer. 
xvii.  9,  vain,  earthly,  unclean,  proud.     There  is  a  strange  bead-roll : 
Mark  vii.  21-23,  '  Out  of  the  heart  of  man  proceed  evil  thoughts, 
adulteries,  fornications,  murders,  thefts,  covetousness,  deceit,  lasci- 
viousness,  an  evil  eye,  blasphemy,  pride,  foolishness.'     It  was  in,  or 
else  it  would  never  come  out.     If  a  man  should  vomit  nothing  but 
knives,  daggers,  pistols,  and  other  instruments  of  destruction,  of  what 
a  monstrous  complexion  would  you  judge  that  man  to  be!     Oh,  no 
such  monster  in  the  world  as  man's  heart !    If  let  alone  to  its  own  bent, 
it  would  grow  worse  every  day,  as  putrid  flesh  grows  more  noisome 
every  day.     But  now  God  by  his  grace  giveth  '  a  new  heart,'  that  hath 
other  dispositions  and  inclinations,   a  heart  that   loveth  God,  and 
delights  in  God,  tends  to  God.     A  new  heart  is  the  great  blessing  of 
the  covenant,  Ezek.  xxxvi.  26 ;  a  new  heart  is  a  new  placing  of  our 
desires  and  delights,  for  by  these  the  heart  is  known. 

2.  It  is  the  ground  of  obedience  ;  for  the  heart  is  the  main  wheel  of 
the  soul,  that  nioveth  other  things :  a  bowl  is  made  round  before  it 
runneth  round :  Deut.  v.  2,  'Oh,  that  there  were  such  an  heart  in 
them,  that  they  would  fear  me  ! '     There  must  be  somewhat  to  bear  up 
our  resolutions.    But  more  particularly,  what  is  this  bent  and  inclina 
tion  of  heart  ? 

And  first  negatively. 

1.  It  is  not  a  simple  approbation  of  the  ways  of  God.  Many  go  so 
far  as  to  approve  what  is  good,  to  condemn  themselves  for  not  doing 
it,  to  praise  others  that  are  holy,  can  be  content  that  those  that  are 
under  their  power  should  take  to  the  ways  of  God,  as  dissolute  parents 
would  have  their  children  soberly  brought  up,  video  meliora  proboque  : 
Acts  v.  13,  '  The  people  magnified  them,'  yet  durst  not  join  them 
selves  with  the  disciples  of  Christ.  Saul  said  unto  David,  1  Sam. 
xxiv.  17,  '  Thou  art  more  righteous  than  I  •/  yet  David  was  fain  to  go 
to  his  hold ;  as  the  woman,  in  Luke  xi.  27,  28,  cried  out,  '  Blessed  is 
the  womb  that  bare  thee,  and  the  paps  that  gave  thee  suck;'  but 


VER.  112.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  151 

Christ  said,  '  Bather  blessed  are  they  that  hear  the  word  of  God  and 
keep  it.' 

2.  It  is  not  a  bare  desire  or  wish.     Many  that  live  ill  could  wish  to 
live  well.     Balaam  had  his  wishes,  but  went  on  in  his  course,  Num. 
xxiii.  10.     Some  flashes  they  have ;  a  spark  is  not  enough  to  set  the 
heart  on  fire  in  holy  things  ;  in  carnal  things  it  is  enough.     Many  such 
languid  motions  carnal  men  have,  yea,  many  cold  prayers,  that  God 
would  make  them  better,  but  '  the  soul  of  the  sluggard  desireth  and 
hath  nothing,  for  his  hands  refuse  to  labour ;'  they  do  not  set  them 
selves  in  good  earnest  to  get  that  grace  they  wish  for.     Would  I  were 
at  such  a  place  !  but  never  stir  a  foot.     Would  I  had  written  such  a 
task  !  and  never  put  pen  to  paper. 

3.  It  is  not  a  hypocritical  will ;  or,  as  one  called  it,  a  copulative 
will.    We  would,  but  with  such  or  such  a  condition.    I  would,  if  it  did 
not  cost  me  so  dear ;  if  I  were  not  to  mortify  lusts,  to  deny  friends, 
interests,  relations.    They  would  come  to  the  supper,  Mat.  xxii.,  but 
one  had  married  a  wife,  another  had  a  yoke  of  oxen  to  prove,  another 
had  found  merchandise ;  this  is  no  full  and  perfect  will.     No  doubt 
but  the  chapman  would  have  the  wares,  but  he  will  not  come  to  the 
price ;  a  Christian  should  say,  I  will  whatever  it  cost  me,  I  will  what 
ever  come  of  it :  Ps.  xxvii.  4,  '  One  thing  I  have  desired  of  the  Lord, 
and  this  I  will  seek  after/ 

Secondly,  Positively.     Then  is  the  heart  inclined  : — 

1.  When  the  judgment  determineth  for  God,  and  comes  to  a  full 
decree  about  obedience  to  him.     Acts  xi.  23,  Paul  exhorted  them, 
'  That  with  full  purpose  of  heart  they  would  cleave  to  the  Lord ; '  that 
is  the  fruit  of  conversion  ;  not  a  little  liking  or  hovering  or  faint 
resolution,  but  a  full  purpose,  an  absolute  positive  decree  in  the  will, 
to  own  God  and  his  ways  whatever  it  cost  us,  a  full  consent  to  the 
duty  of  the  covenant. 

2.  When  the  will  is  poised  and  swayed  with  love  and  delight,  and 
the  heart  is  made  suitable  to  obedience :  '  Thy  law  is  in  my  heart,  and 
I  delight  to  do  thy  will,  0  God,'  Ps.  xl.  8.     Many  times  the  law  of 
God  is  written  in  the  mind  ;  many  have  good  apprehensions,  but  the 
will  is  not  swayed,  bent  this  way.     Amor  meus  est  pondus  meum,  eo 
feror  quocungue  feror ;  when  there  is  a  natural  inclination. 

3.  When  this  bent  of  the  will  is  seconded  with  constant  endeavours 
to  attain  what  we  resolve  upon,  and  there  is  a  continual  striving  to 
make  good  the  articles  of  our  perfect  resignation  or  first  surrender  of 
ourselves  to  God  :  Phil.  iii.  12,  '  I  follow  after  that  I  may  apprehend 
that  for  which  I  am  apprehended  of  Christ.'     God  taketh  hold  of  us 
by  his  grace,  and  we  carry  on  this  grace  in  the  way  of  diligent  pursuit 
or  constant  obedience.     It  is  not  one  endeavour  or  two,  but  such  as 
hath^its  constant  force;  hath  not  its  pangs  of  devotion,  but  TO  Oekew 
Trapafceirai,,  'to  will  is  present  with  me,'  Bom.  vii.  18.     It  is  a  daily 
habitual  constant  will ;  not  a  volatile  devotion,  that  cometh  upon  us 
now  and  then,  but  such  a  will  as  is  present  as  constant  as  evil  is,  Bom. 
vii.  21 :  KO.KOV  TrapaKeiraL     Wherever  you  go,  or  whatever  you  are 
about,  you  carry  a  sinning  nature  about  with  you  ;  it  is  urging  the 
heart  to  vanity,  folly,  and  lust.      So  this  will  is  present,  urging  the 
heart  to  good,  and  stirring  up  to  holy  motions. 


152  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXXIII. 

Secondly,  Let  me  now  show  you  the  necessity  of  this  inclined  heart, 
that  we  may  yield  to  God  cheerful,  uniform,  and  constant  obedience. 

1.  That  we  may  yield  to  God  cheerful  obedience  in  all  our  services. 
God  looketh  for  a  ready  mind.      God,  that  accepts  the  will  for  the 
deed,  never  accepts  the  deed  without  the  will.     The  dregs  of  things 
come  out  with  squeezing  and  wringing ;  duty  is  best  done  when,  like 
live  honey,  it  droppeth  of  its  own  accord  ;  cheerful  and  hearty  service 
only  pleaseth  the  Lord.     Now,  that  is  cheerful  service  which  cometh 
not  from  the  influence  of  by-ends  and  foreign  motives,  or  the  com 
pulsion  of  a  natural  conscience  or  legal  fears,  but  from  the  native 
inclination  and  bent  of  the  heart :  1  John  v.  3,  '  This  is  love,  to  keep 
his  commandments,  and  his  commandments  are  not  grievous.'     The 
work  is  not  grievous,  but  pleasant,  because  suitable  to  the  principles 
that  are  in  us  ;  it  is  not  done  against  the  hair  :  Cain  offered  sacrifice, 
but  with  a  grudging  mind.     It  is  somewhere  said,  '  They  offered  to 
the  Lord  whose  hearts  made  them  willing.'     When  the  heart  is  in 
it,  it  is  not  constrained,  forced  service,  but  natural  and  genuine ;  not 
like  water  out  of  a  still,  but  like  water  out  of  a  fountain. 

2.  For  uniform  obedience,  to  serve  God  in  the  whole  tenor  of  our 
lives,  that  needs  a  heart  inclined,  that  may  be  as  a  constant  spring  of 
holiness.     A  man  may  force  himself  now  and  then  to  actions  dis 
pleasing  to  himself,  but  his  constant  course  is  according  to  his  natural 
tent  and  inclination.     Haman  could  refrain  himself  from  murder,  but 
his  heart  still  boiled  with  rancour  and  malice.     When  men  look  only 
to  the  refraining  of  outward  actions,  or  the  restraining  the  outward 
man,  it  will  never  hold  ;  the  bent  of  the  heart  will  discover  itself,  and 
so  they  will  be  off  and  on  with  God.     The  compulsion  of  conscience 
will  sometimes  urge  them  to  God,  but  the  inclination  of  the  heart  will 
draw  them  to  evil ;  therefore  God  wisheth  that  his  people  had  '  a  heart 
to  serve  him,'  Deut.  v.  29. 

3.  Constant  obedience ;  that  can  never  be  till  the  heart  be  inclined. 
Judas  was  a  disciple  for  a  while,  but  '  Satan  entered  into '  his  heart, 
Lukexxii.  3.    Ananias  joined  himself  to  the  people  of  God,  but  '  Satan 
filled  his  heart.'     Simon  Magus  was  baptized,  but  '  his  heart  was  not 
right  with  God,'  Acts  viii.  22.     Here  is  the  great  defect.     But  now, 
when  God  gets  possession  of  the  heart,  there  he  dwelleth,  Eph.  iii.  17, 
there   he  abideth,  as  in   his   strong  citadel,  and  from  thence  com- 
mandeth  all  the  faculties  of  the  soul  and  the  members  of  the  body. 

Use  1.  To  press  you  to  get  this  bent  of  heart,  otherwise  all  your 
labour  in  religion  will  be  in  vain,  every  difficulty  will  put  you  out  of 
the  way,  and  make  you  think  of  a  revolt  from  God  ;  till  this  the  work 
of  grace  is  not  begun.  God's  first  gift  is  a  new  heart :  Ezek.  xxxvi. 
26,  '  A  new  heart  also  will  I  give  unto  you,  and  a  new  spirit  will  I  put 
within  you.'  Without  this  you  can  never  hold  out,  but  you  will  be 
uncertain  and  mutable  in  the  profession  of  godliness  ;  whatever 
restraints  are  upon  you  for  a  time,  sin  will  be  breaking  out  ever 
and  anon  with  violence ;  and  at  length  men  will  '  return  with  the 
dog  to  the  vomit,  and  with  the  sow  to  her  wallowing  in  the  mire,' 
2  Peter  ii.  20.  Oh !  then,  go  to  God  for  it :  Jer.  xvii.  10,  say,  '  Heal 
me,  0  Lord,  and  I  shall  be  healed  ;  save  me,  and  I  shall  be  saved.' 
Carry  forth  the  work  of  God  so  far  as  you  receive  it ;  follow  after 


YEH.  112.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  153 

to  'apprehend  that  for  which  \ve  are  apprehended  of  Christ/  Phil, 
iii.  12. 

Use  2.  Have  we  such  a  heart,  a  heart  inclined  to  do  the  will  of 
God? 

1.  Though  there  be  such  a  bent  and  inclination,  there  will  be  failings, 
yea,   reluctances  and  oppositions  :  Rom.  vii.  18,  '  To  will  is  present 
with  me,  yet  how  to  perform  that  which  is  good  I  find  not.'    There  is 
a  ready  will  asserted,  and  a  weak  discharge  complained  of.     Observe, 
it  is  a  will,  not  a  wish  ;  a  weak  discharge ;  not  that  nothing  is  done, 
but  not  all  that  good  that  is  required,  nor  in  that  purity;  the  work 
doth  not  perfectly  answer  the  will,  nor  the  motions  of  the  spirit  by 
which  it  is  excited ;    and  mark,  this  weakness  is  not  rested  in,  but 
complained  of  ;    and  not  only  complained  of,  but  resisted  :    '  I  find 
not,'  that  implieth  he  sought  it ;  for  the  word  '  finding'  implieth  a 
diligent  search  ;  he  laid  about  him  on  every  side,  he  did  not  expect 
it  should  come  by  chance  or  a  lazy  inquiry. 

2.  If  wrought : — 

[1.]  How  was  it  wrought  in  you  ?  Did  God  turn  thee,  and  thou 
wast  turned  ?  Were  you  ever  brought  to  self-resignation  ?  By  what 
steps  was  this  work  carried  on  ?  Thy  heart  was  naturally  wedded  to 
thy  lusts  and  to  carnal  vanity  ;  did  ever  God  make  you  see  the  odious- 
ness  of  sin,  the  vanity  of  the  creature,  the  insufficiency  of  self  ?  Evil 
men  seek  contentment  in  the  world  as  long  as  conscience  will  let  them 
hold  out  in  that  way.  You  cannot  cleave  to  God  till  you  are  rent  off 
from  the  world  and  self.  Was  there  ever  such  a  separation  ?  such  a 
rending  work  ?  Conversion,  or  the  altering  the  bent  of  the  heart,  lieth 
in  three  things — in  turning  from  the  creature  to  God,  from  self  to 
Christ,  from  sin  to  holiness.  How  to  God  ?  By  making  us  a  willing 
people,  to  yield  up  ourselves  to  his  service.  How  drawn  from  self  to 
Christ  ?  To  seek  all  this  good  in  him.  How  from  sin  to  holiness  ? 
By  seeing  the  beauty  of  God's  ways.  Paul  found  it  a  sensible  work 
before  he  was  brought  to  this  self -resignation :  Acts  ix.  6,  '  Lord, 
what  wilt  thou  have  rne  to  do  ? '  Ho\v  did  God  draw  you  or  drive 
you  to  this  ? 

[2.]  How  is  this  bent  of  heart  kept  up  towards  God  ?  Nature  is 
apt  to  recoil,  and  the  heart  to  return  to  its  own  bent  and  bias  again. 
David  beggeth,  ver.  36,  '  Incline  my  heart  to  thy  testimonies.'  It  is  a 
hard  matter  to  keep  up  a  bent  of  heart  towards  God  ;  it  will  cost  us 
much  watching,  striving,  praying,  to  keep  it  fixed.  The  frame  of 
man's  heart  is  changeable  and  various,  doth  not  always  continue  at  the 
same  pass ;  and  lust  will  waken,  and  be  pressing  and  importunate ; 
deadness  will  creep  upon  us.  The  great  business  of  the  spiritual  life  is 
to  keep  the  bent  of  the  heart  steady  :  neglected  grace  will  suffer  decay, 
and  worldly  vanities  and  listlessness  and  deadness  to  holy  things  will 
incroach  upon  the  soul,  and  a  gracious  heart  is  much  discomposed. 
As  a  needle  that  bendeth  towards  the  pole  may  be  jogged  and  put 
aside,  though  it  cannot  rest  there,  but  turneth  thither  again,  so  the 
bent  of  the  soul  towards  God  may  be  much  disordered,  and  we  may 
lose  much  of  our  free  spirit  and  ready  mind,  and  grow  uncomfortable 
and  uncheerful  in  God's  service,  and  it  may  cost  us  much  sorrow  and 
deep  humiliation  to  get  in  frame  again.  A  cold  profession  is  easily 


154  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXXIII. 

maintained,  but  to  keep  up  a  spiritual  inclination  is  the  work  of  labour 
and  cost. 

[3.]  How  doth  it  work  in  you  ?  This  bent  of  heart  is  seen  in  two 
things: — 

(1.)  In  pulling  back  the  heart  from  those  sins  to  which  corrupt 
nature  doth  incline  us.  Nature  carrieth  us  to  carnal  things.  There 
is  something  within  that  puts  you  on,  and  something  without  to  draw 
you  forward.  Nature  thrusteth,  occasion  inviteth,  but  grace  interposeth 
and  checketh  the  motion :  Gal.  v.  17,  '  The  spirit  lusteth  against  the 
flesh  ; ;  it  is  against  the  bent  and  inclination  of  the  new  nature  ;  there 
is  a  back  bias.  Joseph  had  a  temptation  ;  we  read  of  occasion  in 
viting,  but  not  of  nature  inclining  ;  but  presently  his  heart  recoiled. 
The  heart  of  man  is  seldom  without  these  counterbuffs.  It  is  an  ad 
vantage  to  have  the  new  nature  as  ready  to  check  as  the  old  nature  to 
urge  and  solicit :  1  John  iii.  9,  *  He  cannot  sin,  for  his  seed  remaineth 
in  him.' 

(2.)  In  putting  on  the  heart  upon  duties  that  are  against  the  hair 
and  bent  of  corruption.  Such  acts  of  obedience  as  are  most  troublesome 
and  burdensome  to  the  flesh,  as  are  laborious,  costly,  dangerous. 
Laborious,  as  private  worship,  wrestling  with  God  in  prayer,  holding 
the  heart  to  meditation  and  self-examination  ;  sluggish  nature  is  apt 
to  shrink,  but  t  love  constraineth/  2  Cor.  v.  14.  Spiritual  worship, 
and  such  as  is  altogether  without  secular  encouragement,  that  is 
tedious ;  to  work  truth  into  the  heart,  to  commune  with  God,  to 
ransack  conscience,  it  is  troublesome,  but  thy  striving  will  overcome 
it.  So  there  is  costly  and  chargeable  work,  as  alms,  contributions  to 
public  good ;  there  must  be  a  striving  to  bring  the  heart  to  it.  Then 
for  actions  dangerous,  as  public  contests  for  God's  glory,  or  keeping  a 
good  conscience,  though  with  cost  to  ourselves.  Our  great  work  is  to 
keep  the  will  afoot,  nature  is  slow  to  what  is  good.  A  coachman  in 
his  journey  is  always  quickening  his  horses,  and  stirring  them  up  ;  so 
must  we  quicken  a  sluggish  will,  do  what  we  can,  though  we  cannot 
do  all  that  we  should  ;  the  will  must  hold  up  still.  A  prisoner 
escaped  would  go  as  far  as  he  can,  but  his  bolts  will  not  suffer  to  make 
long  journeys,  but  yet  he  thinketh  he  can  never  get  far  enough  ;  so 
this  will  is  a  disposition  that  puts  us  upon  striving  to  do  our  utmost 
for  God. 

Secondly,  The  matter  resolved  on,  to  '  perform  thy  statutes  always 
unto  the  end.1  Uniform  obedience,  always,  or  all  his  days.  As  long 
as  life  lasteth  we  must  be  always  ready  to  observe  all  God's  commands, 
which  notes  the  continuity  of  our  obedience,  sincerity,  and  perpetuity 
of  it.  We  are  to  engage  our  hearts  by  a  serious  resolution  to  serve 
him,  and  that  not  by  fits  and  starts,  but  always ;  not  for  a  time,  but 
to  the  end.  Kesolve  to  cleave  to  him,  to  hold  him  fast  that  he  may 
not  go,  to  keep  our  hold  fast  that  we  may  not  go.  Take  notice  of  the 
first  decays,  and  let  us  keep  our  hold  fast,  and  bewail  often  the  incon 
stancy  of  our  hearts,  that  we  are  so  inconstant  in  that  which  is  good. 
Every  hour  our  hearts  are  changed  in  a  duty.  What  a  Proteus  would 
man  be,  if  his  thoughts  were  visible,  in  the  best  duty  that  ever  he  per 
formed  !  Kom.  vii.  18,  '  Evil  is  present  with  me,  but  how  to  perform 
that  which  is  good  I  find  not.'  Our  devotion  comes  by  pangs  and  fits, 


VER.  113.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  155 

now  humble,  anon  proud ;  now  meek,  anon  passionate  ;  not  the  same 
men  in  a  duty  and  act  of  a  duty,  unstable  as  water.  Compare  it  with 
God's  constancy,  his  unchangeable  nature,  his  love  to  us,  that  we  may 
be  ashamed  of  our  levity.  From  everlasting  to  everlasting,  God  is  where 
he  was,  the  same  ;  the  same  to  those  that  believe  in  him.  Secondly, 
This  '  to  the  end.'  God's  grace  holdeth  out  to  the  end  ;  so  should  our 
obedience :  '  He  that  hath  begun  a  good  work  will  perfect  it,'  £c. 
Consider  how  unreasonable  it  is  to  desire  God  to  be  ours  unto  the  end, 
if  we  are  not  his :  Ps.  xlviii.  14,  *  He  is  our  God  for  ever  and  ever  ;  he 
will  be  our  guide  till  death/  He  doth  not  lay  down  the  conduct  of  his 
providence.  So  Ps.  Ixxiii.  24,  *  Thou  shalt  guide  me  with  thy  counsel, 
and  afterwards  receive  me  to  glory/  We  can  give  nothing  to  God, 
our  obedience  is  but  a  profession  of  homage.  If  God  be  always  in  our 
eye,  we  shall  be  always  in  his.  We  receive  life,  breath,  and  motion 
from  him  every  moment ;  he  sustaineth  us,  every  day  and  hour  yieldeth 
new  mercy.  God  watcheth  over  us  when  we  are  asleep,  yet  how  much 
of  our  time  passeth  away  when  we  do  not  perform  one  act  of  love  to 
God  !  The  devil  is  awake  when  we  sleep,  to  do  us  a  mischief,  but  the 
God  of  Israel  never  slumbereth  nor  sleepeth.  How  can  we  offend 
him  ?  Let  us  then  take  up  this  serious  resolution,  to  perform  God's 
statutes  always  to  the  end. 


SERMON  CXXIV. 
/  hate  vain  thoughts :  but  thy  law  do  I  love. — VER.  113. 

THERE  are  in  men  two  great  influencing  affections — love  and  hatred  ; 
one  serves  for  choice  and  pursuit,  the  other  for  flight  and  aversation. 
The  great  work  of  grace  is  to  fix  these  upon  their  proper  objects.  If 
we  could  but  set  our  love  and  hatred  right,  we  should  do  well  enough 
in  the  spiritual  life.  Man  fallen  is  but  the  anagram  of  man  in  inno- 
cency  ;  we  have  the  same  affections,  but  they  are  misplaced  ;  we  love 
where  we  should  hate,  and  hate  where  we  should  love ;  our  affections 
are  like  a  member  out  of  joint,  out  of  its  proper  place,  as  if  the  arms 
should  hang  backward.  If  men  knew  how  to  bestow  their  love  and 
hatred,  they  would  be  other  manner  of  persons  than  now  they  are.  In 
the  text  we  are  taught  what  to  do  in  both  by  David's  example.  See 
how  he  bestowed  his  love  and  hatred  :  '  I  hate  vain  thoughts :  but  thy 
law  do  I  love/  Love  was  made  for  God,  and  for  all  that  is  of  God's 
side,  his  law,  his  ordinances,  his  image,  &c. ;  but  hatred  was  made  for 
sin.  All  sin  must  be  hated,  of  what  kind  and  degree  soever 
it  be.  Every  drop  of  water  is  water,  and  every  spark  of  fire 
is  fire  ;  so  the  least  degree  of  sin  is  sin.  Thoughts  are  but  a 
partial  act,  a  tendency  towards  an  action,  and  yet  thoughts  are 
sin.  Of  all  the  operations  of  the  soul,  the  world  thinketh  a  man 
should  be  least  troubled  about  his  thoughts ;  of  all  actual  breaches  of 
the  law  these  are  most  secret ;  therefore  we  think  thoughts  are  free, 
and  subject  to  no  tribunal.  Most  of  the  religion  that  is  in  the  world 
is  but  man's  observance,  and  therefore  we  let  thoughts  go  without  dis 
like  or  remorse,  because  they  do  not  betray  us  to  shame  or  punishment. 


156  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiR.  CXXIV. 

These  are  most  venial  in  man's  account,  they  are  but  partial  or  half 
acts.  What !  not  a  thought  pass  but  we  must  make  conscience  of  it  ? 
this  is  intolerable.  Once  more,  of  all  thoughts,  vain  thoughts  would 
escape  censure.  A  thought  that  hath  apparent  wickedness  in  it,  a 
murderous  or  an  unclean  thought,  a  natural  conscience  will  rise  up  in 
arms  against  it ;  but  vain  thoughts  we  think  are  not  to  be  stood  upon. 
Oh  !  but  David  was  sensible  that  these  were  contrary  to  the  law  of 
God,  transgressions  as  well  as  other  thoughts,  and  therefore  incon 
sistent  with  his  love,  to  God  :  '  I  hate  vain  thoughts/  Secondly,  He 
bestows  his  love  on  the  law.  Naturally  men  hate  God  as  a  lawgiver  • 
and  as  a  judge  ;  they  cannot  hate  him  as  a  creator  and  preserver ; 
under  that  formality  they  do  not  hate  God,  but  the  ground  of  our 
hatred  to  God  is  his  law  :  Kom.  viii.  7,  '  The  carnal  mind  is  enmity 
against  God;  for  it  is  not  subject  to  the  law  of  God,  neither  in 
deed  can  be/  But  now,  saith  David, '  I  love  thy  law  ; '  I  do  not  fear  it, 
but  love  it.  I  do  not  only  keep  it,  but  love  it.  A  child  of  God 
will  bless  God  for  his  commands  as  well  as  his  promises ;  he  owns 
God  in  the  holiness  of  his  law,  and  looks  upon  it  as  a  copy  and 
draught  of  God's  own  perfection ;  it  is  a  good  law ;  there  is  a  suit 
ableness  between  it  and  a  renewed  heart,  and  therefore  I  love  thy 
law.  The  one  of  these  is  inferred  out  of  the  other,  his  love  to  the 
law  is  mentioned  as  a  ground  of  his  hatred  against  vain  thoughts. 
Love  is  the  great  wheel  of  the  soul,  that  sets  all  a-going.  Therefore  sin 
is  hated  because  the  law  is  loved.  He  that  hath  a  true  respect  to  the 
law  of  God  is  sensible  of  the  least  contrariety  to  it,  for  hatred  is  uni 
form.  The  philosopher  tells  us  it  is  to  the  whole  kind;  as  Hainan, 
when  he  hated  Mordecai,  sought  to  destroy  all  the  people  of  the  Jews ; 
and  when  a  man  hates  sin,  he  hates  all  sin,  even  where  he  finds  it,  in 
thoughts,  words,  speeches  :  love  will  not  allow  it. 

Well,  then,  I  love  thy  law,  therefore  do  I  hate  vain  thoughts ;  that 
is,  though  I  cannot  wholly  keep  them  out  of  my  heart,  yet  I  hate  them, 
resist  them,  watch  against  them,  they  are  not  allowed  there.  Without 
further  glossing,  the  point  is  this  :— 

Doct.  It  is  a  sign  of  an  unfeigned  love  to  the  law  of  God  when  we 
hate  vain  thoughts. 

I  observe  it,  because  a  man  never  begins  to  be  really  serious  and 
strict  till  he  makes  conscience  of  his  thoughts,  his  time,  and  is  sensible 
of  his  last  account.  Of  his  thoughts,  for  that  is  a  sign  he  minds  an 
entire  subjection  to  the  law  of  God,  that  he  may  obey  it  from  his  very 
soul.  Of  his  time,  that  it  may  not  pass  away  before  his  great  work 
will  be  done.  Of  his  account, "that  is  not  far  off;  the  Christian  that 
lives  in  a  due  sense  of  his  great  account  is  always  preparing  to  reckon 
with  God.  The  one  of  these  doth  enforce  the  other.  A  man  that  is 
sensible  he  shall  be  called  to  a  reckoning  will  be  careful  how  he  spends 
his  time,  and  he  that  is  careful  how  he  spends  his  time  will  make  con 
science  of  his  thoughts. 

1.  To  give  a  taste  of  the  vanity  of  thoughts. 

2.  Show  what  sins  most  occasion  vanity  of  thoughts. 

3.  The  reasons  why  a  godly  man  will  make  conscience  of  his  thoughts. 
First,  Some   taste  of    the  vanity   of    thoughts.      There   are  three 

solemn  words  by  which  the  New  Testament  expresseth  thoughts  :— 
(1.)  Aoyio-fAol,  discourses  with  its  compound  SiaXoyia-fjiol,  which  we 


VER.  113.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  157 


render  imaginations.  (2.)  @uyc6?Jcret?,  and  sometimes  evOv^aei^,  mus 
ings.  (3.)  No^ara,  which  we  render  devices.  These  three  ways  the 
dunghill  of  corruption  reeks  out  by  our  thoughts  ;  sometimes  in  our 
vain  arguings  and  reasonings,  by  way  of  image  and  representations  in 
our  musings,  sometimes  by  way  of  foolish  inventions  arid  devices  that 
are  in  the  heart  of  man. 

1.  Aoyiafjioi,  carnal  discourses  of  the  mind,  come  under  the  notion 
of  vain  thoughts.  If  our  more  refined  reason  came  to  scan  them,  how 
light  and  vain  would  they  be  found  !  Our  reasonings  are  usually 
against  the  sovereignty  of  God  :  Rom.  ix.  20,  '  Who  art  thou,  0  man, 
that  repliest  against  God  ?'  We  cannot  see  how  it  is  just  that  by 
one  man's  transgression  all  should  be  made  sinners,  that  God  should 
choose  some  and  endow  them  with  grace,  and  leave  others  in  their 
corruption  ;  how  he  should  have  mercy  on  whom  he  will  have  mercy, 
and  harden  whom  he  will  harden.  Man  would  be  free  from  God,  but 
would  not  have  God  free  ;  and  therefore,  contrary  to  these  reasonings 
and  vain  discourses,  the  scriptures  plead  the  sovereignty  of  God,  Mat. 
xx.  15,  to  show  he  may  do  with  his  own  as  pleaseth  him.  And  as 
against  the  right  and  sovereignty  of  God,  so  there  are  strange  dis 
courses  against  the  providence  of  God,  many  anxious  traverses  and 
debates  in  our  minds  ;  and  therefore  the  scripture  takes  notice  how 
distrust  works  by  our  thoughts  :  Mat.  vi.  25,  '  Take  no  thought  for 
your  life,  what  ye  shall  eat,  or  what  ye  shall  drink,'  &c.  ;  and  ver.  27, 
'  Which  of  you  by  taking  thought  can  add  one  cubit  to  his  stature  ?' 
We  are  tortured  with  many  suspensive  workings  and  discourses  of 
mind  within  ourselves,  whereas  a  little  trust  in  God  would  save  many 
of  these  vain  arguings  :  Prov.  xvi.  3,  '  Commit  thy  works  unto  the 
Lord,  and  thy  thoughts  shall  be  established/  He  showeth  that  want 
of  trust  in  God,  and  his  word  and  providence,  and  committing  all  to 
his  dispose,  is  the  cause  of  a  great  deal  of  confusion  and  darkness  in 
our  thoughts,  and  breedeth  such  perverse  reasonings  against  the 
providence  of  God.  So  against  the  truth  of  the  gospel.  The  law  is 
natural,  and  runneth  in  by  its  own  light,  with  evident  conviction  upon 
the  heart;  but  the  gospel  is  suspected,  looked  upon  with  prejudice, 
received  as  a  golden  dream,  and  as  a  well-devised  fable.  We  have 
reasonings  in  ourselves  against  that  which  is  discovered  concerning 
the  salvation  of  sinners  by  Christ  ;  therefore  the  apostle  saith,  2  Cor. 
x.  5,  '  Bringing  into  captivity  every  thought,'  imaginations,  or  \6jLa-- 
fjioL,  reasonings,  those  thoughts  that  exalt  themselves  against  the 
knowledge  of  God  in  Christ.  Then  disputes  against  Christian  faith, 
the  mysteries  of  the  Trinity,  the  incarnation  of  Christ  ;  we  are  saying, 
as  the  Virgin  Mary  when  the  angel  brought  her  tidings  of  it,  '  How 
can  these  things  be  ?'  So  we  have  perverse  reasonings  against  posi 
tive  institutions  :  2  Kings  v.  12,  '  Are  not  Abana  and  Pharpar  better 
than  all  the  rivers  of  Israel?'  We  are  apt  to  say,  Why  is  this? 
The  means  of  grace  seems  foolish  and  weak  :  1  Cor.  i.  19,  '  It  pleaseth 
God  by  the  foolishness  of  preaching  to  save  them  that  believe/  So 
our  arguings  in  perverting  the  truth  of  the  gospel  and  holy  principles 
of  the  word  to  the  countenance  of  our  lusts,  as  Deut.  xxix.  ]  9  ;  when 
we  reason  thus  within  ourselves  :  '  We  shall  have  peace  though  we  walk 
in  the  imagination  of  our  own  hearts  ;  '  we  need  not  be  so  nice  and 
strict  ;  God  will  be  merciful,  he  will  pardon  all  :  Jude  4,  '  Turning 


158  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEB.  CXXIY. 

the  grace  of  God  into  lasciviousness /  wresting  the  truth  from  its 
purpose  to  countenance  a  laziness.  It  is  good  to  observe  the  different 
arguings  in  scripture  from  the  same  principle.  To  instance  in  this 
principle,  our  time  is  short,  what  doth  a  holy  man  argue  from  it  ?  1 
Cor.  vii.  29,  '  Let  those  that  have  wives  be  as  those  that  have  none, 
those  that  weep  as  though  they  wept  not/  &c.  Therefore  we  should 
be  strict,  temperate,  sober  in  the  use  of  all  these  things.  Now,  let  a 
carnal  wretch  work  upon  this  principle,  and  what  inference  doth  he 
draw  ?  '  Let  us  eat  and  drink,  for  to-morrow  we  shall  die/  1  Cor.  xv. 
32.  See  this  other  principle,  '  The  grace  of  God  brings  salvation  '  to 
poor  sinners,  Titus  ii.  12.  How  doth  a  gracious  heart  work  upon  it  ? 
'  Teaching  us  to  deny  ungodliness  and  worldly  lusts/  &c.  Oh  !  what 
shall  be  done  for  this  God,  the  grace  that  offers  such  salvation  by 
Christ  ?  Let  a  carnal  wretch  work  upon  this  principle,  and  he  will 
take  liberty  to  sin  that  grace  may  abound  :  Rom.  vi.  1,  '  Shall  we 
continue  in  sin  that  grace  may  abound  ?  God  forbid.'  Such  kind  of 
reasonings  there  are  in  the  hearts  of  the  godly  :  2  Sam.  vii.  2,  saith 
David,  '  I  dwell  in  an  house  of  cedar,  but  the  ark  of  God  dwelleth 
within  curtains.'  God  hath  fenced  me  with  his  providence,  what 
then  ?  Here  I  may  sit  down  and  rest,  and  take  my  ease  and  pleasure, 
and  gratify  my  sensual  lusts  ?  No  ;  he  doth  not  argue  so,  but  what 
shall  I  do  for  God,  that  hath  done  so  much  for  me  ?  Now  see  those 
ungracious  Jews  after  their  return,  how  they  reason  :  Hag.  i.  2,  '  The 
time  is  not  come,  the  time  that  the  Lord's  house  should  be  built  ;'  no 
matter  for  God's  house.  It  is  the  Lord's  hand,  let  Eli  work  upon 
that:  1  Sam.  iii.  18,  'Let  him  do  what  seemeth  him  good  ;'  he  draws 
from  it  a  submissive  patience.  Oh  !  the  sovereign  God  will  take  his 
own  way,  and  the  creature  must  not  murmur,  repine,  and  set  up  an 
anti-providence  against  him.  But  now  saith  that  carnal  wretch,  2 
Kings  vi.  33,  '  Behold,  this  evil  is  of  the  Lord  ;  what  should  I  wait 
for  the  Lord  any  longer  ? '  He  murmurs,  and  frets,  and  grows  im 
patient.  Solomon  tells  us,  Prov.  xxvi.  9,  '  As  a  thorn  goeth  up  into 
the  hand  of  a  drunkard,  so  is  a  parable  in  the  mouth  of  fools.'  A 
thorn  was  their  instrument  of  sewing  ;  now  when  a  drunkard  should 
manage  his  needle,  he  wounds  and  gores  himself  ;  so  is  a  parable  in  a 
fool's  mouth :  a  carnal  heart  wounds  and  gores  himself  with  the  most 
holy  principle  of  religion. 

2.  The  second  sort  of  vain  thoughts  are  IvOvfitfa-eu:,  musings  ;  and 
here  take  notice  the  vanity  of  our  thoughts  appears — 

[1.]  In  the  slipperiness  and  inconstancy  of  them.  We  run  from 
object  to  object  in  a  moment,  and  our  thoughts  look  like  strangers 
one  upon  another,  wandering  like  those  'vagabond  Jews,'  Acts  xix. 
13  ;  so  they  are  called  because  of  their  uncertain  station  and  frequent 
removes.  Eccles.  vi.  9.  '  Better  is  the  sight  of  the  eyes  than  the  wan 
dering  of  the  desire ;'  in  the  original,  it  is  the  working  out  of  the  soul; 
Usually  we  have  a  straggling  soul,  roving,  wandering  here  and  there, 
and  all  in  an  instant ;  especially  this  roving  madness  may  we  take 
notice  of  when  we  are  employed  in  holy  things,  hearing,  prayer, 
meditation.  It  is  strange  to  see  what  impertinent,  sudden  discursions 
there  are  from  good  to  lawful,  from  lawful  to  sinful,  and  how  far  the 
heart  is  removed  from  God  when  we  are  before  him ;  when  a  man 
hath  brought  his  body  to  God,  his  heart  is  turned  back  again.  These 


VER.  113.]  SEEMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  159 

vain  thoughts  pursue  and  haunt  us  in  duties,  so  that  we  mingle  sul 
phur  with  our  incense  (it  is  Gregory's  comparison),  even  in  our  prayers 
and  holy  addresses  to  God. 

[2.]  The  unprofitableness  and  folly  of  our  musings.  Our  thoughts 
are  set  upon  trifles  and  frivolous  things,  neither  tending  to  our  own 
profit  nor  the  benefit  of  others  :  Prov.  x.  20,  '  The  heart  of  the  wicked 
is  little  worth ; '  all  their  debates,  conceits,  musings  are  of  no  value. 
'The  tongue  of  the  just  is  as  choice  silver;'  but  all  their  thoughts 
are  taken  up  about  childish  vanity  and  foolish  conceits  :  Prov.  xxiv. 
9,  '  The  thought  of  foolishness  is  sin ; '  not  only  the  thought  of  wicked 
ness,  but  foolishness.  Thoughts  are  the  first-born  of  the  soul,  the 
immediate  issues  of  the  mind,  yet  we  lavish  them  away  upon  every 
trifle.  Follow  men  all  the  day  long,  and  take  an  account  of  their 
thoughts.  Oh !  what  madness  and  folly  are  in  all  the  musings  they  are 
conscious  to  !  Ps.  xciv.  11,  '  The  Lord  knoweth  the  thoughts  of  man 
that  they  are  vanity.'  If  we  did  judge  as  God  judges,  all  the  thoughts, 
reasonings,  discourses  of  the  mind,  if  they  were  set  down  in  a  table, 
we  might  write  at  the  bottom,  Here  is  the  sum  and  total  account  of 
all,  nothing  but  vanity. 

[3.]  The  carnality  and  fleshliness- of  our  thoughts:  Phil.  iii.  19, 
'  They  mind  earthly  things.'  How  sweet  is  it  to  us  to  be  thinking  of 
worldly  matters,  how  to  grow  great,  to  advance  ourselves  here  !  This 
carnal  mind  is  very  natural  to  us.  We  are  in  our  element,  and  do 
with  a  great  deal  of  savour  and  sweetness  think  of  these  things  ;  it 
makes  our  heart  merry :  but  when  we  come  to  think  of  that  which  is 
good,  we  are  tired  presently,  and  it  is  very  tedious  to  spend  our 
thoughts  upon  them.  Good  things  come  upon  us  like  a  flash  of 
lightning,  soon  gone,  but  on  carnal  things  we  can  spend  our  thoughts 
freely.  These  carnal  musings  are  stirred  up  by  carnal  desire  or  carnal 
delight ;  sometimes  by  a  desire  of  worldly  things,  so  they  are  forming 
images  and  suppositions  of  those  things  they  hope  for  ;  as  faith  works 
in  a  godly  man,  forming  images  and  suppositions  of  that  happy  time 
when  they  shall  be  gathered  to  God,  and  all  holy  ones,  and  rejoice  in 
his  presence.  He  hath  a  faith,  '  the  substance  of  things  hoped  for, 
the  evidence  of  things  not  seen,'  Heb.  xi.  1,  which  represents  his  hopes 
to  him.  So  carnal  men  dream  of  preferment,  riches,  honours,  vain 
glorious  applause ;  they  are  looking  out  after  their  hopes,  they  send 
their  thoughts  as  messengers  of  the  soul  to  forestall  the  contentment 
of  those  carnal  things  which  they  do  expect.  Sometimes  they  are 
employed  by  carnal  delight,  when  the  thing  we  muse  upon' is  enjoyed. 
The  complacency  men  take  in  any  carnal  enjoyment,  it  is  part  of  this 
vanity  when  we  go  musing  upon  our  own  worth  and  our  own  excel 
lency  ;  as  that  king,  Dan.  iv.  30,  '  Is  not  this  great  Babel  that  I  have 
built  for  the  honour  of  my  majesty  ?'  Men  take  some  time  every  day 
to  worship  the  idol  of  self,  and  dote  and  gaze  upon  their  own  excel 
lencies  and  achievements,  their  wisdom  arid  wit :  Hab.  i.  15,  '  They 
gather  them  in  their  drag,  therefore  they  rejoice  and  are  glad.'  Or 
else  pleasing  themselves  in  their  estates,  dialogising  within  themselves, 
as  the  word  is,  Luke  xii.  13,  '  Soul,  take  thine  ease ;  thou  hast  goods 
laid  up  for  many  years,'  &c. 

[4.]  By  the  impiety  and  apparent  filthiness  of  them.     When  men 


160  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiR.  CXXIV. 

are  taken  up  with  sin  so  as  to  act  it  over  in  their  own  minds,  de 
lighting  themselves  in  fancying  of  sin,  either  by  way  of  revenge  or 
lust,  or  any  other  such  thing,  as  an  unclean  person  sets  up  a  stage  in 
his  own  heart :  2  Peter  ii.  14,  'Eyes  full  of  adultery/ or  the  adulteress; 
their  fancy  is  upon  the  beauty  of  women,  their  soul  is  set  upon  it. 

3.  The  third  tiling  is  po^/uara,  devices.  There  are  many  de 
vices  and  carnal  inventions  in  the  hearts  of  men  which  the  scripture 
takes  notice  of ;  as — 

[1.]  When  men  devise,  debate  in  their  judgments  by  carnal  means, 
without  complying  with  God :  James  iv.  8,  '  Cleanse  your  hands,  ye 
sinners,  and  purify  your  hearts,  ye  double-minded.'  By  vain  thoughts 
they  mind  carnal  projects,  how  to  get  from  under  the  judgment 
without  reformation,  humiliation,  and  complying  with  God,  by 
human  means  or  sinful  shifts,  without  God's  warrant  and  allowance : 
Isa.  ix.  10,  when  it  was  ill  with  them  they  hope  to  mend  it :  '  The 
bricks  are  fallen  down,  but  we  will  build  with  hewn  stones ;  the 
sycamores  are  cut  down,  but  we  will  change  them  into  cedars.'  The 
state  of  our  affairs  is  bad,  but  we  can  work  it  into  better. 

[2.]  When  men  spend  their  time  wholly  to  compass  their  carnal 
end ;  as  he,  Luke  xii.  18,  '  I  will  pull  down  my  barns,  and  build 
greater,'  &c.  When  they  sacrifice  their  precious  thoughts  to  their 
interest  and  lusts,  and  catering  and  progging  how  to  satisfy  carnal 
nature,  making  provision  for  the  flesh  to  fulfil  it  in  the  lusts  thereof. 
Or— 

[3.]  When  men's  designs  are  plainly  wicked,  and  tend  to  the 
mischief  of  others :  Prov.  xvi.  30,  '  He  shutteth  his  eyes  to  devise 
fro  ward  things  ;  moving  hislips,  he  bringeth  evil  to  pass.'  Moving  the 
lips  and  shutting  the  eyes  are  gestures  and  postures  of  men  that  are 
pensive  and  musing  :  Micah  ii.  1,  *  Woe  unto  them  that  devise  evil 
upon  their  beds;'  when  men  seek  to  spin  and  weave  out  a  web  of 
wickedness,  and  carry  on  their  sins  with  the  greatest  secrecy.  This, 
in  short,  is  some  taste  of  the  vanity  of  our  thoughts. 

Secondly,  What  are  the  sins  that  do  most  usually  engross  and  take 
up  our  thoughts  ?  I  answer — 

1.  Uncleanness.    Speculative  wickedness  makes  way  for  active  :  'He 
hath  committed  adultery  in  his  heart,'  Mat.  v.  28.     There  is  polluting 
ourselves  by  our  thoughts,  and  this  is  a  sin  usually  works  that  way. 

2.  Revenge.      Liquors  are  soured  when  long  kept ;    so  when  we 
dwell  upon  discontents  they  turn  to  revenge  :  Prov.  xiv.  17,  '  He  that 
is  soon  angry  dealeth  foolishly,  and  a  man  of  wicked  devices  is  hated.' 
He  that  is  passionate  and  soon  angry  is  a  fool ;  but  when  a  man  is 
not  only  angry  but  malicious,  that  puts  him  upon  wicked  devices  ; 
when  he  doth  concoct  his  anger,  he  is  a  fool  to  purpose.     Purposes  of 
revenge  are  most  sweet  and  pleasant  to  carnal  nature  :  Prov.  xvi.  14, 
'  Frowardness   is  in  his   heart ;    he   deviseth   mischief  continually.' 
When  men  are  full  of  revengeful  and  spiteful  thoughts. 

3.  Envy.     It  is  a  sin  that  feeds  upon  the  mind,  1  Sam.  xviii.  9. 
Those  songs  of  the  women  that  Saul  had  slain  his  thousands,  but 
David  his  ten  thousands,  they  ran  in  Saul's  mind,  therefore  he  hated 
David.     Envy  is  an  evil  disease,  that  dwelleth  in  the  heart,  and  be 
wrays  itself  mostly  in  thoughts. 


VER.  113.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  161 

4.  Pride.     Either  pride  in  the  desires  or  pride  in  the  mind,  either 
vainglory  or  self-conceit ;  this  is  entertaining  our  hearts  with  whispers 
of  vanity  :  therefore  it  is  said,  Luke  i.  51.  'He  hath  scattered  the  proud 
in  the  imagination  of  their  hearts.'     Proud  men  are  full  of  imagina 
tions. 

5.  Covetousness,  which  is  nothing  but  vain  musings  and  exercises 
of  their  heart :  2  Peter  ii.  14,  '  A  heart  they   have,  exercised  with 
covetous  practices.'     And  it  withdraws  the  heart  in  the  very  time  of 
God's  worship  :  Ezek.  xxxiii.  31, '  Their  heart  goeth  after  their  covet- 
ousness.' 

6.  Distrust  is  another  thing  which  usually  takes  up  our  thoughts, 
distracting  motions  against  God's  providence. 

Thirdly,  Upon  what  grounds  we  are  to  make  conscience  of  our 
thoughts  ? 

1.  Because  they  are  irregularities  contrary  to  the  law  of  God.     It 
is  said,  Ps.  xix.  7,  '  The  law  of  God  is  pure,  converting  the  soul/    The 
law  of  God  differs  herein  from  the  laws  of  men.    The  commands  of  the 
greatest  and  most  mighty  potentates  upon  earth  can  go  no  further 
than  the  regulating  of  the  conversation,  for  that  is  all  they  can  take 
account  of  ;  but  the  law  of  God  reacheth  to  the  motions  of  the  inward 
man,  and  to  the  reducing  of  our  thoughts  to  the  obedience  of  God  ;•  for 
God  hath  a  tribunal  in  the  heart  and  conscience,  he  searcheth  and 
trieth  the  reins,  knows  all  our  thoughts  afar  off,  and  therefore  it  is 
proper  to  him  to  give  laws  to  our  thoughts. 

2.  God  hath  declared  much  of  his  displeasure  against  them.     The 
devil's  sin,  for  which  he  was  cast  out  of  heaven,  was  a  sin  of  thought, 
an.  aspiring  thought,  possibly  against  the  imperial  dignity  of  God. 
And  so  great  were  his  judgments  upon  men,  that  he  doth  not  so  much 
take  notice  of  outward  acts  as  of  inward  thoughts  ;  therefore,  Gen.  vi. 
5,  he  threatened  the  old  world  for  the  imagination  of  the  thoughts  of 
their  hearts.     We  look  to  the  stream,  but  God  looks  to  the  fountain. 
Acts  are  hateful  to  men,  because  liable  to  their  cognisance ;  so  Jer. 
vi.  19,  '  I  will  bring  evil  upon  this  people,  even  the  fruit  of  their 
thoughts,  because  they  have  not  hearkened  to  my  words,  nor  to  my 
law,  but  rejected  it.'     Nay,  in  God's  process  at  the  last  day,  when 
God  comes  to  judge  the  world,  it  is  said,  '  The  secrets  of  their  hearts 
shall  be  made  manifest/  1  Cor.  iv.  5.    Men's  inward  debates,  counsels, 
reasonings,  and  thoughts,  they  shall  be  brought  into  the  judgment. 

3.  Make  conscience  of  thoughts,  because  among  all  sins  thoughts 
are  most  considerable,  and  that  in  these  respects  : — 

[1.]  In  respect  of  the  subject.  They  are  the  sins  of  the  highest 
part  of  man,  the  mind,  which  is  the  leading  .part  of  the  soul.  The 
errors  and  irregularities  of  the  lower  part  of  the  soul  are  not  so  con 
siderable  as  the  counsels,  debates,  reasonings,  principles  that  we  are 
seasoned  and  guided  by:  Eom.  viii.  7,  '  The  wisdom  of  the  flesh  is 
enmity  against  God/  That  which  should  be  the  guide  to  man,  his 
wisdom,  puts  him  upon  opposition.  If  sensual  appetite  were  only  in 
the  fault,  it  were  not  so  much. 

[2.]  From  their  nature.  They  are  the  immediate  issues  of  the 
soul,  the  first-born  of  original  corruption.  The  free  acts  of  the  heart 
do  discover  more  of  the  temper  of  it  than  words  and  actions  that  are 

VOL.  VIII.  L 


162  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiR.  CXXIY. 

more  remote.  A  man  may  be  known  by  his  thoughts,  but  not  so 
much  known  by  his  \v.ords  and  actions,  for  words  and  actions  may  be 
overruled  by  by-ends  and  restraints  of  fear  and  shame.  Men  may 
speak  not  as  they  would,  do  not  as  they  would,  but  think  as  they 
would.  To  curry  favour  with  others,  a  man  may  refrain  his  tongue, 
and  do  some  unpleasing  actions,  or  may  profess  opinions  contrary  to 
his  own  mind  ;  but  inward  thoughts,  being  the  immediate  births  of 
the  soul,  very  much  discover  the  temper  of  the  man.  Hereby  you 
may  take  the  best  measure  of  your  spirits.  A  gracious  man  is  full  of 
gracious  thoughts,  and  a  wicked  man  full  of  wicked  thoughts  :  Prov. 
xii.  5,  '  The  thoughts  of  the  righteous  are  right,  but  the  counsels  of 
the  wicked  are  deceit/  Our  thoughts  we  can  best  judge  by,  being 
the  purest  offspring  of  the  mind,  and  the  freest  from  restraint :  Isa. 
xxxii.  8,  '  The  liberal  man  deviseth  liberal  things.'  The  unclean  man 
is  devising  unclean  things,  the  earthly  man  is  always  talking  with 
himself  about  building,  planting,  trading ;  these  things  take  up  his 
mind.  You  cannot  judge  of  a  fountain  by  the  current  of  water  at  a 
distance,  six  or  seven  miles  off ;  it  may  receive  a  tincture  from  the 
channel  through  which  it  passeth  ;  but  just  at  the  fountain  where  it 
bubbles  up,  there  you  can  judge  of  the  quality,  whether  sweet  or 
bitter  water  :  so  you  cannot  judge  of  the  soul  by  things  that  are  more 
remote,  and  where  by-ends  may  interpose:  Mat.  xv.  19,  '  Out  of  the 
heart  proceed  evil  thoughts,  murders,  adulteries,  fornications,'  &c. 
Evil  thoughts  come  first ;  other  things  come  from  the  heart,  but  not 
so  immediately  ;  therefore,  thoughts  being  so  considerable,  we  should 
make  conscience  of  them. 

[3.]  They  are  considerable  from  their  kind,  here  are  the  roots  of  all 
evils.  Everything  that  we  do,  every  deliberate  act  that  is  done  by  a 
reasonable  creature  argueth  some  foregoing  thought,  every  temptation 
is  fastened  upon  the  heart  by  some  intervening  thought.  Before  sin 
be  formed,  brought  forth,  and  becomes  a  complete  sin,  there  are 
musings,  which  are,  as  it  were,  the  incubations  of  the  soul,  or  sitting 
a-brood  upon  the  temptation :  Isa.  lix.  4,  '  They  conceive  mischief, 
and  bring  forth  iniquity/  The  mind  sits  a-brood  upon  sin.  It  is 
thoughts  that  bring  the  heart  and  object  together.  First  men  think, 
then  they  love,  then  they  practise.  Beating  the  steel  upon  the  flint 
makes  the  sparks  fly  out ;  so  when  the  understanding  beats  and 
knocks  upon  the  will  by  pregnant  thoughts,  by  inculcation,  that  stirs 
up  the  affections.  These  are  the  bellows  which  blow  up  those  latent 
sparks  of  sin  that  are  in  our  souls  ;  therefore,  if  you  would  make  con 
science  of  acts,  you  should  make  conscience  of  thoughts.  It  is  the 
greatest  imprudence  that  can  be  to  think  to  do  anything  in  reforma 
tion  when  we  do  not  take  care  of  our  thoughts.  See,  when  God  ad- 
viseth  us  to  return  to  him,  Isa.  Iv.  7,  he  saith,  '  Let  the  wicked  forsake 
his  way,  and  the  unrighteous  man  his  thoughts/  In  vain  do  we  lop 
off  the  branches  and  let  the  root  live.  If  we  would  forsake  our  way, 
we  must  first  forsake  our  thoughts.  When  certain  fowl  pestered  a 
man,  he  asked  how  he  should  be  rid  of  them  ?  The  answer  was,  The 
nest  must  be  destroyed,  and  they  must  be  crushed  in  the  egg.  So 
here  is  the  best  way  of  crushing  the  egg,  by  dashing  Babylon's  brats 
against  the  wall.  So  much  is  implied  in  that  place,  Jer.  iv.  14, 


VER.  113.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  163 

'  Wash  thine  heart  from. wickedness,  that  thou  mayest  be  saved  :  how 
long  shall  vain  thoughts  lodge  within  thee  ? '  Wash  thy  heart,  begin 
there.  Medicines  applied  to  the  outward  parts  will  do  no  good,  unless 
the  inwards  be  cleansed  and  purged  ;  so  until  the  soul  be  cleansed 
and  purged  from  these  evil  thoughts,  outward  reformation  will  be  to 
no  purpose. 

[4.]  They  are  considerable  in  regard  of  their  number,  they  are  most 
numberless  acts  of  the  soul,  Isa.  Ivii.  20.  The  sea  is.  always  working, 
so  the  heart  of  man  is  always  casting  forth  mire  and  dirt :  Gen.  vi.  5, 
'  Every  imagination  of  the  thoughts  of  man's  heart  is  only  evil  contin 
ually/  There  is  a  mint  in  us  that  is  always  working  towards  that 
which  is  evil.  This  is  a  means  to  humble  us.  The  Lord  knows  the 
best  of  our  thoughts  are  but  vain ;  this  is  that  which  raiseth  the  account 
in  God's  book  of  remembrance,  which  makes  us  more  admire  the  riches 
of  his  grace  even  to  the  very  last.  '  Let  him  forsake  his  thoughts/ 
Isa.  Iv.  7.  What  then?  'I  will  multiply  to  pardon/  Certainly,  if 
thoughts  be  sins,  God  must  not  only  pardon,  but  multiply  to  pardon. 

Use  1.  To  humble  us  all,  the  best  of  us,  from  first  to  last.  Vanity 
of  heart  sticks  to  us.  Oh,  how  many  carnal  thoughts  haunt  us  wher 
ever  we  go  !  As  thou  walkest  in  the  streets  up  and  down,  whereupon 
do  thy  thoughts  run  ?  The  common  vain  thoughts  should  be  laid  to 
heart.  Have  we  not  a  God,  a  Christ  to  think  of,  sweet  and  precious 
promises,  heaven  and  glory,  and  the  great  concernments  of  our  souls  ? 
and  yet  with  what  chaff  do  we  fill  our  minds !  We  go  thinking  of 
every  toy  and  trifle,  grinding  chaff  instead  of  corn  every  day.  Oh !  how 
do  we  throw  away  our  thoughts,  rather  than  God  should  have  them, 
upon  every  vain  thing  !  It  is  very  irksome  a  little  to  retire  and  re 
collect  ourselves,  and  think  of  God,  Christ,  and  heaven ;  but  what  a 
deal  of  vanity  do  we  take  into  our  minds  !  If  our  hearts  were  turned 
inside  outward,  and  all  our  thoughts  liable  to  the  notice  of  men,  as  they 
are  to  the  notice  of  God,  what  odious  creatures  should  we  be  !  and  have 
we  no  reverence  of  the  great  God  ?  The  Lord  knows  our  hearts  ;  he 
knows  we  have  thoughts  enough  and  to  spare,  more  than  we  know 
what  to  do  withal,  and  he  knows  we  are  backward  to  exercise  them 
upon  him,  and  things  that  lead  to  communion  with  him.  These 
thoughts  are  aggravated  from  the  time,  as  upon  God's  day,  for  then 
we  are  not  to  'think  our  own  thoughts/  Isa.  Iviii.  13  ;  a  Christian  is 
then  to  sequester  himself  only  for  God.  Nay,  our  vain  heart  be- 
wrayeth  itself  in  solemn  duties  ;  a  man  cannot  go  to  prayer  but  the 
vanity  of  his  thoughts  will  trouble  him,  and  run  about  him  when  he  is 
hearing  the  word ;  how  do  we  course  up  and  down  like  spaniels  hither 
and  thither  !  Yea,  to  humble  ourselves  because  of  our  wicked  thoughts, 
our  desperate  thoughts  against  the  being  of  God  :  Ps.  xiv.  1,  '  The 
fool  hath  said  in  his  heart  there  is  no  God/  Though  we  cannot  open 
our  eyes  but  the  creature  presently  doth  show  us  something  of  God, 
and  call  upon  us  whether  we  look  upward  or  downward,  yet  how  do 
we  vent  this  thought  ?  If  there  were  no  God,  then  we  could  live  as 
we  list,  without  check  and  restraint.  Thoughts  which  arise  within  us 
against  the  truth  of  the  gospel,  as  if  it  were  but  a  well-devised  fable ; 
thoughts  against  the  purity  of  God's  laws,  that  we  need  not  be  so 
strict,  that  it  is  but  nice  folly,  that  we  shall  do  well  enough  without  re- 


164  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiB.  CXXIV. 

penting,  believing,  minding  the  work  of  our  salvation.  Yea,  we  have 
thoughts  against  the  light  of  nature,  filthy,  unclean  thoughts,  such  as 
defile  and  stain  the  heart.  Of  earthly  thoughts,  how  natural  is  that, 
in  musing  upon  that  esteem,  honour,  greatness  that  we  shall  have  in 
the  world !  How  do  carnal  thoughts  haunt  us,  and  this  not  only  when 
we  are  in  our  natural  condition,  but  even  after  grace  !  And  Christians 
are  mistaken  that  do  not  think  those  thoughts  evil,  though  there  be  no 
consent  of  the  will.  I  confess  there  are  thoughts  cast  into  the  mind 
by  Satan,  but  these  not  resisted,  these  cherished,  fostered,  they  become 
ours ;  though  they  are  children  of  Satan's  getting,  and  may  be  cast 
in,  as  the  tempting  of  Christ  was,  by  injection  of  thought ;  but  then 
we  entertain  these  things  ;  as  weeds  thrown  over  the  wall  are  not  to 
be  charged  upon  the  gardener,  but  the  envious  man  ;  but  if  the  gar 
dener  lets  them  lie  there  and  root  there,  then  it  is  his  fault. 

Use  2.  Do  we  love  the  law  of  God  ?  Do  we  aim  at  a  complete  and 
entire  subjection  to  the  will  of  God?  Do  we  desire  to  serve  him  in 
spirit  ?  Here  is  the  evidence.  Do  we  hate  vain  thoughts  ?  We  can 
not  be  free  from  them,  but  are  they  your  burden  ?  A  child  of  God 
is  pestered  with  them,  though  he  hates  them. 

1.  Do  we  give  them  entertainment  ?  Jer.  iv.  23,  '  How  long  shall 
vain  thoughts  lodge  within  thee  ? '     They  may  rush  into  a  gracious 
heart,   but  they   do   not  rest  there.     Wicked  men  may  have  good 
thoughts,  but  do  not  give  them  entertainment ;  take  a  snatch  and 
away,  but  do  not  make  a  meal  upon  any  spiritual  truth  ;  there  is  an 
occasional  salute  sometimes  in  wicked  men  of  good  things,  but  their 
heart  doth  not  dwell  upon  them. 

2.  Do  you  make  conscience  of  them  ?     Do  they  put  you  upon  re 
morse,  caution,  watchfulness,  frequent  recourse  to  God  for  pardon  and 
grace  ?  Acts  viii.  22,  '  Pray,  if   perhaps  the  thoughts  of  thine  heart 
may  be  forgiven  thee.'     Are  you  humbled  for  them,  as  well  as  for 
other  sins,  because  these  grieve  the  Spirit  of  God,  are  conceived  there 
where  he  hath  his  residence,  chiefly  in  the  heart  ?     Doth  this  trouble 
you,  that  the  Spirit  should  be  grieved  ? 

Use  3.  It  presseth  us  to  take  care  of  our  thoughts.  Thoughts 
fall  under  the  judicature  of  God's  word,  Heb.  iv.  12.  Thoughts  are 
hateful  to  God  :  '  The  thoughts  of  the  wicked  are  an  abomination  to 
the  Lord,'  Prov.  xv.  26.  And  as  they  are  hated  of  him,  so  he  knows 
them  all,  it  is  his  prerogative  to  tell  man  his  thoughts ;  he  under 
stands  our  thoughts  afar  otf,  Ps.  cxxxix.  2.  What  thoughts  we  have 
when  we  are  walking,  praying,  employed  in  our  calling,  what  comes 
in,  what  goes  out ;  there  is  not  a  thought  but  God  regards,  and  God 
will  reckon  with  us  about  our  thoughts. 

1.  Look  more  earnestly  after  a  principle  of  regeneration,  Eom.  viii. 
5.  They  that  are  after  the  flesh,  employ  their  wisdom  about  the 
flesh,  they  are  contriving  for  the  flesh,  savouring  the  things  of  the 
flesh  ;  and  they  that  are  after  the  Spirit  savour  the  things  of  God, 
savour  spiritual  things.  We  must  be  renewed  by  the  Spirit,  The 
ground  brings  forth  weeds,  but  not  flowers  of  itself ;  so  "our  hearts 
naturally  bring  forth  vain  thoughts,  but  they  must  be  cultivated  and 
dressed.  We  must  be  renewed  in  the  spirit  of  our  mind.  There  is 
nothing  discovers  the  necessity  of  regeneration  so  much  as  this,  that 


VER.  113.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  165 

we  must  take  care  of  our  thoughts.  Moral  restraints  may  prevent  the 
excesses  of  life,  or  regulate  the  outward  man.  If  sin  did  lie  only  in 
words  and  deeds,  human  laws  and  edicts  would  be  enough,  and  we 
needed  no  other  discipline  to  bring  us  to  heaven.  There  are  excel 
lent  laws  for  bridling  man's  speech  and  practice,  for  these  things  man 
can  take  notice  of ;  but  he  that  is  only  good  according  to  the  laws  of 
man,  his  goodness  is  too  narrow,  is  not  broad  enough  for  God.  It  is 
the  peculiar  privilege  of  that  judicature  God  hath  set  up  to  bring  the 
thoughts  under.  Look  that  there  may  be  within  you  a  spring  of  holy 
thoughts. 

2.  Get  a  stock  of  sound  knowledge.  The  mind  of  man  is  always  work 
ing,  and  if  it  be  not  fed  and  supplied  with  good  matter,  it  works  upon 
that  which  is  evil  and  vain.     If  there  be  not  a  plenty  of  good  matter 
wherein  to  exercise  yourselves,  the  soul  will  necessarily  spend  itself  in 
vanity   of  thoughts.      Now   abundance   of  knowledge  supplies   and 
yields  matter.     It  is  a  good  thing  when  our  reins  instruct  us  in  the 
night  season,  Ps.  vi.  7,  in  the  darkness  and  silence  of  the  night;  when 
we  are   taken    off  from  all    company,  books,  worldly  employment, 
and  distractions  of  sense,  and  the  soul  is  left  to  itself,  to  its  own  ope 
rations,  then  to  draw  out  knowledge,  and  have  our  reins  instruct  us. 
But  men  are  barren  of  holy  thoughts,  and  so  are  forced  to  give  way  to 
vanity :  Deut.  vi.  6,  7,  '  Bind  them  upon  thy  heart.'     What  then  ? 
*  When  thou  awakest  it  shall  talk  with  thee  ;'  that  is,  as  soon  as  you 
awake,  before  you  have  received  images  from  abroad,  a  man  is  to 
parley  with  his  soul  about  the  course  of  his  service  that  day.     Words 
and  thoughts  are  both  fed  by  abundance  in  the  heart.      Thoughts  are 
but  verla  mentis,  words  of  the  mind,  and  words  are  but  thoughts  ex 
pressed  and  languaged.    Now  if  a  man  would  have  these  things  pre 
sent  when  he  is  lying  down  and  sitting  up,  then  these  words  must  be 
in  his  heart.     A  man  must  have  a  good  treasure  within,  that  he  may 
bring  forth  out  of  his  treasure  things  both  new  and  old,  Mat.  xiii.  52. 
When  the  mind  is  the  storehouse  of  truth,  he  will  ever  be  drawing 
forth  upon  all  occasions.     He  that  hath  more  silver  and  gold  in  his 
pocket  than  brass  farthings,  brings  forth  gold  and  silver  oftener  than 
brass  ;  so  he  that  is  stored  with  divine  truths,  and  full  of  the  knowledge 
of  the  Lord,  his  mind  will  more  run  upon  these  things,  and  will  often 
out  of  the  treasure  of  his  heart  bring  forth  things  that  are  good. 

3.  Inure  yourselves  more  to  holy  meditation.     There  must  be  some 
time  to  wind  up  the  plummets,  and  lift  up  our  hearts   to  God,  Ps. 
xxv.  1.     For  want  of  this,  no  wonder  if  men's  thoughts  are  loose  and 
scattered,  when  they  are  left  at  random,  when  they  are  never  solemnly 
exercised  in  consideration  of  divine  truth  ;  ver.  99  of  this  psalm. 

4.  Begin  with  God  :  Ps.  cxxxix.  8, '  When  I  awake,'  saith  David,  '  I 
am  still  with  thee.'     As  soon  as  we  awake,  our  hearts  should  be  in 
heaven  ;  we  should  leave  our  hearts  with  God  over-night,  that  we 
might  find  them  with  God  in  the  morning.    We  owe  God  the  first- 
fruits  of  our  reason  before  we  think  of  other  things,  for  every  day  is 
but  the  lesser  circle  of  our  lives.     We  should  begin  with  God  before 
earthly  things  encroach  upon  us.    Season  your  hearts  with  the  thoughts 
of  his  holy  presence  ;  that  is  the  means  to  make  the  fear  of  God  abide 
upon  us  all  the  day  after  ;  and  it  is  some  recompense  for  those  hours 


166  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXXV. 

spent  in  sleep,  wherein  we  showed  not  the  least  act  of  thankfulness  to 
God,  to  exercise  our  reason  again ;  and  when  we  are  awake  we  should 
be  thinking  of  God. 


SERMON  CXXV. 

Tliou  art  my  hiding-place  and  my  shield :  I  hope  in  thy 
word. — VER.  114. 

IN  these  words  you  have — (1.)  A  privilege  which  believers  enjoy  in 
God,  and  that  is  protection  in  time  of  danger.  (2.)  David's  right  to 
that  privilege,  '  I  hope  in  thy  word.'  From  both  the  note  will  be 
this : — 

Doct.  They  that  hope  in  God's  word  for  the  protection  which  he 
hath  promised,  will  find  God  to  be  a  shield  and  a  hiding-place  to 
them. 

1.  I  shall  speak  of  the  nature  of  divine  protection,  as  it  is  here  set 
forth  under  the  notions  of  a  shield  and  hiding-place. 

2.  Of  the  respect  which  the  word  hath  to  these  benefits. 

3.  Of  the  necessity  and  use  of  faith  and  hope  in  the  word. 

First,  For  the  nature  of  this  protection  ;  it  is  set  forth  in  two  notions, 
a  hiding-place  and  a  shield.  Upon  which  I  observe  :— 

1.  David  was  a  military  man,  and  therefore  often  makes  use  of 
metaphors  proper  to  his  function ;  when  he  wandered  in  the  wilder 
ness  and  the  forest  of  Ziph,  and  they  yielded  to  him  many  a  lurking- 
hole,  and  so  he  knew  the  benefit  of  a  hiding-place  ;  and  being  a  man 
of  war,  he  was  more  acquainted  with  the  use  of  a  shield  in  battle. 
That  which  I  observe  is  this,  that  it  is  good  to  spiritualise  the  things 
that  we  often  converse   with,  and  from   earthly  occasions   to   raise 
heavenly  thoughts.      You  will  ever  find  our  Lord  Jesus  so  doing. 
When  he  sat  at  meat  in  the  Pharisee's  house,  he  discourseth  of  eating 
bread  in  his  Father's  kingdom,  Luke  xvi.  14.     When  he  was  at  the 
well  of  Samaria,  he  falls  a  discoursing  of  the  well  of  life,  of  the  water 
that  springeth  up  to  eternal  life,  John  iv.     Again,  when  he  was  at  the 
feast  of  tabernacles,  you  will  find  there  it  was  the  fashion  of  the  people 
at  that  feast  to  fetch  water  from  the  pool  of  Siloam,  and  to  pour  it  out 
until  it  ran  in  a  great  stream ;  and  then  at  the  feast  of  tabernacles 
Christ  cried  out,  '  He  that  cometh  to  me,  out  of  his  belly  shall  flow 
rivers  of  living  water,'  John  vii.     He  spiritualiseth  that   occasion. 
Thus  should  we  learn  to  turn  brass  into  gold,  and  by  a  holy  chemistry 
to  extract  useful  thoughts  from  these  ordinary  objects  that  we  are  cast 
upon.     Thus  doth  David ;  he  had  been  acquainted  with  the  use  of  a 
hiding-place  and  with  a  shield,  and  accordingly  expresseth  his  confi 
dence  by  these  notions.    The  Septuagint  renders  it  simply  and  without 
the  metaphor,  My  help  and  my  undertaker  ;  but  we,  from  the  Hebrew, 
My  hiding-place,  my  shield. 

2.  Observe,  again,  both  the  notions  imply  defence  and  protection. 
A  shield  is  not  a  weapon  offensive  but  defensive.     Indeed  elsewhere, 


VER.  114.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  167 

Deut.  xxxiii.  29,  God  said  to  Israel,  '  I  am  the  shield  of  thy  strength, 
and  sword  of  thy  excellency.'  God  is  a  sword  as  well  as  a  shield,  a 
weapon  offensive  as  well  as  defensive,  in  behalf  of  his  people.  But 
here  both  metaphors  imply  only  defence  and  protection.  It  is  not  here 
a  hiding-place  and  a  sword,  but  a  hiding-place  and  a  shield.  Why  ? 
The  godly  are  subject  to  many  dangers  and  perils,  from  adverse 
powers,  spiritual  and  bodily,  and  therefore  need  much  preservation  and 
defence. 

[1.]  The  soul  is  in  danger  of  Satan  and  his  temptations.  There  are 
spiritual  enemies,  that  will  put  us  upon  the  need  of  a  shield  and  a 
hiding-place :  Eph.  vi.  12,  '  We  wrestle  not  against  flesh  and  blood,' 
<fec.  ;  that  is,  not  principally.  We  do  not  wrestle  against  bodily  or 
human  powers ;  outward  agents  are  not  principals  but  instruments. 
Our  chief  war  is  with  devils  and  evil  spirits,  who  have  a  mighty 
power  over  a  great  part  of  the  world ;  they  are  the  rulers  of  the  dark 
ness  of  this  world,  the  ignorant  and  carnal  part  of  the  world ;  and 
they  assault  us  with  much  cunning  and  strength ;  and  invisible 
enemies  are  the  worst,  none  like  to  them  for  craft,  for  strength,  for 
malice,  for  number.  They  easily  get  the  advantage  over  us  by  their 
crafty  insinuations,  and  applying  themselves  to  our  humours,  and  feed 
ing  every  distemper  with  a  bait  suitable ;  and  they  are  always  about 
us,  unseen  and  unperceived  ;  they  lie  in  ambush  for  our  souls,  and 
assault  us  in  company  and  alone,  in  business  and  in  recreations,  in 
the  duties  of  religion,  and  in  our  ordinary  affairs ;  they  follow  us  in 
our  retirements,  and  pursue  us  with  unwearied  diligence.  No  such 
enemies  as  these  for  craft  and  subtlety  of  address.  And  then  for  their 
power  and  strength,  they  have  their  fiery  darts  to  throw  upon  us,  ver. 
16.  They  inject  and  cast  in  blasphemous  thoughts,  and  enkindle 
and  awaken  in  us  burning  lusts,  or  fire  us  with  rage  and  despair ; 
their  power  is  exceeding  great,  because  they  have  the  management  of 
fiery  darts.  And  their  malice  is  great ;  it  is  not  to  hurt  our  bodies 
chiefly,  that  is  but  the  shell  of  the  man,  but  the  chief est  part,  our 
immortal  soul ;  and  therefore  we  need  a  hiding-place  and  a  shield 
when  we  have  to  do  with  spiritual  wickednesses,  that  are  always 
assaulting  us  in  this  manner  upon  all  occasions.  And  for  their  num 
ber,  there  are  many  of  them,  and  all  engaged  in  this  spiritual  warfare 
against  the  saints :  we  cannot  dream  of  ease  if  we  would  be  Christ's 
soldiers.  In  the  Gospel  we  find  one  man  possessed  with  a  whole  legion 
of  them  :  Mark  v.  9,  '  My  name  is  legion,  for  we  are  many.'  They 
cease  not  in  this  manner  thus  continually  to  assault  and  vex  us,  and 
therefore  we  need  a  hiding-place  and  shield. 

[2.]  The  bodies  of  God's  people  and  their  temporal  lives  are  exposed 
to  a  great  deal  of  hazard  and  danger  from  evil  men,  who  are  ready  to 
molest  and  trouble  us,  sometimes  upon  one  pretence,  and  sometimes 
upon  another.  They  that  indeed  would  go  to  heaven,  and  have  a 
serious  sense  of  the  world  to  come  upon  their  hearts,  they  are  a  differ 
ent  party  from  the  world,  and  therefore  the  world  hates  them,  John 
xvii.  14  ;  and  Eom.  xii.  2,  '  Be  not  conformed  to  this  world.'  It  was 
never  yet  so  well  with  the  world  but  they  were  forced  to  stand  upon 
their  defence ;  and  usually,  as  to  any  visible  interest,  they  are  the 
weakest  when  their  enemies  are  mighty  and  strong ;  and  therefore 


168  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEE.  CXXV. 

they  had  need  of  a  hiding-place  to  run  to,  and  a  shield  to  defend  them, 
to  run  to  the  covert  and  defence  of  God's  providence. 

3.  Observe  the  difference  between  these  two  notions,  hiding-place 
and  shield.     Sometimes  God  is  said  to  be  our  strength  and  our  shield, 
Ps.  xxviii.  7.     He  furnisheth  us  within  and  without ;  he  strengthens 
and  fortifies  the  heart,  then  shields  us  and  keeps  off  dangers.     And 
sometimes  again  he  is  said  to  be  a  sun  and  a  shield,  Ps.   Ixxxiv.  11. 
We  have  positive  and  privative  blessings,  or  a  sun  to  give  us  light, 
and  a  shield  to  give  us  strength.     He  prorniseth  to  be  both ;  but 
usually  he  so  attempereth  his  providence,  that  where  he  is  more  a  sun 
there  he  is  less  a  shield  ;  that  is  to  say,  the  more  sparingly  he  vouch- 
safeth  the  knowledge  of  heavenly  comforts,  the  more  powerfully  doth 
he  assist  his  people  in  their  weakness  by  his  providence.     As  the  Jews 
that  were  conversant  about  the  shadows  of  the  law,  and  lived  under 
the  darkness  of  that  pedagogy,  God  was  less  a  sun  to  them  than  he  is 
to  us  ;  but  yet  they  knew  more  of  his  powerful  providence,  of  his  tem 
poral  protection.     Now  here  it  is  a  hiding-place  and  a  shield  ;  what  is 
the  difference  between  these  ?     God  is  a  hiding-place  to  keep  us  out 
of  danger,  and  a  shield  to  keep  us  in  danger.     Either  we  shall  be  kept 
from  trouble,  that  dangers  shall  not  overtake  us  ;  or,  if  they  do  over 
take  us,  they  shall  riot  hurt  us ;  they  shall  only  serve  for  this  use,  to 
make  us  sensible  of  God's  defence,  and  to  increase  our  thanksgiving 
for  our  protection :  for  God  hides  us,  and  as  a  shield  interposeth  him 
self  between  us  and  the  strokes  of  our  adversaries,  those  fiery  darts 
which  are  flung  at  us.     Well,  then,  they  imply,  either  God  will  keep 
us  from  seeing  the  evil,  or  fortify  us  that  the  evil  shall  not  hurt  us. 
One  of  these  notions  was  not  enough  to  express  the  fulness  of  God's 
protection  :  a  hiding-place,  that  is  a  fixed  thing ;  but  a  shield  and 
buckler,  we  may  constantly  carry  it  about  with  us  wherever  we  go, 
and  make  use  of  God's  power  and  love  against  all  conflicts  whenever 
we  are  assaulted.     Again,  on  the  other  side,  a  shield  were  not  enough 
to  express  it,  for  that  only  respects  actual  assaults  ;  but  God  saves  us 
from  many  dangers  which  we  are  not  aware  of,  prevents  troubles  which 
we  never  thought  of,  Ps.  xxi.  3. 

4.  Let  us  view  these  notions  apart,  and  see  what  they  contain  for  our 
comfort. 

First,  Let  us  look  upon  God  as  a  hiding-place.  Men  in  great 
straits,  when  they  are  not  able  to  make  defence  against  pursuing 
enemies,  they  run  to  their  hiding-place,  as  we  shall  see  the  Israelites 
did  from  the  Philistines  :  1  Sam.  xiii.  6,  '  When  the  men  of  Israel  saw 
that  they  were  distressed,  they  hid  themselves  in  caves,  in  thickets,  in 
rocks,  in  high  places,  and  in  pits ; '  and  so  God's  children,  when  they 
are  too  weak  for  their  enemies,  seek  a  safe  and  sure  hiding-place: 
Prov.  xxii.  3,  'A  wise  man  foreseeth  the  evil,  and  hideth  himself.' 
Certainly  there  is  a  hiding-place  for  the  saints,  if  we  had  but  skill  to 
find  it  out ;  and  where  is  it  but  in  God  ?  Ps.  xxxii.  7,  '  Lord,  thou  art 
my  hiding-place,  thou  slialt  preserve  me  from  trouble.'  I  do  not 
delight  to  squeeze  a  metaphor,  and  to  make  it  yield  what  it  intends 
not ;  yet  these  four  things  are  offered  plainly  in  this  notion  of  a  hiding- 
place — there  is  secrecy,  and  capacity  to  receive,  and  safety,  and  comfort. 

1.  Secrecy.     It  is  not  a  fortress  wherein  a  man  does  profess  himself 


VER.  114.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  169 

to  be,  and  to  stand  out  assaults,  but  it  is  a  hiding-place  :  Ps.  xxvii.  5, 
*  In  the  time  of  trouble  he  shall  hide  me  in  his  pavilion  :  in  the  secret 
of  his  tabernacle  shall  he  hide  me ;  he  shall  set  me  upon  a  rock.' 
God's  protection  of  his  people  is  a  secret  hidden  mystery,  as  every 
thing  is  to  a  carnal  man.  The  person  hidden  is  seen  abroad  every 
day  following  his  business,  serving  his  generation,  doing  that  work 
which  God  hath  given  him  to  do  ;  yet  he  is  hidden  while  he  is  seen, 
by  the  secret  power  and  love  of  God  dispensing  of  all  things  for  his 
comfort  and  protection  ;  the  man  is  kept  safe  by  ways  which  the  world 
knows  not  of.  So  Ps.  xxxi.  20,  '  Thou  shalt  hide  him  in  the  secret  of 
thy  presence  from  the  pride  of  man.'  There  is  a  secret  power  of  God 
by  which  they  are  upheld  and  maintained  by  one  means  or  other, 
which  they  see  not  and  cannot  find  out. 

2.  The  next  thing  considerable  in  a  hiding-place  is  capacity  to 
receive  us  ;  and  so  there  is  in  God  ;  we  may  trust  him  with  our  souls, 
with  our  bodies,  with  our  peace,  with  our  goods,  with  our  good  name,- 
with  our  all.     Our  souls,  all  that  concerns  us  between  this  and  the  day 
of  judgment,  as  St  Paul  did,  2  Tim.  i.  12,  '  I  know  whom  I  have  be 
lieved  ;  and  I  am  persuaded  that  he  is  able  to  keep  that  which  I  have 
committed  unto  him  against  that  day/     He  calls  his  soul  and  all  the 
concernments  of  it  a  thing  that  was  left,  and  that  he  durst  trust,  in  the 
hands  of  God.     Our  soul  is  much  sought  after.      Satan,  that  hath 
lost  the  favour  of  God  himself,  envies  that  others  would  enjoy  it, 
therefore   maligns  the  saints,  pursues   them  with  great  malice  and 
power  ;  but  put  it  into  the  hands  of  God,  he  is  able  to  keep  it.     And 
so  for  outward  things,  this  hiding-place  is  wide  enough  for  all  that  we 
have,  for  goods,  body,  and  good  name  :  Ps.  xxxi.  20,  '  Thou  shalt  keep 
them  secretly  as  in  a  pavilion  from  the  strife  of  tongues/     As  the 
hearts  of  men  are  in  the  hands  of  God,  so  are  their  tongues.     There 
is  the  same  reason  why  we  should  trust  in  God  for  all  things,  when 
we  trust  in  him  for  one  thing.     And  indeed,  did  we  truly  and  upon 
scripture  grounds  trust  him  for  one  thing,  we  would  trust  him  for  all 
things.     If  we  did  trust  him  with  our  souls,  we  would  without  anxious 
care  trust  him  with  our  bodies  and  secular  interests  and  concernments 
also. 

3.  Here  is  safety  till  the  trouble  be  over,  and  we  may  be  kept  as 
quiet  in  God  as  if  there  were  no  danger  :  Ps.  Ivii.  1,  '  Under  the 
shadow  of  thy  wings  will  I  make  my  refuge  until  these  calamities  are 
overpast/     There  is  an  allusion  to  a  chicken  under  the  dam's  wing, 
when  hawks,  kites,  and  birds  of  prey  are  abroad  ;  that  are  ready  to 
seize  upon  them  with  their  sharp  beaks  and  talons ;  they  run  to  the 
dam's  wings,  and  there  they  are  safe.     So  Isa.  xxvi.  20,  '  Come,  my 
people,  enter  thou  into  thy  chambers,  and  shut  the  doors  about  thee  : 
hide  thyself  as  it  were  for  a  little  moment,  until  the  indignation  be 
overpast.'     There  we  have  an  allusion  to  a  storm  that  is  soon  over,  it 
is  a  little  cloud  that  will  easily  be  blown  over  ;  but  in  the  meantime 
here  is  a  covert  and  a  defence.     The  use  of  God's  protection  and  love 
is  best  known  in  a  time  of  straits  and  difficulties. 

4.  There  is  not  only  safety  but  comfort ;  as  under  the  dam's  wings 
the  chickens  are  not  only  protected  but  cherished.     Christians,  it  is 
not  a  dead  refuge  or  hiding-place,  but  like  the  wings  of  the  hen,  which 


170  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXXY. 

yield  warmth  and  comfort  to  the  young  brood  :  Ps.  xxxiv.  22,  '  None 
of  them  that  trust  in  him  shall  be  desolate.'  There  is  sweet  support, 
and  spiritual  experience,  and  inward  comforts  ;  so  that  a  believer  that 
is  hidden  in  the  secret  of  God's  presence  fares  better  than  all  those 
that  have  the  world  at  will,  and  flow  in  ease  and  plenty,  if  he  would 
jud^e  of  his  condition  by  spiritual  considerations.  Thus  we  have  seen 
the  first  notion,  God  is  a  hiding-place. 

Secondly,  God  is  a  shield.  He  is  often  called  his  people's  shield  in 
scripture.  Now  the  excellency  and  properties  of  a  shield  lie  in  these 
things : — 

1.  In  the  largeness  and  breadth  of  it,  in  that  it  hides  and  covers  the 
person  that  weareth  it  from  all  darts  that  are  flung  at  him,  so  as 
they  cannot  reach  him  :  Ps.  v.  12,  '  Thou  wilt  bless  the  righteous  with 
favour,  thou  wilt  compass  him  as  with  a  shield/     There  is  the  excel 
lency  of  a  shield,  to  compass  a  person  round  about  that  the  darts  flung 
at  him  may  not  reach  him.    There  is  a  comfortable  promise  ;  it  runs  in 
other  notions  indeed,  yet  I  will  mention  it  upon  this  occasion,  because 
the  expressions  are  so  notable  and  emphatical :  Zech.  ii.  5,  '  For  I, 
saith  the  Lord,  will  be  unto  her  a  wall  of  fire  round  about.'     Mark 
every  word,  for  every  word  hath  its  weight.     It  was  spoken  when  the 
returning  Jews  were  discouraged  at  their  small  number;  they  had  not 
enough  to  people  their  country  and  build  their  towns,  nor  to  defend 
themselves  against  their  numerous   and   potent   adversaries.     Now 
what  shall  they  do  ?     God  makes  them  this  promise  of  a  future  in 
crease,  '  I  will  be  a  wall/  &c.     And  there  are  three  promises  included 
in  this  one,  viz.,  that  he  will  be  a  wall,  a  wall  round  about  them,  and 
a  wall  of  fire  round  about  them,  which  is  a  further  degree.     A  wall ! 
there  is  a  promise  of  that,  Isa.  xxvi.  1,  '  We  have  a  strong  city ;  sal 
vation  will  God  appoint  for  walls  and  bulwarks.'     And  a  wall  that 
doth  encompass  them  on  every  side  round  about,  there  is  a  promise  of 
that,  Ps.  cxxv.  2,  '  As  the  mountains  are  round  about  Jerusalem,  so 
the  Lord  is  round  about  his  people,  from  henceforth  even  for  ever  ;' 
he  will  be  instead  of  all  guards  and  defences.     So  likewise  a  wall  of 
fire  ;  not  of  brass  or  of  stone,  but  of  fire,  that  affrights  at  a  distance, 
and  consumes  near  at  hand.     Here  is  enough  for  a  refuge,  and  to  stay 
our  hearts  in  the  Lord's  keeping.     An  allusion  to  those  countries ; 
when  they  travelled  in  the  wilderness  they  were  wont  to  make  a  fire 
about  them,  to  preserve  them  from  wild  beasts.     Thus  doth  God  ex 
press  his  all-encompassing  protection,  he  that  is  our  shield. 

2.  The  excellence  of  a  shield  lies  in  that  it  is  hard  and  impene 
trable.     So  this  answers  to  the  invincible  power  of  God's  providence, 
by  which  he  can  break  the  assaults  of  all  enemies ;  and  such  a  shield  is 
God  to  his  people  :  Ps.  cxiiv.  2, '  My  strength  and  my  shield,  in  whom 
I  trust.' 

3.  Shall  I  add  one  thing  more  ?     Stones  and  darts  flung  upon  a 
hard  shield  are  beaten  back  upon  him  that  flings  them  ;  so  God  beats 
back  the  evil  upon  his  enemies,  and  the  enemies  of  his  people :  Ps. 
lix.  11,  '  Bring  them  down,  0  Lord,  our  shield.'     Shall  I  speak  in 
a  word  ?     The  favour  of  God  is  a  shield :  Ps.  v.  12,  '  With  favour 
wilt  thou  compass  him  as  with  a  shield.'     The  truth  of  God  is  a 
shield  :  Ps.  xci.  4,  '  His  truth  shall  be  thy  shield  and  buckler.'    And 


YER.  114.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  171 

the  strength  and  power  of  God,  that  is  our  shield  :  Ps.  xxviii.  7,. '  He 
is  my  strength  and  my  shield/ 

Well,  now,  you  see  how  this  defence  and  this  protection  is  set  forth, 
'  Thou  art  my  hiding-place  and  my  shield.'  God  accommodates  him 
self  to  lisp  to  us  in  our  own  dialect,  and  to  speak  in  such  notions  as 
we  can  best  understand,  for  the  help  of  our  faith.  Having  opened  the 
nature  of  this  defence,  the  next  thing  I  am  to  do  is  to  show — 

Secondly,  The  respect  to  the  word, '  I  hope  in  thy  word.' 

1.  The  word  discovers  God  to  be  such  a  protection  and  such  a  de 
fence  to  his  people  everywhere :  Ps.  Ixxxiv.  11,  *  God  will  be  a  sun 
and  a  shield,  grace  and  glory  will  he  give.'     As  a  sun,  so  he  will  give 
all  things  that  belong  to  our  blessedness ;  as  a  shield,  so  he  will  keep 
off  all  dangers  from  us.     The  scripture  shows  not  only  what  God  can 
do  herein,  but  what  he  will  do  for  our  sakes.     So  Gen.  xv.  1,  saith 
God  to  Abraham,  '  I  am  thy  shield  and  thy  exceeding  great  reward.' 
Abraham  might  be  under  some  fear  that  the  kings  which  he  had 
lately  vanquished  would  work  him  some  trouble,  and  then  God  comes 
and  appears  to  him  and  comforts  him,  and  tells  him,  '  I  am  thy  shield/ 

2.  As  the  scripture  doth  discover  God  under  these  notions,  so  it  in 
vites  us  and  encourageth  us  to  put  God  to  this  use  :  Isa.  xxvi.  20, 
'  Come,  my  people,  enter  into  thy  chambers,  shut  the  door  about  thee, 
and  hide  thyself  as  it  were  for  a  little  moment.'     There  are  chambers 
where  we  may  rest ;  where  are  they  but  in  the  arms  of  God's  protec 
tion,  in  the  chambers  of  his  attributes,  promises,  and  providence  ? 
The  word  invites  us  so  to  make  use  of  God,  to  enter  into  him  as  into 
a  chamber  of  repose,  while  the  storm  is  furious,  and  seems  to  blow 
hard  upon  us.     So  Ps.  xci.  1,  '  He  that  dwellethin  the  secret  place  of 
the  Most  High  shall  abide  under  the  shadow  of  the  Almighty.'     He 
that  committeth  himself  to  God  for  refuge  shall  not  be  thrust  out,  but 
suffered  to  dwell  there,  and  enjoy  the  benefit  of  a  covert  and  defence. 

3.  The  scripture  assureth  us  of  the  divine  protection,  that  certainly 
it  shall  be  so  :  Prov.  xxx.  5,  '  Every  word  of  God  is  pure  ;    he  is  a 
shield  unto  them  that  put  their  trust  in  him.'     Do  not  think  that 
these  are  careless  expressions,  that  dropped  into  the   scripture   by 
chance.     No  ;  they  are  the  sure  and  pure  words  of  the  Lord,  that  will 
yield  a  great  deal  of  comfort,  peace,  and  happiness.     So  Ps.  xviii.  30, 
'  As  for  God,  his  way  is  perfect :  the  word  of  the  Lord  is  tried  :  he  is 
a  buckler  to  all  those  that  trust  in  him.'     God  hath  passed  his  word, 
which  he  hath  ever  been  tender  of  in  all  ages  of  the  world ;  he  invites 
us  to  depend  upon  it.     Thus  it  assures  us  of  the  divine  protection. 

4.  It  directeth  us  as  to  the  qualifications  of  the  persons  who  shall 
enjoy  this  privilege.     Who  are  they  ? 

[1.]  You  might  observe,  all  those  that  believe,  and  none  but  those 
that  believe  ;  he  is  a  buckler  and  a  shield  to  all  those  that  trust  in 
him,  Prov.  xxx.  5 ;  Ps.  xviii.  30.  Trust  and  have  it.  If  you  will 
glorify  God  by  faith,  and  depend  upon  him  according  to  his  word, 
you  will  find  it  to  be  so.  We  miss  of  our  protection  and  defence  by 
our  doubts,  unbelief,  and  distrust  of  God.  All  those  that  in  time  of 
danger  are  duly  sensible  of  it,  and  make  use  of  God  as  their  refuge 
and  hiding-place,  shall  find  him  to  be  that  to  them  which  their  faith 
expects  from  him. 


172  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXXY. 

[2.]  The  qualification  which  the  word  directs  us  unto  is  this  :  those 
that  sincerely  obey  his  covenant :  Ps.  Ixxxiv.  11,  '  God  is  a  sun  and  a 
shield  to  those  that  walk  uprightly  ; '  and  the  same  is  repeated  Prov. 
ii.  7,  '  God  is  a  buckler  to  them  that  walk  uprightly  ;'  and  Isa.  xxxiii. 
15,  16,  where  God  saith  they  that  seek  him  shall  dwell  on  high  ;  his 
place  of  defence  shall  be  the  munitions  of  the  rocks  ;  they  shall  be 
preserved  safe  that  fear  him,  and  walk  with  him  according. to  the  tenor 
of  his  covenant.  If  you  will  not  be  faithful  servants  to  God,  how  can 
you  expect  he  should  be  a  good  master  to  you  ?  Sincerely  give  up 
your  heart  to  walk  with  God  exactly  and  closely,  and  he  will  not  be 
wanting  to  you.  Others  may  be  preserved  by  general  providence,  or 
rather  reserved  to  future  judgment ;  they  may  be  kept  until  the  pit  be 
digged  for  the  wicked,  Ps.  xciv.  13,  as  a  malefactor  is  suffered  to  live 
till  the  place  of  execution  be  prepared.  But  to  have  this  protection 
in  mercy,  it  supposeth  we  are  in  covenant  with  God,  and  walk  sin 
cerely  with  him. 

5.  It  directeth  us  how  to  expect  this  blessing,  in  what  manner; 
only  in  the  way  and  manner  that  it  is  promised,  Zeph.  iii.  3.  Seek 
righteousness,  seek  meekness,  it  may  be  you  shall  be  hid ;  not  abso 
lutely,  but  as  referring  it  to  God's  will.  There  is  the  keeping  of  the 
outward  man,  and  the  keeping  of  the  inward  man.  As  to  the  out 
ward  man,  all  things  come  alike  to  all ;  the  Christian  is  safe,  whatever 
becomes  of  the  man  ;  the  Lord  will  keep  him  to  his  heavenly  kingdom, 
2  Tim.  iv.  17,  18.  That  which  the  Christian  desires  mainly  to  be 
kept  is  his  soul,  that  he  may  not  miscarry,  and  blemish  his  profession, 
and  dishonour  God,  and  do  anything  that  is  unseemly.  I  say,  we 
cannot  absolutely  expect  temporal  safety.  The  righteous  are  liable  to 
many  troubles,  therefore  in  temporal  things  God  will  not  always  keep 
off  the  temporal  stroke,  but  leave  us  to  many  uncertainties,  or  at  least 
hold  us  in  doubt  about  it,  that  we  may  trust  his  goodness.  When  we 
trust  God  we  must  trust  all  his  attributes,  not  only  his  power,  that  he 
is  able  to  preserve,  but  his  goodness,  that  he  will  do  that  which  is  best, 
that  there  may  be  a  submission  and  referring  of  all  things  to  his  will ; 
as  David,  2  Sam.  xv.  26,  *  If  he  say,  I  have  no  delight  in  thee  ;  be 
hold  here  am  I,  let  him  do  unto  me  as  seemeth  good  unto  him.'  God 
will  certainly  make  good  his  promise,  but  this  trust  lies  not  in  an 
absolute  certainty  of  success.  However,  this  should  riot  discourage 
us  from  making  God  our  refuge,  because  better  promises  are  sure 
enough,  and  God's  keeping  us  in  suspense  about  other  things  is  no 
evidence  he  will  not  afford  them  to  us  ;  it  is  his  usual  course,  and  few 
instances  can  be  given  to  the  contrary,  to  have  a  special  regard  to  his 
trusting  servants,  and  to  hide  them  secretly.  They  that  know  his 
name  will  find  it,  that  he  never  hath  forsaken  them  that  put  their 
trust  in  him,  Ps.  ix.  10.  It  is  the  only  sure  way  to  be  safe  ;  whereas 
to  perplex  our  souls  with  distrust,  even  about  these  outward  things, 
that  is  the  way  to  bring  ruin  and  mischief  upon  ourselves,  or  turn  aside 
to  crooked  paths.  Well,  then,  you  see  what  respect  the  word  hath  to 
this  privilege,  that  God  is  a  shield  and  a  hiding-place.  The  word 
discovers  God  under  these  notions,  the  word  invites  and  encourageth 
us  to  put  God  to  this  use,  the  word  assures  us  of  the  divine  protection, 
it  directeth  us  to  the  qualification  of  the  persons  that  shall  enjoy  this 


114.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  173 

privilege,  they  that  can  trust  God,  and  walk  uprightly  with  him ;  and 
it  directeth  us  to  expect  the  blessing,  not  with  absolute  confidence,  but 
leaving  it  to  God. 

Thirdly,  The  third  thing  I  am  to  do  is  to  show  this  word  must  be 
applied  by  faith,  '  I  hope  in  thy  word.'  Hope  is  not  strictly  taken 
here,  but  for  faith,  or  a  certain  expectation  of  the  blessing  promised. 
What  doth  faith  do  here  ?  Why,  the  use  of  faith  is — 

1.  To  quiet  the  heart  in  waiting  God's  leisure:  Ps.  xxxiii.  20,  '  Our 
soul  waiteth  for  the  Lord  ;  he  is  our  help  and  our  shield.'     If  God  be 
our  help  and  shield,  then  faith  is  quietly  to  wait  the  Lord's  leisure ; 
till  he  sends  deliverance,  the  word  must  bear  up  our  hearts,  and  we 
must  be  contented  to  tarry  his  time:  Isa.  xxviii.  16, '  He  that  believeth 
shall  not  make  haste,'  will  not  outrun  God. 

2.  In  fortifying  the  heart  against  present  difficulties,  that  when  all 
visible  helps  and  interests  are  cut  off,  yet  we  may  encourage  ourselves 
in  the  Lord.     When  they  were  wandering  in  the  wilderness,  and  had 
neither  house  nor  home,  then  Moses,  the  man  of  God,  pens  that  psalm, 
and  how  doth  he  begin  it  ?  '  Lord,  thou  hast  been  our  dwelling-place 
in  all  generations/  Ps.  xc.  1.   What  was  wanting  in  sense  they  saw  was 
made  up  in  the  all-sufficiency  of  God.    And  so  here  is  the  use  of  faith, 
when  in  defiance  of  all  difficulties  we  can  see  an  all -sufficiency  in  God 
to  counterbalance  that  which  is  wanting  in  sense.     So  doth  David,  Ps. 
iii.  3,  '  Lord,'  saith  he,  '  thou  art  my  shield  and  glory,  and  the  lifter 
up  of  my  head/    Look  to  that  psalm  ;  it  was  penned  when  David  was 
driven  from  his  palace  royal  by  Absalom :  when  he  was  in  danger, 
God  was  his  shield  ;  when  his  kingdom  and  honour  were  laid  in  the 
dust,  God  was  his  glory ;  when  he  was  under  sorrow  and  shame,  and 
enemies  insulting  over  him,  when  the  people  rose  against  him,  and  he 
was  in  great  dejection  of  spirit,  God  was  the  lifter  up  of  his  head. 
This  is  getting  under  the  covert  of  this  shield,  or  compass  of  this 
hiding-place. 

3.  The  use  of  faith  is  to  quicken  us  to  go  on  cheerfully  in  our  duty, 
and  with  a  quiet  heart,  resting  upon  God's  love,  power,  and  truth.     So 
David,  Ps.  cxxxi.  5,  '  Into  thy  hands  I  commit  my  spirit,  for  thou  hast 
redeemed  me,   0   Lord   God  of  truth/     David  was  then  in  great 
danger  ;  the  net  was  laid  for  him,  as  he  saith  in  the  former  verse ; 
and  when  he  was  likely  to  perish,  what  doth  he  do?     He  casts  all 
his  cares  upon  God,  and  trusts  him  with  his  life,  *  Into  thy  hands  I 
commit  my  spirit/  that  is,  his  life,  safety,  &c. 

Use  1.  Admire  the  goodness  of  God,  who  will  be  all  things  to  his 
people.  If  we  want  a  house,  he  will  be  our  dwelling-place ;  if  we 
want  a  covert,  he  will  be  our  shield,  our  hiding-place ;  whatever  we 
want,  God  will  supply  it.  There  is  a  notable  expression:  Ps.  xci.  9, 
'  Because  thou  hast  made  the  Lord,  which  is  my  refuge,  even  the  Most 
High,  thy  habitation.'  Mark  that  double  notion ;  a  habitation  is  the 
place  of  our  abode  in  time  of  peace,  a  refuge  the  place  of  our  retreat 
in  a  time  of  war.  Be  it  peace  or  war,  God  will  be  all  in  all ;  he  will 
be  a  fountain  of  blessing  to  us  in  a  time  of  peace,  he  will  be  our 
habitation  there  where  we  have  our  sweetest  comforts ;  and  then  in 
time  when  dangers  and  difficulties  are  abroad,  God  will  be  a  refuge 
and  a  place  of  retreat  to  our  souls. 


174  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [&ER.  CXXV. 

Use  2.  To  persuade  us  to  contentation  in  a  time  of  trouble.  Though 
we  have  not  a  palace,  yet  if  we  have  but  a  hiding-place  ;  though  our 
condition  be  not  so  commodious  as  we  do  desire,  yet  if  God  will  vouch 
safe  a  little  liberty  in  our  service  we  must  be  content,  if  he  will  give 
us  a  little  safety  though  not  plenty,  for  here  is  not  our  full  reward. 
And  therefore  it  is  well  we  can  make  this  use  of  God,  to  be  our  shield 
and  hiding-place,  though  we  have  not  that  ample  condition  which  a 
carnal  heart  would  fancy.  God  never  undertook  in  his  covenant  to 
maintain  us  at  such  a  rate,  nor  thus  to  enlarge  our  portion  ;  if  he  will 
vouchsafe  a  little  security  and  safety  to  us  during  the  time  of  our  pil 
grimage,  we  must  be  content. 

Use  3.  This  should  more  encourage  us  against  the  evil  of  sin,  since 
God  assures  us  of  protection  and  defence  against  the  evil  of  trouble. 
If  God  did  leave  us  to  shift  for  ourselves,  and  never  expressed  himself 
in  his  word  for  our  comfort,  then  we  were  more  excusable,  though  not 
altogether,  if  we  did  shift  and  turn  aside  to  crooked  paths,  because 
we  are  under  an  obligation  to  obey,  whatsoever  it  cost  us.  But  when 
he  hath  offered  himself  to  be  our  shield  and  our  hiding-place,  to  stand 
by  us,  be  with  us,  carry  us  through  fire  and  water,  all  dangers  and 
difficulties,  shall  we  warp  now  and  turn  aside  from  God  ?  Gen.  xvii. 
1,  saith  the  Lord,  '  I  am  God  all-sufficient ;  walk  before  me,  and  be 
thou  perfect.'  There  is  enough  in  God  ;  why  should  we  trouble  our 
selves,  or  why  should  we  run  to  any  practices  which  God  will  not  own  ? 

Use  4.  It  presseth  us  to  depend  upon  God's  protection.  Shall  I 
urge  arguments  to  you  ? 

1.  This  is  one.      Every  one  must  have  a  hiding-place.      Saith 
Solomon,  The  conies  are  a  feeble  folk,  yet  they  have  their  burrows 
and  holes.     All  creatures  must  depend  upon  somewhat,  especially  the 
children  of  God,  that  are  exposed  to  a  thousand  difficulties.      You 
must  expect  to  have  your  faith  and  patience  tried  if  ever  you  come  to 
inherit  the  promises,  and  during  that  time  it  is  good  to  have  a  hiding- 
place  and  a  shield. 

2.  Your  hearts  will  not  be  kept  in  safety  unless  you  make  God  your 
strong  defence.     When  Phocas  fortified  cities  to  secure  his  ill-gotten 
goods,  a  voice  was  heard,  Sin  within  will  soon  batter  down  all  those 
walls  and  fortifications.     Unless  God  be  our  hiding-place  and  shield, 
the  strongest  defences  in  the  world  are  not  enough  to  keep  us  from 
danger.    All  the  shifts  we  run  into  will  but  entangle  us  the  more,  and 
drive  us  the  more  from  God,  and  to  greater  inconvenience :  2  Chron. 
xxviii.  20,  as  the  king  of  Assyria  to  Ahaz ;    he  distressed  him,  but 
helped  him  not.     So  many  run  away  from  God's  protection,  and  seek 
out  means  of  safety  for  themselves,  and  will  not  trust  him,  but  seek  to 
secure  themselves  by  some  shifts  of  their  own.     They  do  but  plunge 
themselves  into  troubles  so  much  the  more,  and  draw  greater  incon 
veniences  upon  themselves.     There  is  a  great  deal  of  sin  and  danger 
in  departing  from  God,  and  he  can  soon  blast  our  confidences.     All 
those  places  of  safety  we  fancy  to  ourselves  can  soon  be  demolished 
and  battered  down.     God  will  blast  our  carnal  shifts. 

3.  It  is  a  thing  that  we  owe  to  God  by  virtue  of  the  fundamental 
article  of  the  covenant.     If  you  have  chosen  God  for  your  God,  then 
you  have  chosen  him  for  your  refuge.     Every  one  in  his  straits  runs 


YEK.  114.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  175 

to  the  God  he  hath  chosen.  Nature  taught  the  heathens  in  their 
distress  to  run  to  their  gods.  You  may  see  the  pagan  mariners,  a  sort  of 
men  usually  not  much  haunted  with  religious  thoughts,  yet  when  the 
storm  arose,  the  sea  wrought  and  was  tempestuous,  danger  grew  upon 
them,  and  they  were  afraid  :  '  They  called  every  man  upon  his  god/ 
Jonah  i.  5  ;  they  were  sensible  that  some  divine  power  must  give  them 
protection.  It  immediately  results  from  the  owning  of  a  God,  that  we 
must  trust  him  with  our  safety  ;  and  so,  if  we  have  taken  the  true  God 
for  our  God,  we  have  taken  him  for  our  refuge  and  hiding-place  :  Euth 
ii.  12,  '  A  full  reward  be  given  thee  of  the  Lord  God  of  Israel,  under 
whose  wings  thou  art  come  to  trust.'  When  Euth  came  to  profess  the 
true  God,  by  taking  the  God  of  Israel  for  her  God,  it  is  expressed  thus ; 
she  did  commit  herself  to  his  providence  and  protection  :  and  therefore 
covetousness,  because  of  its  trust  in  riches,  is  called  idolatry ;  it  is  a 
breach  of  the  fundamental  article  of  the  covenant,  taking  God  for  our  God. 

4.  This  trust  ever  succeeds  well.  It  will  be  of  great  use  to  you  to 
still  and  calm  your  thoughts,  and  free  you  from  many  anxious  cares, 
and  in  due  time  it  will  bring  deliverance  according  to  his  promise. 
How  may  we  thus  trust  in  God  ?  Why  !  commit  and  submit  your 
persons  and  all  your  conditions  and  affairs  to  his  providence.  This  is 
to  trust  in  God,  to  make  him  your  hiding-place  and  your  shield. 
These  notions  are  often  used  in  scripture,  2  Tim.  i.  12 ;  Prov.  xvi.  3 ; 
Ps.  xxxvii.  5.  If  there  be  a  thing  to  be  brought  about  for  you,  commit 
it  and  submit  it  to  God  ;  he  is  able,  wise,  loving,  and  faithful ;  he  will 
do  what  shall  be  for  the  best.  Commit  your  comforts,  your  health, 
liberty,  peace,  your  all  into  God's  hands, for  he  is  the  author  of  all;  let 
the  Lord  do  what  he  will.  This  is  to  trust  in  God,  when  you  can  thus 
without  trouble  or  anxious  care  refer  yourselves  to  the  wise  disposal 
of  his  providence. 

[1.]  No  hurt  can  come  to  you  without  God's  leave.  No  creature 
can  move  or  stir,  saving  not  only  by  his  permission,  but  by  his  influ 
ence.  Others  may  have  a  will  to  hurt,  but  not  power  unless  given 
them  from  above,  as  Christ  told  Pilate.  The  devil  is  a  raging  adver 
sary  against  the  people  of  God,  but  he  is  forced  to  ask  leave  to  touch 
either  Job's  goods  or  his  person  ;  he  could  not  touch  his  skin,  or  any 
thing  that  belonged  to  him  without  a  commission  from  God,  Job  i. ; 
nay,  he  must  ask  leave  to  enter  into  the  herd  of  swine,  Mat.  viii.  31. 
And  Tertullian  hath  a  notable  gloss  upon  that.  If  God  hath  num 
bered  the  bristles  of  swine,  certainly  he  hath  numbered  much  more  the 
hairs  of  the  saints  ;  if  he  cannot  enter  into  a  herd  of  swine,  he  cannot 
worry  a  friend  of  Christ's,  without  God's  leave. 

[2.]  Consider  how  much  God  hath  expressed  his  singular  affection, 
and  his  care  and  providence  over  his  people.  There  are  many 
emphatical  expressions  in  scripture ;  that  is  one,  Mat.  x.  29,  30,  '  The 
very  hairs  of  your  head  are  numbered/  Mark,  he  doth  not  speak  of 
the  heart,  or  hands,  or  feet,  those  that  we  call  parts  which  are  neces 
sary  to  the  conservation  of  life ;  but  he  speaks  of  the  excrementitious 
parts,  which  are  rather  for  convenience  and  ornament  than  necessity. 
What  is  more  slight  than  the  shedding  a  hair  of  the  head  ?  Thus  he 
expresses  the  particular  care  of  his  people.  Again,  Zech.  ii.  8,  '  He 
that  toucheth  you  toucheth  the  apple  of  his  eye/  No  part  is  more 


176  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SflK.  CXXV. 

tender  than  the  eye ;  and  the  apple  of  the  eye,  how  hath  nature 
guarded  it,  that  it  may  receive  no  prejudice  !  So  Isa.  xlix.  15,  '  Can 
a  mother  forget  her  sucking-child  ?  '  £c.  See  how  his  tender  affection 
and  yearning  bowels  are  expressed ;  passions  in  females  are  most 
vehement,  therefore  God  alludes  to  mothers'  affections.  And  mark,  it 
is  not  a  child  that  can  shift  for  itself,  but  a  sucking- child,  that  is 
wholly  helpless,  that  was  but  newly  given  her  to  draw  her  love.  Nature 
hath  left  tender  affections  on  the  hearts  of  parents  to  their  tender 
infants  ;  yet  if  a  woman  should  be  so  unnatural,  '  Yet  will  I  not  forget 
thee,'  saith  the  Lord.  Now,  shall  we  not  trust  him,  and  make  him 
our  hiding-place  ?  Isa.  xxvii.  3,  '  I  the  Lord  do  keep  it ;  I  will  water 
it  every  moment ;  lest  any  hurt  it,  I  will  keep  it  night  and  day/  God 
will  keep  his  people  by  day,  lest  by  force  they  break  in  upon  his 
heritage ;  and  keep  them  by  night,  lest  they  steal  in  privily,  and  by 
secret  machinations  hurt  them. 

[3.]  Again,  consider  how  many  arguments  there  are  to  work  us  to 
this  trust.  Sometimes  the  scripture  teacheth  us  to  argue  from  the 
less  to  the  greater  :  Mat.  vi.  30,  '  If  God  so  clothe  the  grass  of  the 
field,  which  to-day  is,  and  to-morrow  is  cast  into  the  oven,  shall  he 
not  much  more  clothe  you,  0  ye  of  little  faith  ? '  Sometimes  the 
scripture  teacheth  us  to  argue  on  the  contrary;  from  the  greater  to  the 
less,  Kom.  viii.  32.  If  God  hath  given  us  his  Christ,  will  he  not  with 
him  freely  give  us  all  things  ?  Sometimes  the  scripture  teacheth  us 
to  argue  from  things  past.  God  hath  been  your  shield  and  helper,  he 
hath  delivered  from  the  mouth  of  the  lion  and  bear,  and  this  un- 
circumcised  Philistine  shall  be  as  one  of  them,  1  Sam.  xvii.  37.  Some 
times  from  things  past  and  present  to  things  to  come:  2  Cor.  i.  10, 
'  Who  hath  delivered  from  so  great  a  death,  and  doth  deliver  ;  in 
whom  we  trust  that  he  will  yet  deliver/  Sometimes  from  things  to 
come  to  things  present :  Luke  xii.  32,  '  Fear  not,  little  flock ;  for  it  is 
your  Father's  good  pleasure  to  give  you  the  kingdom/  Anne  dabit 
regnwn,  et  non  dabit  viaticum  ?  If  he  give  a  kingdom,  will  he  not 
give  daily  bread  ?  Will  he  not  preserve  you  while  he  hath  a  mind  to 
use  you  ?  Thus  our  unbelief  is  overpowered  by  divers  arguments  to 
press  us  to  this  trust.  Well,  then,  run  to  your  security.  How  so  ? 

First,  In  defiance  of  all  difficulty,  own  God  as  your  hiding-place 
and  shield.  David  when  he  was  driven  from  his  palace  royal,  and 
wandered  up  and  down  for  his  life,  and  when  his  enemies  began  to 
say,  Now  there  is  no  help  for  him  in  God,  Ps.  iii.  3  ;  all  Israel  were 
against  him.  Many  there  be  which  say  thus  :  his  son  drives  him 
from  his  palace ;  now  there  is  no  safety,  nor  defence  ;  but  saith  he, 
*  Lord,  thou  art  my  shield  and  my  glory,  and  the  lifter  up  of  my  head/ 
This  is  the  way  to  get  under  the  covert  of  his  wing,  when  in  the  face 
of  all  difficulties  we  will  own  God  as  our  hiding-place. 

Secondly,  Sue  out  your  protection  by  earnest  prayer.  God  hath 
given  us  promises  as  so  many  bonds  upon  himself,  and  we  must  put 
these  bonds  in  suit.  Our  necessity  leads  us  to  the  promises,  and  the 
promises  lead  us  to  the  throne  of  grace  :  Ps.  cxli.  9,  '  I  fly  to  thee  ; 
nide  me,  0  Lord  ;  keep  me  from  the  snare  which  they  have  laid  for  me/ 
Plead  with  him,  and  say,  Lord,  thou  hast  said  thou  wilt  be  my  refuge 
and  hiding-place  ;  whither  should  a  child  go  but  to  .its  father  ?  and 


VEIL.  115.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  177 

whither  should  I  go  but  to  thee,  for  thou  art  my  God  ?  Challenge 
him  upon  his  word.  See  how  David  expressetli  himself :  Ps.  xvii.  7r 
8,  '  Show  thy  marvellous  loving-kindness,  0  thou  that  savest  by  thy 
right  hand  them  which  put  their  trust  in  thee.  Keep  me  as  the  apple 
of  thine  eye  :  hide  me  tinder  the  shadow  of  thy  wings.'  Go  challenge 
God  upon  his  word  :  Lord,  thou  hast  said  thou  wilt  save  those  that 
trust  in  thee,  those  that  depend  upon  thee.  The  eye  is  offended  with 
the  least  dust,  and  nature  hath  provided  a  fence  and  covert  for  it. 
Thus  may  we  go  to  God,  and  challenge  such  kind  of  protection  :  Keep 
me  as  the  apple  of  thine  eye,  hide  me  under  thy  wings.  As  the  dam 
is  ready  to  flutter  and  spread  her  wings  over  the  young  brood  when 
they  fly  to  her,  so  will  God. 

Thirdly,  Take  notice  whenever  it  is  made  good;  give  God  his 
honour  when  he  hath  been  a  hiding-place  and  protection  to  you,  that 
you  may  observe  his  providence  :  Ps.  xviii.  30,  '  As  for  God,  his  way 
is  perfect :  the  word  of  the  Lord  is  tried  :  he  is  a  buckler  to  all  those 
that  trust  in  him.'  Well,  I  have  waited  upon  God  according  to  these 
promises,  and  lo  !  it  is  come  to  pass  as  the  Lord  hath  said.  So  Ps. 
xxviii.  7,  '  The  Lord  is  my  strength  and  my  shield  ;  my  heart  trusteth 
in  him,  and  I  am  helped  ; '  Gen.  xlviii.  16,  '  The  angel  of  the  covenant, 
which  hath  fed  me  all  my  days,  and  redeemed  me  from  all  evil.'  He 
speaks  of  the  faithfulness  of  God  and  of  the  mediator  in  all  those 
promises  of  protection. 

Fourthly,  Constantly  make  use  of  God.  You  may  think  this  dis 
course  may  be  of  no  use  to  you,  because  you  are  out  of  fears  and 
dangers  :  why,  you  are  constantly  to  make  use  of  God,  be  it  well  or  ill, 
and  to  live  upon  God.  All  our  comforts  are  from  God,  as  well  as  our 
support  in  trouble.  Certainly  he  that  lives  upon  God  in  prosperity, 
will  live  upon  him  in  adversity.  Oh !  when  you  are  wrell  at  ease,  and 
abound  in  all  things,  you  take  these  things  out  of  the  hand  of  God  ; 
you  will  learn  better  to  make  him  your  refuge.  But  he  that  lives 
upon  the  creature  in  his  prosperity,  when  the  creature  fails  he  will  be 
in  utter  distress,  and  know  not  what  to  do. 


SERMON  CXXVI. 

Depart  from  me,  ye  evil-doers :  for  I  will  keep  the  commandments 
of  my  God. — VER.  115. 

MOST  of  the  passages  of  this  psalm  are  directed  to  God  himself;  but 
now  he  speaks  to  carnal  men,  shaking  them  off,  as  Christ  will  at  the 
last  day.  His  speech  is  then,  Mat.  vii.  22,  '  Depart  from  me,  ye  workers 
of  iniquity ; '  and  so  saith  David,  '  Depart  from  me,  ye  evil-doers.' 
Whether  David  speaks  this  for  his  own  sake,  or  for  others'  instruction, 
as  he  doth  many  things  in  this  psalm,  I  will  not  dispute.  But  certainly 
the  drift  of  this  verse  is  to  show,  that  if  we  intend  to  walk  constantly 
with  God,  we  should  keep  at  a  distance  from  wicked  men.  Separation 
from  them  is  necessary  for  a  conjunction  with  God.  If  they  be  not 
God's,  they  should  be  none  of  yours,  for  you  are  his :  *  Depart  from 

VOL.  VIII.  31 


178  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEE.  CXXVI. 

me,  ye  evil-doers  :  for  I  will  keep  the  commandments  of  my  God/ 
Here— 

1.  Take  notice  of  the  persons  to  whom  he  speaks,  ye  evil-doers. 

2.  What  is  said ;  he  renounceth  all  commerce  with  them,  depart 
from  me. 

The  reason  of  this  renunciation,  for  I  will  keep  the  commandments 
of  my  God. 

Where  you  may  note — 

El.]  The  fixedness  of  his  resolution,  Twill. 
2.]  The  matter  resolved  upon,  I  will  keep  the  commandments,  which 
they  broke  or  made  light  of,  and  so  their  friendship  and  company  was 
a  hindrance  to  him. 

[3.]  The  inducing  consideration,  my  God  ;  he  is  the  comfort  and 
refuge  of  my  soul,  more  than  all  men  are  to  me.  Friends  are  dear, 
but  God  should  be  dearer.  None  is  ours  so  much  as  he  is ;  he  is  my 
God,  therefore  it  is  him  that  I  will  please ;  my  God's  commands  I  will 
conform  myself  to. 

All  the  business  is  to  show  on  what  grounds  David  bids  the  evil 
doers  depart  from  him. 

1.  It  is  either  because  of  his  confidence  in  God ;  as  ver.  114,  '  Thou 
art  my  hiding-place  and  my  shield,'  therefore  depart.    He  did  not  fear 
their  disturbance  or  persecution,  because  God  would  protect  him,  so 
as  he  should  peaceably  and  cheerfully  attend  his  service.    This  form  of 
speech  is  so  used,  Ps.  vi.  8,  '  Depart  from  me,  all  ye  workers  of  iniquity, 
for  the  Lord  hath  heard  the  voice  of  my  weeping ; '  that  is,  Now  I 
reckon  not  of  your  assaults  and  molestations  ;  my  God  will  carry  me 
through  his  work.     Or — 

2.  It  is  a  renouncing  of  their  aid  and  assistance  offered  upon  ill 
terms  ;  and  so  the  meaning  would  be,  that  he  would  not  stand  by  their 
interest,  or  cry  up  a  confederacy  with  them,  and  admit  of  any  other 
ways  of  safety  but  what  were  fully  consistent  with  his  duty  to  God. 
Depart  from  me,  as  repelling  their  temptations  and  carnal  counsel. 
Christ  saith  to  Peter,  Get  thee  behind  me,  Satan,  when  he  came  with 
carnal  counsel ;  so  David  saith,  Depart  from  me  ;  you  labour  in  vain 
to  draw  me  to  commit  wickedness  with  you :  I  must  keep  in  with  my 
God,  not  with  you:  do  his  commandments,  not  follow  your  fancies.  Or — 

3.  It  is  a  renouncing  of  all  society  with  them,  lest  he  should  be 
corrupted  by  their  evil  examples  or  their  carnal  suggestions  and  entice 
ments.     He  seems  to  speak  this  as  fearing  a  snare  and  hindrance  by 
their  company  and  intimacy.     This  is  the  consideration  that  I  prefer. 
The  points  may  be  two  : — 

1.  That  they  which  would  have  God  for  their  God  must  keep  his 
commandments. 

2.  They  that  would    keep  his  commandments  must   avoid    the 
company  of  the  wicked. 

Dock  1.  They  that  would  have  God  for  their  God  must  keep  his 
commandments. 

This  point  I  shall  soon  despatch,  for  it  often  comes  in  this  psalm. 

1.  A  covenant  relation  inferreth  a  covenant  duty.  You  know  the 
tenor  of  the  covenant  runs  thus,  ;  I  will  be  your  God,  and  ye  shall  be 
my  people/  Jer.  xxxi.  33;  Ezek.  xi.  20;  Zech.  xiii.  9;  and  other  places. 


VER.  115.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  179 

Where  observe  this :  the  stipulation  is  mutual ;  there  is  something 
which  God  offers,  and  something  which  God  requires.  A  covenant  is 
not  made  up  all  of  promises ;  there  is  a  stipulation  of  obedience,  as 
well  as  a  promise  of  happiness  ;  and  both  must  concur  :  a  keeping  the 
commandments  must  be,  as  well  as  taking  hold  of  the  privileges  of  the 
covenant :  Ps.  ciii.  18,  '  To  such  as  keep  his  covenant,  that  remember 
his  commandments  to  do  them.'  Both  must  concur. 

'But  let  us  observe  distinctly  what  God  offers  and  what  God  requires. 

[1.]  What  God  offers:  He  offers  himself  to  be  our  God;  that  is,  to  be 
a  God  to  bless,  and  a  God  to  govern  and  rule  ;  and  so  the  offer  of  God 
infers  not  only  dependence  upon  him  as  he  will  be  a  God  to  bless, 
but  subjection  to  him  as  he  will  be  a  God  to  rule  and  govern.  Those 
that  would  have  God's  blessing  must  be  under  his  dominion,  for  the 
notion  of  our  God  implies  a  sovereign  as  well  as  a  benefactor  ;  he  doth 
not  leave  us  to  our  liberty  to  live  as  we  list,  for  then  he  is  not  God 
nor  supreme.  Therefore  it  is  but  equal  and  reasonable  he  should  rule 
and  govern,  and  we  obey. 

[2.]  But  what  he  requires ;  that  maketh  it  the  more  plain.  You 
shall  be  my  people  ;  that  noteth  separation  from  all  others,  and  a 
dedication  to  God's  use,  and  a  walking  according  to  the  tenor  of  that 
dedication :  Deut.  xxix.  9,  10,  '  This  day  thou  art  become  the  people 
of  the  Lord  thy  God  ;  therefore  obey  the  voice  of  the  Lord  thy  God, 
and  keep  his  commandments,  to  love  him,  obey  him,  fear  him,  trust  in 
him.'  Well,  then,  as  God  offers  himself  to  be  a  God  to  rule  and 
govern  us  according  to  his  will,  so  we,  in  giving  up  ourselves  to  be 
his  people,  resign  ourselves  up  to  his  government. 

2.  In  point  of  gratitude  as  well  as  covenant  obligation.  If  God,  the 
other  contracting  party,  were  our  equal,  as  he  is  our  superior,  yet  the 
kindness  we  receive  from  our  God  should  move  us  to  do  him  all  the 
service  we  can.  His  kindness  and  grace  in  the  covenant  should  make 
us  fearful  to  offend:  '  They  shall  fear  the  Lord  and  his  goodness,'  Hosea 
iii.  5  ;  and  careful  to  please  God :  '  To  walk  worthy  of  God  unto  all 
well-pleasing,'  Col.  iii.  10.  And  therefore  love  is  said  to  keep  the  com 
mandments  :  love,  which  is  enkindled  by  a  sense  of  God's  love  to  us  in 
the  covenant  of  grace,  will  put  us  upon  obeying  and  careful  pleasing 
of  God. 

Use  1.  Information,  to  show  us  how  we  should  make  sin  odious  to 
us,  both  by  way  of  caution  and  humiliation ;  caution  against  the 
admission  of  sin,  and  humiliation  because  of  the  commission  of  it. 

1.  Caution.     When  thou  art  sinning,  remember  it  is  against  thy 
God,  who  hath  made  thee,  who  hath  kept  thee,  who  hath  bought  thee, 
whom  thou  hast  owned  in  covenant,  who  never  showed  any  backward 
ness  to  thy  good.     Is  this  thy  kindness  to  thy  friend,  as  he  said,  to  sin 
against  God,  thy  best  friend  ?     See,  the  covenant  interest  is  produced 
to  stir  up  indignation  against  the  offences  of  others  :  Jude  4,  '  They 
turn  the  grace  of  our  God  into  lasciviousness.'     There  is  very  much  in 
that,  that  the  grace  of  our  God  should  be  abused.     So  Isa.  vii.  13,  'Is 
it  nothing  to  weary  men,  but  will  ye  weary  my  God  also  ? '     Wilt 
thou  grieve  the  spirit  of  thy  God,  and  violate  his  holy  law  ?     If  we 
cannot  endure  an  offence  in  another,  much  less  in  ourselves. 

2.  For  humiliation.     This  should  wound  us  to  the  quick,  to  sin 


180  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEE.  CXXVI. 

against  the  Lord  our  God,  Jer.  iii.  25.  Every  sin  is  a  breach  of 
covenant.  What  is  simple  fornication  in  others,  is  adultery  in  you,  or 
breach  of  marriage  vow:  Luke  xv.,  'I  have  sinned  against  heaven,  and 
before  thee.' 

Use  2    To  press  us  to  behave  ourselves  to  God,  as  he  is  the  Lord  our 
God.     Why? 

1.  Otherwise  you  do  but  mock  him  :  Luke  vi.  46,  '  Why  call  ye  me 
Lord,  Lord,  and  do  not  the  things  which  I  say  ?'    Oui  res  nominisub- 
jecia  negatur,  nomini  illuditur,  saith  Tertullian — it  is  but  a  mockery  of 
God  to  give  him  the  title,  and  deny  him  the  duty  included  in  that  title. 
As  the  soldiers  which  saluted  Christ  with,  Hail,  king  of  the  Jews,  yet 
at  the  same  time  spat  in  his  face  and  buffeted  him  ;  so  for  us  to  say, 
My  God:  Mai.  i.  6,  '  If  I  be  a  lord,  where  is  my  fear  ?     If  I  be  a 
father,  where  is  mine  honour  ? ' 

2.  Consider,  God  will  not  be  mocked,  but  will  avenge  the  quarrel  of 
his  covenant,  Lev.  xxvi.  25.     A  people  that  profess  God  to  be  their 
God,  all  the  judgments  that  shall  come  upon  them,  they  come  in  pur 
suance  of  God's  quarrel,  because  they  give  God  the  covenant  title,  and 
do  not  perform  the  covenant  duty.    There  is  hypocrisy  in  them,  in  that 
they  call  him  Our  God,  and  make  a  show  to  be  his  peculiar  people,  and 
in  the  meantime  do  neither  serve  him,  love  him,  nor  obey  him  as  our 
God.     And  there  is  plain  treachery,  in  that  we  set  up  another  god,  the 
lust  and  sin  which  we  would  gratify  with  the  displeasure  of  God  ;  so 
that  we  are  not  a  people  for  him  according  to  the  covenant. 

3.  This  God  will  bear  us  out  in  our  work :  Dan.  iii.  17;  '  Our  God 
whom  we  serve  is  able  to  deliver  us/    You  may  promise  yourselves  all 
that  a  God  can  do  for  you  ;  therefore  let  this  persuade  you  to  do  as 
David,  firmly  to  resolve,  and  exactly  to  observe,  all  that  he  hath 
required  of  us.     First,  Firmly  to  resolve  upon  a  strict  course  of  obed 
ience.     I  will,  saith  David  in  the  text  ;  I  am  resolved  of  it,  whatever 
cometh  on  it,  or  whatsoever  temptations  I  meet  with  to  the  contrary. 
Many  are  convinced  of  their  evil  courses,  and  that  there  is  a  necessity 
to  leave  them,  but  want  resolution,  therefore  are  inconstant  in  all  their 
ways.   Secondly,  Exactly  to  observe  ;  I  will  keep  the  commandments  of 
my  God.     He  that  is  our  God,  it  is  fit  he  should  be  obeyed  in  all 
things:  Micah  vi.  8,  'Walk  humbly  with  thy  God.'     You  deny  his 
sovereignty  by  interpretation,  if  you  stick  at  any  precept  of  his. 

Doct,  2.  They  that  would  keep  the  commandments  of  God  must 
avoid  the  company  of  the  wicked. 

1.  I  shall  show  how  far  the  company  of  the  wicked  is  to  be  avoided. 

2.  Why  they  that  would  keep  the  co.mmandments  of  God  are  to 
do  so. 

First,  How  far  the  company  of  the  wicked  is  to  be  avoided.    On  the 
one  hand — 

1 .  There  is  necessary  civil  converse  allowed ;  for  otherwise,  as  the 
apostle  saith,  we  must  needs  go  out  of  the  world,  1  Cor.  v.  10.    Neces 
sary  converse  in  buying,  selling,  trading,  performing  the  duties  of  our 
relations,  it  is  allowed. 

2.  We  must  not  forsake  the  church  because  of  some  wicked  men 
therein.     In  God's  floor  there  is  wheat  and  chaff.     Saith  Augustine, 
Fugio  paleam,  ne  hoc  sim  ;  non  aream,  ne  nihil  sim — I  fly  from  the 


VER.  115.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  181 

chaff  that  I  may  not  be  it ;  but  I  may  not,  I  do  not  fly  from  the  floor, 
iest  I  be  nothing.  Christ  maintained  communion  with  the  church 
wherein  there  were  men  corrupt  in  manners,  and  bids  us  to  hear  those 
that  sit  in  Moses'  chair,  though  they  say  and  do  not,  Mat.  xxiii.  1,  2. 

3.  We  are  not  hindered  from  endeavouring  the  good  of  their  souls  ; 
whilst  there  is  hope  and  opportunity  to  gain  them,  we  may  converse 
with  them  for  their  good.  Thus  Jesus  Christ  did  converse  with  sin 
ners  to  gain  them :  Luke  xv.  2,  '  The  Pharisees  murmured,  saying, 
This  man  receiveth  sinners,  and  eateth  with  them.'  It  is  one  thing  to 
converse  with  sinners  to  harden  them  in  their  sins,  another  thing  to 
converse  with  them  to  gain  them  to  God  ;  as  physicians  to  heal  the 
sick,  not  as  their  associates  to  delight  in  their  company.  So  we  may 
converse  with  them  with  all  gentleness,  remembering  that  we  ourselves 
were  sometime  foolish,  disobedient,  deceived,  &c.  Thus  we  must  not 
avoid  them. 

But  yet  we  should  avoid  them  so — 

1.  That  we  should  not  be  familiar  with  them.     Eschew  all  unne 
cessary  voluntary  fellowship  and  familiarity  :  Ps.  xxvi.  4,  '  I  have  not 
sat  with  vain  persons,  neither  will  I  go  in  with  dissemblers.'     We  are 
not  to  choose  them  for  our  companions,  lest  we  be  corrupted  and 
deadened  by  their  example. 

2.  We  are  not  to  enter  into  a  durable  relation  with  them,  such  as 
will  put  us  upon  continual  converse.     When  we  are  at  liberty,  2  Cor. 
vi.  15,  'Be  not  unequally  yoked  together  with  unbelievers/     Parents, 
upon  any  conveniences  of  estate  or  outward  emoluments,  are  not  to* 
dispose  of  their  children  there  where  they  may  necessarily  converse 
with  wicked  persons  :  Exod.  xxxiv.  15,  '  Thou  shalt  not  take  of  their 
daughters   to   thy   sons,   lest   they  go   a-whoring   after   thejr  gods.' 
Instances  there  are  many  of  the  great  mischief  that  hath  come  by 
entering  into  these  durable  relations  with  wicked  men :  Gen.  vi.  2, 
'  The  sons  of  God  saw  the  daughters  of  men  that  they  were  fair  ;  and 
they  took  them  wives  of  all  which  they  chose.'     Men  in  the  visible- 
church  are  called  the  sons  of  God,  they  that  were  of  the  line  of  Seth ;. 
and  they  that  were  of  the  line  of  Cain  are  called  the  daughters  cl 
men  :  to  go  in  to  them,  because  they  are  fair,  or  they  are  noble,  or 
because  they  are  of  our  rank,  this  was  the  provoking  sin  that  helped 
to  bring  the  flood  upon  them.     So  Ps.  cvi.  35,  '  They  were  mingled 
among  the  heathen,  and  learned  their  works.'      Solomon  gave  an 
instance  that  he  was  corrupted  by  his  wives.     So  it  is  said  of  Jehoram, 
the  son  of  Jehoshaphat,  2  Kings  viii.   18,   '  That  he  walked  in  the 
way  of  the  kings  of  Israel,  as  did  the  house  of  Ahab  ;  for  the  daughter 
of  Ahab  was  his  wife,  and  he  did  evil  in  the  sight  of  the  Lord.'     In 
ecclesiastical  stories  we  read  of  Valence  the  emperor,  who  married 
with  an  Arian  lady,  and  so  was  ensnared  thereby,  and  became  a  cruel 
persecutor  of  the  catholics;   as  the  best  metals,  mixed  with  baser 
metals,  are  embased  thereby. 

3.  If  necessitated  to  keep  company  with  them,  because  of  our  dwell 
ings,  relations,  and  business,  let  us  not  comply  with  them  in  their 
sins:  Eph.  v.  11,  'Have  no  fellowship  with  the  unfruitful  works  of 
darkness,  but  rather  reprove  them/  We  may  freely  converse  with 
such  as  we  are  bound  to  by  the  laws  of  necessity,  but  we  must  con- 


182  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXXVI. 

verse  with  them  with  a  great  deal  of  caution,  that  we  may  not  be 
ensnared.  David  had  no  great  liking  to  his  companions,  yet  he  was 
forced  to  abide  with  them  in  the  deserts  :  Ps.  cxx.  5,  6,  '  Woe  is  me 
that  I  sojourn  in  Mesech,  that  I  dwell  in  the  tents  of  Kedar ;  my  soul 
hath  long  dwelt  with  him  that  hateth  peace.'  The  apostle  would  have 
the  wife  to  abide  with  the  husband,  1  Cor.  vii.  12,  and  servants  to 
abide  with  their  masters,  1  Peter  ii.  18,  and  children  with  their 
parents,  Eph.  vi.  1 ;  but  no  tie  of  that  kind  doth  bind  us  to  partake 
with  them  in  their  sins.  And  being  thus  necessitated  to  their  con 
verse,  we  ought  to  have  the  more  fear  and  caution.  And  thus  Joseph 
lived  in  Egypt  untainted,  and  Nehemiah  in  Ahasuerus's  court,  and 
Lot  in  Sodom,  and  Daniel  in  the  court  of  Persia ;  necessity  forced 
them  thither,  but  all  their  care  was  to  keep  themselves  unspotted  from 
the  world  in  the  places  where  they  lived. 

Secondly,  Why  they  that  would  keep  the  commandments  of  God 
are  to  do  so. 

1.  Because  it  is  hard  to  keep  familiarity  with  them,  and  avoid  and 
escape  the  contagion  of  their  example.  Example  in  general  hath  a 
great  force,  especially  evil  example ;  the  force  of  example  is  great. 
Why  ?  Seneca  gives  the  reason.  Homines  plus  oculis  credunt,  quam 
auribus,  because  an  example  strikes  more  upon  the  heart  than  a  bare 
word.  Man,  being  a  sociable  creature,  is  mightily  encouraged  to  do 
as  others  do,  especially  in  an  evil  example ;  for  we  are  more  susceptible 
of  evil  than  we  are  of  good.  Sickness  is  sooner  communicated  than 
health ;  we  easily  catch  a  disease  one  of  another,  but  those  that  are 
sound  do  not  communicate  health  to  the  diseased.  Or  rather,  to  take 
God's  own  expression,  that  sets  it  forth  thus,  by  touching  the  unclean 
the  man  became  unclean  under  the  lawT,  but  by  touching  the  clean  the 
man  was  not  purified.  The  conversation  of  the  wicked  hath  more 
power  to  corrupt  the  good,  than  the  conversation  of  the  virtuous  and 
holy  to  correct  the  lewd.  The  prophet  tells  us,  Isa.  vi.  5,  '  I  am  a 
man  of  unclean  lips,  and  I  dwell  in  the  midst  of  a  people  of  unclean 
lips/  We  soon  increase  our  pollution  by  living  among  them.  Jose- 
phus  relates  that  Agrippa  at  first  was  a  lover  of  virtue  and  of  his 
country,  that  he  stood  for  the  liberty  of  the  people  of  the  Jews ;  but 
by  conversing  with  Caligula  the  Roman  emperor,  being  intimate  and 
familiar  with  him,  learned  his  manners ;  and  as  he  affected  divine 
honours,  so  Agrippa  too,  and  God  smites  him  with  lice,  Acts  xii.  In 
infected  places  we  get  a  disease,  though  we  feel  it  not  presently ;  so 
secretly  our  hearts  are  tainted  by  example.  As  a  man  that  walks  in 
the  sun,  unawares  before  he  thinks  of  it  his  countenance  is  tanned,  so 
our  hearts  are  defiled :  Prov.  xxii.  24,  *  Make  no  friendship  with  an 
angry  man,  and  with  a  furious  man  thou  shalt  not  go.'  The  furies  of 
passion  are  so  uncomely  and  so  displeasing,  that  a  man  would  think 
that  he  should  not  take  infection  there,  that  the  sight  should  rather 
deter  than  invite  him ;  but  insensibly  we  learn  their  ways  when  we 
make  friendship  with  furious  and  angry  men ;  for  saith  Solomon,  in 
the  next  verse,  *  Lest  you  learn  his  ways,  and  get  a  snare  to  thy  soul/ 
Melancthon  saith,  By  converse  familiarly  with  the  wicked,  insensibly 
we  grow  wicked.  He  that  toucheth  pitch  is  defiled,  and  a  little  leaven 
leaveneth  the  whole  lump,  1  Cor.  v.  6. 


VER.  115.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  183 

2.  They  will  molest  and  disturb  us  in  the  exercise  of  godliness  by 
their  scoffs  and  persecutions ;  you  can  never  be  acceptable  to  them  if 
you  live  as  you  should.     Why  ?    For  you  will  upbraid  their  consciences 
by  your  lives,  dart  conviction  and  reproofs  into  them ;  as  Noah  con 
demned  the  world,  Heb.  xi.  7.     Christ  saith,  The  world  hates  me  be 
cause  I  testify  of  it  that  the  works  thereof  are  evil,  John  vii.  7.     You 
that  live  up  to  your  profession,  and  do  not  run  into  the  same  excess  of 
riot  with  others,  your  estrangement  of  course  revives  guilt  upon  their 
conscience,  and  therefore  not  to  follow  them  in  all  things  will  be  dis 
tasteful.     As  sore  eyes  cannot  endure  the  light,  so  they  cannot  endure 
you  if  you  are  faithful  to  God.    Diversity  of  humours  cannot  long  agree 
together.     You  must  either  be  like  them,  or  be  hated  by  them.     You 
must  either  jump  with  them  in  all  things,  or  expect  a  greater  trouble. 
Now  there  is  less  danger  in  the  flight  than  fight.     Now  a  total  with- 
drawment  is  better  than  a  partial  compliance. 

3.  They  will  seek  to  pervert  us  by  carnal  suggestions  and  counsels ; 
as  the  Psalmist  speaks,  Ps.  i.  1,  '  Blessed  is  the  man  that  walketh  not 
in  the  counsel  of  the  ungodly.'     Like  troublesome  flies,   they  will 
always  be  buzzing  about  us  to  take  share  and  lot  with  them,  and  impor 
tunate  suitors  will  prevail  at  length,  Prov.  i.  10-15,  the  enticings  of 
the  wicked  are  spoken  of :  '  My  son,  if  sinners  entice  thee,  consent 
thou  not ;  walk  thou  not  in  the  way  with  them  ;  refrain  thy  foot  from 
their  path/  &c. 

4.  Familiarity  with  them  will  be  a  blemish  and  scandal  upon  your 
good  name.     Every  man's  company  declares  what  he  is.     Birds  of  a 
sort  flock  together.     So  that,  if  they  rob  not  the  conscience,  they 
wound  the  reputation,  and  we  are  polluted  and  defiled  by  being  of  the 
same   society,  which  a   Christian  should  be  tender  of.      When  a 
scandalous  sin  breaketh  out   in  the  church,  the  blot  lies  upon  all. 
The  apostle  tells  us  in  Heb.  xii.  15,  '  When  any  root  of  bitterness 
springs  up,  thereby  many  are  defiled;'  many  are  defiled,  not  only 
by  the  contagion  of  the  example,  but  the  imputation  of  the  fault ; 
much  more  in  private  and  intimate  familiarity  doth  this  hold  good. 
A  carnal  man  delights  in  such  as  are  like  him,  and  run  with  him  in 
the  same  folly  and  sin.     But  when  a  man  is  changed,  he  will  change 
his  company  :  Ps.  cxix.  53,  '  I  am  a  companion  of  all  them  that  fear 
thee,  and  of  them  that  keep  thy  precepts.'     That  is  one  thing  David 
avoucheth  for  his  innocency.     One  wicked  man  falls  in  with  another, 
as  the  tenon  doth  into  the  mortise,  and  their  spirits  suit  frequently : 
Ps.  Ix.  18,  '  When  thou  sawest  a  thief,  then  thou  consentedst  with 
him,  and  hast  been  partaker  with  adulterers/     There  is  no  such  out 
ward  sign  to  discover  our  temper. 

5.  If  we  have  any  love  for  God,  and  zeal  for  his  glory,  their  com 
pany  must  needs  be  grievous  and  offensive  to  us ;  for  how  can  they 
that  love  God  delight  in  their  company  that  are  always  grieving  the 
Spirit  of  God  with  unsavoury  speeches  and  a  vain  conversation  ?  Ps. 
cxxxix.  ^21,  'Do  not  I  hate  them,  0  Lord,  that  hate  thee  ?  and  am 
not  I  grieved  with  those  that  rise  up  against  thee  ?     I  hate  them  with 
perfect  hatred  :  I  count  them  mine  enemies.'     So  2  Peter  ii.  8,  Lot's 
*  righteous  soul  was  grieved  from  day  to  day.'     It  is  not  only  said  his 
righteous  soul  was  vexed,  which  is  passive,  but  he  is  said  to  vex  him- 


184  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEE.  CXXVI. 

self  at  their  wickedness,  which  is  an  active  word.  Injuries  done  to 
God  should  touch  us  no  less  nearly  than  injuries  done  to  ourselves  ;  it 
will  be  a  continual  grief  and  vexation  of  heart  to  us.  Well,  then,  how 
can  their  company  be  acceptable  to  us,  unless  we  have  a  mind  to  vex 
and  bring  trouble  upon  ourselves  ? 

6.  Our  familiarity  with  them  may  be  a  means  to  harden  them  in  their 
sin,  and  our  withdrawing  a  means  to  humble  them  :  2  Thes.  iii.  6,  14, 

*  Withdraw  yourselves  from  every  brother  that  walketh  disorderly  : 
and  if  any  man  obey  not  our  word  by  this  epistle,  note  that  man,  and 
have  no  company  with  him,  that  he  may  be  ashamed.'     While  you 
company  freely  with  them,  you  seem  tacitly  to  approve  their   doing, 
and  make  them  more  obstinate  in  their  way.     An  alien  from  the  faith 
may  be  melted  with  kindness,  but  a  brother  that  walketh'  disorderly 
is  more  ashamed  if  you  withdraw  from  him,  whereas  otherwise  you 
seem  to  show  approbation.     He  that  biddeth  him  God-speed  is  par 
taker  of  his  evil  deeds,  2  John  10,  11,  as  he  seemeth  to  countenance 
them  in  their  damnable  errors  ;  but  now  when  a  man  lives  as  an  outcast 
from  God's  people,  this  may  work  upon  his  heart.    Society  with  God's 
children  is  not  only  a  duty,  but  a  privilege  ;  by  the  loss  of  this  privilege 
we  are  to  make  them  sensible  of  the  evil  course  wherein  they  are. 

7.  The  great  judgments  that  follow  evil  company  ;  therefore  we 
must  riot  voluntarily  cry  up  a  confederacy  with  them :  Rev.  xviii.  4, 

*  Come  out  of  her,  my  people,  that  ye  be  not  partakers  of  her  sins,  and 
that  ye  receive  not  of  her  plagues.'     In  conversing  with  the  wicked 
there  is  a  double  danger — infection  of  sin,  and  infliction  of  punish 
ment  :  Prov.  xiii.  20,  '  A  companion  of  fools  shall  be  destroyed  ;  not 
only  fools,   but  their   companions.'     Lot,  living  among  the  wicked 
Sodomites,  he  suffered  with  them.     You  know,  when  Sodom  was  as 
saulted,  Lot  was  taken  prisoner,  and  his  goods  plundered  as  theirs 
were,  Gen.  xiv.  12.     Jehoshaphat  being  associated  with  Ahab,  was  in 
danger  of  death,  1  Kings  xxii.  37.     The  heathens  were  sensible  that 
wicked  men  were  marked  out  for  vengeance.     The  Athenians  would 
not  wash  in  the  same  bath  with  the  persecutors  of  Socrates  ;  so  Polycarp 
would  not  go  into  the  same  bath  with  Cerinthus,  but  said,  The  enemy 
of  truth  is  here ;  let  us  depart  hence,  lest  the  bath  fall  down  upon  us.1 

Use  1.  Reproof  of  their  foolhardiness  that  rush  upon  evil  company, 
and  fear  nothing.  What !  are  your  hearts  so  good  that  you  think 
scorn  that  any  company  should  hurt  you  ?  Consider,  is  sin  grown 
less  dangerous  than  it  was  ?  or  are  we  come  to  such  a  height  of  perfec 
tion  as  to  be  above  temptation  to  sin  ?  Or  have  we  so  good  a  command 
of  ourselves  that  we  need  not  take  such  care  of  our  company  ?  that  we 
shall  do  well  enough  though  we  play  about  the  cockatrice's  hole,  and 
run  into  all  companies  and  societies  without  fear  ?  Good  David  here 
in  the  text  is  fain  to  proclaim,  '  Depart  from  me,  ye  workers  of  ini 
quity/  and  to  banish  them  out  of  his  company  :  and  David  exceeded 
us  in  holiness,  and  surely  we  live  in  more  wicked  days  than  he  did. 
See  how  it  succeeded  with  Peter  :  he  would  venture  into  the  high 
priest's  hall,  and  sit  with  the  company  there,  and  how  did  it  succeed 
with  him  ?  It  brought  him  to  a  denial  of  Christ.  Eve  was  bold  with 

1  Irensous  relates  this  of  the  apostle  John,  giving  Polycarp  as  his  authority  :  Adv. 
Hcer.  iii.  3. — ED. 


VER.  115.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  185 

the  serpent,  and  the  Virgin  Mary  shamefaced  with  an  angel,  Luke  i. 
29,  30  ;  and  you  know  how  it  fell  out  both  with  the  one  and  the 
other  :  one  was  a  means  to  ruin  all  mankind,  and  the  other  to  repair 
it.  What  is  the  matter  ?  Is  not  sin  the  same  as  it  was  ?  and  is  not 
human  nature  as  bad  as  ever  ?  What  spells  and  charms  have  we 
about  ourselves  that  the  people  of  God  had  not  heretofore  ?  Or  are  we 
more  fortified,  and  so  are  less  watchful  ?  Shall  we  be  running  still 
upon  the  pit's  brink,  and  show  how  far  we  can  go  and  not  fall  in  ? 
Are  all  those  cautions  out  of  date  that  bid  us  shun  the  occasions  of 
sin  ?  and  is  not  evil  company  one  of  the  chiefest  of  them  ?  Yet  some 
men  can  frolic  it  in  all  companies,  revel  and  dance,  run  to  plays,  and 
no  harm  they  think  of  all  this.  Solomon  says,  Prov.  iv.  14,  15, 
'Enter  not  into  the  path  of  the  wicked,  and  go  not  in  the  way  of  evil 
men  ;  avoid  it,  pass  not  by  it,  turn  from  it,  and  pass  away.'  See 
how  he  heaps  up  words.  Did  he  trifle  and  speak  needlessly  when 
with  such  earnestness  he  pressed  this,  that  we  would  be  careful  of  as 
sociating  with  wicked  men  ?  Surely  no ;  and  yet  men  are  for  all 
companies,  as  if  there  were  no  danger  to  their  souls. 

Use  2.  Let  us  be  persuaded  to  shake  off  the  society  of  the  wicked. 
Depart  from  them  that  depart  from  God,  and  would  draw  you  along 
with  them.  But  chiefly  should  we  shun  them,  because  bad  company 
is  the  pest  arid  bane  of  godliness.  Under  the  law,  a  man  that  had  a 
running  issue,  whoever  touched  him  was  unclean,  Lev.  xiv.  4.  And 
so  it  is  here ;  you  are  defiled  by  your  conversing  with  them.  Men 
of  different  humours,  spirits,  interests,  how  can  they  agree  ?  Either 
you  must  abate  somewhat  of  your  zeal,  or  you  can  never  suit  if  you 
enter  into  friendship  with  them.  You  cannot  deal  so  plainly  against 
their  sins,  or  gainsay  them  in  their  evil  practices,  but  will  wax  cold 
by  little  and  little.  If  you  be  in  defiance  with  them,  that  will  make 
way  for  calumny  and  all  manner  of  injuries;  therefore  it  is  better 
never  to  begin  acquaintance  with  them.  Consider,  again,  if  none  of 
this  fall  out,  yet  their  company  will  be  a  loss  to  you ;  as  it  spendeth 
time  arid  hindereth  you  of  many  opportunities  of  religious  privacy 
and  service  of  God ;  so,  if  no  other  way  you  had  a  loss  by  them,  they 
would  not  better  you  ;  for  they  are  not  company  you  expect  to  gain  by. 
As  he  said,  Nunquam  ad  te  accedo,  quin  doctior  recedam,  quin 
sanctior — I  never  came  to  such  an  one  but  I  went  away  more  learned 
and  holy.  Certainly  a  Christian  should  choose  such  for  his  company 
that  he  might  say,  I  go  away  more  holy,  otherwise  his  company  would 
be  a  loss  to  us. 

But  to  pursue  this  argument  a  little  further.     To  give  some  obser 
vations,  then  some  helps  against  evil  company. 
First,  Some  observations. 

1.  This  concerns  young  ones  especially,  and  those  that  are  not  in  a 
radicated  state  of  grace.  Indeed,  it  concerns  all.  If  you  mean  to 
keep  close  to  God,  you  must  divorce  your  heart  from  them  ;  but  chiefly 
young  ones,  that  are  either  left  to  choose,  or  not  confirmed  in  their 
choice,  for  the  danger  to  them  is  greater  than  to  others.  Oh  !  how 
many  young  ones  are  undone  by  carnal  company !  Eusebius  tells  us 
of  a  young  man  that  was  bred  up  under  St  John,  who  by  evil  company 
was  not  only  drawn  to  be  a  robber,  but  the  prince  and  captain  of 


186  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXXVI. 

robbers  (Euseb.  lib.  iii.  c.  23),  until  St  John  went  out  and  met  him. 
And  Gregory  the  Great  speaks  of  Gordiana,  his  own  aunt,  that  was 
drawn  off  from  the  love  of  God,  and  the  strictness  of  a  holy  life,  after 
the  death  of  her  two  sisters,  Tharsylla  and  jEmiliana,  by  her  com 
panions.  And  St  Augustine,  lib.  viii.  Confess,  cap.  8,  Quern  fructum 
liabui  miser  aliquando  in  us  quce  mine  recolligens  erubesco,  maxime 
in  illofurto,  in  quo  ipsumfurtum  amavi,  niliil  aliud  ;  et  ipsum  esset 
niliil,  et  ego  eo  misertor,  et  tamen  solus  id  non  fecissem.  Sic  recordor 
animum  tune  meum,  solus  omnino  id  non  fecissem,  ergo  amavi  consor 
tium  eorum  cum  quibus  id  fed — 0  Lord,  what  cause  have  I  to  be 
ashamed  when  I  remember  these  things,  especially  the  theft,  where  I 
loved  the  theft  for  the  theft's  sake  !  What  was  the  gain  but  a  few 
apples  stolen  ?  And  yet,  saith  he,  I  had  never  done  it  if  I  had  been 
alone ;  oh !  it  was  the  company  of  them  that  drew  me  to  this  theft. 
Then  afterwards,  It  was  my  companions  drew  me  to  this.  0  nimis 
iniqua  amicitia  !  seductio  mentis  investigabilis — 0  cruel  friendship  ! 
when  they  said,  Come,  let  us  go  and  do  it ;  I  was  ashamed  not  to  be 
shameless,  and  as  evil  as  they.  When,  then,  in  this  waxen  age,  youth 
are  above  all  to  avoid  the  company  of  evil-doers. 

2.  We  must  not  only  take  heed  that  we  be  not  inured  to  evil,  but 
also  that  we  be  not  deadened  to  that  which  is  good.  Example  may 
corrupt  us  either  way.  Neglect  of  God  will  keep  us  out  of  heaven,  as 
well  as  profaneness.  Now,  alas  !  how  easily  are  we  leavened  with 
deadness  and  formality  by  our  company  !  Frequent  society  with  dead- 
hearted  formalists,  or  persons  merely  civil  and  moral,  whose  conference 
is  empty,  unsavoury,  barren,  may  much  divert  our  hearts  from  keaven, 
and  do  us  a  great  deal  of  mischief.  The  apostle  tells  us,  Heb.  x.  24, 
we  should  '  consider  one  another  to  provoke  unto  love  and  to  good 
works/  Our  dulness  and  backwardness  is  such  that  we  need  the 
most  powerful  helps. 

^  3.  ^Of  all  evil  company,  the  company  of  seducers,  those  that  cause 
divisions  and  offences  in  the  church,  and  broach  novel  opinions,  ought 
to  be  avoided :  Eom.  xvi.  17,  '  Mark  them  which  cause  divisions  and 
offences,  contrary  to  the  doctrine  which  ye  have  learned,  and  avoid 
them ;'  2  John  10,  'If  any  man  bring  another  doctrine,  receive  him 
not  into  your  house,  neither  bid  him  God-speed ;'  1  Tim.  vi.  5,  and 
men  that  are  given  to  perverse  disputings,  '  from  such  withdraw  thy 
self.'  Error  is  more  catching  than  vice,  and  more  spreading.  It  is 
more  catching,  the  face  of  it  being  represented  with  the  loveliness  of 
some  pretence  or  other ;  whereas  foul  actions  are  found  hateful  and 
more  contrary  to  natural  conscience  ;  and  besides,  it  is  more  spreading. 
Vice  is  like  a  duel ;  it  killeth  but  one.  Error  is  like  a  war  that 
destroys  many  at  once ;  therefore  we  should  not  be  familiar  with  these. 
Erroneous  apprehensions  in  religion  carry  a  marvellous  compliance 
with  a  man's  natural  thoughts. 

4.  It  is  not  enough  to  avoid  bad  company,  but  we  must  choose  that 
which  is  good.  A  man  must  have  friends ;  the  use  of  them  in  this 
life  is  very  great.  Man.  is  a  sociable  creature,  as  Aristotle  speaks ; 
company  and  friendship  we  must  have.  Christ  himself  was  not  with 
out  his  peculiar  friends ;  there  was  Peter,  James,  and  John,  that  were 
the  flower  of  the  apostles,  that  were  conscious  to  his  transfiguration 


VEE.  115.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  187 

and  his  agonies.  We  must  have  our  friends  and  our  society,  so  that 
the  advantage  of  good  company  is  very  great :  Prov.  xiii.  20,  '  He 
that  walketh  with  wise  men  shall  be  wise ;'  their  example  will  allure 
and  excite  to  holy  emulation,  and  their  counsel  and  instruction  will  he 
a  great  help  in  the  business  of  religion.  Even  Saul,  being  among  the 
prophets,  had  his  raptures,  1  Sam.  xix.  23.  So  living  in  the  company 
of  godly  men,  and  seeing,  hearing,  and  conferring  with  them  of  good 
things,  leaveth  some  impression. 

Secondly,  Some  helps  and  considerations. 

1.  Consider  what  is  our  chiefest  good.     This  is  principium  univer- 
salissimum.     The  last  end  or  chiefest  good  is  the  principle  which  doth 
influence  all  our  actions.     And  certainly,  if  men  fix  their  last  end 
aright,  it  will  have  an  influence  upon  all  they  do ;  our  company,  our 
business,  our  recreation,  our  holy  duties.     Well,  now,  consider  what 
is  your  chiefest  good  and  your  last  end.     If  pleasure  were  our  chiefest 
good,  and  if  we  had  nothing  else  to  do  but  to  pass  away  the  time,  and 
to  get  rid  of  melancholy,  there  would  need  no  great  care  in  the  choice 
of  our  company.     But  enjoying  the  blessed  God,  that  is  our  last  end 
and  chiefest  good:  everything  must  be  answerable  to  help  you  to 
heaven. 

2.  A  sincere  resolution  to  walk  with  God,  to  keep  in  with  God  firmly 
set ;  for  here  David  saith,  '  Depart  from  me,  ye  evil-doers ;  for  I  will 
keep  the  commandments  of  my  God.'     His  resolution  was  set,  there 
fore  he  shakes  them  off.     When  Kuth's  resolution  was  set,  Naomi  left 
off  persuading.     When  Paul's  company  saw  his  resolution,  that  he 
went  bound  in  the  spirit,  they  ceased,  saying,  '  The  will  of  the  Lord 
be  done/  Acts  xxi.  14.     So  this  will  fortify  against  all  suggestion ; 
they  will  be  discouraged  from  haunting  you  more  when  you   are 
resolved. 

3.  Our  company  will  be  a  great  part  of  our  happiness  in  heaven : 
Heb.  xii.  22,  '  We  are  come  to  the  heavenly  Jerusalem,  and  to  an 
innumerable  company  of  angels,  to  the  general  assembly  and  church 
of  the  first-born,  which  are  written  in  heaven ;'  and  Mat.  viii.  11, 
'  They  shall  sit  down  with  Abraham,  and  Isaac,  and  Jacob,  in  the 
kingdom  of  heaven.'     Company  will  be  a  great  part  of  our  happiness, 
and  for  the  present  it  will  be  a  great  hindrance  or  a  great  further 
ance  ;  therefore,  when  we  think  of  this,  it  will  make  us  choose  those 
with  whom  we  shall  converse  to  all  eternity,  that  we  may  say,  Now  I 
shall  change  places,  but  not  my  company ;  I  shall  but  go  from  saints 
to  saints. 

4.  Bad  company  can  yield  you  no  comfort  hereafter  when  trouble  of 
conscience  comes.     When  your  heart  begins  to  wound  you,  they  cannot 
or  will  not  help :  Mat.  xxvii.  4,  '  What  is  that  to  us  ?  see  thou  to  that/ 
If  they  draw  you  to  inconvenience,  when  it  comes  upon  you  they  will 
yield  you  no  relief  or  comfort.     Well,  he  that  considers  he  is  to  die 
and  give  an  account,  will  not  displease  God  to  please  men. 


188  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEB.  CXXVII. 


SERMON  CXXVII. 

Uphold  me  according  unto  thy  ivord,  that  I  may  live  ;  and  let  me  not 
be  ashamed  of  my  hope. — VER.  116. 

IN  the  former  verse,  David  had  bound  himself  by  a  firm  resolution  to 
keep  the  commandments  of  his  God.  Now  presently  he  turneth  to 
prayer,  '  Lord,  uphold  me  according  to  thy  word,  that  I  may  live ; 
and  let  me  not  be  ashamed  of  my  hope.'  Our  purposes  and  resolutions 
will  not  hold  out  without  God's  confirming  grace.  David,  that  would 
have  the  wicked  depart  from  him  there,  would  have  God  draw  nigh 
to  him  here.  Both  are  necessary  if  we  would  keep  the  commands. 
The  company  of  the  wicked,  as  a  great  impediment,  must  be  removed : 
'  Depart  from  me,  ye  evil-doers  ;'  and  then  the  assistance  of  God  must 
be  entreated  :  '  Uphold  me  according  unto  thy  word/  &c.  Two  things 
he  begs  of  God  in  this  verse : — 

1.  Confirmation  in  waiting. 

2.  The  full  and  final  accomplishment  of  his  hope. 
In  the  first  request  there  is — 

1.  The  blessing  prayed  for,  confirmation  or  sustentation,  uphold 
me. 

2.  The  ground  or  warrant  of  asking,  according  unto  thy  word, 
Some  translations  have  it,  '  by  thy  word/  making  it  the  instrument  of 
his  support. 

3.  To  what  end,  that  I  might  live. 

In  the  second  request  an  argument  is  intimated,  that  frustration  or 
disappointment  of  his  hope  would  bring  shame. 

I  begin  with  the  first,  the  blessing  prayed  for,  sustentation  and 
support,  '  Uphold  me/  David  speaketh  not  this  with  respect  to  his 
outward  man,  as  if  God  should  keep  him  alive,  maugre  the  rage  of 
his  enemies.  Indeed,  God  doth  uphold  his  creatures  in  that  sense,  by 
his  outward  providence  and  divine  maintenance.  But  he  speaketh 
this  of  his  inward  man,  the  support  of  the  soul,  that  God  would  sup 
port  him  in  a  way  of  faith  and  comfort.  In  ver.  114,  '  Thou  art  my 
hiding-place  and  my  shield :  I  hope  in  thy  word.'  Now,  Lord,  that 
I  might  live,  keep  up  the  life  of  this  hope.  And  ver.  115,  '  I  will 
keep  the  commandments  of  my  God.'  And  now  he  desires  God  would 
support  him  in  a  way  of  courage  and  obedience.  Hence  observe — 

Doct.  Sustaining  grace  is  necessary  to  the  saints.  Confirmation  in 
a  state  of  grace  is  as  necessary  to  them  as  conversion  to  it. 

There  is  a  twofold  grace  which  God  gives — habitual  and  actual ; 
either  he  works  upon  us  per  modum  habitus,  infusing  grace,  perma- 
nentis,  or  else  per  modum  auxilii  transientis. 

First,  There  is  habitual  grace,  called  in  scripture  the  new  heart  and 
new  spirit,  Ezek.  xxxvi.  26 ;  and  by  St  John  called  a7rep/j,a  avrov, 
1  John  iii.  9.  the  abiding  seed ;  and  by  St  Paul,  2  Cor.  v.  17,  Kaivri 
KT'LO-IS,  the  new  creature.  All  these  expressions  intend  those  fixed 
and  permanent  habits  which  are  the  principles  of  holy  actions. 

Secondly,  There  is  actual  grace,  for  the  former  is  not  enough  to 
carry  us  through  all  duties,  and  to  uphold  us  in  all  the  varieties  of 


VER.  116.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  189 

this  mortal  condition.  Why?  Quia  non  totaliter  sanat — hahitual 
grace  works  not  a  total,  but  only  a  partial  cure.  Though  there  be 
the  new  creature  wrought,  though  there  be  an  abiding  seed,  yet  there 
is  something  of  sin,  and  something  of  the  flesh  still  left  in  the  soul. 
Therefore  we  want  perpetual  supplies  of  actual  grace.  Now  this  kind 
of  grace  serveth  for  divers  uses. 

1.  To  direct  us  in  the  exercise  of  grace  formerly  received.     A  ship 
already  rigged  needs  a  pilot ;  so,  although  God  hath  renewed  the  heart, 
yet  there  needs  direction  how  to  exercise  and  put  forth  that  grace  that 
we  have  received ;  therefore  David,  Ps.  cxix.  5,  '  Oh,  that  my  ways 
were  directed  to  keep  thy  statutes ;'  and  2  Thes.  iii.  5,  '  The  Lord 
direct  your  hearts  into  the  love  of  God/  &c.     In  the  exercise  of  every 
grace  we  need  new  directions  from  God. 

2.  To  excite  and  quicken  the  habits  of  grace.     This  is  like  blowing 
up  the  sparks  of  fire  that  are  buried  under  the  ashes.     There  needs 
continual  excitation,  which  is  often  sought  by  the  saints :  '  Quicken 
me,  0  Lord,  according  to  thy  word.'     And  draw  me,  saith  the  spouse, 
Cant.  i.  4. 

3.  This  actual  grace  serves  for  this  use,  to  strengthen  them  in  the 
operation,  and  to  facilitate  the  work.     This  is  that  which  is  expressed 
Ps.  cxix.  32,  '  When  thou  shalt  enlarge  my  heart ;'  that  when  the 
inclination  of  the  renewed  heart  to   good  things   is   powerfully  set 
a-work,  this  is  like  filling  the  sails  with  a  good  wind,  which  carries  on 
the  ship  merrily  to  its  port  and  haven. 

4.  Use  it  to  sustain,  protect,  and  defend  the  grace  that  we  have 
against  the  assaults  and  temptations  and  varieties  and  casualties  of  the 
present  life.     And  this  is  that  which  is  meant  here,  '  Uphold  me, 
Lord,  that  I  may  live.'    Now  this  use  of  God's  actual  assistance  by 
way  of  sustentation  and  protection  is  necessary  for  us  upon  three 
grounds — (1.)  Because  of  the  natural  changeableness  of  our  spirits. 
(2.)  Because  of  daily  assaults  from  Satan.     (3.)  Because  of  the  great 
impression  which  our  temporal  condition  makes  upon  us. 

[1.]  Because  of  the  natural  changeableness  of  our  spirits.  Man  of 
himself  is  an  unstable  creature.  Take  him  at  the  best,  he  is  but  a 
creature,  and  to  be  a  creature  and  to  be  mutable  is  all  one.  God 
found  no  stability  in  the  angels;  they  are  creatures,  and  therefore 
they  might  sin.  God  only  is  impeccable  ;  and  why  ?  Quia  Deus  est, 
because  he  is  God.  But  all  creatures  may  fail ;  angels  fell,  and  Adam 
fell  in  innocency ;  and  how  can  we  hope  to  stand  unless  God  uphold 
us  ?  The  best  of  God's  children  are  often  troubled  with  fits  of  unbe 
lief  and  decays  of  love ;  their  faith  and  love  are  not  always  at  one  stay 
and  tenor,  but  sometimes  more  and  sometimes  less.  David  felt  the 
waverings,  and  was  afraid  of  himself;  therefore  saith  to  God,  '  Uphold 
m.e,  that  I  may  live.'  And  so  all  that  have  any  spiritual  experience 
see  that  without  continual  grace  they  cannot  live,  and  keep  body  and 
soul  together.  They  find  that  often  purposes  and  resolutions  are  upon 
them  to  those  things  that  are  good,  but  within  a  while  their  hearts 
sink  again.  Such  is  the  inconstancy  and  uncertainty  of  their  affec 
tions  ;  now,  they  hope,  anon  they  fear  ;  now  a  great  flush  of  affections, 
anon  dead  again ;  now  humble,  anon  proud ;  now  meek,  anon  pas 
sionate  ;  now  confident,  then  full  of  fears  and  anguish ;  like  men  sick 


190  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXXVII. 

of  an  ague,  sometimes  well  and  sometimes  ill.  What  a  Proteus 
would  even  a  good  man  seem,  if  all  his  affections  and  passions  were 
visible  and  liable  to  the  notice  of  the  world !  None  differ  so  much 
from  them  as  they  seem  to  differ  from  themselves.  Sometimes  they 
are  like  trees  laden  with  fruit,  at  another  time  they  are  like  trees  in 
the  winter,  which,  though  they  seem  to  have  life  in  the  root,  yet  to 
appearance  they  differ  little  from  those  that  are  stark  dead.  Nay,  in 
those  very  particular  graces  for  which  they  are  eminent,  how  have  they 
failed !  Abraham,  that  was  the  father  of  the  faithful,  so  eminent  for 
faith,  yet  in  Abimelech's  country  he  discovered  much  carnal  fear,  Gen. 
xx.  Moses,  that  was  the  meekest  man  upon  earth,  yet  in  what  a 
froward  passion  was  he  when  he  struck  the  rock  twice,  Num.  xx.  10, 
11,  '  And  he  spake  unadvisedly  with  his  lips/  Ps.  cvi.  33,  which  God 
took  so  heinously,  that  he  only  gave  him  a  sight  of  Canaan,  and  would 
not  permit  him  to  enter.  Peter  is  noted  to  have  the  greatest  fervency 
and  zeal  of  all  the  apostles  (you  know  he  had  so  much  courage  that 
he  ventures  against  a  band  of  men  that  came  to  attack  Christ),  and 
yet  how  was  he  surprised  with  cowardice  and  sinful  fear  at  a  damsel's 
question  !  And  therefore  we  need  this  sustaining  grace,  and  to  go  to 
God :  '  Lord,  uphold  me.'  The  wards  of  the  lock  are  held  up  only 
while  the  key  is  turned,  so  God  must  uphold  us  or  we  fall.  Or  let 
me  express  it  thus :  As  meteors  are  kept  up  in  the  air  while  the  sun 
stays,  that  which  first  drew  them  up  must  keep  them  up,  or  else  they 
fall  to  the  ground  ;  so  we  sink  presently  when  this  sustaining  grace  is 
withdrawn.  Or  as  Moses,  when  he  was  but  a  while  in  the  mount  with 
God,  how  soon  the  people  fell  to  idolatry !  So  if  God  be  but  away  we 
shall  be  found  as  unstable  as  water. 

[2.]  Because  of  the  daily  assaults  of  Satan.  When  a  poor  soul  is 
gotten  out  of  his  hands,  he  pursues  him  with  continual  malice,  1  Peter 
v.  8 ;  no  less  doth  he  aim  at  than  the  utter  destruction  of  our  souls, 
and  wrestles  to  recover  the  prey,  to  plunge  us  in  that  estate  of  misery 
wherein  himself  lies;  therefore  we  must  be  defended  and  protected 
every  day.  When  cities  are  besieged,  they  are  not  left  to  their  ordi 
nary  strength  and  standing  provision,  but  fresh  supplies  of  men  and 
ammunition  are  sent  to  their  relief ;  so  God  deals  with  us.  As  we  are 
unstable  creatures,  we  need  the  continual  assistance  of  God,  for  all 
depends  on  him,  in  esse,  conservare,  and  operari.  But  here  is  another 
consideration  to  help  to  uphold  us  under  assault.  When  the  disciples 
were  tossed  to  and  fro,  and  shaken  with  sundry  temptations,  then 
Christ  prays  than  their  faith  may  not  fail,  begs  further  assistance, 
Luke  xx.  31 ;  so  when  Paul  was  buffeted  by  Satan,  God  makes  him 
a  promise  of  additional  grace :  2  Cor.  xii.  9,  '  My  grace  is  sufficient 
for  thee.'  We  need  further  help  from  God,  that  we  may  stand  against 
his  batteries  and  assaults. 

[3.]  Because  of  the  great  impression  which  our  temporal  condition 
makes  upon  us.  We  are  now  happy,  anon  afflicted.  Now,  as  unequal 
uncertain  weather  doth  afflict  the  body,  so  do  our  various  conditions 
distemper  the  soul.  To  abound  and  to  be  abased,  to  be  up  and  to  be 
down,  to  carry  an  equal  hand  in  unequal  conditions,  is  very  hard,  and 
will  call  for  the  supporting  strength  of  God's  Spirit.  So  the  apostle, 
Phil.  iv.  12, 13,  '  I  know  how  to  be  abased,  and  how  to  abound ;  every 


VER.  116.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  191 

where  and  in  all  things  I  am  instructed  both  to  bo  full  and  to  be 
hungry,  both  to  abound  and  to  suffer  need :  I  can  do  all  things  through 
Christ  which  strengtheneth  me.'  From  that  place  let  me  observe 
something. 

(1.)  That  we  are  subject  to  change  of  conditions  in  outward  things ; 
sometimes  in  credit,  sometimes  in  disgrace;  sometimes  rich,  some 
times  poor ;  cut  short  by  the  providence  of  God ;  sometimes  sick, 
sometimes  in  health  ;  sometimes  enjoy  all  things  comfortably,  at  other 
times  reduced  to  great  necessity.  Now  it  is  very  hard  to  go  through 
all  these  conditions,  not  to  be  dejected  on  the  one  side  or  puffed  up  on 
the  other. 

(2.)  Observe  again  from  that  place,  either  of  these  conditions  have 
their  snares,  so  that  we  need  all  the  grace  that  possibly  we  can  get  to 
avoid  them.  Some  think  that  snares  and  temptations  lie  but  on  one 
side,  namely,  they  think  it  is  easy  to  be  rich,  and  to  maintain  hope 
and  comfort  in  God  then ;  but  it  is  hard  to  be  poor,  and  to  be  desti 
tute  of  all  things.  When  they  have  nothing  to  live  upon,  they  cannot 
see  how  they  should  live  by  faith,  or  keep  from  murmurings,  repinings, 
or  uncomely  dejections  and  sinkings  of  heart.  On  the  other  side, 
some  think  it  easy  to  be  poor  and  religious ;  but  how  to  keep  a  good 
conscience  in  a  full  estate,  where  there  is  so  rough  to  draw  them  from 
God,  to  keep  down  pride  and  security,  and  to  live  under  a  lively  sense 
of  the  comforts  of  the  other  world,  to  do  this  in  the  midst  of  opulency, 
this  is  hard.  There  are  indeed  temptations  on  both  hands. 

(3.)  Observe,  again,  some  that  have  held  well  in  one  condition  have 
failed  in  another.  One  sort  of  temptations  have  a  greater  force  upon 
some  spirits  than  others  have.  When  God  hath  kept  men  low,  they  have 
been  modest  and  humble ;  but  when  they  have  been  exalted,  then  they 
have  showed  themselves,  their  pride,  their  disdain,  their  forgetfulness 
of  God,  their  mindlessness  of  the  interest  of  Christ.  On  the  other  hand, 
others  have  carried  it  well  in  prosperity,  yet  when  the  bleak  winds  of 
adversity  are  let  loose  upon  them,  they  are  withered  and  dried  up. 
Some  cannot  encounter  terrors,  others  blandishments.  As  the  prophet 
saith  of  Ephraim,  he  is  a  cake  not  turned,  that  is,  baked  only  of  the 
one  side,  very  dough  on  the  other ;  so  it  is  with  many  men ;  on  one 
side  of  providence  they  seem  to  do  well,  but  when  God  puts  them  in 
another  condition  they  have  foully  miscarried.  1  Kings  xiii.  the 
young  prophet  that  could  thunder  out  judgment  against  the  king, 
when  the  old  prophet  enticed  him,  he  is  gone. 

(4.)  Nay,  and  which  is  more,  to  have  these  conditions  to  succeed 
one  another  makes  the  temptation  the  greater.  To  be  cast  down, 
after  that  we  have  got  on  the  top  of  the  wheel,  and  have  tasted  of  the 
world's  happiness,  is  the  greater  trial.  And  so  on  the  other  side,  to 
be  lifted  up  after  extreme  misery;  sudden  changes  affect  us  more. 
Now,  to  possess  things  without  love,  or  lose  them  without  grief  ;  to 
be  temperate  and  sober  in  the  enjoyment  of  worldly  happiness,  or  to 
be  meek  and  patient  in  the  loss  of  it ;  or  to  exercise  a  Christian  mode 
ration  as  to  all  these  dispensations ;  it  is  a  very  hard  thing  to  keep  the 
heart  steady  and  right  with  God ;  and  therefore  we  need  the  influence 
of  God's  special  grace,  as  the  apostle  presently  adds,  '  I  can  do  all 
things  through  Christ  that  strengthens  me.' 


192  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEE.  CXXVII. 

Use.  To  press  us  to  look  after  this  upholding  and  sustaining  grace, 
that  as  we  come  to  God,  so  we  may  keep  with  God.  In  some  cases 
perseverance  is  more  difficult  than  conversion ;  it  is  a  harder  thing  to 
persevere  than  to  be  converted  at  first.  In  the  first  conversion  we 
are  mainly  passive,  if  not  altogether,  but  in  perseverance  active.  It 
is  God  that  plants  us  into  Christ,  but  when  we  are  in  Christ  we  ought 
to  walk  in  him.  As  an  infant  in  the  mother's  womb  before  it  is  born 
lives  by  the  life  of  the  mother,  and  is  fed  and  grows  by  the  mother's 
feeding,  without  any  concurrence  of  its  own ;  but  when  born,  indeed 
it  is  suckled  by  the  mother  still,  but  the  child  sucks  itself,  and  applies 
nourishment  to  itself ;  and  the  more  it  grows,  the  more  the  care  of  its 
life  is  devolved  upon  itself;  so  the  first  conversion  is  chiefly  God's 
work,  and  when  converted  we  cannot  persevere  without  his  help,  but 
the  care  of  the  spiritual  life  is  more  devolved  upon  us  than  before. 
God  doth  give  perseverance  as  well  as  conversion :  2  Peter  i.  5,  'We 
are  kept  by  the  power  of  God  through  faith  unto  salvation ; '  but  so 
that  more  is  required  to  be  done  by  us  when  converted  than  in  con 
version  itself.  Eph.  ii.  10,  the  apostle  tells  us  that  we  *  are  his 
workmanship,  created  in  Christ  Jesus  unto  good  works ;'  there  is  an 
action  required  of  us.  What  is  conversion  ?  A  consent  to  the  terms 
of  the  gospel  convenant,  that  is  the  great  act  of  conversion  on  our  part. 
But  now  perseverance  is  the  fulfilling  of  the  duty  of  this  covenant. 
Now  it  is  more  easy  to  consent  to  the  terms  than  to  make  them  good. 
As  in  the  matrimonial  contract,  the  promise  of  the  duties  proper  to 
that  relation  is  more  easy  than  the  performance  ;  so  the  consenting  to 
God's  covenant,  all  the  business  is  to  make  it  good,  because  of  our 
unstable  nature,  manifold  temptations,  and  great  discouragements 
in  the  way  of  holiness.  Certainly,  to  keep  in  the  life  of  grace  in  the 
soul  is  a  very  hard  thing.  The  Israelites,  after  they  were  brought  to 
consent  to  receive  Moses  for  their  captain  to  lead  them  to  Canaan,  yet 
when  they  came  out  of  Egypt,  and  had  trial  of  the  difficulties  of  the 
way,  and  were  exposed  to  so  many  dangers,  they  were  ever  and  anon 
desiring  to  return.  So  it  is  with  us  ;  it  is  hard  to  hold  out  against 
all  assaults ;  many  things  will  be  interposing,  and  breaking  your  reso 
lutions,  and  taking  you  off  from  God.  The  flesh  will  be  interposing, 
so  that  you  must  often  say,  as  Kom.  v.  12,  '  We  are  not  debtors  to  the 
flesh,  to  live  after  the  flesh/  to  fulfil  it  in  the  lusts  whereof.  And  the 
world  will  be  threatening,  and  you  must  say  as  they,  Dan.  iii.  16;  *  We 
are  not  careful  to  answer  thee  in  this  matter/  Dangers  will  grow 
upon  us  and  increase,  and  then  we  must  say,  as  Esth.  iv.  16,  'If  we 
perish,  we  perish.'  Friends  will  be  soliciting,  and  you  must  say,  as 
Paul,  Acts  xxi.  13,  'What  mean  you  to  break  my  heart?  I  am 
ready  to  die  for  Christ ;'  or  as  Christ  said  to  his  mother,  John  ii.  4, 
'  Woman,  what  have  I  to  do  with  thee  ?  '  '  Must  I  not  be  about  my 
Father's  business  ? '  Seducers  will  be  persuading,  and  we  must  be 
ready  to  say,  as  Acts  iv.  19,  '  Whether  it  be  right  in  the  sight  of  God 
to  hearken  unto  you  more  than  unto  God,  judge  ye/  JSTay,  God 
himself  will  seem  to  discourage  us,  and  to  be  against  us ;  and  you 
must  even  say  to  God,  as  Job  xiii.  15,  '  Though  thou  slay  me,  yet  will 
I  put  my  trust  in  thee/  To  keep  up  this  life  in  this  vigour  of  faith 
and  this  courage  of  obedience  in  the  midst  of  all  these  interposings,  is 


VER.  116.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  193 

a  very  difficult,  hard  work.     What  then  ?  Therefore  go  to  God :  '  Lord, 
uphold  me,  that  I  may  live.' 

1.  Ask  it  of  God  earnestly,  because  of  your  necessities.     Secondly, 
In  faith,  because  of  his  all-sufficiency.     First,  earnestly,  because  of 
your  necessities.     Without  God's  upholding  a  man,  he  hath  within 
himself  no  power  to  withstand  any  the  least  temptation  or  occasion 
unto  sin.     There  is  no  evil  so  foul,  nor  sin  so  grievous,  but  there  is  a 
possibility  that  we  may  fall  into  it.     Ps.  xix.  13,  David  saith,  *  Keep 
back  thy  servant  from  presumptuous  sins.'     Mark  the  expression, 
'  keep  back ;'  it  implies  that  he  felt  an  inclination  and  readiness  in 
his  heart,  and  therefore  desires  God  to  hold  the  bridle  of  grace  the 
more  hard  upon  him :  Lord,  keep  back  thy  servant.     When  Satan 
disguiseth  a  gross  sin  with  a  plausible  and  tempting  appearance,  and 
when  he  bribes  the  flesh  with  some  pleasure  or  advantage,  oh !  how 
soon  is  lust  set  agog  and  the  heart  overborne  by  the  violence  of  its  own 
affections !   and  how  soon  do  we  faint  and  are  discouraged  when  we 
are  exercised  variously  with  divers  assaults  on  this  hand  and  that ! 
Secondly,  In  faith,  because  of  God's  all-sufficiency :  1  Peter  v.  10, 
'  The  God  of  all  grace  make  you  perfect,  establish,  strengthen,  settle  you.' 
Observe  the  title  that  he  gives  to  God,  '  The  God  of  all  grace ;'  it  notes 
that  he  hath  good  store,  and  hath  a  gracious  inclination  to  give  it.    And 
then  he  reckons  up  the  several  kinds  of  graces.    What  would  you  have  ? 
Would  you  keep  that  which  you  have  already  attained  to?     The 
Lord  establish  you.     Would  you  increase  what  you  have  ?     The  Lord 
perfect  you.     Would  you  act  what  you  have  with  life  and  vigour,  and 
grow  more  resolute  ?     The  Lord  strengthen  you.     Would  you  grow 
more  resolute  against  difficulty  ?    The  Lord  settle  you.    So  the  apostle, 
2  Thes.  ii.  17,  '  The  God  of  all  grace  comfort  your  hearts,  and  estab 
lish  you  in  every  good  word  and  work.'     There  is  an  all-sufficiency  in 
God  to  help  you,  and  carry  you  through  all  trials  and  all  your  diffi 
culties.     Therefore  ask  it  of  God. 

2.  Do  not  forfeit  this  assisting  grace  by  presumptuous  sins.     God 
withdraws  his  protection  and  defence  when  we  provoke  him  :  Isa.  lii. 
2,  *  Your  sins  have  separated  between  you  and  your  God,  and  made 
him  hide  his  face  from  you ;'  and  Hosea  v.  15,  '  Now  I  will  go  to  my 
own  place,'  I  will  leave  them  to  themselves,  '  till  they  acknowledge 
their  iniquity.'     David  prays  for  this  after  he  had  fallen  foully  :  Ps. 
li.  12,  '  Lord,  uphold  me  with  thy  free  Spirit.'    He  had  lost  his  strength 
in  God,  his  largeness  of  love  ;  he  wanted  the  assistances  of  God's  grace  ; 
he  had  been  tampering  with  forbidden  fruit :   Lord,   come  again ; 
1  Lord,  uphold  me  with  thy  free  Spirit.' 

3.  Do  not  expose  yourselves  to  temptation,  for  you  are  weak  and 
cannot  stand  without  confirming  grace,  which  is  not  at  your  beck,  not 
given  out  according  to  your  pleasure,  but  he  giveth  us  '  to  will  and  to 
do/  Kara  ev&oKiav,  '  according  to  his  good  pleasure/  Phil.   ii.   12. 
Christians !  when  we  will  try  mysteries,  and  run  into  the  mouth  of 
danger,  and  be  dealing  with  them  that  are  apt  to  seduce  us  into  evil, 
God  will  no  more  show  the  power  of  his  grace  than  Christ  would  show 
a  miracle  to  satisfy  Herod's  curiosity  and  wanton  fancy.     Oh !  there 
fore,  let  us  not  unnecessarily  and  unwarrantably  throw  ourselves  upon 
the  enticements  of  sin.    For  instance,  as  if  no  evil  company  could 

VOL.  VIII.  N 


194  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [&EB.  CXXVII. 

infect,  or  no  carnal  sports  corrupt,  or  ambitious  affectation  of  high 
places,  when  God  doth  not  call  us  up  by  the  voice  of  his  providence  ; 
this  doth  but  increase  our  temptation.  When  we  will  be  rushing  into 
places  of  danger,  as  Peter  into  the  high  priest's  hall,  we  go  thither 
without  our  defence.  A  man  that  is  sensible  what  will  do  his  body 
hurt  is  very  cautious  how  he  meddleth  with  it.  The  like  care  should 
we  have  of  our  souls. 

The  second  thing  in  the  text  is  the  ground  and  warrant  of  his 
request,  '  According  to  thy  word ;'  or  by  thy  word,  as  some  read  it. 
God  hath  promised  support  to  those  that  wait  upon  him :  Isa.  xl. 
29,  31,  'He  givetti  power  to  the  faint,  and  to  them  that  have  no  might 
he  increaseth  strength.  They  that  wait  upon  the  Lord  shall  renew 
their  strength ;  they  shall  mount  up  with  wings  as  eagles,  they  shall 
run  and  not  be  weary,  and  they  shall  walk  and  not  faint/  Before  their 
full  and  final  deliverance  come,  they  shall  have  present  support  and 
strength  renewed  to  them  every  day.  This  note  should  quicken  us : — 

1.  To  pray  to  God  for  grace  to  stand  with  the  more  confidence. 
God  hath  promised  to  uphold  those  that  cleave  to  him,  and  run  to 
him  ;  therefore  say,  Lord,  thy  word  bids  me  to  hope ;  though  I  am  an 
unstable  creature,  I  will  hope  in  thy  word :  Ps.  xxxi.  24,  '  Be  of  good 
courage,  and  he  shall  strengthen  your  heart,  all  ye  that  hope  in  the 
Lord.'     Though  nothing  else  be  stable,  yet  this  is  stable. 

2.  Bless  God  and  own  his  grace ;  look  upon  it  as  a  fulfilling  of  his 
promise,  if  you  have  susteutation,  or  any  strength  renewed  upon  you, 
though  your  trials  and  temptations  are  yet  continued  to  you:  Ps. 
cxxxviii.  3,  *  In  the  day  when  I  cried,  thou  answeredst  me,  and 
strengthenedst  me  with  strength  in  my  soul.'     It  is  an  answer  of 
prayer,  fulfilling  of  a  promise,  when  we  have  strength  to  persevere 
without  fainting ;  though  we  be  not  delivered,  to  have  support  before 
the  deliverance  come.     I  thank  God,  saith  St  Paul,  for  the  susten- 
tation  I  have.     Great  sustentation  I  have,  though  spiritual  suavities  I 
taste  not  many.     It  is  matter  of  thanksgiving  and  comfort  if  we  have 
but  sustentation,  and  keep  up  the  life  of  grace  in  the  soul,  though  we 
taste  not  Christ's  banquets  and  dainties. 

The  third  circumstance  is  the  end,  '  That  I  may  live.'  David  speaks 
not  this  of  bodily  life,  not  the  life  of  nature,  but  the  life  of  grace. 
And  then  the  note  is  this — 

Doct.  The  children  of  God  do  not  count  themselves  to  live,  unless 
their  spiritual  life  be  kept  in  good  plight. 

David,  that  enjoyed  the  pleasure  and  honour  of  the  regal  state,  he 
doth  not  count  that  to  live,  though  he  were  king  in  Israel,  of  an 
opulent  and  flourishing  kingdom,  and  had  mighty  successes  and 
victories  over  the  people  round  about  him,  but  when  his  heart  was 
upheld  in  the  ways  of  God.  So  Col.  iii.  3,  'Your  life  is  hid  with 
Christ  in  God.'  They  had  a  life  visible,  as  other  men  had;  but  your 
life,  that  which  you  chiefly  esteem,  and  indeed  count  to  be  your  life, 
is  a  hidden  thing. 

Here  I  shall  inquire — (1.)  What  is  this  spiritual  life.  (2.)  Show 
that  there  is  a  spiritual  life  distinct  from  the  natural.  (3.)  The  ex 
cellency  of  the  one  above  the  other.  (4.)  When  this  spiritual  life  is 
in  good  plight. 


VER.  116.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXTX.  195 

1.  What  is  meant  by  spiritual  life  ?     It  is  threefold — a  life  of 
justification  and  sanctification  and  glorification. 

[1.]  The  life  of  justification.  We  are  all  dead  by  the  merit  of  sin. 
When  a  man  is  cast  at  law,  we  say  he  is  a  dead  man :  '  Through 
one  man's  offence  all  were  dead/  Rom.  v.  5.  We  are  sensible  of  it 
when  the  law  cometh  in  with  power,  Bom.  vii.  9  ;  we  begin  to  awaken 
out  of  our  dead  sleep.  God's  first  work  is  to  awaken  him  and  open 
his  eyes,  that  he  may  see  he  is  a  child  of  wrath,  a  condemned  person, 
undone,  without  a  pardon.  When  the  law-  came,  '  sin  revived  and  I 
died  ;'  before  he  thought  himself  a  living  man,  in  as  good  an  estate  as 
the  best ;  but  when  he  was  enlightened  to  see  the  true  meaning  of 
the  law,  he  found  himself  no  better  than  a  dead  man.  Now,  when 
justified,  the  sinner  is  translated  from  a  sentence  of  death  to  a  sentence 
of  life  passed  in  his  favour  ;  and  therefore  it  is  called  justification  of 
life,  Rom.  v.  18,  and  John  v.  29,  '  He  that  belie veth  shall  not  enter 
into  condemnation,  but  hath  passed  from  death  to  life;'  that  is,  is 
acquitted  from  the  sentence  of  death  and  condemnation  passed  on  him 
by  the  law. 

[2.]  The  life  of  sanctification,  which  lies  in.  a  conjunction  of  the 
soul  with  the  spirit  of  God,  even  as  the  natural' life  is  a  conjunction  of 
the  body  with  the  soul.  Adam,  though  his  body  was  organised  and 
formed,  was  but  a  dead  lump  till  God  breathed  the  soul  into  him ;  so 
till  our  union  with  Christ,  by  the  communion  of  his  Spirit,  we  are 
dead  and  unable  to  every  good  work.  But  the  Holy  Ghost  puts  us 
into  a  living  condition :  Eph.  ii.  4,  5,  '  We  were  dead  in  trespasses 
and  sins,  yet  now  hath  he  quickened  us.'  There  is  a  new  manner  of 
being,  which  we  have  upon  the  receiving  of  grace. 

[3.]  Life  eternal,  or  the  life  of  glory,  which  is  the  final  result  and 
consummation  of  both  the  former  ;  for  justification  and  sanctification 
are  but  the  beginnings  of  our  happy  estate ;  justification  is  the  cause 
and  foundation,  and  sanctification  is  an  introduction  or  entrance  into 
that  life  that  we  shall  ever  live  with  God. 

2.  Now  this  life  is  distinct  from  life  natural,  first,  for  it  hath  a  dis 
tinct  principle,  which  is  the  Spirit  of  God  ;  the  other  a  reasonable 
soul :  1  Cor.  xv.  45, '  The  first  man  Adam  was  made  a  living  soul,  the 
last  Adam  was  made  a  quickening  spirit.'     Parents  are  but  instru 
ments  of  God's  providence  to  unite  body  and  soul  together  :  but  here 
we  live  by  the  Spirit  or  by  Christ,  Gal.  ii.  20  ;  God  and  we  are  united 
together.     Then  we  live  when  joined  to  God  as  the  fountain  of  life, 
whence  the  soul  is  quickened  by  the  Spirit  of  grace.     This  is  to  live 
indeed.     It  is  called  the  life  of  God,  Eph.  iv.  18,  not  by  common  in 
fluence    of  his  providence,   but  by  special  influences  of  his  grace. 
Secondly,   It  is   distinct  in  its  operations,   Unumquodque  operatur 
secundum  suam  formam,  as  things  that  move  upward  and  downward 
according  to  their  form ;  so  the  new  nature  carrieth  men  out  to  their 
own  natural  motion  and  tendency.     Walking  as  men,  1  Cor.  iii.  3, 
and  walking  as  Christians,  are  two  distinct  things.     The  natural  and 
human  life  is  nothing  else  but  the  orderly  use  of  sense  and  reason ; 
but  the  divine  and  spiritual  life  is  the  acting  of  grace  in  order  to 
communion  with  God,  as  if  another  soul  dwelt  in  the  same  body:  Ego 
non  sum  ego.     Old  lusts,  old  acquaintance,  old  temptations,  knock  at 


196  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXXVII. 

the  same  door,  but  there  is  another  inhabitant.  Thirdly,  Distinct  in 
supports.  Hidden  manna,  meat  indeed,  drink  indeed,  John  vi.  55. 
There  is  an  outward  man  and  an  inward  man  ;  the  inward  man  hath 
its  life  as  well  as  the  outward.  And  as  life,  so  taste  :  Omnis  vita 
gustu  ducitur.  The  hidden  man  must  be  fed  with  hidden  manna, 
meat  and  drink  that  the  world  knows  not  of ;  its  comforts  are  never 
higher  than  in  decays  of  the  body,  2  Cor.  iv.  16.  A  man  is  as  his 
delight  and  pleasure  is ;  it  must  have  something  agreeable.  Fourthly, 
Distinct  in  ends.  The  aim  and  tendency  of  the  new  nature  is  to  God  ; 
it  is  from  God,  and  therefore  to  him,  Gal.  ii.  19.  It  is  a  life  whereby 
a  man  is  enabled  to  move  and  act  towards  God  as  his  utmost  end,  to 
glorify  him,  or  to  enjoy  him.  A  carnal  man's  personal  contentment  is 
his  highest  aim :  water  riseth  not  beyond  its  fountain.  But  a  gracious 
man  doth  all  to  please  God,  Col.  i.  11,  to  glorify  God,  1  Cor.  x.  31  ; 
and  this  not  only  from  his  obligations,  Eom.  xiv.  7,  8,  but  from  his 
being,  that  principle  of  life  that  is  within  him,  Eph.  i.  12.  A  man 
that  hath  a  new  principle  cannot  live  without  God ;  his  great  purpose 
and  desire  is  to  enjoy  more  of  him. 

3.  The  excellency  of  the  one  above  the  other.  There  is  life  carnal, 
life  natural,  and  life  spiritual.  Life  carnal,  as  much  as  it  glittereth 
and  maketh  a  noise  in  the  world,  it  is  but  a  death  in  comparison  of  the 
life  of  grace  :  1  Tim.  v.  6,  '  She  that  liveth  in  pleasure  is  dead  whilst 
she  liveth ; '  and  '  Let  the  dead  bury  their  dead/  Luke  ix.  60 ;  and 
dead  in  trespasses  and  sins.  None  seem  to  make  so  much  of  their 
lives  as  they,  yet  dead  as  to  any  true  life  and  sincere  comfort.  So 
life  natural,  it  is  but  a  vapour,  a  wind,  and  a  little  puff  of  wind,  that  is 
soon  gone.  Take  it  in  the  best,  nature  is  but  a  continued  sickness, 
our  food  is  a  constant  medicine  to  remedy  the  decays  of  nature :  most 
men  use  it  so,  alimenta  sunt  medicamenta.  But  more  particularly — - 
(1.)  Life  natural  is  a  common  thing  to  devils,  reprobates,  beasts, 
worms,  trees,  and  plants  ;  but  this  is  the  peculiar  privilege  of  the  chil 
dren  of  God,  1  John  iv.  13.  Therefore  God's  children  think  they  have 
no  life  unless  they  have  this  life.  If  we  think  we  have  a  life  because 
we  see  and  hear,  so  do  the  worms  and  smallest  flies.  If  we  think  we 
are  alive  because  we  eat,  drink,  and  sleep,  so  do  the  beasts  and  cattle. 
If  we  think  we  live  because  we  reason  and  confer,  so  do  the  heathens 
and  men  that  shall  never  see  God.  If  we  think  we  have  life  because 
we  grow  well  and  wax  strong,  proceeding  to  old  age,  so  do  the  plants 
and  trees  of  the  field.  Nay,  we  have  not  only  this  in  common  with 
them,  but  in  this  kind  of  life  other  creatures  excel  man.  The  trees 
excel  us  for  growth  in  bulk  and  stature,  who  from  little  plants  grow 
up  into  most  excellent  cedars.  In  hearing,  smelling,  seeing,  many  of 
the  beasts  go  before  us  ;  eagles  in  sight,  dogs  in  scent,  &c.  Sense  is 
their  perfection.  Some  see  better,  others  hear  better,  others  smell 
better ;  all  have  a  better  appetite  to  their  meat,  and  more  strong  to 
digest  it.  For  life  rational,  endowed  with  reason,  many  philosophers 
and  ethnics  excel  Christians  in  the  use  of  reason.  Our  excellency 
then  lieth  not  in  the  vegetative  life,  wherein  plants  excel  thee  ;  nor  in 
sensitive,  which  beasts  have  better  than  thou ;  nor  in  the  reasonable, 
which  many  reprobates  have,  which  shall  never  see  the  face  of  God ; 
but  in  life  spiritual,  to  have  the  soul  quickened  by  the  spirit  of  grace. 


VEB.  116.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  197 

(2.)  Life  natural  is  short  and  uncertain,  but  this  eternal  grace  is  an 
immortal  flame,  a  spark  that  cannot  be  quenched.  All  our  labour  and 
toil  is  to  maintain  a  lamp  that  soon  goeth  out,  or  to  prop  up  a  taber 
nacle  that  is  always  falling;  when  we  have  made  provision  for  it, 
taken  away  this  night,  &c. ;  it  is  in  the  power  of  every  ruffian  and 
assassin:  but  this  is  a  life  that  beginneth  in  grace  and  endeth  in 
glory.  (3.)  The  outward  life  is  short,  but  yet  we  soon  grow  weary  of 
it ;  but  this  is  a  life  that  we  shall  never  be  weary  of.  1  Kings  xix. 
4,  Elijah  requested  for  himself  that  he  might  die.  The  shortest  life 
is  long  enough  to  be  encumbered  with  a  thousand  miseries.  If  you 
live  to  old  age,  age  is  a  burthen  to  itself :  '  Days  come  in  which  there 
is  no  pleasure/  Eccles.  xii.  1  ;  but  you  will  never  wish  for  an  end  of 
this  life.  (4.)  In  the  preparations  and  cosfcs  which  God  hath  been  at 
to  bring  about  this  life  at  first.  Without  any  difficulty  God  breathed 
into  man  the  breath  of  life,  Gen.  ii.  7 ;  but  to  procure  this  life  of 
grace,  God  must  become  man,  and  set  up  a  new  fountain  of  life  in  our 
natures,  John  x.  20.  And  not  only  so,  but  to  die  :  John  vi.  51,  '  My 
flesh  which  I  give  for  the  life  of  the  world.'  Consider  the  price  paid 
for  it.  God  would  not  bestow  it  at  a  cheaper  rate  than  the  death  of 
his  only  Son.  (5.)  In  the  provisions  of  it :  Isa.  Ivii.  10,  '  the  life  of  thy 
hands.'  With  a  great  deal  of  toil  and  labour  we  get  a  few  supports 
for  it ;  but  this  is  fed  with  the  blood  of  Christ,  influences  of  grace,  and 
comforts  from  the  Spirit ;  not  with  gross  things,  but  sublime,  high, 
noble.  (6.)  In  the  use  for  which  it  serveth.  It  fitteth  us  for  com 
munion  with  God,  as  the  other  fits  us  for  communion  with  men. 
Things  can  have  no  communion  with  one  another  that  do  not  live  the 
life  of  one  another.  We  dwell  in  God,  and  God  dwelleth  in  us.  (7.) 
Its  necessities  are  greater,  which  show  the  value  of  the  life.  The 
higher  the  life,  the  more  dependence.  Things  inanimate,  as  stones, 
need  not  such  supplies  as  things  that  have  life.  Where  plants  will 
not  grow,  they  must  have  a  kindly  soil.  Among  plants  the  vine  needs 
more  dressing  and  care  than  the  bramble ;  beasts  more  than  plants ; 
their  food  appointed  God  hath  most  left  to  man's  care,  as  the  instru 
ment  of  his  providence ;  man  more  than  beasts,  saints  more  than  rnen, 
much  waiting  upon  God.  No  creature  so  dependent,  in  need  of  such 
daily  supplies,  as  the  inward  man.  (8.)  Its  sense  is  greater.  There  is 
a  greater  sensibleness  in  this  life  than  in  any  other  life.  All  life  hath 
a  sweetness  in  it.  As  any  life  exceedeth  another,  so  more  sensibleness  ; 
a  beast  is  more  sensible  of  wrong  and  hurt  than  a  plant.  As  the  life  of 
Ji  man  exceedeth  the  life  of  a  beast,  so  more  capable  of  joy  and  grief. 
As  the  life  of  grace  exceedeth  the  life  of  a  man,  so  its  joy  is  greater,  its 
grief  is  greater,  trouble  of  conscience,  a  wounded  spirit.  So  the  joy  of 
Miints  is  unspeakable  and  glorious,  peace  that  passeth  all  understanding. 
4.  When  is  this  life  in  good  plight  ?  It  showeth  itself  in  these  two 
effects — (1.)  A  comfortable  sense  of  God's  love.  (2.)  A  holy  disposi 
tion  to  serve  and  please  God.  The  vitality  of  it  lieth  in  these  two 
graces— faith  and  love  ;  when  they  are  kept  up  in  their  height  and 
vigour,  then  it  is  a  life  begun.  It  lieth  in  the  height  of  faith,  appre 
hending  and  applying  God  s  love  to  the  soul :  I  live  by  faith  ;  and  the 
height  of  love  swaying  and  inclining  the  heart  to  obedience,  2  Cor.  v. 
14.  Therefore  they  desire  God  to  uphold  them,  that  they  might  be 


198  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEE.  CXXVIII. 

kept  in  heart  and  comfort,  and  in  a  free  inclination  to  serve  him. 
Now  when  they  find  any  abatement  of  faith,  so  that  they  cannot  re 
joice  in  the  promises  as  they  were  wont  to  do,  they  count  themselves 
dead ;  or  when  their  inward  man  doth  not  delight  itself  in  the  law  of 
God,  but  they  are  dull  and  slow  to  good  things,  they  look  upon  them 
selves  as  dead.  But  on  the  other  side,  when  they  find  the  vigour  of 
this  life  in  them,  they  are  merry  and  glad ;  when  they  feel  their 
wonted  delight  in  prayer  and  holy  exercises,  this  is  that  they  mainly 
prize.  That  which  is  not  seen  and  felt  is  as  if  it  were  not  to  their 
comfort,  not  to  their  safety. 

Use.  To  exhort  us  all  to  look  after  this  life,  and  when  you  have  got 
it,  to  be  very  chary  of  it.  First,  look  after  this  life.  You  that  are 
alienated  from  the  life  of  God  through  ignorance  and  hardness  of  heart, 
be  invited  to  come  to  him  ;  it  is  for  life  :  Job  ii.  4,  '  Skin  for  skin,  and 
all  a  man  hath,  will  he  give  for  his  life/  We  all  desire  life ;  vile  things 
that  live  excel  more  precious  that  are  dead :  '  A  living  dog  is  better 
than  a  dead  lion,'  Eccles.  ix.  4.  A  dog  was  an  unclean  beast,  and  of 
all  creatures  a  lion  is  the  most  noble  and  generous.  A  worm  is  more 
capable  of  life  than  the  sun.  Now,  if  life  natural  be  so  sweet,  what  is 
life  spiritual  ?  No  such  life  as  this ;  it  fits  us  for  communion  with 
God  and  blessed  spirits.  Christ  chideth  them,  '  You  will  not  come  to 
me  that  you  might  have  life.'  Better  you  had  never  lived,  if  you  live 
not  this  life  of  grace.  When  beasts  die  their  misery  dieth  with  them, 
but  yours  beginneth.  Secondly,  If  you  have  this  life  begun,  be  chary 
of  it.  If  the  bodily  life  be  but  a  little  annoyed  we  complain  pre 
sently  ;  but  why  are  you  so  stupid  and  careless,  and  do  not  look  after 
this,  to  keep  the  spiritual  life  in  good  plight  ?  Let  your  prayers  and 
desires  be  to  have  this  life  strengthened ;  make  this  your  prayer,  to  be 
strengthened  with  might  by  his  Spirit  in  the  inner  man.  A  Christian 
maketh  this  to  be  his  main  comfort  and  his  main  care.  Oh  !  how  busy 
are  we  to  provide  for  the  outward  man,  that  we  may  be  well  fed,  well 
clothed  !  Most  men's  care  is  for  back  and  belly.  Oh !  be  more  care 
ful  for  the  inner  man  ;  let  that  be  refreshed  with  the  blood  of  Christ 
aud  the  comforts  of  the  Spirit.  Be  careful  for  the  soul,  that  you  may 
keep  up  a  lively  faith,  and  a  constant  sense  of  blessedness  to  come,  and 
so  rejoice  in  God.  Oh  !  how  much  time  and  pains  do  men  waste  in 
decking  and  trimming  the  body,  when  in  the  meantime  they  neglect 
their  souls !  We  may  all  fall  a- weeping  when  we  consider  how  little 
we  look  after  this  inner  life,  to  keep  that  in  heart  and  vigour. 


SERMON  CXXVIII. 

And  let  me  not  be  ashamed  of  my  hope.  Hold  tliou  me  up,  and  I  shall 
/be  safe ;  and  I  will  have  respect  unto  tliy  statutes  continually. — 
VER.  116, 117. 

IN  the  former  verse  I  observed  David  begs  two  things — confirmation 
in  waiting,  and  the  full  and  final  accomplishment  of  his  hopes. 

Something  remains  upon  the  116th  verse,  '  Let  me  not  be  ashamed  of 


VERS.  116,  117.]          SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  199 

my  hope.'  Hope  follows  faith,  and  nourisheth  it.  Faith  assures  there 
is  a  promise  ;  hope  looks  out  for  the  accomplishment  of  it.  Now  David, 
having  fixed  his  hope  upon  the  mercies  of  God,  begs,  '  Let  me  not  be 
ashamed ;'  that  is,  that  hope  may  not  be  disappointed,  for  hope  dis 
appointed  brings  shame.  Man  is  conscious  of  the  folly  and  rashness 
in  conceiving  such  a  hope  :  Job  vi.  20,  '  They  were  confounded,  because 
they  had  hoped ;  they  came  thither,  and  were  ashamed.'  They  looked 
for  water  from  the  brooks  of  Terna,  but  when  they  were  dried  up  they 
were  confounded  and  ashamed.  That  breeds  shame  when  we  are 
frustrated  in  our  expectations.  There  is  a  hope  that  will  leave  us 
ashamed,  and  there  is  another  hope  that  will  not  leave  us  ashamed ; 
for  David  goes  to  God,  and  desires  him  to  accomplish  his  hope. 
There  is  a  Christian  hope  that  is  founded  upon  the  mercies  and  pro 
mises  of  God,  and  encouraged  by  experience  of  God,  that  will  never 
deceive  us.  I  shall  speak  of  that  hope  that  will  bring  shame  and 
confusion  ;  and  that  is  twofold — worldly  hope  and  carnal  security. 

1.  Worldly  hopes,  such  as  are  built  upon  worldly  men  and  worldly 
things.  Upon  worldly  men,  they  are  mutable,  and  so  may  deceive  us ; 
sometimes  their  minds  may  change,  the  favour  of  man  is  a  deceitful 
thing.  As  Cardinal  Wolsey  said  in  his  distress,  If  I  had  served  God 
as  diligently  as  I  have  done  the  king,  he  would  not  have  given  me 
over  in  my  grey  hairs  ;  but  it  is  a  just  reward  for  my  study  to  do  him 
service,  not  regarding  the  service  of  God  to  do  him  pleasure  :  *  Let  God 
be  true,  and  every  man  a  liar.'  A  man  makes  way  for  shame  that 
humours  the  lusts  of  others  and  wrongs  his  conscience;  and  first  or 
last,  they  will  find  it  is  better  to  put  confidence  in  God  than  the 
greatest  potentates  in  the  world,  Ps.  cxviii.  8  ;  and  therefore  it  should 
be  our  chief  care  to  apply  ourselves  to  God,  and  study  his  pleasure, 
rather  than  to  please  men,  and  conform  ourselves  to  their  uncertain 
minds  and  interests.  To  attend  God  daily,  and  be  at  his  beck,  is  a 
stable  happiness;  the  other  is  a  poor  thing  to  build  upon.  Men's 
affections  are  mutable,  and  so  is  their  condition  too :  Ps.  Ixii.  9, 
'  Surely  men  of  high  degree  are  a  lie,  and  men  of  low  degree  are 
vanity/  Whoever  trusts  in  men,  high  or  low,  are  sure  to  be  deceived 
in  their  expectations.  And  therefore  we  should  think  of  it  before 
hand,  lest  we  be  left  in  the  dirt  when  we  think  they  should  bear  us 
out:  1  Kings  i.  21,  'When  my  Lord  the  king  shall  sleep  with  his 
fathers,  I  and  my  son  Solomon  shall  be  counted  offenders.  When  the 
scene  is  shifted,  and  new  actors  come  upon  the  stage,  none  so  liable  to 
be  hated  as  those  that  promised  to  themselves  a  perpetual  happiness 
by  the  favour  of  men.  This  is  a  hope  that  will  leave  us  ashamed. 
And  then  worldly  things,  they  that  hope  in  these  for  their  happiness 
will  be  ashamed.  There  are  two  remarkable  seasons  when  this  hope 
leaves  us  ashamed — in  the  time  of  distress  of  conscience,  and  in  the 
day  of  death.  In  time  of  distress  of  conscience  :  Ps.  xxxix.  11,  '  When 
thou  with  rebukes  dost  correct  man  for  iniquity,  thou  makest  his 
beauty  to  consume  away  like  a  moth.'  When  sin  finds  us  out,  and 
conscience  goes  to  work  upon  the  sense  of  its  own  guilt,  oh!  then 
what  will  all  the  plenty  of  worldly  comforts  do  us  good  !  The  crea 
tures  then  have  spent  their  allowance,  and  can  help  us  no  more.  What 
good  will  an  estate  do  ?  And  all  the  pomp  and  bravery  of  the  world 


200  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiR.  CXXVIIL 

will  be  of  no  more  use  to  us  than  a  rich  shoe  to  a  gouty  foot :  Prov. 
xviii.  14,  '  A  wounded  spirit  who  can  bear?'  But  now  he  that  hath 
chosen  God  for  his  portion,  in  all  distress  and  calamities  can  revive 
his  hopes.  So  also  in  the  hour  of  death  :  Job  xxvii.  8,  '  What  is  the 
hope  of  the  hypocrite,  though  he  hath  gained,  when  God  shall  take 
away  his  soul  ?'  When  God  puts  the  bond  in  suit,  though  man  hath 
gained,  where  is  his  hope,  when  God  delivers  him  over  to  the  execu 
tioner,  to  chains  of  darkness  ? 

2.  Carnal  security  will  leave  us  ashamed.  Men  living  in  their  sins 
hope  they  shall  do  well  enough,  and  expect  mercy  to  bear  all  and 
pardon  all ;  though  they  be  not  so  strict  and  nice  as  others,  yet  they 
shall  do  as  well  as  they.  This  hope  is  compared  to  a  spider's  web, 
Job  viii.  12,  a  poor  slight  thing,  that  is  gone  with  the  blast  of  every 
temptation ;  when  the  besom  comes,  both  spider  and  web  are  swept 
away.  And  it  is  said,  Job  xi.  20,  '  The  hope  of  the  wicked  is  like  the 
giving  up  of  the  ghost ;'  and  these  in  a  moment  take  an  everlasting 
farewell  of  their  hopes.  So  their  hopes  fail  in  the  greatest  extremity. 
This  carnal  and  secure  hope  in  God,  presumption  of  his  mercy,  it  is 
but  a  waking  dream,  as  a  dream  fills  men  with  vain  delusions  and 
phantasms.  It  is  notably  set  out  by  the  prophet,  Isa.  xxix.  8,  '  They 
shall  even  be  as  when  a  hungry  man  dreameth,  and  behold  he  eateth  ; 
but  he  awaketh,  and  his  soul  is  empty/  There  will  an  awakening 
time  come,  and  then  the  dream  of  a  hungry  man  torments  him  more. 
Carnal  men  are  like  dreamers,  that  lose  all  as  soon  as  they  awake ; 
though  they  dream  of  enjoying  sceptres  and  crowns,  yet  they  are  in  the 
midst  of  bonds  and  irons.  Vain  illusions  do  they  please  themselves 
with,  that  make  way  for  eternal  sorrow  and  shame. 

Let  us  see  how  this  false  hope  of  the  wicked  differs  from  the  true 
hope  of  God's  children. 

1.  This  hope  is  not  indeed  built  upon  God,  God  hath  the  name, 
but  indeed  they  trust  upon  other  things ;  as  those  women  the  prophet 
speaks  of,  Isa.  iv.  1,  'We  will  eat  our  own  bread,  and  wear  our  own 
apparel ;  only  let  us  be  called  by  thy  name,  to  take  away  our  reproach/ 
So  they  call  their  hope  after  God's  name,  but  their  hearts  are  borne 
up  with  other  things,  as  appears  ;  because  when  outward  things  fail  they 
are  at  a  loss,  and  begin  to  awake  out  of  their  dream,  especially  in  a 
distressed  case  when  it  pincheth  hard. 

2.  It  is  not  a  serious  and  advised  trust,  but  a  slight  and  superficial 
hope,  that  grows  upon  us  we  know  not  how,  a  fruit  of  ignorance  and 
incogitancy ;  when  they  are  serious  they  begin  to  feel  it  a  foolish  kind 
of  presumption,  upon  which  no  account  can  be  given,  1  Peter  iii.  15. 
How  can  they  give  a  reason  of  their  hope  ?     But  gracious  souls,  the 
more  they  consider  their  warrant  and  the  promise  of  God,  the  more 
their  hope  is  increased. 

3.  It  is  a  dead  and  a  cold  hope,  not  a  lively  hope,  1  Peter  i.  3.    They 
have  no  taste,  no  groans,  no  ravishing  thoughts  about  the  happiness 
which  they  expect,  no  strong  desires  after  the  thing  hoped  for :  Kom. 
xii.  12,  c  Bejoice  in  hope/  saith  the  apostle ;  they  have  but  cold  appre 
hensions  of  such  great  things.     And  the  hope  that  we  expect  is  so 
excellent,  that  it  should  stir  up  the  greatest  longings,  the  greatest 
waiting,  and  put  us  upon  earnest  expectation. 


VERS.  116,  117.]         SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  201 

4.  It  is  a  weak  inconstant  hope,  a  loose  fond  conjecture,  a  guess 
rather  than  a  certain  expectation  :  1  Cor.  ix.  26,  '  I  therefore  so  run, 
not  as  uncertainly/  not  at  random,  but  upon  sure  and  solid  grounds. 
A  child  of  God  hath  a  due  sense  of  the  difficulty,  yet  withal  an  assur 
ance  of  the  possibility  and  of  the  certainty  of  it;  and  therefore  it 
continues ;  he  presseth  on,  if  it  be  possible  he  may  attain  to  his  great 
hopes,  the  resurrection  of  the  dead. 

5.  It  is  a  lazy  loitering  hope.     Carnal  men  would  have  heaven  and 
happiness,  but  they  make  no  haste  towards  it,  they  give  no  diligence 
to  make  sure  of  it ;  it  is  but  a  devout  sloth.     Whereas  he  that  hath  a 
true  hope  is  pressing  forward,  Phil.  iii.  13,  and  hastening  and  looking 
for  the  coming  of  Christ,  2  Peter  iii.  12. 

But  then  there  is  a  true  hope  in  God,  both  for  final  deliverance, 
present  support,  and  present  mercy,  that  will  never  leave  us  ashamed  : 
Ps.  xxii.  5,  '  They  that  hope  in  thee  are  not  confounded ; '  and  Ps.  xxv. 
2,  3,  '  Let  none  that  wait  on  thee  be  ashamed :  0  my  God,  I  trust  in 
thee,  let  me  not  be  ashamed/  What  is  a  true  Christian  hope  ?  It  may 
be  discovered  by  the  grounds  of  discouragement,  but  most  sensibly  by 
the  effects. 

1.  By  it  the  heart  is  drawn  from  earth  to  heaven,  earthly  desires 
and  hopes  abated :  Phil.  iii.  20,  '  For  our  conversation  is  in  heaven, 
whence  also  we  look  for  the  Saviour,  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ.'     They 
live  as  those  that  within  a  few  days  expect  to  be  with  God.     Christ  in 
heaven  hath  a  magnetic  virtue  to  draw  up  the  hearts  of  believers 
thither ;  as  a  man  that  hath  looked  steadfastly  upon  the  sun  can  for  a 
great  while  see  nothing  else. 

2.  By  it  the  heart  is  enlivened  in  duty,  and  quickened  with  diligence 
in  the  business  of  salvation.     Hope  apprehends  the  difficulty,  as  well 
as  the  excellency  and  possibility,  of  salvation  ;  therefore  what  a  man 
truly  hopes  for  in  this  kind  he  makes  it  his  business  to  get  it,  and  look 
after  it:  Phil.  iii.  13,  'This  one  thing  I  do,  forgetting  those  things 
which  are  behind,  and  reaching  forth  unto  those  which  are  before/ 
They  mind  it  seriously,  and  not  superficially,  by  the  by. 

3.  It  engageth  the  heart  against  sin,  2  Peter  iii.  11.     We  that  look 
for  these  things,  '  What  manner  of  persons  ought  we  to  be  in  all  holy 
conversation  and  godliness/     Holiness  implies  purity,  and  godliness 
dedication  to  God.     Now  a  false  hope  is  consistent  with  the  reign  of 
sin,  suffers  a  man  to  be  vile,  carnal,  careless,  neglectful  of  God,  full  of 
malice,  envy,  pride,  but  without  any  serious  and  solid  ground  ;  it  is  but 
a  lying  presumption.     Now,  this  hope  that  is  thus  fixed  upon  God  will 
never  disappoint  us.     For — 

[1.]  The  fruition  will  ever  be  more  than  the  expectation.  God  doth 
for  us  above  what  we  can  ask  or  think,  Eph.  iii.  20.  When  the  pro 
digal  son  came  and  said,  '  Make  me  as  an  hired  servant,'  the  father 
brought  forth  the  fatted  calf,  and  put  a  ring  on  his  finger,  &c.  {Solo 
mon  asked  wisdom,  and  God  gave  him  riches,  honour,  and  great 
abundance.  But  much  more  in  the  world  to  come  will  the  fruition  be 
above  expectation  ;  for  prophecy  is  but  in  part ;  we  are  not  now  cap 
able  to  know  what  we  shall  then  enjoy ;  we  have  but  childish  thoughts 
of  things  to  come,  as  a  child  comes  short  of  the  apprehensions  of  a 
man,  1  Cor.  xiii.  9-11. 


202  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEE.  CXXVIII. 

[2.]  This  hope  cannot  be  abated  with  the  greatest  evil.  To  a  worldly 
man  death  is  the  king  of  terrors,  and  to  a  godly  man  it  is  his  last  end ; 
though  it  vanquish  his  body,  it  doth  not  vanquish  his  soul :  Prov.  xiv. 
32,  '  The  wicked  is  driven  away  in  his  wickedness,  but  the  righteous 
hath  hope  in  his  death.'  When  other  men's  hopes  vanish,  his  hopes 
go  down  with  him  to  the  grave,  Ps.  xvi.  9 ;  as  in  a  bed  of  ease  they 
shall  sleep  until  the  waking  time. 

Use.  Oh !  be  not  deceived  with  false  promises.  We  must  expect 
blessing  according  to  the  tenor  of  the  covenant ;  only  things  promised, 
and  no  otherwise  than  they  are  promised;  temporal  things,  with  a 
limitation,  as  good  for  us,  and  with  the  exception  of  the  cross ;  spiritual 
blessings,  their  essence,  rather  than  degree  of  grace.  And  take  heed 
of  false  hope  that  is,  groundless  and  fruitless.  Groundless ;  the  war 
rant  of  true  hope  is  the  word  of  God :  '  I  hope  in  thy  word,'  Ps.  cxxx. 
5.  Hope  that  is  without  a  warrant  will  be  without  effect.  When 
men  please  themselves,  they  shall  do  well  enough,  contrary  to  the  word 
of  God,  Deut.  xxix.  19.  And  it  is  fruitless  ;  it  doth  not  fill  the  heart 
with  gladness,  and  quicken  to  holiness,  and  stir  up  to  walk  with  God. 
And  take  heed  of  false  experiences  ;  that  is,  building  upon  temporal 
blessings,  and  bare  deliverances  out  of  trouble.  Men  are  not  so  much 
preserved  as  reserved  to  further  trouble :  many  are  spared  but  for  a 
time,  it  is  but  a  reprieve. 

I  proceed  to  the  117th  verse,  '  Hold  thou  me  up,  and  I  shall  be  safe : 
and  I  will  have  respect  unto  thy  statutes  continually.'  Here  observe 
— (1.)  A  repetition  of  his  request  for  sustaining  grace.  (2.)  A  renewing 
of  the  promise  of  obedience  conceived  before,  ver.  115. 

1.  A  repetition  of  his  request  for  sustaining  grace,  '  Hold  thou  me 
up,  and  I  shall  be  safe.'     Where  observe  the  request,  hold  thou  me 
up  :  and  the  fruit  and  effect  promised  to  himself,  /  shall  be  safe. 

First,  The  blessing  asked,  '  Hold  thou  me  up ;'  a  metaphor  taken 
from  those  that  faint,  or  those  that  slide  and  are  ready  to  fall.  Se 
condly,  The  fruit  of  it,  '  I  shall  be  safe.'  Before  he  had  said,  '  Uphold 
me  according  unto  thy  word,  that  I  may  live ; '  now  he  promiseth 
himself  more  from  the  divine  assistance,  safety.  By  safety  he  means 
either  the  safety  of  the  outward  or  inward  man.  Why  not  both  ?  I 
shall  be  safe  from  those  warpings  and  apostasy,  and  all  dangers  and 
mischiefs  that  do  attend  it.  Turning  aside  from  our  duty  doth  not 
procure  our  safety,  but  perseverance  in  our  duty.  God's  children, 
when  they  have  failed,  have  run  themselves  into  much  temporal  incon 
veniences,  as  Josiah  ran  upon  his  own  death  by  his  own  folly,  2  Chron. 
xxxiii.  22. 

2.  The  resolution  of  his  obedience,  that  is  renewed  and  promised 
upon  obtaining  of  this  mercy.     And  there  take  notice — (1.)  Of  the 
accuracy  of  that  obedience  promised,  /  ivill  have  respect  unto  thy 
statutes.     (2.)  The  constancy  of  it,  continually  ;  not  for  a  moment 
only,  a  few  days,  in  a  pang,  or  when  the  mercy  is  fresh  and  warm  upon 
the  heart,  but  constantly,  without  intermission,  without  defection. 

First,  Observe  from  the  repeating  of  the  same  request : — 

Doct.  1.  That  sustaining  grace  must  be  sought  with  all  earnestness 

and  importunity.     '  Uphold  me '  before,  and  now  again,  *  Hold  thou 

me  up,  and  I  shall  be  safe.' 


VERS.  116,  117.]        SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  203 

Reason  1.  They  that  have  a  due  sense  of  things  upon  their  hearts 
will  do  so ;  that  is  to  say,  that  have  a  sense  of  their  own  weakness,  the 
evil  of  sin,  and  the  comfort  of  perseverance  in  obedience. 

1.  That  have  a  sense  of  their  own  weakness,  as  David  was  touched 
with  a  sense  of  his  own  necessity ;  therefore  he  repeats  this  prayer, 
'  Hold  thou  me  up  ; '  and  if  David  need  to  be  held  up,  what  need  have 
we !     If  pillars  are  not  able  to  stand  of  themselves,  what  shall  reeds 
do  ?     If  giants  are  overthrown  and  vanquished,  children  much  more  : 
Prov.  xxviii.  14,  '  Happy  is  the  man  that  feareth  always.'     How  so  ? 
With  a  fear  of  caution,  not  a  fear  of  distrust ;  with  a  fear  of  reverence, 
not  with  a  fear  of  bondage ;  otherwise  it  were  a  torture,  not  a  blessed 
ness.     That  man  that  is  sensible  of  his  own  frailty  is  more  blessed  than 
other  men.     Why  ?     Because  he  will  ever  have  recourse  to  God  to  set 
his  power  a- work  for  the  good  of  his  soul :  Eom.  xi.  20,  '  Be  not  high- 
minded,  but  fear.'     Though  weakness  be  a  misery,  yet  a  sense  of  it  is 
a  degree  towards  blessedness,  because  it  makes  way  for  the  great 
Christian  grace,  which  is  trust  and  dependence. 

2.  They  have  a  sense  of  the  evil  that  is  in  the  least  sin.     This  is  the 
difference  between  a  tender  conscience  and  a  hard  heart — one  is  afraid 
to  offend  God  in  the  least  matter,  the  other  makes  nothing  of  sin,  and 
so  runneth  into  mischief,  Prov.  xxviii.  14.     Well,  then,  a  man  that 
hath  a  tender  heart  is  loath  to  fall  into  the  least  sin,  he  is  ever  drawing 
to  God  to  be  kept  from  all  sin.     When  we  are  earnest  in  this  matter, 
it  is  a  sign  we  are  sensible  what  an  evil  sin  is.     Men  that  side  with 
their  own  lusts  and  interests  may  wonder  at  the  frequent  requests  of 
the  Psalmist  here — establishment  and  preservation  from  sin.    But  those 
that  have  a  tender  conscience  are  like  the  eye,  soon  offended,  and  make 
it  their  business  to  keep  it  from  offence ;  they  are  thus  solicitous  and 
earnest  with  God  to  be  upheld. 

3.  They  are  sensible  of  the  good  of  perseverance  in  obedience.   There 
are  two  things  here  : — 

[1.]  Obedience  is  good;  the  more  we  experiment  it,  the  more  we 
would  desire  to  keep  it  up  in  an  even  tenor  of  close  walking  with  God, 
without  interruption,  without  intermission.  God  appeals  to  experience  : 
Micah  ii.  7,  'Do  not  my  words  do  good  to  him  that  walketh  up 
rightly  ?  '  And  when  men  wander  they  have  this  experience,  '  Am  I  a 
barren  wilderness  ? '  Micah  vi.  3,  *  0  my  people !  what  have  I  done 
unto  thee,  and  wherein  have  I  wearied  thee  ?  testify  against  me.' 
The  more  we  find  liberty,  sweetness,  and  comfort  in  the  ways  of  God, 
the  more  we  should  desire  to  continue  in  them. 

[2.]  As  obedience  is  good,  so  perseverance  in  obedience  is  good,  for 
it  strengthens  grace,  especially  in  an  hour  of  temptation,  when  many 
make  defection.  The  choicest  discovery  of  good  men  is  in  bad  times  : 
'Noah  was  upright  in  his  generation,'  Gen.  vi.  9;  to  stand  when  others 
decline,  to  be  like  fish  that  keeps  its  freshness  in  salt  water,  to  hold 
fast  there  where  Satan  hath  his  throne,  Kev.  ii.  13,  and  to  be  faithful, 
as  is  said  of  Judah,  Hosea  xi.  12,  when  '  Ephraim  compassed  me 
about  with  lies,  and  the  house  of  Israel  with  deceit.'  It  is  a  comfort 
and  honour  to  persevere  with  God. 

Reason  2.  This  sustaining  grace  must  be  asked,  because  God  will 
show  his  sovereignty,  that  it  is  not  at  our  beck  ;  it  must  cost  us  wait- 


204  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXXVIII. 

ing,  striving,  and  earnest  and  renewed  prayer  :  2  Cor.  xii.  8,  *  For  this 
thing  I  besought  the  Lord  thrice.'  God  will  not  answer  at  the  first 
knock,  but  at  the  third,  then  God  came  in.  So  Christ;  Mat.  xxvi.  44, 
the  third  time  he  came  and  repeated  the  same  thing ;  then,  if  you 
compare  Luke,  he  received  his  consolation  by  an  angel.  God  doth  not 
come  at  the  first  knock,  therefore  we  must  pray  again,  '  Uphold  me/ 

Reason  3.  Without  continued  influences  of  grace  we  cannot  be  safe, 
therefore  they  must  not  be  sought  once  and  no  more,  but  daily.  As 
we  seek  daily  bread,  so  we  should  seek  daily  grace.  The  word  o-ij^epov, 
this  day,  hath  respect  to  all  the  petitions ;  this  day  we  must  have  our 
daily  bread,  this  day  lead  us  not  into  temptation,  this  day  keep  us 
from  evil.  While  temptations  continue,  we  must  continue  prayer. 
Long  suits,  though  often  denied,  may  prevail  at  length.  In  short,  the 
continuance  of  strength  and  assistance  from  God  is  necessary  to  pre 
serve  both  habitual  and  actual  grace,  therefore  they  must  be  continu 
ally  asked. 

1.  To  preserve  habitual  grace,  the  seed  that  remains  in  us.     We 
would  wonder  to  see  a  herb  to  thrive  and  grow  in  the  midst  of  many 
weeds  ;  so  that  grace  should  be  there  where  there  is  so  much  pride, 
love  of  pleasure,  worldly  care  and  brutish  lusts,  especially  when  any 
of  these  are  set  a-work  by  temptations  without.      The  angels  and 
Adam  fell  when  there  was  nothing  within  to  work  upon  them  but  the 
mutability  of  their  nature  ;  so  when  there  is  so  much  within  to  work, 
and  temptations  without,  it  is  hard  to  keep  grace  in  the  soul. 

2.  For  the  quickening  and  actual  stirrings  of  the  soul  to  good.    We 
should  soon  faint  and  tire  in  the  ways  that  we  have  begun  were  it  not 
for  God's  sustaining  grace  ;  these  sparks  would  quickly  go  out,  if  God 
did  not  keep  them  alive.     1  Chron.  xxix.  18,  when  the  people  were  in 
a  high  point  of  willingness,  *  Lord,  keep  this  for  ever  in  the  imagina 
tion  of  the  thoughts  of  the  heart  of  thy  people.'     When  we  have 
gotten  any  good  frame  of  spirit,  we  cannot  preserve  it  without  this 
continual  influence. 

Reason  4.  Renewed  prayer  is  a  means  of  persevering,  not  only  for 
it,  but  by  it.  God  keeps  us  alive  in  the  way  of  grace,  as  by  the  word, 
so  by  prayer.  Praying  in  the  Holy  Ghost  is  one  means  of  establish 
ment,  Jude  20.  Prayer  is  a  solemn  preaching  to  our  selves,  or  a 
serious  warming  of  our  souls  in  our  duty  in  the  sight  of  God.  Now 
means  of  support  must  be  used,  not  once,  but  often.  There  must  be 
constant  meals  for  the  increase  of  bodily  strength.  If  a  man  be  never 
so  strong,  yet  he  cannot  always  grow  in  strength  by  one  meal,  there 
must  be  new  refreshment ;  so  this  is  one  means  for  our  preservation, 
therefore  it  must  be  often  used. 

Use.  For  reproof  of  those  that  ask  sustaining  grace  customarily  and 
carelessly,  without  any  deep  sense  or  renewed  importunity.  We  are 
too  cold  and  formal  when  we  say,  '  Lead  us  not  into  temptation.' 

1.  Consider,  none  stand  but  may  fall  in  some  degree,  and  it  is  our 
business  to  take  heed  we  do  not.  Every  hour  we  are  in  danger  either 
of  getting  some  distemper,  or  letting  out  some  corruption.  Of  getting 
some  distemper,  being  spotted  and  defiled  in  the  world,  or  at  least 
being  made  dull  and  indisposed  in  the  service  of  God.  Or  else  of 
letting  out  some  corruptions ;  if  God  do  not  keep  our  heart  and  all 


YERS.  116,  117.]         SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  205 

(Ps.  cxli.  3,  '  Set  a  watch,  0  Lord,  before  my  mouth ;  keep  the  door 
of  my  lips'),  how  soon  should  we  betray  our  folly  !  And  therefore  it  is 
a  happy  day,  and  we  have  cause  to  bless  God,  when  we  have  not  by 
some  words  or  works  of  ours  interrupted  our  communion  with  him. 

2.  Consider  how  many  things  concur  to  lead   us   aside,   corrup 
tions  within  and  temptations  without,  and,  it  may  be,  sometimes  the 
example  of   others  that  are  of  esteem  in  the  church.      Corruption 
within,  always  righting  against  grace — the  flesh  lusteth  against  the 
Spirit ;  and  temptations  without,  the  favours  and  frowns  of  the  world. 
If  these  things  have  not,  they  may  befall  us,  and  it  is  too  late  to  seek 
armour  in  time  of  conflict. 

3.  And  then  to  see  men  eminent  for  knowledge  and  profession  turn 
back  from  the  holy  commandment,  and  glorious  stars  fall  from  their 
orb  and  station ;  this  overturns  the  faith  of  many,  2  Tim.  ii.  18.     So 
that,  all  these  things  considered,  we  cannot  stand  a  moment  without 
God ;  and  therefore  we  should  be  more  earnest  with  him  for  grace. 

Doct.  2.  The  constant  safety  of  God's  people  lies  in  sustaining 
grace. 

1.  Negatively ;  without  it  we  cannot  be  safe,  partly  because  there 
are  so  many  trials  and  temptations  between  us  and  home,  by  reason 
of  the  sleights  of  the  flesh,  the  cunning  of  Satan,  and  oppositions  of 
the  world ;  and  partly  because  the  measure  of  grace  received  is  so 
small :  Phil.  iii.  13,  '  I  have  not  attained  ; '  and  the  danger  of  sinning 
against  God  is  so  great :  Amos  iii.  2,  '  You  only  have  I  known  of  all 
the  families  of  the  earth  ;  therefore  will  I  punish  you  for  all  your  ini 
quities.'      So  that  we  are  no  longer  safe  from  sin  and  punishment 
than  God  puts  under  his  hand. 

2.  Positively ;  by  God's  sustaining  grace  we  are  kept  safe,  both  as 
the  power  and  faithfulness  of  God  are  engaged  for  our  defence. 

[1.]  The  power  of  God  is  engaged :  1  Peter  i.  5,  '  Who  are  kept  by 
the  power  of  God  through  faith  unto  salvation/  The  apostle  first 
speaks  of  heaven,  that  that  is  kept  for  us,  and  then,  presently,  you  are 
kept  for  it  by  the  power  of  God.  An  earthly  inheritance  may  be  sure 
enough  for  the  heir,  but  who  can  secure  the  heir  from  death  and  all 
other  accidents  ?  But  here  God  provides  for  our  comfort.  Not  only 
our  inheritance  is  sure,  but  we  are  kept.  And  how  doth  God  keep 
us  ?  By  his  power.  Oh !  what  greater  safety  can  there  be  ?  He  can 
mitigate  the  temptation,  or  else  give  a  supply  of  strength ;  he  can 
keep  off  trials,  or  support  us  under  them,  1  Cor.  x.  13. 

[2.]  The  faithfulness  of  God  is  engaged  :  1  Cor.  i.  9,  '  God  is  faith 
ful,  by  whom  ye  were  called  unto  the  fellowship  of  his  Son  ; '  and  2 
Thes.  iii.  3,  '  The  Lord  is  faithful,  who  shall  establish  you,  and  keep 
you  from  evil.'  Certainly  God  is  able,  but  how  shall  we  know  that 
he  will  do  it  ?  His  truth  is  laid  in  pawn  for  what  he  hath  promised, 
and  therefore  we  may  hold  up  our  heads  with  confidence ;  and  this 
should  comfort  us  against  all  fears  and  doubtful  and  uncertain 
thoughts. 

Use.  Instruction,  to  show  us  how  constantly  God  must  be  sought 
to  in  prayer,  and  relied  upon  in  the  use  of  means  for  our  preservation, 
both  from  sin  and  danger. 

1.  Sought  to  in  prayer.     Our  strength  lies  not  in  ourselves,  but  in 


206  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [Sim.  CXXVIII. 

God :  2  Cor.  iii.  5,  '  We  are  not  sufficient  of  ourselves  to  think  any 
thing  as  of  ourselves,  but  our  sufficiency  is  of  God.'  It  is  not  only  of 
God,  but  in  God ;  there  is  our  treasure  kept :  2  Tim.  ii.  1,  '  Be  strong 
in  the  grace  that  is  in  Christ  Jesus  ; '  and  Eph.  vi.  10,  '  Be  strong  in 
the  Lord,  and  in  the  power  of  his  might.'  If  the  stock  were  in  our 
own  hands,  besides  the  danger  of  embezzling  it,  we  should  neglect 
God ;  as  when  the  prodigal  son  had  his  portion,  he  went  away  from 
his  father.  Therefore  God  keeps  grace  in  his  own  hand,  to  keep  us 
humble,  depending,  observing,  and  to  have  a  constant  converse  with 
him,  that  our  eyes  may  be  to  him  ;  as  Ps.  cxxiii.  2,  '  As  the  eyes  of 
servants  look  unto  the  hand  of  their  masters,  and  as  the  eyes  of  a 
maiden  unto  the  hand  of  her  mistress,  so  our  eyes  wait  upon  the  Lord 
our  God,  until  that  he  have  mercy  upon  us  ; '  that  is,  as  maid  and 
men  servants  look  for  their  dole  and  portion,  their  allowance  given  to 
them,  from  their  master  and  mistress,  so  God  will  still  keep  us  to  him. 
Dependence  begets  observance,  to  keep  up  our  allegiance  to  the  crown 
of  heaven. 

2.  As  he  must  be  sought  to  in  prayer,  so  relied  upon  in  the  use  of 
means  for  our  preservation.  God  keeps  us,  but  not  without  our  care 
and  diligence.  A  Christian  is  said  to  keep  himself,  1  Tim.  v.  22  ; 
and  this  is  pure  religion,  to  keep  ourselves  unspotted,  James  i.  27  ; 
and  1  John  v.  18,  '  He  that  is  begotten  of  God  keepeth  himself,  that 
the  wicked  one  touch  him  not ;'  and  Jude  21,  '  Keep  yourselves  in 
the  love  of  God/  What !  doth  not  this  detract  from  all  that  was 
spoken  before  ?  No  ;  we  act  with  subordination  and  dependence 
upon  him.  Our  keeping  is  from  him,  by  him,  and  under  him  ;  so  we 
keep  ourselves  through  his  blessing  upon  the  use  of  means,  which  he 
hath  appointed  for  us  to  use. 

The  third  note  is  taken  from  the  promise  of  obedience  upon  the  sup 
position  of  this  help  from  God,  '  Uphold  me/  What  then  ?  '  And  I 
will  have  respect  unto  thy  statutes/  Observe — 

Doct.  3.  The  more  experience  we  have  of  God's  grace  in  the  pre 
serving  us  from  sin  and  danger,  the  more  we  should  be  encouraged  in 
his  ways.  Why  so  ? 

1.  Because  of  the  obligation.  It  is  his  mercy  which  requires  thank 
fulness.  Now  gratitude  and  thankfulness  is  the  true  principle  which 
should  urge  us  to  perform  our  duty  to  God.  Observe,  there  are  several 
principles  which  put  men  upon  God's  service,  some  false  and  rotten, 
some  more  tolerable,  some  lawful,  some  excellent.  Some  false  and 
rotten,  as  carnal  custom.  Shall  we  serve  God,  say  they,  as  we  have 
done  ?  Zech.  vii.  3 ;  when  men  only  do  as  they  have  done,  it  is  the 
manner  of  the  place,  they  learn  it  of  their  fathers,  and  so  customarily 
worship  and  serve  God.  Then  vainglory,  to  be  seen  of  men ;  that  is  a 
rotten  thing,  Mat.  vi.  Come  and  see  my  zeal  for  the  Lord,  saith  Jehu. 
This  may  put  us  upon  great  seeming  zeal  and  activity.  So  for  profit, 
to  make  a  market  of  religion ;  as  the  pharisees  got  themselves  credit 
to  be  trusted  with  widows'  estates  by  their  long  prayers ;  these  are 
rotten  principles.  Then  some  are  more  tolerable,  not  so  bad  principles 
as  the  former ;  as  when  we  serve  God  out  of  hope  of  temporal  mercy, 
as  when  they  howl  upon  their  beds  for  corn,  wine,  and  oil,  Hosea  vii.  4  ; 
or  for  fear  of  temporal  judgments,  when  men  hang  down  their  heads 


VERS.  116, 117.]        SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  207 

like  a  bulrush  for  a  while,  or  else  for  mere  fear  of  eternal  death,  they 
shall  else  be  damned  ;  when  men's  duties  are  a  sin-offering,  a  sleepy- 
sop  to  appease  an  accusing  conscience.  But  then  there  are  some  that 
are  lawful,  good,  and  sound,  as  when  duties  are  done  out  of  the  impul 
sion  of  an  enlightened  conscience,  that  urgeth  them  to  that  which  is 
good ;  or  upon  the  bare  command  of  God,  his  authority  swaying  the 
conscience ;  or  when  they  walk  in  the  ways  of  God  out  of  the  consi 
deration  of  the  reward  to  come,  a  respect  to  heaven  ;  this  is  very  good 
in  its  place.  Again,  there  are  some  excellent  principles  of  grace,  and 
which  do  most  of  all  discover  a  gospel  spirit,  a  well-tempered  frame  of 
soul  to  God,  and  these  are  love  to  God  because  of  his  benefits  and  love 
to  us,  gratitude,  and  thankfulness :  1  John  iv.  19,  '  We  love  him 
because  he  first  loved  us  ;'  and  Eom.  xii.  1,  'I  beseech  you  by  the 
mercies  of  God ; '  when  we  serve  him  out  of  love.  Again,  when  we 
serve  him  out  of  delight,  out  of  love  to  the  duty,  find  such  a  compla 
cency  in  the  work  that  we  love  the  work  for  the  work's  sake ;  as  David, 
'  I  love  thy  law  because  it  is  pure  ; '  when  we  love  the  law  for  the  purity 
of  it ;  or  when  the  glory  of  God  prevails  above  all  our  own  interests ; 
or  when  the  promises  and  covenant  of  God  enabling  of  us ;  that  is  our 
principle,  Heb.  x.  16.  I  observe  this,  men  usually  are  brought  on 
from  one  sort  of  principle  to  another  ;  from  sinful  principles  they  are 
brought  to  tolerable  and  lawful,  and  from  lawful  to  those  that  are 
rare  and  excellent. 

2.  This  is  such  a  mercy  as  gives  us  hope  of  more  mercy  in  that  kind. 
If  God  hath  held  us  up,  and  we  have  been  safe  hitherto,  then  we  may 
say,  Thou  hast  held  me  up.  We  may  look  for  more  ;  new  temptation 
will  bring  new  strength,  every  day's  work  will  bring  its  own  refresh 
ment.  God,  by  giving,  binds  himself  more  to  give,  for  he  loves  to 
crown  his  own  work.  When  he  hath  done  good,  he  will  do  good 
again  :  Zech.  iii.  2,  '  Is  not  this  a  brand  plucked  out  of  the  fire  ?'  He 
hath  saved  us,  and  he  will  save  us.  And  it  holds  good  sometimes  in 
temporal  mercies  :  2  Cor.  i.  10,  '  He  hath  delivered  us  from  so  great  a 
death,  and  doth  deliver.'  But  especially  it  holds  good  in  spiritual 
mercies  :  2  Tim.  iv.  17,  18,  '  He  hath  delivered  me  out  of  the  mouth 
of  the  lion.  And  the  Lord  shall  deliver  me  from  every  evil  work,  and 
will  preserve  me  unto  his  heavenly  kingdom.'  One  act  of  mercy  gives 
us  more.  God,  that  hath  begun,  will  make  an  end ;  he  that  hath  kept 
me  will  keep  me. 

Use.  It  serves  to  reprove  two  sorts  of  people: — 

1.  Those  that  are  unthankful  after  their  deliverance.     We  forget 
his  care  of  us,  and  never  think  how  much  we  owe  to  him.     When  the 
mariners  have  gotten  to  the  haven  and  harbour,  they  forget  the  tem 
pest  ;  so  these  forget  how  God  stood  by  them  in  the  temptation  and 
conflict ;  they  do  not  abound  more  in  the  work  of  the  Lord.     These 
are  like  those  that  would  have  deliverance,  that  thorns  might  be  taken 
out  of  the   way,  that  they  might  run  more  readily  to  that  which 
is  evil. 

2.  It  reproveth  those  that  faint  and  despond  in  God's  ways,  after 
much  experiences  of  his  help  and  presence  with  them.     The  Israelites 
in  the  wilderness,  upon  every  new  difficulty  their  faith  is  at  a  loss,  and 
then  back  again  to  Egypt  they  would  go ;  though  they  had  so  often 


208  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEE.  CXXXI. 

experience  of  God,  they  would  not  believe  him  because  of  his  wonders, 
but  '  forgat  his  works  and  his  wonders  that  he  had  showed  them/  Ps. 
Ixxviii.  11.  God  had  given  them  wonderful  mercy  in  destroying 
Pharaoh,  that  it  might  be  meat  to  their  faith,  yet  they  believed  not. 
Good  David  was  ready  to  say,  '  I  shall  one  day  perish  by  the  hand  of 
Saul,'  1  Sam.  xxvii.  1,  though  he  had  experience  upon  experience. 
We  should  rather  encourage  ourselves,  arid  go  on  in  our  work  notwith 
standing  all  difficulties. 

The  last  point,  from  the  accuracy  and  constancy  of  his  obedience, 
'  I  will  have  respect  unto  thy  statutes  continually.'  This  phrase  is 
diversely  rendered.  The  Septuagint  renders  it,  I  will  exercise  myself 
in  them,  or  apply  my  heart  to  them.  David's  regard  to  God's  law  is 
diversely  expressed  in  this  psalm. 

Doct.  4.  God's  precepts  must  be  respected  and  consulted  with  as  the 
constant  measure  and  direction  of  our  lives. 

Not  only  respect,  but  continual  respect:  Gal.  vi.  16,  'As  many  as 
walk  according  to  this  rule  ;'  it  notes  as  many  as  shall  walk  in  rank 
and  order :  there  needeth  great  accurateness  and  intension,  that  we 
may  keep  within  the  bounds  of  commanded  duty.  So  walk  circum 
spectly.  Some  men  are  so  crafty  through  their  self-deceiving  hearts, 
through  their  lusts  and  interests,  so  doubtful,  that  there  needs  a  great 
exactness,  and  so  apt  to  be  turned  out  of  the  way,  that  we  need  a  great 
deal  of  care  to  look  to  the  fountain  and  principle  of  our  actions,  to  look 
to  the  matter,  manner,  end,  and  weigh  all  circumstances  that  we  may 
serve  God  exactly. 


SERMON  CXXIX. 

Thou  hast  trodden  down  all  them  that  err  from  thy  statutes :  for 
their  deceit  is  falsehood. — VER.  118. 

IN  the  former  verse,  the  man  of  God  had  begged  establishment  in  the 
ways  of  God  ;  and  now,  as  a  help  to  what  he  had  prayed  for,  he  ob 
serves  God's  judgments  on  those  that  err  from  them.  It  is  a  special 
means  to  preserve  us  from  sin  to  observe  how  mischievous  it  hath  been 
to  those  that  close  with  it.  So  the  prophet  here,  '  I  will  have  respect 
to  thy  statutes.'  Why  ?  '  Thou  hast  trodden  down  them  that  err 
from  thy  statutes.'  By  this  means  we  learn  to  be  wise  at  other  men's 
costs,  and  are  whipped  upon  others'  backs  :  Zeph.  iii.  6,  7,  '  I  have  cut 
off  the  nations  :  their  towers  are  made  desolate,  their  cities  are  de 
stroyed  ;  there  is  none  inhabitant :  I  said,  Surely  thou  wilt  fear  me,' 
&c.  God  is  very  much  disappointed  if  we  be  not  bettered  and 
improved  by  his  judgments.  Exemplo  qui  peccat,  bis  peccat.  He 
that  would  plunge  himself  into  a  quagmire  where  others  have  mis 
carried  before,  sins  doubly,  because  he  neither  fears  threatenings,  nor 
would  take  warning  by  their  example.  God  looks  to  be  the  more 
reverenced  for  every  warning  he  gives  us  in  his  providence,  because 
then  what  was  before  matter  of  faith  is  made  matter  of  sense,  and 
needs  only  a  little  application.  Thus  it  will  be  with  me  if  I  should 


VEK.  118.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  209 

straggle  from  God,  and  go  contrary  to  his  direction  :  Lsa.  xxvi.  9, 
'  When  thy  judgments  are  in  the  earth,  the  inhabitants  of  the  world 
will  learn  righteousness/  We  need  not  doubt  any  more  whether  God 
will  punish  the  disobedient,  when  we  see  his  threatenings  made  good ; 
only  we  should  reflect  upon  our  hearts :  And  will  not  God  visit  my 
transgression  if  I  should  go  on  breaking  his  laws  ?  And  what  should 
hinder  making  such  application  ?  Are  not  all  sinners  alike  to  God  ? 
Christ  tells  us,  '  Ye  shall  all  likewise  perish  except  ye  repent,'  Luke 
xiii.  5.  They  contented  themselves  to  censure  those  on  whom  the 
tower  of  Siloam  fell.  The  desert  of  sin  is  the  same,  and  God's  justice 
as  exact  as  ever  ;  therefore,  if  others  are  punished,  why  not  we  ?  We 
are  strangely  stupid  if  we  do  not  walk  more  exactly  with  God.  This 
use  David  maketh  of  it.  Whether  it  were  a  judgment  past,  or  a  judg 
ment  expected  in  faith,  this  deterred  him  from  doing  as  they  did  : 
'  Thou  hast  trodden  down  them  that  err  from  thy  statutes.'  In  the 
words  observe — - 

1.  An  account  of  God's  judgments  upon  wicked  men,  '  Thou  hast 
trodden  down  them  that  err  from  thy  statutes.' 

2.  The  reason  given  of  that  dispensation,  *  For  their  deceit  is  false 
hood.' 

First,  In  the  first  place  observe — 

1.  The  notion  by  which  the  judgment  is  expressed,  thou  hast  trodden 
down. 

2.  The  persons  described  upon  whom  this  judgment  hath  lighted, 
or  shall  light,  them  that  err  from  thy  statutes. 

3.  The  note  of  universality,  all,  of  what  estate  or  condition  soever 
they  be. 

From  the  first  of  these  observe — 

Doct.  Those  that  proudly  err  from  God's  statutes,  God  can,  hath, 
and  will  soon  pull  them  down  with  ignominy  and  contempt. 
This  point  will  be  made  good  if  we  consider — 

1.  The  persons  described. 

2.  The  notion  by  which  judgment  is  expressed. 

3.  Something  concerning  the  certainty  of  this  judgment. 

1.  The  persons   described,    '  Them   that   err   from   thy   statutes/ 
Some  err  out  of  weakness,  and  some  out  of  pride  and  obstinacy.     (1.) 
To  err  out  of  weakness,  to  wander  in  by-paths  of  our  own,  is  not  safe : 
Ps.  125,  2,  '  As  for  such  as  turn  aside  unto  their  crooked  ways,  the 
Lord  shall  lead  them  forth  with  the  workers  of  iniquity/     Men  that 
do  not  sin  out  of  malice,  but  are  discouraged  by  the  rod  of  the  wicked 
resting  upon  the  lot  of  the  righteous,  ver.  3  ;  therefore  think  to  shift 
for  themselves  by  their  own  compliances,  counsels,  and  crooked  courses, 
God  will  deal  with  them  as  with  his  open  enemies.     (2.)  Proudly  to 
exalt  ourselves  against   God,   and  trample  his  interest  under  foot, 
will  bring  sure  judgment :  Ps.   cxix.  21,  '  Thou  hast  rebuked  the 
proud  that  are  cursed,  which  do  err  from  thy  commandments/     Of 
such  the  text  speaks,  those  that  oppose  themselves  against  God,  and 
bear  themselves  high  in  sinful  courses,  upon  account  of  their  pros 
perity. 

2.  The  notion  by  which  the  judgment  is  expressed,  '  Thou  hast 
trodden   down/      The   Septuagint  efouStVwo-a?,   ad  nihil  deduxisti, 

VOL.  VIII.  0 


210  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEB.  CXXIX. 

thou  hast  brought  to  nothing  ;  Acquila,  confixisti,  thou  hast  stricken 
through ;  Symmachus,  airr)\e<y%a$,  reprobasti,  thou  hast  disproved ; 
the  vulgar,  sprevisti,  thou  hast  contemned ;  Apollinarius,  aOepi^as, 
parvi  pependisti,  thou  hast  little  esteemed:  all  to  the  same  purpose. 
The  phrase  of  treading  under  foot,  used  by  us,  implies — (1.)  A  full 
punishment ;  (2.)  A  disgraceful  one. 

[1.]  A  full  punishment.  God  will  pull  them  down  from  their  alti 
tudes,  even  to  the  dust,  though  never  so  high  and  proudly  exalting 
themselves  against  God.  A  full  conquest  of  enemies  is  thus  often 
expressed  in  scripture :  Isa.  x.  6,  the  Assyrian  is  said  '  to  take  the 
prey,  and  to  tread  them  down  like  mire  in  the  streets  ; '  so  Micah  vii. 
10,  the  same  expression,  when  an  adversary  is  laid  even  with  the 
ground,,  that  he  may  be  crushed  and  trampled  upon,  as  Jehu  trode 
Jezebel  under  foot,  2  Kings  ix.  32  ;  and  Isa.  xxvi.  6,  'The  feet  of  the 
poor  shall  tread  it  down,  even  the  steps  of  the  needy.'  So  the  utter 
and  final  overthrow  of  Satan  is  expressed,  Kom.  xvi.  20,  '  He  shall 
tread  Satan  under  his  feet/ 

[2.]  It  implies  a  disgraceful  punishment:  Ps.  ex.  1,  '  Until  I  make 
thine  enemies  thy  footstool ; '  an  expression  to  show  the  ignominy  and 
contempt  God  will  put  upon  them.  Christ  keeps  his  sheep  in  his 
hands,  John  x.  28,  his  lambs  in  his  bosom,  Isa.  xl.  11,  and  his  ene 
mies  under  his  feet,  Josh.  x.  24.  When  he  vanquished  the  Canaan- 
itish  kings,  '  Come  near/  saith  he  to  his  captains  ;  '  put  your  feet  upon 
the  necks  of  these  kings.'  Thus  Sapores  the  king  of  Persia  trampled 
upon  Valentinian  the  emperor,  and  Tamberlane  made  Bajazet  his 
footstool.  The  meaning  is,  God  will  not  only  bring  them  under,  but 
reduce  them  to  an  abject  and  contemptible  condition.  So  Chrysos- 
tom  on  the  text  expoundeth  this  phrase,  that  God  will  make  them 
eVoz>et8/oToi;9,  KOI  KaTaye\dcrTov$ ,  ignominious  and  contemptible.  They 
shall  not  go  off  honourably,  but  with  scorn  and  confusion  of  face, 
miserably  broken. 

3.  The  certainty  of  this  judgment,  that  he  can,  hath,  and  will  do  so. 

[1.]  He  can  do  so,  though  they  be  fortified  with  never  so  many 
advantages,  for  what  is  too  hard  for  Gocl  who  made  all  things  ?  It 
is  easier,  we  know,  to  destroy  than  to  build  up  things.  Things 
long  a-building  may  be  destroyed  in  a  moment ;  and  therefore,  God, 
that  made  them,  can  destroy  them :  Isa.  xxvii.  4,  *  Who  would  set 
the  briers  and  thorns  against  me  in  battle  ?  I  would  go  through 
them,  I  would  burn  them  together.'  Briers  and  thorns  are  matter  to 
feed  the  fire,  not  to  quench  it.  We  want  faith  in  the  power  of  God, 
and  therefore  we  are  dismayed  when  we  see  wicked  men  great  and  high. 

[2.]  He  hath  done  so,  notwithstanding  their  greatness  and  proud 
attempts.  That  is  the  Psalmist's  expression  here  ;  God  hath  already 
trodden  down  many  such  persons,  and  hath  decreed  to  tread  down  all. 
Of  that  sort  the  prophet  speaks  as  a  thing  already  done,  either  in 
way  of  faith,  or  in  part  of  sense,  as  begun  to  be  executed :  Amos  ii.  9, 
'  I  destroyed  the  Amorite  before  them,  whose  height  was  like  the 
height  of  the  cedars,  and  he  was  strong  as  the  oaks ;  yet  I  destroyed 
his  fruit  from  above,  and  his  roots  from  beneath.'  Potent  and  mighty 
enemies,  if  they  stand  in  the  way  of  his  people's  mercies,  God  can  pluck 
them  up,  root  and  branch.  When  Pharaoh  advanced  himself  against 


VEK.  118.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  211 

the  people  of  God,  God  trod  him  down,  and  flung  him  into  the 
bottom  of  the  sea.  So  the  Psalmist  tells  us,  Ps.  cxxxv.  10,  *  He  smote 
great  nations,  and  slew  mighty  kings  for  their  sakes,  all  the  king 
doms  of  Canaan,  and  gave  their  land  for  an  heritage  unto  Israel  his 
people/  God  will  show  what  respect  he  hath  to  his  people  ;  there 
fore,  when  he  ariseth  to  avenge  their  quarrel,  nothing  shall  be  able 
to  stand  before  him. 

[3.]  He  will  do  so,  tread  them  down  all. 

(1.)  Because  of  his  invariable  justice :  '  God  is  but  one/  Gal.  iii. 
20  ;  that  is,  one  always  consonant  unto  himself,  what  he  hath  done  he 
will  do  ;  his  justice  is  the  same  that  ever  it  was,  and  his  power  the 
same  ;  and  therefore  in  all  his  dispensations  he  is  one  ;  that  is,  ever 
like  himself,  is  as  ready  to  take  vengeance  on  the  insolences  of  men 
now  as  before,  and  keepeth  a  proportion  in  his  proceedings  :  he  is  of 
one  mind,  and  who  can  turn  him  ? 

(2.)  Because  of  the  suitableness  between  judgment  and  sin.  They 
trample  all  that  is  holy  and  sacred  under  their  feet,  therefore  God  treadeth 
them  under  foot ;  they  despise  God,  therefore  are  despised,  1  Sam.  ii.  30  ; 
they  trample  upon  the  grace  of  God  in  Christ,  therefore  are  said,  Heb. 
x.  29,  {to  tread  the  blood  of  the  covenant  under  foot;'  they  trample  upon 
the  law  of  God  :  Amos  ii.  4,  'I  will  not  turn  away  the  punishment  there 
of,  because  they  have  despised  my  law  ; '  they  trample  upon  all  godly 
admonitions  and  reproofs:  Mat.  vii.  6, '  Cast  not  your  pearls  before  swine, 
lest  they  trample  them  under  their  feet,  and  turn  again  and  rend 
you  ; '  and  they  trample  the  servants  of  God  under  foot,  and  make  his 
saints  bow  down  for  them  to  go  over,  Isa.  Ii.  23 ;  and  therefore  are  they 
themselves  trodden  under  foot.  They  despised  God,  and  he  therefore 
despiseth  them,  and  poureth  contempt  upon  them ;  and  the  more  they 
esteem  themselves,  of  the  less  reckoning  are  they  with  God. 

(3.)  For  the  undeceiving  the  world,  who  usually  look  to  sensible 
things.  While  their  ways  are  prosperous,  we  make  another  manner 
of  judgment  upon  them  than  we  do  when  they  are  under  contempt 
and  disgrace  :  Mai.  iii.  15,  '  We  call  the  proud  happy  ;  yea  they  that 
work  wickedness  are  set  up,  and  they  that  tempt  God  are  even  de 
livered.'  We  dote  too  much  upon  outward  things,  insomuch  that 
things  wicked,  if  prosperous,  seem  good  and  holy.  Our  affections 
bribe  our  judgments,  and  those  things  that  we  would  otherwise  loathe 
have  a  fair  gloss  and  varnish  put  upon  them.  It  is  a  mighty  tempta 
tion,  even  to  good  men,  and  they  begin  to  have  other  thoughts  of 
things  when  to  appearance  they  are  befriended  by  God's  providence 
and  succeed  beyond  expectation  ;  therefore  God  will  tread  them  down. 

(4.)  To  undeceive  sinners  themselves,  that  are  hardened  by  their 
own  prosperity  and  success,  and  make  God's  providence  and  forbear 
ing  punishment  to  be  an  approbation  of  their  actions  against  his  law. 
So  Ps.  1.  21,  '  These  things  hast  thou  done,  and  I  kept  silence  ;  thou 
thoughtest  I  was  altogether  such  an  one  as  thyself,  but  I  will  re 
prove  thee.'  God  may  for  a  long  time  endure  very  horrible  provoea- 
tions  without  any  act  or  mark  of  vengeance,  till  sinners  flatter  them 
selves  that  the  things  they  do  are  pleasing  to  God ;  but  they  shall 
find  they  have  erred  when  they  read  their  sins  in  their  punishment : 
Mai.  ii.  9,  '  Therefore  have  I  also  made  you  contemptible  and  base  be- 


212  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXXIX. 

fore  all  the  people,  according  as  ye  have  not  kept  my  ways,  but  have 
been  partial  in  the  law.'  The  great  God  aims  at  the  repentance  of 
men,  both  in  his  forbearance  and  his  punishment.  In  his  forbear 
ance  :  Kom.  ii.  4,  '  Not  knowing  that  the  forbearance  of  God  leadetli 
to  repentance/  He  is  pleased  to  suffer  them  that  offend  him  grie 
vously  to  taste  the  goodness  of  his  providence,  and  have  their  turn  in 
this  world's  felicity,  to  see  if  that  will  better  them  ;  if  not,  then  he 
poureth  contempt  and  shame  upon  them,  that  by  his  frowns  he  may 
further  their  conviction.  When  prosperity  is  a  temptation,  God  will 
change  the  dispensation,  and  instead  of  general  favour  and  respect, 
they  meet  with  shame  and  disestimation  and  disgrace.  This  is  the 
punishment  of  those  that  are  partial  in  his  law.  It  is  true  this  is  not 
to  be  taken  singly  without  the  foregoing  provocation.  It  was  the  lot 
of  Christ  and  his  prophets  and  apostles  to  be  disrespected  in  a  wicked 
world,  and  such  a  trial  may  befall  his  faithful  messengers.  Yet  when 
this  is  the  fruit  of  foregoing  unfaithfulness,  and  men  that  had  nothing 
to  commend  them  to  the  world  but  their  height  and  grandeur,  that 
only  had  a  testimony  in  men's  carnal  affections  because  of  their  great 
ness,  and  not  a  testimony  in  men's  consciences  because  of  their  purity 
and  holiness  and  good  fruits,  as  good  men  have  been  in  the  consciences 
of  those  that  hate  them,  it  is  to  them  a  judgment.  But,  however,  when 
those  that  in  the  main  are  faithful  are  by  a  righteous  providence  ex 
posed  to  ignominy  and  contempt,  they  ought  the  more  to  search  their 
ways,  and  to  see  whether  they  have  been  throughout  with  God  in  the 
conscience  of  their  duty  to  liirn,  and  whether  some  neglect  and  par 
tiality  of  theirs  hath  not  brought  this  judgment  upon  them. 

(5.)  To  give  a  check  to  the  insolency  of  men  who  abuse  their 
power,  and  think  they  may  do  what  they  please  when  they  have  no 
hindrance  and  rub  in  the  way :  Micah  ii.  1,  '  They  do  evil  because  it 
is  in  the  power  of  their  hands.'  Kestraints  of  conscience  prevail  not 
with  many,  but  only  restraints  of  providence.  It  is  no  thanks  to  them 
if  they  are  not  worse  than  they  are  ;  it  is  not  because  they  want  will, 
but  because  they  want  power.  Therefore  God  cuts  them  short,  and 
treads  them  down  like  mire. 

Use  1.  A  warning  to  them  that  are  in  prosperity,  that  they  do  not 
carry  it  proudly  against  God,  his  ways  and  people.  God  hath  un 
horsed  many  that  have  held  their  heads  very  high ;  therefore  let  none 
presume  to  do  evil  because  they  are  high  and  exalted.  There  is  a 
foolish  and  mad  confidence  which  wicked  men  have  in  their  pros 
perity,  as  if  they  were  above  the  reach  of  providence,  and  therefore 
abuse  their  greatness  to  contempt  and  oppression.  When  men  are 
up  they  know  nothing  moderate.  Former  judgments  upon  the  proud 
and  disobedient,  that  contemn  God,  his  people  and  ways,  should  a 
little  check  them.  God,  that  hath  scattered  the  proud  in  the  imagi 
nation  of  their  hearts,  Luke  i.  51,  can  do  it  again,  and  will,  when  men 
will  not  take  warning.  As  Nazianzen,  when  his  heart  was  like  to  be 
corrupted  and  grow  wanton  with  ease  and  prosperity,  I  thought,  saith 
he,  of  reading  the  Lamentations  of  Jeremiah,  and  of  the  doleful  con 
dition  of  the  church  in  former  times.  This  means  he  took  to  reduce 
himself  to  a  holy  sobriety.  This  is  the  thing  God  aimed  at  in  the 
ceremonial  law.  In  the  thank-offerings,  leavened  bread  was  required, 


VER.  118.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  213 

which  was  allowed  in  no  other  sacrifice  ;  thereby  showing  we  should 
not  so  surfeit  and  run  riot  with  our  mercies  as  to  forget  the  bitterness 
of  former  afflictions,  together  with  the  causes  of  them. 

Use  2.  Not  to  be  dismayed  at  the  prosperity  of  the  wicked,  so  as  to 
be  troubled  either  about  your  own  persons,  or  about  the  cause  of  God, 
or  to  cry  up  a  confederacy  with  them  that  err  from  God's  statutes 
when  uppermost.  Wicked  men  are  here  supposed  to  be  in  power, 
height,  and  pride  of  spirit ;  but  God  treadeth  them  down  :  and  to  be 
full  of  craft  and  subtlety  ;  but  their  deceit  is  falsehood  ;  that  is,  for  all 
their  might  and  subtlety,  they  are  not  able  to  resist  God.  David  was 
shaken  with  this  trial,  when  evil  men  were  great  flourished  in  wealth 
and  authority,  Ps.  Ixxiii.  17 ;  but  how  doth  he  settle  his  heart  ?  '  I 
went  into  the  sanctuary,  and  there  I  understood  their  end.'  When 
we  look  to  the  end  of  things,  that  will  settle  us  ;  but  when  we  see 
God's  work  by  halves,  we  miscarry :  we  make  another  judgment  when 
we  see  God's  work  brought  to  perfection  than  we  did  when  we  only 
saw  the  beginning  of  it.  Therefore  let  us  not  be  altogether  dismayed ; 
a  little  faith  will  help  us  against  the  temptations  from  sense.  When 
the  Lord  shall  have  tried  and  humbled  his  people,  then  the  cup  is  put 
into  the  hand  of  the  wicked,  and  God  will  throw  them  down  from  the 
seat  of  their  arrogancy,  and  trample  upon  them  like  dust.  What 
should  hinder  ?  Cannot  God  do  it,  or  will  he  not?  Cannot  he  do  it? 
Yes  ;  very  easily.  Poor  earthen  vessels  that  oppose  him,  they  do  but 
dash  themselves  against  a  rock,  they  do  but  break  themselves  in 
pieces  ;  all  attempts  are  nothing  ;  God  will  laugh  them  to  scorn.  Or 
else  will  he  not  do  it  ?  Doth  not  he  hate  sin  as  much  as  before,  or 
love  his  people  as  much  as  ever  ?  What  God  punisheth  in  one  he 
punisheth  in  all,  if  repentance  prevent  not ;  he  oweth  them  a  shame,, 
therefore  will  pour  contempt  and  disgrace  upon  those  that  dishonour 
him,  Ps.  liii.  5.  It  might  soon  be  known  what  will  become  of  them, 
if  you  would  but  awaken  faith  ;  you  may  look  upon  it  as  a  thing 
accomplished  already :  he  shall  tread  down  all  iniquity  under  his  feet, 
Mai.  iv.  3. 

,  Use  3.  Observe  the  judgments  upon  those  that  err  from  God's 
statutes,  that  we  may  fear  before  the  Lord,  and  believe  in  him,  and 
learn  to  obey  his  statutes.  David  trembled  to  see  Uzzah  smitten,  2 
Sam.  vi.  7,  8 ;  so  should  we  wrhen  God  revenges  the  quarrel  of  any 
commandment.  Examples  of  judgments  are  lively  instances,  and  are 
apt  to  strike  deep  upon  the  heart.  Therefore,  when  we  read  or  hear 
or  see  any  of  these,  we  should  look  upon  it  as  a  warning  piece  let  off 
from  heaven  to  warn  us  not  to  sin  after  the  similitude  of  their  trans 
gression.  God  comes  to  speak  to  us  in  the  language  of  sense ;  when 
we  cannot  understand  by  faith,  he  makes  good  his  threatenings.  The 
unbelieving  Israelites  were  destroyed,  Jude  5  ;  Aaron's  sons  for  offer 
ing  strange  fire  were  consumed,  Lev.  x. ;  Uzzah  for  touching  the  ark ; 
Lot's  wife  for  looking  back  turned  into  a  pillar  of  salt ;  therefore  it  is 
said,  '  Remember  Lot's  wife/  Luke  xvii.  32.  So  in  every  age  there 
are  remarkable  judgments,  how  God  treads  down  those  that  err  from 
his  statutes  ;  which  should  be  observed,  not  to  censure  others,  but  for 
our  own  caution. 

But  now,  because  men  are  apt  to  misapply  providence  by  a  mali- 


214  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEB.  CXXIX. 

cious  interpretation,  and  to  make  perverse  judgments  of  the  sins  of 
others,  I  shall  give  you  some  rules  how  you  may  avoid  censure  on  the 
one  hand,  yet  not  hinder  profit  on  the  other. 

1.  It  is  certain  God's  judgments  upon  others  must  be  observed : 
Jer.  vii.  12,  'Go  unto  my  place  which  was  in  Shiloh,  where  I  set  my 
name  at  the  first,  and  see  what  I  did  to  it,  for  the  wickedness  of  my 
people  Israel;'  Amos  vi.  2,  'Pass  ye  to  Calneh,  and  see;  and  from  thence 
go  ye  to  Hamath  the  great ;  then  go  down  to  Gath  of  the  Philistines  : 
be  they  better  than  these  kingdoms?'     It  is  stupidness  not  to  take 
notice  of  God's  hand.     Providence  is  a  comment  upon  the  word  of 
God,  written  many  times  in  blood,  and  those  that  will  not  observe  it 
shall  feel  it.     '  Remember  Lot's  wife.7     One  observeth  upon  those 
words,  Lege  historiam,  nefias  liistoria — observe  the  instances  of  God's 
wrath  upon  others,  lest  thou  be  made  an  instance  thyself.      Some 
times  God  meets  with  this  sinner,  sometimes  that ;  any  that  will  go  on 
in  a  way  of  sin  and  disobedience  against  God. 

2.  This  observation  must  "be  to  a  good  end  ;  not  to  censure  others, 
for  that  is  malice :  to  speak  even  to  the  grief  of  those  whom  God  hath 
wounded,  this  is  condemned,  as  enemies  did  of  the  people  of  God  in 
their  affliction,  Jer.  1.  7.     Neither  must  we  do  it  to  justify  ourselves; 
that  is  pride  and  self-conceit,  condemned  Luke  xiii.  5,  '  Except  ye 
repent  ye  shall  all  likewise  perish ; '  but  for  instruction,  that  we  may 
fear  for  ourselves :  Zeph.  iii.  7,  '  Surely  now  thou  shalt  fear  me.'     And 
that  we  may  be  cautioned  against  the  like  sins,  that  we  may  see  what 
an  evil  and  bitter  thing  it  is  to  forsake  the  Lord,  Jer.  ii.  19 ;  and 
that  we  may  admire  the  Lord's  mercy  to  us,  that  we  are  not  set  out  as 
marks  of  his  vengeance,  that  we  are  not  in  their  condition,  Amos  vi.  2 ; 
that  we  may  give  to  the  Lord  the  glory  of  his  mercy,  justice,  and 
truth.     Take  one  place  for  all :  Eom.  xi.  22,  there  the  apostle  doth 
sum  up  all  these  three,  that  we  might  not  boast  ourselves  over  others, 
that  we  may  admire  the  justice  of  God,  and  mercy  to  us- ward,  and 
may  learn  to  fear  him,  and  walk  cautiously  and  humbly  with  him,  lest 
we'  contract  the  like  judgment  upon  ourselves. 

3.  In  making  the  observation,  there  must  be  care  that  we  do  not 
make  providence  speak  a  language  which  it  owneth  not,  the  language 
of  our  fancies,  and  pry  into  God's  counsels  without  warrant. 

[1.]  When  you  come  to  observe  judgment,  there  must  be  a  due 
reasoning  from  the  provocation  to  the  judgment,  but  not  e  contra,  not 
judge  of  the  wickedness  of  the  person  by  the  affliction  of  the  person. 
The  barbarians  showed  little  reason,  and  less  charity,  in  misconstru 
ing  the  passage  of  the  viper  fastening  upon  St  Paul's  hand,  Acts 
xxviii.  4.  The  foregoing  provocation  must  be  evident  before  we  in 
terpret  the  judgment  The  dispensations  of  God's  providence  are 
common,  and  fall  alike  to  good  and  bad,  Eccles.  ix.  2.  God  by  a 
sudden  stroke  may  take  off  the  godly  as  well  as  the  wicked.  Good 
Eli  broke  his  neck,  1  Sam.  iv.  18,  and  Josiah  died  in  the  army  in  the 
same  manner  that  Ahab  did,  by  an  arrow  in  battle  after  he  disguised 
himself,  1  Chron.  xxxv.  23.  Therefore  do  not  reason  from  the  stroke 
of  God.  Shimei  misinterpreted  David's  afflictions  :  2  Sam.  xvi.  7,  8, 
'  Come  out,  thou  bloody  man,  and  thou  man  of  Belial ;  the  Lord  hath 
returned  upon  thee  all  the  blood  of  the  house  of  Saul,  in  whose  stead 


VER.  118.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  215 

thou  hast  reigned  ;  and  the  Lord  hath  delivered  the  kingdom  into  the 
hand  of  Absalom  thy  son.'  Job's  friends  thought  him  a  hypocrite  be 
cause  God  smote  him  with  boils  and  sores.  The  best  of  God's  children 
may  suffer  greatly  from  his  hand  ;  but  the  judgment  must  not  make 
you  conclude  a  sin,  but  the  foregoing  sin  must  make  you  interpret  it 
to  be  a  judgment. 

[2.]  When  the  sin  is  written  upon  the  judgment,  and  there  are 
some  remarkable  circumstances  wherein  the  sin  and  the  judgment 
meet ;  as  Judges  i.  7,  Adonibezek,  as  he  served  his  vanquished  enemies, 
so  was  he  served  himself,  his  thumbs  and  toes  cut  off.  God's  retalia 
tion  is  very  notable.  Many  judgments  have  a  signature  upon  them, 
as  many  herbs  in  nature  have  a  signature  to  show  for  what  use  they 
serve  :  Obad.  15,  'As  thou  hast  done,  it  shall  be  done  unto  thee  ;  thy 
reward  shall  return  upon  thine  own  head.'  When  God  payeth  men 
home  in  their  own  coin — Gen.  ix.  6,  '  Whoso  sheddeth  man's  blood,  by 
man  shall  his  blood  be  shed — it  is  not  only  a  law,  what  ought  to  be 
done  in  justice,  but  a  rule  of  providence,  what  shall  be  done.  Pharaoh 
was  the  author  of  the  execution  in  drowning  the  Israelites'  children,  so 
Pharaoh  and  all  his  host,  his  nobility  and  men  of  war,  were  drowned 
in  the  sea.  Ahab' s  blood  was  licked  up  with  dogs  in  the  place  where 
they  licked  up  the  blood  of  Naboth.  Jezebel  was  more  guilty  than  he  ; 
Ahab  permitted  it,  but  Jezebel  contrived  it ;  Ahab  humbled  himself, 
therefore  his  body  was  buried,  but  Jezebel  was  entombed  in  the  bellies 
of  dogs.  Hamaji  was  hanged  on  the  gallows  set  up  for  Mordecai. 
Henry  III.  of  France  was  killed  in  the  same  chamber  where  the  mas 
sacre  was  contrived.  Charles  IX.  flowed  with  blood  in  his  bed.  Thus 
God  will  requite  men  in  the  same  kind.  His  own  people  meet  with 
this.  Jacob  supplanted  his  elder  brother,  and  therefore  the  elder  is 
brought  to  him  instead  of  the  younger.  Asa  put  the  prophet  in  the 
stocks,  and  he  was  diseased  in  his  feet.  Joseph's  brethren  were  not 
flexible  to  his  request;  afterwards,  when  they  were  in  extremity, 
Joseph  proves  inexorable  to  them:  Gen.  xlii.  21,  'We  are  verily 
guilty  concerning  our  brother,  in  that  we  saw  the  anguish  of  his  soul 
when  he  besought  us,  and  we  would  not  hear ;  therefore  is  this  distress 
come  upon  us.'  How  comes  this  into  their  minds  ?  This  was  many 
years  after  the  fact  was  committed,  some  twenty  years  as  they  com 
puted.  So  God  deals  with  his  children  in  like  manner  as  they  dealt 
with  others,  that  their  consciences  may  work  the  more  kindly.  The 
same  is  observed  concerning  David  and  Absalom,  2  Sam.  xii.  10-12. 
He  took  the  wife  of  Uriah  to  be  his  wife,  and  Absalom  took  his  wives 
before  his  eyes.  St  Paul  consented  to  the  stoning  of  Stephen,  and 
assisted  in  the  execution,  '  They  laid  down  their  garments  at  his  feet;' 
therefore,  afterwards,  Paul  himself  for  preaching  the  gospel  is  stoned 
and  left  for  dead,  Acts  xiv.  19,  20.  Barnabas  was  not  stoned,  that 
assisted  Paul ;  both  were  alike  offensive  to  the  men  of  Iconium  in 
preaching  the  gospel.  Paul  was  sensible  of  this  as  a  great  part  of  his 
guilt,  Acts,  xxii.  20,  and  his  conscience  works  upon  that.  Many  other 
instances  might  be  given,  but  this  is  enough. 

[3.]  When  judgments  fall  upon  them  in  the  very  act  of  their  pro 
vocation.  Thus  many  are  taken  away  by  a  violent  death  in  the  very 
heat  of  their  drunkenness.  Zimri  and  Cozbi  lost  their  lives  in  the 


216  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiB.  CXXIX. 

very  instant  when  they  were  unloading  their  lusts,  and  -many  times  we 
see  punishment  treads  upon  the  heels  of  sin. 

[4.]  When  they  are  authors  of  their  own  destruction.  Not  only 
in  such  a  sensible  manner  as  Saul,  Achitophel,  and  Judas,  that  mur 
dered  themselves ;  but  thus,  when  men  are  given  up  to  their  headlong 
counsels,  to  break  themselves :  Prov.  v.  22,  '  His  own  iniquities  shall 
take  the  wicked  himself,  and  he  shall  be  hoi  den  with  the  cords  of  his 
sins/  Wicked  men  are  often  whipped  with  their  own  rods;  and  Ps.  ix. 
15,16,  'In  the  net  which  they  hid,  is  their  own  foot  taken.  The 
Lord  is  known  by  the  judgment  which  he  executeth  :  the  wicked  is 
snared  in  the  work  of  his  own  hands.  Higgajon,  Selah.'  When  by 
their  own  errors,  mistakes,  and  furious  passions  they  undo  themselves. 

[5.]  When  evil  men  are  brought  down,  wonderfully,  suddenly,  con 
trary  to  all  apparent  likelihood  and  the  course  of  second  causes  :  Ps. 
Ixiv.  7,  '  God  shall  shoot  at  them  with  an  arrow,  suddenly  shall  they 
be  wounded ;  so  they  shall  make  their  own  tongue  to  fall  upon  them 
selves.'  And  Ps.  Iviii.  7,  unto  the  llth  verse,  there  is  this  consolation 
given  to  the  church,  that  enemies  shall  be  destroyed  before  the  pots 
ieel  the  thorns.  When  they  are  contriving  and  boiling  somewhat  *io 
their  minds,  before  the  pots  feel  the  thorns,  God  takes  them  away 
suddenly  in  an  instant,  and  then  men  shall  say,  Verily  there  is  a  re- 
warder  of  evil. 

[6.]  When  God's  judgments  are  executed  by  unlikely  means  and 
instruments.  Sisera,  a  great  captain,  destroyed  by  Jael,  Judges  iv.  21 ; 
Adrian  the  pope  strangled  by  a  gnat ;  Arius  voiding  his  bowels  in  a 
draught  after  his  perjury  ;  Cora,  Dathan,  and  Abiram,  when  the  earth 
clave  to  receive  them  that  had  made  a  rent  in  the  congregation ;  and 
Herod  was  eaten  up  with  the  lice. 

[7.]  When  such  accidents  bring  a  great  deal  of  glory  to  God,  and 
peace  and  tranquillity  to  his  people ;  as  hanging  Haman  with  his  sons 
upon  his  own  gallows,  Esther  vii.  9,  and  viii.  17. 

[8.]  When  God  supplies  the  defects  of  man's  justice,  and  their 
iniquity  finds  them  out,  when  they  think  all  is  forgotten,  and  shall  be 
no  more  heard  of :  Ps.  ix.  12,  '  When  he  maketh  inquisition  for  blood, 
he  remembereth  them ;  he  forgetteth  not  the  cry  of  the  humble.' 
There  are  many  instances  how  God  finds  out  men  that  seem  to  escape 
well  enough  from  man's  hands,  when  they  could  not  be  found  out  by 
man.  Zeph.  iii.  5,  the  prophet  tells  us,  '  Every  morning  he  will  bring 
his  judgments  to  light/  There  is  some  sinner  or  other  which  God 
notably  punisheth,  that  men  may  own  his  providence. 

[9.]  When  the  word  /car a  TO  p^roz/,  in  the  express  letter,  is  made 
good  upon  men :  Hosea  vii.  12,  '  I  will  chastise  them,  as  their  congre 
gation  hath  heard/  The  word  doth  fully  take  effect,  and  what  they 
would  not  believe  they  are  made  to  feel.  By  these  rules  we  may 
observe  God's  judgments  with  profit.  To  quicken  you  to  do  so,  con 
sider — 

(1.)  It  would  be  a  mighty  cure  to  atheism.  There  are  a  sort  of 
men  '  settled  on  their  lees,  that  say  in  their  heart,  The  Lord  will  not 
do  good,  neither  will  he  do  evil,'  Zeph.  i.  12 ;  that  think  God  is  so 
shut  up  within  the  curtain  of  the  heavens,  that  he  takes  no  notice  of 
what  is  done  below.  These  vain  conceits  would  soon  vanish  if  men 


VER.  118.]  SERMONS  urox  PSALM  cxix.  217 

would  but  turn  students  in  .God's  providence;  they  would  soon  cry 
out,  Verily  there  is  a  reward  for  the  righteous  ;  verily  there  is  a  God 
that  judgeth  in  the  earth:  they  would  say,  There  is  a  ruler  of  the 
affairs  of  the  world,  and  a  righteous  judge  that  takes  care  of  all  things 
here  below.  Usually  men  think  amiss  of  God,  as  if,  good  and  evil 
were  of  no  respect  with  him,  but  all  things  were  governed  by  chance ; 
as  Job's  wife  said,  '  Dost  thou  yet  retain  thy  integrity  ?  Curse  God 
and  die.'  Mai.  ii.  12,  '  Ye  have  wearied  the  Lord  with  your  words, 
yet  ye  say,  Wherein  have  we  wearied  him  ?  When  ye  say,  Every  one 
that  doeth  evil  is  good  in  the  sight  of  the  Lord,  and  he  delighteth  in 
them ;  or,  Where  is  the  God  of  judgment  ? '  We  do  not  see  his  justice, 
and  so  have  atheistical  and  evil  conceits  of  God.  When  we  fancy  evil 
men  are  in  esteem,  and  the  good  neglected  and  despised,  it  is  a  tempta 
tion  to  men  to  think  there  is  no  providence — no  God.  So  when  the 
nocerit  are  prosperous,  and  the  good  vexed  with  all  manner  of  dis 
pleasure  ;  as  Claudian  the  poet  much  doubted  whether  there  were  any 
such  thing  as  providence,  that  had  a  care  of  sublunary  things  ;  but  at 
length,  when  he  saw  Kuffinus  was  only  lifted  up  that  his  fall  might  be 
the  greater,  then  he  no  more  calls  in  question  God's  providence,  or 
taxes  him  of  indifferency  to  good  and  evil. 

(2.)  It  will  be  a  notable  curb  and  awe  upon  us  to  keep  us  from  sin  ; 
for  all  these  things  befall  them  for  our  learning.  It  is  our  stupid  in- 
cogitancy  when  God  puts  these  examples  before  our  eyes,  and  we  are 
not  affected  with  them,  and  so  are  of  little  use  to  us :  Josh.  ix.  3, 
'  When  the  inhabitants  of  Gibeon  heard  what  Joshua  did  to  Jericho 
and  to  Ai,'  they  were  wiser  than  we  ;  they  did  not  expect  the  coming 
of  Joshua,  but  sent  messengers  to  meet  him  and  strike  up  a  covenant 
with  him.  Or  as  that  captain  that  came  to  Elijah,  2  Kings  i.  13, 
when  two  captains  were  destroyed  with  their  fifties,  he  comes  and 
desires  the  prophet  to  spare  his  life,  and  that  those  he  brought  with 
him  might  be  dear  and  precious  in  his  eyes.  As  he  did,  so  should  we. 
God  hath  smitten  this  and  that  for  sin ;  we  should  the  more  humble 
ourselves,  and  desire  terms  of  grace ;  but  our  blindness  and  stupidness 
is  such  that  we  are  not  moved  with  God's  judgments  on  others  to  look 
to  the  state  of  our  souls  :  Prov.  xxii.  3,  '  The  wise  man  foreseeth  the 
evil  and  hideth  himself,  but  the  fool  goeth  on  and  is  punished.' 

Secondly,  I  come  now  to  the  reason  rendered,  '  For  their  deceit  is 
falsehood.'  The  Septuagint  hath  on  CL'OLKOV  TO  evOv^p^a  CLVTWV — thou 
hast  despised  all  those  that  err  from  thy  statutes,  for  their  thought  is 
unjust.  But  to  open  the  words.  These  two  notions,  deceit  and  false 
hood,  sometimes  are  taken  for  the  vanity  of  outward  things,  the  disap 
pointment  of  trust ;  for  by  an  ill-built  trust  a  man  deceives  himself,  and 
his  hopes  prove  false ;  and  sometimes  they  are  put  for  craft,  guile,  arid 
hypocrisy.  Now,  according  to  these  different  acceptions  of  the  word, 
diverse  senses  are  given.  (1.)  Some  think  these  words  relate  to  the 
disappointment  of  their  trust.  Thus  their  confidences  wherein  they 
trust  will  deceive  them  at  last,  and  be  found  falsehood.  Certain  it  is 
that  carnal  men  have  many  imaginations  and  carnal  confidences 
wherein  they  flatter  themselves,  and  hope  to  avoid  their  appointed 
judgments,  which  prove  in  the  conclusion  but  lying  vanities.  If  this 
were  the  sense,  that  at  length  it  shall  appear  how  deceitful  their  trust 


218  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiR.  CXXIX. 

is,  then  it  concerns  us  to  see  to  our  trust,  to  see  what  in  probability 
these  confidences  might  he  whereby  they  deceive  their  own  souls.  Is 
it  their  greatness  and  present  height  ?  This  deceiveth  them  when 
they  are  brought  down  wonderfully,  Isa.  xiv.  12-16.  Or  is  it  meant 
of  their  devices  and  witty  counsels  wherein  they  trust  ?  But  their 
subtle  devices  fail,  and  they  are  often  taken  in  the  snares  they  laid  for 
others :  Isa.  xxix.  14,  '  The  wisdom  of  the  wise  men  shall  perish,  and 
the  understanding  of  the  prudent  shall  be  hidden.'  All  their  craft  will 
do  them  no  good ;  all  their  cunning  and  policy,  by  which  they  hope  to 
fortify  and  defend  themselves  and  prevent  their  ruin,  shall  come  to 
nought.  Or  they  do  not  get  that  by  their  deceit  which  they  hope  for  ; 
though  they  have  many  methods  and  stratagems  to  circumvent  the 
people  of  God,  yet  they  shall  prove  but  vain.  (2.)  Most  simply  it 
seemeth  to  be  taken  for  hypocrisy  and  guile  of  spirit,  manifested  either 
in  shows  of  piety  or  any  guileful  course,  whereby  they  would  under 
mine  others  ;  for  this  reason  God  will  bring  them  down. 

Doct.  All  fraudulency  and  hypocrisy  is  hateful  to  God,  therefore 
he  will  sooner  or  later  discover  and  destroy  those  that  practise  it. 

Fraudulency  is  twofold  : — 

1.  Either  falsehood  in  ordinary  commerce,  lying   or  treacherous 
imposing  on  the  simplicity  of  upright  and  honest  men.     Most  men's 
wisdom  and  policy  lies  in  their  falsehood  and  deceitfulness  ;  but  this 
shall  be  manifested,  and  whilst  they  think  to  deceive  others,  they  shall 
be  deceived  themselves,  Job  v.  13,  and  be  taken  in  their  own  snares; 
and  whilst  they  seek  to  ruin  and  undermine  others,  they  are  ruined 
and  undermined  themselves.     Or — 

2.  There  is  another  sort  of  fraudulency,  pretences  of  piety,  whereby 
such  men  deceive  the  world.    Now  this  deceit  is  threefold — either  the 
deceit  of  the  heretic  and  erroneous  person,  or  the  formalist  and  super- 
titious  person,  or  the  deceit  of  those  that  pretend  to  be  truly  religious. 
All  these  cheats  put  upon  the  world  shall  not  long  hold. 

[1.]  The  cheat  of  erroneous  persons  and  heretical  seducers,  who, 
under  a  fair  mask  and  plausible  appearance,  carry  on  such  designs  as 
prove  troublesome  and  noxious  to  the  church  of  God.  Though  for  a 
while  they  carry  great  sway  under  colour  of  a  godly  life,  yet  at  length 
God  will  tread  them  to  dust  and  nothing,  and  then  all  will  be  counted 
but  deceit.  The  deceit  of  heretical  seducers  is  often  spoken  of  in 
scripture  :  Rev.  ii.  9,  'I  know  the  blasphemy  of  them  which  say  they 
are  Jews,  and  are  not,  but  are  the  synagogue  of  Satan  ;'  and  1  Tim. 
iii.  5,  9,  '  But  they  shall  proceed  no  farther ;  for  their  folly  shall  be 
manifest  unto  all  men.'  When,  under  a  form  of  godliness,  they  carry  on 
a  horrible  design  unto  the  great  disturbance  of  the  church,  of  the 
kingdom  and  commonwealth,  the  day  shall  declare  it,  1  Cor.  iii.  13 ; 
God  will  bring  them  down. 

[2.]  There  is  the  deceit  of  superstitious  persons  and  formalists,  who 
seem  to  be  devout,  and  have  great  zeal  for  outward  things,  not  com 
manded  by  God  ;  such  'make  a  fair  show  in  the  flesh,'  Gal.  vi.  12,  by 
observing  outward  and  carnal  rites,  as  circumcision,  difference  of 
meats,  legal  purifications ;  all  their  religion  is  but  a  vain  show,  to  be 
guile  a  loose  conscience.  This  same  sort  of  men  are  again  described 
to  be  those  that  '  speak  lies  in  hypocrisy/  1  Tim.  iv.  7.  These  also 


VER.  118.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  219 

do  in  time  discover  the  folly  of  their  way,  manifested  by  some  notable 
judgment;  for  these  things  take  not  hold  of  men's  consciences,  but 
only  of  their  affections ;  and  when  public  countenance  is  gone,  they  are 
of  no  more  esteem. 

[3.]  There  is  the  deceit  of  those  that  only  pretend  to  be  truly 
religions,  and  are  not  so  ;  and  because  false  and  counterfeit,  they  are 
hateful  and  abominable  to  God.  Now  these  God  will  not  only  punish 
in  the  other  world  :  Mat.  xxiv.  51,  'He  shall  appoint  him  his  portion 
with  the  hypocrites  ; '  hell  seems  to  be  their  freehold  and  patrimony ; 
but  here,  sooner  or  later,  God  will  pluck  off  these  vizards,  and  bring 
disappointment  and  ruin  upon  these  deceivers :  Prov.  xxvi.  26,  the 
hypocrite  shall  be  discovered  before  the  congregation.  Things  that 
are  counterfeit  and  false  do  not  long  hold  out.  God  will  discover 
them,  either  by  some  trying  judgment,  as  he  that  builds  upon  the 
sand,  when  the  winds  blow  and  beat  upon  the  house,  down  it  falls. 
Earthen  vessels,  when  they  come  to  be  scoured,  the  varnish  and  paint 
wears  off.  Or  by  some  scandalous  fall,  for  '  that  which  is  lame  will 
soon  be  turned  out  of  the  way/  Heb.  xii.  13.  This  deceitfulness — 

(1.)  Is  contrary  to  God,  who  is  a  God  of  truth,  Ps.  xxxi.  5 ;  the 
author  of  truth  :  Eph.  iv.  24,  '  Created  after  God  in  righteousness  and 
true  holiness  ;'  and  a  lover  of  truth  :  Ps.  li.  3,  '  Thou  desirest  truth  in 
the  inward  parts/  So  that  it  is  a  great  affront  to  God  when  men 
deal  falsely :  Jer.  v.  3,  '  0  Lord,  are  not  thine  eyes  upon  the  truth  ?  '  Is 
not  that  the  thing  thou  lookest  after  in  all  the  works  of  men  ?  This  is 
all  in  all  with  God. 

(2.)  It  is  contrary  to  justice,  charity,  and  common  ingenuity ;  it 
destroys  the  commerce  between  man  and  man  :  Eph.  iv.  25,  '  Put  away 
lying,  speak  every  man  truth  with  his  neighbour  ;  for  ye  are  members 
one  of  another/  It  is  unnatural  and  monstrous  by  lying  and  deceit 
to  circumvent  one  another ;  it  is  as  for  one  part  of  the  body  to  destroy 
another.  It  is  a  sin  not  only  unseemly  for  a  Christian,  but  it  tends  to 
the  overthrow  of  all  human  society,  fidelity  and  mutual  trust  being 
the  ground  of  all  commerce.  Now  God  will  pour  out  his  judgments 
upon  them. 

Use.  Let  this  teach  us  to  carry  it  sincerely  both  to  God  and  men, 
for  craft  will  not  always  succeed.  The  more  real  worth  in  any,  the 
more  openly  and  fairly  they  carry  it.  But  for  motives. 

1.  You  will  never  else  have  true  solid  comfort,  until  you  are  real, 
without  dissembling  before  God  and  men:  2  Cor.  i.  12,  'For  our 
rejoicing  is  this,  the  testimony  of  our  conscience,  that  in  simplicity  and 
godly  sincerity,  not  with  guile  and  fleshly  wisdom,  we  have  had  our 
conversation  in  the  world/     Truth  breeds  joy  and  comfort  of  heart 
when  a  man  is  sincere  and  acts  according  to  his  conscience. 

2.  You  will  never  hold  out  without  it ;  your  mask  will  fall  off:  James 
i.  8,  '  The  double-minded  man  is  unstable  in  all  his  ways  ;;  wavering, 
inconstant,  up  and  down,  off  and  on  with  God.     A  hypocrite  is  com 
pared  to  a  rush  that  grows  in  the  mire,  Job  viii.  12 ;  pluck  it  up, 
it  soon  withers :  they  are  like  reeds  shaken  with  every  wind.     And 
you  can  have  no  approbation  and  acceptation  with  God ;  God  likes 
those  that  are  sincere :  '  Behold  an  Israelite  indeed,  in  whom  there  is 
no  guile/    Who  are  those  who  have  pardon  of  sin  sealed  up  to  their 


220  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiB.  CXXX. 

souls  ?  Oh !  blessed  is  that  man  that  can  say  his  sins  are  forgiven 
him.  Who  is  that  man  ?  '  In  whose  spirit  there  is  no  guile  ; '  that 
is,  without  dissimulation,  fraudulency,  and  guile :  this  man  enjoys 
acceptance  with  God,  pardon  of  sin,  justification  before  God.  And 
the  contrary  will  certainly  bring  down  a  heavy  judgment. 


SERMON  CXXX. 

Thou  puttest  away  all  the  wicked  of  the  earth  like  dross :  therefore  I 
love  thy  testimonies. — VER.  119. 

IN  these  words  we  have — (1.)  God's  dispensation;   (2.)  The  effect  it 
had  upon  David's  heart. 

In  the  first  branch  we  have — 

1.  The  character  by  which  they  are  described,  all  the  wicked  of  the 
earth. 

2.  The  esteem  God  hath  of  them,  they  are  dross. 

3.  A  suitable  providence  dealt  out  to  them,  intimated,  tliou  puttest 
them  aivay  like  dross. 

First,  That  the  wicked  are  men  of  the  earth.  There  are  common 
reasons  why  we  are  all  men  of  the  earth.  Our  original  is  earth,  made 
of  the  dust  of  the  ground,  Gen.  ii.  7.  They  are  but  a  little  earth  or 
red  clay  fashioned  into  the  form  of  a  man,  a  handful  of  enlivened  dust. 
Our  abode  and  service  is  here :  John  xvii.  4,  '  I  have  glorified  thee 
upon  earth ;'  and  at  our  end  and  dissolution  we  are  turned  into  earth 
again :  Eccles.  xii.  7,  '  Then  shall  the  dust  return  to  the  earth  as  it 
was  ;;  Ps.  cxlvi.  4,  '  His  breath  goeth  forth,  he  rcturneth  to  his  earth.' 
Princes  as  well  as  others  must  look  to  be  dissolved  into  dust  again. 
But  in  an  especial  respect  are  wicked  men  said  to  be  of  the  earth,  and 
that  in  contradistinction  to  the  people  of  God,  Rev.  xiii.  10.  God's 
witnesses  '  tormented  the  dwellers  upon  earth;'  that  is,  those  that  are 
out  of  the  true  church,  in  Antichrist's  kingdom.  So  Rev.  xiii.  8, 
'  And  all  that  dwell  upon  the  earth  shall  worship  him,  whose  names 
are  not  written  in  the  book  of  life  of  the  Lamb/  As,  on  the  contrary, 
they  that  dwell  in  the  church,  are  said  to  be  in  heaven :  Rev.  xiii.  G, 
'  And  he  opened  his  mouth  in  blasphemy  against  God,  to  blaspheme 
his  name,  and  his  tabernacle,  and  them  that  dwell  in  heaven  ; '  so  Rev. 
xviii.  20,  '  Rejoice  over  her,  thou  heaven,  and  ye  holy  apostles.'  But 
why  are  they  thus  characterised  ?  Because  here  they  flourish  :  Jer. 
xvii.  13,  ;  Their  names  shall  be  written  in  earth  ;'  grow  great,  and  of 
good  reckoning  and  account  here.  Judas  had  the  bag ;  they  '  pros 
per  in  the  world/  Ps.  Ixxiii.  12,  '  Behold,  these  are  the  ungodly,  who 
prosper  in  the  world/  Here  they  are  respected  :  1  John  iv.  5,  '  They 
are  of  the  world,  and  speak  of  the  world,  and  the  world  heareth  them/ 
Here  their  hearts  and  minds  are,  Mat.  vi.  19,  20.  It  is  their  natural 
frame  to  be  worldly ;  they  only  savour  the  things  of  the  world  ;  prefer 
ment,  honour,  greatness,  it  is  their  unum  magnum;  here  is  their 
pleasure,  and  here  is  their  portion,  their  hopes  and  their  happiness.  A 
child  of  God  looketh  for  another  inheritance,  immortal  and  undefiled. 


YER.  119.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  221 

Use  1.  To  wean  us  from  present  things,  which  the  wicked  enjoy 
more  than  the  righteous,  and  which  certainly  are  but  poor  things  in 
comparison  of  our  happiness :  '  Set  your  affections  on  things  above,  not 
on  things  in  the  earth,'  Col.  iii.  2.  Affect  them  not  as  your  happiness 
and  last  end  :  Ps.  xvii.  14,  '  Their  portion  is  in  this  life.'  Affect  them 
not  in  competition  with  heavenly  things,  but  in  subordination,  Mat. 
vi.  33  ;  affect  them  not  inordinately,  but  so  as  to  part  with  them  when 
God  will:  Job  i.  21.  '  Naked  came  I  out  of  my  mother's  womb,  and 
naked  shall  I  return  thither ;  the  Lord  gave,  and  the  Lord  hath  taken 
away  ;  blessed  be  the  name  of  the  Lord.'  Affect  them  not  so  as  to  use 
unlawful  means  to  get  them:  Prov.  xxviii.  8,  '  He  that  by  usury  and 
unjust  gain  increaseth  his  substance,  he  shall  gather  it  for  him  that 
will  pity  the  poor/  Affect  them  not  so  as  to  put  yourselves  upon  the 
temptation  of  getting  or  keeping  them  by  unjust  means :  1  Tim.  vi. 
9,  '  But  they  that  will  be  rich  fall  into  temptation  and  a  snare,  and 
into  many  foolish  and  hurtful  lusts,  which  drown  men  in  destruction 
and  perdition ;'  Prov.  xxviii.  20,  *  He  that  maketh  haste  to  be  rich 
shall  not  be  innocent.'  Affect  them  not  so  as  to  be  backward  to  good 
works :  '  But  whoso  hath  this  world's  goods,  and  seeth  his  brother 
have  need,  and  shutteth  up  his  bowels  of  compassion  from  him,  how 
dwelleth  the  love  of  God  in  him?'  1  John  iii.  17;  1  Sam.  xxv.  11, 
1  Shall  I  take  my  bread,  and  my  water,  and  my  flesh,  which  I  have 
provided  for  my  shearers,  and  give  it  to  men  I  know  not  ? '  Affect 
them  not  so  as  to  neglect  heavenly  things ;  affect  them  not  so  as  to 
lay  out  your  whole  time  and  care  about  them  :  Prov.  xxiii.  4,  '  Cease 
from  thine  own  understanding ;  labour  not  to  be  rich ;'  Isa.  Iv.  2, 
'  Why  do  ye  spend  your  money  for  that  which  is  not  bread,  and  your 
labour  for  that  which  satisfieth  not?'  But  only  affect  them  as  you 
may  honour  God  :  Prov.  iii.  9,  '  Honour  the  Lord  with  thy  substance.' 
You  may  provide  for  your  families  in  the  fair  lawful  way  of  God's 
providence,  1  Tim.  v.  8  ;  also  you  may  be  helpful  to  others,  Eph.  iv. 
28 ;  for  if  you  so  do,  you  are  not  the  wicked  of  the  earth,  but  those 
that  use  this  world,  but  hope  to  enjoy  better  things. 

Use  2.  Let  us  be  contented  though  we  be  kept  low  and  mean  in  the 
world.  God's  people  are  not  the  children  of  this  world ;  better  things 
are  reserved  for  them  in  the  world  to  come :  and  therefore,  if  we  have 
food  and  raiment,  and  that  but  of  the  coarsest,  let  us  be  content: 
1  Tim.  vi.  8,  '  Having  food  and  raiment,  let  us  be  therewith  content.' 
Jesus  Christ  gave  thanks  for  five  barley  loaves  and  two  fishes,  Mark 
vi.  41.  The  wicked  are  characterised  to  be  of  the  earth;  God's 
children  are  from  above  as  to  their  original,  and  thither  they  tend  as 
to  their  scope  and  end  ;  and  if  we  have  anything  by  the  way,  we  have 
no  cause  to  complain  :  1  Peter  ii.  11,  '  I  beseech  you  as  strangers  and 
pilgrims.'  What  would  a  man  care  for  in  a  journey  but  a  bait  or  a 
little  refreshing  ?  If  we  seek  after  more,  it  is  inordinate  affection,  and 
must  be  mortified,  not  satisfied :  Eph.  iii.  5,  '  Mortify  your  members 
which  are  upon  the  earth.'  Evil  inclinations  bend  us  to  the  earth,  and 
earthly  things,  those  splendid  nothings,  riches,  pleasures,  honours,  these 
hinder  us  from  nobler  things ;  yea,  they  increase  our  difficulties  about 
the  things  that  are  necessary  for  us  by  the  way :  Heb.  xiii.  5,  '  Let 
your  conversations  be  without  covetousness,  and  be  content  with  such 


222  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXXX. 

things  as  you  have ;  for  he  hath  said,  I  will  never  leave  thee  nor  for 
sake  thee ;'  implying  that  whilst  we  indulge  carnal  desires,  it  is  hard 
to  trust  God  with  daily  supports,  for  daily  protection  and  daily  main 
tenance  ;  but  always  distract  ourselves  with  fruitless  cares  and  thoughts 
about  the  things  of  this  life.  And  also  we  may  say,  '  The  Lord  is  my 
helper ;  I  do  not  fear  what  man  can  do  unto  me.'  Therefore  let  us 
not  desire  more  than  God  alloweth:  a  little  with  God's  blessing  is 
enough  to  supply  our  necessities  as  to  wants,  and  to  give  us  protection 
against  dangers  ;  as  the  apostle  subjoineth  God's  undertaking,  and  the 
saints'  confidence  thereupon  by  way  of  a  cure ;  if  we  believe  God's  pro 
mises,  and  have  the  spirit  of  his  saints,  this  is  enough  to  us. 

Use  3.  Let  us  not  envy  the  prosperity  of  the  wicked. 

1.  They  are  the  wicked  of  the  earth ;  here  they  flourish ;  as  nettles 
will  more  easily  grow  than  choicer  plants,  the  soil  bringeth  them  forth 
of  its  own  accord ;  so  do  wicked  men  thrive  here :  but  you  need  not 
envy  them  ;  not  only  our  hopes  are  much  better  than  their  possessions, 
but  our  present  condition  is  much  better,  Ps.  xvii.  14.  Their  posses 
sions  are  not  to  be  compared  with  our  hopes.  What  is  a  more  plen 
tiful  table  to  the  everlasting  fruition  of  God  ?  the  pomp  of  the  world 
to  the  seeing  God  face  to  face  ?  vainglory  to  everlasting  glory  ? 
honour  here  to  the  glory  that  shall  be  upon  us  at  Christ's  appearing  ? 
their  momentary  pleasures,  which  pass  away  suddenly  as  a  dream,  to 
the  everlasting  pleasure  you  shall  enjoy  in  the  sight  of  God  ?  Nay, 
for  the  present  you  have  communion  with  God  and  the  sense  of  his 
favour,  how  poor  and  afflicted  soever  your  outward  condition  be :  Ps. 
iv.  6,  7,  '  There  be  many  that  say,  Who  will  show  us  any  good  ?  Lord, 
lift  thou  up  the  light  of  lhy  countenance  upon  us :  thou  hast  put  glad 
ness  in  my  heart,  more  than  in  the  time  when  their  corn  and  wine 
increased.'  Carnal  men  rejoice  in  sensual  earthly  good  things,  not  in 
the  favour  of  God.  And  mark,  this  joy  is  proposed  with  a  supposition 
of  increase ;  and  at  the  time  of  this  increase,  when  the  carnalist  doth 
enjoy  the  greatest  affluence  of  worldly  blessings,  take  them  at  their 
best,  when  they  have  the  most  lively  sense  of  these  things,  yet  a  Chris 
tian  hath  more  cause  of  rejoicing:  'Thou  hast  put  gladness  in  my 
heart ;'  here  is  matter  and  ground  of  rejoicing.  They  drink  of  the 
cistern,  you  of  the  fountain,  Jer.  xii.  13  ;  they  rejoice  not  in  God,  but 
his  gifts ;  and  not  the  best  gifts,  but  the  common  sort,  riches,  plea 
sures,  and  honours ;  and  these  not  as  the  effects  of  God's  bounty,  but 
as  happening  to  them  in  the  ordinary  course  of  second  causes  :  '  Who 
will  show  us  any  good?'  But  you  rejoice  in  God,  in  his  best  gifts, 
his  love  and  grace.  And  then  here  is  the  author  of  this  joy :  '  Thou 
hast  put  gladness.'  This  joy  is  allowed  by  God,  and  wrought  by  him : 
Rom.  xiv.  17,  '  The  kingdom  of  God  is  not  meat  and  drink,  but 
righteousness,  and  peace,  and  joy  in  the  Holy  Ghost.'  It  is  stirred  up 
by  his  Spirit ;  their  joy  is  neither  God's  allowance  nor  God's  work. 
And  then  here  is  the  subject  and  seat  of  this  joy  ;  not  tickle  the  senses, 
but  delight  the  heart :  '  Thou  hast  put  gladness  in  my  heart.'  And 
then  here  is  the  measure  ;  it  is  more  joy,  it  is  more  pure  and  sublime, 
of  a  stronger  efficacy,  which  not  only  overcometh  the  sense  of  present 
infelicities,  but  the  fear  of  death,  hell,  and  judgment  to  come :  Heb. 
vi.  18,  '  That  we  might  have  stronger  consolation.'  But  wicked  men 


VER.  119.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  223 

dance  about  the  brink  of  hell,  have  their  secret  gripes ;  and  will  you 
envy  them,  as  if  your  condition  were  not  much  better  ?  When  God 
hath  given  you  the  feast,  will  you  be  troubled  that  they  have  the  scraps 
and  fragments  of  his  bounty  ? 

2.  In  regard  of  the  uncertainty  of  their  condition:  Ps.  xxxvii.  1,  2, 
'  Fret  not  thyself  because  of  the  evil-doers,  neither  be  thou  envious 
against  the  workers  of  iniquity ;  for  they  shall  soon  be  cut  down  like 
the  grass,  and  wither  as  the  green  herb.'  Though  they  seem  to  be  in 
a  very  prosperous  condition  for  the  present,  as  grass  while  it  is  stand 
ing  is  very  green,  yet  they  are  soon  cut  down  by  the  scythe  of  provi 
dence,  then  presently  fadeth,  and  is  carried  away  from  the  place  where 
it  grew.  You  think  providence  doth  not  deal  righteously,  because  the 
unworthy  are  exalted  and  the  worthy  depressed.  Do  but  tarry  a  while, 
and  you  will  have  no  cause  to  complain,  or  to  grow  weary  of  godliness, 
or  to  cry  up  a  confederacy  with  evil  men.  They  are  never  nearer  their 
own  ruin  than  when  they  come  to  the  height  of  their  exaltation,  as  the 
sun  declineth  presently  when  he  cometh  to  the  highest  point  of  the 
zenith.  Who  would  envy  those  that  climb  up  a  ladder  for  execution  ? 
or  are  carried  to  the  top  of  a  rock,  that  they  may  be  thrown  down  from 
thence  to  be  broken  in  pieces  ?  Ps.  Ixxiii.  18,  '  Surely  thou  didst  set 
them  in  slippery  places ;  thou  castedst  them  down  into  destruction/ 

Secondly,  That  the  wicked  of  the  earth  are  as  dross.  They  are  so 
in  these  respects: — 

1.  As  to  external  show,  they  seem  to  be  a  part  of  the  substance  or 
metal,  but  indeed  they  are  but  the  filth  of  the  metal,  which  is  wont  to 
be  consumed  with  fire,  that  the  metal  may  be  purged.     This  is  fitly 
applied  to  the  degenerate  members  of  the  visible  church,  that  have 
only  a  show  of  the  purity  of  religion,  but  are  corrupt  in  faith  and 
manners,  ungodly  and  unrighteous.     There  are  disciples  in  show,  and 
disciples  indeed,  John  viii.  31 ;  some  that  live,  and  some  only  that 
have  a  name  to  live,  but  indeed  are  dead,  Eev.  iii.  4.     There  is  a  Jew 
outwardly  and  inwardly,  of  the  letter  and  of  the  spirit,  Korn.  ii.  28,  29. 
There  are  branches  in  Christ,  by  an  external  visible  union,  that  bring 
forth  no  fruit,  John  xv.  2.     Some  are  Christians  in  name,  by  external 
visible  communion,  others  by  real  implantation  into  Christ.     It  con- 
cerneth  us  to  see  whether  we  be  dross  or  metal,  living  members  of 
Christ's  mystical  body,  or  only  equivocally  called  Christians,  because 
of  some  loose  profession  of  Christ's  name. 

2.  Dross  is  intermingled  with  purer  metal,  and  maketh  one  mass 
with  it.     The  wicked  and  the  godly  live  together  in  the  visible  church ; 
they  are  never  totally  severed  till  the  great  day  of  separation  or  general 
judgment,  when  the  sheep  and  the  goats  are  put  apart,  some  on  Christ's 
right  hand  and  some  on  his  left.     Here  in  the  world,  as  in  the  finest 
metal,  there  is  some  dross,  and  in  the  same  field  there  is  chaff  and 
corn,  Mat.  xiii.  29.     We  should  not  leave  the  flour  for  the  chaff,  but 
leave  the  chaff  that  we  may  be  pure  grain. 

3.  In  God's  esteem  they  are  refuse,  drossy,  worthless  things :  Ezek. 
xxii.  19,  '  Thus  saith  the  Lord,  Because  ye  are  become  dross/  poor, 
unprofitable  creatures.     The  church  and  people  of  God,  because  of 
their  excellency,  are  compared  to  gold  and  silver ;  so  Kev.  i.  20,  '  The 
seven  golden  candlesticks/     As  gold  is  the  most  precious  metal,  so  is 


224  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEIi.  CXXX. 

the  church,  much  esteemed  by  God,  called  God's  jewels,  Mai.  iii.  17  ; 
as  a  diamond  among  a  heap  of  pebbles;  God's  jewels,  'of  whom  the 
world  is  not  worthy/  Heb.  xi.  38  ;  his  '  peculiar  people,'  Titus  ii.  14. 
God  maketh  no  such  reckoning  of  wicked  men.  Dross  is  cast  away 
as  good  for  nothing  ;  and  all  the  wicked  of  the  earth  are  but  as  dross 
to  so  much  good  metal.  But  all  his  saints  are  much  set  by,  as  the 
tilings  of  silver  and  gold  are  precious.  What  a  difference  is  there 
between  the  judgment  of  God  and  the  judgment  of  the  world  !  The 
men  of  the  world  esteem  the  saints  to  be,  1  Cor.  iv.  13,  '  the  off- 
scouring  and  filth  of  all  things/  as  the  sweeping  of  the  city,  to  be 
cast  forth  to  the  dunghill.  Whereas  themselves  are  so  indeed  in 
God's  account ;  but  '  reprobate  silver/  Jer.  vi.  30,  or  rather  dross, 
which  is  the  refuse  of  gold  and  silver.  Therefore  their  contempt  is 
not  to  be  regarded,  how  great  soever  they  be  ;  though  potentates,  high 
in  honour  and  place,  yet  if  ungodly  and  wicked,  God  reckons  them  to 
be  vile  persons,  Dan.  xi.  21,  dross,  worthless  souls.  Men  are  not 
valued  by  God  for  their  secular  interests,  but  moral  qualifications. 
The  potentates  of  the  earth  are  not  valued  as  his  princely,  but  holy 
ones  :  '  The  righteous  is  more  excellent  than  his  neighbour/  Prov.  xii. 
26.  God  puts  the  highest  price  upon  them,  they  are  coin  and  medals 
who  bear  his  own  image. 

4.  They  are  consumed  in  trials,  as  dross  consumeth  in  the  fining 
and  trying  of  metals.  Solid  metal  endure th,  but  the  dross  is  con 
sumed  ;  which  holdeth  true  of  wicked  men  in  two  respects : — (1.) 
Their  seeming  goodness  is  lost,  and  the  difference  is  seen  between 
them  and  those  that  are  sincere.  Sound  and  searching  judgments 
discover  hypocrites,  as  the  lightness  of  a  building  is  seen  in  a  storm  : 
Mat.  vii.  27,  *  When  the  rain  descended,  and  the  floods  came,  and  the 
winds  blew,  the  house  fell,  and  great  was  the  fall  of  it.'  So  God,  in 
the  metaphor  of  the  text,  is  often  said  to  melt  and  try  his  people, 
Jer.  ix.  7,  to  discover  the  dross  from  pure  gold.  Hirelings  will  soon 
prove  changelings,  when  God  trieth  them  to  purpose.  (2.)  Their 
imaginary  felicity  vanished  into  smoke,  they  perish,  the  meanest  as 
well  as  the  greatest.  Thou  puttest  away  all  the  wicked  of  the  earth 
like  dross  ;  they  are  consumed  in  the  fire  of  God's  wrath,  and  de 
stroyed  :  Ezek.  xxii.  20,  '  As  they  gather  silver,  and  brass,  and 
iron,  and  lead,  and  tin,  into  the  midst  of  the  furnace,  to  blow  the 
fire  upon  it,  to  melt  it;  so  will  I  gather  you  in  mine  anger  and  in 
iny  fury,  and  I  will  leave  you  there,  and  melt  you/  But  of  this  by 
.and  by. 

Use.  Let  us  see  what  we  are,  real  members  of  Christ's  mystical 
body,  yea  or  no.  The  wicked  of  the  earth  are  as  dross,  and  the 
godly  are  the  finest  sort  of  metals.  To  move  you  to  consider  what 
you  are : — 

1.  Ordinarly  the  visible  church  is  so  mixed,  that  the  generality 
thereof  is  unsound  :  Zech.  xiii.  8,  '  Two  parts  thereof  shall  be  cut  off 
and  die  ;  and  I  will  bring  the  third  part  through  the  fire,  and  refine 
them  as  silver  is  refined,  and  try  them  as  gold  is  tried/  There  is  but 
one  part  in  three  sound,  and  it  were  well  the  proportion  were  sound 
every  where  ;  and  therefore  we  had  need  *to  consider  who  shall  be 
saved  and  found  faithful :  Luke  xiii.  23,  24,  '  And  one  said  unto  him, 


VER.  119.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  225 

Lord,  are  there  few  that  shall  be  saved?  and  he  said  unto  them, 
Strive  to  enter  in  at  the  strait  gate  ;  for  many  shall  seek  to  enter, 
and  shall  not  be  able.'  We  had  need  be  the  more  earnest,  because 
the  most  miscarry. 

2.  The  trials  will  be  searching;  we  must  pass  through  the  fire,  and 
then  what  will  become  of  the  dross  ?     Rev.  iii.  10,  '  An  hour  of  temp 
tation  shall  come  upon  all  the  world,  to  try  them  that  dwell  upon 
earth/     And,  alas  !  are  we  able  to  brook  the  fiery  trial  ?  1  Peter  iv. 
10.     Few  professors  will  be  able  to  abide  it,  when  we  are  to  part  with 
the  sweetest  of  our  earthly  comforts,  yea,  and  it  may  be  life  itself, 
which  maketh  us  capable  to  enjoy  them.     It  is  no  strange  thing  that 
it  should  happen  to  us,  1  Peter  iv.  12 ;  it  is  as  useful  as  violent 
storms  at  sea  or  tempestuous  weather  in  winter  ;  when  God  is  upon 
reckoning  with  his  people,  such  things  may  be  expected. 

3.  The  best  of  us  will  be  found  but  dross  if  God  would  deal  with  us 
in  extremity ;  so  much  of  corruption  cleaveth  to  us,  and  so  many 
hidden  lusts  do  we  cherish  and  indulge,  that  would  soon  become  a 
root  of  apostasy,  if  God  did  not  hold  a  hand  of  grace  over  us.     But 
God  will  not  be  extreme  :  Isa.  xlviii.  10,  'Behold,  I  have  refined  thee, 
but  not  with  silver  ;  I  have  chosen  thee  in  the  furnace  of  affliction ; ' 
that  is,  not  so  thoroughly.     Silver  is  not  refined  till  all  the  dross  be 
consumed  and  wrought  out  of  it ;  and  when  should  we  see  good  day  if 
God  should  so  refine  us  ? 

4.  They  are  not  reckoned  to  dross,  but  metal,  that  walk  answerable 
to  their  profession  and  obligations  to  God,  as  becometh  his  peculiar 
people  to  do  ;  they  are  not  satisfied  with  common  mercies.     A  man 
may  have  the  world  at  will,  and  yet  be  a  castaway  ;  they  must  have 
something  peculiar  and  distinguishing:  Ps.  cxix.  132,  'Look  upon 
me,  and  be  merciful  unto  me,  as  thou  usest  to  do  to  them  that  love 
thy  name  ; '  things  that  can  never  be  given  in  anger.     They  do  not 
rest  in  common  grace:  Heb.  vi.  9,  '  But  we  hope  better  things  of 
you,  and  things  that  do  accompany  salvation  ; '  those  good  moods  in 
hypocrites  and  temporaries.     Nor  content  themselves  with  a  common 
conversation  :  1  Cor.  iii.  3,  '  Are  ye  not  carnal,  and  walk  as  men  ? ' 
1  Peter  iv.  4,  '  Wherein  they  think  it  strange  that  you  run  not  with 
them  into  the  same  excess  of  riot ; '  Mat.  v.  46,  '  If  you  love  them  that 
love  you,  what  reward  have  ye  ?  do  not  even  the  publicans  the  same?  ' 
You  should  do  something  rare  and  singular,  not  in  an  ordinary  loose 
rate. 

Thirdly,  That  it  is  God's  business  in  heaven  to  put  away  the 
wicked  as  dross,  to  sever  them  from  the  purer  metal. 

1.  God  hath  many  ways  and  means  to  do  it.  (1.)  Partly  by  his 
judgments  he  doth  it  more  and  more  :  Mat.  iii.  12,  '  His  fan  is  in  his 
hand,  and  he  will  thoroughly  purge  his  floor,  and  gather  his  wheat 
into  the  garner;  but  he  will  burn  up  the  chaff  with  unquenchable  fire.' 
As  the  chaff  from  corn,  so  dross  from  metal :  Isa.  iv.  4,  '  When  the 
Lord  shall  have  washed  away  the  filth  of  the  daughter  of  Zion,  and 
shall  have  purged  the  blood  of  Jerusalem  from  the  midst  thereof,  by 
the  spirit  of  judgment,  and  by  the  spirit  of  burning  ; '  that  is,  by  the 
judgment  executed  upon  the  evil  among  them  :  Ezek.  xx.  38,  'And  I 
will  purge  out  from  among  them  the  rebels,  and  them  that  transgress 

VOL.  VIII.  P 


226  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXXX. 

against  me.'  This  God  doth  by  destroying,  wasting  judgments.  (2.) 
Partly  by  the  censures  of  the  church  :  1  Cor.  v.  9,  '  Put  away  from 
among  yourselves  that  wicked  person/  And  partly  by  the  stroke  of 
the  civil  magistrate,  and  their  punishments :  Prov.  xxv.  4,  5,  '  Take 
away  the  dross  from  the  silver,  and  there  shall  come  forth  a  vessel  for 
the  finer.  Take  away  the  wicked  from  before  the  king,  and  his  throne 
shall  be  established  in  righteousness.'  Thus  doth  God  do  it  now,  but 
he  will  fully  and  finally  do  it  at  the  last  judgment,  when  there  shall 
be  a  perfect  separation  of  them,  and  all  the  wicked  shall  be  cast  away 
as  refuse :  Mat.  xxv.  32,  33,  '  Before  him  shall  be  gathered  all  nations, 
and  he  shall  separate  them  one  from  another,  as  a  shepherd  divideth 
his  sheep  from  the  goats;  and  he  shall  set  the  sheep  on  his  right  hand, 
and  the  goats  on  his  left  hand  ; '  there  is  a  congregation  and  then  a 
segregation,  never  to  meet  more,  nor  be  mingled  more.  Now  God 
doth  it  in  part,  but  then  more  fully. 

2.  The  reasons.  (1.)  God  doth  so,  lest  the  silver  itself  should  be 
turned  into  dross.  We  are  apt  to  corrupt  one  another,  natural  cor 
ruption  within  meeting  with  examples  without :  Isa.  vi.  5,  '  Woe  is  me, 
I  am  undone,  because  I  am  a  man  of  unclean  lips,  and  I  dwell  among 
a  people  of  unclean  lips  ; '  as  a  man  that  hath  the  matter  of  a  disease 
prepared,  coming  into  infectious  company,  is  soon  infected.  God's 
choicest  people  have  much  dross  in  them,  therefore  the  Lord  needeth 
to  purge  out  their  dross.  The  purest  church  is  apt  to  contract  pollu 
tion  and  to  degenerate,  and  the  choice  plants  of  the  covenant-stock  to 
run  wild,  were  it  not  for  these  dispensations.  (2.)  That  impunity 
may  not  harden  the  wicked  and  encourage  others.  God  suffereth  it  as 
long  as  hejudgeth  it  expedient:  Eccles.  viii.  11,  'Because  sentence 
against  an  evil  work  is  not  executed  speedily,  therefore  the  hearts  of 
the  sons  of  men  are  fully  set  in  them  to  do  evil ;'  Ps.  ix.  16,  '  The 
Lord  is  known  by  the  judgments  he  executeth  ;  the  wicked  is  snared 
in  the  work  of  his  own  hands/  Men  sin  more  freely  and  securely  when 
a  judgment  doth  not  presently  overtake  them,  when  sinners  go  on 
without  any  mark  of  God's  vengeance ;  but  God  will  in  every  age  clear 
his  providence,  by  bringing  of  judgments  upon  wicked  men.  (3.)  The 
nearer  they  are  to  God,  the  more  hateful  their  provocations  are,  and 
more  severely  punished :  Amos  iii.  2,  '  You  have  I  known  of  all  the 
families  of  the  earth,  therefore  I  will  punish  you  for  all  your  iniquities.' 
For  their  sins  the  valley  of  vision  is  brought  to  barrenness.  They 
sin  against  the  clearest  light,  the  dearest  love,  the  highest  engagements 
to  the  contrary ;  and  therefore,  when  they  are  mingled  among  his 
people  as  dross  with  the  silver,  God  putteth  them  away. 

Use  1.  To  inform  us  that  God  in  his  judicial  proceedings  will  dis 
tinguish  ;  he  will  divide  the  dross  from  the  other  metal,  that  he  may 
destroy  the  one,  and  preserve  the  other.  David  prayeth,  Ps.  xxvi.  9, 
'  Gather  not  my  soul  with  sinners,  nor  my  life  with  bloody  men ; '  that 
God  would  not  lay  him  common  with  the  wicked.  God  hath  his 
harvest,  for  cutting  down,  for  cutting  and  binding  together  those  that 
sinned.  Now  David  prayeth  that  he,  that  had  severed  himself  in  his 
course  of  life,  might  not  be  gathered  with  them  in  their  punishment. 
God  will  distinguish ;  his  judgments  are  for  the  destruction  of  the 
worser  sort,  and  the  amendment  of  the  better;  when  he  severeth  the 


VEK.  119.]  SERMONS  UPON  FSALM  cxix.  227 

dross,  he  hath  a  care  of  the  silver.  Though  never  so  terrible  to  the 
wicked,  still  he  will  be  comfortable  to  his  own :  2  Peter  ii.  9,  '  The 
Lord  knoweth  how  to  deliver  the  godly  out  of  temptation,  and  to  re 
serve  the  unjust  to  the  day  of  judgment  to  be  punished.'  His  own 
jewel,  that  lieth  hidden  among  them:  when  all  is  shaken  round  about 
them,  God  can  hide  them  in  the  secret  of  his  presence,  and  preserve 
them  as  he  did  Lot  and  Noah.  His  own  are  wonderfully  preserved  in 
common  judgments  ;  several  scriptures  speak  to  this :  Eccles.  viii.  12, 
13,  '  Surely  it  shall  be  well  with  them  that  fear  God,  but  it  shall  not 
be  well  with  the  wicked ; '  and  Josh.  iii.  10,  '  Hereby  ye  shall  know 
that  the  living  God  is  among  you,  and  he  will  without  fail  drive  out 
from  before  you  the  Canaanites  and  the  Hittites ; '  Isa.  iii.  10,  11, 
'  Say  unto  the  righteous,  It  shall  be  well  with  him ;  for  they  shall  eat 
the  fruit  of  their  doings.  Woe  to  the  wicked,  it  shall  be  ill  with  him  ; 
for  the  reward  of  his  hands  shall  be  given  him/  God  will  make  a 
difference  between  good  and  bad. 

Use  2.  That  a  few  wicked  men  may  bring  a  great  deal  of  hurt  and 
mischief,  as  Achan  upon  Israel ;  two  dry  sticks  may  set  a  green  one 
on  fire,  as  the  whole  metal  is  melted  that  the  dross  may  be  severed. 

Use  3.  All  judgments  on  the  visible  church  are  to  sever  the  dross 
from  the  gold.  God  suffereth  them  a  while  to  be  mingled,  and  then 
come  trying  judgments  to  separate  the  one  from  the  other  ;  which  is  a 
comfort  to  us ;  the  church  is  the  purer  for  these  judgments  :  Isa.  i.  25, 
'  And  I  will  turn  my  hand  upon  thee,  and  I  will  surely  purge  away 
thy  dross,  and  take  away  thy  tin.'  So  Mai.  iii.  3,  '  And  he  shall  sit  as 
a  refiner  and  purifier  of  silver,  and  he  shall  purify  the  sons  of  Levi, 
and  purge  them  as  gold  and  silver,  that  they  may  offer  unto  the  Lord 
an  offering  in  righteousness/  He  will  send  such  judgments  as  will 
destroy  the  incorrigible  wicked  ones,  and  purify  the  rest.  It  is  a  com 
fort  against  persecutions.  We  murmur  under  them,  know  not  how 
they  shall  be  turned  away  ;  God,  who  is  the  purger  of  his  church,  will 
find  out  some  way.  And  it  is  a  comfort  under  his  judgments  ;  they  are 
not  to  destroy,  but  to  purge.  God  intendeth  only  our  purging,  how 
hot  soever  the  furnace  be ;  therefore  let  God  alone  with  his  work. 

Use  4.  To  teach  us  to  wait  upon  God  in  the  way  of  his  judgments. 
He  is  putting  away  the  wicked  of  the  earth  like  dross  ;  it  is  not  only 
a  work  that  he  hath  done,  or  will  hereafter  do,  but  he  is  always  doing 
of  it.  We  should  observe  how  God  hath  already  done  it,  and  so  by 
faith  we  should  look  upon  him  as  still  about  it.  First,  he  beginneth 
with  his  people  ;  he  is  purging  away  their  wickedness :  '  Isa.  xxvii.  9. 
'  By  this  shall  the  iniquity  of  Jacob  be  purged.'  '  But  many  shall  cleave 
to  them  by  flatteries,  and  some  of  them  of  understanding  shall  fall,  to 
try  them  and  to  purge,  and  make  them  white/  Dan.  xi.  35.  Now, 
when  God  hath  employed  wicked  men  to  fan  and  purge  his  people, 
then  their  turn  cometh  next :  Jer.  xxv.  29,  '  For  lo  I  begin  to  bring 
evil  on  the  city  which  is  called  by  my  name,  and  should  ye  be  utterly 
unpunished  ?  Ye  shall  not  be  unpunished  ;  for  I  will  call  for  a  sword 
upon  all  the  inhabitants  of  the  earth  ; '  1  Peter  iv.  17,  '  If  punishment 
begin  at  the  house  of  God,  where  shall  the  wicked  and  ungodly 
appear  ?  '  Prov.  xi.  31,  '  Behold,  the  righteous  shall  be  recompensed 
in  the  earth,  much  more  the  wicked  and  the  sinner/  When  the  Lord 


228  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiR.  CXXX. 

hath  performed  his  work  upon  Mount  Zion  and  Jerusalem,  then  he 
will  reckon  with  his  enemies.  He  beginneth  with  his  church,  and 
maketh  an  end  with  their  enemies  :  his  enemies  drink  the  dregs  of  the 
cup,  and  their  end  must  needs  be  unspeakably  terrible. 

Use  5.  Let  us  see  we  be  not  put  away  like  dross,  when  God's  judg 
ments  are  abroad  in  the  earth :  1  Cor.  xi.  32,  '  We  are  chastened  of 
the  Lord,  that  we  should  not  be  condemned  with  the  world.'  We  shall 
put  that  out  of  question  if  we  do  two  things: — (1.)  If  we  be  faithful 
to  God,  and  cleave  to  God's  people,  truth,  and  interest,  how  great 
soever  our  trials  be :  Ps.  xliv.  17,  '  All  this  is  come  upon  us,  yet  we 
have  not  forgotten  thee,  neither  have  we  dealt  falsely  in  the  covenant.' 
To  consume  in  the  melting  is  the  property  of  dross ;  but  the  pure 
metal  is  the  more  united,  and  cleaveth  together  the  more  closely. 
(2.)  If  you  are  refined  by  all  these  trials :  Isa.  xxvii.  9,  '  Bv  this  shall 
the  iniquity  of  Jacob  be  purged.'  A  Christian  loseth  nothing  by  his 
afflictions  but  sin,  which  is  better  parted  with  than  kept. 

We  come  now  to  the  second  branch  of  the  text,  and  that  is  the 
effect  it  had  upon  David's  heart,  '  Therefore  I  love  thy  testimonies.' 
This  use  he  made  of  all  God's  judgments. 

D'oct.  A  gracious  heart,  that  observeth  the  providence  of  God,  and 
the  course  of  his  judicial  dispensations,  will  find  more  cause  to  love  the 
word  of  God  than  ever  before. 

1.  Because  thereby  he  hath  sensible  experience  of  the  truth  of  it. 
God's  providence  is  a  comment  upon  his  word  ;  the  effect  is  answerable 
to  the  prediction,  and  the  word  that  God  hath  said  is  fulfilled  to  a 
tittle.     Now,  the  more  confirmation  the  word  receive th,  the  more  is 
affection  increased.     The  apostle  telleth  us  that  '  the  word  spoken  by 
angels  was  steadfast/  Heb.  ii.  2,  because  every  'transgression  and 
disobedience  received  a  just  recompense  of  reward/     The  punishment 
of  the  transgressors  of  the  law  was  a  proof  of  God's  authorising  their 
doctrine ;  the  same  law  made  formerly  is  valid.     We  see  the  word 
doth  not  threaten  in  vain,  and  they  that  slight  it  smart  for  it.     Now  I 
see  the  word  of  God  is  to  be  valued,  for  God  will  make  it  good,  even 
to  a  tittle. 

2.  Because  if  we  love  not  the  word,  we  may  see  great  danger  likely 
to  ensue :  even  those  terrible  punishments  by  which  he  purgeth  out 
the  dross  should  make  us  fall  in  love  with  God's  law.     If  we  would  not 
perish  with  the  wicked  of  the  earth,  we  should  not  sin  with  the  wicked 
of  the  earth.     If  we  partake  of  their  sins,  we  must  partake  of  their 
plagues :  Ps.  ii.  12,  *  Kiss  the  Son,  lest  he  be  angry,  and  ye  perish  from 
the  way,  if  his  wrath  be  kindled  but  a  little  :  blessed  are  they  that 
trust  in  him.'     When  we  see  the  danger  of  being  enemies  to  God,  or 
unsound  with  him,  we  have  need  to  learn  this  wisdom  of  showing  all 
affection  and  reverence  and  respect  to  Christ  in  his  ways,  and  submit 
to  him  heartily  ;  there  is  no  safety  in  any  other  course.     If  a  spark  of 
his  wrath  light  upon  us,  how  soon  will  it  consume  us !     The  stupid 
world  regardeth  not  this,  to  love  his  ways  the  more  God  giveth  out 
proofs  of  his  anger  against  those  that  despise  them.     Many  are  cut 
off  in  the  midway  sooner  than  they  did  or  could  expect,  and  yet  they 
do  not  grow  one  jot  the  wiser.     It  is  dangerous  to  stand  out  against 
God,  his  cause,  work,  or  people. 


VER.  119.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  229 

3.  It  doth  endear  the  mercy  of  God  to  us ;  because  he  hath  dealt 
otherwise  with  us,  who  in  strict  justice  have  deserved  the  same.    God's 
judgments  on  the  wicked  commend  his  mercies  to  his  children,  Rom. 
ix.  23.     The  vessels  of  wrath  fitted  to  destruction  serve  to  show  the 
greater  love  of  God  to  the  vessels  of  mercy  ;  the  torments  of  hell 
inflicted  on  the  wicked  do  the  more  set  forth  his  love  to  the  saints,  to 
whom  he  hath  appointed  the  joys  of  heaven.     So  the  severity  of  God 
in  his  present  judgments  doth  imply  the  love  of  God  to  his  chosen  people, 
who  can  take  comfort  in  the  promises  when  the  threatenings  are  accom 
plished  upon  others  ;  this  might  have  been  our  condition  too,  but  that 
grace  nath  made  the  difference.     Well,  then,  as  it  doth  endear  the 
mercy  of  God  to  us,  so  it  calleth  upon  us  more  highly  to  love  and  prize 
him  and  his  word,  because  of  this  distinction. 

4.  It  is  not  only  a  means  to  set  off  the  love  of  God  to  us,  but  even 
his  judgments  upon  others  may  be  a  necessary  act  of  love  to  us.    They 
are  purged  out  as  dross,  that  they  may  not  infect  us  by  their  example, 
or  molest  us  by  their  persecutions  or  oppressions.     Now  the  more  we 
are  befriended  in  this  kind,  the  more  we  are  bound  to  serve  God  cheer 
fully  :  Luke  i.  74,  75,  '  That  being  delivered  from  the  hands  of  our 
enemies,  we  may  serve  God  in  righteousness  and  holiness  all  the  days 
of  our  lives.'     The  world  is  one  of  those  enemies,  or  the  wicked  of  the 
earth ;  therefore  we  should  serve  him  faithfully. 

5.  By  this  means  we  see  the  world  is  governed  by  God,  and  we  may 
the  more  safely  commit  ourselves  to  his  protection  upon  the  encourage 
ment  of  his  promises.     If  the  affairs  of  the  world  were  governed  by 
blind  chance,  and  men  might  do  what  they  listed  without  check  and 
control,  we  might  think  that  we  had  cleansed  our  hearts  in  vain,  and 
that  a  man  doth  make  himself  a  prey  by  the  simplicity  of  his  innocence. 
But  when  God  punisheth  the  wicked  in  our  sight,  certainly  this  should 
teach  us  to  be  more  holy  in  all  our  ways :  Ps.  iviii.  11,  *  A  man  shall 
say,  Verily  there  is  a  reward  for  the  righteous,  verily  there  is  a  God 
that  judgeth  in  the  earth.'     They  that  knew  not  what  to  think  of 
providence  shall  see  there  is  a  God  in  the  heavens  that  doth  wisely 
administer  all  things  below ;  and  so  we  are  encouraged  to  love  him  and 
serve  him  more  heartily.     Say,  as  the  Psalmist,  '  It  is  good  for  me  to 
draw  nigh  to  God/  Ps.  Ixxiii.  28. 

Use.  Well,  then,  let  our  love  to  God,  and  liking  and  approbation  of 
his  law,  be  accompanied  with  the  hatred  of  sin,  the  more  we  observe 
his  judgments  in  putting  away  the  wicked  like  dross,  that  we  may  be 
more  holy,  and  seek  after  communion  with  God  as  our  only  blessed 
ness.  To  this  end : — 

1.  Let  us  bless  God  for  giving  a  sure  rule  to  walk  by,  and  such 
promises  of  protection  in  the  midst  of  the  darkness  and  uncertainty 
of  the  present  world.     When  others  perish,  you  are  safe  :  Isa.  viii.  20, 
'  To  the  law  and  to  the  testimony/  &c.     Thou  shalt  walk  in  this  way 
safely,  and  shalt  not  stumble  ;  yea,  please  God,  and  you  need  not  fear. 

2.  Let  us  walk  exactly  by  this  rule,  since  our  temporal  and  eternal 
safety  and  happiness  is  concerned  thereby.     For  the  world  to  come  it 
is  clear,  as  well  as  in  this  life :  Prov.  iii.  1,  2,  '  My  son,  forget  not  my 
law,  but  let  thine  heart  keep  my  commandments  ;  for  length  of  days, 
and  long  life,  and  peace  shall  they  add  unto  thee/  and  Gal.  vi.  16, 


230  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CX1X.  [SEE.  CXXXI. 

'  As  many  as  walk  according  to  this  rule,  peace  and  mercy  be  upon 
them.' 

3.  The  more  God  doth  own  his  law  by  his  judgments,  the  more  let 
our  love  be  increased.  This  is  to  wash  our  feet  in  the  blood  of  the 
wicked :  Ps.  Iviii.  10,  '  The  righteous  shall  rejoice  when  he  seeth  the 
vengeance :  he  shall  wash  his  feet  in  the  blood  of  the  wicked.' 


SEKMON  CXXXI. 

My  flesli  trembletJi  for  fear  ofthee,  and  lam  afraid  of  tliy  judgments. 

—VER.  120. 

IN  this  psalm  you  find  the  man  of  God  under  divers  passions,  some 
times  of  joy,  sometimes  of  sorrow,  sometimes  of  hope  and  courage,  and 
sometimes  of  fear.  As  there  is  a  time  for  all  things  in  this  world, 
there  are  several  conditions  and  duties  that  we  run  through,  and  we 
have  affections  planted  in  us  that  suit  with  every  condition.  Religion 
doth  not  nullify,  but  sanctify  our  affections.  Some  have  vainly  thought 
affections  to  be  an  after-growth  of  noisome  weeds  in  our  nature  cor 
rupted  ;  whereas  they  are  wholesome  herbs,  implanted  in  us  by  God 
at  our  first  creation,  of  great  use  to  grace  when  rightly  stirred  and 
ordered:  Anima  nunquam  melius  agit,  £c.  The  passion  expressed 
in  the  text  is  fear ;  for  two  or  three  verses  his  meditations  had  been 
taken  up  in  the  observation  of  God's  judgments  upon  evil-doers  : 
'  Thou  hast  trodden  down  all  them  that  err  from  thy  statutes  ;  for 
their  deceit  is  falsehood '  (ver.  118).  They  were  once  high,  but  God 
hath  brought  them  down  with  ignominy  and  contempt ;  they  had 
borne  themselves  out  in  their  sinful  courses  on  account  of  their  pros 
perity,  but  at  length  they  are  utterly  ruined  and  broken.  And  why  ? 
'  For  their  deceit  is  falsehood ;'  that  is,  they  were  unmasked,  and  all 
their  pretences  of  piety  and  justice  found  to  be  fraud  and  imposture. 
In  ver.  119  he  still  insisteth  upon  the  same  argument :  '  Thou  puttest 
away  all  the  wicked  of  the  earth  like  dross ;  therefore  I  love  thy  testi 
monies.'  They  seemed  to  cleave  to  the  church  and  people  of  God  as 
dross  to  gold  or  silver.  That  God,  who  is  the  purger  and  refiner  of 
his  church,  failed  not  to  put  a  difference,  and  to  consume  the  dross 
and  refine  his  silver.  The  use  that  David  made  of  these  judgments 
was  twofold : — (1.)  To  love  God's  ways  so  much  the  more,  and  to 
cleave  to  them  with  greater  firmness,  '  Therefore  I  love  thy  testimonies. 
(2.)  To  fear  before  the  Lord,  and  tremble  at  the  Lord's  judgments,  as 
in  the  text.  There  are  two  affections  wherein  we  should  always  seek 
to  profit — the  love  of  God  and  the  fear  of  God.  Of  this  last  in  the 
text,  '  My  flesh  trembleth  for  fear  of  thee,  and  I  am  afraid  of  thy 
judgments.'  In  which  words  we  have— 

1.  The  degree  of  his  fear,  my  flesli  treiribleth. 

2.  The  object  of  his  fear,  for  fear  of  lliee. 

3.  The  ground  and  reason  of  his  fear,  I  am  afraid  of  thy  judgments. 
1.  The  degree  of  his  fear,  '  My  flesh  trembleth/     The  word  samar 

St  Hierome  rendereth,  horrivilavit  caro  mea — mv  flesh  is  in  horror 


VER.  120.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  231 

and  affrightment.  Symmachus  before  him,  opOorpi^el  diro  TOV  <j)6(3ov 
fj  adp%  [MOV — my  flesh  maketh  my  hair  stand  on  end,  as  the  prickles 
of  a  hedgehog,  which  is  an  emblem  of  horror.  The  poet  Persius 
expresseth  such  an  affrightment  thus,  Excussit  membris  tremor  albus 
aristae — my  fear  made  my  hair  stand  up  like  a  field  of  corn,  from  the 
contraction  of  the  skin.  So  it  happeneth  in  cases  of  fear.  You  have 
the  like  expression,  Job  iv.  14,  15,  '  Fear  came  upon  me,  and  trem 
bling,  which  made  all  my  bones  to  shake  ;  the  hair  of  my  flesh  stood 
up.'  And  elsewhere  the  same  word  is  so  used.  The  Septuagint  reads 
it  imperatively,  KaOrfKwaov  e'/c  TOV  <j)6/3ov  ra?  aaptcds  /JLOV,  cirro  jap  TWV 
Kpi/uLaTcov  o-o  v  €(j)ol3^d7]v — pierce  through  my  flesh  with  fear,  as  with 
nails.  Surely  it  noteth  some  deep  sense  and  high  degree  of  fear  ;  as 
the  prophet  Habakkuk  expresseth  upon  like  occasion,  Hab.  iii.  15, 
'  When  I  heard  this,  my  belly  trembled,  my  lips  quivered,  rottenness 
entered  into  my  bones,  and  I  trembled  in  my  flesh  ;'  his  bowels  did 
beat  and  shake  for  fear,  and  his  lips  quivered  for  fear,  that  he  could 
not  speak.  The  judgments  of  God  ought  to  beget  a  deep  sense  and 
trembling,  not  a  slight  affection  in  us.  The  prophet  saith,  Amos  iii. 
8,  '  The  lion  roareth  ;  who  will  not  fear  ?  '  We  have  need  to  stir  up 
our  hearts  again  and  again.  When  the  Lord  roareth  and  cometh 
forth  to  judgment,  we  have  need  be  ashamed  of  our  stupidity  when 
we  are  not  affected. 

2.  The  object  of  his  fear,  '  For  fear  of  thee.'  It  was  not  the  fear  of 
man  that  put  him  into  such  an  agony  and  consternation.  We  are 
always  dissuaded  from  the  fear  of  man,  but  we  are  exhorted  to  the 
fear  of  God  :  Mat.  x.  28,  '  And  fear  not  them  which  kill  the  body,  but 
are  not  able  to  kill  the  soul ;  but  rather  fear  him  that  is  able  to  destroy 
both  soul  and  body  in  hell.'  The  one  is  a  snare — Prov.  xxix.  25, 
'  The  fear  of  man  bringeth  a  snare ;  but  whoso  putteth  his  trust  in 
the  Lord  shall  be  safe ' — but  the  other  is  a  duty.  The  great  preservation 
of  the  soul  from  spiritual  dangers  is  the  fear  of  God.  We  are  tuti  si 
cauti,  securi  si  attoniti,  saith  Tertullian — the  fear  of  God  maketh  us 
circumspect,  and  so  bringeth  safety  to  us ;  yea,  the  one  is  the  cure  of 
the  other,  Isa.  viii.  12,  13.  As  one  nail  driveth  out  another,  or  as 
Moses'  rod  did  eat  up  the  rods  of  the  magicians,  so  doth  the  fear  of 
God  against  all  contrary  fears  and  terrors,  whereby  the  heart  may  be 
turned  from  God.  Man  can  only  kill  the  body,  but  God  can  cast  both 
soul  and  body  into  hell-fire ;  so  that  we  may  set  God  against  man,  soul 
and  body  against  the  body  only,  and  hell-fire  against  temporal  punish 
ment.  As  that  holy  man  said,  Da  veniam,  imperator,  tu  carcerem  com- 
minaris,  Deus  autem  comminatur  Geliennam — thou  threatenest  bonds 
and  imprisonment,  he  threateneth  everlasting  damnation  ;  therefore 
it  is  God  is  to  be  feared :  Ps.  Ixxvi.  7,  '  Thou,  even  thou,  are  to  be 
feared  ;  arid  who  can  stand  in  thy  sight  when  thou  art  angry  ? '  Not 
man,  in  comparison  of  God.  Man  against  man  may  stand,  and  wicked 
men  in  the  time  of  his  patience  may  stand  ;  but  when  God  judgeth,  who 
can  stand  ?  Now  of  God  there  is  a  double  fear— filial,  which  draweth 
us  to  him  ;  and  servile,  which  driveth  us  from  him:  Exod.  xx.  20, '  And 
Moses  said  unto  the  people,  Fear  not,  for  God  is  come  to  prove  you,  and 
that  his  fear  may  be  before  your  face,  that  ye  sin  not.'  Fear  not  with 
a  slavish  fear,  but  an  awful  fear,  composed  of  reverence  and  love. 


232  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXXXI. 

3.  The  ground  of  his  fear,  '  I  am  afraid  of  thy  judgments.'  The 
great  seventy  which  God  did  exercise  in  punishing  the  evil-doers,  and 
purging  out  the  dross.  When  God  doth  smite  the  wicked  and  call 
them  to  an  account  for  sin,  he  warneth  his  own  people  to  stand  in  awe. 
As  here,  '  Thou  puttest  away  the  wicked  like  dross.  When  the 
threatening  is  made  good,  and  terrible  judgments  are  abroad,  every 
one  needeth  to  look  to  himself ;  not  only  to  love  God's  testimonies, 
but  to  stand  in  awe  of  his  judgments.  We  need  all  affections  to  keep 
us  within  our  duty,  both  fear  and  love. 

Doct.  That  when  God  is  angry,  and  his  judgments  are  abroad  in 
the  world,  it  becometh  his  own  people  to  observe  them,  and  have  a> 
deep  awe  and  sense  thereof. 

Here  I  shall  show  you — 

1.  How  far  the  people  of  God  do  and  ought  to  take  notice  of  his 
judgments. 

2.  This  fear  that  is  wrought  thereby,  whether  it  be  an  infirmity  or 
a  duty. 

3.  The  reasons  why  it  becometh  them  to  have  a  deep  awe  and  sense 
of  these  things. 

For  the  first:— 

1.  His  ancient  judgments  in  former  times  ought  to  be  laid  to  heart 
by  us,  especially  when  like  sins  abound.  The  scripture  referreth  to 
the  days  of  Lot  and  Noah,  and  biddeth  us  remember  Lot's  wife,  Luke 
xvii.  26-32.  God  biddeth  his  people,  '  But  go  ye  now  to  my  place 
which  was  in  Shiloh,  where  I  set  my  name  at  the  first,  and  see  what  I 
did  to  it,  for  the  wickedness  of  my  people  Israel/  Jer.  vii.  12.  And 
the  apostle  tells  us  that  all  the  punishments  that  befell  the  stubborn 
Israelites  are  for  our  caution  and  warning :  1  Cor.  x.  1-10,  '  And  all 
these  things  happened  unto  them  for  ensamples,  and  they  are  written 
for  our  admonition,  upon  whom  the  ends  of  the  world  are  come  ; '  so 
he  concludeth  in  ver.  11.  And  the  apostle  tells  us  that  Sodom  and 
Gomorrah  were  '  an  example  to  those  that  after  should  live  ungodly,' 
2  Peter  ii.  6.  A  people  might  easily  read  their  own  doom  and  destiny 
if  they  would  blow  off  the  dust  from  these  ancient  providences,  and 
mark  the  prints  of  God's  justice  and  truth  in  them,  and  how  the  word 
of  God  was  verified  upon  them,  for  these  are  but  copies  and  patterns. 
The  desert  of  sin  is  still  the  same,  and  the  exactness  of  divine  justice 
remaineth  still  the  same.  These  providences  are  pledges  of  the  same 
wrath,  of  the  like  for  substance  to  come  upon  us  also,  if  we  walk  con 
trary  to  God.  Others  have  smarted,  why  not  we  ?  God  is  impartially 
arid  immutably  just:  Gal.  iii.  20,  '  He  is  but  one ;'  always  consonant 
unto  himself,  like  unto  himself ;  his  power  is  the  same,  so  is  his 
justice;  and  therefore  we  should  take  warning:  Exemplo  qui  peccat, 
bis  peccat.  He  that  will  plunge  himself  in  a  bog  or  quagmire,  where 
others  have  miscarried  before  him.  is  doubly  guilty  of  folly,  because  he 
neither  feareth  nor  will  take  warning  by  their  example.  This  is  one 
great  benefit  we  have  by  the  historical  part  of  the  word,  that  it  doth 
not  only  preserve  the  memory  of  the  saints,  that  we  may  imitate  their 
graces  and  enjoy  their  blessings,  but  also  records  the  sins  and  punish 
ments  of  the  wicked,  that  we  may  know  God  hath  owned  the  historical 
part  of  the  word,  and  fear  for  ourselves  :  Heb.  ii.  1,  2,  '  Therefore  we 


VER.  120.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  233 

ought  to  give  the  more  earnest  heed  to  the  tilings  which  we  have  heard, 
lest  at  any  time  we  should  let  them  slip.  For  if  the  word  spoken  by  angels 
was  steadfast,  and  every  transgression  and  disobedience  received  a  just 
recompense  of  reward  ; '  Kom.  i.  18,  '  The  wrath  of  God  is  revealed  from 
heaven  against  all  ungodliness  and  unrighteousness  of  men,  who  hold 
the  truth  in  unrighteousness.'  So  the  historical  parts  are  also  to  justify 
the  prophetical.  It  is  not  only  a  register  and  chronicle  of  what  is  past, 
but  a  calendar  and  prognostication  of  what  is  to  come.  God  might 
have  blotted  out  the  memory  of  sinners,  that  it  should  be  no  more 
thought  or  heard  of,  but  he  would  secure  it  upon  record  for  our  learn 
ing  ;  as  some  malefactors,  their  bodies  are  not  buried,  but  quarters 
set  upon  places  of  greatest  resort :  Ut  qui  vim  noluerunt  prodesse, 
morte  eorum  respublica  utatur  ;  or  as  Lot's  wife  turned  into  a  pillar  of 
salt,  to  season  after  ages.  So  that  our  flesh  may  tremble  at  the  old 
judgments,  that  Adam  for  one  sin  was  turned  out  of  paradise,  the  old 
world  swept  away  with  a  flood,  Dathan  and  Abiram  swallowed  up  of 
the  earth,  Achitophel  and  Judas  brought  to  the  halter,  Herod  eaten  up 
with  worms  for  his  pride  ;  and  all  these  have  their  use. 

2.  Judgments  that  light  upon  other  countries  ought  to  be  made  use 
of  by  us,  because  usually  they  go  in,  a  circuit ;  the  cup  of  trembling 
goeth  round,  Jer.  xxv.  32  ;  and  because  by  this  means  we  may  learn 
to  be  wise,  and  have  all  our  schooling  at  other  men's  costs.     As  God 
expresseth  it,  Zeph.  iii.  6,  7,  '  I  have  cut  off  the  nations  :  their  towers 
are  desolate :  I  made  their  streets  waste,  that  none  passed  by :  their 
cities  are  destroyed,  so  that  there  is  no  man,  none  inhabitant.     I  said, 
Surely  thou  wilt  fear  me,  thou  wilt  receive  instruction ;  so  their  dwell 
ing  should  not  be  cut  off,  however  I  punished  them :  but  they  rose 
early,  and  corrupted  all  their  doings.'     God  would  have  us  take  warn 
ing  at  a  distance,  and,  while  he  is  yet  a  great  way  off,  to  send  for 
conditions  of  peace  ;  otherwise  it  is  a  new  provocation,  and  the  judg 
ment  is  hastened,  Jer.  iii.  7-10.     A  fire  in  one  house  alarmeth  all  the 
street :  and  they  make  provision  for  their  safety. 

3.  When  the  judgments  of  God  break  in  among  us,  and  are  executed 
before  our  eyes,  that  must  be  the  more  considered  :  Isa.  xxvi.  9,  '  When 
thy  judgments  are  in  the  earth,  the  inhabitants  of  the  world  will  learn 
righteousness.'     God  looketh  to  be  more  reverenced  and  obeyed  for 
this,  because  then  what  was  before  matter  of  faith  is  made  matter  of 
sense  ;  and  we  need  not  doubt  any  more  whether  God  will  punish  the 
disobedient  when  his  threatening  is  made  good.     Smoke  is  a  sign  of 
fire,  much  more  when  the  fire  is  breaking  out ;  and  we  see  what  we 
only  heard  before,  and  we  feel  what  we  would  not  believe  before. 

4.  Though  we  should  be  well  at  ease  in  our  own  persons,  yet  the 
judgments   upon   others   should  be   considered  by  us.      Nehemiah, 
chap,  i.,  preferred  at  court,  yet  hath  a  sad  resentment  of  the  state  of 
Jerusalem.     So  Daniel,  chap.  ix.  5,  a  great  man  in  Babylon,  yet  layeth 
to  heart  the  judgments  upon  the  people  of  God. 

5.  Though  the  judgment  pursue  but  a  few,  yet  all  should  fear. 
When  Ananias  and  Sapphira  fell  down  dead,  it  is  said,  Acts  v.  5, 
'  That  great  fear  fell  upon  all  that  heard  these  things.'     God,  in  one 
or  a  few,  giveth  an  instance  of  his  severity  that  others  may  tremble  ; 
as  it  is  said  of  David,  when  the  breach  was  made  upon  Uzzah,  1 


234  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEE.  CXXXI. 

Chron.  xiii.  12,  '  And  David  was  afraid  of  God  that  day,  saying,  How 
shall  I  bring  the  ark  of  God  home  to  me  ? '  The  sin  was  Uzzah's,  the 
breach  only  upon  him,  but  the  stroke  was  God's,  and  that  maketh 
David  tremble.  Yea,  the  pagan  mariners,  when  divine  vengeance  had 
pursued  Jonah,  chap.  i.  18,  '  Then  the  men  feared  the  Lord  exceed 
ingly,  and  offered  a  sacrifice  to  the  Lord,  and  made  vows/  The 
danger  was  for  Jonah's  sake  ;  when  he  was  thrown  overboard,  there 
was  a  calm  ;  but  the  men  feared  greatly. 

6.  Though  it  should  light  upon  enemies  to  us  and  God,  yet  their  fall 
is  not  to  be  insulted  over,  but  God's  hand  observed  with  great  rever 
ence  :  '  Thou  puttest  away  the  wicked  of  the  earth  like  dross  ; '  then 
'  my  flesh  trembleth/  saith  David.     So  in  Ps.  Ixxvi.  6,  7,  '  At  thy 
rebuke,  0  God  of  Jacob,  both  the  chariot  and  the  horse  are  cast  into 
a  deep  sleep.     Thou,  even  thou,  art  to  be  feared  ;  and  who  may  stand 
in  thy  sight  when  once  thou  art  angry  ?'     We  ought  to  express  a  sense 
of  our  Father's  displeasure,  as  a  child  quaketh  when  he  heareth  his 
father  is  angry  with  or  doth  correct  a  servant.     Naturalists  say  a  lion 
will  tremble  to  see  a  dog  beaten  before  him  :  Ps.  Hi.  6,  '  The  righteous 
also  shall  see  and  fear/     The  godly  will  be  wise  observers  of  God's 
work  and  dispensations  of  justice,  and  the  spiritual  advantage  they  may 
gain  thereby :  Prov.  xxi.  12,  '  The  righteous  man  wisely  considereth 
the  house  of  the  wicked,  and  that  God  overthroweth  the  wicked  for 
their  wickedness/   Holy  men  do  exceedingly  profit  by  these  judgments. 

7.  Much  more  should  we  tremble  at  God's  judgments  upon  his  own 
people,  when  he  cometh  to  visit  their  iniquities  with  rods  and  their 
transgressions  with  scourges.     If  this  be  done  in  the  green  tree,  what 
in  the  dry  ?     *  If  judgment  begin  at  the  house  of  God,  where  shall  the 
ungodly  and  sinner  appear?'  1  Peter  iv.  18.     Many  times  they  are 
broken  with  a  great  breach  and  heavy  corrections :  Jer.  xxv.  17, 
'  Then  I  took  the  cup  at  the  Lord's  hand,  and  made  all  the  nations  to 
drink/     His  own  people  sip  of  the  bitter  cup  that  others  drank  the 
dregs  of.     The  world  shall  know  that  he  is  a  God  hating  sin,  and 
therefore  will  punish  them  for  it,  lest  he  should  seem  to  approve  their 
sin.     Though  God  doth  not  condemn  his  people  to  hell  for  their  sin, 
yet  by  his  sharp  corrections  of  them  in  this  life  the  world  shall  know 
how  much  he  hateth  sin ;  especially  when  they  have  made  the  name 
of  God  to  be  evil  spoken  of.     God  will  vindicate  himself.     Now  these 
should  make  us  tremble  ;  they  are  ordered  for  this  purpose. 

Secondly,  I  shall  inquire  what  this  fear  is,  an  infirmity  or  a  duty. 
To  many,  to  fear  judgments  seemeth  slavish,  and  thereupon  build  a 
i'alse  conceit,  that  God  only  is  to  be  feared  for  his  mercies  and  not  for 
his  judgments.  Indeed  *  God  is  feared  for  his  goodness/  Hosea  iii.  5, 
but  not  only.  Judgments  are  the  object  of  fear ;  and  the  fear  con 
versant  about  them  may  be  so  far  from  being  a  sin  that  it  is  a  grace. 
Briefly,  then,  it  is  not  such  a  fear  as  driveth  us  from  God,  Gen.  iii.  5, 
but  bringeth  us  to  him,  keepeth  us  with  him  :  '  I  will  put  my  fear  into 
their  hearts,  and  they  shall  never  depart  from  me/  Jer.  xxxii.  40.  They 
are  afraid  both  to  sin  and  to  suffer  for  sin.  Afraid  to  sin,  and  so  it  is 
the  fear  of  caution  and  circumspection.  Certainly  it  can  be  no  fault  to 
be  afraid  of  that  which  deserveth  punishment  or  judgment ;  and  afraid 
to  suffer  for  sin  in  this  world,  where  all  things  come  alike  to  all ;  and 


VER.  120.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  235 

in  the  world  to  come,  where  God  will  stir  up  ail  his  wrath.  But  to 
fear  punishment,  is  not  this  servile  ?  No,  it  is  not.  First,  if  it  keep 
its  proportion,  and  doth  not  exceed  its  limits,  driving  us  into  a  despair 
ing  anguish,  such  as  the  devil's  is,  James  ii.  19.  Secondly,  if  it  have 
its  spiritual  use  and  end,  which  is  the  main  and  principal  thing,  which 
is  to  make  us  cleave  the  closer  to  God  :  Jer.  xxxii.  40,  '  But  I  will  put 
my  fear  into  their  hearts,  and  they  shall  not  depart  from  me/  Or, 
thirdly,  if  it  be  subordinate,  which  is  to  make  us  cautelous  and  watch 
ful  against  sin,  or  such  things  as  may  occasion  these  judgments,  fleeing 
from  wrath  to  come,  Mat.  iii.  7,  and  to  use  the  means  for  our  preser 
vation  with  the  more  diligence,  Heb.  xi.  7. 
Thirdly,  The  reasons. 

1.  Because  a  tender  heart  is  easily  affected  with  all  God's  dispensa 
tions  ;  one  of  the  great  and  first  privileges  of  grace  is  a  heart  of  flesh, 
Ezek.  xxxvi.  26.     Wicked  men  have  a  heart  of  stone,  a  stout,  obsti 
nate,  stupid  spirit ;  but  when  God's  hand  is  upon  their  persons  they 
have  no  sense  :  Jer.  ix.  3,  '  Thou  hast  smitten  them,  but  they  have  not 
grieved.'     But  God's  children  have  a  heart  of  flesh,  that  trembleth  at 
his  word,  and  at  judgments  at  a  distance:  they  are  soon  affected  with 
a  providence.     This  tenderness,  as  it  is  wrought  in  them  by  grace  at 
the  first,  so  it  is  increased  by  their  acquaintance  with  God  and  experi 
ences  of  his  love.     Familiarity  with  men  breedeth  contempt ;  fami 
liarity  with  God  not  so.     None  are  moved  with  reverence  to  the  Lord 
more  than  they  that  know  him  best,  and  are  most  familiar  with  him. 
None  rejoice  more  than  they  when  they  find  God  is  pleased  and  giveth 
out  demonstrations  of  grace  to  the  world.     None  fear  more  than  they 
when  God  is  angry  :  Ps.  xc.  11,  '  Who  knoweth  the  power  of  thine 
anger  ?     According  to  thy  fear,  so  is  thy  wrath.'     The  world  think 
not  of  God's  anger  till  they  feel  the  terrible  effects  of  it ;  but  God's 
children,  that  have  a  deep  awe  of  God,  and  observe  him  in  all  his 
motions,  have  the  greatest  apprehensions  of  his  displeasure. 

2.  It  is  the  property  of  God's  children,  when  they  look  to  anything 
without  them,  still  to  draw  home  the  providence,  and  consider  their 
own  case,  and  to  edify  themselves  by  that  they  see  in  others,  whether 
it  be  good  or  evil.     Eleciorum  corda  semper  ad  se  sollicite  videant, 
saith  Gregory.     When  Uzzah  was  stricken,  '  How  shall  I  bring  the 
ark  of  God  home  to  me  ?'  saith  David,  1  Chron.  xiii.  12.     Will  not 
God  be  as  severe  to  me,  if  I  behave  myself  unreverently  ?     He  ob 
served  how  failing  about  holy  things  did  much  incense  God's  wrath  : 
Gal.  vi.  13,  'Ye  which  are  spiritual,  restore  such  a  one  with  meekness, 
considering  thyself,  lest  thou  also  be  tempted/     They  that  rigidly  and 
uncharitably  censure  others,  are  usually  greatest   strangers  to  their 
own  hearts ;  but  a  man  that  draweth  all  things  home,  knoweth  that 
if  God  should  let  loose  temptations  upon  him,  he  may  be  as  bad  as 
others.     A  man  that  usually  reflects  upon  himself  will  be  afraid,  and 
will  not  reflect  on  the  judgments  executed  on  others,  but  tremble. 
Nunquid  ego  tali?  &c.,  was  a  good  question  in  a  heathen.     If  God 
should  visit  my  transgressions,  I  have  broken  his  laws,  and  deserve  as 
great  a  punishment.     A  spirit  of  application  is  a  great  advantage. 
Our  Lord  telleth  others,  Luke  xiii.  5,  ye  shall  likewise  perish,  without 
repentance.     David  was  afraid  lest  he  should  be  cast  away  with  the 


236  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXTX.  [SEE.  CXXXI 

dross,  because  they  love  not  God's  testimonies ;  therefore  he  would  not 
only  love  his  testimonies,  hut  also  fear  his  judgments.  Carnal  men 
forget  themselves  when  they  are  so  bitter  against  others. 

3.  The  usefulness  of  this  fear  showeth  it  is  their  duty.  It  is  very 
necessary — 

[1.]  To  stir  up  watchfulness  and  care  for  our  own  safety,  that  we 
may  not  fall  into  like  offences,  or  do  anything  that  is  displeasing  to 
God,  lest  we  fall  into  his  vengeance.  We  are  bidden  to  work  out  our 
salvation  with  fear  and  trembling,  Phil.  ii.  12.  We  have  to  do  with 
a  just  arid  holy  God,  who  is  tender  of  his  laws.  Now,  this  fear  should 
be  more  active  and  lively  when  we  see  his  judgments  executed,  for 
then  God  is  ready  at  hand  with  a  whip  to  awaken  us,  and  to  show  us 
he  will  not  be  dallied  with,  and  that  danger  attendeth  us,  when  we 
begin  to  straggle  out  of  our  duty.  He  that  breaketh  through  a  hedge, 
a  serpent  shall  bite  him.  Fear  is  the  great  restraint  of  sin,  as  the  fear 
of  man  keepeth  the  beasts  from  hurting  him,  Gen.  ix.  2 ;  it  is  their 
bridle :  '  The  fear  of  you  shall  be  upon  the  beasts  of  the  field.'  So 
fear  of  God  helps  to  keep  from  offending  him,  or  breaking  his  laws. 

[2.]  To  humble  us,  when  we  see  that  sin  shall  not  escape  unpun 
ished.  Alas  !  if  God  should  enter  into  judgment  with  us,  who  could 
stand  ?  Ps.  cxliii.  2.  Non  dicit  cum  hostibus  tuis,  sed  cum  servo  tuo. 
He  doth  not  say,  If  them  shouldest  enter  into  judgment  with  thine 
enemy,  but  with  thy  servant.  God  is  a  just  judge,  and  therefore, 
when  we  see  judgments  executed  upon  others,  we  may  be  afraid  of  his 
righteousness.  Every  humble  heart  is  conscious  to  himself  of  grievous 
offences ;  and  if  God,  when  he  cometh  to  purge  out  dross,  should  be 
severe  with  us,  what  miserable  wretched  creatures  should  we  be  ! 
This  striketh  a  holy  fear  into  our  hearts,  and  so  helps  us  to  humble 
ourselves  in  his  presence. 

[3.J  To  make  us  thankful  for  our  mercies  and  gracious  escape.  It 
is  fear  that  maketh  us  taste  the  sweetness  of  the  promise  of  free  par 
don,  when  we  see  from  what  miseries  we  are  delivered  by  the  mercy 
of  God.  When  the  Israelites  had  seen  the  Egyptians  drowned  in  the 
water,  they  saw  they  had  cause  to  triumph  in  the  God  of  their  salva 
tion,  Exod.  xv.  1,  2.  The  consideration  of  our  defects  is  in  part  repre 
sented  to  us  in  the  bitter  experience  of  others;  there  we  may  see  what 
dangers  we  are  liable  unto,  were  it  not  for  his  preventing  grace,  that 
we  are  riot  condemned  with  the  world,  and  left  to  perish  in  our  sins. 

[4.]  To  quicken  and  sharpen  our  prayers.  God  knoweth  how  to 
take  vengeance  on  all  iniquity,  even  in  his  dearest  servants :  Joel  ii. 
17,  '  Spare  thy  people,  0  Lord,  and  give  not  thine  heritage  to  re 
proach.'  Sparing  is  an  act  of  God's  mercy,  withdrawing  and  mode 
rating  deserved  judgments.  Now  the  more  our  fear  is  increased,  the 
more  earnest  and  importunate  will  we  be  to  keep  off  or  get  the  judg 
ment  removed. 

Use.  Reproof  of  the  greatest  part  of  the  world,  that  pass  by  God's 
judgments,  and  take  no  notice  of  them,  so  as  to  fear  and  return  to 
him  ;  not  his  judgments  upon  others.  When  the  arrows  of  God  fly 
round  about  us,  we  should  fear  for  ourselves,  and  when  wrath  is 
making  inquisition  for  sinners,  be  the  more  earnest  to  be  found  in 
Christ.  But  a  senseless  stupidity  possesseth  most  men  ;  they  mind 


VER.  120.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  237 

none  of  these  tilings.  The  Gibeonites  were  more  wise  and  cautious, 
Josh.  ix.  3, 4.  When  they  saw  the  cities  of  Jericho  and  Ai  destroyed, 
and  their  inhabitants  cut  off  by  the  sword,  they  did  not  expect  the 
coming  of  Joshua,  but  sent  messengers  to  him,  and  by  a  wile  struck  up 
a  covenant  with  him,  before  he  came  any  further.  Or  as  that  captain, 
when  two  before  him  with  their  fifties  were  destroyed  by  fire,  he  fell 
upon  his  knees  before  the  prophet,  2  Kin^s  i.  13,  14,  saying,  '  0  man 
of  God,  let  my  life  and  the  life  of  these  fifty  thy  servants  be  precious 
in  thy  sight.  Behold,  there  came  fire  down  from  heaven,  and  burnt 
up  the  two  captains  of  the  former  fifties,  with  their  fifties  ;  there 
fore  let  my  life  be  precious  in  thy  sight.'  But  oh !  our  blindness  and 
stupidness !  though  others  fall  under  the  judgment  of  God,  we  are  as 
immovable  as  rocks,  and  do  not  fall  down  before  the  Lord  to  depre 
cate  his  anger.  Certainly  if  we  had  a  due  sense  of  our  condition,  we 
are  as  worthy  as  they  ;  it  is  by  the  mercy  of  God  that  yet  we  stand. 
Therefore  we  should  fear  with  a  holy  fear,  that  we  may  bridle  the 
flesh,  humble  ourselves  before  the  Lord,  be  thankful  for  our  safety, 
and  be  earnest  in  prayer :  this  we  should  do  when  we  see  any  others 
in  afflictions.  Again,  when  judgments  are  on  ourselves,  when  God 
cometh  nearer  to  us,  and  beginneth  to  touch  us  with  his  hand,  we 
should  relent  presently.  To  be  sinning  and  suffering  is  the  condition 
of  the  damned  in  hell.  The  Holy  Ghost  sets  a  brand  upon  Ahaz  :  2 
Chron.  xxviii.  22,  '  That  in  the  time  of  his  distress  he  did  yet  trespass 
more  and  more  against  the  Lord  ;  this  is  that  king  Ahaz/  If  we  keep 
our  pride,  luxury,  vanity,  wantonness  still,  our  avarice,  coldness  in 
religion,  Sabbath  profanation,  if  we  be  not  brought  by  all  our  afflic 
tions  to  fear  God  the  more,  such  a  brand  will  he  put  upon  us,  yea, 
our  judgments  will  be  increased,  and  the  furnace  heated  seven  times 
hotter ;  as  when  the  child  is  stubborn  and  obstinate,  the  father  re- 
doubleth  his  strokes.  Therefore  we  are  to  beg  his  Spirit  with  his  rod, 
that  we  may  be  the  better  by  all  his  corrections  :  Numb.  xii.  14,  '  If 
her  father  had  spit  in  her  face,  should  she  not  be  ashamed  seven 
days?'  So  if  our  heavenly  Father  be  displeased  and  casts  contempt 
upon  us,  &c. 

Use  2.  It  reproveth  those  that  triumph  over  the  fallen,  and  declaim 
and  inveigh  against  their  sins,  but  do  not  consider  their  own.  We 
should  rather  tremble  and  learn  to  fear  from  every  judgment  executed, 
though  upon  the  worst  of  men,  and  say,  Well,  God  is  a  righteous  God, 
and  whosoever  provoketh  him  to  wrath  shall  not  escape  unpunished. 
But  this  eTTL^aipeKaKia,  this  insulting  over  and  upbraiding  others  with 
their  evil  and  afflicted  condition,  is  a  sin  which  God  cannot  endure, 
and  will  certainly  punish :  Prov.  xvii.  5,  *  And  he  that  is  glad  at 
calamities  shall  not  be  unpunished.'  If  God  hath  stricken  them,  and 
the  hand  of  justice  found  them  out,  we  should  be  tender  to  them : 
Prov.  xxiv.  17,  18,  'Kejoice  not  when  thine  enemy  falleth,  and  let  not 
thine  heart  be  glad  when  he  stumbleth  ;  lest  the  Lord  see  it  and  _it 
displease  him,  and  he  turn  away  his  wrath  from  him.'  Some  read  it, 
Et  convertat  iram  suam  in  te — he  turn  his  wrath  upon  thee.  Thine 
enemy  is  not  he  that  thou  hatest,  for  a  Christian  should  hate  nobody, 
but  he  that  hateth  thee.  If  we  rejoice  in  their  evil,  certainly  it  is  a 
sign  we  hate  them,  however  we  please  ourselves  with  the  thoughts  of 


238  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXXXII. 

forgiving  them.  As  not  when  he  falleth,  so  not  when  he  stumbleth,  not 
at  lesser  evils  that  befall  them.  Many  will  say  they  do  not  wish  their 
destruction,  but  a  little  evil  they  could  be  glad  of;  which  showeth  how 
rare  true  piety  is.  God  will  give  him  like  advantage  against  thee  ;  as 
the  leprosy  of  Naaman  doth  cleave  to  Gehazi.  David,  when  he  heard 
of  the  death  of  Saul,  rent  his  clothes  and  wept  and  fasted,  2  Sam.  i. 
11,  12.  Therefore,  to  feed  our  eyes  with  the  misery  and  torment  of 
others,  is  no  holy  affection.  Job  disclaimed  it :  Job  xxxi.  29,  '  If  I 
rejoiced  at  the  destruction  of  him  that  hated  me,  or  lifted  up  myself 
when  evil  found  him,  neither  have  I  suffered  my  mouth  to  sin  by 
wishing  a  curse  to  his  soul.'  Eevenge  is  sweet  to  carnal  nature,  but 
such  a  disposition  as  that  cannot  or  should  not  find  room  in  a  gracious 
heart.  To  evidence  his  integrity,  Job  produceth  this  vindication. 
Though  they  that  hate  us  be  our  worst  enemies,  and  should  have 
spirits  steeped  in  bitterness  and  wormwood  against  us,  yet  ought  we 
not  to  rejoice  at  the  misery  of  an  enemy.  Yea,  to  mourn  at  their  fall 
becometh  us  more,  if  we  would  act  as  Christians ;  and  to  fear  because 
of  it  is  an  act  of  piety.  Therefore  this  old  leaven  of  malice  and 
revenge  must  be  purged  out,  this  being  inwardly  delighted,  when  we 
hear  of  the  fall  of  those  that  hate  us.  When  thine  enemy  falleth, 
consider,  Either  I  myself  am  like  him,  or  worse,  or  better  than  he.  If 
better,  who  made  thee  to  differ  ?  If  worse,  thou  hast  cause  to  wonder 
thou  art  spared,  and  to  fear  before  the  Lord.  Let  us  therefore  observe 
the  judgments  of  God  executed  according  to  his  word.  Lactantius 
telleth  us,  Quod  non  metuitur,  contemnitur,  quod  contemnitur  utique 
non  colitur.  If  the  wrath  of  God  be  not  feared,  it  is  contemned  ;  and 
if  God  be  contemned,  he  cannot  be  worshipped. 


SEBMON  CXXXII. 

/  have  done  judgment  and  justice :  leave  me  not  to  mine  oppressors. — 

VER.  121. 

HERE  is — 

1.  David's  plea. 

2.  His  prayer. 

First,  His  plea,  '  I  have  done  judgment  and  justice.'  Defensio  est, 
non  arrogantia,  saith  Ambrose ;  he  doth  not  speak  this  boasting  or 
trusting  in  his  own  righteousness,  but  by  way  of  apology  and  just 
defence  :  it  is  no  pleading  of  merit,  as  if  God  were  his  debtor  ;  but  an 
asserting  of  his  innocency  against  slanderers.  There  isjustitia  personal, 
the  righteousness  of  the  person ;  and  justitia  causce,  the  righteousness 
of  the  cause  wherein  any  one  is  engaged.  We  may  propound  the 
justice  of  our  cause  to  God  as  the  judge  of  the  earth,  and  appeal  to 
him  how  innocently  we  suffer,  when  we  are  not  able  to  plead  the 
righteousness  of  our  persons  as  to  a  strict  and  legal  qualification :  Ps. 
cxliii.  2,  '  Enter  not  into  judgment  with  thy  servant,  for  in  thy  sight 
shall  no  man  living  be  justified.'  Well,  then,  David  pleadeth  the 
equity  and  justice  of  his  cause,  and  his  right  behaviour  therein.  They 


VER.  121.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  239 

cannot  condemn  him  of  any  unrighteousness  and  'injustice,  and  yet 
endeavour  to  oppress  him  ;  therefore  he  pleads,  Lord,  thou  knowest 
where  the  right  Heth,  so  far  as  concerneth  their  slanders,  I  appeal  to 
thee  for  my  integrity  and  sincerity  ;  thou  knowest  that  I  have  given 
up  myself  to  do  just  and  right  things  ;  though  they  are  thus  forward 
to  mischief,  I  have  done  them  no  wrong ;  '  hear  me,  0  God  of  my 
righteousness/  Ps.  iv.  1.  They  that  look  to  be  protected  by  God  must 
look  that  they  have  a  good  cause,  and  handle  that  cause  well,  other 
wise  we  make  him  the  patron  of  sin.  When  we  suffer  as  evil-doers, 
it  is  the  devil's  cross,  not  Christ's,  that  we  take  up. 

But  let  us  see  how  David  expresseth  his  innocency,  '  I  have  done 
judgment  and  justice.'  These  two  words  are  often  joined  together  in 
scripture.  When  God  is  spoken  of,  it  is  said  of  him,  Ps.  xxxiii.  5, 
'  He  loveth  righteousness  and  judgment ;'  and  in  the  2  Sam.  viii.  15, 
it  is  said  that  '  David  executed  judgment  and  justice  over  all  Israel.' 
Muis  distinguished  them  thus,  Judicium  adversus  sceleratos,  justitia 
erga  bonos — judgment  in  punishing  the  wicked,  justice  in  rewarding 
the  good.  Besides  that  David  speaketh  not  here  as  a  king,  but  as  a 
poor  oppressed  man,  the  words  will  hardly  admit  of  that  notion. 
Some  think  they  are  only  put  to  increase  the  sense  :  I  have  done 
judgment  justly,  exactly.  I  suppose  the  one  referreth  to  the  law  or 
rule  itself,  according  to  which  every  one  is  to  do  right — that  is,  judg 
ment,  a  clear  knowledge  of  what  ought  to  be  done  ;  the  other  referreth 
to  the  action  that  followeth  thereupon.  So  that  judgment  is  a  doing 
of  what  we  know,  and  acting  according  to  received  light :  Ezek.  xviii. 
5,  '  Do  that  which  is  lawful  and  right ;'  it  is  in  the  margin,  Do  judg 
ment  and  justice.  Now  when  this  is  attributed  to  public  persons, 
judgment  signifieth  due  order  in  trying  and  finding  out  the  state  of  a 
cause  ;  and  justice  the  giving  out  sentence  on  that  trial  and  judgment,  or 
causing  justice  to  be  executed  for  righting  the  wronged  and  punishing 
the  wrong-doer.  When  to  private  men,  the  one  implies  the  direction 
of  conscience,  the  other  the  rectitude  of  our  actions.  By  judgment  we 
discern  between  right  and  wrong,  and  by  justice  doing  things  justly 
according  to  the  rule.  Thus  it  is  said,  Ps.  cvi.  3,  '  Blessed  are  they 
that  keep  judgment,  and  he  that  doth  righteousness  at  all  times/ 
There  is  another  notion  of  these  two  words,  which  I  had  almost  for 
gotten: — (1.)  Judgment  seemeth  to  be  opposite  to  rigour  and  ex 
tremity,  and  seemeth  to  import  equitable  carriage,  mixed  with  mercy 
and  moderation  in  exacting  our  own  from  others.  Certainly,  so  judg 
ment  is  sometimes  taken,  Jer.  x.  24, '  0  Lord,  correct  me,  but  with  judg 
ment  ;  not  in  thine  anger,  lest  thou  bring  me  to  nothing.'  (2.)  Justice 
is  just  and  faithful,  dealing  in  and  about  those  things  which  wre  owe 
to  others,  or  are  employed  about,  or  are  intrusted  with  by.  others. 

Doct.  It  is  a  comely  property  in  God's  children,  and  very  comfortable 
to  them,  to  do  judgment  and  justice. 

1.  It  is  an  excellent  property — 

[1.]  Because  by  it  we  are  made  like  God.  Eighteousness  is  part  of 
God's  image,  and  herein  we  do  most  resemble  his  perfection :  Ps. 
cxlv.  5,  '  The  Lord  is  righteous  in  all  his  ways,  and  holy  in  all  his 
works/  There  is  a  perfect  holiness  in  his  nature,  and  a  condecency 
in  all  his  actions.  Therefore  it  is  God-like  in  us  when  our  natures  are 


240  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiR.  CXXXII. 

sanctified,  and  all  our  actions  are  righteous  and  holy.  It  is  said,  Eph. 
iv.  24,  '  That  the  new  man  is  created  after  God  in  righteousness  and 
true  holiness/  according  to  the  pattern  of  God,  much  like  to  him  :  they 
that  are  most  so,  are  most  like  him.  Natural  conscience  doth  homage 
to  the  image  of  God :  Mark  vi.  20,  '  And  Herod  feared  John,  knowing 
he  was  a  just  man.' 

[2.]  It  is  acceptable  and  pleasing  to  God.  The  just  man  is  an 
object  of  God's  complacency :  Prov.  xv.  9,  '  The  Lord  loveth  him  that 
followeth  after  righteousness.'  God  loveth  all  his  creatures  with  a 
general  love,  but  with  a  special  love  those  that  bear  his  image.  He 
doth  not  love  men  because  they  are  rich  and  mighty,  fair  and  beautiful, 
valiant  and  strong,  but  as  holy  and  just.  It  is  said,  Prov.  xxi.  3,  '  To 
do  justice  and  judgment  is  more  acceptable  to  the  Lord  than  sacrifice/ 
God  hath  required  both,  and  we  should  make  conscience  of  both  ;  but 
yet  the  one  is  better  than  the  other,  though  the  one  be  a  duty  of  the  first 
table,  the  other  of  the  second,  because  moral  and  substantial  duties  are 
better  than  ceremonial,  internal  before  external,  and  duties  evident  by 
natural  light  before  things  of  positive  institution.  It  appeareth  in 
this,  that  God  doth  accept  of  moral  duties  without  ceremonial  ob 
servances,  *  For  in  every  nation,  he  that  feareth  God  and  worketh 
righteousness,  is  accepted  of  him,'  Acts  x.  35.  But  ceremonial  ob 
servances  without  moral  duties  are  of  no  account  in  God's  sight :  he 
still  rejecteth  their  offerings  when  they  neglect  justice;  not  thousands 
of  rams  and  rivers  of  oil,  but  to  show  mercy,  and  to  do  justly,  Micah 
vi.  7,  8,  this  is  good.  Again,  he  dispenseth  with  the  ceremonials  and 
the  externals  of  religion  when  they  come  in  competition  with  moral 
duties,  even  of  the  second  table ;  as  David's  eating  the  shew-bread 
when  he  was  hungry,  Mat.  xii.  5.  Well,  then,  how  right  and  punctual 
soever  we  be  in  other  things,  unless  we  show  mercy  and  do  justice,  we 
are  not  accepted  with  God,  though  zealous  for  and  against  ceremonies 
of  the  stricter  party  in  religion.  It  is  true  we  cannot  say  they  are 
better  than  faith  and  love,  and  the  fear  of  God,  and  hope  in  his  grace, 
for  these  are  the  substantial  duties  of  the  first  table.  And  compare 
substantial^  with  substantial,  de  ordine  modus,  first-table  duties  are 
more  weighty.  But  compare  internals  of  the  second  with  externals  of 
the  first,  moral  duties  of  the  second  with  the  ceremonies  of  the  first, 
natural  and  evident  with  the  merely  positive  and  instituted ;  these 
latter  1  are  more  weighty.  Give  to  God  what  is  God's,  and  to  men 
what  is  men's. 

[3.]  Because  it  fitteth  for  communion  with  God.  When  you  are 
just  and  righteous,  you  may  call  for  and  look  for  such  blessings  as  you 
.stand  in  need  of ;  for  the  righteous  have  an  easy  access  to  him,  and  are 
sure  of  audience :  Ps.  xvii.  15,  '  But  as  for  me,  I  will  behold  thy  face 
in  righteousness/  I  cannot  behold  the  face  of  Saul,  he  will  not  see 
my  face ;  but  this  comforts  me,  that  I  can  behold  thy  face.  Lord, 
thou  wilt  look  upon  me,  and  be  gracious  to  me,  and  hear  my  prayers. 
Otherwise  God  will  not  hear  the  unjust,  as  he  saith  he  would  not 
accept  of  their  peace-offerings,  till  'judgment  ran  down  as  a  river,  and 
righteousness  as  a  mighty  stream/  Amos  v.  23,  24,  and  rejects  the 
Jewish  fasts,  Isa.  Iviii.,  because  they  did  not  loose  the  oppressed,  &c. 
On  the  other  side,  he  hath  assured  the  protection  of  his  providence  to 

1  Qu.  '  the  former '  ?— ED. 


VER.  121.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  241 

him  that  is  just:  Isa.  xxxiii.  15,  16,  'He  that  walketh  righteously, 
and  speaketli  uprightly,  he  that  despiseth  the  gain  of  oppression,  and 
shaketh  his  hands  from  holding  of  bribes,  that  stoppeth  his  ears  from 
hearing  of  blood,  and  shutteth  his  eyes  from  seeing  evil,  he  shall  dwell 
on  high,  his  pla.ce  of  defence  shall  be  the  munition  of  rocks  ;  bread 
shall  be  given  him,  and  his  water  shall  be  sure.'  God  will  minister 
to  him  sure  comforts  and  sure  supplies.  They  that  walk  in  a  con 
tinual  course  of  righteousness  and  just  dealing  of  all  sorts  shall  be  as 
safe  as  if  in  a  fort  impregnable,  not  to  be  taken  by  any  force,  and 
sufficiently  furnished  with  store  of  provisions  to  hold  out  any  siege  ; 
a  high  craggy  place  is  such.  Bread  and  water  are  tokens  of  God's  full 
and  final  deliverance:  Isa.  li.  1,  'Hearken  unto  me,  ye  that  follow 
after  righteousness.'  None  must  look  to  be  thus  qualified  but  the 
righteous. 

[4.]  It  is  so  suitable  to  the  new  nature  as  fruits  to  such  a  tree. 
What  is  works  meet  for  repentance  ?  Acts  xxvi.  20,  '  That  they  should 
repent,  and  turn  to  God,  and  do  works  meet  for  repentance ; '  arid 
'  bring  forth  fruits  meet  for  repentance/  Mat.  iii.  8.  They  are  the 
kindly  products  of  faith  in  Christ  and  repentance  towards  God.  It  is 
as  unsuitable  to  those  that  are  gracious  to  be  unjust,  as  that  the  egg 
of  a  crow  should  drop  from  a  hen,  or  venomous  berries  should  grow 
upon  a  choice  vine.  That  grace  that  is  put  into  our  hearts,  which 
maketh  us  submissive  and  dutiful  to  God,  doth  also  make  us  kind  and 
harmless  to  men.  These  things  are  required  of  us  as  the  fruits  of  true 
faith  and  repentance  :  Isa.  i.  16,  17,  *  Wash  you,  make  you  clean  ; 
put  away  the  evil  of  your  doings  from  before  mine  eyes ;  cease  to  do 
evil,  learn  to  do  well;  seek  judgment,  relieve  the  oppressed,  judge  the 
fatherless,  plead  for  the  widow/  This  is  particularly  insisted  upon  as 
the  proper  fruit  of  their  change.  So  Dan.  iv.  27,  '  Break  off  thy  sins 
by  righteousness,  and  thine  iniquities  by  showing  mercy  to  the  poor.' 
Kepentance  is  a  breaking  off  the  former  course  of  sin.  The  king,  an 
open  oppressor,  Daniel  preacheth  righteousness  and  mercy  to  him. 
They  that  continue  their  former  unjust  courses  never  yet  truly  re 
pented :  Zech.  viii.  16,  17,  *  These  are  the  things  that  ye  shall  do, 
Speak  ye  every  man  truth  to  his  neighbour ;  execute  the  judgment  of 
truth  and  peace  in  your  gates,  and  let  none  of  you  imagine  evil  in  your 
hearts  against  his  neighbour,  and  love  no  false  oath  ;  for  all  these 
are  things  that  I  hate,  saith  the  Lord/  He  would  have  their  repent 
ance  thus  expressed. 

[5.]  Because  it  is  so  lovely  and  venerable  in  the  eyes  of  the  world. 
A  Christian,  if  he  had  no  other  engagement  upon  him,  yet,  for  the 
honour  of  God  and  the  credit  of  religion,  he  should  do  those  things  that 
are  lovely  and  comely  in  themselves,  and  so  esteemed  by  the  world,  for 
he  is  to  glorify  God,  1  Peter  ii.  12,  and  adorn  religion,  Titus  ii.  10,  to 
represent  his  profession  with  advantage  to  the  consciences  of  men. 
God  is  dishonoured  by  nothing  so  much  as  injustice,  which  is  so  odious 
and  hateful  to  men ;  and  wicked  men  are  hardened,  the  hopeful  dis 
couraged,  atheism  prevaileth  :  Neh.  v.  9,  '  Also  I  said,  It  is  not  good 
that  ye  do  ;  ought  ye  not  to  walk  in  the  fear  of  our  God,  because  of 
the  reproach  of  the  heathen  our  enemies  ?'  On  the  contrary,  when  wo 
give  every  one  their  due,  we  bring  honour  to  God  and  credit  to  reli- 

VOL.  VIII.  Q 


242  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEPv.  CXXXII. 

gion ;  you  can  the  better  hold  up  the  profession  of  it  against  contra 
diction,  hold  up  head  before  God  and  man.  Now  justice  is  so  lovely, 
partly  as  it  is  a  stricture  of  the  image  of  God,  as  before,  in  which 
respect  it  is  said,  Prov.  xii.  26,  '  The  righteous  is  more  excellent  than 
his  neighbour.'  Men  are  convinced  that  he  is  a  more  perfect  man, 
fitter  to  be  trusted,  as  being  one  that  will  deal  faithfully.  And  partly 
because  the  welfare  of  human  society  is  promoted  by  such  things: 
Titus  iii.  8,  '  These  things  are  good  and  profitable  for  men.' 

[6.]  And  indeed  that  is  my  last  reason  ;  it  conduceth  so  much  to  the 
good  of  human  society.  A  Christian  is  a  member  of  a  double  com 
munity — of  the  church  and  of  the  world  ;  the  one  in  order  to  eternal 
life,  the  other  in  order  to  the  present  life ;  as  a  man,  and  as  a  Chris 
tian.  Without  justice  what  would  the  world  be  but  a  den  of  thieves  ? 
.Remove  justitiam,  &c.,  saith  St  Augustine.  The  world  cannot  subsist 
without  justice  :  '  The  king's  throne  is  established  by  righteousness,' 
Prov.  xvi.  10.  The  nation  gets  honour  and  reputation  by  it  abroad : 
Prov.  xiii.  34,  '  Righteousness  exalteth  a  nation  ;  but  sin  is  a  reproach 
to  any  people/  Never  did  the  people  of  the  Jews,  nor  any  other  nation 
whose  history  is  come  to  our  ears,  flourish  so  much  as  when  they  were 
careful  and  exact  in  maintaining  righteousness.  And  as  to  persons, 
all  commerce  between  man  and  man  is  kept  up  by  justice.  And  if  this 
be  a  truth,  that  God,  and  not  the  devil,  doth  govern  the  world,  and 
distribute  rewards  and  the  blessings  of  this  life,  surely  then  justice, 
which  is  a  compliance  with  God's  will,  is  the  way  to  be  exalted,  and  to 
live  well  in  the  world,  and  not  lying,  cozening,  and  dissembling. 

2.  It  is  very  comfortable  to  us  to  be  just.  The  comfort  of  righteous 
ness  is  often  spoken  of  in  scripture :  Prov.  xxix.  6,  'In  the  trans 
gression  of  an  evil  man  there  is  a  snare;  but  the  righteous  doth  sing 
and  rejoice ;'  whatever  befalleth  him,  good  or  evil,  much  or  little,  in 
life  or  death.  Good  or  evil ;  if  good,  he  hath  comfort  in  his  por 
tion,  because  what  he  hath  he  hath  by  the  fair  leave  and  allowance  of 
God's  providence :  Prov.  xiii.  25,  '  The  righteous  eateth  to  the  satisfy 
ing  of  his  soul ;'  he  hath  enough,  because  he  hath  what  God  seeth  fit 
for  him ;  he  hath  enough  to  supply  his  wants,  enough  to  satisfy  his 
desires  ;  sometimes  it  is  much,  sometimes  it  is  little.  It  is  much  some 
times,  for  they  are  under  the  blessing  of  the  promise:  Deut.  xvi.  20, 
1  That  which  is  altogether  just  shalt  thou  follow,  that  thou  mayest  live, 
and  inherit  the  land  which  the  Lord  thy  God  giveth  thee.'  Justice 
shalt  thou  follow ;  if  you  will  take  care  for  that,  God  will  take  care  to 
bless  you.  If  it  be  little,  that  little  is  better  than  more  gotten  by  fraud 
and  injustice :  Prov.  xvi.  8,  '  Better  is  a  little  with  righteousness,  than 
great  revenues  without  right;'  Prov.  xv.  16,  17,  '  Better  is  a  little  with 
the  fear  of  the  Lord,  than  great  treasure,  and  trouble  therewith;' 
though  it  be  but  a  dinner  of  herbs :  Ps.  xxxvii.  16,  '  A  little  that  a 
righteous  man  hath  is  better  than  the  treasures  of  many  wicked.' 
The  comfort,  if  they  will  stand  to  the  scriptures,  lieth  not  in  abun 
dance,  but  in  God's  blessing.  There  is  more  satisfaction  in  their  small 
provisions  than  in  the  greatest  plenty.  Suppose  their  condition  be 
evil,  whatsoever  evil  a  just  man  suffers,  he  shall  get  some  good  by  it, 
living  or  dying,  and  so  still  hath  ground  of  comfort :  if  scorned  or 
neglected,  he  hath  the  comfort  of  his  innocent  dealing  to  bear  him  out. 


VER.  121.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  243 

As  Samuel,  when  he  and  his  house  was  laid  aside,  1  Sara.  xii.  2,  3,  he 
appeals  to  them,  '  Whose  ox  have  I  taken  ?  or  whose  ass  have  I  taken  ? 
or  whom  have  I  defrauded  ?  whom  have  I  oppressed  ?  or  from  whose 
hands  have  I  received  a  bribe  to  blind  mine  eyes  therewith,  and  I  will 
restore  it  ?'  If  you  are  opposed  and  maligned,  you  may  plead  against 
your  enemies  as  Moses  did,  Num.  xvi.  15,  '  Eespect  riot  their  offerings ; 
I  have  not  taken  an  ass  from  them,  neither  have  I  hurt  one  of  them.' 
You  may  plead  thus  when  you  are  sure  you  have  not  wronged  them. 
If  you  are  oppressed,  as  David  in  the  text,  you  may  appeal  to  the  God 
of  your  righteousness.  In  life,  in  death,  they  have  the  comfort  of  their 
righteousness ;  in  life,  Deut.  xvi.  20,  as  before.  In  death  ;  Prov.  xiv. 
32,  '  The  righteous  man  hath  hope  in  his  death  ;'  Isa.  xxxviii.  3, 
*  Remember  now,  0  Lord,  I  beseech  thee,  that  I  have  walked  before 
thee  in  truth,  and  with  a  perfect  heart,  and  have  done  that  which  is 
good  in  thy  sight.'  When  he  is  going  the  way  of  all  the  earth,  this 
will  be  a  comfort  to  him,  that  he  hath  done  no  wrong,  but  served  God 
faithfully,  and  lived  with  men  without  guile  and  deceit.  Oh,  for  com 
forts  for  a  dying  hour  !  Now  this  comfort  ariseth  partly  from  a  good 
conscience,  and  partly  from  the  many  promises  of  God  that  are  made 
to  righteousness. 

[1.]  From  peace  of  conscience.  We  are  told,  Prov.  xv.  15,  '  That  a 
good  conscience  is  a  continual  feast/  Ahasuerus  made  a  magnificent 
feast,  that  lasted  a  hundred  and  eighty  days ;  but  this  is  a  continual 
feast,  a  dish  we  are  never  weary  of.  Now,  who  have  this  feast  ?  The 
crooked,  the  subtle,  the  deceitful  ?  No ;  but  those  that  walk  with  a 
simple  and  plain-hearted  honesty:  2  Cor.  i.  12,  '  This  is-our  rejoicing, 
the  testimony  of  our  consciences,  that  in  simplicity  and  godly  sincerity 
we  have  had  our  conversation  in  the  world/'  They  have  comfort  in 
all  conditions  :  Acts  xxiv.  16,  '  Herein  do  I  exercise  myself  always,  to 
keep  a  conscience  void  of  offence  towards  God  and  towards  men/ 
Others  are  like  trees  of  the  forest,  every  wind  shaketh  them ;  but 
they  are  the  garden  of  God:  Cant.  iv.  16,  'Awake,  0  north  wind; 
blow,  0  south  wind,  upon  my  garden,  that  the  spices  thereof  may  flow 
out/  Out  of  what  corner  soever  the  wind  bloweth,  it  bloweth  good  to 
them. 

[2.]  Partly  from  the  many  promises  of  God,  both  as  to  the  world  to 
come  and  this  present  life.  For  the  world  to  come,  the  question  is 
put,  Ps.  xv.  1,  and  it  were  well  we  would  often  put  it  to  our  hearts, 
'  Lord,  who  shall  abide  in  thy  tabernacle  ?  Who  shall  dwell  in  thy 
holy  hill  ? '  It  is  answered,  '  He  that  walketh  uprightly,  and  worketh 
righteousness,  and  speaketh  the  truth  with  his  heart,  that  backbiteth 
not  with  his  tongue,  nor  doth  evil  to  his  neighbour,  nor  taketh  up  a 
reproach  against  his  neighbour ;'  a  man  that  rnaketh  conscience  of 
all  his  words  and  actions.  So  the  apostle  telleth  us,  in  the  new  heavens 
and  new  earth  there  dwelleth  righteousness,  2  Peter  iii.  13.  Then, 
for  this  world  there  are  many  promises :  take  a  taste ;  this  bringeth 
profit,  and  is  only  profitable :  Prov.  x.  2,  '  Treasures  of  wickedness 
profit  nothing,  but  righteousness  delivereth  from  death/  Men  think 
to  do  anything  with  wealth,  and  that,  naked  honesty  may  be  a-cold  ; 
they  have  food  and  physic,  friends  and  honour ;  alas !  how  soon  can 
God  blow  upon  an  estate  and  make  it  useless  to  us — make  a  man  vomit 


244  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEE.  CXXXII. 

up  again  his  ill-gotten  morsels !     Job  xx.  15,  '  He  hath  swallowed 
down  riches,  and  shall  vomit  them  up  again  :  God  shall  cast  them  out 
of  his  belly/     As  a  man  that  hath  eaten  too  much,  though  God  permit 
him  to  get,  he  doth  not  permit  him  to  hold  what  he  hath  gotten  un 
justly.     There  is  a  flaw  in  the  title  will  one  time  or  other  cast  them 
out  of  possession.     Well,  then,  riches  profit  not.     But  what  is  profit 
able  ?     1  Tim.  iv.  8,  '  Godliness  is  profitable  to  all  things.'     And  this 
part  of  godliness,  righteousness,  that  will  prolong  life,  and  bring  a 
blessing  upon  the  soul  of  the  righteous :  Prov.  x.  3,  '  The  Lord  will 
not  suffer  the  soul  of  the  righteous  to  famish ;  but  he  casteth  away  the 
substance  of  the  wicked/     Another  promise ;  it  bringeth  preservation 
in  times  of  difficulty  and  danger ;  he  that  hath  carried  it  righteously, 
they  know  not  how  to  lay  hold  upon  him,  and  work  him  any  mischief  : 
Prov.  xi.  3,  '  The  integrity  of  the  upright  shall  guide  him,  but  the 
perverseness  of  transgressors  shall  destroy  them.'     So  again,  Prov.  xiii. 
6,  '  Righteousness  keepeth  him  that  is  upright  in  the  way,  but  wicked 
ness  overthroweth  the  sinner/     It  is  God  keepeth  us,  but  the  qualifi 
cation  of  the  person  kept  is  to  be  observed,  it  is  he  that  is  just  and 
honest.     We  think  it  is  the  way  to  danger,  because  the  eye  of  the  flesh 
is  more  perspicuous  than  the  eye  of  the  spirit  or  mind ;  and  we  are 
more  apt  to  see  what  is,  and  who  is  against  us,  than  what  and  who  is 
for  us  :  Ps.  xxv.  21,  '  Let  integrity  and  uprightness  preserve  me,  for  I 
wait  on  thee/     That  which,  in  the  judgment  of  the  flesh,  is  the  means 
of  our  ruin,  is  indeed  the  means  of  our  preservation.     So  Isa.  xxxiii. 
15,  '  He  that  walketh  righteously,  and  speaketh  uprightly,'  &c.    Again, 
for  recovery  out  of  trouble:  Prov.  xxiv.  15,  16,  'Lay  not  wait,  O 
wicked  man,  against  the  dwelling  of  the  righteous ;  spoil  not  his  rest 
ing-place;  for  the  just  man  falleth  seven  times,  and  riseth  up  again; 
but  the  wicked  shall  fall  into  mischief/     They  may  be  '  persecuted, 
but  not  forsaken ;  cast  down,  but  not  destroyed/     There  are  strange 
changes  of  providence ;  we  are  up  and  down,  but  shall  rise  again  ;  with 
the  wicked  it  is  not  so.     Again,  for  stability  :  Prov.  x.  4,  5,  '  As  the 
whirlwind  passeth,  so  is  the  wicked  no  more ;  but  the  righteous  is  an 
everlasting  foundation/     Wicked  men,  being  great  in  power,  rend  and 
tear  all  things,  and  bring  down  all  things  before  them  ;  but  they  have 
no  foundation :  the  one  is  fleeting  as  the  wind,  the  other  is  settled 
as  the  earth.     So  Prov.  xii.  3,   '  A  man  shall  not  be  established  by 
wickedness,  but  the  root  of  the  righteous  shall  not  be  moved/    Wicked 
men  get  up,  seem  high  for  the  time,  but  they  have  no  root,  therefore 
soon  wither :  they  have  no  root,  as  that  ambassador,  when  he  saw  the 
treasure  of  St  Mark,   said,  This  hath  no  root.     All  their  policies, 
secret  friendships,  shall  never  be  able  to  keep  them  up.     Ahab  was 
told  that  God  would  root  out  him  and  all  his  family;  he  thought  to 
avoid  this  threatening  ;  gets  many  wives  and  concubines,  by  whom  he 
hath  seventy  children,  hoping  that  one  of  them  would  remain  to  suc 
ceed  him ;  he  committed  their  tutelage  and  education  to  the  choicest 
of  his  nobility,  men  of  Samaria,  a  strong  town ;  but  you  see  all  this 
came  to  nought,  2  Kings  x.     So  Prov.  x.  36,  '  The  righteous  shall 
never  be  moved,  but  the  wicked  shall  not  inhabit  the  earth/     Every 
man  that  is  in  good  estate  would  fain  make  it  as  firm  and  lasting  as 
he  can;  these  settle  polities,  contract  friendships,  use  all  means  to 


VER.  121.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  245 

make  their  acquisitions'firrn  and  secure,  but  pass  by  the  main  care, 
which  is  to  settle  things  upon  a  righteous  foundation,  and  therefore 
they  shall  not  flourish.  So  for  posterity  :  Prov.  xi.  21,  *  The  seed  of 
the  righteous  shall  be  delivered.'  So  Prov.  xii.  7,  '  The  wicked  are 
overthrown  and  are  not,  but  the  house  of  the  righteous  shall  stand ;' 
Prov.  xx.  7,  '  The  just  man  walketh  in  his  integrity ;  his  children  are 
blessed  after  him.'  All  our  care  is  for  posterity,  man  multiplied,  con 
tinued  ;  in  short,  all  manner  of  blessings :  Prov.  xxi.  21,  '  He  that 
followeth  after  righteousness  and  mercy  findeth  life,  righteousness,  and 
honour/  He  findeth  life :  Prov.  xi.  19,  'As  righteousness  tendeth  to 
life,  so  he  that  pursueth  evil  pursueth  it  to  his  own  death;'  Prov.  xii. 
28,  '  In  the  way  of  righteousness  is  life,  and  in  the  pathway  thereof 
there  is  no  death/  Righteousness ;  he  shall  have  righteous  dealing 
from  others.  Honour  ;  he  shall  have  a  good  name  in  the  world,  and 
be  preferred  wThen  God  thinks  fit. 

Use.  To  press  us  to  do  judgment  and  justice — 

1.  As  to  our  private  dealing  with  others ;  carry  yourselves  faith 
fully,  and  make  conscience  of  justice  and  equity. 

[1.]  Propound  to  do  nothing  but  what  is  agreeable  to  righteousness 
and  honesty :  Prov.  xii.  5,  '  The  thoughts  of  the  righteous  are  right, 
but  the  counsels  of  the  wicked  are  deceit/  Our  evil  purpose  spoils  all. 
A  good  man  erreth  sometimes  through  ignorance,  incogitancy,  or 
violence  of  temptation,  overtaken  or  overborne  ;  but  he  doth  not  pro 
pose  to  do  evil,  that  is  the  property  of  the  wicked. 


J2.]  Be  always  exercising  righteousness,  as  God  giveth  opportunity 
occasion  :  1  John  iii.  7,  '  He  that  doth  righteousness  is  righteous  ; ' 
Ps.  cvi.  3,  'Blessed  are  they  that  keep  judgment,  and  he  that  doth 
righteousness  at  all  times.'  Justice  must  be  observed  in  lesser  things 
as  well  as  in  great,  for  where  heaven  and  hell  are  concerned  nothing 
is  little,  Luke  xvi.  10.  He  that  is  faithful  in  that  which  is  least,  in 
minima,  6  Trtcrro?  ev  e\a^ia-ra) — he  that  is  faithful  in  a  little  thing 
will  not  be  unfaithful  in  anything.  Many  will  be  righteous  in  some 
thing,  but  in  some  others  dispense  with  themselves. 

[3.]  Do  not  depart  from  your  rule  and  resolution  of  just  dealing 
upon  any  temptation  whatsoever.  Men  resolve  to  be  just,  but  when 
the  temptation  cometh,  their  resolution  is  shaken.  Oh  !  remember 
the  greatest  gain  will  not  countervail  your  loss :  Mat.  xvi.  26,  '  What 
is  a  man  profited  if  he  shall  gain  the  whole  world,  and  lose  his  own 
soul?'  It  will  prove  a  poor  bargain  in  the  end;  and  there  is  no 
profit  in  what  is  gained  unjustly;  it  is  a  certain  loss,  and  so  it  will 
prove  in  the  issue:  Hab.  ii.  9,  10,  'Woe  unto  him  that  coveteth  an 
evil  covetousness  to  his  house,  that  he  may  set  his  nest  on  high,  that 
he  may  be  delivered  from  the  power  of  evil:  thou  hast  consulted 
shame  to  thy  house,  and  hast  sinned  against  thine  own  soul/  You 
think  to  avoid  all  emergent  evils  ;  there  needs  no  more  to  pull  down 
the  power  and  greatness  of  the  oppressor  than  his  studying  to  make  it 
great ;  nothing  destroyeth  it  so  much. 

[4.]  Take  special  heed  to  thyself  that  thou  be  not  unrighteous  when 
opportunity  is  offered,  when  put  in  places  of  power  and  trust.  Many 
are  innocent  because  they  have  no  opportunity  to  be  otherwise.  It  is 
said,  John  xii.  6,  '  He  was  a  thief,  and  had  the  bag,  and  bare  what 


246  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXXXII. 

was  put  therein.'  When  corrupt  affections  and  suitable  temptations 
and  objects  meet,  then  it  is  dangerous  to  the  soul. 

[5.]  Take  heed  of  covetousness :  1  Tim.  vi.  10,  '  The  love  of  money 
is  the  root  of  all  evil/  It  will  make  a  breach  on  thy  duty  when  it  is 
indulged  ;  therefore  take  away  the  lusts,  and  temptations  will  have 
less  power  over  thee. 

For  motives — 

(1.)  Kighteousness  is  a  Christian's  breastplate:  Eph.  vi.  14,  'And 
having  on  the  breastplate  of  righteousness,'  to  defend  the  heart  and 
vital  parts.  It  keepeth  the  heart  whole  ;  if  the  breast  be  covered  with  a 
firm  resolution  to  shun  whatsoever  is  evil  and  unjust,  temptations  will 
not  pierce  us.  Unless  you  arm  yourself  with  this  resolution,  you  will 
lose  comfort,  and  lose  grace. 

(2.)  Consider  how  soon  God  breaketh  in  with  a  judgment  when 
once  men  transgress  righteousness  :  1  Thes.  iv.  6,  '  Let  no  man  go  be 
yond  his  brother,  nor  defraud  his  brother ;  for  God  is  the  avenger  of 
all  such.'  God,  that  is  the  patron  of  human  society,  will  not  suffer 
unrighteousness  and  injustice  to  go  unpunished. 

2.  In  your  public  engagements,  see  that  you  have  a  good  cause  and 
a  good  conscience,  and  in  due  time  God  will  plead  your  cause.  (1.)  See 
that  you  have  a  good  cause  ;  you  must  not  intitle  God  to  your  petty 
quarrels  and  revenges  :  1  Peter  ii.  19,  20,  '  For  this  is  thankworthy, 
if  a  man  for  conscience  towards  God  endure  grief,  suffering  wrongfully  ; 
for  what  glory  is  it  if,  when  ye  be  buffeted  for  your  faults,  ye  shall  take  it 
patiently  ?  but  if  when  ye  do  well,  and  suffer  for  it,  ye  take  it  patiently, 
this  is  acceptable  with  God  ; '  1  Peter  iii.  16,  17,  '  Having  a  good  con 
science,  that  whereas  they  speak  evil  of  you  as  of  evil-doers,  they  may  be 
ashamed  that  falsely  accuse  your  good  conversation  in  Christ :  for  it  is 
better,  if  the  will  of  God  be  so,  that  ye  suffer  for  well-doing  than  for 
evil-doing.'  That  epistle  was  penned  in  a  suffering  time.  When  you 
are  exposed  to  hardships,  be  sure  you  are  in  God's  way.  (2.)  As  the 
cause  is  good,  so  must  your  carriage  be.  Do  not  step  out  of  God's 
way  for  the  greatest  good.  So  many,  if  they  may  drive  on  their  de 
signs,  they  care  not  what  they  do,  as  if  a  good  end  would  warrant 
them.  Christ  need  not  get  up  on  the  devil's  shoulders.  God  is  now 
bound  to  avenge  this,  for  '  the  wrath  of  God  is  revealed  from  heaven 
against  all  ungodliness  and  unrighteousness  of  men,  who  hold  the 
truth  in  unrighteousness.'  In  this  evil  day  the  righteous  shall  be 
saved.  God  saved  Noah,  a  preacher  of  righteousness,  and  delivered 
just  Lot,  2  Peter  ii. 

Secondly,  We  have  David's  prayer,  '  Leave  me  not  to  mine  op 
pressors.'  He  beggeth  help  against  the  oppression  of  the  enemy.  I 
might  observe — 

1.  That  it  is  no  new  thing  to  see  innocent  men  troubled,  oppressed , 
persecuted.  He  that  could  say,  I  have  done  judgment  and  justice, 
yet  had  his  oppressors.  As  long  as  Satan  wants  not  instruments, 
the  people  of  God  shall  not  want  troubles ;  and  the  two  seeds  will 
never  be  reconciled.  Therefore  we  should  not  censure  the  oppressed, 
and  those  that  are  fallen  under  the  displeasure  of  men ;  and  the 
oppressed  themselves  should  not  wonder  at  it — wicked  men  do  but 
after  their  kind. 


VER.  121.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  247 

2.  That  to  be  left  of  God  under  the  oppression  of  wicked  men 
is  a  grievous  calamity,  and  earnestly  to  be  deprecated. 

[1.]  When  are  we  said  outwardly  and  visibly  to  be  left  by  God 
under  the  oppression  of  wicked  men  ? 

(1.)  When  he  taketh  off  the  restraints  of  his  providence,  and  the 
hedge  of  his  protection  is  broken  down,  and  lets  loose  the  enemy  upon 
us,  and  we  are  left  in  the  power  of  their  hands :  Dan.  i.  2,  '  The  Lord 
gave  the  king  of  Judah  into  his  hands.' 

(2.)  When  he  doth  not  comfort  us  in  such  a  condition,  par 
ticularly  when  God's  assistance  is  not  vouchsafed.  Sometimes  he 
doth  so  :  2  Cor.  i.  4,  '  Who  comforts  us  in  all  our  tribulations.'  At 
other  times  all  is  dark :  Ps.  Ixxiv.  9,  '  We  see  not  our  signs  ;  there  is 
no  more  any  prophet,  neither  is  there  among  us  any  that  knoweth  how 
long/ 

(3.)  When  he  doth  not  direct  us,  and  show  us  our  duty  :  Ps.  cxliii. 
10,  *  Teach  me  to  do  thy  will,  for  thou  art  my  God,  thy  Spirit  is  good, 
lead  me  into  the  land  of  uprightness/  It  was  a  time  when  his  enemies 
prevailed  over  him.  Now,  if  God  hide  counsel  from  us,  we  grope  at 
noonday. 

(4.)  When  he  doth  not  support  us.  Sometimes  this,  Ps.  cxxxviii. 
3,  '  In  the  day  when  I  cried  thou  answeredst  me,  and  strengthenedst 
me  with  strength  in  my  soul;  and  Ps.  xciv.  18,  '  When  I  said  my 
foot  slippeth,  thy  mercy,  0  Lord,  held  me  up  ; '  Ps.  Ixxiii.  23,  '  Never 
theless  1  am  continually  with  thee :  thou  hast  holden  me  up  by  my 
right  hand/  David  prayeth,  Put  me  not  into  their  power,  do  not  let 
loose  'the  reins  ;  thou  hast  hindered  them  hitherto.  It  is  thy  mercy 
that  all  this  while  I  have  not  been  given  up  as  a  prey  to  their  teeth ; 
they  want  not  malice  and  a  will  to  take  vengeance  to  the  uttermost. 

[2.]  It  is  a  grievous  calamity. 

(1.)  It  is  a  hard  thing  to  be  left  to  the  will  and  lusts  of  men. 
David  was  in  a  strait ;  he  chose  rather  to  fall  into  the  Lord's  hands 
than  into  the  hands  of  men  :  2  Sam.  xxiv.  14,  '  I  am  in  a  great  strait ; 
let  me  now  fall  into  the  hand  of  the  Lord,  for  his  mercies  are  great, 
and  not  into  the  hand  of  man/  Men  are  revengeful,  proud,  insolent : 
wicked  men  will  soon  exceed  their  commission  :  Zech.  i.  15,  '  And  I 
am  very  sore  displeased  with  the  heathen  that  are  at  ease  ;  for  I  was 
but  a  little  displeased,  and  they  helped  forward  the  affliction  ;'  Deut. 
xxxii.  27,  '  Were  it  not  that  I  feared  the  wrath  of  the  enemy,  lest  their 
adversaries  should  behave  themselves  strangely,  and  lest  they  should 
say,  Our  hand  is  high,  and  the  Lord  hath  not  done  all  this/  God 
speaketh  after  the  manner  of  men. 

(2.)  It  is  a  great  mark  of  our  Father's  displeasure  when  he  with- 
draweth,  hideth  counsel  from  us,  leaveth  us  without  support  and  com 
fort  :  Mat.  ix.  15,  '  And  Jesus  said  unto  them,  Can  the  children  of  the 
bridechamber  mourn,  as  long  as  the  bridegroom  is  with  them  ?  but 
the  days  will  come,  when  the  bridegroom  shall  be  taken  from  them, 
and  then  shall  they  fast/ 

[3.]  It  is  earnestly  to  be  deprecated,  not  only  as  a  grievous  calamity, 
but  as  hoping  for  relief :  '  I  will  riot  leave  you  op<f>av<nx;,'  John  xiv.  18, 
'  comfortless ; '  and  Mat.  xxviii.  20,  '  Lo,  I  am  with  you  to  the  end  of 
the  world/ 


248  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiR.  CXXXIII. 

Use.  Go,  then,  and  represent  your  condition  to  God  with  humilia 
tion,  owning  his  anger,  but  with  faith  waiting  for  his  help.  Tell  him 
what  a  prey  you  have  been  to  Satan ;  desire  him,  if  he  withdraw  his 
presence  one  way,  he  will  manifest  it  in  another,  in  comforting,  coun 
selling  his  own  people  ;  tell  him  your  weakness,  the  enemies'  malice, 
and  implore  his  aid  and  assistance. 


SERMON  CXXXIII. 

Be  surety  for  tliy  servant  for  good:  let  not  the  proud  oppress  me. — 

VER.  122. 

IN  this  verse  we  may  observe  a  petition — (1.)  Metaphorically  expressed ; 
(2.)  Literally  explained. 

In  the  former  branch  we  have — (1.)  The  notion  by  which  the  help 
he  expecteth  from  God  is  expressed :  it  is  that  of  a  surety,  be  surety 
for  thy  servant.  (2.)  The  end  and  fruit  of  that  help,  or  the  terms  on 
'which  he  expecteth  it,  for  good. 

In  the  literal  explanation  we  have — (1.)  The  matter  of  the  petition, 
let  them  not  oppress  me.  (2.)  An  argument  insinuated  from  the  quality 
and  disposition  of  his  enemies,  the  proud. 

First,  From  the  metaphorical  notion,  '  Be  surety  for  thy  servant,'  we 
may  observe  this  doctrine — 

Doct.  In  deep  distress  we  have  leave  and  encouragement  to  desire 
God  to  interpose  for  his  people's  relief. 

1.  I  shall  open  the  notion  of  a  surety. 

2.  Show  why  we  have  leave  and  encouragement  to  desire  God  to 
interpose. 

First,  For  the  notion  of  a  surety.  Symmachus,  ava&e^ai  yu,e  et? 
dyaObv,  receive  me  into  thy  protection  for  good.  Septuagint,  eVSefat 
re  $ov\6v  aov,  suscipe  servwn  tuum.  It  is  a  phrase  taken  from  men 
when  they  are  sureties  for  a  debtor,  to  take  him  out  of  the  hands  of  a 
cruel  creditor  who  is  ready  to  cast  him  into  prison.  And  thus  the 
prophet  speaketh  to  God  when  he  was  in  extreme  danger,  and  could 
think  of  no  help  but  God's. 

1.  It  implieth  the  danger  imminent ;  when  a  sergeant  hath  attached 
a  man,  and  he  is  ready  to  go  to  prison,  and  there  is  no  means  for  him 
to  escape,  unless  somebody  be  his  surety  to  answer  all  the  challenges  and 
demands  of  the  law.  In  this  sense  Hezekiah  used  it :  Isa.  xxxviii.  14, 
*  I  am  oppressed  ;  undertake  for  me.'  He  spake  it  when  he  was  sum 
moned  to  the  grave,  to  pay  the  debt  we  all  owe  to  nature :  I  am  like 
a  poor  debtor  called  to  pay  my  debt  speedily ;  therefore,  Lord,  be  my 
pledge,  deliver  me  out  of  this  danger.  So  doth  David  here,  when  the 
proud  were  cruelly  set  upon  his  destruction.  We  are  driven  to  God 
alone,  and  beat  to  the  throne  of  grace  by  our  miseries ;  yea,  God  lets 
the  affairs  of  his  people  run  on  to  loss  and  ruin,  till  we  be  in  the 
condition  of  a  debtor  going  to  prison ;  he  reserveth  himself  for  such 
occasions  till  brought  nigh  to  utter  ruin,  and  all  other  inferior  reliefs 


VER.  122.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  249 

fail.  And  we  must  be  content  it  should  be  so  ;  for  there  is  no  use  of  a 
surety  till  we  are  attached.  Imminent  danger  giveth  notice  that  the 
Lord  is  coming. 

2.  That  this  distress  and  misery  cometh  as  a  debt  respecting  God's 
laws  and  the  higher  court,  where  all  things  are  decreed  and  sentenced 
before  they  are  executed  in  the  world,  so  it  is  a  debt  that  must  be 
paid,  and  distress  is  God's  arrest.     God  is  compared  to  a  creditor, 
Luke  vii.  41  ;  therefore  the  miseries  of  God's  people  are  expressed  by 
chains,  stocks,  prisons,  fetters,  words  that  relate  to  a  judicial  proceed 
ing.     To  chains :  Lam.  iii.  7,  '  He  hath  made  my  chain  heavy.'     To 
stocks :  Job  xiii.  27,  '  Thou  puttest  my  feet  into  the  stocks.'     To  a 
prison  :  Ps.  cxlii.  7,  *  Bring  my  soul  out  of  prison.'     To  fetters :  Job 
xxxvi.  8,  '  And  if  they  be  bound  in  fetters,  and  holden  in  cords  of 
afflictions.'     To  a  debt  that  must  be  paid,  so  is  sin  considered  with 
respect  to  its  punishment,  Mat.  vi.  12 ;  Luke  xi.  4,  '  Forgive  us  our 
sins,  for  we  also  forgive  every  one  that  is  indebted  to  us.'     God  puts 
the  bond  in  suit,  the  instruments  are  but  as  sergeants  and  officers  to 
demand  of  us  satisfaction  for  breach  of  covenant  with  God.     They 
think  not  so,  neither  doth  their  evil  heart  mean  so ;  but  so  it  is  in 
God's  purpose.     When  you  are  in  trouble  God  hath  committed  you  to 
prison,  and  there  is  no  coming  out  without  submission  and  humilia 
tion,  urging  the  satisfaction  of  Christ.     You  are  sent  thither  by  God's 
authority,  and  there  is  no  getting  out  without  his  leave. 

3.  That  the  party  is  insolvent  and  undone  unless  some  course  be 
taken  to  satisfy  the  creditor  ;  he  cannot  help  himself  by  his  own  wisdom 
and  strength  out  of  the  danger.    The  debtor  in  the  Gospel  had  nought 
to  pay,  Mat.  xviii.  25.     Why  else  should  we  look  after  a  surety  :  Job 
xvii.  3,  '  Put  me  in  a  surety  with  thee  :  who  is  he  that  will  strike  hands 
with  me  ? '     Man  is  not  able  to  stand  alone  under  the  weight  of  his 
afflictions  ;  it  is  a  burden  too  heavy  for  us  to  bear.    We  have  no  might, 
2  Chron.  xx.  12.     God's  people  are  often  brought  into  such  a  case. 
When  the  principal  is  not  solvendo,  the  surety  answereth.     We  are 
weak,  but  he  is  strong  ;  we  are  not  able  to  subsist.     They  exceed  us 
in  carnal  advantages ;  if  force  be  to  be  resisted  by  force,  they  will 
easily  overcome  us,  unless  another  that  is  stronger  than  we  undertake 
for  us. 

4.  That  the  surety  taketh  upon  him  the  debt  of  the  principal  person, 
and  is  to  be  responsible  for  it.     God  hath  taken  our  obligation  upon 
himself,  to  pay  our  debts,  to  oppose  himself  against  all  our  wrongs. 
He  will  take  our  cause  as  his  own  :  Ps.  ix.  4,  *  For  thou  hast  main 
tained  my  right  and  my  cause;'  and  in  his  own  time  and  manner  will 
show  it  to  the  world,  and  justify  us  against  our  enemies.     Oh  !  how 
should  our  hearts  rejoice  in  this,  that  he  will  be  the  party  responsible, 
make  our  cause  his  own,  and  be  liable  to  the  suit  as  a  debtor  is  to  the 
creditor !     ;  He  that  toucheth  you,  toucheth  the  apple  of  his  eye/  Zech. 
ii.  8  ;  '  He  that  despiseth  you,  despiseth  me ;'  '  Saul,  Saul,  why  perse- 
cutest  thou  me?'  Acts  ix.  4;  and  Isa.  Ixiii.  8,  '  And  he  said,  Surely 
they  are   my  people,  children  that  will  not  lie  ;   so  he  was  their 
saviour.' 

5.  God  is  a  sufficient  surety.     Here  we  may  consider  two  things — 
the  satisfaction  of  Christ,  and  the  power  of  God's  providence  ;  in  re- 


250  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEE.  0 XXXIII. 

spect  of  both,  which  he  is  a  pledge  and  surety  every  way  sufficient  for 
our  comfort,  safety,  and  deliverance. 

[1.]  I  would  not  leave  out  Christ's  satisfaction,  though  it  lie  not  so 
full  in  this  text ;  for  as  God  hath  a  hand  in  all  our  sufferings,  and  all 
our  affairs  are  determined  in  a  higher  court,  this  satisfaction  is  neces 
sary  to  answer  the  controversy  and  quarrel  of  God's  justice  against  us. 
Thus  Christ  the  second  person  is  eyct^art/cw?,  our  surety  :  Heb.  vii.  22, 
'  Christ  is  the  surety  of  a  better  testament.'  There  is  a  double  sort  of 
surety — by  way  of  caution  and  satisfaction,  as  sureties  in  case  of  debt 
and  sureties  for  good  behaviour ;  the  one  for  what  is  past,  the  other 
for  what  is  to  come.  The  example  of  the  one  we  have  in  Paul  for 
Onesimus,  Philem.  18,  'If  he  hath  wronged  or  owed  thee  ought,  put 
it  upon  my  account ;  I  Paul  have  written  it  with  mine  own  hand,  and 
I  will  repay  it.'  An  example  of  the  other  we  have  in  Judah  for  Ben 
jamin  :  Gen.  xliii.  9,  '  I  will  be  surety  for  him  ;  at  mine  hand  shalt 
thou  require  him  :  if  I  bring  him  not  unto  thee,  and  set  him  before 
thee,  then  let  me  bear  the  blame  for  ever.'  In  both  these  respects 
Christ  is  a  surety  ;  he  is  our  surety  as  a  surety  undertaketh  for  another 
to  pay  his  debt ;  and  he  is  our  surety  as  he  hath  undertaken  that  his 
redeemed  ones  shall  keep  God's  laws,  be  carried  safe  to  heaven.  Of 
his  suretiship  by  way  of  caution  we.  speak  now.  Though  Theodoret 
understand  that  in  the  text,  Undertake  for  me  that  I  shall  keep  thy 
laws ;  but  it  is  more  proper  to  consider  the  speech  as  it  referreth  to 
the  payment  of  our  debt  by  virtue  of  this  suretyship.  Solomon  hath 
assured  us,  Prov.  xi.  15,  that  he  that  is  surety  for  another  shall  smart 
for  it,  or  be  broken  and  bruised.  The  same  word  is  used  concerning 
Christ,  Isa.  liii.  10.  He  was  our  surety,  and  was  bruised  and  broken, 
suffered  what  we  should  have  suffered.  We  have  a  right  to  appear  to 
God's  justice,  but1  our  surety  having  made  a  full  satisfaction  for  us, 
God  will  not  exact  the  debt  twice — of  the  surety  and  the  principal. 
When  the  ram  was  taken  Isaac  was  let  go  :  Job  xxxiii.  24,  '  Deliver 
him  from  going  down  to  the  pit,  for  I  have  found  a  ransom.'  Well, 
then,  as  our  punishment  is  a  due  debt  to  God's  justice,  the  Lord  Christ 
undertaketh  or  is  become  a  surety  for  us  ;  not  only  our  advocate  to 
plead  our  cause,  but  our  surety  to  pay  our  debt ;  from  a  judge  become 
a  party,  and  bound  to  pay  what  we  owe :  Isa.  liii.  4,  '  Surely  he  hath 
borne  our  griefs.' 

[2.]  The  power  of  God's  providence.  If  God  undertake  for  us,  his 
bail  is  sufficient ;  none  of  our  enemies  can  resist  his  almighty  power, 
surely  he  is  able  to  deal  with  our  enemies  :  Isa.  xxiii.  4,  '  Who  would 
set  the  briers  and  thorns  against  me  in  battle  ?  '  They  are  matter  to 
feed  the  fire,  not  to  quench  it.  He  rescueth  us  just  as  going  to  prison. 
If  he, put  himself  a  pledge  between  us  and  our  enemies,  he  will  defeat 
all  their  oppositions  and  machinations  against  us,  and  stand  between 
us  and  danger,  as  an  able  bail  or  surety  doth  between  the  creditor  and 
poor  debtor.  Well,  then,  suretyship,  as  it  noteth  our  necessity,  so  God's 
engagement,  and  his  ability  and  faithfulness  to  do  what  he  undertaketh. 
We  must  set  God  against  the  enemies :  Isa.  li.  13,  '  And  forgettest  the 
Lord  thy  maker,  who  hath  stretched  forth  the  heavens,  and  laid  the 
foundation  of  the  earth ;  and  hast  feared  continually  every  day,  because 
of  the  fury  of  the  oppressor,  as  if  he  were  ready  to  destroy  ;  and  where 

J  Qu.  'to  appeal  to  God's  justice,  that'  1 — ED. 


VEIL  122.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  251 

is  the  fury  of  the  oppressor?'  Dan.  iii.  17,  '  Our  God  whom  we  serve 
is  able  to  deliver  us  from  the  burning  fiery  furnace.'  We  have  the 
Almighty  to  be  oar  saviour  and  protector,  why  are  you  afraid  of  a  man  ? 
God  against  man  is  great  odds,  if  we  had  faith  to  see  it :  man  is 
mortal,  God  is  immortal ;  man  is  a  poor  weak  creature,  but  God  is 
almighty ;  what  is  he  not  able  to  do  for  us  ?  Surely  he  will  not  leave 
his  friends  in  the  lurch ;  his  power  is  such  that  he  is  able  to  keep  us 
safe  and  sound. 

Secondly,  The  reasons  why  we  have  leave  and  encouragement  to 
desire  God  to  interpose. 

1.  From  God's  covenant,  where  in  the  general  there  is  a  mutual 
engaging  to  be  each  other's.     In  our  several  capacities  we  engage  to 
stand  by  God  and  own  his  cause,  and  God  is  engaged  to  stand  by  us. 
We  make  over  ourselves,  bodies,  souls,  interests,  all  to  God.     God, 
quantus  quantus  est,  as  great  as  he  is,  is  all  ours ;  therefore,  if  he  be 
ours,  we  may  pray  him  to  appear  for  us,  and  own  us  in  our  distress 
and  trouble.     Our  friend  is  a  friend  in  distress.     A  gracious  heart,  by 
virtue  of  this  mutual  and  interchangeable  indenture,  appears  for  God, 
and  taketh  his  cause,  though  never  so  hated,  as  its  own  :    '  The  re 
proaches  of  them  that  reproached  thee  are  fallen  upon  me,'  Ps.  vi.  9. 
We  are  his  witnesses,  Isa.  xliii.  10.     Surely  it  is  too  high  a  word  for 
the  creature  ;  but  God  taketh  our  cause  as  his,  is  surety  for  us ;  by 
virtue  of  the  general  tenor  of  the  covenant  he  is  our  God,  jure  venit 
in  auxilium  nostrum,  his  covenant  engageth  him  to  undertake  for  us. 
More  particularly  God  undertake  th  to  defend  and  maintain  his  people ; 
as  to  be  a  rewarder,  so  to  be  a  defender  :  Gen.  xv.  1,  '1  am  thy  shield, 
and  thy  exceeding  great  reward.'     And  Ps.  Ixxxiv.  11,  '  For  the  Lord 
is  a  sun  and  a  shield.'     This  defence  is  sometimes  expressed,  with 
respect  to  the  violence  of  assaults  in  the  world,  by  the  notion  of  a 
shield.     So,  with  respect  to  the  process  of  the  law,  by  the  notion  of  a 
surety  ;  Isa.  Iii.  3,  we  have  the  term  of  a  redeemer.     So  that  we  have 
leave  to  pray  him  to  fulfil  his  covenant  engagement. 

2.  God's  affection  is  such  that  he  will  refuse  no  office  that  may  be 
for  his  people's  comfort.     We  are  often  dissuaded  from  suretyship, 
especially  for  strangers,  by  the  wise  man,  with  great  vehemency  and  in 
stance  :  Prov.  vi.  1,  2,  '  My  son,  if  thou  be  surety  for  thy  friend,  if 
thou  hast  stricken  thy  hand  with  a  stranger,  thou  art  snared  with  the 
words  of  thy  mouth  ;'  Prov.  xi.  15,  '  He  that  is  surety  for  a  stranger 
shall  smart  for  it;'  Prov.  xvii.  IS,   '  A  man  void  of  understanding 
striketh  hands,  and  becometh  surety  in  the  presence  of  his  friend ; ' 
Prov.  xx.  16,  '  Take  his  garment  that  is  surety  for  a  stranger  ;'  Prov. 
xxii.  26,  27,  '  Be  not  thou  one  of  them  that  strike  hands,  or  of  them 
that  are  sureties  for  debts :  if  thou  hast  nothing  to  pay,  why  should 
he  take  the  bed  from  under  thee  ?'  and  in  other  places.     Our  pity  is 
stirred  towards  a  man  that  is  like  to  be  undone  and  ruined  ;  therefore 
there  is  such  dissuading  from  suretyship.    And  hath  not  God  a  greater 
pity  over  the  afflictions  of  his  people  ?    He  pities  the  afflictions  of  them 
that  suffer  most  justly,  yea,  far  below  their  desert :  Judges  x.  16,  '  His 
soul  was  grieved  for  the  misery  of  Israel ; '  2  Kings  xiv.  26,  '  For  the 
Lord  saw  the  affliction  of  Israel,  that  it  was  very  bitter  ;  for  there  was 
not  any  shut  up,  nor  any  left,  nor  any  helper  for  Israel.'     How  much 


252  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiR.  CXXXIII. 

more  will  he  pity  them  that  are  unjustly  oppressed  of  men  !  Acts  vii. 
34,  '  I  have  seen  the  afflictions  of  my  people  which  is  in  Egypt,  and 
have  heard  their  groanings,  and  am  come  down  to  deliver  them.'  His 
bowels  worketh ;  God  loveth  his  people  better  than  they  love  themselves. 
fide-ju~be,  Domme,  pro  servo. 

3.  Our  relation  to  him  :  I  am  thy  servant,  and  I  know  thou  art  a 
good  master ;  and  he  is  our  sovereign  Lord,  and  therefore  hath  under 
taken  to  provide  for  us :  the  master  was  to  be  the  servant's  patronus. 
God  hath  found  us  work,  and  he  will  find  us  defence.    This  the  argu 
ment  of  the  text,  *  Be  surety  for  thy  servant.'     We  are  employed  in 
his  work,  engaged  in  his  cause.    If  a  rich  man  set  a  poor  man  at  work, 
as  to  dig  such  a  ditch,  if  he  be  afterwards  troubled  for  it,  the  rich 
man  is  concerned  to  bear  him  out :  Ps.  cxvi.  16,  '0  Lord,  truly  I 
am  thy  servant ;  I  am  thy  servant,  and  the  son  of  thy  handmaid.' 
Whilst  we  are  engaged  about  our  master's  business,  and  in  his  work, 
he  is  engaged  to  protect  us,  and  bear  us  out  in  it. 

4.  Our  very  running  to  him,  and  committing  ourselves  into  his 
hands,  is  an  engaging  God  :  Ps.  Ixxxvi.  2,  '  Preserve  my  soul,  for  I  am 
holy,  0  thou  my  God  ;  save  thy  servant  that  trusteth  in  thee  ;'  Ps.  x. 
14,  '  The  poor  committeth  himself  unto  thee ;  thou  art  the  helper  of 
the  fatherless/     Employ  God,  and  find  him  work;  he  will  not  fail  to 
do  what  he  is  intrusted  with :  Ps.  Ivii.  1,  '  Be  merciful  unto  me,  0 
God,  be  merciful  unto  me,  for  my  soul  trusteth  in  thee ;  yea,  in  the 
shadow  of  thy  wing  will  I  make  my  refuge,  until  these  calamities  be 
over-past.'    God  taketh  it  well  that  we  should  make  bold  with  him  in 
this  kind,  and  tell  him  how  we  trust  him,  and  expect  relief  from  him. 
Nothing  is  so  dishonourable  to  God,  nor  vexatious  to  us,  as  the  dis 
appointment  of  trust.     An  ingenuous  man  will  not  fail  his  friend  that 
doth  trust  and  rely  upon  him,  much  less  will  a  faithful  God  fail  those 
that  look  to  him,  and  depend  upon  him  for  help. 

Use.  Advice  to  us  what  we  should  do  in  our  deep  distresses  and 
troubles ;  when  able  to  do  nothing  for  ourselves,  God  will  be  surety, 
that  is,  make  our  cause  his  own. 

1.  As  your  matters  depend  in  a  higher  court,  and  with  respect  to 
your  own  guilt  and  sin,  which  hath  cast  you  into  these  troubles, 
acknowledge  your  debt,  but  look  upon  Christ  as  your  surety,  who  gave 
himself  a  ransom  for  us.     The  controversy  between  God  and  us  must 
be  taken  up  by  submission  on  our  parts,  for  God  is  an  enemy  that 
cannot  be  overcome,  but  must  be  reconciled.     The  way  is  not  to 
persist  in  the  contest,  and  stand  it  out,  but  beg  terms  of  peace  for 
Christ's  sake :  2  Chron.  vi.  38,  39,  '  If  they  return  to  thee  with  all 
their  heart  and  with  all  their  soul,  then  hear  thou  from  the  heavens, 
even  from  thy  dwelling-place,  their  prayers  and  supplications,  and 
maintain  their  cause,  and  forgive  thy  people  which  have  sinned  against 
thee ; '  Job  v.  8,    'I  would  seek  unto  God,  and  unto  God  would  I 
commit  my  cause.' 

2.  As  your  danger  lieth  with  men,  acknowledge  your  impotency. 
but  consider  who  is  your  surety,  and  will  take  your  part  against  the 
instruments  that  have  had  a  hand  in  your  trouble. 

[1.]  God,  who  hath  such  a  pity  over  his  suffering  servants,  is  ready 
ever  to  do  them  good:  Ps.  xxxv.  1,  '  Plead  iny  cause,  0  Lord,  with 


VER.  122.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  253 

them  that  strive  with  me ;  fight  against  them  that  fight  against  me/ 
He  is  in  such  full  relation,  and  so  fast  bound  to  them,  that  they  may 
not  be  weary  and  impatient  and  swallowed  up  of  despair,  he  will 
interpose.  God  seeth  our  sufferings,  heareth  our  groans,  suffereth 
together  with  us,  and  is  afflicted  in  all  our  afflictions.  Believe  it 
assuredly  that  he  will  take  the  matter  into  his  own  hand,  and  be  the 
party  responsible :  Ps.  cxl.  12,  '  I  know  that  the  Lord  will  maintain 
the  cause  of  the  afflicted,  and  the  right  of  the  poor.'  Woe  be  to  them 
that  would  not  have  God  for  their  party,  joined  in  the  cause  of  the 
afflicted.  God  hath  given  assurance  of  his  protection  not  by  words 
only,  but  by  deeds :  Prov.  xxii.  23,  '  The  Lord  will  plead  their  cause, 
and  spoil  the  soul  of  those  that  spoiled  them.'  He  hath  passed  his 
word,  and  he  will  do  it:  Prov.  xxiii.  11,  'For  their  redeemer  is 
mighty  ;  he  shall  plead  their  cause  with  thee/  It  is  his  title,  Isa.  li. 
22,  '  Thus  saith  thy  Lord,  the  Lord  and  thy  God,  that  pleadeth  the 
cause  of  his  people;'  not  by  a  verbal  or  local,  but  a  real  and  active 
plea  :  Ezek.  xxxviii.  22,  '  And  I  will  plead  against  him  with  pestilence, 
and  with  blood  ;  and  I  will  rain  upon  him,  and  upon  his  bands,  and 
the  people  that  are  with  him,  an  overflowing  rain,  and  grea?t  hail 
stones,  fire  and  brimstone.'  And  Isa.  1.  8,  '  He  is  near  that  jus- 
tifieth  me ;  who  will  contend  with  me  ?  let  us  stand  together ;  who 
is  mine  adversary  ?  let  him  come  near  to  me  ; '  that  is,  let  him  join 
issue  with  me,  commence  his  suit  in  law.  We  should  be  confident 
upon  God's  undertaking :  Jer.  1.  34,  '  Their  redeemer  is  strong,  the 
Lord  of  hosts  is  his  name  ;  he  shall  thoroughly  plead  their  cause,  that 
he  may  give  rest  to  the  land.'  It  is  a  great  ease  in  affliction  to  commit 
our  cause  unto  God,  and  put  our  affairs  into  his  hand. 

[2.]  God,  who  hath  such  power  ;  we  need  not  fear  any  opposite  if 
God  be  our  surety :  Ps.  xxvii.  1,  'The  Lord  is  my  light  and  my  salva 
tion;  whom  shall  I  fear  ?  the  Lord  is  the  strength  of  my  life;  of  whom 
shall  I  be  afraid  ?  '  Ps.  xlvi.  1,  2,  '  God  is  our  refuge  and  strength,  a 
very  present  help  in  trouble ;  therefore  will  not  we  fear,  though  the 
earth  be  removed,  and  the  mountains  be  carried  into  the  midst  of  the 
sea  ; '  a  resolution  to  adhere  to  God  and  his  truth  whatever  cometh. 
If  they  be  mighty,  God  is  mightier ;  if  they  be  crafty,  God  is  wiser. 
It  is  a  great  crime  to  fear  men  so  as  not  to  trust  in  God  ;  it  is  a  great 
sin  to  fear  men  so  as  not  to  fear  God.  When  we  comply  with  them  in 
things  displeasing  to  God,  this  is  to  set  men  above  God. 

Secondly,  We  come  to  the  limitation,  end,  or  fruit  of  this  suretyship, 
'  For  good.'  There  are  three  expositions  of  this  clause,  as  noting  the 
end,  the  cause,  the  event.  (1.)  Undertake  for  me,  ut  sim  bonus  et 
Justus  ;  so  Rabbi  Arama  on  the  place,  Be  surety  for  me  that  I  may  be 
good.  Theodoret  expounds  it,  Undertake  that  I  shall  make  good  my 
resolution  of  keeping  thy  law.  He  that  enjoineth,  under taketh. 
Though  we  have  precepts  and  promises,  without  God's  undertaking 
we  shall  never  be  able  to  perform  our  duty.  (2.)  '  In  good/  so 
some  read  it.  God  would  not  take  his  part  in  an  evil  cause.  To 
commend  a  wrong  cause  to  God's  protection  is  to  provoke  him  to 
hasten  our  punishment,  to  make  us  serve  under  our  oppressors.  But 
when  we  have  a  good  cause  and  a  good  conscience,  he  will  own  us. 
We  cannot  expect  he  should  maintain  us  and  bear  us  out  in  the  devil's 


254  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiK.  CXXXIII. 

service,  wherein  we  have  entangled  ourselves  by  our  own  sin.  (3.) 
*  For  good  ; '  so  it  is  often  rendered :  Ps.  Ixxxvi.  17, '  Show  me  a  token 
for  good; '  Jer.  xiv.  11,  '  Pray  not  for  this  people  for  good.'  So  Neh. 
xiii.  31,  '  Kemember  me,  0  my  God,  for  good/  So  here,  '  Be  surety 
for  thy  servant  for  good.' 

Doct.  We  should  only  desire  the  interposing  of  God's  providence  so 
as  may  be  for  good  to  us. 

I  shall  first  give  you  the  reasons,  and  then  give  you  some  rules  con 
cerning  this  good  here  mentioned. 

Reason  1.  Because  then  wfe  pray  according  to  God's  undertaking : 
Ps.  xxxiv.  10,  '  But  they  that  seek  the  Lord  shall  not  want  any  good 
thing;'  they  may  want  food,  want  raiment,  want  many  things,  but 
they  shall  want  no  good  thing :  Ps.  Ixxxiv.  11,  '  No  good  thing  will  he 
withhold.'  He  may  keep  us  low  and  bare,  withhold  many  temporal 
mercies  from  us,  feed  us  from  hand  to  mouth,  and  short  commons  may 
be  sweet  and  wholesome,  and  deny  to  give  us  larger  revenues  and  in 
comes.  If  they  were  good  for  us,  we  should  have  them.  God  with 
holds  these  things  so  as  our  need  and  good  doth  require  :  Jer.  xxiv.  5, 
'  Whom  I  have  sent  out  of  this  place  into  the  land  of  the  Chaldeans  for 
their  good.'  Their  captivity  was  for  good. 

Reason  2.  Because  then  we  pray  according  to  the  new  nature  ;  old 
nature  would  have  ease,  the  new  nature  would  have  grace  ;  the  flesh 
would  be  pleased,  but  the  spirit  would  be  profited  ;  and  God  hears  not 
the  voice  of  the  flesh,  but  the  spirit  in  prayer  :  Eom.  viii.  27,  '  He  that 
searcheth  the  heart  knoweth  what  is  the  mind  of  the  spirit,  because 
he  maketh  intercession  for  the  saints,  according  to  the  will  of  God.' 

Let  me  give  )7ou  some  rules. 

1.  This  good  is  not  always  the  good  of  the  flesh,  not  always  the  good 
of  prosperity.     Sometimes  the  good  of  prosperity  may  be  good  :  Prov. 
xxiv.  25,  '  But  to  them  that  rebuke  him  shall  be  delight,  and  a  good 
blessing  shall  come  upon  them.'     A  good  blessing  shall  come  upon 
them  that  plead  God's  cause  against  the  wicked.     There  is  the  blessing 
of  prosperity-good  and  adversity-good.      All   good  is  more  or  less, 
so  as  it  cometh  near  or  less  near  the  chiefest  good ;  therefore  that 
is  good  that  tendeth  to   make  us  spiritually  better,   more   like   to 
God,  and  capable  of  communion  with  him.     Lam.  iii.  27,  '  It  is  good 
for  a  man  that  he  bear  the  yoke  in  his  youth.'     That  is  good  which 
conduceth  to  our  everlasting  good. 

2.  God  knoweth  what  is  better  for  us  *  than  we  do  ourselves.     Wo 
ask  a  knife  wherewith  to  cut  ourselves.     It  would  be  the  greatest 
misery  if  God  should  always  carve  out  our  condition  according  to  our 
own  fancy  ;  we  would  soon  pray  ourselves  into  a  snare  if  our  will  were 
the  rule  of  our  prayers,  and  ask  that  which  would  be  cruelty  in  God 
to  grant.     I  will  give  you  an  instance  in  Lot,  Gen.  xix.  17, 18,  '  Make 
haste,  escape  to  the  mountain,  lest  thou  be  consumed :  I  cannot,  saith 
he,  escape  to  the  mountain,  behold  now  this  city  is  near,  it  is  but  a 
little  one,  and  my  soul  shall  live.'     Lot  presenteth  his  own  fancy  to 
God's  counsel  and  choice  for  him :  this  little  place  was  in  the  plain  ; 
he  was  persuaded  the  shower  of  brimstone  would  overtake  him  before 
he  got  thither.     Often  it  is  thus  with  us ;  though  God  should  com 
mand  and  we  obey,  we  lift  up  our  will  above  his,  and  doat  upon  our 

1  Qu.  '  what  is  good  for  us  better '  ?— ED. 


VER.  122.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  255 

own  fancies,  and  will  prescribe  to  God,  think  it  is  better  to  live  by 
sense  than  by  faith.  This  mountain  was  the  weaker  border  of  the 
plain.1  Now  this  was  weakness  in  Lot  surely.  God,  that  had  taken 
him  out  of  Sodom  by  the  hand  of  his  angels,  stricken  the  Sodomites 
with  blindness,  which  was  an  instance  of  God's  great  power  and  good 
ness  to  him.  Now  compare  the  17th  and  18th  verses  with  the  30th 
verse,  '  And  Lot  went  out  of  Zoar,  and  dwelt  in  the  mountain,  he  and 
his  two  daughters  with  him,  for  he  feared  to  dwell  in  Zoar ;  and  he 
dwelt  in  a  cave,  he  and  his  two  daughters/  Mark  here,  when  God 
biddeth  him  go  to  the  mountain,  then  he  goeth  to  Zoar ;  when  God 
gave  him  leave  to  tarry  in  Zoar,  then  he  goes  and  dwells  in  the  moun 
tain  :  he  was  afraid  in  Zoar,  when  he  saw  the  horrible  desolation  of  all 
the  country  about  it.  Now  see  the  ill  success  of  his  own  choice, 
and  how  badly  we  provide  for  ourselves :  a  little  time  will  show  us 
our  sin  and  folly  :  his  abode  in  the  mountain  drew  him  to  incest. 
Another  instance  :  Hosea  xiii.  11,  '  I  gave  them  a  king  in  mine  anger, 
and  took  him  away  in  my  wrath.'  God  may  let  things  succeed  with 
us  to  our  hurt :  '  If  we  ask  anything  according  to  his  will,  he  heareth 
us  ; '  1  John  v.  14.  God  is  a  God  of  wisdom,  he  knoweth  certainly 
what  will  be  good  for  us.  He  is  a  God  of  bowels,  and  loveth  us 
dearly,  and  will  certainly  cast  all  things  for  the  best ;  therefore  God  is 
to  be  judge  both  for  time  and  kind  of  our  deliverance,  otherwise  we 
may  meet  with  wrath  in  every  condition,  whether  we  want  or  have 
our  will ;  but  if  we  refer  it  to  him,  we  shall  never  want  what  is  best 
for  us.  The  shepherd  must  choose  our  pastures,  whether  lean  or  fat, 
bare  or  full  grounds.  The  child  is  not  to  be  governed  by  his  fancy, 
but  the  father's  discretion ;  nor  the  sick  man  by  his  own  fancy,  but 
the  physician's  skill :  our  will  is  not  the  chief  reason  of  all  things. 

3.  That  which  is  not  good  may  be  good,  and  though  for  the  pre 
sent  we  see  it  not,  yet  we  shall  see  it ;  though  not  good  in  its  nature,  it 
may  be  good  in  its  fruit :  Eom.  viii.  28,    '  We  know  that  all  things 
shall  work  together  for  good  to  them  that  love  God ; '  a  little  faith  and 
a  little  patience  will  discover  it.     As  poisonous  ingredients  in  a  medi 
cine,  take  them  singly,  and  they  are  destructive  ;  but  as  tempered  with 
other  things  by  the  hands  of  a  skilful  physician,  so  they  are  whole 
some  and  useful :  Heb.  xii.  11,  (  No  affliction  for  the  present  seemeth 
joyous,  but  grievous/     The  rod  is  a  sour  thing  for  the  present,  but 
wait  a  little,  this  bitter  root  may  yield  sweet  fruit :  God  can  so  over 
rule  it  in  his  providence.     So  Ps.  cxix.  71,  'It  is  good  for  me  that  I 
have  been  afflicted,  that  I  might  learn  thy  statutes/     Ask  a  man  under 
the  cross,  Is  it  good  to  feel  the  lashes  of   God's  correcting  hand? 
No  ;  but  when  he  hath  been  exercised,  and  found  lust  mortified,  the 
world  crucified,  and  gotten  evidences  of  God's  favour,  then  it  is  good 
that  I  have  been  afflicted. 

4.  This  good  is  not  to  be  determined  by  feeling,  but  by  faith  :  Ps. 
Ixxiii.  1,  '  Yet  God  is  good  to  Israel,  and  to  such  as  are  of  a  clean 
heart/     God  is  good  to  his  people,  however  he  seem  to  deal  hardly 
with  them  :  sense  judgeth  it  ill,  but  faith  saith  it  is  good  ;  it  seeth  a 
great  deal  of  love  in  pain  and  smart.     There  is  such  a  difference  be 
tween  faith  and  sense  as  there  was  between  Ellsha  and  his  servant,  2 
Kings  vi.  15,  16  ;  the  servant  saw  the  host  of  the  enemies,  but  he  did 

1  There  seems  to  be  a  misprint  in  this  sentence. — ED. 


256  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXXXIII. 

not  see  the  fiery  chariots  and  horsemen  that  were  for  his  help  ;  Elisha 
saw  both.  So  believers  see  not  only  the  bitterness  that  is  in  God's 
chastenings,  but  the  sweet  fruits  in  the  issue.  Faith  can  look  at  the 
pride  and  power  of  wicked  men  as  a  vain  thing,  when  they  are  in  the 
height  of  their  power  and  greatness  :  Job  v.  3,  '  I  have  seen  the  fool 
ish  taking  root,  but  suddenly  I  cursed  his  habitation  ;'  that  is,  pro 
phetically,  not  passionately ;  foretelling  evil,  not  wishing  it.  When 
they  were  taking  root,  as  themselves  and  other  worldly  men  thought, 
I  judged  him  unhappy,  foretold  his  end  and  destruction.  There  is 
much  of  the  spirit  of  prophecy  in  faith.  When  others  applaud,  make- 
little  gods  of  them,  he  looketh  through  all  their  beauty,  riches  and 
honour :  Ps.  xcii.  7,  '  When  the  wicked  spring  as  the  grass,  and  all  the 
workers  of  iniquity  do  flourish,  it  is  that  they  shall  be  destroyed  for 
ever.'  Grass  will  wither  and  dry  up  of  its  own  accord,  especially  when 
there  is  a  worm  at  the  root.  Their  very  prosperity,  as  it  ferments 
their  lusts,  and  hardeneth  their  hearts,  is  a  means  to  draw  on  their 
destruction:  Ps.  xxxix.  5,  'Man  in  his  best  estate  is  vanity/  Then, 
when  they  seem  to  have  all  things  under  their  feet,  who  could  harm 
them  ?  so  that  none  dare  open  the  mouth,  move  the  wing,  or  peep ; 
yet  God  can  easily  blast  and  whip  them  with  an  unseen  scourge. 

5.  Good  is  of  several  sorts,  temporal,  spiritual,  eternal. 

[1.]  Temporal  good.  Cross  accidents  conduce  to  that:  Gen.  1.  20, 
'  Ye  thought  evil  against  me,  but  God  meant  it  unto  good  ;  to  bring- 
to  pass  as  it  is  this  day,  and  to  save  much  people  alive.'  The  Egyp 
tians  and  themselves  had  wanted  a  preserver  if  Joseph  had  not  been 
sold  and  sent  into  Egypt.  If  a  man  were  to  go  to  sea  in  a  voyage 
upon  which  his  heart  was  much  set,  but  the  ship  is  gone  before  he 
cometh,  but  after  he  heareth  that  all  that  were  in  the  ship  are  drowned, 
then  he  would  say,  This  disappointment  was  for  good.  As  Crassus' 
rival  in  the  Parthian  war  was  intercepted  and  cut  off  by  the  craft  of 
the  barbarians,  had  no  reason  to  stomach  his  being  refused.  Many 
of  us  have  cause  to  say,  Periissem  nisi  periissem — we  had  suffered 
more  if  we  had  suffered  less.  In  the  story  of  Joseph  there  is  a  not 
able  scheme  and  draught  of  providence.  He  is  cast  into  a  pit,  thence 
drawn  forth  and  sold  to  the  Ishmaelites,  by  them  sold  into  Egypt,  and 
sold  again.  What  doth  God  mean  to  do  with  poor  Joseph  ?  He  is 
tempted  to  adultery ;  refusing  the  temptation,  he  is  falsely  accused, 
kept  for  a  long  time  in  ward  and  duress.  Ail  this  is  against  him ; 
who  would  have  thought  that  in  the  issue  this  should  be  turned  to 
his  good  ?  that  the  prison  had  been  the  way  to  preferment,  and  that 
by  the  pit  he  should  come  to  the  palace  of  the  king  of  Egypt,  and 
exchange  his  parti-coloured  coat  for  a  royal  robe  ?  Thus  in  temporal 
things  we  get  by  our  losses,  and  God  chooseth  better  for  us  than  we 
could  have  chosen  for  ourselves.  Let  God  alone  to  his  undertaking, 
and  he  will  manage  our  affairs  better  than  we  looked  for. 

[2.]  Good  spiritual :  Heb.  xii.  10,  '  For  they  verily  for  a  few  days 
chastened  us  after  their  own  pleasure ;  but  he  for  our  profit,  that  we 
might  be  partakers  of  his  holiness.'  What  do  we  call  profit  ?  The 
good  things  of  this  world,  and  the  great  mammon  which  so  many 
worship  ?  No  ;  some  better  thing,  some  spiritual  and  divine  benefit, 
a  participation  of  God's  holiness.  Then  we  profit  when  we  grow  in 


VER.  122.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  257 

grace  and  are  more  god-like,  when  we  are  more  concerned  as  a  soul 
than  a  body.  It  is  a  good  exchange  to  part  with  outward  comforts  for 
inward  holiness.  If  God  take  away  our  peace,  and  give  us  peace  of 
conscience,  we  have  no  cause  to  complain.  If  our  outward  wants  be 
recompensed  with  the  abundance  of  inward  grace,  1  Cor.  iv.  10,  and 
we  have  less  of  the  world  that  we  may  have  the  more  of  God,  and  be 
kept  poor  that  we  may  be  rich  in  faith,  James  ii.  5,  6  ;  if  we  have  a 
healthy  soul  in  a  sickly  body,  as  Gains  had,  3  John  2 ;  if  an  aching 
head  maketh  way  for  a  better  heart, — doth  not  God  deal  graciously  and 
lovingly  with  us  ? 

[3.]  Our  eternal  good.  Heaven  will  .make  amends  for  all  that  we 
endure  here.  This  mainly  is  intended  in  Rom.  viii.  28,  '  All  things 
shall  work  together  for  good  to  them  that  love  God/  And  then  in  the 
29th  and  30th  verses,  he  presently  bringeth  in  the  golden  chain, 
4  Whom  he  did  predestinate,  them  he  also  called ;  and  whom  he 
called,  he  justified  ;  and  those  whom  he  justified,  them  he  also 
glorified.'  80  2  Cor.  iv.  17,  '  This  light  affliction,  which  is  but  for  a 
moment,  worketh  for  us  a  far  more  exceeding  arid  eternal  weight  of 
glory  ;'  it  shall  either  hasten  or  secure  our  glorious  estate.  A  man 
may  lose  ground  by  a  temptation,  his  external  good  may  be 
weakened,  his  soul  sutfereth  loss ;  but  this  warneth  him  of  his  weak 
ness,  and  quickeneth  him  to  stand  upon  his  watch,  and  to  look  up  more 
to  Christ  for  strength  against  it.  Or  he  may  be  cut  off,  and  perish  in 
the  affliction  ;  but  then  his  glorious  estate  cometh  in  possession. 

6.  That  may  be  good  for  the  glory  of  God  which  doth  not  conduce 
to  our  personal  benefit ;  and  the  glory  of  God  is  our  great  interest, 
John  xi.  27,  28,  '  Now  is  my  soul  troubled,  and  what  shall  I  say? 
Father,  save  me  from  this  hour ;  but  for  this  cause  came  I  unto  this 
hour,  Father,  glorify  thy  name.  Then  there  came  a  voice  from 
heaven,  saying,  I  have  both  glorified  it,  and  will  glorify  it  again.' 
There  was  the  innocent  inclination  of  his  human  nature,  '  Father, 
save  me  from  this  hour  ;'  and  the  overruling  sense  of  his  duty,  or  the 
obligation  of  his  office,  'But  for  this  cause  came  I  to  this  hour/  We 
are  often  tossed  and  tumbled  between  inclinations  of  nature  and  con 
science  of  duty ;  but  in  a  gracious  heart  it  prevaileth  above  the  desire 
of  our  own  comfort  and  satisfaction :  the  soul  is  cast  for  any  course 
that  God  shall  see  fittest  for  his  glory.  Nature  would  be  rid  of 
trouble,  but  grace  submitteth  all  interests  to  God's  honour ;  that 
should  be  dearer  to  us  than  anything  else  ;  were  it  not  selfishness  and 
want  of  zeal,  that  would  be  our  greatest  interest. 


SERMON  CXXXIV. 

Be  surety  for  iliy  servant  for  good:  let  not  the  proud  oppress  me.— 

VER.  122. 

USE.  It  informeth  us  what  reason  there  is  to  pray  and  wait  with  sub 
mission  to  the  will  of  God.  God  will  answer  us  according  to  our 
trouble,  not  always  according  to  our  will.  He  is  wiser  than  we,  for 

VOL.  VIII.  R 


258  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXXXIV. 

he  knoweth  that  our  own  will  would  undo  us.  If  things  were  in  our 
own  hands,  we  would  never  see  an  ill  day,  and  in  this  mixed  estate 
that  would  not  be  good  for  us.  But  all  weathers  are  necessary  to 
make  the  earth  fruitful,  rain  as  well  as  sunshine.  We  must  not  mis 
take  the  use  and  efficacy  of  prayer.  We  are  not  as  sovereigns  to 
govern  the  world  at  our  pleasure,  but  as  supplicants  humbly  to  submit 
our  desires  to  the  supreme  Being.  Not  to  command  as  dictators,  and 
obtrude  any  model  upon  God,  but  to  solicit  as  servants  :  '  Do  good  in 
thy  good  pleasure  to  Zion,'  Ps.  li.  18.  If  we  would  have  things  done 
at  our  pleasure,  we  should  be  the  judges,  and  God  only  would  have 
the  place  of  the  executioner.  Our  wills  would  be  the  supreme  and 
chief  reason  of  all  things.  But  this  God  cannot  endure ;  therefore  beg 
him  to  do  good,  but  according  to  his  own  good  pleasure. 

1.  Let  us  submit  to  God  for  the  mercy  itself,  in  what  kind  we  shall 
have  it,  whether  temporal,  spiritual,  or  eternal.     If  God  see  ease  good 
for  us,  we  shall  have  it ,  if  deliverance  good  for  us,  we  shall  have  it, 
Ps.  cxxviii.  2  ;  or  give  us  strength  in  our  souls,  or  hasten  our  glory. 
We  should  be  as  a  die  in  the  hand  of  providence,  to  be  cast  high  or 
low,  as  God  pleaseth :  1  Sam.  iii.  18,  'It  is  the  Lord  ;  let  him  do  what 
seemeth  him  good.' 

2.  Let  us  submit  for  the  time.     Though  Jesus  loved  Lazarus,  yet 
he  abode  still  two  days  in  the  same  place  when  he  heard  he  was  sick, 
John  xi.  6.     It  is  not  for  want  of  love  if  he  doth  not  help  us  presently, 
nor  want  of  power.     Christ  may  dearly  love  us,  yet  delay  to  help  us, 
even  in  extremity,  till  a  fit  time -come,  wherein  his  glory  may  shine 
forth,  and  the  mercy  be  more  conspicuous.     He  doth  not  slight  us, 
though  he  doth  delay  us ;   he  will  choose  that  time  which  maketh 
most  for  his  own  glory.     Submit  to  God's  dispensations,  and  in  due 
time  you  shall  see  a  reason  of  them. 

3.  Let  us  submit  for  the  way  and  means.     We  know  not  what  God 
is  a-doirig :  John  xiii.  6,  7,  *  Then  cometh  he  to  Simon  Peter,  and 
Peter  saith   unto  him,  Lord,  dost  thou  wash  my  feet?     Jesus  an 
swered  and  said  unto  him,  What  I  do  thou  knowest  not,  but  thou 
slialt  know  hereafter.'     No  wonder  we  are  .much  in  the  dark,  if  we 
consider,   first,   that   the   worker   of   these  works  is  '  Wonderful  in 
counsel  and  excellent  in  working/  Isa.  xxviii.  29  ;  infinitely  beyond 
politicians,  whose  projects  and  purposes  are  often  hidden  from  us ; 
therefore  much  more  his.     Secondly,  That  the  ways  of  his  working 
are   very  strange   and  imperceptible,  for  he  maketh  tilings   out   of 
nothing:    Bom.  iv.  17,  'And  calleth  those   things   that   be  not   as 
though  they  were  ;'  one  contrary  out  of  another,  as  light  out  of  dark 
ness,  2  Cor.  iv.  6,  meat  out  of  the  eater,  enemies  catched  in  their  own 
snare.     Thirdly,  That  his  end  in  working  is  not  to  satisfy  our  sense 
and  curiosity  :  Isa.  xlviii.  7,  '  They  are  created  now,  and  not  from  the 
beginning,  even  before  the  day  when  thou  heardest  them  not,  lest  thou 
shouldest  say,  Behold,  I  knew  them;'  Isa.  xlii.  16,  'I  will  bring  the 
blind  by  a  way  they  knew  not ;  I  will  lead  them'  in  paths  that  they 
have  not  known.'     He  chooseth  such  a  way  as  may  leave  enemies  to 
harden  their  hearts ;  Micah  iv.  12,  '  But  they  know  not  the  thoughts 
of  the  Lord,  neither  understand  they  his  counsel;  for  he  shall  gather 
them  as  the  sheaves  into  the  floor.' 


VER.  122.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  259 

Secondly,  I  now  come  to  the  literal  explanation;  and  there  we 
have — 

1.  The  evil  deprecated,  oppress  me. 

2.  The  persons  likely  to  inflict  it,  the  proud. 

First,  The  evil  deprecated,  '  Let  not  the  proud  oppress  me.'  The 
Septuagint,  ///?;  a-VKo^avrrjadrwadv  fj,e  VTreptjcfravoi,  let  them  not  calum 
niate  me.  The  Septuagint  takes  this  word  for  oppression  or  violent 
injustice,  and  therein  are  followed  hy  St  Luke  iii.  14,  xix.  8. 

Doct.  Oppression  is  a  very  grievous  evil,  and  often  deprecated  by 
the  people  of  God. 

1.  I  shall  show  you  what  oppression  is.     It  is  an  abuse  of  power  to 
unjust  and  uncharitable  actions.     That  it   is   an   abuse  of   power 
appeareth  by  the  object  of  it,  who  are  those  that  are  usually  oppressed; 
that  is,  either  the  poor  and  needy :  Deut.  xxiv.  14,  '  Thou  shalt  not 
oppress  an  hired  servant  that  is  poor  and  needy,  whether  he  be  of  thy 
brethren,  or  of  the  strangers  within  thy  gates.'     The  fatherless  and  the 
widow  are  mentioned :  Jer.  vii.  6,  '  Ye  shall  not  oppress  the  stranger, 
the  fatherless,  and  the  widow.'     The  stranger:   Zech.  vii.  10,  'And 
oppress  not  the  widow,  nor  the  fatherless,  the  stranger,  nor  the  poor ;' 
and  Exod.  xxii.  21-23,  '  Thou  shalt  neither  vex  a  stranger  nor  oppress 
him,  for  ye  were  strangers  in  the  land  of  Esrypt.     Ye  shall  not  afflict 
any  widow,  or  fatherless  child  ;  if  thou  afflict  them  in  any  wise,  and 
they  cry  at  all  to  me,  1  will  surely  hear  their  cry/ 

2.  The  subject  or  agent  by  whom  it  is  practised — (1.)  '  The  proud ;' 
the  mighty,  rich,  great  man ;  at  least  comparatively,  in  regard  to  the 
wronged  party:  Eccles.  iv.  1,  'And  on  the  side  of  their  oppressors 
there  was  power,  but  the  oppressed  had  no  comforter;'  Job  xxxv.  9, 
'  By  reason  of  the  multitude  of  oppressors  they  make  the  oppressed  cry, 
and  by  reason  of  the  arm  of  the  mighty.'     (2.)  The  base  and  mean, 
when  they  get  power  into  their  hands,  to  oppress  the  rich,  noble,  and 
honourable  :  Isa.  iii.  5,  '  And  the  people  shall  be  oppressed,  every  one 
by  another,  and  every  one  by  his  neighour ;  the  child  shall  behave 
himself  proudly  against  the  ancient,  and  the  base  against  the  honour 
able.'     It  is  commonly  more  insolent  and  cruel  and  contemptuous  and 
despiteful :  Prov.  xxviii.  3,  '  A  poor  man  that  oppresseth  the  poor  is 
like  a  sweeping  rain  that  leaveth  no  food.'     When  men  do  unjust  and 
uncharitable  actions,  as  when  men  bear  it  proudly  or  insolently  towards 
them,  throwing  them  out  of  their  riches,  denying  them  the  liberty  of 
their  service  because  it  is  in  the  power  of  their  hands,  or  taking  advan 
tage  of  their  low  condition  to  run  over  them,  or  making  an  advantage 
of  their  necessity  and  want  of  skill :  Hosea  xii.  7,  *  He  is  a  merchant^ 
the  balance  of  deceit  is  in  his  hand  ;  he  loveth  to  oppress :'  or  prejudice 
their  testimony  to  the  truth  by  our  credit  and  esteem  in  the  church, 
rendering  them  so  weak  or  wicked,  factious  or  foolish,  as  not  to  b? 
regarded. 

3.  This  is  a  grievous  evil ;  it  is  so  in  itself,  and  may  be  specially 
aggravated  as  to  cases. 

[1  ]  It  is  grievous  in  itself,  as  it  is  so  odious  to  God,  as  being  a 
perversion  of  the  end  of  his  providence.  Those  that  excel  in  any 
quality  are  appointed  for  the  protection  and  support  of  the  weak  and 
indigent.  God  gave  them  their  wealth  and  parts  and  power  and  credit 


2fi()  SERMONS  UPON  1'SALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXXX1V. 

and  greatness,  to  the  end  Ilioy  might  comfort,  counsel,  defend,  and  do 
good  to  those  that  want  these  things.  Now  when  they  make  no  oilier 
use  of  their  power  than  lions  and  bears  do,  l<>  mischief  others  by  it, 
they  do  evil  because  it  is  in  the  power  of  their  hands,  Micali  ii.  1. 
Power,  if  men  h;ive  not  a  great  l« mli  i  ness  of  conscience  and  fear  of 
God.  JMM.ii  unwieldy  wilful  thing,  degenerates  into  oppression:  Isa,  x. 
14,  15,  '  There,  was  none  that  moved  the  wing,  or  opened  the  month, 
Or  p'-rp.-d.  Shall  the  axe  boast  itself  against  him  that  heweth 
theiewilh?  or  shall  the  saw  magnify  itself  against  him  that 
shaketh  it?  as  if  the  rod  should  shake  itself  against,  them  that  lift 
it  up,  or  as  if  the  staff  should  lift  up  itself  as  if  it  were  no  wood.' 
Therefore  he  went  on  to  oppress  and  tyrannise  in  the  world,  because 
none  durst  to  oppose  him.  Power  needs  much  balance  to  temper  and 
alhiy  it. 

[2.]  It  is  so  offensive  to  his  people,  and  burthensome  to  them  : 
Eccles.  vii.  7,  'Oppression  maketh  a  wise  man  mad;'  it  shaketh  and 
discomposeth  those  of  the  best  temper,  makes  them  pray  and  weep. 
and  cry  before  the  Lord:  Eccles.  iv.  1,  '  So  I  returned  and  considered 
all  the  oppressions  under  the  sun,  and  beheld  the  tears  of  such  as  are 
oppressed.'  When  you  lay  such  heavy  loads  upon  them  that  they  are 
not  able  to  bear  it,  but  cry  to  God  to  right  them. 

[3.]  The  evil  itself,  oppression.  It  is  not  only  theft,  but  murder. 
These  expressions  we  have:  Isa.  iii.  13,  14,  'Ye  have  eaten  up  the 
vineyard;  the  spoil  of  the  poor  is  in  your  houses.  What  mean  ye. 
that  ye  beat  my  people  to  pieces,  and  grind  the  faces  of  the  poor  ? 
l hat  is,  cause  them  by  your  hard  usage  to  pine  away?  So  Mieah  iii. 
1-3,  '  And  I  said,  Hear,  I  pray  you,  0  heads  of  Jacob,  and  ye  princes 
of  the  house  of  Israel,  is  it  not  for  you  to  know  judgment,  who  hate 
the  good,  and  love  the  evil,  who  pluck  off  their  skin  and  their  tlesh 
from  "off  their  bones  ?  who  also  eat  the  flesh  of  my  people,  and  flay 
their  skin  from  off  them,  and  they  break  their  bones,  and  chop  them 
in  pieces,  as  for  the  pot,  and  as  flesh  within  the  cauldron?'  It  is  in 
God's  account  human  butchery  and  murder,  beyond  simple  slaughter, 
as  they  make  them  die  a  lingering  death. 

[4.]  It  is  especially  aggravated  if  they  be  God's  servants  oppressed 
for  religion  :  Ps.  xii.  5,  *  For  the  oppression  of  the  poor,  for  the  sighing 
of  the  needy  ;  now  will  1  arise,  saith  the  Lord,  1  will  set,  them  in  safety, 
from  him  that  puffelh  at  him.'  The  proud  persecutor  doth  little  think 
of  the  godly,  that  any  power  he  hath  can  do  anything  to  help  him; 
therefore  mocketh  at  all  his  hopes:  therefore,  when  God  hath  exer 
cised  the  godly  for  a  while,  he  will  arise,  Ac.  I  say  the  sin  is  aggra 
vated  by  the  innocency,  the  holiness,  the  usefulness  of  the  party 
oppressed,  when  titled  to  glorify  God,  and  do  service  to  the  public,  and 
disabled  to  the  prejudice  of  both. 

1 5.  |  It  is  the  highest  impiety  to  fetch  power  and  advantage  from 
any  ordinance  of  God  to  commit  it:  John  xix.  10,  11,  'Then  said 
Pilate  unto  him,  Speakest  thou  not  unto  me?  .K  no  west-  thou  not  that 
1  have  power  to  crucify  thee,  and  have  power  to  release  thee  ?  Jesus 
answered,  Thou  couldest  have  no  power  at  all  against  me,  except  it 
were  given  thee  from  above1  ;  therefore  he  that  delivered  me  unto  thee 
hath  the  greater  sin/  Courts  of  justice,  that  should  be  sanctuaries 


VEH.  122.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  261 

and  places  of  refuge  to  oppressed  innocency,  they  make  slaughter 
houses  and  shops  of  cruelty.  When  pretexts  of  laws  and  justice  are 
used  to  colour  the  oppression  and  persecution  of  innocent  useful  per 
sons,  this  makes  it  more  odious  in  the  sight  of  God. 

Use  1.  01),  pity  the  oppressed  !  Job  vi.  14,  '  To  him  that  is  afflicted, 
pity  should  he  showed  from  his  friend  ;  hut  he  forsaketh  the  fear  of 
the  Almighty.'  The  men  of  Kcilah  thought  of  delivering  up  David, 
because  they  feared  not  God,  1  Sam.  xxiii.  11,  12.  But  men  have  no 
fear  of  God,  but  too  much  fear  of  men.  When  God  is  angry,  God  will 
suffer  none  to  help  :  Ps.  Ixxxviii.  18,  '  Lover  and  friend  hast  thou  put 
far  from  me,  and  mine  acquaintance  into  darkness;'.  Job  xii.  5,  '  He 
that  is  ready  to  slip  with  his  feet  is  as  a  lamp  despised  in  the  thought 
of  him  that  is  at  ease/  Sensuality  will  make  us  forget  the  afflictions 
of  others :  Amos  vi.  4-6,  '  They  lie  upon  beds  of  ivory,  and  stretch 
themselves  upon  their  couches,  and  eat  the  lambs  out  of  the  flock,  and 
calves  out  of  the  midst  of  the  stall ;  that  chaunt  to  the  sound  of  the 
viol,  and  invent  to  themselves  instruments  of  music  like  David;  that 
drink  wine  in  bowls,  and  anoint  themselves  with  the  chief  ointments, 
but  they  are  not  grieved  for  the  afflictions  of  Joseph.'  Scruples  of 
conscience  through  difference  in  religion  :  John  iv.  9,  '  How  is  it  that 
thou,  being  a  Jew,  askest  water  of  me?'  Therefore  we  should  pity 
others ;  we  have  God's  example  :  2  Cor.  vii.  6,  '  God  that  comforteth 
those  that  are  cast  down.' 

Use  2.  Keep  from  oppression  ;  let  us  be  far  from  this  sin.  Samuel 
professeth  his  innocency:  1  Sam.  xii.  3,  4,  'Behold  here  I  am, 
witness  against  me  before  the  Lord  and  his  anointed  :  whose  ox  have 
I  taken  ?  or  whose  ass  have  I  taken  ?  or  whom  have  I  defrauded  ? 
whom  have  I  oppressed  ?  or  of  whose  hand  have  I  received  a  bribe  to 
blind  mine  eyes  therewith  ?  And  they  said,  Thou  hast  not  defrauded 
uor  oppressed  us.' 

Motives. 

1.  God  will  right  the  wrongs  of  the  oppressed  :  Prov.  xxii.  22,  23, 
'  Rob  not  the  poor,  because  he  is  poor,  neither  oppress  the  afflicted  in 
the  gate  ;  for  the  Lord  will  plead  their  cause,  and  spoil  the  soul  of  those 
that  spoiled  them  ;'  Prov.  xxiii.  11,  'For  their  redeemer  is  mighty,  he 
shall  plead  their  cause  with  thee.'     It  belongeth  to  him  as  supreme 
judge  and  mighty  potentate  :  Eccles.  v.  8,  '  If  thou  seest  the  oppression 
of  the  poof,  and  violent  perverting  of  judgment  and  justice  in  a  pro 
vince,  marvel  not  at  the  matter,  for  he  that  is  higher  than  the  highest 
regardeth,  and  there  be  higher  than  they/     Who  can  break  the  power 
of  the  greatest  ?     The  poor  and  indigent  have  none  to  own  them,  to 
resent  the  things  done  unto  them,  but  God,  who  is  the  supreme  Lord, 
will  not  fail  to  own  them. 

2.  Consider  the  injustice  of  such  dealing,  as  being  contrary  to  that 
rule  of  reason,  Quod  tibi  non  vis  fieri,  alferi  ne  feceris.     Every  man 
should  do  as  he  would  have  others  do  to  him.     Put  yourself  in  their 
case.     Take  this  rule  quite  away,  and  there  is  nothing  so  false,  bad, 
cruel,  that  you  would  not  be  drawn  to  think  or  say  or  do  against  your 
brother.     Uncharitableness,  and  want  of  sympathy  with  us  in  our 
troubles,  much  more  insulting  over  us  in  our  miseries,  we  look  on  it 
with  detestation  ;  and  shall  we  oppress  and  afflict  others  when  we  have 


262  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEE.  CXXXIV. 

power  so  to  do  ?     Those  that  profess  themselves  Christians  should  be 
far  from  this  sin. 
Means. 

1.  The  fear  of  God  should  bear  rule  in  our  hearts  :  Job  xxxi.  23, 
'  For  destruction  from  God  was  a  terror  to  me ;  and  by  reason  of  his 
highness  I  could  not  endure  ; '  Lev.  xxv.  17,  *  Ye  shall  not,  therefore, 
oppress  one  another,  but  thou  shalt  fear  thy  God  ;  for  I  am  the  Lord 
your  God/   We  should  be  afraid  to  do  them  injury,  as  if  a  strong  party, 
able  to  repay  injuries,  were  ready  to  be  avenged  upon  us  for  it. 

2.  Take  heed  of  envy,  covetousness,  pride,  revenge ;  these  are  ill- 
counsellors.     Ahab  envies  JSTaboth's  vineyard,  and  covets  it,  and  that 
put  him  upon  oppressing  him.     So  Hosea  xii.  7,  '  He  is  a  merchant, 
the  balances  of  deceit  are  in  his  hand ;  he  loveth  to  oppress/     So  take 
heed  of  pride :  Ps.  x.  2,  '  The  wicked  in  his  pride  doth  persecute  the 
poor.'     So  when  persons  are  of  a  revengeful  temper,  it  will  put  them 
upon  oppression  and  persecution  for  every  fancied  or  supposed  affront 
offered  to  them :  the  enemy  and  avenger  go  together,  Ps.  viii.  2. 

3.  Think  of  changes,  that  pride  may  not  be  without  a  curb,  nor 
affliction  without  a  comfort.     It  is  the  proud  oppress,  who  are  drunk 
with  their  wealth  and  outward  prosperity.     The  Lord's  people  are  not 
troubled  by  humble  souls,  that  are  sensible  of  their  mutableness  and 
frailty,  but  by  those  who  little  think  of  these  things,  and  how  hard  it 
fareth  with  them  that  fear  God. 

Secondly,  Here  are  the  persons  to  inflict  it,  '  The  proud.' 
Doct.  The  proud  are  they  that  especially  persecute  the  godly. 
Who  are  the  proud  ? 

1.  Generally  those  that  obstinately  stand  it  out  against  God  and  the 
methods  of  his  grace:  Neh.  ix.  16,  'But  they  and  our  fathers  dealt 
proudly,  and  hardened  their  necks,  and  hearkened  not  unto  thy  com 
mandments  ;'  and  ver.  29, '  Yet  they  dealt  proudly,  and  hearkened  not 
to  thy  commandments  ; '  Jer.  xiii.  17,  '  My  soul  shall  weep  in  secret 
for  your  pride.' 

2.  More  especially  those  that  are  too  well  conceited  of  themselves, 
seen  by  their  affecting  to  meddle  with  things  too  high  for  them  :  Ps. 
cxxxi.  1,  '  Lord,  my  heart  is  not  haughty,  nor  mine  eyes  lofty,  neither 
do  I  exercise  myself  in  great  matters,  nor  in  things  too  high  for  me.' 
Murmur  under  crosses,  quarrel  with  providences,  finding  fault  with 
all  God's  sayings  and  doings,  trust  in  themselves  that  they  are  right 
eous,  Luke  xviii.  14 ;  scoff  at  others  for  their  godliness :  Ps.  cxix.  51, 
the  proud  '  had  me  greatly  in  derision  ; '  Ps.  x.  2,  '  The  wicked  in  his 
pride  doth  persecute  the  poor/  ready  to  brawl  on  all  occasions  ;  Prov. 
xxiii.  10,  *  Only  by  pride  cometh  contention;'  would  have  all  to  stoop 
to  them,  are  stiff  in  their  opinions,  boasters,  lessening  the  gifts  of 
others,  impatient  of  admonition. 

3.  The  particular  pride  here  mentioned,  when  men  are  high-minded, 
and  trust  in  uncertain  riches,  drunk  with  their  prosperity.    So  oppress 
ing  in  their  honour  and  greatness,  as  if  they  would  trample  all  others 
under  foot,  and  crush  them  at  pleasure.     These  are  merciless  and 
pitiless,  disdain  the  poor,  whatsoever  presence  of  God  they  have  with 
them ;  we  are  filled  with  the  scorning  of  them  that  are  at  ease. 


VER.  123.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  263 


SEKMON  CXXXV. 

Mine  eyes  fail  for  thy  salvation,  and  for  the  word  of  thy  righteous- 
ness.— VER.  123. 

IN  the  former  verse,  David  spake  as  one  under  oppression,  here  he  setteth 
forth  his  longing  and  waiting  for  deliverance.    In  the  words  we  have — 

1.  The  act  of  faith,  together  with  the  object  of  it ;  his  eyes  were  to 
the  salvation  of  God. 

2.  The  defect  and  weakness  of  his  faith,  and  God's  delay,  implied  in 
the  occasion  of  it,  '  Mine  eyes  fail.' 

3.  The  ground  and  support  of  his  soul  in  this  exercise,  i  The  word 
of  thy  righteousness.' 

By  salvation  is  meant  temporal  deliverance:  his  eyes  were  to  his 
salvation  ;  that  is,  he  did  with  faith  and  patience  wait  for  it.  Bat  in 
waiting,  his  eyes  failed  ;  that  noteth  some  deficiency  and  weakness, 
but  his  support  during  all  this  was  the  word  of  God's  righteousness  ; 
that  word  wherein  God  promised  salvation  and  deliverance  to  them 
that  are  oppressed.  And  he  calleth  it  the  word  of  his  righteousness, 
because  he  is  one  that  kept  it  justly  and  faithfully ;  as  if  he  had  said, 
Surely  God  is  righteous,  and  is  no  more  liberal  in  promises  than  faith 
ful  in  performing,  therefore,  though  mine  eyes  even  fail,  yet  I  will  keep 
looking  and  longing  still  for  his  salvation. 

I  begin  with  the  ground  of  his  faith,  and  the  support  of  his  soul, 
which  is  the  word  of  promise. 

Doct.  That  God's  word,  wherein  he  hath  promised  deliverance  to  his 
suffering  servants,  is  a  word  of, righteousness. 

There  are  three  things  in  the  promise — Veritas,  fidelitas,  justitia, 
fidelity,  faithfulness,  and  righteousness. 

1.  Veritas,  sincerity  or  truth  in  making  the  promise,  according  to 
which  God  doth  really  intend  and  mean  to  bestow  what  he  promiseth; 
'For  God  is  not  as  man,  that  he  should  lie  ;  neither  the  son  of  man, 
that  he  should  repent :  hath  he  said,  and  shall  he  not  do  it  ?  or  hath  he 
spoken,  and  shall  he  not  make  it  good  ?  '  To  lie  is  to  speak  a  false 
hood  with  an  intention  to  deceive ;  this  cannot  be  imagined  of  God. 
What  need  hath  he  to  court  a  worm,  or  to  mock  and  flatter  us  into  a 
vain  hope  ?  What  interest  can  accrue  to  him  thereby  ?  Yea,  the 
purity  of  his  nature  will  not  permit  it:  Titus  i.  2,  '  According  to  the 
hope  of  eternal  life,  which  God,  that  cannot  lie,  promised  before  the 
world  began.'  He  will  as  soon  cease  to  be  God  as  cease  to  be  true,  for 
his  truth  is  his  nature,  he  is  truth  itself.  Man,  that  is  mutable,  and 
hath  an  interest  to  promote  by  dissembling,  may  put  on  a  false  appear 
ance,  and  speak  what  he  never  meaneth  ;  but  God  cannot  do  so,  for  he 
is  truth  itself,  essentially  so  in  the  abstract,  can  admit  of  no  mixture, 
though  creatures  may.  Light  itself  adrnitteth  not  of  any  darkness,  but 
as  it  is  in  subjects,  so  it  doth.  But  God  is  truth,  and  in  him  is  no 
falsehood  at  all.  Now,  of  all  lies,  a  promissory  lie  is  the  worst ;  it  is 
greater  than  an  assertory  lie.  An  assertory  lie  is  when  we  speak  of  a 
thing  past  or  present  otherwise  than  it  is.  A  promissory  lie  is  when 
we  promise  a  thing  for  time  to  come,  which  we  never  intend  to  perform. 


264  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXXXV. 

And  this  is  the  worse,  because  it  doth  not  only  pervert  the  end  of  speech, 
but  defeateth  another  of  that  right  which  we  seem  to  give  him,  in  the 
thing  promised ;  which  is  a  further  degree  of  injustice.  Therefore 
we  must  take  heed  how,  either  directly  or  interpretatively,  we  ascribe 
such  a  lie  to  God.  The  apostle  telletli  us,  1  John  v.  10,  'He  that  be- 
lieveth  not,  maketh  God  a  liar ; '  which  is  the  highest  dishonour  you 
can  cast  upon  him,  which  in  manners  and  civility  we  would  not  offer 
to  our  equal,  and  which  even  a  mean  man  would  scorn  to  put  up  with 
at  our  hands.  God  hath  made  many  promises,  as  that  he  will  be  with 
tluee  in  six  troubles,  and  in  seven  he  will  not  forsake  thee,  Job.  v.  19  ; 
that  he  will  dispose  of  all  things  for  the  best  to  them  that  love  him, 
Kom.  viii.  28  ;  that  no  good  thing  shall  be  wanting  to  them  that  fear 
him,  Ps.  xxxiv.  10.  Doth  not  God  mean  as  he  saith  ?  and  dare  we 
trust  him  no  more?  Your  diffidence  and  drooping  discouragements 
give  him  the  lie,  and  you  carry  it  so  as  if  these  were  but  words  of  course, 
without  any  intent  to  make  them  good. 

2.  Fidelitas.     The  next  thing  in  the  promise  is  faithfulness,  and 
that  referreth  to  the  keeping  of  the  promise.     A  man  may  be  real  in 
promising,  he  did  not  intend  to  deceive :  but  afterwards  lie  changeth 
his  mind  :  there  may  be  verity  in  making  the  promise,  but  there  is 
not  fidelity  in  keeping  the  promise.     But  God  is  faithful ;  hath  he 
said,  and  shall  he  not  do  it  ?     All  the  promises  are  *  Yea  and  Amen ' 
in  Jesus  Christ,  2  Cor.  i.  20.     God's  word  is  not  ;  Yea  and  Nay,'  but 
'  Yea  and  Amen  ; '  it  doth  riot  say  Yea  to-day,  and  Nay  to-morrow, 
but  always  Yea.     So  it  is  Amen,  so  it  shall  be ;  and  this  in  Jesus 
Christ,  on  whose  merit  they  are  all  founded,  and  who  was  the  great 
instance  of  God's  truth :  for  the  great  promise  wherein  God  stood 
bound  to  the  church  was  to  send  a  Saviour  to  redeem  the  world ; 
and  if  God  hath  made  good  this  promise,  surely  this  is  a  pledge  thnt 
he  will  make  good  all  the  rest;  for  if  he  spared  not  his  Son,  he  will 
not  stick  at  other  things. 

3.  There  is  justitia,  righteousness  ;  for  this  is  righteousness,  jus 
suum  cuique  tribuere,  to  give  every  one  his  right  and  his  due.     Now 
by  promise,  another  man  cometh  to  have  a  right  in  the  thing  pro 
mised  ;  therefore  justice  requireth  that  you  should  give  him  the  right 
that  accrueth  to  him  by  virtue  of  your  promise.    So  God,  promittendo 
se  fecit  debilorem,  maketh  himself  a  debtor  by  promise.     It  was  his 
mercy  and  goodness  to  make  the  promise,  but  his  justice  bindeth  him 
to  make  it  good.     This  is  often  spoken  of  in  scripture  :  1  John  i.  9, 
'  Faithful  and  just  to  forgive  us  our  sins  ; '  2  Tim.  iv.  8,  '  Henceforth 
there  is  laid  up  for  me  a  crown  of  righteousness,  which  the  Lord,  the 
righteous  judge,  shall  give  me  at  that  day/     By  his  promise  he  is  be 
come  a  debtor  to  us  ;  he  cannot  go  against  his  own  word  ;  his  justice 
will  not  suffer  him  to  change.     It  is  a  debt  of  grace  indeed,  but  a 
debt  it  is  which  it  is  justice  for  God  to  pay.     Thus  you  see  how  it  is 
a  word  of  righteousness. 

Reason  1.  Because  God  hath  in  his  promises  pawned  his  truth  with 
the  creature,  and  so  given  us  an  holdfast  upon  him.  Chirograplia 
tua  injiciebat  tibi  Domine.  Promises,  as  in  a  contract,  are  more  than 
simple  declarations,  and  bare  assertions  of  what  good  he  will  do  to  us. 
With  man  it  is  one  thing  to  say,  This  I  purpose  to  do ;  another,  This 


VER.  123.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  265 

I  promise  to  do.  A  promise  addeth  a  new  bond  and  obligation  upon 
a  man  for  fulfilling  his  word.  An  intimation  or  signification  of  God's 
will  and  purpose  showeth  the  event  will  follow  ;  but  a  promise  doth 
riot  only  do  that,  but  giveth  us  a  right  and  claim  to  the  things  pro 
mised.  Scripture  prophecies  will  be  fulfilled  because  of  God's 
veracity ;  but  scripture  promises  will  be  fulfilled,  not  because  of  his 
veracity,  but  his  fidelity  and  justice.  And  the  '  heirs  of  promise  may 
have  strong  consolation  by  God's  word  and  oath  ' — *  two  immutable 
things,  wherein  it  is  impossible  for  God  to  lie,'  Heb.  vi.  18.  There  is 
a  greater  obligation  upon  God  to  make  it  good. 

Reason  2.  Because  none  that  ever  depended  upon  God's  word  were 
disappointed ;  not  one  instance  to  the  contrary :  Ps.  xviii.  30,  '  The 
word  of  the  Lord  is  tried  ;  he  is  a  buckler  to  all  that  trust  in  him/ 
Search  the  annals  and  records  of  time,  and'  all  experience  hath  found 
the  word  of  God  exactly  true.  If  any  build  not  upon  it,  it  is  because 
they  are  not  acquainted  with  God,  and  the  course  of  his  proceedings  : 
Ps.  ix.  10,  '  They  that  know  thy  name  will  trust  in  thee/  There  is  so 
little  believing  and  trusting  God  upon  his  word,  because  they  are  men 
of  no  experience ;  otherwise  they  would  find  God  punctual  to  his 
promise  :  *  Not  one  thing  hath  failed  of  all  the  good  things  the  Lord 
your  God  spake  concerning  you/  Josh,  xxiii.  14.  He  speaketh  not 
only  as  his  own  observation,  and  the  result  of  all  his  experiences,  and 
that  in  a  time  when  there  was  no  room  for  dissembling  :  '  I  go  the  way 
of  all  the  earth,'  but  also  '  you  know  in  all  your  hearts,  and  all  your 
souls  ; '  and  he  repeateth  it,  '  Not  one  tiling  hath  failed/  Unless  you 
be  impudent,  you  cannot  deny  it ;  try  him,  you  have  found  support 
and  relief  hitherto. 

Reason  3.  Because  God  standeth  much  on  the  credit  of  his  word. 
Heathens  have  acknowledged  it  to  be  the  property  of  the  gods, 
a\yOeveiv  KOI  evepyerelv  ;  certainly  the  true  God  hath  showed  himself 
to  the  world  in  nothing  so  much  as  doing  good  and  keeping  promise : 
Ps.  cxxxviii.  2,  *  Thou  hast  magnified  thy  word  above  all  thy  name,' 
above  all  that  is  famed  or  spoken  or  believed  of  God,  this  is  most  con 
spicuous,  as  being  punctual  in  keeping  covenant  and  fulfilling  pro 
mises.  God  hath  ever  stood  upon  that,  of  being  tender  of  the  honour 
of  his  truth  in  the  eye  of  the  world :  therefore  we  should  build  securely 
upon  the  word  of  his  righteousness. 

Use  1.  To  bless  God  that  we  are  upon  such  sure  terms.  All  people 
that  know  there  is  a  God,  wait  for  some  good  things  from  him  ;  but 
they  are  left  to  uncertain  guesses,  it  may  be  they  may  have  them,  it 
may  be  not :  but  we  have  it  under  hand  and  seal,  and  have  God's 
warrant  for  our  hope,  and  so  deal  with  God  upon  sure  terms.  Well 
may  we  take  up  David's  song,  '  In  God  I  will  praise  his  word,  in  the 
Lord  I  will  praise  his  word/  Ps.  Ivi.  10.  It  is  twice  repeated  in  that 
psalm :  that  is  ground  of  rejoicing,  that  God  will  assure  us  aforehand 
what  he  will  do  for  us.  God  might  have  dealt  with  man  by  way  of 
dominion  and  command  alone,  without  any  signification  of  his  good 
ness,  and  left  us  to  blind  guesses.  Promises  are  the  eruptions  and 
overflows  of  God's  love,  he  cannot  stay  till  accomplishment,  but  will 
tell  us  aforehand  what  he  is  about  to  do  for  us,  that  we  may  know 
how  to  look  for  it. 


266  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CX1X.  [SER.  CXXXV. 

Use  2.  To  exhort  us  to  rest  contented  with  God's  word,  and  to  take 
his  promises  as  sure  ground  of  hope.  I  shall  show  you  how  you  should 
count  it  a  word  of  righteousness  ;  what  is  your  duty  ;  and  that  first 
you  are  to  delight  in  the  promise,  though  the  performance  be  not  yet, 
nor  like  to  he  for  a  good  while:  Heb.xi.  1 3,  TreiaOevres  KOI  aaTraa-dpevoi, 
being  persuaded  of  them,  they  embraced  them.  Oh  !  how  they  hugged 
the  promises  at  a  distance,  and  said  in  their  hearts,  Oh,  blessed  pro 
mise  !  this  will  in  time  yield  a  Messiah  :  John  viii.  56,  '  Your  father 
Abraham  rejoiced  to  see  my  day,  and  saw  it,  and  was  glad/  You 
hold  the  blessing  by  the  root,  this  will  in  time  yield  deliverance, 
Heb.  vi.  18  ;  not  only  yield  comfort,  but  prove  comfortable  :  Ps.  cxix. 
Ill,  'Thy  testimonies  I  have  taken  for  an  heritage;  for  they  are  the 
rejoicing  of  my  heart/  For  your  duty — 

2.  You  are  to  rest  confident  of  the  truth  of  what  God  hath  pro 
mised,  and  be  assured  that  the  performance  will  in  time  be  :  Treia-Oevres, 
Heb.  xi.  13.     Faith  is  not  a  fallible  conjecture,  but  a  sure  and  certain 
grace  :  Rom.  viii.  28,  *  We  know  that  all  things  shall  work  together 
for  good  to  them  that  love  God.'     So  Ps.  cxl  12,  '  I  know  that  God 
will  maintain  the  cause  of  the  afflicted,  and  the  right  of  the  poor.' 
There  is  a  firm  persuasion  ;  I  know  I  shall  find  this  to  be  a  truth. 
Men  who  are  conscionable  and  faithful  in  keeping  their  word  are 
believed ;  yet,  being  men,  they  may  lie  :  Rom.  iii.  4,  '  Let  God  be  true, 
and  every  man  a  liar.'   Every  man  is,  or  may  be  a  liar,  because  of  the 
mutableness  of  his  nature  ;  from  interest  he  will  not  lie,  but  he  can 
lie.     If  we  receive  the  testimony  of  men,  the  testimony  of  God  is 
greater.     Surely  God  cannot  deceive,  or  be  deceived.     He  never  yet 
was  worse  than  his  word. 

3.  You  are  to  take  the  naked  promise  for  the  ground  of  your  hope, 
however  it  seem  to  be  contradicted  in  the  course  of  God's  providence  ; 
when  it  is  neither  performed,  nor  likely  to  be  performed,  it  is  his  word 
you  go  by,  whatsoever  his  dispensations  be.     Many  times  there  are  no 
apparent  evidences  of  God's  doing  what  he  hath  said,  yea,  strong  pro 
babilities  to  the  contrary.     It  is  said,  Rom.  iv.  18,  '  That  Abraham 
against  hope  believed  in  hope,'  Trap  e\Tri8a  eV  e'X-TrtSi.    Abraham  had 
the  promise  of  a  son,  in  whom  all  the  nations  of  the  earth  should  be 
blessed  ;  but  there  was  no  appearance  of  this  in  nature,  or  natural  hope 
of  a  child,  both  he  and  Sarah  being  old :  yet  he  believed.     It  is  an 
antanaclasis,  an  elegant  figure,  having  the  form  of  a  contradiction 
he  goeth  upon  God's  naked  word.     Then  faith  standeth  upon  its  owa 
basis  and  legs,  which  is  not  probabilities,  but  his  word  of  promise, 
Everything  is  strongest  upon  its  own  basis,  which  God  and  nature 
have  appointed.     For  as  the  earth  hangeth  on  nothing  in  the  midst 
of  the  air,  but  there  is  its  place,  faith  is  seated  most  firmly  on  the 
word  of  God,  who  is  able  to  perform  what  he  saith. 

4.  This  faith  must  conquer  our  fears  and  cares  and  troubles :  Ps. 
cxii.  7,  '  He  shall  not  be  afraid  of  evil  tidings ;  his  heart  is  fixed, 
trusting  in  the  Lord.'     He  must  fix  the  heart  without  wavering :  Ps. 
Ivi.  4,  '  In  God  I  will  praise  his  word,  in  God  have  I  put  my  trust :  I 
will  not  fear  what  man  can  do  unto  rue.'    The  force  of  faith  is  seen  in 
calming  our  passions  and  sinful  fears,  which  otherwise  would  weaken 
our  reverence  and  respect  to  God. 


VER.  123.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  267 

5.  Above  all  this,  you  are  to  glorify  God  publicl}7 ;  not  only  in  the 
quiet  of  your  hearts,  but  by  your  carriage  before  others  :  John  iii.  33, 
4  Put  to  his  seal  that  God  is  true.'  It  is  not  said,  Believed  or  professed, 
but,  Put  to  his  seal.  We  seal  the  truth  of  God  as  his  witnesses  when 
we  confirm  others  in  the  faith  and  belief  of  the  promises  by  our  joy- 
fulness  in  all  conditions,  patience  under  crosses,  diligence  in  holiness, 
hope  and  comfort  in  great  straits.  Num.  xx.  12,  God  was  angry 
with  Moses  and  Aaron,  because  ye  '  believe  not,  to  sanctify  me  in  the 
eyes  of  the  children  of  Israel/  We  are  not  only  to  believe  God  our 
selves,  but  to  sanctify  him  in  the  eyes  of  others ;  as  when  the  Thessalo- 
nians  had  received  the  word  in  much  assurance,  in  much  affliction, 
and  much  joy  in  the  Holy  Ghost,  the  apostle  telleth  them  they  were 
examples  to  all  that  believed  in  Achaia  and  Macedonia,  1  Thes.  i.  5. 
The  worthiness  and  generousness  of  our  faith  should  be  a  confutation 
•of  our  base  fears,  but  a  confirmation  of  the  gospel.  But  we  are  so  far 
from  confirming  the  weak,  that  we  offend  the  strong  ;  and  instead  of 
being  a  confirmation  to  the  gospel,  we  are  a  confutation  of  it. 

Use  3.  Reproof  to  us  that  we  do  no  more  build  upon  this  word  of 
righteousness. 

1.  Some  count  these  vain  words,  and  the  comforts  thence  deduced 
fanatical  illusions ;  and  hopes  and  joys,  fantastical  impressions :  Ps. 
xxii.  7,  8,  '  All  they  that  see  me  laugh  me  to  scorn ;  they  shoot  out  the 
lip,  they  shake  the  head,  saying,  He  trusted  on  the  Lord  that  he 
would  deliver  him :  let  him  deliver  him,  seeing  he  delighted  in  him.' 
Nothing  so  ridiculous  in  the  world's  eye  as  trust  or  dependence  or 
unseen  comforts.     Ungodly  wits  make  the  life  of  faith  a  sport  and 
matter  of  laughter. 

2.  Some,  though  not  so  bad  as  the  former,  they  may  have  more 
modesty,  yet  as  little  faith,  since  they  are  all  for  the  present  world, 
present  delights,  present  temptations.    With  many,  one  thing  in  hand 
is  more  than  the  greatest  promises  of  better  things  to  corne,  2  Tim.  iv. 
10;  they  have  no  patience.     Afflictions  are  smart  for  the  present: 
Heb.  xii.  11,  'No  affliction  for  the  present  seerneth  joyous,  but  grie 
vous.'     Yea,  they  do  not  deal  equally  with  God  and  man.     If  a  man 
promise,  they  reckon  much  of  that,  Qui  petat,  accipiet,  &c.     They  can 
tarry  upon  man's  security,  but  count  God's  nothing  worth.     They  can 
trade  with  a  factor  beyond  seas,  and  trust  all  their  estates  in  a  man's 
hand  whom  they  have  never  seen  ;  and  yet  the-  word  of  the  infallible 
God  is  of  little  regard  and  respect  with  them. 

3.  The  best  build  too  weakly  on  the  promises,  as  appeareth  by  the 
prevalency  of  our  cares  and  fears.     If  we  did  take  God  at  his  word, 
we  would  not  be  so  soon  mated  with  every  difficulty  :  Heb.  xiii  5,  6, 
'  Let  your  conversation  be  without  covetousness,  and  be  content  with 
such  things  as  you  have ;  for  he  hath  said,  I  will  never  leave  thee  nor 
forsake  thee.     So  that  we  may  boldly  say,  The  Lord  is  my  helper  ;  I 
will  not  fear  what  man  can  do  unto  me.'     There  would  be  more  reso 
lution  in  trials,  more  hardness  against  troubles.    Besides  maintenance, 
there  is  protection  in  the  promise.     If  we  had  faith  to  believe  this,  it 
would  effectually  quiet  our  minds  in  all  our  necessities  and  straits  and 
perplexities.     Man  can  do  much,  bring  them  low,  even  to  a  morsel  of 
bread.     We  need  not  much  desire  the  best  things  of  the  world,  nor 


268  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiU.  CXXXY. 

fear  the  worst;  need  not  be  covetous,  nor  fearful.  Where  faith  is  in 
any  life  and  strength,  it  moderateth  our  desires  and  fears.  It  is  an  ill 
part  of  a  believer  to  hang  the  head. 

Secondly,  From  that  clause,  David's  eyes  were  to  God's  salvation, 
that  God's  word  being  passed  his  people  do  and  must  wait  for  the 
accomplishment  of  it.  The  lifting  up  of  the  eyes  implies  three  things 
—faith,  hope,  and  patience ;  all  which  do  make  up  the  duty  of  waiting 
for  help  and  relief  from  God. 

1.  The  lifting  up  the  eyes  implies  faith  and  confident  persuasion 
that  God  is  ready  and  willing  to  help  us:  2  Chron.  xx.  12,  'But  our 
eyes  are  unto  thee  ;'  Ps.  cxxiii.  1,  2,  '  Unto  thee  I  lift  mine  eyes,  0 
thou  that  dwellest  in  the  heavens.'     The  very  lifting  up  of  the  bodily 
eye  towards  heaven  is  an  expression  of  this  inward  trust :  so  David  in 
eifect  saith,  From  thee,  Lord,  I  expect  relief,  and  the  fulfilling  of  thy 
promises.     So  that  there  is  faith  in  it,  that  faith  which  is  the  evidence 
of  things  not  seen.     How  great  soever  the  darkness  of  our  calamities 
be,  though  the  clouds  of  present  troubles  thicken  about  us,  and  hide 
the   Lord's   care  and  loving-kindness  from  us,  yet  faith  must  look 
through  all  to  his  power  and  constancy  of  truth  and  love.     The  eye  of 
faith  is  a  clear,  piercing,  eagle  eye :  Heb.  xi.  27,  *  Moses  endured,  as 
seeing  him  that  was  invisible.'     A  man  is  very  short-sighted  before  : 
2  Peter  i.  9,  '  He  that  lacketh  these  things  is  blind,  and  cannot  see 
afar  off;'  can  only  skill  in  the  things  of  sense  and  reason,  see  a  danger 
near  him,  as  beasts  or  a  bait  while  it  is  before  him  ;  a  brute  thinketh 
of  no  other;  or  else  goeth  by  probabilities,  as  it  seeth  things  by  the 
light  of  reason  in  their  causes.     But  faith  seeth  things  afar  off  in  the 
promises,  Heb.  xi.  13,  at  a  greater  distance  than  the  eye  of  nature  can 
reach  to.     Take  it  either  for  the  eye  of  the  body,  or  the  mind,  faith 
will  draw  comfort  not  only  from  what  is  invisible  at  present,  but  not 
to  come  for  a  long  time ;  it  is  future  as  well  as  invisible ;  its  supports 
lie  iii  the  other  world,  and  are  yet  to  come. 

2.  There  is  hope  in  it ;  for  what  a  man  hopeth  for  he  will  look  for 
it,  if  he.  can  see  it  a-coming:  *  the  earnest  expectation  of  the  creature/ 
aTToicapaSoKia  r/)?  tfT/jeco?,  Rom.  viii.  19 ;  the  stretching  forth  of  the 
head:    Judges  v.  28,    'They  looked  out  at  the  window,  and  cried 
through  the  lattice,  Why  is  his  chariot  so  long  a-coming  ? '     So  by 
spiritual  hope  there  is  a  lifting  up  of  the  eyes,  or  a  looking  out  for 
what  God  hath  promised,  or  an  intent  observing  all  together :  '  Our 
conversation  is  in  heaven,  from  whence  we  look  for  a  Saviour,'  Phil, 
iii.  20.     Faith  keepeth  the  eye  of  the  mind  fixed  upon  the  promise, 
and  is  ever  looking  out  for  deliverance :  Ps.  cxxi.  1,  2,  '  I  will  lift  up 
mine  eyes  to  the  hills,  from  whence  cometh  my  help  :  my  help  cometh 
from  the  Lord,  which  made  heaven  and  earth.'     Thence  they  look  and 
wait  for  succour;  it  must  come  out  of  heaven  to  them.     They  see  it, 
they  can  spy  a  cloud  a-coming ;  that  which  a  man  careth  not  for  he 
doth  not  look  for.     David  saith,  '  I  will  pray  and  look  up/  Ps.  v.  3. 
Hope  hath  expectation  of  the  thing  or  object  hoped  for. 

3.  There  is  patience  in  it,  in  persevering  and  keeping  on  our  looking 
till   mercy   come,  with  faith  and  ardency  in  expecting  God's  help. 
Looking  and  waiting  is  to  be  conjoined,  notwithstanding  difficulties, 
till  it  procure  deliverance :  Ps.  cxxiii.  2.  '  Our  eyes  wait  on  the  Lord, 


VER.  123.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  269 

who  will  have  mercy  on  us/  This  lifting  up  of  the  eyes  doth  not 
imply  a  glance,  or  once  looking  to  heaven;  but  that  we  keep  looking 
till  God  cloth  help  :  Isa.  viii.  17,  '  I  will  wait  on  the  Lord,  that  hideth 
his  face  from  the  house  of  Jacob,  and  I  will  look  for  him/  There  is  a 
constant  depending,  and  patient  attending  upon  God,  notwithstanding 
the  present  tokens  of  his  wrath  and  displeasure.  As  a  man  with- 
draweth  himself  from  a  party,  and  will  not  be  seen  of  him,  nor  spoken 
to  by  him,  but  the  resolute  suitor  tarrieth  to  meet  and  speak  with  him. 
So  Micah  vii.  7,  '  Therefore  I  will  look  unto  the  Lord,  I  will  wait  for 
the  God  of  my  salvation:  my  God  will  hear  me/  Not  give  over 
upon  every  discouragement,  as  a  merchant  doth  not  discontinue  trad 
ing  for  every  loss  at  sea.  Certainly  it  is  not  faith  and  hope,  unless  we 
can  endure  and  bear  out.  Natural  courage  will  bear  out  for  a  while, 
but  not  long.  A  little  touch  breaketh  a  bubble,  and  a  slight  natural 
expectation  is  soon  discouraged ;  but  to  hope  against  hope,  to  pray 
when  God  forbids  praying,  to  keep  waiting  when  we  have  not  only 
difficulties  in  the  world,  but  seeming  disappointments  from  heaven 
itself,  when  the  promise  and  Christ  seem  to  be  parting  from  you,  and 
refuse  you  ;  yet  then  to  say,  I  will  not  let  thee  go  until  thou  bless  me, 
as  Jacob  said  to  the  angel,  Gen.  xxxii.  25,  26,  when  God  saith,  Let  me 
alone. 

Use.  Let  us  turn  ourselves  towards  God  for  help,  and  have  our  eyes 
on  him,  and  keep  them  there:  Ps.  cxli.  8,  'But  mine  eyes  are  unto 
thee,  0  God  the  Lord  ;  in  thee  is  my  trust ;  leave  not  my  soul  desti 
tute/  Let  us  not  give  way  to  discouragements,  though  God  delay  us 
so  long  till  all  our  carnal  provisions  are  spent,  no  meal  in  the  barrel, 
nor  oil  in  the  cruse,  and  we  are  brought  to  the  last  morsel  of  bread  ; 
though  brought  to  complain  for  pity  to  them  that  will  show  none,  but 
pour  vinegar  into  our  wounds  ;  yea,  till  our  spiritual  provisions  be 
spent.  Faith  will  hold  out  no  longer,  hope  can  do  us  no  service, 
patience  lost  and  clear  gone;  we  fall  a-questioning  God's  love  and 
care.  I  sa}r,  though  we  grow  weary,  let  us  strive  against  it,  acquaint 
God  with  it,  renew  faith  in  the  word  of  promise.  There  is  a  holy 
obstinacy  in  believing. 

To  get  this  eye  of  faith — 

1.  There  is  need  of  the  Spirit's  enlightening.     Nature  is  short 
sighted,  2  Peter  i.  9.     A  man  cannot  look  into  the  other  world  till  his 
eyes  be  opened  by  the  Spirit  of  God :  Eph.  i.  17,  18,  '  The  Father  of 
glory  give  unto  you  the  spirit  of  wisdom  and  revelation  in  the  know 
ledge  of  him,  the  eyes  of  your  understanding  being  enlightened,  that 
ye  may  know  what  is  the  hope  of  his  calling,  and  what  the  riches  of 
the  glory  of  his  inheritance  in  the  saints/     There  needs  spiritual  eye- 
salve  to  get  this  piercing  eye  to  look  through  the  curtain  of  the  clouds. 

2.  When  your  eye  is  opened,  you  must  keep  your  eye  clear  from 
the  suffusions  of  lust  and  worldly  affections.   A  mortified  heart  is  only 
a  fit  soil  for  faith  to  grow  in.    The  world  is  a  blinding  thing,  2  Cor. 
iv.  4.     While  present  things  bear  bulk  in  our  eye,  invisible  tilings  are 
little  regarded  by  us.     Dust  cast  into  the  eyes  hindereth  the  sight, 
carnal  affections  send  up  the  fumes  and  steams  of  lust  to  blind  us. 

3.  The  eye  being  clear,  you  must  ever  be  looking  up  out  of  the 
world  of  temptations  into  the  world  of  comforts  and  supports,  from 


270  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SflB.  CXXXV. 

earth  to  heaven :  Heb.  xi.  27,  '  As  seeing  him  that  is  invisible  ;  '  and 
the  nothing  things  of  the  world,  by  ornnifying  and  magnifying  God. 
There  are  the  great  objects  which  darken  the  glory  of  the  world,  and 
all  created  things.  And  there  we  see  more  for  us  than  can  be  against 
us,  2  Kings  vi.  15.  Pharaoh,  a  king  of  mighty  power,  was  contemp 
tible  in  Moses'  eyes,  because  he  saw  a  higher  and  a  more  glorious  king  ; 
so  glorious,  that  all  the  power  and  princes  of  the  world  are  nothing 
to  him. 

4.  The  less  sensible  evidence  there  is  of  the  object  of  faith,  the 
greater  and  stronger  is  the  i'aith,  if  we  believe  it  upon  God's  word  : 
John  xx.  29,  '  Because  thou  hast  seen,  thou  hast  believed  ;  blessed  are 
they  that  have  not  seen,  and  yet  have  believed.'  It  extenuateth  our 
faith,  when  the  object  must  be  visible  to  sense,  or  it  worketh  not  on  us. 
Faith  hath  more  of  the  nature  of  faith  when  it  is  satisfied  with  God's 
word,  whatever  sense  and  reason  say  to  the  contrary :  1  Peter  i.  8, 
'  Whom,  having  not  seen,  ye  love  ;  in  whom,  though  now  you  see  him 
not,  you  rejoice  with  joy  unspeakable,  and  full  of  glory.  Whatever 
faith  closeth  with  upon  sure  grounds,  it  is  spiritually  present  to  the 
soul,  though  few  sensible  helps.  The  less  we  see  in  the  world,  the 
more  must  we  believe.  To  see  things  to  come  as  present,  and  to  see 
things  that  otherwise  cannot  be  seen,  cometh  near  to  God's  vision  of 
all  things.  God  saw  all  things  before  they  were,  all  things  that  may 
be,  shall  be,  visione  simplicis  intelligentice ;  Prov.  viii.  31,  *  Rejoicing 
in  the  habitable  parts  of  the  earth/  So  doth  faith  eye  all  things  in 
the  all-sufficiency  and  promise  of  God,  long  before  they  come  to  pass, 
and  affects  the  believer  with  them,  John  viii.  52. 

Thirdly,  From  the  weakness  and  imbecillity  confessed,  '  Mine  eyes 
fail.'  The  doctrine  is — 

Doct.  That  sometimes  God's  people  wait  so  long,  that  their  eyes 
even  fail  in  waiting  ;  that  is,  their  faith,  hope,  and  patience  is  almost 
spent,  and  they  are  ready  to  give  over  looking. 

For  the  phrase  intimateth  two  things — a  trial  on  God's  part,  and  a 
weakness  on  ours.  First,  a  trial  by  reason  of  God's  dispensations. 
Two  things  make  our  waiting  tedious — the  sharpness  of  afflictions, 
and  the  length  of  them,  long  delays  of  help  and  great  trouble,  in  the 
mean  time.  First,  the  depth  of  the  calamity,  or  the  sharpness  of  the 
trial  may  occasion  this  failing :  Ps.  xxxviii.  10,  '  My  heart  panteth, 
my  strength  failetli  me,  for  the  light  of  mine  eyes  is  also  gone.' 
Secondly,  the  length  of  troubles,  or  the  protraction  of  deliverance.  As 
the. bodily  eye  is-  tired  with  long  looking,  so  doth  the  soul  begin  to  be 
weary,  when  this  expectation  is  drawn  out  at  length  :  Ps.  cxix.  82, 
'Mine  eyes  fail  for  thy  word,  saying,  When  wilt  thou  comfort  me?' 
The  delay  is  tedious. 

As  to  the  matter  of  this  failing,  there  are  three  things: — 

[1.]  That  the  sufferings  of  God's  .children  may  be  sometimes  long. 
God  ordereth  it  so,  that  faith,  hope,  and  patience  may  have  its  perfect 
work,  Heb.  vi.  12.  There  is  an  intervening  time  between  the  promise 
and  the  accomplishment.  Intervening  difficulties,  James  i.  3,  4 ; 
Rom.  viii.  24,  '  Hope  that  is  seen  is  not  hope ;'  it  is  but  natural-  pro 
bability,  natural  courage.  Those  that  have  received  a  great  measure 
of  faith  have  a  great  measure  of  trials  ;  their  troubles  are  greater  that 


VEU.  123.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  271 

their  graces  may  be  the  more  exercised,  that  many  stubborn  humours 
may  be  broken,  Jer.  iv.  3.  God  useth  to  suffer  his  enemies  to  break 
up  the  fallow  ground  of  his  people:  Ps.  cxxix.  2,  '  The  plowers  plough 
upon  my  back,  they  make  long  their  furrows.'  We  have  proud  and 
stiff  hearts,  therefore  the  plough  of  persecution  goeth  deep,  that  the  seed 
of  the  word  may  thrive  the  more  ;  till  they  have  done  their  work,  God 
doth  not  cut  asunder  the  cords.  The  Lord  of  the  soil  experts  a  richer 
crop.  The  power  of  the  Spirit  is  more  seen:  Col.  i.  10,  11, 
'Strengthened  with  all  might,  according  to  his  glorious  power,  unto  all 
patience  and  long-suffering  with  joyfulness.'  Not  only  patience,  but 
long-suffering,  which  is  patience  extended  under  continued  troubles. 
Men  may  fret ;  it  is  not  unwilling,  extorted  by  force ;  but  they  are 
cheerful  under  the  cross.  The  length  of  sufferings  ;  some  can  endure 
a  sharp  brunt,  but  tire  under  a  long  affliction.  Some  go  drooping  and 
heavily  under  it ;  therefore  joyfulness.  For  these  and  many  other 
reasons  doth  God  permit  our  sufferings  to  be  long. 

[2.]  Why  faith,  hope,  and  patience  are  apt  to  fail. 

(1.)  Because  these  graces  are  weak  in  the  best,  and  may  fail  under 
long  and  sharp  trials :  Ps.  cxxv.  3,  '  For  the  rod  of  the  wicked  shall 
not  rest  upon  the  lot  of  the  righteous,  lest  the  righteous  put  forth  their 
hands  to  iniquity.'  The  strongest  believer  may  i'aint  in  trouble,  there 
fore  God  will  not  try  them  above  their  strength ;  but  as  he  sometimes 
giveth  more  grace,  so  sometimes  he  abateth  the  temptations.  Grace 
is  not  so  perfect  in  any  as  to  be  above  all  weakening  by  assaults.  Who 
would  have  thought  that  a  meek  Moses  could  be  angry  ?  Ps.  cvi.  33. 
There  are  relics  of  sin  unmortified,  such  as  may  be  awakened  in  the 
best.  Who  would  have  thought  that  David  should  fall  into  unclean- 
ness,  an  old  experienced  man,  who  had  many  wives  of  his  own,  when 
Joseph,  a  young  man,  a  captive,  resisted  an  offered  occasion?  But 
especially  do  these  graces  fail  in  their  operation  when  the  temptation 
is  more  spiritual ;  for  these  are  mystical  graces,  to  which  nature  giveth 
no  help,  when' things  dear  to  us  in  the  flesh  and  in  the  Lord  are  made 
the  matter  of  the  temptation,  and  set  an  edge  upon  it,  &c.  Sins  that 
disturb  the  order  of  the  present  world  are  not  so  rife  with  the  saints 
as  sins  that  concern  our  commerce  with  God. 

(2.)  Because  temptations  raise  strange  clouds  and  mists  in  the  soul, 
that  though  they  grant  principles,  yet  they  cannot  reconcile  provi 
dences  with  them.  As  Jer.  xii.  1,  '  Righteous  art  thou,  0  Lord,  yet 
let  me  plead  with  th.ee/  It  is  not  to  be  questioned,  much  less  doubted 
of,  that  God  is  upright  and  just  in  his  dealings ;  yet  what  mean  those 
passages  of  his  providence  ?  Their  thoughts  are  fearfully  imbrangled, 
the  minds  of  the  godly  are  molested  :  *  Wherefore  doth  the  way  of  the 
wicked  prosper  ?'  So  Hab.  i.  13.  '  Thou  art  of  purer  eyes  than  to 
behold  evil,  and  canst  not  look  on  iniquity ;  wherefore  lookest  thou 
upon  them  that  deal  treacherously  ?  and  boldest  thy  tongue,  when 
the  wicked  devoureth  the  man  that  is  more  righteous  than  he  ? '  God 
is  pure  and  holy,  they  know ;  yet  how  can  he  bear  with  the  enemy,  in 
their  treachery  and  violence  against  the  church  ?  So  brutified  are 
they,  that  they  know  not  how  to  reconcile  his  dispensations  with  his 
nature  arid  attributes;  though  they  have  faith  enough  to  justify  God, 
yet  atheism  enough  to  question  his  providence.  When  the  heart  is 


272  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiR.  CXXXV. 

over-charged  with  fears:  Ps.  Ixxiii.  1,  'Yet  God  is  good  to  Israel:  my 
feet  were  almost  gone,  my  steps  well-nigh  slipped.'  They  hold  fast 
the  conclusion,  '  Yet  God  is  good  to  Israel ; '  yet  cannot  maintain  it 
against  all  objections. 

(3.)  Carnal  affections  are  hasty  and  impetuous,  and  if  God  give  not 
a  present  satisfaction,  they  question  all  his  love  and  care  of  them : 
Ps.  xxxi..  22:  '  I  said  in  my  heart,  1  am  cut  off;'  Isa.  xlix.  14,  'Zion 
said,  The  Lord  hath  forsaken,  and  my  God  hath  forgotten  me  ;'  Jonah 
ii.  4,  '  And  he  said,  I  am  cast  out  of  thy  sight.'  So  that,  did  not  God 
confute  his  unbelief  by  some  sudden  experience,  as  in  the  first  instance, 
or  the  word  contain  a  suitable  supply,  as  in  the  second,  or  the  principle 
of  grace  in  some  measure  withstand  ('  but  I  will  look  towards  thy  holy 
temple'),  the  soul  would  be  swallowed  up  in  the  whirlpool  of  despair. 
Thus  hasty  and  precipitant  are  we  while  we  hearken  to  the  voice  of 
the  flesh.  We  are  apt  to  count  all  our  troubles  God's  total  desertion 
of  us.  Such  a  hasty  principle  have. we  within  us,  that  will  hurry  us 
to  desperate  conclusions,  as  if  it  were  in  vain  to  wait  upon  God  any 
longer.  % 

(4.)  Mutability  in  man.  What  a  flush  of  faith  and  zeal  have  we 
at  first,  as  stuffs  have  a  great  gloss  at  first  wearing.  We  lose,  as  our 
first  love,  so  our  first  faith :  Gal.  v.  7,  '  Ye  did  run  well ;  who  did 
hinder  you?'  There  is  a  great  forwardness  at  first,  which  abateth 
afterwards  ;  and  men  grow  remiss,  *  faint  in  your  minds/  Heb.  xii.  3, 
from  one  degree  to  another. 

[3.]  That  this  failing  is  but  an  infirmity  of  the  saints  ;  though  their 
hope  be  weak  and  ready  to  faint,  it  is  not  quite  dead. 

(1.)  It  is  an  infirmity  of  the  better  sort,  not  like  the  atheism  and 
malignity  of  the  wicked.  Some  diseases  show  a  good  constitution,  arid 
seize  on  none  but  such.  This  distemper  is  not  incident  to  carnal  men: 
Isa.  xxxviii.  14,  '  Mine  eyes  fail  with  looking  up.'  It  argueth  a 
vehemency  in  our  hope  ;  they  that  do  not  mind  things  are  never 
troubled  with  such  a  spiritual  disease  ;  for  this  failing  cannot  be  but 
where  there  is  vehemency  of  desire  and  expectation.  Those  that 
desire  little  of  the  salvation  of  God's  people,  feel  none  of  this. 

(2.)  There  is  a  difference  between  them  and  others  ;  though  they 
have  their  weaknesses,  yet  their  faith  doth  not  quite  expire  ;  there  is 
a  twig  of  righteousness  still  to  trust  to ;  they  are  weary  of  watching, 
but  they  do  not  give  over  waiting  ;  and  sny,  as  he,  2  Kings  vi.  33, 
'  What  should  I  wait  for  the  Lord  any  longer  ?'  Fainting  is  one 
thing,  and  quite  dead  is  another :  they  strive  against  the  temptation  : 
though  no  end  of  their  difficulties  appeareth,  they  attend  still,  keep 
looking,  though  the  vigour  of  the  eye  be  abated  by  long  exercise. 
There  is  life  in  the  saints,  though  not  that  liveliness  they  could-  wish  ; 
for  they  do  not  fall,  and  rise  no  more,  and  are  quite  thrown  down 
with  every  blast  of  a  temptation. 

(3.)  They  confess  their  weakness  to  God,  as  David  doth  here, 
acquainteth  God  with  it,  and  so  shame  themselves  out  of  the  tempta 
tion,  and  beg  new  strength.  It  is  an  excellent  way  of  curing  such 
distempers  to  lay  them  forth  before  God  in  prayer,  for  he  helpeth  the 
weak  in  their  conflicts.  When  we  debate  dark  cases  with  our  own 
'hearts,  we  entangle  ourselves  the  more. 


VER.  124.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  273 

Use  1.  It  reproveth  our  tenderness  when  we  cannot  bear  a  little 
while  :  *  What !  not  watch  with  me  one  hour  ?'  Mat.  xxvi.  40.  David 
kept  waiting  till  his  eyes  failed.  Some  their  whole  voyage  is  storms  ; — 
Christ  indents  with  us  to  take  up  our  cross  daily,  Luke  ix.  22  ; — who 
are  their  lifetime  kept  under  this  discipline  ;  and  can  we  bear  no 
check  from  providence  ?  We  would  have  all  done  in  an  hour  or  in  a 
year,  can  bear  nothing  when  God  calleth  us  to  bear  much  and  long ; 
cannot  endure  to  abate  a  little  of  our  wonted  contentment,  when  God 
will  strip  us  of  all. 

Use  2.  Let  us  provide  for  long  sufferings.  All  colours  will  not  hold 
as  long  as  the  cloth  lasts.  We  need  a  great  deal  of  grace,  because  we 
know  not  how  long  our  great  troubles  may  last.  Sometimes  sufferings 
are  like  to  be  long.  First,  When  the  cross  maketh  little  improvement, 
carrieth  little  conviction  with  it.  While  the  stubborness  of  the  child 
continueth,  the  blows  are  continued.  God  will  withdraw  till  they 
acknowledge  their  offence,  Hosea  v.  15.  When  we  eye  instruments, 
and  pour  our  rage  upon  them  ;  or  instruments  are  minded,  and  wo 
hope  to  be  delivered  some  other  way,  when  we  repent  not.  Secondly, 
When  provocations  are  long  :  Deut.  xxviii.  58,  59,  '  If  thou  wilt  not 
observe  to  do  all  the  words  of  this  law,  that  is  written  in  this  book, 
that  thou  mayest  fear  this  glorious  and  fearful  name,  THE  LORD  THY 
GOD  ;  then  the  Lord  will  make  thy  plagues  wonderful,  and  the  plagues 
of  thy  seed,  even  great  plagues,  and  of  long  continuance  ;  and  sore 
sicknesses,  and  of  long  continuance.' 


SERMON  CXXXYI. 

Deal  with  thy  servant  according  to  tliy  mercy,  and  teach  me  tliy 
statutes. — VER.  124. 

IN  this  verse  we  have  two  requests — the  one  general,  the  other  par 
ticular ;  wherein  he  would  have  the  Lord  exercise  his  mercy  to  him. 
Show  thy  mercy  to  me  in  teaching  me  thy  law.  The  one  respects  the 
privilege  part  of  religion,  the  other  the  duty  part ;  the  one  concerns 
time  past,  or  the  pardon  of  sin  already  committed,  '  Deal  with  thy 
servant  according  to  thy  mercy  ;'  the  other  prevention  of  sin  for  the 
time  to  come,  that  I  may  perform  my  duty  for  the  future,  '  Teach  me 
thy  statutes.'  Mercy  is  the  ground  of  his  request ;  teaching  God's 
law  the  matter  of  it.  He  would  have  this  gift  bestowed  on  him 
freely. 

First  branch,  '  Deal  with  thy  servant,'  &c.     Where  we  have — 

3.  His  relation  to  God,  thy  servant. 

2.  The  terms  upon  which  lie  would  have  God  deal  with  him :  Not 
according  to  my  works,  but  according  to  thy  mercy. 

First,  His  relation  is  mentioned  either— (1.)  As  a  part  of  his  plea, 
as  if  he  had  said,  Lord,  thou  art  merciful  to  all,  for  '  thy  tender  mercy 
is  over  all  thy  works/  Ps.  cxlv.  9  ;  much  more  to  thy  servants  :  now 
I  am  thy  servant.  God's  servants  have  a  special  claim  and  interest 
in  God;  besides  his  general  bounty,  they  expect  his  special  mercy  and 

VOL.  viir.  s 


274  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEE.  CXXXVL 

favour :  Ps.  cxvi.  1 6,  '  0  Lord,  truly  I  am  thy  servant ;  I  am  thy 
servant,  and  the  son  of  thine  handmaid.1  Clear  that,  that  you  are 
some  of  God's  servants  once,  and  then  you  may  the  better  expect  your 
master's  bounty.  Or,  (2.)  To  show  his  need  of  mercy  though  God's 
servant.  Such  an  emphasis  it  seemeth  to  have  :  Ps.  cxliii.  2,  '  Enter 
not  into  judgment  with  thy  servant;5  -non  dicit  cum  liostibus  tuis. 
He  doth  not  say,  Enter  not  into  judgment  with  thine  enemy,  but  with 
thy  servant  So  here  David,  that  was  God's  servant,  a  man  of  singular 
holiness,  desireth  that  God  would  deal  with  him  in  mercy.  From 
first  to  last,  the  saints  have  no  other  plea.  Theodoret,  on  the  text, 
observeth.  o  rocraur?;?  aperrj^  epyaTrjs  eXeou?  TV%eli>,  &C. — SO  great  a 
worker  of  righteousness  beggeth  to  receive  mercy,  and  looketh  for  all 
his  salvation  by  mercy.  And  again,  OVK  cnranel  pi<r6ov  a\\a  <f)i\av- 
Opwjriav  alrel — he  doth  not  challenge  a  reward,  but  asketh  favour  and 
kindness. 

Doct.  That  God's  best  servants  have  no  other  and  no  better  plea 
than  that  God  would  deal  with  them  in  mercy. 

1.  Because  there  is  and  can  be  no  merit  on  the  creature's  part 
towards  God,  according  to  the  rule  of  justice.     Adam  in  innocency 
could  impetrare,  not  mereri  ;  it  was  his  grace  to  covenant  with  the 
creature,  when  innocency  and  purity  did  adorn  our  nature  ;  how  much 
more  since  the  fall,  and  the  distance  between  God  and  us  hath  been 
so  widened  by  sin  !     What  merits  must  be  indebitum  and  utile.     It 
must  be  indebitum  :  when  our  righteousness  was  perfect,  yet  still  due 
by  virtue  of  our  relation  to  God  as  creatures ;  and  paying  of  debts 
deserveth  no  reward.     The  lawyers  tell  us,  Nemo  consequitur  prcc- 
mium,  quod  facit  ex  qfficio  debitum.     We  are  bound,  and  do  but  our 
duty  ;  but  God  is  not  bound  to  us.     All  that  the  creature  hath  and 
is,  and  can  do,  it  oweth  to  God,  and  hath  received  it  from  him  ;  and 
God  is  in  such  a  degree  of  excellency  above  us  that  he  cannot  be 
obliged.     Where  there  is  so  great  a  disparity  of  nature  and  being, 
there  is  no  common  right  to  make  him  obnoxious,  to  make  it  justice 
to  any  action  of  ours  to  reward  us.     Aristotle  denied  children  could 
requite  their  parents,  and  merit  from  them,  and  that  the  obligation  of 
merit  is  only  between  equals ;  certainly  not  between  God  and  men. 
There  was  nothing  which  bound  him  necessarily  to  reward  his  creature 
but  his  free  covenant.  Again,  that  which  merits  must  be  utile,  profitable 
to  him  from  whom  we  challenge  reward.    If  we  be  never  so  righteous, 
the  benefit  is  ours,  not  God's.     He  is  not  beholden  to  us,  useth  us  not 
out  of  indigence,  but  indulgence ;  not  as  if  he  needed  anything,  but 
we  need  his  blessing  :  Lukexix.  10,  '  When  we  have  done  all,  we  are 
unprofitable  servants  ; '  and  Ps.  xvi.  2,  '  Our  goodness  extendeth  not 
to  thee/     God  giveth  all,  receiveth  nothing  from  us.     The  beam 
oweth  all  to  the  sun,  the  sun  nothing  to  the  beam. 

2.  Because  since  the  fall  there  is  no  claiming  but  by  the  covenant 
of  grace  and  mere  mercy.      A  sinner  cannot  expect  anything  but  upon 
terms  of  mercy.     The  covenant  of  works  supposed  us  innocent  and 
holy,  and  bound  us  so  to  continue,   Gal.  iii.  20  ;  so  that  the  law 
knoweth  not  how  to  do  good  to  a  sinner.     Once  a  sinner,  and  for  ever 
miserable  ;  it  leaveth  no  room  for  repentance.     So  that  now  there  is 
no  hope  for  the  best,  according  to  the  rule  of  strict  justice,  but  only 


VER.  124.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxrx.  275 

according  to  the  law  of  mercy.  In  the  new  covenant  there  are  these 
special  differences  from  the  law  of  works.  That  there  is  not  only 
grace,  but  mercy  and  grace  too.  In  the  first  covenant  there  was  grace, 
but  no  mercy.  Grace  doth  all  things  gratis,  freely ;  but  mercy  pitieth 
the  miserable  :  therefore,  till  sin  and  misery  entered  there  could  be  no 
room  for  mercy.  There  was  grace  in  that  covenant,  for  it  was  of 
grace  that  God  did  enter  into  covenant  with  man  at  all,  and  of  grace 
that  he  did  accept  man's  perfect  obedience,  so  as  upon  performance  of 
it  to  make  him  sure  of  eternal  life.  But  now  in  the  new  covenant 
God  doth  show  mercy  and  grace  too,  and  grace  in  the  most  rich  and 
glorious  manner.  Mercy  and  grace  too  in  this  way  of  salvation,  in 
that  there  is  hope  for  a  sinner,  a  plank  cast  out  after  shipwreck  ;  and 
grace  in  the  richest  and  most  glorious  manner ;  partly  for  the  design, 
and  end  that  was  driven  at;  it  was  the  glory  of  grace:  Eph.  i.  6,  '  To 
the  praise  of  the  glory  of  his  grace ; '  and  partly  the  ground  of  it  was 
founded  upon  the  infinite  mercy  of  God  and  the  infinite  merit  of 
Christ.  The  infinite  mercy  of  God  :  Mercy  is  the  infinite  goodness  of 
God,  flowing  out  freely  to  the  creature,  without  any  moving  cause  or 
worth  on  the  creature's  part  to  expect  it :  Rom.  ix.  16,  'It  is  not  of 
him  that  willeth,  nor  of  him  that  runneth  ;  but  of  God  that  showeth 
mercy.'  And  the  infinite  merit  of  Christ:  Isa.  Iv.  3, '  I  will  make  an 
everlasting  covenant  with  you,  even  the  sure  mercies  of  David ; '  Isa. 
xlii.  6,  '  And  give  thee  for  a  covenant  to  the  people ; '  and  Isa.  xlix. 
8,  '  I  will  preserve  thee,  and  give  thee  for  a  covenant  to  the  people.' 
David,  that  is  Christ,  the  seed  of  David  ;  all  the  mercies  of  the  cove 
nant  are  exhibited  in  and  by  him,  in  whom  the  covenant  is  made  with 
us,  and  made  good  to  us,  2  Cor.  i.  20.  And  he  is  given  for  a  foun 
dation  ;  that  is,  the  foundation  of  a  new  and  better  covenant.  And 
partly  because  of  the  terms  wherein  it  is  dispensed,  which  is  not  unsin- 
ning  obedience,  but  a  sincere  owning  of  Christ,  unto  the  ends  for  which 
God  hath  appointed  him.  So  that  in  effect  a  thankful  acceptance  of  a 
free  discharge  is  all  that  we  do  for  paying  the  debt,  or  to  make  way 
for  our  acceptance  with  God:  Bom.  iv.  16,  '  Therefore  it  is  of  faith, 
that  it  might  be  of  grace  ;  to  the  end  the  promise  might  be  sure  to  all 
the  seed  ;'  and  Eph.  ii.  8,  '  Ye  are  saved  by  grace  through  faith,  and 
that  not  of  ourselves  ;  it  is  the  gift  of  God/  By  the  grace  of  faith  we 
lay  hold  upon  or  apply  to  ourselves  Christ  and  all  his  benefits ;  and 
that  faith  God  giveth  us  by  his  mere  grace,  not  exhibited  by  any  work 
of  others.  The  whole  work  of  salvation,  from  its  first  step  in  regen 
eration  to  its  last  step  in  glorification,  doth  entirely  flow  from  God's 
free  grace,  and  not  from  any  worth  in  us.  So  that  this  being  the 
end,  grounds,  terms  of  the  new  covenant  from  first  to  last,  mercy  doth 
all  on  which  our  hope  dependeth.  We  must  claim  by  mercy. 

3.  As  there  is  no  merit  in  the  best  saints,  so  there  is  much  demerit; 
and  as  there  is  nothing  to  induce  God  to  be  good  to  us,  so  there  is 
much  to  hinder  him,  much  that  standeth  in  his  way  ;  yet  God  will  do 
us  good  :  Isa.  Ivii.  17, 18,  '  I  have  seen  his  ways,  and  will  heal  him ;  I 
will  lead  him  also  and  restore  comforts  to  him.'  He  taketh  motives 
from  himself  to  pity  when  he  might  take  occasion  to  punish.  There 
are  many  sins  to  be  forgiven  both  before  and  after  conversion.  Wo 
are  not  only  undeserving,  but  ill-deserving.  It  was  much  that  God 


276  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CX1X.  [SlfiK.  CXXXVI. 

would  take  us  with  all  our  faults,  when  he  first  drew  us  into  ac 
quaintance  with  himself,  and  intrust  us  with  a  stock  of  grace ;  but 
after  he  hath  done  that,  we  still  are  faulting  and  sinning :  Born.  viii. 
1,  '  Yet  now  there  is  no  condemnation  to  them  that  are  in  Christ ; ' 
notwithstanding  the  relics  of  corruption,  and  its  breaking  out. 

4.  From  the  temper  of  the  saints,  their  humility.  None  have  such 
a  sight  and  sense  of  sin  as  they  have,  because  their  eyes  are  anointed 
with  spiritual  eyesalve.  They  have  a  clearer  insight  into  the  law  :  Jer. 
xxxi.  19,  '  After  I  was  instructed  I  smote  upon  my  thigh.'  They  are 
enlightened  by  God's  Spirit ;  the  least  mote  is  espied  in  a  glass  of 
clear  water.  None  are  so  acquainted  with  their  own  hearts  and  ways 
as  they  who  often  commune  with  their  own  hearts,  and  use  self-reflec 
tion.  Others,  that  live  carelessly,  do  not  mind  their  offences  ;  but  they 
that  set  themselves  do  more  consider  their  ways ;  none  have  a  more 
tender  sense  of  the  heinousness  of  sin.  She  loved  much,  wept  much, 
because  much  was  forgiven  her,  Luke  vii.  Some  are  of  a  more  deli 
cate  constitution ;  the  back  of  a  slave  is  not  so  sensible  of  stripes  as 
they  that  have  been  more  tenderly  brought  up.  The  beams  of  the 
sun  shining  into  a  house,  we  see  the  dust  and  motes  in  the  sunbeams, 
which  we  saw  not  before.  They  profess  as  Jacob,  I  am  net  worthy  of 
all  the  mercy  and  truth  thou  hast  showed  me.  They  groan  as  St 
Paul,  '0  wretched  man  that  I  am!  who  shall  deliver  me  from  the 
body  of  this  death  ?  ' 

Use  1.  Information.  We  learn  hence  that  we  should  not  be  dis 
couraged,  when  our  hearts  are  touched  with  a  deep  remorse  and  sense 
of  our  failings,  and  are  desirous  to  break  off  our  sins  by  repentance ; 
that  mercy  which  is  freely  vouchsafed  in  the  covenant,  which  all  God's 
servants  have  so  often  experienced,  which  the  best  make  their  only 
plea  and  ground  of  hope,  will  find  out  a  remedy  for  us.  If  you  have  a 
heart  to  give  up  yourselves  to  God's  service,  and  so  to  get  an  interest 
in  the  promises  and  blessings  of  the  covenant,  you  may  come  and 
sue  out  this  mercy,  for  God  desireth  to  exalt  his  grace.  God  saith, 
'  Return  to  the  Lord  your  God,  and  I  will  heal  your  backslidings,  and 
love  you  freely,'  Hosea  xiv.  It  is  the  delight  of  grace  to  do  good,  not 
withstanding  unworthiness.  The  worst  of  sins  do  not  hinder  God's 
help,  are  not  above  his  cure.  There  is  hope  for  such  as  are  convinced, 
and  see  no  worth  in  themselves  why  God  should  do  them  any  good. 
God  needs  not,  will  not  be  hired  by  the  creatures  to  do  it. 

Use  2.  How  inexcusable  those  are  that  reject  the  offers  of  grace. 
If  they  have  any  liking  to  the  blessings  of  the  covenant,  they  have  no 
ground  to  quarrel  and  differ  with  God  about  the  price :  Isa.  Iv.  i,  '  Ho 
every  one  that  thirsteth,  let  him  come  to  the  waters  and  drink  freely, 
without  money  and  without  price.'  You  have  no  cloak  for  your  sin 
if  you  will  not  deal  with  God  upon  these  terms.  Nothing  keepeth  you 
from  him  but  your  own  perverse  will. 

Use  3.  What  reason  there  is  the  best  of  God's  servants  should  carry 
it  thankfully  all  their  days.  From  first  to  last  the  mercy  of  God  is 
your  only  plea  and  claim.  No  flesh  hath  cause  to  glory  in  his  pre 
sence,  there  being  no  meritorious  cause  in  the  covenant  of  grace,  no 
moving  and  inducing  cause,  no  co-ordinate  working  cause  :  '  Not  for 
your  sakes  do  I  this/  Ezek.  xxxvi.  32 ;  and  in  1  Cor.  vii.  4,  it  is 


VER.  124.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  277 

said,  '  Who  maketh  thee  to  differ  ? '  We  paid  nothing  for  God's  love, 
nothing  for  Christ,  the  Son  of  his  love,  nothing  for  his  Spirit,  the  fruit 
of  his  love,  nothing  for  sanctifying  grace  and  faith,  the  effects  of  his 
Spirit  dwelling  and  working  in  our  hearts,  nothing  for  pardon ;  we 
have  all  freely;  nothing  for  daily  bread,  protection,  maintenance  ;  and 
shall  pay  nothing  for  glory,  when  we  come  to  receive  it:  Jude  21, 
4  Looking  for  the  mercy  of  God  unto  eternal  life.'  It  is  all  without  our 
merit,  and  against  merit.  We  should  regard  this  especially  when  we 
are  apt  to  say  in  our  hearts,  This  is  for  our  righteousness  ;  as  Haman 
thought  none  so  fit  for  honour  and  preferment  as  himself,  Esther  vi. 
6  ;  Haman  thought  so  in  his  heart.  So  proud-hearted,  self-conceited 
sinners  say  in  their  hearts,  God  seeth  more  in  them  than  in  others. 
Alas !  you  are  not  only  unworthy  of  Christ,  the  Spirit,  grace,  and 
glory,  but  the  air  you  breathe  in,  and  the  ground  you  tread  upon. 
What  did  the  Lord  see  in  you  to  judge  you  meet  for  such  an  estate? 
Gen.  xxxii.  10,  '  I  am  not  worthy  of  the  least  of  all  thy  mercies,  and 
all  thy  truth.'  Did  not  you  slight  grace,  neglect  Christ,  as  well  as 
others  ?  and  doth  not  sin  break  out,  and  make  a  forfeiture  every 
day  ? 

Use  4.  That  we  should  carry  it  humbly  as  well  as  thankfully.  The 
best  of  God's  children  should  most  admire  grace  arid  glorify  mercy, 
set  the  crown  on  mercy's  head.  Consider — 

1.  What  was  the  first  rise  of  all  God's  love,  what  set  all  a-stirring  in 
God's   bosom,  John  iii.  16.     There  was  no  cause  beyond  this.     In 
other  things  we  may  rise  higher,  from  his  power  and  wisdom  to  his 
love.  But  why  did  he  love  us  ?     There  is  no  other  cause  to  be  given 
— he  loved  us  because  he  loved  us.     It  was  love  first  moved  the  busi 
ness  in  the  ancient  counsel  of  God's  will.     God's  love  is  the  measure 
of  itself. 

2.  When  he  came  to  apply  it,  he  found  us  in  our  blood.     It  was  a 
great  mercy  that  God  would  take  us  into  his  service  with  all  our  faults. 
We  were  his  creatures,  but  quite  marred,  not  as  he  made  us.     We 
are  not  what  we  were  when  first  his ;  as  we  came  out  of  his  hands 
we  were  pure  and  holy,  but  since  the  fall  quite  spoiled :  Jer.  ii.  21, 
'  I  had  planted  thee  a  noble  vine,  wholly  a  right  seed  ;  how  then  art 
thou  turned  into  the  degenerate  plant  of  a  strange  vine  unto  me  ? ' 
Strangely  changed  and  altered !     If  a  servant  run  from  his  master, 
and  is  become  altogether  blind,  deformed,  and  diseased,  will  his  mas 
ter  look  after  him,  or  care  for  him,  or  take  him  again  ?     This  was  our 
case. 

3.  What  is  spoken  already  is  common  to  others ;  you  yourselves 
knew  what  you  were,  Titus  iii.  3.     Every  man  is  soundly  affected, 
more  sensible  of  his  own   case,   seeth    particular   reasons  why  God 
should  refuse  him  ;  yet  you  are  as  brands  plucked  out  of  the  burning, 
who  did  resist  such  powerful  means,  such  fair  advantages  ;  you  dallied 
with  God.    You  know  the  case  of  others  by  guess,  your  own  by  feeling. 
You  lay  not  only  in  the  common  polluted  mass,  but  had  your  par 
ticular  offences. 

4.  When  taken  in  a  fault,  that  God  will  pity  our  weakness  and 
infirmities  in  his  service  :  Mai.  iii.  17,   'I  will  spare  them  as  a  man 
spareth  his  son  that  serveth  him  ; '  that  is,  he  will  continue  his  favour 


278  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [&ER.  CXXXVI. 

and  good-will  to  them  that  serve  him.  So  surely  they  that  have  a 
conscience,  and  are  privy  to  their  manifold  infirmities  and  failings, 
will  admire  this. 

5.  Though  for  the  main  we  give  up  ourselves  to  live  according  to 
the  will  of  God,  yet  consider,  notwithstanding  our  sins,  what  constant 
humbling  considerations  there  are  to  keep  us  sensible  of  our  defects. 
(1.)  All  that  you  do  is  not  worthy  of  God.  Who  can  serve  so  great 
a  majesty  as  the  Lord  is,  according  as  he  should  be  served  ?  Josh, 
xiv.  29,  '  You  cannot  serve  the  Lord,  for  he  is  a  holy  and  a  jealous 
God/  Alas  !  such  is  the  poverty  of  human  condition,  that  they  can 
never  perform  service  becoming  his  majesty.  Have  you  a  due  sense 
of  his  purity  and  holiness  ?  Nay,  how  jealous  he  is  of  the  respects  of 
his  people !  (2.)  Not  worthy  of  such  a  pure  law,  which  requireth 
such  perfect  service  at  our  hands  :  Ps.  xix.  6-8,  '  The  law  of  the 
Lord  is  perfect,  converting  the  soul,'  &c.  What  doth  that  speculation 
produce,  that  a  short  exposition  of  the  law  begetteth  a  large  opinion 
of  our  own  righteousness  ?  (3.)  Not  worthy  such  great  hopes  :  1 
Thes.  ii.  12,  '  That  ye  walk  worthy  of  God,  who  hath  called  you  to  his 
kingdom  and  glory/  Since  we  have  such  great  wages  we  should  do 
more  work.  Is  this  for  heaven  ?  Is  this  for  eternity  ?  (4.)  Not  such 
as  will  answer  our  obligations.  We  are  indebted  to  all  the  persons  of 
the  Trinity  ;  God  himself  for  our  portion,  Christ  our  Redeemer,  the 
Spirit  for  our  guide  and  comforter.  The  Gentiles  were  greatly  obliged 
to  God  for  fruitful  seasons.  The  Jews,  though  acquainted  only  with 
God's  patience  and  forbearance,  the  ceremonial  law  was  a  testification 
of  guilt,  or  a  bond  that  showed  the  creature's  debt ;  this  bond  was 
not  cancelled.  (5.)  Not  answerable  to  the  new  nature  in  God's  chil 
dren  ;  they  would  be  in  a  state  of  perfect  conformity  and  subjection  to 
God.  A  seed  worketh  through  the  clods  ;  so  they  groan  under  the 
relics  of  corruption  and  sin,  Eom.  vii.  24,  longing  for  the  time  when 
they  shall  be  more  like  God,  when  they  shall  serve  him  without  spot 
or  blemish  ;  therefore  are  unsatisfied  with  their  present  imperfections. 
These  things  considered,  we  should  ever  keep  humble  and  thankful, 
praising  God's  grace  :  Isa.  Ixiii.  7, '  I  will  mention  the  loving-kindness 
of  the  Lord,  and  the  praises  of  the  Lord,  according  to  all  that  the 
Lord  hath  bestowed  upon  us ;  and  the  great  goodness  towards  the 
house  of  Israel  which  he  hath  bestowed  on  them,  according  to  his 
mercies,  and  the  multitude  of  his  loving-kindnesses/ 

Use  5.  Directeth  us  how  to  pray.  Cast  yourselves  at  God's  feet, 
pleading  his  mercy.  We  have  heard  the  kings  of  Israel  are  merciful 
lungs,  1  Kings  xx.  31.  You  have  heard  so  of  the  God  of  Israel ;  try 
what  mercy  will  do  for  you.  Say,  as  David  here,  '  Deal  with  thy  ser 
vant  according  to  thy  mercy/  My  prayers  have  no  other  foundation  of 
hope  but  thy  mercy;  I  am  nothing,  and  would  be  nothing,  but  what  I 
have  from  thee ;  I  have  no  merits,  but  thou  hast  mercy ;  all  that  I 
have,  and  expect  to  have,  floweth  and  must  flow  from  this  fountain. 
Take  heed  of  challenging  duty  as  a  debt.  No,  Lord ;  thy  mercy  is 
all  my  plea ;  as  all  thy  servants  before  have  done :  Lord,  remember 
me  in  thy  mercy ;  if  any  have  other  things  to  plead,  let  them  plead ; 
I  am  resolved  to  use  no  other  plea :  Ps.  xiii.  5,  '  But  I  have  trusted  in 
thy  mercy/ 


VER.  124.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  279 

Second  branch,  teach  me  tliy  statutes.     This  may  be  considered 
apart  by  itself,  or  with  respect  to  the  context. 

First,  Apart,  as  an  entire  prayer  in  itself.     So  the  doctrine  is, — 
Doct.  It  is  God  must  teach  us  his  statutes. 
This  will  appear  if  we  consider — 

1.  What  it  is  to  be  taught  of  God.     There  is  a  difference  between 
grammatical  knowledge  and  spiritual  illumination,  or  a  literal  instruc 
tion  and  a  spiritual  instruction ;  a  greater  difference  than  there  is 
between  teaching  a  child  to  spell  and  read  the  words,  and  a  man  to 
understand  the  sense.     Literal  instruction  is  when  we  learn  the  truths 
contained  in  the  word  by  rote,  and  talk  one  after  another  of  divine 
things.     But  spiritual  illumination  is  when  these  things  are  revealed 
to  us  by  the  Spirit  of'  God ;  as  we  read  of  the  evidence  and  demon 
stration  of  the  Spirit,  1  Cor.  ii.  4.     Others  have  a  form  of  knowledge, 
Rom.  ii.  20.     Some  have  only  the  report  of  Christ,  have  but  a  human 
credulity,  or  the  recommendation  of  others,  that  reveal  the  doctrine  of 
God  to  them.     Others  receive  a  revelation  made  to  their  souls ;  their 
eyes  are  opened  by  the  Spirit,  Isa.  liii.  1.     Once  more,  there  is  a 
difference  between  the  Spirit's  enlightening  in  a  way  of  gifts  and 
common  grace,  and  his  enlightening  in  a  way  of  special  «nd  saving 
grace.     Some  that  are  enlightened  by  the  Spirit  fall  away,  Heb.  vi.  4. 
Others  are  taught  of  God,  so  as  to  come  to  him  by  Christ,  John  vi.  45. 
This  latter  sort,  that  are  savingly  enlightened,  have  not  only  their 
minds  opened,  but  their  hearts  inclined.     So  to  be  taught  as  to  be 
drawn  to  faith  and  practice,  this  is  proper  to  God,  who  is  the  sove 
reign  dispenser  of  grace. 

2.  This  will  appear  if  we  consider  Ihe  heart  of  man,  which  is  natu 
rally  full  of  darkness,  arid  oppressed  by  the  prejudices  of  customs  and 
evil  habits :  1  Cor.  ii.  14,  '  But  the  natural  man  receiveth  not  the 
things  of  God ;'  2  Cor.  iv.  4,  '  The  god  of  this  world  hath  blinded 
their  eyes.'     This  veil  can  only  be  removed  by  the  Spirit  of  God. 
After  grace  received  we  know  but  in  part,  1  Cor.  xiii.  9,  and  much  of 
the  matter  which  beclouded  the  mind  still  remairieth  with  us  ;  and  when 
our  lusts  are  awakened  by  temptations,  our  old  blindness  returneth 
upon  us,  and  we  strangely  forget  ourselves  and  our  duty  for  the  pre 
sent.     Therefore  we  have  need  to  go  to  God  to  be  taught :  2  Peter 
i.  9,  *  He  that  wanteth  these  things  is  blind,  and  cannot  see  afar  off.' 

3.  If  we  consider  the  matter  to  be  taught,  it  is  the  mysterious  doc 
trine  that  came  out  of  the  bosom  of  God.     Every  art  hath  its  mystery, 
which  strangers  cannot  judge  of :  1  Tim.  iii.  16,  '  All  scripture  is  given 
by  inspiration.'     This  was  a  secret  which  had  not  been  known  without 
a  revelation.     God  hath  his  mysteries  which  no  man  knoweth,  but  by 
the  Spirit  of  God  :  Mat.  xiii.  11,  '  To  you  it  is  given  to  know  the 
mysteries  of  the  kingdom  of  heaven;  but  to  them  it  is  not  given/ 
Those  that  have  scriptures,  yet  have  scales  on  their  eyes,  1  Cor.  ii.  14, 
they  have  not  saving  knowledge.     How  sharp-sighted  soever  graceless 
souls  may  be  in  things  that  concern  the  present  world,  yet  they  are 
blind  in  spiritual  things,  so  as  to  be  affected  and  engaged  thereby 
seriously  to  turn  to  God.     Yea,  how  accurately  soever  they  can  dis 
course  in  the  theory,  and  preach  of  Christ  and  his  ways,  yet  they  have 
no  transforming  light.     God's  mysteries  must  be  seen  in  his  own  light, 


280  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CX1X.  [$ER.  CXXXVI. 

or  they  make  no  impression  upon  us :  Ps.  xxxvi.  9,  '  In  thy  light  we 
shall  see  light/  The  scriptures  containing  the  sum  of  the  Lord's 
mind,  none  can  of  themselves  attain  to  the  meaning  of  them ;  it  was 
not  the  device  of  man's  brain.  So  none  understand  by  their  proper 
skill  and  invention.  There  are  such  knots  as  cannot  be  untied  and 
loosed,  but  by  imploring  the  help  of  the  Spirit. 

Use  1.  To  press  us  to  be  often  with  God  for  this  teaching,  and  make 
it  our  great  request  to  him.  A  gracious  heart  would  fain  learn  the 
right  way  to  heaven :  Ps.  xliii.  3,  '  0  send  out  thy  light  and  thy  truth.' 
Direction  how  to  carry  ourselves  is  a  great  blessing. 

2.  The  blindness  of  our  understandings  should  make  us  more  earnest 
with  God.     We  are  apt  to  mistake  our  way,  through  the  natural 
weakness  of  our  understandings,  especially  when  lusts  and  interests 
interpose :  Jer.  x.  23,  '  Lord,  the  way  of  man  is  not  in  himself ;  it  is 
not  in  man  that  walketh  to  direct  his  steps.'     As  man  understandeth 
not  events,  so  easily  mistaketh  present  duties. 

3.  Our  present  estate.     The  world  is  a  dark  place,  2  Peter  i.  19; 
compared  with  the  light  of  glory,  it  is  but  like  a  light  that  shineth  out 
of  a  room  where  a  candle  is,  and  a  room  where  a  candle  is  not  seen, 
the  glimmerings  of  the  antichamber  of  eternity.     Our  own  reason,  the 
counsel  and  example  of  others,  will  easily  misguide  us.     So  the  more 
we  depend  upon  God,  the  more  he  will  undertake  to  teach  us,  Prov. 
v.  6.     Those  that  make  their  own  bosoms  their  oracle,  God  is  dis 
engaged  from  being  their  guide  :  they  need  him  not ;  but  the  snares 
they  run  into  will  soon  show  them  how  much  they  need  him. 

4.  How  unapt  we  are  to  see  conclusions  in  the  promises,  and  to 
apply  general  rules  to  particular  cases  and  times;  which  most  Chris 
tians  cannot  do,  eV  SiaXoyia-fjiols  avrwv,  in  their  inferences  :  Rom.  i.  21, 
*  Are  vain  in  their  imaginations,  have  their  foolish  hearts  darkened.' 

5.  To  bind  all  upon  the  heart,  and  to  lie  under  the  conscience  of  our 
duty,  maketh  the  difficulty  the  greater ;  many  imprison  the  truth  in 
unrighteousness.     Well,  then,  beg  the  constant  direction  and  illumi 
nation  of  God's  Holy  Spirit ;  cast  yourselves  upon  him  in  the  sense  of 
your  weakness,  and  see  if  he  will  refuse  you ;  say,  I  am  blind  and 
ignorant;  Lord,  guide  me.     It  is  dangerous  to  be  left  in  any  part  of 
our  duty  to  ourselves. 

Secondly,  If  we  consider  the  words  with  respect  to  the  context. 
And  first  the  remoter  context,  where  David  speaketh  like  a  man  under 
trouble  and  oppression,  ver.  121. 122,  '  Let  not  the  proud  oppress  me,' 
&c.  Lord,  show  me  what  to  do  in  this  time  of  nrv  oppression. 

Doct.  Direction  how  to  carry  ourselves  in  trouble,  till  the  deliver 
ance  cometh,  is  a  great  mercy,  arid  should  be  earnestly  sought  of  God. 

Reason  1.  From  the  parties  oppressing.  They  that  oppress  watch 
for  our  halting,  as  Jeremiah  complained,  Jer.  xx.  10.  They  accused 
the  prophet  unto  the  ruler,  and  so  to  work  his  ruin,  if  they  could  find 
him  tripping  in  anything.  Now  when  we  are  watched  we  need  special 
direction,  that  God  would  teach  us  to  walk  warily  and  safely  :  Ps. 
xxvii.  11,  '  Teach  me  thy  way,  0  Lord,  and  lead  me  in  a  plain  path, 
because  of  mine  enemies ;  or,  those  which  observe  me,  they  watch  to 
get  some  advantage :  therefore  that  they  may  have  no  advantage 
against  us,  we  should  not  trust  to  our  own  single  wisdom. 


VER.  124.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  281 

Reason  2.  Because  the  danger  of  sin  is  a  greater  inconvenience  than 
the  danger  of  trouble.  In  times  of  trials  and  troubles  we  are  in  danger 
of  soul-losing  and  sinning,  as  well  as  bodily  danger  ;  therefore  we  have 
need  to  beg  wisdom  of  God  to  carry  it  well  under  trouble,  because  we 
are  so  apt  to  miscarry,  unless  God  guide  us  continually  in  our  dark 
condition,  and  take  us  by  the  hand,  and  help  us  over  our  stumbling- 
blocks.  There  are  many  sins  incident  to  our  condition. 

1.  Uncomely  passion  and  unadvised    speeches ;    therefore    David 
prayeth  in  his  trouble,  Ps.  cxli.  3,  '  Set  a  watch  before  my  mouth,  keep 
the  door  of  my  lips.'     In  our  oppression,  we  are  under  a  temptation  to 
hurt  our  own  cause  by  unadvised  and  passionate  speeches.     When  we 
have  too  great  a  sense  of  the  temptation,  something  or  other  breaketh 
out  to  God's  dishonour. 

2.  Some  indirect  course  to  come  out  of  trouble,  Ps.  cxxv.  3.     Men 
that  make  haste  out  of  trouble  carve  for  themselves,  break  prison  before 
they  are  brought  out.     Necessity  is  an  ill  counsellor,  and  will  soon 
tempt  us  to  some  evil  way  for  our  own  ease,  some  sinful  compliance  or 
confederacy.     The  devil  tempted  Christ  when  he  was  an  hungry.  Mat. 
iv.  3,  hoping  to  work  upon  his  necessity. 

3.  Private  revenge,  or  meeting  injury  with  injuries.     We  are  apt  to 
retaliate  :  2  Sam.  xvi.  9,  '  Why  should  this  dead  dog  curse  my  lord  the 
king  ?  let  me  go  over,  I  pray  thee,  and  take  off  his  head.'     Kevenge 
is  soon  up.     No  man  is  troubled  if  a  shower  of  rain  falleth  upon  us  ; 
but  if  any  cast  a  bucket  or  bason  of  water  upon  us,  we  are  in  a  rage 
presently.     We  can  better  bear  any  trouble  from  God  than  injuries 
from  men  :  '  Oppression  maketh  a  wise  man  mad.'     A  revengeful  spirit 
is  contrary  to  our  heavenly  calling. 

4.  Waxing  weary  of  our  duty,  and  quite  tired  and  discouraged  in 
God's  service :  Heb.  xii.  3,  '  Consider  him  that  endured  such  contra 
diction  of  sinners,  lest  you  be  weary  and  faint  in  }7our  minds/    Weari 
ness  and  fainting  belong  properly  to  the  body,  and  they  differ  gradually. 
Weariness  is  a  lesser,  and  tainting  a  higher  degree  of  deficiency ;  as 
when  a  man  laboureth,  hungers,  or  travelleth,  it  abateth  his  strength, 
and  abateth  the  active  powers,  or  toileth  the  spirits,  the  principle  of 
motion.     And  from  the  body  it  is  translated  to  the  mind,  to  a  less  or 
higher  degree  of  defection  ;  arid  it  is  thus,  when  troubles  are  many  and 
long  continued,  we  begin  to  grow  faint,  and  wax  weary  of  the  faith  and 
service  of  Christ,  and  sink  under  the  burden.     It  is  the  Devil's  design 
to  make  us  weary,  and  tire  us  out  in  the  service  of  God. 

5.  Another  evil  is  despairing  and  distrustful  thoughts  of  God. 
David,  after  all  his  experiences  of  God,  though  he  had  conducted  him 
up  and  down  :  1  Sam.  xxvii.  1,  '  I  shall  one  day  perish  by  the  hand  of 
Saul.'     He  had  a  particular  promise  and  assurance  of  the  kingdom, 
and  had  seen  much  of  God's  care  over  him ;  yet,  after  all  this,  David 
doubteth  of  the  word  of  God  :  Ps.  xxx.i.  22,  '  1  said  in  my  haste,  I  am 
cut  off  from  before  thine  eyes ;  nevertheless  thoti  heardest  me.'     As  if 
he  should  say,  God  hath  no  care  of  me,  nor  thoughts  of  me;  and  at 
that  instant  deliverance  was  coming. 

6.  Questioning  our  interest  in  God  by  reason  of  the  cross.     Our 
Lord  hath  taught  us  to  say, '  My  God,  my  God/  in  the  bitterest  agonies 
when  he  was  upon  the  cross  ;" but  few  learn  this  lesson:  Judges  vi. 


282  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXXXVI. 

23,  '  If  God  be  with  us,  why  hath  all  this  evil  befallen  us  ?  '  Some 
times  we  question  the  love  of  God  because  we  have  no  affliction,  and 
anon  because  we  have  nothing  but  affliction ;  as  if  God  were  not  the 
God  of  the  valleys  as  well  as  of  the  mountains.  Well,  then,  seeing  all 
these  distempers  are  incident  to  an  afflicted  estate,  we  should  the  more 
carefully  watch  against  them. 

Reason  3.  Because  our  enemies  make  a  great  advantage  of  our  fail 
ings,  and  harden  themselves  in  their  prejudices  if  we  carry  not  a  holy 
good  cause  in  a  holy  religious  way,  and  will  take  the  least  occasion  given 
from  a  questionable  practice  to  slander  the  truth :  Neh.  v.  9,  '  Ought 
you  not  to  walk  in  the  fear  of  our  God,  because  of  the  reproach  of  the 
heathen  our  enemies  ? '  If  you  should  trip  in  anything,  you  shall  soon 
hear  of  it,  to  the  reproach  of  religion  A  holy  and  wise  carriage  in 
afflictions  is  very  honourable  to  the  gospel,  otherwise  your  testimony 
is  rejected  and  blasted. 

Use.  Well,  then,  desire  the  Lord  to  guide  thee  in  all  thy  troubles ; 
yea,  if  God  doth  guide  you.  let  this  satisfy  you  before  the  deliverance 
corneth  about.  It  is  a  mercy  if  you  have  direction,  though  you  have 
not  deliverance  ;  for  a  godly  man  should  not  so  much  regard  the  ease 
of  the  flesh  as  the  performance  of  his  duty  to  God.  If  you  carry  your 
cross  regularly  with  faith  and  patience,  God  may  have  more  honour 
and  you  more  profit  by  your  affliction  than  your  deliverance.  Yea,  to 
be  instructed  in  the  word,  and  be  taught  your  duty,  is  in  itself  a 
greater  mercy  than  a  deliverance :  Ps.  xciv.  12,  '  Blessed  is  the  man 
whom  thou  chastenest,  and  teachest  him  out  of  thy  law/  It  is  a 
blessed  thing,  yea,  it  is  a  deliverance  itself ;  for  it  delivereth  you  from, 
the  spiritual  evil  of  the  rod,  which  is  the  curse.  Suffering  doth  not 
come  as  a  curse  when  instruction  goeth  along  with  it ;  yea,  it  is  the 
means  of  our  great  deliverance  from  the  present  evil  world,  1  Cor.  xi. 
32,  as  it  is  a  pledge  of  our  future  deliverance  in  due  time ;  for  God  is 
not  unmindful  of  us,  arid  will  not  leave  us  without  the  conduct  of  his 
Spirit, 

Secondly,  To  handle  the  words  with  respect  to  the  nearer  context  in 
ver.  123,  '  Mine  eyes  fail  for  thy  salvation/  This  teaching  is  begged 
after  he  had  complained  of  the  delay  of  the  promises,  and  so  implicitly 
he  complaineth  not  of  the  falsity  of  the  word,  or  the  non-performance 
of  the  promise,  but  of  the  weakness  of  his  own  faith. 

Duct.  When  the  Lord  suspends  the  promised  deliverance,  the  godly 
suspect  not  the  truth  of  his  word,  but  the  darkness  of  their  own  unbe 
lieving  hearts. 

They  think  this  failing  is  because  they  are  no  more  enlightened  ; 
they  are  dull  in  conceiving,  and  misty  and  cloudy  in  their  apprehen 
sions,  and  therefore  would  have  a  clearer  understanding  of  the  promise 
and  a  more  quick-sighted  faith  ;  or  have  failed  in  the  performance  of 
the  condition  required,  therefore  desire  that  God  would  teach  them 
and  show  them  their  errors,  and  cause  them  to  profit  in  sanctification. 
Thus  should  we  do  in  like  cases  when  there  is  a  seeming  contradiction 
between  the  word  and  the  works  of  God,  betwixt  his  promises  and  his 
providence  about  us.  His  voice  is  sweet,  like  Jacob's,  but  his  hands 
rough,  like  Esau's.  Do  not  suspect  the  promise,  but  your  understand 
ing  ;  go  into  the  sanctuary,  Ps,  Ixxiii.  16,  17.  God  will  help  you  to 


VER.  124.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  283 

reconcile  things ;  otherwise  the  difficulty  will  be  too  hard  for  you. 
The  saints  that  have  suspected  or  distrusted  God  have  found  them 
selves  in  an  error,  Isa.  xlix.  14,  15  and  Ps.  Ixxvii.  8-10.  (1.)  You 
must  not  interpret  God's  promise  by  his  providence,  but  his  providence 
by  his  promise ;  and  the  promise  is  the  light  side,  and  providence  the 
dark  side  of  the  cloud :  Isa.  xlv.  15,  '  Thou  hidest  thyself,  0  God  of 
Israel,  the  Saviour;'  Ps.  Ixxvii.  19,  'Thy  way  is  in  the  sea,  and  thy 
path  in  the  great  waters,  and  thy  footsteps  are  not  known/  We  can 
not  trace  him  ;  a  man  cannot  find  out  the  reason  of  everything  that 
God  doth.  (2.)  You  must  distinguish  between  a  part  of  God's  work 
and  the  end  of  it.  We  cannot  understand  God's  providence  till  he 
hath  done  his  work.  In  the  last  act  of  the  comedy  all  the  errors  are 
reconciled.  Tarry  till  then  :  Zech.  xiv.  7,  '  At  evening  it  shall  be 
light/  We  view  providence  by  pieces,  and  we  know  not  what  God  is 
a-doing,  rending  and  tearing  all  in  pieces.  But  view  God's  work  in 
its  whole  frame  and  contexture,  and  it  will  appear  beautiful.  (3.)  We 
must  distinguish  between  what  is  best  for  us  and  what  we  judge  is  best 
for  11  s  :  Deut.  viii.  15, 16,  '  Who  led  thee  through  the  great  and  terrible 
wilderness,  wherein  were  fiery  serpents,  and  scorpions,  and  drought, 
where  there  was  no  water ;  who  brought  thee  forth  water  out  of  the 
rock ;  who  fed  thee  in  the  wilderness  with  manna,  which  thy  fathers 
knew  not ;  that  he  might  humble  thee,  and  prove  thee,  to  do  thee 
good  at  the  latter  end/  Other  diet  is  more  wholesome  for  our  souls 
than  our  sick  appetite  craveth.  It  is  best  with  us  many  times  when 
we  are  weakest :  2  Cor.  xii.  10,  '  When  I  am  weak,  then  am  I  strong;' 
worst,  when  strongest :  2  Ohron.  xxvi.  16,  '  When  he  was  strong,  his 
heart  was  lifted  up  to  his  own  destruction/  Many  times  the  buffetings 
of  Satan  are  better  for  us  than  a  condition  free  from  temptations  ;  so 
is  poverty  and  emptiness  better  than  fulness.  (4.)  We  must  distin 
guish  between  what  things  are  in  themselves,  and  what  in  their  reduc 
tion,  use,  and  tendency.  All  things  are  for  a  believer  in  their  use, 
though  they  may  be  against  him  in  their  nature,  1  Cor.  iii.  18-20,  and 
Horn.  viii.  28.  '  All  things  shall  work  together  for  good  to  them  that 
love  God/  All  their  crosses,  yea,  sometimes  their  sins  and  snares,  God 
will  overrule  them  for  good,  and  the  work  of  grace  sometimes  goeth 
back  that  it  may  go  forward.  Many  such  cases  there  are  which  look 
like  a  contradiction,  which  we  shall  not  know  what  to  make  of  them, 
unless  we  bring  it  to  Christ,  an  interpreter,  one  of  a  thousand.  But 
take  heed  in  these  confusions  and  tossings  of  thy  soul  how  thou  re- 
flectest  on  God ;  a  little  experience  will  confute  thy  prejudices. 

Thirdly,  With  respect  to  the  nearest  context,  the  former  clause  of 
this  verse.  After  an  appeal  to  the  covenant  of  grace,  or  a  petition  for 
mercy,  he  asketh  direction  to  keep  the  law. 

Doct.  They  that  would  have  mercy  by  the  covenant  must  be  earnest 
to  be  taught  God's  statutes. 

Mercy  and  teaching  are  David's  two  great  requests  throughout  this 
and  other  psalms. 

Reason  1.  The  moral  obligation  of  the  law  still  lieth  on  God's 
servants,  that  are  taken  into  the  covenant  of  grace.  There  is  an 
eternal  obligation  upon  the  creature  to  love  and  serve  the  creator, 
which  cannot  be  dissolved.  We  are  not  redeemed  from  the  service  of 


284  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiR.  CXXXVI. 

the  law  by  Christ,  hut  the  curse  of  the  law :  Luke  i.  74,  75,  '  Being; 
delivered  from  the  hands  of  our  enemies,  that  we  might  serve  God  iu 
holiness  and  righteousness  before  him  all  our  days/  The  end  of  our 
redemption  was  not  to  destroy  our  service  according  to  the  law,  but  to- 
fit  arid  enable  us  to  perform  it  according  to  the  image  of  God  restored 
in  us,  Eph.  iv.  24.  The  new  man  is  created  to  restore  in  some 
measure  those  abilities  we  lost  in  Adam.  God  never  yet  gave  man  a, 
liberty  to  be  free  from  the  obligation  of  the  moral  law.  He  would 
not  pardon  any  sin  against  it  without  satisfaction  made  by  Christ,  and 
believed  and  pleaded  by  sinful  man.  Christ  merited,  and  God  re 
stored  the  spirit  of  sanctification,  that  men  might  keep  it.  He  will 
not  spare  his  own  children,  when  they  transgress  against  it  by  heinous 
and  scandalous  sins,  as  to  temporal  punishments:  Prov.  xi.  31,  '  The 
righteous  man  shall  be  .recompensed  upon  earth  ;  much  more  the 
wicked  and  the  sinner-/  Ps.  xxx.  31,  David  and  Eli  both  smarted  for 
their  sins.  No  man  hath  interest  in  Christ  unless  he  return  to  the 
obedience  of  this  law:  1  Cor.  ix.  21,  '  To  them  that  are  without  law, 
as  without  law  (being  not  without  law  to  God,  but  under  the  law 
to  Christ),  that  I  might  gain  them  that  are  without  law;'  Rom.  viii. 
1,  2,  'There  is  therefore  now  no  condemnation  to  them  that  are  in 
Christ  Jesus,  who  walk  not  after  the  flesh,  but  after  the  spirit:  for 
the  law  of  the  spirit  of  life  in  Christ  Jesus  hath  made  me  free  from 
the  law  of  sin  and  death.'  No  interest  in  mercy  else:  Gal.  vi.  16, 
'  As  many  as  walk  according  to  this  rule,  peace  and  mercy  be  upon 
them.'  We  cannot  have  full  communion  with  God  till  we  perfectly 
obey  it:  Eph..v.  27,  '  That  he  might  present  it  to  himself  a  glorious 
church,  not  having  spot  or  wrinkle,  or  any  such  thing,  but  it  should 
be  holy  and  without  blemish.' 

Reason  2.  The  great  privilege  of  the  covenant  of  grace  is  to  be 
taught  God's  statutes,  or  to  have  a  real  impress  of  them  upon  the  heart 
and  mind,  which  is  the  way  of  divine  teaching :  Heb.  viii.  10,  '  For 
this  is  the  covenant  that  I  will  make  with  the  house  of  Israel  in  those 
days,  saith  the  Lord  ;  I  will  put  my  laws  into  their  minds,  and  write 
them  in  their  hearts  ;  and  I  will  be  to  them  a  God,  and  they  shall  be 
to  me  a  people/  He  will  cure  us  of  our  wickedness,  weakness,  and 
carelessness,  and  enable  us  to  keep  his  law ;  it  is  God's  undertaking 
to  do  so,  and  that  out  of  free  grace  and  favour,  for  he  is  not  in 
debted  to  us  ;  it  is  to  give  us  knowledge  of  them,  and  power  to  keep 
them.  Much  of  the  law  natural  cannot  be  severed  from  it,  and  that  is 
the  reason  why  the  heathens  have  the  law  written  upon  their  hearts, 
Bom.  ii.  15 ;  but  the  writing  is  very  imperfect,  both  as  to  knowledge 
and  power  to  keep  it.  God  will  imprint  them  more  perfectly  ;  this  is 
the  true  notion  of  the  law.  By  the  mind  is  meant  understanding,  by 
the  heart  the  rational  appetite.  In  the  mind  is  the  directive  counsel ; 
in  the  will  the  imperial  and  commanding  power.  There  is  the  prime 
mover  of  all  human  actions ;  he  giveth  an  apprehensive  and  percep 
tive  power,  whereby  we  apprehend  things  more  clearly,  and  effectually 
desire  and  affect  spiritual  delights. 

Use  1.  To  refute  the  claim  of  them  that  would  plead  mercy,  but 
would  still  go  on  in  their  own  ways,  blessing  themselves  in  their  sins. 
Till  our  hearts  and  minds  are  suited  to  God's  law  by  a  permanent 


VER.  125.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  285 

tincture  of  holiness,  we  are  not  fit  subjects  to  ask  mercy  and  the 
promises  of  the  covenant. 

Use  2.  If  we  would  have  this  effect,  we  must  go  to  God,  who  alone 
can  work  upon  the  immortal  soul,  to  reform,  mould,  or  alter  it.  A 
new  man  or  angel  cannot  do  it ;  they  may  by  sense  and  fancy  teach 
him  many  things  ;  but  to  make  these  lively  impressions  must  be  the 
work  of  the  Spirit. 


SEEMON  CXXXVIL 

/  am  thy  servant ;  give  me  understanding,  that  I  may  knoiv  thy 
testimonies. — VER.  125. 

IN  this  verse  he  repeateth  his  plea  and  request  also.  In  the  former 
verse  he  mentioneth  the  relation  of  a  servant,  and  prayeth,  '  Teach  me 
thy  statutes.'  And  here  again — (1.)  Asserteth  his  relation  to  God, 
*  1  am  thy  servant.'  (2.)  Beneweth  his  request,  '  Give  me  under 
standing/  (3.)  The  fruit  and  effect  of  the  grant,  '  That  I  may  know 
thy  testimonies  ; '  or,  Then  I  shall  know. 

First,  This  repetition  hath  its  use.  This  repeating  his  relation  to 
God  showeth  that  where  the  conscience  of  our  dedication  to  God,  and 
our  endeavours  to  serve  him,  is  clear  and  sincere,  we  should  not  easily 
quit  our  claim.  Deal  with  thy  servant  in  mercy ;  yea,  Lord,  I  am 
thy  servant :  I  have  my  failings  ;  but,  Lord,  it  is  in  my.  heart  to  serve 
thee  ;  I  can  and  will  avow  it  as  long  as  I  live.  Our  defects  and 
disallowed  failings  do  not  deprive  us  of  the  title  of  being  God's  servants; 
we  may  take  comfort  in  it,  and  assert  our  interest  in  the  promises  as 
long  as  we  delight  to  do  his  will.  And  though  unbelief  opposeth  our 
claim,  we  must  remove  it  in  the  face  of  all  objections.  Christ  puts 
Peter  to  a  threefold  assertion  of  his  love  to  him,  John  xxi.  It  is 
supposed  we  do  not  lie,  in  these  redoubled  professions  of  our  respect 
and  service  to  God. 

Secondly,  This  renewing  his  request  showeth  his  earnestness  to 
increase  in  spiritual  understanding.  Savoury  and  powerful  knowledge 
of  divine  things  is  in  itself  so  excellent  a  benefit,  and  our  necessity  of 
it  is  so  great,  that  we  cannot  enough  pray  for  it.  Only  observe,  that 
in  the  former  verse,  the  notion  was  statutes,  here  testimonies.  Statutes 
are  that  part  of  God's  word  which  we  should  obey ;  testimonies  that 
part  which  we  should  believe,  viz.,  the  promises.  But  this  may  be 
too  critical,  the  words  being  taken  in  this  psalm  in  a  greater  latitude. 

Doct.  That  it  is  a  good  plea,  when  we  want  any  mercy,  spiritual  or 
temporal,  to  be  able  to  plead  that  we  are  God's  servants. 

1.  That  there  are  a  sort  of  people,  that  in  a  peculiar  manner  are 
God's  servants. 

2.  These  may  plead  it  when  they  want  any  mercy,  spiritual  or 
temporal. 

First,  That  some  are  in  a  peculiar  manner  God's  servants.  The 
saints  of  God  are  so  called;  it  was  Moses'  honour:  'They  sung  the 
yong  of  Moses,  the  servant  of  the  Lord.'  So  Josh.  i.  1, '  Now  after  the 


286  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.         [SER.  CXXXVII. 

death  of  Moses,  the  servant  of  the  Lord.'  So  Paul  asserts  it  of  him 
self  :  Acts  xxvii.  23,  '  The  God,  whose  I  am,  and  whom  I  serve/ 
Here  is  a  true  description  of  a  Christian  man  ;  he  is  God's,  and  serveth 
God ;  he  is  God's  by  special  appropriation  and  communion  with  God. 
He  serveth  God,  that  is,  walketh  answerable  to  his  relation,  and  is 
ever  about  God's  work.  Elsewhere  he  describeth  himself  by  his 
service :  Rom.  i.  9,  *  My  God,  whom  I  serve  in  my  spirit ; '  1  Tim.  i. 
3,  '  God,  whom  I  serve  with  a  pure  conscience/  But  to  know  who 
in  a  peculiar  manner  are  God's  servants,  we  must  distinguish — 

1.  God  is  served  actively  and  passively — by  necessity  of  nature,  or 
voluntary  choice.       Passively,  by  necessity  of  nature,  all  creatures, 
even  the  inanimate,  are  his  servants:  Ps.  cxix.  91,  'They  continue 
this  day  according  to  thine  ordinances,  for  all  are  thy  servants.'     But 
actively,  to  serve  him  out  of  duty  and  choice ;  so  do  only  men  and 
angels,  who  were  made  immediately  for  his  service ;  the  brute  and 
inanimate  creatures  only  ultimately  and  terminatively.     They  have  a 
principle  in  their  nature  to  incline  them  to  it,  are  not  only  overruled 
so  to  do  by  the  conduct  of  general  providence.     The  water  that  driveth 
a  mill  serveth  my  purpose,  but  otherwise  than  the  miller  or  overseer 
of  the  work.     Fire  and  water  is  my  servant,  much  more  he. 

2.  We  must  distinguish  between  those  who  are  God's  servants  de 
jure,  of  right,  and  those  who  are  so  de  facto,  in  deed — servants  of 
right,  and  actually  his  servants.      De  jure  all  men  are  God's  ser 
vants;  God  made  them  for  himself,  Prov.  xvi.  4,  and  Christ  bought 
them  for  himself  :  Rom.  xiv.   9,  *  For  to  this  end  Christ  both  died 
and  rose  again,  and  revived,  that  he  might  be  Lord  both  of  the  dead 
and  living.'     He  is  Sec-won^,  a  Lord  and  master,  where  he  is  not 
Kvpios,  a  covenant  redeemer  and  Saviour  :  2  Peter  ii.  1,  '  They  deny 
the  Lord  that  bought  them,'  ayopdaavra,  a  master  that  bought  them 
for  service,  and  may  challenge  a  right  and  interest  in  them,  having 
shed  his  blood  for  mankind.     But  de  facto  those  are  God's  servants 
who  yield  themselves  up  to  God's  dominion,  to  serve  and  please  him 
in  all  things  with  cheerfulness  and  consent.     The  covenant  is  repre 
sented  under  divers  notions ;  as  a  covenant  of  friendship :  James  ii. 
23,  'Abraham  was   called  the  friend  of  God;'  as  a  conjugal  cove 
nant  :  Hosea  ii.  19,  20,  '  I  will  betroth  thee  to  me ; '  as  a  covenant 
between  king  and  subjects :  Isa.  xxxiii.  22 ;  as  a  covenant  bet/ween 
master  and  servants,  Isa.  Ivi.  6,  that  take  hold  of  his  covenant,  and 
join  themselves  to  the  Lord   to  be  his  servants.     The  two  former 
notions  imply  the  sociableness  and  intimacy  we  have  with  God  in  tho 
covenant ;  the  two  latter  our  inferiority  and  subjection.     Both  must 
be  minded,  that  as  on  the  one  side  we  be  not  slavish  and  under  bond 
age,  so,  on  the  other,  we  may  not  behave  ourselves  too  fellow-like 
with  God.      We  are  such  servants  as  are  also  friends,  yea,  as  sons ; 
yea,  his  spouse.     The  end  of  joining  ourselves  to  the  Lord  is  not  to 
be  partners  with  him,  but  servants  to  him. 

3.  Some  are  servants  by  visible  profession  and  baptismal  engage 
ment  ;  others  really  and  indeed,  by  conversion  to  God,  or  an  actual 
'giving  up  of  themselves  to  his  use  and  service.     By  baptism  we  are 
professed  servants  and  subjects  to  the  God  of  heaven,  bound  to  be  so ; 
for  it  is  the  seal  of  that  covenant  of  service  I  spake  of  before,  and  so 


VER.  125.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  287 

bindeth  our  service  in  it.  We  renounce  the  devil,  the  world,  and  the 
flesh,  and  dedicate  ourselves  to  the  Lord.  Justin  Martyr  saith,  They 
did  dvaOe/jLari^eiv  eavToi>$  r<a  6eu> ;  and  Ezek.  xvi.  8,  '  And  entered 
into  a  covenant  with  thee,  saith  the  Lord  God,  and  thou  becamesfc 
mine; '  1  Peter  iii.  21,  '  The  like  figure  whereunto  even  baptism  doth 
now  save  us,  not  the  putting  away  the  filth  of  the  flesh,  but  the 
answer  of  a  good  conscience  towards  God.'  By  profession,  all  bap 
tized  persons  are  God's  servants ;  but  in  reality  all  converted  persons 
are  so,  that  are  turned  from  idols  to  serve  the  living  God,  1  Thes.  i.  9. 
Without  this,  Christ  will  riot  be  contented  with  an  outside  acquaint 
ance  and  the  flattery  of  empty  titles,  but  will  the  more  challenge  us 
by  virtue  of  our  profession  :  Mai.  i.  6,  '  If  I  be  a  father,  where  is 
mine  honour  ?  if  1  be  a  master,  where  is  my  fear  ?  '  Gid  res  subjecta 
nomini  negatur,  is  nomine  illuditur.  It  was  no  honour  to  Christ, 
but  a  mere  mockery,  to  be  called  King  of  the  Jews,  whilst  they  buf 
feted  Christ  and  spat  upon  him.  If  God  be  a  master,  he  will  have 
the  honour,  fear,  and  obedience  that  belongeth  to  a  master,  that  we 
should  be  afraid  to  offend  him. 

4.  There  are  some  that  are  servants  by  general  relation,  to  distin 
guish  persons,  and  some  by  way  of  special  attendance.  A  servant  in 
general  relation  is  every  Christian  ;  servants  by  specicil  attendance  are 
either  angels,  and  they  are  called  his  ministers,  Ps.  ciii.  21,  as  being 
in  near  and  special  attendance  about  their  master's  person,  courtiers  of 
heaven,  most  in  grace  and  favour  with  God.  A  man  may  have  one 
to  do  his  business,  that  yet  hath  not  one  to  attend  his  person.  Among 
men,  the  magistrate  is  the  minister  of  God  for  good,  Bom.  xiii.  4. 
Ministers  are  servants  in  special  attendance,  therefore  Paul  so  often 
calleth  himself  the  servant  of  Jesus  Christ :  Rom.  i.  9,  '  Whom  I 
serve  with  my  spirit  in  the  gospel  of  his  Son  ; '  ministers  of  God,  not 
of  the  people,  but  for  the  people,  because  of  their  near  service  about 
and  under  God.  David  was  both  a  holy  man.  and  a  king,  and  a 
prophet.  David  as  a  king  might  use  this  petition  :  it  highly  con- 
ceruelh  one  in  public  rank  and  office  to  say  to  God,  I  am  thy  servant; 
yea,  as  private  believers.  I  observe  it  not  only  to  distinguish  persons, 
but  to  distinguish  the  work  of  the  same  person.  Christians  have,  be 
sides  their  general  calling,  a  particular  calling  wherein  to  serve  God. 
God  hath  given  us  all  talents  to  trade  withal :  Mat.  xxv.  14,  '  Who 
called  his  servants,  and  delivered  unto  them  his  goods;!  Luke  xxiii. 
13,  '  Occupy  till  1  come/  Dona  talenta.  Every  one  of  us,  as  instru 
ments  of  providence,  are  to  serve  God  in  our  generations,  Acts  xiii. 
36,  and  so  not  only  to  mind  the  work  of  our  general  calling,  but  that 
particular  work  which  he  hath  given  us  to  do  in  our  way  and  place. 
The  general  and  particular  calling  do  not  cross,  but  help  one  another. 
In  your  particular  calling,  as  instruments  of  God's  providence,  you 
provide  for  jour  support  during  your  service,  and  the  relief  of  others  : 
so  that,  as  God's  servants,  you  are  not  to  be  idle,  but  to  have  a  lawful 
employment  arid  calling,  that  you  may  not  cast  yourselves  upon  temp 
tations  of  using  sinful  shifts  for  your  support  and  living.  It  is  also  a 
remedy  against  the  evils  that  flow  from  idleness  and  too  much  ease, 
.and  that  he  may  promote  the  good  of  church,  family,  and  kingdom. 
And  then  the  general  calling  helpeth  the  particular,  by  limiting  it,  and 


288  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  C  XXXVII. 

our  endeavours  therein,  that  so  we  may  have  time  to  save  our  souls  ; 
and  directing  us,  that  we  do  all  things  holily  and  justly,  as  become  the 
servants  of  the  Lord. 

Secondly,  These  may  plead  it  when  they  want  any  mercy  spiritual 
or  temporal. 

1.  It  is  not  a  plea  contrary  to  grace.     Indeed,  no  such  plea  can  be 
allowed  in  the  new  covenant ;  partly  because  it  is  the  mere  mercy  of 
God  to  advance  us  to  this  honour,  to  make  us  his  servants,  and  the 
fruit  of  his  goodness,  rather  than  our  choice :  Rom.  ix.  16,  'It  is  not 
of  him  that  willeth,  nor  of  him  that  runneth;  but  of  God  that  showeth 
mercy.'     Willing  and  running  and  working  and  serving  are  necessary 
afterwards,  1  Cor.  ix.  24,  as  our  way  and  qualification.     Again,  our 
service  is  mixed  with  many  weaknesses.     Mercy  there  needeth  to 
interpret  our  best  actions,  Gal.  vi.  16.     Peace  and  mercy,  when  we 
have  done  most  exactly ;  yea,  the  very  plea  of  servant  excludeth  all 
thought  of  merit ;  for  a  servant  ipso  jure  ministerium  domino  debet  : 
Luke  xvii.  9,   '  Doth  he  thank  that  servant  because  he  did  the  things 
that  were  commanded  ?     I  trow  not/ 

2.  It  is  not  contrary  to  humility.    It  is  not,  We  are  thy  children,  wo 
are  thy  saints  ;  but,  We  are  thy  servants.     It  is  the  meanest  of  rela 
tions;  it  speaketh  duty  rather  than  perfection,  and  pleads  not  property 
of  the  house,  but  propriety  and  interest  in   God.      The  best  of  us 
are  but  servants  to  the  high  God,  and  therefore  should  not  carry  it 
proudly  either  to  our  master  or  to  our  fellow-servants.       It  is  a  humble 
claim. 

3.  It  speaketh  comfort ;  for  God  will  provide  for  his  famihr,  and 
will  give  maintenance,  protection,  direction,  help,  and  finally  wages, 
where  he  requireth  and  expecteth  service  :  for  the  present,  necessaries 
by  the  way ;  for  the  future,  a  blessed  reward.    For  the  present,  we  may 
depend  on  him  as  servants  on  their  lord  :  Ps.  cxxiii.  2,  '  Behold,  as 
the  eyes  of  servants  look  to  the  hands  of  their  masters,  and  the  eyes  of 
maidens  to  the  hand  of  their  mistress/  &c.     Servants  had  their  dole 
and  portion  from   their  masters — the   males  from   the  master,  the 
females  from  the  mistress ;  therefore  is  the  expression  of  looking  here 
used.     (1.)  God  will  give  direction.     In  the  text,  David,  upon  the 
account  of  being  God's  servant,  beggeth  to  know  his  will,  as  all  good 
servants  study  what  will  please  their  masters ;  and  will  God  appoint 
us  work,  and  not  tell  us  what  it  is  ?   Ps.  cxliii.  10.     *  Teach  me  to  do 
thy  will,  for  thou  art  my  God :  thy  spirit  is  good,  lead  me  into  the 
land  of  uprightness.'     God  doth  not  only  show  us  what  is  good  in  his 
word,  but  teacheth  us  also  by  his  Spirit,  and  directs  us  in  every  turn 
and  motion  of  our  lives  ;  and  we  ask  it  of  him  as  he  is  our  God  and 
Lord.      (2.)  Help  and  assistance.      God  is  no  Pharaoh,  to  require 
brick  and  give  no  straw  ;  his  grace  is  ready  to  help  the  endeavouring 
soul :   Gal.  ii.   12,  13,  '  Work  out  your  salvation  ;  for  God  worketh 
in  you  both  to  will  and  to  do.'     He  exciteth  the  first  motions,  and 
still  carrieth  them  on  to  perfection.     (3.)  Protection  while  he  hath  a 
mind  to  use  us;  ver.  122.  of  this  psalm,   'Be  surety  for  thy  servant 
for  good  :  let  not  the  proud  oppress  me.'     Under  the  law,  if  a  servant 
was  hurt,  the  master  was  to  take  an  account,  and  satisfaction  to  be 
made  to  him  for  his  servant.  Dent.  xxi.  32  ;  so  God  taketh  an  account 


VER.  125.]      .  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  289 

of  the  wrongs  of  bis  servants,  and  will  demand  satisfaction.  (4.) 
Maintenance,  1  Tim.  v.  8.  Every  man  hath  a  care  devolved  upon 
him,  to  take  care  of  his  family,  and  provide  for  them,  as  instruments 
of  God's  providence  ;  and  will  not  God  provide  for  his  own  ?  And 
then  for  time  to  come  ;  God's  servants  have  good  wages  :  Heb.  xi.  6. 
'  He  is  a  rewarder  of  them  that  diligently  seek  him/  We  need  not 
seek  another  paymaster  ;  there  is  a  sure  reward.  Prov.  xi.  18,  *  But 
to  him  that  soweth  righteousness  shall  be  a  sure  reward ; '  and  a  great 
reward,  Ps.  xix.  11,  '  And  in  the  keeping  of  them  is  a  great  reward ; ' 
and  a  full  reward,  2  John  8,  '  But  that  we  receive  a  full  reward.' 
No  desire  remaineth  unsatisfied. 

Use.  To  persuade  us  to  become  the  servants  of  the  Lord. 

1.  I  will  plead  with  you  upon  the  account  of  right. 

[1.]  You  ought  to  be  so  jure  creationis;  you  were  created  by  him.  As 
a  man  expecteth  fruit  from  the  vine  which  he  hath  planted,  so  may  God 
expect  from  the  creature  which  he  hath  made  ;  yea,  you  were  made  for 
this  end.  If  God  had  made  us  for  another  purpose,  our  living  to  that  end 
and  purpose  had  been  regular.  But  this  was  his  end,  that  he  might 
be  served  by  us.  Let  us  lay  these  things  together  ;  consider  what  an 
absolute  power  God  hath  by  creation  ;  no  lord  hath  such  a  right  over 
his  slave  or  servant  as  God  over  us.  The  slave  or  servant  is  either 
taken  in  battle,  or  bought  and  hired  with  our  money  ;  but  God  made 
us  out  of  nothing :  he  that  made  a  thing  at  his  own  pleasure  hath 
a  greater  right  than  another  can  have  by  purchase,  yea,  greater 
right  than  a  master  over  his  beast.  A  master  hath  a  greater  right 
over  his  beast  than  over  his  servant :  the  dominion  over  the  beast  is 
more  natural  to  us  than  over  a  servant ;  the  servant  and  master 
have  the  same  common  nature.  When  he  gave  us  dominion  over  the 
beasts  of  the  field,  the  one  is  founded  in  God's  original  grant,  the  other 
is  but  a  civil  right  founded  in  temporal  accidents.  Something  is  due 
even  to  a  slave,  as  our  own  flesh.  Yet  a  man  cannot  absolutely  do 
with  his  beast  as  he  will ;  the  law  of  God  interposeth  :  a  good  man  is 
merciful  to  his  beast.  God  will  not  allow  a  cruel  disposition,  nor  give 
us  the  absolute  disposal  over  the  creatures  which  we  made  not ;  nay, 
more  than  a  potter  over  the  vessels  which  he  hath  framed,  or  a  work 
man  over  his  work  ;  he  only  giveth  external  shape  or  figure  by  art,  out 
of  matter  already  prepared.  But  God  giveth  the  whole  being  out  of 
nothing ;  nothing  but  what  is  his.  A  potter  hath  power  over  his 
work  to  dispose  of  it  as  he  pleaseth  ;  here  the  law  interposeth  not. 
Surely,  if  a  potter  hath  power  to  dispose  of  his  vessels,  God  hath  an 
absolute  power  to  smite  or  heal,  lift  up  or  cast  down,  save  or  condemn ; 
none  can  say,  '  What  doest  thou  ? '  He  doth  not  fashion  us  out  of 
matter  prepared,  but  out  of  mere  nothing.  But  this  was  his  end,  that 
we  should  love  and  fear  and  serve  and  glorify  him.  Our  business  was 
not  to  eat  and  drink,  and  please  ourselves  and  others,  and  live  a  merry 
life.  All  things  act  to  the  end  for  which  they  were  created,  the  sun 
to  shine  by  day  and  enlighten  the  world,  the  moon  and  stars  by  night; 
and  they  answer  their  end.  Their  ultimate  end  is  to  serve  God,^  their 
next  end  is  to  serve  man.  All  things  in  the  world  are  either  subjected 
to  our  dominion  or  created  for  our  use.  The  heavens,  though  not 
under  our  dominion,  as  beasts,  yet  are  for  our  use  ;  the  lower  heaven 

VOL.  VIII.  T 


290  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.          [SER.  CXXXVII. 

to  give  us  breath,  the  middle  heaven  to  give  us  light  and  heat,  the 
highest  heaven  for  our  dwelling-place.  The  sun  runneth  and  hasteneth 
to  give  us  light.  The  sun  shineth  for  us,  the  wind  bloweth,  and  the 
water  floweth  for  our  use.  The  earth  and  air  are  for  our  use,  the  earth 
to  tread  on,  the  air  to  breathe  in.  And  shall  not  we  serve  him  that 
made  the  whole  course  to  serve  us  ?  All  the  creatures  are  at  work  for 
us  day  and  night,  for  a  poor  worm  of  six  foot  long  !  Yea,  the  creator 
is  at  work  for  us  :  '  My  Father  worketh  hitherto,  and  I  work.'  We 
complain  if  the  creatures  do  not  serve  us,  and  shall  not  we  serve  God 
who  gave  us  those  servants  ? 

[2.]  A  right  of  preservation.  He  is  ~Lord  alone,  because  he  pre- 
serveth  all  things  :  Neh.  ix.  6, '  Thou,  even  thou,  0  Lord,  alone  ;  thou 
hast  made  heaven,  and  the  heaven  of  heavens  with  all  their  host,  the 
earth  and  all  things  that  are  therein,  the  sea  and  all  that  is  therein ; 
and  thou  preservest  them  all.'  At  whose  table  are  we  fed  ?  at  whose 
cost  and  expense  are  we  maintained  ?  upon  whom  do  we  depend  every 
moment  for  being  and  operation  ?  Acts  xvii.  28,  '  In  him  we  live  and 
move,  and  have  our  being  ; '  Heb.  i.  3,  '  He  upholdeth  all  things  by 
the  word  of  his  power ; '  he  doth  every  moment  continue  what  he  gave 
at  first.  Things  were  not  made  that  they  should  act  and  subsist  of 
themselves,  as  the  house  abideth  when  the  inhabitant  is  dead  and  gone. 
A  daily  influence  is  necessary.  As  the  beams  depend  on  the  sun,  so 
do  we  every  moment  upon  God  ;  every  day  we  are  bound  to  serve  him. 
If  God  should  turn  us  off  for  preservation  to  ourselves,  how  soon  should 
we  return  to  our  original  nothing  !  God  is  disengaged  if  we  serve  him 
not.  If,  out  of  indulgence,  he  continues  our  beings,  what  vile  ingrati 
tude  is  it  not  to  serve  him  !  Isa,  i.  3,  '  The  ox  knoweth  his  owner, 
and  the  ass  his  masters  crib  ;  but  Israel  doth  not  not  know,  my  people 
doth  not  consider.'  Would  you  maintain  a  servant  to  do  his  own 
work  ?  Since  we  live  upon  God,  we  should  live  to  him. 

[3.]  A  right  by  redemption :  1  Cor.  vi.  19,  20,  *  And  ye  are  not 
your  own,  for  ye  are  bought  with  a  price ;  therefore  glorify  God  in  your 
body,  and  in  your  spirit,  which  is  God's.'  If  a  man  had  bought 
another  out  of  slavery,  all  his  time  and  strength  and  service  belonged 
to  the  buyer.  Christ  hath  bought  us  from  the  worst  slavery  with  the 
greatest  price,  and  shall  we  rob  him  of  his  purchase  ?  This  was  his 
end  ;  he  did  not  redeem  us  to  ourselves,  but  to  God ;  not  to  live  as  we 
list,  to  exempt  us  from  his  dominion  ;  that  is  impossible.  Saul  pro 
mised  to  make  him  free  in  Israel  that  would  destroy  Goliath,  1  Sam. 
xvi.  25.  But  to  be  free  from  God's  dominion  cannot  be  ;  that  was  not 
Christ's  end  in  redeeming  us,  but  that  we  might  be  put  into  a  capacity 
to  serve  God.  Well,  then,  when  God  hath  such  a  right  in  us,  we  ought 
to  obey  him. 

2.  Consider  what  an  honour  it  is  to  be  God's  servants.  Servire  Deo 
regnare  est  The  meanest  offices  about  a  prince  are  honourable.  No 
such  honourable  employment  as  God's  service,  both  in  respect  of  the 
person  whom  we  serve,  the  great  God,  and  the  service  itself  ;  it  is  a 
service  of  righteousness  and  holiness,  Luke  i.  74.  This  is  no  drudgery ; 
our  natures  are  ennobled  ;  the  liberty  and  perfection  of  human  nature 
is  preserved  by  this  service.  And  then  for  the  quality  of  our  reward, 
there  is  no  such  wages,  no  such  reward  in  any  service  :  John  xii.  26, 


VER.  125.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  291 

'  And  where  I  am,  there  shall  my  servant  be :  if  any  man  serve  me, 
him  will  my  Father  honour.'  Here  is  true  honour,  fitted  for  great 
spirits  that  will  not  stoop  to  trifles  ;  and  indeed  God's  servant  is 
the  only  great  spirit.  The  most  eminent  servants  in  the  court  of 
kings  have  but  a  splendid  and  more  gaudy  slavery  in  comparison  of 
God. 

3.  What  a  happiness,  as  well  as  honour,  both  in  respect  of  our  pre 
sent  communion  with  him,  and  future  fruition  of  him  !     The  Queen 
of  Sheba  said  of  Solomon's  servants,  1  Kings  x.  8,  *  Happy  are  the 
men,  and  happy  are  these  thy  servants,  which  stand  continually  before 
thee,  and  that  hear  thy  wisdom.'     Happy  those  indeed  that  serve  God; 
they  are  friend-servants :  John  xv.   15,  '  Henceforth  I  call  you  not 
servants,  for  the  servant  knoweth  not  what  his  Lord  doth  ;  but  I  call 
you  friends,  for  all  things  that  I  have  heard  of  my  Father,  I  have  made 
known  unto  you/     In  regard  of  intimate  communion,  they  are  treated 
as  sons,  though  they  be  servants.     Now  it  is  very  comfortable  to  be 
taken  into  God's  bosom,  and  to  have  access  to  him  upon  all  occasions. 
Besides  the  reward  and  wages  in  the  life  to  come,  God's  servants  have 
great  vails.     Our  earnest  is  better  than  the  world's  wages. 

4.  Consider  what  a  hard  master  we  were  under  before  :  Rom.  vi.  17, 
'  But  God  be  thanked,  that  ye  were  the  servants  of  sin.'     You  have 
obeyed  many  masters :  Titus  iii.  3,  '  Ye  were  sometimes  foolish,  dis 
obedient,  deceived,  serving  divers  lusts  and  pleasures/     You  that  were 
at  the  beck  of  every  brutish  lust,  and  were  carried  to  and  fro  with  so 
many  contrary  passions  and  affections,  that  have  left  so  many  wounds 
in  your  consciences,  alarmed  by  terrors  every  day,  when  you  denied 
yourselves  nothing,  thought  nothing  too  much  or  too  dear  to  spend  or 
part  with  in  a  sinful  course. 

5.  If  once  we  come  to  choose  his  service,  we  shall  find  a  difference 
between  the  Lord  and  other  masters:  2  Chron.  xii.  8,  'Nevertheless 
they  shall  be  his  servants,  that  they  may  know  my  service,  and  the 
service  of  the  kingdoms  of  the  countries/     The  sorrow  of  the  one,  the 
sweetness  of  the  other ;  the  misery  of  the  one,  the  blessedness  of  the 
other ;  the  bondage  of  the  one,  the  liberty  of  the  other :  they  that 
forsake  or  refuse  God's  service  shall  soon  find  worse  masters.     God 
hath  ways  enough  to  punish  our  straggling  from  duty  and  slighting 
his  service  ;  either  by  putting  us  under  hard  taskmasters,  some  that 
shall  turn  the  edge  of  authority  against  us,  push  with  the  horns  of 
a  lamb,  a  barbarous  enemy,  making  us  to  be  mutual  oppressors  of 
each  other ;  or  by  giving  us  over  to  Satan's  power,  or  our  own  hearts' 
lusts. 

6.  Christ's  service  is  not  hard  nor  heavy :  Mat.  xi.  30,  '  My  yoke  is 
easy  and  my  burthen  light,'  notwithstanding  all  your  prejudices  against 
it.     These  men  live  as  they  list ;  they  think  this  a  sweet  liberty  to  be 
guided  by  their  own  wisdom,  and  live  according  to  their  own  wills, 
according  to  their  own  ends,  and  that  it  is  better  than  to  be  curbed, 
Ps.  ii.  3.     But  after  a  little  while  they  have  other  thoughts,  they  will 
find  the  bitterness  of  such  a  course.     On  the  contrary,  the  more  we  try 
the  service  of  God,  the  sweeter  we  shall  find  it  to  be :  1  John  v.  3, 
*  And  his  commandments  are  not  grievous :  and  Prov.  iii.  17,  '  Her 
ways  are  ways  of  pleasantness,  and  all  her  paths  are  peace/    Our  work 


292  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.          [SEE.  CXXXVII. 

is  wages,  and  our  very  work  carrieth  a  reward  in  the  bosom  of  it.     So 
sweet  and  comfortable  it  is.     Now  for  directions. 

[1.]  If  we  would  be  God's  servants,  we  must  sincerely,  wholly,  and 
absolutely  give  up  ourselves  to  do  his  will ;  and  never  more  to  look 
upon  ourselves  as  our  own  masters,  to  do  what  we  please,  but  wholly 
to  study  what  will  please  God.  Isa.  Ivi.  6,  they  'joined  themselves  to 
the  Lord  to  serve  him,  to  love  the  name  of  the  Lord,  and  be  his  ser 
vants  ; '  Rom.  vi.  16,  '  Know  ye  not  that  to  whom  ye  yield  yourselves 
servants  to  obey,  his  servants  ye  are  to  whom  ye  obey  ? '  There  is  a 
solemn  dedication  made,  we  take  up  his  service  seriously,  not  upon 
example  barely,  or  tradition,  or  fear,  or  constraint,  or  some  base  respects 
or  sinister  ends,  or  some  sudden  pang  or  motion ;  but  after  serious  and ' 
due  deliberation,  out  of  judgment  rightly  informed,  and  affection 
thereon  grounded,  do  engage  themselves  to  perform  humble  service  to 
God,  without  limiting  or  power  of  revocation,  give  up  themselves 
wholly  to  follow  his  directions. 

[2.]  God's  servants  have  work  to  do  ;  none  of  them  must  be  idle : 
Mat.  xx.  6,  'Why  stand  ye  here  all  the  day  idle?'  Luke  i.  74, 
75,  '  That  we  may  serve  him  in  holiness  and  righteousness  all  our 
days  ;'  Phil.  ii.  12,  '  Work  out  your  salvation  with  fear  and  trembling  ; ' 
Acts  xxiv.  16,  '  Herein  do  I  exercise  myself,  to  keep  a  good  conscience, 
void  of  offence.'  We  must  not  put  hands  in  bosom,  having  so  much 
work  to  do.  Many  presume  of  being  God's  servants ;  but  it  is  only  in 
the  notion  ;  they  do  nothing  for  him. 

[3.]  This  service  must  not  be  done  grudgingly,  but  heartily  :  Isa. 
Ivi.  6,  '  And  the  sons  of  the  stranger  that  join  themselves  to  the  Lord, 
to  serve  him,  to  love  the  name  of  the  Lord,  and  be  his  servants  ;'  Deut. 
x.  12,  '  To  love  the  Lord  thy  God,  and  serve  him/  God  will  not  be 
served  but  out  of  love,  not  by  necessity  and  constraint.  We  must 
yield  obedientiam  servi,  but  not  servilem  :  we  are  delivered  from  a 
slavish  spirit :  Rom.  viii.  15,  '  We  have  not  received  the  spirit  of  bond 
age  again  to  fear.'  God's  service  must  be  gone  about  with  ready  affec 
tion  and  good-will.  The  respect  which  we  show  to  God  is  called 
service  in  regard  of  our  strict  obligation  to  it,  but  obedience  in  regard 
of  our  readiness  of  mind  to  perform  it.  Secondly,  Not  slightly,  but 
with  reverence  and  zeal:  Mai.  i.  6,  '  If  I  be  a  master,  where  is  my 
fear  ?'  Ps.  ii.  11,  '  Serve  the  Lord  with  fear,  and  rejoice  with  trem 
bling  ;'  Phil.  ii.  12,  'Work  out  your  salvation  with  fear  and  trembling ;' 
and  Rom.  xii.  1,  '  I  beseech  you  by  the  mercies  of  God,  that  you  pre 
sent  your  bodies  a  living  sacrifice,  holy  and  acceptable  to  God,  which 
is  your  reasonable  service/  God  will  not  be  put  off  with  anything  by 
the  by,  it  is  a  lessening  of  his  majesty  :  '  I  am  a  great  king/  Thirdly, 
It  must  be  done  constantly,  not  by  fits.  He  that  is  God's  servant  never 
ceaseth  from  his  work ;  their  feasting,  walking,  sitting,  sleeping,  waking, 
hungry,  thirsty,  hearing,  or  praying,  it  is  all  for  God.  He  that  doth 
any  of  these  things  merely  for  himself,  to  gratify  the  flesh,  doth  not 
act  as  God's  servant:  Acts  xxvi.  16,  '  Serve  God  instantly  day  and 
night/  Fourthly,  Orderly.  All  things  in  God's  service  must  be 
regarded  according  to  their  weight:  Rom.  xiv.  18,  'For  he  that  in 
these  things  serveth  Christ  is  acceptable  to  God  and  approved  of  men ;  * 
that  is  the  main  things,  not  in  contests  about  ceremonies :  if  others  carry 


VER.  125.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  293 

these  matters  beyond  their  weight,  let  not  us ;  it  is  not  a  pin  to  choose 
what  party  a  man  is  of,  if  he  doth  not  mind  righteousness  and  peace 
and  joy  in  the  Holy  Ghost :  as  if  a  servant  should  provide  sauce  for 
his  master,  and  neglect  to  provide  meat. 

[4.]  Our  great  end  and  scope  must  be  to  please  God.  They  arc 
true  servants  that  make  it  their  business  to  please  their  master  :  Isa. 
Ivi.  6,  '  They  choose  the  things  that  please  me,  and  take  hold  of  my 
covenant ;'  John  viii.  29,  '  The  Father  hath  not  left  me  alone,  for  I  do 
always  the  things  that  please  him ;'  1  Thes.  iv.  1,  'I  exhort  you  all  by 
the  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  that  as  you  have  received  of  us  how  to  walk 
and  please  God,  so  ye  would  abound  more  and  more  ;'  and  1  John  iii. 
22.  '  And  whatsoever  we  ask  we  receive  of  him,  because  we  keep  his 
commandments,  and  do  the  things  which  please  him.'  So  Heb.  xi.  5, 
*  Enoch  had  this  testimony,  that  he  pleased  God/  The  property  of  a 
servant  is  not  to  please  himself.  They  that  set  themselves  to  please 
God  observe  his  will  in  all  things.  There  is  a  great  pleasing  in  the 
world,  but  few  make  it  their  business  to  please  God.  All  inferiors 
please  their  superiors  on  whom  they  depend  ;  and  shall  not  we  please 
God,  who  is  infinitely  greater  than  man,  and  on  whom  we  depend  every 
moment  for  all  that  we  enjoy  ? 

Use.  Are  we  God's  servants  ?  We  all  say  so  ;  but  we  speak  out  of 
conviction  of  conscience  rather  than  out  of  inclination  of  heart ;  not 
what  de  facto  is,  but  what  de  jure  should  be ;  and  it  is  well  that  we 
come  so  far  as  to  own  God's  right.  Professio  ipsa,  saith  Hilary,  habet 
conscientice  necessitatem,  non  habet  confessionis  veritatem. 

1.  If  it  be  so,  then  God  is  our  chiefest  good  and  highest  lord,  whom 
we  study  to  please  and  gratify.     It  is  certain  that  is  our  master  which 
hath  the  greatest  part  in  us,  and  power  and  influence  over  us :  Mat. 
vi.  24,  '  No  man  can  serve  two  masters :  ye  cannot  serve  God  and 
mammon  ; '  Kom.  xvi.  18,  '  They  serve  not  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  but 
their  own  belly  ; '  Phil.  iii.  19,  'Whose  god  is  their  belly.'     It  was  a 
speech  of  Luther,  Venter  in  omni  religione  est  potentissimum  idolum. 
It  doth  all  with  men.     Where  the  belly  is  served,  Christ  is  neglected. 
So  far  as  his  service  will  comply  with  the  interest  of  the  belly,  or  a 
quiet,  pleasurefui  life,  so  far  they  can  be  zealous  :  their  religion  must 
feed  them  and  maintain  them,  or  else  they  care  not  for  it— John  vi. 
26,  they  followed  Christ  for  the  loaves — mind  religion  for  outward 
advantages.     When  our  interest  and  Christ's  service  go  contrary  ways, 
we  can  dispense  with  our  duty  to  God  for  the  sake  of  this.    It  is  clear, 
to  be  servants  is  to  want  a  power  and  right  to  dispose  of  ourselves,  our 
actions,  and  employments.     While  any  other  thing  hath  an  interest 
in  us  to  dispose  of  us,  we  are  not  God's  servants ;  but  that  thing  that 
hath  such  a  power  with  us  is  our  master. 

2.  A  servant  is  chiefly  known  by  obedience  :  Rom.  vi.  16,  'To  whom 
ye  yield  yourselves  servants  to  obey,  his  servants  ye  are  to  whom  ye 
obey  ; '   Luke  xii.  47, 48,  'And  that  servant  which  knew  his  lord's  will, 
and  prepared  not  himself,  neither  did  according  to  his  will,'  &c.    Men 
may  talk  high  for  God,  know  much ;  but  whom  do  we  ordinarily  obey  ? 
When  the  flesh  bids  us  go,  we  go  ;  come,  we  come.     If  pride  bids  us 
display  the  pomp  of  wit  in  our  duties,  or  to  hang  out  the  ensigns  of  our 
vanity,  we  yield  straight.     If  lust  bid  us  pamper  the  flesh ;  we  pre- 


294  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.          [SEE.  CXXXVIL 

sently  obey ;  if  coveteousness  bid  take  the  wedge  of  gold,  we  do  it.  But 
when  a  man  knoweth  anything  to  be  the  mind  of  God,  and  prepareth 
his  heart  to  do  it,  he  is  one  of  God's  servants. 

3.  A  servant  of  God  is  one  that  the  sight  of  God's  will  is  reason 
enough  to  him  :  1  Thes.  v.  18,  '  This  is  the  will  of  God.'  The  will  of 
God  must  be  the  prime  and  prevalent  motive  with  a  Christian  ;  they  are 
servants,  not  to  do  their  own  will,  but  his  whose  servants  they  are;  they 
do  nothing  but  what  their  master  commandeth,  and  what  he  com- 
mandeth  they  see  reason  to  obey. 

Second  branch,  '  Give  me  understanding,  that  I  may  know  thy  tes 
timonies/  This  is  subjoined  to  the  former  plea. — (1.)  Because  David 
would  not  be  a  servant  in  name  and  title  only,  but  in  deed  and  in  truth ; 
and  therefore  would  fain  know  his  duty.  (2.)  To  show  the  difference 
between  God's  servants  and  the  servants  of  other  lords  who  command 
us  :  Prov.  xiv.  25,  '  The  king's  favour  is  towards  a  wise  servant ; '  they 
see  them  wise,  find  them  wise,  and  then  love  them :  but  God  must 
begin  with  us  ;  his  favour  maketh  us  wise. 

Doct.  God's  best  servants  think  they  can  never  enough  beg  divine 
illumination. 

David  doth  often  enforce  this  request. 

Eeason  1.  Our  blindness  in  the  matters  of  God  is  a  great  part  of 
our  spiritual  misery  :  Eph.  v.  8,  '  Ye  were  sometimes  in  darkness.' 
There  is  a  veil  lying  upon  our  hearts,  not  easily  removed  and  taken 
away.  All  the  mischief  introduced  by  the  fall  is  not  cured  at  once, 
but  by  degrees  ;  as  spiritual  strength  increaseth  we  grow  up  into  it ; 
so  spiritual  light.  The  maim  of  the  understanding,  as  well  as  the  will, 
is  not  wholly  cured  till  we  come  to  heaven,  for  here  we  know  but  in 
part ;  till  God  give  us  understanding,  we  are  utterly  blind ;  the  best 
of  God's  servants  have  cause  to  acknowledge  it  in  themselves,  the  rem 
nants  of  ignorance  and  incredulity.  The  apostle  biddeth  them  to  add 
to  faith  virtue,  to  virtue  knowledge ;  that  is,  skill  to  manage  the  work 
of  our  heavenly  calling. 

Reason  2.  None  are  so  sensible  of  this  blindness  as  they.  It  is  some 
proficiency  in  knowledge  to  understand  our  ignorance :  Prov.  xxx.  2, 
3,  '  Surely  I  am  more  brutish  than  any  man,  and  have  not  the  under 
standing  of  a  man/  I  neither  learned  wisdom,  nor  have  the  know 
ledge  of  the  holy/  The  most  knowing  see  they  need  more  enlightening. 
The  best  of  our  knowledge  is  to  know  our  imperfections,  1  Cor.  viii.  2. 
He  that  thinketh  he  knoweth  anything,  knoweth  nothing  as  he  ought 
to  know. 

Eeason  3.  There  is  room  for  increase;  for  in  the  best  we  never  know 
so  much  of  God's  ways  but  we  may  know  more  :  Hosea  vi.  3,  '  Then 
shall  we  know,  if  we  follow  on  to  know  the  Lord  ; '  Prov.  iv.  18,  '  But 
the  path  of  the  just  is  as  a  shining  light,  that  shineth  more  and  more 
unto  the  perfect  day/  True  sanctified  knowledge  is  always  growing. 
If  we  sit  down  with  measures  received,  it  is  a  sign  we  do  not  know 
things  as  we  should  know  them.  Christ  grew  in  knowledge,  not  in 
grace,  for  the  fulness  of  the  Godhead  dwelt  in  him  bodily.  Practical 
knowledge  is  never  at  a  stand  ;  though  a  man  may  see  round  the  com 
pass  and  light  of  saving  truth,  yet  he  may  know  them  more  spiritually 
and  more  feelingly. 


VER.  125.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix,  295 

Reason  4.  The  profit  of  divine  revelation  as  to  these  three  things : — 

1.  A  clear  discerning  of  the  things  of  God,  not  a  confused  notion  ; 
as  the  blind  man  in  the  Gospel  saw  men  as  trees  walking.     So  2  Cor. 
iv.  6,  '  For  God,  who  commanded  the  light  to  shine  out  of  darkness, 
hath  shined  in  our  hearts,  to  give  the  light  of  the  knowledge  of  the 
glory  of  God,  in  the  face  of  Jesus  Christ ; '  and  1  John  v.  20,  '  And 
hath  given  us  an  understanding,  that  we  may  know  him  that  is  true.' 
Every  degree  of  knowledge  is  God's  gift.     What  other  men  see  con 
fusedly,  we  see  more  distinctly  in  this  light. 

2.  Firm  assent.    Then  '  shall  I  know  thy  testimonies ; '  know  them 
from  others  that  have  not  divine  authority.    It  is  the  spirit  of  wisdom 
and  revelation  that  openeth  our  eyes  to  see  the  truth  and  worth  of 
heavenly  things  contained  in  the  promise  :  Eph.  i.  17, 18,  '  The  father 
of  glory  may  give  you  the  spirit  of  wisdom  and  revelation  in  the  know 
ledge  of  him,  the  eyes  of  your  understandings  being  enlightened,  that 
ye  may  know  the  hope  of  his   calling,  and  the  riches  of  the  glory 
of  the  inheritance  of  the  saints  in  light ; '  and  Mat.  xvi.  17,  '  Flesh 
and  blood  hath  not  revealed  these  things  unto  thee/  Human  credulity 
we  may  have  upon  the  report  of  others,  the  evidence  of  the  truths  them 
selves  ;  but  this  firm  assent  is  the  fruit  of  divine  illumination. 

3.  Hearty  practice.  Let  thy  testimonies  not  only  strike  my  ear,  but 
affect  my  heart,  command  my  hand,  let  me  know  them  so  as  to  do  them, 
for  otherwise  our  knowledge  is  little  worth.     God  doth  so  direct,  that 
he  doth  also  enable  us  to  approve  our  obedience  to  him  sincerely  and 
faithfully.    There  is  a  knowledge  that  puffeth  us  up,  1  Cor.  viii.  1,  which 
yet  is  a  gift,  and  floweth  from  the  common  influence  of  the  Spirit :  Jer. 
xxii.  16,  '  Was  not  this  to  know  me  ?  saith  the  Lord.'     But  there  is 
a  greater  efficacy  in  practical  knowledge,  such  as  warmeth  the  heart 
with  love  to  the  truths  known,  John  iv.  10,  '  If  thou  knewest  the  gift/ 
&c.     Such  a  light  as  proceedeth  from  the  gracious  influence  of  the 
Spirit. 

Use  1.  Let  us  be  often  dealing  with  God  in  prayer,  that  our  judg 
ments  may  be  enlightened  with  the  understanding  of  the  word,  and 
our  affections  renewed  and  strengthened  unto  the  true  obedience  of  it; 
beg  for  that  lively  light  of  the  Spirit. 

1.  We  need  it.     In  how  many  things  do  we  err  in  the  things  which 
we  know !  how  weak  are  we  both  as  to  sound  judgment  and  practice  ! 
The  apostle  saith,  '  We  know  but  in  part,'  1  Cor.  xiii.  9 ;  '  We  are  but 
of  yesterday,  and  we  know  nothing/  Job  viii.  9.     Therefore  we  have 
need  to  go  to  the  Ancient  of  days,  that  he  may  teach  us  knowledge,  and 
kindle  our  lamps  anew  at  the  fountain  of  light.     Alas  !  we  take  it  in 
by  drops,  or  by  degrees,  as  a  tender  and  sore  eye  must  be  used  to  the 
light.     We  have  but  little  time  to  get  knowledge  in,  and  do  not  im 
prove  that  little  time  we  have. 

2.  We  have  leave  to  ask  it :  James  i.  5,  '  If  any  man  lack  wisdom, 
let  him  ask  it  of  God ; '  and  why  do  we  not,  seeing  we  have  a  liberty 
to  ask  it  ? 

3.  God  hath  promised  to  bestow  it ;  he  will  give  his  Spirit  to  them 
that  ask  it,  Luke  xi.  13.  And  to  beget  faith  in  us  : '  If  ye  then,  being  evil, 
know  how  to  give  good  gifts  to  your  children,  how  much  more  shall 
your  heavenly  Father  give  the  Holy  Spirit  to  them  that  ask  him  ?  ' 


296  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.         [SEE.  CXXXVI11. 

Here  is  a  notable  argument;  he  reasoneth  and  promiseth.  And  Prov.  ii. 
3,  we  must  cry  for  knowledge.  Well,  then,  let  us  be  earnest,  that  we 
may  not  miss  that  which  is  to  be  had  for  asking  ;  beg  for  a  heart  to 
know,  Jer.  xxiv.  7,  '  I  will  give  them  a  heart  to  know  me,  that  I  am 
the  Lord.' 

Use  2.  It  informeth  us  that  there  is  somewhat  more  than  the  word 
necessary  to  give  us  knowledge.  God  must  not  only  reveal  the  object, 
but  prepare  the  subject.  David  having  a  law,  beggeth  understanding 
that  he  might  know  God's  testimonies.  The  literal  sense  and  mean 
ing  of  the  words  may  be  understood  by  common  gifts  and  ordinary 
industry,  unless  men  be  exceedingly  blinded  and  hardened  by  their  own 
prejudices.  But  to  have  a  spiritual  understanding  of  them,  so  as  to  pro 
fit  andincrease  in  sarictification,that  is  from  the  Lord.  These  things  may 
be  drawn  into  a  system,  wherein  there  will  be  nothing  that  exceedeth 
the  understanding  of  a  man.  But  to  understand  it  so  as  to  be  affected 
with  and  changed  by  it,  that  is  from  the  Spirit :  1  John  v.  20,  '  And  we 
know  that  the  Son  of  God  is  come,  and  hath  given  us  an  understand 
ing,  that  we  may  know  him  that  is  true ; '  and  Eph.  v.  8,  '  Ye  were 
darkness,  but  now  are  ye  light  in  the  Lord.'  He  is  the  purchaser  and 
author  of  that  light. 

Use  3.  Is  reproof  to  those  that  presume  on  their  own  wit  to  under 
stand  divine  mysteries.  Many  think  they  have  eyes  in  their  head,  and 
can  see  into  matter  as  far  as  other  men,  and  conceive  and  judge  of  a 
thing  as  soon  and  as  well  as  others  can  do  ;  and  so  will  not  acknow 
ledge  their  dulness  and  blindness  in  heavenly  things,  take  it  ill  to  be 
told  of  it :  John  ix.  4,  '  Are  we  blind  also  ?  '  In  a  rage  scoff  at  those 
that  talk  of  the  enlightening  of  the  Spirit,  and  being  taught  of  God. 
Alas !  you  must  be  blind  and  be  fools  before  you  be  wise,  1  Cor  iii. 
18,  in  your  own  conviction  and  feeling. 


SERMON  CXXXVIII. 

It  is  time  for  thee,  Lord,  to  work;  for  they  have  made  void  thy  law. — 

VER.  126. 

IN  the  words  we  have — (1.)  A  prayerful  suggestion,  it  is  time  for  thee, 
Lord,  to  work.     (2.)  The  reason  of  it,  for  they  have  made  void  thy  law. 
In  the  first  branch  take  notice  of — 

1.  The  person  to  whom  the  address  is  made,  for  thee,  Lord. 

2.  The  suggestion  itself,  what  and  when ;  what  they  would  have 
the  Lord  to  do,  to  loork ;  and  when,  even  now,  it  is  time  to  work. 

To  open  these,  I  begin  with — 

1.  The  person  to  whom  the  address  is  made,  the  Lord.  Some  read 
the  words,  It  is  time  to  work  for  thee,  0  Lord,  because  they  have  made 
void  thy  law.  It  is  time  indeed  to  work  for  God,  when  so  many  work 
against  him,  in  an  evil  generation ;  lest  the  law  should  perish  and  fall 
to  the  ground,  some  should  keep  up  the  authority  of  it,  and  they  that 
fear  God  are  to  encourage  one  another,  Mai.  iii.  16.  The  Chaldee 
paraphrase  reads  it,  '  It  is  time  to  do  the  will  of  the  Lord.'  But  the 


VER.  126.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  297 

Hebrew  original  carries  it  as  we  do,  it  is  time  for  Jehovah  to  do.  The 
Septuagint,  tempos  TOV  iroi^aai  ra>  Kvpla.  The  vulgar  Latin,  Tempus 
faciendi,  Domine. 

2.  Here  is  the  suggestion  itself — (1.)  What  they  would  have  God 
to  do.  It  is  expressed  by  a  general  word,  work  ;  as  also  Jer.  xiv.  7, 
'  Do,  for  thy  name's  sake.'  What  should  he  do  ?  Tempus  mittendi 
Filium  Dei,  saith  Augustine  ;  to  set  about  the  work  of  redemption,  to 
send  the  Son  of  God.  But  that  is  a  work  rather  to  exercise  and  show 
forth  his  justice,  power,  and  truth,  both  in  punishing  his  enemies 
and  delivering  his  people,  to  work  his  own  proper  work  of  justice,  as 
becometh  the  judge  of  all  the  world  to  do ;  namely,  to  punish  the 
wicked,  and  help  his  servants  out  of  their  hands.  (2.)  When  it  is  time. 
Then  it  seemeth  to  be  a  time  when  man's  wickedness  is  grown  to  the 
height :  Gen.  xv.  16,  'In  the  fourth  generation  they  shall  come  again, 
for  the  sins  of  the  Amorites  are  not  yet  full.'  Good  men  are  put  to 
the  uttermost  of  their  patience,  and  God's  glory  abused  beyond  mea 
sure,  Isa.  lii.  5.  Lord,  it  is  time  to  work  ;  they  are  as  bad  as  bad  may 
be ;  thy  people  have  quite  spent  all  their  faith  and  patience  ;  when 
thine  ordinances  and  word  are  despised  and  affronted,  and  thy  people 
trodden  under  foot,  it  is  time  for-thee  to  work. 

Secondly.  Let  us  explain  the  reason,  '  For  they  have  made  void  thy 
law.'  The  law  is  made  void  two  ways,  formaliter  et  interpretative. 

1.  Formally,  when  any  deny  the  authority  of  God,  as  Pharaoh  : 
Exod.  v.  5,  'Who  is  the  Lord,  that  I  should  obey  his  voice?'     Or 
those  rebels,  Ps.  xii.  4,  '  Our  lips  are  our  own ;  who  is  lord  over  us  ?' 
Or  we  make  void  the  law  when  we  deny  it  to  be  given  of  God,  as 
Marcion  and  his  followers,  that  the  law  was  given  by  an  evil  god. 
Many  now  question  the  scriptures  themselves,  or  deny  the  obligation 
of  the  moral  law  to  believers,  as  the  antinomians  and  libertines,  as 
the  apostle  telleth  us,  Rom.  iii.  31,  that  we  '  do  not  make  void  the  law 
by  faith ;  yea,  we  establish  the  law.'     It  was  the  greatest  ratification 
to  it  that  could  be.     Or,  finally,  those  that  take  upon  them  to  enact 
things  contrary  to  the  law  of  God,  or  besides  the  law,  as  necessary  to 
salvation,  and  enforce  their  own  traditions  beyond  and  before  the  law 
of  God.     These  make  void  the  law,  as  Christ  telleth  the  pharisees 
that  they  '  made  the  commandments  of  God  of  no  effect  by  their  tra 
ditions,'  Mat.  xv.  6.     Especially  when  they  obtrude  these  things  upon 
the  consciences  of  others  under  the  highest  penalties. 

2.  Interpretatively,  when  men  by  consequence  take  away  the  honour 
and  authority  that  is  due  to  the  law,  by  their  wickedness  and  rebellion 
against  God.     Though  in  words  they  acknowledge  the  authority  of 
God  and  the  obligation  of  his  law,  yet  they  have  no  respect  to  it  in 
their  carriage  and  practice,  doing  whatever  pleaseth  themselves,  stand 
in  no  awe  of  God  and  his  word,  reject  it  as  a  thing  of  nought.     Obedi 
ence  to  the  law  is  a  ratifying  and  confirming  the  law  by  our  consent : 
Peut.  xxvii.  26,  '  Cursed  be  he  that  confirmeth  not  all  the  words  of 
this  law  to  do  them.'     Our  words  do  not  confirm  the  law  so  much  as 
our  works.     So,  on  the  contrary,  they  repeal  or  make  void  the  law  that 
observe  it  not  in  their  practice.     Finis  operis  is  made  finis  operantis, 
as  if  they  intended  to  abolish,  whilst  they  make  no  reckoning  of  the 
law.     Where  observe,  that  this  is  a  notion  to  make  sin  odious  to  us ; 


298  SEKMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.         [SER.  C XXXVIII. 

it  is  not  only  avofita,  a  transgression  of  the  law,  1  John  iii.  4 ;  but  a 
despising  the  law,  2  Sam.  xii.  9  ;  a  judging  or  censuring  the  law, 
James  iv.  11 ;  yea,  a  repealing  and  disannulling  the  law,  which  is  the 
notion  of  the  text. 

Doct  That  when  a  flood  of  wickedness  is  broken  out,  we  may  put 
God  in  mind  of  doing  his  work  of  punishing  the  wicked  and  delivering 
his  people. 

I  shall  give  you  the  sum  of  this  doctrine  in  these  four  considerations. 

1.  That  God  doth  for  a  while  hold  his  hand,  and  bear  with  the 
wickedness  of  his  enemies. 

2.  Though  he  doth  for  a  while  bear  with  them,  yet  he  hath  his 
times  to  punish  and  proceed  to  execution. 

3.  This  time  is  usually  when  the  impiety  and  insolency  of  wicked 
men  is  come  to  a  height. 

4.  When  it  is  come  to  a  height,  we  may  and  must  mind  God  of 
doing  his  work,  or  arising  to  judgment. 

The  first  consideration  is  implied  in  the  doctrine  and  the  text ;  the 
other  three  are  express. 

First,  It  is  implied  that  God  doth  for  a  while  hold  his  hand,  and 
not  seem  to  mind  his  work.  Though  the  least  sin  deserveth  the 
greatest  plagues,  even  when  it  is  first  committed,  yet  such  is  God's 
patience  and  long-suffering,  that  he  wilt  not  at  first  punish  even  the 
sins  of  his  enemies,  but  will  let  them  ripen  and  come  to  a  height  before 
he  smite.  This  he  doth — 

1.  To  show  his  bounty  and  goodness  to  all  his  creatures.     He  will 
not  easily  destroy  the  workmanship  of  his  hands,  even  the  provoking 
wicked  ;   but  giveth  them  time  to  repent  and  change  their  course ; 
Kev.  ii.  21,  '  I  gave  her  space  to  repent  of  her  fornications,  and  she 
repented  not.'     The  worst  have  leave  to  repent,  means  to  repent, 
time  to  repent ;  and  if  they  have  not  the  grace  to  repent,  they  may 
blame  themselves  :  Rom.  ix.  22,  *  He  endured  with  much  long-suffer 
ing  the  vessels  of  wrath,  fitted  for  destruction,'  ev  •n-oJOvy  jj,aKpo0v/*ia. 
The  reprobate  taste  of  God's  common  goodness  as  they  are  members 
of  the  world,  are  forborne  for  a  long  time,  till  they  be  sear  and  rotten 
through,  fit  for  the  burning.     Nay,  let  me  observe  this  :  God,  that  is 
very  quick  with  his  people,  is  very  patient  towards  them  that  perish. 
God  is  quick  with  his  own  people  ;  he  will  visit  their  iniquities  with 
scourges,  and  will  not  suffer  sin  to  lie  upon  them  ;  and  therefore  they 
are  chastened  every  morning.     Yet  this  God  is  very  patient  to  them 
that  know  no  better,  profess  no  better,  have  had  no  experience  of  his 
ways  ;  and  though  they  finally  perish,  it  is  long  first,  till  their  sins  do 
even  extort  vengeance  out  of  his  hands. 

2.  To  chastise,  exercise,  and  prove  his  own  people,  he  beareth  with 
the  wickedness  of  their  enemies. 

[1.]  To  chastise  them  for  their  sins,  that  they  may  be  brought  low, 
and  their  souls  be  humbled  to  the  dust.  Certainly  this  God  expects 
before  he  will  appear  for  us :  1  Peter  v.  6,  '  Humble  yourselves  under 
the  mighty  hand  of  God.'  And  because  his  people  are  backward  to 
this  work,  he  perrnitteth  such  instruments  as  will  not  spare,  but  lay 
on  to  the  purpose:  Isa.  x.  5,  6,  '  0  Assyrian,  the  rod  of  mine  anger, 
and  the  staff  in  their  hand  is  mine  indignation.  I  will  send  him 


VER.  126.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  299 

against  an  hypocritical  nation,  and  against  the  people  of  my  wrath 
will  I  give  him  a  charge,  to  take  the  spoil,  and  to  take  the  prey,  and 
to  tread  them  down  like  the  mire  of  the  streets.'  When  God  is 
angry  with  his  people,  he  can  easily  find  a  rod  for  them ;  yea,  not 
only  a  rod,  but  a  staff,  which  is  a  more  heavy  instrument  of  correction : 
he  can  find  instruments  sufficiently  exasperated,  and  full  of  malice, 
severe  executioners ;  and  he  lets  them  alone  till  they  have  done  his 
work,  though  they  manage  his  controversy  with  cruel  minds,  and  evil 
and  destructive  intentions.  Sometimes  God  punisheth  his  people  with 
divisions  among  themselves ;  and  though  they  are  very  troublesome 
one  to  another,  yet  a  sheep  cannot  worry  a  sheep,  as  a  wolf  will ;  they 
do  it  to  the  purpose,  in  a  most  cruel  and  despiteful  manner.  Now, 
though  he  will  reckon  with  wicked  men  for  their  violence,  for  trans 
gressing  their  bounds,  and  going  beyond  his  revealed  will  and  appro 
bation,  Zech.  i.  15,  yet  not  till  his  work  be  done  upon  Mount  Zion  and 
Jerusalem :  Isa.  x.  12,  '  When  the  Lord  hath  done  his  work  upon 
Mount  Zion  and  Jerusalem,  I  will  punish  the  stout  heart  of  the 
king  of  Assyria.'  He  will  not  cast  the  rod  into  the  fire  till  we  have 
felt  the  smart  of  it,  and  be  thoroughly  humbled  under  his  mighty 
hand. 

[2.]  To  exercise  his  people,  that  they  may  not  contract  rust,  and 
languish  and  grow  idle  in  heaven's  way.  Alas  !  when  we  live  at  ease, 
and  have  nobody  to  trouble  us,  God  is  little  owned,  loved,  and  acknow 
ledged,  the  throne  of  grace  lieth  neglected  and  unfrequented;  and 
therefore  he  permitteth  enemies  to  keep  us  in  breath  :  Ps.  lix.  11, 
'  Slay  them  not,  lest  my  people  forget/  Things  in  conceit  do  not 
leave  such  an  impression  upon  us  as  things  in  feeling.  Scipio  would 
have  Carthage  stand,  to  whet  and  exercise  the  Eoman  valour.  We 
need  vigilant  enemies  as  a  guard  upon  us,  that  we  may  be  kept  awef  ul, 
serious,  mindful  of  God,  constantly  in  the  exercise  of  faith  and  de 
pendence.  Wicked  men  have  their  ministry  and  service,  to  be  as 
goads  in  our  sides  and  scourges  on  our  backs,  to  whip  us  to  our  duty, 
and  make  us  mend  our  pace  heavenward :  Ps.  xciv.  12,  '  Blessed  is 
the  man  whom  thou  chastenest,  and  teachest  him  out  of  thy  law ;' 
chastened  by  the  molestations  of  the  wicked,  for  all  along  he  com- 
plaineth  of  the  delay  of  vengeance  on  the  persecutors ;  and  in  the  next 
verse  he  saith,  '  Until  the  pit  be  digged  for  the  wicked ; '  as  con 
demned  men  are  suffered  to  live  till  their  gallows  and  grave  be  made 
ready :  if  they  trouble  us  in  the  meanwhile,  it  is  to  reduce  us  to  a 
sense  and  practice  of  our  duty ;  and  that  we  may  not  securely  go  on 
in  a  course  of  vanity  and  sin.  Till  that  be  done,  the  pit  is  not  ready 
for  the  wicked  and  ungodly  oppressors ;  they  dig  their  own  pit  by  their 
sin  and  oppression. 

[3.]  To  prove  his  people  as  well  as  to  exercise  them.  To  prove 
their  faith  and  their  patience ;  their  faith,  to  see  whether  they  can 
live  by  faith,  and  not  by  sense  and  present  appearance  ;  whether 
we  are  persuaded  that  there  is  a  just  and  righteous  God,  that  is  the 
supreme  governor  of  the  world,  notwithstanding  all  the  oppositions 
and  confusions  they  groan  under:  Hab.  ii.  3,  4,  'Because  it  will  surely 
come,  and  will  not  tarry.  Behold,  his  soul  that  is  lifted  up  is  not 
upright  in  him,  but  the  just  shall  live  by  his  faith;'  that  is,  the  Lord's 


300  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.       [SfiR.  CXXXVIII 

purpose  in  delating  to  perform  the  vision  is  to  try  and  discover  who 
are  the  lofty  and  unsound,  and  who  can  subsist  and  hold  out  by  faith 
on  God's  being,  and  providence,  and  promises,  and  world  to  come, 
and  so  wait  upon  God  in  hard  times  without  fainting.  If  God  should 
smite  as  soon  as  his  enemies  provoke  him,  faith  would  be  of  no  use, 
and  the  whole  world  would  be  governed  by  sense.  To  believe  the 
justice  and  mercy  of  God,  though  for  the  time  we  do  not  see  any 
manifestation  of  it,  that  is  the  trial  of  faith.  We  know  there  is 
one  that  sits  above  and  seeth  all.  Though  the  world  be  in  an  uproar, 
and  they  that  work  wickedness  are  set  up,  and  God's  servants  perse 
cuted,  yet  we  know  that  God  will  reckon  with  them  in  due  time. 
And  secondly,  to  prove  their  patience,  in  bearing  the  present  difficul 
ties,  and  tarrying  the  Lord's  leisure :  Eev.  xiii.  10,  '  Here  is  the  pa 
tience  and  faith  of  the  saints  ;'  that  is,  a  sensible  proof  of  it,  when  a 
powerful  enem}7'  carrieth.  all  before  him :  there  would  be  little  use  of 
such  a  grace  but  for  such  times.  This  is  submission  to  God,  when  we 
are  resolved  to  tarry  for  his  season,  though  we  know  it  not,  and  will 
wait  as  long  as  God  will  have  us  wait,  when  all  human  probabilities 
are  taken  away,  and  we  have  nothing  but  God's  providence  to  live 
upon. 

Second  consideration.     Though  he  bear  long,  yet  he  hath  his  times 
to  punish  and  arise  to  judgment. 

1.  With  respect  to  himself  and  his  own  glory :  Ps.  ix.  16,  '  The 
Lord  is  known  by  the  judgment  which  he  executeth/  Little  of  God 
would  be  taken  notice  of  in  the  world  unless  he  did  now  arid  then 
give  out  sensible  demonstrations  of  his  power  and  justice,  and  mind- 
fulness  of  human  affairs.  What  strange  conceits  would  men  else  have 
of  God !  as  if  no  God,  no  providence,  no  distinction  between  good  and 
evil ;  but  as  if  God  were  indifferent  to  either,  and  did  favour  good  and 
bad  alike :  and  therefore  it  is  in  vain  to  trouble  ourselves  about  the 
worship  and  service  of  God,  no  reward  nor  punishment.  These  are 
the  uses  the  wicked  make  of  God's  forbearance,  either  to  deny  God 
and  providence  :  Ps.  Iv.  19,  *  Because  they  have  no  changes,  therefore 
they  fear  not  God.'  If  they  have  shifted  from  vessel  to  vessel,  they 
corrupt  and  settle  upon  the  lees,  Zeph.  i.  12  ;  they  say  God  will  not  do 
good,  neither  will  he  do  evil,  nor  interpose  ;  but  suffereth  enemies  to 
trample  upon  his  people  arid  glorious  name.  Or  else  pervert  the  inter 
pretation  of  providence  :  Ps.  1.  21.  '  Thou  thoughtest  I  was  altogether 
such  a  one  as  thyself;'  as  if  he  did  favour  their  ways.  They  misin 
terpret  providence,  and  make  the  sun  go  according  to  their  dial,  or 
else  ascribe  the  act  of  providence  to  themselves ;  Deut.  xxxii.  27, 
4  Lest  they  should  say,  Our  hand  is  high,  and  the  Lord  hath  not  done 
all  this/  When  long  permitted  to  prosper,  they  think  they  have 
mastered  heaven,  that  there  is  no  power  superior  to  theirs,  and  they 
can  carry  all  before  them  at  their  pleasure.  Therefore  God  must 
vindicate  himself  by  his  works,  and  give  out  some  demonstrations  to 
sense  that  there  is  a  distinction  between  good  and  evil ;  that  God  is 
differently  affected  to  either,  that  he  hateth  the  evil  and  loveth  the 
good,  and  accordingly  there  is  a  reward  and  punishment :  Ps.  Iviii. 
11,  '  Verily  there  is  a  reward  for  the  righteous.'  God  is  fain  to  teach 
them  by  briers  and  thorns,  or  else  the  stupid  world  would  not  take 


VER.  126.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  301 

notice  of  it,  but  think  the  world  is  governed  by  chance,  not  adminis 
tered  by  an  almighty,  all-wise,  and  most  just  providence.  They  knew 
not  what  to  think  of  providence  when  they  saw  the  godly  oppressed 
and  the  wicked  high  in  power. 

2.  With  respect  to  his  people.     Surely  God  will  not  always  chide  ; 
for  God  considers  the  weakness  of  man  :  Ps.  ciii.  14,  '  He  remembers 
we  are  but  dust.'     The  hearts  of  his  people  would  fail  and  faint,  and 
they  would  be  tempted  to  some  forbidden  course  to  ease  themselves, 
Isa.  lix.  16.     He  knows  our  spirits  would  fail ;  God  would  not  have 
us  utterly  to  be  discouraged.     We  are  liable  to  temptations:  Ps. 
cxxv.  3,  '  The  rod  of  the  wicked  shall  not  rest  upon  the  lot  of  the 
righteous,   lest  the    righteous  put   forth    their   hands    to   iniquity.' 
Therefore  he  hath  his  breathing  times,  and  times  of  intermission 
from  trouble.     The  spirits  of  a  poor  creature  would  soon  be  drunk 
up  if  there  were  not  some  well  days  ;  therefore  he  will  show  himself 
to  his  people. 

3.  With  respect  to  the  wicked,  who  would  grow  excessive  and  out 
rageous  in  sin :  Rom.  ii.  5,  '  But  after  thy  hardness  and  impenitent 
heart,  treasurest  up  unto  thyself  wrath  against  the  day  of  wrath ; ' 
Eccles.  viii.  11,  *  Because  sentence  against  an  evil  work  is  not  executed 
speedily,  therefore  the  hearts  of  the  sons  of  men  are  fully  set  in  them 
to  do  evil ;'  grow  bold,  resolute,  and  settled  in  an  evil  way ;  go  on 
without  remorse,  because  they  go  on  without  trouble,  and  so  grow  to 
be  monsters  in  sin.    It  is  only  faith  that  can  see  afar  off,  but  infidelity 
and  atheism  mind  not  what  is  to  come,  and  look  only  to  what  is  pre 
sent.     Well,  then,  lest  wicked  men  should  thus  continue  themselves 
in  sin,  God  hath  his  time  to  reckon  with  them ;  his  justice  is  not 
asleep  all  this  while,  but  God  keeps  a  petty  sessions  in  this  world 
before  the  general  assizes.     Now  concerning  this  time,  let  me  tell  you 
four  things : — 

[1.]  There  is  a  time  appointed.  There  is  an  end  of  all  things,  not 
only  an  expected  end.  but  also  an  appointed  end :  Hab.  ii.  3,  '  The 
vision  is  for  an  appointed  time ; '  things  are  not  left  to  their  own 
hazard  and  chance  to  work  out  their  own  end;  but  ordered  and 
appointed  by  the  wise  God :  Dan.  xi.  27,  '  Yet  the  end  shall  be  at 
the  time  appointed  ; ;  ver.  35,  '  To  try  them,  and  purge  them,  and  to 
make  them  white,  even  to  the  time  of  the  end ;  because  it  is  yet  for  a 
time  appointed.'  There  is  a  course  of  providence  set  by  God  which 
shall  at  length  come  to  its  end  and  period. 

[2.]  This  is  the  best  time:  1  Peter  v.  6,  '  That  he  may  exalt  you 
in  due  time.'  There  is  a  due  time,  as  well  as  a  set  time.  There  is 
nothing  in  the  whole  administration  of  God  preposterous,  unseason 
able,  or  disorderly.  Wait  but  a  little,  and  you  shall  see  the  reason  of 
all  this  course  of  dispensations ;  for  God  doth  all  things  in  number, 
weight,  and  measure.  If  it  had  come  sooner  or  later,  it  would  not 
have  come  so  seasonably:  Eccles.  iii.  11,  'He  hath  made  everything 
beautiful  in  its  time.'  When  God's  work  is  done,  and  all  things  .are 
put  together,  you  will  see  a  marvellous  beauty  in  it.  It  is  just  with 
the  work  of  providence  as  with  the  work  of  creation,  every  day's  work 
was  'good  ;'  but  when  God  saw  all  his  works  together,  in  their  frame 
and  correspondence,  all  was  '  very  good/  Gen.  i.  31.  We  would 


302  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.       [SER.  CXXXVIII. 

think  that  God  should  come  sooner  to  our  deliverance  :  God  is  not 
slack,  but  we  are  too  hasty  ;  if  he  should  come  sooner,  it  would  be 
the  worse  for  us.  We  would  have  thought  God  should  have  owned 
Joseph  in  the  pit.  No ;  God  stays  till  he  be  cast  into  prison ;  and  in 
prison  Joseph  would  fain  come  out  as  soon  as  Pharaoh's  butler  was 
come  out,  but  he  forgot  him.  God  would  not  have  it  so ;  he  must 
tarry  there  till  God's  time  was  come,  and  then  had  not  only  deliver 
ance  out  of  prison,  but  preferment.  So  many  times  we  would  be 
contented  with  half  a  deliverance,  and  would  have  it  now,  but  God 
will  give  it  us  in  the  best  season. 

[3.]  It  is  but  a  short  time.  Say  sense  what  it  will,  it  is  but  fJUKpov 
oo-ov  oo-ov,  '  a  little  little  while,  and  he  that  shall  come  will  come,  and 
will  not  tarry/  Heb.  x.  37.  It  is  not  so  long  as  enemies  would  make 
it,  for  they  would  root  out  the  memorial  of  God's  children  ;  not  so  long 
as  sin  would  make  it,  or  as  fancy  would  conceive  it.  Suffering  hours 
pass  tediously ;  we  count  quarters  and  minutes  when  we  are  in  pain  or 
anxious  expectation  ;  we  think  an  hour  a  week,  a  week  a  month,  a 
month  a  year,  and  every  year  seven.  Yea,  not  so  long  as  reason  would 
make  it  as  to  probabilities  and  the  course  of  second  causes.  When 
things  are  fortified  and  backed  with  a  strong  interest,  to  reason  it 
will  be  a  long  time.  It  is  not  so  long  as  sense  would  make  it ;  though 
we  count  the  years,  the  winter  is  over,  and  the  spring  is  come,  and 
yet  we  are  not  saved,  and  can  say,  It  is  thus  long ;  yet  this  is  not  long 
in  comparison  of  eternity,  2  Cor.  iv.  17.  It  is  not  long  to  faith,  for  to 
the  eye  of  faith  things  future  and  afar  off  are  present,  Heb.  xi.  1. 
Not  long  to  love,  Gen.  xxix.  20  :  seven  years  are  as  a  few  days  ;  they 
that  believe  an  eternity,  and  have  any  love  to  God,  will  say  it  is  short. 
But  a  short  walk  is  a  long  journey  to  the  sick  and  weak ;  the  impa 
tience  of  our  flesh  makes  it  seem  long. 

[4.]  When  the  time  is  come,  God  will  make  speedy  work  :  Isa.  Ix. 
2,  '  The  Lord  will  hasten  it  in  his  time  ; '  Luke  xviii.  7,  '  Shall  not 
God  avenge  his  own  elect?'  Kev.  xviii.  7,  'Her  plagues  shall  come 
in  one  day  ; '  Isa.  Ixvi.  8,  '  A  nation  born  in  a  day/  All  these  places 
show  (and  it  is  a  comfort  to  us)  that  no  difficulty  shall  hinder  when  the 
season  calls  for  it.  He  that  produced  heaven  and  earth  at  once,  what 
cannot  he  do  ?  We  are  dismayed  when  we  consider  an  evil  party 
fortified  with  combined  interests,  strength  of  opposite  factions,  force 
of  laws  and  worldly  powers  -  but  God  can  make  a  nation  be  born  in 
one  day.  It  will  be  quick  work  when  God  once  begins. 

Third  consideration.  This  time  is  usually  when  the  impiety  and 
insolency  of  wicked  men  is  come  to  a  height.  Indeed  there  are  other 
notes  ;  as  when  his  people's  hearts  are  prepared  to  receive  and  improve 
deliverance,  when  God's  glory  calleth  for  it.  But  this  is  the  season 
mentioned  in  the  text ;  therefore  I  shall  show  you — 

1.  That  this  is  a  season. 

2.  Inquire  when  iniquity  is  come  to  a  height. 

3.  Why  then  God  doth  usually  interpose. 

1.  That  this  is  a  season  :  Gen.  xv.  16,  '  The  sins  of  the  Amorites 
are  not  yet  full.'  God  showeth  his  patience  to  that  wicked  people,  till 
the  measure  of  their  sins  were  filled  up.  So  wrath  came  upon  the 
persecuting  Jews  when  they  had  filled  up  the  measure  of  their  fathers, 


YER.  126.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  303 

Mat.  xxiii.  32.  While  the  enemy's  cup  is  a-filling,  God  delayeth,  and 
we  must  wait.  So  Dan.  viii.  23,  '  When  the  transgressors  are  come  to 
the  full/  Once  more,  Joel  iii.  13, '  Put  ye  in  the  sickle,  for  the  harvest  is 
ripe ;  come,  get  ye  down,  for  the  press  is  full,  the  fats  overflow,  for 
their  wickedness  is  great/  The  Lord  compares  sinners  to  a  field  of 
ripe  corn  ready  to  be  cut,  full  fats  and  wine-presses  to  be  trod  out. 
When  sin  is  ripe,  the  execution  of  vengeance  will  not  be  long  forborne. 

2,  When  doth  iniquity  come  to  a  height  ?  I  answer — Their  ini 
quities  may  be  considered  as  to  the  two  branches  of  it — their  rebellion 
and  disobedience  to  God,  and  their  injuries  and  vexation  of  the 
saints. 

[1.]  Their  disobedience  and  contempt  of  God. 

(1.)  When  this  is  general.  All  orders  and  ranks  of  persons  have 
corrupted  their  way,  as  the  Sodomites  compassed  the  house,  Gen.  xix. 
4 ;  both  young  and  old,  all  the  people  from  every  quarter.  Usually 
in  making  a  judgment  upon  the  state  of  a  people,  you  will  find  it 
thus  :  If  any  part  be  right,  it  keeps  off  the  judgment  from  the  rest ;  if 
a  zealous  magistracy,  though  a  corrupt  people,  or  an  unsavoury 
ministry,  and  a  praying,  mourning  people,  God  holds  his  hand,  and 
will  not  proceed  to  judgment.  They  are  *  the  salt  of  the  earth/  Mat. 
v.  13  ;  and  Isa.  vi.  13,  '  The  holy  seed  shall  be  the  substance  thereof/ 
But  when  all  join  in  one,  in  a  neglect  of  God,  and  common  enmity  to 
his  ways ;  then,  I  say,  the  judge  of  the  earth  will  do  his  work,  then 
wrath  breaketh  out. 

(2.)  When  it  groweth  impudent  and  outrageous,  as  if  they  would 
obliterate  and  extinguish  the  law  of  God,  or  take  away  all  force  and 
authority  from  it  by  their  perverse .  actions  and  pernicious  examples. 
They  do  not  obliquely,  and  under  the  show  of  divers  pretences,  break 
God's  laws,  but  openly  set  themselves  against  him,  and  break  a  com 
mandment  without  any  shame :  Isa.  iii.  9,  '  They  declare  their  sin  as 
Sodom,  and  hide  it  not ;'  yea,  '  they  glory  in  their  shame/  Phil.  iii. 
19  ;  as  if  they  would  out-face  heaven  and  religion  at  once,  and  all 
honesty  and  ingenuity  by  their  debaucheries.  Bold-faced  sin  doth  not 
go  long  unpunished. 

(3.)  Desperate  incorrigibleness.  All  remedies  are  unprofitable,  and 
hope  of  amendment  taken  away,  Jer.  vi.  3 ;  Ezek.  xxiv.  13,  '  When 
God  would  have  purged  them,  they  would  not  be  purged/  He  trieth 
them  with  several  conditions,  he  hath  a  love  for  them  as  they  are  his 
creatures  ;  judgments  and  mercies  they  had,  yet  they  are  no  change 
lings,  but  go  on  as  wicked  as  ever.  God  trieth  key  after  key,  one 
providence  after  another,  yet  not  a  whit  the  better  or  wiser  ;  but  are 
like  men  that  have  slept :  still  abuse  his  patience,  and  defeat  all  the 
methods  of  his  grace,  show  the  same  corruption  they  did  before. 

(4.)  When  they  run  into  unnatural  sins,  and  the  corruption  of 
human  society  is  endangered :  Lev.  xviii.  27,  28,  '  For  all  these 
abominations  have  the  men  of  the  land  done/  &c. ;  when  men  are  so 
wicked  and  filthy  that  a  man  needs  to  be  a  criminal  to  be  acceptable 
to  them;  they  think  it  strange  that  others  run  not  into  the  same 
excess  of  riot,  1  Peter  iv.  4 ;  certainly  then  God  needeth  to  strike  in, 
that  virtue  may  be  upheld  in  some  kind  of  reputation. 

[2.]  Their  violence  and  vexation  of  the  saints.     It  was  Bede's  obser- 


304  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.       [$ER.  CXXXVIII. 

vation,  Odium  in  religionis  professor es,  &c. — that  hatred  of  the  pro 
fessors  of  religion  was  that  undid  his  country.  God  is  angry  when  his 
people  are  wronged ;  the  world  is  kept  up  for  their  sakes.  Were  it 
not  for  the  elect  to  be  gathered,  time  would  be  no  more  ;  for  their 
sakes  kingdoms  and  churches  are  preserved ;  they  are  the  staff  and  stay, 
the  chariots  and  horsemen  of  Israel.  God  is  tender  of  them  as  the 
apple  of  his  eye ;  therefore,  when  they  are  wronged,  and  men  are  not 
only  evil  themselves,  but  haters  of  those  that  are  good,  and  do  not 
only  break  God's  laws  themselves,  but  would  force  others  to  do  so, 
God  will  hold  no  longer.  As  their  violence  increaseth,  so  doth  their 
ruin  hasten,  Kev.  xii.  12.  When  they  abuse  their  power  to  such  an 
end,  though  God  may  bear  with  them  for  a  time  till  they  have  done 
their  work,  yet  he  will  reckon  with  them :  Zech.  i.  15,  '  I  am  sore  dis 
pleased  with  the  heathen  that  are  at  ease ;  for  I  was  a  little  displeased, 
and  they  helped  forward  the  affliction.'  God  will  not  forget  his  rela 
tion  to  his  sinning  people,  and  will  not  suffer  them  to  be  abused  out 
of  measure.  When  they  would  destroy  and  root  out  whom  God  would 
only  correct  and  purge,  it  is  a  sign  of  their  approaching  ruin.  Now 
these  things  should  be  considered  by  us  to  a  good  end  ;  not  to  feed  an 
evil  humour,  or  to  increase  our  hatred  and  exasperation  against  a 
party,  whom,  it  may  be,  we  hate  too  much  already  with  a  carnal 
hatred ;  but  to  a  good  purpose.  Partly  that  we  may  not  be  too  con 
fident  of  carnal  ease  too  soon.  God  will,  it  may  be,  have  the  enemies' 
cup  yet  fuller,  and  that  they  shall  appear  more  in  their  own  colours. 
And  so  our  trials  may  be  greater.  We  know  not  the  bounds  of  the 
Lord's  patience.  We,  that  are  apt  to  extenuate  our  own  sins,  are  apt 
to  aggravate  the  sins  of  others,  look  upon  them  in  the  glass  of  fashion, 
and  cry  too  soon,  It  is  time.  But  of  this  by  and  by.  And  partly  that 
we  may  see  the  greatness  of  our  transgressions,  by  which  we  have  pro 
voked  the  Lord  to  give  us  up  into  the  hands  of  such  men  as  blaspheme 
his  name  every  day,  Isa.  Hi.  5.  Our  sins  were  full  in  our  kind,  in 
the  abuse  of  God's  truth  and  worship ;  and  though  not  such  moral 
wickedness,  yet  a  great  deal  of  spiritual  wickedness.  And  God  is 
more  quick  and  severe  upon  us,  and  will  not  bear  that  in  a  professing 
people  that  he  beareth  in  others :  '  Judgment  begins  at  the  house  of 
God/  1  Peter  iv.  17.  The  cup  of  trembling  goes  round,  and  his  own 
people  drink  first,  and  our  staggering  is  not  yet  over  ;  in  time  they  shall 
pledge  us.  God  beareth  with  Balaam,  though  he  tempted  him  again 
and  again,  when  he  would  not  bear  with  the  young  prophet  whom  the 
lion  slew.  He  bore  with  the  Philistines  a  long  time  ere  they  were 
plagued.  We  feel  the  smart  of  the  rod  sooner,  Zech.  xii.  Yet  it  is 
apparent  oiir  kind  of  sins  were  grown  to  a  ripeness,  our  self-seeking, 
factions,  turbulency,  unquietness  under  government,  abuse  of  Christian 
liberty,  uncharitable  divisions  among  ourselves,  vexing  one  another, 
vain  opinions,  slighting  God's  ministers  and  ordinances.  And  partly 
that  we  may  be  humbled  for  their  sins.  It  should  be  a  grief  to  us  to 
see  men  break  God's  laws,  to  see  men  out-dare  heaven.  David  fasted 
for  his  enemies,  Ps.  xxxv.  14-16  ;  and  Ps.  cxix.  136,  '  Kivers  of  tears 
run  down  mine  eyes,  because  men  keep  not  thy  law ;'  because  God  is 
so  much  dishonoured,  human  nature  so  much  corrupted.  If  more  of 
this  spirit  were  stirring,  it  were  the  better  for  us.  And  partly  that  we 


VER.  126.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  305 

may  fear  ourselves.  We  are  bound  up  in  the  same  community,  and 
when  God  judgeth  them,  how  shall  we  escape  ?  The  Jews  have  a 
proverb,  that  two  dry  sticks  may  set  a  green  one  on  fire.  The  mean 
ing  is,  the  godly  man  may  fall  in  the  common  calamity :  wheat  is 
plucked  up  with  the  tares. '  God  saith  in  Deut.  vii.  22,  that  they 
should  not  destroy  all  the  Canaanites,  '  lest  the  beasts  of  the  field  should 
increase  upon  them/  The  safety  of  his  people  are  involved  in  the 
safety  of  their  sinning  and  persecuting  enemies.  A  hedge  of  thorns 
may  serve  for  a  fence  to  a  garden  of  roses,  and  all  the  relief  we  have 
is,  The  Lord  can  make  a  distinction  :  2  Peter  ii.  9,  '  The  Lord  knoweth 
how  to  deliver  the  godly  out  of  temptation,  and  to  reserve  the  unjust 
unto  the  day  of  judgment  to  be  punished.' 

3.  Why  doth  God  take  this  time  ?  (1.)  For  his  own  glory.  His 
justice  is  more  discovered  when  men  have  filled  up  their  measure  : 
Ps.  li.  4,  '  That  thou  mayest  be  justified  when  thou  speakest,  and  be 
clear  when  thou  judgest.'  It  justifieth  God's  proceedings,  and  maketh 
us  the  more  inexcusable.  So  also  his  power  ;  it  is  God's  time  to  send 
help  and  remedy,  when  all  things  are  gone  to  utter  confusion ;  when 
things  are  at  the  most  desperate  pass,  Ps.  cxxiv.  3-5,  in  our  low  estate, 
then  is  God  seen.  (2.)  Hereby  God's  work  upon  Mount  Zion  is  pro 
moted.  His  people  are  humbled  when  their  adversaries  are  chief,  and 
rage  against  them :  Ps.  cxxiii.  4,  '  Our  soul  is  exceedingly  filled  with 
the  scorning  of  those  that  are  at  ease,  and  with  contempt  of  the  proud.' 
When  things  come  to  extremity  their  prayers  are  quickened  :  Ps. 
cxxx.  1,  '  Oat  of  the  depths  I  cried  unto  thee,  0  Lord.'  They  are 
fitted  to  prize  mercy,  Ps.  cii.  13,  14.  They  that  thought  it  no  great 
matter  to  have  a  standing  temple,  delight  in  the  dust  of  a  ruinous 
heap.  Then  shepherds'  tents  look  lovely,  we  set  a  higher  rate  on 
despised  ordinances.  In  short,  they  are  waiting  and  praying,  and 
humbling  their  souls  before  God. 

Fourth  consideration.  When  a  flood  of  wickedness  is  thus  broken 
out,  we  may  mind  God  of  the  deliverance  of  his  people.  But  what 
needs  that  ?  Doth  not  God  know  his  seasons,  and  will  not  he  exactly 
observe  them  ?  In  the  answer  I  shall  show  you  why  and  how. 

1.  Why  ?     (1.)  Because  God  lovethto  be  awakened  by  the  prayers 
of  his  people  ;  and  when  he  hath  a  mind  to  work,  he  sets  the  spirit  of 
prayer  a-work  :  Jer.  xxix.  11, 12,  'I  know  the  thoughts  that  I  think 
towards  you,  saith  the  Lord,  thoughts  of  peace,  and  not  of  evil,  to  give 
you  an  expected  end.     Then  shall  ye  call  upon  me,  and  ye  shall  go 
and  pray  unto  me,  and  I  will  hearken  unto  you.'     So  thus  and  thus 
will  I  do :  Ezek.  xxxvi.  37,  '  Yet  for  this  will  I  be  inquired  of  by  the 
house  of  Israel.'     We  are  to  give  a  lift  by  our  prayers  ;  it  is  a  time 
of  finding,  Ps.  xxxii.  6.     (2.)  He  hath  put  an  office  upon  us.     God 
acts  the  part  of  a  judge,  we  as  solicitors  and  remembrancers :   Isa. 
Ixii.  6,7,  'I  have  set  watchmen  upon  thy  walls,  0  Jerusalem,  which 
shall  never  hold  their  peace  night  nor  day.     Ye  that  make  mention  of 
the  Lord,  keep  not  silence,  and  give  him  no  rest  till  he  make  Jeru 
salem  a  praise  in  the  earth.'     We  are  to  put  God  in  mind,  so  that  we 
but  do  our  duty. 

2.  How  ?     The  principle  and  manner  must  be  right. 

[1.]  The  principle ;  be  sure  it  be  not  the  impatiency  of  the  flesh,  or 

VOL.  VIII.  U 


306  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.        [SER.  CXXXVIII. 

love  to  our  own  ease,  or  a  mere  tediousness  and  irksomeness  of  the 
cross.  Be  sure  it  be  not  passion  and  a  principle  of  revenge,  but  a  de 
sire  of  promoting  his  honour  and  vindicating  his  glory.  David  doth 
not  say  how  troublesome  they  were  to  himself,  but,  They  make  void 
thy  law ;  as  if  he  had  said,  Lord,  if  my  own  interest  were  only  con 
cerned,  I  would  not  open  my  mouth,  nor  ever  call  upon  thee  to  revenge 
my  private  quarrels ;  but  it  is  my  zeal  for  thy  honour  and  ordinances ; 
not  that  I  have  received  injury,  but  thy  worship  is  corrupted.  Work, 
else  what  will  become  of  thy  name  and  poor  people  ?  Offences  done 
against  God  should  grieve  us  more  than  our  own  injuries,  and  we 
should  rather  regard  the  general  interest  of  religion  than  any  personal 
offence  done  to  us.  There  is  often  a  carnal  spirit  breathing  in  our 
prayers,  and  our  zeal  is  fleshly ;  the  people  of  God  beat  it  back :  Ps. 
cxv.  1,  '  Not  unto  us,  not  unto  us,  but  unto  thy  name  give  glory ;'  and 
Ps.  Ixxiv.  10,  '  0  Lord,  how  long  shall  the  adversary  reproach,  and  the 
enemy  blaspheme  thy  name  for  ever?'  The  godly  can  endure  their 
own  troubles  better  than  they  can  bear  the  open  dishonouring  and 
blaspheming  of  God.  This  is  the  true  sense,  but  because  the  heart  is 
deceitful — (1.)  Be  sure  your  cause  be  good,  your  adversaries  evil,  that 
ye  may  say,  Ps.  Ixxiv.  22,  '  Arise,  0  Lord,  plead  thine  own  cause/  It 
is  not  for  your  sins,  but  your  righteousness  ;  the  hatred  is  not  against 
the  body.  Indeed  they  pretend  some  little  faults.  It  is  as  if  a  leper 
should  hate  a  man  because  he  hath  some  pimples  in  his  face.  Some 
thing  they  would  lay  to  their  charge.  (2.)  That  we  use  all  means  with 
God  and  men  to  reclaim  them,  praying  for  them  :  Mat.  vi.  44,  '  Pray 
for  them  that  despitefully  use  you.'  Mourning  for  their  sins:  Jer. 
xxiii.  19,  *  My  soul  shall  weep  in  secret  for  your  pride.'  Heaping  coals 
of  fire  upon  their  heads  by  all  acts  of  kindness,  condescending  to  them 
as  far  as  possibly  we  can,  Bom.  xii,  18.  These  arts  become  his  king 
dom,  that  is  not  to  be  planted  by  force,  but  consent,  them  that  would 
have  the  zeal  of  God,  not  of  a  party.  (3.)  Be  sure  your  principle  be 
zeal  for  God's  glory,  not  a  desire  to  establish  your  own  interest,  and  to 
see  revenge  on  a  party  that  differeth  from  you  :  Luke  ix.  54,  55,  '  You 
know  not  what  spirit  you  are  of.'  Keligious  affections  overset  us,  and 
fleshly  zeal  puts  on  a  holy  spiritual  guise  and  mask,  and  we  think  it  is 
for  the  honour  of  Christ.  (4.)  Not  against  particular  persons,  but  the 
opposite  faction  to  godliness.  In  general,  destroy  all  the  enemies  of 
Christ,  &c. 

[2.]  For  the  manner  how.  We  must  seek  to  God,  first,  with  sub 
mission,  not  prescribing  to  God,  nor  making  a  snare  to  ourselves.  We, 
that  have  short  and  revengeful  spirits,  cannot  judge  aright  of  God's 
patience,  which  is  infinite,  out  of  fleshliness  and  affection  to  our  own 
ease.  And  so  our  times,  John  vii.  6.  Your  time  is  always  ready  ;  if 
none  of  these  be,  yet  we  are  limited  creatures,  and  great  is  the  wisdom 
of  God  and  his  power  admirable  ;  it  doth  not  belong  to  us  to  guide  the 
affairs  of  the  world,  Ps.  Ixxviii.  41.  We  must  not  prescribe  opportu 
nity  to  him,  fixing  times.  Besides  that,  it  argueth  a  spirit  too  much 
addicted  to,  and  eyeing  of,  temporal  happiness.  It  doth  much  unsettle 
us  and  harden  others.  The  devil  maketh  advantage  of  our  disap 
pointment.  Therefore  not  only  when  it  seemeth  seasonable  to  us  we 
may  seek  to  him  for  deliverance.  Once  more,  there  are  other  things 


VEB.  127.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  307 

concur  besides  the  enemies'  ripeness  for  judgment, — preparing  his 
people's  hearts,  fitting  those  instruments  for  his  work  ;  therefore  'all  is 
left  to  God's  will,  and  let  him  take  his  time. 
Use  of  all  is — 

1.  To  teach  us  how  to  behave  ourselves  in  these  times  with  patience, 
and  yet  with  hope  and  waiting.     It  is  the  time  of  Jacob's  trouble,  but 
there  will  be  a  time  of  deliverance,  Jer.  xxx.  7.     With  patience  ;  God 
will  have  a  time  to  chastise  his  people.     We  must  bear  it  patiently ; 
it  will  make  crosses  sit  easy  ;  they  may  be  greater  and  longer  than  our 
joys  :  Ps.  xc.  15,  '  Make  us  glad,  according  to  the  days  wherein  thou 
hast  afflicted  us,  and  the  years  wherein  we  have  seen  evil.' 

2.  With  hope  let  us  expect  it.     Certainly  it  will  not  exceed  the  time 
limited  by  God.     That  time  is  not  long :  Isa.  xiii.  22,  '  Her  time  is 
near  to  come,  and  her  days  shall  not  be  prolonged;'  Ezek.  xii.  21-28, 
*  And  the  word  of  the  Lord  came  unto  me,  saying,  Son  of  man,  what 
is  that  proverb  that  ye  have  in  the  land  of  Israel,  saying,  The  days  are 
prolonged,  and  every  vision  faileth  ?     Tell  them  therefore,  Thus  saith 
the  Lord,  I  will  make  this  proverb  to  cease,  and  they  shall  no  more 
use  it  as  a  proverb  in  Israel ;  but  say  unto  them,  The  days  are  at  hand, 
and  the  effect  of  every  vision.     For  there  shall  be  no  more  any  vain 
vision  nor  flattering  divination  within  the  house  of  Israel.     For  I  am 
the  Lord :  I  will  speak,  and  the  word  that  I  shall  speak  shall  come  to 
pass  ;  it  shall  be  no  more  prolonged.'     Faith  should  see  it  as  present, 
approaching ;  and  then  let  us  wait  his  leisure,  minding  God  in  prayer. 


SERMON  CXXXIX. 

TJierefore  I  love  thy  commandments  above  gold  ;  yea,  above  fine 

'         127. 


IN  the  words  we  have  — 

1.  A  note  of  inference,  therefore. 

2.  The  duty  inferred,  /  love  thy  commandments. 

3.  The  degree  of  that  love,  above  gold  •  amplified  by  the  repetition, 
with  some  advantage,  in  the  expression,  yea,  above  fine  gold. 

Gold,  by  a  synecdoche,  is  put  for  all  worldly  things,  the  comforts 
and  profits  of  this  life,  as  in  many  other  places  ;  as  Ps.  xix.  10, 
*  More  to  be  desired  are  they  than  gold,  yea,  than  much  fine  gold  ; 
sweeter  also  than  honey  and  the  honeycomb.'  The  two  bastard  goods 
with  which  the  world  is  enchanted  are  pleasure  and  profit.  Old  people 
are  all  for  profit,  young  people  are  all  for  pleasure.  Now  both  these, 
truly  so  called,  are  found  in  the  word  of  God.  So  in  Prov.  viii.  10,  11, 
'  Eeceive  my  instruction,  and  not  silver  ;  and  knowledge  rather  than 
choice  gold.  For  wisdom  is  better  than  rubies  ;  and  all  the  things 
that  are  to  be  desired  are  not  to  be  compared  to  it.'  So  Prov.  viii.  19, 
'  My  fruit  is  better  than  gold,  yea,  than  fine  gold  ;  and  my  revenues 
than  choice  silver.'  So  Prov.  iii.  14,  '  For  the  merchandise  thereof  is 
better  than  gold  ;  and  the  gain  thereof  than  fine  gold.'  So  Prov.  xvi. 
16,  *  How  much  better  is  it  to  get  wisdom  than  gold?  and  to  get 


308  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXXXIX. 

understanding  rather  to  be  chosen  than  silver?'     This  comparison  is 
used  so  often  for  two  reasons  : — 

1.  Because  it  is  more  prized  in  the  world.     All  things  that  have  a 
goodness  in  them  have  a  certain  bait  suitable  to  the  several  appetites 
of  men  ;  but  in  most  men's  opinions  gold  seemeth  chiefly  to  be  desired, 
partly  for  its  beauty,  but  chiefly  for  its  use,  it  being  the  great  instru 
ment  of  commerce  that  doth  all  things  in  the  world.     The  corruption 
of  man's  heart  addeth  a  greater  price  to  it,  and  therefore  is  the  thirst 
of  it  so  unsatisfied,     Now  the  word,  and  that  wisdom  and  godliness 
which  it  teacheth,  is  far  above  gold  and  fine  gold, 

2.  Because  it  is  the  usual  temptation  to  draw  off  men  from  the  love 
and  study  and  obedience  of  the  word.      Babylon's  abominations  are 
offered  to  the  world  in  a  golden  cup  :  Rev.  xvii.  4,  *  And  the  woman 
was  arrayed  in  purple  and  scarlet  colour,  and  decked  with  gold  and 
precious  stones  and  pearls,  having  a  golden  cup  in  her  hand,  full  of 
abominations  and  filthiness  of  her  fornication.'     Preferments  are  the 
baits  of  that  black  religion.     True  Christianity  consists  in  sound 
graces ;  pseudo-Christianity  in  pomp  and  state  and  worldly  advantages ; 
and  the  apostle  telleth  us,  1  Tim.  vi.  10,  '  That  the  love  of  money  is 
the  root  of  all  evil ;  which  while  some  have  coveted  after,  they  have 
erred  from  the  faith.'     Therefore  doth  the  Spirit  of  God  so  often  com 
pare  spiritual  things  to  gold  ;  and  here  David  preferreth  his  love  to  the 
word  before  the  worldling's  love  to  gold,  yea,  fine  gold.     For  mark,  it  is 
not,  More  than  I  love  gold,  but,  More  than  any  man.     Some  have  an 
ardent  desire  of  it,  however  it  be  mortified  in  God's  children. 

First,  For  the  note  of  inference,  together  with  the  duty  inferred, 
'  Therefore  I  love  thy  commandments.'  Some  refer  it  to  God's  taking 
his  time  to  work,  as  the  judge  of  the  world  in  punishing  the  wicked 
for  their  disobedience  and  contempt  of  his  law  ;  as  if  he  had  said, 
Lord,  though  thou  dost  connive,  and  hold  thy  hands  for  a  time,  yet  I 
know  thou  wilt  undertake  the  defence  of  the  righteous,  and  not  let  the 
wickedness  of  the  wicked  go  unpunished  ;  it  will  cost  them  dear  in  the 
issue,  '  therefore  I  love  thy  commandments,'  &c.  This  sense  I  cannot 
exclude.  If  I  thought  fit  to  prosecute  it,  it  would  yield  this  doctrine, 
that  a  little  faith  would  help  us  to  continue  our  affection  to  the  word 
of  God,  notwithstanding  the  wickedness  of  those  that  oppose  it.  For 
in  truth  here  this  wickedness  doth  soon  come  to  an  end  :  Ps.  Ixxiii.  18, 
'  Surely  thou  didst  set  them  in  slippery  places,  thou  castedst  them 
down  into  destruction.'  But  I  rather  refer  it  to  the  latter  clause, 
*  They  have  made  void  thy  law ;  therefore  I  love  thy  commandments.' 

Doct.  The  more  others  despise  the  ways  and  laws  of  God,  the  more 
should  a  gracious  heart  love  and  esteem  them. 

So  doth  David  profess  that  his  love  to  God's  ways  was  so  far  from 
ceasing  that  he  found  it  increased  rather. 

Reason  1.  Because  the  ways  of  God  are  still  the  same  they  were 
before.  If  there  be  any  difference,  they  only  need  to  be  more  owned 
by  us  with  greater  zeal  and  cheerfulness  because  they  are  despised  and 
forsaken  by  others.  God  is  the  same  still,  heaven  the  same,  and  the 
scriptures  the  same,  whether  we  have  company  to  walk  with  us  in 
heaven's  way,  yea  or  no  ;  and  therefore,  why  should  not  a  Christian  be 
the  same  he  was  before  ?  Their  contempt  and  hatred  of  God's  ways 


VER.  127.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  30D 

dotli  not  make  void  our  obligation  to  God  and  the  bonds  of  our  duty  to 
him.  If  God  had  only  required  us  to  be  good  when  we  may  be  so 
with  safety  and  ease,  and  would  dispense  with  us  at  other  times  when 
religion  is  in  disgrace,  then  indeed  a  Christian  might  change  his  course, 
and  run  with  the  cry  as  others  do.  But  God  had  required  in  the  worst 
times  we  should  take  God's  part,  and  stand  for  him  in  the  worst  places, 
and  keep  his  name  even  there  where  Satan's  throne  is,  Kev.  ii.  13,  and 
be  saints,  though  in  Nero's  household,  Phil.  iv.  22,  under  the  nose  of 
a  raging  persecutor.  And  as  God  is  the  same,  so  his  ways  are  the 
same.  Their  contempt  and  hatred  of  holiness  doth  not  hinder  the  love 
liness  of  it  to  a  spiritual  eye.  There  is  a  beauty  in  God's  despised  ways : 
Heb.  xi.  25,  '  Choosing  rather  to  suffer  affliction  with  the  people  of  God, 
than  to  enjoy  the  pleasures  of  sin  for  a  season/  He  saw  more  excel 
lency  in  the  tents  of  Jacob  than  in  the  courts  of  Pharaoh.  When  the 
outward  glory  of  his  ways  is  darkened,  and  they  are  put  under  re 
proach  and  trouble,  yet  their  inward  beauty  still  remaineth,  and  may 
be  seen  by  a  spiritual,  though  not  by  a  carnal  eye  ;  by  those  that  will 
not  judge  according  to  appearance,  but  judge  righteous  judgment, 
John  vii.  24.  The  external  glory,  which  is  the  favour  of  the  world,  out 
ward  prosperity  and  countenance,  is  foreign  and  accidental ;  but  this  is 
essential,  and  ever  remainth.  And  as  holiness  is  the  same,  so  the 
scriptures  are  the  same ;  they  do  not  speak  one  thing  to-day  and  an 
other  to-morrow,  and  leave  us  at  a  latitude  to  put  ourselves  into  all 
changes  and  postures  :  2  Cor.  i.  19,  '  For  the  Son  of  God,  Jesus  Christ, 
who  was  preached  among  you  by  us,  was  not  yea  and  nay,'  saith  the 
apostle,  '  but  in  him  was  yea/  The  scripture  doth  not  allow  saying 
and  unsaying,  and  building  again  the  things  which  we  have  destroyed : 
Gal.  ii.  18,  '  For  if  I  build  again  the  things  which  I  have  destroyed,  I 
make  myself  a  transgressor/  Truth  is  the  same  in  all  ages  ;  not  like 
an  almanack,  to  be  changed  every  year,  or  calculated  peculiarly  for  one 
meridian.  Nor  is  it  always  the  same.  Indeed,  in  some  lesser  things, 
that  serve  only  for  the  conveniency  of  religion,  we  may  upon  weighty 
grounds  change  practice,  and  do  that  which  is  good  where  best  may 
not  be  had.  So  heaven  is  the  same  still ;  it  not  only  serveth  us  as  an 
antidote  in  prosperity,  but  as  a  cordial  in  adversity,  and  is  at  all  times 
to  be  regarded.  Well,  then,  since  God,  and  holiness,  and  scripture, 
and  heaven  are  always  the  same,  why  should  not  we  ?  If  there  be 
change,  it  should  be  in  the  degree  of  our  love,  that  it  be  greater  than 
it  was  before,  to  repair  God  in  point  of  honour,  and  to  testify  against 
the  defection  of  others,  that  we  are  not  of  their  stamp,  who  do  not  see 
by  their  eyes,  nor  walk  by  their  principles,  nor  allow  of  their  warpings. 
lieason  2.  God  expects  more  from  gracious  hearts,  because  of  their 
relation  to  him  and  acquaintance  with  him ;  and  therefore,  if  others 
despise  the  laws  of  God,  they  should  esteem  them  the  more :  John  vi. 
66,  G7,  '  From  that  time  many  of  his  disciples  went  back,  and  walked 
no  more  with  him.  Then  said  Jesus  unto  the  twelve,  Will  you  also 
go  away  ? '  It  goeth  nearer  to  Christ's  heart  that  those  should  forsake 
him  that  are  trained  up  in  his  bosom,  that  the  devil  should  steal  away 
souls  under  his  own  arm.  Whatever  defection  others  make,  yet  that 
those  who  have  tasted  of  his  mercy,  drunk  of  his  cup,  feasted  with  his 
loaves,  have  had  experience  of  his  grace,  will  ye  also  ?  He  stood  not 


310  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiB.  CXXXIX. 

upon  the  multitude's  going  so  much  as  his  disciples'.  Therefore  they 
should  rouse  up  themselves  in  evil  times. 

Reason  3.  The  good  and  the  bad  do  exercise  and  keep  one  another 
in  breath  and  vigour.  When  there  are  but  two  factions  that  stand  in 
opposition  to  one  another,  one  apparently  for  God,  the  other  apparently 
for  Satan,  it  addeth  zeal  and  indignation  to  both  sides,  and  they 
mutually  inflame  one  another,  and  are  as  Jeremiah's  two  baskets  of 
figs,  the  good  figs  very  good,  and  the  evil  figs  very  evil,  Jer.  xxiv.  3. 
When  others  are  so  very  bad,  it  should  not  quench  zeal  but  inflame 
it ;  we  should  be  not  only  good,  but  very  good.  Corruption,  the  more 
it  is  opposed,  the  more  it  stormeth  and  groweth  outrageous,  as  a  river 
swelleth  by  opposing  dams  and  banks  against  it,  they  rage  upon  re 
straints  now  the  floods  break  loose.  So  on  the  other  side,  should  grace 
be  more  earnestly  and  zealously  exercised  the  more  it  is  opposed,  as 
the  casting  on  of  water  sets  the  lime  on  fire.  To  be  sure,  their  malice 
will  put  us  to  a  great  deal  of  trouble,  and  trouble  is  a  time  to  exercise 
grace.  To  be  much  in  prayer,  and  faith,  and  patience,  and  mortifying 
corruptions,  and  watchfulness,  and  wary  walking,  that  we  may  neither 
take  infection  ourselves,  nor  give  occasion  to  others  to  stumble  at  the 
ways  of  God :  Col.  iv.  3,  '  Walk  in  wisdom  towards  them  that  are 
without,  redeeming  the  time/  When  they  lived  among  unconverted 
heathens  they  should  carry  it  wisely  towards  them,  that  they  might 
not  be  occasions  of  stumbling  or  hardening.  So  by  proportion  those 
who  profess  the  ways  of  God  should  carry  it  wisely  towards  such  as 
they  live  amongst,  who  declare  their  non-regeneration  by  a  profane 
life,  and  live  like  heathens,  that  they  give  no  occasion  to  such  adver 
saries  of  truth  and  holiness  to  speak  reproachfully ;  but  they  should 
observe  the  apostle's  rules,  1  Peter  ii.  12,  15.  Christians  should  be 
good  in  bad  times,  that  the  times  may  not  be  worse  for  them,  nor 
they  the  worse  for  the  times.  They  should  labour  to  live  down  the 
vices  and  errors  of  the  age  wherein  they  live,  and  labour  to  save  them 
selves  from  this  untoward  generation,  and  should  cut  off  occasions 
from  them  that  watch  for  occasions  against  them,  and,  like  fishes, 
keep  their  freshness  in  salt  water.  Ham  will  scoff  to  surprise  a  Noah 
in  a  fault;  when  their  foot  slippeth,  they  will  magnify  themselves 
against  them.  Experience  of  the  madness  and  fury  whereby  others 
are  carried  on  in  the  ways  of  sin  should  more  confirm  others  in  the 
ways  of  God  that  are  opposed  by  them.  Surely  such  men  would  not 
hate  what  is  evil,  and  so  earnestly  persecute  what  is  good.  Non  nisi 
grave  bonum  a  Nerone  damnari.  A  good  man  would  not  choose  by 
their  liking  and  loathing.  If  any  argument  may  be  taken  from  them, 
it  is  to  like  the  things  the  better  because  they  slight  them,  and  to  love 
them  because  they  persecute  them.  For  it  is  to  be  presumed  they 
will  hate  what  is  good,  and  love  what  is  evil ;  and  though  no  certain 
argument  can  be  concluded  thence,  yet  their  love  is  but  an  ill  token ; 
for  Christ  telleth  us,  'The  world  will  love  its  own/  John  xv.  19.  All 
things  love  what  is  suitable  to  themselves. 

Reason  4.  Unless  our  love  be  increased  when  men  oppose  and 
despise  the  laws  of  God,  it  will  not  hold  out  against  so  great  a  trial. 
Sin  is  very  infectious  at  all  times,  and  when  it  is  common  it  is  less 
odious.  But  the  force  of  example  is  great ;  we  think  we  may  do  as 


VEB.  127.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  311 

others  do :  a  cold  neutral  love,  or  loose  and  general  owning  of  the 
ways  of  Christ,  will  not  bear  us  out.  I  confess  this  is  a  very  great 
temptation  that  prevaileth  with  many :  Mat.  xxiv.  12,  *  When  iniquity 
aboundeth,  the  love  of  many  will  wax  cold.'  Loose  professors  are 
soon  shaken  off,  and  dead  fish  swim  with  the  stream.  Yea,  some  of 
notable  eminency  in  the  church  may  miscarry,  but  yet  always  they  are 
such  as  had  their  worldly  affections  unbroken  and  unmortified : 
1  Tim.  vi.  11,  12,  '  Some  through  the  love  of  money,  have  erred  from 
the  faith  ;  but  thou,  0  man  of  God,  follow  after  righteousness,  godli 
ness,  faith,  and  patience,  love,  meekness,  fight  the  good  fight  of  faith.' 
There  needs  great  diligence  and  fervency  to  increase  in  solid  grace,  or 
else  we  shall  not  dare  to  own  God  and  his  ways  ;  yea,  I  confess  the 
soundest  may  be  sorely  shaken,  and  therefore  need  warning  and  con 
firmation.  The  godly  have  seeds  of  the  same  evils  which  draw  away 
others.  Evil  example  is  very  forcible,  especially  when  it  is  general. 
In  a  time  of  public  infection  it  is  hard  to  preserve  health.  And  then 
usually  sin  is  disguised  and  carried  on  under  plausible  pretexts,  and 
evil  men  blinded  by  their  interests  may  easily  warp,  Ingeniosa  res  est 
esse  Christianum,  as  Hierom  of  an  Arian  time.  It  is  a  matter  of  skill 
to  discern  God's  interest,  and  by  consequence  our  duty.  The  prophet 
complaineth,  '  I  am  a  man  of  polluted  lips,  and  I  dwell  among  a  people 
of  polluted  lips,'  Isa.  vi.  5.  We  contract  some  contagion  and  taint 
from  those  among  whom  we  live  ;  grow  careless  of  sabbaths  by  general 
profanation  ;  take  more  liberty  for  the  flesh  when  others  wallow  in  all 
filthiness,  and  are  given  up  to  all  manner  of  vanity.  Therefore,  as 
the  force  of  example  is  great,  the  force  of  zeal  should  be  greater,  that 
we  may  stand  for  God,  though  we  stand  alone.  As  Elijah  did :  1 
Kings  xix.  14,  '  And  he  said,  I  have  been  very  jealous  for  the  Lord 
God  of  hosts  ;  because  the  children  of  Israel  have  forsaken  thy  cove 
nant,  thrown  down  thine  altars,  and  slain  thy  prophets  by  the  sword  ; 
and  I,  even  I  only  am  left,  and  they  seek  my  life  to  take  it  away.' 
We  must  keep  up  our  savour  in  a  corrupt  age,  as  Noah  did  :  Gen.  vi. 
9,  '  Noah  was  a  just  man,  and  perfect  in  his  generation,  and  Noah 
walked  with  God.'  Lot  lived  more  upright  in  Sodom,  where  he  was 
besieged  with  temptations  that  made  him  constantly  to  stand  upon 
his  watch,  than  he  did  in  the  cave,  when  he  neglected  and  grew  secure. 
As  fire  burns  hottest  in  the  coldest  weather,  so  a  Christian's  zeal,  by 
a  holy  antiperistasis,  should  flame  most  in  a  corrupted,  debauched 
age. 

Reason  5.  Because  it  is  very  acceptable  to  God,  and  a  note  of 
sincerity  to  hold  out  against  trials,  yea,  to  increase  in  zeal  when  others 
desert  him.  Many  will  flock  to  Christ,  and  resort  to  him  in  his 
prosperity.  W^hen  religion  is  befriended,  painted  butterflies  and 
gaudy  carnalists  will  prove  summer  friends  to  him  ;  but  when  winter 
frosts  and  blustering  storms  come,  they  are  gone  ;  like  those  that  go 
to  sea,  not  for  a  voyage  to  ride  out  all  weathers,  but  for  recreation  : 
Christ  maketh  little  of  their  friendship.  But  now,  Luke  xxii.  28,  29, 
'  Ye  are  they  that  have  continued  with  me  in  my  temptations ;  and  I 
appoint  unto  you  a  kingdom,  as  my  Father  hath  appointed  unto  me.' 
When  David  was  crowned  king  in  Hebron,  then  those  that  followed 
him  in  the  wilderness  were  not  forgotten,  but  preferred  by  him.  To 


312  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXXXIX. 

serve  G-od  in  a  crowd,  and  with  store  of  company,  is  not  so  praise 
worthy.  Every  one  will  be  in  the  fashion,  and  there  is  a  revolution 
of  fashions  in  religion  ;  but  to  own  hirn  in  a  time  of  defection,  when 
others  look  strange  upon  him  ;  then  to  keep  our  zeal  and  strictness  i& 
commendable.  Temporibus  malis  ausus  esse  bonus. 

Use  1.  Information.  That  the  general  corrupt  custom  and  example 
of  those  with  whom  we  live  is  not  a  sufficient  excuse  for  our  sinning. 
It  is  so  in  the  minds  of  many,  but  it  is  not  so  indeed.  It  is  indeed  a 
temptation,  and  a  strong  incitement;  but  temptations  to  the  con 
trary  do  not  excuse  from  duty.  This  will  appear  to  you  if  you 
consider — 

1.  The  state  of  a  Christian  ;  he  is  not  of  this  world  :  John  xv.  19r 
*  If  ye  were  of  the  world,  the  world  would  love  its  own  ;  but  because 
ye  are  not  of  the  world,  but  I  have  chosen  you  out  of  the  world, 
therefore  the  world  hateth  you.'     He  was  separated  for  God's  use  in 
baptism,  and  must  make  good  his  baptismal  vow,  live  as  one  that  is 
separated  from  the  world  and  their  course  of  life,  that  he  may  act 
for  God :  Ps.  iv.  3,  '  Know  that  the  Lord  hath  set  apart  him  that  is 
godly  for  himself ; '  therefore  it  is  no  excuse  for  him  to  say,  I  do  but 
as  others  do ;  he  is  to  reckon  his  hours  by  the  sun,  not  the  town- 
clock  ;  to  take  God's  direction,  not  the  voice  of  the  multitude,  as  one 
of  their  stamp,  and  at  liberty  to  comply  with  their  fashions. 

2.  The  course  of  God's  dispensations,  which  is  to  exercise  and  try 
his  children  before  he  crowneth  them.     None  go  to  heaven  without 
their  trials. 

3.  The  duty  of  God's   children,  intimated   in   the   cautions  and 
descriptions  and  injunctions  of  the  word:  Exod.  xxiii.   2,  'Not  to 
follow  a  multitude  to  do  evil ;  nor  to  walk  according  to  the  course  of 
this  world ; '  Eph.  ii.  2,  *  The  lust  of  men,'  1  Peter  iv.  2 ;  nor  the 
corruptions  of  the  times :  Rom.  xii.  2,  '  Be  not  conformed  to  this 
world,'  &c.     Many  such  hints  everywhere,  that  show  it  a  crime,  &c. 

4.  The  opposition  of  the  wicked  should  make  us  more  courageous  ; 
for  then  it  is  put  to  a  plain  contest,  who  shall  have  the  better,  Christ 
or  Satan?     Therefore  we  should  discover  that  he  that  is  in  us  is 
stronger  than  he  that  is  in  the  world,  1  John  iv.  4.     Wicked  men 
have  their  end  and  purposes  if  they  can  overcome  the  disciples  of 
Christ,  and  discourage  them  from  owning  their  profession.     We  are 
to  be  more  than  conquerors,  Rom.  viii.  37. 

Use  2.  We  ought  to  be  so  far  from  being  involved  in  the  conspiracy 
of  others  against  God,  that  our  zeal  should  increase  by  others  de 
clining,  and  we  should  love  religion  when  it  is  commonly  despised. 
That  is  our  commendation,  esse  bonum  facile  est,  &c.  Till  we  are  in 
termino,  we  have  our  difficulties,  till  we  are  gathered  to  angels,  e'fw 
/3eXou?,  out  of  gunshot.  Our  business  is  not  to  give  way  to  evils,  but 
to  resist  them  with  the  greater  courage.  Indeed  it  is  hard  for  a  man 
to  keep  himself  free  from  the  infection  of  the  times  he  lives  in.  We 
all  complain  of  the  badness  of  the  times  ;  but  let  us  not  make  them 
the  worse  for  us.  If  we  would  be  good  in  bad  times,  we  need — 

1.  Much  holiness  and  heavenly-mindedness,  that  we  may  be  burning 
and  shining  lights,  conducting  men  to  Christ,  as  the  star  that  shone 
at  Christ's  birth :  Phil.  ii.  15,  *  That  ye  be  blameless  and  harmless, 


VER.  127.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  313 

the  sons  of  God,  without  rebuke,  in  the  rnidst  of  a  crooked  and  per 
verse  generation,  among  whom  ye  shine  as  lights  in  the  world/  Noah, 
by  preparing  an  ark,  condemned  the  world,  Heb.  xi.  7.  This  is  the 
way  to  appear  for  God  in  the  lustre  of  real  grace,  when  we  are  taken 
off  from  other  means. 

2.  Much  faith  or  foresight  of  things  to  come :  Heb.  xi.  7,  '  By  faith 
Noah,  being  warned  of  God  of  things  not  seen  as  yet,  moved  with 
fear,  prepared  an  ark.'    To  see  the  ruin  of  the  wicked  when  prosperous, 
this  kept  David  in  his  integrity :  Ps.  Ixxiii.  17,  '  I  went  into  the 
sanctuary,  then  understood  I  their  end/     When  he  was  once  able  to 
look  through  their  honours  and  greatness  and  riches  by  the  light  of  the 
sanctuary,  he  overcame  the  temptation  which  did  so  greatly  press  and 
shake  him.     So  here  in  the  text,  '  It  is  time  for  thee,  Lord,  to  work, 
for  they  have  made  void  thy  law  ;  therefore  I  love  thy  commandments 
above  gold,  yea,  above  fine  gold/     There  is  a  worm  in  the  root;    they 
are  under  God's  curse  :  Job  v.  3,  '  I  have  seen  the  foolish  taking  root, 
but  suddenly  I  cursed  his  habitation;'  which  predicteth  their  ruin, 
though  little  appearance  of  their  fall. 

3.  There  needs  much  zeal  and  strong  love  to  God.     When  pro- 
faneness  is  in  fashion,  let  us  give  check  to  it  in  our  place,  either  as 
magistrates  by  appearing  against  evil-doers,  as  Neheiniah  contended 
for  God  :  Neh.  xiii.  11,  '  Then  I  contended  with  the  rulers,  and  said, 
Why  is  the  house  of  God  forsaken  ?  '  and  ver.  17,  '  Then  I  contended 
with  the  nobles  of  Judah.  and  said  unto  them,  What  evil  thing  is  this 
that  ye  do,  and  profane  the  sabbath-day  ? '      Not  like  Gallio,  that 
cared  for  none  of  these  things.     As  ministers,  more  active  against 
sin :  Isa.  Iviii.  1,  '  Cry  aloud,  spare  not ;  lift  up  thy  voice  as  a  trumpet, 
and  show  my  people  their  transgression,  and  the  house  of  Jacob  their 
sins/     As  governors  of  families,  careful  of  ourselves  and  families : 
Josh.  xxiv.  15,  'As  for  me  and  my  house,  we  will  serve  the  Lord/ 
As  private  Christians,  give  out  more  of  the  lustre  of  grace :  Mat.  v. 
16,  '  Let  your  light  so  shine  before  men,  that  they  may  see  your  good 
works,  and  glorify  your  Father  which  is  in  heaven ; '  1  Peter  ii.  12, 
*  Having  your  conversation  honest  among  the  Gentiles,  that  whereas 
they  speak  against  you  as  evil-doers,  they  may  by  your  good  works  which 
they  shall  behold,  glorify  God  in  the  day  of  visitation/     Not  only  stop 
the  mouth  of  iniquity,  but  bring  about  the  conversion  of  wicked  men. 
Thus  should  every  one  of  us  in  our  place  glorify  God,  and  strive  to 
make  the   times  better:    Rom.  xii.   11,   'Not  slothful  in  business, 
fervent  in  spirit,  serving  the  Lord/     That  is  a  good  time ;  serving 
the  Lord  can  make  a  change,  if  we  would  ply  this  means.     Thus  did 
David  serve  his  generation  :  Acts  xiii.  36,  '  For  David,  after  he  had 
served  his  own  generation  by  the  will  of  God,  fell  asleep/     When  you 
die,  people  will  be  able  to  say,  We  miss  such  a  man ;  he  was  zealous 
against   sabbath-breakers,    and   drunkards,   and   swearers ;   one   that 
owned  the  people  of  God,  a  friend  to  religion. 

4.  Caution,  that  we  be  not  carried  away  with  the  deluge  of  corrup 
tion:  Gal.  ii.  13,  'The  other  Jews  dissembled  likewise  with  him, 
insomuch  that  Barnabas  also  was  carried  away  with  their  dissimula 
tion/     Example  hath  a  kind  of  compulsion  in  it ;  the  best  men  can 
hardly  stand  out  against  it.     It  secretly  insinuateth  itself,  weakeneth 


314  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SflR.  CXXXIX. 

our  love  to  God,  abateth  our  care ;  therefore  we  cannot  be  enough 
watchful,  that  we  be  not  secretly  tainted,  as  a  man  in  the  sun  tans 
unawares.  As  in  times  of  common  contagion,  every  man  is  careful 
of  his  diet  and  company,  so  should  we  watch  to  keep  our  garments 
clean  and  unspotted  of  the  world. 

5.  Sincerity,  not  dissembling ;  as  Josh.  xiv.  8,  '  I  wholly  followed 
the  Lord  my  God  ; '  not  loving  the  ways  of  God  on  foreign  respects, 
but  their  own  internal  reasons ;  otherwise  a  man  soon  miscarrieth,  for 
these  motives  will  be  changed,  and  those  very  inducements  that  moved 
him  to  take  up  religion  will  move  him  also  to  cast  it  off.     None  but 
the  solid  Christian  will  hold  out,  whilst  light  chaff  is  carried  about 
with  every  wind,  and  the  carnal-minded  cuts  the  coat  of  his  profession 
to  the  fashion  of  the  times.     A  false  heart  cannot  long  hold  out :  Prov. 
x.  9,  'He  that  walketh  uprightly,  walketh  surely ;  but  he  that  per- 
verteth  his  ways  shall  be  known ; '  that  is,  to  his  shame ;  cannot  long 
dissemble  his  nature. 

6.  A  fixed  resolution,  that  we  may  not  be  easy,  and  merely  do  as 
others  do.     It  is  the  resolved  man  that  encounters  temptations,  and 
maketh  them  fly  back,  as  arrows  shot  against  a  brazen  wall.     Though 
others  fall,  I  will  serve  the  Lord,  whatever  others  do  :  Josh.  xxiv.  15, 
'  And  if  it  seem  evil  unto  you  to  serve  the  Lord,  choose  you  this  day 
whom  you  will  serve,  whether  the  gods  which  your  fathers  served,  that 
were  on  the  other  side  of  the  flood,  or  the  gods  of  the  Amorites,  in 
whose  land  ye  dwell ;  but  as  for  me  and  my  house,  we  will  serve  the 
Lord.'    If  he  meet  with  reproaches  and  scorns :  2  Sam.  vi.  22, '  And  I 
will  yet  be  more  vile  than  thus,  and  will  be  base  in  mine  own  sight.' 
If  enticed  by  eviljcompanyj  Pe.  cxix.  115,  '  Depart  from  me,  ye  evil 
doers,  for  I  will  keep  the  commandments  of  my  God/     If  threatened : 
Acts  iv.  19,  '  But  Peter  and  John  answered  and  said  unto  them, 
Whether  it  be  right  in  the  sight  of  God  to  hearken  unto  you  more 
than  unto  God,  judge  ye.'     Thus  they  stood  by  a  self-denying  resolu 
tion  ;  whereas  the  unresolved  man,  James  i.  8,  '  is  unstable  in  all  his 
ways ; '  is  turned  like  a  weathercock  with  every  wind,  fitteth  his  re 
ligion  to  every  interest.     God  biddeth  us  thus  unmovably  to  fix  our 
selves  :  Jer.  xv.  19,  '  Thus  saith  the  Lord,  Let  them  return  unto  thee, 
but  return  not  thou  to  them/     A  man  that  would  live  quietly  must 
either  bring  himself  to  the  times,  or  expect  the  times  should  come  over 
to  him.     A  resolved  man  stayeth  God's  leisure,  doth  not  serve  his 
conscience  to  fit  the  times,  but  waiteth  till  God  fit  the  times  to  his 
conscience. 

7.  A  true  sight  of  the  worth  of  spiritual  things  above  carnal.    This 
in  the  text,  '  More  than  gold,  yea,  fine  gold/     Till  a  man  cometh  to 
this,  his  conscience  will  not  be  guided  by  his  religion,  but  his  interest, 
and  give  up  all  for  the  world's  sake :  2  Tim.  iv.  10,  '  Demas  hath 
forsaken  us,  and  loved  the  present  world ; '  Phil.  iii.  19,  20,  '  Whose 
end  is  destruction,  whose  god  is  their  belly,  whose  glory  is  in  their 
shame,  who  mind  earthly  things.     For  our  conversation  is  in  heaven, 
from  whence  also  we  look  for  the  Saviour,  the  Lord  Jesus  Christ/ 
Loath  to  suffer,  turn  themselves  into  all  shapes.     God  doth  not  com 
mand  them,  but  themselves.  ^ 

Secondly,  The  degree  of  his  affection  ;  whence  this  doctrine — 


VER.  127.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  315 

Doct.  We  ought  not  only  to  love  the  word,  but  to  love  it  above  all 
worldly  things  whatsoever. 

1.  Let  me  explain  the  grounds  of  our  love  to  the  word. 

2.  Speak  of  the  degree  of  it. 

1.  Let  me  explain  the  grounds  of  our  love  to  the  word.     We  love 
the  word,  as  it  is  the  charter  of  our  hopes  and  the  rule  of  our  duty. 
We  have  both  respects  in  this  psalm.     As  the  charter  of  our  hopes, 
ver.  Ill,  'Thy  testimonies  have  I  taken  for  an  heritage  for  ever,  for 
they  are  the  rejoicing  of  my  heart.'    As  a  rule  of  our  duty,  ver.  14,  '  I 
have  rejoiced  in  the  way  of  thy  testimonies,  as  much  as  in  all  riches  ;' 
and  ver.  140,  '  Thy  word  is  very  pure,  therefore  thy  servant  loveth  it.' 
So  that— 

[1.]  To  love  and  esteem  the  word  as  the  charter  of  our  hopes  is  to 
love  and  esteem  spiritual  privileges,  such  as  the  favour  of  God",  pardon 
of  sins,  peace  of  conscience,  taking  away  the  stony  heart,  and  eternal 
life.  To  have  a  deep  sense  and  value  for  such  things  is  the  fruit  of 
faith.  It  is  true  that  some  loose  velleities  and  general  inclinations 
men,  as  men,  have  to  their  own  happiness  ;  but  being  but  weakly  per 
suaded  of  these  things,  they  are  but  slightly  affected  with  them  and 
the  promises  that  reveal  them.  Men  that  have  no  faith,  but  altogether 
live  by  sense,  know  nothing  more  excellent  than  gold  or  riches,  which 
do  all  in  the  world.  If  God  would  let  them  alone  here,  to  have  their 
portion  in  Paris,  they  would  part  with  their  share  in  paradise,  such 
dunghill-souls  have  they.  Let  God  keep  spiritual  things  for  whom  he 
will,  so  they  may  live  at  ease  in  the  world,  they  never  mind  com 
munion  with  God,  or  enjoyment  of  God  ;  but  gracious  hearts  love  the 
word,  as  offering  and  revealing  these  things. 

[2.]  To  love  the  word  as  a  rule  of  duty  is  in  effect  to  love  holiness, 
loving  things  as  suitable  to  our  necessities,  and  as  suitable  to  our  dis 
positions.  *  I  love  thy  commandments,'  saith  David  in  the  text,  as 
urging  and  directing  us  to  our  duty.  This  is  also  proper  to  gracious 
souls,  to  them  all  outward  things  are  but  toys  and  trifles  for  our  senses 
to  play  withal.  The  least  grain  of  grace  seemeth  better  to  them  than 
a  mountain  of  gold.  They  have  a  spiritual  discerning,  and  love  things 
according  to  the  nature  and  worth  of  them.  The  things  themselves 
are  not  to  be  compared  together,  so  should  not  our  affections  to 
them. 

2.  The  degree  of  it,  more  than  all  riches,   '  Therefore  I  love  thy 
commandments  above  gold,  yea,  above  fine  gold.'      Take  riches  as 
riches,  in  that  notion  as  the  word  implies  happiness,  abundance,  con 
tentment.      The  word  of  God  containeth  the  true  riches,  both  in  the 
promises  and  precepts  of  it. 

[1.]  In  the  promises,  to  us  are  given,  TO,  rLfiia  KOI  /teyfora  67ra<y<ye\- 
fiara,  '  exceeding  great  and  precious  promises,'  2  Peter  i.  4.  There 
the  great  controversy  is  decided  about  the  true  happiness  and  salva 
tion,  God  or  the  creature ;  there  you  have  the  '  unsearchable  riches 
of  Christ ;'  Eph.  ii.  7,  '  That  in  the  ages  to  come  he  might  show  the 
exceeding  riches  of  his  grace,  in  his  kindness  towards  us,  through 
Christ  Jesus/  The  riches  of  the  glory  of  the  saints'  inheritance : 
Eph.  i.  18,  'That  ye  may  know  what  is  the  hope  of  your  calling,  and 
what  the  riches  of  the  glory  of  his  inheritance  in  the  saints.'  These 


316  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXTX.  [SfiR.  CXXXIX. 

are  things  that  make  us  truly  rich:  Rev.  iii.  18,  /  I  counsel  theeto  buy 
of  me  gold  tried  in  the  fire,  that  thou  mayest  be  rich/  He  is  not 
rich  that  floweth  in  wealth  and  plenty,  but  he  that  hath  Christ,  and 
an  interest  in  his  benefits.  They  are  possessors  of  all  things,  though 
they  have  nothing :  2  Cor.  vi.  10,  '  As  having  nothing,  yet  possessing 
all  things.'  A  little  serves  the  turn  ;  they  have  the  good  things  pur 
chased  by  Christ,  happiness  enough  if  he  can  make  them  happy. 

[2.]  So  in  the  precepts,  they  are  means  to  work  grace,  the  least  dram 
of  which  is  more  worth  than  all  things  in  the  world.  He  is  rich 
enough  that  is  rich  in  faith :  James  ii.  5,  '  Hearken,  my  beloved 
brethren ;  hath  not  God  chosen  the  poor  of  this  world,  rich  in  faith, 
and  heirs  of  a  kingdom/  in  paradise,  '  which  he  hath  promised  to 
them  that  love  him  ? '  It  is  more  precious  than  the  trial  of  gold  : 
1  Peter  i.  7,  '  That  the  trial  of  your  faith,  being  much  more  precious 
than  of  gold  that  perisheth,  though  it  be  tried  with  fire,  might  be 
found  unto  praise  and  honour  and  glory,  at  the  appearing  of  Jesus 
Christ/  The  smallest  measure  of  saving  faith,  or  love  to  God,  or  fear 
of  God,  or  repentance,  is  of  more  worth  than  what  is  most  precious. 
The  word  of  God  does  more  enrich  a  man ;  and  true  benefit  is  to 
be  preferred  before  counterfeit. 

Reasons  for  the  degree  of  our  love. 

1.  From  the  worth  of  the  word,  the  reward,  and  those  benefits 
that  are  gotten  by  studying  and  obeying  it ;  they  exceed  worldly 
things,  as  will  appear,  because  the  one  suits  with  our  bodily 
necessities,  the  other  with  our  spiritual.  Our  bodily  necessities 
are  supplied  by  gold,  our  spiritual  necessities  by  grace.  Gold  will 
not  comfort  a  distressed  conscience,  no  more  than  nosegay  flowers 
a  condemned  man.  Quod  si  dolentem,  &c.,  saith  Horace  :  Prov. 
xi.  4,  '  Riches  avail  not  in  the  day  of  wrath/  The  one  renders  us 
acceptable  to  men,  the  other  to  God.  The  world  knoweth  all  things 
after  the  flesh ;  they  measure  men  by  splendour  and  pomp  of  living  ; 
but  it  is  grace  that  God  approveth  most,  and  accepteth  most.  Grace 
is  of  great  price  in  the  sight  of  God  :  1  Peter  iii.  4,  '  But  let  it  be  the 
hidden  man  of  the  heart,  in  that  which  is  not  corruptible,  even  the 
ornament  of  a  meek  and  quiet  spirit,  which  is  in  the  sight  of  God  of 
great  price/  The  one  much  embaseth  our  nature  ;  it  is  something 
more  vile  than  us,  therefore  that  affection  is  debased.  But  grace 
always  ennobleth  our  nature,  and  is  something  above  us.  A  greater 
affection  is  due  to  things  above  us  than  to  things  beneath  us.  The 
one  is  useful  to  us  in  via,  the  other  in  patria.  Surely  that  which  is 
of  eternal  use  and  comfort  to  us  is  better  than  that  which  is  only  of  a 
temporal  use.  In  our  passage  to  heaven,  we  need  gold  and  silver  for 
the  supply  of  our  bodily  necessities,  and  the  support  of  outward  life, 
so  far  as  we  have  to  do  in  the  world ;  but  with  respect  to  the  world  to 
come,  gold  doth  nothing  ;  there  we  leave  our  wealth  behind  us,  but 
our  works  follow  us.  Our  treasure  we  quit  when  we  die,  but  our  grace 
we  carry  with  us.  Once  more ;  the  price  by  which  things  may  be 
purchased  showeth  the  worth  of  them.  Wisdom  is  of  so  great  a 
price,  that  all  the  treasures  of  the  world  cannot  purchase  it :  Job  xxviii. 
15-20,  '  It  cannot  be  gotten  for  gold,  neither  shall  silver  be  weighed 
for  the  price  thereof ;  it  cannot  be  valued  with  the  gold  of  Ophir,  with 


VEE.  127.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  317 

the  precious  onyx,  or  the  sapphire  ;  the  gold  and  the  crystal  cannot 
equal  it,  and  the  exchange  of  it  shall  not  he  for  jewels  of  fine  gold  : 
no  mention  shall  be  made  of  coral  or  of  pearls ;  for  the  price  of  wis 
dom  is  above  rubies  :  the  topaz  of  Ethiopia  shall  not  equal  it,  neither 
shall  it  be  valued  with  pure  gold.'  What  cannot  money  do  in  the 
world  P  yet  it  can  do  nothing  as  to  the  procuring  of  grace.  The 
apostle  telleth  us  this  is  a  dear-bought  blessing :  1  Peter  i.  18,  19, 
'  Forasmuch  as  ye  know  that  ye  were  not  redeemed  with  corruptible 
things,  as  silver  and  gold,  from  your  vain  conversations,  received  by 
tradition  from  your  fathers  ;  but  with  the  precious  blood  of  Christ,  as 
of  a  lamb  without  blemish,  and  without  spot.'  To  despise  the  favour 
of  God,  the  image  of  God,  is  to  despise  the  price  that  was  paid  for 
these  things,  to  have  lessening  thoughts  of  the  blood  of  Christ.  To 
conclude  ;  those  we  count  lesser  1  gifts  which  we  bestow  upon  friends 
than  upon  enemies.  A  man  would  give  meat  and  drink  unto  enemies 
when  they  hunger  and  thirst ;  but  other  gifts  of  a  greater  value  to 
friends  and  relations.  God  giveth  his  Christ,  his  Spirit,  his  grace  to 
his  friends,  children,  servants  ;  but  corn  and  wine  and  oil,  these  he 
giveth  promiscuously,  yea,  to  his  enemies  a  larger  portion.  Surely, 
then,  these  are  better  than  gold.  Our  love  should  be  according  to  the 
value  of  things. 

2.  Because  if  the  word  be  not  preferred  before  earthly  things,  it  is 
not  received  with  any  profit  and  good  effect.     Christ  saith,  '  He  that 
loveth  anything  more  than  me,  is  not  worthy  of  me,'  Mat.  x.  37.     He 
that  studieth  to  please  his  friends  rather  than  Christ,  or  to  gratify  his 
interest  more   than   his   conscience,   within   a  very  little   while  his 
Christianity  will  be  worth  nothing.      It  is  not  a  simple  love,  but  a 
greater  love  that  we  show  to  worldly  things  :  Mat.  xiii.  44-46,  '  Again, 
the  kingdom  of  heaven  is  like  unto  treasure  hi'd  in  a  field,  the  which 
when  a  man  hath  found,  he  hideth,  and  for  joy  thereof  goeth  and 
selleth  all  that  he  hath,  and  buyeth  that  field.     Again,  the  kingdom 
of  heaven  is  like  unto  a  merchant-man  seeking  goodly  pearls,  who, 
when  he  had  found  one  pearl  of  great  price,  he  went  and  sold  all  that 
he  had,  and  bought  it/     We  must  part  with  all,  rather  than  miss  of 
his  grace,  all  that  is  pleasant  and  profitable,  renounce  all  other  things. 
When  Christ  propounds  his  terms,  he  would  have  us  surrender  all  to 
his  will  and  pleasure  :  Luke  ix.  23,  '  If  any  man  will  come  after  me, 
let  him  deny  himself,  and  take  up  his  cross  daily,  and  follow  me.'    He 
must  not  avoid  the  cross  by  sinful  shifts :  we  are  ready  to  do  so  every 
day.     These  are  the  necessary  terms,  else  we  are  not  fit  for  the  master's 
use:  2  Tim.  ii.  21,  'If  any  man  therefore  purge  himself  from  these, 
lie  shall  be  a  vessel  unto  honour,  sanctified  and  meet  for  the  master's 
use,  and  prepared  unto  every  good  work.' 

3.  Unless  we  love  the  word  above  riches,  we  cannot  possess  riches 
without  a  snare ;   then  it  will  be  not  only  hard,  but  impossible,  to 
enter   into  the   kingdom  of  heaven  :  Mark  x.  23-27,  '  And  Jesus 
looked  round  about,  and  saith  unto  his  disciples,  How  hardly  shall 
they  that  have  riches  enter  into  the  kingdom  of  God  !     And  the  dis 
ciples  were  astonished  at  his  words.     But  Jesus  answereth  again,  and 
saith  unto  them,  Children,   how  hard  is  it  for  them  that   trust  in 
riches  to  enter  into  the  kingdom  of  God !     It  is  easier  for  a  camel  to 

1  Qu.  "greater"?— ED. 


318  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXXXIX. 

go  through  the  eye  of  a  needle,  than  for  a  rich  man  to  enter  into  the 
kingdom  of  God.  And  they  were  astonished  out  of  measure,  saying 
among  themselves,  Who  then  can  be  saved  ?  And  Jesus  looking  about 
him,  said,  With  men  it  is  impossible,  but  not  with  God  ;  for  with  God 
all  things  are  possible.'  Eiches  will  so  prevail  over  us,  and  wholly 
sway  us,  if  they  be  our  chief  good  and  portion,  and  we  have  not  a 
higher  end  to  check  our  love  to  them.  If  a  man  would  have  all  things 
cleave l  to  him,  he  must  be  sure  the  world  doth  not  sit  nearest  his  heart ; 
for  if  they  do,  such  a  man,  as  he  is  unfit  for  heaven,  so  he  is  unfit  for 
the  world  too.  If  they  be  your  good  things,  Luke  xvi.  25,  '  Son,  re 
member  thou  in  thy  lifetime  receivedst  thy  good  things ; '  you  will  get 
and  keep  and  use  them  otherwise  than  the  word  doth  allow. 

4.  From  the  fruit  of  grace ;  where  it  is  planted  in  the  heart  and  pre- 
vaileth,  the  desire  of  wealth  is  mortified,  worldly  lust  denied :  Titus  ii. 
12,  '  Teaching  us  to  deny  ungodliness  and  worldly  lusts ; '  and  desires 
of  grace  enlarged  and  increased :  1  Peter  ii.  2,  '  As  new-born  babes 
desire  the  sincere  milk  of  the  word,  that  ye  may  grow  thereby.'  And 
when  it  prevaileth  further,  and  to  a  higher  degree,  they  come  to  Moses* 
frame,  to  count  the  worst  of  Christ  better  than  the  best  of  the  world : 
Heb.  xi.  26,  '  Esteeming  the  reproach  of  Christ  greater  riches  than  the 
treasures  in  Egypt.'  Not  only  the  graces  of  Christ,  or  the  benefits  of 
Christ,  but  the  reproaches  of  Christ.  So  much  is  the  world  lessened, 
and  the  desires  of  grace  increased.  The  heaviest  part  of  Christ's  cross 
is  sweeter  than  the  worldly  plenty,  where  sin  accompanieth  it. 

Use  1.  To  press  us  to  get  this  esteem  and  love  of  the  word  above 
all  earthly  things :  by  what  names  soever  they  are  called,  whether  gold 
or  fine  gold.  Consider — 

1.  The  word  of  God  containeth  the  true  riches,  in  comparison  of 
which  all  other  things  are  but  a  shadow. 

2.  Except  God's  word  be  clearly  esteemed  above  earthly  things,  it 
is  highly  contemned.     You  would  think  yourselves  highly  slighted  if 
once  it  should  be  put  to  the  question  whether  you  or  an  ass  or  a  swine 
be  better.     The  case  is  as  clear  whether  it  be  better  to  have  a  child's 
toy  or  land  of  inheritance.     You  think  it  a  disparagement  of  their 
reason.     It  is  so  to  compare  spiritual  things  with  carnal :  Prov.  xvi. 
16,  '  How  much  better  is  it  to  get  wisdom  than  gold,  and  to  get  under 
standing  rather  to  be  chosen  than  silver ! ' 

3.  The  word  of  God  observed  and  obeyed  bringeth  all  earthly  things 
along  with  it ;  gold  and  fine  gold,  so  far  as  they  are  necessary  and 
good^for  us:  Mat.  vi.  63,  'But  seek  ye  first  the  kingdom  of  God  and 
his  righteousness,  and  all  these  things  shall  be  added  unto  you ; '  and 
1  Tim.  iv.  8,  '  Godliness  is  profitable  unto  all  things ;  having  a  pro 
mise  of  the  life  that  now  is,  and  of  that  which  is  to  come.'     It  hath 
all  kind  of  promises,  it  doth  not  come  empty-handed ;  it  bringeth  in  a 
portion  in  this  life,  and  blessing  in  these  outward  things. 

4.  How  constant  the  word  is,  and  in  one  tenor :  2  Cor.  i.  20,  '  All 
the  promises  of  God  in  him  are  Yea,  and  in  him  Amen  ;  unto  the  glory 
of  God  by  us.'     But  worldly  things  are  uncertain :  2  Sam.  xix.  43, 
*  And  the  men  of  Judah  answered  the  men  of  Israel,  and  said,  We 
have  ten  parts  in  the  king,  and  we  have  also  more  right  in  David  than 
ye.'     Compare  this  with  the  next  words,  2  Sam.  xx.  1, '  Sheba  blew  a 

1  Qu.  "  clean  "  ?— ED. 


VER.  127.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  319 

trumpet,  and  said,  We  have  no  part  in  David,  neither  have  we  inheri 
tance  in  the  son  of  Jesse/  The  people  cry  Hosanna  to  Christ,  and 
presently  after,  Crucify  him.  Peter  once  made  a  glorious  confession  of 
Christ,  and  afterwards  a  gross  denial.  Paul  was  received  as  an  angel 
by  the  Galatians  :  Gal.  iv.  14,  *  My  temptation  which  was  in  my  flesh, 
ye  despised  not,  nor  rejected ;  but  received  me  as  an  angel  of  God, 
even  as  Christ  Jesus;'  but  afterwards  accounted  an  enemy ;  ver.  16, 
'  Am  I  therefore  become  your  enemy,  because  I  tell  you  the  truth  ?  ' 
Nebuchadnezzar  flourishing  in  a  palace  of  gold,  Ban.  iv.  30,  '  Is  not 
this  great  Babylon  that  I  have  built,  for  the  house  of  my  kingdom,  by 
the  might  of  my  power,  and  for  the  glory  of  my  majesty  ? '  But  a 
voice  came  to  him  from  heaven,  ver.  31,  '  0  king  Nebuchadnezzar,  to 
thee  it  is  spoken,  The  kingdom  is  departed  from  thee.' 

Use  2.  Have  we  such  an  esteem  and  affection  to  the  word  df  God  ? 
Then— 

1.  We  will  do  that  which  in  other  cases  a  greater  love  would  incline 
us  to  do  ;  otherwise  it  is  but  a  compliment ;  we  will  diligently  exer 
cise  ourselves  in  the  word  of  God.     Labour  is  the  fruit  of  love :  *  Re 
membering  your  labour  of  love,'  1  Thes.  i.  3.     He  that  doth  not  take 
more  pains  in  the  pursuit  of  heavenly  things  than  of  carnal,  doth  not 
love  the  one  above  the  other ;  for  love  is  industrious :  John  vi.  27, 
'Labour  not  for  the  meat  tha,t  perisheth,  but  for  that  meat  which 
endureth  unto  everlasting  life.'    What  a  deal  of  pains  do  men  take 
for  a  little  pelf,  to  heap  up  treasure,  and  fill  their  houses  with  the 
good  things  of  this  world,  and  spend  all  their  time  and  wit,  their  care 
and  strength,  on  outward  things !     The  stream  runneth  stronger  for 
the  world  when  there  is  no  proportionable  care  taken  for  the  benefits 
which  the  word  offereth.     God  maketh  offer  of  grace  and  glory.    Men 
are  as  those  that  travel  by  water,  and  see  buildings  ashore,  and  praise 
them  as  they  pass  by,  but  never  enter  into  them,  never  look  after  them 
more.     If  you  are  ready  and  earnest  in  the  pursuit  0f  the  one,  careless 
and  cold  in  the  other;  you  think  no  time  enough  for  the  one,  but 
grudge  all  time  for  the  other :  it  is  a  sign  the  one  hath  a  greater  share 
in  our  hearts  than  the  other.     We  are  to  seek  worldly  things  in  some 
measure,  because  God  hath  appointed  every  one  some  work  to  do ;  but 
when  there  is  such  a  manifest  disproportion  between  our  seeking  the 
one  and  the  other,  it  showeth  which  way  our  souls  bend ;  if  a  nice 
difference,  that  hardly  distinguished  it,  give  suspicion,  more  especially 
when  such  a  manifest  disproportion. 

2.  We  will  part  with  the  one  for  the  other's  sake,  if  carnal  things 
can  withdraw  us  from  the  pursuit  of  heavenly  things :  Heb.  xii.  16/  As 
Esau,  who  for  one  morsel  of  bread  sold  his  birthright ; '  and  heavenly 
things  cannot  make  us  to  part  with  carnal  things.     Many  make  void 
the  law  to  seek  riches  and  wealth  :  2  Tim.  iv.  10,  '  Demas  hath  for 
saken  us,  having  loved  this  present  world  ; '  break  God's  commands 
for  a  small  hire,  and  do  so  constantly,  frequently,  easily ;  it  is  a  sign 
they  do  but  compliment,  and  speak  from  their  judgments,  not  from 
their  hearts,  when  they  say  they  love  God  better  than  the  world, ^ or 
fine  gold,  the  chiefest  excellency  of  it.     Would  a  man  dispense  with 
his  obedience  to  the  word,  and  be  thus  affected  ?   What  is  deliberately, 
habitually  preferred,  that  hath  the  greater  love.     We  can  neglect  our 


320  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiR.  CXL. 

duty  to  God,  trample  upon  God,  Christ,  heaven,  scripture,  conscience, 
duty,  in  the  way  to  make  speed  after  worldly  things. 

3.  Wherein  do  we  place  the  happiness  of  us  and  ours  ?  To  carnal 
men  nothing  is  so  dear  as  their  present  prosperity.  Do  you  value 
yourselves  to  be  more  happy  when  you  have  a  little  grace  and  sense  of 
God's  love  than  if  you  had  all  the  world  :  Ps.  iv.  6,  7,  '  There  be 
many  that  say,  Who  will  show  us  any  good  ?  Lord,  lift  thou  up  the 
light  of  thy  countenance  upon  us.  Thou  hast  put  gladness  in  my 
heart,  more  than  in  the  time  that  their  corn  and  their  wine  increased.' 
And  for  your  children,  do  you  rejoice  to  see  them  great  or  good? 
Many  are  delighted  to  see  their  children  thrive  in  the  world,  do  well 
in  the  world,  but  careless  whether  they  have  grace,  yea  or  no.  If  you 
take  the  world  still  as  a  great  part  of  your  felicity,  it  is  a  sign  you 
iiave  low  thoughts  and  respects  for  the  word  of  God. 


SERMON  CXL. 

Therefore,  I  esteem  all  tliy  precepts  concerning  all  things  to  l)e  right ; 
and  I  hate  every  false  way. — VER.  128. 

IN  this  verse  a  child  of  God  is  set  forth  by  two  marks  : — 

1.  His  approbation  and  esteem  of  the  law  of  God  in  all  the  parts 
and  points  thereof,  I  esteem  all  thy  precepts  concerning  all  things  to  be 
right. 

2.  His  hatred  of  all  sin  as  contrary  thereunto,  and  I  hate  every 
false  way  :  the  one  as  the  effect  of  the  other. 

First,  In  the  first  branch,  take  notice  of — (1.)  The  illative  particle, 
therefore.  (2.)  His  respect  to  the  word,  I  esteem  thy  precepts  to  be 
right.  In  the  Septuagint  it  is  Trpo?  Tracra?  ra?  eVroXa?  O-QV  Karwp- 
OovjjLyv,  I  was  directed  or  set  right  unto  all  thy  laws.  But  it  maketh 
no  difference  in  effect  from  our  translation ;  for  they  that  esteem  the 
law  will  embrace  and  practise  it.  (3.)  The  extent  and  universality  of 
this  respect :  there  is  a  double  universal  particle,  all  thy  precepts  con 
cerning  all  things  ;  the  general  drift  of  them,  and  every  particular 
matter  and  circumstance  that  falleth  under  this  law,  it  is  all  right ;  I 
approve  of  whatsoever  thou  commandest,  without  any  reservation  and 
exception ;  all,  even  all,  have  I  approved. 

1.  Something  might  be  observed  from  the  illative  particle  :  it  is 
inferred  from  their  making  void  of  God's  law. 

Doct.  In  times  of  defection,  when  others  slight,  contemn,  and  for 
sake  the  ways  of  God,  we  should  approve  and  esteem  them  the  more. 

The  reasons  are — 

1.  To  make  amends  for  the  contempt  of  others  :  2  Peter  iv.  14, 
'On  their  parts  he  is  evil  spoken  of ;  on  your  part  glorified.'  Let  not 
God  want  his  glory ;  if  he  be  dishonoured  by  their  sins,  he  should  be 
the  more  honoured  by  your  obedience.  It  concerneth  us  to  look  that 
God  be  no  loser.  As  the  sea,  what  it  loseth  in  one  place,  it  gaineth 
in  another ;  or  as  a  river,  what  it  loseth  in  breadth,  and  is  pent  within 
narrow  channels,  it  gets  in  depth ;  so  you  should  give  him  the  more 


VER.  128.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  321 

respect  the  more  it  is  denied  him  by  others ;  the  sincere  professors  of 
the  name  of  God  should  be  the  more  earnest. 

2.  To  show  that  we  do  not  choose  the  ways  of  God  upon  foreign 
reasons,  as  public  countenance  and  consent.     Many  men  owe  their 
religion  not  to  grace,  but  to  the  favour  of  the  times  ;  it  is  in  fashion  ; 
they  may  profess  it  at  a  cheap  rate,  because  none  contradict  it.     Indeed 
it  showeth  they  are  extremely  bad,  that  are  bad  when  they  may  be 
good  without  any  loss  to  themselves ;  but  it  doth  not  show  they  are 
good,  that  are  only  good  in  good  times.     Dead  fish  swim  with  the 
stream.    They  do  not  build  upon  the  rock,  but  set  up  a  shed  leaning  to 
another  man's  house,  which  costs  them  nothing  ;  carried  with  a  multi 
tude,  are  not  able  to  go  alone  in  a  good  way ;  if  they  be  religious,  it  is 
for  others'  sakes.     Then  is  integrity  discovered  when  persons  dare  be 
good  in  bad  times,  as  Noah  was  said  to  be  an  upright  man,  because  he 
was  perfect  in  his  generation :  Gen.  vi.  9,  '  When  all  flesh  had  cor 
rupted  their  way/     And  so  it  is  said,  Job  vii.  9,  *  The  righteous  shall 
hold  on  his  way,  and  he  that  hath  clean  hands  shall  wax  stronger 
and  stronger ;'  that  is,  when  there  are  discouragements  and  oppressions, 
as  a  resolved  traveller  holdeth  on  his  journey,  whether  he  meeteth  with 
fair  way  or  foul,  good  weather  or  bad. 

3.  There  is  an  antiperistasis  in  grace  as  well  as  nature.     Every 
quality,  when  it  is  pent  up,  is  the  stronger.     Stars  shine  brightest  in 
the  darkest  night.     Fountain- water  is  hottest  in  winter,  when  the  heat 
is  pent  up.     In  bad  times  good  men  are  best ;  wicked  men's  badness 
exerciseth  and  increaseth  good  men's  graces.     The  more  odious  sin 
appeareth  in  them,  the  more  grace  is  strengthened  in  the  saints  ;  their 
looseness  maketh  you  strict ;  their  vanity  and  carelessness  maketh  you 
serious  ;  their  intemperance  maketh  you  sober ;  their  worldliness  and 
sensuality  maketh  you  spiritual ;  as  they  are  instances  of  the  cursed 
vigour  of  nature,  you  are  instances  of  the  sacred  power  of  grace,  Phil. 
ii.  15,  shining  as  lights  in  the  world  '  in  the  midst  of  a  crooked  and 
perverse  generation ;'  to  be  eminently  holy  among  a  company  of  profane, 
godless,  atheistical  spirits,  showing  forth  the  lovely  beauty  of  holiness. 

4.  To  show  the  difference  between  the  people  of  God  and  others ; 
and  this  is  a  fruit  of  God's  eternal  choice.     God  hath  made  a  differ 
ence  in  the  purposes  of  his  grace,  and  they  discover  the  difference  in 
the  course  of  their  conversations  :  John  xvii.  25,  '  The  world  hath  not 
known  thee,  but  these  have  known  thee,  that  thou  hast  sent  me,  and 
hast  chosen  them  out  of  the  world.'     The  opposite  ignorance  and 
obstinacy  of  the  world  showeth  their  acknowledgment  of  Christ  was 
of  more  value  and  acceptation.     When  the  world  neither  knew  nor 
believed  on  him,  but  rather  opposed  and  persecuted  him,  they  owned 
Christ,  and  so  walked  in  a  countermotion  to  the  times. 

5.  To  defeat  the  enemies'  purpose,  which  is  to  hinder  the  success  of 
the  gospel,  and  destroy  all  affection  and  respect  to  the  word  and  ways 
of  God,  and  that  the  service  of  God  should  fall  to  the  ground ;  as 
we  hold  a  staff  the  faster,  when  one  would  wrest  it  out  of  our  hands  : 
Titus  i.  9,  '  Holding  fast  the  faithful  word.'     The  pastor  of  the  church 
should  be  good  at  holding  and  drawing,  as  the  word  signifieth ;  so 
people's  zeal  should  be  the  more  kindled  in  the  worst  times.     God  hath 
a  number  that  do  fear  him ;  Christ  is  never  a  king  without  subjects, 

VOL.  vin.  x 


322  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SflB.  CXL. 

nor  a  head  without  a  church ;  he  ruleth  in  the  midst  of  his  enemies, 
Ps.  ex.  1 ;  therefore  he  hath  some  to  rule  over.  Where  Satan's  throne 
is,  there  he  hath  some  to  confess  his  name.  Elijah  thought  himself 
left  alone,  yet  then  God  had  reserved  to  himself  seven  thousand  that 
had  not  bowed  the  knee  to  Baal. 

Use.  It  is  very  seasonable  for  us  in  these  times  to  mind  this ; 
therefore — 

1.  That  we  may  increase  in  practical  godliness.     Now  wickedness 
is  broken  loose  and  the  law  is  made  void,  this  should  not  damp  our 
zeal,  but  quicken  it.     You  should  walk  with  God,  as  Noah  and  David 
did,  in  the  worst  of  times :  yea,  the  badness  of  the  age  you  live  in 
should  make  jou  the  more  wise,  more  circumspect,  more  humble,  more 
heavenly ;  as  fire  burneth  hottest  in  the  coldest  weather.     Study  to 
serve  God  in  thy  generation.     A  man  that  is  not  good  in  the  age  he 
liveth  in,  would   never  be   good.     A  lily  will  thrive  in  a  wilder 
ness,  and  a  brier  is  but  a  brier  though  it  grow  in  paradise.     Their 
fury  in  sin  should  warn  you  of  your  duty  to  God.    -Shall  a  lust 
prevail  more  with  them  to  damn  themselves,  than  the  love  of  God 
and  the  hope  of  salvation  with  you  ?  shall  they  act  more  regularly  to 
their  ends  ?     What  zeal  and  earnestness  have  they  in  their  course, 
and  how  open  and  bold-faced  in  sin  !     We  read  that  Pambo  wept 
when  he  saw  a  woman  dressing  herself  curiously  to  please  her  wanton 
lover,  to  see  her  take  so  much  pains  to  undo  her  soul,  and  that  he  had 
not  been  so  careful  to  please  God,  and  provide  things  honest  in  the 
sight  of  God,  as  she  to  please  herself. 

2.  They  are  set  up  as  warnings  to  us,  as  a  beacon  on  fire  warneth 
all  the  country  to  be  in  arms.     You  see  what  it  is  to  give  way  to  the 
beginnings  of  sin,  not  to  be  under  the  blessed  conduct  of  God's  Spirit. 
Some  are  notoriously  wicked,  judicially  given  up  to  be  more  visibly 
under  the  dominion  of  sin,  that  others  may  take  warning  how  they 
come  into  that  woful  slavery  :  Phil.  iii.  19,  20,  '  For  many  walk,  of 
whom  I  have  told  you  often,  and  now  tell  you  even  weeping,  that  they 
are  enemies  to  the  cross  of  Christ,  whose  end  is  destruction,  whose 
God  is  their  belly,  who  glory  in  their  shame,  who  mind  earthly  things  ; 
but  our  conversation  is  in  heaven.' 

3.  It  should  make  us  fly  to  God  for  grace  when  the  whole  world 
lieth  in  wickedness :  Isa.  vi.  5,  '  I  am  a  man  of  unclean  lips,  and  I 
dwell  among  a  people  of  unclean  lips.'     It  is  hard  to  converse  with 
defiled  ones  and  not  be  defiled,  to  keep  ourselves  unspotted  from  the 
world:  Ps.  cvi.  35,   'They  were  mingled  among  the  heathen,  and 
learned  their  works/     The  contagion  of  sin  overspreads  presently,  as 
a  man  by  touching  that  which  was  unclean  became  unclean.     We 
easily  catch  a  sickness  from  others,  but  we  cannot  convey  our  health 
to  them. 

Use  2.  Teacheth  us  to  keep  up  our  profession  even  in  lesser  truths : 
'  I  esteem  all  thy  precepts  concerning  all  things/  When  men  would 
wrangle  us  out  of  our  duty,  we  are  to  be  TTiarrol  eV  oXlyca,  faithful  in  a 
little.  Great  matters  depend  on  little  things.  We  are  tried,  eV  rfj 
irapovay  akyOela,  2  Peter  i.  12,  by  the  '  present  truths,'  whether  we 
will  own  the  ways  of  God  :  Eev.  xiv.  13,  '  Blessed  are  the  dead  which 
die  in  the  Lord,'  or  for  the  Lord,  '  from  henceforth,  yea,  saith  the 


VER.  128.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  323 

Spirit,  that  they  may  rest  from  their  labour.'  Why  '  from  hence 
forth  ?  '  Why !  before  the  sufferings  of  Christians  were  from  heathens 
and  professed  enemies,  and  they  were  acknowledged  blessed  as  dying 
for  the  Lord.  But  now,  when  antichrist  and  false  Christians  came 
up,  they  did  pretend  to  be  for  Christ,  and  friends  to  him,  and  this 
might  be  a  discouragement  to  them  in  their  suffering ;  but  saith  the 
Holy  Ghost,  '  From  henceforth  blessed  are  they  which  die  for  the  Lord/ 
when  pseudo-Christians  begin  to  come  up,  and  persecute  the  heavenly 
Christians.  It  is  as  blessed  a  thing  to  suffer  under  pseudo- Christians 
and  antichristianism  as  it  was  to  suffer  under  heathens  and  pagans, 
professed  enemies  to  Christianity.  I  speak  of  this,  because  the  ortho 
doxy  of  the  world  is  usually  an  age  too  short.  In  things  publicly 
received,  it  is  easy  to  be  right  Christ  is  forced  to  gain  upon  the  world 
by  inches.  A  man  may  acknowledge  the  Trinity,  the  satisfaction  of 
Christ,  among  Papists  ;  but  it  is  exceeding  praiseworthy  to  own  Christ 
when  others  scorn  and  reject  him.  The  world  will  allow  us  to  esteem 
the  ways  of  God  in  some  lesser  things,  that  are  out  of  controversy  and 
are  not  maligned ;  but  this  esteem  must  have  that  extent  as  becometh 
the  people  of  God,  to  have  a  hearty  esteem  of  all  the  precepts  of  God, 
and  all  things  contained  therein. 

Secondly,  Let  me  come  to  his  respect  to  the  ways  of  God ;  and  from 
his  respect,  with  the  extent,  I  shall  observe  this  doctrine : — 

Doct.  That  it  becometh  the  people  of  God  to  have  a  practical  heart- 
engaging  esteem  of  all  the  precepts  of  God,  and  all  things  contained 
therein. 

Let  me  show  you  what  is  this  esteem  the  children  of  God  have  for 
his  precepts. 

1.  There  is  something  implied  and  presupposed. 

2.  Wherein  it  doth  formally  consist. 

3.  The  qualifications  of  a  right  and  saving  esteem  of  the  ways  of 
God. 

1 .  There  is  something  implied  and  presupposed  before  we  can  come 
to  esteem  the  precepts  of  God.  As — 

[1.]  Knowledge  and  a  right  discerning.  This  is  necessary,  partly 
that  a  man  may  be  able  to  make  a  distinction  between  good  and  evil, 
otherwise  he  cannot  esteem  the  good  and  eschew  the  evil,  for  '  without 
knowledge  the  heart  is  not  good,'  Prov.  xix.  2.  If  we  should  stumble 
blindfold  upon  a  good  way,  we  are  not  the  more  accepted  with  God, 
nor  advantaged  in  our  spiritual  course.  The  clearer  our  light,  the 
warmer  our  love.  The  more  clear  and;  certain  apprehension  we  have 
of  spiritual  things,  our  faith  is  more  steadfast,  love  more  vehement, 
joy  more  sound,  hope  more  constant,  patience  more  sublime,  our  pur 
suit  of  true  happiness  more  earnest.  And  partly  because  a  man  can 
not  esteem  that  which  he  knoweth  not.  The  will  being  cceca  potentia, 
blind  in  itself,  followeth  the  direction  and  guidance  of  the  understand 
ing.  The  ignorance  of  the  nature  and  necessity  of  holiness  is  the 
cause  of  the  neglect  of  it :  John  iv.  10,  *  If  thou  knewest  the  gift,'  &c. 
Many  condemn  good  for  evil,  take  evil  for  good,  boldly  rush  into  sin, 
reject  the  ways  of  God  for  want  of  knowledge.  But  then  it  is  spiritual 
illumination  that  begets  estimation,  1  Cor.  ii.  14.  The  truth  and 
worth  of  spiritual  things  must  be  seen  by  a  spiritual  eye.  When  the 


324  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXL. 

Spirit  enlighteneth  a  man,  he  beginneth  to  see  that  which  he  knew 
not  before,  to  see  things  in  another  manner. 

[2.]  Advertency,  or  application  of  the  mind  to  the  object  or  things 
esteemed ;  .that  he  seriously  consider  the  matter,  and  what  it  is  best  to- 
do  ;  it  is  not  a  sudden,  rash  undertaking.  The  scripture  speaketh  of 
'  applying  our  hearts  to  wisdom,'  Ps.  xc.  12  ;  and  Prov.  ii.  2,  '  Apply 
thy  heart  to  understanding;'  Prov.  xxiii.  12,  '  Apply  thine  heart  to 
instruction,  and  thine  ears  to  the  ways  of  knowledge.'  Make  it  your 
business  seriously  to  consider  things  that  differ.  But  then — 

2.  Wherein  lies  this  esteem,  or  wherein  doth  it  formally  consist  ? 
Esteem  is  an  approbation  of  the  will,  or  a  hearty  love.  There  is  the 
approbation  of  the  understanding,  and  the  approbation  of  the  will. 
The  approbation  of  the  understanding  is  a  naked  sense,  or  an  acknow 
ledgment  of  what  is  good  :  Rom.  ii.  18,  '  Thou  knowest  his  will,  and 
approvest  the  things  that  are  more  excellent.'  There  is  an  excel 
lency  in  holiness  that  winneth  esteem,  even  there  where  it  is  not  em 
braced.  All  convinced  men  see  the  evil  of  sin,  and  are  half  of  the 
mind  to  quit  it ;  they  approve  the  law  which  they  violate  by  a  bare 
naked  approbation.  But  then  there  is  the  approbation  of  the  heart  or 
will ;  there  is  love  and  liking  in  it,  and  this  is  called  esteem.  This  is- 
seen  in  two  things — consent  and  choice  :  consent,  to  take  this  law  for 
our  rule ;  and  choice,  whatever  temptation  we  have  to  the  contrary. 
Men  choose  what  they  highly  esteem.  In  short,  it  is  such  an  appro 
bation  as  doth  engage  affection,  such  an  affection  as  doth  engage  prac 
tice.  Esteem  is  the  fruit  of  love. 

[1.]  There  is  a  consenting  to  the  law  that  it  is  good,  Rom.  vii.  16. 
There  is  a  difference  between  assent  and  consent.  A  man  may  assent 
to  the  truth  and  goodness  of  the  law  that  doth  not  consent  to  the  good 
ness  of  it ;  as  the  devils  assent  to  the  truth  of  God's  being,  that  do  not 
consent  to  take  him  for  their  portion,  James  ii.  19.  Therefore,  besides 
the  advertency  of  the  understanding,  there  is  the  consent  or  approba 
tion  of  the  will.  Paul  speaketh  good  words  of  the  law  :  Rom.  vii.  12, 
'  The  law  is  holy,  and  the  commandment  is  holy,  just,  and  good,'  VO/JLOS 
and  evrdXr) — the  law  in  general,  and  that  commandment  which  wrought 
such  tragical  effects  in  his  heart,  that  rifled  all  his  confidence  and  hopes, 
and  left  him  wounded  with  the  sense  of  sin ;  it  is  holy  in  teaching 
duty  to  God,  just  in  prescribing  duties  to  our  neighbour,  good  in  respect 
to  ourselves ;  a  law  becoming  God  to  give  and  us  to  receive,  suitable 
and  profitable.  Thus  should  we  approve  and  like  the  law  of  God. 

[2.]  Choice,  whatever  temptation  we  have  to  the  contrary  ;  a  pre 
ferring  or  prevailing  love,  a  heart- engaging  approbation,  that  doth 
prevailingly  determine  the  soul  to  the  ways  of  God.  Non  differunt  re 
consensus  et  electio,  saith  Aquinas,  sed  ratione  tantum,  ut  consensus 
dicatur,  secundum  quod  placet  ad  agendum  ;  electio  autem  secundum 
quod  prccfertur  his  quce  non  placent — consent  to  the  law  and  choice 
of  the  law  are  all  one  and  the  same  act,  distinguished  by  divers  respects 
and  considerations.  It  is  called  consent  to  the  law,  as  it  approveth  of 
what  the  law  adviseth  ;  and  it  is  called  choice  or  esteem,  as  it  pre- 
ferreth  the  law  and  our  obedience  to  it  above  other  things.  It  is 
actualis  pr&latio  unius  rei  prce  altera,  a  preferring  one  thing  above 
another. 


VER.  128.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  325 

Thirdly,  I  come  to  the  properties  or  qualifications  of  this  esteem. 

1.  It  is  not  a  simple,  but  comparative  approbation.     There  is  a 
twofold  act  of  judgment — the  first  act  and  the  second.     The  first  act 
is  that  whereby  I  distinguish  good  from  evil,  and  pronounce  the  one 
to  be  embraced,  the  other  eschewed  ;  approve  the  one,  disapprove  the 
other.     But  there  is  a  comparative  approbation ;  that  is,  that  which 
the  understanding  judgeth  best,  all  circumstances  considered,  better 
than  all  other  things  that  can  be  represented.     This  is  the  proper 
notion  of  esteem:  Heb.  xi.  26,  '  Esteeming  the  reproach  of  Christ/  &c. 
We  approve  of  many  things  simply,  and  in  the  first  act,  which  we 
disallow  in  the  second,  when  we  consider  them  as  invested  with  some 
difficulty  and  unpleasantness,  or  overpoised  with  contrary  desires,  when 
we  compare  them  with  the  pleasure  and  profit  which  we  must  forsake; 
it  consents  to  walk  in  the  ways  of  God,  as  Orpah  will  follow  Naomi  into 
the  land  of  Israel,  if  she  may  do  it  without  inconveniency,  Ruth  i.  14. 
The  young  man  esteemed  salvation  worthy  to  be  inquired  after,  Mark 
x.  20,  but  is  loath  to  forego  his  earthly  possessions  to  purchase  that 
inheritance.     When  the  judgment  that  we  make  of  the  thing  simply 
considered  in  itself,  and  of  the  thing  as  considered  with  all  circum 
stances,  as  it  cometh  in  comparison  with  other  things  that  must  be 
endured  or  foregone. 

2.  There  is  a  judgment  of  general  estimation,  and  a  judgment  of 
particular  application.     By  the  one  I  bind  duty  upon  others ;  by  the 
other  I  engage  iny  own  heart,  as  the  expression  is,  Jer.  xxx.  21,  '  Who 
is  he  that  engageth  his  heart  to  approach  unto  me  ?  saith  the  Lord  ; ' 
to  engage  his  heart  to  take  God  for  his  portion.     An  instance  we  have 
in  David :  Ps.  Ixxiii.  28,  '  But  it  is  good  for  me  to  draw  near  to  God.' 
I  may  approve  many  things  as  good,  for  which  I  have  no  appetite  my 
self.     Many  will  yield  that  it  is  good  to  serve  God  that  cannot  work, 
or  do  not  engage  their  heart  to  it.    Many  approve  piety  in  the  general ; 
it  is  good  to  be  religious,  to  live  a  holy  life ;  but  when  it  cometh  to  our 
own  case,  when  we  are  to  abstain  from  this  or  that  sin,  we  draw  back. 
Many  know  what  things  are  more  excellent,  but  do  not  practise  or 
embrace  them  ;  commend  those  that  are  religious,  but  do  not  imitate 
them.     Acts  v.  13,  the  people  highly  esteemed  the  Christians,  but  yet 
would  not  become  Christians  themselves :  Ps.  xlviii.  14,  '  This  God  is 
our  God  for  ever  and  ever/    Many  a  wicked  man  j  udgeth  it  best  for  him 
to  continue  his  evil  courses,  and  thinketh  religion  is  good  for  other  men, 
but  it  is  not  good  for  him  ;  but  God's  children  are  of  another  mind. 

3.  It  is  not  a  slight  and  superficial  esteem,  but  such  as  is  deep  and 
solid :  Mat.  xiii.  20,  '  He  heareth  the  word,  and  anon  with  joy  receiveth 
it/     It  is  a  blessed  thing  to  hear  of  the  pardon  of  sin,  Heb.  vi.  5,  to 
taste  of  the  good  word  of  God,  and  of  the  powers  of  the  world  to  come ; 
as  they  that  cheapen  wines  taste,  though  they  do  not  go  through  with 
the  bargain  ;  some  inclination  of  heart,  half  a  mind  to  be  thoroughly 
godly  and  religious :  John  v.  35,  '  They  rejoiced  in  his  light  for  a 
season/    They  were  much  taken  with  John  for  a  while,  and  the  novelty 
and  excellency  of  his  doctrine.     But  when  is  this  esteem  deep  and 
solid  ?     It  may  be  known — (1.)  By  the  root  of  it ;   (2.)  The  ground 
and  formal  object  of  it ;  (3.)  The  manner  or  way  how  we  come  by  it. 

[1.]  The  root  of  it     When  the  root  of  this  esteem  is  a  vital  prin- 


326  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.          [SEE.  CXL. 

ciple  of  grace  :  Mat.  xiii.  21,  '  He  hath  not  root  in  himself.'  The  word 
is  not  ingrafted,  James  i.  21.  The  people  had  a  good  inclination :  '  All 
that  the  Lord  hath  spoken,  we  will  do,'  Dent.  v.  29.  But,  '  Oh  !  that 
there  were  such  an  heart  in  them,  that 'they  would  fear  me  and  keep 
all  my  commandments  always/  &c.  They  had  a  mind  to  do  well ;  but 
where  faith,  fear,  and  love  are  not  planted,  there  may  be  some  stirrings 
of  conscience,  but  not  a  full  purpose  of  heart.  There  is  the  approba 
tion  of  an  awakened  and  enlightened  conscience,  and  the  approbation 
of  a  renewed  heart.  A  convinced  man  approveth,  and  a  converted  man 
approveth,  but  in  a  different  manner.  The  one  is  but  a  flash,  like  fire 
in  straw,  the  other  hath  a  durable  affection. 

[2.]  When  the  ground  and  formal  object  of  it  is  not  a  temporal, 
natural,  or  carnal  motive,  but  the  moral  goodness  of  the  law ;  because 
it  is  the  pure  and  holy  word  and  will  of  God,  who  is  the  lawgiver, 
whose  authority  is  absolute.  There  may  be  carnal  motives  to  incline 
us  to  esteem  the  word,  as  the  novelty  of  John's  doctrine  :  John  v.  35, 
'  They  rejoiced  in  his  light  for  a  season  ;'  delight  to  hear  a  plausible 
and  rational  discourse,  as  Ezekiel's  hearers,  Ezek.  xxxiii.  32,  '  And  lo 
thou  art  to  them  as  a  very  lovely  song  of  one  that  hath  a  pleasant 
voice,  that  can  play  well  upon  an  instrument ;  for  they  hear  thy  words, 
but  do  them  not/  Or  carnal  motives,  as  they  Gen.  xxxiv.  22,  23, 
'  Herein  will  the  men  consent  to  dwell  with  us,  to  be  one  people,  if 
every  male  among  us  be  circumcised,  as  they  are  circumcised.  Shall 
not  their  cattle  and  their  substance  be  ours  ?  Only  let  us  consent  unto 
them/  &c.  And  so  temporal  interests.  Religion  hath  a  portion  for 
which  it  is  courted.  The  consent  of  many  to  the  law  is  the  same  which 
Mahometans  have  to  the  Alkoran  ;  education  in  it,  ancestors  embracing 
of  it,  the  countenance  of  the  law,  the  custom  of  the  country,  &c. 

[3.]  The  manner  or  way  how  we  come  by  it,  by  much  prayer  and 
serious  deliberation.  Some  by  chance  are  surprised  and  affected  with 
a  good  motion,  suddenly  good,  but  habitually  bad ;  they  will  in  all 
haste  become  religious,  but,  alas !  this  estimation  or  approbation  of 
God's  ways  is  entertained  but  for  a  time,  but  afterwards  vanisheth  and 
cometh  to  nothing.  There  must  be  a  clear  distinct  knowledge  of  the 
excellency  of  God's  ways :  otherwise  in  a  fit,  or  in  a  good  mood,  we 
choose  that  which  is  good  ;  but  the  interest  in  evil  not  being  re 
nounced  in  heart,  it  causeth  an  easy  retreat  into  the  former  sinful 
course. 

4.  It  must  be  such  an  esteem  as  hath  a  lively  and  effectual  in 
fluence  upon  our  hearts  and  ways.  There  is  a  liking  that  only  pro- 
duceth  a  velleity  and  wish,  and  doth  not  engage  the  soul  to  prosecute 
the  things  willed,  or  forsake  the  things  nilled  ;  but  there  is  such  an 
effectual  liking  and  esteem  as  will  produce  a  constant,  habitual  will 
ingness,  that  will  have  the  authority  of  a  principle,  and  hath  a  power 
ful  command  over  the  whole  soul,  to  set  it  a-working  to  do  the  will  of 
God,  and  will  admit  of  no  contradiction  by  contrary  desires,  but 
maketh  us  act  with  life,  power,  and  earnestness.  Cold  and  inconstant 
wishes  produce  no  fruit  in  the  heart.  The  general  course  of  most 
men's  lives  is  as  if  they  had  no  liking  to  the  law  of  God.  It  may  be 
they  may  dislike  and  sacrifice  some  of  their  weaker  lusts  and  smaller 
interests,  which  they  .can  well  spare,  but  corruption  doth  ordinarily 


VER.  128.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxis.  327 

bear  sway  in  their  hearts  and  lives.  In  the  text  it  is,  '  I  esteem  all 
thy  precepts,  -and  hate  every  false  way.'  It  is  true,  a  man  that  ap- 
proveth  the  law  is  not  wholly  freed  from  sin.  There  are  sins  of  ordi 
nary  infirmity,  that  cleave  to  us  while  we  are  in  the  world,  yea,  taint 
our  best  actions :  Isa.  Ixiv.  6,  '  But  we  are  all  as  an  unclean  thing,  all 
our  righteousnesses  are  as  filthy  rags.'  And  sometimes,  though  there 
be  a  principle  of  grace,  a  child  of  God  may  be  overborne  by  the  vio 
lence  of  a  temptation,  carried  into  presumptuous  sins,  which  may 
make  strange  havoc  in  the  soul.  David  prayeth,  Ps.  xix.  14,  that 
God  would  keep  him  from  presumptuous  sins  ;  but  for  the  most  part 
the  children  of  God  are  influenced  by  their  consent  and  esteem  of  the 
law  of  God.  And  the  renewed  part  for  the  generality  hath  the  upper 
hand,  and  prevaileth,  and  the  flesh  is  weakened ;  as  the  house  of 
David  grew  stronger  and  stronger,  2  Sam.  iii.  1,  and  the  house  of  Saul 
waxed  weaker  and  weaker. 

5.  It  must  be  a  universal,  not  partial  esteem :  '  I  esteem  all  thy  pre 
cepts  concerning  all  things  to  be  right;'  Ps.  cxix.  6,  'When  I  have 
respect  to  all  thy  commandments  ;'  Luke  i.  6,  'Zachary  and  Elizabeth 
walked  in  all  the  commandments  and  ordinances  of  God  blameless  ;' 
Acts  iii.  22,  '  Him  shall  you  hear  in  all  things,  whatsoever  he  shall 
say  unto  you  ;'  and  he  shall  fulfil  all  my  will.  It  is  not  enough  to  be 
right  in  commands  in  general,  or  the  lump,  but  in  this  and  that  par 
ticular  ;  not  in  some,  but  in  all.  We  pretend  to  give  up  ourselves  to 
the  will  of  God  in  the  general,  but  particulars  we  stick  at.  Men  are 
convinced  that  holiness  is  necessary,  that  they  must  have  some  re 
ligion  ;  therefore  when  they  take  up  duty  in  the  lump,  and  abstract 
notion  or  naked  consent,  it  doth  not  exasperate  opposite  propensions  : 
'  Ye  cannot  serve  the  Lord,'  &c.,  saith  Joshua,  Josh.  xxiv.  18,  19 ;  but 
when  they  come  to  particulars,  and  see  what  it  is  to  wait  upon  a  holy 
and  jealous  God,  they  tire  and  grow  weary  :  so  that  there  must  be  a 
consent  and  purpose  to  obey,  not  some,  but  all  and  every  one,  without 
exception  ;  not  partial,  like  that  of  Herod  to  John :  Mark  vi.  20,  '  He 
did  many  things.'  The  worst  man  in  the  world  loveth  some  good  and 
hateth  some  evil,  but  he  doth  not  esteem  all  God's  commandments  in 
every  point.  Nay,  the  great  enemy  of  our  salvation,  Satan,  can  be 
content  to  let  us  yield  to  God  in  many  things,  if  he  would  be  con 
tented  with  half  our  duty :  one  sin  reserved  keepeth  afoot  his  interest 
in  our  hearts,  as  a  bird  tied  by  the  leg  is  fast  enough.  The  devil  will 
suffer  men  to  do  many  things,  but  if  he  hath  them  fast  by  one  lust, 
be  it  an  inclination  to  sensuality,  or  love  to  the  world,  he  is  contented. 
The  world  likes  many  things  in  religion  ;  they  are  good  and  profitable 
for  men  ;  but  sticketh  at  others.  To  live  godly  in  Christ  Jesus  will 
draw  on  persecution,  2  Tim.  iii.  12.  The  flesh  will  dispense  with  us 
to  do  many  things,  for  the  more  cleanly  conveyance  of  others,  if  it  can 
but  get  us  to  spare  the  bosom  lust  which  the  soul  delighteth  in.  Every 
man,  as  he  is  enslaved  by  his  own  customs,  opposeth  one  this  law, 
another  that  ;  the  proud  man  doth  not  approve  of  that  law  that  doth 
forbid  his  pride,  nor  the  sensual  man  that  which  toucheth  his  intem 
perance  and  unbridled  appetite,  nor  the  worldly  man  his  covetous- 
ness,  cannot  endure  that  part  of  the  law  that  would  abridge  him  of 
his  gain.  Nothing  more  common  than  to  cast  off  what  liketh  us  not 


328  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXL. 

in  the  law  of  God,  and  to  wish  there  were  no  precept  given  in  that 
kind.  But  our  consent  must  be  to  all  in  general,  and  to  this  and  that 
in  particular.  Many  could  be  content  with  God's  law,  so  far  as  it 
doth  not  cross  their  carnal  interest,  or  hinder  their  corrupt  desires ; 
but  we  must  esteem  all  the  laws  of  God ;  they  are  all  holy,  just,  and 
good,  not  one  excepted  ;  all  conduce  to  perfect  our  nature,  and  make 
us  happy  creatures  ;  they  all  conduce  to  the  benefit  of  human  nature  ; 
they  are  all  enjoined  by  the  authority  of  the  same  God  :  '  God  spake 
all  these  words.'  They  are  linked  as  rings  in  a  chain ;  one  pre- 
serveth  another  ;  they  are  all  necessary  for  our  eternal  happiness  ;  not 
one  given  in  vain.  So  much  thou  continuest  thine  own  misery,  and 
art  defective  in  the  way  that  leadeth  to  true  happiness,  as  thou  art 
willing  to  indulge  in  any  one  sin.  They  are  all  written  in  the  hearts 
of  God's  children,  Heb.  viii.  10,  all  suited  to  the  new  nature;  and  he 
hath  given  grace  to  keep  all,  1  Peter  i.  15,  perfection  of  parts,  not  of 
degrees.  The  new  creature  is  not  maimed  in  the  birth.  A  child  hath 
not  the  bulk  and  strength  of  a  man.  Want  of  perfection  of  parts 
cannot  be  supplied  by  any  after  growth.  Nay,  all  are  necessary  to 
our  communion  with  God  :  Ps.  Ixvi.  18,  '  If  I  regard  iniquity  in  my 
heart,  the  Lord  will  not  hear  me;'  Mat.  v.  19,  'Whosoever  shall 
break  one  of  these  least  commandments,'  &c.  If  we  dispense  with 
ourselves  in  the  least  things,  we  are  not  fit  for  communion  with  God, 
2  Cor.  vii.  1 ;  having  such  promises  of  God's  being  in  us,  and  dwelling 
in  us,  and  maintaining  communion  with  us,  then  '  let  us  cleanse  our- 
ourselves  from  all  filthiness  both  of  flesh  and  spirit;'  Col.  i.  10,  'that 
ye  might  walk  worthy  of  the  Lord  to  all  pleasing/  et?  iraaav  apev- 
Keiav.  If  you  do  not  consent  to  keep  all,  you  can  keep  none  ;  for  the 
same  reasons  that  move  us  to  break  one,  will  move  us  to  break  all. 
Herod,  that  heard  John  gladly,  when  his  lust  moved  him  to  it,  put 
him  to  death.  To  be  sure  it  must  be  total. 
Reasons  of  this  esteem. 

1.  From  the  excellency  of  God's  law.     The  law  of  God  deserves  it : 
Deut.  iv.  6,  '  Keep,  therefore,  and  do  them ;  for  this  is  your  wisdom 
and  your  understanding  in  the  sight  of  the  nations,  which  shall  hear 
all  these  statutes,  and  say,  Surely  this  great  nation  is  a  wise  and  un 
derstanding  people/     We  should  esteem  the  law,  because  it  doth  not 
infringe  our  natures,  but  makes  them  perfect,  puts  an  excellency  upon 
us.     But  of  this  in  other  verses. 

2.  This  esteem  and  approbation  is  the  ground  of  practice.     When 
we  are  convinced  of  the  ways  of  God,  and  the  excellency  that  is  in 
them,  the  heart  consenteth  and  embraceth  them,  and  then  followeth  a 
ready  practice  ;  we  will  observe  what  we  do  approve.     Whereas,  on 
the  contrary,  if  we  have  no  esteem  for  the  ways  of  God,  we  shall  take 
no  care  to  walk  in  them,  but  could  wish  such  laws  expunged ;  for  still 
these  two  go  together — hearty  embracing  and  diligent  practice.     The 
will  is  the  great  master-wheel.     Now  esteem  implieth  the  bent  of  the 
will  or  heart ;  it  implieth  consent  and  election ;  it  is  the  act  of  the 
will,  is  the  act  of  the  man :  Prov.  xxiii.  26,  *  My  son,  give  me  thy 
heart.'     The  man  is  never  overcome  till  then.     You  may  kill  him,  but 
you  cannot  conquer  him  till  he  give  his  consent.     There  may  be  a 
kind  of  force  and  violence  offered  to  the  other  faculties ;  the  under- 


VER.  128.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  329 

standing  may  be  overcome  with  light,  which  though  it  would,  it  can 
not  keep  out.  The  conscience  may  be  awakened,  though  men  en 
deavour  to  lull  it  asleep;  but  the  will  is  free,  and  is  not  conquered, 
but  by  its  own  consent  and  choice.  The  Lord  will  not  force  himself 
upon  any;  he  dealeth  with  the  reasonable  creatures  in  a  covenant 
way,  to  which  our  consent  is  required.  It  only  bindeth  as  a  law,  till 
we  consent  to  yield  to  it  as  a  covenant :  2  Chron.  xxx.  8,  '  Yield  your 
selves  to  the  Lord.'  Now  bring  your  hearts  once  to  consent,  and 
heartily  approve  of  the  ways  of  God,  and  the  rest  will  succeed  without 
difficulty.  It  will  not  be  hard  to  give  a  law  to  the  tongue,  to  restrain 
the  hand,  govern  the  body ;  our  affections  will  more  easily  come  to 
hand  if  we  have  a  will  to  the  things  of  God.  The  smallest  matters 
against  our  wills  are  grievous  to  us.  It  was  no  great  matter  for 
Haman  to  lead  Mordecai's  horse,  but  it  was  an  unwelcome  and  un 
pleasant  service  ;  he  had  no  mind  to  it.  It  is  no  great  matter  for 
men  to  do  the  things  that  God  requireth ;  but  they  have  no  mind  to 
it,  and  therefore  are  off  and  on:  James  i.  8,  ' The  double-minded  man 
is  unstable  in  all  his  ways/ 

3.  This  is  some  comfort  to  a  child  of  God,  that  though  he  faileth 
in  some  part  of  his  duty,  yet  he  esteemeth  all ;  for  where  this  appro 
bation  is,  you  may  use  the  apostle's  plea, ;  Not  I,  but  sin  that  dwelleth 
in  me ; '  Rom.  vii.  15,  '  For  that  which  I  do,  I  allow  not ;  for  what  I 
would,  that  I  do  not;  but  what  I  hate,  that  do  I.'  The  allowance 
or  approbation  of  the  will  is  there  spoken  of ;  he  speaketh  of  willing 
and  nilling,  loving,  delighting,  and  hating.  Though  you  cannot  do 
that  good  you  would,  in  that  purity  and  perfection  which  love  re 
quireth,  and  the  renewed  heart  intendeth,  yet  your  hearts  are  upon 
your  work :  '  The  evil  which  I  hate,  I  do.'  The  new  nature  hates 
and  dislikes  what  the  carnal  part  prompts  to. 

Use.  Learn  to  approve  the  law  of  God  in  all  things,  as  right  and 
good  for  you. 

1.  Do  not  dispense  with  yourselves  in  anything.    In  two  cases  we  are 
apt  to  do  so : — (1.)  In  small  things  ;  it  is  nothing,  we  think ;  it  is  but 
a  little  one.    Nothing  that  cometh  from  God  should  be  light  and  con 
temptible  ;  though  the  matter  be  never  so  small,  if  God  hath  inter 
posed,  it  should  be  regarded  by  us.     There  may  be  great  obstinacy  in 
small  sins,  as  a  slender  line  may  be  very  crooked,  or  as  in  some  cases 
the  dye  is  more  than  the  cloth.     Will  you  break  with  God  in  a  small 
matter  ?     If  some  great  matter  were  required,  would  you  not  have 
done  it  ?  as  2  Kings  v.  13  ;  dare  you  offend  this  holy  God  for  trifles  ? 
(2.)  Do  not  dispense  with  yourselves,  though  never  so  contrary  to  your 
humour  and  interest.     This  is  to  set   up  a  toleration  in  your  own 
hearts,  or  a  court  of  faculties  without  God's  leave  :  '  God  be  merciful 
to  me,  if  I  bow  in  the  house  of  Eirnmon.' 

2.  Do  not  so  much  as  wish  there  were  no  such  law.    It  is  a  contra 
diction  of  the  law  when  you  could  wish  there  were  no  law  to  put  a 
restraint  upon  your  beloved  lusts  and  darling  corruptions.      Carnal 
men  wish  there  were  no  God,  not  as  a  creator  and  preserver,  but  as  a 
lawgiver.     There  may  be  much  enmity  in  such  a  thought.      Every 
thought  must  be  brought  into  subjection  to  Jesus  Christ,  2  Cor.  x.  5. 
Not  a  disallowing  thought  of  God's  government  but  doth  much  pre- 


330  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.          [SEE.  CXL. 

judtce  your  hearts.  God  hath  given  such  laws,  that  if  all  things  were 
left  to  our  own  option  and  choice,  nothing  better  could  be  devised  to 
preserve  the  liberty  and  perfection  of  the  human  nature.  It  is  an  ill 
note  to  count  the  command  grievous.  Holiness  is  so  amiable  in  itself, 
that  men  are  not  frightened  unto  God's  laws,  but  choose  them. 

3.  Bring  thy  heart  to  approve  the  law  by  mortifying  that  distemper 
that  ariseth  against  it,  be  it  pride,  self-conceit,  sensuality,  covetous- 
ness.     Appetite  that  is  lost  to  wholesome  food  is  restored  by  purging 
the  stomach  ;  there  is  a  preparation  of  mind  required  to  receiving  of 
moral  things.      So  in  divine  things :  1  Cor.  ii.  14,  '  But  the  natural 
man  receiveth  not  the  things  of  the  Spirit.'      We  are  prepossessed, 
intus  existens  prohibet  exitum.    Therefore  bring  your  heart  to  approve 
God's  law  removendo  prohibens,  by  mortifying  those  corruptions  that 
rise  against  it. 

4.  When  you  see  no  other  reason  to  yield  to  God's  law,  let  his  will 
and  sovereign  authority  be  reason  enough  to  you.      This  is  reason 
enough  for  God  to  use  to  his  creatures  :  *  I  am  the  Lord/  Lev.  xviii.  4,  5, 
'  Ye  shall  do  my  judgments,  and  keep  mine  ordinances,  to  walk  therein: 
I  am  the  Lord  your  God.     Ye  shall  therefore  keep  my  statutes  and 
my  judgments  ;  which  if  a  man  do,  he  shall  live  in  them  :  I  am  the 
Lord/    This  is  the  will  of  God.     We  owe  God  blind  obedience.     This 
should  silence  all  perverse  reasonings  against  God,  both  as  to  his  laws  and 
providence.    His  will  is  supreme,  and  our  will  must  be  yielded  up  to  his. 

Secondly,  We  come  to  the  other  branch,  and  I  hate  every  false  way. 
Where  we  have — the  act,  hate  ;  the  object,  false  way ;  the  extent, 
every,  whatsoever  is  contrary  to  the  purity  of  God's  word. 

Doct.  That  it  is  a  good  note  of  a  renewed  and  obedient  heart  to 
hate  every  false  way. 

This  will  appear  from— 

1.  The  sorts  and  kinds  of  hatred. 

2.  The  causes. 

3.  The  effects,  or  the  comparison  of  hatred  with  anger. 

1.  From  the  sorts  and  kinds  of  hatred,  which  are  reckoned  up  to  be 
two — (1.)  Odium  abominationis  ;  (2.)  Odium  inimiciticc. 

[1.]  Odium  abominationis,  a  hatred  of  flight  and  aversation,  called 
by  some  odium  offemionis,  the  hatred  of  offence.  It  is  defined  by 
Aquinas  to  be  dissonantia  qucedam  appetites,  ad  id  quod  appre- 
henditur  ut  repugnans,  &c.  It  is  a  repugnancy  of  the  appetite  to 
what  is  apprehended,  as  contrary  and  prejudicial  to  it.  Such  there  is 
in  the  will  of  the  regenerate,  for  they  apprehend  sin  as  repugnant  and 
contrary  to  their  renewed  will ;  to  the  unrcgenerate  it  is  agreeable  and 
suitable,  as  draff  to  the  appetite  of  a  swine,  or  grass  and  hay  to  a 
bullock  or  horse.  Now  this  hatred  is  a  good  sign,  that  cannot  be 
found  in  another  that  is  not  born  of  God.  The  mortification  of  sin 
standeth  principally  in  the  hatred  of  it.  Sin  dieth  when  it  dieth  in 
the  affections  ;  when  we  look  upon  it  as  an  offence  to  us,  destructive 
to  our  happiness,  and  as  it  is  truly  grieved  for  and  hated  by  us.  The 
unregenerate  may  hate  sin,  materially  considered;  that  is,  the  thing 
which  is  a  sin ;  but  they  cannot  hate  it  formally  considered,  as  sin 
under  the  notion  of  a  siri ;  for  then  they  would  hate  all  sin,  a  quatenus 
ad  omne  valet  consequentia.  As,  for  instance,  thus  :  A  covetous  man 


VER.  128.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  331 

hateth  prodigal  and  riotous  courses,  not  as  they  are  sinful  and  con 
trary  to  God's  law,  but  as  contrary  to  his  humour  and  covetous  will. 

p.]  Odium  inimiciticc,  or  the  hatred  of  enmity.  This  enmity  is 
nothing  else  but  a  willing  of  evil  or  mischief  to  the  thing  or  person 
hated,  and  that  out  of  mere  displacency,  dislike,  or  distaste  of  the  person 
hated.  This  is  a  sure  note ;  the  regenerate  hate  their  sins,  in  that 
they  would  have  them  arraigned,  crucified,  mortified  ;  they  would  fain 
see  the  heart-blood  of  sin  let  out ;  therefore  they  oppose,  watch  against, 
and  resist  it  as  their  mortal,  deadly  enemy.  When  a  man  pursues 
sin,  would  have  the  life  of  it,  this  enmity  cannot  be  quiet ;  it  is  an 
activre  enmity,  diligent  in  praying,  mourning,  watching,  striving,  using 
all  holy  means  to  get  it  out  of  our  hearts,  wishing,  groaning,  waiting, 
complaining,  that  we  may  get  rid  of  it :  Eom.  vii.  24,  '  0  wretched 
man  that  I  am  !  who  shall  deliver  me  from  the  body  of  this  death  ?' 
They  follow  their  work  hard. 

2.  The  causes  of  this  hatred.     There  are  three  causes  of  it  :— 

[1.]  Spiritual  knowledge  and  illumination,  that  is  one  cause  of 
hatred :  Ps.  cxix.  104,  '  Through  thy  precepts  I  get  understanding ; 
therefore  I  hate  every  false  way.'  When  the  heart  is  thick-set,  and 
well  fraughted  with  divine  knowledge,  a  man  cannot  sin  freely.  Those 
that  are  exercised  in  the  word  of  God  fincl  some  consideration  or  other 
to  quicken  to  the  hatred  of  sin.  The  word  is  a  proper  instrument  to 
destroy  sin:  Ps.  cxix.  11,  '  Thy  word  have  I  hid  in  my  heart,  that  I 
might  not  sin  against  thee ;'  Eph.  vi.  13.  Our  affections  follow  our 
apprehensions.  We  come  to  the  heart  by  the  mind :  Jer.  xxxi.  19, 
'  After  I  was  instructed,  I  smote  upon  my  thigh.'  In  the  word  of  God 
are  the  most  proper  reasons  and  arguments  to  kill  sin. 

[2.]  The  love  of  God:  Ps.  xcvii.  10,  '  Ye  that  love  the  Lord  hate 
evil.'  He  doth  not  say  forbear  it,  but  hate  it.  The  cause  of  hatred  is 
the  love  of  that  good  unto  which  the  thing  or  person  hated  is  contrary 
and  repugnant.  Love  to  the  chiefest  good  is  accompanied  with  hatred 
of  sin,  which  is  the  chiefest  evil.  The  one  is  as  natural  to  grace  as  the 
other.  The  new  nature  hath  its  flight  and  aversation,  as  well  as  its 
choice  and  prosecution,  to  things  that  are  hurtful  to  it,  as  well  as  good 
and  profitable. 

[3.]  A  filial  fear  of  God  :  Prov.  viii.  13,  '  The  fear  of  the  Lord  is  to 
hate  evil :  pride  and  arrogancy  and  the  evil  way  and  the  froward 
mouth  do  I  hate.'  Certainly  this  is  to  fear  God,  to  hate  what  God 
hateth,  and  as  God  hateth,  and  because  God  hateth.  Now  God  hateth 
all  sin,  pride,  and  arrogancy ;  that  is,  sins  of  thought,  which  put  us 
upon  vain  and  foolish  musings.  And  then  the  sins  of  the  tongue  are 
expressed  by  *  froward  mouth.'  Nothing  so  natural  to  us  as  filthy  and 
evil  speaking.  And  then  the  sins  of  practice, '  the  evil  way.'  They 
that  fear  God  will  hate  all  these  sins.  These  graces  are  strangers 
to  unrenewed  hearts.  It  argueth  a  divine  nature  when  we  hate  when, 
what,  and  as,  and  because  God  hates  it.  Eadem  velle  et  nolle  est 
summa  amicitia. 

3.  A  third  argument  is  from  the  comparison  of  hatred  with  anger. 
Unregenerate  men  may  be  angry  with  sin,  because  anger  is  consistent 
with  love.  One  may  be  angry  with  his  wife,  children,  friends,  whom 
yet  he  tenderly  affects. 


332  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.          [SEE.  CXL. 

[1.]  Anger  is  a  sudden  and  short,  hatred  a  lasting  and  durable 
passion.  Anger  is  furor  brevis,  curable  by  time  ;  hatred  incurable  by 
the  greatest  tract  of  time.  The  unregenerate  are  displeased  with  their 
sins  for  a  spurt,  but  the  regenerate  constantly  disaffected  towards  them. 
There  is,  1  John  iii.  9,  aTrep^a,  there  is  a  constant  principle  of  resist 
ance  in  the  renewed  heart.  Passion  is  a  casual  dislike,  but  the  new 
nature  a  rooted  enmity,  a  habitual  aversation  to  what  is  evil. 

[2.]  Anger  is  only  against  singulars,  but  hatred  is  efc  ra  yevrj,  to  the 
whole  kind.  Thus  we  hate  every  wolf  and  every  serpent,  every  thief  and 
every  calumniator.  So  is  this  universal ;  it  respects  sin  as  sin,  and  hateth 
all  sin,  though  never  so  profitable  and  pleasant.  Not  upon  foreign  and 
accidental  reasons;  as,  Esther  iii.  16,  Hainan  thought  scorn  to  lay 
hands  upon  Mordecai  alone,  but  sought  the  destruction  of  all  the  Jews. 
The  same  reasons  that  incline  us  to  hate  one  sin,  incline  us  to  hate  all 
sin.  The  violation  of  God's  law  is  a  contempt  of  God's  authority,  a 
breach  of  spiritual  friendship  ;  one  grieveth  the  Spirit  of  God  as  well  as 
the  other.  Every  sin  is  hateful  to  God,  so  it  is  to  those  that  are  made 
partakers  of  the  divine  nature. 

[3.]  Anger  may  be  pacified  or  appeased  with  the  sufferings  of  the 
thing  or  person  with  which  we  are  angry,  but  hatred  is  implacable  ; 
nothing  can  content  and  satisfy  it  but  the  ruin  or  not  being  of  the 
thing  and  party  hated.  David  was  angry  with  Absalom,  but  loath  to 
have  him  destroyed,  only  corrected  and  reduced  :  when  he  sent  out 
forces  against  him,  '  Deal  gently  with  the  young  man/  So  many  deal 
with  their  sins  ;  we  reason,  pray,  strive,  complain  ;  but  it  is  but  an  angry 
fit ;  we  are  displeased  with  them  at  present,  but  could  easily  be  recon 
ciled.  They  seek  not  after  the  death,  but  the  restraint  and  imprison 
ment  of  their  corruptions  and  lusts,  that  they  may  not  disgrace  or 
otherwise  prejudice  them.  Nothing  contents  the  regenerate  but  the 
killing  and  mortification  of  them  ;  they  would  have  them  dealt  with  as 
Samuel  by  Agag,  hewn  in  pieces  ;  therefore  they  study  revenge  upon 
their  sins  :  Gal.  v.  24, '  Crucifying  the  flesh,  with  the  affections  and  lusts/ 

[4.]  From  the  state  of  the  regenerate.  They  have  sin  in  them,  but 
yet  they  hate  it.  Their  will  and  consent  to  sin  is  always  abated,  and 
made  remiss  by  a  contrary  principle,  the  grace  that  is  in  their  wills  : 
Gal.  v.  17,  '  The  spirit  lusteth  against  the  flesh/  Sin  cannot  reign  in 
them  with  a  full  and  uncontrolled  dominion  :  Rom.  vi.  14,  '  Sin  shall 
not  have  dominion  over  you/ 

Use  1.  How  few  are  there  that  are  God's  children,  for  .how  few  are 
there  that  hate  sin  !  Some  love  it,  Job  xx.  12,  13,  and  the  love  of  sin 
is  the  life  of  it ;  and  what  is  it  they  hate  ?  They  hate  the  word  that 
discovers  sin,  John  iii.  20 ;  they  hate  God's  messengers  that  do  cry 
aloud  against  sin,  and  do  rub  their  sores  ;  as  Ahab  said  of  Micaiah, 
*  He  doth  never  prophesy  good  of  me/  They  hate  the  magistrate  that 
would  reform  them,  they  hate  God's  image  in  his  saints  ;  they  cannot 
endure  the  lustre  of  holiness  that  shineth  forth  in  them. 

Use  2.  Do  we  indeed  hate  sin  ?     We  had  need  look  after  this. 

1.  Because  this  is  the  true  principle  of  resistance  against  sin.  Till 
a  man  hateth  it,  the  soul  is  not  thoroughly  resolved  against  it,  as  a  man 
is  never  thoroughly  gained  to  God  till  he  love  holiness  for  holiness' 
sake  :  his  affections  may  be  bribed  with  other  considerations,  but  then 


VER.  129.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  333 

he  is  rooted  in  godliness.  So  a  man  is  not  resolved  against  sin  till  he 
hate  it  for  its  own  sake.  He  may  be  frightened  out  of  sin  for  a  fit,  put 
out  of  humour  with  it,  but  his  heart  is  in  again  with  his  old  lusts,  till 
there  be  a  detestation  of  sin ;  but  when  once  he  cometh  to  hate  it,  per 
suasions  cannot  easily  move  him,  nor  example  draw  him,  nor  difficul 
ties  compel  him,  to  that  which  is  evil ;  nor  allurements,  that  have  a 
great  force  upon  us :  '  Straightway  he  followed  her.'  But  they  cast 
away  sin  with  indignation :  Hosea  xiv.  8,  '  What  have  I  any  more  to 
do  with  idols  ? ' 

2.  This  is  a  true  distinctive  note  between  good  and  bad.  Men  may 
forbear  sin  that  do  not  hate  it :  they  forbear  it  by  constraint,  for  fear 
of  punishment,  shame,  worldly  ends  ;  but  regard  it  in  their  hearts,  Ps. 
Ixvi.  18.  The  dog  hath  a  mind  to  the  pail,  but  feareth  the  cudgel. 
But  God  judgeth  not  as  man  judgeth. 


SERMON  CXLL 

TJiy  testimonies  are  wonderful :  therefore  doth  my  soul  keep 
them. — VER.  129. 

IN  the  words  are  two  parts — 

1.  The  dignity  and  excellency  of  God's  testimonies,  thy  testimonies 
are  wonderful. 

2.  The  effect  it  had  upon  David's  heart,  therefore  doth  my  soul  keep 
them. 

Accordingly  two  points — 

Doct.  1.  That  the  testimonies  of  God,  when  duly  considered  and 
thoroughly  understood,  will  indeed  be  found  to  be  wonderful. 

Doct.  2.  The  wonderful  excellency  of  the  word  should  beget  in  our 
hearts  a  readiness  and  diligent  care  to  keep  it. 

Doct.  1.  The  testimonies  of  God  are  wonderful. 

1.  The  word  in  itself  is  wonderful,  as  containing  truths  of  a  sublime 
nature. 

2.  It  is  wonderful  in  its  effects ;  as  it  produceth  effects  rare  and 
strange. 

1.  In  itself  considered,  it  is  sometimes  called  the  mystery  of  faith,  as 
it  containeth  principles  of  faith ;  and  sometimes  a  mystery  of  godli 
ness,  as  it  containeth  rules  of  practice.     As  it  is  a  mystery  of  faith, 
there  are  many  strange  doctrines  in  it  above  the  reach  of  man's  capa 
city,  which  we  could  neither  invent  nor  understand,  unless  we  be 
enlightened  by  the  Spirit  of  God  ;  as  that  three  to  be  one,  and  one  to 
be  three ;  God  to  be  made  man,  &c.  ;  these  are  riddles  to  a  carnal 
mind.     And  as  it  is  a  rule  of  faith,  still  it  offereth  matter  of  wonder, 
the  duty  of  man  being  represented  with  such  exactness  and  compre 
hensiveness  :  Ps.  cxix.  96,  '  I  have  seen  an  end  of  all  perfection  :  but 
thy  commandment  is  exceeding  broad.' 

2.  What  rare  effects  it  produceth  :  where  it  is  entertained  it  maketh 
a  Christian  become  a  wonder  to  himself  and  others. 

[1.]  A  wonder  to  himself  :  1  Peter  ii.  9,  '  He  hath  called  us  out  of 


334  SEEMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXTX.  [SER.  CXLI. 

darkness  into  his  marvellous  light.'  There  is  no  man  converted  by 
the  word  of  God  but  hath  cause  to  wonder  at  his  own  estate,  at  the 
condescension  of  God  in  plucking  him  as  a  brand  out  of  the  burning, 
or  that  woful  condition  wherein  he  was  before,  when  others  are  left  to 
perish  :  John  xiv.  22,  '  Lord,  how  is  it  that  thou  wilt  manifest  thyself 
to  us,  and  not  unto  the  world  ? '  And  then  that  we  are  brought  into 
the  possession  of  such  excellent  privileges  as  we  enjoy  in  our  new 
estate,  peace  that  passeth  all  understanding,  Phil.  iv.  7,  joy  unspeak 
able  and  full  of  glory,  1  Peter  i.  8  ;  privileges  greater  than  can  be 
imagined  or  expressed.  So  are  their  hearts  ravished  in  the  sense  of 
their  reconciliation  with  God  and  communion  with  him.  So  also  in 
giving  them  such  an  undoubted  right  to  an  everlasting  blessed  estate 
in  the  heavens :  1  Cor.  ii.  9,  '  Eye  hath  not  seen,  nor  ear  heard,  neither 
have  entered  into  the  heart  of  man,  the  things  which  God  hath  pre 
pared  for  them  that  love  him.'  He  hath  promised  them  a  happiness 
which  they  can  never  think  of,  but  every  day  they  must  fall  a-wonder- 
ing  anew  ;  and  all  this  wrought  by  an  exceeding  great  power  working 
together  with  the  word,  Eph.  i.  19  ;  as  Peter  wondered  at  his  own 
deliverance,  when  chains  and  gates  and  bars  did  all  give  way  to  the 
power  of  the  angel  that  brought  him  forth  :  Acts  xii.  9—11,  '  And  he 
went  out,  and  followed  him,  and  wist  not  that  it  was  true  that  was  done 
by  the  angel,  but  thought  he  saw  a  vision.  When  they  were  past  the 
first  and  the  second  ward,  they  came  unto  the  iron  gate  that  leadeth 
into  the  city,  which  opened  to  them  of  its  own  accord,  and  they  went 
out  and  passed  on  through  one  street,  and  forthwith  the  angel  departed 
from  him.  And  when  Peter  was  come  to  himself,  he  said,  Now  I 
know  of  a  surety  that  the  Lord  hath  sent  his  angel,  and  hath  delivered 
me  out  of  the  hand  of  Herod,  and  from  all  the  expectation  of  the  people 
of  the  Jews/  So  may  every  one  that  is  converted  to  God  stand  won 
dering,  when  he  considereth  how,  from  whence,  and  to  what  he  is  called 
by  God  ;  all  this  is  wonderful  indeed.  There  is  more  of  God  seen 
in  inward  experiences  than  in  outward  ;  in  converting,  comforting, 
quickening,  and  carrying  on  the  work  of  grace  in  our  own  hearts,  than 
in  governing  the  courses  of  nature  ;  therefore  the  apostle  appealeth  to 
this  internal  power,  Eph.  iii.  20,  '  Unto  him  that  is  able  to  do  exceed 
ing  abundantly  above  all  that  we  ask  or  think,  according  to  the  power 
that  worketh  in  us.'  He  instanceth  in  that  which  God  hath  done 
for  us  in  Christ,  which  is  beyond  our  prayer,  conceptions,  and  hopes ; 
transcending  the  hopes  and  apprehensions  of  the  most  enlarged  hearts. 
Thus  is  a  Christian  a  wonder  to  himself. 

[2.]  He  is  a  wonder  to  the  world,  if  he  keep  up  the  majesty  and 
vigour  of  religion :  1  Peter  iv.  4,  '  Wherein  they  think  it  strange  that 
you  run  not  with  them  to  the  same  excess  of  riot,  speaking  evil  of  you/ 
•  It  was  strange  to  them  that  they  should  be  altered  so  of  a  sudden,  that 
of  filthy  puddles  they  should  become  clear  as  crystal  waters ;  a  sink 
turned  into  a  pure  fountain.  That  men  should  live  above  interests  of 
nature,  row  against  the  stream  of  flesh  and  blood,  this  is  all  strange  to 
the  world ;  and  this  is  the  fruit  of  the  word ;  for  *  the  word  of  God  is 
perfect,  converting  the  soul/  Ps.  xix.  8.  Every  grace  is  a  mystery  and 
wonder;  especially  faith,  for  a  man  to  believe  that  which  he  under- 
fctandeth  not,  to  hope  for  that  he  seeth  not,  to  have  that  which  he 


VER.  129.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  335 

wants  ;  to  be  tossed  with  tempests,  and  yet  to  enjoy  a  sweet  calm  in  our 
own  hearts ;  to  be  destitute  of  all  things,  and  yet  be  as  little  anxious 
as  if  we  indeed  had  all  things ;  as  poor,  yet  making  many  rich ;  as 
having  nothing,  yet  possessing  all  things ;  to  be  a  rock  in  the  midst  of 
a  storm;  as  dying,  and  yet  we  live  :  2  Cor.  iv.  8,  9,  '  We  are  troubled 
on  every  side,  yet  not  distressed  ;  we  are  perplexed,  but  not  in  despair; 
persecuted,  but  not  forsaken ;  cast  down,  but  not  destroyed  ; '  2  Cor. 
vi.  10,  '  As  sorrowful,  yet  always  rejoicing  ;  as  poor,  yet  making  many 
rich ;  as  having  nothing,  and  yet  possessing  all  things/  Thus  is  a 
believer  the  world's  wonder,  a  very  riddle  to  carnal  sense.  So  in  other 
graces ;  he  can  hate  father  and  mother  for  Christ's  sake,  can  also  love 
enemies  at  Christ's  command.  He  that  doth  even  break  his  heart  for 
the  least  sin  can  bear  up  against  the  greatest  trouble. 

Thus  I  might  exemplify  the  point,  but  I  must  go  a  little  largely  to 
work. 

1.  God's  testimonies  are  wonderful  in  their  majesty  and  composure, 
which  striketh  reverence  into  the  hearts  of  those  that  consider;  it 
speaketh  to  us  at  a  God-like  rate.  Jesus  Christ  leaves  a  character  of 
his  divine  Spirit  upon  his  words  :  Mark  vii.  28,  29,  '  And  it  came  to 
pass  when  Jesus  had  ended  these  sayings,  the  people  were  astonished 
at  his  doctrine ;  for  he  taught  them  as  one  having  authority,  and  not 
as  the  scribes/  There  was  an  impression  of  his  authority  upon  his 
word,  his  hearers  were  convinced  of  a  sovereign  majesty  proper  to 
the  dignity  of  his  person.  Those  that  went  to  take  him  returned  this 
account,  John  vii.  46,  '  Never  man  spake  like  this  man/  for  authority, 
power,  and  evidence.  Now  the  scriptures  being  Christ's  doctrine, 
why  should  they  not  have  the  same  power,  authority,  and  divine 
character  in  them  ?  It  is  the  same  doctrine ;  the  voice  could  add 
nothing  to  it,  and  the  writing  take  nothing  from  it.  Could  not  God 
discover  his  sovereign  majesty  in  writing  as  well  as  speaking  ?  Look 
into  the  scriptures ;  are  you  not  even  compelled  to  say,  This  can  be  no 
other  but  the  word  of  God  ?  They  speak  not  as  conscious  of  any 
weakness,  or  as  begging  assent,  but  as  commanding  it.  Thus  saith 
the  Lord,  hear  it,  or  ye  are  undone  for  ever.  The  wisdom,  majesty, 
authority  of  the  author  showeth  itself  in  every  line  almost  of  scripture. 
Longinus,  a  heathen,  admired  the  majesty  of  that  passage,  yeveaBw  xal 
eyevero.  Indeed,  everywhere  there  is  great  authority  mixed  with 
simplicity  and  plainness  of  speech,  such  as  moveth  reverence  and  awe 
in  the  consciences  of  men.  It  may  be  it  is  not  seen  in  every  phrase 
and  clause  of  a  sentence,  but  it  is  clearly  discovered  in  the  whole 
frame ;  as  the  majesty  of  a  man's  countenance  is  not  so  fully  dis 
covered  in  any  one  part  of  the  face  as  in  the  whole  visage  taken 
jointly  together.  Scriptura  sic  loquitur,  saith  Austin,  ut  altitudine 
superbos  irrideat,  profunditate  attentos  terreat.  veritate  magnos 
pascat,  a/abilitate  parvos  nutriat— scripture  so  speaketh  that  it 
laughs  proud  and  lofty  men  to  scorn  with  the  height  of  it ;  with  the 
depths  of  it  it  terrifieth  those  who  with  attention  look  into  it ;  with 
truth  it  feedeth  men  of  greatest  knowledge  and  understanding  ;  with 
affability  and  sweetness  it  nourisheth  babes  and  sucklings.  Let  a 
man  have  but  anything  of  a  prepared  mind,  and  he  cannot  contain 
his  wonder  and  reverence,  but  will  tremble  at  the  word  of  God  :  Isa. 


336  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEE.  CXLI. 

Ixvi.  2,  '  To  tliis  man  will  I  look,  even  to  him  that  is  poor  and  of  a 
contrite  spirit,  and  trembleth  at  my  word.' 

2.  It  is  wonderful  for  the  matter  and  depth  of  mystery,  which 
cannot  be  found  elsewhere,  concerning  God  and  Christ,  the  creation 
of  the  world,  the  souls  of  men,  and  their  immortal  and  everlasting 
condition,  the  fall  of  man,  &c.  Here  God  is  set  forth  to  us  in  the 
clearest  representation  that  we  are  capable  of  in  this  mortal  state. 
God  is  in  part  seen  in  the  creatures  :  Rom.  i.  20,  '  For  the  invisible 
things  of  him  from  the  creation  of  the  world  are  clearly  seen,  being 
understood  by  the  things  that  are  made,  even  his  eternal  power  and 
Godhead.'  Everything  that  hath  passed  his  hand  discovereth  some 
what  of  the  author  and  maker  of  it.  But  as  imperfectly  as  God  is 
discovered  there,  we  cannot  behold  him  without  wonder  and  reverence, 
if  we  use  never  so  little  of  an  attentive  mind  ;  those  strictures  of  God 
that  are  seen  in  man's  body — Galen  wondered  when  he  saw  a  man's 
hand — the  sun,  moon,  and  stars  ;  yea,  a  gnat,  yea,  a  pile  of  grass  :  but 
these  discoveries  are  not  to  be  compared  with  the  scriptures  revealing 
the  glory  of  God  in  the  face  of  Christ:  2  Cor.  iv.  6,  '  For  God,  who 
commanded  the  light  to  shine  out  of  darkness,  hath  shined  in  our 
hearts,  to  give  us  the  light  of  the  knowledge  of  the  glory  of  God,  in 
the  face  of  Jesus  Christ/  If  we  wonder  at  so  much  of  God  as  we 
find  in  a  gnat,  shall  not  we  wonder  much  more  at  so  much  of  God  as 
we  find  in  his  law,  in  his  gospel,  in  the  whole  economy  and  frame  of  his 
gracious  dispensations  ?  Besides  that,  the  scriptures  help  us  to  interpret 
the  book  of  the  creatures :  they  show  forth  more  of  God  than  all  the 
creatures  can  do  ;  the  book  of  nature  is  an  imperfect  piece  in  regard  of 
the  book  of  scripture.  You  cannot  look  upon  the/book  of  the  creatures, 
but  in  every  page  and  line  of  it  you  will  find  this  truth  presented  to 
your  eyes,  that  there  is  an  infinite  eternal  power  that  made  all  things ; 
this  is  enough  to  leave  the  world  without  excuse.  But  in  the  book  of 
the  word,  you  may  see  more  of  God,  and  the  way  how  to  enjoy  him. 
In  the  19th  psalm  David  doth  first  admire  the  glory  of  God  ^by  the 
beauty  of  the  heavens,  then  by  the  light  of  the  word.  By  reason  the 
heathens  found  out  irpwrov  ainov  rov  Koafiov  KOI  T^?  ra^eca?  Tracr^?, 
a  first  mover  and  a  first  cause ;  but  when  and  how  the  world  was 
made  they  were  left  in  uncertainties,  which  was  first,  the  egg  or  the 
hen,  the  oak  or  the  acorn  :  Heb.  xi.  3,  '  Through  faith  we  understand 
that  the  worlds  were  framed  by  the  word  of  God,  so  that  things  which 
are  seen  were  not  made  of  things  that  do  appear/  A  child  is  taught 
more  than  they  could  find  out  by  their  profound  researches.  So- 
concerning  the  fall  of  man,  conscience  will  inform  us  of  a  distinction 
between  good  and  evil ;  and  heathens,  by  the  light  of  nature,  could 
speak  of  virtue  and  vice  as  moral  perfection  and  a  deordination  ;  but 
nothing  of  sin  and  righteousness  relating  to  a  covenant ;  and  whence 
this  mischief  began  they  knew  not.  They  complained  of  nature  as  of 
a  stepmother,  observed  an  inclination  to  evil  more  than  to  good,  that 
vices  are  learned  without  a  teacher,  that  man  is  born  into  the  world 
crying,  beginneth  his  life  with  a  punishment ;  but  the  first  spring  and 
rise  of  evil  was  a  secret  to  them,  but  clearly  discovered  to  us:  Rom. 
v.  12,  '  Wherefore  as  by  one  man  sin  entered  into  the  world,  and 
death  by  sin,  and  so  death  passed  upon  all  men,  for  that  all  have 


VER.  129.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  337 

sinned.'  Man's  restitution  and  redemption  by  Christ  is  wonderful 
indeed  :  1  Tim.  iii.  16,  'And  without  controversy,  great  is  the  mystery 
of  godliness :  God  was  manifest  in  the  flesh,  justified  in  the  spirit, 
seen  of  angels,  preached  unto  the  Gentiles,  believed  on  in  the  world, 
received  up  into  glory.'  This  could  not  be  found  by  man  ;  how  could 
they  know  the  free  purposes  of  God's  grace  unless  God  revealed  them  ? 
This  is  the  mystery  of  'mysteries,  which  angels  desire  to  pry  into, 
1  Peter  i.  12.  So  excellent  and  ravishing  a  mystery  is  this  plot  of 
salvation  of  lost  sinners  by  Christ  incarnate,  that  the  very  angels 
cannot  enough  exercise  themselves  in  the  contemplation  of  it.  So 
union  with  Christ,  and  communion  with  him,  a  mystery  that  nature 
could  never  have  thought  of.  God's  keeping  a  familiar  correspon 
dence  with  his  creatures,  God's  dwelling  in  us,  our  dwelling  in  God : 
1  John  iv.  13,  '  Hereby  we  know  that  we  dwell  in  him,  and  he  in  us, 
because  he  hath  given  us  of  his  Spirit/  Words  we  should  not  dare 
to  have  used  if  God  had  not  used  them  before  us ;  it  would  have 
looked  like  blasphemy  to  speak  so,  if  we  had  not  the  warrant  of 
scripture.  So  the  resurrection  of  the  body,  and  life  eternal,  they  are 
all  wonders :  2  Tim.  i.  10,  '  But  is  now  made  manifest  by  the 
appearance  of  our  Saviour  Jesus  Christ,  who  hath  abolished  death, 
and  brought  life  and  immortality  to  light,  through  the  gospel/ 
Heathens  might  dream  of  a  life  after  death,  but  could  never  under 
stand  it  distinctly.  It  is  brought  to  light.  Their  wise  men  saw  it, 
like  the  blind  man  who  saw  men  walking  like  trees,  or  a  spire  at  a 
distance,  no  clearness,  no  certainty :  Lord,  '  thy  testimonies  are 
wonderful.' 

3.  It  is  wonderful  for  purity  and  perfection.      The  decalogue  in 
ten  words  compriseth  the  whole  duty  of  man,  and  reacheth  to  the  very 
soul  and  all  the  motions  of  the  heart.     All  the  precepts  of  morality 
are  advanced  to  the  highest  perfection.     Those  fragments  and  sorry 
remainders  of  the  light  of  nature,  that  have  escaped  out  of  the  ruins 
of  the  fall,  will  show  us  the  necessity  of  a  good  life.     But  the  word  of 
God  calleth  for  a  good  heart,  a  regeneration  as  well  as  a  reformation, 
not  only  abstaining  from  acts  of  sin,  but  lusts :  1  Peter  ii.  11,  '  Dearly 
beloved,  I  beseech  you  as  strangers  and  pilgrims,  that  ye  abstain  from 
fleshly  lusts,  which   war  against  the  soul.'     Not  only  the  outward 
work,  but  the  spirit,  that  is  weighed  in  the  balance  of  the  sanctuary : 
Prov.  xvi.  2,  'All  the  ways  of  a  man  are  clean  in  his  own  eyes;  but 
the  Lord  weigheth  the  spirits.'     It  mightily  establisheth  faith,  fear, 
and  love  to  God,  as  the  essential  graces.     When  we  consider  duty  in 
the  lump,  we  have  no  admiring  thoughts  ;  but  when  we  look  abroad 
into  all   the  parts  and   branches  of   obedience  whereunto  the  law 
diffuseth  itself,  then  the  holiness  which  the  law  requireth  is  admirable ; 
then  we  see  it  no  easy  matter  to  serve  this  holy  and  jealous  God ;  it  is 
no  easy  matter  to  go  to  the  bottom  of  this  perfection. 

4.  It  is  wonderful  for  the  harmony  and  consent  of  all  the  parts. 
All  religion  is  of  a  piece,  and  one  part  doth  not  interfere  with  another, 
but  conspireth  to  promote  the  great  end  of  subjection  of  the  creature 
to  God.     The  law  hath  a  mighty  subserviency  to  the  gospel,  and  the 
first  covenant  shutteth  up  the  sinner  immediately  under  the  curse, 
that  mercy  may  open  the  door  to  him.     The  gospel  is  first  darkly 

VOL.  VIII.  Y 


338  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiB.  CXLT. 

revealed,  and  still  it  groweth  as  the  light  doth  till  noonday.  At  first 
an  obscure  intimation,  *  The  seed  of  the  woman ; '  to  Abraham,  '  In 
thy  seed,'  which  after  was  repeated  to  Isaac  to  cut  off  Ishmael ;  then 
to  Jacob,  to  cut  off  Esau ;  yet  not  what  tribe :  Gen.  xlix,  10,  '  The 
sceptre  shall  not  depart  from  Judah,  nor  the  lawgiver  from  between 
his  feet,  till  Shiloh  come  ; '  yet  not  what  family  of  Judah ;  to  David  : 
2  Sam.  vii.  13,  '  I  will  establish  the  throne  o'f  his  kingdom  for  ever ; ' 
then  Isa.  vii.  14,  '  Behold,  a  virgin  shall  conceive  and  bear  a  son,  and 
call  his  name  Emmanuel ;'  then  John  the  Baptist,  John  i.  29, '  Behold 
the  Lamb  of  God  which  taketh  away  the  sin  of  the  world/  points  with 
a  finger  to  Christ.  Thus  while  in  short  the  scriptures  do  so  set  forth 
the  mercy  of  God  as  that  the  duty  of  the  creature  is  not  abolished, 
so  offers  grace  as  not  to  exclude  our  care  and  use  of  means ;  justi 
fication  and  sanctification  promote  one  another,  all  is  ordered  with 
good  advice:  2  Sam.  xxiii.  5,  'Although  my  house  be  not  so  with 
God,  he  hath  made  with  me  an  everlasting  covenant,  ordered  in  all 
things  and  sure.'  Thus  the  wonderful  harmony,  order,  and  consent 
of  all  the  parts  with  respect  to  the  great  end,  which  was  the  glorifying 
of  God  and  the  subjection  of  the  creature,  demonstrates  the  wonderful- 
ness  of  God's  testimonies,  the  glorifying  of  God's  grace  and  mercy  in 
those  that  are  saved,  and  his  justice  in  those  that  are  damned.  With 
respect  to  this,  God  made  man  upright,  furnished  with  abilities  to  do 
his  will ;  but  mutable,  ancl,  in  case  of  a  fall,  to  begin  with  a  new 
covenant.  He  will  have  his  mercy  honoured  without  prejudice  to 
his  justice;  the  comfort  of  the  creature  established,  so  as  duty  not 
abolished  ;  not  all  of  commands,  nor  all  of  promises,  but  these  inter 
woven,  that  they  may  serve  one  another.  A  promise  at  the  back  of 
a  command,  to  make  it  effectual ;  command  besides  a  promise,  to 
cause  humbling ;  neither  looseness  nor  rigour.  If  the  covenant  had 
been  left  to  our  ordering,  it  had  been  a  confused  business.  Now  it  is 
wonderfully  suited  ;  God  keepeth  up  his  dominion  and  sovereignty, 
notwithstanding  his  grace  and  condescension ;  justice  hath  full  satis 
faction,  yet  grace  glorified. 

5.  Wonderful  for  the  power  of  it.  ;  There  is  a  mighty  power 
that  goeth  along  with  the  word  of  God,  and  astonisheth  the  hearts  of 
those  that  consider  it  and  feel  it:  1  Thes.  i.  5,  '  Our  gospel  came  to 
you  not  in  word  only,  but  in  power,  and  in  the  Holy  Ghost/  By  this 
power  it  doth  not  only  fill  the  head  with  notions,  but  pierceth  the 
heart,  alarms  the  conscience,  awakens  the  affections:  Heb.  iv.  12, 
'  The  word  of  God  is  quick  and  powerful,  sharper  than  any  two-edged 
sword,  piercing  even  to  the  dividing  asunder  of  soul  and  spirit,  and 
joints  and  marrow,  and  is  a  discerner  of  the  thoughts  and  intents  of 
the  heart.'  This  power  was  seen  in  the  wonderful  success  of  that 
doctrine  and  religion  which  the  scriptures  do  establish.  It  hath 
•  diffused  and  spread  itself  like  leaven  in  the  mass  and  lump,  through 
out  all  parts  of  the  known  world,  within  the  space  of  thirty  or  forty 
years  or  thereabouts.  Hesterni  sumus,  saith  Tertullian,  et  tamen  omnia 
vestra  implevimus,  urbes,  insulas,  castella,  municipia,  conciliabula, 
castra,  tribus,  decurias,  palatium,  senatum,  forum  ;  sola  vobis  relin- 
quimus  templa — We  are  but  of  yesterday,  and  yet  how  are  we  in 
creased  !  Christians  are  found  in  all  places,  cities,  villages,  isles, 


VER.  129.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  339 

castles,  free  towns,  councils,  armies,  senate,  markets ;  everywhere  but 
in  the  idol  temples.  Such  a  wonderful  increase  and  success  was  there 
in  a  short  time !  The  apostle  :  Col.  i.  6,  '  The  word  of  the  truth  of 
the  gospel  is  come  unto  you,  as  it  doth  to  all  the  world,  and  bringeth 
forth  fruit,  as  it  doth  also  in  you.'  The  doctrine  itself  is  contrary 
to  nature  ;  it  doth  not  court  the  senses,  nor  woo  the  flesh  ;  it  offereth 
no  splendour  of  life,  nor  pleasures,  nor  profits ;  but  biddeth  deny  all 
these  things,  and  expect  persecution  :  Mark  xvi.  21,  '  If  any  man  will 
come  after  me,  let  him  deny  himself,  and  take  up  his  cross  and  follow 
me.'  It  only  telleth  us  of  spiritual  comforts,  and  the  recompenses  of 
another  world.  Mahomet  allures  his  followers  with  fair  promises  of 
security  and  carnal  pleasure  ;  there  wind  and  tide  went  one  way.  Man 
is  credulous  of  what  he  desireth ;  but  Christ  telleth  us  of  denying 
ourselves,  taking  up  the  cross,  cutting  off  right  hand,  and  plucking 
out  right  eye,  rowing  against  the  stream  of  flesh  and  blood,  bearing 
out  sail  against  all  the  blasts  and  furious  winds  without:  here  is 
nothing  lovely  to  a  carnal  eye.  This  was  the  doctrine.  It  taught  the 
proud  world  humility :  the  uncharitable  world  love  of  their  enemies  ; 
the  unchaste  world  that  a  glance  is  adultery  :  Mat.  v.  25,  '  Whosoever 
looketh  on  a  woman  to  lust  after  her,  hath  committed  adultery  with 
her  already  in  his  heart;'  the  revengeful  world  to  turn  the  other 
cheek  to  the  smiter  ;  the  covetous  man  to  be  liberal,  not  to  cark  and 
take  thought  for  worldly  things,  but  to  lay  up  treasures  in  heaven ; 
the  dissolute  world  to  walk  circumspectly  in  all  godliness  and  honesty. 
The  persons  and  instruments  that  were  to  manage  the  doctrine  were 
in  the  world's  eye  contemptible :  a  few  fishermen,  destitute  of  all 
worldly  props  and  aids ;  of  no  power,  wealth,  secular  wisdom,  autho 
rity,  and  other  such  advantages  as  are  apt  to  beget  a  repute  in  the 
world ;  yet  they  preached,  and  converted  many  nations,  though  they 
had  no  public  interest,  were  not  backed  with  the  power  of  princes,  as 
superstitions  are  wont  to  prevail  by  their  countenance  and  example : 
*  Every  one  seeketh  the  ruler's  face ; '  but  the  gospel  had  gotten  firm 
footing  in  the  world  long  ere  there  was  a  prince  to  countenance  it ; 
there  were  many  to  persecute  it,  none  to  profess  it.  As  the  instru 
ments  were  poor,  so  the  persons  that  received  their  message :  James 
ii.  5,  *  Hearken,  my  beloved  brethren,  hath  not  God  chosen  the  poor 
of  this  world,  rich  in  faith,  and  heirs  of  the  kingdom,  which  he  hath 
promised  to  them  that  love  him  ? '  1  Cor.  i.  26,  '  Ye  see  your  calling, 
brethren,  how  that  not  many  wise  men  after  the  flesh,  not  many 
mighty,  not  many  noble,  are  called/  When  destitute  of  worldly 
succours  and  supports,  it  held  up  head.  Ne  videretur  autkoritate 
traxisse  aliquos,  et  veritatis  ratione,  non  pompce  gratia  prcevaleret, 
saith  Ambrose.  It  was  much  it  should  hold  up  head  ;  yea,  the  powers 
of  the  world  against  it,  bonds  and  sufferings  and  deaths  did  abide  for 
them  everywhere  that  professed  this  way.  Horrible  tortures;  never 
did  war,  pestilence,  and  famine  sweep  away  so  many  as  the  first  persecu 
tions;  poor  Christians  were  murdered  and  butchered  every  where  ;  yet 
still  they  multiplied,  as  the  Israelites  did  in  Egypt,  under  oppression  ; 
or  as  a  tree  lopped  sends  forth  more  sprouts.  As  without  worldly 
interests ;  they  had  not  such  gifts  of  art,  eloquence,  and  policy  as  the 
world  with  whom  they  had  to  deal ;  all  was  carried  on  in  a  plain  way, 


340  SERMONS  UPON  TSALM  CX1X.  [$ER.  CXLI. 

without  pomp  of  words.  Paul  was  learned,  but  he  laid  aside  his 
ornaments,  lest  the  cross  of  Christ  should  he  of  none  effect :  1  Cor. 
ii.  4,  5,  '  And  my  speech  and  my  preaching  was  not  with  enticing 
words  of  man's  wisdom,  but  in  demonstration  of  the  spirit  and  of 
power ;  that  your  faith  should  not  stand  in  the  wisdom  of  men,  but  in 
the  power  of  God.'  They  were  to  deal  with  men  of  excellent  parts 
and  learning,  some  of  which  received  the  gospel.  This  plain  doctrine 
was  set  afoot  in  that  part  of  the  world  where  arts  and  civil  discipline 
most  flourished  at  that  time,  and  were  in  their  aKfjurj.  Thus  as  Aaron's 
rod  devoured  the  magicians'  serpents,  so  was  the  gospel  too  hard  for 
the  wisdom  of  the  world :  it  prevailed  not  by  force  of  arms  and  the 
power  of  the  long  sword,  as  all  dotages  do,  and  superstitions  are 
planted ;  but  '  overcame  by  the  blood  of  the  Lamb,  and  by  the  word 
of  their  testimony  ;  and  they  loved  not  their  lives  unto  the  death,'  Rev. 
xii.  11.  Christ's  sword  is  in  his  mouth:  Ps.  viii.  2,  'Out  of  the 
mouths  of  babes  and  sucklings  hast  thou  ordained  strength,  because  of 
thine  enemies,  that  thou  mightest  still  the  enemy  and  the  avenger/ 
This  way  seemed  to  the  world  a  novel  way ;  they  were  leavened  with 
prejudices,  and  bred  up  by  long  custom,  which  is  a  second  nature,  in 
the  worship  of  idols :  1  Peter  i.  18,  '  Forasmuch  as  ye  know  that  ye 
were  not  redeemed  with  corruptible  things,  as  silver  and  gold,  from 
your  vain  conversation,  received  by  tradition  from  your  fathers.'  Men 
keep  to  the  religion  of  their  ancestors  with  much  reverence.  Christ 
did  not  seize  upon  the  world  as  a  waste  is  seized  upon  for  the  next 
owner.  The  ark  was  to  be  set  up  in  the  temple  that  was  already 
occupied  and  possessed  by  Dagon.  Before  Christ  could  be  seated  in 
the  government  of  the  nations,  first  Satan  was  to  be  dispossessed,  and 
superstitions  received  by  a  long  tradition  and  prescription  of  time  were 
to  be  removed,  the  wolf  hunted  out.  Thus  the  power  great. 

But  this  is  past  and  gone.  There  is  a  wonderful  power  that  goes 
along  with  the  word. 

[1.]  A  power  to  humble  and  terrify  those  that  scoffed  at  the  miracles : 
Acts  ii.  37,  '  When  they  heard  this,  they  were  pricked  in  their  hearts, 
and  said  unto  Peter  and  to  the  rest  of  the  apostles,  Men  and  brethren, 
what  shall  we  do  ? '  The  word  can  do  that  which  a  miracle  cannot ; 
make  the  stoutest  hearts  relent  and  yield.  One  instance  more :  Acts 
xxiv.  25,  '  And  as  he  reasoned  of  righteousness,  temperance,  and  judg 
ment  to  come,  Felix  trembled/  Mark  the  disadvantage  ;  the  prisoner 
maketh  the  judge  tremble,  the  man  none  of  the  tenderest,  a  pagan, 
and  to  boot  an  obdurate  sinner  ;  but  Paul  by  his  power  caused  these. 
Terrors  of  conscience,  which  are  raised  by  the  word,  all  wicked  men 
feel  not,  but  soon  may ;  they  fear  them  that  feel  them  not :  John  iii. 
20,  '  For  every  one  that  doeth  evil  hateth  the  light,  neither  cometh  to 
the  light,  lest  his  deeds  should  be  reproved/  Conviction  in  one  of 
these  spiritual  agonies  exceeds  all  natural  passions ;  fears  of  the  wrath 
of  God  scorch  more,  and  breed  more  restlessness  and  disquietness  to 
the  soul,  their  thoughts  become  a  burden  to  them :  '  He  is  convinced 
of  all,  and  judged  of  all;  and  thus  are  the  secrets  of  his  heart  made 
manifest,  and  so  falling  down  on  his  face  he  will  worship  God,  and 
report  that  God  is  in  you  of  a  truth,'  1  Cor.  xiv.  24,  25.  His  sins 
revived,  the  poor  creature  lieth  grovelling. 


VER.  129.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  341 

[2.]  There  is  a  converting  and  transforming  power  in  the  word  of 
God :  Rom.  i.  16,  '  For  I  am  not  ashamed  of  the  gospel  of  Christ,  for 
it  is  the  power  of  God  unto  salvation  to  every  one  that  believeth  ; '  1 
Thes.  i.  9,  '  For  they  themselves  show  of  us  what  manner  of  entering 
in  we  had  unto  you,  and  how  ye  turned  to  God  from  idols,  to  serve 
the  living  and  true  God ; '  from  a  false  to  a  true,  a  bad  to  a  better. 
Men  brought  up  in  a  false  religion,  there  is  much  ado  to  take  them  off : 
'  Have  any  nations  changed  their  gods  ? '  Though  their  worship  be 
never  so  vain  and  foolish,  yet  this  power  the  word  hath,  even  over  those 
that  have  been  rooted  and  habituated  in  superstitious  customs.  The 
gods  they  had  prayed  to  in  their  adversities,  praised  in  their  prosperity, 
deprecated  their  anger  when  any  judgment  upon  them,  magnified  their 
goodness  when  any  good  received,  built  them  temples,  offered  them 
gifts  ;  must  they  break  those  images,  destroy  those  temples,  deny  those 
gods  ?  How  dear  idols  are,  Rachel's  stealing  away  her  father's  images 
clearly  showeth,  Gen.  xxxi.  34.  She  was  one  of  them  that  built  God's 
Israel,  yet  she  hath  a  hankering  after  her  father's  idols.  No  humours 
so  obstinate  and  stiff  as  those  that  are  found  in  religious  customs. 
They  accused  Stephen  for  changing  the  customs  Moses  delivered,  Acts 
vi.  14 ;  and  Paul,  that  he  taught  customs  which  were  not  lawful  for 
Romans  to  observe,  Acts  xvi.  21.  Certainly  it  is  a  very  hard  thing  to 
bring  men  out  of  an  old  religion  into  a  new  one.  Again,  the  convert 
ing  of  man  from  a  state  of  nature  to  a  state  of  grace,  so  that  they  are, 
as  it  were,  born  again :  James  i.  18, '  Of  his  own  will  begat  he  us,  with 
the  word  of  truth  ;  that  we  should  be  a  kind  of  first-fruits  of  his 
creation.'  It  is  a  hard  matter  to  change  natures,  to  turn  a  lion  into  a 
lamb :  Isa.  xi.  6,  '  The  wolf  also  shall  dwell  with  the  lamb,  and  the 
leopard  shall  lie  down  with  the  kid,  and  the  calf  and  the  young  lion 
and  the  fatling  together,  and  a  little  child  shall  lead  them.'  Yet  this 
will  the  gospel  do,  make  him  that  resembleth  the  devil  in  his  contempt 
of  God,  envy,  revenge,  to  be  like  Christ ;  I  say  the  gospel  doth  it :  2 
Cor.  iii.  18,  *  But  we  all  with  open  face  beholding,  as  in  a  glass,  the 
glory  of  the  Lord,  are  changed  into  the  same  image  from  glory  to  glory, 
even  as  by  the  Spirit  of  the  Lord.'  To  bring  us  to  love  what  we 
naturally  hate,  and  to  hate  what  we  naturally  love  ;  that  the  heart 
should  be  turned  from  all  creatures,  himself  and  all,  to  God  ;  that  they 
should  be  induced  to  turn  from  the  creature  to  God,  to  seek  out 
happiness  in  him  ;  from  self  to  Christ,  from  sin  to  holiness ;  that  God's 
desires  should  be  our  desires,  his  will  our  will,  his  delights  our  delights ; 
the  natural  heart  is  averse  from  this :  Rom.  viii.  7,  *  The  carnal  mind 
is  enmity  against  God,  for  it  is  not  subject  to  the  law  of  God,  neither 
indeed  can  be/  That  the  hearts,  spirits,  dispositions  of  men  should 
be  turned  upside  down :  1  Cor.  vi.  9-11,  'Be  not  deceived;  neither 
fornicators,  nor  idolaters,  nor  adulterers,  nor  effeminate,  nor  abusers  of 
themselves  with  mankind,  nor  thieves,  nor  covetous,  nor  drunkards, 
nor  revilers,  nor  extortioners  shall  inherit  the  kingdom  of  God.  And 
such  were  some  of  you  ;  but  ye  are  washed,  but  ye  are  sanctified,  but 
ye  are  justified  in  the  name  of  our  Lord  Jesus,  and  by  the  Spirit  of  our 
God;'  Isa.  Iv.  13,  'Instead  of  the  thorns  shall  come  up  the  fig-tree  ; 
and  instead  of  the  brier  shall  come  up  the  myrtle-tree.'  A  mighty 
change  wrought,  to  be  changed  not  only  in  their  lives,  but  natures. 


342  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXLII. 

[3.]  In  comforting  poor  distressed  souls.  Their  sore  runneth  upon 
them,  and  their  soul  refuseth  comfort,  when  they  have  all  things  in 
the  world ;  but  yet  as  there  are  no  sorrows  like  wounds  of  conscience 
for  degree,  so  no  comforts :  groans  unutterable,  so  joys  unutterable : 
nothing  left  that  will  comfort ;  it  is  as  the  whole  .of  their  joy.  The 
reviving  of  poor  wounded  spirits  is  one  of  the  greatest  wonders  in  the 
world.  Creatures  can  do  nothing,  reason  and  human  discourse  can  do 
nothing ;  it  proceedeth  from  the  apprehension  of  God's  wrath  provoked 
by  sin :  Job  xxxiii.  23-25,  '  If  there  be  an  interpreter,  one  among  a 
thousand,  to  show  unto  man  his  uprightness,  then  he  is  gracious  unto 
him,  and  saith,  Deliver  him  from  going  down  to  the  pit ;  I  have  found 
a  ransom :  his  flesh  shall  be  fresher  than  a  child's ;  he  shall  return  to 
the  days  of  his  youth.'  Nothing  but  the  covenant  of  his  peace  will 
still  such  a  soul ;  a  scripture  wound  will  only  be  cured  by  scripture 
plasters.  He  that  puts  the  soul  on  the  racks  of  conscience  can  only 
release  us:  'I  create  the  fruits  of  the  lips  to  be  peace;'  Jer.  vi.  16. 
'  Stand  ye  in  the  ways,  and  see,  and  ask  for  the  old  paths,  where  is 
the  good  way,  and  walk  therein,  and  ye  shall  find  rest  for  your  souls ;' 
Mat  xi.  28,  29,  '  Come  unto  me.  all  ye  that  labour  and  are  heavy 
laden,  and  I  will  give  you  rest.  Take  my  yoke  upon  you,  and  learn 
of  me ;  for  I  am  meek  and  lowly  in  heart,  and  ye  shall  find  rest  unto 
your  souls.' 

[4.]  The  confirming  and  strengthening  power  of  the  word,  that  we 
may  despise  the  world,  encounter  all  difficulties  and  discouragements, 
and  to  be  cheerful  as  the  martyrs  were  in  the  midst  of  flames,  all  the 
oppositions  of  Satan :  1  John  ii.  14,  '  I  have  written  unto  you  young 
men,  because  ye  are  strong,  and  the  word  of  God  abideth  in  you,  and 
ye  have  overcome  the  wicked  one ;'  Acts  xx.  32,  'And  now,  brethren, 
I  commend  you  to  God,  and  to  the  word  of  his  grace,  which  is  able  to 
build  you  up,  and  to  give  you  an  inheritance  among  them  that  are 
sanctified.'  In  the  word  of  his  grace  God  hath  assured  us  of  the  great 
privileges  of  Christianity,  support  and  defence  here,  and  glory  here 
after  ;  and  that  is  a  mighty  strengthening  to  the  soul,  and  maketh  a 
Christian  also  glorious  and  becoming  all  those  hopes  and  promises 
that  are  given  him. 


SEKMOJST  CXLII. 

Thy  testimonies  are  ivonderful  ;  therefore  doth  my  soul  keep 
.—VvR.  129. 


USE  1.  Keproof  to  several  sorts. 

1.  Of  those  proud  carnalists  that  scorn  the  simplicity  of  the  word. 
Many  wit  themselves  into  hell  by  lifting  up  the  pride  of  reason  against 
the  word  of  God;  think  all  respect  to  the  word  to  be  fond  credulity. 
To  them  the  gospel  seemeth  a  base  and  a  mean  doctrine,  whereas  it 
is  indeed  wonderful.  They  never  studied  it,  and  therefore  think 
nothing  but  plain  points  in  it,  have  no  spiritual  eyes,  and  are  looking 
on  what  is  uppermost.  There  is  nothing  vulgar.  The  angels  prize 


VER.  129.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  343 

what  they  contemn :  Eph.  iii.  10,  '  To  the  intent  that  now  unto  the 
principalities  and  powers  in  heavenly  places  might  be  known  by  the 
church  the  manifold  wisdom  of  GodV  They  despise  the  word,  as  if 
it  were  too  low  a  discipline  for  their  wit  and  parts,  scoff  at  that  as 
mean  which  a  gracious  heart  findeth  to  be  mystery ;  they  see  none  of 
this  sublimity  that  we  speak  of ;  this  pearl  of  price  seemeth  to  them 
but  as  a  common  stone.  This  is  pride  not  to  be  endured,  for  the  fool 
ishness  of  man  to  contemn  the  wisdom  of  God.  The  excellency  of 
scripture  can  never  be  sufficiently  understood  ;  they  never  pierced  the 
depths  of  scripture,  else  they  would  find  it  sublime  and  subtle  enough ; 
but  they  are  ignorant  of  what  they  seem  to  understand  so  well :  1  Cor. 
viii.  2,  '  If  any  man  think  that  he  knoweih  anything,  he  knoweth 
nothing  yet  as  he  ought  to  know.' 

2.  Others  that  give  up  themselves  to  the  itch  of  curiosity  must  have 
mysteries  made  more  mystical,  and  therefore  fly  from  the  letter  of  the 
scriptures  to  ungrounded  subtleties  and  spiritualities,  as  if  all  the 
written  word  were  an  allegory :  Kev.  ii.  24,  '  But  to  you  I  say,  and 
unto  the  rest  in  Thyatira,  as  many  as  have  not  this  doctrine,  and 
which  have  not  known  the  depths  of  Satan.'     Men  must  have  (3d0rj, 
but  {3d0r)  TOV  'Zarava,  are  loath  to  be  tethered,  and  tied  up  to  a  few 
common  truths.    The  bait  to  our  first  parents  was  the  fruit  of  the  tree, 
it  is  good  for  knowledge :  Gen.  iii.  5,  6,  '  God  doth  know  that  in  the 
day  ye  eat  thereof,  then  your  eyes  shall  be  opened,  and  ye  shall  be  as 
gods,  knowing  good  and  evil.     And  when  the  woman  saw  that  the 
tree  was  good  for  food,  and  that  it  was  pleasant  to  the  eyes,  and  a  tree 
to  be  desired  to  make  one  wise,  she  took  of  the  fruit  thereof  and  did 
eat.'     If  any  be  of  such  a  rigid  temper  and  constitution  as  not  to  be 
moved  with  the  pleasures  of  the  senses,  Satan  draweth  them  to  nice 
and  ungrounded  speculations  ;  they  would  be  wise  above  the  rate 
which  God  hath  allowed,  run  into  strange  and  uncouth  notions ;  and 
so  many,  otherwise  of  a  sober  life,  have  an  unsound  judgment. 

3.  Those  that  would  fathom  these  mysteries  by  the  line  and  plum 
met  of  their  own  reason,  believe  God's  word,  and  the  things  contained 
in  it,  no  further  than  they  can  see  natural  reason  for  it,  these  are  not 
disciples  of  the  doctrine  of  Christ,  but  judges,  and  set  a  prince  at  the 
subject's  bar  ;  the  scantling  of  their  own  private  senses  and  reason  is 
made  the  standard  for  the  highest  mysteries  to  be  measured  by.  .  They 
come  to  judge  the  word  rather  than  to  be  judged  by  it.    Mysteries  are 
to  be  admired,  not  curiously  searched  and  discussed  by  mere  human 
reason.    Every  light  must  keep  its  place  ;  sense,  reason,  faith,  light  of 
glory.    If  sense  be  made  the  judge  of  reason,  there  is  wrong  judgment. 
Some  things  we  apprehend  by  reason  that  cannot  be  known  by  sense, 
as  that  the  sun  is  bigger  than  the  earth.     So  faith  corrects  reason. 
Shall  we  doubt  of  that  to  be  true  which  droppeth  from  God's  own 
mouth,  because  it  exceedeth  our  own  understanding  ? 

4.  Those  that  prostitute  their  wonder  to  every  paltry,  carnal  vanity. 
Oh,  what  trifles  are  these  to  the  wonders  of  God's  law  1     If  we  see  a 
fair  building,  we  cry  out,  Oh  wonderful !  as  the  disciples :  Mark  xiii.  1, 
'Master,  see  what  manner  of  stones,  and  what  buildings  are  these.' 
Oh  !   there  are  God's  testimonies ;  a  more  noble  nature,  the  person  of 
Christ :  Col.  ii.  9,  '  In  him  dwelleth  all  the  fulness  of  the  Godhead 


844  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEE.  CXLII. 

bodily/  Oh,  wonderful !  at  an  heap  of  money :  what  are  these  to  the 
unsearchable  riches  of  grace  ?  Rare  plot !  /ueya  fiva-rrjpiov :  all  in  and 
about  Christ  is  rare  ;  his  name  is  Wonderful.  He  that  found  out  the 
causes  of  things  by  philosophy  could  say,  Nihil  admirari ;  but  he  that 
hath  the  most  knowledge  of  religion  as  to  divine  things  may  say, 
Omnia  admirari — the  transcendent  goodness  of  God  in  the  pardon  of 
sins,  riches  of  everlasting  glory,  purity  of  divine  commands ;  but  as 
to  the  world,  Nil  admirari.  You  know  better  things  in  God's  testi 
monies. 

5.  Those  that  find  more  favour  and  more  matter  to  wonder  at  in 
other  books,  in  Plato,  in  Aristotle,  or  heathen  writers,  they  have  a 
savour  there,  a  wonder  there  ;  but  are  not  affected  with  those  mysteries 
and  those  notions  which  are  in  the  gospel.      They  like  those  books 
where  they  find  flowers  of  rhetoric,  chemical,  experiments,  philosophi 
cal  notions,  maxims  of  policy,  but  they  slight  the  word. 

6.  Those  that  admire  more  what  man  puts  into  an  ordinance  than 
the  word  of  God.      The  further  off  anything  is  from  the  majesty  of 
the  scriptures,   the  more   it  taketh  with   unregenerate    men,   taken 
with  toys  and  baubles  of  delight  more  than  the  substantial  goodness 
of  Christianity.     We  are  apt  to  say  of  the  labour  of  man,  excellences 
of  man,  admirable !  but  we  little  regard  the  truths  of  God ;  as  in  a 
field  of  corn,  prize  the  poppies  and  well-coloured  weeds,  but  slight  and 
overlook  the  more  valuable  corn. 

Use  2.  Instruction.     To  instruct  us  how  to  entertain  the  word  of 
God.     We  never  entertain  it  rightly  till  we  entertain  it  with  wonder. 
Considerations. 

1.  We  have  not  a  true  sight  and  sense  of  the  word  if  we  admire  it 
not.     There  is  such  transcendent  love,  admirable  depths  of  wisdom, 
unsearchable  treasures  of  happiness,  raised  strains  of  purity,  a  har 
monious  coincidence  of  all  parts.      What  would  we  admire  but  that 
which  is  great  and  excellent  ?     Why  are  not  we  then  transported  and 
ravished  with  those  wonderful  felicities,  as  the  favour  of  and  fellow 
ship  with  God,  everlasting  enjoyment  ?     Nothing  is  of  such  weight 
and  importance  as  this  is ;  all  is  nothing  to  this :  Phil.  iii.  8,  '  Yea, 
doubtless,  and  I  count  all  things  but  loss  for  the  excellency  of  the 
knowledge  of  Christ  Jesus  my  Lord/     Would  we  admire  what  is  rare 
and  strange  ?     As  the  object  of  wonder  is  inauditum  et  insperatum,  ife 
could  not  enter  into  the  heart  of  man  to  conceive  what  God  hath  done 
for  us  in  Christ;  unheard  of,  unlocked  for :  2  Sam.  vii.  19,  'And  this 
was  yet  a  small  thing  in  thy  sight,  0  Lord  God ;    but  thou  hast 
spoken  also  of  thy  servant's  house  for  a  great  while  to  come ;  and  is 
this  the  manner  of  man,  0  Lord  God  ? '     If  we  wonder  at  what  is  wise 
and  deep,  the  terms  upon  which  salvation  is  dispensed  and  propa 
gated  are  with  excellent  wisdom  :  1  Cor.  ii.  2,  '  We  speak  the  wisdom 
of  God  in  a  mystery,  even  the  hidden  wisdom,  which  God  ordained 
before  the  world,  to  our  glory/      These  are  mysteries  that  lie  out  of 
the  road  of  vulgar  understandings. 

2.  Upon  every  new  looking,  it  argueth  some  distemper  unless  we 
wonder.     Either  carelesness  of  soul-necessities,  or  stupidness,  and  iu- 
attentiveness,  or  else  carnal  savour,  prevailing  too  much. 

3.  It  is  a  great  help  to  practice.     The  more  the  word  is  admired, 


VER.  129.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSA.LM  cxix.  345 

the  more  reverence  it  striketh  into  the  conscience ;  the  more  it  is 
submitted  unto,  the  more  should  we  frame  our  practice.  In  the  text, 
'  Therefore  doth  my  soul  keep  them.'  The  word  must  be  kept ;  not 
only  affected  with  it,  but  our  esteem  must  last,  and  we  must  ever  be 
tender  of  doin^  anything  contrary  to  it.  It  must  be  kept  by  the  soul ; 
there  is  the  directive  and  commanding  power ;  it  must  be  preserved 
or  kept  there,  not  confined  there.  If  not  kept  there,  it  will  not  be 
kept  elsewhere.  There  understanding  is  clear,  conscience  aweful,  heart 
ready.  Human  authority  reacheth  no  further  than  to  bind  men  to 
conform  to  order  in  the  course  of  their  practice  ;  but  divine  authority 
bringeth  under  the  heart  and  thoughts  to  the  obedience  of  Christ, 
2  Cor.  x.  5.  It  bindeth  the  conscience  to  approve  of  God's  commanded 
will,  to  choose  it  with  affection,  to  embrace  it  with  t?he  whole  man.  to 
follow  on  with  strength  and  constant  endeavours.  Therefore  wonder 
ful,  partly  because  a  renewed  esteem  is  the  beginning  of  a  pure  and 
entire  subjection  to  it.  Why  did  any  give  up  themselves  to  the  dis 
cipline  of  it  ?  Plato  and  Zeno's  doctrine  was  admired.  Sc  to  God  ; 
reverence  is  the  mother  of  obedience.  If  we  have  not  a  slight  esteem 
of  the  word,  we  shall  look  more  after  keeping  of  it.  And  partly  be 
cause  wonderfulness  of  promises  evidenceth  them  to  be  of  God ;  it  com- 
mendeth  itself  to  the  consciences  of  men. 
Means. 

1.  A  spiritual  gust  to  relish  knowledge  and  spiritual  things.     A 
brutish  soul  admires  the  sweetness  of  carnal  things  ;  the  sober  part  of 
the  world,  that  prize  intellectual  food,  the  perfections  of  the  mind,  they 
have  a  taste  and  relish  for  those  things  :  Ps.  cxix.  103,  '  How  sweet  is 
thy  word  to  my  taste  !    yea,  sweeter  than  honey  to  my  mouth/     A 
sensual  heart  is  not  affected  with  these  things. 

2.  A  diligent  search  :  Eph.  iii.  9,  '  And  to  make  all  men  see  what 
is  the  fellowship  of  the  mystery  which  from  the  beginning  of  the  world 
hath  been  hid  in  God.'     The  more  diligently  we  search  into  these 
things,  the  more  we  admire  them.      A  superficial  view  satisfieth  and 
contenteth  sooner  than  a  deep  search.     Herein  they  differ  from  other 
things,  for  the  more  they  are  searched  into,  the  less  they  are  admired ; 
imperfections  which  formerly  lay  hid  then  come  in  view. 

3.  A  thorough  insight  or  spiritual  illumination  :  Ps.  cxix.  18,  '  Open 
thou  mine  eyes,  that  I  may  behold  wondrous  things  out  of  thy  law  ; ' 
and  ver.  27,  '  Make  me  to  understand  the  way  of  thy  precepts  ;  so  shall 
I  talk  of  thy  wondrous  works.'     The  testimonies  of  God  have  more  in 
recess  than  in  open  view. 

4.  Experience ;  if  we  have  felt  the  wonderful  power,  majesty,  and 
authority  of  the  word  :  John  viii.  32,  '  Ye  shall  know  the  truth,  and 
the  truth  shall  make  you  free.'     Where  there  is  no  such  effect  they 
have  no  experience. 

5.  Show  forth  the  wonderfulness  of  God's  testimonies  by  the  raised- 
ness  of  your  conversations.      They  disparage  the  word  that  live  at  a 
mean  rate  :  2  Tim.  iii.  5,  '  Having  a  form  of  godliness,  but  denying  the 
power ;'  1  Peter  iv.  14,  '  If  ye  be  reproached  for  the  name  of  Christ, 
happy  are  ye  ;  for  the  Spirit  of  glory  and  of  God  resteth  upon  you :  on 
their  part  he  is  evil  spoken  of,  but  on  your  part  he  is  glorified.' 


346  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.   CXLIII. 


SERMON  CXLIII. 

The  entrance  of  thy  word  giveth  light  ;  it  giveth  understanding  to  the 
simple.—  VER.  130. 

IN  the  former  verse,  David  had  commended  the  word  from  the  wonder- 
fulness  and  mysteriousness  thereof;  here  from  its  clearness  and  per 
spicuity,  '  Thy  testimonies  are  wonderful ; '  yet  they  give  light,  '  The 
entrance  giveth  light  to  the  simple.'  The  one  property  doth  not  hin 
der  the  other,  upon  a  twofold  account : — 

1.  Because  the  truths  revealed  in  scripture  are  of  two  sorts  :  some 
are  plain  doctrines,  fit  for  the  entertainment  of  novices,  and  may  be 
called  the  porch  and  entrance  ;  others  are  deep  mysteries,  to  exercise 
the  wits  of  the  strongest.      In  the  waters  of  the  sanctuary  in  some 
places  the  elephant  may  swim,  in  others  the  lamb  may  wade.     The 
penmen  of  the  scripture  acknowledged  themselves  to  be  debtors  to  wise 
and  foolish,  learned  and  unlearned :  Rom.  i.  14,  '  I  am  debtor  both  to 
the  Greeks  and  to  the  barbarians,  both  to  the  wise  and  to  the  unwise.' 
And  accordingly  were  made  use  of  to  discover  truths  of  all  sorts.  There 
are  ^va-vo^rd  TLVCL,  not  all  things,  nor  the  most  material,  but  .some 
things  hard  to  be  understood,  2  Peter  iii.  16.     God  hath  expressed  his 
mind  in  some  points  so,  that  the  sharpest-sighted  will  not  at  first  glance 
easily  take  up  the  meaning  of  it.     Other  things  are  plain  and  easy  and 
obvious,  so  that  the  very  entrance  or  first  sight  of  them  giveth  under 
standing. 

2.  From  the  manner;   because   though  there  are  mysteries,  and 
things  naturally  unknown  to  us,  yet  they  are  not  obscurely  delivered, 
so  as  that  we  should  despair  to  understand  them ;  but  in  a  plain  and 
familiar  style,  depths  of  mystery  in  plainness  of  words.     Therefore  the 
simplest  who  desire  to  know  so  much  as  may  comfort  and  save  their 
souls,  ought  not  to  be  hindered  and  discouraged  in  the  study  of  the 
scriptures.     The  sum  is  :  some  things  are  open  and  clear,  other  things 
dark  and  mysterious ;  but  though  hard  to  be  understood,  yet  not  im 
possible  to  be  understood  ;  most  things  plain,  none  impossible:    '  The 
entrance  of  thy  word  giveth  light ;    it  giveth  understanding  to  the 
simple/     In  these  words — 

1.  What,  or  the  benefit  we  have  by  the  scriptures,  set  forth  by  two 
words,  the  one  metaphorical,  giveth  light ;  the  other  literal,  it  giveth 
understanding.     That  is  it  which  is  meant  by  light. 

2.  How  or  whence  we  have  this  light,  from  the  entrance  of  the  word. 

3.  To  whom,  to  the  simple. 

The  first  thing  is  explained  in  the  text ;  it  giveth  light,  that  is,  it 
giveth  understanding.  Two  questions  then  remain  by  way  of  ex 
plication  : — 

1.  What  is  meant  by  '  the  entrance  of  thy  word '  ?  Some  render 
it  ostium,  the  door,  as  Jerome  ;  the  Septuagint,  S/jXttcu?  ;  the  vulgar, 
the  declaration  ;  we,  the  entrance.  The  word  petack  signifieth  door, 
gate,  or  opening.  The  expression  giveth  us  occasion — 

[1.]  To.  distinguish  of  truth  in  scripture.  There  is  ostium  and 
penelrale,  the  porch  of  knowledge  and  the  secret  chambers  of  it.  The 


VER.  130.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  347 

porch  I  should  take  for  the  first  vital  essential  necessary  truths  that 
concern  faith  and  practice  :  those  are  obvious  to  every  one  that  looketh 
into  the  scriptures.  The  inner  chambers  are  those  more  abstruse 
points,  that  do  not  so  absolutely  concern  the- life  of  grace,  but  yet  con 
duce  ad  plenitudinem  scientice,  serve  for  the  increase  of  knowledge. 
Those  that  are  in  the  porch,  and  have  not  as  yet  pierced  into  the 
depths  of  scripture,  may  yet  have  so  much  light  as  to  direct  them  into 
solid  piety. 

[2.]  Every  door  hath  a  key  belonging  to  it,  so  hath  this  a  key  to 
open  it,  which  Christ  hath  in  his  keeping :  Eev.  iii.  7,  '  He  hath  the 
key  of  David,  which  openeth  and  no  man  shutteth ;  and  shutteth,  and 
no  man  openeth.'  The  officers  of  the  church  are  in  part  intrusted 
with  it  for  the  good  of  the  church.  Christ  saith,  Luke  xi.  52,  '  The 
lawyers  had  taken  away  the  key  of  knowledge,  and  entered  not  into  the 
kingdom  of  God  themselves,  and  them  that  were  entering  in  they 
hindered/  Such  unfaithful  ones  hath  every  age  almost  afforded ; 
that  shut  the  door  of  knowledge  against  the  people.  Papists,  that  lock 
up  the  scriptures  in  an  unknown  tongue,  are  grossly  guilty  of  it.  Others 
that  hinder  plain  and  powerful  preaching,  cannot  excuse  themselves 
from  being  accessory  to  this  guilt ;  yea,  those  that  obscure  the  plain 
word  of  Grod  by  philosophy,  traditions  of  men,  or  careless  handling : 
Tertullian  complained  long  a.go  of  those,  qui  Platonicum  et  Aristo- 
telicum  Christianismum  procudunt  Christianis. 

[3.]  By  this  door  opened  there  is  entrance,  and  so  cometh  in  our 
word.  This  entrance  may  be  understood  actively  or  passively  ;  when 
the  word  entereth  into  us,  or  we  enter  into  it. 

(1.)  Actively,  when  the  word  entereth  upon  a  man's  heart,  and 
maketh  a  sanctified  impression  there  ;  as  the  expression  is,  Prov.  ii. 
10,  '  When  wisdom  entereth  into  thy  heart,  and  knowledge  is  pleasant 
to  thy  soul/  This  entrance  of  the  word  bringeth  light  with  it.  The 
first  creature  God  made  was  light,  so  in  the  new  creature  ;  therefore 
it  concerns  us  to  know  what  manner  of  entrance  the  word  had  upon 
us :  1  Thes.  i.  9,  '  For  they  themselves  know  of  us  what  manner  of 
entering  in  we  had  unto  you,  and  how  ye  turned  to  God  from  idols,  to 
serve  the  living  and  true  God. 

(2.)  Passively,  when  men  do  first  enter  upon  the  study  of  the  word. 
It  may  be  read  '  the  entrance  into  thy  word,'  as  well  as  *  of  thy  word/ 
When  once  acquainted  with  it,  and  the  first  rudiments  of  knowledge, 
we  should  soon  discern  the  Lord's  mind  in  the  necessary  truths  that 
concern  faith  and  practice. 

2.  The  other  question  is,  what  is  meant  by  the  simple  ?  The  word 
is  sometimes  used  in  a  good  sense,  sometimes  in  a  bad. 

[1.]  In  a  good  sense.  (1.)  For  the  sincere  and  plain-hearted  : 
Ps.  cxvi.  6,  '  The  Lord  preserveth  the  simple  :  I  was  brought  low,  and 
he  helped  me  ; '  2  Cor.  i.  12,  '  For  our  rejoicing  is  this,  the  testimony 
of  our  conscience,  that  in  simplicity  and  godly  sincerity,  not  with 
fleshly  wisdom,  but  by  the  grace  of  God,  we  had  our  conversation  in 
the  world,  and  more  abundantly  to  you-wards/  (2.)  For  those  that 
do  not  oppose  the  presumption  of  carnal  wisdom  to  the  pure  light  of 
the  word :  so  we  must  be  all  simple,  or  fools,  that  we  may  be  wise : 
1  Cor.  iii.  18,  '  If  any  man  among  you  seemeth  to  be  wise  in  this 


248  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEE.  CXLIII. 

world,  let  him  become  a  fool,  that  he  may  be  wise ; '  that  is,  in 
simplicity  of  heart  submitting  to  God's  conduct,  and  believing  what 
he  hath  revealed  The  Septuagint  in  the  text,  (fxori^ei,  K.CLI  a-vveri^L 
VTJTTIOVS,  it  enlighteneth  and  giveth  understanding  to  the  babes  ;  and 
so  they  often  translate  this  word,  babes  or  little  ones :  thence  Christ's 
saying,  Mat.  xi.  25,  *  I  thank  thee,  0  Father,  Lord  of  heaven  and 
earth,  because  thou  hast  hid  these  things  from  the  wise  and  prudent, 
and  hast  revealed  them  unto  babes/  Not  to  worldly  wise,  but  babes 
in  comparison ;  not  to  conceitedly  wise,  but  those  that  are  sensible  of 
their  own  ignorance. 

[2.]  In  a  bad  sense,  for  the  ignorant.  (1.)  In  the  general,  every 
man  is  naturally  dull  and  ignorant  in  divine  things:  Job  xi.  12, 
'Vain  man  would  be  wise,  though  man  be  born  like  a  wild  ass's 
colt ;'  for  grossness  as  well  as  untamedness.  So  every  man  is  simple. 
(2.)  Those  that  are  naturally  weak  of  understanding,  or  of  mean 
capacity:  Prov.  i.  4,  '  To  give  subtlety  to  the  simple,  to  the  young 
man  knowledge  and  discretion ; '  Prov.  viii.  5,  *  0  ye  simple,  under 
stand  wisdom,  and  ye  fools,  be  ye  of  an  understanding  heart/  In  all 
these  senses  may  the  text  be  made  good.  I  take  the  last  chiefly 
intended. 

Observations. 

1.  Observe  somewhat  from  that  word  '  the  entrance/ 

Doct.  1.  That  in  getting  knowledge  there  is  a  porch  and  entrance 
that  we  must  pass  through  before  we  can  attain  to  deeper  matters. 

As  in  practice  there  is  a  gate  and  a  way :  Mat.  vii.  14,  '  Because 
strait  is  the  gate  and  narrow  is  the  way  that  leadeth  to  life/     An 
entrance  and  a  progress.     An  entrance  by  conversion  to  God,  and  a 
progress  in  a  course  of  holy  walking.     So  in  knowledge  there  ai 
ffTo^ela  Tip  upxfjs  T&V  \oyia>v  rov  &eov,  'the  first  principles  of  tho 
oracles  of  God  ; '  or  some  elements  and  afterwards  deeper  i 
milk  for  babes  as  well  as  meat  for  stronger  men  :  11  eh.  v/ 12-14, 
'For  when  for  the  time  ye  ought  to  be  teachers,  ye  have  need  thai 
one  teach  you  again  which  be  the  first  principles  of  the  omelet  of  (jod, 
and  are  become  such  as  have  need  of  milk,  arid  riot  of  strong  meal. 
For  every  one  that  useth  milk  is  unskilful  in  the  word  of  righ'- 
ness;  for  he  is  a  babe:  but  strong  meat  bclongeth  to  them  thai 
full  age,  even  those  who  by  reason  of  use  have  ti 
to  discern  both  good  and  evil/     There  is  an  order  in  bringing  men  to 
knowledge, 

[1/j  There  is  something  obvious  and   li'.s  uppermost,  in  all  ti 
that  is  »<xm  understood,  and  thi-  ire  put  info  catechi  inf.     We  mu:.i 
teaeh  a.H   able  to  bear;    Mark  iv.  .'i.'J,  'And  with   many  sueh   parables 

spake  he  the  word  unto  th<  4«  to  hear  it/     Indeed, 

afterwards  we  come  to  die  into  the  minef  of  knowledge,  and  to  dive 

but  in  th< 
noiiM   not  eonten!  ,   with   a,  :  up'-t  lie'i;il    :<:;treh, 

but  dig  aa  for  tre'i;  tniof     Pro?  ii.  /1,  'If  thou  <  or  her 

ill.  1,  2,  'Arid   I.  L  COUld  not  j-.pea.k  unto  you  11:1  unto  :.piri!.ual, 

UntO  babe;;  jr,  (,'|,ii:,t.  ;    J  h;ive  fed 

QOt  able  tO 


w*  btgi.  witfc  U*  <»^  Wl  W  •*  g»  «»  to  tte 


— •-;  >i-...  -:-.  ;..v:-^  :.:.. 


"K^-J-l    ^^ 

":"  :     -:     : •;--: 


..   •.-•. 


«rLHd.*    AMOi 


m  A  v^*m  *^n  f^ssf  ^^r     T  -^¥~  ^^M*  tltmva  ^n» 

.^       :  :   -    ..."-•    . ."  :    .   .  ,vi,     ,  --.  -          .-;...- 


^  .  : 
:-._,..-_     ^^^^^»       f^  ^.»-- 

.  -  ----  -  -  -  -        - 


-.:       ;   -.          -.    ,  :-        .     . 


,    :>: 


350  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXLIII. 

a  saviour,  for  to  give  repentance  to  Israel,  and  remission  of  sins.' 
Doctrine  of  baptism  is  the  initiating  ordinance,  what  it  signifieth, 
to  what  it  obligeth.  Laying  on  of  hands,  the  way  of  Christ's  officers 
entering  the  church.  Resurrection  and  last  judgment  bindeth  all. 
Again,  because  the  prime  truths  are  few  and  clear,  ignorant  and  un 
learned  people  may  know  them  ;  they  are  milk,  babes  and  ignorants 
may  swallow  them,  as  most  easy  of  digestion,  God's  end  in  the 
scripture  being  to  guide  his  people  to  true  happiness.  Those  truths 
that  are  necessary  to  this  end  are  few  and  clear,  and  plainly  set  down, 
that  he  that  runneth  may  read  them.  Though  we  reach  not  other 
points,  yet  if  we  get  but  to  this  door,  there  is  a  great  deal  of  profit. 

[3.]  They  which  do  not  first  learn  these,  cannot  profit  much.  Some 
confused  knowledge  they  may  acquire,  but  distinct,  clear,  and  orderly 
understanding  they  never  grow  unto.  When  men  run  before  they  can 
go,  they  often  get  a  knock.  They  that  were  never  well  grounded  are 
always  mutable ;  therefore  before  We  are  brought  into  the  chambers  of 
knowledge,  we  must  stay  in  the  porch,  begin  with  most  necessary  things, 
which  are  most  clear  and  plain,  and  thereby  we  are  made  capable  of 
higher  mysteries. 

2.  Though  all  Christians  must  come  to  this  pitch,  to  know  what  is 
necessary  to  salvation,  yet  we  must  not  stay  here,  nor  always  stay  in 
the  porch,  nor  always  keep  to  our  milk,  nor  be  always  infants  in 
understanding :  1  Cor.  xiv.  20,  '  Brethren,  be  not  children  in  under 
standing.'  Other  things  must  be  regarded,  or  why  hath  God  revealed 
them  ?  No  part  of  scripture  is  expressed  in  vain,  or  at  random,  but 
all  by  divine  direction ;  though  the  first  points  are  most  necessary,  yet 
the  rest  are  not  superfluous,  but  have  their  use :  2  Tim.  iii.  16,  '  All 
scripture  is  given  by  inspiration,  and  is  profitable  for  doctrine,  for  re 
proof,  for  correction,  for  instruction  in  righteousness ; '  one  part  of 
scripture  as  well  as  the  other,  and  maketh  much  for  the  increase  of 
spiritual  knowledge,  comfort,  and  godliness.  One  part  is  milk,  another 
stronger  meat ;  but  all  is  food  for  the  soul.  The  grown  are  more  ready 
to  every  good  work,  more  strong  in  the  resistance  of  sin,  more  stead 
fast  in  the  truth ;  therefore  we  should  improve  our  knowledge.  If  a 
man  layeth  the  foundation,  and  doth  not  carry  on  the  building,  he 
loseth  his  cost ;  therefore  let  us  go  on  to  perfection. 

Use  1.  Let  us  bless  God  for  this  door  and  porch,  that  the  scriptures 
are  so  plain  and  clear  in  all  things  necessary  to  salvation.  Many  com 
plain  of  the  difficulty  and  obscurity  of  religion,  and  the  many  contro 
versies  that  are  about  it,  and  they  know  not  what  to  choose,  nor  where 
to  find  the  truth,  till  the  world  be  more  of  a  mind.  It  is  true,  in  some 
things  there  is  difficulty,  but  not  in  the  most  necessary  things.  Pasci- 
mur  apertis,  exercemur  obscuris ;  ilri  fames  pellitur,  hie  fastidium. 
God  has  made  his  people's  way  clear  and  sure  in  necessaries,  for  which 
we  have  cause  to  bless  his  name,  for  exercising  our  diligence  and  de 
pendence.  Something  is  difficult :  if  those  that  complain  of  this  diffi 
culty  would  enter  into  the  porch  that  standeth  open,  other  things 
would  soon  be  understood.  Whatever  differences  there  are  in  Chris 
tendom,  all  agree  that  there  is  one  God,  Jesus  Christ  his  only  Son, 
who  died  for  the  world,  and  accordingly  must  be  owned  by  his  people  ; 
that  a  man  must  be  converted  to  God,  and  become  a  new  creature,  and 


VER.  130.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  351 

walk  holily,  or  else  shall  never  see  God  ;  all  are  agreed  in  this.  Pre 
pare  thy  heart  for  entertaining  the  light  and  power  of  these  truths, 
and  in  due  time  God  will  show  thee  other  things.  In  the  meantime 
bless  God  that  whatever  is  necessary  is  plain  to  them  that  are  docile 
and  heedful,  and  willing  to  do  the  will  of  God.  As  in  the  world,  the 
most  necessary  things  are  at  hand,  the  less  necessary  are  hidden  in  the 
bowels  of  the  earth  ;  so  in  scripture,  necessaries  are  facile  and  easy. 

Use  2.  Let  us  use  this  method  in  learning,  and  teaching  of  others. 
In  learning  ourselves,  first,  be  sure  to  get  a  clear  understanding  of, 
and  firm  assent  unto,  the  main  plain  truths  of  scripture ;  that  there  is 
one  God :  Heb.  xi.  6,  '  He  that  cometh  to  God  must  believe  that  he 
is  ; '  that  Jesus  Christ  is  the  Son  of  God :  John  xvii.  3,  '  This  is  life 
eternal,  that  they  might  know  thee  the  only  true  God,  and  Jesus 
Christ  whom  thou  hast  sent.'  It  is  a  corner  truth,  that  enliveneth  all 
religion  :  Mat.  xvi.  16,  'Thou  art  Christ,  the  Son  of  the  living  God;7 
then,  '  Upon  this  rock  will  I  build  my  church ; '  John  vi.  69,  '  We 
believe  and  are  sure  that  thou  art  Christ,  the  Son  of  the  living  God.' 
This  is  the  great  enlivening  truth,  that  hath  influence  both  on  faith 
and  obedience.  We  must  believe  that  he  is  able  to  bring  us  to  God, 
John  xiv.  6,  Heb.  vii.  25,  and  must  be  obeyed,  Heb.  v.  9  ;  that  every 
man  needeth  this  Christ  to  bring  him  to  God,  Acts  iv.  12.  There  is 
a  necessity  of  his  merit,  that  God  may  be  propitious ;  of  his  Spirit,  as 
the  foundation  of  a  new  life,  that  we  may  be  reconciled  to  God ;  that 
we  should  live  holily,  because  there  is  a  day  of  account  when  every  one 
shall  receive  according  to  his  works.  We  should  bestow  more  cost 
upon  the  main  truths,  to  get  a  clear  distinct  knowledge  of  them ; 
there  must  be  a  removing  of  rubbish,  and  digging,  to  lay  the  founda 
tion  of  the  knowledge  of  the  principles  of  the  doctrine  of  Christ,  before 
there  can  be  any  safe  building  or  going  on  unto  perfection,  Heb.  vi., 
and  firm  assent  to  them  ;  for  he  is  the  best  Christian  that  doth  most 
clearly  understand  and  firmly  believe  these  things,  not  the  opinionist, 
the  disputer,  he  that  best  promotes  the  interest  of  his  party  or  side, 
which  are  the  distempers  now  afoot  in  Christendom.  Those  truths 
well  accepted  would  so  purify  the  heart  as  we  should  sooner  discern 
God's  interest  in  other  things,  and  be  able  to  find  out  that.  So  for 
teaching  our  children,  God  reckons  on  it  from  his  people :  Gen.  xviii. 
19,  '  For  I  know  Abraham,  that  he  will  command  his  children  and 
his  household  after  him,  and  they  shall  keep  the  way  of  the  Lord,  to 
do  justice  and  judgment;'  Deut.  vi.  6,  7,  'And  these  words  that  I 
command  thee 'this  day  shall  be  in  thy  heart,  and  thou  shalt  teach 
them  diligently  unto  thy  children,  and  shalt  talk  of  them  when  thou 
sittest  in  thy  house,  and  when  thou  walkest  by  the  way,  when  thou 
liest  down,  and  when  thou  risest  up.'  Train  them  up  in  wholesome 
truths,  in  the  nurture  and  admonition  of  the  Lord,  Eph.  vi.  4 ;  how  to 
carry  themselves  towards  God  in  matters  of  religion ;  how  towards 
men,  in  righteousness,  civility,  and  good  manners;  chiefly  that  _they 
may  be  instructed  in  the  knowledge  of  Christ,  and  salvation  by  him. 

Use  3.  Let  the  entertainment  we  have  upon  our  first  entrance  into 
the  study  of  religion  encourage  us  to  follow  on  to  know  the  Lord,  that 
we  may  see  more  into  his  mind  and  counsel  concerning  us.  When  we 
are  first  serious,  we  have  notable  experience  of  light  and  comfort  and 


352  'SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SlCR.  CXLIII. 

power  ;  this  is  a  bribe  to  draw  us  on  farther ;  more  light,  for  it  is  a 
growing  thing :  Prov.  iv.  18,  '  The  path  of  the  just  is  as  the  shining 
light,  that  shineth  more  and  more  to  the  perfect  day ; '  more  taste,  1 
Peter  ii.  3,  4,  '  If  so  be  that  ye  have  tasted  that  the  Lord  is  gracious, 
to  whom  coming  as  to  a  living  stone,'  &c.  It  should  sharpen  and  put 
.an  edge  upon  our  desires;  more  power:  James  i.  18,  19,  'Of  his  own 
will  begat  he  us  with  the  word  of  truth,  that  we  should  be  a  kind  of 
first-fruits  of  his  creation  ;  wherefore,  my  beloved  brethren,  let  every 
man  be  swift  to  hear,  slow  to  speak,  slow  to  wrath/  You  saw  the  en 
trance,  and  your  first  acquaintance  with  the  word  succeeded  well. 

Doct.  2.  By  the  word  of  God  we  get  light,  or  our  understandings 
m-e  enlightened  :  Prov.  vi.  23,  '  For  the  commandment  is  a  lamp, 
and  the  law  is  light,  and  reproofs  of  instruction  are  the  way  of 
life/ 

1.  Light  is  a  great  benefit.     This  is  the  perfection  of  the  rational 
nature,  the  benefit  that  we  have  above  the  beasts :  '  He  teacheth  us 
more  than  the  beasts  of  the  field/     They  are  guided  by  instinct,  ruled 
by  a  rod  of  iron ;  we  have  reason,  and  in  it  more  resemble  God,  who 
is  light,  and  in  him  is  no  darkness  at  all,  1  John  i.  5  ;  we  come  nearest 
to  our  happiness  in  heaven ;  it  is  called  '  The  inheritance  of  the  saints 
in  light/  Col.  i.  12.     Our  knowledge  is  perfected,  and  the  vision  of 
God  is  our  happiness  :  1  Cor.  xiii.  12,  '  For  now  we  see  through  a 
glass  darkly,  then  face  to  face ;  now  I  know  in  part,  then  I  shall 
know  even  as  also  I  am  known/ 

2.  This  light  hath  excellent  properties. 

[1.]  It  is  lux  manifestans ;  it  manifesteth  itself  and  all  things  else. 
How  do  I  see  the  sun  but  by  the  sun,  by  its  own  light  ?  How  do  I 
know  the  scripture  to  be  the  word  of  God,  but  by  the  light  that  shineth 
in  it,  commending  itself  to  my  conscienqe  ?  So  it  manifests  all  things 
<ilse.  By  this  light  a  man  may  see  everything  in  its  own  colours  ;  it 
layeth  open  all  the  frauds  and  impostures  of  Satan,  the  vanity  of 
worldly  things,  the  deceits  of  the  heart,  the  odiousness  of  sin  :  Eph. 
v.  13,  '  All  things  that  be  reproved  are  made  manifest  by  light,  for 
whatsoever  doth  make  manifest  is  light/  It  sets  out  the  odiousness  of 
sin  as  a  breach  of  God's  most  holy  law,  enmity  against  the  great  God, 
the  procurer  of  his  eternal  wrath.  Nothing  manifests  things  as  this 
light  doth. 

[2.]  It  is  lux  dirigens,  a  directing  light,  that  we  may  see  our  way 
and  work.  As  the  sun  lighteth  man  to  his  labour,  so  doth  this  direct 
us  in  all  conditions  :  Ps.  cxix.  105,  '  Thy  word  is  a  lamp  unto  my  feet, 
and  a  light  unto  my  path/  It  directs  us  how  to  manage  ourselves  in 
all  conditions,  in  prosperity,  adversity  ;  in  all  affairs,  paths,  steps  ;  in 
all  the  particular  actions  of  our  life ;  it  filleth  us  with  spiritual  pru 
dence  ;  the  wayfaring,  the  fool,  the  man  of  parts  that  is  a  stranger,  the 
man  of  mean  parts,  all  may  meet  with  plain  and  clear  directions  hence 
to  guide  them  in  the  way  to  heaven. 

[3.]  It  is  lux  vivificans,  a  quickening  light,  lux  est  veliiculum  influ- 
entiarum :  John  viii.  12,  '  I  am  the  light  of  the  world :  he  that  fol- 
loweth  me  shall  not  walk  in  darkness,  but  shall  have  the  light  of  life ;' 
Eph.  v.  14,  '  Awake  thou  that  sleepest,  and  arise  from  the  dead,  and 
Christ  shall  give  thee  light/  That  light  was  the  life  of  men,  so  is  this 


VER.  130.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  353 

spiritual  life ;  it  not  only  disco vereth  the  object,  but  helpeth  the  faculty, 
filleth  the  soul  with  life  and  strength. 

[4.]  It  is  lux  exhilarans,  a  comforting,  refreshing,  cheering  light : 
Eccles.  xi.  7,  '  Light  is  sweet,  and  it  is  a  comfortable  thing  to  behold 
the  sun.'  It  is  so  in  two  respects  : — 

(1.)  It  presents  us  with  excellent  grounds  of  comfort,  not  only 
against  afflictions,  but  against  distress  of  conscience,  which  is  the 
greatest  trouble  that  can  befall  the  creature,  such  as  the  sense  of  God's 
love  in  Christ ;  so  it  rejoiceth  the  soul :  Ps.  xix.  8,  *  The  statutes  of 
the  Lord  are  right,  rejoicing  the  heart ;  the  commandments  of  the 
Lord  are  pure,  enlightening  the  eyes/  It  doth  good  to  the  heart. 
Others  tickle  the  senses,  but  are  not  affliction-proof,  stead  us  not  when 
God  rebuketh  us  for  sin.  The  light  of  God's  countenance  is  displayed 
in  the  word :  Ps.  iv.  6,  7,  '  There  be  many  that  say,  Who  will  show  us 
any  good  ?  Lord,  lift  thou  up  the  light  of  thy  countenance  upon  us. 
Thou  hast  put  gladness  in  my  heart,  more  than  in  the  time  that  their 
corn  and  wine  increased.' 

(2.)  Because  it  is  a  soul-satisfying  light,  as  light  easeth  of  trouble 
and  restlessness  of  mind,  which  we  always  lie  under  till  we  find  a  safe 
way  of  salvation,  which  we  never  do  till  we  give  up  ourselves  to  the 
conduct  of  the  word  :  Jer.  vi.  16,  '  Stand  ye  in  the  ways,  and  see,  and 
ask  for  the  old  paths,  where  is  the  good  way,  and  walk  therein,  and  ye 
shall  find  rest  to  your  souls.'  There  we  find  enough  to  satisfy  con 
science,  though,  it  may  be,  not  to  satisfy  curiosity,  which  is  libido  intel- 
lectus — thirst  of  a  sober  man  and  thirst  of  a  drunkard,  the  one  satisfied, 
the  other  mortified. 

Use  1.  Information. 

1.  That  without  the  word  men  lie  in  darkness,  whatever  learning 
they  have,  if  they  want  the  gospel.     As  the  Ephesians,  before  it  came 
to  them,  though  given  to  curious  arts,  the  apostle  telleth  them  they 
'  were  sometimes  in  darkness,'  Eph.  v.  8.     The  wisest  heathens  could 
only  grope  and  feel  about  for  happiness.     If  they  neglect  the  light, 
though  it  be  among  them,  it  is  not  excusable:  John  i.  5,  'And  the 
light  shineth  in  darkness,  but  the  darkness  comprehendeth  it  not/ 
But  if  they  refuse  the  light,  and  this  carelessness  groweth  obstinate, 
their  condition  is  the  worse  :  John  iii.  19,  '  This  is  the  condemnation, 
that  light  is  come,  and  men  love  darkness  rather  than  light,  because 
their  deeds  are  evil/ 

2.  If  we  get  not  understanding  of  the  mysteries  of  salvation,  we  may 
blame  ourselves :  2  Cor.  iv.  3,  4,  '  But  if  our  gospel  be  hid,  it  is  hid  to 
them  that  are  lost :  in  whom  the  god  of  this  world  hath  blinded  the 
minds  of  them  which  believe  not,  lest  the  light  of  the  glorious  gospel 
of  Christ,  who  is  the  image  of  God,  should  shine  unto  them/     If  thou 
miss  the  way  to  heaven,  accuse  thine  own  blindness ;  thou  canst  not 
accuse  the  gospel,  plead  its  darkness.     The  true  cause  of  their  non- 
proficiency  is  unbelief,  they  believe  not ;  the  superadded  cause  is  spi 
ritual  blindness. 

Use  2.  Exhortation  to  look  after  this  light,  without  which  we  shall 
be  in  the  dark  as  to  comfort :  Isa.  1.  10,  '  Who  is  among  you  that 
feareth  the  Lord,  that  obeyeth  the  voice  of  his  servant,  that  walketh 
in  darkness,  and  seeth  no  light?'  Either  under  actual  horrors  or 

VOL.  viii.  z 


354  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEB.  CXLIII. 

doubtfulness  and  uncertainty.  Every  wicked  man  is  troubled,  as  the 
leaves  of  the  trees  of  the  wood  are  shaken  with  the  wind.  Now  who 
would  live  in  such  a  condition,  to  be  at  the  mercy  of  the  tempter  ? 
You  are  in  the  dark  as  to  duty ;  our  own  reason,  the  counsels  and 
examples  of  others,  will  mislead  us  ;  and  we  shall  be  unsteady,  carried 
away  with  every  deceit  of  sin,  at  least  unsatisfied  whether  in  God's 
way  or  not :  1  John  ii.  11,  'He  that  hateth  his  brother  is  in  darkness, 
and  walketh  in  darkness,  and  knoweth  not  whither  he  goeth,  because 
that  darkness  hath  blinded  his  eyes.'  Oh  !  study  the  word. 

But  who  have  this  light  ?  He  that  heartily  desireth  knowledge  : 
Prov.  ii.  3,  '  If  thou  criest  after  wisdom,  and  liftest  up  thy  voice  for 
understanding ;'  he  that  diligently  labours  for  it :  Ps.  i.  2,  '  His  delight 
is  in  the  law  of  the  Lord,  and  in  his  law  doth  he  meditate  day  and 
night.'  That  propoundeth  a  right  end,  to  be  Christ's  disciple,  to  do 
God's  will :  John  vii.  17,  'If  any  man  will  do  his  will,  he  shall  know 
of  the  doctrine  whether  it  be  of  God,  or  whether  I  speak  of  myself.' 
That  humbleth  himself  for  his  ignorance.  John  got  open  the  book 
with  weeping :  Rev.  v«  5.  '  And  one  of  the  elders  said  unto  me,  Weep 
not ;  behold,  the  lion  of  the  tribe  of  Judah,  the  root  of  David,  hath 
prevailed  to  open  the  book.'  Those  Bereans  were  irpoOv/jLoi, :  Acts 
xvii.  11,  '  They  received  the  word  with  all  readiness  of  mind/  evTreidrjs ; 
James  iii.  17,  '  Easy  to  be  entreated.'  The  opposite  on  the  one  side 
is  slowness  of  heart :  Luke  xxiv.  25,  '  0  fools,  and  slow  of  heart  to 
believe  all  that  the  prophets  have  spoken  ! '  Or  obstinacy  on  the  other, 
a  sluggish  easiness,  when  light  of  belief,  to  believe  anything  without 
searching  into  the  reason  of  it,  or  given  up  to  a  foolish  credulity :  Eph. 
iv.  14,  '  That  ye  be  not  as  children,  tossed  to  and  fro.  and  carried  about 
with  every  wind  of  doctrine  and  cunning  craftiness,  whereby  they  lie 
in  wait  to  deceive  ;'  like  a  reed  shaken  with  every  wind.  But  he  that 
is  endued  with  this  light  is  one  that  doth  not  depend  on  his  own  wit, 
but  submits  his  reason  to  God :  Prov.  iii.  5,  6,  '  Trust  in  the  Lord 
with  all  thine  heart ;  and  lean  not  to  thine  own  understanding.  In 
all  thy  ways  acknowledge  him,  and  he  shall  direct  thy  paths/  Well, 
then,  this  earnest  desire  in  the  next  verse,  '  I  opened  my  mouth  and 
panted :  I  longed  for  thy  commandments/  This  painful  seeker  will 
find  out  this  treasure  ;  this  humble  trusting  soul  will  have  it. 

Doct.  3.  That  the  scriptures  are  written  so  that  plain  and  private 
men  may  get  this  light  and  spiritual  understanding  by  them  :  Ps.  xix. 
7,  '  The  law  of  the  Lord  is  perfect,  converting  the  soul :  the  testimony 
of  the  Lord  is  sure,  making  wise  the  simple/ 

1.  From  the  author,  God,  who  is  the  fountain  of  light ;  and  surely 
he  was  able  and  willing  conveniently  to  express  his  mind  to  his  crea 
tures.     Cannot  God  speak  plainly?     Deus  et  mentis,   et  linyuce,  et 
vocis  artifex,  as  Lactantius  calleth  him.     He  that  is  so  wise,  so  loving 
of  mankind,  our  supreme  judge  and  king,  would  he  hide  this  light 
under  a  bushel  ?     Would  he  conceal  his  mind,  and  leave  thee  in  the 
dark  ?     Micah  vi.  8,  '  He  hath  showed  thee,  0  man,  what  is  good  ; 
and  what  doth  the  Lord  thy  God  require  of  thee,  but  to  do  justice,  to 
love  mercy,  and  to  walk  humbly  with  thy  God  ? ' 

2.  For  whom  the  scriptures  were  written  ;  not  for  ministers  or  pro 
fessed  students.     God  speaketh  to  all  sorts  of  men  in  the  scripture,  and 


VER.  130.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix. 

therefore  would  have  all  understand  them.  He  wrote  the  scripture 
that  it  might  be  read  of  all,  young  and  old  :  Deut.  xxx.  11,  12, 
'  This  commandment  which  I  command  thee  this  day,  is  not  hidden 
from  thee,  neither  is  it  far  off :  it  is  not  in  heaven,  that  thou  shouldest 
say,  Who  shall  go  up  for  us  to  heaven,  and  bring  it  to  us,  that  we  may 
hear  it  and  do  it,'  &c.  Rich  and  poor  ;  the  king  was  to  read  in  it  all 
the  days  of  his  life :  Deut.  xvii.  18,  19,  'It  shall  be  that  when  he 
sitteth  upon  the  throne  of  his  kingdom,  he  shall  write  him  a  copy  in  a 
book  out  of  that  which  is  before  the  priests  the  Levites  :  and  it  shall 
be  with  him,  and  he  shall  read  therein  all  the  days  of  his  life.'  Every 
good  man  is  to  meditate  in  it :  Ps.  i.  2,  '  His  delight  is  in  the  law  of 
the  Lord,  and  in  his  law  doth  he  meditate  day  and  night ;'  Deut.  vi. 
6,  7,  '  These  words,  which  I  command  thee  this  day,  shall  be  in  thy 
heart :  and  thou  shalt  teach  them  diligently  unto  thy  children,  and 
shalt  talk  of  them  when  thou  sittest  in  thy  house,  and  when  thou 
walkest  by  the  way,  and  when  thou  liest  down,  and  when  thou  risest 
up.'  The  apostles  wrote  epistles  to  the  whole  church,  spake  to  old 
men,  youth,  little  children  :  1  John  ii.  13,  *  I  write  unto  you,  fathers, 
because  ye  have  known  him  that  is  from  the  beginning.  I  write  unto 
you,  young  men,  because  ye  have  overcome  the  wicked  one.  I  write 
unto  you,  little  children,  because  ye  have  known  the  Father/  To 
kings,  judges,  men,  women,  husbands,  wives,  fathers,  children,  mas 
ters,  servants,  was  it  written  for  their  use  ;  nor  must  it  be  taken  out 
of  their  hands,  nor  is  it  above  their  reach. 

3.  The  end  why  it  was  written,  to  be  a  sure  and  infallible  direction 
to  guide  us  to  eternal  life,  and  make  us  wise  unto  salvation :  2  Tim. 
iii.  15,  '  And  that  from  a  child  thou  hast  known  the  holy  scriptures, 
which  are  able  to  make  thee  wise  unto  salvation,  through  faith  which 
is  in  Christ  Jesus.'  Not  only  so,  but  it  is  our  food  and  means  of 
growth :  1  Peter  ii.  2,  '  As  new-born  babes  desire  the  sincere  milk  of 
the  word,  that  ye  may  grow  thereby.'  Every  life  hath  food  conve 
nient  for  it.  It  is  our  weapon  in  temptation  :  Eph.  vi.  17,  *  And  take 
the  helmet  of  salvation,  and  the  sword  of  the  Spirit,  which  is  the  word 
of  God.'  To  be  read  by  all  in  this  spiritual  warfare  they  are  all 
engaged  in.  It  is  God's  testament,  therefore  should  be  viewed  by  his 
children ;  the  epistle  of  the  creator  to  his  creatures,  therefore  to  be 
read  by  them  to  whom  it  is  sent.  God's  letter  must  not  be  inter 
cepted  upon  all  these  reasons.  There  is  enough  to  make  wise  the 
simple  in  scriptures. 

But  is  there  nothing  difficult  in  scriptures  ?  Ans.  Yes,  to  subdue 
the  pride  of  man's  wit,  to  quicken  us  to  wait  and  depend  upon  him 
for  knowledge,  to  prevent  contempt,  to  exercise  our  industry  and  dili 
gence,  and  to  fasten  truths  on  our  minds.  There  is  some  difficulty, 
but  not  such  difficulty  as  that  the  people  neither  can  nor  ought  to 
read  them  with  profit,  which  is  the  dispute  between  us  and  papists. 
There  is  no  difficulty  but  what  is  conquerable  by  that  grace  that  God 
ordinarily  dispenseth,  and  the  means  of  explaining  or  applying ;  not  a 
whole  loaf,  but  a  dimensum,  his  share ;  for  it  distributes  to  every  man 
his  portion. 

Use  1.  For  the  confutation  of  them  that  forbid  the  simple  use  of 
the  word.  The  papists  say,  God's  word  is  dark  and  hard  to  be  under- 


356  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEE.  CXLIII. 

stood ;  therefore  they  lock  it  up  from  the  people  in  an  unknown 
tongue,  as  if  none  could  profit  by  it  but  the  learned  sort.  Yea,  many 
among  us  are  ready  to  say,  What  should  simple  ?nen  do  with  scrip 
ture?  and  think  that  all  the  confusions  and  troubles  of  the  world 
come  from  giving  people  this  liberty.  Ans.  Though  in  the  word  there 
are  mysteries  to  exercise  the  greatest  wits,  yet  there  are  plain  truths 
to  edify  the  simple.  This  text  is  a  notable  proof  against  them.  It  is 
good  to  have  a  text  against  every  error  of  theirs.  They  are  injurious 
to  God  ;  as  if  he  had  revealed  his  mind  so  darkly,  or  his  word,  that  it 
were  so  doubtful  and  harmful  that  there  were  danger  in  reading  it : 
injurious  to  the  scriptures,  while  they  tax  them  with  obscurity ; 
injurious  to  the  people  of  God,  while  they  despise  those  whom  the 
Lord  inviteth  with  their  pharisaical  pride :  John  vii.  49,  '  But  this 
people  who  know  not  the  law  are  cursed ;'  hinder  them  of  their  com 
fort  ;  the  simple  have  souls  to  save,  therefore  have  need  to  see  with 
their  own  eyes,  to  consider  God's  charter.  They  pretend  they  do  it  in 
mercy  to  the  people,  lest  by  their  mistakes  they  should  ruin  them 
selves,  and  introduce  confusion  into  the  world.  They  should  as  well 
say  all  must  be  starved,  and  deny  meat  and  drink  because  some  sur 
feit.  But  certainly  they  do  it  for  their  own  interest ;  they  have  false 
wares  to  vend,  and  to  keep  the  people  from  discovering  the  errors  they 
impose  upon  them,  they  would  conceal  the  scriptures  from  them. 
Ignorance  is  a  friend  to  the  devil's  kingdom.  The  blind  go  as  they  are 
led.  They  are  afraid  of  the  scriptures  as  a  thief  of  a  candle  or  the  light 
which  would  discover  his  villany  and  hinder  his  design,  John  iii.  20. 

Use  2.  Of  encouragement  to  poor  Christians  that  have  a  sense  of 
weakness.  Before  Plato's  school  was  written,  '  Let  none  but  the  learned 
come  in  hither ;'  but  Christ  inviteth  the  simple.  That  none  might  be 
discouraged,  he  speaketh  to  all  sorts:  Prov.  viii.  4,  5,  'Unto  you,  0 
men,  I  call,  and  my  voice  is  to  the  sons  "of  men :  0  ye  simple,  under 
stand  wisdom ;  and  ye  fools,  be  of  an  understanding  heart.'  That 
which  is  spoken  to  all  is  thought  to  be  spoken  for  none.  Christ 
speaketh  to  men  under  their  several  distinctions,  noble,  base,  young  or 
old,  rich  or  poor.  If  any  earthly  profit  be  offered  to  any  that  will 
take  it,  who  will  exempt  themselves  ?  None  are  so  modest.  But  in 
spiritual  things  persons  are  more  stupid.  Let  none  be  discouraged  by 
weakness  of  parts;  all  are  invited  to  learn,  and  here  they  may  be 
taught,  of  any  capacity.  Oh  !  but  how  many  will  say,  I  am  so  weak 
of  understanding,  that  I  shall  make  no  work  of  such  deep  mysteries  as 
are  contained  in  the  scriptures.  I  answer — 

1.  Many  times  this  objection  cometh  from  a  sluggish  heart ;  to  ease 
themselves  of  the  trouble  of  a  duty,  as  meditation  or  prayer,  they  pre 
tend  weakness,  they  would  have  a  rule  that  would  make  knowledge. 

2.  If  it  be  serious,  God  is  able  to  interpret  his  own  book  unto  thee. 
He  must  indeed  open  the  door,  or  we  cannot  get  into  the  knowledge  of 
truths  there.     If  you  had  better  parts  you  would  be  but  groping  about 
the  door.     He  that  hath  not  the  right  key  is  as  far  from  entering  the 
house  as  he  that  hath  none.     If  the  Spirit  of  God  be  thy  master,  thoti 
shalt  learn,  though  never. so  blockish. 

3.  Wisdom  stands  upon  the  threshold,  or  at  the  door  of  God's  word, 
as  ready  to  open  the  treasures  of  knowledge :  '  The  entrance  of  thy 


VER.  131.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  357 

word  giveth  light.'  No  sooner  is  a  soul  entered  into  the  Spirit's  school 
but  he  becometh  a  proficient ;  on  first  acquaintance  with  scriptures  he 
seeth  great  light.  Yea,  she  sendeth  abroad  to  invite  comers  :  Prov. 
ix.  3-5,  '  She  hath  sent  forth  her  maidens,  she  crieth  upon  the  highest 
places  of  the  city,  Whoso  is  simple  let  him  come  in  hither :  as  for  him 
that  wanteth  understanding,  she  saith  to  him,  Come  eat  of  my  bread, 
and  drink  of  the  wine  which  I  have  mingled/  Therefore  go  on  with 
thy  duty.  He  that  sent  an  interpreter  to  the  eunuch  to  guide  him, 
when  reading  part  of  Isaiah's  prophecy  which  he  understood  not,  will 
direct  and  guide  thee  in  the  knowledge  of  all  necessary  truths,  Ps. 
xxv.  8,  9  ;  Prov.  ii.  2-5. 

4.  It  is  a  good  advantage  to  be  sensible  of  our  blindness :  Rev.  iii. 
17, 18,  '  Because  thou  sayest,  I  am  rich,  and  increased  with  goods,  and 
stand  in  need  of  nothing ;  and  knowest  not  that  thou  art  wretched,  and 
miserable,  and  poor,  and  blind,  and  naked :  I  counsel  thee  to  buy  of 
me  gold  tried  in  the  fire,  that  thou  mayest  be  rich ;  and  white  raiment, 
that  thou  mayest  be  clothed,  and  that  the  shame  of  thy  nakedness  do 
not  appear  ;  and  anoint  thee  thine  eyes  with  eyesalve  that  thou  mayest 
see.'  The  first  thing  a  man  seeth  is  his  own  blindness,  nakedness,  and 
wretchedness :  John  ix.  39,  *  And  Jesus  said,  For  judgment  I  am  come 
into  the  world,  that  they  which  see  not  might  see,  and  that  they  which 
see  might  be  made  blind.'  Many  times  they  which  conceitedly  think 
they  see  are  made  blind.  Those  that  are  ignorant  and  humbled  under 
the  sense  thereof,  Christ  will  open  their  eyes ;  but  they  that  are  con 
ceited  of  their  own  parts  and  knowledge,  their  hearts  are  darkened 
more  and  more,  and  they  are  given  up  to  follow  their  own  fancies. 
The  simple  may  see  further  than  others,  because  they  swell  not  with 
the  presumption  of  their  own  wit.  Surgunt  indocti,  et  rapiunt  codum, 
cum  nos  doctrma  nostra  detrudimur  in  geliennam.  Sometimes  simple 
people  are  more  forward  and  earnest  than  others,  and  men  of  weak 
parts  and  small  breeding  may  have  strong  affections.  A  blunt  iron, 
when  heated,  may  enter  deeper  into  a  board  than  a  sharp  tool  when 
cold.  Great  doctors  and  rabbis  are  proud  and  careless,  and  poor 
broken-hearted  sinners  are  warm  and  serious.  Your  labour  will  not 
be  in  vain. 


SERMON  CXLIV. 

/  opened  my  mouth,  and  panted :  for  I  longed  for  thy  commandments. 

—VER.  131. 

HERE  is  the  use  that  the  Psalmist  maketh  of  the  former  commenda 
tion  of  the  word ;  it  is  wonderful  and  mysterious,  clear  and  perspicuous; 
now  he  declareth  his  great  affection  to  it.  These  words  were  used  by 
Nazianzen  when  his  father  committed  to  him  the  care  of  the  church 
of  Nazianzurn;  he  beginneth  his  speech  with  it,  Orat.  viii.,  as  being  ^  a 
word  of  more  than  ordinary  comfort  and  grace  and  direction.  David 
was  in  a  fainting  condition  through  the  passionateness  of  his  desire, 
'  I  longed ;'  and  that  longing  caused  a  languor,  as  all  strong  desires 


358  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEB.  CXLIY. 

do.  His  affection  wrought  upon  his  body,  or  else  affected  his  soul,  as 
bodily  refreshments  desired  and  wanted  do  the  body,  '  I  opened  my 
mouth,  and  panted:  for  I  longed  for  thy  commandments/  In  the 
words  there  are — 

1.  The  vehemency  of  his  passion,  I  opened  my  mouth,  and  panted. 

2.  The  reason  or  cause  of  it,  for  I  longed  for  thy  commandments. 
First,  '  I  opened  my  mouth,  and  panted  ;'  a  metaphor  taken  from 

men  scorched  and  sweltered  with  heat,  or  from  those  that  have  run 
themselves  out  of  breath  in  following  after  the  thing  which  they  would 
overtake.  The  former  metaphor  expressed  the  vehemency  of  his  love, 
the  other  the  earnestness  of  his  pursuit ;  he  was  like  a  man  gasping 
for  breath  and  sucking  in  the  cool  air.  Judea  was  a  hot  country,  and 
therefore  such  expressions  are  frequent.  The  like  expressions,  that 
come  somewhat  near  it,  are  those  :  2  Cor.  vi.  11,  '  0  ye  Corinthians, 
our  mouth  is  opened  to  you,  our  heart  is  enlarged  ;'  when  he  did  vehe 
mently  desire  their  profit.  And  Job  saith,  'They  waited  for  my 
speech  as  the  rain ;  they  opened  their  mouth  wide,  as  for  the  latter 
rain/  Job  xxix.  22.  A  vehement,  passionate  desire  affects  the  mind 
as  an  insatiate  thirst  the  body.  Thus  will  they  be  affected  that  are 
sensible  of  the  wonders  of  the  law,  and  enlightened  by  it.  The  reason 
of  this  passion  :  '  I  longed,7  noteth  a  high  degree  of  desire.  What 
did  he  long  for  ?  God's  commandments  ;  that  is,  the  saving  knowledge 
of  the  doctrine  of  salvation,  or  to  find  the  use,  benefit,  light,  comfort, 
and  power  of  the  word  of  God. 

Doct.  That  God's  children  have  strong  and  vehement  affections  and 
desires  after  the  comfort  and  benefit  of  the  word  of  God. 

Here  is — (1.)  Opening  the  mouth;  and  (2.)  Panting,  as  for  fresh 
air  ;  and  (3.)  Longing  for  the  commandments.  All  three  expressions 
imply  an  intensiveness  of  affection.  Surely  David  prized  holiness  at 
a  greater  rate  than  we  do,  or  else  he  would  not  use  expressions  so 
strange  to  us !  See  the  like,  Ps.  cxix.  20,  '  My  soul  breaketh  for  the 
longing  it  hath  unto  thy  judgments  at  all  times/  Desire  is  the 
stretching  forth  of  the  soul  to  the  thing  desired.  Now  his  soul  did  so 
stretch  towards  these  spiritual  comforts,  that  it  did  even  break  and 
crack  again  in  the  stretching.  So  Ps.  xlii.  1,  'As  the  hart  panteth 
after  the  water-brooks,  so  panteth  my  soul  after  thee,  0  God/  Harts 
are  thirsty  creatures,  especially  when  chased,  or  having  eaten  serpents. 

Considerations. 

1.  The  soul  never  worketh  better  than  in  the  strength  of  some 
eminent  affection.  In  all  things  that  we  take  in  hand  we  do  but  so- 
so,  act  but  chilly  and  weakly,  while  we  have  a  listless  and  remiss  will ; 
but  when  the  force  of  affection  is  upon  us,  the  soul  is  carried  on 
strongly,  either  in  abomination  or  prosecution ;  for  affections  are  the 
forcible  and  vigorous  motions  of  the  will.  Now  the  soul  never  doth 
well  but  under  such  an  affection.  Were  it  not  for  affections,  our 
nature  would  be  sluggish  and  idle ;  as  Plutarch,  cbo-Trep  Kv/3epv^rr)^ 
Tn/euyctaTo?  eArXtVo^ro?,  like  a  pilot  at  sea  without  a  wind.  The  ship 
moveth  slowly  when  there  are  no  winds  stirring  to  fill  the  sails ;  or 
like  a  chariot  without  wheels  or  horses,  or  a  bird  when  her  wings  are 
clipped.  They  spur  us  on  to  what  we  affect.  Men  are  heavy  and 
lazy  because  they  have  no  affection :  Exod.  xxxvi.  2,  '  And  Moses 


VER.  131.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  359 

called  Bezaleel  and  Aholiab  and  every  wise-hearted  man,  in  whose 
heart  the  Lord  had  put  wisdom,  even  every  one  whose  heart  stirred 
him  up  to  come  unto  the  work  to  do  it/  Man  findeth  a  force  within 
himself,  his  heart  maketh  him  willing ;  the  stronger  the  affections,  the 
better  the  man  acteth,  with  greater  strength  and  vivacity ;  for  they 
are  the  vigorous  motions  of  the  will. 

[2.]  Of  all  affections,  desires  are  most  earnest  and  vehement,  for 
they  are  the  vigorous  bent  of  the  heart  to  that  which  is  good,  the 
motion  and  endeavour  of  the  soul  after  it.  As  to  good,  the  will 
chooseth  jt,  and  the  heart  affects  a  union  with  it,  or  desires  to  obtain 
it.  This  affection  of  union,  simply  considered,  is  love,  which  is  an 
inclination  of  the  soul  to  good,  it  presseth  the  heart  to  it ;  but  as  it  is 
an  absent  good,  it  is  desire,  which  exciteth  to  pursue  it  earnestly. 
Desire  doth  all  that  is  done  in  the  world,  for  it  lifteth  up  the  soul  to 
action,  that  we  may  possess  those  things  that  we  desire ;  I  desire  it, 
and  therefore  I  labour  for  it.  Therefore  the  main  thing  that  God 
craveth  is  the  desire :  Prov.  xxiii.  26,  '  My  son,  give  me  thy  heart/ 
which  is  the  soul  of  desires ;  and  therefore  the  people  of  God  plead 
their  sincerity :  Isa.  xxvi.  8,  9,  '  The  desire  of  our  soul  is  to  thy 
name,  and  to  the  remembrance  of  thee  ;  with  my  soul  have  I  desired 
thee  in  the  night,  yea,  with  my  spirit  within  me  will  I  seek  thee  early/ 
Get  but  a  desire  to  good  things,  to  God,  to  his  word,  and  it  will  be  a 
great  help  to  you  in  spiritual  things :  Prov.  xi.  23,  '  The,  desire  of 
the  righteous  is  only  good.'  It  is  well  when  the  soul  is  set  right ;  this 
is  a  strong,  active,  commanding  faculty. 

3.  Of  all  desires,  those  which  carry  us  out  to  holy  things  should 
bear  sway,  and  be  the  greatest ;  for  affections  are  not  rationally  exer 
cised  unless  they  bear  proportion  to  the  objects  they  are  conversant 
about.  Now  the  word  and  things  contained  therein  are  the  most  noble 
objects,  and  so  most  suitable  for  our  desires,  if  we  would  act  ration 
ally.  That  appears  upon  these  accounts : — 

[1.]  Spiritual  things  are  more  noble ;  partly  because  they  concern 
the  soul,  whereas  carnal  things  concern  only  the  outward  man.  Our 
liveliest  affections  should  be  exercised  about  the  weightiest  things. 
Can  we  desire  riches  and  honours  and  pleasures,  which  only  concern 
the  body,  and  shall  we  not  desire  comforts  and  graces,  which  are  neces 
sary  for  the  soul  ?  It  is  irrational,  for  by  this  means  we  grow  brutish 
and  sensual.  If  our  appetite  desire  only  food  and  good  pastures,  and 
propagation  of  our  kind,  these  desires  soon  exceed,  and  grow  tempes 
tuous  and  hurtful  to  the  soul :  Rom.  xiii.  14,  '  Make  not  provision 
for  the  flesh,  to  fulfil  the  lusts  thereof.'  There  is  a  lawful  care  for  the 
body,  but  this  desire  should  not  be  chief,  because  the  body  is  not  the 
chief  part  of  a  man  :  Mat.  vi.  33,  *  Seek  ye  first  the  kingdom  of  God 
and  the  righteousness  thereof,  and  all  these  things  shall  be  added  unto 
you.'  The  ennobling  of  the  soul  with  grace,  the  settling  of  our  con 
science,  the  assuring  of  our  everlasting  estate,  these  things  deserve  our 
chiefest  care.  Partly  because  these  things  are  only  useful  to  us  in  our 
passage,  and  so  for  a  time ;  they  are  not  useful  to  us  in  our  home,  and 
so  for  ever :  Deut.  xxiii.  24,  '  When  thou  comest  into  thy  neighbour's 
vineyard,  thou  mayest  eat  grapes  thy  fill  at  thine  own  pleasure ;  but 
thou  shalt  not  put  any  in  thy  vessel.'  We  have  these  things  for  our 


360  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXLIV. 

use  when  here,  but  we  carry  nothing  with  us  when  we  go  hence. 
They  who  did  occasionally  pass  through  their  neighbour's  vineyard, 
might  take  for  their  necessity,  but  they  must  carry  none  home ;  and 
therefore  as  to  these  things  all  our  acts  must  be  non-acts :  1  Cor.  vii. 
30,  31,  'Rejoice  as  if  we  rejoiced  not/  desire  as  if  we  desired  not. 
Affections  here  need  a  great  deal  of  guiding,  and  a  great  deal  of  curb 
ing,  lest  we  sin  in  these  less  noble  things ;  but  in  spiritual,  heavenly 
things  we  can  never  do  enough. 

[2.]  Common  and  ordinary  affection  will  not  become  God,  or  any 
thing  that  cometh  from  God,  or  concerneth  our  enjoyment  of  him,  or 
our  communion  with  him.  Surely  '  we  are  to  love  the  Lord  our  God 
with  all  our  hearts,  and  with  all  our  might,  and  with  all  our  souls/ 
Deut.  vi.  5.  And  as  we  are  to  love  God,  so  in  proportion  his  word, 
which  is  the  means  to  enjoy  him ;  therefore  here  we  should  stretch  our 
desire  to  the  utmost. 

[3.]  An  earnest  bent  will  only  do  us  good,  and  make  us  hold  out  in 
the  pursuit  of  heavenly  wisdom.  It  doth  us  good  for  the  present.,  as 
it  fits  us  to  improve  the  word,  as  an  appetite  to  our  food.  To  eat  with 
a  stomach  maketh  way  for  digestion :  1  Peter  ii.  2,  '  As  new-born 
babes  desire  the  sincere  milk  of  the  word,  that  ye  may  grow  thereby.' 
And  it  is  zeal  will  only  bear  us  out.  Besides  the  difficulties  and  oppo 
sitions  from  without,  our  hearts  are  full  of  contrary  qualities  and 
desires,  'The  flesh  lusteth  against  the  spirit;'  so  that  nothing  but  a 
strong  affection  is  for  our  turn.  The  greatest  vehemency  is  but  enough 
to  bear  us  up  in  the  prosecution  of  what  is  good  ;  a  weak  desire  will 
be  soon  chilled.  Herod  had  some  good  desire  ;  so  have  many,  but  not 
strong  desires.  He  that  affects  grace,  should  affect  nothing  so  much 
as  grace.  A  carnal  man  may  be  affected  with  what  is  good,  but  there 
is  something  that  he  affects  more,  vanities,  profits,  pleasures.  Well, 
then,  spiritual  desires  should  be  drawn  out  to  the  utmost,  because  the 
object  is  more  noble.  These  desires  cannot  degenerate,  nor  this  affec 
tion  be  corrupted,  and  a  common  and  ordinary  affection  doth  not 
become  these  things.  Nothing  else  will  serve  the  turn. 

[4.]  Wherever  these  desires  bear  sway  it  will  be  sensibly  discovered 
by  the  effects,  both  to  ourselves  and  others.  A  man  may  have  a  little 
joy,  or  a  little  grief,  or  a  little  anger,  and  nobody  see  it ;  but  none  of 
these  affections  can  be  in  any  strength  and  vigour  but  we  shall  feel  it 
and  others  will  observe  it ;  for  strong  affections  cannot  be  hid.  Can  a 
man  carry  fire  in  his  bosom  and  hide  it?  So  there  will  be  some 
expression  of  what  thy  heart  affects.  Can  a  man  be  under  terrors,  and 
not  show  it  in  his  face  ?  A  concealed  affection  is  no  affection.  Men 
may  hide  their  hatred,  but  cannot  hide  their  love :  Prov.  xxvii.  5, 
'  Open  rebuke  is  better  than  secret  love.'  These  things  tie  body  and 
soul  together,  move  the  spirits.  So  desire  will  show  itself,  yea,  spiritual 
desire.  What  desire  doth  in  other  things,  it  will  do  in  this.  If  there 
be  longing,  there  will  be  fainting,  gaping,  breathing ;  for  strong  desires 
are  hasty  and  impatient  of  satisfaction.  Ahab's  eager  desire  of 
Naboth's  vineyard  cast  him  upon  his  bed.  The  spouse  was  sick  of 
love  :  Cant.  v.  8,  '  I  charge  ye,  0  ye  daughters  of  Jerusalem,  if  ye  find 
my  beloved,  that  ye  tell  him  that  I  am  sick  of  love.'  What !  desire, 
and  nobody  see  it  ?  What !  desire,  and  you  never  feel  such  a  strong 


VER.  131.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  361 

urging  affection  ?  Surely  there  will  be  secret,  deep,  and  frequent  sighs, 
there  will  be  a  striving  with  God  in  prayer,  and  constant  attendance 
upon  God.  Such  an  active  affection  cannot  be  hid.  Most  men  desire 
so  little,  it  cannot  be  known  whether  it  be  desire  or  no. 

[5.]  God's  children  have  these  desires,  because  they  see  more  in  the 
word  than  others  do  or  can  do.  Spiritual  discerning  is  a  help  to 
spiritual  affections.  They  whose  eyes  are  anointed  with  spiritual  eye- 
salve  see  wonders  in  the  law,  and  so  are  wondrously  affected  with 
them.  But  why  should  God's  children  see  more  ? 

(1.)  They  look  through'the  spectacles  of  faith,  they  believe  the  com 
mands  to  be  the  commands  of  the  great  God,  the  promises  to  be  the 
promises  of  God,  and  therefore  as  good  as  performance  ;  and  so  what 
to  others  seem  fancies  and  fine  dreams,  to  them  are  the  chiefest  reali 
ties  :  Heb.  xi.  13,  '  These  all  died  in  faith,  not  having  received  the 
promises,  but  having  seen  them  afar  off,  and  were  persuaded  of  them, 
and  embraced  them.'  Who  would,  having  the  promises,  be  so 
strangely  transported,  but  they  that  are  strongly  persuaded  ?  Faith, 
that  looketh  upon  the  things  promised  as  sure  and  near,  maketh  them 
more  active  and  lively.  They  that  have  not  faith,  or  do  not  exercise 
faith,  have  but  cold  affections  ;  but  they  who  believe  these  wonderful 
felicities  which  the  word  of  God  speaketh  of,  long  to  enjoy  what  they 
are  sure  is  true. 

(2.)  They  look  into  it  with  an  eye  of  love,  and  love  sets  a  price  on 
tilings :  they  see  more  of  the  loveliness  of  spiritual  things  than  others 
do.  Men's  affections  are  according  to  the  constitution  of  their  souls, 
or  the  end  they  propound  to  themselves.  They  that  are  carnally  dis 
posed  know  all  things  after  the  flesh,  and  value  them  by  the  interests 
of  the  flesh,  as  that  is  gratified  ;  and  they  that  are  spiritually  disposed 
are  affected  accordingly  as  men's  genius  lieth.  And  that  is  the  reason 
why  eminent  grace  hath  strong  affections,  which  carnal  men  are  not 
competent  judges  of.  It  seemeth  improbable  to  them  that  a  man 
should  have  such  fervent  desires  of  holiness,  and  be  able  to  speak  thus 
to  God,  '  I  opened  my  mouth,  and  panted :  for  I  longed  for  thy  com 
mandments.'  The  constitution  of  their  souls  is  quite  otherwise,  and 
their  hearts  hang  world-ward ;  they  have  not  such  a  sense  of  their 
duty,  and  do  not  make  it  their  business  to  please  God ;  and  so,  having 
no  deep  sense  and  conscience  of  their  duty,  they  do  not  see  such  a 
need  of  the  word  as  their  guide  and  help.  They  have  no  love  to  these 
things,  therefore  no  passionate  desire  ;  for  this  is  the  order — the  will 
chooseth,  love  desireth  the  union,  desire  presseth  to  endeavours  after 
it.  But  now  a  godly  man,  that  maketh  it  his  business  to  please  God, 
the  principal  desire  and  choice  of  his  will  is  to  be  what  God  would 
have  him  to  be,  and  to  do  what  God  would  have  him  to  do. 

(3.)  Because  they  have  experience.  Two  things  quicken  our  affec 
tion  to  anything  that  is  good,  viz.,  the  knowledge  of  the  worth  and  use 
of  things,  and  our  want  of  them.  And  the  children  of  ^God  know 
both  of  these  by  experience,  in  the  course  of  that  life  wherein  they  are 
engaged  ;  and  nothing  is  known  so  intimately  and  pressingly  as  what 
is  known  by  experience.  By  experience  they  see  the  want  of  the  word 
of  God,  and  its  comforts  and  helps  ;  not  only  when  God  first  touched 
their  hearts  with  care  of  saving  their  souls,  and  they  were  humble, 


362  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXLIY. 

and  parched  with  a  sense  of  sin  and  wrath ;  all  things  were  then 
unsavoury,  as  the  white  of  an  egg ;  then  they  longed,  they  panted  for 
one  comfortable  word  from  God,  one  passage  of  scripture  to  give  them 
ease  ;  and  the  word  becometh  as  necessary  as  meat  to  the  hungry,  and 
drink  to  the  thirsty,  and  cool  air  to  the  weary :  Mat.  xi.  28, '  Come  unto 
me,  all  ye  that  are  weary  and  heavy  laden,  and  ye  shall  find  rest  to  your 
souls.'  But  still  they  are  sensible  of  their  spiritual  necessities,  so  as 
they  cannot  breathe  without  it,  nor  thrive  without  it,  they  find  such  a 
necessity  of  it.  It  is  the  food  of  their  souls,  the  seed  and  principle  of 
their  being,  the  rule  of  their  lives,  the  means  of  their  growth,  the 
charter  of  their  hopes,  their  defence  and  strength  in  temptations  and 
assaults.  Christ  himself  guarded  himself  with  the  word  when  he  was 
assaulted.  Now,  being  practically  convinced  of  this,  they  must  needs 
have  vehement  longings  after  it ;  and  after  a  more  full  understanding 
of  it,  they  find  by  experience  that  the  soul  is  apt  to  faint  as  well  as 
the  body:  Heb.  xii.  3,  'Lest  ye  be  weary,  and  faint  in  your  minds;' 
and  that  in  all  these  things  nothing  relieveth  them  but  the  comfort 
and  direction  God  giveth  them  in  his  word. 

[6.]  The  more  godly  any  are,  the  more  they  feel  these  strong  affec 
tions.  All  that  have  life,  their  pulses  do  not  beat  alike  strongly  ; 
some  are  weak,  others  more  robust.  So  it  is  in  grace ;  some  have 
larger  souls  than  others,  and  so,  as  they  are  more  in  action  for  God, 
they  must  have  more  supplies,  and  a  greater  measure  of  spirit  and 
grace  ;  these  long  and  pant.  In  others  there  is  a  greater  sluggishness 
and  narrowness  of  mind,  and  they  rest  satisfied  with  what  they  have, 
their  spiritual  affections  are  not  so  raised  ;  and  therefore  every  one  that 
is  godly  is  not  acquainted  with  this  panting  and  breathing  and  long 
ing  ;  they  have  so  much  appetite  as  is  necessary  to  maintain  the  new 
creature,  but  not  these  enlarged  desires.  I  confess  you  are  to  judge 
by  your  willingness  rather  than  the  passionate  stirrings  of  your  affec 
tions.  It  is  the  heart  which  God  requireth,  and  if  he  hath  the  will  he 
hath  the  heart.  But  yet  affectionate  workings  of  the  soul  towards 
spiritual  and  heavenly  things  are  very  sweet,  and  such  as  all  Chris 
tians  should  strive  for,  but  not  the  best  marks  by  which  to  judge  of 
our  estate.  There  may  be  a  solid  and  sincere  intention  and  choice, 
when  there  is  little  stirring  perceived  in  the  affections.  If  the  will  be 
fixedly  set  for  God,  the  man  is  upright.  Yet  you  are  to  endeavour 
to  raise  your  affections  to  that  height  which  is  suitable  to  the  excel 
lency  of  the  object ;  especially  when  it  is  movingly  represented  to  us, 
our  desires  should  be  upon  the  wing.  It  is  a  duty  ;  as  far  as  we  can 
reach  it,  we  should.  The  more  the  soul  is  refined  from  the  dregs  of 
carnal  longings  and  worldly  lusts,  the  more  are  they  enlarged  towards 
God  ;  and  as  their  passionate  desires  of  earthly  things  are  abated,  so 
their  spiritual  desires  are  enlarged.  David  saith,  Ps.  cxix.  36,  '  In 
cline  my  heart  unto  thy  testimonies,  and  not  to  covetousness.'  And 
the  apostle,  Col.  iii.  2,  '  Set  your  affections  on  things  above,  and  not 
on  things  on  earth.'  The  more  the  heart  is  given  to  the  one,  the  more 
it  is  taken  off  from  the  other.  Kiches,  honours,  and  pleasures,  as  these 
are  loved,  they  hinder  this  noble  working  of  the  soul,  this  breaking, 
longing,  panting  for  better  things.  Worldly  things  have  a  great  ad 
vantage  over  our  affections,  because  they  are  sensible  and  near  us,  and 


VER.  131.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  363 

our  knowledge  of  them  is  clear,  and  by  the  senses  obtrude  and  thrust 
themselves  upon  the  soul.  Therefore  use  them  with  a  guard  and 
restraint. 

[7.]  Though  this  desire  should  always  continue  in  some  degree,  yet 
there  are  some  seasons  when  it  is  more  vehement,  and  more  notably 
stirred  and  raised.  In  some  degree  it  should  always  continue,  for  our 
necessities  and  work  are  ever  the  same;  and  if  it  be  only  a  qualm  or 
fit,  it  is  not  ri^ht :  Ps.  cxix.  20,  '  My  soul  breaketh  for  the  longing  it 
hath  unto  thy  judgments  at  all  times.'  Appetite  followeth  life;  but  at 
special  times  it  is  more  notably  raised,  as  when  we  are  to  meet  with 
God  in  solemn  duties  ;  it  is  whetted  when  disappointed,  and  stirred 
upon  some  restraint  or  delay,  when  we  meet  not  with  what  we  expected, 
that  light  and  comfort  and  strength  that  we  looked  for,  but  are  kept 
off  from  satisfaction.  When  some  deep  distress  makes  spiritual  com 
forts  more  seasonable,  or  in  some  great  affair  or  temptation,  we  need 
more  than  ordinary  strength,  or  in  some  doubt  we  need  light  and 
direction ;  in  all  these  cases,  spiritual  desire  is  more  stirring,  and  a 
strong  affection  is  kindled  in  us.  David  panted  as  an  hart :  Ps.  xlii. 
1,  'As  the  hart  panteth  after  the  water-brooks,  so  panteth  my  soul 
after  thee,  0  God/  It  was  when  he  was  in  some  distress.  So  Ps. 
Ixiii.  1,  '  0  God,  thou  art  my  God ;  early  will  I  seek  thee :  my  soul 
thirsteth  for  thee,  my  flesh  longeth  for  thee  in  a  dry  and  thirsty  land, 
where  no  water  is/  Oh !  the  sighs  and  groans  that  are  sent  up  at 
such  a  time !  Troubles  will  sharpen  our  appetite  and  rouse  us  out  of 
security.  We  cannot  always  subsist  under  strong  affections  ;  they  are 
very  mutable,  yet  something  of  them  should  continue. 

Use  1.  For  reproof. 

1.  Many  are  acquainted  with  the  passionateness  of  sin,  but  know 
little  of  the  passionateness  of  spiritual  desire  :  1  Thes.  iv.  5,  p.rj  eV 
irdQet,  IvriOvpuHi,  i  not  in  the  lust  of  concupiscence/     Some  think  it 
should  rather  be  rendered  thus,  Not  in  the  passion  of  lust.     Many 
times  lust  groweth  to  violence,  men  neigh  like  fed  horses  after  their 
neighbours'  wives  ;  they  feel  an  ardency  and  a  burning  heat  in  their 
evil  passions  and  lusts,  but  none  of  this  gasping  and  panting  for 
spiritual  refreshings   and  the  comforts  of  the  soul.     They  are  ac 
quainted  with  passionate  wrath  and  fury,  passionate  envy  and  spite- 
fulness,  passionate  lust  and  filthy  desires,  passionate  covetousness,  as 
Ahab  after  Naboth's  vineyard  ;  the  boilings  of  sin  they  know,  but  were 
never  acquainted  with  these  gaspings  after  grace,  as  Amnon  lusted  for 
Tamar  :  Rom.  i.  27, '  They  burned  in  lust  one  towards  another/    When 
any  sin  groweth  so  headstrong  as  to  admit  of  no  restraint,  but  men  are 
wedded  to  their  own  inclination,  that  is  the  passionateness  of  sin. 

2.  Some  that  have  affectionate  desires  for  worldly  things,  and  their 
souls  are  pained  and  grieved,  and  are  sick  within  them  if  they  have 
them  not.     These  differ  from  the  former,  for  there  the  object  was 
sinful,  but  here  the  object  is  lawful,  but  the  desire  is  irregular ;  they 
are  sick  of  pleasures,  their  hearts  run  on  them,  and  they  cannot^  re 
frain:  'As  the  fool's  heart  is  in  the  house  of  mirth/  Eccles.  vii.  4. 
All  their  longings  are  for  balls  and  dancings  and  plays  and  merry 
meetings ;  these  are  suitable  entertainments  to  the  hearts  of  fools,  vain 
and  sottish  epicures,  that  know  no  higher  delights  than  the  tickling 


364  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXLIV. 

of  the  senses ;  their  love  runneth  that  way,  and  their  hearts  are 
wholly  estranged  from  God.  So  some  sick  of  riches  and  wealth,  they 
gape  and  gasp  for  them  with  an  impatient  longing  :  1  Tim.  vi.  9, 
'  They  that  will  be  rich  fall  into  temptation  and  a  snare,  and  into 
many  foolish  and  hurtful  lusts,  that  drown  men  in  destruction  and 
perdition.'  The  more  they  have,  the  more  they  covet,  as  the  laying  on 
of  more  fuel  increaseth  the  flame  ;  they  are  impatient,  making  haste 
to  be  rich,  run  themselves,  yea,  their  consciences,  out  of  breath,  to 
overtake  the  prey.  The  world  is  their  element,  out  of  which  they 
cannot  live,  but  spend  their  time,  wit,  strength  of  their  souls  upon  it. 
They  are  sick  for  honour,  credit,  esteem  ;  as  Mordecai's  stiff  knee  cast 
Haman  upon  his  bed  :  Esther  iii.  5,  'And  when  Haman  saw  that  Mor- 
decai  bowed  not  the  knee,  nor  gave  him  reverence,  then  was  Haman 
full  of  wrath ;'  chap.  vi.  12,  '  Mordecai  came  again  to  the  king's  gate, 
but  Haman  hasted  to  his  house  mourning,  and  having  his  head 
covered.  How  do  men  tire  their  spirits,  waste  their  strength,  to  com 
pass  honour  and  esteem  in  the  world !  and  if  they  find  it  not,  how 
are  they  troubled  !  Ambition  is  a  restless  thing  ;  how  doth  Absalom 
court  the  people,  sick  for  rule  and  government ! 

3.  It  reproveth  them  that  have  only  a  cold  approbation, but  no  earnest 
affection  to  the  things  of  God.  Oh,  how  this  instance  should  shame 
us  that  we  have  no  more  affection  !  David  speaketh  of  longing  and 
panting  ;  we  thirst  not,  we  pant  not ;  their  fervency  reproveth  our  luke- 
warmness,  we  are  indifferent  whether  we  have  this  light,  comfort,  and 
grace,  yea  or  no.  God's  children  thirst  for  it  as  dry  ground  for  rain. 
We  have  some  loose  and  straggling  thoughts  about  holy  things,  or  weak 
and  ineffectual  glances  of  device,  some  lukewarm  motions ;  but  for 
these  strong  affections,  admire  them  we  may,  feel  them  we  do  not. 
Wicked  men  may  have  slight  apprehensions  of  spiritual  things,  which 
may  produce  some  slight  desires  and  wishes,  which  yet  are  so  feeble 
and  weak  that  every  carnal  desire  overcometh  them. 

Use  2.  Information  why  the  people  of  God  press  through  so  many 
difficulties  to  enjoy  his  word.  They  are  urged  and  pricked  on  by  a 
strong  desire  ;  they  would  fain  enjoy  more  of  God,  and  therefore  press 
after  the  means,  where  it  is  most  clearly  and  powerfully  revealed: 
John  xi.  12,  '  From  the  days  of  John  the  Baptist  until  now,  the  king 
dom  of  heaven  suffereth  violence,  and  the  violent  take  it  by  force.' 
Where  the  gates  of  heaven  stand  open  they  will  break  through  hin 
drances  to  get  in. 

Use  3.  It  should  quicken  our  dulness,  and  exhort  us  to  get  this 
affection.  If  the  heart  were  as  it  should  be,  a  little  bidding  would 
serve  the  turn. 

1.  These  good  desires  discover  a  good  frame,  for  a  man  is  as  his 
desires  are.  Such  motions,  when  they  are  in  their  strength  and  live 
liness,  are  signs  of  heroical  grace,  when  your  hearts  are  sick  of  love ; 
yea,  in  a  more  temperate  degree,  where  there  are  strong  and  prevailing 
desires,  they  show  truth  of  grace,  where  there  is  such  an  affection  as  is 
industrious  and  unwearied,  and  keepeth  us  hard  at  work :  Acts  xxvi. 
7,  '  Unto  which  promise  the  twelve  tribes,  instantly  serving  God  day 
and  night,  hope  to  come/  Such  an  affection  as  is  troubled  when  we 
are  interrupted  in  our  main  design  of  bringing  the  heart  into  complete 


VER.  132.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  365 

subjection  to  God,  or  being  capable  of  the  fruition  of  him  :  Prov.  xiii. 
12,  '  Hope  deferred  maketh  the  heart  sick,  but  when  the  desire  cometh 
it  is  a  tree  of  life/  If  you  come  for  grace,  and  are  troubled  and 
grieved  when  you  are  interrupted,  if  you  are  refreshed  when  you  have 
tasted  anything  of  God's  graciousness,  any  increase  of  light  and  grace 
is  as  welcome  to  you  as  bodily  refreshment  to  a  weary,  panting  traveller, 
or  water  to  one  that  is  in 'a  great  thirst ;  this  is  that  the  heart  mindeth 
most,  studieth  most,  remembereth  most,  that  you  never  have  enough 
of  it,  and  are  longing  for  more ;  if  there  be  such  an  affection,  it  is  a 
good  sign,  for  sensitive  stirring  is  not  so  great  an  evidence  as  a  settled 
constitution  of  spirit. 

2.  These  holy  desires,  as  they  have  something  of  burthen,  so  some 
thing  of  pleasure  in  them.     Though  the  absence  of  the  thing  desired 
be  a  trouble,  yet  the  exercise  of  holy  desire  is  a  pleasure  to  us,  because 
it  is  an  act  of  love ;  the  more  our  hearts  are  enlarged  in  them,  the 
greater  it  is,  even  before  satisfaction.     While  we  are  hungering  and 
thirsting  we  are  blessed.     It  is  a  blessed  thing  to  be  a  desirer  :  Mat. 
v.  6,  *  Blessed  are  those  that  hunger  and  thirst  after  righteousness,  for 
they  shall  be  filled.' 

3.  This  is  a  desire  which  God  will  satisfy  :  Ps.  Ixxxi.  10,  *  Open  thy 
mouth  wide,  and  I  will  fill  it ;'  Isa.  xliv.  3,  '  I  will  pour  water  upon 
him  that  is  thirsty,  and  floods  upon  the  dry  ground.'     This  insatiate 
thirst  of  grace  and  comfort  shall  be  satisfied :  John  vii.  37,  38,  'In 
the  last  day,  the  great  day  of  the  feast,  Jesus  stood  and  cried,  saying, 
If  any  man  thirst,  let  him  come  unto  me  and  drink.     He  that  believeth 
on  me,  as  the  scripture  saith,  out  of  his  belly  shall  flow  rivers  of  living 
water.'     The  soul  is  prepared  by  it  for  fruition  :  Isa.  Iv.  1,  '  Ho  every 
one  that  thirsteth,  come  ye  to  the  waters,  and  he  that  hath  no  money, 
come  ye,  buy  and  eat,  yea,  come,  buy  wine  and  milk  without  money 
and  without  price/ 

If  we  would  get  it — (1.)  We  must  get  a  new  heart,  which  is  the 
soul  of  these  desires,  and  is  God's  promised  gif  fc  in  the  covenant : 
Ezek.  xxxvi.  26,  '  A  new  heart  will  I  give  you,  and  a  new  spirit  will 
I  put  within  you,  and  I  will  take  away  the  stony  heart  out  of  your 
flesh,  and  I  will  give  you  a  heart  of  flesh/  (2.)  Mortify  and  mode 
rate  your  affections  to  the  world  and  worldly  things,  and  meddle 
sparingly  with  the  comforts  thereof ;  otherwise  your  hearts  will  be  apt 
immoderately  to  leak  out  after  them,  to  the  interruption  of  the  spiritual 
life. 


SERMON  CXLV. 

Look  thou  upon  me,  and  be  merciful  unto  me,  as  tliou  usest  to  do  unto 
those  that  love  thy  name. — VER.  132. 

THE  prophet  having  praised  the  word,  and  expressed  his  affection  to 
it,  presents  his  petition  to  God  for  a  favourable  look  from  him,  upon 
the  account  of  his  grace  and  mercy,  according  to  the  manner  and  law 
of  his  dispensations  towards  others  of  his  people.  They  that  love  the 


366  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXLV. 

word  may  with  the  like  confidence  expect  the  grace  of  God.     Observe 
in  the  words — 

1.  The  petition  or  favour  asked,  look  ihou  upon  me. 

2.  The  ground  of  asking,  or  the  cause  of  that  favour,  and  be  merciful 
unto  me. 

3.  The  terms  according  to  which  it  is  dispensed,  as  thou  usest  to  do, 
secundum  judicium,  according  to  the  law,  or  according  to  thy  custom 
towards  those  that  love  thy  name. 

4.  The  description  of  God's  people  ;  they  love  Ms  name. 

These  are  the  especial  objects  of  grace  and  favour.  I  shall  explain 
the  words  as  I  go  over  the  several  branches. 

First,  I  begin  with  the  petition,  '  Look  thou  upon  me.'  The  Sep- 
tuagint  reads  it,  eV//3Xe7re  eVt  epe.  Other  translations,  aspice  me,  or 
respice  me.  Ainswcrth,  Turn  thy  face  unto  me :  Ps.  xxvi.  16,  '  Turn 
thou  unto  me,  and  have  mercy  upon  me  ;  for  I  am  desolate  and 
afflicted.'  God  seemeth  now  and  then  to  turn  away  from  his  people 
in  their  distresses,  to  turn  the  back  upon  them,  and  not  the  face ;  as 
it  is,  Jer.  xviii.  17,  '  I  will  scatter  them  as  with  an  east-wind  before 
the  enemy ;  I  will  show  them  the  back,  and  not  the  face,  in  the  day  of 
their  calamity/  They  had  dealt  so  first  with  God:  Jer.  ii.  17,  '  Hast 
thou  not  procured  this  unto  thyself,  in  that  thou  hast  forsaken  the 
Lord  thy  God  when  he  led  thee  by  the  way  ? '  So  David,  God  might 
have  seemed  to  have  turned  the  back  upon  him.  Our  translation 
corneth  to  the  same  effect,  '  Look  upon  me.'  God's  looking  implieth 
two  things,  viz.,  his  favour  and  his  providence. 

1.  His  favour  ;  as  Isa.  Ixvi.  2,  '  To  this  man  will  I  look,  that  is  of  a 
contrite  heart ; '  that  is,  I  will  be  gracious  unto  him,  smile  upon  him, 
give  him  evidences  of  my  love. 

2.  His  providence.     The  providence  of  God  is  usually  set  forth  by 
his  eye  :  Prov.  xii.  3,  'The  eyes  of  the  Lord  are  in  every  place,  behold"- 
ing  the  evil  and  the  good.'     Now  God  hath  a  double  eye — an  avenging 
eye  and  a  gracious  eye.     The  avenging  eye  :  Amos  ix.  4,  *  I  will  set 
mine  eyes  upon  them  for  evil,  and  not  for  good.'     The  other  :  2  Chron. 
xvi.  9,  '  The  eyes  of  the  Lord  run  to  and  fro  throughout  the  whole 
earth,  to  show  himself  strong  in  the  behalf  of  them  whose  heart  is 
perfect  towards  him.'     Accordingly  this  act  of  looking  is  either — 

[1.]  With  a  revengeful  eye.  So  upon  their  enemies :  1  Chron.  xii. 
17,  '  The  God  of  our  fathers  look  thereon,  and  rebuke  it ;'  2  Chron. 
xxiv.  22,  c  The  Lord  look  thereon,  and  requite  it,'  said  Zachary  the 
son  of  Jehoiadah  the  priest.  This  is  the  look  of  anger.  But — 

[2.]  There  is  the  look  of  love  and  benign  aspect,  as  astrologers  speak. 
So  Exod.  iii.  7,  '  I  have  surely  seen  the  affliction  of  my  people  which 
are  in  Egypt,  and  have  heard  their  cry  by  reason  of  their  taskmasters, 
for  I  know  their  sorrows  ;'  and  Lam.  iii.  50,  '  Till  the  Lord  look  down 
and  behold  from  heaven.'  So  doth  he  beg  here  that  God  would  look 
upon  him  with  a  gracious  eye.  In  this  gracious  aspect  two  things  are 
notable,  viz.,  his  observation  and  his  compassion. 

(1.)  His  observation.  He  taketh  notice  of  their  condition  and 
oppressed  innocency :  Neh.  i.  6,  '  Let  thine  ear  now  be  attentive,  and 
thine  eyes  open,  that  thou  mayest  hear  the  prayer  of  thy  servant,  which 
I  pray  before  thee  now  day  and  night.'  What  have  eyes  to  do  with 


VER.  132.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  367 

hearing  ?  To  behold  their  pitiful  and  desolate  condition.  So  2  Sam. 
xvi.  12,  'It  may  be  that  the  Lord  will  look  upon  mine  affliction,  and 
that  the  Lord  will  requite  me  good  for  his  cursing  tnis  day/ 

(2.)  His  compassion.  God  doth  take  to  heart  the  distresses  of  his 
people,  and  hath  a  tender  pity  and  compassion  over  them :  Ps.  xxv. 
18,  '  Look  upon  mine  affliction,  and  my  pain.'  He  doth  not  only  take 
notice  of,  but  take  to  heart  their  sorrows,  as  appeareth  by  some  gra 
cious  effect  and  deliverance  wrought  for  them.  So  looking  implieth 
both  his  affection  and  actual  providence  for  them. 

Doct.  The  children  of  God  apprehend  it  as  a  great  favour  if  he  will 
but  look  upon  them. 

So  saith  David,  '  Look  thou  upon  me/  Which  request  expresseth 
his  modesty ;  one  short  glimpse  of  God's  favour,  a  look  of  kindness, 
would  be  a  great  matter  to  him  in  this  vale  of  tears.  A  look  is  wel 
come  to  a  broken  and  contrite  heart ;  they  are  thankfully  affected  with 
the  least  discoveries  and  manifestations  of  God's  love  to  the  soul.  If 
they  could  have  but  the  least  glimpse  of  his  love,  it  would  be  very 
reviving  :  Ps.  Ixxxvi.  17,  '  Show  me  a  token  for  good/  The  returning 
prodigal  could  go  no  higher  than,  '  Make  me  as  one  of  thy  hired  ser 
vants,'  Luke  xv.  19,  any  place  in  the  family,  so  he  might  be  no  more 
absent  from  his  father.  God's  people  would  have  a  nail  in  his  holy 
place.  This  shows — 

1.  His  necessity.     God  seemed  to  look  from  him,  no  sign  of  his 
favour  appeared.     Thus  it  is  often  with  God's  children  here  in  the 
world  ;  the  sense  of  his  love  is  gone  and  lost,  we  sometimes  have  not 
so  much  as  a  look  from  him  :  Isa.  lix.  2,  '  Your  sins  have  hid  his  face 
from  you/     In  heaven  our  communion  is  more  full,  and  it  is  uninter 
rupted  :  1  Cor.  xiii.  12,  *  For  now  we  see  through  a  glass  darkly,  then 
face  to  face/     Here  God  often  hideth  his  face,  and  we  '  walk  in  dark 
ness,  and  see  no  light ;'  Ps.  civ.  29,  '  Thou  hidest  thy  face,  they  are 
troubled  ;  thou  takest  away  their  breath,  they  die,  and  return  to  their 
dust/ 

2.  His  value  and  esteem  of  God's,  favour :  Ps.  iv.  6,  7,  *  There  be 
many  that  say,  Who  will  show  us  any  good  ?     Lord,  lift  thou  up  the 
light  of  thy  countenance  upon  us.     Thou  hast  put  gladness  in  my 
heart,  more  than  in  the  time  that  their  corn  and  their  wine  increased/ 
Esteem  of  spiritual  privileges  is  a  great  means  to  continue  them  to  us. 
We  feel  no  more  of  God's  love,  because  we  are  not  thankful  for  the 
enjoyment  of  it.     It  must  be  a  practical  esteem,  such  as  moveth  us  to 
to  seek  it  earnestly,  as  David  professeth  here  it  would  satisfy  him  if 
God  would  look  upon  him.     We  count  ourselves  most  miserable  in  the 
want  of  it;  but  if    we  have  it,  it  allayeth  all  worldly  discontents, 
abateth  our  desires  of  worldly  comforts. 

3.  His  confidence.      One  look  from  God  is  enough,  it  is  all  he 
beggeth ;  as  the  saints  in  like  cases,  if  their  God  would  but  look  upon 
them :  Deut.  xxvi.  15,  '  Look  down  from  thy  holy  habitation,  from 
heaven,  and  bless  thy  people  Israel/     So  Isa.  Ixiii.  15,  '  Look  down 
from  heaven,  and  behold  from  the  habitation  of  thy  holiness  and  of 
thy  glory/     Without  any  labour,  only  by  this  look  thou  canst  help  all 
our  evils ;  and  will  not  God  cast  a  look  upon  us,  especially  when  we  call 
him  by  his  name  ? 


368  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SflR.  CXLV. 

Reason  1.  Because  in  our  distresses  the  main  thing  we  should  look 
on  is  not  so  much,  the  removal  of  God's  anger,  and  the  removal  of  the 
evil,  as  the  renewed  sense  of  his  love,  to  be  reconciled  to  them :  2  Chron. 
vii.  14,  '  If  my  people,  which  are  called  by  my  name,  shall  humble 
themselves,  arid  pray,  and  seek  my  face,  and  turn  from  their  wicked 
ness,  then  will  I  hear  from  heaven,  and  forgive  their  sins,  and  will  heal 
their  land/  It  is  a  part  of  the  prescribed  remedy  to  seek  the  face  of 
God,  or  a  favourable  look  from  him ;  that  is  put  in  among  the  con 
ditions,  otherwise  we  are  not  affected  with  our  true  misery,  and  the 
cause  of  all  our  trouble,  though  we  may  seriously  enough  desire  to  be 
rid  of  the  trouble,  or  the  effects  and  the  strokes  of  God's  anger.  The 
brute  creatures  can  feel  pain  as  well  as  we,  and  howl  when  they  find 
anything  inconvenient  to  that  nature  which  they  have,  as  well  as  we 
cry  to  God :  Hosea  vii.  14,  '  And  they  have  not  cried  unto  me  with 
their  hearts,  when  they  howled  upon  their  beds.'  God  accounts  it  as 
howling  when  we  do  not  seek  God's  favour  and  grace,  as  well  as  the 
supply  of  our  outward  necessities.  It  is  an  easy  matter  to  be  sensible 
of  the  evil  of  trouble  ;  nature  will  teach  us  that. 

2.  Because  that  bringeth  other  things  along  with  it.     If  God  look 
upon  us  he  will  help  us ;  his  love  and  power  are  set  a- work  for  us,  for 
his  eye  affecteth  his  heart.     When  his  heart  is  affected,  he  will  *  stir 
up  his  strength,  and  come  and  save  us/     So  that,  go  to  the  fountain- 
head  of  all  mercies,  when  you  beg  a  favour,  look  for  it  from  God,  for 
God's  favour  is  the  fountain  of  all  blessings,  and  without  it  all  your 
other  comforts  will  do  you  no  good :  Ps.  Ixxx.  19,  '  Turn  us  again,  0 
Lord  of  hosts  ;  cause  thy  face  to  shine,  and  we  shall  be  saved/     When 
God  once  showeth  the  evidences  of  his  favour  and  reconciliation  to 
them,  other  mercies  come  of  their  own  accord.     Oh  !  then,  be  assured 
of  the  favour  of  God. 

3.  If  we  continue  in  our  misery,  a  look  from  God  will  sweeten  all : 
'  We  glory  in  tribulation  also,  because  of  the  love  of  God  shed  abroad 
in  our  hearts,  by  his  Spirit  given  to  us,'  Kom.  v.  3-5.     To  be  in  favour 
with  God  is  enough,  and  sweetens  the  bitterest  of  all  our  troubles.   The 
comfort  of  the  creature  may  be  supplied  with  this  greater  comfort,  that 
if  affliction  be  not  removed,  it  is  made  light  to  us. 

Use  1.  Beg  earnestly  for  God's  look.  It  is  an  ill  sign  to  be  careless 
and  regardless  of  it.  Surely  the  heart  is  too  much  carried  to  earthly 
comforts,  if  you  care  not  how  God  standeth  affected  to  you.  God 
deliver  us  from  such  a  sottish  spirit,  that  we  should  neither  care  for 
God's  frowns  nor  smiles,  nor  be  sensible  of  his  coming  and  going. 
David  said,  '  Mine  eyes  are  ever  towards  the  Lord,'  Ps.  xxv.  15,  to 
observe  him  and  his  postures;  but  most  men,  their  eyes  are  ever 
towards  temporal  accidents,  how  the  times  smile  or  frown  upon  them  ; 
or  if  they  think  of  God,  they  judge  of  his  respect  to  them  by  outward 
things,  but  have  not  any  regard  to  his  favour,  whether  God  be  recon 
ciled  to  them  or  angry  with  them. 

2.  Improve  it  to  hope :  Ps.  Ixxx.  14,  '  Keturn,  we  beseech  thee,  O 
God  of  hosts,  look  down  from  heaven,  and  behold  and  visit  this  vine/ 
Will  God  love  his  people,  and  take  notice  of  their  sorrows,  and  not 
help  them  ?  God  will  manifest  his  respects  and  kindness  to  his  people 
by  some  visible  deliverance,  when  it  shall  be  good  for  them. 


VER.  132.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  369 

3.  Be  such  as  God  will  regard,  and  have  an  eye  unto.     Such  are — 

[1.]  The  broken-hearted,  that  have  a  tender  conscience,  affected 
deeply  with  what  the  word  speaketh  concerning  their  everlasting  con 
dition  :  Isa.  Ixvi.  2,  '  To  this  man  will  I  look,  even  to  him  that  is 
poor  and  of  a  contrite  spirit,  and  trembleth  at  my  word.'  The  word 
of  God  passeth  sentence  upon  men  ;  most  regard  it  not.  Now  whilst 
they  look  not  after  God,  they  have  no  promise  God  will  look  after 
them.  Indeed  by  his  preventing  grace  he  is  found  of  them  that  look 
not  for  him  ;  but  then  before  they  have  any  smiles  from  God's  counte 
nance,  they  are  first  humbled  and  brought  to  trouble  :  Isa.  Ivii.  15-18, 
'  For  thus  saith  the  high  and  lofty  one  that  inhabiteth  eternity,  whose 
name  is  holy,  I  dwell  in  the  high  and  holy  place,  with  him  also  that 
is  of  a  contrite  and  humble  spirit,  to  revive  the  spirits  of  the  humble, 
and  to  -revive  the  heart  of  the  contrite  ones.  For  I  will  not  contend 
for  ever,  neither  will  I  be  always  wroth  ;  for  the  spirit  should  fail 
before  me,  and  the  souls  which  I  have  made.  For  the  iniquity  of  his 
oovetousness  I  was  wroth,  and  smote  him,  I  hid  me  and  was  wroth  ; 
he  went  on  frowardly  in  the  way  of  his  heart.  I  have  seen  his  ways, 
and  will  heal  him ;  I  will  lead  him  also,  and  restore  comforts  unto 
him.'  When  the  spirit  is  softened  by  a  deep  and  serious  remorse  for 
sin,  and  a  tender  sense  of  their  condition,  with  these  will  God  dwell, 
to  comfort,  relieve,  restore  them. 

[2.]  The  believer  :  Ps.  xxxiii.  18,  '  Behold  the  eye  of  the  Lord  is 
upon  them  that  fear  him,  upon  them  that  hope  in  his  mercy/  They 
that  look  for  God  shall  find  him. 

[3.]  The  sincere :  Ps.  xi.  7,  '  His  countenance  doth  behold  the 
upright'  He  hath  a  singular  care  of  them,  to  manifest  his  love  to 
them,  both  inwardly  and  outwardly.  A  good  conscience  presents 
itself  to  God  ;  none  but  such  will  say.  Look  upon  me.  Adam  hid 
himself  upon  his  transgression.  Hypocrites  cannot  trust  him. 

[4.J  Such  as  love  his  name.  It  is  the  description  and  mark  of  God's 
people  in  the  text,  they  love  God,  and  all  that  by  which  God  is 
especially  made  known.  To  these  God  will  look,  that  he  may  bless 
them,  and  comfort  them  with  his  love :  Eph.  vi.  24,  '  Grace  be  with 
them  that  love  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ  in  sincerity.'  God's  grace  and 
free  favour  is  to  them :  they  love  the  name  of  God  that  rejoice  to  see 
God  honoured,  known,  and  had  in  request  in  the  world,  to  be  owned 
to  be  such  as  he  is  by  themselves  and  others :  Isa.  xxvi.  8,  '  The 
desire  of  our  soul  is  to  thy  name,  and  to  the  remembrance  of  thee.' 
Their  great  desire  is,  that  God  may  be  exalted  in  their  own  hearts, 
and  in  the  hearts  of  others.  To  these  God  will  look,  who  take  care  to 
honour  God,  love  Christ,  and  keep  his  commandments :  John  xiv.  21, 
'  He  that  hath  my  commandments  and  keepeth  them,  he  it  is  that 
loveth  me  ;  and  he  that  loveth  me,  shall  be  loved  of  the  Father,  and 
I  will  love  him,  and  will  manifest  myself  to  him/ 

Secondly,  The  ground  and  cause  of  that  favour  he  expects,  '  Be 
merciful  unto  me/  David  begs  what  he  begs  upon  terms  of  grace. 

Doct.  God's  mercy  is  the  cause  of  all  his  favour  to  us,  or  gracious 
dealing  with  us. 

All  that  we  have  or  would  have  cometh  only  and  wholly  from  his 
mercy,  and  mere  mercy.  If  God  cast  but  a  look  upon  us,  or  visit  us 

VOL.  VIII.  2  A 


370  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEB.  CXLV. 

with  one  glimpse  of  kindness,  we  can  ascribe  it  to  no  other  cause. 
Only  mercy,  and  never  a  word  of  merit  should  be  in  the  mouth  of  a 
believer. 

1.  Because  there  was  nothing  in  us  to  move  him  to  be  thus  gracious 
to  us  :  Gen.  xxxii.  10,  '  I  am  not  worthy  of  the  least  of  all  thy  mercies, 
and  of  all  the  truth  which  thou  hast  showed  unto  thy  servant.'     Let 
us  ask  the  reason,  and  debate  the  cause  with  ourselves.     Why  doth  or 
should  God  do  this  for  me  ?    What  moveth  him  ?    Is  he  necessitated  ? 
Then  he  could  do  no  otherwise,  and  should  be  kind  to  all.     Would  he 
be  unjust  if  he  did  not  ?     Whereby  have  I  obliged  him  ?     '  Who  hath 
given  to  God  first,  and  it  shall  be  recompensed  to  him  again  ? '  Rom, 
xi.  35.     Could  you  enter  your  action  and  plea  against  him  ?     Before 
what  bar  and  tribunal  ?     And  with  what  arguments  will  you  manage 
your  cause  ?     How  will  the  beam  plead  against  the  sun,  the  stream 
against  the  fountain  ?     Is  it  a  debt  to  your  kind  and  rank  of  being  ? 
How  many  of  the  same  flesh  and  blood  are  equal  in  nature,  but  un 
equal  in  condition  ?  nay,  in  the  same  vicinity  and  neighbourhood,  not 
only  Americans,  but  of  your  own  nation  and  country  ?     What  did 
God  see  more  in  you  than  in  them  of  the  same  calling  and  profession  ? 
4  Two  grinding  at  a  mill,  one  shall  be  taken  and  the  other  left,'  Luke 
xvii.  35.    Of  the  same  parentage  ?    '  Was  not  Jacob  Esau's  brother  ?  ' 
Indeed,  what  did  God  see  to  move  him  to  give  you  the  first  grace  ? 
Rom.  ix.  16,  '  So  then  it  is  not  of  him  that  willeth,  nor  of  him  that 
runneth,  but  of  God  that  showeth  mercy/ 

2.  There  is  much  to  the  contrary,  a  manifest  unworthiness  and 
contrary  desert  to  what  God  bestoweth  on  us. 

[1.]  A  general  unworthiness  in  all  the  sons  of  Adam.  Man  was  left 
as  a  condemned  malefactor  in  the  hands  of  the  law,  without  all  hope 
and  possibility  of  recovery,  under  sin :  Rom.  vii.  14,  '  I  am  carnal, 
sold  under  sin.'  Under  a  curse  :  Eph.  ii.  3,  '  We  were  by  nature  the 
children  of  wrath,  even  as  others.'  And  that  God  should  regard  such ! 

[2.]  A  particular  unworthiness,  before  conversion  and  after. 

(1.)  Before  conversion :  Titus  iii.  3,  '  For  we  ourselves  also  were 
sometimes  foolish,  disobedient,  deceived,  serving  divers  lusts  and 
pleasures/  &c.  We  deserve  to  be  abhorred  and  cast  out  of  God's 
presence,  and  might  justly  expect  his  vengeance  rather  than  his  bounty 
and  goodness,  his  anger  and  frowns  rather  than  the  light  of  his 
countenance. 

(2.)  Since  conversion  :  James  iii.  2,  '  In  many  things  we  offend 
all ;'  Eccles.  vii.  20,  '  There  is  not  a  just  man  upon  earth,  that  doeth 
good,  and  sinneth  not.'  There  are  mixtures  of  evil,  imperfections  of 
holy  things.  Well,  then — 

1.  Let  mercy  be  all  your  plea  when  you  have  any  favour  to  seek 
from  God.  We  cannot  claim  any  good  upon  any  other  right  and 
title.  Justice  will  except  against  you,  and  conscience  will  take  its 
part.  What  have  you  to  say  but  on  that :  Dan.  ix.  IS,  *  We  do  not 
present  our  supplications  before  thee  for  our  righteousnesses,  but  for 
thy  great  mercies.'  We  have  no  other  motive  that  will  become  God, 
nor  bear  weight  in  our  own  consciences,  but  only  God  hath  set  up  a 
court  where  grace  taketh  the  throne,  and  giveth  out  pardons  and 
blessings  to  sinners. 


VER.  132.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  371 

2.  When  you  have  once  tasted  one  pledge  of  God's  love  vouchsafed  to 
you,  let  this  kindle  coals  in  your  bosoms,  and  warm  your  hearts  with 
love  to  God.     It  is  not  only  his  condescension  to  take  notice  of  you, 
but  his  mercy  to  show  any  favour  and  kindness  to  you :  2  Sam.  vii. 
19,  'Is  this  the  manner  of  men,  0  Lord  God ? }     Is  this  the  manner 
of  men,  to  requite  good  for  evil  ?     Who  am  I  ? 

3.  Be  contented  with  your  measures.     Where  nothing  is  deserved, 
anything  should  be  kindly  taken.      Grace  communicateth  itself  to 
whom  and  in  what  measure  it  will :  Mat.  xx.  15,  '  Is  it  not  lawful  for 
me  to  do  what  I  will  with  mine  own  ?'    If  we  are  kept  under,  and  in 
great  extremities,  he  might  have  dealt  worse  with  us :  Lam.  iii.  22, 
'  It  is  of  the  Lord's  mercies  that  we  are  not  consumed,  because  his 
compassions  fail  not/     If  we  had  a  price  in  our  hands  to  procure 
better,  we  might  complain.     Now  all  is  free  and  undeserved,  we  should 
admire  and  submit. 


SERMON  CXLVI. 

As  tliou  usest  to  do  unto  those  that  love  thy  name. — VER.  132. 

HERE  you  have — 

Thirdly,  The  terms  of  the  dispensation,  '  As  thou  usest  to  do  unto 
those  that  love  thy  name/  The  word  is — 

1.  According  to  the  law  and  right. 

2.  According  to  the  use  and  custom,  according  to  the  mercy  promised, 
and  usually  bestowed  upon  those  that  love  thee.     Both  senses  not  im 
proper. 

First,  The  first  sense,  according  to  the  law  and  right.  Prout  esi 
jus  diligentium  nomen  tuum,  so  some.  The  vulgar,  Secundum  judi- 
cium.  Amyraldus  glosseth  thus,  Pro  ilia  misericordia  quam  inter  te 
et  timentes  nomen  tuum  constituisti.  Others,  Secundum  jus,  et  fcedus 
illud.  Take  it  thus,  and  it  beareth  a  good  sense ;  for  there  is  the 
obligation  of  justice,  and  the  obligation  of  grace ;  a  judgment  of 
righteousness,  and  a  judgment  of  mercy.  This  merciful  judgment  the 
saints  appeal  unto.  I  cannot  exclude  this ;  for  otherwise  this  verse 
would  not  have  one  of  those  ten  words  which  express  the  word  or  law 
of  God. 

Doct.  That  there  is  a  gracious  way  of  right  established  between 
God  and  his  people,  according  to  which  they  may  expect  mercies. 

This  will  be  best  understood  by  comparing  the  two  covenants,  their 
agreement  and  disagreement,  not  in  all  things,  but  such  as  are 
pertinent. 

1.  Let  us  see  how  the  two  covenants  agree. 

Jl.]  They  agree  in  their  author.  God  appointed  both,  and  man  is 
y  to  accept  or  take  hold  of  what  is  offered.  Man  was  not  thinking 
of  any  such  thing  when  God  instituted  the  first :  Gen.  ii.  17,  '  But  of 
the  tree  of  knowledge  of  good  and  evil,  thou  shalt  not  eat  of  it ;  for  in 
the  day  thou  eatest  thereof  thou  shalt  surely  die ; '  or  revealed  the 
second :  Gen.  iii.  15,  '  It  shall  bruise  thy  head,  and  thou  shalt  bruise 


372  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiR.  CXLVI. 

his  heel.'  For  God  to  enter  into  a  covenant  with  the  creature,  either 
of  works  or  grace,  was  an  act  of  condescension  ;  and  who  is  he  that 
could  bid  the  Almighty  humble  himself,  and  prescribe  conditions  and 
laws  of  commerce  between  God  and  us,  but  only  God  alone  ?  Man 
did  not  give  the  conditions,  or  treat  with  God  about  the  making  of 
them,  what  they  should  be ;  but  only  was  bound  to  submit  to  what 
God  was  pleased  to  prescribe.  In  the  covenant  of  works  God  gave 
forth  the  conditions  of  life,  and  a  law  and  a  penalty ;  and  in  the 
covenant  of  grace,  man  is  bound  to  submit  to  the  conditions  without 
disputing.  They  are  not  left  free  and  indifferent  for  us  to  debate 
upon,  and  to  modify,  and  bring  them  down  to  our  own  liking  and 
humour;  but  to  yield  to  them,  and  take  hold  upon  them,  not  to 
appoint  them :  Isa.  Ivi.  4,  '  Thus  saith  the  Lord  unto  the  eunuchs 
that  keep  my  sabbaths,  and  choose  the  things  that  please  me,  and 
take  hold  of  my  covenant ; '  Rom.,  x.  3,  '  For  they  being  ignorant  of 
God's  righteousness,  and  going  about  to  establish  their  own  right 
eousness,  have  not  submitted  themselves  unto  the  righteousness  of 
God/ 

[2.]  They  agree  in  the  moving  cause,  which  in  both  was  the  grace  of 
God.  The  first  covenant,  it  was  grace  for  God  to  make  it.  It  was  the 
grace  of  God  to  accept  of  man's  perfect  obedience,  so  as  to  make  him 
sure  of  eternal  life  on  the  performance  of  it.  Though  the  last  covenant 
hath  the  honour  by  way  of  eminency  to  be  styled  the  covenant  of  grace, 
yet  the  first  was  so,  though  the  condition  of  it  was  perfect  obedience, 
and  the  reward  had  respect  to  personal  righteousness.  It  was  of  grace 
also  that  God  would  at  all  covenant  and  enter  into  bonds  with  man, 
who  was  not  his  equal,  and  give  his  word  to  any  of  the  works  of  his 
hands.  It  was  grace  that  .endowed  man  with  original  righteousness, 
and  fitted  him,  and  enabled  him  to  keep  that  covenant.  His  absolute 
sovereign  owed  him  no  more  than  the  rest  of  the  creatures  which  he 
had  made.  Grace  engaged  the  reward,  there  was  no  more  merit  in 
Adam's  obedience  than  in  ours :  Luke  xvii.  10,  '  So  likewise  ye,  when 
ye  shall  have  done  all  those  things  which  are  commanded  you,  say, 
We  are  unprofitable  servants ;  we  have  done  that  which  was  our  duty 
to  do.'  Nor  did  his  work  bear  proportion  to  the  eternal  reward. 

[3.]  They  agree  in  the  parties,  God  and  man  in  both  covenants,  not 
any  other  creatures  superior  or  inferior  to  man,  rational  or  irrational ; 
the  principal  contracting  parties  were  public  persons,  Adam,  Jesus : 
Bom.  v.  18,  '  Therefore  as  by  the  offence  of  one  man  judgment  came 
upon  all  to  condemnation ;  even  so  by  the  righteousness  of  one  the 
free  gift  came  upon  all  men  unto  justification  of  life ;'  1  Cor.  xv.  47, 
'  The  first  man  is  of  the  earth  earthy ;  the  second  man  is  the  Lord 
from  heaven.'  The  first  and  second  Adam,  for  them  and  all  their 
heirs. 

[4.]  That  God  giveth  sufficiency  of  strength  in  both  these  covenants 
to  the  parties  with  whom  he  made  them  to  fulfil  the  conditions  thereof. 
To  Adam :  Eccles.  vii.  29,  '  Lo  this  only  have  I  found,  that  God  hath 
made  man  upright,  but  they  have  sought  out  many  inventions/  To 
Adam  natural,  to  us  supernatural  strength  :  Ezek.  xxxvi.  27,  '  And  I 
will  put  ruy  spirit  within  you,  and  cause  you  to  walk  in  my  statutes, 
and  ye  shall  keep  my  judgments  and  do  them ;'  Heb.  viii.  10,  '  This  is 


VER.  132.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  373 

the  covenant  that  I  will  make  with  the  house  of  Israel  after  those  days, 
saith  the  Lord  ;  I  will  put  my  laws  into  their  mind,  and  write  them  in 
their  hearts.' 

[5.]  In  both  God  kept  up  his  sovereignty,  and  by  his  condescension 
did  not  part  with  anything  of  his  dominion  over  man.  In  the  cove 
nant  of  works  he  ruled  by  a  law  written  on  men's  hearts  :  Rom.  ii.  15, 
'  Which  show  the  work  of  the  law  written  in  their  hearts,  their  con 
sciences  also  bearing  witness,  and  their  thoughts  the  meanwhile  accusing 
or  else  excusing  one  another.'  So  by  grace  the  believer  is  not  freed 
from  the  law  of  nature,  which  being  almost  obliterated  and  blotted  out 
of  the  heart  of  man,  and  become  very  illegible,  it  pleased  God  to  set 
it  forth  in  a  new  edition,  and  to  write  it  over  again  in  the  heart  of  a 
renewed  man  :  Heb.  viii.  10,  '  I  will  put  my  law  into  their  minds,  and 
write  it  in  their  hearts  ;'  Eph.  iv.  24,  '  And  that  ye  put  on  the  new 
man,  which  after  God  is  created  in  righteousness  and  true  holiness.' 
Though  God  admitted  us  to  new  conditions  of  favour,  yet  he  still 
requireth  subjection  on  our  part,  and  that  we  own  him  as  Lord  and 
sovereign,  requiring  obedience  and  service  at  our  hands,  or  else  he 
taketh  a  liberty  to  visit  our  transgressions  with  rods  :  Ps.  Ixxxix.  31, 
32,  '  If  they  break  my  statutes,  and  keep  not  my  commandments,  then 
will  I  visit  their  transgression  with  the  rod,  and  their  iniquity  with, 
stripes.' 

[6.]  In  both  covenants  there  is  a  mutual  obligation  on  both  parties ; 
this  ariseth  from  the  very  nature  of  a  covenant.  Contractus  est  con- 
sensio  ad  constituendam  obligationem,  qua  alter  alteri  Jit  obnoxius. 
In  every  covenant  there  is  a  tie  on  both  sides,  and  some  reason  of  right. 
There  is  no  obligation  of  debt  between  God  and  us,  but  an  obligation  of 
grace.  Deus  non  est  debitor,  saith  Aquinas,  quia  non  est  ad  alia  ordi- 
natus ;  reddit  debita,  nulla  debet.  His  covenant  doth  infer  a  debt  of 
favour,  not  of  justice.  We  may  challenge  him  upon  his  promise  :  Ps. 
cxix.  49,  '  Remember  the  word  unto  thy  servant,  upon  which  thou 
hast  caused  me  to  hope.'  But  God  doth  it  not  with  respect  to  our 
work,  but  his  own  promise.  In  covenants  of  justice  between  man  and 
man,  there  is  a  proportion  and  correspondence  between  the  conditions 
on  the  one  part  and  the  other.  In  the  covenant  between  God  and  us 
is  a  deed  of  favour,  containing  large  grants  of  privileges,  and  noble 
conditions,  upon  terms  and  re- stipulations,  which  had  no  proportion  to 
the  favours  granted.  As  if  some  prince  or  person  of  honour  should,  out 
of  pure  love  to  a  poor  mean  virgin  that  hath  no  portion,  covenant  to  give 
her  a  rich  dowry  and  jointure,  suitable  to  his  own  degree  ;  so  doth  God 
with  us  in  the  covenant  of  grace :  Ezek.  xvi.  8,  '  Now  when  I  passed 
by  thee  and  looked  on  thee,  behold  thy  time  was  a  time  of  love,  and  I 
spread  my  skirt  over  thee,  and  covered  thy  nakedness,  yea,  I  sware 
unto  thee,  and  entered  into  a  covenant  with  thee,  saith  the  Lord  God, 
and  thou  becamest  mine  ;'  Jer.  xxxi.  3,  '  The  Lord  hath  appeared  of 
old  unto  thee,  saying,  Yea,  I  have  loved  thee  with  an  everlasting  love  ; 
therefore  with  loving-kindness  have  I  drawn  thee.'  Indeed,  in  the 
covenant  of  works,  justice  hath  a  greater  predominant  influence  than 
grace ;  though  in  exact  justice,  God  is  not  bound  to  remunerate  us 
there  neither. 

[7.]  The  conditions  in  both  covenants  were  suitable  to  the  ends  and 


374  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXLYI. 

scope  appointed.  In  the  first  covenant  God  would  show  forth  justice 
in  rewarding  man's  works  and  his  own  obedience.  Now  what  more 
suitable  condition  than  works,  without  the  least  indulgence  in  case  of 
failing  ?  Gal.  iii.  10,  '  Cursed  is  every  one  that  continueth  not  in  all 
things  which  are  written  in  the  book  of  the  law  to  do  them.'  And 
what  more  suitable  to  show  forth  grace  than  the  condition  of  faith 
required  by  the  covenant  of  grace  ?  Kom.  iv.  16,  '  Therefore  it  was  of 
faith,  that  it  might  be  of  grace,  to  the  end  the  promise  might  be  sure 
to  all  the  seed ;  not  to  that  only  which  is  of  the  law,  but  to  that  also 
which  is  of  the  faith  of  Abraham,  who  is  the  father  of  us  all/  So  he 
would  make  it  full  of  comfort  to  the  creature,  and  honour  to  his  justice. 

2.  The  differences  between  these  two  covenants. 

[1.1  They  differ  in  the  ends,  both  as  to  man  and  God. 

(1.)  As  to  man.  The  end  of  the  first  covenant  was  to  preserve  and 
continue  man  in  that  happiness  wherein  it  found  him,  and  in  which  he 
was  created ;  but  the  covenant  of  grace  was  for  the  reparation  and 
restitution  of  mankind  to  that  happiness  which  he  had  lost,  and  from 
which  he  had  fallen.  The  law  saith  to  man  in  his  best,  his  pure  and 
perfect  estate,  Continue  in  it.  It  speaketh  to  the  innocent,  that  they 
may  continue  in  their  original  happiness.  The  gospel  saith,  Be  ye 
reconciled  and  renewed :  2  Cor.  v.  20,  '  Now  then  we  are  ambassadors 
for  Christ,  as  though  God  did  beseech  you  by  us ;  we  pray  you  in 
Christ's  stead,  be  ye  reconciled  to  God  ;'  for  it  speaketh  to  the  fallen 
and  miserable  :  it  is  a  restitution  of  what  was  lost,  and  redeeming  us 
from  misery  and  sin.  The  one  was  made  with  man  in  statu  institute, 
as  he  came  out  of  God's  hand,  in  his  primitive  integrity,  when  he  was 
a  lively  resemblance  of  God,  and  his  abilities  for  obedience  not  yet 
broken.  The  other  covenant  was  made  with  him  in  statu  destitute, 
when  at  the  worst,  sinful  and  wretched,  in  his  fallen  estate,  disabled 
for  obedience  to  God :  Rom.  viii.  3,  '  For  what  the  law  could  not  do, 
in  that  it  was  weak  through  the  flesh,  God  sending  his  own  Son  in  the 
likeness  of  sinful  flesh,  and  for  sin  condemned  sin  in  the  flesh/  In 
the  one  there  was  perfect  amity  between  the  confederates,  God  and 
Adam,  and  this  covenant  was  made  for  the  continuance  and  standing 
thereof ;  but  there  was  enmity  and  distance  between  the  parties  when 
the  new  covenant  was  set  afoot ;  and  this  was  to  be  taken  away,  and 
the  breach  made  up ;  and  therefore  it  is  called  a  covenant  of  peace : 
Isa.  liv.  10,  *  For  the  mountains  shall  depart,  and  the  hills  shall  be 
removed,  but  my  kindness  shall  not  depart  from  thee,  neither  shall  the 
covenant  of  my  peace  be  removed,  saith  the  Lord,  that  hath  mercy  on 
thee/ 

(2.)  As  to  God.  In  the  one,  God  is  considered  as  a  gracious  and 
merciful  redeemer,  who  being  displeased  with  them  for  the  breach  of 
the  first  covenant,  did  enter  into  a  new  covenant  to  show  the  riches  of 
his  grace  and  mercy  :  Eph.  i.  6,  '  Unto  the  praise  of  the  glory  of  his 
grace,  wherein  he  hath  made  us  accepted  in  the  beloved.'  Man  fallen 
was  not  a  suitable  object  of  God's  love,  as  man  in  innocency  ;  he  was 
then  lovely,  and  an  alluring  object,  because  of  the  beauty  God  had  put 
upon  him  ;  but  now  he  was  loathsome,  like  an  infant  in  his  blood  and 
filthiness :  Ezek.  xvi.  6-8,  '  When  I  passed  by  thee,  and  saw  thee  pol 
luted  in  thine  own  blood,  I  said  unto  thee,  when  thou  wast  in  thy 


VER.  132.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxrx.  375 

blood.  Live ;  yea,  I  said  unto  thee,  when  tliou  wast  in  thy  blood,  Live. 
I  have  caused  thee  to  multiply  as  the  bud  of  the  field,  and  thou  hast 
increased  and  waxed  great ;  and  thou  art  come  to  excellent  ornaments ; 
thy  breasts  are  fashioned,  and  thy  hair  is  grown,  whereas  thou  wert 
naked  and  bare.  Now  when  I  passed  by  thee,  and  looked  upon  thee, 
behold  thy  time  was  the  time  of  love  ;  and  I  spread  my  skirt  over 
thee,  and  covered  thy  nakedness ;  yea,  I  sware  unto  thee,  and  entered 
into  a  covenant  with  thee,  and  thou  becamest  mine,  saith  the  Lord.' 
Therefore  God  had  a  different  end  as  to  himself.  The  glory  of  his 
creating  bounty  was  the  end  in  the  old  covenant,  the  glory  of  his 
redeeming  grace  and  pardoning  mercy  was  the  end  in  the  new  cove 
nant,  showed  in  the  recovery  of  lost  sinners.  In  the  one,  he  intended 
the  advancement  of  those  attributes  that  were  known  to  man  by  the 
law  and  light  of  nature,  as  wisdom,  power,  goodness,  bounty,  and 
justice  :  Ps.  viii.  9,  '  0  Lord  our  Lord,  how  excellent  is  thy  name  in  all 
the  earth  ! '  The  end  of  the  covenant  of  grace  was  to  set  forth  redeem 
ing  mercy :  Bom.  v.  21,  '  That  as  sin  hath  reigned  unto  death,  even  so 
might  grace  reign  through  righteousness  unto  eternal  life,  through 
Jesus  Christ  our  Lord.'  If  the  creature  had  never  been  in  misery, 
mercy  had  never  been  known,  and  grace  had  not  been  so  glorious,  as  in 
giving  Christ.  All  the  natural  attributes  of  God  receive  a  new  lustre 
in  Christ. 

[2.]  They  differ  in  their  nature.  The  covenant  of  works  stood  more 
by  commands,  and  less  by  promises  ;  but  the  covenant  of  grace  stand- 
eth  more  by  promises,  and  less  by  commands :  therefore  called  the 
promise,  Gal.  iii.  18,  '  For  if  the  inheritance  be  of  the  law,  it  is  no  more 
of  promise ;  but  God  gave  it  to  Abraham  by  promise.'  The  commands 
and  promises  were  not  commensurate.  There  was  not  a  promise  in 
that  covenant  for  every  command  of  the  law  of  nature,  but  in  the 
gospel  God  promiseth  what  he  requireth.  In  the  covenant  of  works, 
justice  is  the  rule  of  God's  dealing ;  for  though  he  entered  into  that 
covenant,  and  promised  a  reward  out  of  grace  ;  yet  being  entered  into 
it,  justice  holdeth  the  balance,  and  weigheth  the  works  of  men,  and 
giveth  to  every  man  according  to  his  works,  what  is  due  to  him :  Rom. 
ii.  6-8,  '  Who  will  render  to  every  man  according  to  his  deeds  ; 
to  them  who  by  patient  continuance  in  well-doing  seek  for  life,  and 
glory,  and  immortality,  eternal  life.  But  unto  them  that  are  conten 
tious,  and  do  not  obey  the  truth,  but  obey  unrighteousness,  indigna 
tion  and  wrath/  &c.  But  the  rule  of  God's  dealing  in  the  new  cove 
nant  is  grace.  The  covenant  of  works  was  more  independent  on  God 
and  grace  without  man,  and  more  dependent  on  man  and  grace  within 
himself.  In  it  man  was  left  to  stand  by  his  own  strength,  to  be  justi 
fied  upon  his  own  righteousness,  God  having  furnished  him  with  a 
stock  at  first,  or  a  sufficiency  of  power  to  keep  that  covenant.  But  the 
covenant  of  grace  findeth  us  without  strength  ;  therefore  we  are  kept 
in  dependence  upon  another :  Ps.  Ixxxix.  19,  *  I  have  laid  help  upon 
one  that  is  mighty;'  and  Phil.  iv.  13,  'I  can  do  all  things  through 
Christ  which  strengtheneth  me.'  Man  was  to  keep  the  first  covenant, 
but  here  in  effect  the  covenant  keepeth  us :  1  Peter  i.  5,  '  Who  are  kept 
by  the  power  of  God  through  faith  unto  salvation;'  Jer.  xxxii.  40, 
'  And  I  will  make  an  everlasting  covenant  with  them,  that  I  will  not 


376  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEB.  CXLVI. 

turn  away. from  them  to  do  them  good  ;  but  I  will  put  my  fear  in  their 
hearts,  that  they  shall  not  depart  from  me.' 

[3.J  In  the  terms.  Unsinning  obedience  is  the  condition  of  the 
covenant  of  works.  The  covenant  of  works  is  wholly  made  void,  and 
the  promise  thereof  of  none  effect,  by  any  one  sin,  without  any  hope  of 
cure  or  remedy.  Once  a  sinner,  and  for  ever  miserable ;  as  the  angels 
for  one  sin  were  thrown  down  from  heaven,  and  '  reserved  in  chains  of 
darkness  unto  the  judgment  of  the  great  day,'  Jude  6.  It  admitteth 
of  no  such  thing  as  repentance,  neither  doth  it  offer  any  provision  for 
such ;  it  speaketh  much  to  the  whole,  nothing  to  the  sick  ;  it  maketh 
a  promise  to  the  righteous,  but  none  to  sinners.  But  the  covenant  of 
grace  is  otherwise  :  Mat.  ix.  13,  '  I  will  have  mercy,  and  not  sacrifice  ; 
for  I  am  not  come  to  call  the  righteous,'  but  sinners  to  repentance : 
Acts  v.  31,  *  Him  hath  God  exalted  with  his  right  hand,  to  be  a  prince 
and  a  saviour,  for  to  give  repentance  to  Israel,  and  forgiveness  of  sins.' 
Every  failing  doth  not  make  void  the  covenant,  no  not  every  grosser 
fault :  Ps.  Ixxxix.  33,  34,  *  Nevertheless  my  loving-kindness  I  will 
not  utterly  take  from  him,  nor  suffer  my  faithfulness  to  fail :  my  cove 
nant  will  I  not  break,  nor  alter  the  thing  that  is  gone  out  of  my  lips/ 
The  first  covenant  is  an  uncomfortable  covenant  to  a  sinner,  and  can 
be  only  comfortable  to  a  perfect  righteous  person  ;  for  in  case  of  the 
least  failing  it  speaketh  nothing  but  wrath  and  the  curse.  But  the 
covenant  of  grace  is  comfortable  to  sinners,  it  offereth  pardon  to  them. 
As  to  the  first  covenant,  it  is  impossible  to  be  fulfilled  by  man  in  the 
state  of  corruption :  Rom.  viii.  3,  '  What  the  law  could  not  do,  in  that 
it  was  weak  through  the  flesh.'  Since  the  day  that  Adam  fell,  never 
did  nor  could  any  man  fulfil  this  covenant.  Well,  then,  the  demands 
of  this  covenant  cannot  be  satisfied  without  a  continuation  in  all  things 
written  therein,  in  height  of  exactness  and  perfection.  But  the  gospel 
admits  of  a  sincere,  uniform  obedience  as  perfect :  2  Cor.  viii.  12,  '  But 
if  there  be  first  a  willing  mind,  it  is  accepted  according  to  that  a  man 
hath,  and  not  according  to  that  he  hath  not.'  There  is  a  merciful  lenity 
as  to  acceptance,  though  the  rule  is  as  strict :  Mai.  iii.  17,  '  And  they 
shall  be  mine,  saith  the  Lord  of  hosts,  in  the  day  when  I  make  up  my 
jewels;  and  I  will  spare  them  as  a  man  spare th  his  own  son,  that 
serveth  him.' 

Use  1.  Then  enter  into  this  covenant.  You  have  no  benefit  by  it 
till  you  personally  enter  into  the  bond  of  it.  The  covenant  of  works 
was  made  with  man  generally,  universally  considered,  with  Adam  as 
a  public  person,  representing  all  his  posterity ;  but  the  covenant  of 
grace  is  made  with  man  particularly,  and  personally  considered,  and 
his  consent  is  expressly  required,  or  else  it  can  convey  no  benefit  to  us. 
That  was  a  law,  and  so  did  bind  whether  man  did  consent  or  no.  This 
is  a  privilege,  Christ  draweth  to  consent  to  him,  doth  not  force  us 
against  our  will :  John  i.  12,  '  But  as  many  as  received  him,  to  them 
gave  he  power  to  become  the  sons  of  God,  even  to  them  that  believe 
on  his  name.'  Will  you  own  him  as  the  Son  of  God,  and  Redeemer  of 
the  world  ?  Every  man  must  consent  for  himself.  The  effects  of  the 
first  covenant  are  uncomfortable  for  the  present,  the  spirit  of  bondage: 
Heb.  ii.  15,  *  And  deliver  them  who  through  fear  of  death  were  all  their 
lifetime  subject  to  bondage.'  But  dreadful  hereafter :  James  ii.  13, 


VEK.  132.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  377 

'  He  shall  have  judgment  without  mercy.'  When  none  to  mediate  for 
them,  they  have  to  do  with  justice,  strict  justice.  The  least  sin  is 
enough  to  rain  you,  it  will  pass  by  no  transgression,  remit  no  part  of 
your  punishment,  it  will  have  satisfaction  to  the  utmost  farthing,  ad 
mits  of  no  pardon,  no  advocate,  regardeth  no  tears.  What  justice  can 
give  you,  that  you  may  look  for.  If  justice  speak  no  good,  promise  no 
good,  you  are  to  look  for  none ;  for  justice  doth  all  in  the  covenant, 
under  which  you  stand :  Ps.  cxxx.  3,  '  If  thou,  Lord,  shouldest  mark 
iniquities,  0  Lord,  who  shall  stand  ? '  What  you  may  claim  as  a  due 
debt,  that  you  may  look  for ;  that  covenant  gives  no  gift.  Oh  !  then, 
give  the  hand  to  the  Lord  :  2  Chron.  xxx.  8,  '  But  be  ye  not  stiff-necked, 
as  your  fathers  were,  but  yield  yourselves  to  the  Lord,  and  enter  into 
his  sanctuary,  which  he  hath  sanctified  for  ever,  and  serve  the  Lord 
your  God.'  Receive  God's  condition :  Acts  ix.  6,  '  Lord,  what  wilt 
thou  have  me  to  do  ? '  You  have  not  leave  to  choose  and  refuse. 

Use  2.  Let  us  bless  God,  and  admire  his  grace  in  bringing  about 
this  new  covenant. 

1.  Man  irreparably  had  broken  the  first  covenant,  fallen  from  his 
state  of  life ;  so  that  all  the  world  is  lost  under  guilt  and  a  curse  :  Rom. 
iii.  19,  '  That  every  month  may  be  stopped,  and  all  the  world  may 
become  guilty  before  God.' 

2.  Upon  this  fundamental  breach,  the  Lord  was  acquitted  and  ab 
solved  from  the  promise  of  life,  in  this  way  of  works ;  for  man  could 
never  stand  in  that  court :  Rom.  viii.  3,  '  For  what  the  law  could  not 
do,  in  that  it  was  weak  through  the  flesh,'  <fcc.     Then — 

3.  God  taking  occasion  by  this  miserable  estate,  opened  a  door  of 
hope  by  Christ :  2  Cor.  v.  19,  '  God  was  in  Christ,  reconciling  the 
world  unto  himself,  not  imputing  their  trespasses  unto  them.'     God 
hath  set  up  a  new  court  of  righteousness  and  life,  where  sinners  may 
appear,  where  grace  taketh  the  throne,  and  the  judge  is  Christ,  and 
the  gospel  the  rule,  and  faith  and  sincere  obedience  accepted. 

4.  The  Lord  giveth  notice  to  fallen  man,  and  sendeth  him  word, 
that  if  he  will  come  to  this  court,  and  put  himself  under  the  laws 
thereof,  he  shall  be  delivered  from  the  curse  :  Luke  i.  77-79,  '  To  give 
knowledge  of  salvation  to  his  people  by  the  remission  of  their  sins, 
through  the  tender  mercies  of  our  God,  whereby  the  dayspring  from 
on  high  hath  visited  us,  to  give  light  to  them  that  sit  in  darkness  and 
in  the  shadow  of  death,  to  guide  their  feet  into  the  way  of  peace.' 

5.  Because  men  are  backward,  he  hunteth  and  pursueth  them  by 
the  curse  of  the  law,  and  the  sense  men  have  of  it,  to  take  sanctuary  at 
his  grace:  Heb.  vi.  18,  '  That  by  two  immutable  things,  in  which  it 
was  impossible  for  God  to  lie,  we  might  have  a  strong  consolation,  who 
have  fled  for  refuge  to  lay  hold  upon  the  hope  set  before  us/ 

6.  When  a  poor  creature  cometh,  he  receiveth    him    graciously : 
Jer.  iii.  12,  13,  '  Return  thou  backsliding  Israel,  saith  the  Lord,  and 
I  will  not  cause  mine  anger  to  fall  upon  you ;  for  I  am  merciful,  saith 
the  Lord,  and  I  will  not  keep  anger  for  ever :  only  acknowledge  thine 
iniquity,  that  thou  hast  transgressed  against  the  Lord   thy  God  ;  * 
1  John  i.  9,  '  If  we  confess  our  sins,  he  is  faithful  and  just  to  forgive 
us  our  sins,  and  to  cleanse  us  from  all  unrighteousness/    If  he  had  not 
set  up  another  court  of  righteousness,  no  tears,  no  repentance  could 


378  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXLYI. 

have  helped  us  ;  there  had  been  no  help  that  way.  Now  he  is  willing 
to  receive  you,  he  standeth  with  his  arms  open.  From  first  to  last  he 
dealeth  with  us  upon  terms  of  grace. 

Secondly,  Judgment  is  put  for  manner  and  custom  or  course : 
Gen.  xl.  13,  '  Thou  shalt  deliver  Pharaoh  his  cup  after  the  former 
manner,  Z33t£to3.  So  Josh.  vi.  15,  '  They  compassed  the  city  after 
the  same  manner/  The  same  word  again :  1  Sam.  ii.  13,  '  The 
priest's  custom  with  the  people  was/  &c. ;  1  Sam.  viii.  11,  Z33$Q 
"&fon,  '  This  will  be  the  manner  of  the  king  that  shall  reign  over 
you;'  1  Sam.  xxvii.  11,  'So  did  David,  and  so  will  be  his  manner/ 
So  in  other  places. 

Doct.  1.  That  it  is  God's  constant  method  to  encourage  all  those 
that  serve  him,  by  showing  to  them  all  manner  of  expressions  of 
favour  and  mercy. 

The  proposition  is  often  expressed  in  scripture  :  Ps.  xxv.  10,  '  All 
the  paths  of  the  Lord  are  mercy  and  truth,  unto  such  as  keep  his 
covenant  and  his  testimonies  ; '  Ps.  Ixxxiv.  11,  '  For  the  Lord  God 
is  a  sun  and  a  shield ;  the  Lord  God  will  give  grace  and  glory ; 
no  good  thing  will  he  withhold  from  them  that  walk  uprightly;' 
Ps.  xxxiv.  10,  *  The  young  lions  do  lack,  and  suffer  hunger ;  but  they 
that  seek  the  Lord  shall  not  want  any  good  thing/  David  presumeth 
it :  Ps.  xxiii.  6,  '  Surely  goodness  and  mercy  shall  follow  me  all  the 
days  of  my  life/  And  many  other  places. 

Object.  But  it  seemeth  to  be  contradicted  by  sense.  They  that  love 
God  most  are  most  calamitous,  and  have  many  afflictions. 

Ans.  1.  These  belong  to  God's  covenant,  and  are  expressions  of 
his  good-will  and  faithfulness  :  Ps.  cxix.  75,  '  I  know,  Lord,  that  thy 
judgments  are  right,  and^  that  thou  in  faithfulness  hast  afflicted  me/ 
God  were  not  faithful  nor  merciful  if  he  did  not  now  and  then  take 
the  rod  in  hand ;  our  need,  our  good  requireth  it :  Heb.  xii.  10,  '  For 
they  verily  for  a  few  days  chastened  us  after  their  own  pleasure,  but 
he  for  our  profit,  that  we  might  be  partakers  of  his  holiness.'  Dis 
cipline  is  necessary  for  a  child  as  food,  winter  as  necessary  as  summer, 
rainy  days  as  fair  days,  to  curb  the  wantonness  of  the  flesh,  and  to 
withdraw  the  fuel  of  our  lusts. 

2.  He  useth  to  show  mercy  to  people  in  their  afflictions,  to  cause 
light  to  rise  to  them  in  darkness :  2  Cor.  i.  5,  '  For  as  the  sufferings 
of  Christ  abound  in  us,  so  our  consolation  also  aboundeth  by  Christ/ 
We  are  not  capable  of  taking  in  spiritual  comforts  till  we  are  separated 
from  the  dregs  of  worldly  affections. 

3.  God  will  sanctify  afflictions  :  Kom.  viii.  28,  '  All  things  shall 
work  together  for  good  to  them  that  love  God/    And  he  will  finally 
deliver  when  the  season  calleth  for  it :  1  Cor.  x.  13,  '  There  hath  no 
temptation  taken  you,  but  such  as  is  common  to  man ;  but  God  is 
faithful,  who  will  not  suffer  you  to  be  tempted  above  what  you  are 
able,  but  will  with  the  temptation  also  make  a  way  to  escape,  that 
you  may  be  able  to  bear  it/ 

Object.  But  he  dealeth  more  hardly  with  them  than  others ;  he 
doth  not  punish  the  gross  iniquities  of  his  adversaries,  when  the  lesser 
failings  of  his  people  are  severely  chastised. 


VER.  132.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  379 

Ans.  It  is  meet  'judgment  should  begin  at  the  house  of  God,' 
1  Peter  iv.  17,  that  it  may  be  known  God  doth  not  favour  any  in 
their  sins :  Amos  iii.  2,  '  You  only  have  I  known  of  all  the  families 
of  the  earth  ;  therefore  will  I  punish  you  for  all  your  iniquities/ 
Their  sins,  though  small,  have  more  aggravations,  being  committed 
against  clearest  light,  dearest  love  :  Ezra  ix.  13,  '  And  after  all  that 
is  come  upon  us  for  our  evil  deeds,  should  we  again  break  thy  com 
mandments  ? '  Isa.  xxvi.  10,  *  Let  favour  be  showed  to  the  wicked,  yet 
will  he  not  learn  righteousness.'  God  is  jealous  over  his  people,  and 
careful  to  have  them  reclaimed  from  every  evil  course :  1  Cor.  xi. 
32,  '  But  when  we  are  judged  we  are  chastened  of  the  Lord,  that  we 
should  not  be  condemned  with  the  world/  In  the  bitterness  of  the 
rod  God  discovereth  the  vileness  of  their  sin ;  for  he  will  reclaim 
them  when  he  suffereth  others  to  walk  in  their  own  way. 

4.  His  enemies  shall  in  time  taste  the  dregs  of  the  cup,  whereof  his 
own  people  taste  a  little  :  Ps.  Ixxv.  8,  '  For  in  the  hand  of  the  Lord 
there  is  a  cup  ;  the  wine  is  red,  it  is  full  of  mixture,  he  poureth  out 
of  the  same  :  but  the  dregs  thereof  all  the  wicked  of  the  earth  shall 
wring  them  out  and  drink  them  ; '  Jer.  xxv.  29,  '  For  lo,  I  begin  to 
bring  evil  on  this  city  that  is  called  by  my  name,  and  shall  ye  be 
utterly  unpunished  ?     Ye  shall  not  be  unpunished,  for  I  will  call  for 
a  sword  upon  all  the  inhabitants  of  the  earth,  saith  the  Lord  of  hosts/ 
They  shall  have  the  bottom. 

5.  In  the  meantime  God's  people  have  his  love,  their  sins  are 
pardoned,  they  are  admitted  into  communion  with  him  ;  and  God's 
mercy  and  favour  to  his  people  must  not  be  judged  by  temporal 
accidents  :  Ps.  xvii.  14,  15,  '  From  men  which  are  thy  hand,  0  Lord, 
from  men  of  the  world,  which  have  their  portion  in  this  life,  whose 
bellies  thou  fillest  with  thy  hid  treasures ;  they  are  full  of  children, 
and  leave  the  rest  of  their  substance  to  their  babes.     As  for  me,  I  will 
behold  thy  face  in  righteousness  ;  I  shall  be  satisfied  when  I  awake 
with  thy  likeness/     Christ  gave  his  purse  to  Judas,  but  his  spirit  to 
the  other  disciples. 

Object.  But  God  desert eth  them ;  his  people  complain  of  it :  Isa.  lix. 
14,  '  But  Zion  said,  the  Lord  ,hath  forsaken  me,  and  my  God  hath 
forgotten  me/  Yea,  Christ  himself,  Mat.  xxvii.  46,  '  My  God,  my 
God,  why  hast  thou  forsaken  me  ?  ' 

Ans.  1.  There  is  a  distinct  consideration  of  Christ,  for  he  was  to 
bear  our  sorrows  :  Isa.  liii.  4,  c  Surely  he  hath  borne  our  griefs,  and 
carried  our  sorrows ; '  to  be  forsaken  for  a  while,  that  we  might  be 
received  for  ever. 

2.  God's  people  are  mistaken  ;  the  saints  complain  without  a  cause. 
Sense  maketh  lies  of  God  :  Ps.  xxxi.  22,  '  For  I  said  in  my  haste,  I 
am  cut  off  from  before  thine  eyes  ;  nevertheless  thou  heardest  the 
voice  of  my  supplication  when  I  cried  unto  thee  ; '  Ps.  Ixxvii.  9,  10, 
*  Hath  God  forgotten  to  be  gracious  ?  hath  he  in  anger  shut  up  his 
tender  mercies  ?    And  I  said,  This  is  my  infirmity  ;  but  I  will  remem 
ber  the  years  of  the  right  hand  of  the  Most  High/     The  disciples  had 
Christ  near  them  when  they  knew  it  not :  Luke  xxiv.  16,  '  Their  eyes 
were  holden,  that  they  could  not  know  him/ 

3.  Though  they  are  forsaken  for  a  while,  yet  not  for  ever  :  Isa.  liv. 


380  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEE.  CXLVI. 

7. 8,  '  For  a  small  moment  have  I  forsaken  thee,  but  with  great  mercy 
will  I  gather  thee.  In  a  little  wrath  I  have  hid  my  face  from  thee 
for  a  moment,  but  with  everlasting  kindness  will  I  have  mercy  on 
thee,  saith  the  Lord  thy  Redeemer/ 

Use.  Do  not  say  God  is  a  hard  master.  When  the  compute  is 
rightly  made,  and  you  trace  his  providence  through  all  the  passages  of 
your  lives,  there  is  more  good  than  evil.  Jacob  giveth  an  account 
of  his  life  :  Gen.  xlviii.  15,  16,  '  God,  before  whom  my  fathers  Abra 
ham  and  Isaac  did  walk,  the  God  which  fed  me  all  my  life  long  unto 
this  day,  the  angel  which  redeemed  me  from  all  evil,  bless  the  lads.' 
So  may  others  say. 

Doct.  2.  God's  accustomed  goodness  and  gracious  dispensations  to 
his  people  throughout  all  ages  should  encourage  us  in  waiting  upon 
him  and  praying  to  him. 

This  emboldeneth  me,  that  all  thy  servants  in  all  ages  have  found 
thee  gracious  and  merciful  unto  them. 

1.  From  God's  unchangeableness.     He  will  not  leave  his  old  wont ; 
he  is  where  he  was  at  first :  Isa.  lix.  1,  '  Behold,  the  Lord's  hand  is  not 
shortened,  that  he  cannot  save  ;  neither  his  ear  heavy,  that  it  cannot 
hear ; '  Mai.  iii.  6,  '  For  I  am  the  Lord,  I  change  not ;  therefore  ye 
sons  of  Jacob  are  not  consumed.'     He  is  the  same  that  ever  he  was. 

2.  All  his  people  stand  upon  the  same  terms  ;  therefore  what  he  will 
do  for  one,  he  will  do  for  another.     God's  love  is  the  same  ;  he  is  alike 
affected  to  all  his  children ;  his  saints  now  are  as  dear  to  him  as  ever: 
Ps.  cxlix.  4,  '  For  the  Lord  taketh  pleasure  in  his  people  ;  he  will 
beautify  the  meek  with  salvation/     They  have  the  same  covenant,  it  is 
a  common  charter :  Acts  ii.  39,  '  For  the  promise  is  unto  you,  and  to 
your  children,  and  to  all  that  are  afar  off,  even  as  many  as  the  Lord 
our  God  shall  call/     The  same  Redeemer  :  1  Cor.  i.  2,  '  To  them  that 
are  sanctified  in  Christ  Jesus,  called  to  be  saints,  with  all  that  in  every 
place  call  upon  the  name  of  Jesus  Christ  our  Lord,  both  theirs  and 
ours  ; '  Rom.  iii.  22,  '  Even  the  righteousness  of  God,  which  is  by  faith 
of  Jesus  Christ  unto  all,  and  upon  all  them  that  believe  ;  for  there  is 
no  difference/      One  hath  not  a  more  worthy  Christ  than  another ; 
faith  is  as  acceptable  as  ever :   2  Peter  i.  1,  '  To  them  that  have 
obtained  like  precious  faith/     They  are  interested  in  the  same  privi 
leges,  promises,  gifts,  and  rewards. 

Use  1.  Examples  and  instances  of  God's  mercy  should  confirm  us. 
It  is  not  agreeable  to  God's  nature  and  practice  to  forsake  his  people, 
or  to  be  deaf  to  their  prayers  :  Ps.  xxii.  4,  5,  '  Our  fathers  trusted  in 
thee,  they  trusted  in  thee,  and  thou  didst  deliver  them  ;  they  cried  unto 
thee,  and  were  delivered;  they  trusted  in  thee,  and  were  not  confounded/ 
None  of  his  people  ever  sought  him  in  vain.  From  the  beginning  of 
the  world  to  this  day,  God  hath  been  gracious :  Ps.  ix.  10,  '  For  they 
that  know  thy  name  will  put  their  trust  in  thee  ;  for  thou,  Lord,  hast 
not  forsaken  them  that  seek  thee/  No  age  can  give  an  instance  to  the 
contrary  ;  therefore  mark  the  usual  dealings  of  God  with  his  children: 
What  was  said  to  them  was  for  the  establishment  of  our  comfort  and 
hope :  Rom.  iv.  23,  24,  '  Now  it  was  not  written  for  his  sake  alone, 
that  it  was  imputed  to  him,  but  for  us  also  to  whom  it  shall  be  im 
puted,  if  we  believe  on  him  that  raised  up  Jesus  our  Lord  from  the 


VER.  133.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  381 

dead ;'  compared  with  Gen.  xv.  6,  'And  he  believed  in  the  Lord,  and 
lie  counted  it  to  him  for  righteousness.'  God's  word  is  a  book  of  pre 
cedents,  as  a  painter's  masterpiece  is  hung  out  to  invite  custom. 

2.  Let  us  be  sure  we  be  of  this  number.  If  there  be  conformity  to 
them  in  affection,  there  will  be  in  consolation  ;  if  in  grace,  then  in 
privileges  :  Ps.  cxlv.  18-20,  '  The  Lord  is  nigh  unto  all  them  that  call 
upon  him,  to  all  that  call  upon  him  in  truth.  He  shall  fulfil  the 
desire  of  them  that  fear  him,  he  also  will  hear  their  cry,  and  will  save 
them.  The  Lord  preserveth  all  them  that  love  him.' 

Doct.  3.  We  should  beg  the  favour  of  God's  people. 

Common  things  should  not  satisfy  a  child  of  God.  He  must  have 
what  is  peculiar  to  the  saints :  Ps.  cvi.  4,  5,  *  Kemember  me,  0  Lord, 
with  the  favour  thou  bearest  unto  thy  people ;  0  visit  me  with  thy 
salvation ;  that  I  may  see  the  good  of  thy  chosen,  that  I  may  rejoice 
in  the  gladness  of  thy  nation,  that  I  may  glory  with  thine  inheritance.' 
Nothing  will  satisfy  the  people  of  God  but  his  special  love  ;  they  have  a 
new  nature  that  must  be  pleased,  a  great,  noble,  and  divine  end  to  be  pro 
moted,  which  is  to  enjoy  God  ;  the  creatures  serve  not  for  that.  Common 
men  are  put  off  with  common  mercies  ;  these  they  may  have  and  perish. 

Use.  Let  us  be  of  this  temper.  Men  commonly  think  that  God 
looketh  upon  those  whom  he  blesseth  with  a  large  increase  of  temporal 
things,  that  he  is  merciful  to  those  that  never  see  evil,  nor  feel  pain  or 
want.  David  was  not  of  this  mind  ;  he  would  have  God  deal  with  him 
as  with  his  friends  and  favourites  ;  he  leaveth  it  to  God  how  to  express 
his  mercy,  who  only  knoweth  what  is  best  for  us  ;  only  he  beggeth 
the  fruits  of  his  special  love.  The  heart  is  earthly  and  worldly  when 
spiritual  things  are  not  valued  above  all  the  glory  and  plenty  of  the 
world.  Our  condition  is  under  a  curse  without  these  ;  in  these  Christ 
showed  his  love :  Acts  iii.  26,  '  Unto  you  first  God  having  raised  up 
his  Son  Jesus,  sent  him  to  bless  you,  in  turning  away  every  one  of  you 
from  his  iniquities.'  He  died  not  to  make  us  rich,  honourable,  great, 
but  for  remission  of  sin.  This  is  a  solid  ground  of  rejoicing ;  this 
abideth  for  ever. 

Doct.  4.  We  must  not  affect  singularity  of  dispensations,  but  be 
content  to  be  dealt  with  as  others  of  God's  children  have  been  dealt 
with  before  us. 

We  must  not  expect  to  go  to  heaven  without  difficulties  :1  Peter  v. 
9,  '  Knowing  that  the  same  afflictions  are  accomplished  in  your 
brethren  that  are  in  the  world/  We  are  no,t  alone ;  our  lot  is  no 
harder  than  others  of  God's  holy  ones.  All  have  gone  to  heaven  this 
way.  God  will  so  manifest  himself  to  us,  that  still  there  may  be  room 
for  faith  and  patience. 


SEEMON  CXLVII. 

Order  my  steps  in  tliy  word :  and  let  not  any  iniquity  have  dominion 
over  me. — VER.  133. 

IN  the  former  verse  the  prophet  had  begged  for  a  comfortable  look 
from  God,  and  some  renewed  taste  of  his  mercy ;  he  now  amplifies  his 


382  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEE.  CXLVII. 

request,  and  as  he  there  prayed  for  pardoning  mercy,  so  now  for  sanc 
tifying  grace.  Many  that  seek  mercy  to  deliver  them  from  the  guilt 
of  sin,  do  not  desire  grace  to  deliver  them  from  the  power  of  it ; 
and  yet  the  one  is  as  necessary  as  the  other,  that  we  may  not  offend 
God,  as  well  as  that  sin  may  not  hurt  us.  To  pray  only  for  pardon 
ing  mercy  would  seem  to  "be  a  praying  only  for  our  own  interest,  and 
not  for  God's.  God's  interest  lies  in  our  subjection,  our  interest  lies 
in  impunity  and  freedom  from  the  curse  of  the  law  and  the  flames  of 
hell  ;  and  let  me  tell  you  that  our  interest  is  not  sufficiently  provided 
for  till  the  heart  be  sanctified  as  well  as  sin  pardoned  ;  for  an  unholy 
creature  can  never  be  happy,  that  is  clear  against  the  course  of  all  the 
Lord's  wise  proceedings.  He  hath  settled  everything,  and  put  it  into 
its  proper  place,  and  a  sinful  creature  can  never  enjoy  impunity; 
therefore,  as  we  need  to  pray,  Lord,  be  merciful  to  us,  so,  Lord,  '  order 
my  steps  in  thy  word,'  &c. 

In  this  prayer  there  are  two  branches  : — 

1.  A  petition  for  grace  for  the  regulation  of  his  life,  order  my  steps 
according  to  tliy  ivord. 

2.  A  deprecation  of  the  contrary  evil,  and  let  not  any  iniquity  have 
dominion  over  me. 

The  first  part  of  his  prayer  is  by  way  of  prevention,  the  second  is  by 
way  of  reserve ;  and  the  connection  of  both  doth  in  effect  speak  thus, 
Lord,  if  thou  dost  not  order  my  goings,  surely  iniquity  will  have 
dominion  over  me.  Therefore  he  first  prays  that  God  will  not  permit 
him  to  err  ;  or  if  the  Lord  should  by  his  righteous  providence  permit 
him  to  fall,  that  he  might  return  again  to  his  duty,  that  sin  may  not 
wholly  and  clearly  carry  it  in  his  heart,  and  have  a  full  power  over 
him  :  Lord,  '  order  my  steps  according  to  thy  word ; '  but  if  I  should 
fail,  'Let  not  any  iniquity  have  dominion  over  me.'  The  same  method 
is  used  Ps.  xix.  13,  '  Keep  back  thy  servant  from  presumptuous  sins/ 
He  doth  desire  absolutely  to  be  kept  from  presumptuous  sins;  but 
then  he  adds  by  way  of  supposition  and  reserve,  that  if  he  could  not 
by  reason  of  his  naughty  heart  be  kept  from  them,  yet  that  they  might 
not  have  full  power  and  dominion  over  him.  Kabbi  David  Kimchi 
indeed  refers  the  former  branch  to  the  affirmative  precept,  '  order  my 
steps  according  to  thy  word ; '  and  the  latter  branch  to  the  negative 
precept:  and  so  he  makes  the  meaning  to  be  this,  Let  me  neither 
break  thy  laws  by  omitting  any  duty  or  committing  any  sin.  You 
may  take  that  division  of  the  words  if  you  will. 

In  the  former  branch  observe  the  act  of  grace,  order  ;  the  subject, 
my  steps  ;  the  rule,  thy  ivord. 

In  the  latter  branch  observe  the  evil  deprecated,  the  dominion  of 
sin,  the  universality  or  degree  of  the  deprecation,  let  not  any  iniquity, 
neither  great  nor  small  sins,  take  the  throne  by  turns. 

To  explain  these  circumstances,  the  act  of  grace,  'order.'  The 
Septuagint,  Karevdvvov,  direct  or  set  straight  my  steps.  Junius  hath 
it,  institue,  frame  or  appoint ;  and  Ainsworth  hath  it,  firmly  direct ; 
for  indeed  the  word  signifies  to  instruct,  order,  and  establish.  We  are 
ignorant  and  apt  to  err,  therefore  God  must  instruct  us ;  we  are  vari 
ous  and  uncertain  in  our  motions,  therefore  God  must  order  us  in  a 
way  of  obedience,  and  reduce  us  into  a  settled  course  and  method,  that 


VER.  133.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  383 

all  may  be  done  in  a  subordination  to  our  great  end  ;  for  order  respects 
that.  And  we  are  soon  discouraged,  therefore  God  must  support  and 
establish  us:  so  firmly  direct,  that  thou  mayest  establish  our  steps 
according  to  thy  word. 

The  subject  is,  'my  steps/  Because  the  affections  are  the  seat  of 
the  soul,  by  which  it  walks  out  after  the  object  represented,  the  under 
standing  represents  and  the  will  chooseth ;  therefore  some  would  limit 
these  steps  to  the  affections.  I  think  it  comprise th  all  the  actions  of 
the  reasonable  creature,  that  no  thoughts,  no  deeds,  no  counsels,  no 
enterprises  of  his  might  transgress  the  limits  of  God's  word. 

For  the  rule,  '  In  thy  word.'  The  Septuagint,  Kara  TO  \6yi6v  crov, 
according  to  thy  oracle.  However  the  phrase  is  to  be  noted,  '  In  thy 
word  ; '  not  only  according  to  this  rule,  but  in  this  path.  The  sum  is 
this  :  Lord,  thou  hast  invited  me  to  walk  in  thy  word ;  now  direct  me, 
strengthen  me  to  walk  in  it,  and  let  all  my  motions  and  my  actions 
keep  within  the  compass  of  it. 

For  the  other  part,  '  Let  not  any  iniquity  have  dominion  over  me.' 
Because  the  Septuagint  reads,  fj^r]  icaraKvpuevaara)  IJLOV  iracra  avo/jiia ; 
and  out  of  them  the  vulgar,  '  Let  not  all  iniquity  tyrannise  over  me,' 
some  have  conceived  the  sense  to  be,  let  me  not  be  trampled  upon, 
not  oppressed  by  all  kind  of  wrong  and  all  kind  of  injustice ;  as  if  he 
pleaded  here  to  be  kept  from  the  tyranny  of  his  enemies.  But  this  is 
not  probable,  and  other  scriptures  that  are  parallel  to  this,  where  the 
like  expression  is  used,  will  not  permit  such  a  sense ;  and  therefore  he 
saith,  Let  not  any  or  every  iniquity  have  dominion  over  ine.  Why  ? 
Because  sins  take  the  throne  by  turns.  Sometimes  a  man  finds  this 
sin  and  sometimes  that  sin  in  the  throne,  and  sometimes  strange  sins 
that  we  little  think  of  may  get  a  great  power  over  the  heart,  even 
those  that  we  fear  least  many  times  may  steal  into  the  throne. 

From  the  first  branch  observe — 

Doct.  1.  That  there  is  a  constant  daily  necessity  of  grace  to  direct 
and  order  our  motions  and  actions  according  to  the  word  of  God. 

Now,  that  there  is  a  daily  and  hourly  necessity  of  grace,  is  a  point 
that  frequently  offereth  itself  in  this  psalm.  I  shall  briefly  dispatch  it, 
therefore,  in  these  propositions  : — 

1.  It  appears  from  the  strictness  of  Christianity.  He  that  would 
please  God  had  need  of  a  tender  conscience,  that  he  may  wholly  frame 
himself  to  do  the  will  of  God ;  and  not  only  take  care  to  be  right  for 
the  main  of  his  course,  but  that  every  particular  action  should  be 
orderly  and  regular :  for  the  man  of  God  does  not  beg  grace  here  to 
choose  a  right  path,  but  that  his  steps  may  be  ordered.  This  is  the 
strictness  of  Christianity,  that  a  man  should  make  conscience  of  every 
step,  that  every  action  should  be  under  the  power  of  grace,  and  fall 
within  the  rules  of  the  word.  It  needs  to  be  so.  Why  ?  Because  the 
word  of  God  is  not  only  a  general  rule  to  show  us  our  path,  but  a 
particular  direction  to  order  our  steps :  Ps.  cxix.  105,  '  Thy  word  is  a 
lamp  unto  my  feet,  and  a  light  unto  my  path  ; '  to  my  feet  as  well  as 
my  path.  Every  action  or  step  of  ours  is  morally  considered  in  its 
own  tendency,  either  a  step  to  heaven  or  hell ;  if  good,  a  step  to  hea 
ven  ;  if  evil,  a  step  to  hell :  therefore  we  had  need  make  conscience  of 
our  steps.  Besides,  if  we  do  not  make  conscience  of  our  steps,  we  shall 


384  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiR.  CXLYII. 

not  make  conscience  of  our  way ;  for  he  that  is  not  faithful  in  a  little, 
will  not  be  faithful  in  much.  Every  wry  step  is  so  far  out  of  the  way, 
and  the  more  we  persist  in  it  the  more  we  wander.  Therefore  see 
what  is  required  of  Christians :  1  Peter  i.  15,  '  Be  holy,'  ev  IT  aery 
<zva<TTpocf>p,  in  every  creek  and  turning  of  your  lives,  '  In  all  manner  of 
conversation/  A  man  that  would  approve  himself  to  God,  must  be 
good  in  all  conditions,  in  all  his  businesses,  affairs,  all  ages  of  his  life, 
young  or  old,  in  actions  civil,  sacred ;  if  his  condition  be  prosperous  or 
adverse  ;  when  in  adversity  or  prosperity,  he  must  carry  himself  as  a 
Christian ;  he  ought  still  to  approve  himself  to  be  a  hater  of  sin,  and 
a  lover  of  what  God  loves.  In  all  his  affairs,  not  only  in  his  religious 
actions,  but  in  his  civil  and  common  actions.  Godliness  is  not  a  holi 
day  suit,  but  an  apparel  that  is  of  constant  wearing  ;  and  therefore  a 
Christian  is  to  show  himself  a  Christian  in  all  things,  though  espe 
cially  in  those  things  which  are  solemn  and  most  weighty  ;  a  Christian 
in  his  prayers,  a  Christian  in  his  business,  in  his  recreation,  in  his 
meals,  a  Christian  in  the  disposal  of  himself  and  condition,  a  Christian 
in  all  his  converses.  I  lay  this  for  a  foundation.  Certainly  here  are 
steps  spoken  of.  The  holy  man  would  have  them  ordered,  and  that 
by  the  strictness  of  Christianity  ;  so  that  no  one  particular  action  must 
allowedly  be  sinful.  You  see  what  need  there  is  of  direction.  Care 
less  and  slight  spirits,  that  only  look  upon  Christianity  in  the  lump, 
they  think  that  truths  are  few  and  easy,  and  that  the  art  of  holy  living, 
is  soon  learned,  and  they  do  not  see  a  need  of  this  ordering  our  ways, 
and  to  be  willing  to  please  God  in  all  things.  But  those  that  count 
the  least  sin  to  be  a  very  heavy  burthen,  a  greater  evil  than  the  greatest 
temporal  loss,  that  make  it  their  business  to  approve  themselves  to 
God  in  all  things  they  put  their  hands  unto,  will  be  earnest  and  im 
portunate  with  him  for  his  grace. 

2.  The  necessity  of  the  word  of  God.  Whoever  will  please  God  in 
all  things,  and  will  purge  his  own  soul  and  his  life  from  sin,  must 
take  the  word  of  God  for  his  rule  and  direction.  Our  lives  are  not  to 
be  framed  according  to  our  own  fancies,  but  God's  word,  where  the 
genuine  holiness  is  recommended  to  us,  and  which  is  the  only  proper 
means  to  work  the  heart  to  it.  I  shall  prove  that  the  word  of  God  is 
the  great  rule  both  to  warn  us  of  our  dangers  and  to  instruct  us  in 
our  duties  ;  and  so  it  is  the  great  means  to  sanctify  the  heart.  I  say 
it  is  the  great  rule  to  warn  us  of  our  dangers:  Ps.  xix.  11,  'More 
over,  by  them  is  thy  servant  warned.'  This  discovers  temptations, 
inconveniences,  snares,  which  otherwise  we  should  never  discern. 
There  are  many  dangers  that  wait  for  us  on  every  side.  So  Ps.  xvii. 
4,  *  Concerning  the  works  of  men,  by  the  word  of  thy  lips,  I  have 
kept  me  from  the  paths  of  the  destroyer.'  It  is  the  only  proper  means 
to  keep  us  from  the  paths  of  the  destroyer.  Alas !  otherwise  if  we  do 
not  strictly  consult  with  his  statute  and  rule,  we  shall  cry  up  a  con 
federacy  with  those  that  cry  up  a  confederacy  against  God ;  we  shall 
embrace  the  temptation  which  opportunity  offers,  if  he  follow  the 
guidance  of  his  deceived  and  deceiving  heart.  And  the  word  of  God 
doth  only  discover  our  duties  to  us  :  Prov.  vi.  23,  c  For  the  command 
ment  is  a  lamp,  and  the  law  is  light,  and  reproofs  of  instruction  are 
the  way  of  life/  Mark,  whatever  condition  we  are  in,  whether  in  the 


VER.  133.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  385 

night,  or  whether  in  the  day,  whether  in  this  or  that  condition,  here 
we  have  a  lamp  and  light ;  here  is  that  which  will  show  us  what  God 
requires  of  us  in  every  state  and  condition.  Now,  as  this  is  the  only 
rule,  so  it  is  the  only  appointed  means  with  which  God  will  associate 
the  operation  of  his  grace  for  the  converting  and  curing  of  the  souls 
of  men  ;  for  when  God  had  stated  a  rule  for  the  creature,  it  is  fit  the 
knowledge  of  that  might  be  a  means  of  sanctification  ;  so  the  word  is 
commended  to  us  :  John  xvii.  17,  '  Sanctify  them  by  thy  truth  ;  thy 
word  is  truth  ; '  if  the  Holy  Ghost  will  sanctify,  if  he  will  beget  not 
an  apocryphal  and  bastardly  holiness  (that  may  be  by  the  institutions 
of  men,  and  rules  men  prescribe),  but  a  genuine,  true  holiness,  which 
is  acceptable  to  God;  put  them  into  a  capacity  to  serve,  love,  and 
enjoy  God :  Ps.  cxix.  9,  '  Wherewith  shall  a  young  man  cleanse  his 
way  ?  By  taking  heed  thereto  according  to  thy  word.'  A  young 
man,  that  is  in  the  heat  of  his  lusts,  and  in  the  ruff  of  his  sin,  is  im 
petuously  carried  away.  How  shall  he  do  to  break  this  boisterous 
violence,  and  bring  his  heart  into  some  competent  way  of  obedience 
to  God  ?  Why,  the  word  of  God  is  the  only  means ;  the  Lord  inter - 
poseth  by  his  word,  and  blesseth  his  word.  Let  a  man  read  Seneca, 
Plato,  Plutarch,  all  the  philosophers,  he  will  have  but  cold  and  faint 
respects  to  holiness  and  to  better  things,  until  he  come  to  be  exercised 
in  the  word  of  God.  Man  is  not  a  vessel  that  comes  newly  out  of  the 
potter's  shop,  but  he  hath  a  smatch  of  the  old  infusion  of  sin ;  and  he 
cannot  have  this  taste  and  tang  put  out  but  by  the  word  of  God 
sanctifying  his  heart  and  breaking  the  power  of  his  lusts  :  Ps.  xix.  7, 
'  The  law  of  the  Lord  is  perfect,  converting  the  soul.'  We  are  out  of 
joint,  unfit  to  please  and  serve  God.  Now,  how  shall  a  man  do  to 
get  his  soul  set  in  joint  again,  that  he  may  be  in  a  capacity  to  serve 
and  enjoy  God  ?  Why,  this  restores  the  soul  to  a  capacity  ;  the  Lord 
blesseth  this  institution  and  this  means  ;  for  it  is  not  bare  truth,  but 
instituted  truth,  with  which  God  will  associate  the  operation  of  his 
Spirit.  By  this  word  of  his,  that  was  indited  by  the  Spirit,  and 
penned  by  holy  men  that  were  moved  by  the  Holy  Ghost,  he  doth 
join  his  virtue  and  power  and  efficacy  of  his  Spirit  to  sanctify  the 
souls  of  men. 

3.  They  that  make  it  their  scope  and  business  to  please  God  in  all 
things,  and  take  his  word  for  their  rule,  their  souls  will  soon  see  a 
need  for  divine  direction,  and  the  establishment  of  his  grace.  This 
reason  is  taken  from  the  temper  of  the  persons  that  are  to  walk  in 
this  strict  way,  according  to  his  strict  rule ;  they  are  such  as  are 
naturally  blind,  and  naturally  opposite  to  God :  now  certainly  such 
need  to  go  to  God  for  direction.  I  gather  that  from  these  words, 
*  Order  my  steps.'  Every  man  is  a  poor  blind  creature,  and  hath  a 
heart  opposite  to  the  ways  of  God ;  he  need  beg  this  grace  of  God, 
Lord,  incline  my  heart.  Every  man  is  a  blind  creature,  partly  be 
cause  our  own  spirits  are  blind,  crooked,  and  unstable,  that  we  shall 
neither  consult  our  rule  nor  understand  our  duty,  nor  like  it  when  it 
is  represented  to  us,  until  the  Lord  doth  enlighten  us.  A  man's  heart 
is  naturally  blind:  2  Peter  i.  9,  'He  cannot  see  afar  off,'  he  hath  no 
skill  in  spiritual  things,  1  Cor.  ii.  14.  The  heart  is  naturally  full  of 
darkness,  and  then  this  darkness  grows  upon  us,  partly  by  prejudice 

VOL.  viii.  2  B 


386  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXLVII. 

or  custom,  'and  many  evil  habits :  2  Cor.  iv.  4,  '  The  god  of  this 
world  hath  blinded  men's  eyes.'  There  are  many  inordinate  affections 
that  increase  upon  us.  So  it  is  then  that  a  man  is  blind  by  nature, 
more  blind  by  custom  and  inordinate  affection,  is  exceedingly  blinded; 
which  have  a  great  influence  upon  our  judgments  in  all  practical 
cases.  Though  we  should  know  general  rules,  yet  to  bring  them 
down  to  every  particular  action  is  very  grievous,  and  hard  to  bring 
the  heart  to.  But  you  will  say,  When  we  have  received  the  Spirit, 
God  hath  put  his  law  into  our  minds,  this  blindness  is  cured  ;  there 
fore  why  should  such  as  David  pray,  '  Lord,  order  my  steps/  &c.  ? 
Yes,  we  are  cured,  but  in  part,  non  totaliter.  Grace  doth  heal  us  but 
in  part,  much  of  the  matter  that  clouded  the  mind  before  is  yet  upon 
us  ;  and  when  lusts  are  awakened  by  temptations,  we  strangely  forget 
ourselves,  our  own  reason,  our  senses,  and  examples  of  others  ;  we  are 
misled,  so  that  we  know  not  what  to  do,  unless  the  Lord  order  our 
steps.  Well,  as  we  are  blind,  so  we  are  opposite  too.  When  we  know 
our  way,  what  we  should  do,  yet  we  are  apt  to  stumble  at  every  stone. 
Naturally  the  wisdom  of  the  flesh  is  opposite :  Bom.  viii.  7,  '  The 
carnal  mind  is  enmity  against  God.'  And  so  much  as  the  wisdom  of 
the  flesh  still  remains,  we  are  apt  to  be  discouraged  from  walking 
with  God  according  to  his  strict  rule,  and  in  the  way  that  he  hath 
given  us,  and  we  are  extremely  slack,  that  unless  we  be  quickened  by 
the  lively  and  strengthening  light  of  the  Spirit,  alas  !  how  soon  shall 
we  miscarry  !  Therefore  this  ordering  is  a  strengthening  against 
the  reluctances  of  the  flesh  :  Ps.  xvii.  5,  '  Hold  up  my  goings  in  thy 
paths,  that  my  footsteps  slip  not.'  Alas  !  when  a  man  finds  a  good 
way,  he  is  either  apt  to  lie  down  out  of  laziness,  or  to  stumble  and 
fall,  and  we  cannot  keep  our  footing  against  temptations.  Every  man 
of  experience  seeth  .the  need  of  this.  Therefore,  Lord,  direct  me, 
'  Order  my  steps.' 

4.  The  reason  is  taken  from  the  value  of  the  blessing  here  asked.  It 
is  one  of  the  chiefest  blessings  of  his  grace  and  favour  to  have  his  illu 
minating.  After  he  had  said,  '  Lord,  be  merciful  unto  me/  presently 
follows,  '  Lord,  order  my  steps.'  To  prove  this  must  needs  be  a  great 
blessing  and  favour.  It  will  appear  out  of  the  words  of  the  text ; 
partly  from  the  word  '  order  ','  it  makes  our  lives  orderly  and  regular. 
Alas  !  what  a  confused,  disproportion  able  thing  is  a  man  that  is  half 
in  and  half  out  with  the  ways  of  God  !  His  conversation  is  not  all  of  a 
piece,  sometimes  right  and  sometimes  wrong  ;  there  is  not  that  beauty, 
that  harmony,  that  holiness  to  be  found  in  them.  Solomon  tells  us, 
Prov.  xxvi.  7,  '  The  legs  of  the  lame  are  not  equal ;  so  is  a  parable  in 
the  mouth  of  fools.'  Baines  on  the  place  saith  thus,  The  man  hath 
knowledge  to  speak  well,  but  he  lives  ill ;  so  his  conversation  is  halt 
ing,  like  the  legs  of  the  lame.  Sometimes  his  speculative  light  will 
incline  him  to  do  easy  things,  but  his  .practical  endeavours  will  carry 
him  another  way ;  there  is  no  even  and  uniform  strain  of  godliness. 
Then  is  a  man's  conversation  ordered,  when  all  is  carried  on  with  a  fair 
respect  to  his  last  end  ;  for  it  is  the  last  end  that  fixeth  a  man's  mind, 
and  cuts  off  impertinences  and  inconsistencies,  and  makes  a  man's  con 
versation  beautiful ;  otherwise  the  man  is  tossed  up  and  down  in  a 
various  uncertain  motion,  distracted  by  a  multiplicity  of  ends  and 


VER.  133.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  387 

objects  that  his  will  is  in  no  composed  and  settled  frame.  I  remember 
David  prays :  Ps.  Ixxxvi.  11,  '  Unite  rny  heart  to  fear  thy  name/  It 
is  a  blessed  thing  when  a  man  is  united,  when  his  conversation  is  all 
of  a  piece  ;  and  James  i.  8,  'A  double-minded  man  is  unstable  in  all 
his  ways/  A  divided  mind  will  beget  an  uncertain  life.  I  say,  the 
last  end  of  our  lives  doth  unite  all  the  parts  of  it,  and  there  is  a  regu 
larity  and  harmony  between  them.  But  others,  their  life  is  a  mere 
lottery ;  the  fancies  by  which  they  are  governed  are  jumbled  together 
by  chance,  and  they  live  at  peradventure  and  haphazard,  and  there 
is  not  a  comely,  entire,  uniform  order  to  a  blessed  end.  Again, 
partly,  too,  from  the  reason  here,  '  Order  my  steps  according  to  thy 
word;  and  let  no  iniquity  have  dominion  over  me/  This  will  prevent 
the  dominion  of  sin.  Perverse  affections  are  apt  to  sway  us,  but  when 
the  Lord  supplies  fresh  directions,  the  tyranny  and  dominion  of  sin  is 
prevented  and  crushed  in  the  egg.  Sin  usually  steals  into  the  throne 
by  insensible  degrees ;  temptations  and  occasions  reduce  us  to  some 
evil  practice.  Well,  and  that  produceth  another,  then  do  multiplied 
acts  get  strength,  then  they  ensnare  us ;  and  when  once  the  soul  is 
ensnared  then  this  bondage  daily  increaseth,  and  is  hard  to  be  broken  ; 
for  by  multiplied  acts  custom  creeps  upon  us,  and  that  is  another 
nature,  and  that  which  was  but  indifferent  at  first  grows  more  difficult. 
As  diseases  looked  to  at  first  are  easily  cured,  otherwise  they  grow 
desperate ;  so  sins  when  they  come  to  a  slavish  tyranny  and  custom, 
they  cannot  help  it.  All  this  is  prevented  by  the  seasonable  warnings 
of  the  Holy  Spirit.  Partly,  too,  because  this  is  only  vouchsafed  to 
God's  special  people.  God,  as  he  loves  any,  so  he  manifests  himself 
to  them.  This  appears  out  of  the  text ;  for  in  the  verse  before  the 
text  the  words  run  thus,  '  Look  upon  me,  and  be  merciful  unto  me  ; 
as  thou  usest  to  do  unto  those  that  love  thy  name ; '  and  what  then  ? 
4  Order  my  steps  in  thy  word/  Oh  !  this  is  to  do  good  to  us,  as  he 
useth  to  do  good  to  them  that  fear  his  name.  Mark,  some  have  only 
providence  and  natural  conscience  ;  there  are  others  that  have  the  word, 
and  have  an  enlightened  conscience,  that  plead  God's  interest  in  them; 
but  there  are  others  are  honoured  so  far  that  they  are  his  people,  that 
have  not  only  his  word,  but  Spirit,  to  enforce  his  word  upon  their 
hearts.  How  did  Christ  declare  his  love  to  his  people  ?  John  xv.  15, 
'  I  call  you  friends,  for  all  things  that  I  have  heard  of  my  Father,  I 
have  made  known  unto  you/  There  is  God's  love  declared,  when  he 
shows  us  his  whole  will,  when  he  doth  guide  us  in  all  his  ways ;  this 
is  the  favour  of  his  people :  Ps.  xxv.  14, '  The  secret  of  the  Lord  is 
with  them  that  fear  him  ;  and  he  will  show  them  his  covenant/  There 
is  the  great  privilege  that  God  vouchsafes  to  his  peculiar  people ;  they 
know  the  mind  of  God  more  than  others  do,  and  in  all  doubtful  de 
bates  and  uncertain  controversies  they  are  not  left  in  the  dark :  Mark 
iv.  11,  {  Unto  you  it  is  given  to  know  the  mystery  of  the  kingdom  of 
God/  David  surely  found  such  direction  to  be  a  very  special  blessing. 
Again,  another  argument  from  the  .text  that  this  must  needs  be  a  very- 
great  blessing,  partly  because  it  helpeth  us  in  our  way  to  true  happi 
ness.  I  gather  that  from  the  word  '  steps ;'  for  all  motion  hath  a  term 
to  which  it  tends,  and  every  journey  hath  its  period.  Now,  whither 
doth  the  path  of  the  word  lead  us,  but  to  God,  and  to  the  everlasting 


388  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXLVII. 

enjoyment  of  him  ?  Oh  !  here  they  have  an  infallible  direction  that 
they  cannot  miscarry  in  so  great  an  affair  as  this  is,  as  the  getting 
home  to  God.  Surely  that  is  a  great  blessing.  I  remember  David 
saith,  Ps.  Ixxiii.  24,  '  Thou  shalt  guide  me  by  thy  counsel,  and  after 
wards  receive  me  unto  glory.'  They  that  wait  upon  God's  direction 
are  sure  to  be  received  into  his  heavenly  glory ;  their  steps  are 
directed  for  the  present,  and  they  may  be  confident  that  at  length 
they  shall  get  home  to  God ;  for  God  will  accept  of  what  he  hath 
ordered.  You  are  sure  God  will  take  pleasure  in  you  when  you  walk 
according  to  his  direction.  So  you  see  the  need  from  the  value  of  this 
blessing. 

5.  Consideration,  that  the  children  of  God  are  sensible  of  their  need 
of  it,  that  they  cannot  choose  but  pray  for  it.  I  take  this  from  the 
very  form  of  the  words  :  '  Lord,  order  my  steps.'  It  is  a  prayer  from 
the  man  of  God.  They  seek  it  humbly  and  earnestly,  therefore  they 
shall  find  it.  They  that  make  their  bosom  their  oracle,  and  wit  their 
counsellor,  God  is  disengaged  from  being  their  guide  ;  they  need  him 
not,  but  the  snares  they  run  into  will  soon  show  how  much  they  need 
him.  But  the  children  of  God  need  him,  therefore  they  shall  find  it : 
Prov.  iii.  6,  '  In  all  thy  ways  acknowledge  him,  and  he  shall  direct  thy 
paths/  You  should  ever  go  to  God  for  the  direction  of  your  way,  then 
God  will  not  disappoint  you,,  nor  defeat  your  expectations  :  Ps.  Ixxxv. 
13,  '  Righteousness  shall  go  before  him ;  and  shall  set  us  in  the  way 
of  his  steps.'  Sometimes  we  wander,  turn  aside,  and  walk  out  of  the 
right  way  ;  at  other  times  we  fall  and  stumble  in  the  right  way ;  but 
the  Lord  will  set  us  in  the  paths  of  his  steps. 

Use.  To  press  us  to  seek  this  great  privilege  of  God,  beg  of  the  Lord 
continually  to  order  your  steps  according  to  his  word.  Alas  !  evil 
may  surprise  you  before  you  are  aware.  Little  did  David  think  dan 
ger  was  so  near  him  when  he  walked  upon  his  terrace ;  he  gave  leave 
to  his  eye  to  wander,  and  his  eye  fired  his  heart.  Every  morning  be 
with  God  about  this  business :  Ps.  v.  3,  '  0  Lord,  in  the  morning  will 
I  direct  my  prayer  unto  thee,  and  will  look  up/  You  need  not  only 
protection  against  dangers,  but  direction  against  evils  and  snares.  As 
we  seek  for  protection  in  the  night,  so  in  the  morning,  prayer  is  for 
the  direction  of  the  day.  Nay,  we  need  not  go  to  God  in  the  morning, 
but  all  the  day  long  :  Ps.  xxv.  5,  '  On  thee  do  I  wait  all  the  day/ 
Beg  of  him  that  you  may  not  miscarry,  but  carry  yourselves  humbly 
and  prudently,  and  may  do  nothing  that  is  contrary  to  the  will  of  God 
and  his  grace,  but  that  the  Lord  would  support  and  guide  you  con 
tinually.  There  is  one  argument  that  may  mightily  encourage  you  in 
praying.  Consider  your  covenant  interest  in  God  doth  establish  this 
blessing,  as  the  saints  always  plead  the  relation  :  Ps.  xxv.  5,  *  Lead 
me  in  thy  truth,  and  teach  me  ;  for  thou  art  the  God  of  my  salvation ; ' 
Ps.  cxliii.  10,  '  Teach  me  to  do  thy  will,  for  thou  art  my  God ;'  Ps. 
xlviii.  14,  '  For  this  God  is  our  God  for  ever  and  ever ;  he  will  be  our 
guide  even  unto  death/  To  be  a  God  to  any  is  to  be  a  guide ;  for  to 
a  people  in  covenant,  God  makes  over  his  whole  self.  Now  in  God 
there  are  considerable  these  three  great  attributes — his  wisdom,  power, 
and  goodness.  Look,  as  God  by  virtue  of  his  power  is  all-sufficient 
against  all  dangers,  and  by  virtue  of  his  goodness  is  a  fountain  of  ever- 


VER.  133.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  389 

lasting  happiness,  so  also  by  his  wisdom  is  a  fountain  of  all  goodness 
to  guide  and  direct  us.  Now  as  God  hath  engaged  all  his  goodness  to 
make  us  as  happy  as  heart  can  wish,  and  his  power  to  defend  and 
maintain  us,  so  all  his  wisdom  to  guide  and  direct  us. 


SEEMON  CXLVIII. 
And  let  not  any  iniquity  have  dominion  over  me. — VER.  133. 

FOR  the  second  branch  of  the  prayer  I  observe — 

Doct.  2.  That  the  dominion  of  sin  is  a  great  evil,  and  ought  ear 
nestly  to  be  deprecated,  even  by  the  children  of  God. 

1.  What  is  the  dominion  of  sin. 

2.  That  it  is  a  great  evil. 

3.  Why  the  saints  should  deprecate  this  evil. 

First,  What  is  the  dominion  of  sin  ?  It  may  be  known  by  some 
distinctions. 

1.  There  is  a  dominion  of  sin  that  is  gross  and  sensible,  and  a  domi 
nion  of  sin  that  is  more  secret  and  close. 

[1.]  More  gross  and  sensible.  For  though  sin  do  reign  in  every  one 
by  nature,  yet  this  dominion  more  sensibly  appears  in  some  than  others, 
who  are  given  up  to  be  visibly  under  the  dominion  of  sin,  as  the  just 
fruit  of  their  voluntary  living  under  that  yoke ;  and  usually  these  are 
set  forth  as  a  warning  to  the  rest  of  the  world ;  God  hangs  them  up 
in  chains  of  darkness  in  the  sight  -of  men,  as  an  instance  of  this  woful 
slavery,  that  every  man  that  seeth  them,  and  is  acquainted  with  their 
course  of  life,  may  say  without  breach  of  charity,  There  goes  one  that 
declares  himself  to  be  a  servant  of  sin.  This  is  either  to  sin  in  general, 
or  to  some  particular  sin. 

(1.)  To  sin  in  general.  He,  whosoever  he  be,  that,  instead  of 
trembling  at  God's  word,  scoffeth  at  it,  and  maketh  more  account  of 
this  world  than  of  the  will  of  God,  of  the  fashions  of  men  than  of 
God's  word,  and  thinketh  the  scorn  of  a  base  worm  that  would  deride 
him  for  godliness  a  greater  terror  than  the  wrath  of  God,  and  the  love 
of  his  carnal  company  a  greater  happiness  than  communion  with 
Christ,  and  instead  of  working  out  his  salvation  with  fear  and  trem 
bling,  runneth  into  all  excess  of  riot,  and  carelessly  neglecteth  his 
precious  soul,  while  he  pampereth  his  frail  body,  and  doth  voluntarily 
and  ordinarily  leave  the  boat  to  th.e  stream,  give  up  himself  to  serve 
his  corruption  without  resistance  or  crying  to  Christ  for  help,  this  man 
is  without  dispute,  and  in  the  eye  of  the  world  a  slave  to  sin :  Kom. 
vi.  16,  '  Know  ye  not  that  to  whom  ye  yield  yourselves  servants  to 
obey,  his  servants  .ye  are  to  whom  ye  obey,  whether  of  sin  unto  death, 
or  of  obedience  unto  righteousness  ?'  It  is  an  apparent  case.  A  man 
that  giveth  up  himself  to  go  on  in  the  ways  of  his  own  heart,  restrain 
ing  himself  in  nothing  which  it  affects,  he  is  one  of  sin's  slaves.  So 
saith  our  Lord  Christ :  John  viii.  34,  '  Verily,  verily  I  say  unto  you, 
whosoever  committeth  sin  is  the  servant  of  sin.'  He  needeth  no  further 
doubt  nor  debate  about  the  matter.  He  that  goeth  on  in  a  trade  of 


390  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEB.  CXLVIII. 

sin,  and  maketh  that  his  work  and  business  in  the  world,  without 
serious  looking  after  the  saving  of  his  soul,  is  one  in  whom  sin  reigneth. 

(2.)  So  some  particular  sins.  As  we  have  instances  of  carnal 
wretches  in  general,  so  of  some  poor  captive  souls  that  remain  under 
the  full  power  and  tyranny  of  this  or  that  lust,  and  are  so  remarkable 
for  their  slavery  and  bondage  under  it  that  the  world  will  point  at 
them  and  say,  There  goeth  a  glutton,  a  drunkard,  an  adulterer,  or 
covetous  worldling,  a  proud  envious  person;  Their  sin  is  broken  out 
into  some  filthy  sore  or  scab  that  is  visible  to  every  eye,  either  their 
covetousness  or  gluttony  or  ambitious  affectation  of  worldly  greatness, 
one  whose  god  is  his  belly,  who  is  a  slave  to  appetite  :  2  Peter  ii.  19, 
'  For  of  whom  a  man  is  overcome,  of  the  same  he  is  brought  in  bond 
age.'  They  grow  proverbial  for  giving  up  themselves  wholly  to  such 
a  conquering  and  prevailing  lust.  As  in  the  natural  man  several  men 
have  their  distinct  excellences,  some  are  famous  for  a  strong  sight, 
some  for  a  quick  ear,  some  for  a  nimble  tongue,  some  for  agility  of 
body ;  so  these  for  notable  excesses  in  some  corruption.  Or  as  the 
saints  of  God  are  eminent  for  some  special  graces,  as  Abraham  for 
faith,  Moses  for  meekness,  Job  for  patience,  and  Joseph  for  chastity, 
and  Paul  for  zeal,  Timothy  for  temperance ;  so  these  have  their  noto 
rious  and  contrary  blemishes. 

[2.]  There  is  a  more  secret  and  close  dominion  of  sin,  that  is  var 
nished  over  with  a  fair  appearance.  Men  have  many  good  qualities 
and  no  notorious  blemishes ;  but  yet  some  sensitive,  good,  and  created 
thing  sitteth  nearest  the  heart,  and  occupieth  the  room  and  place  of 
God,  that  is  loved,  respected,  served  instead  of  God,  or  more  than  God. 
That  which  is  our  chiefest  good  and  last  end  is  our  god,  or  occupieth 
the  room  of  God.  So  our  Lord  telleth  us,  Mat.  vi.  24,  '  No  man  can 
serve  two  masters,  for  either  he  will  hate  the  one  and  love  the  other,  or 
will  hold  to  the  one  and  despise  the  other :  ye  cannot  serve  God  and 
mammon ;'  and  John  v.  44,  '  How  can  ye  believe,  that  seek  honour 
one  from  another,  and  not  the  honour  that  cometh  from  God  only  ? ' 
and  Luke  xiv.  26,  '  If  a  man  come  to  me,  and  hate  not  father  and 
mother/  &c.  We  must  be  dead  not  only  to  carnal  pleasure  but  to 
credit,  estate,  yea,  life  and  all.  It  must  not  sit  nearest  the  heart,  nor 
bring  it  under  its  command  and  power :  1  Cor.  vi.  12,  '  All  things  are 
lawful  for  me,  but  I  will  not  be  brought  under  the  power  of  any.' 
We  are  besotted  and  bewitched  with  some  created  thing,  that  we  can 
not  part  with  it.  or  leave  it  for  God's  sake,  or  notwithstanding  all  the 
mischief  it  is  to  the  interest  of  his  soul.  Though  a  man  serveth  it 
cunningly,  closely,  and  by  a  cleanly  conveyance,  yet  all  his  religion  is 
but  either  to  hide  or  feed  his  lust. 

2.  Distinction.  There  is  a  predominancy  of  one  sin  over  another, 
and  a  predominancy  of  sin  over  grace.  In  the  first  sense,  renewed 
men  may  be  said  to  have  some  reigning  corruption  or  predominant 
sin,  namely,  in  comparison  of  other  sins.  That  such  predominant  sins 
they  have  appeareth  by  the  great  sway  and  power  they  bear  in  com 
manding  other  evils  to  be  either  committed  or  forborne,  accordingly  as 
they  contribute  to  their  advancement ;  as  a  wen  or  a  strain  draweth 
all  the  noxious  humours  to  itself.  So  it  appeareth  by  the  violent  and 
frequent  relapses  of  the  saints  into  them,  or  their  unwillingness  to 


VER.  133.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  391 

admit  of  admonition  and  reproof  for  them,  or  their  falling  into  them 
out  of  an  inward  propensity,  when  outward  temptations  are  none,  or 
weak,  or  very  few  ;  some  sins  that  are  less  mortified  than  others,  or  unto 
which  they  are  carried  by  a  natural  inclination,  constitution,  or  educa 
tion.  Thus  David  had  his  iniquity,  Ps.  xviii.  23,  whether  it  were 
hastiness  or  distrust  of  the  promise,  or  an  inclination  to  revenge  him 
self.  Some  sins  that  men  favour  most,  and  are  most  urgent  and 
importunate  upon  them,  and  steal  away  their  hearts  most  from  God ; 
the  great  pond  into  which  other  rivulets  or  streams  of  iniquity  do 
empty  themselves ;  that  sin  that  outgroweth  all  the  rest,  as  the  tall 
tree  taketh  away  the  nourishment  from  the  under  shrubs ;  that  which 
is  loved  and  delighted  in  above  other  sins ;  and  when  other  sins  will 
not  prevail,  the  devil  sets  this  a- work ;  as  the  disciples  looked  upon  the 
disciple  whom  Jesus  loved ;  when  Christ  told  them  that  one  of  them 
should  betray  him,  Simon  Peter  beckoned  to  him  that  he  should  ask 
who  it  was  of  whom  he  spake,  John  xiii.  23,  24.  Well,  then,  in  regard 
of  other  sins,  one  may  reign  and  sit  in  the  throne  of  the  heart,  be 
beloved  more  than  another,  but  not  in  regard  of  predominancy  over 
grace  ;  for  that  is  contrary  to  the  new  nature,  that  sin  should  have  the 
upper  hand  constantly  and  universally  in  the  soul :  for  any  one  thing, 
though  never  so  lawful  in  itself,  habitually  loved  more  than  God,  will 
not  stand  with  sincerity,  Luke  xiv.  26.  If  not  our  natural  comforts, 
certainly  not  our  carnal  lusts.  To  love  anything  apart  from  Christ, 
or  against  Christ,  or  above  Christ,  is  a  dispossessing  Christ,  or  casting 
him  out  of  the  throne. 

3.  Distinction.  There  is  a  twofold  prevalency  and  dominion  of  sin — 
actual  or  habitual ;  actual  is  only  for  the  time,  habitual  for  a  con 
stancy.  Though  a  regenerate  man  be  not  one  that  lets  sin-  reign  over 
him  habitually,  yet  too  often  doth  sin  reign  over  him  actually  as  to 
some  particular  act  of  sin. 

[1.]  The  habitual  reign  of  sin  may  be  known  by  the  general  frame 
and  state  of  the  heart  and  life,  where  it  is  constantly  yielded  unto,  or 
not  opposed,  but  breaketh  out  without  control,  and  beareth  sway  with 
delight.  Men  give  the  bridle  to  sin,  and  let  it  lead  them  where  they 
will.  That  is  peccatum  regnans,  GUI  homo  nee  vull,  nee  potest  resistere, 
so  Coppen.  The  sinner  neither  can  nor  will  resist,  non  potest,  because 
usually  after  many  lapses  God  giveth  up  men  unto  penal  or  judicial 
hardness  of  heart.  But  he  is  willingly  taking  these  bonds  and  chains 
upon  himself.  Such  are  said,  2  Peter  iii.  3,  '  To  walk  after  their  own 
lusts ;'  to  '  live  in  sin/  Eom.  vi.  2  ;  to  be  '  dead  in  trespasses  and  sins/ 
Eph.  ii.  1 ;  to  '  serve  divers  lusts  and  pleasures/  Titus  iii.  3  ;  to  '  draw 
on  iniquity  with  cart  ropes/  Isa.  v.  18.  Such  as  addict  and  give  over 
themselves  to  a  trade  of  sin  with  delight  and  full  consent. 

[2.]  Actually,  when  we  do  that  which  is  evil  against  our  consciences, 
or  yield  pro  hie  et  nunc  to  obey  sin-  in  the  lusts  thereof ;  when  it 
gaineth  our  consent  for  the  time,  but  the  general  frame  and  state  of 
the  heart  is  against  it.  In  short,  when  sin  is  perfected  into  some  evil 
action,  or  (in  the  apostle's  speech)  when  lust  hath  conceived  and  brought 
forth  sin,  James  ii.  15 ;  that  is,  some  heinous  and  enormous  offence. 
At  that  time,  no  question  it  hath  the  upper  hand,  and  carrieth  it  from 
grace,  and  the  flesh  doth  show  itself  in  them  more  than  the  spirit.  A 


392  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiR.  C XL VIII. 

man  may  please  a  lesser  friend  before  a  greater  in  an  act  or  two. 
Every  presumptuous  act  doth  for  that  time  put  the  sceptre  into  sin's 
hand.  Note,  that  both  predominants  spoken  of  in  the  former  distinc 
tion,  and  the  actual  reign  of  sin  in  this,  do  much  prejudice  a  Christian, 
waste  his  conscience,  hinder  his  joy  of  faith  ;  and  if  not  guarded,  and 
we  do  not  take  up  in  time,  or  if  often,  cannot  be  excused  from  habitual 
reign.  They  are  rare  by  the  violence  of  a  great  temptation,  unlikely 
acts,  as  for  a  hen  to  bring  forth  the  egg  of  a  crow. 

4.  The  next  distinction  is  of  sins  reigning  with  a  full  and  plenary 
consent,  and  with  reluctancy  and  contradiction;  as  Herod  reigned 
over  the  Jews  for  many  years  by  mere  force,  they  opposing  him  and 
contradicting  him,  but  afterwards  willingly  consented  to  his  govern 
ment  :  so  sin  reigneth  in  some,  who  readily,  willingly  obey  the  lusts 
thereof,  and  take  its  bonds  and  chains  upon  them.  And  on  the  godly 
it  doth  sometimes  prevail,  yet  not  quietly  arid  without  blows :  '  The 
evil  which  I  hate  that  do  I/  Horn.  vii.  15.  They  are  in  combat  and 
conflict  with  it.  The  virgin  that  cried  out  was  innocent ;  it  was  a 
ravishment,  not  a  consent,  peccatum  patitur,  non  facit,  as  Bernard. 
The  seed  of  God  is  disliking  and  opposing,  1  John  iil  9.  They  are 
sometimes  foiled,  but  they  keep  up  their  resistance.  Sin  gets  the 
mastery  in  some  acts,  but  as  a  tyrant,  not  a  lawful  possessor.  They 
groan  under  that  oppression,  ever  strive  for  liberty  and  freedom,  and 
in  time  recover  it.  Chrysostom  hath  an  expression  on  that  of  Rom.  vi. 
12,  '  Let  not  sin  therefore  reign  in  your  mortal  bodies,'  &c.,  OVK  elvre 
fir)  Tvpavveiro,  a\\a  fj,rj  (Baaikeverw.  Sin  will  play  the  tyrant  in  the 
best  heart,  but  let  it  not  have  a  quiet  reign.  It  will  take  advantage 
of  present  distempers  and  difficulties ;  it  may  encroach  upon  us,  but  it 
hath  not  our  hearts  :  whereas  it  is  otherwise  if  a  man  be  not  in  arms 
against  it,  but  liveth  in  peace  and  good  contentment  under  the  vigour 
and  life  of  his  lusts  ;  there  is  no  opposition  unless  it  be  some  checks  of 
a  natural  conscience,  or  a  few  thoughts  of  fear  and  shame,  or  some 
temporal  mischief  and  inconvenience;  no  opposition  of  a  renewed 
heart,  no  hatred  of  it  and  opposition  as  it  is  an  offence  to  God ;  then 
your  condition  is  evil. 

Secondly,  That  it  is  a  great  evil,  &c.  It  must  needs  be  so — • 
1.  Because  it  is  a  renouncing  of  the  government  of  Christ.  We 
transfer  the  kingdom  from  him  to  Satan,  and  take  the  sceptre  out  of 
his  hands,  when  we  give  way  to  the  reign  of  sin.  What  though  we 
do  not  formally  intend  this,  yet  virtually  we  do  so,  and  so  God  will 
account  it.  It  is  finis  operis,  though  not  operantis.  Look,  as  the 
setting  up  of  a  usurper  is  the  rejection  of  the  lawful  king,  so  the  setting 
up  of  sin  is  the  setting  up  of  Satan,  John  viii.  44,  and  by  consequence 
a  laying  aside  of  Christ ;  for  every  degree  of  service  done  to  him 
includeth  a  like  degree  or  portion  of  treason  and  infidelity  to  Christ. 
For  a  man  cannot  serve  two  masters,  Mat.  vi.  24,  cannot  have  two 
chief  goods  at  the  same  time ;  therefore  he  that  cleaveth  to  the  one 
refuseth  the  other.  If  you  cleave  to  sin,  you  renounce  Christ ;  and 
though  we  profess  Christ  to  be  our  Lord,  that  will  not  help  the  matter, 
Mat.  vi.  21  ;  we  are,  for  all  that,  as  true  bondmen  to  Satan  as  the 
heathen  that  offered  sacrifice  to  him.  A  drunken  or  wanton  Christian 
giveth  the  devil  as  much  interest  in  him  as  those  that  sacrificed  to 


VER.  133.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  393 

Bacchus  or  Priapus  or  Venus ;  for  he  doth  as  absolutely  dispose  and 
command  your  affections  as  he  did  theirs :  you  are  his  by  possession 
and  occupation  ;  the  bond  of  your  servitude  to  Satan  is  altogether  as 
firm  and  strong  as  their  rites  of  worship.  Now  we  that  know  Christ's 
right  both  by  purchase  and  covenant,  cannot  but  know  what  a  great 
sin  this  is.  By  purchase  we  are  his :  1  Cor.  vi.  19,  20,  '  Ye  are  not 
your  own  ;  ye  are  bought  with  a  price/  The  buyer  hath  a  power  over 
what  he  hath  bought.  We  were  lost  and  sold;  we  sold  ourselves 
against  all  right  and  justice,  and  Christ  was  pleased  to  redeem  us,  and 
that  with  no  slight  thing,  but  with  his  own  blood,  1  Peter  i.  18,  19. 
How  can  you  look  your  Redeemer  in  the  face  at  the  last  day  ?  If  you 
have  any  sense  and  belief  of  Christian  mysteries,  you  should  be  afraid 
to  rob  Christ  of  his  purchase  :  1  Cor.  vi.  15,  '  Shall  I  take  the  mem 
bers  of  Christ,  and  make  them  the  members  of  an  harlot?  God 
forbid.'  He  hath  bought  you  to  this  very  end,  that  you  may  be  no 
longer  under  the  slavery  of  sin,  but  under  his  blessed  government  and 
the  sceptre  of  his  Spirit :  Titus  ii.  14,  '  He  hath  redeemed  us  from  all 
iniquity/  This  was  his  end,  to  set  us  at  liberty,  and  to  free  us  from 
our  sins ;  therefore,  for  us  to  despise  the  benefit,  and  to  count  our 
bondage  a  delight,  yea,  to  build  up  that  which  he  came  to  destroy ; 
this  is  as  great  an  affront  to  Christ  as  can  be.  But  we  are  not  only 
his  by  purchase,  but  his  by  covenant :  Ezek.  xvi.  8,  '  I  entered  into  a 
covenant  with  thee,  and  thou  becamest  mine/  This  was  ratified  in 
baptism,  where  we  dedicated  ourselves  to  the  Lord's  use  and  service ; 
and  shall  we  rescind  our  baptismal  vows,  and  give  the  sovereignty  to 
another,  after  we  have  resigned  ourselves  to  Christ,  and  the  hands  of 
consecration  have  passed  upon  us?  When  Ananias  had  dedicated 
that  which  was  in  his  power,  and  kept  back  part  for  private  use,  God 
struck  him  dead  in  the  place,  Acts  v.  5.  And  if  we  alienate  ourselves, 
who  were  Christ's  before  the  consecration,  of  how  much  sorer  vengeance 
shall  we  be  guilty  ?  God's  complaint  was  just :  Ezek.  xvi.  20,  '  Thou 
hast  taken  thy  sons  and  thy  daughters,  whom  thou  hast  born  unto 
me,  and  these  hast  thou  sacrificed  unto  them  to  be  devoured/  And 
if  Satan  hath  a  full  interest  in  you  by  doing  his  lusts,  as  he  had 
in  them  by  that  rite  of  worship,  is  not  the  wrong  done  to  God  the 
same? 

2.  It  is  a  sure  note  of  a  carnal  heart ;  for  it  is  not  only  incon 
gruous  that  a  renewed  man  should  let  sin  reign,  but  impossible.  De 
jure  it  ought  not,  de  facto  it  shall  not  be.  The  exhortation  and  pro 
mise  :  Eom.  vi.  12,  with  xiv.  12,  '  Let  not  sin  reign  in  your  mortal 
bodies/  There  is  the  exhortation;  while  you  have  these  mortal 
bodies,  sin  will  dwell  in  you,  but  let  it  not  reign  over  you.  God 
suffereth  it  to  dwell  in  us  for  our  exercise,  not  our  ruin.  Then  the 
promise,  ver.  14,  '  Sin  shall  not  have  dominion  over  you ;  for  ye  are 
not  under  the  law,  but  under  grace/  Let  not,  shall  not.  It  is  true 
sin  rernaineth  in  the  godly,  but  it  reigneth  not  there.  It  is  dejectum 
quodammodo,  non  ejectum  tamen.  Cast  down  in  regard  of  regency, 
not  cast  out  in  regard  of  inherency.  Like  the  beasts  in  Daniel,  chap, 
vii.  12,  '  They  had  their  dominion  taken  away,  though  their  lives 
prolonged  for  a  season  ;'  some  degree  of  life,  but  their  reign  broken. 
The  Israelites  could  not  wholly  expel  the  Canaanites,  yet  they  kept 


394  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXLYIII. 

them  under.  There  will  be  pride,  earthliness,  unbelief,  and  sensuality 
dwelling,  moving,  working  in  them  ;  but  it  hath  not  its  wonted  power 
over  them.  Christ  will  not  reckon  men  slaves  to  sin  by  their  having 
sin  in  them,  nor  yet  by  their  daily  failings  and  infirmities,  or  by 
their  falling  now  and  then  into  foul  faults  by  the  violence  of  a 
temptation,  unless  they  make  a  constant  trade  of  sin,  and  be  under 
the  dominion  of  it  without  control,  and  set  up  no  course  of  mortifi 
cation  against  it. 

3.  The  reign  of  sin  is  so  mischievous.     Sin,  when  it  once  gets  the 
throne,  groweth  outrageous,  and  involveth  us  in  many  inconveniences 
ere  we  can  get  out  again.     Therefore  they  that  know  the  service  of 
sin,  as  we  all  do  by  sad  experience,  should  use  all  caution  that  it  never 
bring  them  into  bondage  again.     The  work  and  wages  of  sin  are  very 
different  from  God's  work  and  wages.     The  apostle  compareth  them 
when  he  dissuadeth  them  from  the  reign  of  sin :  Kom.   vi.  21,  22, 
'  For  when  ye  were  the  servants  of  sin,  ye  were  free  from  righteousness. 
What  fruit  had  you  then  in  those  things  whereof  ye  are  now  ashamed? 
for  the  end  of  those  things  is  death.     But  now,  being  made  free  from 
sin,  and  become  servants  to  God,  ye  have  your  fruit  to  holiness,  and 
the  end  everlasting  life/    You  have  had  full  experience  of  the  fruits 
of  sin,  of  Satan's  work ;  what  fruit  then  ?    Before  you  had  tasted  better 
things,  before  you  had  a  contrary  principle  set  up  in  your  hearts  ;  you 
iire  ashamed  now  to  think  of  that  course,  now  you  know  better  things. 
But  what  fruit  then?     Satan's  work  is  drudgery,  and  his   reward 
death.     The  devil  hath  one  bad  property,  which  no  other  master,  how 
cruel  soever,  hath — to  plague  and  torment  them  most  which  have 
done  him  most  continual  and  faithful  service.     Those  that  have  sinned 
most  have  most  horror,  and  every  degree  of  service  hath  a  proportion 
able  degree  of  shame  and  punishment.     He  is  an  unreasonable  tyrant 
in  exacting  service  without  rest  and  intermission.     The  most  cruel 
oppressors,  Turks  and  infidels,  give  some  rest  to  their  captives ;  but 
sin  is  unsatisfiable.     Men  spend  all  their  means  and  all  their  time 
and  all  their  strength  in  pursuit  of  it ;  yet  all  is  little  enough.     And 
what  is  the  reward  of  all  but  death  and  destruction?     Now  judge 
you  to  whom  should  we  yield  obedience,  and  who  hath  most  right  to 
be  sovereign?     He  who  made  us  and  redeemed  us,  and  preserveth 
us  every  day,  none  but  he  can  claim  title  to  us ;  he  to  whom  we  are 
debtors  by  so  many  vows,  so  many  obligations ;  or  else  Satan,  our 
worst  enemy,  who  is  posting  us  on  to  our  own  destruction  ? 

4.  It  is  so  uncomely,  and  misbecoming  the  new  estate,  wherein  we 
have  so  many  helps  and  encouragements  to  resist  sin. 

[1.]  For  helps,  you  have  an  opposite  principle  to  give  check  to  it,  the 
seed  of  God,  or  new  nature.  Since  Christ  hath  put  grace  into  your  hearts 
to  resist  sin,  it  is  your  duty  not  to  suffer  it  to  be  idle  and  unfruitful : 
Bom.  vi.  11,  12,  '  Beckon  yourselves  to  be  dead  indeed  unto  sin,  but 
alive  unto  God,  through  Jesus  Christ  our  Lord.  Let  not  sin  therefore 
reign  in  your  mortal  bodies,  that  ye  should  obey  it  in  the  lusts  thereof/ 
You  want  no. ability  to  encourage  ;  you  have  an  observing  witness  to 
give  check  to  it,  the  Spirit  of  God,  who  will  help  you  in  this  work, 
Bom.  viii.  13.  He  will  be  your  second  ;  neither  we  without  the  Spirit, 
nor  the  Spirit  without  us.  There  is  a  life  and  power  goeth  along 


VER.  133.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  395 

with  every  gospel  truth.     Laziness  pretendeth  want  of  power  ;  but  what 
is  too  hard  for  the  Spirit  ?     Then  — 

[2.]  For  encouragement.  In  every  war  are  two  notable  encourage 
ments—goodness  of  the  quarrel,  and  hopes  of  victory  ;  as  David?  1 
Sam.  xvii.  36.  We  have  these  in  our  conflict  and  combat  with  sin. 
(1.)  Our  quarrel  and  our  cause  is  good  ;  it  is  the  quarrel  of  the  Lord 
of  hosts  which  you  fight.  We  stand  with  Christ  our  redeemer,  who 
came,  «/a  \va-y,  that  he  might  destroy  the  works  of  the  devil.  He 
hath  begun  the  battle  ;  we  do  but  labour  to  keep  under  that  enemy 
which  Christ  hath  begun  to  slay  and  destroy.  Sin  is  not  only  an 
enemy  to  us,  but  to  him.  It  is  against  him,  and  hindereth  his  glory 
in  the  world,  and  the  subjection  of  his  creatures  and  servants.  Were 
it  not  for  sin,  what  a  glorious  potentate  would  Christ  be,  even  in  the 
judgment  of  the  world?  (2.)  Hope  of  the  victory.  Our  strife  will 
end,  and  it  will  end  well.  Those  that  are  really,  earnestly  striving 
against  sin,  are  sure  to  conquer:  Rom.  vi.  14,  '  Let  not  sin  reign,'  &c. 
And  it  shall  not  ;  if  there  be  but  a  likelihood  of  victory,  we  are  en 
couraged  to  fight.  Here  a  Christian  may  triumph  before  the  victory. 
Nop;  ceque  glorietur  accinctus,  ac  discinctus.  1  Kings  xx.  11,  '  Let 


not  him  that  girdeth  on  his  harness  boast  himself  as  he  that  putteth 
it  off.'  There  will  come  a  good  and  happy  issue  in  the  end,  even  a 
conquest  of  sin.  For  the  present  we  overcome  it  in  part  ;  it  shall  not 
finally  and  totally  overcome  us  in  this  world  ;  and  shortly  all  strife 
will  be  over:  Kom.  xvi.  20,  'The  God  of  peace  shall  bruise  Satan 
under  your  feet  shortly/  It  is  but  a  little  while,  and  we  shall  receive 
the  crown,  and  triumph  over  all  our  enemies. 

Thirdly,  Why  the  saints  should  deprecate  this  evil. 

1.  Because  there  is  sin  still  in  us  all.     It  is  a  bosom  enemy,  that  is 
born  and  bred  with  us  ;  and  therefore  it  will  soon  get  the  advantage 
of  grace,  if  it  be  not  watched  and  resisted  ;  as  nettles  and  weeds  that 
are  kindly  to-  the  soil,  will  soon  choke  flowers  and  better  herbs  that 
are  planted  by  care,  and  grow  not  of  their  own  accord,  when  they  are 
neglected,  and  continually  rooted  out.     We  cannot  get  rid  of  this 
cursed  inmate  till  this  outer  tabernacle  be  dissolved,  and  this  house  of 
clay  crumbled  into  dust.     Our  old  nature  is  so  inclinable  to  this 
slavery,  that  if  God  subtract  his  grace,  what  shall  we  do  ? 

2.  It  is  not  only  in  us,  but  always  working  and  striving  for  the 
mastery  ;  it  is  not  as  other  things,  which,  as  they  grow  in  age,  are 
more  quiet  and  tame  ;  but,  Eom.  vii.  8,  '  Sin  wrought  in  me  all 
manner  of  concupiscence  ;  the  spirit  that  dwelleth  in  us  lusteth  to 
envy.'     It  is  not  a  sleepy,  but  a  working,  stirring  principle.     If  it 
were  a  dull  and  inactive  habit,  the  danger  were  not  so  great  ;  but  ft  is 
always  exercising  and  putting  forth  itself,  and  seeking  to  gain  an 
interest  in  our  affections,  and  a  command  over  all  our  actions  ;  and 
therefore,  unless  we  do  our  part  to  keep  it  under,  we  shall  soon  revert 
to  our  old  slavery.     Sin  must  be  kept  under  as  a  slave,  or  else  it  will 
be  above  as  a  tyrant,  and  domineer. 

Once  more,  the  more  it  acts,  the  more  strength  it^  gets  ;  as  all 
habits  are  increased  by  action  :  for  when  we  have  once  yielded,  we  are 
ready  to  yield  again.  Therefore  any  one  sin  let  alone,  yea,  that  which 
we  least  suspect,  may  bring  us  into  subjection  and  captivity  to  the  law 


396  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiK  C XL VIII. 

of  sin,  Eom.  vii.  23.     It  doth  not  only  make  us  flexible  and  yielding 
to  temptations,  but  it  doth  urge  and  impel  us  thereunto. 

Again,  this  bondage  is  daily  increasing,  and  more  hard  to  be  broken ; 
for  by  multiplied  acts  a  custom  creepeth  upon  us,  which  is  another 
nature ;  and  that  which  might  be  remedied  at  first  groweth  more 
difficult.  Diseases  looked  to  at  first  are  more  easy  to  be  cured, 
whereas  otherwise  they  grow  desperate  ;  so  sins  before  hardened  into 
a  custom,  before  they  bring  us  under  the  power  of  any  creature  or 
comfort  which  we  affect,  2  Cor.  vi.  12 ;  for  then  afterwards  it  cometh 
to  a  complete  dominion  and  slavery,  so  that  if  a  man  would,  he  cannot 
help  it.  It  behoveth,  then,  every  child  of  God  to  do  his  part,  that  sin 
may  not  reign  ;  for  where  care  is  not  taken,  it  certainly  will  reign. 

Use  1.  To  reprove  the  security  and  carelessness  of  many.  David 
suspected  himself,  else  he  would  never  have  made  this  prayer  to  God : 
Lord  keep  me ;  '  Let  not  any  iniquity  have  dominion  over  me.'  And 
we  should  all  do  so  that  would  be  safe :  Prov.  xxviii.  14,  '  Happy  is 
the  man  that  feareth  alway  ;  but  he  that  hardeneth  his  heart  shall  fall 
into  mischief/  A  constant  watchfulness  and  holy  jealousy  and  self- 
suspicion  will  be  no  burden  to  you,  but  a  blessing.  Sin  deceiveth  us 
into  hardness  of  heart  for  want  of  taking  heed.  Many  that  are 
secure  do  not  consider  their  danger,  and  therefore  they  are  not  so 
careful  to  watch  over  themselves,  nor  so  humble  as  to  implore  the 
divine  assistance,  because  they  do  not  consider  how  soon  they  may  be 
transported  by  a  naughty  heart,  and  brought  under  the  power  and 
reign  of  sin.  Surely  were  we  as  sensible  of  the  danger  of  the  inward 
man  as  we  are  of  the  outward,  we  would  resist  the  first  motions,  and 
not  nourish  and  foster  a  temptation  as  we  do.  The  saints  do  not 
tarry  till  the  dead  blow  cometh,  but  resist  the  first  strokes  of  sin ; 
they  do  not  tarry  till  it  pines  to  death,  but  resist  the  first  inclinations. 
An  evil  inclination,  if  it  be  cherished  and  gratified,  gets  ground  ;  the 
longer  we  let  it  alone,  the  harder  will  our  conflict  be,  for  sin  secureth 
its  interest  by  degrees. 

2.  It  showeth  the  fearful  estate  of  them  that  lie  under  the  dominion 
of  sin.  But  who  will  own  it  ? 

[1.]  It  is  certain  that  all  men  in  their  natural  estate  are  in  this  con 
dition.  Sin  doth  reign  where  there  is  no  principle  of  grace  set  up 
against  it.  The  throne  is  always  filled  ;  man's  heart  cannot  lie  empty 
and  void.  If  grace  doth  not  reign,  sin  reigneth.  Natural  men  are 
under  the  power  of  darkness,  Acts  xxviii.  18,  and  Col.  i.  13  ;  living  in 
a  peaceable  subjection  to  sin ;  till  Christ  come  to  trouble  it,  all  is 
quiet ;  wind  and  tide  go  together. 

[2.]  It  appeareth  by  your  course.  Many  will  say,  '  There  is  not  a 
just  man  on  earth,  that  doeth  good  and  sinneth  not ;'  you  are  sinners 
as  well  as  we.  Ans.  There  is  a  difference ;  though  there  be  not  a 
good  man  upon  earth,  that  sinneth  not,  Eccles.  vii.  20,  yet  there  is  a 
difference.  Some  have  not  the  spot  of  God's  children,  Deut.  xxxii.  5. 
There  is  a  difference  between  sins :  Lev.  xiii.  24-26.  God  gave  the 
priest  under  the  law  direction  how  to  put  a  difference  between  leprous 
persons.  So  still  there  is  a  great  deal  of  difference  between  numbness 
and  death,  and  between  dimness  of  sight  and  blindness,  want  of  sense 
and  want  of  life,  between  stumbling  into  a  ditch  and  throwing  our- 


VER.  133.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  397 

selves  headlong  into  an  ocean.  And  so  there  is  a  difference  between 
infirmities  and  iniquities,  a  failing  out  of  ignorance  and  weakness,  or 
some  powerful  temptation,  and  a  running  headlong  into  all  ungodli 
ness.  God's  children  have  their  failings,  but  a  burning  desire  to  be 
freed  from  them,  though  others  wallow  in  their  sin  without  any  care 
of  a  remedy.  In  one  there  is  a  failing  in  point  of  duty,  in  the  other 
a  rebellion.  Take  Judas  and  Peter ;  both  sinned  against  their 
Master  ;  the  one  denied,  the  other  betrayed  him  ;  the  one  denied  him 
out  of  fear,  the  other  betrayed  him  out  of  covetousness  and  greediness 
of  gain  ;  the  one  plotted  his  death,  the  other  was  surprised  on  a  sudden. 
There  is  a  great  deal  of  difference  between  purpose  and  a  surprise  ; 
the  one  wept  bitterly,  the  other  is  given  up  to  a  raging  despair. 
David  did  not  make  a  trade  of  adultery,  and  bathe  himself  in  filthy 
lusts.  Noah  was  drunk,  but  not  knowing  the  power  of  the  juice  of 
the  grape.  They  dare  not  lie  in  this  estate,  but  seek  to  get  out  by 
repentance. 

[3.]  Some  things  may  beget  caution,  and  move  you  to  suspect  your 
selves  ;  that  is,  when  your  souls  readily  comply  with  the  temptation, 
you  are  at  sin's  beck.  If  it  saith,  Go,  you  go  ;  if  it  saith,  Come,  you 
come.  It  is  of  great  concernment  to  know  what  goes  to  the  determin 
ing  a  man's  condition,  to  know  at  whose  beck  he  is,  whether  he  is  at 
the  flesh's  or  spirit's  beck.  Ps.  ciii.  20,  the  godly  are  described  that 
they  hearken  unto  the  voice  of  his  word ;  so  the  wicked  are  those  that 
hearken  to  the  voice  of  sin^  If  sin  but  make  a  motion,  it  is  a  match 
presently.  If  ambition  bid  Absalom  rise  up  against  his  father,  then 
he  will  trouble  the  whole  kingdom,  it  will  hurry  him  to  run  his  father 
down  ;  if  envy  bid  Cain  kill  his  brother  Abel,  he  will  not  stick  at  it ; 
if  covetousness  bid  Achan  take  a  bribe  of  that  which  was  devoted  to 
the  flames,  and  must  be  offered  as  a  burnt-offering  to  God,  yet  Achan 
obeys  his  covetousness ;  if  adultery  bids  Joseph's  mistress  tempt  her 
servant,  presently  she  yields.  So  when  a  sinner  yields,  and  is  led  away 
like  a  fool  to  the  correction  of  the  stocks.  Meadow  ground  may  in  a 
great  flood  be  drowned,  but  marsh  ground  is  overflown  by  every 
return  of  the  tide  ;  so  they  cannot  cease  to  sin,  every  temptation 
carries  them  away.  When  men  are  impatient  of  reproof,  when  they 
have  a  privy  sore  they  cannot  endure  should  be  touched,  if  a  man 
speak  to  them  anything  to  help  them  on  to  interpret  their  condition. 
Herod  must  not  have  his  Herodias  touched,  though  he  heard  John 
the  Baptist  gladly  in  many  things.  Or  when  men  set  up  a  toleration 
and  court  of  faculties  in  their  hearts,  and  they  will  have  a  dispensa 
tion  :  if  God  will  be  contented  with  obedience  in  some  things,  they 
will  dispense  with  other  things,  pardon  for  some  sins,  but  not  break 
them  off ;  have  an  indulgence  that  they  may  continue  in  them,  or  in 
vain  practices.  This  shows  the  reign  of  sin. 


398  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXLIX. 

SEKMON  CXLIX. 

Deliver  me  from  the  oppression  of  man  ;  so  will  I  keep  thy  precepts. — 

VER.  134. 

IN  the  former  verse,  the  man  of  God  had  begged  grace  with  respect  to 
internal  enemies,  to  the  bosom  enemy  the  flesh,  that  no  sin  might  have 
dominion  over  him  ;  now  he  beggeth  deliverance  from  external  enemies. 
The  saints  are  not  only  exercised  with  their  own  corruptions,  but  the 
malice  of  wicked  men.  We  have  to  do  both  with  sin  and  sinners,  with 
temptations  and  persecutions;  and  therefore  he  desireth  first  to  be 
kept  from  sin,  and  after  that  from  danger  and  trouble  ;  first  from  the 
dominion  of  sin,  and  then  from  the  oppression  of  sinners.  Both  are  a 
trouble  to  us  ;  they  were  a  trouble  to  David  ;  and  God  can  and  will 
in  time  give  us  deliverance  from  both,  deliver  me  from  the  oppression 
of  man,  &c. 

In  the  text  we  have — 

1.  A  prayer  for  mercy. 

2.  A  resolution,  vow,  and  promise  of  duty.     The  one  is  inferred  out 
%of  the  other,  so  will  I  keep  thy  precepts. 

First,  A  prayer  for  mercy,  '  Deliver  me  from  the  oppression  of  man/ 
In  the  Hebrew  it  is,  from  the  oppression  of  Adam,  the  name  of  the 
first  father,  for  the  posterity.  This  term  is  put  either  by  way  of  dis 
tinction,  aggravation,  or  diminution. 

1.  Man  by  way  of  distinction.     There  is  the  oppression  and  tyranny 
of  the  devil  and  sin ;  but  the  Psalmist  doth  not  mean  that  now. 
Hominum  non  dcemonum,  saith  Hugo. 

2.  Man  by  way  of  aggravation.    Homo  homini  lupus ;  no  creatures 
so  ravenous  and  destructive  to  one  another  as  man.     It  is  a  shame 
that  one  man  should  oppress  another.      Beasts  do  not  usually  devour 
those  of  the  same  kind,  but  usually  a  man's  enemies  are  those  of  his 
own  household,  Mat.  x.  36.     The  nearer  we  are  in  bonds  of  alliance, 
the  greater  the  hatred.     We  are  of  the  same  stock,  and  reason  should 
tell  every  one  of  us  that  we  should  do  as  we  would  be  done  to.     Nay, 
we  are  of  the  same  religion.     Eodem  sanguine  Gliristi  glutinati.     We 
are  cemented  together  by  the  blood  of  Christ,  which  obliges  to  more 
brotherly  kindness ;  and  if  we  differ  in  a  few  things,  to  be  sure  we 
have  cords  of  alliance  and  relations  enough  to  love  one  another  more 
than  we  do.     But  for  all  this  there  is  the  oppression  of  man. 

3.  Man  by  way  of  diminution.     And  to  lessen  the  fear  of  this  evil, 
this  term  '  Adam '  is  given  them,  to  show  their  weakness  in  com 
parison  of  God.     Thou  art  God,  but  they  that  are  so  ready  and  for 
ward  to  oppress  arid  injure  us  are  but  men  ;  thou  canst  easily  over 
rule  their  power  and  break  the  yoke.      I  think  this   consideration 
chief est,  because  of  other  places :    Ps.  x.  18,  '  Thou  wilt  judge  the 
fatherless  and  the  oppressed,  that  the  man  of  the  earth  may  no  more 
oppress.'      The  oppressors  are  but  men  of  the  earth,  a  piece  of  red 
clay,  earth  in  his  composition,  earth  in  his  dissolution,  frail  men,  that 
must  within  a  while  be  laid  in  the  dust.     But  it  is  more  emphatically 
expressed,  Isa.  li.  12, 13,  '  Who  art  thou,  that  thou  shouldest  be  afraid 
of  a  man  that  shall  die,  and  of  the  son  of  man  that  shall  be  made  as 


VER.  134.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  399 

grass  ;  and  forgettesfc  the  Lord  thy  maker,  which  hath  stretched  forth 
the  heavens,  and  laid  the  foundations  of  the  earth ;  and  hast  feared 
continually  every  day  because  of  the  fury  of  the  oppressor,  as  if  he 
were  ready  to  destroy  ?  and  where  is  now  the  rage  of  the  oppressor  ? ' 
When  thou  hast  the  immortal  and  almighty  God  to  be  thy  protector 
and  saviour,  shouldest  thou  be  afraid  of  a  weak  mortal  man,  that  is 
but  Adam,  a  little  enlivened  dust  ?  Within  a  little  while  he  and  all 
his  fury  is  over  and  gone. 

Secondly,  The  promise  of  duty,  '  I  will  keep  thy  precepts.'  Which 
is  a  constant  observation  of  all  God's  commandments,  if  God  would 
interpose  for  his  rescue.  But  did  David  do  well  to  suspend  his 
obedience  upon  so  uncertain  a  condition?  I  answer — No;  we 
must  not  understand  it  so  as  if  he  did  indent  with  God  upon  those 
terms  and  no  otherwise ;  or  as  if  before  he  had  not  kept  them  ;  and 
would  then  begin.  No ;  he  would  keep  them,  however,  and  had  kept 
them ;  only  this  would  be  a  new  engagement  to  press  him  to  keep 
them  more  constantly,  more  accurately.  Look  throughout  this  psalm, 
and  you  shall  find  David  still  at  his  duty  whatever  his  condition  be  : 
ver.  51,  *  The  proud  have  had  me  greatly  in  derision  ;  yet  have  I  not 
declined  from  thy  law/  There  he  is  scorned,  but  not  discouraged. 
Ver.  61,  '  The  hands  of  the  wicked  have  robbed  me  ;  yet  have  I  not 
forgotten  thy  law.'  There  plundered,  wasted,  stripped  of  all,  yet  not 
discouraged.  Ver.  69,  '  The  proud  have  forged  a  lie  against  me  ;  but  I 
will  keep  thy  precepts  with  my  whole  heart.'  There  falsely  accused, 
but  not  discouraged.  Ver.  83,  '  I  am  become  like  a  bottle  in  the  smoke ; 
yet  do  I  not  forget  thy  statutes/  There  dried  up  and  shrunk  into 
nothing,  yet  not  discouraged.  Ver.  87,  '  They  had  almost  consumed 
me  upon  earth ;  but  I  forsook  not  thy  precepts.'  Ver.  141,  *  I  am 
small  and  despised  ;  yet  I  do  not  forget  thy  precepts.'  So  that  his 
meaning  was,  not  that  he  would  serve  God  no  longer  unless  he  would 
deliver  him  ;  but  the  meaning  is,  he  should  have  a  new  obligation  and 
encouragement :  this  will  engage  me  afresh.  He  doth  aforehand  in 
terpose  a  promise  that  he  would  walk  with  God  more  closely.  From 
the  words  thus  opened,  we  have  three  points  : — 

1.  Deliverance  from  oppression  is  a  blessing  to  be  sought  from  the 
hands  of  God  in  prayer. 

2.  When  God  delivereth  us  from  the  oppression  of  man,  we  should 
be  quickened  and  encouraged  in  his  service. 

3.  When  we  are  praying  for  deliverance,  we  may  interpose  a  promise 
of  obedience. 

First,  For  the  first  point,  that  deliverance  from  oppression  is  a  bless 
ing  to  be  sought  from  the  hands  of  God  in  prayer.  I  shall  show  it 
first  by  answering  the  question  why,  and  then  show  you  how. 
1.  Why  ?  The  point  may  be  strengthened  by  these  reasons  : — 
[1.]  We  have  liberty  to  ask  temporal  things.  Many  think  it  too 
carnal  to  pray  for  health,  food  and  raiment,  long  life,  temporal  deli 
verance.  What  God  hath  promised  we  may  lawfully  pray  for ;  for  a 
prayer  is  but  a  promise  put  in  suit.  Now  these  blessings  are  adopted 
into  the  covenant,  as  being  useful  to  us  in  our  passage  ;  and  therefore 
we  may  ask  them.  What  Christ  has  taught  us  to  pray  for,  that  we 
may  pray  for  ;  for  he  said,  'After  this  manner  pray  ye,'  Mat.  vi.  9;  and 
one  request  is,  '  Give  us  this  day  our  daily  bread.'  Protection  and 


400  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiB.  CXLIX. 

maintenance  we  ask,  as  well  as  pardon  and  grace.  It  conduceth  to  the 
honour  of  God  that  we  should  ask  these  things  of  him,  that  we  may 
testify  our  dependence,  and  acknowledge  his  inspection  and  government 
over  the  affairs  of  the  world  :  Ps.  ix.  7,  '  He  hath  prepared  his  throne 
for  judgment.'  Courts  of  justice  among  men  are  not  always  open  to 
hear  the  plaintiff,  but  the  Lord  holdeth  court  continually ;  we  may 
come  to  the  Lord  every  day.  No  man's  petition  and  complaint  is 
delayed  for  an  hour.  He  hath  prepared  his  throne  for  this  end  and 
purpose,  to  hear  the  complaints  of  his  people  when  they  are  oppressed  ; 
therefore  we  may  pray  for  temporal  things. 

[2.]  Our  spiritual  welfare  is  concerned  in  such  temporal  deliverances, 
that  we  may  serve  God  without  impediment,  and  without  distraction. 
(1.)  The  oppression  of  man  is  an  impediment ;  it  taketh  us  off  from 
many  opportunities  of  service  and  bringing  honour  to  God;  and 
though  God  will  dispense  with  us  at  such  a  time,  yet  it  is  uncomfort 
able  ;  as  God  dispensed  with  David  when  he  was  hunted  up  and  down 
the  wilderness:  Ps.  Ixiii.,  Ixxxiv.,  xlii.  As  Christ  biddeth  them  pray, 
Mat.  xxiv.  20,  '  Pray  that  your  flight  be  not  in  the  winter,  or  on  the 
sabbath-day.'  Though  it  was  lawful,  it  was  grievous  ;  as  grievous  to 
the  body  to  have  their  flight  in  winter,  and  grievous  to  the  soul  to  have 
it  on  a  sabbath-day,  that  might  call  to  mind  their  pleasant  oppor 
tunities  of  conversing  with  God  by  prayer.  When  God  denieth  liberty 
and  opportunity  of  enjoying  and  performing  the  exercises  of  religion, 
we  are  excused  from  positive  duties.  But  yet  it  is  a  great  mercy  to 
have  our  liberty  restored,  to  serve  God  in  peace  without  distraction,  to 
have  a  little  breathing-time :  Acts  xix.  31,  *  Then  had  the  churches 
rest.'  The  oppressions  and  persecutions  of  men  are  among  the  temp 
tations,  and  may  weaken  obedience  to  God  ;  and  if  not  altogether  drive 
us  from  his  service,  yet  clog  our  spirits  and  hinder  our  cheerfulness 
and  readiness  in  it :  Eccles.  vii.  7,  '  Oppression  will  make  a  wise  man 
mad.'  It  will  strangely  shake  and  discompose  our  spirits,  especially 
as  it  may  be  circumstantiated  ;  that  is,  when  we  have  base  indignities 
put  upon  us,  as  when  exposed  to  all  manner  of  insolency  and  contempt: 
Ps.  cxxiii.  4,  '  Have  mercy  upon  us,  for  we  are  filled  with  contempt.' 
Our  friends  afraid  to  pity  us,  Eccles.  iv.  1.  Take  it  at  best,  it  is  no 
small  discouragement  and  trial  to  a  godly  man.  Therefore  it  being 
so  that  oppression  is  ever  reckoned  among  the  temptations,  we  may 
pray  not  to  enter  into  temptation  ;  as  Theophylact  observeth  well  on 
the  place,  the  rather  because  one  way  by  which  God  helpeth  his  people 
is  by  taking  away  the  temptation,  as  well  as  ministering  a  supply  of 
grace :  Ps.  cxxv.  4,  '  The  rod  of  the  wicked  shall  not  always  rest  upon 
the  lot  of  the  righteous  ;'  1  Cor.  x.  13,  'But  will  with  the  temptation 
also  make  a  way  to  escape,  that  we  may  be  able  to  bear  it/ 

[3.]  The  glory  of  God  is  concerned.  His  people  will  honour  him 
more  if  one,  especially  an  eminent  one,  be  delivered  from  the  oppres 
sion  of  man  :  Ps.  cxlii.  7,  '  Bring  my  soul  out  of  prison,  that  I  may 
praise  thy  name :  the  righteous  shall  compass  me  about,  for  thou  shalt 
deal  bountifully  with  me.'  They  will  be  flocking  about  him,  and 
inquiring  what  experiences  of  God  and  his  goodness  he  hath  found : 
2  Cor.  i.  11,  'Helping  together  by  prayer  for  us,  that  for  the  gift 
bestowed  upon  us,  by  the  means  of  many  persons,  thanks  may  be  given 
by  many  on  our  behalf.'  Much  more  when  the  whole  church  is  deli- 


YER.  134.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  401 

vered :  Ps.  li.  18,  19,  '  Do  good  in  thy  good  pleasure  to  Zion ;  build 
thou  the  walls  of  Jerusalem  :  thou  shalt  be  pleased  with  the  sacrifice 
'of  righteousness,'  &c.  Every  heart  will  be  thinking  of  honour  and 
praise  to  God.  And  besides  the  honour  done  to  God  by  his  people, 
God  will  more  discover  himself  to  the  world,  his  justice  will  be  more 
evidenced :  Ps.  ix.  16,  *  The  Lord  is  known  by  tne  judgment  which 
he  executeth.'  The  world  is  led  by  sense  ;  he  will  not  be  taken  to  be 
-a  friend  to  persecutors  and  oppressors.  In  short,  it  is  not  for  the 
honour  of  God  that  his  people  should  be  left  under  oppression,  as  if  he 
sought  not,  and  cared  not  for  their  welfare.  You  shall  see  the  afflicted 
condition  of  the  church  is  called  '  the  reproach  of  the  heathen/  Ezek. 
xxxvi.  30  ;  and  Ezek.  xxxiv.  29,  '  Thou  shalt  not  bear  the  reproach  of 
the  heathen  any  more.'  The  heathen  would  cast  this  in  their  teeth, 
as  if  their  God  had  no  respect  to  them,  or  were  not  able  to  help  them. 

[4.]  Prayer  engageth  us  to  constancy.  God's  deliverance  will  be 
better  for  us  than  our  own ;  that  is,  than  those  sinful  shifts  and  ways 
of  escape  that  we  can  find  out.  What  we  ask  of  God  must  be  had  in 
God's  way.  It  bindeth  us  to  seek  no  other  way  of  escape  than  we  can 
-commend  to  God's  blessing  in  prayer.  It  is  said  of  the  saints,  Heb. 
xi.  35,  *  That  they  were  tortured,  not  accepting  deliverance  ;  that  they 
might  receive  a  better  resurrection/  Would  any  refuse  deliverance 
when  it  is  tendered  to  them  ?  Yes,  upon  such  spiteful  conditions : 
they  were  commanded  to  do  something  contrary  to  the  laws  of  God ; 
therefore  they  would  have  God's  deliverance,  not  their  own.  Every 
one  of  them  was  offered  release  in  the  midst  of  their  torments  and 
tortures,  if  they  would  yield  to  the  eating  of  swine's  flesh,  or  that 
which  was  forbidden  by  God. 

[5.]  Seeking  deliverance  at  the  hands  of  God  doth  ease  the  heart 
of  a  great  deal  of  trouble,  and  deliver  it  from  those  inordinate  affec 
tions  and  afflicting  and  tormenting  passions  which  otherwise  the  oppres 
sion  of  man  might  raise  in  us ;  as  fear,  grief,  sorrow,  anger,  envy,  and 
despair ;  fear  and  dread  to  suffer  more,  grief  and  sorrow  for  what  we 
suffer  already,  anger  and  envy  against  those  oppressors  by  whom  we 
•suffer,  and  despair  and  impatience  because  of  the  continuance  of  our 
molestations  and  sufferings.  All  these  are  mischiefs  to  the  soul,  and 
all  these  are  cured  by  prayer. 

(1.)  Fear,  because  of  the  mightiness  of  them  that  oppress,  or  threaten 
to  oppress.  The  fear  of  man  we  are  told  is  a  snare :  Prov.  xxix.  25, 

*  The  fear  of  man  bringeth  a  snare ;  but  whoso  putteth  his  trust  in 
the  Lord  shall  be  safe.'     We  are  full  of  distracting  and  perplexing 
thoughts,  and  if  we  cherish  them  they  will  weaken  our  trust  in  God 
and  dependence  upon  his  promises ;  for  fear  of  man  and  trust  in  God 
are  there  opposed.     Nay,  the  mischief  will  not  stop  there ;  for  they 
that  trust  not  God  can  never  be  true  to  him :  it  will  destroy  our  trust 
in  God,  and  then  we  shall  run  to  carnal  shifts,  and  so  fear  men  more 
than  God,  do  things  displeasing  to  God  for  fear  of  being  oppressed  by 
men ;  so  that  you  may  be  soon  sensible  of  the  mischief  of  carnal  fear. 
But  how  shall  we  ease  our  hearts  of  this  burden  by  prayer  ?     Partly 
because  then  we  use  our  fear  aright  when  it  only  driveth  us  to  seek  his 
protection;  that  is  the  commendable  use  of  fear:  2  Chron.  xx.  3, 

*  Jehoshaphat  feared,  and  set  himself  to  seek  the  Lord.'    When  Jacob 

YOL.  vm.  2  c 


402  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CXLIX. 

feared  Esau,  he  set  himself  to  wrestle  with  God,  Gen.  xxxii.  And 
partly  because  prayer  discovereth  a  higher  object  of  fear :  Eccles.  v.  8,. 
4  There  is  a  higher  than  the  highest  regardeth,  and  there  be  higher  than 
they.'  And  so  the  fear  of  God  driveth  out  the  fear  of  man,  as  a  great 
nail  driveth  out  the  less.  In  God's  strength  we  may  defy  enemies : 
Ps.  xxvii.  1,  *  The  Lord  is  my  light  and  salvation,  whom  shall  I  fear?' 
The  Lord  is  the  strength  of  my  life,  of  whom  shall  I  be  afraid  ?'  We 
can  set  God  against  the  creature,  and  this  will  quell  our  fears  of  them. 
When  we  set  ourselves  against  them,  our  interest  against  theirs,  we 
may  see  cause  to  fear ;  but  set  God  against  them  and  engage  him,  and 
you  have  no  cause  to  fear.  Then — 

(2.)  For  grief  and  sorrow.  It  cloggeth  the  heart,  and  stayeth  the 
wheels,  so  that  we  drive  on  heavily  in  the  spiritual  life.  Worldly 
sorrow  worketh  death,  2  Cor.  vii.  10.  It  brings  on  deadness  and  hard 
ness  of  heart,  and  quencheth  all  our  vigour:  Prov.  xv.  13,  'By  sorrow 
of  heart  the  spirit  is  broken.'  A  dead  and  heavy  heart  doth  little  to 
the  purpose  for  God.  Now  how  shall  we  get  rid  of  this  ?  The  cure 
is  by  prayer ;  for  vent  giveth  ease  to  all  our  passions :  Phil.  iv.  6,  '  Be 
careful  for  nothing,  but  in  everything  by  prayer  and  supplication,  with 
thanksgiving,  let  your  requests  be  made  known  unto  God/  As  when 
wind  is  gotten  into  the  caverns  of  the  earth,  it  causeth  terrible  con 
vulsions  and  earthquakes  till  it  get  a  vent ;  so  the  mind  is  eased 
when  we  can  pour  out  our  care  into  the  bosom  of  God,  and  wait  till 
deliverance  cometh  from  above.  Prayer  showeth  there  is  some  life 
in  our  affairs,  that  our  right  for  the  present  is  not  dead,  but  sleeps ; 
there  is  a  God  in  heaven,  that  heareth  our  groans,  and  is  sensible  of 
our  sorrows,  and  then  we  may  say,  Ps.  xlii.  5,  'Why  art  thou  cast  down, 
0  my  soul  ?  and  why  art  thou  disquieted  within  me  ?  Hope  thou  in 
God,  for  I  shall  yet  praise  him/  &c.  Prayer  is  the  old  refuge  of  the 
saints,  and  the  blessed  means  to  pluck  up  their  spirits.  Whilst  there 
is  a  God  in  heaven,  we  are  not  at  an  utter  loss.  So  ver.  9,  '  I  will 
say  unto  God,  my  rock,  Why  hast  thou  forgotten  me  ?  why  go  I 
mourning  because  of  the  oppressor  ? '  David  first  reasoned  with  him 
self,  yet  the  distemper  continued ;  but  when  he  comes  to  reason  the 
case  with  God  in  prayer,  then  he  gets  ease. 

(3.)  The  violent  passions  of  anger,  envy,  and  revenge  against  oppres 
sors,  these  are  all  naught,  and  do  a  world  of  mischief.  Anger  discom- 
poseth  us,  and  transports  the  soul  into  uncomely  motions  against  God 
and  men,  makes  us  fret  and  malcontent ;  it  tempts  us  to  atheism,  Ps. 
Ixxiii.,  maketh  us  weary  of  well-doing,  Ps.  xxxvii.,  tempts  us  to  imita 
tion  of  their  wicked  course.  The  devil  worketh  much  upon  spleen  and 
stomach  and  discontent,  and  we  are  apt  to  run  into  these  disorders. 
Now  how  shall  we  do  to  get  rid  of  these  distempers  ?  By  prayer,  in 
which  we  get  a  sight  and  prospect  of  the  other  world,  and  then  these 
things  will  seem  nothing  to  us ;  acquaint  ourselves  with  God,  and  the 
process  of  his  providence,  and  so  we  shall  see  an  end  of  things,  Ps. 
Ixxiii.  17 ;  then  all  is  quiet.  And  as  for  revenge,  too,  that  is  an  effect 
of  the  former ;  when  we  plead  before  God,  we  see  the  justice  of  what 
is  unjust,  and  hard  dealing  from  men  to  be  justly  inflicted  by  God ; 
and  so  the  heart  is  calmed :  *  The  Lord  bid  him  curse/  2  Sam.  xvi.  11. 
There  is  reason  enough  for  this  dispensation  in  the  upper  tribunal, 
whereunto  when  we  appeal  we  should  render  no  man  evil  for  evil, 


VER.  134.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  403 

Kom.  xii.  17.  We  ought  not,  we  need  not,  it  is  God's  work :  Deut. 
xxxii.  35, '  Vengeance  and  recompense  are  mine.'  Nay,  our  very  prayino- 
is  a  committing  ourselves  to  him  that  judgeth  righteously,  1  Peter 
ii.  23.  In  prayer  we  vent  our  zeal,  and  that  hindereth  us  from  venting 
our  carnal  passions.  It  is  a  resignation  of  our  person  and  cause  to 
him  under  unjust  sufferings,  not  out  of  malice,  desiring  judgment  and 
vengeance  on  persecutors ;  that  is  to  make  God  the  executioner  of  our 
lusts,  to  establish  that  which  we  would  prevent  in  prayer.  But  saints 
in  prayer  labour  only  to  show  their  faith  and  meekness,  and  to  leave 
things  to  the  righteous  judge,  to  do  what  is  for  his  own  glory,  and 
their  good. 

(4.)  For  the  other  evil,  impatience  and  despair,  it  is  a  very  great 
evil,  and  contrary  to  faith  and  hope  and  dependence,  which  the  Chris 
tian  religion  doth  mainly  establish ;  and  maketh  way  for  the  worst 
evils,  either  total  apostasy  from  God,  or  atheism,  or  self-destruction. 
Now  this  is  very  incident  to  as  when  oppressions  lie  long  upon  us  : 
2  Kings  vi.  33,  '  This  evil  is  from  the  Lord :  why  should  I  wait  on  the 
Lord  any  longer  ?'  So  Jer.  !i.  25,  '  But  thou  saidst,  There  is  no  hope.' 
Desperately  !  'No ;  for  I  have  loved  strangers,  and  after  them  will  I 
go ; '  I  will  take  my  own  course ;  there  is  no  hope ;  it  is  in  vain  to  wait 
upon  the  Lord  any  longer.  And  if  things  do  not  grow  to  that  height, 
yet  the  children  of  God  grow  weary  and  faint  in  their  minds,  Heb. 
xii.  3.  Now  we  keep  afoot  some  hope  while  we  have  a  heart  to  call 
upon  God.  The  suit  is  still  depending  in  the  court  of  heaven  when 
it  seems  to  be  over  on  earth ;  and  we  see  there  is  cause  to  wait  for 
God's  answer.  He  that  shall  come,  will  come,  Hab.  ii.  3.  God  may 
tarry  long,  but  will  never  come  too  late.  Thus  why. 

2.  But  how  is  this  to  be  asked  ? 

[1.]  This  is  not  to  be  asked  in  the  first  place,  as  our  main  blessing  : 
Mat.  vi.  33,  *  First  seek  the  kingdom  of  God/  If  we  seek  our  ease  and 
temporal  felicity  only,  that  prayer  is  like  a  brutish  cry  :  Hosea  vii.  14, 
'  They  howled  upon  their  beds  for  corn  and  wine.'  A  dog  will  howl 
when  he  feels  anything  inconvenient.  You  will  never  be  freed  from 
murmuring  and  quarrelling  at  God's  dispensations,  and  questioning 
his  love,  if  this  be  the  first  thing  that  you  seek,  and  so  your  prayers 
will  become  your  snare.  Besides  the  great  dishonour  to  God,  it  argues 
the  great  disorder  of  your  affections,  that  you  can  be  content  to  have 
anything  apart  from  God :  Ps.  cv.  4,  *  Seek  ye  the  Lord  and  his 
strength  ;  seek  his  face  evermore.'  In  all  conditions  that  must  be  our 
great  request,  that  we  may  have  the  favour  of  God. 

[2.]  It  must  be  asked  with  submission.  It  is  not  absolutely  promised, 
nor  intrinsically  and  indispensably  necessary  to  our  happiness,  but  if 
the  Lord  see  it  fit  for  his  own  glory  and  our  good.  We  cannot  take  it 
ill  if  a  friend  refuse  to  lend  us  a  sum  of  money  which  he  knoweth  we 
will  lay  out  to  our  loss  and  detriment.  God  seeth  it  fit  sometimes, 
for  his  own  glory  and  our  good,  to  continue  us  under  oppression, 
rather  than  take  us  out  of  it.  There  are  two  acts  of  providence — re 
lieving  and  comforting  the  oppressed,  ttnd  punishing  the  oppressors. 
Sometimes  God  doth  the  one  without  the  other,  sometimes  both  to 
gether.  Sometimes  God  will  only  comfort  the  oppressed ;  we  cry  to 
him  in  our  afflictions,  and  God  will  not  break  the  yoke,  but  give  us  a 
supply  of  strength  to  bear  it :  Ps.  cxxxviii.  3,  '  In  the  day  when  I 


404  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiR.  CXLIX. 

cried  thou  answeredst  me,  and  hast  strengthened  me  with  strength  in 
my  soul/  He  giveth  you  strength  to  bear  the  burden,  if  you  continue 
in  your  integrity.  Sometimes  God  doth  punish  the  oppressor,  yet 
that  is  no  relief  and  reparation  to  you  ;  you  must  bear  it,  for  you  are 
to  stand  to  God's  will,  and  to  wait  his  leisure  to  free  you  from  it. 

[3.]  Your  end  must  be  that  God  may  be  glorified,  and  that  you  may 
serve  him  more  cheerfully.  So  it  is  in  the  text,  '  Deliver  me  from  the 
oppression  of  man/  then  shall  'I  keep  thy  precepts;'  Ps.  ix.  13,  14, 
'  Have  mercy  upon  me,  0  Lord  ;  consider  my  trouble  which  I  suffer  of 
them  that  hate  me,  thou  that  liftest  me  up  from  the  gates  of  death  ; 
that  I  may  show  forth  all  thy  praise  in  the  gates  of  the  daughter  of 
Sion :  and  I  will  rejoice  in  thy  salvation.'  So  David  beggeth  sal 
vation  in  order  to  praise.  Temporal  mercy  should  not  be  loved  for 
itself,  nor  sought  for  itself ;  but  as  we  may  glorify  God  by  it ;  that 
is  to  be  our  end.  Lord,  I  seek  not  my  own  interest,  but  thine.  If 
you  have  a  carnal  end,  you  miss :  James  iv.  3,  '  Because  you  ask  to 
consume  it  upon  your  lusts,'  that  we  may  please  the  flesh  as  sweetly 
and  quietly  as  we  did  before,  live  in  the  height  of  pomp  and  splendour, 
gratify  our  lusts  without  disturbance,  or  see  our  revenge  ;  or  if  a  mere 
natural  end,  the  mere  conveniency  of  the  outward  man,  we  bespeak  our 
own  denial. 

[4.]  We  must  pray  in  faith  that  God  can  and  is  ready  to  deliver 
from  the  oppression  of  man,  and  will  do  so  in  due  time,  when  it  is 
good  for  us. 

(1.)  God  can  deliver  us.  Though  our  oppressors  be  never  so  mighty 
and  strong,  God  can  break  their  power,  or  change  their  hearts,  or  de 
termine  their  interests,  because  the  omnisciency  of  God  is  a  great  deep. 
It  is  a  great  relief  to  the  soul  to  consider  the  several  ways  that  God 
hath  to  right  us,  either  by  changing  the  hearts  of  the  persecutors  and 
oppressors :  Acts  ix.  31,  '  Then  had  the  churches  rest  throughout  all 
Judea,  Galilee,  and  Samaria,  and  were  edified  ;  and,  walking  in  the 
fear  of  the  Lord  and  the  comforts  of  the  Holy  Ghost,  were  multiplied.' 
They  had  nothing  to  do  but  to  build  up  one  another.  When  was  that  ? 
When  Paul  was  converted.  He  was  an  active  instrument  against  the 
church,  and  God  turned  his  heart ;  then  had  the  churches  rest.  Or 
else  the  Lord  may  do  it  by  determining  their  interests  that  they  shall 
show  favour  to  his  people  though  their  hearts  be  not  changed :  Prov. 
xvi.  7,  '  When  a  man's  ways  please  the  Lord,  he  maketh  his  enemies 
to  be  at  peace  with  him.'  Enemies,  while  enemies,  may  be  at  peace 
with  us.  Please  men,  and  you  cannot  say  God  is  your  friend ;  but 
please  God,  and  he  maketh  your  enemies  at  peace  with  you.  There 
is  much  in  the  secret  chain  of  providence  :  Dan.  i.  9,  '  Now  the  Lord 
brought  Daniel  into  favour  and  tender  love  with  the  prince  of  the 
eunuchs/  What  was  that  favour  ?  To  wink  at  him  for  doing  that 
which  was  contrary  to  the  law  of  their  religion.  Or  else  he  can  break 
the  yoke  by  some  apparent  ruining  judgments,  by  which  he  will  defeat 
all  their  advantages,  either  by  power  or  law,  rescuing  his  people  out  of 
their  hands :  Isa.  xlix.  24,  25,  *  Shall  the  prey  be  taken  from  the 
mighty,  or  the  lawful  captive  delivered  ?  But  thus  saith  the  Lord, 
The  captains  of  the  mighty  shall  be  taken  away,  and  the  prey  of  the 
terrible  shall  be  delivered:  he  will  contend  with  him  that  contendeth 


VER.  134.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  405 

with  thee,  and  will  save  thy  children.'  Whether  they  plead  might  or 
right,  when  God  goeth  that  way  to  work,  nothing  shall  let,  no  power 
shall  be  able  to  detain  what  God  will  have  delivered  and  restored.  Or 
it  may  be  by  some  secret  ways  God  will  bring  on  some  judgment:  Job 
xx.  26,  '  A  fire  not  blown  shall  consume  him  ;'  that  is,  the  oppressor ; 
a  curse  not  invented  by  those  he  hath  wronged,  or  any  man  else,  but  sent 
immediately  by  God.  It  shall  come  nobody  knoweth  how.  Therefore 
we  should  not  be  discouraged  with  unlikelihoods  when  we  go  to  God, 
who  hath  many  ways  which  poor  short-sighted  creatures  cannot  foresee. 

(2.)  He  is  ready.  The  love  which  the  Lord  hath  for  his  afflicted 
people  will  not  suffer  his  justice  to  be  long  at  quiet.  That  God  is 
ready  to  help  and  deliver,  three  things  will  evidence : — 

(1st.)  It  is  his  nature  to  pity  and  show  mercy  to  the  oppressed,  and 
to  revenge  the  oppressor.  He  pitieth  the  afflictions  of  them  that  suffer 
most  justly,  and  far  beneath  their  desert,  from  his  own  hand  :  Judges 
x.  16,  'And  they  put  away  the  strange  gods  from  among  them,  and 
served  the  Lord,  and  his  soul  was  grieved  for  the  misery  of  Israel ; ' 
and  2  Kings  xiv.  26,  '  For  the  Lord  saw  the  exceeding  bitter  affliction 
of  Israel/  How  much  more  will  he  pity  them  that  are  unworthily 
oppressed  !  Isa.  Ixiii.  9,  '  In  all  their  afflictions  he  was  afflicted ; ' 
Acts  vii.  34,  '  I  have  seen  the  affliction  of  my  people  which  is  in  Egypt, 
and  have  heard  their  groaning,'  £c.  And  the  Lord's  pitiful  nature 
doth  incline  him  to  deliver  his  people  :  '  And  when  the  oppressed  cry, 
I  will  hear  them ;  for  I  am  gracious/  Exod.  xxii.  21-27. 

(2dly.)  It  is  his  usual  practice  and  custom  :  Ps.  ciii.  6,  '  The  Lord 
executeth  judgment  and  righteousness  for  all  that  are  oppressed/  If 
for  all,  surely  for  his  people.  He  sits  in  heaven  on  purpose  to  rectify 
the  disorders  of  men.  So  Ps.  xxxiv.  19,  '  Many  are  the  troubles  of  the 
righteous,  but  the  Lord  delivereth  them  out  of  them  all/  God  hath  a 
plaister  for  every  wound  ;  God's  people  plunge  themselves  into  trouble, 
and  his  mercy  delivereth  them  out  of  it. 

(3dly.)  It  is  his  office  as  judge  of  the  world:  Ps.  xciv.  2,  t  Lift  up 
thyself,  thou  judge  of  the  earth  ;  render  a  reward  to  the  proud :  shall 
not  the  judge  of  the  earth  do  right  ? '  Look  upon  him  only  in  that 
notion,  according  to  our  natural  conceptions,  as  the  supreme  cause  and 
judge  of  all  things.  Again,  his  office  as  protector  of  his  people ;  he  is 
in  covenant  with  them,  he  is  their  sun  and  shield,  he  is  the  refuge  of 
the  oppressed,  his  people's  refuge  in  time  of  trouble,  Ps.  ix.  9  ;  when 
they  have  none  else  to  fly  to,  he  will  be  their  refuge. 

(3.)  He  will  do  it  when  it  is  good  and  necessary ;  for  God  hath  made 
promises  and  repeated  promises  of  deliverance,  and  surely  these  are  not 
in  vain.  If  God  had  spoken  but  once,  we  had  no  reason  to  doubt ;  but 
he  telleth  us  over  and  over  again  we  should  cast  our  care  upon  him, 
and  refer  all  things  to  him  without  despondency  and  distraction  of 
mind  :  Ps.  ix.  18,  '  For  the  needy  shall  not  always  be  forgotten;  the 
expectation  of  the  poor  shall  not  perish  .for  ever/ 

Use.  Instruction  to  teach  us  what  to  do  when  we  are  oppressed. 

1.  Patience.  It  is  the  lot  of  God's  children  to  be  often  troubled  by 
the  world,  and  hardly  used.  Satan  is  the  ruler  of  the  darkness  of 
this  world,  the  blind,  carnal,  malicious,  superstitious  part  of  the  world; 
and  they  cannot  away  with  those  that  would  overturn  Satan's  kingdom. 


406  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SflR.  CXL1X. 

The  good  are  fewest,  and  therefore  we  must  look  to  be  oppressed  ;  if 
there  be  any  breathing-time  it  is  a  mercy :  2  Tim.  iii.  12,  '  Yea,  and 
all  that  will  live  godly  in  Christ  Jesus  shall  suffer  persecution  ; '  Gal. 
iv.  29,  '  For  as  he  that  was  born  after  the  flesh  persecuted  him  that  was 
born  after  the  spirit,  even  so  it  is  now/  and  will  be  so ;  we  should  want 
our  way-mark  without  it. 

2.  Let  us  be  prepared  to  commend  our  cause  to  God  :  Ps.  x.  17, 18, 
*  Lord,  thou  hast  heard  the  desire  of  the  humble  ;  thou  wilt  prepare 
their  heart,  thou  wilt  cause  thine  ear  to  hear  ;  to  judge  the  fatherless 
and  the  oppressed,  that  the  man  of  the  earth  may  no  more  oppress.' 
God  prepares  the  hearts  of  the  humble.     How  so  H     The  trouble  con- 
tinueth  till  we  are  sensible  of  the  misery  of  the  sin,  of  the  cause : 
Hosea  v.  15,  *  I  will  go  and  return  to  my  place,  till  they  acknowledge 
their  offences,  and  seek  my  face  ;  in  their  affliction  they  will  seek  me 
early/     It  is  a  long  time  before  men  can  be  sensible  of  the  hand  of 
God  upon  them.     Slight  spirits  are  not  grieved,  but  lull  themselves 
asleep,  Jer.  v.  3.     If  they  have  a  natural  sense  of  the  judgment,  they 
have  no  sense  of  sin  as  the  cause  ;  then  they  fly  to  human  help  to  be 
eased  of  the  trouble  :  Jer.  iv.  14,  *  Wash  thy  heart  from  wickedness, 
that  thou  mayest  be  saved ;  how  long  shall  vain  thoughts  lodge  within 
thee  ? '     When  past  human  help,  then  seek  the  favour  of  God  to  take 
up  the  controversy,  2  Chron.  vii.  14  ;  when  driven  to  an  earnest  atten 
dance  upon  God,  and  all  probabilities  spent ;  we  have  no  help  but  what 
heaven  and  a  promise  can  afford,  and  upon  these  terms  continue  our 
importunity,  Luke  xviii.  7-18.     It  is  a  long  time  ere  men  will  lay  it 
to  heart,  to  see  his  hand  and  seek  to  him  for  relief. 

3.  When  you  have  prayed,  then  wait.     It  is  a  good  sign  when  we 
are  enlarged  in  prayer,  and  encouraged  to  wait.     Enlarged  to  pray ; 
for  when  God  hath  a  mind  to  work,  he  sets  the  Spirit  of  prayer  a- work. 
God  will  not  pour  out  his  Spirit  in  vain;  the  Spirit  knoweth  the  deep 
things  of  God:  Ps.  1.  15,  'Call  upon  me  in  a  time  of  trouble,  and  I 
will  deliver  thee.'    So  when  we  are  encouraged  to  wait.    How  can  our 
prayers  be  heard  when  we  regard  them  not  ourselves,  and  expect  no 
issue  ?     How  should  God  hear  when  we  pray  out  of  course,  and  do 
not  think  our  prayers  worth  the  regarding  ?  Ps.  Ixxxv.  8,  '  I  will 
hearken  what  God  the  Lord  will  speak,'  &c. ;  Ps.  xl.  1,  '  I  waited 
patiently  for  the  Lord ;  he  inclined  unto  me  and  heard  my  cry ; '  Hab. 
ii.  1,  '  I'wili  watch  to  see  what  he  will  say.'    Look  for  an  answer.    God 
doth  not  usually  disappoint  a  waiting  people. 

Secondly,  When  God  delivereth  us  from  the  oppression  of  man,  we 
should  be  quickened  and  encouraged  in  his  service. 

1.  Because  every  mercy  inferreth  an  answerable  duty:  2  Chron. 
xxxii.  25,  '  But  Hezekiah  rendered  not  according  to  the  benefit  done 
unto  him/     There  must  be  rendering  according  to  receiving. 

2.  This  is  the  fittest  return,  partly  because  it  is  real,  not  verbal.  The 
Lord  cares  not  for  words ;  he  knows  the  secret  springs  of  the  heart, 
Isa.  xxxviii.  9  ;  and  see  Ps.  1.  23.     It  is  good  to  be  speaking  good  of 
God's  name.     This  is  one  way  of  glorifying,  but  ordering  the  conver 
sation  aright  is  that  which  is  most  pleasing  to  him.     And  partly  too 
because  our  clogs  of  fear  and  sorrow  and  other  impediments  are  taken 
away  :  Ps.  cxix.  32,  *  I  will  run  the  ways  of  thy  commandments  when 


VER.  134.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  407 

thou  shalt  enlarge  my  heart/     This  was  God's  end,  to  deliver  us  out 
•of  the  hands  of  our  enemies,  that  we  may  serve  him  without  fear,  Luke 

1.  74,  75.     Those  wretches  that  said,  Jer.  vii.  10,  '  We  are  delivered  to 
do  all  these  abominations,'  to  return  to  the  practices  of  their  vile 
courses  afresh,  did  pervert  God's  end  in  their  deliverance.     What  use 
shall  we  make  of  such  a  point  in  our  deep  sorrows  ? 

Ans.  1.  We  are  not  altogether  without  this  benefit :  2  Chron.  vii. 
12,  '  The  Lord  said,  I  have  heard  thy  prayer/  Many  times  God 
niaketh  his  love  conspicuous  to  his  people  in  a  low  condition  ;  they  are 
oppressed  sore,  but  not  grinded  to  powder ;  it  is  a  blessing  we  are 
not  quite  destroyed.  Exod.  i.  12,  The  Israelites,  the  more  they  were 
afflicted,  the  more  they  multiplied ;  and  the  Egyptians  were  grieved 
for  the  children  of  Israel,  that  they  were  not  extinguished.  God 
dealeth  with  us  as  then  he  did  with  them,  2  Sam.  xii.  7.  But  I  will 
grant  them  some  deliverance. 

2.  We  are  now  under  the  sad  effects  of  our  former  unthankfulness, 
:and  by  remembering  our  duty  we  may  see  our  sin,  Hosea  iv.  3,  4. 
Ingratitude  and  walking  unanswerably  to  received  mercy  is  the  great 
.and  crying  sin  of  God's  people  ;  therefore  we  should  humble  ourselves 
that  we  did  so  little  good  in  former  times  of  liberty,  that  God  had  so 
little  glory  and  service  from  us.    Now  God  by  his  present  providence 
showeth  us  the  difference  :  Deut.  xxviii.  47,  48,  '  Because  thou  servest 
not  the  Lord  thy  God  with  joyfulness,  and  with  gladness  of  heart,  for 
the  abundance  of  all  things ;  therefore  thou  shalt  serve  thine  enemies/ 
*<fcc. ;  2  Chron.  xii.  8,  '  Nevertheless  they  shall  be  his  servants,  that  they 
may  know  my  service,  and  the  service  of  the  kingdoms  of  the  countries/ 
First  we  must  be  humbled  for  the  abuse  of  former  mercies  before  we 
seek  new. 

3.  That  we  may  know  what  to  have  in  our  eye,  when  we  are  asking 
for  mercies.     The  end  is  first  in  intention,  though  last  in  execution. 
Do  not  pray  to  serve  thy  lusts  more  freely,  nor  think  how  to  execute 
revenge,  be  quits  with  those  that  hate  us,  nor  how  we  shall  be  pro 
vided  for ;  but  what  glory  and  service  we  may  bring  to  God :  Ps.  Ixxv. 

2,  '  When  I  shall  receive  the  congregation,  I  will  judge  uprightly/ 
These  mercies  must  not  be  abused  to  licentiousness,  or  to  nourish  our 
selves  in  sin  or  stupid  security ;  but  in  duty  and  service. 

4.  It  teacheth  us  how  to  make  our  promises,  and  oblige  ourselves  to 
fGod.     When  you  come  to  promise  duty  and  obedience  to  God,  be  sure 
to  be  sincere  and  holy  ;  make  due  provision  that  it  may  be  so  by  morti 
fying  the  roots  of  such  distempers  as  will  betray  us.     When  a  people 
in  a  low  condition  have  a  real  inclination  to  praise  and  glorify  God  by 
their  mercies  as  soon  as  they  shall  receive  them,  it  is  an  argument  God 
will  hear  and  grant. 

Thirdly,  But  when  we  are  praying  for  deliverance,  we  should  inter 
pose  promises  of  obedience,  as  David  doth  here,  '  Deliver  me  from  the 
oppression  of  man  :  so  will  I  keep  thy  precepts.'  (1.)  To  show  there 
is  the  ratio  dati  et  accepti,  to  show  the  law  of  giving  and  receiving  is 
natural  to  us ;  it  is  an  ingrafted  principle  in  men's  minds.  When  we 
think  of  God's  giving,  we  should  think  of  returning  something.  An 
intercourse  between  God  and  us  is  maintained  by  mercies  and  duties : 
-not  that  God  needeth,  or  that  we  can  oblige  him,  but  this  qualifieth 


408  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEE.  CL. 

us.  Intercourse  is  lost  when  we  would  receive  all  and  return  nothing. 
(2.)  A  solemn  promise  is  necessary  to  excite  and  quicken  our  dulness, 
or  a  bond  upon  us,  or  a  bridle  to  our  inconstancy.  We  cannot  unbind 
ourselves  again  from  our  strict  obligation  to  obedience. 

Use.  Well,  then,  let  us  make  good  the  vows  of  our  distress ;  they 
must  be  paid,  or  else  God  is  mocked :  Eccles.  v.  4,  '  When  thou 
vowest  a  vow  unto  God,  defer  not  to  pay  it ;  for  he  hath  no  pleasure- 
in  fools :  pay  that  which  thou  hast  vowed ; '  Job  xxii.  27,  *  Thou  shalt 
make  thy  prayer  unto  him,  and  he  shall  hear  thee  ;  and  thou  shalt  pay 
thy  vows.' 


SERMON  CL. 

Make  thy  face  to  shine  upon  thy  servant;  and  teach  me  thy  statutes. — 

VER.  135. 

THIS  verse  is  wholly  precatory.  Most  of  the  verses  of  this  psalm  have 
a  prayer  with  an  argument,  but  here  both  the  branches  are  petitory. 
Observe  in  the  words — 

1.  The  blessings  prayed  for. 

2.  The  order  of  these  petitions. 

3.  The  connection  that  is  between  them. 

1.  The  blessings  he  prayeth  for  are  two — (1.)  For  God's  favour; 
(2.)  For  his  direction  in  God's  ways ;  spiritual  consolation  and  increase 
of  sanctification.     David  could  not  live  out  of  God's  favour  nor  with 
out  his  direction  ;  therefore  he  prays  heartily  for  both. 

2.  The  order  of  these  petitions — first,  '  Make  thy  face  to  shine ; ' 
and  then,  *  Teach  me  thy  statutes.'     God's  favour  is  the  fountain  of 
all  goodness  to  his  children  and  servants ;  and  until  we  have  that  we 
can  have  nothing :  there  we  must  begin.     They  that  have  not  the 
favour  of  God  are  left  to  their  own  sway,  and  their  own  hearts  and 
counsels ;  but  those  whom  he  loves  know  his  secrets  and  are  guided 
by  his  Spirit. 

3.  The  connection.     He  prays  not  for  one,  but  for  both ;  for  God 
giveth  both  together,  consolation  and  direction,  and  we  must  seek  both 
together ;  for  we  cannot  expect  God  should  favour  us  while  we  walk  in 
a  wrong  way  and  contrary  to  his  will. 

Let  me  speak  of  the  first  petition.     Where  I  might  observe — 

1.  The  matter  of  the  petition,  make  thy  face  to  shine. 

2.  The  person,  upon  me. 

3.  The  character  by  which  he  describeth  himself,  thy  servant. 

1.  As  to  the  matter,  'Make  thy  face  to  shine.'  It  is  a  metaphor 
taken  from  the  sun.  When  the  sun  shines,  and  sheds  abroad  his 
light  and  heat  and  influence,  then  the  creatures  are  cheered  and  re 
vived  ;  but  when  that  is  obscured,  they  droop  and  languish.  What 
the  sun  is  to  the  outward  world,  that  is  God  to  the  saints.  Or  else 
here  is  a  metaphor  taken  from  men,  that  look  pleasantly  upon  those 
in  whom  they  delight ;  and  so  the  Lord  gives  a  smile  of  his  gracious 
countenance  upon  his  people  :  indeed  it  alludeth  to  both ;  for  the- 


VER.  135.]  SERMONS  LTON  PSALM  cxix.  409 

allusion  to  the  light  and  influence  of  the  sun  is  clear  in  the  word* 
'  shine  ; '  and  the  allusion  to  the  pleasant  countenance  of  a  man  upon 
his  child  is  included  in.  the  word  '  face/  The  phrase  may  be  under 
stood  by  what  is  said,  Prov.  xvi.  15,  '  In  the  light  of  the  king's  coun 
tenance  is  life,  and  his  favour  is  as  a  cloud  of  the  latter  rain.'  That 
place  will  illustrate  this  we  have  in  hand.  Look,  what  the  smiling 
and  pleasing  aspect  of  the  king  is  to  those  that  value  and  stand  in  need 
of  his  favour,  that  is  the  favour  of  God  to  the  saints.  The  same  form 
of  speech  is  used  in  other  places  ;  as  in  the  form  of  the  priest's  bless 
ing  :  Num.  vi.  25,  *  The  Lord  make  his  face  to  shine  upon  thee,  and  be 
gracious  unto  thee  ;'  and  in  that  prayer,  Ps.  Ixvii.  1,  *  God  be  mer 
ciful  unto  us,  and  bless  us,  and  cause  his  face  to  shine  upon  us, 
Selah.'  Well,  then,  the  thing  begged  is  a  sense  of  God's  love. 

2.  For  whom  doth  David  beg  this  ?     For  himself,  '  Cause  thy  face 
to  shine  upon  me  ; '  David,  a  man  after  God's  own  heart.     But  did  he 
need  to  put  up  such  a  request  to  God  ?     (1.)  Possibly  God  might 
seem  to  neglect  him,  or  to  look  upon  him  with  an  angry  countenance, 
because  of  sin ;  and  therefore  he  begs  some  demonstration  of  his 
favour  and  good-will.    David  had  his  times  of  darkness  and  discomfort 
as  well  as  others,  therefore  earnestly  beggeth  for  one  smile  of  God's 
face.     (2.)  If  you  look  not  upon  him  as  under  desertion  at  this  time, 
the  words  then  must  be  thus  interpreted:  he  begs  the  continuance 
and  increase  of  his  comfort  and  sense  of  God's  love.     God's  manifesta 
tions  of  himself  to  his  people  in  this  world  are  given  out  in  a  different 
degree,  and  with  great  diversity.     Our  assurance  or  sense  of  his  love 
consists  not  in  puncto,  an  indivisible  point ;  it  hath  a  latitude,  it  may 
be  more  and  it  may  be  less,  and  God's  children  think  they  can  never 
have  enough  of  it ;  therefore  David  saith,  '  Lord,  cause  thy  face  to 
shine.'     If  it  did  shine  already,  the  petition  intimates  the  continuance 
and  increase  of  it. 

3.  He  characterised  himself  by  the  notion  of  God's  servant ;  as  Ps, 
xxxi.  16,  '  Make  thy  face  to  shine  upon  thy  servant ;  save  me,  for  thy 
mercies'  sake/    We  must  study  to  approve  ourselves  to  be  the  Lord's 
servants  by  our  obedience.     If  we  would  have  his  face  shine  upon  us, 
we  must  be  careful  to  yield  obedience  unto  him. 

The  points  are  four  : — 

1.  The  sense  of  God's  favour  may  be  withdrawn  for  a  time  from 
his  choicest  servants. 

2.  The  children  of  God,  that  are  sensible  of  this,  cannot  be  satis 
fied  with  this  estate,  but  they  will  be  praying  for  some  beams  of  love 
to  be  darted  out  upon  their  souls. 

3.  They  that  are  sensible  of  the  want  or  loss  of  God's  favour  have 
liberty  with  hope  and  encouragement  to  sue  out  this  blessing,  as 
David  did :  '  Lord,  make  thy  face  to  shine  upon  thy  servant/ 

4.  God's  children,  when  they  beg  comfort,  they  also  beg  grace  to 
serve  him  acceptably. 

First,  The  sense  of  God's  favour  may  be  withdrawn  for  a  time  from 
his  choicest  servants.  David  puts  up  this  petition  in  point  of  comfort. 
There  is  a  twofold  desertion — in  appearance  and  in  reality. 

1.  In  appearance  only,  through  the  misgivings  of  our  own  hearts. 
We  may  think  God  is  gone,  and  hides  his  face,  when  there  is  no  such 


410  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEB.  CL. 

matter,  as  through  inadvertency  we  may  seek  what  we  have  in  our 
hands.  Thus  a  child  of  God  thinks  he  is  cast  out  of  the  presence  of 
God  when  all  the  while  he  hath  a  full  right  and  place  in  his  heart. 
Thus  David,  Ps.  xxxi.  22.  We  think  God  hath  forgotten  us,  neglects 
us,  casts  us  off,  hath  no  respect  for  us,  when  in  the  meantime  the 
Lord  is  framing  an  answer  of  grace  for  us.  One  chief  cause  is  mis 
interpreting  God's  providence,  and  our  manifold  afflictions.  The 
Lord  sometimes  frowns  upon  his  children,  as  Joseph  upon  his 
brethren,  when  his  affections  were  very  strong ;  so  the  Lord  covers 
himself  with  frowns  and  anger,  the  visible  appearance  of  it  speaks  no 
otherwise. 

2.  It  may  be  really  when  he  is  angry  for  sin  :  Isa.  Ivii.  17,  '  For  the 
iniquity  of  his  covetousness  was  I  wroth  and  smote  him ;  I  hid  me 
and  was  wroth.'  As  the  fathers  of  our  flesh  show  their  anger  by 
whipping  and  scourging  the  bodies  of  their  children,  so  the  Father  of 
our  spirits  by  lashing  the  soul  and  spirits,  by  causing  them  to  feel 
the  effects  of  his  angry  indignation.  Or  else  withdrawing  the  spirit 
of  comfort,  suspending  all  the  acts  and  fruits  of  his  love,  so  that  they 
have  not  that  joyful  sense  of  communion  with  God  as  they  were  wont 
to  have.  Now  the  reasons  why  God's  people  may  want  the  light  of 
his  countenance  are  these  : — 

[1.]  God  out  of  sovereignty  will  exercise  us  with  changes  here  in 
the  world,  even  in  the  inward  man ;  there  we  have  our  ebbs  and  flows, 
that  we  may  know  earth  is  not  heaven.  He  hath  an  eternity  wherein 
to  reveal  his  love,  and  to  communicate  himself  to  his  people  ;  there 
fore  he  will  take  a  liberty  as  to  temporal  dispensations  :  Isa.  liv.  8,  c  In 
a  little  wrath  I  hid  my  face  from  thee,  for  a  moment ;  but  with  ever 
lasting  kindness  will  I  have  mercy  on  thee,  saith  the  Lord  thy  Re- 
deemer.'  He  hath  an  everlasting  love  and  kindness  for  us,  therefore 
here  in  the  world  he  will  exercise  us  with  some  uncertainties ;  as 
David  concealed  his  love  towards  his  son  Absalom,  when  yet  his  bowels 
yearned  towards  him.  Here  he  takes  liberty  to  do  it,  because  he  will 
make  it  up  in  heaven.  All  your  changes  shall  then  be  recompensed 
by  an  uninterrupted  comfort. 

[2.]  To  conform  us  to  Jesus  Christ.  We  should  not  know  the  bitter 
agonies  our  Redeemer  sustained  for  us  unless  we  had  some  experience 
of  it  ourselves.  He  tasted  of  this  cup,  Mat.  xxvii.  46.  And  though 
it  be  a  bitter  cup,  yet  it  must  go  round ;  we  must  all  pledge  him  in  it. 
Conceit  will  not  inform  us  so  much  as  experience. 

[3.]  His  justice  requires  it,  when  we  surfeit  of  our  comforts,  and 
play  the  wantons  with  them,  that  he  should  withdraw  them.  We 
ourselves  breed  the  mist  and  clouds  which  hide  from  us  the  shining  of 
God's  favour.  We  raise  up  those  mountains  of  transgression  that  are 
as  a  wall  of  separation  between  us  and  God ;  whence  that  expression, 
Isa.  lix.  2,  'Your  iniquities  have  separated  between  you  and  your  God, 
and  your  sins  have  hid  his  face  from  you/  As  the  sun  dissolves  and 
dispels  mists  and  clouds  by  his  bright  beams,  so  God  of  his  free  grace 
dissolveth  these  clouds :  Isa.  xliv.  22,  *  I  have  blotted  out  thy  iniqui 
ties  as  a  cloud,  and  thy  transgressions  as  a  thick  cloud.'  Now  there 
are  two  sins  especially  which  cause  God  to  hide  himself — (1.)  Too  free 
a  liberty  in  carnal  pleasures  and  delights  ;  (2.)  Spiritual  laziness. 


VER.  135.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  411 

(1.)  Too  free  a  liberty  in  carnal  pleasures  and  delights.  When  we 
live  according  to  the  flesh,  we  smart  for  it,  these  mar  our  taste  ;  and 
when  our  affections  run  out  to  other  comforts,  we  forfeit  those  which 
are  better,  Ps.  xxx.  6,  7 ;  when  we  begin  to  sleep  upon  a  carnal 
pillow,  to  compose  ourselves  to  rest,  and  lie  down  and  dream  golden 
dreams  of  earthly  felicity.  Carnal  confidence  and  carnal  complacency 
make  God  a  stranger  to  us.  This  carnal  complacency  hinders  a  sense 
of  God's  love  two  ways — meritorie  et  effective,  Not  only  meri 
toriously,  as  it  provokes  God  to  withdraw  when  we  set  up  an  idol  in 
our  hearts,  but  also  effectively  ;  as  carnal  delights  bring  on  a  brawn 
and  deadness  upon  the  heart,  so  that  we  cannot  have  a  sense  of  God's 
love,  for  that  requires  a  pure,  delicate  spirit.  Our  taste  must  be 
purged,  refined,  sensible  of  spiritual  good  and  evil.  Now  this  will 
never  be  except  the  soul  be  purged  from  carnal  complacency ;  for 
while  there  is  so  strong  a  relish  of  the  flesh-pots  of  Egypt,  we  are  not 
fit  to  taste  the  hidden  manna  ;  but  always  the  more  dead  the  heart  is 
to  worldly  things,  the  more  lively  to  spiritual  sense  ever :  Jude  19, 
'Sensual,  not  having  the  spirit/  i.e.,  spiritual  joys,  feelings,  opera 
tions.  When  Solomon  withheld  not  his  heart  from  any  joy,  God  left 
him.  When  he  was  trying  -the  pleasures  of  the  creature,  and  went 
a-whoring  from  God,  God  left  him. 

-(2.)  Spiritual  laziness  is  another  cause  why  God  hides  his  face  from 
his  people,  Cant.  v.  6,  compared  with  ver.  2,  3.  The  spouse  neglected 
to  open  to  Christ  upon  light  and  frivolous  pretences,  and  then  her 
beloved  had  withdrawn  himself.  If  we  lie  down  on  the  bed  of  secu 
rity,  and  grow  lazy  and  negligent,  then  Christ  withdraws. 

[4.]  It  is  necessary  and  useful  for  us  sometimes  that  God  should 
hide  his  face.  Cloudy  and  rainy  days  conduce  to  the  fruitfulness  of  the 
earth,  as  well  as  those  that  are  fair  and  shining  ;  and  the  winter  hath 
its  use  as  well  as  the  summer.  We  are  apt  to  have  cheap  thoughts  of 
spiritual  comforts,  Job  xv.  11,  apt  to  run  riot,  and  to  grow  neglectful 
of  God  and  be  proud,  2  Cor.  xii.  7.  Paul  had  his  bufferings  to  keep 
down  his  pride.  We  have  changes  even  in  our  inward  man  to  keep  us 
in  the  better  frame,  the  more  watchful,  diligent,  and  waiting  upon  God. 

Use.  Well,  if  it  be  so,  all  the  use  I  shall  make  is  to  put  this  ques 
tion — Is  this  your  case,  yea  or  no  ?  There  is  nothing  that  conduceth 
to  the  safety  and  comfort  of  the  spiritual  life  so  much  as  observing 
God's  comings  and  goings,  that  we  may  suit  our  carriage  accordingly. 
Our  Lord  saith,  Mat.  ix.  15,  *  Can  the  children  of  the  bridechamber 
mourn  as  long  as  the  bridegroom  is  with  them  ?  '  Is  God  present,  or 
is  he  gone  ?  When  God  is  gone,  riot  to  lay  it  to  heart  argues  great 
stupidness.  You  are  worse  than  that  idolater,  Judges  xviii.  24.  He 
thought  he  had  reason  enough  for  his  laments  and  moans  when  they 
had  taken  away  his  images,  his  gods.  So  if  God  be  gone,  shall  we 
digest  and  put  up  with  such  a  loss,  and  never  mind  to  lay  it  to  heart  ? 
Job  complains  of  this,  chap.  xxix.  3,  that  the  candle  of  the  Lord  did 
not  shine  upon  his  head  as  it  did  of  old.  Surely  they  that  have  any 
respect  to  God,  any  tenderness  left  in  their  hearts,  will  be  sensible  of 
God's  going.  On  the  other  side,  if  we  get  anything  of  God,  his  grace 
and  favour  to  our  hearts,  it  should  be  matter  of  joy  and  consolation 
to  us  :  Kom.  v.  11,  '  We  joy  in  God,  through  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ, 


412  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CL. 

by  whom  we  have  now  received  the  atonement.'  Jesus  Christ  hath 
made  the  atonement,  but  we  have  received  the  atonement  when  we 
get  anything  of  the  blood  of  Christ  upon  our  own  consciences,  when 
we  have  any  sense  of  reconciliation.  A  little  sunshine  enliveneth  the 
poor  creatures,  the  birds  fall  a  singing  that  were  melancholy  and  sad 
before  in  cloudy  weather,  they  are  cheered  and  comforted  when  the 
sun  shines.  How  should  we  observe  the  least  glimpse  of  God's  favour  if 
he  but  show  himself  through  the  lattice  !  Cant.  ii.  There  is  nothing 
keeps  grace  lively,  and  freeth  us  from  a  dead  and  stupid  formality,  so 
much  as  this.  But  when  men  are  careless,  and  do  not  observe  God's 
accesses  and  recesses,  hardness  of  heart  increaseth  upon  us  presently, 
and  loseth  that  worship  and  reverence  and  invocation  and  praise  that 
is  due  from  us  to  him.  Therefore  our  eye  should  still  wait  upon  the 
Lord,  and  as  the  eyes  of  servants  are  on  their  mistresses,  Ps.  cxxiii.  3, 
so  should  our  eye  be  still  on  God's  hands,  and  observe  what  he  gives 
out  in  every  duty,  or  what  of  God  we  observe  in  this  or  that  ordi 
nance. 

Secondly,  The  children  of  God,  that  are  sensible  of  this,  cannot  be 
satisfied  with  this  estate  ;  but  will  be  praying  and  always  seeking  the 
evidences  of  his  favour  and  reconciliation :  Ps.  Ixxx.  3,  7,  19,  three 
times  it  is  repeated,  '  Turn  us  again,  0  Lord  of  hosts  ;  cause  thy  face 
to  shine,  and  we  shall  be  saved/  Their  great  happiness  is  to  be  in 
favour  with  God.  They  can  dispense  with  other  comforts,  and  can, 
want  them  with  a  quiet  mind;  let  God  do  his  pleasure  there,  but  they 
cannot  dispense  with  this,  with  the  want  Of  his  favour  and  manifested 
good- will  to  them.  This  is  the  life  of  their  lives,  the  fountain  of  their 
comforts;  this  is  the  heaven  they  have  upon  earth,  without  which  they 
cannot  joy  in  themselves  :  '  Thou  didst  hide  thy  face,  and  I  was  trou 
bled.'  What  are  the  reasons  of  this  ? 

1.  Because  of  the  value  of  this  privilege  ;  the  favour  of  God  is  the 
greatest  blessing.  It  may  appear  in  sundry  respects.  Take  but  that 
consideration :  Ps.  Ixiii.  3,  *  Thy  loving-kindness  is  better  than  life/ 
The  favour  of  God  is  the  life  of  our  souls,  and  his  displeasure  is  our 
death.  A  child  of  God  values  his  happiness  by  God's  friendship,  not 
by  his  worldly  prosperity  ;  and  is  miserable  by  God's  absence,  and  by 
the  causes  thereof,  his  sin  and  offence  done  to  God.  Nay,  his  loving- 
kindness  is  not  only  life,  but  better  than  life.  A  man  may  be  weary 
of  life  itself,  but  never  of  the  love  of  God.  Many  have  complained  of 
life  as  a  burden,  and  wished  for  the  day  of  death,  but  none  have  com 
plained  of  the  love  of  God  as  a  burden.  All  the  world  without  this 
cannot  make  a  man  happy.  What  will  it  profit  us  if  the  whole  world 
smile  upon  us,  and  God  frown  and  be  angry  with  us  ?  All  the  candles 
in  the  world  cannot  make  it  day  ;  nay,  all  the  stars  shining  together 
cannot  dispel  the  darkness  of  the  night  nor  make  it  day,  unless  the 
sun  shines;  so  whatever  comforts  we  have  of  a  higher  or  lower  nature, 
they  cannot  make  it  day  with  a  gracious  heart,  unless  God's  face  shine 
upon  us  ;  for  he  can  blast  all  in  an  instant.  A  prisoner  is  never  the 
more  secure,  though  his  fellows  and  companions  applaud  him,  and  tell 
him  his  cause  is  good,  and  that  he  shall  escape,  when  he  that  is  judge 
condemns  him.  Though  we  have  the  good  word  of  all  the  world,  yet 
if  the  Lord  speak  not  peace  to  our  souls,  and  shine  not  upon  our  con- 


VER.  135.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  413 

sciences,  what  will  the  good  word  of  the  world  do  ?  2  Cor.  x.  18,  '  He 
is  approved  whom  the  Lord  commendeth.'  A  sense  of  God's  love  in 
Christ  is  the  sweetest  thing  that  ever  we  felt,  and  is  able  to  sweeten 
the  bitterest  cup  that  ever  believer  drank  of :  Rom.  v.  3,  '  We  glory  in 
tribulation.'  It  will  be  a  blessed  thing  when  we  cannot  only  bear 
tribulations,  but  rejoice  in  them ;  but  how  come  we  to  rejoice  in 
them  ?  Why,  because  '  the  love  of  God  is  shed  abroad  in  our  hearts 
by  the  Holy  Ghost,  which  is  given  unto  us ; '  so  he  goes  on.  If 
we  would  know  the  value  of  things,  the  best  way  is  to  know  what  is 
our  greatest  comfort  and  our  greatest  trouble  'in  distress;  for  when 
we  are  drunk  with  worldly  prosperity  and  happiness,  we  are  incompe 
tent  judges  of  the  worth  of  things ;  but  when  God  rebukes  a  man  for 
sin,  what  is  our  greatest  trouble  then  ?  that  we  may  take  heed  of  pro 
viding  sorrow  to  ourselves  another  time  ;  then  we  find  sin  and  trans- 
fression  the  greatest  burden  when  any  notable  affliction  is  upon  us, 
ob  xxxvi.  9  ;  and  what  will  be  your  greatest  comfort  then  ?  for  then 
your  comforts  are  put  to  the  proof.  One  evidence  of  an  interest  in 
Christ,  a  little  sense  of  the  love  of  God,  how  precious  is  it !  Ps.  xciv. 
19,  'In  the  multitude  of  my  thoughts  within  me,  thy  comforts  de 
light  my  soul.'  His  thoughts  were  entangled  and  interwoven  one 
with  another,  as  branches  of  a  crooked  tree ;  for  so  the  word  signifies 
there.  When  his  thoughts  were  thus  intricate  and  perplexed,  then 
'  thy  comforts  delight  my  soul.'  Oh!  then,  what  should  we  labour  for, 
but  to  be  most  clear  in  this,  that  God  loves  us.  This  will  be  our 
greatest  comfort  and  rejoicing  in  all  conditions.  It  is  good  for  us  in 
prosperity,  then  our  comforts  are  sweet ;  and  in  adversity  and  deep 
affliction,  to  see  God  is  not  angry  with  us.  Though  we  feel  some 
smart  of  his  afflicting  hand,  yet  his  heart  is  with  us. 

2.  They  deal  with  God  as  worldly  men  do  with  sensible  things ;  for 
as  others  live  by  sense,  so  they  by  faith.     Now  worldly  men  are 
cheered  with  the  good-will  of  men,  and  troubled  with  the  displeasure 
of  men  upon  whom  they  depend.      The  down-look  of  Ahasuerus 
confounded  Haman,  and  put  him  to  great  trouble :  '  He  was  afraid/ 
Esther  vii.  8.   Absalom  professes  it  were  better  for  him  to  be  banished 
than  to  live  in  Jerusalem  and  not  see  the  king's  face,  2  Sam.  xiv.  32. 
Surely  it  is  death  to  God's  children  to  want  his  face  and  favour  upon 
whom  they  depend.     Their  business  lies  mainly  with  God,  and  their 
dependence  and  hope  and  comfort  is  in  God ;  they  live  by  faith. 
Poor  worldlings  walk  by  sense,  therefore  their  souls  run  out  upon  other 
comforts,  in  the  smiling  face  of  some  great  potentate,  or  some  friend 
of  the  world :  this  is  their  life,  peace,  and  joy.    But  they  that  live  by 
faith  see  him   that  is  invisible,  and  value  their  happiness  by  his 
favour,  and  misery  by  his  displeasure. 

3.  The  children  of  God  have  tasted  the  sweetness  of  it,  therefore 
they  know  it  by  experience.     The  best  demonstration  of  anything  is 
from  sense.     Description  cannot  give  me  such  a  demonstration  as 
when  I  taste  and  feel  it  myself :  1  Peter  ii.  3,  '  If  so  be  ye  have  tasted 
that  the  Lord  is  gracious.'     They  have  an  experimental  feeling  of  that 
which  others  know  only  by  guess  and  hearsay.     Carnal  men  know  no 
other  good  but  that  of  the  creature.     The  spouse  did  so  languish  after 
her  beloved,  being  sick  of  love  ;  when  her  desires  were  disappointed,  it 


414  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiB.  CL, 

made  her  faint,  Cant.  v.  6.  They  that  have  not  seen  and  known  him, 
know  not  what  to  make  of  those  spiritual  and  lively  affections  that 
carry  us  out  after  the  favour  of  God  with  such  earnestness  and  impor 
tunity  ;  but  they  that  have  tasted  and  know  what  their  beloved  is, 
their  hearts  are  more  excited  and  stirred  up  towards  him  :  John  iv.  10, 
1  If  thou  knewest  the  gift  of  God,'  &c.  You  would  more  admire  the 
favour  of  God  if  you  knew  it,  especially  by  experience  ;  you  would  find 
it  is  a  better  good  than  ever  you  have  yet  tasted. 

Use.  Is  this  our  temper  and  frame  of  our  hearts  ?  Can  we  live 
contentedly  and  satisfiedly  without  the  light  of  his  countenance  ?  A 
child  of  God  may  be  without  the  light  of  his  countenance,  but  cannot 
live  contentedly  without  it.  Are  we  troubled  about  it,  ever  seeking 
after  it?  Surely  this  is  the  disposition  of  the  children  of  God,  they 
are  ever  seeking  after  the  favour  of  God.  I  shall  press  to  this  by  this 
argument. 

1.  God  bespeaks  it  from  you :  Ps.  xxvii.  8,  '  Thou  saidst,  Seek  ye 
my  face/    There  is  a  dialogue  between  God  and  a  gracious  heart. 
The  Lord  saith,  '  Seek ;'  he  saith  it  in  his  word,  and  speaks  by  the 
injection  of  holy  thoughts,  by  the  inspiration  of  his  grace ;  and  the 
renewed  heart,  like  a  quick  echo,  takes  hold  of  this,  '  Lord,  thy  face 
will  I  seek,'  Ps.  cvi.  4.     You  should  ever  be  seeking  after  God  in  his 
ordinances,  seek  his  favour  and  face. 

2.  The  new  nature  inclines  and  carries  the  soul  to  God ;  it  came 
from  God,  and  carries  the  soul  to  God  again.     The  spirit  of  the  world 
doth  wholly  incline  us  to  the  world :  they  that  are  after  the  flesh  do- 
mind  the  things  of  the  flesh  ;  and  the  Spirit  of  God  doth  incline  us  to- 
God,  and  therefore  the  people  of  God  will  value  his  favour  above  all 
things  else.     David  speaks  in  his  own  name,  and  in  the  name  of  all 
that  were  like-minded  with  himself ;  he  speaks  of  all  the  children  of 
God  in  opposition  to  the  many,  the  brutish  ones,  that  were  for  sensual 
satisfaction :  Ps.  iv.  6,  '  Many  say,  Who  will  show  us  any  good  ? 
Lord,  lift  thou  up  the  light  of  thy  countenance  upon  us/    He  doth  not 
say,  upon  me,  but  upon  us,  as  the  common  language  of  all  the  saints. 
The  favour  of  God  is  so  dear  and  precious  to  the  saints,  that  they  can 
compare  with  the  affections  of  carnal  men,  take  them  at  the  greatest 
advantage.     He  doth  not  consider  their  worldly  things  in  their  decrease, 
but  he  considers  them  when  they  are  increased ;  and  he  considers  them 
in  the  very  time  when  they  are  increased,  in  the  vintage  and  harvest 
time.     The  shouting  of  vintage  and  joy  of  harvest  are  proverbial ;  and 
the  comforts  of  this  life,  when  new  and  fresh,  most  invite  delight. 
They  that  place  their  happiness  in  these  things  cannot  have  so  much 
joy  as  they  that  have  a  sense  of  their  interest  in  God.     Now,  shall  we- 
be  wholly  strangers  to  this  temper  and  disposition  of  soul. 

3.  If  we  be  backward  to  seek  after  the  favour  of  God,  the  Lord 
whips  his  people  to  it  by  his  providence  ;  for  sometimes  their  spiritual 
disposition  may  be  marred  :  Hosea  v.  15,  '  I  will  go  and  return  to  my 
place,  till  they  acknowledge  their  offence  and  seek  my  face.     In  their 
affliction  they  will  seek  me  early/     The  Lord  withdraws  his  gracious 
presence  for  this  reason,  not  that  we  may  seek  ease  or  freedom  from 
trouble,  but  that  we  may  seek  his  face,  and  the  applying  of  his  grace 
to  our  consciences. 


VER.  135.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  415 

4.  God  is  not  wholly  gone,  neither  is  the  desertion  total,  when  there 
is  such  a  disposition  in  the  heart.     He  hath  left  something  behind  him 
which  draws  you  after  him.     The  estimation  of  God's  favour  keeps  his 
place  warm  till  he  come  again  ;  it  keeps  room  in  the  soul :  Ps.  Ixxxviii. 
13,  14,  *  Unto  thee  have  I  cried ;  in  the  morning  shall  my  prayer  pre 
vent  thee  :  Lord,  why  castest  thou  off  my  soul  ?  why  hidest  thou  thy 
face  from  me  ? '     But  when  they  can  digest  such  a  loss  with  patience, 
it  is  an  indifferent  thing  whether  they  have  any  sense  of  God's  love, 
yea  or  no. 

5.  We  find  it  to  be  a  sad  thing  to  lose  any  worldly  comfort,  and 
shall  we  lose  the  favour  of  God  too,  and  never  lay  it  to  heart,  and  live 
contentedly  without  it  ?     It  is  a  sign  we  despise  that  which  the  saints 
value,  and  which  is  the  principal  blessing ;  you  will  not  have  cheap 
thoughts  of  the  consolation  of  God,  Job  xv.  11. 

6.  Unless  we  seek  God's  favour,  all  our  labour  is  lost  in  other  duties : 
2  Chron.  vii.  14,  '  If  my  people,  that  are  called  by  my  name,  shall 
humble  themselves,  and  pray,  and  seek  my  face,  and  turn  from  their 
wicked  ways,  then  I  will  hear  from  heaven,'  &c.     This  is  put  in  among 
other  conditions,  and  without  this  the  promise  is  not  made  good  to  us. 
Many  seek  to  the  Lord  in  their  distresses,  but  it  is  only  for  redress  of 
temporal  evils,  or  obtaining  necessary  temporal  supplies ;  but  do  not 
seek  his  face :  then  their  prayers  are  but  like  howlings,  but  like  the 
moans  of  beasts,  Hosea  vii.  14.     They  do  not  seek  reconciliation  and 
communion  with  God,  but  only  ease  and  riddance  of  present  trouble. 
Those  are  not  holy  prayers. 

7.  It  is  the  distinguishing  point  that  will  separate  the  precious  from 
the  vile,  to  have  a  tender  sense  of  God's  favour  :  Ps.  xxiv.  6,  '  This  is 
the  generation  of  them  that  seek  him,  that  seek  thy  face,  0  Jacob.' 
There  are  many  thoughts  of  interpreters  about  that  place,  I  find; 
though  they  differ  in  it,  yet  they  all  agree  in  this  sense,  that  they  are 
the  true  Israelites,  the  true  Jacob's  posterity,  that  cannot  brook  God's 
absence,  that  seek  his  face,  that  will  not  let  him  go,  but  strive  with 
him  till  they  get  the  blessing.     These  are  not  Israel  in  the  letter,  but 
Israel  in  the  spirit.     Jacob  said,  '  I  will  not  let,  thee  go  unless  thou 
bless  me/  Gen.  xxxii.  26.     Such  diligent  seekers 'of  God  should  we  be, 
never  to  give  over  till  we  find  him.     Or,  as  Moses  said,  '  Lord,  if  thy 
presence  go  not  with  us,  carry  us  not  up  hence ;'  we  will  not  stir  a  foot 
without  thy  favour  and  presence. 

Thirdly,  They  that  are  sensible  of  the  want  or  loss  of  the  favour  of 
God  have  liberty  to  sue  for  it  with  hope  and  encouragement  to  find  it. 
For  so  doth  David,  '  Make  thy  face  to  shine/  Whence  comes  this 
liberty  ? 

1.  Because  of  God's  promise,  because  of  the  mercy  of  God  pawned 
to  us  in  his  promises.     He  hath  told  us,  none  shall  seek  his  face  in 
vain,  Isa.  xlviii.  19;  Prov.  viii.  17;  Ps.  xxii.  11,  20.     One  that  seri 
ously  and  diligently  is  seeking  after  God,  before  he  hath  done  his 
search,  he  shall  have  some  opportunity  to  bless  and  praise  the  Lord ; 
some  experience  of  grace  shall  be  given  to  him,  if  he  conscionably, 
diligently,  and  seriously  seek  it. 

2.  Because  of  the  mediation  of  Jesus  Christ,  you  may  come  in  his 
name  and  seek  the  favour  of  God :  Ps.  xxxvi.  7,  '  How  excellent  is 


416  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [&ER.  CL. 

thy  loving-kindness,  0  God  !  therefore  the  children  of  men  put  their 
trust  under  the  shadow  of  thy  wings/  Interpreters  upon  that  place 
conceive  the  shadow  of  God's  wings  does  not  allude  to  an  ordinary 
similitude  of  a  hen  that,  when  vultures  and  kites  are  abroad,  covers 
her  little  ones,  gathers  her  chickens  under  her  wings :  no ;  but  they 
think  the  allusion  to  be  to  the  outstretched  wings  of  the  cherubims ; 
and  this  is  the  ground  of  our  trust  and  dependence  upon  God.  Let 
the  sons  of  men  put  their  trust  under  the  shadow  of  his  wings,  there 
to  find  God  reconciled  in  Christ ;  for  the  throne  of  grace  was  a  figure 
of  that  propitiation.  He  is  called  the  propitiation,  God  propitiated 
and  reconciled  in  Christ  is  the  throne  of  grace  interpreted.  However 
that  be,  it  is  clear,  Ps.  Ixxx.  1,  '  Thou  that  dwellest  between  the  cheru 
bims,  shine  forth/  When  they  would  have  God  hear,  they  give  him 
the  title  of  one  that  sits  upon  the  mercy-seat,  reconciled  by  Christ. 
Though  the  cloud  of  sin  doth  hide  God's  favour  from  thee,  he  can 
make  it  shine  again  ;  and  here  is  our  ground,  the  merciful  invitation  of 
God's  promise,  and  then  God  propitiated  in  Christ. 

Use.  Oh  !  then,  let  us  turn  unto  the  Lord  in  prayer,  and  in  the  use 
of  all  other  means,  humbling  ourselves  and  seeking  his  favour. 

1.  Waiting  for  it  with  all  needfulness :  Ps.  cxxx.  6,  '  My  soul  doth 
wait  for  the  Lord,  more  than  they  that  watch  for  the  morning ; '  and 
he  repeats  it  again,  '  I  say,  more  than  they  that  watch  for  the  morn 
ing.'     Look,  as  the  weary  sentinel  that  is  wet  and  stiff  with  cold  and 
the  dews  of  the  night,  or  as  the  porters  that  watched  in  the  temple, 
the  Levites,  were  waiting  for  the  daylight,  so  more  than  they  that  watch 
for  the  morning  was  he  waiting  for  some  glimpse  of  God's  favour. 
Though  he  do  not  presently  ease  us  of  our  smart  or  gratify  our  desires, 
yet  we  are  to  wait  upon  God.     In  time  we  shall  have  a  good  answer. 
God's  delays  are  not  denials.     Day  will  come  at  length,  though  the 
weary  sentinel  or  watchman  counts  it  first  long  ;  so  God  will  come  at 
length  ;  he  will  not  be  at  our  beck.     We  have  deserved  nothing,  but 
must  wait  for  him  in  the  diligent  use  of  the  means ;  as  Benhadad's 
servants  watched  for  the  word  '  brother,'  or  anything  of  kindness  to 
drop  from  the  king  of  Israel. 

2.  Work  for  it :  for  I  press  you  not  to  a  devout  sloth.     All  good 
things  are  hard  to  come  by ;  it  is  worth  all  the  labour  we  lay  out  upon 
it.     There  is  no  having  peace  with  God,  any  sense  of  his  love,  without 
diligent  attendance  in  the  use  of  all  appointed  means :  2  Peter  iii.  14, 
'  Be  diligent,  that  ye  may  be  found  of  him  in  peace,  without  spot  and 
blameless  ; '  and  2  Peter  i.  10,  *  Give  all  diligence  to  make  your  calling 
and  election  sure/     That  comfort  is  to  be  suspected  that  costs  nothing, 
but,  like  Jonah's  gourd,  grows  up  in  a  night,  that  comes  upon  us  we 
know  not  how. 

Fourthly,  God's  children,  when  they  beg  comfort,  also  beg  grace  to 
serve  him  acceptably ;  for  '  teaching  God's  statutes '  is  not  meant 
barely  a  giving  us  a  speculative  knowledge  of  God's  will :  for  so  David 
here,  '  Make  thy  face  to  shine/  and,  '  Teach  me  thy  statutes/  And 
why  do  they  so  ? 

1.  Out  of  gratitude.  They  are  ingenuous,  and  would  return  all 
duty  and  thankfulness  to  God,  as  well  as  receive  mercy  from  him : 
therefore  they  are  always  mingling  resolutions  of  duty  with  expecta- 


VER.  135.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  417 

tions  of  mercy ;  and  when  they  carry  away  comforts  from  him  are 
thinking  of  suitable  returns.  And  while  they  take  Christ  for  right 
eousness,  they  devote  and  give  up  themselves  to  his  use  and  service. 
The  nature  of  man  is  so  disposed,  that  when  we  ask  anything,  we  pro 
mise,  especially  if  a  superior  :  Hosea  xiv.  2,  '  Take  away  all  iniquity, 
and  receive  us  graciously ;  so  will  we  render  the  calves  of  our  lips.' 
The  children  of  God  resolve  upon  duty  and  service  when  they  ask  • 
favour.  So  Ps.  ix.  13,  14,  '  Have  mercy  upon  me,  0  Lord;  consider 
my  trouble  ;  that  I  may  show  forth  all  thy  praise  in  the  gates  of  the 
•daughter  of  Zion.'  We  are  thinking  of  honouring  and  praising  God 
-at  that  time  when  we  seek  his  favour. 

2.  The  children  of  God  do  know  that  this  is  the  cause  of  God's 
aversion  from  them,  that  his  statutes  are  not  observed  ;  and  therefore, 
when  they  beg  a  greater  experience  of  God's  special  favour,  they  also 
beg  direction  to  keep  his  statutes.     They  cannot  maintain  and  keep 
up  a  sense  of  the  love  of  God  unless  they  be  punctual  in  their  duty. 
He  knows  nothing  of  religion  that  knows  not  that  the  comfort  of  a 
Christian  depends  upon  sanctification  as  well  as  justification  ;  and  the 
.greater  sense  of  obedience  the  fuller  sense  of  the  love  of  God ;  and  the 
degrees  of  manifesting  his  favour  are  according  to  the  degrees  of  our 
profiting  in  obedience,  for  these  go  along  still.     Jesus  Christ  is  king 
of  righteousness   and  king  of  peace.      He  is   Melchisedec,  king  of 
Salem ;  he  pours  out  the  oil  of  grace  that  he  may  pour  out  the  oil  of 
gladness,  Heb.  vii.  2.     But  especially  see  one  place,  John  xiv.  21, 
'  He  that  hath  my  commandments  and  keepeth  them,  he  it  is  that 
loveth  me  ;  and  he  that  loveth  me  shall  be  loved  of  my  Father  ;  and  I 
will  love  him,  and  will  manifest  myself  to  him.'     Christ  was  then  most 
sweetly  comforting  his  people,  but  it  was  not  his  mind  that  they  should 
be  emboldened  thereby  to  cast  off  duty.     No  ;  he  says,  the  only  way 
to  assure  them  that  they  were  not  delusions,  and  to  clear  their  right  to 
these  comforts,  was  this,  '  He  that   hath  my  commandments  and 
keepeth  them,  he  it  is  that  loveth  me  ;  and  he  that  loveth  me,  shall 
be  loved  of  my  Father,  and  I  will  love  him,  and  will  manifest  myself  to 
him/     That  is  the  way  to  get  confirmation  and  evidence  of  the  love 
of  God. 

3.  This  is  a  notable  effect  and  evidence  of  God's  favour,  to  guide 
you  in  his  ways  ;  therefore  it  is  a  branch  of  the  former,  for  whom  the 
Lord  loveth  he  teacheth  and  guides  :  Eom.  viii.  14,  '  As  many  as  are 
the  children  of  God,  they  are  led  by  the  Spirit/     Others  are  left  to 
their  own  heart's  counsels.     And  Ps.  xxv.  14,  '  The  secret  of  the  Lord 
is  with  them  that  fear  him ;  and  he  will  show  them  his  covenant/ 
The  communication  of  secrets  is  a  note  of  friendship.     Now  the  secret 
of  the  Lord,  the  knowledge  of  his  covenant,  and  what  belongs  thereto, 
it  is  to  those  that  fear  God.     There  is  the  qualification. 

4.  He  showeth  that  he  does  not  desire  a  greater  proof  of  God's  love. 
He  would  chiefly  experience  the  good-will  of  God  to  him  in  being 
taught  the  mind  of  God.     The  most  slight  that  which  David  prizeth. 
But  if  our  hearts  were  as  they  should  be,  we  would  prefer  this  before 
all  other  good  things,  sanctification,  to  be  taught  of  God.     For — 

[1.]  It  is  a  better  evidence  of  God's  favour  than  worldly  comforts. 
Pardon  freeth  us  from  punishment,  sanctification  from  sin  and  pollu- 

VOL.  VIII.  2  D 


418  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEE.  CL; 

tion ;  sin  is  worse  than  misery,  and  holiness  is  to  be  preferred  before- 
impunity.  Christ  in  the  work  of  redemption  considered  the  Father's 
interest  and  honour  as  well  as  your  salvation.  The  taking  away  of 
worldly  comforts  doth  not  infringe  our  blessedness ;  yea,  when  it  is 
accompanied  with  this  benefit,  it  maketh  way  for  the  increase  of  it  r 
Ps.  xciv.  12,  '  Blessed  is  the  man  whom  thou  chastenest,  0  Lord,  and 
teachest  him  out  of  thy  law.'  All  the  comforts  of  the  world  are  not 
worth  one  dram  of  grace.  The  loss  of  them  may  be  supplied  with 
grace,  and  man  be  happy,  comfortable,  and  blessed  for  all  that ;  but 
the  loss  of  grace  cannot  be  supplied  with  temporal  things.  We  can 
not  say,  Blessed  is  the  man  that  hath  lost  grace  for  the  world's  sake. 
Again,  all  the  riches  and  honours  heaped  upon  a  man  cannot  make 
him  better,  they  may  easily  make  him  worse ;  but  grace  can  never 
make  us  worse,  but  always  better,  more  amiable  in  the  eyes  of  God, 
and  fitter  for  communion  with  him.  These  may  be  given  to  those 
whom  God  hateth,  Ps.  xvii.  14 ;  but  this  is  the  favour  of  his  people. 
Grace  is  never  given  but  to  those  whom  he  entirely  loveth.  These 
may  be  given  in  wrath,  but  sanctifying  grace  never  in  wrath.  The 
more  we  have  of  these  things,  the  more  wanton  and  vain,  Deut.  xxxiL 
15.  They  are  often  used  as  an  occasion  to  the  flesh,  Gal.  v.  13.  prove 
fuel  to  our  lusts,  increase  our  snares',  temptations,  difficulties  in 
heaven's  way,  Luke  xviii.  25.  Our  table  becometh  a  snare,  Ps.  Ixix. 
22.  But  the  saving  graces  of  the  Spirit  make  all  easy,  and  help  us 
towards  our  own  happiness. 

[2.]  Profiting  in  obedience  or  sanctification  is  a  greater  effect  of 
God's  favour.  Sanctification  is  a  greater  privilege  than  justification, 
Perfect  and  complete  holiness  and  conformity  to  God  is  the  great 
thing  which  God  designed,  as  the  glory  of  God  is  holiness,  Exod.  xv, 
11.  Moral  perfections  exceed  natural;  and  of  all  moral  perfections 
holiness  is  the  greatest.  It  is  better  to  be  wise  than  strong,  to  be 
holy  than  wise.  Beasts  have  strength,  man  hath  reason,  but  holy 
angels,  a  holy  God.  Sanctification  is  a  real  perfection,  but  justifica 
tion  is  but  a  relative.  It  rendereth  us  amiable  in  the  eyes  of  God. 
God  hateth  sin  more  than  misery.  Sin  is  against  God's  very  nature. 
God  can  inflict  punishment,  but  he  cannot  infuse  sin.  God's  interest 
and  honour  is  to  be  preferred  before  our  comfort  and  personal  benefit. 
In  sanctification,  besides  our  personal  benefit,  which  is  the  perfection 
of  our  natures,  God's  honour  and  interest  is  concerned  in  our  subjec 
tion  to  him.  Justification  is  a  pledge,  but  sanctification  is  not  only  a 
pledge  but  a  beginning ;  it  is  removens  proliibens.  We  love  him  for 
pardoning,  but  he  delighteth  in  holiness :  he  delighteth  in  us  rather 
as  sanctified  than  pardoned.  We  love  much  because  much  is  for 
given,  Luke  vii.  47.  But  God  delighteth  in  the  pure  and  upright : 
Prov.  xi.  20,  '  Such  as  are  upright  in  their  way  are  his  delight.' 

Use  1.  For  reproof  of  three  sorts: — 

1.  Of  those  that  would  have  ease  and  comfort,  but  care  not  for  duty ; 
would  have  the  love  of  God  to  pacify  their  consciences,  but  never 
mind  this,  to  have  their  hearts  directed  in  God's  ways :  Hosea  x.  11, 
'  Ephraim  is  as  an  heifer  that  is  taught,  that  would  tread  out  the  corn 
but  not  break  the  clods/  It  yielded  food,  Deut.  xxv.  4.  They  would 
be  feasted  with  privileges,  yet  abhor  service,  when  they  prize  comfort. 


VER.  135.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  419 

-To  these  we  may  argue  not  only  ab  incongruo — how  disingenuous  it  is 
to  separate  duty  and  comfort ;  to  be  so  ready  to  expect  all  from  God, 
and  so  unwilling  to  do  anything  for  him.  It  is  contrary  to  the  dis 
position  of  God's  children,  Titus  ii.  11,  12,  and  Rom.  xii.  1  ; — but  ab 
impossibili.  Will  God  ever  delight  in  you  till  you  be  conformed  to 
his  image  ?  Christ  came  not  to  make  a  change  in  God,  but  in  us ; 
not  to  make  God  less  holy,  but  us  more  holy.  It  is  not  agreeable  to 
the  reasonable  nature  to  conceive  that  God  should  be  indifferent  to 
good  and  bad,  or  a  friend  to  those  that  break  his  laws.  Would  you 
think  well  of  that  magistrate  that  should  let  men  rob  and  steal  and 
beat  their  fellow-subjects,  and  not  only  connive  at  them  but  receive 
them  into  his  bosom  ?  You  that  have  but  a  drop  of  the  divine  nature 
cannot  delight  in  the  company  of  sinners,  2  Peter  ii.  8. 

2.  Those  that  would  have  the  favour  of  God,  but  expect  it  should  be 
showed  to  them  in  temporal  things.     Alas  !  these  things  are  promis 
cuously  dispensed  to  all ;  can  be  no  evidence  of  his  special  love.     God 
is  behindhand  with  none  of  his  creatures,  Eccles.  ix.  1,  2 ;  sometimes 
evil  things  to  good  men,  and  good  things  to  evil  men.     Josiah  died  in 
wars  as  well  as  Ahab.     Is  Abraham  rich  ?  so  is  Nabal.     Is  Joseph 
honoured  by  Pharaoh  ?  so  is  Doeg  by  Saul.     Hath  Demetrius  a  good 
report  of  all  men  ?  3  John  12,  so  have  false  teachers,  Luke  vi.  26. 
Hath  Caleb  health  and  strength  ?  Josh.  xiv.  11,  so  have  wicked  ones: 
*  No  bands  in  their  death ; '     Ps.  Ixxiii.  4,  '  Their  strength  is  firm. 
Was  Moses  beautiful?  Acts  vii.  20,  so  was  Absalom,  2  Sam.  xiv.  25. 
Did  God  give  learning  and  wisdom  to  Moses  and  Daniel?  &c.,  Dan.  i. 
17,  so  to  the  Egyptians,  Acts  vii.  22.     Long  life  to  Ishmael,  Gen.  xxv. 
17,  as  well  as  to  Isaac,  Gen.  xxxv.  20. 

3.  The  children  of  God  that  murmur  and  repine  at  their  sufferings 
when  others,  ignorant  of  the  mind  of  God  and  the  strictness  of  his 
ways,  fare  better,  Ps.  xvii.  14.     It  is  often  seen  that '  he  that  increaseth 
knowledge  increaseth  sorrow/  Eccles.  i.  18.     Drones  and  sots  have 
their  ampler  revenues,  but  we  should  not  be  thereby  discouraged.     It 
is  their  portion  :  Prov.  iii.  31,  32, '  Envy  thou  not  the  oppressor,  and 
choose  none  of  his  ways ;  for  the  froward  are  an  abomination  unto  the 
Lord,  and  his  secret  is  with  the  righteous.'    They  are  hateful  to  God 
while  they  flourish.     It  is  a  greater  evidence  of  God's  favour  and 
friendship  to  understand  his  counsel  in  the  word,  and  to  be  acquainted 
with  the  mysteries  of  godliness,  than  to  enjoy  all  the  power  and  great 
ness  in  the  world  ;  the  knowledge  of  a  despised,  hated  truth,  than  to 
flourish  in  opposition  against  the  ways  of  God,  through  ignorance, 
obstinacy,  and  prejudice. 

Use  2.  Is  direction  to  us : — 

1.  For  strict  walking.     If  we  would  have  a  comfortable  sense  of 
God's  love,  we  must  resolve  upon  a  strict  course  of  holy  walking :  Gal. 
vi.  16,  'And  as  many  as  walk  according  to  this  rule,  peace  be  on 
them,  and  mercy  upon  the  Israel  of  God  ;'  and  Ps.  Ixxxv.  8,  and  Eph. 
iv.  30. 

2.  If  we  would  walk  strictly,  we  must  go  to  God  for  continual  direc 
tion  :  Ps.  Ixxxvi.  11,  '  Teach  me  thy  way,  0  Lord ;  I  will  walk  in  thy 
truth  :  unite  my  heart  to  fear  thy  name  ; '  Ps.  cxliii.  10,  '  Teach  me  to 
do  thy  will,  for  thou  art  my  God ;  thy  spirit  is  good,  lead  me  into  the 


420  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CLI. 

land  of  uprightness.'     Especially  when  blinded  with  interest,  or  apt 
to  be  carried  away  with  temptations. 

3.  God's  teaching  is  not  only  directive,  but  persuasive ;  it  prevents 
sin,  Ps.  cxix.  133 ;  quickens  to  duty,  Ps.  cxix.  33-35.  Teach  and 
keep,  and  make  me  to  go ;  for  that  is  the  difference  between  literal 
instruction,  which  we  have  from  man,  and  spiritual  instruction,  which 
we  have  from  God.  God's  teaching  is  drawing,  John  vi.  44,  45. 


SERMON  CLI. 

Rivers  of  water  run  down  mine  eyes,  because  they  keep  not  tliy  law. — 

VER.  136. 

MOST  of  the  sentences  of  this  psalm  are  independent,  and  do  not  easily 
fall  under  the  rules  of  method ;  so  that  we  need  not  take  pains  in 
clearing  up  the  context ;  the  verse  needs  it  not,  the  time  permits  it  not : 
only  you  may  observe  this,  that  often  in  this  psalm  David  had  expressed 
his  great  joy,  and  now  he  maketh  mention  of  his  exceeding  grief. 
There  is  a  time  to  rejoice  and  a  time  to  mourn ;  as  times  vary,  so  do 
duties  ;  we  have  affections  for  every  condition.  Indeed,  in  this  valley 
of  tears  mourning  is  seldom  out  of  season,  either  with  respect  to  sin  or 
misery,  for  ourselves  or  others.  David,  that  did  sometimes  mourn  for 
his  own  sins,  and  watered  his  couch  with  tears,  Ps.  vi.  6,  he  took  also 
his  time  to  mourn  and  bewail  other  men's  sins :  *  Eivers  of  tears  run 
down  mine  eyes,  because  they  keep  not  thy  law.' 
In  the  words  observe  David's  grief  is  set  out  by — 

1.  Constancy  and  greatness  of  it,  rivers  of  tears  run  down  mine, 
eyes. 

2.  The  goodness  of  the  cause  or  reason  of  it,  because  they  keep  not 
thy  law. 

4  Eivers  of  tears/  He  compares  his  tears  to  a  stream  and  river  always 
running.  The  same  expression  is  used  Lam.  ii.  18,  *  Let  tears  run 
down  like  a  river  day  and  night ;  let  not  the  apples  of  thine  eyes 
cease/  When  affections  are  vehemently  exercised,  the  scripture  is 
wont  to  use  such  kind  of  expressions.  The  will  of  a  godly  man  is 
above  his  performance ;  it  is  wont  to  do  much  more  than  the  body 
can  furnish  him  with  abilities  to  express.  He  had  such  a  large  affec 
tion  that  he  could  weep  rivers.  *  Because  they/  Some  refer  it  to  eyes, 
the  immediate  antecedent ;  they  are  usually  the  inlets  of  sin  ;  we  are 
first  taken  by  the  eye,  and  then  by  the  heart :  '  She  saw  the  fruit  that 
it  was  good,  and  then  did  eat  of  it/  But  I  rather  suppose  it  is  to  be 
referred  to  men.  The  Hebrews  many  times  do  not  express  a  general 
antecedent.  More  particularly  his  enemies,  Saul  and  his  courtiers ; 
for  so  he  saith,  ver.  139,  '  My  zeal  hath  consumed  me,  because  mine 
enemies  have  forgotten  thy  word  ;'  and  again,  ver.  158,  David  saith, 
'  I  beheld  the  transgressors,  and  was  grieved  because  they  keep  not 
thy  word/  I  have  brought  these  places,  because  parallel  with  the 
text;  and  principally  that  you  may  not  think  David  was  troubled 
because  of  any  injuries  done  to  himself,  but  because  of  offences  done  to 


VER.  136.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  421 

God.  '  Keep  not  thy  law.'  Keeping  of  the  law  is  to  observe  it  dili 
gently  ;  not  only  to  maintain  it,  but  to  retain  it  in  our  eye  and  prac 
tice.  It  might  be  matter  of  grief  to  David  that  they  of  whom  he 
specially  speaketh,  being  persons  of  power  and  place,  did  not  maintain 
the  law,  and  keep  it  from  encroachment  and  violation,  but  suffered 
abuses  to  pass  unpunished  ;  but  he  speaketh  here  of  retaining  the  law 
in  their  hearts  and  practice.  For  it  is  an  expression  equivalent  with 
that  which  is  used  in  ver.  139,  '  Because  they  have  forgotten  thy  word/ 
The  point  which  I  shall  observe  is  this — 

Doct.  That  it  is  the  duty  and  property  of  a  godly  man  to  mourn 
bitterly,  even  for  other  men's  sins. 

Here  we  have  David's  instance ;  and  it  may  be  suited  with  the  prac 
tice  of  all  the  saints.  Jeremiah :  see  Jer.  xiii.  17,  '  But  if  ye  will  not 
hear,  my  soul  shall  weep  in  secret  places  for  your  pride,  and  mine 
eyes  shall  weep  sore,  and  run  down  with  tears.'  There  you  have 
described  the  right  temper  of  a  good  prophet,  first  to  entreat  earnestly 
for  them,  and  in  case  of  refusal  to  weep  bitterly  for  their  obstinacy. 
Mark,  it  was  not  an  ordinary  sorrow  he  speaks  of  there,  but  a  bitter 
weeping,  '  Mine  eyes  shall  weep  sore  and  run  down  with  tears/  Not 
a  slight,  vanishing  sigh,  not  a  counterfeited  sorrow ;  soul  and  eyes 
were  both  engaged ;  and  this  in  secret  places,  where  the  privacy  con- 
tributeth  much  to  the  measure  and  sincerity  of  it.  Now  this  is  a  fit 
instance  of  a  minister  of  the  gospel.'  We  cannot  always  prevail  when 
we  plead  with  you,  and  shall  not  be  responsible  for  it.  God  never 
required  it  at  the  hands  of  any  minister  to  work  grace  and  to  save  souls, 
but  to  do  their  endeavours.  But,  alas  !  we  do  not  learn  of  Jeremiah 
to  go  and  mourn  over  their  ignorance,  carelessness,  and  obstinacy  of 
those  committed  to  our  charge.  The  next  example  that  I  shall  pro 
duce  is  that  of  Lot  in  Sodom,  2  Peter  ii.  7,  8,  '  Who  vexed  himself, 
and  was  vexed  from  day  to  day,  in  seeing  and  hearing  their  unlawful 
deeds.'  Not  with  Sodom's  injuries,  but  with  Sodom's  sins.  It  was  mat 
ter  of  constant  grief  to  his  soul ;  the  commonness  did  not  take  away 
the  odiousness.  My  next  instance  shall  be  our  Lord  himself ;  we  read 
very  much  of  his  compassion:  I  shall  produce  but  two  instances  of  it. 
One  is  in  Mark  iii.  5,  '  Christ  looked  upon  them  with  anger,  and  was 
grieved  for  the  hardness  of  their  hearts.'  They  gave  him  cause  of 
offence,  but  it  doth  not  only  exercise  his  anger  but  grief.  In  our 
Saviour's  anger  there  was  more  of  compassion  than  passion.  He  was 
grieved  to  see  men  harden  themselves  to  their  own  destruction.  So 
when  he  came  near  to  Jerusalem,  a  city  not  very  friendly  to  him,  yet 
it  is  said,  Luke  xix.  41,  'When  he  came  near  and  beheld  the  city,  he 
wept  over  it,  and  said,  If  thou  hadst  known,  even  thou  at  least  in  this 
thy  day,  the  things  that  belong  to  thy  peace ;  but  now  they  are  hid 
from  thine  eyes.'  Our  Lord  Jesus  was  made  up  of  compassion ;  he 
weepeth  not  only  for  his  friends  but  his  enemies.  As  a  righteous 
God  he  inflicted  the  judgment,  but  as  man  he  wept  for  the  offences. 
First  he  shed  his  tears,  and  then  his  blood.  0  foolish,  careless  city, 
that  will  not  regard  terms  and  offers  of  peace  in  this  her  day !  He 
bewailed  them  that  knew  not  why  they  should  be  bewailed ;  they 
rejoiced,  and  he  mourned :  Christ's  eyes  are  the  wetter  because  theirs 
were  so  dry.  And  now  he  is  in  heaven,  how  doth  his  free  grace  go  a 


422  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiR.  CLI. 

mourning  after  sinners  in  the  entreaties  of  the  gospel !   But  that  I  may 
vindicate  this  point  more  fully,  I  shall  give — 

1.  Some  observations  concerning  mourning  for  the  sins  of  others. 

2.  Give  you  the  reasons  of  it. 
The  observations  are  these  five  : — 

1.  That  it  is  an  absolute  duty  to  preach  this  doctrine,  not  only  some 
high  and  raised  effect  of  grace.    When  we  produce  these  instances  and 
examples  of  the  word,  David,  Lot,  Jeremiah,  and  Christ,  many  think 
these  are  rare  and  extraordinary  instances,  elevated  beyond  the  ordi 
nary  line  and  pitch  of  Christian  practice  and  perfection.     No ;  it  is  a 
matter  of  duty  lying  upon  all  Christians.     When  God  goes  to  mark 
out  his  people  for  preservation,  who  are  those  that  are  marked?  The 
mourners :  Ezek.  ix.  4,  Go  through  the  midst  of  the  city,  and  set  a 
mark  upon  the  foreheads  of  them  that  sigh  and  cry  for  all  the  abomi 
nations  that  are  done  in  the  midst  thereof.'    None  are  marked  out  for 
mercy  but  the  mourners.    The  great  difference  between  men  and  men 
in  the  world  is  the  mourners  in  Zion  and  the  sinners  in  Zion ;  so  that  it 
lieth  upon  all,  if  we  would  have  God's  mark  upon  us.    And  the  apostle 
reproveth  the  Corinthians  for  the  want  of  this  mourning :  1  Cor.  v.  7, 
'  Ye  are  puffed  up,  when  ye  should  rather  have  mourned.'     Possibly 

•  many  of  the  converted  Corinthians  disliked  the  foulness  of  the  fact, 
but  they  did  not  mourn  and  solemnly  lay  it  to  heart ;  therefore  the 
apostle  layeth  a  charge  upon  them.  In  all  the  examples  that  have 
been  produced,  that  of  Jesus  Christ  only  is  extraordinary ;  and  yet  we 
are  bound  to  have  the  same  mind  in  us  that  was  in  Jesus.  We  must 
have  the  same  mind,  though  we  cannot  have  the  same  measure  of 
affection.  Christ  had  the  spirit  without  measure,  but  we  must  have 
our  proportion.  If  David  can  speak  of  floods,  certainly  we  should  at 
least  be  able  to  speak  of  drops.  Somewhat  of  David's  and  Christ's 
spirit.  Nay,  the  example  of  Christ  in  this  very  thing  is  propounded 
by  the  apostle :  Rom.  xv.  3,  '  For  even  Christ  pleased  not  himself ; 
but,  as  it  is  written,  The  reproaches  of  them  that  reproached  thee  fell 
on  me/  The  apostle  speaketh  there  of  bearing  one  another's  burdens. 
Christ  would  bear  the  burden  of  all  the  world.  He  was  moved  with 
a  zeal  for  the  dishonour  done  to  God,  and  compassion  to  men  ;  and  so 
undertook  the  burden  upon  him,  not  to  please  himself,  or  seek  the 
ease  and  safety  of  the  natural  life.  Well,  then,  it  is  not  some  raised 
effect  of  grace,  but  a  necessary  duty  which  concerns  all ;  a  frame  of 
heart  which  all  the  children  of  God  have.  If  you  love  God,  and  love 
your  neighbour,  if  you  believe  heaven  and  hell,  and  have  any  sense  of 
the  truth  of  the  promises  or  threatenings,  you  will  be  thus  affected  in 
some  measure  to  mourn  and  grieve  for  the  sins  of  others. 

2.  This  duty  doth  chiefly  concern  public  persons,  though  it  lies  upon 
all  Christians,  magistrates  and  ministers  and  officers  of  the  church, 
because  of  their  public  and  universal  influence.     Public  persons  must 
have  public  affections  as  well  as  public  relations.     You  shall  see  in 
that  type  the  church  of  the  Jews  is  represented  in  their  officers,  Zech. 
iii.  1.    When  the  people  were  corrupted,  and  in  a  calamitous  condition, 
Joshua  the  high  priest  is  brought  in  standing  before  the  Lord  in  filthy 
garments,  the  priest  is  accused  by  Satan.    Certainly  public  persons  are 
more  responsible  to  God  than  others,  and  more  concerned  than  others 


YER.  136.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  423 

in  the  sins  committed  in  the  land,  or  places  where  they  have  a  charge. 
Among  private  persons,  a  householder  is  more  responsible  than  a 
private  member  of  the  family,  if  one  under  his  charge  fall  into  a  noto 
rious  sin.  You  are  responsible  for  your  children  and  servants,  and  so 
•are  we  for  your  souls.  Under  the  law,  Exod.  xxii.  10,  God  said  if  a 
man  did  deliver  unto  his  neighbour  an  ox,  or  an  ass,  or  a  sheep,  or  any 
•beast  to  keep,  and  it  did  die,  or  was  hurt,  or  was  driven  away,  no  man 
seeing  it,  or  it  did  miscarry  through  his  negligence,  he  was  to  make  it 
good,  because  it  was  delivered  into  his  hand.  So  I  may  say  here, 
in  quoting  this  law,  Hath  God  a  care  of  oxen?  God  hath  com 
mitted  souls  to  us,  he  hath  put  them  into  the  hands  of  magistrates  and 
ministers  to  keep  them.  Now  because  we  do  not  discharge  our  duty, 
he  will  require  their  blood  at  our  hands,  Ezek.  xxxiii.  7-9.  Because 
•of  our  trust  and  charge,  we  are  bound  to  have  more  public  affections : 
•Joel  ii.  17,  'Let  the  priests,  the  ministers  of  the  Lord,  weep  between 
the  porch  and  the  altar.'  Ministers  should  be  exemplar  for  spiritual 
feeling  and  tenderness  and  humiliation.  Under  the  law  the  measures 
of  the  sanctuary  were  double  to  other  measures.  I  apply  it  to  this 
very  thing.  Our  portion  must  be  greater,  because  of  the  burden  that 
lies  upon  us.  Paul  speaketh  as  one  sensible  of  the  weightiness  of  his 
charge,  in  2  Cor.  xi.  29,  *  Who  is  weak,  and  I  am  not  weak  ?  who 
is  offended,  and  I  burn  not  ?  '  Paul  trembled  to  see  a  weak  Christian 
in  the  hands  of  Satan  ;  and  when  they  had  taken  offence,  and  begun 
to  stumble,  this  was  his  trouble  and  grief.  Mourning  and  burning  is 
put  for  the  violence  of  any  affection.  So  Jeremiah  the  prophet,  *  My 
soul  shall  weep  in  secret  places  for  your  pride.' 

3.  That  tears  are  not  absolutely  necessary  for  the  expression  of  this 
•grief  and  tenderness.  David  saith,  'Rivers  of  tears.'  Why?  For 
grief  doth  not  always  keep  the  road  and  highway ;  and  many  times 
when  water  goes  out,  wind  comes  in.  Many  are  puffed  up  with  sensi 
tive  trouble,  and  put  more  upon  tears  than  they  do  upon  the  frame  of 
the  heart  which  should  engage  us  to  this.  All  constitutions  are  not 
: alike  moist ;  a  tender  heart  may  be  matched  with  a  dry  brain.  When 
men  are  careful  to  get  things  reformed,  and  are  affected  with  the 
^calamity  of  the  church  more  than  their  own  private  loss,  this  is  that 
which  God  requires.  However,  let  me  tell  you,  if  we  find  tears  for 
other  things,  we  should  find  tears  for  these  duties,  when  we  come  to 
remember  our  own  sins,  and  the  sins  of  others.  God  did  not  make 
,the  affections  in  vain.  A  man  that  hath  a  thorough  sanctified  soul 
will  have  affections  exercised  in  some  measure  proportionable ;  and 
therefore,  if  we  can  shed  tears  abundantly  upon  other  occasions,  we 
•should  remember  this  water  should  be  reserved  for  sanctuary  uses. 
David  when  he  is  spoken  of,  is  represented  as  one  having  a  moist  eye 
upon  all  occasions ;  yet  Lot  had  a  tender  heart,  being  offended  with 
public  disorders.  It  is  said,  2  Peter  ii.  8,  '  His  righteous  soul  was 
vexed/  Great  devotionists  are  usually  very  tender.  Good  men  are 
much  given  to  tears,  and  these  sensitive  stirrings  of  affection  are  a 
great  help  to  religion ;  and  therefore  should  not  wholly  be  neglected. 
i>ut  if  there  be  a  serious  displacency  against  sin,  a  deep  laying  to  heart 
God's  dishonour,  though  they  cannot  command  tears,  the  duty  is  dis 
charged.  Humiliation  lieth  more  in  heart  grief  and  trouble,  than  the 


424  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiR.  CLL 

sensitive  and  passionate  expression  of  it.  And  yet  upon  religious 
occasions  we  should  express  ourselves  as  passionately  as  we  can,  and 
not  content  ourselves  with  a  few  cold  words  and  dull  thoughts ;  but 
our  liveliest  affections  should  be  exercised  about  the  weightiest  things : 
James  iv.  9,  '  Be  afflicted  and  mourn,  and  weep  ;  let  your  laughter  be 
turned  into  mourning,  and  your  joy  to  heaviness.'  When  we  are  de 
precating  the  wrath  of  God,  humbling  ourselves  under  the  offences 
done  to  his  infinite  majesty  by  ourselves  or  others,  there  should  be 
more  tenderness,  and  we  should  do  it  in  the  most  lively  affectionate 
manner  that  possibly  we  can. 

4.  The  greatest  sinners,  when  they  are  once  converted  to  God,  have 
the  greatest  compassion  afterwards  towards  other  sinners.  Why?' 
They  know  the  heart  of  a  sinning  man,  they  have  had  most  experience 
of  the  power  and  prejudice  of  corruption,  and  also  sensibly  tasted  of 
the  love  of  God,  and  his  goodness  in  Christ  Jesus ;  and  so  their  hearts 
are  entendered  thereby  to  pity  others,  and  they  more  earnestly  desire 
others  should  partake  with  them  of  the  same  grace.  As  Israel  were 
pressed  to  pity  strangers,  because  they  themselves  were  once  strangers 
in  Egypt,  they  knew  what  it  was  to  be  neglected  and  despised  in  a 
strange  land;  so  they  that  are  acquainted  with  the  temptations  of 
Satan,  with  the  bitter  fruits  of  sin,  with  the  prejudices  that  men  lie 
under  before  they  come  to  take  to  the  ways  of  God,  they  have  greater 
compassion  towards  the  souls  of  others  than  others  have.  This  is- 
observed  to  be  fulfilled  in  the  apostle  Paul,  whose  zeal  lay  otherwise 
more  in  the  active  than  in  the  contemplative  way ;  for  in  his  writings 
we  find  him  mostly  doctrinal  and  rational,  yet  when  he  speaketh  of 
sinners,  he  doth  it  always  with  grief  and  bowels :  Phil.  iii.  18/1  tell 
you  weeping/  And  still  he  presseth  Christians  to  a  greater  tender 
ness,  to  be  more  in  grief  for  than  censure  of  their  brother's  faults :. 
Gal.  vi.  1,  '  If  a  man  be  overtaken  in  a  fault,  ye  which  are  spiritual 
restore  such  a  one  in  the  spirit  of  meekness,  considering  thyself  lest 
thou  also  be  tempted ; '  and  Titus  ii.  3,  when  he  presseth  to  gentleness 
to  all  men,  '  For  we  ourselves/  saith  he,  *  were  sometimes  foolish  and 
disobedient,  deceived  and  deceiving,  serving  divers  lusts  and  pleasures, 
living  in  malice  and  envy,  hateful  and  hating  one  another ;  but  after 
the  love  and  kindness  of  God  appeared,'  &c.  This  melted  his  heart, 
to  consider  what  he  was,  and  what  God  had  made  him  by  grace. 
Whereas  sullen  men,  of  a  severe  temper,  of  a  constant,  rigid  inno- 
cency,  are  wont  to  be  more  harsh  and  carried  out  with  greater  indigna 
tion  than  sorrow.  Sin  and  they  have  not  been  so  much  acquainted. 
Others,  that  know  how  cunning  this  strumpet  is  to  insinuate  and  en 
tice  the  soul,  pity  those  that  are  deceived  with  its  enticing  blandish 
ments.  Certainly  men  that  profess  religion,  and  do  not  observe  their 
own  hearts,  or  else  have  lived  in  a  more  equitable  course  of  honesty, 
without  any  sensible  change,  are  not  touched  with  such  tenderness.. 
But  they  that  once  come  to  remember  how  obstinate  they  were  in  pre 
judices  against  the  ways  of  God,  how  securely  they  walked  in  a  way  of 
sin,  without  any  sense  of  God's  displeasure,  or  serious  thoughts  of  the 
bitter  fruit  of  it,  now  God  hath  plucked  them  as  brands  out  of  the 
burning,  they  would  fain  save  others  also  that  are  heirs  of  the  same 
promise.  The  high  priests  under  the  law  were  taken  from  among. 


VER.  36.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  425 

men,  Heb.  v.  2,  that  they  might  have  more  compassion ;  so  the  Lord 
multiplies  these  instances  of  grace,  that  they  might  have  more  com 
passion  towards  others.  They  that  have  felt  the  terrors  of  the  Lord, 
and  know  the  wounds  and  bruises  of  a  troubled  conscience,  are  more 
affective  in  persuading,  more  compassionate  in  mourning  for  others, 
2  Cor.  v.  7. 

5.  There  must  be-not  only  a  constant  disposition  to  mourn  over  the 
sins  of  others,  but  upon  some  more  than  ordinary  occasions  it  must 
with  much  seriousness  be  exercised  and  set  a-work.  It  is  said  of  Lot, 
2  Peter  ii.  8,  *  He  vexed  his  righteous  soul '  in  seeing  their  filthiness 
with  his  eyes  and  hearing  their  blasphemies  with  his  ears,  these  were 
continual  torments  to  him ;  he  could  go  nowhere  but  he  heard  or  saw 
something  that  was  matter  of  grief  to  him.  That  is  a  sad  prognostic 
of  an  approaching  judgment  when  a  country  is  so  bad  that  it  is  made, 
as  it  were,  a  prison  to  a  godly  man.  Daily  a  Christian  hath  his 
occasions  of  sorrow.  How  can  we  walk  the  streets  with  dry  eyes 
when  we  here  shall  see  a  reeling  drunkard,  there  hear  a  profane 
swearer  rending  and  tearing  the  sacred  name  of  God  in  pieces,  a  filthy 
speaker,  theatres  and  the  devil's  temples  crowded  with  such  a  multi 
tude  of  people,  that  men  may  learn  more  how  to  please  the  flesh  and 
hate  godliness,  and  feast  their  ears  with  filthy  talk  ?  To  see  people  so 
mad  against  God,  and  ready  to  cast  off  the  yoke  of  Christ  everywhere, 
this  occasions  matter  of  grief  and  mourning  before  the  Lord.  But 
besides  this,  there  must  be  solemn  exercises,  when  our  eyes  must  gush 
out  with  tears,  and  we  must  open  the  flood-gates.  We  must  wish, 
as  Jer.  ix.  1,  '  Oh,  that  my  head  were  waters,  and  mine  eyes  a  fountain 
of  tears,  that  I  might  weep  day  and  night  for  the  slain  of  the  daughter 
of  my  people  !  '  There  are  certain  times  when  this  is  necessary,  as 
times  of  great  sin,  and  of  judgment  felt  or  feared. 

[1.]  Of  great  sin,  for  then  things  begin  to  draw  to  a  judgment.  As 
for  instance — 

(1.)  When  outward  gross  sins  are  frequently  committed,  such 
as  are  against  the  light  of  nature  :  Hosea  iv.  1,2,'  The  Lord 
hath  a  controversy  with  the  inhabitants  of  the  land,  because  there  is 
no  truth,  no  mercy,  no  knowledge  of  God  in  the  land.  By  swearing, 
and  lying,  and  killing,  and  stealing,  and  committing  adultery,  they 
break  out,  and  blood  toucheth  blood/  &c.  God's  severity  is  last 
mentioned  wherein  men  bewray  their  high  presumption  in  profaning 
the  name  of  God  and  violating  his  .commands  without  any  the  least 
appearance  of  profit  and  advantage — lying  and  falsehood,  a  sin 
inconsistent  with  human  society.  God,  who  is  the  God  of  truth 
and  the  patron  of  it,  cannot  endure  it.  So  the  lives,  goods,  chastity 
of  men  to  be  abused,  this  God  cannot  bear  with :  '  Whoremongers 
and  adulterers  God  will  judge.'  God  doth  not  contend  usually  for 
lesser  faults  or  ordinary  infirmities,  but  gross  sins,  by  way  of  omission 
or  commission. 

(2.)  These  sins  are  the  more  odious,  and  do  provoke  God  when 
universal :  Isa.  i.  5,  6,  '  The  whole  head  is  sick,  and  the  whole  heart 
is  faint ;  from  the  sole  of  the  foot,  even  to  the  head,  there  is  no  sound 
ness  in  it,'  &c.  Though  there  be  a  few  secret  mourners,  yet  when  the 
contagion  becometh  general,  and  riseth  to  a  head,  the  Lord  will  take 


426  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CLl. 

no  notice  of  them  as  to  the  keeping  off  a  common  j  udgment :  Ezek. 
ix.  4,  5,  'And  the  Lord  said  unto  him,  Go  through  the  midst  of  the 
city,  through  the  midst  of  Jerusalem,  and  set  a  mark  upon  the  fore 
heads  of  the  men  that  sigh,  and  that  cry  for  all  the  abominations  that 
be  done  in  the  midst  thereof.  And  to  the  others  he  said  in  my  hearing, 
Go  ye  after  them  through  the  city,  and  smite  ;  let  not  your  eyes  spare, 
neither  have  ye  pity  ; '  and  Ezek.  xiv.  14,  '  Though  these  three  men, 
Noah,  Daniel,  and  Job  were  in  it,  they  should  deliver  but  their  own 
souls  by  their  righteousness,  saith  the  Lord  God ; '  and  Jer.  xv.  1, 
*  Then  said  the  Lord  unto  me,  Though  Moses  and  Samuel  stood  before 
me,  yet  my  mind  could  not  be  towards  this  people  :  cast  them  out  of 
my  sight,  and  let  them  go  forth.'  Yet  the  sentence  against  Sodom 
was  revocable  if  but  ten  righteous  persons  could  be  found  in  it,  Gen. 
xviii.  32.  Nay,  a  larger  offer  concerning  Jerusalem,  larger  than  that 
which  God  made  to  Sodom ;  if  but  a  man  :  Jer.  v.  1,  '  Bun  ye  to  and 
fro  through  the  streets  of  Jerusalem,  and  see  now,  and  know,  and 
seek  in  the  broad  places  thereof,  if  ye  can  find  a  man,  if  there  be  any 
that  executeth  judgment,  that  seeketh  the  truth,  and  I  will  pardon  it/ 
Though  Jerusalem  were  a  city  larger  and  more  populous  than  Sodom 
and  other  cities.  When  the  whole  body  of  a  people  grows  monstrous 
in  sin.  If  a  ruling  party  be  sound,  though  the  body  be  corrupt  and 
vicious,  that  iniquity  be  not  established  by  a  law,  or  countenanced  by 
them ;  or  if  the  ruling  party  be  corrupt  and  vicious,  yet  if  the  body 
of  the  people,  or  a  considerable  number,  be  serious  and  holy,  and 
mourn  in  secret  for  the  sins  of  the  times,  God  may  spare  a  land. 
But  when  all  flesh  have  corrupted  their  ways,  then  the  flood  comes. 

(3.)  When  resolute  and  incorrigible.  Kesolute ;  we  have,  and  we 
will :  Jer.  xliv.  16,  17,  '  As  for  the  word  that  thou  hast  spoken  unto 
us  in  the  name  of -the  Lord,  we  will  not  hearken  unto  thee  ;  but  we 
will  certainly  do  whatsoever  thing  goeth  forth  out  of  our  own  mouth, 
to  burn  incense  unto  the  queen  of  heaven,  and  to  pour  out  drink- 
offerings  unto  her,  as  we  have  done,  we  and  our  fathers/  And 
incorrigible  :  Jer.  v.  3,  '  They  have  refused  to  receive  correction,  they 
have  made  their  faces  harder  than  a  rock,  they  have  refused  to 
return/ 

(4.)  When  bold  in  sinning:  Isa.  iii.  9,  'The  show  of  their  countenance 
doth  witness  against  them,  and  they  declare  their  sin  as  Sodom,  they 
hide  it  not/  When  men  commit  sin  without  shame  or  fear,  break 
over  all  banks  of  love,  moderation,  or  civility. 

[2.]  In  respect  of  judgments  felt  or  feared.  When  the  day  of  the 
Lord  is  near,  or  already  begun,  when  the  smoke  foreshoweth  the  fire 
is  a-coming,  and  the  decree  ready  to  break  forth,  these  are  mourning 
times. 

Secondly,  The  reasons  why  this  is  the  duty  and  property  of  God's 
children  ;  they  do  it  out  of  obedience,  it  is  their  duty ;  and  they  do  it 
out  of  an  innate  disposition,  it  is  their  property. 

1.  It  is  their  duty  because  God  hath  commanded  it.  Now  all  God's 
commands  are  equal,  and  full  of  reason  ;  and  there  is  a  great  deal  of 
reason  why  God  should  lay  this  kind  of  duty  upon  the  creature. 

[1.]  That  it  may  be  an  allay  to  zeal.  That  is  an  excellent  and  well- 
tempered  zeal  when  grief  is  mixed  with  anger :  as  it  is  said  of  Christ, 


VER.  136.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  427 

he  looked  about  with  anger,  and  was  grieved  at  the  hardness  of  their 
hearts  ;  when  we  are  angry  at  the  sin,  and  mourn  for  the  person,  and 
mourn  over  him.  Zeal  against  the  sin,  that  shows  our  love  to  God ; 
and  our  commiseration  of  the  person,  that  shows  our  love  to  man. 
Samuel  spared  not  Saul  in  his  sin,  yet  mourned  for  him.  And  all  the 
prophets  of  God  you  shall  find,  when  they  were  threatening  the  people 
for  their  sins,  were  grieved  lest  their  threatening  should  be  accom 
plished.  False  zeal  hath  malice  and  mischief;  it  mourns  not  for  the 
person,  because  it  coveteth  his  shame  and  destruction.  Now  it  is  the 
great  wisdom  of  God  he  would  have  this  temper  mixed.  There  must 
be  anger  for  the  offence  done  to  God,  and  a  grief  that  our  brother  hath 
offended.  The  world  is  apt  to  cry  out  upon  the  children  of  God,  as 
persons  peevish  and  rancorous ;  but  this  is  a  rare  vindication,  when 
they  see  you  as  apt  to  mourn  as  to  chide,  that  all  your  expostulations 
with  them  come  rather  from  conscience  than  interest ;  it  is  an  excellent 
allay  and  praise  to  public  zeal. 

[2.]  God  would  have  us  mourn  for  the  sins  of  others,  to  engage  us 
to  seek  redress  and  reformation.  We  should  soon  neglect  the  duty 
that  we  owe  to  the  age  and  place  where  and  when  we  live,  were  it  not 
for  this,  that  the  want  of  it  would  be  burdensome  to  us,  and  the 
abounding  of  iniquity  will  cost  us  bitter  tears  upon  God's  command, 
and  upon  zealous  endeavours  to  get  a  public  reformation.  Ezra  first 
mourns  bitterly,  then  reforms  zealously  :  Ezra  ix.  6,  7,  '  I  plucked  off 
the  hair  of  my  head,  and  rent  my  garment,  and  said,  0  my  God,  I 
am  ashamed,  and  blush  to  lift  up  my  face  to  thee,  0  God ;  for  our 
iniquities  are  increased  over  our  head,  and  our  trespass  is  grown  up 
unto  the  heavens,'  &c.  Zealous  actions,  which  few  practise  in  their 
own  case ;  yet  sins  of  others,  you  see,  work  an  afflictive  grief  and 
shame  in  those  that  fear  God.  These  were  the  actions  of  Ezra  when 
he  was  bewailing  the  sins  of  others,  and  this  made  him  so  resolute  and 
active  in  the  reformation  that  is  described  in  the  next  chapter.  Their 
love  begets  sorrow,  and  their  sorrow  care.  Who  would  not  seek  to 
redress  the  evil  which  is  burdensome  to  him  ?  Many  times  the  world 
is  angry,  because  we  are  so  clamorous  for  reformation  and  repentance. 
You  have  liberty  enough,  say  they,  and  may  serve  God  in  your  own 
way,  and  go  to  heaven  quietly  ;  why  should  you  trouble  yourself  about 
others  ?  But  can  a  man  that  grieveth  for  the  abominations  of  the 
times  be  silent  till  they  be  redressed  ?  A  Christian  is  troubled  about 
the  salvation  of  others,  to  see  so  many  thousands  of  souls  carried  to 
hell  by  droves,  and  hurried  to  their  own  destruction.  Can  pity  and 
remorse  behold  this,  without  care  and  endeavours  with  God  and  man  to 
get  it  remedied  ?  Certainly,  the  children  of  God  are  not  impertinently 
active  and  pragmatical.  Public  reformation  is  not  only  a  relief  to 
their  souls,  but  to  their  bowels.  They  are  troubled,  therefore  thirst 
and  long  to  see  it  redressed  :  2  Cor.  vii.  11, '  Godly  sorrow/  saith  Paul, 
«  what  carefulness  it  wrought  in  you !  '  He  speaketh  of  their  public 
church  sorrow.  Till  they  mourned,  they  neglected  the  discipline  of  the 
church,  and  let  incest  go  without  censure.  0  my  brethren !  until  we 
mourn  for  public  disorders,  we  shall  not  mourn  over  one  another. 
We  think  it  is  enough  to  keep  ourselves  free,  and  to  make  a  little 
conscience  of  our  own  ways.  Always  private  sorrow  will  beget  public 


428  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [$ER.  CLL 

care.  If  thou  hast  wept  sore  in  secret  places,  thou  wilt  be  earnest 
with  God  and  man  to  remove  the  occasion  of  thy  grief. 

[3.]  The  Lord  requireth  this  to  keep  our  hearts  the  more  tender  and 
upright ;  it  is  an  act  God  useth  to  make  us  more  careful  of  our  own 
souls,  to  be  troubled  at  the  sins  of  others,  at  sin  in  a  third  person.  It 
keepeth  us  at  a  great  distance  from  a  temptation.  This  is  like 
quenching  of  fire  in  a  neighbour's  house ;  before  it  comes  near  us, 
thou  runnest  with  thy  bucket.  There  is  no  way  to  keep  us  free 
from  the  infection,  so  much  as  mourning.  The  soul  will  never  agree 
to  do  that  which  grieved  itself  to  see  another  do.  'And  as  it  keepeth 
us  upright,  so  also  humble,  fearful  of  divine  judgment,  tender  lest  we 
ourselves  offend,  and  draw  down  the  wrath  of  God.  He  that  shruggeth 
when  he  seeth  a  snake  creeping  upon  another,  will  much  more  be  afraid 
when  he  cometh  near  to  himself.  In  our  own  sins  we  have  advan 
tage  of  conscience  scourging  the  soul  with  remorse  and  shame.  In 
bewailing  the  sins  of  others,  we  have  only  the  reasons  of  duty  and 
obedience.  They  that  fight  abroad  out  of  love  to  valour  and  exploits, 
will  certainly  fight  out  of  love  to  their  own  safety  at  home.  So  God 
would  have  us  more  abroad,  more  against  the  sins  of  others,  that  our 
hearts  may  be  more  set  against  those  sins  with  which  we  ourselves  are 
apt  to  be  foiled. 

2.  This  is  their  disposition  as  well  as  their  duty ;  it  must  be  so, 
and  it  cannot  be  otherwise  with  the  children  of  God,  for  several 
reasons. 

[1.]  From  the  tenderness  of  God's  glory,  which  is  more  dear  to  them 
than  all  their  own  interests.  A  Christian  hath  a  great  affection  to  the 
glory  of  God,  is  very  tender  of  that ;  he  cannot  endure  it  should  be 
violated,  for  his  heart  will  even  break  within  him.  Can  a  man  see 
an  injury  done  to*  a  person  whom  he  loves,  and  not  be  troubled  ? 
Jesus  wept  for  Lazarus,  because  he  loved  him,  and  they  say,  '  Behold 
how  he  loved  him/  John  xi.  36.  They  that  love  God  can  they  hear 
his  great  name  rent  with  so  many  blasphemies  ?  so  many  affronts 
put  upon  his  grace,  the  laws  of  God  trampled  under  foot,  and  not  lay 
it  to  heart  ?  God's  glory  is  more  dear  to  them  than  their  own  lives. 
They  had  neither  had  any  standing  in  nature  nor  grace  had  it  not 
been  for  the  glory  of  God.  God  made  all  things  for  himself;  there 
fore  when  the  name  of  God  is  violated,  his  authority  despised,  his  laws 
broken  and  set  at  nought,  and  no  more  regarded  or  esteemed  than  a 
ballad  or  a  song,  they  cannot  but  express  their  tenderness  and  great 
affection  to  God  by  mourning  for  this.  Carnal  men  are  hot  in  their 
own  cause,  cold  in  God's.  God's  children  are  quite  otherwise,  cold  in 
their  own  cause,  and  hot  in  God's.  Therefore  they  are  deeply  sensible 
when  God's  honour  is  weakened.  Moses  was  the  meekest  man  upon 
earth,  yet  he  brake  the  tables.  How  doth  this  agree  ?  The  injuries 
that  were  done  to  himself  he  could  look  upon  with  a  meek,  quiet 
spirit,  easily  put  them  up ;  but  when  he  saw  the  people  bring  dis 
honour  to  the  name  of  God,  then  he  hath  a  high  and  deep  affection. 
They  cry  out,  Josh.  vii.  9,  '  Lord,  what  wilt  thou  do  for  thy  great 
name?'  So  Ps.  cxv.  1,  'Not  unto  us,  0  Lord,  not  unto  us;  but 
unto  thy  name  give  glory/  They  go  to  God,  not  to  advance  our 
faction  and  interest :  '  We  are  brought  very  low ;  yet  the  wrath  of 


VER.  136.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  429 

man  shall  praise  thee.'  Thy  name  is  dear  and  precious;  they  are 
sorry  to  see  any  profane  it.  God  hath  abundantly  provided  for  their 
respect,  he  hath  bid  all  men  love  them,  when  he  bid  us  love  one 
another.  So  that  in  effect  all  the  respects  of  the  world  are  devolved 
upon  one  person.  And  they  would  have  all  men  love  God  and  honour 
God. 

[2.]  It  comes  from  their  compassion  and  pity  and  love  to  men. 
Oh  !  it  grieves  them  to  see  so  many  that  do  not  grieve  for  themselves; 
and  their  eyes  are  wet  because  yours  are  always  dry.  '  I  tell  you 
weeping,'  saith  Paul,  Phil.  iii.  18.  Compassion  over  the  miserable 
estate  of  such  teachers,  and  those  that  are  led  by  them  ;  they  and  whole 
droves  run  after  fancies  that  endanger  their  souls.  False  teachers 
and  their  proselytes  should  not  only  fall  under  our  indignation,  but 
our  pity.  They  are  monsters  in  nature  that  want  bowels,  much  more 
in  grace.  Keligion  doth  not  harden  the  heart,  but  mollifies  it.  Jesus 
Christ  was  made  up  of  compassion,  and  all  Christians  partake  of 
Christ's  spirit :  Phil.  i.  8,  '  God  is  my  record,  how  greatly  I  long  after 
you  all  in  the  bowels  of  Jesus  Christ.'  Pray  mark,  Paul  had  got  some 
of  Christ's  bowels,  and  let  me  tell  you  they  were  tender  ones.  Com 
passion  towards  others,  and  weeping  over  their  sins,  is  somewhat  like 
the  love  of  Jesus  Christ.  He  would  take  our  burden  upon  himself 
when  he  was  not  interested.  So  the  spirit  of  Christ  worketh  in  all 
his  members,  he  hath  distributed  his  bowels  among  them ;  and  there 
fore  they  cannot  but  long  for  the  salvation  of  others ;  yea,  their  heart 
is  broken  and  mollified  with  Christ's  compassion  to  them,  and  therefore 
long  for  fellows  in  the  same  grace.  Though  they  have  received 
personal  and  private  injuries,  yet  they  pity  their  case,  and  mourn  for 
them.  It  is  matter  of  humiliation  and  lamentation  :  2  Cor.  xii.  21, 
*  When  I  come  again  I  fear  my  God  will  humble  me  among  you,  and 
that  I  shall  bewail  many  which  have  sinned  already,  and  have  not 
repented  of  the  fornication,  uncleanness,  lasciviousness,  which  they 
have  committed.'  It  is  matter  of  grief  to  see  so  many  thousands 
perish,  or  in  a  perishing  condition. 

[3.]  This  disposition  cometh  from  the  antipathy  and  zealous  dis 
pleasure  that  is  in  their  hearts  against  sin.  They  know  what  sin  is, 
the  greatest  enemy  that  God  and  Christ  and  their  own  souls  have  in 
the  world.  It  was  sin  that  made  angels  become  devils ;  it  was  sin 
that  blew  up  the  sparks  of  hell-fire ;  it  was  sin  that  opposed  God,  that 
crucified  Christ ;  it  is  sin  that  grieves  the  Spirit  of  God ;  and  there 
fore  they  mourn  when  sin  gets  proselytes.  A  man  cannot  endure  to 
see  a  toad  or  viper  near  him ;  •  your  hearts  rise  when  you  see  them 
creep  upon  another ;  so  do  the  hearts  of  the  children  of  God  rise,  that 
their  enemy  and  God's  should  find  such  respect  and  entertainment  in 
the  world.  It  is  said  of  the  church  of  Ephesus  :  Kev.  ii.  2,  *  That  she 
could  not  bear  those  which  were  wicked.'  And  David  saith,  Ps.  ci.  3, 
1 1  hate  the  works  of  them  that  turn  aside.'  They  know  this  will 
grieve  the  Spirit  of  God,  that  this  will  press  him  as  a  cart  is  pressed 
with  sheaves ;  and  shall  God  be  pressed  and  burdened,  and  they  not 
troubled  ?  It  cannot  be.  They  that  love  the  Lord  will  hate  evil,  Ps. 
xcvii.  10,  both  in  themselves  and  others. 

[4.]  This  disposition  comes  out  of  a  sagacity  of  faith,  and  serious 


430  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SflR.  CLL 

foresight  of  the  effects  of  sin.  They  know  what  sin  will  come 
to,  and  what  is  the  danger  of  it;  therefore,  when  they  see  sin  in 
creasing,  '  Rivers  of  water  run  down  their  eyes.'  Wicked  men 
tremhle  only  at  the  judgment  of  God,  but  good  men  tremble  at  his 
word ;  and  therefore  they  mourn  when  others  fall  into  danger  of  the 
threatening.  When  Ezra  plucked  his  beard,  and  was  in  such  a  zeal 
ous  indignation  against  the  sins  of  the  people,  bewailing  them  before 
the  Lord,  Ezra  ix.  4,  '  Then  were  assembled  unto  me  every  one  that 
trembled  at  the  words  of  the  God  of  Israel.'  At  fasts  others  are  slight 
and  obdurate ;  they  look  on  threatening  as  a  little  mock  thunder ;  they 
are  not  sensible  of  the  danger.  I  may  set  forth  this  by  that  allusion, 
2  Kings  viii.  11,  the  prophet  Elisha  wept  when  he  saw  Hazael,  that  he 
looked  wishly  on  his  face  till  he  blushed :  '  The  man  of  God  wept,  and 
Hazael  said,  Why  weepeth  my  lord?  And  he  answered,  Because  I 
know  the  evil  thou  wilt  do  unto  the  children  of  Israel ;  their  strong 
holds  wilt  thou  set  on  fire,  and  their  young  men  wilt  thou  slay  with 
the  sword,  and  wilt  dash  their  children,  and  rip  up  their  women  with 
child :  and  Hazael  said,  But  what !  is  thy  servant  a  dog  ? '  &c.  So  when 
the  children  of  God  look  upon  sin,  they  know  by  the  complexion  of  it 
what  will  be  the  dreadful  effects.  This  will  be  bitterness  in  the  issue, 
in  time  this  will  produce  pestilences,  famine,  fire,  sword,  and  all  other 
mischiefs  and  judgments,  and  expressions  of  the  angry  indignation  of 
the  Lord.  They  foresee  a  storm  when  the  clouds  are  but  a-gathering, 
therefore  they  tremble  when  they  see  them.  This  is  the  sagacity  of  faith. 
Now  carnal  men,  on  the  other  side,  look  upon  the  threatenings  of 
scripture  but  as  words  of  course,  used  as  in  way  of  policy,  that  God 
only  would  awe  and  scare  them,  but  doth  not  purpose  to  condemn 
them.  But  faith  is  sagacious.  Look,  as  to  the  promises,  '  Faith  is 
the  substance  of  things  hoped  for,  the  evidence  of  things  not  seen/ 
So  as  to  the  threatenings,  the  same  evidence  of  things  not  seen.  The 
apostle  doth  not  only  instance  when  he  had  given  the  general  descrip 
tion  of  the  objects  of  hope  for  the  recompense  of  reward,  but  he 
instances  in  the  threatenings,  '  Noah,  being  moved  with  fear,  prepared 
an  ark,'  &c.  They  know,  however  men  slight  the  word  of  God,  one 
day  it  will  be  found  true  ;  and  therefore,  when  they  see  men  add  sin 
to  sin,  they  are  troubled.  The  word  is  as  sure  as  execution,  and  works 
upon  them  accordingly.  They  have  all  things  in  a  near  view ;  the 
nearer  the  objects  of  our  faith  are  in  our  view,  the  more  they  stir  up 
our  affections.  Dangers  and  death,  when  in  hand  and  in  present 
expectation,  work  far  otherwise  than  they  do  when  they  are  considered 
at  a  distance.  So  when  the  effects  of  sin  are  looked  upon  as  near  at 
hand,  when  faith  makes  them  present,  then  they  stir  up  these  affections 
in  the  soul. 

£5.]  A  fifth  clause  is  from  their  public  spirit  and  tender  respect  to 
the  common  good.  When  they  wisely  foresee  approaching  dangers, 
they  are  moved  with  the  love  and  care  of  their  country,  and  this  melteth 
them.  They  know  sin  is  of  a  destroying  nature,  that  '  one  sinner  de- 
stroyeth  much  good,'  Eccles.  ix.  18.  One  sinner  may  do  his  country 
a  great  deal  of  mischief,  an  open  bold-faced  sinner — Achan  troubled 
the  whole  camp,  Josh.  vii.  11,  12 — much  more  when  a  multitude  of 
sinners  are  increased ;  therefore  they  sigh  and  mourn.  Godly  men  are 


VER.  136.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  431 

the  truest  friends  to  their  native  soil ;  they  are  the  chariots  and  horse 
men  of  Israel.  Those  that  plead  with  God  stand  in  the  gap,  keep  off 
judgments,  and  have  the  most  public  spirit ;  therefore  the  least  they 
can  do  is  to  sigh  for  it  and  to  plead  with  wicked  men  ;  as  Tertullian, 
Si  non  vis  tibi  parcere,  parce  Carthagini — if  thou  wilt  go  on  with  thy 
soul-destroying  course,  and  wilt  not  spare  thyself,  yet  spare  Carthage. 
This  will  be  bitterness  in  the  issue.  The  children  of  God  are  always 
of  a  public  spirit.  David  fasted  for  his  enemies,  Ps.  xxxv.  Abraham 
prayed  to  God  for  Sodom,  a  neighbour  country.  The  godly  Israelites 
were  good  friends  to  Babylon  in  their  captivity :  Jer.  xxix.  11,  '  Seek 
the  peace  of  the  city,  whither  I  have  caused  you  to  be  carried  captive, 
and  pray  unto  the  Lord  for  it ;  for  in  the  peace  thereof  ye  shall  have 
peace : '  if  nothing  but  their  interest  and  share  in  the  common  rest 
and  quietness.  Passengers  are  concerned  in  the  welfare  of  the  vessel 
wherein  they  are  embarked.  Babylon  fared  the  better  for  the  Jews' 
prayers.  Now  more  especially  are  their  hearts  carried  out  with  a 
respect  to  their  native  soil  and  dearest  comforts ;  therefore  this  melteth 
them  to  see  the  land  defiled  with  sins  and  ready  for  judgments. 


SERMON  CLII. 

Rivers  ofivater  run  down  mine  eyes,  because  they  keep  not  thy  law. — 

VER.  136. 

USE  1.  For  reproof  of  two  sorts  of  persons: — 

1.  Those  that  do  not  lay  to  heart  their  own  sins.  Usually  men 
make  their  affections  to  prescribe  to  their  judgment,  and  cavil  at  the 
fervorous  exercises  of  religion,  because  unpleasant  to  flesh  and  blood  ; 
to  humble  ourselves  before  the  Lord  with  a  pressing  sorrow,  seriously 
and  indeed  to  rend  our  hearts  and  not  our  garments.  In  this  wanton 
and  delicate  age,  men  are  apt  to  think  I  speak  of  a  theme  obsolete  and 
out  of  date,  as  calculated  for  former  times,  when  men  were  more  tender 
hearted.  If  we  could  awaken  some  of  the  old  godly  professors  out  of 
their  graves,  as  the  prophet  calleth  up  Rachel  to  weep  in  Raman  for 
her  children,  Jer.  xxxi.  15,  then  we  might  hope  to  prevail.  Alas  !  to 
plead  now  for  mourning  over  the  sins  of  others,  when  men  think  it  a 
crime  to  mourn  for  their  own,  this  is  like  to  be  lost  labour.  Were 
this  the  humour  only  of  ungodly  wretches,  it  might  be  borne  with  silence 
and  patience;  but  those  that  would  be  taken  for  Christians  of  the 
highest  form  are  altogether  prejudiced  against  such  doctrines  as  this. 
Men  would  be  honeyed  and  oiled  with  grace,  and  distaste  the  whole 
some  discipline  of  repentance  as  too  severe.  They  cry  out,  We  are  legal. 
How  may  the  poor  ministers  of  the  gospel  go  to  God,  and  say,  as 
Moses  did,  Exod.  vi.  12,  '  The  children  of  Israel  have  not  hearkened 
unto  me,  how  then  shall  Pharaoh  hear  me  ? '  The  professors  of  religion 
will  not  brook  such  doctrine,  and  how  shall  we  hope  to  prevail  with 
the  poor,  blind,  carnal  world  ?  To  scoff  at  doctrines  of  repentance 
and  humiliation  was  once  a  badge  of  profaneness  ;  many  now  adopt  it 
into  their  religion.  But  be  not  deceived ;  the  gospel  doth  not  take 


432  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SflR.  CLII. 

away  the  conscience  of  sin.  It  may  take  away  the  fear  of  hell  and 
damnation  upon  right  terms.  The  heart  of  flesh  is  a  promise,  and  the 
spirit  of  grace  is  a  promise,  or  mourning  apart  is  a  promise.  You 
that  say  that  justified  persons  must  no  more  mourn  for  sin,  you  may 
as  well  say  they  shall  no  longer  have  a  heart  of  flesh  or  a  spirit  of 
grace  and  supplications,  that  they  shall  no  longer  have  a  tender  con 
science.  Be  not  deceived  ;  there  must  be  some  time  to  weep  for  your 
own  sins,  as  Peter  went  out  and  wept  bitterly.  Sorrow  must  have  its 
turn  in  the  Christian  life.  I  would  press  it  upon  you  by  this  argument: 
You  cannot  be  sorrowful  for  others'  sins  unless  you  be  first  sorrowful 
for  your  own  sins.  Grief  must  begin  at  home,  there  where  you  have 
the  advantage  of  conscience  and  inward  remorse.  It  is  hypocrisy  to 
pitch  upon  other  men's  sins  and  neglect  your  own ;  as  some  will  zeal 
ously  declaim  against  public  disorders,  yet  neglect  their  own  hearts  ; 
as  the  crafty  lapwing  will  go  up  and  down  fluttering  and  crying 
to  draw  the  fowler  from  her  own  nest.  We  have  a  nest  of  sin  of 
our  own,  and  we  are  loath  it  should  be  rifled  and  exposed  to  public 
view. 

2.  It  reproveth  them  that  in  times  of  public  defection  never  take 
care  to  mourn  over  God's  dishonour.  We  complain  and  murmur 
under  our  judgments,  but  do  not  weep  over  our  sins,  every  person 
and  family  apart.  Whether  it  be  out  of  negligence  and  carnal 
security,  or  out  of  distaste  and  displeasure  against  the  conduct  of  pre 
sent  affairs,  we  seem  to  have  lost  our  public  affections,  and  can  only 
wonder  at  the  children  of  God  in  former  times,  since  they  were  so 
broken  and  tender.  To  many  that  would  now  go  for  professors,  this 
doctrine  seemeth  a  riddle,  a  mere  strain  of  wit  and  fancy,  like  a  pre 
cept  wire-drawn,  or  elevated  beyond  its  pitch  and  tenor.  But  in  the 
fear  of  God  consider  what  hath  been  spoken.  There  are  many  abuses 
in  our  reflections  upon  the  sins  of  others.  Wicked  men  are  quite 
otherwise  disposed :  they  do  not  only  do  evil  themselves,  but  take 
pleasure  in  those  that  do  so,  Rom.  i.  32  ;  would  be  glad  that  sin  were 
more  common,  that  it  might  be  less  odious,  and  then  there  would  be 
none  to  put  them  to  the  blush  :  Prov.  ii.  14,  it  is  said  '  they  rejoice  to 
do  evil,  and  delight  in  the  frowardness  of  the  wicked/  So  the  prophet 
speaks  of  some  corrupt  men  in  the  priesthood  :  *  They  eat  up  the  sin 
of  my  people,  and  they  set  their  heart  on  their  iniquity,'  Hosea  iv.  8. 
God  had  appointed  those  that  served  at  the  altar  should  live  of  the 
altar,  have  a  proportion  of  those  offerings  ;  now  they  flattered  them  in 
their  sins,  so  they  might  have  meat,  and  get  a  portion  of  the  sacrifices. 
Many  that  would  be  accounted  ministers  care  not  for  the  sins  of  the 
people,  but  think  the  less  serious  men  are  in  religion  the  better  they 
can  work  them  to  their  private  advantages,  and  have  more  respect 
among  them.  Then  there  are  some  that  scoff  at  the  mourners  in  Zion ; 
they  count  it  melancholy  and  mopishness  to  be  so  often  and  seriously 
humbling  themselves  before  the  Lord.  The  world  deals  perversely 
with  the  people  of  God  ;  they  provoke  their  sorrow,  and  then  upbraid 
them  with  it.  You  should  bear  them  company,  mourn  with  them, 
pine  in  consort  with  those  doves  of  the  valleys.  Better  be  a  mourner 
than  a  mocker  and  scoffer.  Others  there  are  that  yet  can  make  a  shift 
to  hold  out  some  profession  of  religion,  yet  can  delight  in  the  company 


VER.  136.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  433 

•of  profane,  carnal  persons.  Would  a  man  willingly  put  himself  upon 
occasions  of  grief  ?  Are  you  like  Lot,  whose  soul  was  vexed  day  by 
day  ?  Do  but  consider  how  much  your  temper  differs  from  theirs. 
David  saith,  Ps.  cxix.  115,  'Depart  from  me,  ye  evil-doers.'  Others 
there  are  that  by  censures  and  bitter  invectives  seek  to  make  the 
sinner,  rather  than  the  sin,  more  odious.  This  is  to  exercise  malice 
and  pride,  not  Christian  affection.  We  should  not  censure,  but  mourn. 
Tears  flow  from  charity,  censures  from  pride ;  and  by  this  means  you 
lose  a  duty  for  a  sin,  which  is  a  sad  exchange.  Others  again  are  apt 
to  laugh  at  them,  and  to  make  sport  with  the  sins  of  others,  but  do  not 
mourn.  This  is  a  vile  abuse,  and  yet  we  are  many  times  guilty  of  it. 
Men  laugh  at  drunkenness,  and  make  the  slips  of  others  matter  of 
boasting  and  vain  talk.  This  should  rather  set  our  hearts  a -bleeding 
and  mourning.  He  were  a  monster,  rather  than  a  man,  that  could  see 
a  man  take  a  fall,  even  to  the  breaking  of  his  back  or  neck,  and  turn 
it  into  a  jest ;  or  a  man  wound  himself,  and  he  make  a  sport  of  it. 
And  shall  we  be  more  kind  to  the  bodies  than  to  the  souls  of  men  ? 
Oh  !  consider  the  danger  of  these  practices.  As  much  as  in  him  lieth 
he  hath  put  himself  into  hell,  and  wilt  thou  laugh  at  it  ? 

Use  2.  Trial.  Are  we  so  tenderly  affected  ?  I  know  every  one  is 
not  of  a  like  tender  constitution,  and  cannot  weep  rivers  of  tears  ;  but 
tell  me — or  rather,  tell  God — I  cite  thy  conscience  to  make  answer  to 
God — when  thou  didst  ever  go  aside  into  thy  closet,  or  some  secret  place, 
to  lay  to  heart  the  dishonour  done  to  God,  or  the  affronts  put  upon  his 
grace  ?  Do  not  tell  me  thou  hast  declaimed  against  the  sin  of  the  times, 
that  thou  hast  not  cried  tip  a  confederacy  with  them  that  cry  up  a  con 
federacy  against  God.  There  may  be  somewhat  of  faction  and  interest 
and  obstinacy  in  those  things;  but  when  hast  thou  mourned,  and  wept 
sore  in  secret  places  ?  Do  not  tell  me  that  thou  hast  j  oined  in  public  fasts : 
hasty  and  transient  sighs  do  not  wound  the  heart.  Hast  thou  ever  done  it 
in  secret  ?  or  hast  thou  often  done  it  ?  It  may  be  thou  hast  resented 
injuries,  and  spread  them  before  God ;  and  so  there  is  a  spirit  of  self-love 
arid  revenge  that  breathes  into  thy  prayers.  Men  will  be  hot  in  their  own 
cause  ;  but  what  hast  thou  done  in  this  duty  ?  It  is  a  plain  question,  and 
therefore  I  hope  it  will  have  the  more  force  upon  the  conscience.  True 
zeal  for  injuries  done  to  God  would  ease  itself  by  tears  rather  than 
anger.  True  penitents  will  not  satisfy  themselves  only  with  public 
humiliation,  to  which  law,  custom,  and  example  may  draw  them  ;  but 
will  make  conscience  of  this  duty  in  their  families,  yea,  in  secret,  where 
•no  eye  seeth  them  but  God's ;  mourn  apart,  Zech.  xii.  12-14,  and 
bring  home  public  provocations  to  their  own  doors,  Jer.  xi.  17. 

Use  3.  To  exhort  you  to  get  this  practice,  and  to  get  this  disposition 
of  the  saints. 

There  is  a  great  deal  of  need  to  practise  it  now,  whether  we  look 
upon  the  sins  or  dangers  of  the  nation ;  the  sins,  such  horrid  blasphe 
mies  and  reproaches  cast  upon  God's  servants,  his  ways,  truths, 
doctrines  according  to  godliness.  I  think,  in  the  wisest  judgment 
that  a  man  can  make,  never  was  there  such  a  dangerous  Kptvis  and 
temper  of  any  nation  as  of  ours  at  this  time.  Never  were  sins  boiled 
up  to  such  a  height  and  consistency  as  now,  such  snarling  at  reforma 
tion,  that  was  hopefully  begun.  Now  sin  walketh  in  the  streets  with  a 

VOL.  VIII.  2  E 


434  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiR.  CLII. 

bold  face,  drunkenness,  swearing,  and  profaneness  seem  to  triumph ; 
and  with  the  more  pretence,  because  the  stricter  sort  have  so  much 
dishonoured  God  and  religion.  Church  affairs  are  much  out  of  order. 
And  for  our  dangers,  we  hear  again  of  wars  and  rumours  of  wars,  and 
God  knoweth  what  may  be  the  issue  and  effect  of  them  :  Acts  xiii.  41, 
1  Behold,  ye  despisers,  and  wonder,  and  perish ;  for  I  work  a  work  in 
your  days,  a  work  which  ye  shall  in  no  wise  believe,  though  a  man 
should  tell  you  of  it.'  The  danger  of  a  nation  doth  not  lie  in  out 
ward  probabilities  so  much  as  in  the  threatenings  of  the  word.  He 
alludeth  to  the  horrible  devastation  of  Judea  by  the  Chaldeans,  and 
applieth  it  to  the  despising  of  the  gospel.  Would  any  believe  that 
the  temple  and  city  should  be  destroyed,  and  the  people  of  God  carried 
captive,  that  not  one  should  remain  ?  yet  this  came.  In  the  time  of 
Noah,  when  they  abounded  in  all  things,  who  would  have  thought  of 
a  flood?  Many  would  say,  as  that  nobleman,  If  the  windows  of 
heaven  were  opened,  how  could  this  be  ?  Who  would  have  believed 
the  horrible  dissolution  by  the  Komans  ?  or  thirty  years  agone  that 
which  is  now  fallen  out  in  Germany  ?  Never  think  that  our  armies  and 
forces  are  so  strong  as  to  withstand  the  threatenings  of  the  gospel ;  for 
our  horrible  contempt,  God  may  blow  upon  all  these  props  in  an  in 
stant.  Therefore  weep  and  mourn  for  the  pride  and  rebellion  of  the 
daughter  of  your  people.  So  for  our  private  place.  What  sins  are 
there  among  us  !  Some  have  withstood  the  ways  of  God  ;  though 
they  have  had  convictions,  yet  held  out  against  them.  Some  are 
profane,  many  defects  in  all  orders.  Paul  was  mightily  troubled  be 
cause  the  church  of  Corinth  was  so  much  out  of  order  ;  he  bewailed 
it  with  many  tears  :  2  Cor.  ii.  4,  '  Out  of  much  affliction  and  anguish 
of  heart  I  wrote  unto  you  with  many  tears/  So  may  I  speak,  and 
you  think  of  these  things :  It  is  time  to  mourn.  By  way  of  motive, 
consider — 

1.  This  is  the  best  way  to  enter  our  protestation  and  dissent 
against  the  iniquity  of  the  times.     When  we  cannot  help  a  thing,  it  is 
good  to  retract  it,  and  commit  it  by  tears  to  God ;  for  then  it  shall  not 
be  laid  to  our  charge.      When  the  Corinthians  mourned  for  incest 
committed  among  them,  and  sorrowed  with  a  godly  sorrow,  2  Cor.  vii. 
13,  '  Ye  are  verily  clear  in  this  matter/  many  of  them  did  not  only 
not  approve,  but  abhor  that  foul  act  before ;  but  they  were  not  clear 
till  they  mourned,  and  purged  the  church  from  the  imputation.     So- 
you  are  not  clear  till  you  have  done  this  duty. 

2.  God  may  take  occasion  to  punish  you  from  their  sins.     We  are 
all  fuel  fit  for  the  burning.     God's  dispensation  is  not  unrighteous  as 
to  you,  but  that  may  be  the  occasion :  Zech.  x.  3,  '  My  anger  was 
kindled  against  the  shepherds,  and  I  punished  the  goats/     So  Prov. 
xxviii.  2,  '  For  the  transgression  of  a  people ;  many  are  the  rulers 
thereof.'     The  people's  sins  may  make  great  changes  and  alterations 
of  government. 

3.  You  are  one  body  with  them.     Nations  are  one  political  body, 
churches  one  political  body.     In  God's  plea  about  Sodom  with  Abra 
ham,  ten  righteous  persons  have  an  influence  to  save  or  ruin  it.     The 
sins  of  one  generation  may  be  the  cause  of  another.     It  is  said  God 
turned  not  from  the  fierceness  of  his  anger  that  was  kindled  against 


VEE.  136.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  435 

Judah,  because  of  all  the  provocations  that  Manasseh  had  provoked 
him  withal.  Manasseh  was  dead  thirty  or  forty  years  before. 
Manasseh  had  repented,  and  Josiah  was  a  great  reformer,  none  like 
him.  You  see  God  may  punish  their  sins  many  years  after  ;  nay,  in 
the  process  of  vengeance  the  whole  lump  is  involved,  as  being  one 
body.  So  all  Israel  were  troubled  for  one  Achan.  Do  not  tax  God's 
dispensation  of  severity  and  rigour,  for  it  is  the  condescension  and  art 
of  divine  mercy  by  this  means  to  prevent  public  ruin  ;  and  you  are 
involved  in  their  portion,  that  every  man  in  his  place  may  study  the 
prevention  of  sin  and  ruin.  So  churches  are  one  lesser  body ;  one 
root  of  bitterness  defileth  many,  Heb.  xii.  15  ;  not  only  by  the  con 
tagion  of  the  sin,  but  also  by  imputation  of  guilt.  So  at  Corinth : 
1  Cor.  v.  6,  *  A  little  leaven  leaveneth  the  whole  lump.'  So  also  in 
households  and  families,  which  are  one  lesser  body. 

4.  Many  of  their  sins  may  be  thine.  It  is  a  good  prayer,  though  it  be  a 
harsh  expression,  to  desire  God  to  be  delivered  from  other  men's  sins : 
Ab  alieno  libera  me  Domine.     They  have  sinned  the  more  because 
thou  hast  been  wanting  as  a  magistrate,  as  a  minister,  as  a  neighbour, 
a  fellow-member,  as  a  private  Christian.    As  a  magistrate  :  a  negligent 
prince  all  the  sin  is  put  upon  him.     Eli  was  a  high  priest,  and  was  a 
judge  in  that  case  ;  and  therefore,  though  he  were  innocent,  God  saith 
he  would  cut  off  his  house  for  the  iniquity  of  his  sons :  1  Sam.  iii.  17, 
'  Because  his  sons  made  themselves  vile,  and  he  restrained  them  not/ 
When  magistrates  suffer  all  things  to  run  at  random  in  religion, 
instead  of  God's  ministers,  they  prove  the  devil's  agents ;  though  they 
be  holy  for  their  persons,  yet  there  is  a  great  guilt  lieth  upon  them. 
So  for  ministers :  we  are  to  watch  as  those  that  must  give  an  account, 
Heb.  xiii.  17 ; '  I  will  require  him  at  thy  hands,'  &c.     He  may  be  a 
good  man,  yet  not  a  good  minister,  when  he  is  not  so  diligent  in 
inspection,  so  faithful  to  his  trust,  as  he  should  be ;  so  frequent  in 
exhortation,  prayer,  mourning,  care  of  the  flock :  much  hurt  cometh 
by  our  connivance.  So  for  private  Christians,  they  are  bound  to  watch 
over  one  another.    It  may  be  you  do  not  look  after  them,  Heb.  iii.  13. 
You  suffer  hardness  to  grow  upon  them,  and  would  not  warn  them. 
Ye  are  witnesses  from  God  to  the  people  of  Israel.   You  may  be  guilty 
of  much  evil  example,  and  unwary  carriage :  Heb.  xi.  7,  '  By  faith 
Noah,  being  warned  of  God  of  things  not  seen  as  yet,  prepared  an  ark 
to  the  saving  of  his  house  ;  by  the  which  he  condemned  the  world, 
and  became  heir  of  the  righteousness  that  is  by  faith ; '  and  Ezek.  xvi. 
51,  52,  '  Thou  hast  justified  thy  sisters  in  all  thine  abominations 
which  thou  hast  done.    Thou  also,  which  hast  judged  thy  sisters,  bear 
thine  own  shame,  for  thy  sins  that  thou  hast  committed  more  abomin 
able  than  they :  they  are  more  righteous  than  thou :  yea,  be  thou  con 
founded  also,  and  bear  thy  shame,  in  that  thou  hast  justified  thy 
sisters.'     You  either  justify  or  condemn  the  world.     So  that  in  effect 
they  may  be  your  sins :  you  are  sensual,  vain.     We  easily  catch  a 
disease  from  one  another,  but  do  not  get  health.     Nature  is  more 
susceptible  of  evil  than  of  grace. 

5.  By  seeing  of  their  sins  conscience  may  awaken,  and  thou  mayest 
remember  thy  own  ;  as  Pharaoh's  butler  said,  '  I  remember  my  faults 
this  day.'     Their  lives  are  but  a  glass  of  the  deformity  of  our  natures. 


436  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiR.  CLII. 

There  are  many  Judases,  many  Cains  in  thy  nature.  I  was  in  times 
past  as  bad  as  any,  as  bold  with  sin,  and  as  notorious  a  sinner.  Every 
sin  therefore  should  be  a  fresh  bleeding  wound  in  our  own  souls. 
They  are  but  the  picture  of  thy  natural  face  :  Titus  iii.  3,  '  We  in 
times  past  were  foolish,  disobedient,  deceiving,  and  being  deceived.' 
Thou  seest  them  given  up  to  vain  pleasure ;  remember  how  it  was 
with  thee  before  conversion,  and  let  this  humble  thee. 

6.  If  all  this  do  not  work,  consider  the  holy  angels,  that  are  no  way 
interested,  but  as  it  conduceth  to  God's  glory ;  that  do  not  communicate 
with  us  in  nature  and  blood,  how  they  rejoice  at  the  welfare  of  man. 
As  when  the  world  was  made  :  Job  xxxviii.  7,  '  When  the  morning 
stars  sang  together,  and  all  the  sons  of  God  shouted  for  joy/    So  when 
Christ  came,  and  assumed  human  nature  at  his  birth  :  Luke  ii.  14, 
1  Suddenly  there  was  with  the  angel  a  multitude  of  the  heavenly  host, 
praising  God,  and  saying,  Glory  to  God  in  the  highest,  and  on  earth 
peace,  good-will  towards  men/     And  when  the  creature  repenteth: 
Luke  xv.  7,  '  I  say  unto  you,  that  likewise  joy  shall  be  in  heaven 
over  one  sinner  that  repenteth,  more  than  over  ninety  and  nine  just 
persons  which  need  no  repentance/     So  should  we  mourn  over  them 
to  God,  who  are  our  flesh,  our  neighbours,  united  in  the  bonds  of  duty 
and  neighbourhood,  it  may  be  church  relation. 

7.  I  might  tell  of  the  fruits  of  mourning.     The  greater  party  of 
mourners,  the  more  hope  of  preservation.     We  have  complained  of 
drought,  we  have  dry  bottles  :  judgments  are  kept  off  as  long  as 
there  is  a  sighing  party ;  you  are  preserved,  Ezek.  ix.  4,  as  Lot  out  of 
Sodom.    But  if  the  righteous  God  see  not  this  fit,  and  a  godly  man  may 
be  swept  away,  as  two  dry  sticks  burn  a  green  one,  yet  you  shall  laugh 
when  others  mourn.    In  heaven  there  will  be  joy  enough  ;  this  is  the 
valley  of  tears.  Wicked  men,  though  now  they  are  dry  wood,  yet  they 
are  fit  fuel  for  hell.     Consider  of  these  things.     It  is  a  difficult  work 
to  soften  the  heart,  and  you  have  need  of  all  the  help  that  may  be. 

[1.]  Consider  the  compassion  of  Christ  to  thee.  If  he  had  not 
mourned  and  sighed  in  the  garden,  and  sweat  drops  of  blood,  where 
had  thy  soul  been  ?  Thou  wert  in  thy  blood  when  free  grace  went  a- 
sighing  after  thee  in  the  ministry  of  the  word :  Ezek.  xvi.  6,  '  I  said  unto 
thee  when  thou  wast  in  thy  blood,  Live ;  yea,  I  said  unto  thee  when 
thou  wast  in  thy  blood,  Live/  These  are  intending  considerations  : 
1  Tim.  i.  13,  *  Who  was  before  a  blasphemer,  and  a  persecutor,  and 
injurious ;  but  I  obtained  mercy/  rjKer)d7]v.  If  I  had  not  been  all  to1  be- 
bowelled,  and  all  to1  be-mercied,  I  had  been  a  brand  fit  for  the  burning 

[2.]  Take  heed  of  sensuality :  Hosea  iv.  12,  '  My  people  ask  counsel 
at  their  stocks,  and  their  staff  declareth  unto  them ;  for  the  spirit  of 
whoredoms  hath  caused  them  to  err,  and  they  have  gone  a-whoring 
from  under  their  God/  It  taketh  away  the  heart,  the  tenderness  and 
softness ;  no  one  thing  doth  more  brawn  the  spirit.  To  be  given  to 
uncleanness,  past  feeling :  Eph.  iv.  18,  '  Having  the  understanding 
darkened,  being  alienated  from  the  life  of  God,  through  the  ignorance 
that  is  in  them,  because  of  the  blindness  of  their  heart/ 

[3.]  Beg  the  assistance  of  God's  Spirit ;  he  can  smite  the  rock  and 
make  waters  gush  out.  That  thou  mayest  not  be  discouraged,  look 
upon  precedents  in  scripture,  the  tender  hearts  of  God's  people  there. 

1  Here  all  to  signifies  altogether,  as  in  Judges  ix.  53. — ED. 


VER.  137.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  437 

The  Spirit  of  God  wrought  them  to  this  frame  :  '  Cry,  0  arm  of  the 
Lord  ;  put  on  strength  as  in  the  ancient  days.'  God  hath  promised 
it :  Zech.  xii.  10,  '  I  will  pour  upon  the  house  of  David,  and  upon  the 
inhabitants  of  Jerusalem,  the  spirit  of  grace  and  of  supplications ; 
and  they  shall  look  upon  me  whom  they  have  pierced,  and  they  shall 
mourn  for  him  as  one  mourneth  for  his  only  son/  &c.;  and  then  it 
follows,  '  And  the  land  shall  mourn,  every  family  apart,'  &c. 


SERMON  CLIII. 

Righteous  art  thou,  0  Lord,  and  upright  are  thy  judgments. — 
VER.  137. 

THIS  psalm  is  spent  in  commendation  of  the  word  of  God.  The  man 
of  God  sometimes  commends  it  for  its  efficacy,  sometimes  for  its  sure- 
ness  and  certainty,  and  at  other  times  for  its  sweetness.  In  this  octonary 
or  portion,  the  word  of  God  is  commended  for  its  righteousness.  David 
was  sore  troubled  for  the  wickedness  of  his  enemies,  yea,  tempted 
greatly  to  impatience  and  distrust,  by  looking  upon  their  prosperous 
estate ;  for  if  you  consult  with  the  context,  you  shall  find  this  was  spoken 
in  a  time  of  defection,  when  rivers  of  tears  ran  down  his  eyes  because  men 
kept  not  the  law  of  God.  When  carnal  men  pass  their  time  in  joy  and  the 
godly  in  tears,  it  is  good  then  to  meditate  of  God's  righteousness.  So  does 
David.  When  they  were  making  void  God's  law,  he  was  in  deep 
sorrow  and  tears.  It  is  good  so  to  do,  that  we  may  humble  ourselves 
under  his  mighty  hand,  and  compose  our  soul  to  patience  and  a  quiet 
submission,  and  with  hope  to  wait  upon  God  in  the  midst  of  wrongs 
and  injuries.  Simo  Caltu  telleth  us  that  the  emperor  Mauritius  used 
these  words  when  he  saw  all  his  children  slain  before  his  face,  and 
himself  ready  to  be  slain  after  them  by  Phocas.  The  historian  tells 
US,  67rl  Trdvrwv  evre/faXetro,  Slxaios  el  KVpie  KOI  eu#et?  at  /cp/cret?  aov 
— that  he  did  in  the  presence  of  all  meekly  submit  to  this  great  and 
heavy  calamity,  crying  out,  '  Eighteous  art  thou,  0  Lord,  and  upright 
are  thy  judgments.' 

In  the  words  the  man  of  God  reasons  ab  efficients  ad  effectum,  a 
legislators  ad  leges — from  the  property  of  God  to  the  laws  that  he  hath 
given  us.  God  being  essentially  righteous  and  perfectly  righteous, 
yea,  righteousness  itself,  nothing  contrary  to  justice  can  proceed  from 
him ;  no  iniquity  from  equity  itself,  nor  injustice  from  justice  itself. 
God's  law,  all  his  dispensations  that  proceed  from  him,  are  as  himself 
is.  Therefore  in  the  text  you  have  two  things  : — 

1 .  What  God  is :  Thou  art  righteous,  0  Lord. 

2.  What  his  word  arid  works  are:  Upright  are  thy  judgments. 
The  word  misphatim,  judgments,  implies  both — both  the  rule  and 

his  providential  dispensations  according  to  that  rule.  In  God's  word 
there  is  a  judicial  sentence  concerning  our  thoughts,  words,  and  works ; 
therefore  his  law  is  called  judgments.  It  is  the  judgment  of  the  great 
God  concerning  the  actions  of  men,  and  then  the  effect  thereof  when 
his  sentence  takes  place. 


438  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  OLIII. 

The  points  are  three : — 

1.  That  God  is  a  righteous  God. 

2.  That  this  righteous  and  holy  God  hath  given  a  rule  of  equity 
and  justice  to  his  creature. 

3.  That  all  the  dispensations  that  proceed  from  him  according  to 
that  rule  are  all  exactly  righteous. 

First,  That  God  is  a  righteous  God. 
Here  I  shall  show — 

1.  What  is  the  righteousness  of  God. 

2.  Prove  that  God  is  righteous. 

First,  What  it  is.  Amongst  men  there  is  a  general  and  a  particular 
justice.  The  general  justice  is  that  whereby  we  carry  ourselves  con 
formable  to  the  rule  of  religion,  1  Peter  ii.  24,  called  there  living  unto 
righteousness ;  and  the  particular  justice  is  that  whereby  we  give  every 
man  his  due  :  so  it  is  taken,  Titus  ii.  12,  '  That  we  should  live  soberly, 
righteously,  and  godlily.'  Godliness  is  that  grace  which  inclines  us  to 
give  God  his  portion,  and  sobriety  is  that  grace  which  helps  us  to 
govern  ourselves,  and  righteousness  that  grace  whereby  we  give  our 
neighbour  his  due. 

1.  Justice  is  sometimes  put  for  the  whole  rectitude  and  perfection 
of  the  divine  nature  ;  when  God  acts  becoming  such  a  pure,  holy,  and 
infinite  being ;  and  so  God  cannot  do  anything  that  is  against  the 
perfection  of  his  nature  ;  he  cannot  deny  himself,  2  Tim.  ii.  1 3.     He 
will  not  give  his  glory  to  another,  Isa.  xlii.  8.     He  cannot  be  indif 
ferent  to  good  and  evil ;  he  will  not  damn  and  punish  an  innocent 
creature  ;  there  is  a  condescency  in  all  his  actions  to  the  perfection  of 
his  nature. 

2.  There  is  a  particular  justice  with  respect  to  his  dealings  with  the 
creature,  especially  man.     And  before  I  come  to  open  that,  I  must  tell 
you  that  God  must  be  considered  under  a  twofold  relation — (1.)  As 
absolute  Lord  ;  (2.)  As  governor  and  judge  of  the  world. 

[1.]  As  absolute  Lord  ;  and  so  his  justice  is  nothing  but  the  absolute 
and  free  motion  of  his  own  will  concerning  the  estate  of  all  creatures. 
In  this  respect  God  is  wholly  arbitrary,  and  hath  no  other  rule  but  his 
own  will ;  he  doth  not  will  things  because  they  are  just,  but  therefore 
they  are  just  because  God  wills  them.  For — 

(1.)  He  hath  a  right  of  making  and  framing  anything  as  he  willeth 
in  any  manner  as  it  pleaseth  him,  as  a  potter  hath  power  over  his  clay 
to  form  what  vessel  he  pleaseth,  either  of  honour  or  dishonour,  Rom. 
ix.  21  ;  and  Jer.  xviii.  6,  *  As  the  clay  is  in  the  potter's  hand,  so  are 
ye  in  mine  hand,  0  house  of  Israel.'  He  hath  not  only  might  and 
power,  but  full  right  to  dispose  of  the  creature  according  to  his  own 
pleasure.  As  he  sustaineth  the  person  of  a  Lord,  he  doth  what  is 
agreeable  to  his  free  and  sovereign  will.  As  the  good  man  of  the 
house  pleaded,  Mat.  xx.  15,  '  Is  it  not  lawful  for  me  to  do  what  I  will 
with  mine  own?'  so  God  as  absolute  lord  and  sovereign  may  do  as 
he  pleaseth.  Nothing  before  it  had  a  being  had  a  right  to  dispose  of 
itself.  Neither  did  God  make  it  what  it  was  by  the  necessity  of  nature, 
nor  by  the  command,  counsel,  or  will  of  any  superior,  or  the  direc 
tion  of  any  coadjutor  ;  neither  is  there  any  to  whom  he  should  render 
an  account  of  his  work,  but  merely  procluceth  things  by  the  act  of  his 


YER.  137.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxtx.  439 

own  will,  as  absolute  and  sovereign  Lord  of  all  his  own  actions :  *  He 
works  all  things  according  to  the  counsel  of  his  own  will/  Eph.  i.  11  ; 
and  Kev.  iv.  11,  '  Thou  hast  created  all  things,  and  for  thy  pleasure 
they  are  and  were  created.'  As  his  wisdom  saw  fit,  so  he  hath  placed 
creatures  in  several  ranks  of  being.  The  fish  cannot  complain  that 
it  was  made  without  feet  or  hands,  nor  the  ass  that  it  was  made  for 
burden,  that  it  is  not  fierce  and  mettlesome  as  the  horse,  which  was 
made  for  battle.  And  we  men,  whatever  was  given  us  by  creation,  it 
was  not  a  matter  of  right,  but  the  mere  effect  of  God's  good-will  and 
pleasure.  He  might  have  made  us  stocks  and  stones,  and  not  living 
creatures ;  and  among  living  creatures  plants  only,  with  the  life  of 
vegetation  and  growth.  Or  if  he  had  given  us  a  sensitive  life,  he  might 
have  placed  us  in  the  lowest  rank  ;  he  might  have  made  us  toads  and 
vipers,  or  horse  and  mule,  without  understanding,  and  not  men.  And 
-among  men,  all  the  blessings  and  privileges  to  which  we  were  born 
might  have  been  withheld  without  any  injustice. 

(2.)  He  hath  a  right  of  using  and  disposing  of  them  so  made  accord 
ing  to  his  own  pleasure,  to  appoint  them  to  be  high  or  low,  miserable 
.and  afflicted,  or  prosperous  and  happy,  as  it  shall  be  for  his  glory  : 
Eom.  xi.  36,  '  All  things  are  of  him,  and  from  him,  and  to  him,  to 
whom  be  glory/  As  God  made  the  creatures  for  himself,  so  he  governs 
them  ultimately,  terminatively  for  himself.  There  is  no  cause  of  mur 
muring  and  repining  when  he  will  use  us  as  he  pleaseth  for  his  own 
glory,  Isa.  xlv.  9,  10.  We  cannot  say,  Why  doest  thou  thus?  It  is 
enough  to  silence  all  tempests  in  our  souls,  God  did  it :  Ps.  xxxix.  9, 
'  I  was  dumb,  I  opened  not  my  mouth,  because  thou  didst  it.'  Now 
this  is  true  in  the  dispensations  of  grace  as  well  as  in  the  blessings  of 
this  life.  To  some  God  gives  grace,  to  others  not ;  some  are  elected 
to  mercy,  others  left  to  perish  in  their  own  sins ;  one  is  taken,  and 
another  left,  Mat.  xxiv.  40,  41.  There  were  two  thieves  upon  the 
cross  together  with  Christ ;  God  saves  the  one,  passes  by  the  other. 
He  may  do  with  his  own  as  he  pleaseth.  He  being  sovereign  is  obliged 
by  no  debt  of  law,  or  the  command  of  any  superior  power ;  and  there 
fore  'hath  mercy  on  whom  he  will  have  mercy,  and  whom  he  will  he 
hardeneth,'  Bom.  ix.  18.  Election  is  an  act  of  sovereignty  and  domi 
nion.  God  might  have  left  all  in  misery,  as  he  left  the  fallen  angels ; 
none  of  them  that  sinned  are  recovered  out  of  their  misery  ;  and  are 
we  of  a  more  noble  consideration  than  the  angels,  than  those  spirits  ? 
One  of  them  could  have  done  God  more  service  than  many  men  could 
do  ;  therefore,  as  he  left  all  those  angels  in  their  sinful  condition,  so  it 
is  a  mercy  that,  when  he  might  have  destroyed  all  mankind,  he  would 
save  any.  God  could  have  given  Judas  a  soft  heart  as  well  as  Peter, 
,but  he  does  not.  He  will  be  master  of  his  own  gifts.  Only  this  clears 
his  justice  :  none  are  denied  grace,  but  those  that  deserve  it  should  be 
so  ;  none  by  God  are  compelled  to  sin,  none  are  punished  without  sin ; 
but  in  all  his  gifts,  and  in  what  he  doth  as  supreme  Lord,  his  will  is 
his  reason. 

[2.]  God  may  be  considered  as  governor  and  judge,  and  so  he  gave 
a  law  to  the  creatures  ;  and  his  governing  justice  consists  in  giving  all 
their  due  according  to  his  law.  This  is  to  be  distinguished  from  the 
former  ;  for  God,  that  is  arbitrary  in  his  gifts,  is  not  arbitrary  in  his 


440  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  GLUT. 

judgments.  Observe  that  he  is  arbitrary  in  his  gifts  ;  he  hath  mercy 
on  whom  he  will  have  mercy,  but  in  his  judgments  he  proceedeth  with 
men  according  to  their  works,  according  to  a  law  or  outward  rule.  Of 
this  governing  justice  the  scripture  often  speaks  :  Deut.  xxxii.  4,  '  He 
is  a  righteous  God,  and  all  his  ways  are  judgment.'  So  Ps.  vii.  9, 
'  He  will  judge  the  world  in  righteousness,  and  will  minister  judgment 
to  the  people/  Now  this  governing  justice  of  God  is  twofold  —  either 
legislative  or  judicial. 

(1.)  God's  legislative  justice.  This  determines  man's  duty,  and 
binds  him  to  the  performance  thereof,  and  also  decrees  and  sets  down 
the  rewards  and  punishments  that  shall  be  due  upon  man's  obedience 
or  disobedience.  God  made  man  rational,  or  a  voluntary  agent,  cap 
able  of  good  and  evil,  with  desires  of  the  good  and  fears  of  the 
evil  ;  and  therefore  God,  as  universal  king,  that  he  might  rule  him 
according  to  his  nature,  hath  made  for  him  a  law  that  revealeth 
good  and  evil,  with  promises  to  move  him  by  desire  and  hope  of 
the  good,  and  with  threatenings  to  drive  him  by  a  necessary  fear  of 
the  evil.  So  Deut.  xxx.  15,  '  See,  I  have  set  before  thee  this  day  life 
and  good,  and  death  and  evil.'  It  is  true  of  the  law  of  Moses,  and  it  is 
true  of  the  gospel  of  Christ  Jesus  ;  he  deals  with  us  this  way  (that  I 
may  not  make  a  distinction  between  the  law  and  the  gospel).  What 
is  the  law  of  the  gospel  ?  Mark  xvi.  16,  '  He  that  believeth,  arid  is 
baptized,  shall  be  saved  ;  but  he  that  believeth  not  shall  be  damned.' 
Now  this  law  is  the  rule  of  man's  duty  and  God's  dealings  with  all 
those  that  have  received  it. 

There  is  his  judicial  justice,  called  also  distributive  ;  and  this 
at  whereby  he  renders  unto  men  according  to  their  works,  whether 
they  do  good  or  evil,  without  any  respect  to  persons  :  1  Peter  i.  17, 
'  Without  respect  of  persons,  he  judgeth  according  to  every  man's 
work.'  The  persons  that  may  be  respected  in  judgment  is  some  ex 
ternal  thing,  that  hath  no  affinity  with  the  cause  in  hand.  Now  when 
God  comes  to  judge  of  the  breach  of  his  law,  or  the  keeping  of  his  law, 
he  hath  no  respect  of  persons,  high  or  low,  rich  or  poor,  professing  or 
not  professing  Christianity  ;  he  deals  with  them  as  they  have  walked 
according  to  his  law.  His  judicial  or  distributive  justice  is  declared 
at  large  by  the  apostle,  Kom.  ii.  5-9.  There  God's  executing  judg 
ment  according  to  his  law  is  described,  and  you  find  it  twofold  — 
remunerative  or  vindictive. 

(1st.)  His  remunerative  or  rewarding  justice.  It  is  just  with  God 
to  reward  our  obedience,  and  to  give  men  what  his  promise  hath  made 
due  to  them.  It  is  true  we  cannot  expect  reward  from  God  in  strict 
righteousness,  or  by  the  exact  laws  of  commutative  justice  and  strict 
righteousness  in  this  fallen  estate,  as  if  there  were  an  inward  condig- 
nity  of  our  works  to  that  which  God  gives.  Oh  no  !  that  is  disclaimed1 
by  the  saints  :  Ps.  ciii.  3,  *  Who  forgiveth  all  thine  iniquities  ;  '  Ps. 
cxliii.  2,  '  Enter  not  into  judgment  with  thy  servant  ;  for  in  thy  sight 
shall  no  man  living  be  justified/  From  any  exuberancy  of  merit  we 
cannot  expect  a  reward  from  God  ;  but  we  may  and  ought  to  encourage 
ourselves  from  his  righteousness,  even  that  it  is  not  an  unrighteous- 
thing  with  God  to  give  us  heaven  and  happiness  when  we  have  served 
him  faithfully,  and  patiently  continued  in  well-doing.  You  know 


(2.) 
is  that 


VER.  137.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  441 

apostle  distinguished  that  there  is  a  reward  according  to  debt,  and  a 
reward  according  to  grace,  Kom.  iv.  4.  Though  it  be  righteous  with 
God  to  give  the  reward,  yet  he  gives  it  not  out  of  debt,  or  for  any  con- 
dignity  of  worth  ;  but  he  gives  it  out  of  grace.  And  so  all  the  comforts 
we  have  from  obedience  are  said  to  come  from  the  righteousness  of 
God  ;  even  the  pardon  of  sin,  which  is  one  of  the  freest  acts  of  God, 
and  wherein  he  discovers  most  of  his  mercy  :  1  John  i.  9,  '  He  is  faith 
ful  and  just  to  forgive  us  our  sins/  It  is  not,  faithful  and  gracious,  but 
just.  And  so  for  the  eternal  reward  in  2  Thes.  i.  6,  7,  Si/caiov,  *  It 
is  a  just  or  righteous  thing  with  God  to  recompense  tribulation  to 
them  that  trouble  you.'  Ay  !  you  think  it  is  just  with  God  to  punish 
evil ;  but  is  it  a  righteous  thing  that  he  should  reward  our  obedience  ? 
Bead  on :  '  And  to  you  who  are  troubled,  rest  with  us,  when  the  Lord 
Jesus  shall  be  revealed  from  heaven,'  <fec.  God  in  righteousness  is 
bound  by  his  own  promise  to  give  this  reward :  Heb.  vi.  10,  '  God  is  not 
unrighteous,  to  forget  your  work  and  labour  of  love.'  How  is  God's 
righteousness  engaged  ?  Partly  by  Christ,  Christ  having  given  satis 
faction  equivalent  to  the  offence  and  wrong  to  his  majesty,  and  having 
interposed  an  everlasting  merit,  it  is  just  with  God  to  forgive  the  sin, 
as  it  is  just  for  the  creditor  to  forgive  the  debt  when  he  hath  received 
satisfaction  from  the  surety.  And  it  is  just  because  God  is  bound  by 
his  own  promise ;  he  hath  promised  a  crown  of  life  to  them  at  the  end 
of  their  trial,  James  i.  12  ;  and  it  is  part  of  his  justice  to  make  good 
his  word  ;  by  promise  God  hath  made  himself  a  debtor.  So  2  Tim. 
iv.  8,  '  Henceforth  there  is  laid  up  for  me  a  crown  of  righteousness, 
which  the  Lord  the  righteous  judge  will  give  me  at  that  day/  Ber 
nard  glosseth  sweetly  upon  that  place,  Paulus  expectat  coronam  jus- 
titice,  justitice  Dei,  non  suce  ;  justum  est  ut  reddat  quod  debet,  debet 
autem  quod pollicitus  est.  It  is  just  with  God  to  pay  what  he  oweth, 
and  God  oweth  what  he  hath  promised ;  and  so  it  is  a  crown  of  right 
eousness  which  God  the  righteous  Judge  will  give  us  at  that  day. 
Once  more,  it  is  just  with  God  not  to  forget  your  labour  of  love,  be 
cause  it  agrees  with  his  general  justice,  or  the  rectitude  of  his  nature  ; 
it  falls  in  with  his  law.  As  God  is  a  holy,  perfect  being,  he  cannot  be 
indifferent  to  good  and  evil ;  it  concerns  him  to  see,  ut  bonis  bene  sit ; 
et  malis,  male  ;  that  it  be  well  with  them  that  do  well,  and  ill  with 
them  that  do  ill.  But  how  upon  terms  it  should  go  well  with  them, 
that  must  be  interpreted  according  to  either  covenant ;  either  according 
to  the  exactness  of  the  law,  and  so  no  flesh  can  be  justified  in  his 
sight,  or  according  to  the  moderation  of  the  gospel,  where  the  soul 
sincerely  frames  itself  to  do  the  will  of  God :  and  it  is  not  an  unright 
eous  thing  with  God  to  give  you  according  to  your  labour  of  love,  and 
zeal  for  his  glory. 

(2dly.)  There  is  his  vindictive  justice  on  all  sinners.  God  punish- 
eth  none  but  sinners,  and  only  for  sin,  and  that  ever  according  to  the 
measure  of  the  sin ;  as  it  is  more  or  less,  so  they  have  more  or  less 
punishment :  Rom.  ii.  9,  '  Tribulation  and  anguish  upon  every  soul  of 
man  that  doth  evil,  of  the  Jew  first,  and  also  of  the  Gentile/  God 
will  render  vengeance  to  the  Gentiles,  that  had  the  light  of  nature  to 
teach  them  God,  to  show  them  the  invisible  things  of  his  godhead  and 
power ;  but  chiefly  upon  those  that  have  been  bred  up  in  his  ordi- 


4.42  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SflB.  CLIII. 

nances,  and  mostly  upon  them  that  have  rejected  the  terms  of  grace 
offered  them  in  the  gospel ;  for  so  it  is  said,  2  Thes.  i.  8,  '  He  will 
render  vengeance  upon  all  them  that  obey  not  the  gospel ;'  and  John 
iii.  18,  19,  'He  that  believeth  not  is  condemned  already.'  The  law  is 
passed  upon  him ;  but  '  this  is  the  condemnation,  that  light  is  come 
into  the  world,  and  men  loved  darkness  rather  than  light  because  their 
deeds  were  evil/  Their  sin  is  inexcusable  that  will  not  lay  hold  upon 
the  offers  of  grace.  They  have  no  cause  to  murmur,  or  impute  their 
damnation  to  God's  secret  purpose  ;  in  their  own  consciences  they  may 
read  the  justness  of  their  condemnation.  Well,  then,  this  is  God's 
justice  ;  it  is  that  property  by  which  God  acts  agreeable  to  his  nature 
as  sovereign  lord  ;  and  agreeable  to  his  covenant  as  governor  and  judge 
of  the  world,  either  his  covenant  of  works  or  grace. 

Secondly,  To  prove  that  God  is  just.     I  shall  prove  it  by  four 
things : — 

1.  From  the  perfection  of  the  divine  nature.     The  perfection  of  the 
divine  will  is  such  that  he  necessarily  loveth  righteousness  and  hateth 
iniquity.     As  the  perfection  of  God's  understanding  includes  all  intel 
lectual  virtues,  so  the  perfection  of  his  will  all  moral  virtues.     There 
can  be  no  virtuous  act  of  the  will,  either  in  men  or  angels,  that  doth 
not  agree  to  God  in  a  far  more  excellent  manner  and  measure ;  and 
therefore  if  there  be  such  a  quality  as  justice  and  righteousness  in 
angels  and  men,  if  holy  angels  and  jiist  men  made  perfect,  certainly 
there  is  a  just  God.    This  rectitude  in  men  and  angels  is  accidental, 
and  separable  from  their  being.     Angels  may  be  angels,  yet  not  just, 
as  appears  in  the  devils ;  but  in  God  it  is  essential ;  as  his  essence  is 
necessarily,  so  his  integrity  must  needs  be  so.     In  short,  God  must 
be  just  and  holy,  because  he  necessarily  loves  himself,  and  hates  every 
thing  that  is  contrary  to  himself :  Ps.  xi.  7,  '  The  righteous  God  loveth 
righteousness,  and  his  countenance  beholdeth  the  upright/     If  they 
be  just,  he  loves  their  justice,  because  he  loves  himself ;  if  unjust,  he 
hates  their  injustice,  because  they  are  contrary  to  himself. 

2.  He  could  not  else  govern  the  world,  or  judge  men  according  to 
their  offences.    Next  his  nature,  God's  office  shows  him  just,  that  infers 
his  justice  as  he  is  governor  and  judge  of  the  world;  so  we  shall  see, 
Gen.  xviii.  15,  *  The  judge  of  all  the  earth,  shall  not  he  do  right?' 
It  must  needs  be  so  that  the  judge  of  the  earth  will  do  right :  Rom. 
v.  6,  '  Is  God  unrighteous  who  taketh  vengeance  ?     God  forbid  ;  for 
then  how  shall  God  judge  the  world  ?'     It  is  impossible  to  imagine 
that  he  can  be  the  supreme  judge  who  is  not  just.    Among  men  appeals 
are  allowed,  because  men  are  fallible,  and  apt  to  pervert  equity  and 
judgment ;  and  this  is  their  relief  that  they  can  appeal  higher.     But 
now,  Eccles.  v.  8,  '  If  thou  seest  the  oppression  of  the  poor,  and 
violent  perverting  of  judgment  and  justice,  marvel  not  at  the  matter  ; 
for  he  that  is  higher  than  the  highest  regardeth,  and  there  be  higher 
than  they.'     God  is  the  great  arbiter  of  all  affairs  in  the  world,  where 
all  appeals  rest,  can  go  no  higher  than  the  will  of  God  ;  therefore  he 
must  needs  be  just. 

3.  This  was  God's  great  end  in  giving  Jesus  Christ,  that  he  might 
be  known  to  be  a  just  God  ;  therefore  he  stood  so  punctually  upon 
satisfaction,  that  the  sinner  must  die  or  the  surety.     No  surety  so  fit 


VER.  137.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  443 

to  keep  up  the  honour  of  his  law  and  honour  of  his  justice  in  the  con 
sciences  of  men  as  the  Son  of  God,  Rom.  iii.  24-26.  God  had  a  mind 
to  be  gracious  to  the  creature,  but  without  any  disparagement  to  his 
justice.  Now  how  should  this  be  ?  All  the  wise  men  in  the  world  that 
had  any  sense  of  the  nature  and  being  of  God  busied  themselves  in  this 
inquiry,  How  God  could  be  merciful  to  the  creature,  and  yet  just ;  but 
all  their  devices  were  vain  and  frivolous,  until  God  himself  found  out 
a  ransom  and  remedy  for  us,  as  it  is  in  Job  xxxiii.  24.  Here  was  the 
difficulty ;  God  would  preserve  the  notions  which  the  creature  had  of 
his  being  and  justice  inviolable  ;  he  would  be  known  as  one  that  would 
stand  to  his  law  which  he  had  made  for  the  government  of  the  world. 
Now,  there  was  no  way  to  keep  up  the  credit  of  it  but  these  two — strict 
execution  or  sufficient  satisfaction.  The  execution  would  have  de 
stroyed  all  the  inferior  world,  the  reasonable  creatures  at  least ;  and 
the  love  and  wisdom  and  mercy  of  God  would  not  permit  that  the 
world  should  be  destroyed  so  soon  as  it  was  made,  and  man  left  remedi 
less  in  everlasting  misery.  Well,  then,  strict  execution  would  not  do 
it ;  therefore  satisfaction  must  be  the  remedy ;  and  such  satisfaction  as 
might  be  sufficient  to  procure  the  ends  of  the  law,  to  keep  up  the 
honour  of  God's  justice  in  the  consciences  of  men.  Now  this  was  done 
by  Jesus  Christ,  whom  God  had  set  forth  to  declare  his  righteousness, 
that  he  might  exercise  his  mercy  without  prejudice  to  his  justice.  If 
this  ransom  had  not  been  found,  we  should  either  have  slighted  God, 
and  not  stood  in  awe  of  him,  or  else  we  had  been  for  ever  left  under 
the  curse,  and  under  doubtfulness  and  scruple,  wherewith  we  should 
have  appeased  him ;  but  the  Lord  found  out  such  a  means  to  our 
hands,  that  he  might  declare  he  was  a  righteous  God. 

4.  I  prove  it  from  the  divine  nature  infused  into  us.  As  many  as 
are  made  partakers  of  God's  grace  are  more  just  than  others,  they  hate 
sin  and  sinners  ;  so  we  read,  Eph.  iv.  24,  '  That  the  new  man  was 
created  after  God  in  righteousness  and  true  holiness.'  After  God,  that 
is,  after  the  image  and  pattern  of  God.  Now,  if  the  new  creature  be 
made  after  such  a  pattern,  then  certainly  God  was  righteous.  We  find 
by  experience,  the  more  god-like  and  virtuous  any  are  the  more  just 
they  are,  more  apt  to  give  every  one  his  due,  to  live  without  wrong  to 
any,  and  the  more  their  hearts' are  set  against  that  which  is  base  and 
unworthy.  Therefore  certainly  God  is  righteous,  for  he  hath  put  such 
a  quality  as  the  copy  of  his  nature  into  the  hearts  of  men. 

Object.  If  God  be  so  just,  why  then  does  the  way  of  the  wicked 
prosper  ?  Why  are  those  that  desire  to  be  faithful  with  God  so 
afflicted  and  calamitous  ?  This  is  a  wind  that  hath  shaken  the  tallest 
cedars  in  Lebanon.  The  choicest  saints  of  God  have  been  exceedingly 
hurried  and  tossed  to  and  fro  in  their  thoughts  by  this  objection  against 
the  righteousness  of  God:  Jer.  xii.  1,  '  Righteous  art  thou,  0  Lord ; 
yet  let  me  plead  with  thee.'  He  holds  fast  this  principle,  but  yet, 
Lord,  saith  he,  I  am  not  satisfied  ;  '  Let  me  talk  to  thee  of  thy  judg 
ments,'  that  I  may  be  better  informed ;  '  why  doth  the  way  of  the 
wicked  prosper?'  So  David:  Ps.  Ixxiii.  1,  'Truly  God  is  good  to 
Israel,  even  to  such  as  are  of  a  clean  heart ;'_  but  yet  the  wicked  thrive 
and  prosper,  and  there  is  no  bands  in  their  death.  So  Hab.  i.  13, 
*  Thou  art  of  purer  eyes  than  to  behold  evil,'  &c.  Lord,  saith  he,  I 


444  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEB.  CLIII. 

know  thou  art  a  holy  God ;  but  why  can  thy  providence  then  look 
upon  them  in  the  world  that  deal  treacherously  and  perversely  ?  The 
clearest-sighted  saints  may  be  so  bemisted  many  times  that  they  are 
not  able  to  reconcile  God's  dispensations  with  his  nature  and  attributes, 
and  so  quarrel  with  and  reproach  and  impeach  his  providence.  Yea,  the 
heathens,  that  knew  little  of  sin  and  righteousness,  were  troubled  at  the 
afflictions  of  the  good  and  the  flourishing  of  the  wicked,  and  questioned 
the  being  of  a  God  upon  this  account ;  and  therefore  there  are  two 
heathens  which  have  written  two  worthy  treatises  to  vindicate  the 
providence  of  God.  Seneca  hath  written  one  treatise,  Cur  male  bonis, 
et  bene  mails,  to  show  why  the  good  may  be  afflicted,  though  there  be 
a  God ;  and  Plutarch  hath  written  another  treatise,  De  sera  numinis 
vindicta,  why  the  wicked  may  be  spared,  and  suffered  to  flourish  in 
the  world,  though  there  be  a  God  to  take  notice  of  human  affairs. 
These  heathens  had  a  sense  of  this  difficulty,  for  it  is  an  obvious- 
objection. 

I  answer — In  general  God's  dispensations  are  just,  though  we  see  not 
the  reason  of  them.  The  saints  hold  their  principle:  Lord,  I  confess 
thou  art  righteous,  Jer.  xii.  1 ;  Hab.  i.  13.  The  justice  of  God  must 
be  acknowledged  in  all  his  dealings  with  us  and  others,  though  it 
appear  not  to  our  reason,  which  indeed  cannot  discern  well ;  and 
therefore  is  unmeet  to  judge  of  such  high  matters  as  these  are :  Ps. 
xxxvi.  6,  '  Thy  righteousness  is  like  the  great  mountains,  thy  judg 
ments  are  a  great  deep/  The  judgments  of  God  are  such  a  deep  as 
we  cannot  easily  fathom  the  bottom  of ;  and  therefore,  though  we  do 
not  see  the  justice  of  it,  we  must  believe  it,  and  prefer  faith  above 
sense.  The  Lord  may  deal  otherwise  in  many  things  with  us  than 
we  can  express,  and  see  the  reason  of  his  doing ;  and  yet  he  is  always 
just  and  holy  in  his  proceedings,  and  it  is  the  duty  of  his  people  to 
believe  it:  Ps.  xcvii.  2,  'Clouds  and  darkness  are  round  about  him, 
righteousness  and  judgment  are  the  habitation  of  his  throne.'  Augus 
tine's  words  are  a  good  comment  upon  that  passage.  The  judgments 
of  God,  saith  he,  are  sometimes  secret,  but  always  just,  swpe  occulta, 
nunquam  injusta.  We  know  not  what  to  make  of  it;  clouds  and 
darkness  are  round  about  it.  Ay  !  but  though  they  are  unsearchable 
and  secret,  they  are  managed  with  great  judgment  and  rectitude. 

But  more  particularly  to  come  to  speak  to  the  things  mentioned  in 
the  objection.  As  to  the  flourishing  of  the  wicked,  four  things  to 
that  :— 

1.  God's  word  doth  sufficiently  declare  his  displeasure  against  them, 
though  his  providence  doth  not.  There  is  sententia  lata,  sed  dilata  : 
Eccles.  viii.  11,  '  Because  sentence  against  an  evil  work  is  not  executed 
speedily,  therefore  the  heart  of  the  sons  of  men  is  fully  set  in  them  to 
do  evil.'  Mark,  there  is  a  sentence  pronounced  against  evil  men,  but 
the  Lord  doth  not  put  the  sentence  in  execution.  The  sentence  is, 
passed  against  them,  both  sententia  ley  is,  the  sentence  of  the  law ;  and 
so  it  is  said  he  is  condemned  already,  John  iii.  18.  Nay,  there  is  sen- 
tentia  judicis,  the  sentence  which  the  judge  passeth  upon  a  sinner; 
for  he  ratifieth  the  sentence  of  the  law ;  what  is  bound  upon  earth  is 
bound  in  heaven.  Well,  the  warrant  for  execution  is  signed,  yet  the 
execution  is  suspended  for  just  and  wise  reasons.  Sin  is  not  less 


VER.  137.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  445 

odious  to  God  because  wicked  men  do  not  presently  feel  the  punish 
ment  of  it.  There  are  many  righteous  ends  why  execution  should  be 
delayed,  partly  with  respect  to  the  Mediator,  into  whose  hands  the 
government  of  the  world  is  put :  Exod.  xxxiii.  2,  3,  '  I  will  send  an 
angel  before  thee ;  I  will  not  go  up  with  thee,  lest  I  consume  thee  by 
the  way/  compared  with  Exod.  xxiii.  20-23,  '  Behold  I  send  an  angel 
before  thee,  to  keep  thee  in  the  way,  and  to  bring  thee  into  the  place 
which  I  have  prepared :  beware  of  him,  and  obey  his  voice,  provoke 
him  not ;  for  he  will  not  pardon  your  transgressions,  for  my  name  is 
in  him.  But  if  indeed  thou  obey  his  voice,  and  do  all  that  I  speak, 
then  I  will  be  an  enemy  to  thy  enemies,  and  an  adversary  to  thy 
adversaries;  for  my  angel  shall  go  before  thee;'  that  was  Christ, 
whom  they  tempted  in  the  wilderness :  1  Cor.  x.  9,  '  Neither  let  us 
tempt  Christ,  as  some  of  them  also  tempted  him,  and  were  destroyed 
of  serpents.'  Partly  that  the  elect  might  not  be  cut  off  in  their  unre- 
generate  condition,  that  the  wheat  may  not  be  plucked  up  with  the 
tares,  which  they  might  loe ;  if  sentence  should  be  speedily  executed 
against  every  evil-doer,  there  would  be  no  room  left  for  conversion. 
Therefore  God  is  not  slack,  as  men  count  slackness ;  but  only  waits, 
that  all  those  that  belong  to  the  purpose  of  his  grace  might  come  to 
repentance,  2  Peter  iii.  9.  He  is  long  suffering  to  us-ward,  to  those 
that  were  such  as  the  apostle  was,  that  belonged  to  the  purposes  of 
God's  grace.  And  it  is  delayed  too,  that  his  wrath  may  be  glorified 
in  the  confusion  of  the  reprobate  :  Rom.  ix.  22,  *  He  endureth  with 
much  long-suffering  the  vessels  of  wrath  fitted  to  destruction ;'  that 
he  may  show  the  glory  of  his  power  against  them,  they  are  hardened 
and  strengthened  in  their  wickedness  by  their  prosperity.  When  all 
the  favours  of  God  have  been  abused,  and  the  riches  of  his  goodness 
set  at  naught,  they  have  nothing  to  say  for  themselves.  And  sentence 
is  delayed,  that  the  little  good  they  do  in  the  world  may  not  be  hin 
dered.  God  knows  how  to  use  all  his  creatures ;  even  the  wicked  have 
a  ministry  and  service  under  his  providence.  The  Lord  would  not 
destroy  their  enemies  all  at  once,  lest  the  beasts  of  the  field  should 
increase  upon  them,  Deut.  vii.  22.  They  serve  as  a  hedge  of  thorns 
to  a  garden  of  roses  for  his  people.  A  dead  rotten  post  may  support 
a  living  tree.  It  may  be  God  will  bring  some  that  belong  to  his  grace 
out  of  their  loins.  Hierome  saith,  Many  times  an  evil  shrub  may  bear 
sweet  fruit.  And  God  hath  righteous  ends  too,  that  his  people  may 
be  humbled,  and  that  their  perverse  humours  may  be  broken ;  for  so 
saith  the  Lord  :  Isa.  x.  12,  '  When  the  Lord  hath  performed  his  whole 
work  upon  Mount  Zion  and  on  Jerusalem,  I  will  punish  the  fruit  of 
the  stout  heart  of  the  king  of  Assyria.'  When  he  hath  sufficiently 
humbled  and  purged  his  people,  then  he  will  do  it.  And  whenever 
this  temptation  comes,  when  you  see  sentence  delayed,  go  to  the  sanc 
tuary,  as  David  did:  Ps.  Ixxiii.  17,  '  Then  you  will  understand  their 
end/  There  you  will  see  sentence  is  not  speedily  executed,  but  it  is 
surely  executed.  As  a  chimney  long  foul  will  be  fired  at  length :  Ps. 
Iv.  19,  '  Because  they  have  no  changes,  therefore  they  fear  not  God/ 
when  they  are  high  and  prosperous ;  '  but  God  will  hear  and  afflict 
them,  even  he  that  abideth  of  old;'  he  whose  essence  and  providence 
hath  been  always  the  same,  he  will  in  due  time  execute  his  righteous 


446  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [$ER.  CLIIL 

judgment ;  and  the  longer  he  stays,  the  more  heavy ;  the  longer  he  is 
about  drawing  of  his  bow,  the  deeper  will  his  arrows  pierce  ;  they  are 
but '  treasuring  up  wrath  to  themselves  against  the  day  of  wrath/  Kom. 
ii.  5.  As  in  Jehoiadah's  chest,  the  longer  it  was  ere  it  was  opened, 
the  more  treasure  there  was  in  the  chest ;  so  they  are  treasuring  up 
wrath,  &c.  The  fire  that  hath  been  long  kindling  burns  the  more 
grievous  at  last. 

2.  There  are  other  punishments  besides  outward  afflictions.     In 
visible  judgments  are  most  fearful,  blindness  of  mind,  hardness  of 
heart,  terrors  of  conscience.     Tertullian  ad  Marg. — Cogitemus  ipsum 
magis  mundum  carcerem  esse,  exisse  eos  de  carcere,  quam  in  carcerem 
introisse  intelligemus.    Majorca  tenebras  Jiabet  mundus,  quce  liominum 
corda  exccecant :  graviores  catenas  induit  mundus,  quce  animas  liomi 
num  obstringunt,  2  Cor.  iv.  4.     Nihil  infelicius  felicitate  peccantium. 
No  such  misery  as  to  be  condemned  to  this  kind  of  happiness,  no 
blindness  like  a  blind  understanding,  no  chains  like  an  obstinate  will, 
no  torments  like  terrors  of  conscience,  under  which  a  man  lives  for  his- 
further  punishment,  that  he  may  be  his  own  tormentor.     Cain  had 
rather  die  a  thousand  deaths  than  be  let  loose  as  a  vagabond  here 
upon  earth,  and  be  delivered  over  to  the  hell  of  his  own  conscience. 
Those  that  are  under  torments  of  conscience  will  call  upon  the  moun 
tains  and  rocks  to  cover  them. 

3.  The  third  consideration  is  this,  providence  must  not  be  viewed 
by  halves,  but  in  its  whole  frame  and  connection.   Do  but  wait  a  little, 
and  you  shall  see  God  will  show  himself  a  righteous  God.     When  we 
view  the  dealings  of  God  by  pieces,  we  are  apt  to  break  out  into  those 
complaints :  Ps.  Ixxiii.  11,  12,  *  Doth  the  Lord  see  ?  how  doth  God 
know  ?  is  there  knowledge  in  the  Most  High  ?     Behold,  these  are  the 
ungodly  who  prosper  in  the  world,  they  increase  in  riches/  &c.     Ay  t 
but  stay  a  while,  and  you  will  see,  '  There  is  a  God  that  judgeth  in 
the  earth/  Ps.  Iviii.  11.     I  remember  the  poet  Claudian,  who  had  a 
little  tincture  of  Christianity,  though  a  heathen,  as  appears  by  his 
words,  when  he  saw  drones  and  unworthy  men  greater  than  the  worthy, 
and  vex  the  pious,  lottos  diu  florere  nocentes  vexarique  pios,  doubted 
numinesset  rector,  &c.,  whether  there  were  any  governor  of  the  world, 
any  judge  that  took  notice  of  things  here  below,  et  incerto  florent 
mortalia  casu,  and  thought  all  things  were  delivered  over  to  blind 
chance ;  but,  saith  he  at  length,  dbstulit  Imnc  tandem  Ruffini  poena — 
dbsolvit  Deosy  tolluntur  in  attum,  ut  lapsu  graviore  ruant.     The  gods 
were  absolved,  for  they  are  lifted  up  on  high,  that  their  fall  may  be 
the  greater.     Men  give  another  judgment  of  the  work  of  God  when 
it  is  brought  to  perfection  than  what  they  do  when  they  see  the  begin 
ning  of  it.     Alas  !  at  first,  when  we  see  the  beginnings  of  God,  we  are 
apt  to  say,  There  is  no  profit  to  serve  the  Lord.    Ay !  but  at  length, 
Verily  there  is  a  reward  for  the  righteous.     And  therefore  let  us  not 
be  rash  and  hasty,  until  God  hath  put  his  last  hand  to  his  work. 
They  are  impatient  spectators  that  will  not  tarry  till  the  last  scene  of 
the  tragedy,  till  the  Lord  brings  forth  his  last  work.     Our  hastiness 
and  impatience  will  betray  us  into  many  foul  thoughts  of  God  and  his 
providence. 

4.  That  the  solemn  triumph  of  God's  justice  will  be  at  the  last  day. 


VER.  137.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  447 

If  God  should  punish  no  sin  here,  no  man  would  believe  a  God  ;  if  he 
should  punish  all  here,  no  man  would  be  afraid  of  a  future  judgment. 
Now  is  the  day  of  his  patience,  and  all  taste  the  effects  of  his  common 
goodness :  Acts  xvii.  31,  'He  hath  appointed  a  day  wherein  he  will 
judge  the  world ;'  that  is  the  great  day  of  assizes  for  all  the  world, 
when  the  great  judge  shall  appear  in  his  royalty.  Now  God  only 
keeps  a  petty  sessions ;  now  and  then  he  seizeth  upon  the  hairy  scalp 
of  a  sinner ;  but  the  general  assizes  is  then.  In  the  day  of  trial  it  is 
not  fit  we  should  live  by  sense,  but  by  faith ;  but  hereafter  in  the  day 
of  recompenses  all  shall  be  open  and  clear :  Eom.  ii.  5,  '  Thou  trea- 
surest  up  wrath  a,gainst  the  day  of  wrath,  and  the  revelation  of  the 
righteous  judgment  of  Christ.'  There  is  a  day  that  will  reveal  the 
justice  and  righteousness  of  God,  a  black  day  to  the  wicked  it  will  be, 
and  to  God's  people  a  day  of  redemption.  Now  his  justice  is  mani 
fested  on  a  few  here,  then  on  all.  Now  God's  children  have  their 
sentence  of  absolution  from  sin  in  private,  in  foro  conscientice,  their 
justification  and  assurance  of  eternal  life ;  and  wicked  men  have  their 
wof  ul  doom  in  the  stings  and  horrors  of  their  own  conscience,  they  are 
self-condemned,  Titus  iii.  11 ;  but  then  sentence  will  pass  publicly. 
The  equity  of  God's  dealings  is  not  now  so  fully  seen,  but  then  the 
causes  will  be  opened  ;  when  the  secrets  of  all  hearts  shall  be  mani 
fested,  then  we  shall  see  how  justly  God  accepted  one  to  salvation,  and 
rejected  another  to  damnation.  God's  justice  is  seen  by  the  present 
government  of  the  world,  but  not  so  clearly.  Here  justice  is  mixed 
with  mercy  to  the  godly  in  their  afflictions,  and  mercy  is  mixed  with 
justice  to  the  wicked  in  their  temporal  blessings  ;  but  when  the  Lord 
shall  stir  up  all  his  wrath,  then  we  shall  see  clearly  God  is  a  just  God, 
and  will  keep  punctually  to  the  law  he  hath  made  for  the  government 
of  the  world. 


SERMON  CLIV. 
Bighteous  art  tJiou,  0  Lord,  and  upright  are  thy  judgments, — VER.  137. 

FOR  the  other  part  of  the  objection,  that  those  which  desire  to  be  most 
faithful  with  God  are  calamitous  and  afflicted,  as  Lazarus  lay  in 
poverty  and  rags  while  the  rich  man  surfeited  in  all  manner  of  luxury, 
I  answer — 

1.  God  having  an  absolute  right  and  dominion  over  us  and  our 
comforts,  may  give  and  take  them  away  according  to  his  own  plea 
sure  :  Job  i.  21,  '  The  Lord  hath  given,  and  the  Lord  hath  taken ;' 
dbstulit,  sed  et  dedit ;  they  are  his  own  he  gave  at  first.     If  he  hath 
lent  us  anything  for  his  service  and  our  comfort,  he  may  command  it 
again  when  he  pleaseth,  and  none  can  commence  a  suit  against  his 
providence.      Whatever  straits  and  poverty  we  are  reduced  to,  we 
were  poorer  than  ever  we  can  be  made  by  providence.     We  came  into 
the  world  naked.     If  God  should  strip  us  of  many  comforts,  we  are 
not  so  poor  as  when  we  were  born. 

2.  God  having  intended  to  bestow  eternal  blessings  upon  us,  will 
take  a  liberty  in  disposing  of  outward  things.     Jesus  Christ,  when  he 


448  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CLIV. 

purchased  comforts  for  us,  did  not  purchase  only  or  chiefly  earthly 
comforts  and  blessings  :  Eph.  i.  3,  '  The  God  and  Father  of  our  Lord 
Jesus  Christ  hath  blessed  us  with  spiritual  blessings  in  Christ  Jesus.' 
He  did  not  purchase  worldly  blessings  as  our  chief  happiness.  The 
world  is  a  common  inn  for  sons  and  bastards,  where  God  will  show  his 
bounty  to  all,  his  creatures ;  our  inheritance  is  elsewhere,  in  heavenly 
places  ;  for  though  all  things  come  alike  to  all,  we  cannot  murmur  and 
say,  God  is  unjust ;  nay,  though  a  child  of  God  should  be  in  a  worse 
condition  than  the  wicked  are.  A  child  during  his  nonage  is  kept 
under  more  severe  discipline  than  a  slave,  which  doth  more  live  at 
large.  We  distinguish  between  the  care  of  a  father  and  the  indulgence 
of  a  mother.  The  father  loves  his  child ;  ay  !  but  he  breeds  him  up  in  a 
strict  way.  But  mothers  are  fondly  indulgent,  and  would  have  them 
pampered  and  cockered ;  so  evil  habits  increase  upon  them.  We,  that 
so  quarrel  for  worldly  things,  would  have  God  show  the  fondness  and 
indulgence  of  a  mother,  and  not  the  wisdom  and  care  of  a  father. 

3.  It  is  fit,  before  we  go  to  heaven,  that  we  should  be  tried ;  there 
fore  God  will  so  manifest  his  love  to  us  that  there  may  be  room  to 
exercise  faith  and  patience,  Heb.  vi.  12.  Never  any  came  to  reap  the 
comfort  of  God's  promises  but  there  was  a  time  to  exercise  their  faith 
with  difficulties,  and  their  patience  with  delays ;  and  therefore  God 
will  try  our  sincerity  when  we  have  no  visible  encouragements.  God 
would  have  us  live  by  faith,  and  not  by  sense  or  present  appearance 
only,  2  Cor.  v.  8,  to  see  if  we  can  look  above  the  clouds  and  mists  of 
the  lower  world,  and  encourage  ourselves,  and  grow  bold  upon  the 
hopes  and  concernments  of  the  world  to  come.  Nature  is  purblind, 
but  it  is  the  property  of  faith  to  see  afar  off,  2  Peter  i.  9.  There  is 
the  excellency  of  faith,  if  we  have  but  an  eagle's  eye  to  see  afar  off. 
If  we  had  the  fruition  of  the  whole  blessing,  alas !  there  were  no  room 
for  faith.  And  then  for  patience,  we  are  not  only  to  be  conformed  to 
God,  but  to  Christ ;  not  only  to  God  in  purity  and  holiness,  but  to 
Christ  in  patience  and  submission  and  self-denial.  There  are  some  of 
our  duties  which  imply  perfection,  as  justice,  holiness,  purity,  and 
mercy ;  of  these  we  have  a  pattern  in  God  :  and  some  of  our  duties 
imply  subjection  and  obedience,  and  of  these  we  have  a  pattern  in 
Christ.  Now  all  the  heirs  of  promise  God  hath  conformed  to  the  image 
of  his  Son,  Rom.  viii.  29.  If  we  must  have  all  graces,  then  we  must 
have  those  graces  that  are  conversant  about  misery.  We  should  be 
ignorant  of  one  part  of  human  affairs  were  it  not  for  these  suffering 
graces  ;  therefore  it  is  agreeable  to  God's  justice  that  these  suffering 
graces  should  have  their  exercise  sometimes.  Then  the  Lord  will  try 
our  sincerity,  whether  we  follow  Christ  for  the  loaves,  John  vi.  26,  out 
of  external  encouragements,  or  out  of  affection  for  internal  reasons, 
upon  pure  obedience.  God's  holiness  consists  in  loving  himself,  but 
man's  holiness  consists  in  loving  God ;  therefore  his  holiness  need  to 
be  tried  whether  it  be  a  sincere  love  to  Go*1  :  Ps.  xliv.  17,  '  All  this  is 
come  upon  us,  yet  have  we  not  forgotten  thee,  neither  have  we  dealt 
falsely  in  thy  covenant/  There  is  a  trial  of  love  !  A  man  of  strength 
seeks  a  fit  adversary  to  deal  withal.  It  is  no  trial  to  a  man  of  strength 
and  courage  that  he  can  bear  down  a  child.  If  we  would  try  our 
strength,  fortitude,  sincerity,  and  courage,  we  had  need  be  exposed  to 


VER.  137.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  449 

difficulty  sometimes ;  as  the  skill  of  a  pilot  is  seen  in  a  storm  and 
tempest,  and  a  valiant  soldier's  in  a  battle.  Verberat  nos  ?  lacerat  nos 
.Jehovah  ?  patimur;  non  est  sccvitia,  certamen  est. — Sen.  Doth  the  Lord 
scourge  us  ?  doth  he  break  us,  and  tear  us  in  all  our  concernments  in 
pieces  ?  Bear  it ;  it  is  not  cruelty,  it  is  a  trial.  Eeligion  must  cost  us 
something,  else  it  is  worth  nothing.  It  will  give  you  no  comfort  till 
it  be  tried,  and  therefore  there  is  a  necessity  that  we  should  be  tried. 

4.  Afflictions  have  their  profit  and  use,  and  conduce  to  our  good, 
Heb.  xii.  11.     It  yields  grace  and  comfort  to  us ;  it  is  the  fruit  of  righte 
ousness,  and  the  peaceable  fruit  of  righteousness ;  that  is,  that  righte 
ousness  which  brings  peace.     Outward  troubles  occasion  an  increase  of 
inward  blessings.     Outward  things  are  but  shadows  of  better.     If  God 
deny  the  shadow  and  give  us  the  substance,  have  we  cause  to  mur 
mur  ?     If  God  do  deny  the  picture,  but  give  the  thing  itself,  hath 
that  man  cause  to  complain  ?     If  we  have  not  abundance,  yet  if  we 
grow  rich  in  faith,  rich  in  grace,  James  ii.  5,  we  have  no  cause  to  repine 
.against  God.     Though  we  flow  not  in  ease  and  plenty,  yet  if  we  have  a 
full  tide  of  spiritual  consolation ;  if  we  have  no  respect  in  the  world,  yet 
if  we  have  the  favour  of  God,  we  have  no  reason  to  complain.    Levi  had 
no  portion  among  his  brethren,  but  God  was  his  portion.     So  it  is  here  ; 
good  men  have  comfort  and  support,  at  least  in  all  their  troubles ;  they 
may  be  accounted  miserable,  but  they  are  not  so  ;  especially  if  we 
consider  that  a  great  part  of  their  goodness  lies  in  their  mortification 
and  contempt  of  the  world.     So  that  to  a  man  that  is  as  God  would 
have  him  to  be,  that  which  is  a  misery  to  others  is  none  to  him,  for  his 
affections  are  weaned.     Therefore,  if  we  have  an  increase  of  grace  and 
spiritual  comfort,  we  have  no  reason  to  quarrel  against  God's  providence. 

5.  Good  men  are  but  in  part  good,  and  it  is  fit  their  carnal  part  should 
be  chastised,  that  while  there  are  remainders  of  sin  there  should  be 
some  trouble,  that  God  should  burn  and  cut  here  that  he  might  spare 
hereafter,  that  we  should  be  judged  of  God,  and  not  condemned  with 
the  world,  1  Cor.  xi.  32.     It  is  better  that  we  should  have  our  troubles 
than  all  our  consolations  here,  and  nothing  but  hell  and  misery  in  the 
world  to  come. 

Use  1.  Information.  If  God  be  righteous,  then  all  that  comes  from 
him  is  righteous.  His  word  and  his  works.  Modus  operandi 
sequilur  modum  essendi.  '  Eighteous  art  thou,  0  Lord;'  and  then, 
'Upright  are  thy  judgments/  God  acts  according  to  his  being.  It 
is  true  a  man  may  be  just,  and  yet  all  that  proceeds  from  him  may 
not  always  be  just.  Why  ?  He  is  not  essentially  just ;  but  God  being 
essentially  just,  all  that  he  does  or  says  is  just  also.  A  man's  actions 
are  one  thing,  and  his  rule  another.  A  carpenter  that  hath  a  line 
without  him,  may  sometimes  chop  beside  his  line ;  but  a  man  whose 
hand  is  his  own  line  can  never  chop  amiss.  So  a  man's  rule  is  with 
out  him ;  his  righteousness  is  one  thing,  his  nature  another ;  he 
.may  swerve,  and  be  just.1  But  God's  act  is  his  rule,  his  righteousness 
is  himself;  therefore  whatever  he  does  is  just  and  righteous.  Men 
may  be  deceived,  but  God  deceiveth  none,  and  is  deceived  by  none. 

1.  His  word,  and  every  part  of  his  word,  is  just ;  it  is  in  all  things 
right,  commanding  those  things  which  natural  justice  exacteth,  and 
forbidding  those  things  which  have  a  natural  sinfulness  and  turpitude 

VOL.  VJII.  1  Qu.  'unjust' ?— ED.  2  F 


450  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXTX.  [SER.  CLIV. 

in  them.  God  is  just,  and  all  his  judgments  are  just.  The  way  he- 
hath  set  down  for  the  justifying  of  sinners  and  receiving  them  are  just 
and  righteous,  Horn.  iii.  26  ;  and  the  way  he  hath  set  down  for  the 
sanctifying  of  men,  to  guide  men  in  holiness,  it  is  a  just  law  :  Bom. 
vii.  12,  '  The  commandment  is  holy,  just,  and  good,'  becoming  such  a 
pure  nature  to  give,  and  having  nothing  of  exorbitancy  or  irregularity. 

2.  The  way  God  hath  prescribed  for  saving  such  as  follow  this  way 
of  sanctification  is  just.     The  righteous  judge  will  give  a  crown  of 
righteousness  in  that  day,  2  Tim.  iv.  8.     And  the  way  for  punishing, 
such  eternally  as  'do  despise  eternal  mercies  is  just:   they  have. re 
ceived  a  just  recompense  of  reward,  especially  those  that  neglect  so 
great  salvation,  Heb.  ii.  3.     God's  law  flows  from  his  righteous  nature, 
and  it  is  a  copy  of  his  righteousness  ;  therefore  it  becometh  those  that 
confess  God  to  be  righteous  to  acknowledge  his  laws  such,  and  to  live 
according  to  them. 

3.  His  works.     God  hath  his  judgments  for  those  that  do  not  ac 
cept  the  way  of  righteousness  prescribed  by  him :  Ps.  cxlv.  17,  '  The 
Lord  is  just  in  all  his  ways,  and  holy  in  all  his  works/     We  are  too 
busy  in  interpreting  wrongs  to  others,  but  when  it  lights  upon  us  we 
do  not  acknowledge  it :    Neh.  ix.  33,  '  Thou  art  just  in  all  that  is 
brought  upon  us/  &c.     Nay,  if  thy  hand  be  never  so  smart  upon  us, 
Lord,  thou  art  righteous  in  all.     The  only  way  to  suppress  murmur 
ing  and  silence  disputes,  and  rebuke  the  waves  and  winds  of  discon 
tent  that  toss  the  soul  to  and  fro,  is  to  remember  all  God's  ways  are 
just  and  true.     God  taketh  it  ill  when  we  question  any  of  his  works: 
4  Are  not  my  ways  equal  ?  saith  the  Lord,'  Ezek.  xviii.  25.     When  we 
thus  acknowledge  the  dispensations  of  God  to  ourselves,  we  may  with 
profit  observe  them  to  others,  that  we  may  applaud  his  proceedings  : 
Kev.  xv.  3,  '  Great  and  marvellous  are  thy  works,  just  and  true  are 
thy  ways,  0  king  of  saints.'     So  Kev.  xix.  2,  '  For  true  and  righteous 
are  his  judgments,  for  he  hath  judged  the  great  whore  which  did  cor 
rupt  the  earth  with  her  fornications.'     There  is  no  hurt  done,  but  they 
are  confirmed  in  his  promises,  and  the  rule  set  down  in  the  scripture, 
not  afflicted  but  on  just  ground.     It  is  good  to  observe  this  in  all  his 
dispensations. 

Use  2  .If  God  be  a  righteous  God,  and  all  his  judgments  right,  this 
is  terror  to  wicked  men,  that  securely  wallow  in  the  pleasures  of  sin, 
without  remorse  and  trouble.  Go  on  in  the  way  of  your  own  hearts, 
give  satisfaction  to  your  senses,  please  your  eye,  withhold  not  your 
heart  from  any  comfort  you  delight  in ;  but  remember,  for  all  these 
things  God  will  bring  thee  to  judgment.  As  cold  water  stays  the 
working  of  the  boiling  pot,  so  these  sober  thoughts  of  God's  justice 
and  judgment  may  abate  the  fervours  of  youthful  lusts.  When  you 
are  pampering  the  flesh,  letting  loose  the  reins  to  all  wanton  desires, 
Go  on  in  them ;  there  is  a  righteous  God.  Men  harden  themselves  by 
two  things— by  God's  patience  for  the  present,  and  thoughts  of  his 
mercy  for  the  future. 

1.  By  God's  patience  for  the  present.  When  God  doth  not  strike, 
but  withholds  his  hand  :  Ps.  1.  21,  22,  '  These  things  hast  thou  done, 
and  I  kept  silence  ;  but  I  will  reprove  thee,  and  set  them  in  order  be 
fore  thine  eyes.'  Christians,  patience  and  forbearance  is  not  absolute 


VER.  137.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  451 

remission  and  forgiveness.  God  may  give  you  a  long  day,  and  yet 
reckon  with  you  at  last :  Kom.  ix.  22,  '  He  endureth  with  much  long- 
suffering  the  vessels  of  wrath  fitted  to  destruction/  Mark,  there  is 
suffering,  long-suffering,  and  much  long-suffering ;  and  yet  vessels  of 
wrath  fitted  for  destruction.  God  suffered  Cain  to  live  as  a  man 
reprieved  ;  so  you  may  be  reprieved.  He  deals  with  ungodly  men,  as 
David  with  Joab  and  Shimei ;  he  would  not  acquit  them,  yet  forbare 
them,  and  gave  order  to  Solomon  to  put  them  to  death ;  your  doom 
may  yet  be  dreadful.  Christians,  bethink  yourselves;  there  is  a 
sentence  in  force,  and  there  is  but  a  slender  thread  of  a  frail  life  be 
tween  you  and  execution,  but  a  step  between  you  and  death  ;  and  will 
you  add  sin  to  sin,-  and  heap  up  more  wrath  and  condemnation  to 
yourselves  ?  Alas !  you  are  but  in  the  state  of  condemned  male 
factors,  and  will  you  roar  and  revel  as  some  desperate  wretches  in  the 
gaol  between  condemnation  and  execution  ?  There  is  but  cold  com 
fort  in  this,  to  be  rescued  and  to  be  afterwards  executed ;  and  there 
fore  remember  God  may  forbear  those  whom  he  will  not  pardon.  Ay ! 
and  his  anger  is  most  sharp  after  patience  is  abused,  and  most  speedy 
when  you  begin  to  reckon  the  worst  is  over :  Luke  xii.  20, '  Thou  fool, 
this  night  shall  thy  soul  be  required  of  thee.' 

2.  Men  please  themselves  that  they  shall  do  well  enough  because 
God  is  merciful ;  and  so  they  fancy  a  God  all  of  honey  and  sweetness. 
God  is  just  as  well  as  merciful.     Ay  !  but  his  justice  may  be  a  friend. 
Can  you  claim  that  justice  ?  1  John  i.  9,  '  If  we  confess  our  sins,  he  is 
faithful  and  just  to  forgive  us  our  sins.'     When  we  with  remorse  and 
humble  penitence  go  and  confess  them  before  the  Lord,  then  justice  is 
our  friend.     It  is  not  your  friend  until  you  be  in  Christ :  Rom.  viii.  1, 
'  There  is  no  condemnation  to  them  that  are  in  Christ  Jesus.'     Why, 
but  am  not  I  in  Christ  ?  am  not  I  baptized  in  his  name  ?     Then  I 
say  again,  there  are  none  in  Christ  but  those  that  come  in  in  the  new 
covenant  way,  for  him  hath  God  set  forth  through  faith  in  his  blood, 
Kom.  iii.  2,  3.     If  we  hope  we  believe  in  Christ ;  if  we  do,  then  let 
me  say  one  thing  more :  There  are  none  come  in  the  new  covenant 
way  that  do  allow  themselves  in  any  known  sin  ;  and  therefore  the 
justice  of  God  still  remains  upon  you.     I  prove  this  latter  thus :  He 
that  transgresses  in  one  point  is  guilty  of  all ;  therefore  so  speak  and 
so  do  as  they  that  shall  be  judged  by  the  law  of  liberty,  James  ii. 
10-12.     There  are   some  that  have  judgment  without  mercy,  and 
others  that  shall  be  judged  by  the  law  of  liberty.     He  that  allows 
himself  to  break  with  God  in  any  one  thing,  shall  not  be  judged  by 
the  law  of  liberty,  but  shall  have  judgment  without  mercy.     Therefore 
take  heed ;  you  will  have  double  condemnation  if  you  love  darkness 
rather  than  light ;  that  is,  if  you  allow  yourselves  in  sinful  courses, 
and  turn  your  back  upon  the  grace  and  mercy  God  offers  in  Christ. 

3.  Here  is  for  the  comfort  of  the  godly;  God  is  just;  but  _  to  you 
also  he  will  be  merciful ;  all  his  dispensations  to  you  are  justice  and 
mercy  mingled :  Ps.  cxvi.  5,  *  Gracious  is  the  Lord,  and  righteous ; 
yea,  our  God  is  merciful.'     Not  all  mercy  arid  no  justice,  nor  all  justice 
and  no  mercy;  but  so  just  that  we  may  not  offend,  jso  merciful  that 
we  may  yet  hope  in  him  :  Ps.  xxv.  8,  '  Good  and  upright  is  the  Lord ; 
therefore  will  he  teach  sinners  in  the  way.'    He  is  good,  therefore  will 


452  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEK.  CLIV. 

he  direct  you ;  he  is  righteous,  therefore  we  must  take  his  direction. 
Nay,  justice  and  mercy  are  both  for  you.  You  must  not  apprehend  as 
if  mercy  were  for  you  and  justice  against  you.  No,  no;  the  justice 
of  God  is  made  your  friend ;  that  attribute  which  is  most  terrible  in 
God  is  the  pawn  and  pledge  of  thy  salvation. 

The  grand  inquiry  of  all  the  great  rabbis  and  sophists  of  all  the 
world  was  this,  How  justice  should  be  made  a  friend  ?  It  cannot  be 
put  out  of  our  mind  but  that  God  is  just  and  an  avenger  of  the 
sinner ;  but  he  is  faithful  and  just,  1  John  i.  9  ;  just  in  justifying  those 
that  believe  in  Christ.  You  have  a  double  claim  and  holdfast  on  God; 
you  may  come  to  either  court,  before  the  throne  of  his  grace  and 
tribunal  of  his  justice;  for  there  Christ  interposed,  and  satisfied  the 
justice  of  God.  Here  the  great  scruple  of  nature  is  solved ;  that  is, 
how  the  justice  of  God  should  be  made  our  friend.  Nay,  when  you 
are  fainting  and  discouraged  with  the  scorns  and  neglect  of  the  world, 
Heb.  vi.  10,  the  just  God  will  reward  'your  work  and  labour  of 
love  which  ye  have  showed  toward  his  name.'  It  may  be  vain  in  the 
world,  but  not  vain  in  the  Lord,  1  Cor.  xv.  59.  Therefore  be  cheerful 
in  your  service.  Men  are  not  paymasters,  but  God.  It  is  a  noble 
spirit  to  look  for  it  hereafter,  a  base  spirit  to  look  after  it  here  :  '  They 
have  their  reward/  saith  Christ. 

And  then  against  wrongs  and  injuries  we  meet  with  here,  the  just 
God,  who,  as  he  will  do  us  no  wrong  himself,  so  he  will  not  suffer 
others  to  do  us  wrong  without  punishing  of  them :  Ps.  ciii.  6.  '  The 
Lord  executeth  righteousness  and  judgment  for  all  that  are  oppressed.' 
He  pities  the  afflictions  of  them  that  suffer  unjustly,  and  will  execute 
judgment  for  them.  Mark,  first  from  his  pity,  then  from  his  justice. 
From  his  pity  :  Judges  x.  16,  '  His  soul  was  grieved  for  the  misery  of 
Israel ; '  and  2  Kings  xiv.  26,  '  And  the  Lord  saw  the  affliction  of 
Israel,  that  it  was  very  bitter,  and  he  saved  them.'  But  how  much 
more  will  he  pity  those  that  are  unjustly  oppressed  by  men's  hands ! 
Acts  vii.  33,  34,  '  I  have  seen,  I  have  seen  the  affliction  of  my  people, 
and  I  have  heard  their  groaning;'  and  Isa.  Ixiii.  9,  'In  all  their 
affliction  he  was  afflicted,  and  the  angel  of  his  presence  saved  them : 
in  his  love  and  pity  he  redeemed  them.'  Therefore,  if  we  look  upon 
the  compassions  and  pities  of  God,  this  may  comfort  us  in  all  wrongs 
and  injuries.  Then  out  of  hatred  to  oppression :  Ps.  xi.  7,  '  The 
righteous  Lord  loveth  righteousness,  his  countenance  doth  behold  the 
upright.'  So  again,  Ps.  xciv.  15,  '  Judgment  shall  return  unto 
righteousness,  and  all  the  upright  in  heart  shall  follow  it/  Some 
times  they  are  asunder.  Earthly  judges  may  refuse  the  justice  of 
righteousness,  a  judge  may  suspend  the  act  of  his  own  judgment ;  but 
they  shall  not  long  be  severed;  God  will  bring  forth  his  righteous 
judgment :  Zech.  viii.  17,  f  These  things  I  hate,  saith  the  Lord/  And 
then  in  regard  of  his  providence,  God  will  not  be  unmindful  of  his 
promise :  Ps.  ix.  7-9,  '  He  hath  prepared  his  throne  for  judgment,  and 
he  shall  judge  the  world  in  righteousness  ;  he  shall  minister  judgment 
to  his  people  in  uprightness/  Courts  of  justice  among  men  are  not 
always  open,  they  have  term-time ;  but  God  is  always  ready  to  hear 
plaintiffs.  They  make  complaints  amongst  men,  and  they  are  delayed 
so  much  and  so  long  that  they  are  discouraged.  But  we  have  a 


VER.  137.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  453 

friend  that  is  always  ready  to  hear :  Ps.  xlviii.  10,  '  Thy  right  hand 
is  full  of  righteousness ; '  for  defending  his  people  and  punishing  his 
enemies. 

Use  3.  To  press  us  to  acknowledge  this  justice  of  God,  that  he 
governeth  all  things  righteously,  especially  when  you  are  under  his 
mighty  hand.  The  Lord  takes  it  ill  when  you  question  any  of  his 
providences :  Ezek.  xviii.  25,  '  Are  not  my  ways  equal  ?  '  He  will  be 
clear  when  he  judgeth,  Ps.  li.  4.  God  will  be  justified  in  all  that  he 
hath  done  or  shall  do  for  the  punishment  of  sin ;  and  therefore,  when 
the  hand  of  God  is  upon  you,  take  heed  you  do  not  reproach  God. 
When  his  hand  is  smart  and  heavy  upon  you,  remember  affliction 
opens  the  eyes  of  the  worst  men.  Nebuchadnezzar,  that  knew  no  God 
but  himself,  no  happiness  but  in  pleasing  his  own  humour,  yet  when 
he  was  whipped  and  scourged,  hear  him  speak :  Dan.  iv.  37,  '  Now  I, 
Nebuchadnezzar,  praise  and  extol  and  honour  the  king  of  heaven,  all 
whose  works  are  truth,  and  his  ways  judgment,  and  those  that  walk 
in  pride  he  is  able  to  abase/  Pharaoh :  Exod  ii.  27,  '  The  Lord  is 
righteous,  and  I  and  my  people  are  wicked.'  These  acknowledgments 
and  confessions  come  from  wicked  men,  as  water  out  of  a  still,  forced 
by  the  fire.  But  if  affliction  opens  the  eyes  of  wicked  men,  surely 
when  we  are  under  God's  afflicting  hand  we  should  give  him  the  glory 
of  his  justice,  and  acknowledge  that  he  is  clear  in  all  that  he  brings 
upon  us.  He  takes  it  ill  when  we  murmur  and  tax  his  judgment : 
Micah  vii.  9,  '  I  will  bear  the  indignation  of  the  Lord,  because 
I  have  sinned  against  him,  until  he  plead  my  cause,  and  execute 
judgment  for  me ;'  and  Lam.  i.  18,  '  The  Lord  is  righteous,  for  I  have 
rebelled  against  his  commandment.'  And  when  we  submissively 
stoop  and  accept  of  the  punishment  of  our  sin  after  he  hath  been  pro 
voked,  then  God  will  plead  for  us,  Lev.  xxvi.  41.  When  we  stoop 
humbly  under  God's  correcting  hand,  and  bear  it  patiently,  and  say, 
God  is  just  in  all  this,  then  it  will  succeed  well.  Observe  the  justice 
of  God,  especially  his  remarkable  judgments  upon  others.  The 
church  is  brought  in  acknowledging  of  it,  Eev.  xv.  3,  *  Just  and  true 
are  thy  ways,  thou  king  of  saints ; '  and  Rev.  xix.  3,  '  True  and 
righteous  are  his  judgments.'  Not  that  we  should  sit  crowners  upon 
other  men's  souls,  and  judge  their  spiritual  condition,  and  misinterpret 
providence :  I  look  upon  it  as  a  great  sin  of  a  faction,  and  perverse 
humours.  But  clearly  when  men's  sins  are  so  great  that  the  judg 
ments  of  God  have  overtaken  them,  we  ought  to  say,  '  Just  and  true 
art  thou,  0  Lord,  and  just  in  all  thy  judgments/ 

I  might  show  here  is  much  to  keep  the  children  of  God  in  awe ;  the 
Lord  is  a  righteous  God ;  though  they  have  found  mercy  and  taken 
sanctuary  at  his  grace,  the  Lord  is  impartial  in  his  justice.  God,  that 
did  not  spare  the  angels  when  they  sinned,  nor  his  Son  when  he  was 
a  sinner  by  imputation,  will  not  spare  you,  though  you  are  the  dearly 
beloved  of  his  soul,  Prov.  xi.  31.  The  sinful  courses  of  God's  chil 
dren  occasion  bitterness  enough ;  they  never  venture  upon  sin  but  with 
great  loss.  If  Paul  give  way  to  a  little  pride,  God  will  humble  him. 
If  any  give  way  to  sin,  their  pilgrimage  will  be  made  uncomfortable : 
God's  hand  may  be  smart  and  dismal.  Eli  for  negligence  and  in 
dulgence,  there  is  the  ark  of  God  taken,  his  two  sons  slain  in  battle, 


454  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.          [SEE.  CLV. 

his  daughter-in-law  dies,  he  himself  breaks  his  neck.  Oh!  the 
wonderful  tragedies  that  sin  works  in  the  houses  of  the  children  of 
God.  And  David,  when  he  intermeddled  with  forbidden  fruit,* was 
.  driven  from  his  palace,  his  concubines  defiled,  his  own  son  slain,  a 
great  many  calamities  did  light  upon  him.  Therefore  the  children  of 
God  have  cause  to  fear,  for  the  Lord  is  a  just  God,  and  they  will  find 
it  so ;  here  upon  earth  he  hath  reserved  liberty  to  visit  their  iniquity 
with  rods,  and  their  transgression  with  scourges.  I  might  press  you 
to  imitate  God's  righteousness  :  1  John  ii.  29,  'If  ye  know  that  he  is 
righteous,  ye  know  that  every  one  that  doeth  righteousness  is  born  of 
God.'  You  have  a  righteous  God,  and  here  is  the  thing  you  should 
copy  out. 


SERMON  CLY. 

Thy  testimonies,  which  thou  hast  commanded,  are  righteous  and  very 
faithful— Vim.  138. 

IN  the  former  verse  the  prophet  had  spoken  of  the  righteousness  of 
God ;  now  God  is  essentially  righteous,  and  therefore  all  that  pro- 
ceedeth  from  him  is  righteous.  A  carpenter,  that  hath  a  rule 
without  him,  and  a  line  to  measure  his  work  by,  may  sometimes 
hit  and  sometimes  miss ;  but  if  you  could  suppose  a  carpenter, 
the  motion  of  whose  hand  were  his  rule,  he  could  never  chop  amiss. 
So  must  we  conceive  of  God;  his  act  is  his  rule,  holiness  is  his 
essence,  not  a  superadded  quality,  his  righteousness  is  himself ;  there 
fore  from  this  righteous  God  there  proceedeth  nothing  but  righteous 
ness,  and  from  this  faithful  God  nothing  but  faith.  He  disco vereth 
his  nature  both  in  the  acts  of  his  providence  and  the  institutions  of 
his  word.  We  cannot  reason  so  concerning  men,  that  because  they 
are  righteous  nothing  cometh  from  them  but  what  is  righteous ;  because 
righteousness  is  not  their  nature,  but  an  adventitious  quality :  there 
fore  good  men  may  make  ill  laws,  for  though  they  be  meant  for  good, 
they  may  be  deceived ;  and  sometimes  wicked  men  may  make  good 
laws,  to  ingratiate  themselves,  and  for  the  interest  of  their  affairs ;  but 
God  being  essentially,  necessarily  good,  holy,  and  righteous,  his  laws 
are  also  good,  holy,  and  true :  '  Thy  testimonies,  which  thou  hast 
commanded,  are  righteous  and  very  faithful.' 
In  the  words  observe — 

1.  That  there  is  a  revelation  of  God's  will  in  his  word :   Thy  testi 
monies. 

2.  The  authority  wherewith  his  revelation  is  backed :    Which  thou 
hast  commanded. 

3.  The  intrinsic  worth  and  excellency  of  these  testimonies ;  it  is 
double — they  are  (1.)  Righteous;  (2.)  Very  faithful. 

In  the  Hebrew,  righteousness  and  faithfulness ;  that  is,  very 
right,  and  very  faithful ;  the  one  word  is  referred  to  the  agenda  in 
religion,  the  other  to  the  credenda ;  they  are  worthy  to  be  obeyed, 
worthy  to  be  believed.  The  sum  is,  God  hath  his  testimonies 


VER.  138.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  455 

extant,  their  authority  is  inviolable,  and  their  justice  and  truth 
immutable. 

Some  read,  prcecepisti  justitiam  testimoniorum  tuorum  et  fidem 
valde — thou  hast  highly  charged  and  earnestly  commanded  the  right 
eousness  and  faithfulness  of  thy  testimonies,  as  referring  to  our  duty. 
But  most  translations  agree  with  ours.  Our  duty  indeed  may  be  in 
ferred  ;  but  I  shall  not  make  it  the  formal  interpretation  of  the  place. 
In  the  texture  of  the  words  in  the  Hebrew  these  attributes  are  given 
to  the  word  itself. 

Doct.  They  that  would  profit  by  the  word  or  rule  of  faith  and 
manners  which  God  hath  commanded  them  to  observe,  should  look 
upon  it  as  righteous  and  very  faithful. 

So  did  David  here  and  elsewhere:  Ps.  xix.  9,  '  The  judgments  of 
the  Lord  are  true,  and  righteous  altogether.'  I  shall  make  good  the 
point  by  these  considerations  : — 

Prop.  1.  That  our  faith  and  obedience  must  be  well  grounded,  or 
else  they  will  have  no  firmness  and  stability.  The  want  of  a  founda 
tion  is  the  cause  of  many  a  ruinous  building.  Men  carry  on  a  fair 
and  lofty  structure  of  profession,  but  when  the  winds  of  boisterous 
temptations  are  let  loose  upon  them,  all  is  blown  down,  because  they 
build  upon  the  sand,  and  not  upon  the  rock.  They  take  up  this 
profession  without  sound  evidence  and  conviction  in  their  consciences ; 
and  so  they  are  not  '  grounded  or  settled  in  the  faith,'  Col.  i.  23  ;  *  not 
rooted  and  grounded  in  love/  Eph.  iii.  7.  They  take  up  religion 
slightly,  not  looking  into  the  reasons  of  it,  upon  tradition  or  vulgar 
esteem,  they  are  not  undoubtedly  persuaded  that  it  is  the  very  truth 
of  God.  The  good  seed  withered  that  fell  upon  the  stony  ground, 
because  there  was  no  depth  of  earth,  Mat.  xiii.  5,  no  considerable 
strength  of  soil  to  feed  faith. 

Prop.  2.  Faith  and  obedience  cannot  be  well  grounded  but  on  such 
a  doctrine  as  is  true  and  righteous;  for  who  can  depend  on  that  which 
is  not  true,  or  who  can  obey  that  which  is  not  righteous  ?  Truth  is 
the  only  sure  foundation  for  faith  to  build  upon,  and  righteousness  for 
practice.  Faith  considereth  truth  :  Eph.  i.  13,  '  In  whom  ye  trusted, 
.after  that  ye  heard  the  word  of  truth,  the  gospel  of  your  salvation/ 
And  that  righteousness  is  that  which  bindeth  to  practice,  we  may 
gather  from  Ps.  cxix.  128,  '  Therefore  I  esteem  all  thy  precepts  con 
cerning  all  things  to  be  right,  and  I  hate  every  false  way.'  The  word 
commandeth  nothing  but  what  is  just  and  righteous. 

Prop.  3.  This  true  and  righteous  doctrine  must  be  backed  with  a 
strong  and  powerful  authority,  not  only  recommended  to  us,  but 
strictly  and  severely  enjoined,  for  two  reasons  : — 

1.  Because  otherwise  it  will  not  be  observed  and  regarded,  but^  be 
looked  upon  not  as  a  binding  law,  but  as  an  arbitrary  direction. 
There  is  a  difference  between  a  law  and  a  rule.  A  bare  rule  may  only 
serve  to  inform  our  understandings,  or  to  give  direction  ;  but  a  law 
is  a  binding  rule,  a  rule  with  a  strong  obligation.  The  word  of  God 
is  not  his  counsel  and  advice  to  us  only,  but  his  law  ;  that  men  may 
examine  and  regard  it  with  more  care  and  diligence.  God  hath 
interposed  his  authority :  Ps.  cxix.  4,  '  Thou  hast  commanded  us  to 
keep  thy  precepts  diligently ; '  and  in  the  text,  '  Thy.  testimonies, 


456  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SflR.  CLV. 

which  thou  hast  commanded.'  God  hath  commanded  us  to  believe 
all  truths  revealed,  to  obey  all  duties  required  ;  and  if  God  com- 
mandeth,  there  is  good  reason  why  he  should  be  obeyed. 

2.  Divine  authority  is  one  means  to  evidence  the  righteousness  and 
truth  of  what  is  to  be  believed  and  obeyed.  The  righteousness;  for 
if  God,  who  is  my  superior,  and  hath  a  full  right  to  govern  me 
according  to  his  own  pleasure,  doth  command  me  anything,  it  is  best, 
that  I  should  obey  it  without  reply  and  contradiction  ;  yea,  though  I 
see  not  the  reason  of  it :  Acts  xvii.  28,  '  For  in  him  we  live,  and  move, 
and  have  our  being.'  All  creatures  have  their  being  not  only  from 
him,  but  in  him  ;  and  therefore  sometimes  God  giveth  no  other 
account  of  his  law  but  this,  '  I  am  the  Lord : '  Lev.  xxii.  2,  3,  '  Speak 
unto  Aaron  and  to  his  sons,  that  they  separate  themselves  from  the 
holy  things  of  the  children  of  Israel,  and  that  they  profane  not  my 
holy  name  in  those  things  which  they  hallow  unto  me :  I  am  the 
Lord.  Say  unto  them,  Whosoever  he  be  of  all  your  seed,  among  your 
generations,  that  goeth  unto  the  holy  things,  which  the  children  of 
Israel  hallow  unto  the  Lord,  having  his  uncleanness  upon  him,  that 
soul  shall  be  cut  off  from  my  presence:  I  am  the  Lord.'  Therefore 
it  gives  rules  of  practice  to  be  embraced  with  all  the  heart,  as  holy, 
just,  and  good.  God's  authority  is  founded  upon  the  total  dependence 
of  all  creatures  upon  him,  and  upon  his  infallible  wisdom,  truth,  and 
goodness,  by  which  he  hath  right  to  prescribe  all  points  of  faith  to  be 
believed  and  assented  to.  upon  his  own  testimony,  without  contradic 
tion  :  1  John  v.  9,  '  If  we  receive  the  testimony  of  man,  the  testimony 
of  God  is  greater.'  A  man  that  would  not  deceive  us,  we  believe  him 
upon  his  word,  though  he  may  be  deceived  himself ;  but  God  doth 
not  deceive,  nor  can  he  be  deceived  :  by  the  holy  God  nothing  can  be 
given  but  what  is  holy  and  good ;  and  thereupon  I  am  to  receive  it. 

Prop.  4.  This  divine  authority,  truth,  and  righteousness,  is  only  to 
be  found  in  God's  testimonies,  which  he  hath  commanded,  or  in  God's 
word. 

1.  There  is  a  godlike  authority  speaking  there,  and  commanding 
that  which  it  becometh  none  but  God  to  command,  who  is  the 
universal  king  and  sovereign.  For  it  speaketh  to  the  whole  world 
without  respect  of  persons,  to  king  and  beggar,  rich  and  poor,  male 
and  female,  without  reservation  of  honour  or  distinction  of  degrees. 
The  word  looketh  on  them  as  standing  before  God  on  the  same 
level :  Job  xxxiv.  19,  'He  accepteth  not  the  persons  of  princes,  nor 
regarded  the  rich  more  than  the  poor ;  for  they  all  are  the  work  of 
his  hands.'  And  speaketh  to  them  indifferently  and  equally  :  Exod. 
xx.  3,  '  Thou  shalt  have  no  other  gods  but  me.'  Which  is  not  the 
voice  of  any  limited  and  bounded  power,  but  of  that  which  is  supreme, 
transcendent,  and  absolute.  And  by  these  laws  he  bindeth  the  con 
science  and  the  immortal  souls  of  men  :  Ps.  xix.  7,  *  The  law  of  the 
Lord  is  perfect,  converting  the  soul/  Men  may  give  laws  to  the 
words  and  actions,  because  they  can  take  cognisance  of  them  ;  but 
the  word  giveth  laws  to  the  thoughts :  Isa,  Iv.  7,  '  Let  the  wicked 
forsake  his  way,  and  the  unrighteous  man  his  thoughts ; '  Mat.  v.  28r 
'  Whosoever  looketh  on  a  woman  to  lust  after  her,  hath  committed 
adultery  with  her  already  in  his  heart/  And  the  internal  motions; 


VER.  138.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  457 

and  affections  of  the  heart,  how  we  should  love  and  fear,  and  joy  and 
mourn :  1  Cor.  vii.  30,  '  They  that  weep  as  though  they  wept  not,  and 
they  that  rejoice  as  though  they  rejoiced  not.'  Of  these  things  God 
can  only  take  notice  ;  the  power  of  man  reacheth  not  to  the  mind  and 
spirit;  they  would  be  ridiculous  if  they  should  take  upon  them  to  give 
laws  to  these.  Philosophers  might  give  directions  about  them,  but 
potentates  would  not  give  laws,  for  it  doth  not  beseem  them  to  inter 
pose  their  authority  in  such  cases,  where  it  is  impossible  they  shall 
know  whether  they  are  broke  or  kept.  The  scriptures  upon  their 
disobedience  make  men  liable  not  only  to  temporal,  but  spiritual  and 
eternal  punishments ;  and  accordingly  are  rewards  proportioned  irt 
case  of  obedience.  The  magistrate's  wrath  lighteth  on  the  body,  but 
God's  upon  the  soul.  All  that  man  can  do  concerns  life,  or  limb,  or 
liberty,  or  estate ;  the  inward  man  is  exempted  from  their  power ;  but 
God  threateneth  hardness  of  heart :  Exod.  vii.  13,  'He  hardened 
Pharaoh's  heart,  that  he  hearkened  not  unto  them.'  A  reprobate 
sense :  Bom.  i.  28,  '  And  even  as  they  did  not  like  to  retain  God  in 
their  knowledge,  God  gave  them  over  to  a  reprobate  mind,  to  do  those 
things  that  are  not  convenient/  A  trembling  heart :  Deut.  xxviii. 
65,  *  The  Lord  shall  give  thee  a  trembling  of  heart,  and  failing  of  eyes, 
and  sorrow  of  mind.'  On  the  contrary,  obedience  hath  the  promises 
of  a  soft  heart,  and  peace  that  passeth  all  understanding :  Phil.  iv.  7r 
*  The  peace  of  God,  that  passeth  all  understanding,  shall  keep  your 
hearts  and  minds,  through  Christ  Jesus.'  Of  an  increase  of  grace : 
Prov.  iv.  18,  *  The  path  of  the  just  is  as  the  shining  light,  that 
shineth  more  and  more  unto  the  perfect  day.'  God,  that  punisheth 
sin  with  sin,  will  reward  grace  with  grace.  So  for  eternal  rewards,  God 
threateneth, '  The  worm  that  never  dieth,  and  the  fire  that  never  shall 
be  quenched,'  Mark  ix.  44.  On  the  other  side,  he  promiseth  '  Kivers 
of  pleasures  that  are  at  God's  right  hand  for  evermore/  Ps.  xvi.  11. 
He  that  will  be  believed  and  obeyed  upon  terms  of  salvation,  is  a  God, 
one  that  hath  power  of  the  world  to  come.  Thus  hath  God  scattered 
the  strictures  of  his  majesty,  and  given  real  evidence  of  interposing  hi& 
authority  everywhere  throughout  the  word.  I  shall  .only  add,  that 
the  scriptures,  as  God's  law,  may  be  considered  as  the  rule  of  man's 
duty,  and  God's  judgment.  In  respect  of  the  commands,  they  bind 
man  to  duty,  and  are  the  rule  of  it.  In  respect  of  the  sanction,  that 
is,  promises  and  threatenings,  they  are  the  rule  of  God's  judgment. 
In  the  one  God  showeth  his  righteousness,  in  the  other,  his  truth  -r 
in  the  precepts,  righteousness ;  in  the  promises  and  threatenings, 
truth. 

2.  All  that  God  hath  required  of  us  is  very  righteous  and  just, 
becoming  God  to  give,  and  man  to  receive.  There  is  a  condescency 
in  these  precepts  both  to  God's  nature  and  to  ours.  They  are  the 
copy  of  God's  holiness,  and  so  a  fit  means  to  bring  us  not  only  into  a 
subjection  to  him,  which  is  just,  he  being  our  creator,  but  into  a 
conformity  to  him,  which  is  our  happiness.  To  prove  the  righteous 
ness  which  is  in  God's  laws,  I  shall  produce  several  arguments. 

p.]  Surely  there  is  a  distinction  between  good  and  evil,  and  all  acts 
are  not  in  their  own  nature  indifferent ;  that  was  a  monstrous  conceit 
of  Carpender  and  others,  contrary  to  the  common  sense  of  men.  If 


458  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CLV. 

this  were  true,  the  chasteness  of  Lucretia  should  not  be  more  to  be 
prized  than  the  lightness  of  Lais,  nor  the  virtue  of  Cato  than  the 
dissoluteness  of  Sardanapalus  ;  and  it  would  be  as  indifferent  for  a 
man  to  kill  his  father  as  his  neighbour's  dog,  to  rob  in  the  woods  as 
to  hunt  a  deer  or  hare,  to  lie  with  his  father's  wife  as  to  contract 
honest  matrimony,  to  forswear  and  lie  as  to  be  sincere  in  all  our  words 
and  proceedings.  JSTow  whose  heart  doth  not  rise  within  them  at  such 
an  apprehension  ?  If  this  be  thought  to  be  only  custom  and  received 
opinion  that  begets  this  abhorrence,  I  would  ask,  Whence  cometh  it 
that  we  all  desire  to  be,  if  not  really,  yet  seemingly  honest  ?  The 
most  wicked  are  offended  when  they  are  taken  for  such  as  they  are  , 
and  endeavour,  as  much  as  they  can,  to  clothe  their  actions  with  the 
appearance  of  probity  and  uprightness.  If  men  were  not  sensible 
that  vice  were  blameworthy  and  virtue  commendable,  why  should 
such  a  desire  so  universally  possess  the  heart  of  man,  were  there  not 
a  natural  sense  of  good  and  evil,  and  an  essential  difference  between 
the  one  and  the  other,  which  we  are  sensible  of,  nature  itself  valuing 
and  esteeming  the  one,  and  blasting  the  other  with  severe  marks  of 
her  improbation  and  hatred  ?  And  I  do  with  the  more  confidence 
urge  this  argument,  because  there  is  difficulty  in  the  exercise  of  vir 
tue,  because  of  the  conflict  of  the  sensual  appetite  ;  and  on  the  other 
side,  many  delights  and  pleasures  accompanying  vice,  by  which  it  gets 
an  easy  entrance  into  our  souls,  and  dominion  over  our  desires.  Why 
should  a  thing  so  much  against  the  bent  and  hair  be  accounted  worthy 
of  praise,  and  the  contrary,  which  hath  such  a  compliance  with  our 
natural  desires,  be  accounted  worthy  of  blame  ?  And  were  there  only 
custom  and  tradition  for  it,  would  men  so  universally  conspire  to 
decree  honours  for  that  which  is  contrary  to  their  corrupt  nature,  and 
to  disapprove  what  is  suitable  to  it  ?  It  cannot  be.  Would  they 
desire  the  reputation  of  virtue,  when  their  desires  choose  vice,  and 
impel  them  to  it,  and  hold  them  under  it,  if  they  were  not  sensible 
that  the  one  hath  a  comeliness,  and  the  other  a  turpitude  in  it  ?  Thus 
hypocrites  do  clearly  attest  the  excellency  of  uprightness  and  honesty. 
Well,  then,  the  testimonies  which  God  hath  commanded  are  very 
righteous,  for  they  forbid  those  things  which  have  a  natural  turpitude 
and  indispensable  sinfulness  in  them ;  and  command  those  things 
which  are  plainly  and  evidently  lovely  and  praiseworthy  :  Phil.  iv.  8, 
'  Finally,  brethren,  whatsoever  things  are  true,  whatsoever  things 
are  honest,  whatsoever  things  are  just,  whatsoever  things  are  pure, 
whatsoever  things  are  lovely,  whatsoever  things  are  of  good  report ; 
if  there  be  any  virtue,  and  if  there  be  any  praise,  think  on  these 
things/ 

[2.]  It  is  such  a  rule  and  direction  as  men  would  choose  if  they  were 
at  their  own  liberty,  provided  they  were  wise,  and  not  brutified  by  their 
inordinate  passions,  evil  customs,  and  discomposure  of  soul ;  for  all 
such  are  incompetent  judges.  For  there  is  nothing  preserveth  the 
rectitude  of  human  nature,  and  maketh  men  to  live  as  men,  according 
to  the  dictates  of  reason,  as  the  serious  observance  of  this  law.  Break 
it  a  little,  and  so  far  a  man  turneth  beast :  so  that  it  was  well  said  of 
one,  A  saint  or  a  brute.  For  the  law  is  so  written  upon  man's  heart, 
and  so  connatural  to  his  reason,  that  you  must  extinguish  the  nature 


YER.  138.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  459 

of  man  before  you  can  raze  out  all  the  sentiments  of  this  law :  Rom 
ii.  14,  15,  *  For  when  the  Gentiles,  which  have  not  the  law '  do  by 
nature  the  things  contained  in  the  law,  these,  having  not  the  law,  are 
a  law  unto  themselves ;  which  show  the  work  of  the  law  written  in 
their  hearts,  ^their  conscience  also  bearing  witness,  and  their  thoughts 
the  meanwhile  accusing,  or  else  excusing  one  another.'  As  long  as  we 
have  these  hearts  that  we  have,  we  cannot  wholly  except  against  the 
justice  and  equity  of  these  laws  and  rules  of  commerce  between  God 
and  his  creatures.  It  is  true,  all  truths  are  not  alike  evident,  but  they 
that  seriously  mind  the  one  will  be  led  on  to  the  other,  at  least  will 
find  none  contrary  to  such  conclusions,  as  may  be  drawn  from  prin 
ciples  naturally  known,  and  will  be  encouraged  to  go  on  till  God  reveal 
more  to  them.  This  is  so  evident,  that  the  wiser  any  among  the 
heathen  are,  the  nearer  they  come  to  this  rule,  and  have  framed  some 
thing  like  it  for  the  regulation  of  men,  though  with  great  mixtures  of 
their  own  folly.  The  perfect  discovery  of  man's  duty  God  reserved 
to  himself  and  his  own  writings,  elsewhere  there  is  but  fata  rectitudo 
and  pictajustitia,  poor  counterfeits  in  the  laws  of  civil  nations  and  insti 
tutions  of  philosophy ;  sapientia  eorum  abscondit  vitia,  non  abscindit ; 
there  was  only  a  little  hiding  and  disguising  of  sin  that  it  might  not 
appear  too  odious.  In  short,  the  less  knowledge  any  nation  or  society 
of  men  have  of  this  law,  the  more  brutish  and  barbarous  they  have 
been,  and  so  accounted  to  be  by  all  that  have  known  what  civility  and 
human  converse  mean ;  and  on  the  contrary,  the  more  polite  and  civil, 
the  nearer  they  come  to  it.  Whom  would  you  judge  to  be  more  civil, 
the  Romans  or  the  Scythians  ?  the  wise  and  good  man,  or  the  sot  and 
fool  ?  Even  among  us,  the  more  punctually  any  keepeth  to  this  law, 
the  more  he  differeth  from  others,  as  much  as  an  angel  from  a  man, 
or  a  man  from  a  beast :  '  The  righteous  is  more  excellent  than  his 
neighbour,'  Prov.  xii.  26.  It  is  clear  as  the  sun ;  whether  men  will  or 
nill,  they  must  acknowledge  it,  and  do  when  they  are  serious  ;  for  they 
approve  them  while  they  hate  them,  wish  their  latter  end  like  theirs, 
intrust  them  more  than  others,  presume  more  from  them  than  others. 
Out  of  all  I  conclude,  that  the  very  frame  and  constitution  of  the 
reasonable  and  immortal  soul  and  body  of  man  doth  dictate  the  equity 
and  justice  of  this  law,  and  it  doth  result  from  the  image  of  God, 
wherein  man  was  created. 

[3.]  That  law  is  just  and  righteous,  the  violation  of  which  men 
judge  to  be  justly  punished.  I  use  this  argument  because  under 
punishment  men  are  serious,  for  it  rubbeth  up  and  reviveth  the  sense 
of  a  divine  power.  Now,  for  the  violation  of  this  law  God  hath 
judged  persons,  families,  nations,  and  kingdoms,  and  conscience  is 
sensible  of  the  justice  of  God's  judgments  exercised  upon  them.  God 
is  clear  when  he  judgeth,  Ps.  li.  4  ;  his  eminent  judgments  carry  light 
and  conviction  with  them ;  and  wherefore  have  his  judgments  been 
executed  ?  Rom.  1. 18,  '  For  the  wrath  of  God  is  revealed  from  heaven 
against  all  ungodliness  and  unrighteousness  of  men,  who  hold  the 
truth  in  unrighteousness ;'  Heb.  ii.  2,  '  Every  transgression  and  dis 
obedience  received  a  just  recompense  of  reward.'  There  is  a  fear  after 
some  notorious  breach,  even  in  those  that  are  not  acquainted  with  God, 
a  shyness  of  his  presence,  ever  since  Adam  run  to  the  bushes  ;  so  it  is. 


460  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiR.  CLV. 

All  which  doth  seal  the  righteousness  and  truth  of  this  law,  and  how 
justly  God  may  reckon  with  us  about  it. 

[4.]  There  is  an  intrinsical  righteousness  in  all  the  duties  com 
manded  in  God's  law.  Besides  the  will  of  the  lawgiver,  *there  is  a 
justice  in  the  things  themselves.  By  what  measure  will  we  take 
justice  ?  We  usually  understand  it  to  be  to  give  every  one  his  due. 
So  doth  the  law,  it  commandeth  us  to  give  God  his  due  and  man  his 
due.  Love  is  7r\tjpo)^a  VO/JLOV,  the  fulfilling  of  the  law.  The  law  i& 
comprised  in  one  word,  '  love ; '  to  love  God,  himself,  and  his  neigh 
bour.  Is  there  not  justice  in  all  this  ?  The  natural  relation  we  have 
to  God  calleth  for  love  to  him ;  for  he  made  us,  and  is  the  strength  of 
our  lives,  and  the  length  of  our  days :  Deut.  xxx.  20,  '  That  thou 
mayest  love  the  Lord  thy  God,  and  that  thou  mayest  obey  his  voice, 
and  that  thou  mayest  cleave  to  him  ;  for  he  is  thy  life,  and  the  length 
of  thy  days.'  Self-love  and  self-preservation,  if  that  be  not  a  natural 
principle,  nothing  is.  Our  neighbours  we  are  bound  to  love,  because 
of  consanguinity ;  they  are  our  own  flesh  and  blood,  and  God  hath 
bidden  us  do  to  them  as  we  would  to  ourselves :  Mat.  vii.  12, 
*  Therefore  all  .things,  whatsoever  ye  would  that  men  should  do  unto- 
you,  do  ye  even  so  to  them  ;  for  this  is  the  law  and  the  prophets/ 
There  is  a  universal  consanguinity  between  all  mankind,  which  hath 
its  root  in  the  communion  of  one  and  the  same  nature,  and  in  the 
dependence  and  derivation  from  one  common  stock.  The  eminence 
of  the  divine  nature  is  the  foundation  of  the  honour  which  we  tender 
to  it ;  and  the  equality  of  our  nature  is  the  foundation  of  the  justice 
which  we  use  to  one  another.  So  that  here  are  natural,  immutable 
obligations  and  grounds  of  right.  Go  to  particulars  :  How  equal  is  it 
that  we  should  acknowledge  but  one  God  !  They  are  drunk  that  see 
double,  strangely  depraved  that  see  more.  That  we  should  not  wor 
ship  him  before  an  idol,  which  is  very  apt  to  taint  our  minds  with  a 
gross  opinion  of  God,  as  if  he  were  some  limited,  finite  being.  It  is  a 
great  lessening  of  reverence  to  see  what  we  worship.  Not  to  take 
God's  name  in  vain  by  a  false  oath,  that  breedeth  atheism  and  con 
tempt.  That  there  should  be  a  day  to  remember  the  creator  of  all 
things ;  everyday's  work  is  no  day's  work ;  but  there  must  be  a  limited 
time.  For  reverence  to  parents,  all  nations  call  for  it.  For  murder, 
adultery,  stealing,  false  accusations,  man's  interest  will  teach  him  the 
necessity  of  those  laws  that  forbid  these  things.  Contentation  is  a 
guard  to  all  the  rest,  it  is  fit  the  God  of  the  spirits  of  all  flesh  should 
give  a  law  to  the  spirit :  '  Thou  shalt  not  covet/  Yet  this  is  the  law 
of  God,  to  which  scripture  is  subservient ;  and  all  the  admonition*, 
reproofs,  exhortations,  dehortations,  examples,  directions,  histories  of 
the  obedience  and  virtue  of  some,  with  their  rewards  ;  of  the  disobedi 
ence,  apostasy,  rebellion  of  others,  with  their  punishments;  all  is  to 
enforce  this  law.  The  doctrine  of  Christ,  and  redemption  and  recon 
ciliation  by  him,  I  bring  not  under  this  first  head,  because  that  is  a 
favour  and  privilege  ;  and  the  justice  and  equity  of  gospel  precepts  will 
soon  appear,  when  once  we  have  consented  to  the  law  that  it  is  good. 
But  of  that  in  the  next  head. 

3.  For  the  truth  and  faithfulness  of  God's  testimonies.     This  may 


VER.  138.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  461 

be  considered  either  in  revealing  or  performing,  making  or  making 
good  his  promises. 

[1.]  For  truth  and  faithfulness  in  making  such  offers  and  promises 
of  pardon  and  eternal  life  in  case  of  obedience,  and  threatening  a  curse 
and  everlasting  punishment  in  case  of  disobedience.  Surely  there  is 
no  doubt  in  all  this,  because  they  are  revealed  by 'God,  who  is  the 
supreme  and  original  truth,  and  who  neither  is  nor  can  be  deceived  ; 
for  God's  understanding  is  the  rule  and  measure  of  all  other  truths : 
nothing  is  true  but  what  is  constant  to  his  knowledge.  And  he  can 
not  deceive  us ;  that  will  not  agree  with  the  goodness  of  his  nature 
and  love  to  mankind ;  therefore  he  is  called  '  God  that  cannot  lie ' 
Titus  i.  2. 

[2.]  In  making  good.  God  hath  given  us  the  most  solemn  assur 
ance  :  Heb.  vi.  17,  18,  *  God,  willing  more  abundantly  to  show  unto 
the  heirs  of  promise  the  immutability  of  his  counsel,  confirmed  it  by 
an  oath,  that  by  two  immutable  things,  in  which  it  was  impossible  for 
God  to  lie,  we  might  have  strong  consolation.'  He  hath  demitted 
himself  to  the  terms  of  a  covenant,  given  us  a  seal :  Kom.  iv.  11,  *  And 
he  received  the  sign  of  circumcision,  a  seal  of  the  righteousness  of 
faith.'  Pledge  :  2  Cor.  i.  22,  '  Who  hath  also  sealed  us,  and  given  the 
earnest  of  his  Spirit  in  our  hearts.'  He  hath  stood  upon  his  truth 
above  all  things :  Ps.  cxxxviii.  2,  '  I  will  worship  towards  thy  holy 
temple,  and  praise  thy  name,  for  thy  loving-kindness,  and  for  thy 
truth ;  for  thou  hast  magnified  thy  word  above  all  thy  name.'  One 
part  of  the  word  verifieth  another  ;  in  one  part  you  have  the  promise, 
in  another  the  accomplishment,  the  great  promise  of  sending  Christ : 
Heb.  x!  5-7,  '  Wherefore,  when  he  cometh  into  the  world,  he  saith, 
Sacrifice  and  offering  thou  wouldest  not,  but  a  body  hast  thou  pre 
pared  me  :  in  burnt- offerings  and  sacrifices  for  sin  thou  hast  had  no 
pleasure  :  then  said  I,  Lo,  I  come  to  do  thy  will,  0  God/  He  would 
not  go  back,  being  willing  to  keep  the  promise  afoot.  It  was  on  our 
part  a  handwriting  against  us,  in  testification  of  our  guilt  and  need  of 
expiation  ;  but  on  God's  part  an  obligation  of  debt  to  pay  our  ransom. 
Still  he  accomplisheth  promises  in  the  return  of  prayers  ;  and  though 
the  great  payment  be  in  the  other  world,  yet  here  God  remembereth 
us  still,  accomplishing  the  intervening  promises,  and  giving  proof  of 
his  truth.  So  that  they  that  are  acquainted  with  his  name  will  never 
distrust  him :  Ps.  ix.  10,  *  They  that  know  thy  name  will  put  their 
trust  in  thee ;  for  thou,  Lord,  hast  not  forsaken  them  that  seek  thee.' 
They  that  have  known  his  way,  and  the  course  of  his  dealings,  will 
have  a  confidence  in  him. 

Prop.  5.  They  that  would  receive  the  word  as  the  word  of  God,  must 
be  soundly  convinced  of,  and  seriously  consider,  this  righteousness  and 
faithfulness  in  the  testimonies,  which  he  hath  commanded  ;  for  till 
then  the  word  worketh  not  on  them :  1  Thes.  ii.  13,  '  For  this  cause 
also  thank  we  God  without  ceasing,  because  when  ye  received  the  word 
of  God,  which  ye  heard  of  us,  ye  received  it  not  as  the  word  of  men, 
but  as  it  is  in  truth,  the  word  of  God,  which  effectually  worketh  also 
in  you  that  believe.'  And  till  then  they  are  but  customary  Chris 
tians,  and  can  never  rightly  believe  nor  obey :  John  iv.  42,  '  Now 
we  believe  :  not  because  of  thy  saying,  for  we  have  heard  him  our- 


462  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [&ER.  CLV. 

selves,  and  know  that  this  is  indeed  the  Christ,  the  Saviour  of  the 
world.'  First  their  faith  depends  on  the  common  tradition,  or  the  tes 
timony  of  the  church  ;  afterwards  on  the  sure  ground  of  the  word 
itself,  in  which  they  find  such  clearness  and  efficacy,  that  they  cannot 
but  yield  to  God.  The  authority  of  man  is  nothing  to  it,  when  our 
faith  is  bottomed  on  a  surer  ground,  the  authority  of  God  speaking  in 
his  word. 

1.  There  must  be  sound  conviction,  or  belief  of  this.    This  is  called, 
'  The  acknowledgment  of  the  truth,'  Titus  i.  1,  eTr'tyvwa-w  rrjs  aXydelas ; 
and  Col.  ii.  2,  '  The  riches  of  the  assurance  of  understanding,  to  the 
acknowledgment  of  the  mystery  of  God,  and  of  the  Father,  and  of 
Christ/     An  assurance  that  God  will  keep  touch  with  me,  that  he 
will  not  delude  me  in  the  terms  propounded  in  the  gospel.     This  full 
persuasion  of  the  truth  of  God's  testimonies  we  must  all  aim  at,  and 
seek  after.     The  assurance  of  my  interest  and  my  salvation  is  another 
thing,  and  yet  that  I  am  not  to  neglect,  but  with  this  I  am  to  begin. 

2.  There  must  be  serious  consideration  ;    for  that  improveth  all 
truths,  and  maketh  them  active  and  effectual.     God's  complaint  of  his 
people  is  that  they  will  not  consider  :  Isa.  i.  3,  '  The  ox  knoweth  his 
owner,  and  the  ass  his  master's  crib ;  but  Israel  doth  not  know,  my 
people  doth  not  consider.'     They  do  not  lay  truths  in  the  view  of 
conscience.     Food  without  mastication  and  chewing  nourisheth  not. 
A  thing  not  considered  doth  profit  as  little  as  if  not  believed,  as  a  for 
getting  God  is  a  kind  of  denying  of  him.     Seriously  then  debate  it 
with  yourselves.    You  must  consider  the  authority  of  God.    Authority 
is  that  right  which  a  superior  hath  to  prescribe  to  such  as  are  under 
him.     Doth  God  usurp  upon  you*  when  he  giveth  you  a  law  ?  or  hath 
he  left  you  in  the  dark,  that  you  do  not  know  whether  this  be  his  law, 
yea  or  no  ?     Are  there  no  strictures  of  his  majesty  in  the  very  economy 
and  frame  of  it  ?     Can  any  but  a  God  speak  at  such  a  .rate  ?    And 
for  his  justice,  hath  he  commanded  anything  to  your  hurt  ?     No,  it  is 
all  for  thy  good  :  Deut.  vi.  24,  '  And  the  Lord  commanded  us  to  do 
all  these  statutes,  to  fear  the  Lord  our  God,  for  our  good  always.' 
And  for  his  truth,  men  may  deceive  and  be  deceived,  arid  though 
they  often  speak  truth,  they  do  not  always  so  ;  but  God  seeth  by  his 
own  light,  not  by  discourse,  but  vision.     Truth  is  his  nature,  from 
which  he  can  no  more  swerve  than  from  himself ;  and  what  need  he 
court  a  worm,  and  flatter  us  ?     Thus  should  we  urge  our  hearts. 

Use  1.  Let  us  own  and  improve  the  word,  as  a  righteous  and  faith 
ful  word,  which  God  hath  commanded  for  our  good. 

1.  Own  the  authority  of  it.  It  is  not  an  arbitrary  thing ;  the  truths 
revealed  imply  a  command  to  believe  them,  the  duties  required  imply 
a  command  to  obey  them :  Mat.  xvii.  5,  '  This  is  my  beloved  Son, 
in  whom  I  am  well  pleased,  hear  ye  him/  God  hath  commanded 
us  to  hear  Christ,  to  believe  in  his  name,  to  love  one  another  :  1  John 
iii.  23,  '  And  this  is  his  commandment,  that  we  should  believe  in  the 
name  of  his  Son  Jesus  Christ,  and  love  one  another,  as  he  gave  us 
commandment.'  As  we  value  his  word,  and  would  one  day  see  his 
face  with  comfort,  we  should  bind  his  precepts  upon  our  hearts.  Say 
to  thy  soul,  As  thou  wilt  answer  it  to  God  another  day,  take  care  of 
this. 


VEB.  138.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  463 

2.  Own  and  improve  the  righteousness  of  his  testimonies.     Man 
having  a  total  and  absolute  dependence  upon  God,  God  might  govern 
us  in  what  manner  it  pleased  him ;    for  it  is  just  '  that  one  may 
do  with  his  own  what  he  will/  Mat.  xx.  15.     But  what  hath  the  Lord 
required  of  thee,  but  to  love  him  and  serve  him  ?     Not  to  pluck  the 
stars  from  the  sky,  or  to  guide  the  chariot  of  the  sun,  not  such  sub 
limity  of  knowledge  and  learning,  nor  such  a  quantity  and  proportion 
of  alms,  nor  to  lance  thyself,  or  offer  thy  first-born,  nor  rivers  of  oil, 
nor  thousands  of  rams,  for  a  burnt-offering  :  Micah  vi.  8,  '  He  hath 
showed  thee,  0  man,  what  is  good ;  and  what  doth  the  Lord  require  of 
thee,  but  to  do  justly,  and  to  love  mercy,  and  to  walk  humbly  with 
thy  God  ? '    The  Lord's  commands  are  not  rigid  and  severe  and  un 
reasonable,  but  sweet  and  desirable,  that  we  should  do  wrong  to  none, 
do  good  to  all,  and  maintain  communion  with  him;    and  is  this 
burthensome  ?      Go  try  the  drunkard's  life  and  the  adulterer's  life  ; 
you  will  see  the  temperate,  the  chaste,  have  much  the  sweeter  life  of  it. 
Therefore  let  there  not  be  one  disallowing  thought  of  what  God  hath 
required.     Could  we  bring  you  to  esteem  the  word,  other  things  would 
come  on  more  easily. 

3.  Own  it  and  improve  it  as  a  faithful  word,  building  upon  the  pro 
mises,  fearing  the  threats  thereof.     The  word  will  not  deceive  them 
that  are  ruled  by  it.     Consider  your  condition,  and  what  will  be  the 
event  of  things.     There  is  a  curiosity  in  men  to  know  their  own  des 
tiny.     We  may  easily  know  what  shall  become  of  us  by  the  word  of 
God  ;  and  if  men  were  not  more  curious  to  know  their  end  than  care 
ful  to  amend  their  lives,  they  need  not  seek  any  other  oracle :  Kom. 
viii.  13,  '  For  if  ye  live  after  the  flesh,  ye  shall  die  ;  but  if  ye  through 
the  Spirit  do  mortify  the  deeds  of  the  body,  ye  shall  live/     So  for  the 
end  of  any  action  ;  if  the  word  of  God  say  it  will  be  bitter  in  the  latter 
end,  though  it  bring  profit  and  pleasure  for  a  while,  believe  it  against 
all  the  wicked  men  in  the  world,  and  say,  I  do  more  believe  this  one 
text  and  place  of  scripture  than  all  that  men  can  do  and  say.     Mind 
the  great  duties  of  the  gospel,  and  venture  your  souls  in  Christ's  hands 
upon  these  terms  :  1  Tim.  i.  15,  '  This  is  a  faithful  saying,  and  worthy 
of  all  acceptation,  that  Christ  Jesus  came  into  the  world  to  save  sin 
ners,  of  whom  I  am  chief/     I  have  nothing  but  God's  word,  yet  I  will 
venture  my  salvation,  my  all,  upon  it,  upon  his  bare  word.     Comfort 
yourselves  in  the  midst  of  difficulties  with  the  truth  of  God's  word, 
when  all  sense  and  outward  seeming  is  contrary  to  the   promise. 
Before  a  promise  be  accomplished  there  will  be  unlikelihoods.      I 
will  instance  in  Paul's  prediction :  Acts  xxvii.  24-26,  '  Lo,  God  hath 
given  thee  all  them  that  sail  with  thee.     Wherefore,  sirs,  be  of  good 
cheer:  for  I  believe  God,  that  it  shall  be  even  as  it  was  told  me. 
Howbeit  we  must   be   cast  upon  a  certain  island/  &c.      Yet  how 
many  difficulties  came  to  pass  !     First,  no  isle  appeareth ;  they  are 
tossed  in  the  Adriatic  sea  for  fourteen  days  together ;  they  knew  not 
where  they  were,  nor  whither  they  did  go.     Thus  doth  God  delay  the 
accomplishment  of  the  promise  ;  they  know  not  how  nor  which  way  it 
shall  be  made  good.     Another  difficulty  was,  that,  meeting  with  some 
isle,  it  fell  out  in  the  night-time  ;  they  deemed  they  drew  near  to  some 
country,  but  yet  feared  they  should  be  split  upon  the  rocks,  ver.  30  ;  the 


464  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEB.  CLV. 

siiipmeu  were  ready  to  flee  out  of  the  ship,  leave  Paul  and  his  fellows 
in  danger,  upon  pretence  of  casting  out  anchors  out  of  the  fore-stern, 
and  so  they  were  ready  to  miscarry  in  the  haven.  When  this  difficulty 
was  over,  and  it  was  day,  they  were  not  able  to  row  to  land,  because 
of  their  long  fasting,  having  eaten  little  or  nothing  for  fourteen  days. 
Another  difficulty  was,  when  they  would  have  thrust  the  ship  ashore 
it  was  broken  all  in  pieces,  what  with  high  banks  and  two  seas  meet 
ing.  Another  difficulty  was,  when  they  were  to  swim  to  land,  they 
think  of  killing  the  prisoners,  and  the  captain,  willing  to  save  Paul, 
kept  them  from  their  purpose,  and  so  they  escaped  all  to  land.  There 
fore  do  not  distrust  the  word  ;  but  especially  bear  up  with  the  hope  of 
eternal  life,  though  remote  and  in  another  world,  which  we  never  saw: 
Heb.  XL  13,  '  These  all  died  in  faith,  not  having  received  the  promises, 
but  having  seen  them  afar  off,  and  were  persuaded  of  them,  and  em 
braced  them ;'  Bom.  ii.  7,  '  To  them  who,  by  patient  continuance  in 
well-doing,  seek  for  life,  and  glory,  and  immortality,  eternal  life.'  You 
will  meet  with  bitter  conflicts,  heavy  troubles,  sad  desertions  ;  yet  re 
member  God's  word  is  a  faithful  word,  and  let  this  cheer  and  revive 
you. 

Use  2.  Express  these  virtues  of  the  word.  We  must  be  righteous 
and  true  if  the  word  of  Grod  be  so,  for  the  impression  must  answer  the 
seal  and  stamp :  Bom.  vi.  17, '  But  God  be  thanked  that  ye  were  the 
servants  of  sin ;  but  ye  have  obeyed  from  the  heart  that  form  of  doc 
trine  which  was  delivered  you;'  2  Cor.  iil  3,  '  Ye  are  declared  to  be 
the  epistle  of  Christ,  ministered  by  us,  written  not  with  ink,  but  with 
the  Spirit  of  the  living  God ;  not  in  tables  of  stone,  but  in  fleshly  tables 
of  the  heart ;'  PhiL  ii.  16,  '  Holding  fast  the  word  of  life,  that  I  may 
rejoice  in  the  day  of  Christ,  that  1  have  not  run  in  vain,  neither 
laboured  in  vain.'  A  Christian  is  the  Bible  exemplified  ;  such  a  con 
formity  there  must  be  there  to  the  law  of  God ;  the  same  light  that 
shineth  forth  in  scripture  should  shine  forth  in  the  lives  of  the  godly ; 
BO  it  was  in  Hezekiah :  Lsa.  xxxviii.  3,  *  Bemember,  O  Lord,  how  I 
have  walked  before  thee  in  truth,  and  with  a  perfect  heart,  and  have 
done  that  which  is  good  in  thy  sight.'  And  of  David  it  is  said,  1  Kings 
iiL  6,  '  Thy  servant  David  walked  before  thee  in  truth,  and  righteous 
ness,  and  uprightness  of  heart' 

1.  For  righteousness,  A  Christian's  business  is  to  give  to  every 
man  his  due,  to  do  what  he  is  bound  to  do  to  God  and  man ;  Mat 
xxiL  21,  to  '  render  to  Caesar  the  things  that  are  Caesar's,  and  to  God 
the  tilings  that  are  GodV  Whether  by  the  law  of  nature :  I  Tim.  v. 
8, '  If  any  provide  not  for  his  own,  and  especially  for  them  of  his  own 
house,  he  hath  denied  the  faith,  and  is  worse  than  an  infideL'  Or  by 
relation,  as  Boaz  did  the  part  of  a  kinsman  to  Buth :  Buth  iiL  13, 
'  Tarry  this  night,  and  it  shall  be  in  the  morning,  that  if  he  will  per 
form  unto  thee  the  part  of  a  kinsman,  well ;  let  him  do  the  kinsman's 
part:  but  if  he  will  not  do  the  part  of  a  kinsman,  then  will  I  do  the 
part  of  a  kinsman  to  thee,  as  the  Lord  liveth.'  Or  by  place  or  station : 
Heh.  vL  11, '  And  I  said,  Should  such  a  man  as  I  flee  ?  and  who  is 
there  that,  being  as  I  am,  would  go  into  the  temple  to  save  his  life  ? 
I  will  not  go  in.'  Or  by  paction  or  agreement :  <  '  Masters, 

give  to  your  servants  that  which  is  just  and  equal'  Or  according  to 


VER.  139.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  435 

rules  of  prudence,  equity,  charity  :  Phil.  iv.  5,  '  Let  your  moderation,* 
TO  eVtei/ce?, '  be  known  unto  all  men  ;'  whether  it  be  fear  or  honour  that 
he  due  :  Rom.  xiii.  7,  '  Render  therefore  to  all  their  dues,  tribute  to 
whom  tribute  is  due,  custom  to  whom  custom,  fear  to  whom  fear, 
honour  to  whom  honour.'  Or  good-will :  ver.  8,  c  Owe  no  man  any 
thing,  but  to  love  one  another/ 

2.  For  truth.  You  are  to  adhere  to  the  truth,  *  not  to  be  carried 
about  with  every  wind  of  doctrine,  by  the  sleight  of  men,  and  cunning 
craftiness,  whereby  they  lie  in  wait  to  deceive ;  but,  speaking  the  truth 
in  love,  ye  may  grow  up  into  him  in  all  things,  which  is  the  head, 
even  Christ/  Eph.  iv.  14,  15.  To  speak  nothing  but  truth  in  your 
ordinary  communication  :  Eph.  iv.  25,  *  Wherefore,  putting  away 
lying,  speak  every  man  truth  with  his  neighbour/  To  perform  what 
jou  promise,  though  to  your  loss  :  Ps.  xv.  4,  *  He  sweareth  to  his  own 
hurt,  and  changeth  not'  Thus  should  the  whole  course  of  our  lives 
express  the  properties  of  the  word. 

Use  3.  To  show  the  reason  why  men  are  so  backward  in  obedience, 
so  prone  to  what  is  evil,  so  uncomfortable  in  trouble.  We  do  not  be 
lieve  that  the  testimony  of  God  is  righteous  and  true,  very  true,  every 
tittle  of  it ;  but  we  are  slow  of  heart  to  believe ;  therefore  is  the  faith 
fulness  and  truth  of  the  word  inculcated.  Christ  saith, '  Believest  thou 
this  ? '  John  xi.  25.  Could  we  believe  the  word  more,  what  advantage 
should  we  have  in  the  spiritual  life !  what  fear  of  God !  what  joy  of 
faith!  what  readiness  of  obedience!  But  we  cannot  depend  upon 
God's  word,  and  therefore  are  easily  shaken  in  mind.  Our  hearts  are 
like  a  sea,  one  wave  riseth  up  after  another.  We  must  be  fed  with 
sense,  and  God  must  do  all  immediately,  or  else  we  are  apt  to  sink 
under  our  discouragements. 


SERMON  CLVI. 

My  zeal  hath  consumed  me,  because  mine  enemies  have  forgotten  thy 
words.— VER.  139. 

IN  these  words  you  may  observe— (1.)  Two  different  persons;  (2.)  A 
different  carriage  mentioned. 

1.  Two  different  persons  are  spoken  of,  David  and  his  enemies.  By 
enemies  is  not  to  be  understood  those  only  that  were  troublesome  to 
himself,  but  those  who  were  an  opposite  party  to  God,  who  opposed 
themselves  against  God  and  godliness;  these  without  any  breach  of 
the  law  of  love  may  be  counted  enemies  :  Ps.  cxxxix.  21,  22,  '  Do  not 
I  hate  them,  0  Lord,4hat  hate  thee?  And  am  not  I  grieved  with 
those  that,  rise  up  against  thee  ?  I  hate  them  with  a  perfect  hatred  ; 
I  count  them  mine  enemies.''  It  is  a  comfort  and  satisfaction  to  the 
sodly  to  have  no  enemies  to  themselves  but  such  as  are  enemies  to  God 
also,  such  as  rise  up  against  God. 

±  There  is  a  different  carriage  mentioned,  and  ascribed  to  these  two 
parties  ;  on  the  one  side,  oblivion  and  forgettulness  of  God's  law ;  on  the 
other  side,  zeal.  > 

VOL.  VIII. 


466  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CLVL 

[1.]  On  the  enemies'  part,  oblivion  and  forge tfulness  of  God's  word. 
The  word  of  God  is  not  effectual  usually,  but  where  it  is  hid  in  recent 
memory.  They  '  have  forgotten  thy  word ; '  a  proper  phrase  to  set 
forth  them  in  the  bosom  of  the  visible  church  who  do  not  wholly  deny 
and  reject  the  word  and  rule  of  scripture,  but  yet  live  as  though  they 
had  forgotten  it ;  they  do  not  observe  it,  as  if  God  had  never  spoken 
any  such  thing,  or  given  them  any  such  rule.  They  that  reject  and 
contemn  such  things  as  thy  word  enforceth,  surely  do  not  remember 
to  do  them. 

[2.]  On  David's  part  here  is  mentioned  zeal,  or  a  flagrant  affection, 
which  is  set  forth — (1.)  By  the  vehemency  of  it ;  (2.)  By  the  cause 
of  it. 

(1.)  By  the  vehemency  of  it,  '  My  zeal  hath  consumed  me.'  It  was 
no  small  zeal  that  David  had,  but  a  consuming  zeal.  Vehement  affec 
tions  exhaust  and  consume  the  vital  spirits,  and  waste  the  body.  The 
like  expression  is  used,  Ps.  Ixviii.  9,  '  The  zeal  of  thy  house  hath  eaten 
me  up.'  Strength  of  holy  affection  works  many  times  upon  the  body 
as  well  as  the  soul,  especially  zeal,  which  is  a  high  degree  of  love,  and 
vents  itself  by  a  mixture  of  grief  and  anger.  What  a  man  loves,  he 
would  have  it  respected,  and  is  grieved  when  it  is  dishonoured  and 
under  disrepute.  Both  have  an  influence  upon  this  consuming,  this 
wasting  of  the  spirits  that  is  spoken  of  in  the  text,  because  they  had 
lessened  and  obscured  the  glory  of  God,  and  violated  his  law ;  and 
there  was  in  him  a  holy  care,  ardour,  and  earnest  endeavour  to  rectify 
this  abuse,  and  awaken  them  out  of  their  security,  and  reduce  them 
to  their  duty. 

(2.)  Here  was  the  cause  of  it.  Why  was  David  so  much  wasted, 
pined,  consumed,  and  troubled  ?  Because  they  '  have  forgotten  thy 
word ; '  the  contempt  of  God,  and  the  offence  of  God  sat  nearest  his 
heart;  as  if  he  had  said,  I  should  more  patiently  bear  the  injury  done 
to  myself,  but  I  cannot  be  coldly  affected  where  thy  glory,  0  Lord,  is 
concerned ;  since  I  have  had  a  taste  of  thy  grace,  and  felt  the  benefit 
of  thy  word,  I  cannot  endure  it  should  be  contemned,  and  it  much 
moves  me  to  see  creatures  so  mad  upon  their  own  destruction,  and  to 
make  so  light  of  thy  salvation.  Thus  was  David  consumed,  not  at  the 
sight  of  his  own,  but  at  other  men's  sins  ;  and  not  at  others  in  general, 
but  them,  his  enemies,  that  they  should  make  void  the  law  of  God.  Such 
was  his  love  to  the  word,  that  he  could  not  endure  the  contempt  and 
violation  of  it ;  and  such  was  his  compassion  to  the  souls  of  men,  that 
it  grieved  him  exceedingly  to  see  any  of  the  workmanship  of  God  to 
perish,  to  be  captivated  to  the  world,  to  be  made  factors  for  the  devil, 
and  fuel  for  hell-fire,  and  to  be  so  violent  for  their  own  destruction. 

Doct.  That  great  and  pure  zeal  becomes  those  that  have  any  affec 
tion  for  the  word  and  for  the  ways  of  God. 

Here  is  a  great  zeal ;  for  David  saith,  '.  My  zeal  hath  consumed  me;' 
it  preyed  upon  his  spirit.  And  here  is  a  pure  zeal,  for  he  mentions 
not  personal  injuries,  but  disrespect  to  God's  word.  When  the  same 
men  are  our  enemies  and  God's  enemies,  we  should  be  more  zealous 
for  God's  cause  than  our  own.  Now  both  the  greatness  and  purity  of 
his  zeal  did  arise  from  his  love  to  the  word,  as  appears  from  the  pre 
cedent  and  subsequent  verses.  In  the  precedent  verses  he  had  told 


VER.  139.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  467 

them,  '  Just  and  upright  are  thy  testimonies,  and  very  faithful,'  there 
fore 'my  zeal  hath  consumed  me,'  because  this  word  should  be  slighted  and 
contemned.  And  it  appears  also  from  the  following  verse,  '  Thy  word 
is  very  pure :  therefore  thy  servant  loveth  it.'  He  was  troubled  to  see 
such  a  holy  and  pure  word  to  be  trampled  under  foot,  and  especially 
that  those  seem  to  disown  it  (he  doth  not  say  they  deny  it)  who  had 
generally  professed  to  live  under  this  rule  ;  that  they  made  light  and 
disregarded  the  precepts,  in  which  I  found  so  much  comfort  and  delight. 
In  the  prosecution  of  this  point  I  shall — 

1.  Show  what  is  true  zeal. 

2.  Why  all  that  love  the  word  should  have  this  great  and  pure  zeal. 
First,  What  is  true  zeal  ?     There  is  a  carnal  zeal  and  there  is  a 

spiritual  zeal. 

1.  The  carnal  zeal  (to  begin  with  that)  is  threefold : — 
[1.]  That  which  comes  from  an  ill  cause,  and  produceth  ill  effects. 
An  ill  cause,  as  hatred  of  men's  persons,  or  envy  at  their  gifts  and 
excellences,  or  their  success  and  happiness  in  the  world :  James  iii.  14, 
'  If  ye  have  bitter  envying  in  your  hearts.'  It  is  Trucpov  iffihov,  if  you 
have  bitter  zeal  in  your  hearts.  There  is  a  kind  of  bitter  zeal,  and 
malignity  at  their  excellency,  whether  gifts,  graces,  rank,  dignity  in 
the  world.  And  in  ver.  16  he  tells  us  this  bitter  zeal  produceth  con 
fusion  and  every  evil  work.  To  be  consumed  and  eaten  out  with  envy 
is  little  commendable.  This  is  not  the  zeal  of  the  text.  With  this 
zeal  were  the  chief  priests  rilled  when  they  saw  that  the  gospel  came 
into  some  reputation,  and  that  the  people,  do  what  they  could,  did 
haunt  and  frequent  it.  We  read,  Acts  v.  17,  &ir\q<r0ijiriiif  QrjXov.  We 
render  it,  They  were  filled  with  indignation ;  it  is  in  the  Greek  and  in 
the  margin,  They  were  filled  with  zeal ;  with  this  bitter  zeal,  malignity, 
envy,  indignation,  they  would  bestir  themselves  to  suppress  the  grow 
ing  gospel  by  all  the  means  that  possibly  they  could. 

[2.]  There  is  another  sort  of  carnal  zeal  which  hath  an  ill  object, 
though  it  may  be  a  good  cause  from  whence  it  proceeds,  such  as  an 
ignorant  zeal,  which  proceeds  from  some  love  to  that  which  men  call 
religion,  but  falsely ;  and  so  the  apostle  saith,  Rom.  x.  2,  '  I  bear  them 
witness  that  they  have  a  zeal  of  God,  but  not  according  to  knowledge;' 
and  such  a  zeal  had  Paul  when  he  was  a  pharisee.  He  gives  an 
account  of  it,  Gal.  i.  12-14, '  How  that  beyond  measure  I  persecuted 
the  church  of  God,  being  more  exceedingly  zealous  of  the  traditions 
of  my  fathers.'  Paul  was  a  man  that  never  acted  against  his  con 
science,  no,  not  when  he  was  a  pharisee ;  he  still  acted  according  to 
his  light;  but  when  he  was  blinded  by  pharisaical  prejudices,  he 
wasted  the  church  of  God,  and  was  exceedingly  zealous  for  a  false 
religion.  Thus  is  such  a  zeal  as  possibly  might  have  a  tolerable 
cause,  but  it  had  a  bad  object,  a  zeal  about  the  dictates  of  a  deluded 
conscience,  and  this  zeal,  perniciosior  est,  quo  flagmntior ,  is  the  more 
pernicious  the  more  earnest  it  is.  It  hath  often  raised  confusions  in 
the  church,  when  men  are  led  with  a  blind  zeal  they  think  for  God ;  if 
they  be  under,  then  they  make  divisions ;  if  they  get  a-top,  then  they 
are  persecuting  and  oppressing.  This  is  the  zeal  of  a  deluded  con 
science.  In  short,  zeal  must  have  a  right  object,  otherwise  it  may  be 
great,  but  cannot  be  good,  pure,  and  holy. 


468  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [&ER.  CLVI. 

[3.]  Another  false  zeal  is  when  it  hath  no  ill  object,  but  it  exceeds 
in  the  measure  and  degree,  and  is  far  beyond  the  weight  of  the  thing 
that  it  is  laid  out  upon.  This  is  a  superstitious,  a  trifling  zeal,  which 
runs  out  to  externals,  and  is  altogether  employed  about  lesser  things  of 
religion,  as  the  pharisees,  Mat.  xxiii.  23,  that  made  a  great  business 
about  a  small  matter,  tithing  mint,  and  anise,  and  cummin,  but 
neglected  weighty  duties,  faith,  judgment,  righteousness,  and  the  great 
things  of  the  kingdom  of  God.  The  apostle  tells  u?,,  Rom.  xiv.  17, 
'  The  kingdom  of  God  is  not  meat  and  drink,'  in  being  of  this  party 
and  that ;  many  all  their  care  and  strength  of  their  souls  runs  out  in 
matters  of  less  importance,  keeping  up  a  party  and  faction  in  religion ; 
we  should  first  make  conscience  of  principal  matters.  Superstitious 
scrupulosity  is  always  damageful,  like  those  that  come  into  a  shop  to 
buy  a  pennyworth  of  a  commodity,  and  steal  a  pound's  worth.  Oh ! 
they  have  a  great  zeal  for  lesser  things  when  it  runs  out  mightily  about 
outward  things,  either  for  that  or  against  that ;  and  in  the  meantime 
they  cherish  the  world,  pride,  envy,  carnal  evil  affections,  that  are 
destructive  to  and  the  bane  of  godliness. 

2.  There  is  a  spiritual  holy  zeal  which  we  may  describe — (1.)  By 
its  cause ;  (2.)  by  its  object ;  (3.)  by  its  effects ;  (4.)  by  its  use  as 
to  public  reformation;  (5.)  as  to  its  use  as  to  Christians'  private 
exercises,  to  carry  on  the  spiritual  life  with  fervour,  warmth,  and 
vigour. 

[1.]  I  am  to  speak  of  the  cause  of  it.  The  true  cause  of  holy  zeal 
is  love  to  God  and  what  belongs  to  God.  Zeal  is  ferventis  amoris 
gradus,  a  higher  degree  of  love  ;  it  is  the  fervour  of  divine  charity. 
We  should  mark  still  what  spirit  inflames  the  zeal  that  we  have. 
Every  man  is  eaten  up  with  one  kind  of  zeal  or  another.  The  zeal  of 
the  world  eats  up  many,  Ps.  cxxvii.  2.  They  bereave  their  souls  of 
good,  and  all  for  a  little  pelf ;  they  work  in  the  fires,  they  load  them 
selves  with  thick  clay.  The  zeal  of  the  flesh  inflames  many ;  they 
are  mad  upon  carnal  delights,  can  let  go  all  considerations  so  as  they 
may  fulfil  their  lusts ;  they  are  consumed  with  these  kind  of  zeals. 
Another  spirit  should  be  working  in  us,  a  zeal  for  God ;  and  that 
comes  from  an  entire  love  to  God.  When  the  soul  doth  heartily 
and  earnestly  love  God  above  all,  then  there  is  a  strong  desire  of  pro 
moting  God's  glory  and  interest ;  there  should  be  that  spirit  which 
breathes  in  our  zeal,  and  with  this  zeal  should  we  be  eaten  up  and 
spent.  Now  they  that  love  God  will  love  all  them  which  belong  to 
God.  Friends  have  all  things  common,  so  it  is  between  us  and  God  ; 
the  injuries  done  to  him  will  be  as  grievous  to  us  as  if  they  were  done 
to  ourselves  :  Ps.  Ixix.  9,  *  For  the  zeal  of  thine  house  hath  eaten  me 
up,  and  the  reproaches  of  them  that  reproached  thee  are  fallen  upon 
me  ; '  and  the  glory  that  comes  to  them  is  as  acceptable  as  if  some 
great  benefit  had  come  to  us  :  Acts  xv.  3,  '  Declaring  the  conversion 
of  the  Gentiles,  and  they  caused  great  joy  unto  all  the  brethren.'  Oh ! 
this  is  great  joy  to  a  gracious  soul  when  God's  interest  thrives  in  the 
world.  Oh !  this  is  that  they  would  willingly  hear  spoken  of ;  their 
hearts  are  upon  it,  when  God's  interest  stands  or  falls,  such  an  earnest 
desire  of  the  glory  of  God,  which  is  the  highest  degree  and  measure  of 
love  to  God. 


VER.  139.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  469 

[2.]  Let  us  speak  of  the  object  of  zeal.  In  three  things  God's 
interest  lies  in  the  world,  viz.,  his  truth,  his  worship,  and  his  servants. 
Now  it  is  not  enough  to  have  zeal  that  we  do  not  oppose  any 
of  these,  but  they  must  be  tenderly  regarded  and  looked  after, 
and  we  must  be  affected  with  these  things  as  we  would  with  our 
own  concernments.  When  wrongs  are  offered  to  any  of  these,  either 
to  God's  truth,  his  worship,  or  his  servants,  they  must  go  more 
nearly  to  our  hearts  than  any  personal  injuries  done  to  ourselves. 
What  we  cannot  remedy  we  must  mourn  for.  All  these  three  concur 
in  Elijah's  speech  :  1  Kings  xix.  10,  '  I  have  been  very  jealous  for  the 
Lord  God  of  hosts ; '  there  is  his  zeal.  Why  ?  '  For  the  children  of 
Israel  have  forsaken  thy  covenant ; '  there  is  his  truth  perverted  : 
'  they  have  thrown  down  thy  altars ; '  there  is  his  worship  overturned : 
'  they  have  slain  thy  prophets  with  the  sword  ; '  there  his  servants  are 
wronged.  So  that  zeal  mainly  is  concerned  when  God  suffers  loss  in 
any  of  these  things.  If  his  truth  be  perverted,  his  worship  overturned, 
his  servants  be  despitefully  used,  vexed,  and  grieved,  then  zeal  pre 
sently  shows  itself  in  opposing  these  things,  or  in  grieving  for  them. 

(1.)  Zeal  seeks  to  preserve  the  truth  of  God  inviolable.  Truth  is  a 
precious  depositum,  trust,  and  charge  which  God  hath  committed  to 
the  keeping  of  his  people  ;  and  without  zeal  to  defend  and  propagate 
and  maintain  it,  though  with  the  greatest  hazard,  it  will  never  be  kept, 
and  you  will  never  be  faithful  to  God.  We  are  a  kind  of  feoffees  for 
the  present  age,  and  trustees  for  the  future  ;  and  the  charge  of  God's 
truth  is  put  into  our  hands,  and  we  must  see  it  be  transmitted  to  the 
world  pure  and  undefiled.  Therefore,  Jude  3,  eVo/y wv i£ecr#at,  'We  must 
contend  earnestly  for  the  faith  which  was  once  delivered  unto  the 
saints.'  When  others  would  violate  the  truth  we  must  contend  with 
them  :  Jer.  ix.  3,  '  They  are  not  valiant  for  the  truth.'  A  Christian 
needs  not  only  the  labour  of  an  ox,  that  he  may  be  diligent,  but  the 
valour  of  a  lion,  that  he  may  appear  for  God  in  defence  of  his  truth 
when  it  is  invaded  and  encroached  upon.  And  especially  doth  this 
concern  the  officers  of  the  church  ;  this  zeal  they  should  have  for  the 
word  :  Titus  i.  9,  avrexopevov,  '  Holding  fast  the  faithful  word.' 
The  word  signifies  to  be  good  at  holding  and  drawing ;  that  is,  when 
others  would  wrest  it  out  of  our  hands,  we  should  hold  it  fast ;  as  a 
staff  that  another  would  take  out  of  our  hands,  we  hold  it  faster  and 
wrestle  with  him.  So  should  we  wrestle,  contend,  and  hold  fast  the 
truth,  when  others  would  draw  it  from  us.  And  Phil.  i.  27,  '  Striving 
together  for  the  faith  of  the  gospel/  Oh  1  we  should  not  let  one  dust 
of  truth  perish.  This  is  to  be  zealous  for  the  truth,  standing  to, 
and  striving  for  the  defence  thereof,  in  our  way  and  place.  If  God  had 
not  raised  up  zealous  instruments  in  every  age  to  plead  for  his  truth, 
what  a  sad  case  would  the  church  have  been  in  ?  Truth  would  have 
been  buried  under  a  great  heap  of  prejudices,  and  Christ's  kingdom 
have  been  crushed  in  the  very  egg,  and  religion  strangled  in  the 
cradle.  But  there  is  a  cloud  of  witnesses  gone  before  us.  In  every 
age  God  sets  up  some  of  all  sexes,  ages,  conditions,  that  have  owned 
his  despised  and  oppugned  truths,  and  have  not  counted  their  lives 
dear,  so  as  they  might  give  their  testimony  to  the  truth  of  God,  Rev. 
xii.  11,  and  have  more  greedily  embraced  martyrdom  than  others 


470  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CX1X.  [SfiR.  CLVT. 

honours  and  dignities  in  the  church ;  as  Sulpicius  Severus  observes, 
they  have  with  greater  desire  affected  the  glory  of  martyrdom  and 
suffering  for  the  truth,  that  they  might  be  faithful  to  God  and  the 
souls  of  men  in  future  ages,  and  to  preserve  God's  truth  inviolate  ; 
they  have  greedily  sought  this  honour  to  suffer  for  God.  And  Ignatius, 
he  could  say,  Come,  saith  he,  I  desire  the  beasts  that  are  prepared 
should  be  let  loose  for  me  ;  it  is  better  to  die  for  Christ  than  to  com 
mand  the  ends  of  the  earth.  And  Basil,  when  the  Arian  emperor 
threatened  those  that  did  oppose  his  religion  should  die  the  death, 
The  wild  beasts,  let  them  be  let  out ;  would  to  God  it  were  so,  that  I 
had  the  honour  to  die  for  the  truth  of  Christ !  This  was  notably  for 
the  increase  of  Christ's  kingdom,  and  thus  the  Lord  hath  inspired  his 
people  with  a  holy  love  and  zeal. 

(2.)  For  his  worship,  that  that  may  not  be  corrupted,  but  his 
institutions  kept  pure.  Zeal  is  conversant  about  that  too  :  Exod.  xx. 
5,  '  Thou  shalt  not  bow  down  thyself  to  them,  nor  serve  them  ;  for  1 
the  Lord  thy  God  am  a  jealous  God/  In  the  first  commandment, 
God  forbids  a  false  god  ;  in  the  second,  he  forbids  the  false  means  of 
worship,  as  before  the  false  object.  Now,  because  the  means  of  worship 
are  apt  to  be  perverted,  the  Lord  shows  how  jealous  he  was  for  his 
worship:  'lama  jealous  God;'  if  the  institutions  of  God  be  perverted, 
then  '  I  will  visit  the  iniquity  of  the  fathers  upon  the  children  unto 
the  third  and  fourth  generation  of  them  that  hate  me.'  The  children 
are  considered  in  that  commandment,  because  usually  the  interest  of 
families  is  our  great  snare,  when  an  idol  is  set  up,  or  a  false  means  of 
worship.  The  chiefest  false  worship  is  an  idol ;  and  the  greatest  sin 
is  put  for  all  the  rest,  before  an  idol,  the  imagination  or  invention  of 
men,  when  that  is  set  up.  The  Lord  speaks  of  the  interest  of  families, 
because  men  are  apt  to  think  they  shall  undo  them  and  their  families 
if  they  contend  in  this  matter.  Now,  be  you  zealous  of  my  worship, 
for  I  will  visit  the  iniquity  of  the  fathers  upon  the  children.  That  the 
interest  of  families  might  not  abate  our  zeal,  the  Lord  takes  the  family 
into  the  curse  for  the  violation,  and  likewise  into  the  blessing  for  zeal 
for  his  institutions.  And  so  Christ  saith,  John  ii.  17,  '  The  zeal  of  thy 
house  hath  eaten  me  up.'  We  should  be  zealous  for  God's  worship. 
Ministers  should  preach  zealously,  and  magistrates  govern  zealously  to 
purge  God's  house,  and  Christians  pray  zealously ;  every  one  of  us,  as 
far  as  the  bounds  of  our  calling  will  permit,  should  be  zealous  for 
God's  worship.  Quis  comeditur  zelo  Domus  Dei  ?  saith  Austin — who 
is  he  that  is  eaten  out  with  the  zeal  of  God's  house  ?  He  that  desires 
that  no  human  invention  may  be  blended  and  mixed  with  God's 
worship,  and  would  fain  amend  what  is  amiss.  This  zeal  is  the  only 
right  and  acceptable  principle  of  reformation,  our  great  indignation 
against  all  false  worship  whatever.  I  remember  the  story  of  Valen- 
tinian,  who  was  afterwards  emperor,  when  according  to  the  duty  of  his 
place,  being  captain  of  the  guard  to  Julian  the  apostate  and  emperor, 
he  was  engaged  to  attend  him  into  the  heathen  temple  of  fortune, 
and  the  priests  were  to  sprinkle  the  lustrating  and  holy  water — for  that 
ceremony  was  common  to  the  heathens  with  the  papists — and  a  drop 
of  it  lighted  upon  Valentinian,  he  struck  the  priest  that  did  it,  and 
said,  Thou  hast  defiled  me,  thou  hast  not  purged  me  (he  thought 


VER.  139.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  471 

his  garments  to  be  contaminated,  and  not  his  body  sanctified),  and  he 
tore  off  his  belt,  renounced  his  honour,  rather  than  he  would  do  any 
thing  that  should  be  contrary  to  his  religion  ;  and  for  this  Julian  sent 
him  into  banishment,  and  within  a  year  and  a  few  months,  the  story 
tells  us,  that  he  received  the  reward  of  his  holy  confession  and  own 
ing  of  Christ,  the  Koman  empire.  For  the  soldiers,  being  weary  of  this 
pagan  emperor,  as  soon  as  he  died  chose  Jovinianus  (that  had  been 
banished,  and  a  fellow  sufferer  with  him),  who  recalled  him  and  other 
Christians  from  their  exile,  and  after  having  reigned  not  full  eight 
months,  he  died,  and  "Valentinian  was  chosen  emperor  in  his  stead. 

(3.)  The  third  thing  we  should  be  zealous  for  is  God's  servants; 
when  they  are  oppressed  we  should  own  and  cherish  them,  as  good 
Obadiah  did  the  prophets,  who  '  hid  them  by  fifty  in  a  cave,  and  fed 
them  with  bread  and  water,'  1  Kings  xviii.  4 ;  and  Jonathan  owned 
David  though  his  father  was  greatly  displeased  with  him,  and  flung  a 
javelin  at  him,  1  Sam.  xx.  32;  and  Esther  pleads  for  the  Jews  when 
they  were  doomed  to  destruction,  Esther  vii.  3  ;  and  Nicodemus  pleads 
for  Christ  that  he  might  not  be  condemned  unheard :  John  vii.  50,  51, 
'When  the  council  was  ready  to  condemn  him,  Nicodemus  saith  to 
them  (he  that  came  to  Jesus  by  night,  being  one  of  them),  Doth  our 
law  judge  any  man  before  it  hear  him?  And  then  they  went  their 
way.'  That  stopped  the  persecution  for  that  time.  Certainly  they 
have  little  zeal  for  God,  that  can  see  good  men  perish  before  their  eyes, 
and  have  not  a  word  to  speak  for  them.  This  Nicodemus,  that  was 
before  infirm  and  weak,  that  sneaked  unto  Christ,  that  came  to  him 
by  night,  gets  courage  in  the  time  of  need  to  speak  for  Christ. 

[3.]  What  are  the  acts  of  zeal  with  respect  to  these  objects  ? 

(1.)  It  quickens  us  to  our  duty,  and  makes  us  publicly  active  for 
God :  Gal.  iv.  18,  '  It  is  good  to  be  zealously  affected  always  in  a  good 
thing/  Oh !  how  remiss  and  sluggish  would  we  be  otherwise  in  mat 
ters  of  God's  kingdom  and  glory,  if  we  had  not  a  strong  degree  of  love 
to  stir  us  up  to  appear  for  God,  in  the  worst  times,  and  in  the  way 
and  places  that  is  proper  for  us  !  Paul  when  he  saw  the  whole  city 
given  to  idolatry,  it  is  said,  his  '  spirit  was  stirred  in  him,'  Acts  xvii. 
16  ;  he  could  not  contain  ;  and  again,  Acts  xviii.  5,  Paul '  was  pressed 
in  spirit,  and  testified  to  the  Jews  that  Jesus  was  Christ.'  That  heroi- 
cal  act  of  Phinehas  when  he  saw  the  laws  of  God  broken,  and  nobody 
ready  to  vindicate  the  honour  of  God ;  he  took  a  javelin  in  his  hand 
and  thrust  the  offenders  through,  Num.  xxv.  7 ;  and  the  Lord  saith 
afterwards,  ver.  11,  '  Phineas  the  son  of  Eleazar,  the  son  of  Aaron, 
hath  turned  my  wrath  away  from  the  children  of  Israel  while  he  was 
zealous  for  my  sake  among  them,  that  I  consumed  not  the  children  of 
Israel  in  my  jealousy.'  He  had  an  extraordinary  call  to  do  that ;  he 
was  high  priest,  but  he  went  then  upon  jus  zenorum.1  So  Elijah,  1 
Kings  xviii.  40,  '  He  took  the  prophets  of  Baal  and  brought  them 
down  to  the  brook  Kishon,  and  slew  them  there/  There  was  an  ex 
traordinary  call ;  but  we  are  all  to  be  active  in  spreading  and  defend 
ing  the  truth,  and  promoting  the  purity  of  God's  worship,  and  welfare 
of  his  people,  as  far  as  our  calling  and  places  permit. 

(2.)  It  maketh  us  spare  no  cost,  yea,  it  judgeth  that  best  done  for 
God  which  costs  us  most,  as  David  would  not  serve  God  with  that 

1  So  in  the  original  edition. — ED. 


472  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.   CLVL 

which  cost  nothing,  2  Sam.  xxiv.  25.  That  is  worth  nothing  that  cost 
nothing  in  religion.  Jezebel  she  was  zealous  for  Baal,  and  maintained 
four  hundred  of  his  priests  at  her  tahle.  In  the  primitive  times  they 
gold  all  things  that  they  had,  and  had  all  things  common :  and  the 
Israelites  they  offered  so  plentifully  to  the  tabernacle,  that  Moses  was 
fain  to  forbid  them,  to  put  a  stop,  because  there  was  enough  given  for 
the  advancement  of  God's  worship,  Exod.  xxxviii.  8.  And  therefore 
certainly  they  are  cold,  and  have  little  zeal  for  God,  that  love  as  the 
Corinthians  did,  c&anravov  evayyeXiov,  a  gospel  without  charges,  would 
be  at  no  cost  for  Christ.  This  was  Paul's  case  ;  there  the  poor  saints 
of  Macedonia  which  had  but  from  hand  to  mouth,  they  ministered  to 
him,  and  maintained  him  when  he  was  at  Corinth,  a  rich  and  opulent 
town.  Paul  would  depart  from  his  right  rather  than  prejudice  the 
gospel.  Therefore  they  that  will  be  at  no  cost  for  Christ,  maintaining 
his  truth,  upholding  his  worship,  relieving  his  people,  have  no  zeal. 

(3.)  It  vents  itself  by  holy  grief  and  anger  when  any  of  these  are 
violated.  (1.)  With  holy  grief.  We  should  be  touched,  and  that  to  the 

r'ck,  with  other  men's  sins,  when  they  neglect  their  duty,  pervert  all 
t  is  right  and  honest,  and  seem  not  to  be  concerned  with  the  glory 
of  God,  1  Peter  ii.  7,  8.  It  is  said  of  Lot,  '  his  righteous  soul  was 
vexed '  at  the  wickedness  of  the  Sodomites  ;  and  '  he  vexed  himself/ 
not  with  Sodom's  injuries,  but  with  Sodom's  impurities ;  he  could  not 
redress  the  evils,  but  he  mourns  for  them.  So  the  prophet  Jeremiah 
for  the  stubbornness  of  the  people :  Jer.  xiii.  17,  '  But  if  ye  will  not 
hear  it,  my  soul  shall  weep  in  secret  places  for  your  pride,  and  mine 
eye  shall  weep  sore/  &c.  Though  they  would  not  hearken,  amend,  nor 
any  way  regard  these  things,  yet  it  grieved  him  exceedingly.  So  you 
shall  see  the  like  of  Ezra,  chap.  x.  6,  '  He  mourned  because  of  the 
transgression  of  them  that  had  been  carried  away/  The  transgression 
of  God's  people  was  very  grievous  to  him.  Thus  we  read  of  Eli,  1 
Sam.  iv.  13,  '  Eli  sat  by  the  wayside  watching ;  for  his  heart  trem 
bled  for  the  ark  of  God/  The  glory  of  God  was  dear  to  him ;  and 
when  religion  is  in  danger,  God  dishonoured,  it  leaves  a  mighty  im 
pression  upon  the  hearts  of  those  that  have  a  zeal  and  strong  love  to 
God.  (2.)  It  vents  itself  by  indignation  and  holy  anger ;  as  Christ 
whipped  the  buyers  and  sellers  out  of  the  temple,  and  showed  his 
divine  power  therein,  John  ii.  15.  And  *  remember  them,  0  God,  that 
defile  the  priesthood/  Neh.  xiii.  29 ;  and  Exod.  xxxii.  19.  Meek 
Moses,  yet  his  anger  waxed  hot,  and  he  cast  the  tables  out  of  his  hand ; 
and  Ezra  ix.  3,  '  When  I  heard  this  thing,  I  rent  my  garment  and  my 
mantle,  and  plucked  off  the  hair  of  my  head,  and  of  my  beard,  and 
sat  down  astonied/  Thus  deeply  are  God's  children  affected  with 
God's  public  dishonour,  though  not  occasioned  by  themselves,  but 
occasioned  by  others,  and  this  is  to  have  a  zeal  for  God. 

[4.]  The  qualifications  arid  concomitants  of  this  holy  zeal.  I  will 
name  three : — 

(1.)  It  must  be  accompanied  with  knowledge  and  discretion  ;  that 
is  to  say,  there  must  be  a  distinct  knowledge  of  the  cause  that  we  take 
up,  else  we  may  be  factors  for  the  devil's  kingdom  when  we  think  we 
are  acting  for  God,  and  be  persecuting  the  saints  when  we  think  we 
are  destroying  his  enemies.  It  must  be  out  of  the  knowledge  of  the 


VER.  139.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  473 

cause  of  the  evil  to  be  renounced  and  the  good  to  be  established. 
There  is  a  blind  zeal :  John  xvi.  2,  '  Whosoever  killeth  you  will  think 
that  he  doeth  God  service.'  The  pseudo-Christians,  the  literal  Chris 
tians,  have  a  blind  zeal  against  the  serious  Christians,  and  if  they 
can  excommunicate  them  and  throw  them  out  of  the  church  and  kill 
them,  they  think  this  is  acceptable  service  to  God.  All  this  is  blind 
zeal.  In  Rom.  x.  2,  the  apostle  saith,  '  They  have  a  zeal  of  (Jod,  but  not 
according  to  knowledge  ; '  therefore  there  must  be  light  as  well  as  heat 
in  this  fire,  else  it  is  not  the  fire  of  the  altar,  but  of  a  common  hearth ; 
nay,  we  must  not  only  know  the  truth,  but  also  the  worth  of  the  cause. 
The  truth  of  the  cause,  that  must  be  guided  still  by  wisdom,  and  we 
must  observe  all  the  seasonable  circumstances  in  discovering  ourselves 
for  God,  else  it  will  produce  strange,  evil,  and  malignant  effects,  which 
tend  much  to  the  dishonour  of  God,  and  prejudice  of  the  gospel.  Look, 
as  a  blind  horse  that  is  full  of  mettle,  but  is  always  stumbling,  so  they 
never  act  commendably  and  seasonably.  The  church  of  God  hath  had 
bitter  experience  in  all  ages  of  the  sad  effects  of  misguided  zeal ;  when 
it  hath  not  been  seasoned  with  knowledge  and  discretion  to  time 
things,  it  hath  tended  much  to  the  hindrance  of  Christ's  kingdom,  and 
the  promotion  of  Satan's  interest  in  the  world.  Christ  in  one  place 
bids  us  to  '  be  wise  as  serpents,'  Mat.  x.  1 6 ;  and  in  another  place,  not 
to  give  that  which  is  holy  to  dogs,  '  nor  cast  pearls  before  swine/  Mat. 
vii.  6 ;  otherwise  we  unprofitably  sacrifice  ourselves,  and  hinder  the 
good  which  we  would  promote.  It  was  a  grievous  thing  to  Paul,  and 
pressed  upon  his  spirit,  to  see  all  Ephesus  given  to  idolatry,  and1 
mightily  affected  with  Diana's  worship ;  yet  we  read,  Acts  xix.  10,  he 
was  two  years  at  Ephesus  before  he  spake  against  Diana ;  he  observed 
his  season  before  he  took  the  liberty  and  thought  himself  bound  to 
speak  against  that  false  worship.  The  historian  tells  us  of  Andes,  a 
Persian  bishop,  that  was  under  Varrans,  that,  having  an  unguided  zeal, 
got  some  Christians  together  to  destroy  the  temple  of  fire,  which  the 
Persians  worshipped.  Saith  Theodoret,  Not  as  he  ought  to  do ;  and 
what  is  the  issue  ?  Varrans  the  emperor,  that  was  formerly  favour 
able  to  the  Christians,  when  he  saw  they  affected  power,  and  would 
destroy  the  worship  of  the  country,  what  then  ?  He  was  filled  with 
cruel  persecution,  he  skinned  the  backs  of  some  of  the  Christians,  and 
the  faces  of  others,  drew  splinters  through  their  flesh,  used  horrible 
torments,  which  the  historian  takes  notice  of,  and  it  conduced  to  the 
total  suppression  of  the  Christian  religion.  Therefore  this  wildfire 
when  it  runs  abroad  without  discretion,  and  not  being  seasoned  with 
prudence,  it  doth  a  world  of  harm  to  the  church  of  God.  We  must 
observe  the  time,  circumstances,  and  when  it  is  most  behoveful  for  the 
glory  of  God,  the  good  of  the  church,  and  cause  we  would  promote. 
See  Videlius,  lib  i.  cap.  1. 

(2.)  This  zeal  also  must  be  mingled  with  compassion,  that  as  we 
mind  the  glory  of  God,  so  we  may  pity  deluded  souls.  When  we  are 
zealous  against  the  sin  we  must  have  commiseration  of  the  sinner,  as 
knowing  the  weaknesses  and  prejudices  of  education  that  are  inci 
dent  to  human  nature.  This  is,  to  be  sure,  most  agreeable  to  Christ's 
pattern.  He  wept  over  Jerusalem  that  stood  in  a  state  of  enmity 
to  him,  Luke  xix.  41  ;  and  when  he  was  angry  with  the  unbelief 


474  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiR.  CLVI. 

of  his  countrymen,  at  the  same  time  he  was  grieved  at  the  hard 
ness  of  their  hearts,  Mark  iii.  5.  In  Christ's  anger  there  was  more  of 
compassion  than  of  passion.  And  Samuel  he  mourned  for  Saul  when 
he  saw  him  no  more,  1  Sam.  xv.  35  ;  and  the  apostle,  when  he  had 
zealously  declaimed  against  the  false  teachers,  he  falls  a- weeping,  Phil, 
iii.  18.  When  we  show  love  to  God  there  should  not  be  a  hatred  and 
ill-will  to  the  persons  of  men,  but  we  should  bewail  their  obstinacy  and 
blindness.  Those  that  are  all  for  destruction,  and  ready  to  call  fire  from 
heaven,  they  know  not  what  spirit  they  are  of ;  they  have  a  fiery  zealotic 
spirit,  but  that  which  doth  not  become  the  temper  of  the  gospel. 

(3.)  Zeal  must  be  constant,  Gal.  iv.  18  ;  the  fire  on  the  altar  must 
never  go  out ;  we  cannot  be  without  it  for  a  moment.  There  are  some 
that  have  zeal  for  a  fit,  but  soon  grow  weary  of  it ;  they  are  zealous 
in  prosperity,  then  they  are  forward  and  active  for  God ;  but  when  it 
comes  to  trouble,  they  give  up  all  to  oppositions.  On  the  contrary, 
others  in  their  affliction  and  low  estate,  they  have  a  warm  sense  of 
religion,  but  when  they  are  all  well  at  ease,  they  are  lost  in  the  delights 
of  the  flesh,  and  drowned  in  the  cares  of  the  world,  and  their  zeal  for 
God  is  checked.  And  we  see  that  some  in  their  youth  have  a  good 
savour  and  towardliness,  and  seem  to  have  a  very  tender  conscience, 
but  after  their  first  heats  are  spent  they  are  very  careless,  and  grow 
inordinate,  and  all  their  zeal  for  God  is  gone  :  Gal.  v.  7,  *  Ye  did  run 
well ;  who  did  hinder  you,  that  ye  should  not  obey  the  truth  ? '  David 
was  as  zealous  when  the  crown  was  upon  his  head  as  when  God  humbled 
him  and  kept  him  low.  Many  think  zeal  a  cumber  as  they  increase  in 
worldly  wisdom,  and  so  cast  it  off.  Nay,  in  gross  hypocrites  you  shall 
find  this,  they  will  be  zealous  in  good  company,  and  as  vain  and  loose 
in  bad.  Let  any  grave  servant  of  God  be  there,  they  seem  to  kindle  a 
great  fire,  but  as  soon  as  they  are  gone,  they  put  it  out  again.  Ay! 
but  true  zeal  should  always  continue  and  be  of  a  lasting  and  of  an 
increasing  flame. 

[5.]  To  speak  of  the  private  and  personal  use  of  zeal,  what  need  we 
have  to  keep  up  a  warm  frame  of  heart  towards  God  and  heavenly 
things  (hitherto  we  have  considered  it  as  it  respects  God's  public 
interest) ;  it  is  also  of  private  use  both  in  resisting  of  sin,  and  perfect 
ing  holiness  in  the  fear  of  God. 

(1.)  In  resisting  of  sin.  A  man  never  doth  anything  to  purpose  in 
purging  out  sin  until  he  hath  a  zeal  for  God  :  Rev.  iii.  19,  '  Be  zealous 
therefore,  and  repent.'  Repentance  is  set  on  and  quickened  by  zeal. 
Doth  zeal,  think  you,  serve  only  to  rectify  the  disorders  of  other  men, 
and  not  our  own  ?  No,  certainly  ;  we  should  begin  at  home ;  we 
should  take  care  that  God  be  exalted  in  our  own  hearts,  as  well  as  his 
interest  be  not  infringed  in  the  world.  First  our  Saviour  adviseth  us 
to  pluck  out  the  beam  out  of  our  own  eyes,  Mat.  vii.  5.  Unless  we  be 
blameless  ourselves  we  can  have  no  confidence  or  hope  to  do  much  good 
to  others.  The  first  stone  should  be  cast  at  ourselves ;  we  should  repent 
of  our  own  sin,  our  own  lusts,  the  plague  of  our  own  heart ;  if  anything 
we  are  apt  to  allow  that  is  contrary  to  God,  this  should  be  a  great  grief 
to  us.  Unless  we  cleanse  our  own  unclean  sinks  at  home,  how  can  we 
hope  for  reformation  abroad  ?  Men  cry  out  against  public  vices,  as  the 
lapwing  will  croak  abroad  to  draw  off  the  person  from  her  own  nest ; 


VER.  139.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  475 

it  is  all  but  the  deceit  of  the  heart ;  and  usually  we  find  it  to  he  so  in 
the  world.  Most  men  are  better  acquainted  with  other  men's  duties 
than  their  own ;  with  the  magistrate's  duties  more  than  their  own, 
and  so  other  men's  sins  more  than  their  own.  But  it  is  not  so 
where  zeal  is  unfeigned ;  there  it  begins  at  home ;  they  will  allow 
nothing  in  their  own  hearts  that  may  be  contrary  to  God's  interest 
and  to  the  sovereignty  of  his  Spirit. 

(2.)  Also  in  perfecting  holiness.  The  whole  business  of  the  spiritual 
life  must  be  carried  on  in  warmth  and  vigour  :  Kom,  xii.  11,  '  Fervent 
in  spirit,  serving  the  Lord.'  It  is  ^eoz/re?  Trvevpan,  seething  hot  in 
spirit.  Nothing  done  for  God  should  be  done  negligently,  but  affec 
tionately.  To  be  lukewarm  and  key-cold,  that  makes  no  work  in 
religion  ;  but  when  a  man  hath  a  great  zeal  for  God,  oh  !  then  he  profits 
and  gets  ground,  then  sin  decays,  grace  is  strengthened,  love  is  more 
rooted  in  his  heart  every  day,  and  he  doth  more  for  God.  Paul  pro 
fited  in  the  Jewish  religion,  Gal.  i.  14.  Why  ?  Because  he  was 
'  more  zealous  than  others.'  This  is  the  man  that  will  be  the  honour 
of  God's  ordinances,  that  man  that  will  show  forth  the  virtue  and  power 
of  religion,  when  his  heart  grows  warm  for  God  and  zealous  for  God. 

Secondly,  Why  we  ought  to  look  after  a  great  and  pure  zeal,  if  we 
have  any  love  to  God  and  the  law  of  God  and  his  ways. 

1.  Why  a  great  zeal  ? 

[1.]  Because  it  is  not  zeal  else,  if  it  be  not  in  some  good  degree  ;  for 
zeal  is  a  great  fire  and  a  vehement  flame ;  not  only  love,  but  vehement 
love ;  it  must  needs  be  great:  Cant.  viii.  6,  7,  '  For  love  is  as  strong  as 
death,  jealousy  is  cruel  as  the  grave.'  Zeal  is  cruel  as  the  grave  ;  read 
it  so :  '  Many  waters  cannot  quench  love,'  &c.  Mark,  our  love  to  the 
ways  of  God  should  be  of  such  a  nature,  such  a  warm  and  zealous  work 
ing  of  heart  towards  God,  that  many  floods  cannot  quench  it,  that 
nothing  can  bribe  it.  Surely  the  best  things  deserve  the  best  affec 
tions  ;  therefore  whatever  we  do  in  religion  and  for  God,  we  should  do 
it  with  all  our  might,  Eccles.  ix.  10. 

[2.]  Otherwise  it  will  not  do  the  work.  Such  as  increaseth  with 
opposition ;  as  fire,  when  you  put  on  more  fuel,  it  grows  more  vehe 
ment  ;  so  unless  it  be  a  zeal  that  grows  earnest  with  discouragement, 
alas  !  it  will  soon  be  quenched.  We  shall  meet  with  many  discourage 
ments  from  within  and  without ;  but  when  we  can  resolve  with  David, 
the  more  they  scoffed  and  opposed  him,  he  would  '  be  yet  more  vile,' 
2  Sam.  vi.  22.  So  the  more  trouble  they  meet  with  in  the  ways  of 
God,  the  more  they  will  cleave  to  him,  and  will  please  God  though 
with  the  displeasure  of  men.  True  zeal  is  inflamed  with  difficulties. 
As  lime,  the  more  water  they  pour  on,  the  more  it  burns ;  as  Nehe- 
miah's  courage  it  sparkled  the  more  the  more  it  was  opposed  :  '  Should 
such  a  man  as  I  flee  ? '  Should  I  betray  the  cause  of  God  ?  This  is 
the  true  zeal,  when  it  sparkles  by  opposition.  As  Paul,  the  more  they 
persuaded  him,  the  more  he  seemed  to  be  bound  in  spirit  to  go  to 
Jerusalem,  Acts  xxi.  13  ;  though  they  did  even  break  his  heart, 
they  could  not  break  his  purpose.  Such  a  zeal  as  is  quenched  with 
every  drop  of  water,  and  goes  out  with  every  flout  and  scorn,  will  never 
do  it  ;  therefore  we  had  need  have  a  great  zeal,  that  we  may  harden 
ourselves  against  all  oppositions  we  meet  with  in  the  way. 


476  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [$ER.  CIYVZ 

2.  It  needs  to  be  pure,  too  ;  such  a  fervent  affection  had  need  be- 
right,  for  since  it  makes  men  so  active  and  resolute,  certainly  it  should 
go  upon  clear  grounds.  I  showed  before  nothing  hath  done  more  mis 
chief  in  the  world  than  wild  zeal;  it  is  like  fire  out  of  its  place,  that  sets 
all  the  house  in  a  flame  ;  it  doth  not  comfort  and  refresh  those  that  have 
it,  but  it  destroys  and  consumes  all.  But  why  must  we  have  pure  zeal  ? 

[1.]  Because  there  is  a  false  zeal,  and  a  self-seeking  zeal,  which  men 
have  while  they  pretend  much  love  to  God  and  good  of  souls,  but  are 
really  hunting  after  their  own  interest :  Gal.  iv.  17,  '  They  zealously 
affect  you,  but  not  well ;  yea,  they  would  exclude  you  that  ye  might 
affect  them  ;'  that  is,  they  sought  to  rend  their  affections  from  Paul, 
and  from  their  faithful  pastors,  that  they  might  affect  them ;  so  he 
tells  us,  Phil.  i.  15,  '  Some  indeed  preach  Christ  even  of  envy  and  strife/ 
There  may  be  a  zeal  that  comes  merely  out  of  envy  and  strife ;.  Jehu 
could  say,  '  Come,  see  my  zeal  for  the  Lord,'  2  Kings  x.  16. 

[2.]  This  false  zeal  doth  a  great  deal  of  mischief.  It  is  a  dishonour 
to  God  to  pretend  to  him,  and  to  put  the  varnish  of  our  cause  upon 
God.  God  himself  is  involved  in  the  deceit,  Jer.  iv.  10.  It  is  a  strange 
expression  to  be  used  to  God,  '  Ah !  Lord  God,  surely  thou  hast  greatly 
deceived  this  people.'  The  false  prophets  did  it  in  his  name.  And  it 
divides  the  church  as  well  as  dishonours  God:  Gal.  iv.  17,  'They 
would  exclude  you,  that  ye  might  affect  them.'  The  meaning  is,  they 
would  rend  you  from  the  body  of  the  Christian  church,  and  alienate 
the  minds  of  God's  people,  so  as  to  devote  them  to  a  faction  :  Phil.  i. 
16,  '  They  preach  Christ  of  contention,  not  sincerely,  supposing  to  add 
affliction  to  my  bonds.'  And  it  hardens  the  persons  themselves,  as 
Jehu  boasted  of  his  zeal,  and  it  was  only  self-seeking,  and  the  Lord 
counts  it  murder,  Hosea  i.  4. 

Use.  Have  we  this  pure  zeal,  such  a  zeal  as  David  speaks  of  ?  There 
are  many  notes  by  which  it  may  be  discerned ;  as — 

1.  When  injuries  done  to  God  or  religion  affect  us  more  than 
injuries  done  personally  to  ourselves  ;  when  we  carry  ourselves  in  an 
indifferency  in  our  own  cause,  but  not  in  God's.     Compare  Num.  xii. 
13,  with  Exod.  xxxii.  19.    Moses  could  with  a  meek  spirit  bear  all  the 
injuries  done  to  himself,  but  could  not  contain  himself  when  he  saw 
injury  done  to  God,  but  breaks  the  tables. 

2.  When  the  same  enemies  are  God's  enemies  and  ours.     David  was 
sensible  not  of  the  inhumanity  of  his  enemies,  but  that  which  most 
troubled  him  was  because  they  were  God's  enemies  and  forsook  his 
words.     David  was  not  so  much  troubled  at  Absalom's  rebellion,  as 
dying  in  his  sins. 

3.  When  there  is  a  compassion  mingled  with  our  zeal      Fleshly 
anger  is  all  for  destruction  ;  holy  anger  is  for  conversion,  when  they 
grieve,  and  seek  to  redress  the  matter. 

4.  True  zeal  is  universal ;  it  is  most  against  their  own  sins,  and  the 
sins  of  those  that  are  nearest,  and  runs  out  upon  weighty  things.     But 
those  that  tithe  mint  and  cummin,  and  neglect  weighty  things,  they 
have  not  true  zeal.     There  are  many  instances  of  this  false  dispro 
portionate  zeal  of  a  conscience,  taken  up  for  a  turn.     When  there  is  a 
partial  conscience— in  some  things  men  are  mighty  scrupulous,  and 
strain  at  a  gnat  and  swallow  a  camel — it  discovers  the  hypocrisy  that 


VER.  140.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  477 

lights  upon  the  professors  of  religion,  full  of  heinous  outcries  upon 
small  things,  yet  dashing  upon  things  that  are  against  the  fundamentals 

rvr   4-Vk/i    r*r\TT^«^ <-»-»^4- 


of  the  covenant. 


SERMON  GLVII. 

Thy  luord  is  very  pure :  therefore  thy  servant  loveth  it.—Vm.  140. 

THERE  are  three  things  in  this  verse  : — 

1.  The  excellency  of  the  word,  thy  word  is  very  pure. 

2.  David's  respect  to  it,  thy  servant  loveth  it. 

3.  The  connection  between  both,  in  the  illative  particle,  therefore. 

1.  The  excellency  of  the  word,  '  Thy  word  is  very  pure.'     That 
which  we  render  '  very  pure/  signifieth  tried  in  the  fire  and  refined ; 
the  Septuagint  reads  it,  7re7rvpcojj,evov  \6yiov  crov  <r(f)6Spa,  thy  word  is 
.set  on  fire ;  and  so  you  may  see  it  explained,  Ps.  xii.  6,  '  The  words 
of  the  Lord  are  pure  words,  like  silver  tried  in  a  furnace  of  earth 
purified  seven  times/     The  expression  may  import  two  things — (1.) 
The  infallible  certainty  of  the  word  ;  (2.)  The  exact  purity. 

[1.]  The  infallible  certainty  of  the  word,  as  gold  endureth  in  the 
fire  when  the  dross  is  consumed.  Vain  conceits  comfort  us  not  in  a 
time  of  trouble,  but  the  word  of  God,  the  more  it  is  tried,  the  more 
you  will  find  the  excellency  of  it.  The  promise  is  tried,  as  well  as  we 
are  tried,  in  deep  afflictions ;  but  when  it  is  so,  it  will  be  found  to  be 
most  sure.  In  the  old  translation  it  is,  Thy  word  is  proved  most  pure : 
Ps.  xviii.  30,  '  The  word  of  the  Lord  is  tried  ;  he  is  a  buckler  to  all 
them  that  trust  in  him.'  So  Prov.  xxx.  5,  *  The  word  of  the  Lord  is 
pure  ;  he  is  a  shield  to  all  that  trust  in  him.'  As  pure  gold  suffers  no 
loss  by  the  fire,  so  the  promises  suffer  no  loss  when  they  are  tried,  but 
stand  to  us  in  our  greatest  troubles. 

[2.]  It  notes  the  exact  perfection  of  the  word.  There  is  no  dross  in 
silver  and  gold  that  hath  been  often  refined,  so  there  is  no  defect  in  the 
word  of  God. 

2.  Here  is  David's  respect  to  the  word  ;  speaking  of  himself  in  the 
third  person,  he  saith,  '  Thy  servant  loveth  it.'     The  children  of  God 
love  the  word,  and  the  duty  and  obedience  it  prescribeth,  so  as  effec 
tually  to  follow  it ;  that  is  love,  and  none  but  that. 

3.  Here  is  his  reason  for  it,  '  Therefore  I  love  it/  because  it  is  pure. 
Wicked  men  hate  it  and  slight  it  for  this  reason :  the  word  of  God  is 
so  pure  that  it  ransacks  their  consciences,  and  therefore  they  cannot 
endure  it :  *  The  carnal  mind  is  not  subject  to  the  law  of  God,  neither 
indeed  can  be/  Eom.  viii.  7.     But  the  saints  do  the  rather  embrace  it : 
wicked  men  could  wish  it  were  less  strict,  that  it  might  be  calculated 
to  their  turns ;  but  the  children  of  God  love  it  for  this  reason. 

Doct.  That  God's  children  see  such  purity  in  his  word  that  there 
fore  they  value  it  and  love  it  exceedingly. 

The  point  will  be  made  good  by  four  considerations  :- 

1.  That  the  word  of  God  is  pure. 

2.  That  this  pure  word  must  be  loved  and  esteemed  by  us. 


478  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [&ER.  CLVII. 

3.  That  we  must  not  only  love  God's  word,  but  see  why  we  love  it. 

4.  Among  all  the  grounds  and  reasons  of  our  love  to  the  word  of 
God,  this  is  the  most  noble  and  excellent,  to  love  it  for  its  purity. 

For  the  first  of  these,  that  the  word  of  God  is  pure,  yea,  as  it  is 
superlatively  expressed  in  the  text,  it  is  very  pure,  that  will  appear  in 
two  respects — it  is  pure  in  itself,  and  it  maketh  us  pure. 

1.  It  is  pure  in  itself,  because  it  is  a  holy  rule,  fit  for  God  to  give 
and  us  to  receive,  exactly  comprising  the  whole  duty  of  man.     We 
need  not  seek  elsewhere  for  direction  in  order  to  true  happiness :  Ps. 
xix.  8,  '  The  commandment  of  the  Lord  is  pure,  enlightening  the 
eyes  ;'  as  metal  refined  from  all  dross,  so  here  is  not  the  least  mixture 
of  error,  folly,  or  falsehood,  not  the  least  corruption  or  flaw  to  be  found 
in  it,  as  in  all  other  books  of  human  composure.     All  other  writings 
come  as  short  of  the  scripture  as  a  coal  doth  of  the  sun.     The  whole 
art  and  design  of  this  holy  book  is  to  advance  the  spiritual  and 
heavenly  life,  and  not  to  fashion  our  outward  carriage  a  little  for 
converse  with  men,  but  to  bring  us  into  fellowship  and  communion 
with  God,  and  to  direct  us  to  do  all  things  from  holy  principles,  in  a 
holy  manner,  to  holy  ends.     There  is  no  dead  fly  in  this  box  of  oint 
ment,  no  blemish  of  weakness  and  imperfection  ;  it  hath  the  manifest 
impress  of  the  author  left  upon  it,  and  is  the  copy  of  that  exact  holiness 
which  is  in  God  himself. 

2.  The  word  is  very  pure,  as  it  maketh  us  pure  if  we  diligently 
attend  unto  it :    Ps.  cxix.  9,  '  By  what  means  may  a  young  man 
cleanse  his  way  ?     By  taking  heed  thereunto  according  to  thy  word.' 
It  is  not  said,  By  what  means  may  a  young  man  guide  his  way ;  as  if 
he  were  yet  to  choose,  or  were  as  white  paper,  indifferent  to  any 
impression.     But  by  what  means  shall  a  young  man  cleanse  his  way  ? 
Man's  heart  naturally  is  a  sink  of  sin,  and  he  delighteth  to  wallow  in 
this  puddle,  as  swine  do  in  the  mire ;  he  hath  gotten  a  tang  and 
smatch  of  the  old  Adam.     Now,  is  there  no  way  to  make  his  heart 
and  his  way  clean  ?     Yes,  if  he  will  take  God's  counsel,  and  direct  his 
life  according  to  the  word.     A  young  man  that  is  in  the  heat  and 
strength  of  his  lusts,  he  may  be  cured  and  cleansed.     Christ  prayeth, 
John  xvii.  17,   'Sanctify  them   by  thy  truth;   thy   word  is  truth/ 
The  work  is  God's,  but  he  doth  it  by  the  truth  or  his  will  revealed  in 
the  word.     He  hath  reserved  the  power  of  his  Spirit  for  this  dispen 
sation  and  way  of  institution  of  mankind.     A  moral  lecture  may  make 
a  man  change  his  life,  but  it  is  the  word  of  God  that  changeth  his 
heart :  his  Spirit  goeth  along  with  his  word.     So  John  xv.  3,  '  Now 
you  are  clean  through  the  word  that  I  have  spoken  unto  you/     The 
word  is  the  instrument  of  purifying  sinners,  and  to  get  rid  of  their  sins. 
But  how  doth  the  word  make  us  pure  ?     As  it  is  an  appointed  instru 
ment  of  the  Spirit,  and  as  it  is  an  accommodate  instrument  to  such 
an  end  and  purpose. 

[1.]  It  is  an  appointed  instrument  by  which  the  Spirit  will  work  : 
1  Peter  i.  22,  'Ye  have  purified  your  souls  in  obeying  the  truth, 
through  the  Spirit.'  It  is  the  Spirit  of  Christ  that  powerfully  worketh 
it,  but  yet  in  and  by  the  truth  :  he  worketh  by  his  own  means,  he  will 
not  join  his  assistance  with  other  things.  The  sum  of  what  I  would 
say  is  this,  it  was  meet  that  God  should  give  a  rule  to  his  creatures, 


VER.  140.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  479 

or  else  how  should  they  know  his  will  ?  and  then  it  was  meet  he  should 
honour  his  rule  by  owning  it  above  all  other  doctrines,  by  the  con 
comitant  operation  of  his  Spirit,  that  this  might  be  a  constant 
authentic  proof  of  its  divine  authority.  The  efficacy  of  the  word  is  a 
pledge  of  the  truth  of  it. 

[2.]  It  is  a  commodious  instrument  for  this  end  and  purpose,  for 
there  is  a  wisdom  in  all  God's  institutions.  He  that  looketh  upon  an 
axe  will  say,  This  is  an  instrument  made  to  cut ;  so  he  that  looketh 
upon  the  scriptures  must  needs  say,  This  is  a  means  to  purify.  The 
word  is  more  morally  accommodated  to  work  upon  the  heart  of  man 
then  any  other  instrument,  means,  or  doctrine  in  the  world.  Now  the 
word  doth  so  commodiously  serve  for  this  purpose  because  there  are — 
(1.)  Such  pure  precepts ;  (2.)  Such  pure  examples ;  (3.)  Such  great 
helps  to  purity ;  (4.)  Great  encouragements  to  purity ;  (5.)  Such  great 
terrors  to  dissuade  men  from  sin. 

(1.)  There  are  pure  precepts,  setting  forth  the  nature  of  that  purity 
that  is  pleasing  to  God ;  and  so,  on  the  one  hand,  they  serve  to  humble 
us  for  our  natural  filthiness ;  for  verum  est  index  sui  et  obliqui — truth 
showeth  itself,  and  discovereth  error  also,  James  i.  34.  It  is  such 
a  pure  doctrine  that  it  showeth  a  man  .his  natural  face,  and  discovers 
soul-spots.  And,  on  the  other  side,  by  these  precepts  and  doctrines 
we  are  urged  and  enjoined  to  seek  after  true  purity  and  holiness  of 
the  right  constitution :  1  Tim.  i.  5,  '  The  end  of  the  commandment 
is  charity,  out  of  a  pure  heart,  and  a  good  conscience,  and  faith  un 
feigned.'  The  word  telleth  us  God  will  be  served,  and  that  he  will  be 
served  with  a  pure  heart.  The  right  end  and  scope  of  the  whole  law, 
as  it  is  a  gospel  rule,  is  love  to  God  and  man,  flowing  from  a  sincere 
and  renewed  heart,  and  a  good  conscience  rightly  informed  of  God's 
will,  and  faith  unfeigned,  apprehending  the  grace  of  God  towards  us 
in  Christ  our  Eedeemer.  So  that  you  see  there  is  required  of  us  not 
only  good  actions,  but  good  principles  and  ends. 

The  apostle  telleth  us  epyov  vopov,  the  work  of  the  law,  was  written 
upon  man's  heart,  Horn.  ii.  14.  Natural  conscience  will  take  notice  of 
some  gross  acts,  urge  to  some  external  conformity  and  show  of  duty ; 
but  the  word  of  God  taketh  notice  not  only  of  acts,  but  the  frame  of 
the  heart ;  not  only  of  sins,  but  also  of  lusts.  If  ever  there  were  an 
instrument  fitted  to  do  a  thing,  the  word  is  fitted  to  make  men  pure  and 
holy.  Briefly,  then,  the  word  requireth  purity  of  heart  and  life.  That 
we  should  be  pure  in  heart :  Mat.  v.  8,  '  Blessed  are  the  pure  in  heart, 
for  they  shall  see  God ;'  and  pure  in  life  :  '  Blessed  are  the  undefiled 
in  the  way/  Ps.  cxix.  1.  You  have  both  in  one  place :  James  iv.  8, 
'  Cleanse  your  hands,  ye  sinners,  and  purify  your  hearts,  ye  double- 
minded  ;'  both  must  be  cleansed,  both  heart  and  hands.  But  we  must 
first  begin  with  the  heart.  The  heart  is  that  polluted  fountain  from 
whence  floweth  all  the  pollution  of  life  :  Mat.  xv.  19,  '  Out  of  the 
heart  proceed  evil  thoughts,  murders,  adulteries,  blasphemies,'  &c.  It 
is  in  vain  to  cleanse  the  outside,  unless  the  heart  be  cleansed ;  and 
therefore  the  scripture  presseth  us  to  wash  our  hearts  from  wickedness, 
Jer.  iv.  14.  There  is  the  difficulty.  It  is  more  easy  to  heal  an  out 
ward  wound  than  to  stanch  an  inward  bleeding;  and  the  cause  i 
within.  The  purity  of  the  outside  is  loathsome  to  God  unless  the 


480  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiB.  CLVII. 

heart  be  cleansed ;  it  is  more  easy  to  prevent  disorders  in.  our  con 
versations  than  to  cleanse  our  hearts;  and  therefore  the  scripture 
-mainly  calleth  upon  you  to  purge  sin  out  of  the  heart,  Mat.  xxiii. 

26,  27.     Therefore  the  great  design  of  the  word  of  God,  with  which 
it  travaileth,  is  to  get  the  heart  clean  ;  as  Elisha  when  he  would  cure 
the  brackishness  of  the  waters,  cast  salt  into  the  fountain,  so  doth  the 
word  of  God  seek  to  cleanse  the  hearts  of  men,  and  all  its  wooings 
and  pleadings  and  entreaties  tend  to  this. 

(2.)  There  are  pure  examples  and  patterns.  We  miscarry  by  low 
•examples,  and  grow  loose  and  careless  seeing  others  to  be  so ;  there 
fore  the  word  is  still  to  keep  us  humble  under  our  defects,  unsatisfied 
with  our  present  measure,  always  contending,  and  striving  towards 
the  mark :  it  propoundeth  all  manner  of  examples  to  us.  It  pro- 
poundeth  the  example  of  God :  1  Peter  i.  15,  '  Be  ye  holy,  as  he  that 
hath  called  you  is  holy,  in  all  manner  of  conversation.'  God  is  holy 
in  all  his  ways,  and  righteous  in  all  his  works ;  and  so  should  we  be. 
And  the  scripture  presseth  us  to  be  holy  as  Christ  is  holy :  1  John  iii. 
3,  '  He  that  hath  this  hope  in  him,  purifieth  himself,  as  Christ  is  pure.' 
It  is  impossible  there  should  be  an  exact  equality,  yet  some  answerable 
conformity  there  should  be.  God  is  essentially,  immutably,  infinitely 
holy :  he  loveth  himself  so  much  as  he  can  be  loved.  His  essence 
and  his  being  is  the  same  with  his  holiness.  Our  holiness  is  a  super- 
added  quality.  God's  holiness  is  like  a  vessel  of  pure  gold,  where  the 
substance  is  the  same  with  the  lustre ;  but  our  holiness  is  like  a  vessel 
of  earth  gilded  with  gold;  the  substance  is  one  thing,  the  varnish 
another.  But  yet  this  God  and  Christ  must  ever  be  before  our  eyes ; 
we  must  be  holy  as  he  is  holy  ;  we  must  always  be  increasing  in  holi 
ness.  We  must  come  into  an  abiding  state  of  holiness.  There  must 
be  some  kind  of  conformity  between  God  and  us,  and  Christ  and  us  ; 
.and  head  and  members  must  be  all  of  a  piece.  He  will  shoot  farther 
that  aimeth  at  a  star,  than  he  that  aimeth  at  a  shrub  ;  so  he  will  be 
more  holy  that  doth  as  God  doth,  than  he  that  doth  as  sinful  creatures 
do,  like  himself.  Nay,  the  scripture  propoundeth  the  example  of  the 
saints,  Heb.  vi.  12.  We  need  all  kinds  of  examples.  As  we  need  high 
and  glorious  examples,  that  we  may  not  rest  in  any  low  degrees  and 
beginnings  of  purity,  so  lower  examples,  that  we  may  not  be  discou 
raged,  and  think  it  impossible.  And  therefore  the  saints  of  God  are 
propounded  to  us,  men  and  women  of  like  affections  with  us,  the  same 
natural  interests,  and  we  the  same  grace  with  them;  the  way  to 
lieaven  is  a  trodden  path  all  along ;  you  may  see  the  footsteps  of  the 
.saints  before  you. 

(3.)  The  scripture  offereth  great  helps  to  purity.  Christ  died  to 
purchase  it  for  us :  Eph.  v.  27,  *  He  gave  himself  for  us,  that  he  might 
sanctify  and  cleanse  us  by  the  washing  of  water  through  the  word/ 
And  God  hath  promised  to  give  this  clean  heart  to  them  that  seek 
after  it,  and  undertaketh  to  give  what  he  requireth :  Ezek.  xxxvi.  25— 

27,  '  I  will  sprinkle  clean  water  upon  you  and  you  shall  be  clean  ;  from 
all  your  filthiness,  and  from  all  your  idols  will  I  cleanse  you  :  a  new 
heart  also  will  I  give  you,  and  a  new  spirit  will  I  put  within  you ; 
and  I  will  take  away  the  stony  heart  out  of  your  flesh,  and  I  will  give 
you  a  heart  of  flesh  :  and  I  will  put  my  spirit  within  you,  and  cause 


TER.  140.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  481 

you  to  walk  in  my  statutes,  and  ye  shall  keep  my  judgments,  and  do 
them.'  God  hath  promised  this  to  somebody,  and  why  not  to  you  ? 
You  are  as  fair  for  this  promise  as  any ;  and  if  God  hath  not  excluded 
you,  why  will  you  shut  yourselves  out  from  the  grace  offered  ? 

(4.)  There  are  in  the  scripture  excellent  encouragements  and  motives 
from  the  reward  promised  to  the  pure.     Lactantius  saith  of  the  heathen, 
Virtutis  vim  non  sentiunt  quia  efus  prcemium  ignorant — that  they 
•were  ignorant  of  the  force  of  virtue,  because  they  were  not  acquainted 
with  the  reward  of  it.     There  is  a  great  force  in  scripture  arguments 
in  this  kind.     See  how  the  scripture  speaks  of  these  promises ;  they 
are  so  great,  so  pure,  and  so  expressly  binding  in  their  condition  and 
•qualification  annexed.     They  are  so  great,  2  Cor.  vii.  1,  that  '  having 
such  great  and  precious  promises,  let  us  cleaase  ourselves  from  all  filthi- 
•ness  of  flesh  and  spirit,  and  perfect  holiness  in  the  fear  of  God.'     And 
then  so  pure  :  1  John  iii.  3,  '  He  that  hath  this  hope  in  him  purifieth 
himself  as  Christ  is  pure.'     It  is  not  barely  said,  He  hath  hope  in  him, 
hut,  He  that  hath  this  hope.     It  is  not  a  Turkish  paradise,  but  a  sinless 
estate ;  not  an  estate  wherein  we  shall  be  engulfed  in  all  sensualities, 
but  satisfied  with  the  vision  of  God,  and  made  like  him.     Heaven  is 
not  only  to  be  looked  upon  as  a  place  of  happiness,  but  a  state  of  like 
ness  to  God.     Once  more,  so  many  and  so  expressly  binding  to  purity, 
in  their  condition  and  qualification  annexed.     See  what  the  word  of 
God  speaks  to  purity,  if  we  would  enjoy  the  favour  of  God,  and  have 
him  good  to  us :  Ps.  Ixxiii.  1,  '  Truly  God  is  good  to  Israel,  even  to 
such  as  are  of  a  clean  heart.'     Who  are  they  that  God  will  be  good 
to  ?     To  Israel.     All  are  not  Israel  that  are  of  Israel ;  but  those  whose 
•consciences  are  cleansed  by  the  blood  of  Christ,  and  study  to  be  clean 
-and  holy  in  heart  and  life,  those  are  God's  Israel.     However  things 
fall  out  here,  how  blustering  and  boisterous  soever  the  times  are,  yet 
God  will  be  good  to  them  that  are  his  Israel.     If  we  would  have  his 
favour  actually  exhibited,  if  we  would  have  God  to  shine  upon  us,  we 
must  look  after  purity :  Ps.  xviii.  26,  '  With  the  pure  thou  wilt  show 
thyself  pure,  and  with  the  froward  thou  wilt  show  thyself  froward/ 
God  will  be  to  man  as  man  is  to  God.     No  degree  of  purity  shall  go 
unrewarded ;  the  holy  use  of  the  creatures  is  their  privilege  :  Titus  i. 
15,  '  To  the  pure  all  things  are  pure.'     To  the  wicked  all  things  are 
defiled,  and  they  have  a  curse  with  their  blessings  ;  but  to  the  pure 
these  blessings  are  lawfully  enjoyed,  and  are  sanctified  to  them,  and 
-they  receive  every  temporal  mercy  as  a  blessing  of  the  covenant. 
Would  we  be  accepted  in  our  service  ?     Prov.  xv.  26,  '  The  thoughts 
of  the  wicked  are  an  abomination  to  the  Lord,  but  the  words  of  the 
pure  are  pleasant  words.'     The  thoughts  and  words  of  wicked  men  are 
an  abomination  to  the  Lord,  but  the  thoughts  and  words  of  the  saints 
are  his  delight.     God  hath  respect  to  the  person  and  then  to  his 
services ;  so  that  we  must  be  pure  in  heart  if  we  would  have  our  ser 
vices  accepted  of  the  Lord.     Once  more,  the  pure  are  those  that  shall 
be  employed  with  honour  for  God :  2  Tim.  ii.  21,  '  If  a  man  purge 
himself  from  these,  he  shall  be  a  vessel  of  honour,  sanctified,  and  meet 
for  the  master's  use,  and  prepared  unto  every  good  work.'     Again^the 
purified  and  cleansed  are  meet  to  receive  and  retain  the  word :  1  Tim. 
iii.  9,  '  Hold  fast  the  mysteries  of  faith  in  a  pure  conscience.'    None 

VOL.  VIII.  2  H 


482  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CLVIL 

receive  the  word  with  such  profit,  and  retain  it  with  such  warmth, 
as  the  pure  in  heart.  Precious  liquor  is  not  put  into  musty,  filthy 
vessels ;  if  it  be,  it  is  corrupted  and  spoiled  presently.  Let  a  man  be 
addicted  to  any  worldly  lust,  and  he  will  soon  lose  all  the  sense  of  good 
he  hath  received.  Once  more,  none  pray  aright  but  the  pure :  Zeph. 
iii.  9,  *  For  then  will  I  turn  to  the  people  a  pure  language,  that  they 
may  call  upon  the  name  of  the  Lord  •/  and  1  Tim.  ii.  8,  *  Lifting  up 
holy  hands,  without  wrath  and  doubting ;'  and  Heb.  x.  22,  '  Let  us 
draw  near  with  a  true  heart,  in  full  assurance  of  faith,  having  our 
hearts  sprinkled  from  an  evil  conscience/  Then  we  draw  near  to  God 
with  comfort,  being  sure  of  audience.  Once  more,  if  we  would  be  happy 
for  ever  more,  who  are  they  that  shall  see  God  ?  Mat.  v.  8,  '  Blessed  are 
the  pure  in  heart,  for  they  shall  see  God.'  You  shall  see  the  question 
propounded  in  Ps.  xxiv.  3,  4,  *  Who  shall  ascend  into  the  hill  of  the 
Lord  ?  who  shall  stand  in  his  holy  place  ? '  And  the  question  is 
answered  in  the  third  verse,  '  He  that  hath  clean  hands  and  a  pure 
heart/  It  standeth  upon  us  to  examine  how  it  is  with  us,  sinue  all  the 
visible  church  are  not  saved ;  the  pure  and  holy  are  they  that  shall  see 
and  enjoy  God.  Filthy  dogs  and  impure  and  unclean  swine  are  not 
suffered  to  enter  into  the  new  Jerusalem. 

(5.)  Here  are  terrible  threatenings ;  the  word  is  impatient  of  being 
denied ;  it  would  have  holiness  arid  purity  upon  any  terms ;  there  is 
something  propounded  to  our  fear  as  well  as  to  our  hope.  Sometimes 
the  word  of  God  threatens  with  the  loss  of  happiness :  Heb.  xii.  14, 
'  Without  holiness  no  man  shall  see  the  Lord/  If  there  were  no  more 
but  this,  this  were  enough  to  terrify  us  (to  be  shut  out  from  the  pre 
sence  of  the  Lord !)  if  it  were  rightly  considered.  But  oh !  how  miser 
able  will  the  poor  creature  be  that  the  word  threatens  with  the  loss  of 
the  vision  of  God,  supposing  the  soul  subsists  !  This  is  enough  to  over 
whelm  us,  that  we  shall  never  enter  into  the  place  where  God  is  :  Rev. 
xxi.  17,  *  There  shall  in  no  wise  enter  into  it  anything  that  defileth  or 
worketh  abomination/  But  we  hear  of  a  worm  that  shall  never  die, 
a  pit  without  a  bottom,  a  fire  that  shall  never  be  quenched,  and  tor 
ments  that  are  without  end  and  without  ease.  God  shall  say,  I  would 
have  purged  you,  but  you  would  not  be  purged.  Whose  heart  doth 
not  tremble  at  the  mention  of  these  things  ?  Oh !  then  you  see  the 
word  is  very  pure. 

The  second  consideration,  that  this  pure  word  must  be  valued  and 
esteemed  and  loved  by  us.  Here  I  shall  show  you  what  it  is  to  love 
the  word,  and  then  why. 

1.  What  it  is  to  love  the  word. 

p.]  Negatively. 

(1.)  It  is  not  an  outward  receiving,  or  a  loose  owning  of  the 
•scripture  as  the  word  of  God.  Many  carnal  men  may  so  receive  it,  or 
rather  not  contradict  it :  they  receive  the  word  of  God,  not  upon  any 
divine  testimony  and  evidence  of  the  Spirit  of  God,  but  upon  the 
authority  and  credit  of  men,  the  practice  and  profession  of  the  nation 
where  they  live,  and  the  injunctions  of  the  civil  state,  or  the  tradition 
of  the  church.  This  is  the  just  account  of  most  men's  faith  and  love- 
to  the  word,  and  therefore  they  never  feel  the  power  of  it.  It  cometh 
with  power  when  it  is  the  evidence  of  the  Spirit,  1  Cor.  ii.  4 ;  human 
credulity  breedeth  no  true  love  to  the  word  of  God. 


483 


VER.  140.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix. 

(2.)  This  love  is  not  a  bare  approbation  of  purity  and  holiness  \ 
many  approve  that  which  they  never  choose  and  follow  None  in  the 
face  of  the  church  can  be  such  a  wretch  as  not  to  think  that  it  is  a 
good  thing  to  be  holy,  that  strictness  is  commendable  Mark  vi  26 
Herod  reverenced  John.  There  is  an  excellency  in  holiness  and  it 
winneth  esteem,  even  there  where  it  is  not  embraced  Purity  is  a 
stricture  of  God's  majesty,  and  so  it  is  feared.  Where  it  is  not  loved 
it  breedeth  an  aweful  respect  in  wicked  men.  Natural  conscience  so 
iar  doth  homage  to  the  image  of  God,  and  doth  incline  men  to  think 
well  of  holiness,  and  to  show  some  respect  to  it. 

(3.)  It  is  not  a  pang  or  passionate  delight ;  as  some,  when  the  word 
falls  upon  them,  they  may  be  stirred  a  little;  it  is  not  a  love  that  is 
controllable,  or  easily  overcome  by  other  loves :  John  v.  45,  '  How  can 
ye  believe,  that  seek  honour  one  of  another?'  As  Herod  rejoiced  in 
John's  light  for  a  season,  and,  Mark  vi.  20,  he  loved  John's  preachin°- 
but  he  loved  his  Herodias  better ;  and  therefore  off  goes  John's  head! 
The  love  that  he  had,  it  was  controllable  by  a  higher  love.  Unless  we 
be  so  addicted  to  the  word  that  it  prevaileth  over  all  contrary  inclina 
tions,  we  do  not  love  the  word.  Whether  it  be  sensuality,  or  pride,  or 
covetousness,  it  will  be  casting  off  the  dominion  of  the  word :  John 
viii.  37,  '  My  word  hath  no  place  in  you  ; '  it  doth  not  sink  down  into 
their  hearts  that  it  may  bring  forth  fruit  in  their  lives. 
[2.]  Positively,  what  is  it  then  ? 

(1.)  It  is  such  a  love  as  causeth  us  to  wait  at  wisdom's  gates,  to 
consult  with  the  word  upon  all  occasions,  to  read  it,  hear  it,  meditate 
on  it  as  the  great  instrument  of  sanctification.  You  will  take  it  for 
your  counsel,  Ps.  cxix.  4.  That  we  love  we  will  be  thinking  on  often, 
and  exercising  our  minds  in  it :  Ps.  i.  2,  '  But  his  delight  is  in  the  law 
of  the  Lord,  and  in  his  law  doth  he  meditate  day  and  night.'  Oh, 
how  few  love  the  word  thus  !  Few  read  and  delight  in  the  scriptures 
because  of  the  purity  and  holiness  that  is  in  them.  They  read  them 
for  dispute's  sake,  or  to  know  the  mystery,  or  to  be  able  to  hold  up  an 
argument ;  but  as  they  serve  to  make  us  pure  and  heavenly,  who  loves 
them  so  ?  as  they  forewarn  us  of  sin,  and  quicken  to  grace  and  love  to 
God  ?  Ps.  xix.  10,  11,  '  Thy  word  is  sweeter  than  honey  or  the  honey 
comb/  because  by  '  them  thy  servant  is  forewarned.'  Then  we  love 
the  word  when  we  love  it  for  this  reason. 

(2.)  We  love  the  word  when  we  are  chary  of  transgressing  it,  or 
doing  anything  contrary  to  the  tenor  of  it.  We  are  bidden  to  keep 
the  commandment  as  the  apple  of  the  eye,  Prov.  vii.  2.  The  eye  is  a 
tender  thing,  offended  with  the  least  dust.  Oh,  take  heed  of  offending 
the  word  of  God  !  Fear  of  offending  is  a  sure  note  and  effect  of  love. 
So  he  that  loves  God,  he  fears  the  commandment:  Prov.  xiii.  13, 
*  Whoso  despiseth  the  word,  shall  be  destroyed ;  but  whoso  feareth  the 
commandment,  shall  be  rewarded.'  A  wicked  man  maketh  no  bones 
of  a  commandment,  regardeth  not  what  the  word  saith,  but  doth 
according  to  the  bent  of  his  own  will.  Those  that  will  turn  their  back 
upon  a  commandment  for  the  least  temptation,  they  have  no  true  love 
to  the  word  of  God.  But  now  a  godly  man  is  one  that  feareth  a  com 
mandment  ;  he  is  afraid  to  do  anything  against  the  express  will  of  God. 
If  a  commandment  stands  in  his  way,  it  is  as  much  as  if  an  angel  with 


484  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SKR.  CLVII. 

a  drawn  sword  stood  in  his  way,  as  the  angel  stood  with  a  drawn  sword 
in  Balaam's  way :  they  had  rather  have  all  the  world  against  them, 
than  the  word  against  them,  Isa.  Ixvi.  25.  This  aweful  regard  of  the 
word  of  God  it  is  a  good  evidence  of  our  love  to  it. 

(3.)  Then  we  are  said  to  love  the  word  when  we  cheerfully  and 
readily  delight  to  do  what  it  requireth  in  order  to  the  glory  of  God 
and  our  own  salvation :  that  is  love  ;  for  true  love  is  not  only  notional, 
but  practical:  1  John  ii.  4,  '  He  that  saith  I  know  him,  and  keepeth 
not  his  commandments,  is  a  liar,  and  the  truth  is  not  in  him/  Our 
love  to  God  is  known  by  our  obedience  to  him ;  so  our  love  to  the  word 
is  known  by  our  obedience  to  it.  And  therefore  we  love  the  word  in 
good  earnest  when  we  observe  it  readily  and  diligently,  whatever  it 
costs  us :  Rom.  vi.  17,  '  Ye  have  obeyed  from  the  heart  the  form  of 
doctrine  that  was  delivered  to  you/  Look,  as  there  is  a  cold  love  to  a 
man's  brother,  when  we  say,  Be  clothed,  be  warmed ;  so  there  is  a 
pretended  love  to  the  word  that  endeth  in  talk,  and  not  in  action ; 
which  is  as  if  a  man  should  hope  to  pay  his  debts  by  the  noise  of 
money,  and  instead  of  opening  his  purse  to  shut  it ;  as  ridiculous  it  is 
to  think  to  put  off  our  duty  with  good  words. 

(4.)  It  is  a  rooted  affection.  A  carnal  man  may  have  his  affections 
moved,  and  be  a  little  stirred  with  this  pure  doctrine,  but  he  is  soon 
put  out  of  humour ;  he  is  not  changed  by  it,  he  hath  not  a  constant 
affection  to  God  and  holy  things :  Gal.  iv.  18,  'It  is  good  to  be  zeal 
ously  affected  always  in  a  good  thing;'  to  hold  out  to  the  end,  and 
still  to  keep  up  a  warm  respect  ta  the  word  of  God.  This  is  to  love 
it,  to  have  the  word  ingrafted  into  the  stock  of  corrupt  nature,  James 
i.  21.  It  is  not  something  tied  on,  but  ingrafted  into  the  soul ;  it 
hath  place  in  the  heart. 

2.  Let  me  show  you  why. 

[1.]  The  necessity  of  this  love  to  the  word  appears  because  without 
this  love  we  cannot  be  accepted  of  God ;  unwilling  and  constrained 
service  is  of  little  acceptation  with  him :  1  Cor.  xiii.  1-3,  *  If  I  should 
give  my  goods  to  the  poor,  and  my  body  to  be  burnt,  and  have  not 
charity,  it  profiteth  me  nothing/  If  a  man  hath  never  so  many  excel 
lencies,  if  he  spend  his  goods  and  life  and  all  for  God,  without  this  sincere 
love  to  God  and  his  ways,  all  is  nothing.  God  doth  not  value  men  by 
the  pomp  of  their  services,  but  by  the  affection  of  their  hearts  in  them ; 
he  needeth  not  the  service,  and  he  seeth  the  heart.  A  man  is  pleased 
so  his  work  be  done  willingly  or  unwillingly,  for  he  needeth  the  labour 
of  the  slave ;  but  he  seeth  not  into  his  heart ;  but  God  hath  no  need 
of  us,  and  he  seeth  whether  we  give  him  the  heart  or  no.  So  that  if 
we  have  not  charity,  all  that  we  do  is  nothing. 

[2.]  Without  this  love  your  work  will  be  very  difficult,  grievous, 
and  irksome  to  you.  It  is  love  maketh  all  things  pleasant  and  easy, 
and  to  go  on  roundly :  1  John  v.  3,  *  For  this  is  the  love  of  God,  that 
we  keep  his  commandments,  and  his  commandments  are  not  grievous/ 
A  love  to  the  commands  of  God  will  make  us  do  them  with  cheerful 
ness.  When  a  man  loves  God,  it  will  be  no  grievous  thing  to  serve 
him.  It  is  said,  Neh.  iv.  6,  *  That  the  building  went  on  because  the 
people  had  a  mind  to  the  work/  The  building  of  the  temple  was  a 
difficult  task,  to  remove  the  rubbish,  and  carry  on  such  a  vast  piece 


VER.  140.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  485 

of  work ;  but  they  had  a  mind  to  the  work,  and  then  it  went  on 
Love  to  anything  makes  it  go  on  sweetly  and  cheerfully,  as  we  use  to 
say  ;  so  in  God's  service,  if  we  love  the  work,  we  cannot  count  it 
difficult. 

[3.J  You  will  never  be  constant  with  God  without  this  love.  An 
unwilling  servant  is  ever  running  from  his  work,  and  he  that  hath  not 
a  heart  fixed  and  set  will  find  discouragement  enough  in  heaven's 
way.  They  fell  off  that  received  not  the  truth  in  the  love  of  it, 
2  Thes.  ii.  10.  Fear  hath  compulsion  in  it,  but  it  will  not  hold  when 
the  fear  is  worn  off ;  but  love  is  a  lasting  affection,  when  your  hearts 
love  holiness,  and  you  love  the  work  for  the  work's  sake. 

Third  consideration.  It  is  not  enough  to  love  the  word,  but  we 
must  look  after  the  grounds  and  reasons  of  this  love. 

1.  Because  a  true  love  to  the  word  is  not  blind,  but  rational,  and 
may  be  justified  :  Mat.  xi.  19,  '  Wisdom  is  justified  of  her  children.' 
All  that  love  God  and  his  truth  are  able  to  plead  for  it.    If  you  are  not 
able  to  show  your  grounds  and  reasons  for  your  love  to  the  word,  your 
love  is  but  customary  :  Phil.  i.  9,  '  I  pray  that  your  love  may  abound 
in  all  knowledge  and  judgment.'    Such  a  love  and  zeal  is  commendable 
as  hath  a  proportionable  measure  of  knowledge  going  along  with  it. 
When  the  spouse  had  spoken  so  much  of  her  beloved,  the  question  is 
propounded,  Cant.  v.  9,  *  What  is  thy  beloved  more  than  another 
beloved,  that  thou  dost  thus  charge  us  ?  '     Christians  should  be  able 
to  say  what  is  their  Christ,  and  what  is  the  religion  they  do  profess  ; 
that  there  is  more  in  their  religion  than  in  all  religions  in  the  world. 

2.  Because  many  love  it  upon  wrong  reasons.     There  may  be  a 
natural  and  carnal  love  to  spiritual  things.     Look,  as  a  religious  man 
in  outward  things  rejoiceth  spiritually,  so  a  carnal  man  in  spiritual 
things  rejoiceth  carnally.     So  Herod  rejoiced  in  John's  preaching  with 
a  human  passion,  Mark  vi.  20,  as  he  was  a  plausible  preacher,  and  a 
rare  and  pregnant  interpreter  of  the  law.    This  was  but  a  carnal 
affection;  that  is,  thus:    They  may  be  pleased  with  notions,  and 
elevated  strains  of  wisdom.     I  remember  a  moralist  gives  this  simili 
tude  :  A  gallant  going  into  a  garden  prizeth  flowers  altogether  for 
the  beauty  of  them  ;  but  a  physician  he  looks  after  their  use  and 
virtue  in  medicine,  but  they  both  go  to  look  after  flowers.    So  a  godly 
man  delights  in  the  word  of  God  ;  it  is  that  he  may  be  brought  under 
the  power  of  it,  and  made  more  holy  and  heavenly-minded  ;  but  others 
go  to  hear  an  argument  rationally  traversed,  or  to  hear  cadences  of 
speech  and  pleasant  language.     It  is  not  enough  to  take  a  liking  to 
things,  but  we  must  know  why.     Nay,  let  me  tell  you  that  mere  for 
eign  and  external  reasons  may  sway  us  to  delight  in  the  word  ;  when 
religion  is  in  request,  and  groweth  in  fashion,  and  becometh  matter 
of  reputation,  it  is  no  great  matter  to  be  an  honourer  and  admirer 
of  it.     Simon  Magus  will  be  a  disciple  and  turn  Christian  too,  when  the 
whole  city  of  Samaria  listened  to  the  apostles,  and  embraced  their  doc 
trine,  Acts  viii.  ;  when  there  was  so  great  an  outward  affluence. 

3.  The  more  we  view  the  grounds  and  reasons,  the  more  our  love 
is  increased.     It  is  clear  the  will  and  affections  are  moved  by  the 
understanding,  and  that  ignorance  is  the  cause  of  the  contempt  of  the 
Lord's  grace  :  '  If  thou  knewest  the  gift/  John  iv.  10.     We  love,  and 


486  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiB.  CLVII. 

fear,  and  hate,  and  joy,  according  to  the  apprehensions  that  we  have  of 
things ;  and  therefore  the  more  knowledge  we  have,  the  more  love : 
Phil.  i.  9,  '  I  pray  that  your  love  may  ahound  in  all  knowledge/  If 
thou  dost  not  increase  in  knowledge,  thou  wilt  never  increase  in 
affection :  2  Peter  i.  2,  *  Grace  and  peace  be  multiplied  unto  you  bj 
the  knowledge  of  God  and  Jesus  Christ  our  Lord.'  Now,  the  more 
these  grounds  and  reasons  are  drawn  forth  in  the  view  of  conscience, 
the  more  our  love  is  stirred ;  as  the  more  we  beat  the  steel  upon  the 
flint,  the  more  the  sparks  fly  out. 

Fourth  consideration.  Of  all  the  grounds  and  reasons  of  our  love 
to  the  word  of  God,  the  most  noble  and  excellent  is  to  love  the  word 
for  its  purity. 

1.  Because,  this  showeth  indeed  that  we  are  made  '  partakers  of  the 
divine  nature/  2  Peter  i.  4.    For  I  pray  you  mark,  when  we  hate  evil 
as  evil,  and  love  good  as  good,  we  have  the  same  love  and  hatred  that 
God  hath.     It  showeth  that  the  soul  is  changed  into  the  likeness  of 
God  when  we  love  a  thing  for  its  purity.     God  hath  no  interest  to  be 
advanced  by  the  creature ;  he  loves  them  more  or  less  as  they  are  nearer 
or  further  off  from  his  glorious  being.     When  once  we  come  to  love 
things  because  they  are  pure,  it  is  a  sign  that  we  have  the  same  love 
that  God  hath. 

2.  This  argueth  a  suitableness  of  heart  to  what  God  require th,  for 
things  affect  us  as  they  suit  with  us  :  '  They  that  are  after  the  flesh 
savour  the  things  of  the  flesh,'  Rom.  viii.  5.     The  pure  will  only 
delight  in  pure  things,  but  swine  delight  in  puddles  ;  they  that  have 
the  spirit  of  the  world,  they  must  have  worldly  pleasure  and  honour, 
but  the  pure  will  delight  in  the  word  of  God :  1  Cor.  ii.  14,  '  The 
natural  man  receiveth  not  the  things  of  God,'  and  because  they  are 
not  suitable  to  him.     First  we  love  things  as  suitable  to  our  necessity, 
and  then  we  love  them  upon  interest,  and  afterwards  as  suitable  to  our 
disposition.     Now  it  argueth  a  good  frame  of  heart,  and  a  deep  sense 
of  God's  interest,  when  we  love  the  word  because  it  is  so  pure.     A 
man  first  loves  the  word  customarily,  because  he  is  born  there  where 
that  religion  is  in  fashion ;  and  then  when  he  beginneth  to  have  a 
conscience,  he  loveth  it  for  pardon  and  peace,  as  it  offers  a  Saviour  : 
his  own  happiness,  self-love,  puts  him  upon  seeking  after  God  ;  then 
afterwards  his  heart  is  suited  to  God's  will,  arid  there  is  something  of 
kin  in  his  heart  to  the  will  of  God  revealed  without,  and  he  loveth  it 
for  its  suitableness  of  nature  unto  the  will  of  God. 

3.  To  be  sure  this  love  is  no  way  questionable,  but  is  an  undoubted 
evidence  of  right  and  sound  love  to  the  word  of  God.  Many  pretend 
to  have  a  high  estimation  and  respect  to  the  doctrine  of  God  when 
they  cannot  digest  the  directions  of  it,  because  it  is  contrary  to  their 
desires  and  carnal  affections ;  they  reserve  something  in  their  hearts 
that  makes  their  love  questionable.  They  that  have  not  a  real  love  to 
the  word  of  God  are  but  lightly  tinctured  with  religion,  not  deeply 
dyed.  The  stony  ground  received  the  word  with  joy.  Men  may  have 
strong  affections  and  strange  stirrings  in  their  souls,  and  yet  not  be  right 
with  God.  But  here  is  an  undoubted  evidence,  to  love  the  word  for  its 
purity.  A  man's  love  may  be  questionable,  because  he  may  love  the 
word  upon  foreign  motives,  either  because  of  novelty,  or  fineness  of 


VER.  140.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  487 

expression,  or  public  countenance  and  credit,  or  external  advantage, 
John  yi.  26.  Vix  diligitur  Jesus  propter  Jesum.  Or  they  may  love 
it  for  internal  reasons,  as  it  is  a  good  word,  as  they  that  tasted  of  the 
power  of  the  world  to  come ;  they  may  look  upon  it  for  pleasure  and 
profit,  but  not  as  good^and  holy.  Many  look  upon  the  gospel  as  good 
and  profitable,  as  offering  peace,  and  pardon,  and  comfort,  and  eternal 
life.  Nature,  that  hath  naturally  a  sense  of  religion,  hath  also  a 
hunger  after  immortality  and  blessedness  ;  and  therefore  the  promises 
of  the  gospel  may  be  greedily  catched  after,  as  offering  everlasting  life 
and  blessedness.  But  now  a  love  to  that  which  is  pure  and  holy  leaveth 
a  more  durable  impression  upon  the  soul.  And  further,  many  have  a 
liking  to  the  purity  of  the  word,  and  a  general  approbation  of  it,  as  it 
is  a  fit  rule  for  creatures  to  live  by  ;  yet  unless  there  be  a  strong  pre 
vailing  affection,  all  comes  to  nothing ;  and  therefore  nothing  but  this 
love  to  the  word  because  of  its  purity  is  unquestionable. 

4.  Unless  we  love  the  word  as  pure,  we  shall  fail  in  many  other 
parts  of  religion  ;  we  shall  not  love  God  as  we  ought,  for  God  is  lovely, 
not  only  as  the  fountain  of  blessedness,  but  as  he  is  the  most  pure 
and  perfect  being.  He  was  diligibilis  natures  before  any  emanation 
of  goodness  passed  from  him.  We  are  to  love  him  in  desertions,  when 
we  feel  no  good  from  him,  and  he  seemeth  to  write  bitter  things 
against  us,  Isa.  xxvi.  8.  So  that  we  cannot  discharge  this  duty  to 
love  God  as  he  is  a  pure  and  perfect  being  if  we  do  not  love  the  word 
because  it  is  pure.  And  we  shall  not  love  the  saints  as  we  ought 
without  this,  Ps.  xvi.  3.  We  are  to  love  them  for  the  image  of  God 
in  them.  '  If  you  love  them  that  love  you,  what  thanks  have  you  ?  ' 
Mat.  v.  46.  We  are  to  love  the  saints  as  saints,  and  for  that  reason. 
Once  more,  we  are  to  hate  sin,  as  filthy,  as  it  is  a  gross  absurdity,  and 
deordination  of  the  human  nature :  Ps.  xcvi.  10,  '  Ye  that  love  the 
Lord,  hate  evil.'  Now,  till  we  have  this  frame  of  heart,  to  love  the 
law  as  it  is  pure,  we  can  do  none  of  these  things ;  for  there  is  the 
same  reason  for  the  one  as  for  the  other ;  and  therefore  it  is  not 
a  nicety,  but  a  necessary  frame  of  heart. 

Use  1.  To  inform  us  that  they  can  never  love  God  and  his  ways 
that  hate  purity,  till  their  hearts  be  changed.  There  are  a  sort  of 
men  in  the  world  whose  hearts  rise  against  purity;  for  if  they  see  any 
make  conscience  of  sin,  they  brand  them  with  the  name  of  Puritans ; 
so  those  that  seek  to  keep  themselves  from  sin,  and  the  more  holy  they 
are,  they  are  an  eyesore  to  them.  Now,  can  they  say,  I  love  thy  law 
because  it  is  pure,  and  cannot  endure  to  see  it  copied  out  in  others  ? 
Oh,  what  a  vile  disposition  is  this  in  you,  to  be  despisers  of  that  which 
is  good  !  2  Tim.  iii.  3.  None  live  up  to  the  purity  of  their  profession 
but  you  scorn  them  ;  and  let  me  tell  you,  you  scorn  that  which  is  most 
glorious  in  God  himself.  Would  a  father  take  it  well  that  a  slave 
should  mock  his  child  because  it  is  like  him?  So  will  God  take 
it  well  that  you  should  scorn  those  that  are  good,  because  they  are 
like  their  heavenly  Father  ?  These  are  of  the  seed  of  the  serpent, 
who  are  full  of  enmity ;  they  have  the  old  antipathy,  Gen.  iii.  15 ; 
Prov.  xxix.  27.  It  is  a  vile  scorn  of  the  God  of  heaven  to  hate  a 
man  for  his  holiness.  And  they  can  never  love  the  law,  whatever 
they  pretend,  that  do  not  love  the  law  for  its  purity.  A  carnal  dis- 


488  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SEB.  CLVII. 

tempered  appetite  hath  no  taste  for  the  word  of  God,  as  it  is  a  direction 
to  holiness,  2  Cor.  ii.  14. 

Use  2.  To  inform  us  in  what  rank  to  place  principles.  There  are 
several  sorts  of  principles ;  there  are  some  that  are  false  and  rotten, 
and  some  more  tolerable,  and  some  good  and  sound,  and  some  rare 
and  excellent. 

1.  There  are  some  false  and  rotten  principles,  as  carnal  example 
and  custom.     Men  will  do  as  they  have  done,  or  as  others  do ;  they 
will  own  the  religion  that  their  fathers  have  done,  be  it  what  it  will. 
By  the  same  reason  you  may  serve  Mahomet  as  well  as  Christ.     A 
man  that  standeth  upon  the  vantage-ground  is  not  taller  than  another ; 
such  are  of  no  better  constitution  than  the  Turks,  only  they  stand 
upon  the  vantage-ground.     Another  rotten  principle  is  vainglory,  to- 
be  seen  of  men,  Mat.  vi. ;  they  pray  and  give  alms  to  be  seen  of  men. 

'  Come  see  my  zeal  for  the  Lord  of  hosts,'  saith  Jehu.  Vainglory 
many  times  filleth  the  sails,  and  carries  us  on  in  the  service  of  God. 
So  secular  and  worldly  interests  and  ends  ;  as  the  Pharisees  made  long 
prayers  that  they  might  devour  widows'  houses,  Mat.  xxiii.  ;  that  is, 
they  made  long  prayers  and  show  of  devotion,  to  be  trusted  with  the 
management  of  widows'  estates,  to  make  a  prey  of  them.  All  that  I 
shall  say  to  this  principle  is  this,  that  it  is  better  for  the  world  that 
men  would  serve  God  anyhow,  that  Christ  should  be  served  out  of 
vainglory,  than  not  served  at  all ;  as  the  apostle  saith  some  preach 
Christ  out  of  envy,  and  others  out  of  good- will,  but  I  am  glad  so  Christ 
be  preached,  Phil.  i.  18 ;  though  they  themselves  be  rotten-hearted 
hypocrites,  yet  the  world  fares  the  better  for  it. 

2.  There  are  some  more  tolerable  principles,  the  hope  of  temporal 
mercies.     When  we  come  and  pray,  and  do  not  seek  the  favour  of 
God,  but  seek  temporal  mercies :  Hosea  vii.  14,  '  They  howled  upon 
their  beds  for  corn  and  wine/     Or  the  fear  of  temporal  judgments, 
Isa.  Iviii.  5  ;  Jer.  ii.  16;  when  all  that  they  do  is  to  remove  some 
temporal  judgment :  '  In  their  afflictions  they  will  seek  me  right  early.' 
And  I  think  I  may  add  one  thing  more  here,  the  fear  of  eternal  death, 
when  it  is  alone  (otherwise  it  is  a  grace)  ;  they  shall  be  damned  else ; 
and  so  it  is  a  sleepy  sop  to  appease  an  accusing  conscience,  and  so  it  is 
but  a  sin-offering.     Though  it  requireth  some  faith  to  fear  what  is  to- 
come,  yet  fear  of  punishment  alone  showeth  you  are  slaves,  and  only 
love  yourselves :  the  devils  fear  and  tremble,  but  do  not  love.     Yon 
may  fear  a  thing  though  you  hate  it.     So  far  as  the  heart  is  affected 
with  the  fear  of  hell,  it  is  good. 

3.  There  are  very  good  and  sound  principles,  yet  do  not  always 
argue  grace,  as  when  duties  are  done  out  of  the  urgings  of  an  en 
lightened  conscience ;  this  may  be  without  the  bent  of  a  renewed  heart, 
but  yet  the  principle  is  sound ;  for  the  first  thing  that  influenceth  a 
man  is  to  consider  himself  a  creature,  and  so  to  look  upon  himself  as 
bound  to  obey  his  creator.     I  shall  illustrate  it  by  the  apostle's  words 
in  another  case  :    I  must  preach  the  gospel,  and  'woe  unto  me  if  I 
preach  not  the  gospel,'  1  Cor.  ix.  16,  17,  '  Whether  I  do  it  willingly 
or  unwillingly,  yet  a  dispensation  is  committed  to  me.'     So  saith  the 
soul,  Whether  I  be  fitted  to  do  God  service  or  no,  God  must  be 
obeyed.     But  because  God's  precept  is  invested  with  a  sanction  of- 


VER.  141.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  489 

threatenings  and  rewards,  here  comes  in  the  fear  of  hell  and  the  hope 
of  heaven.  The  Lord  hath  commanded  me  to  fly  from  hell ;  this  is  a 
good  principle :  so  the  hope  of  heaven,  Heb.  xi.  26 ;  it  is  a  sound 
principle:  a  man  may  be  gracious,  or  he  may  not.  Many  have  a 
liking  to  heaven  and  eternal  life,  as  it  is  a  state  of  happiness,  not  of 
likeness  to  God.  Where  it  is  not  alone,  it  is  a  very  sound  principle, 
but  as  it  is,  it  may  sometimes  be  the  sign  of  a  renewed  man,  and  some 
times  not. 

4.  There  are  rare  and  excellent  principles,  when  we  act  out  of 
thankfulness  to  God,  when  we  consider  the  Lord's  goodness,  that  might 
have  required  duty  out  of  mere  sovereignty  ;  he  hath  laid  the  founda 
tion  of  it  in  the  blood  of  his  own  Son,  1  John  iv.  29 ;  when  we  love 
him  out  of  the  sense  of  his  love  to  us  in  Christ,  and  when  the  grace  of 
God  that  hath  appeared  teacheth  us  to  deny  ungodliness,  Titus  ii.  11 ; 
when  the  mercies  of  God  melt  us,  Kom.  xii.  1 ;  when  there  are  no 
entreaties  so  powerful  as  that  of  love.  Again,  another  principle  that 
is  rare  and  excellent  is  when  the  glory  of  God  doth  season  us  in  our 
whole  course,  that  it  may  be  to  the  praise  of  his  glorious  grace,  1  Cor. 
x.  31.  Another  is  complacency  in  the  work  for  the  work's  sake,  when 
we  love  the  law  because  it  is  pure,  when  I  see  it  will  ennoble  me  and 
make  me  like  God,  when  I  love  God  and  his  ways,  when  nothing  but  so 
noble  employment  doth  engage  me  to  his  service ;  and  service  to  God 
is  the  sweetest  life  in  the  world. 


SERMON  CLVIII. 
I  am  small  and  despised  ;  yet  do  I  not  forget  thy  precepts. — VER.  141 . 

HERE  David  proveth  the  truth  of  his  former  assertion,  that  seeing  the 
word  of  God  was  so  pure,  he  loved  it  for  its  own  sake,  and  that  he  did 
not  court  religion  for  the  portion  that  he  should  have  with  it,  but  for 
itself.  Some  are  mere  mercenaries ;  no  longer  than  they  are  bribed 
by  some  worldly  profit,  have  they  any  respect  for  God  and  his  ways. 
The  man  of  God  was  of  another  temper.  If  God  would  bestow  any 
thing  on  him,  well ;  if  not,  he  would  love  his  word  still ;  yea,  when  it 
brought  him  apparent  loss,  meanness,  and  contempt,  yet  this  could 
not  make  any  divorce  between  his  heart  and  the  word  :  *  I  am  small 
and  despised,'  &c. 

In  the  words  we  have — (1.)  David's  condition ;  (2.)  David's  car 
riage  under  that  condition.  His  condition  might  have  been  a  snare  to 
him,  yet  still  he  keepeth  up  his  affection. 

1.  His  condition  is  set  forth  by  two  notions,  the  one  of  which  im- 
plieth  the  other.  God's  providence,  '  I  am  small.'  God  had  reduced 
him  to  straits.  The  other,  man's  treatment  of  him,  *  and  despised.' 
The  one  showeth  what  he  was  really  in  himself,  the  other  what  he  was 
in  the  opinion  of  others  :  mean  in  himself,  and  contemptible  in  the  eye 
of  others.  The  Septuagint  has,  vewrepos  eyco  et/u  ical  egovSevwpevos— 
I  am  the  younger,  and  set  at  nought ;  therefore  the  Greek  interpreters 
suppose  it  relateth  to  the  story  where  God  bids  Samuel  to  anoint  one 


490  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SflR.  CLVIIL 

of  the  sons  of  Jesse  to  be  king,  and  the  elder  children  were  brought 
forth,  who  were  taller,  and  more  likely  too ;  and  they  said  of  them, 
Surely  the  Lord's  anointed  is  before  him ;  and  when  Samuel  inquired 
for  another,  they  told  him,  1  Sam.-xvi.  7,  '  That  there  remaineth  the 
youngest,  and  he  keepeth  sheep  ; '  then,  when  he  was  but  a  youth,  and 
a  despised  stripling,  his  heart  was  with  God,  and  God  favoured  him. 
Or  else  they  refer  it  to  the  time  when  Eliab  his  eldest  brother  despised 
him,  1  Sam.  xvii.  28.  Others  think  this  was  verified  when  the  elders 
of  Israel  forsook  him,  and  clave  to  Absalom.  Bather  I  think  it 
general  to  any  afflicted  condition,  when  he  was  little  in  estate  and 
reputation,  rather  than  in  years ;  elsewhere  so  is  this  word  '  small ' 
taken :  Arnos  vii.  2—5,  '  Jacob  is  small ;  by  whom  shall  he  arise  ? ' 
when  his  condition  was  helpless  and  hopeless,  and  interest  inconsider 
able  in  the  world.  So  here :  '  1  am  small  and  despised ; '  I  am  looked 
upon  as  a  man  of  no  value  and  interest. 

2.  David's  carriage  under  this  condition,  '  Yet  do  I  not  forget  thy 
precepts.'  First,  here  is  a  /uetWt? ;  less  is  said,  more  is  intended :  I  do 
•earnestly  remember  them.  Again,  a  man  may  be  said  to  remember  or 
forget  two  ways — notionally  or  affectively.  Notionally,  a  man  forgets 
when  the  notions  of  things  formerly  known  are  quite  vanished  out  of 
his  mind ;  affectively,  when,  though  he  retaineth  the  notions,  yet  he 
is  not  answerably  affected,  he  doth  not  act  suitably.  So  it  is  taken 
here,  and  implieth  as  much  as  I  am  steadfast  in  the  profession  of  this 
truth :  as  they  say  in  a  like  case,  Ps.  xliv.  17,  '  We  have  not  forgotten 
thee,  nor  dealt  falsely  in  thy  covenant ; '  not  parted  with  any  point  of 
truth,  or  neglected  and  dispensed  with  any  part  of  duty.  '  Precepts  ' 
is  put  for  the  whole  word  of  God :  '  I  do  not  forget  thy  word,'  the 
comforts  and  duties  of  it.  None  do  so  far  forget  God  and  his  precepts 
as  those  that  make  defection  from  him.  The  sum  of  all  is,  My  mean 
and  despicable  condition  doth  not  make  a  breach  upon  my  constancy, 
but  still  I  keep  the  credit  of  being  a  faithful  servant  to  thee.  His 
temptation  was  double.  His  faithfulness  had  made  him  small  (God 
seemeth  to  forget  us  in  our  low  estate,  yet  we  should  not  forget  him), 
and  had  made  him  despised.  Though  we  lose  esteem  with  men  by 
sticking  to  the  word  of  God,  yet  the  word  of  God  should  lose  no  esteem 
with  us. 

DocL  They  that  love  God  may  be  reduced  to  a  mean,  low,  and 
afflicted  condition.  'I  am  small,'  saith  David.  The  Lord  seeth  it  meet 
for  divers  reasons. 

1.  That  they  may  know  their  happiness  is  not  in  this  world,  and  so 
the  more  long  for  heaven  and  delight  in  heavenly  things  :  Ps.  xvii.  14, 
15,  *  From  men  of  the  world,  which  have  their  portion  in  this  life : 
as  for  me,  I  will  behold  thy  face  in  righteousness  ;  I  shall  be  satisfied 
when  I  awake  with  thy  likeness.'  Christ  gave  his  Spirit  to  the  rest  of 
the  disciples,  and  the  purse  to  Judas  ;  he  had  the  keeping  of  the  bag, 
that  was  the  worst.  God's  dearest  children  usually  have  the  least  in 
this  world,  that  they  may  look  higher ;  as  Levi  had  no  portion  among 
his  brethren,  because  God  would  be  his  portion.  Others  have  more 
plentiful  accommodations  for  back  and  belly ;  they  are  better  clad, 
their  tables  more  plentifully  furnished  and  supplied,  larger  portions 
for  their  children.  They  that  look  to  save  anything  or  get  anything 


VER.  141.]  SEKMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  491 

by  religion  but  the  saving  of  their  souls  are  foully  mistaken ;  if  we 
ha ve^  more  than  others,  religion  calleth  for  more  disbursements. 
Charity  and  liberal  distributions  exposeth  to  troubles ;  religion 
moderateth  our  desires,  and  forbids  all  unjust  ways  of  acquiring 
wealth,  calleth  upon  us  to  forsake  all  for  a  good  conscience.  There^ 
fore  they  that  follow  Christ  out  of  a  design  to  be  rich  in  this  world, 
lose  their  aim.  Not  but  that  hypocrites  sometimes  make  a  market  of 
religion,  but  then  God  is  angry,  and  they,  and  the  church  too,  pay 
for  it  at  last:  not  but  that  religion  bringeth  in  temporal  supplies: 
Mat.  vi.  33,  '  First  seek  the  kingdom  of  God,  and  his  righteousness, 
and  all  these  things  shall  be  added  unto  you/  ravra  Trdvra  irpoa-re6rf- 
a-ercu ;  food  and  raiment  it  bringeth  in.  God  may  give  some  a  more 
plentiful  allowance  ;  especially  if  they  be  faithful  stewards,  then  they 
are  intrusted  with  more ;  but  generally  they  are  mean  and  small,  or 
if  they  have  more  of  this  world's  goods,  they  have  their  afflictions  in 
other  kinds. 

2.  It  is  necessary  to  cut  off  the  provisions  of  the  flesh  and  the  fuel  of 
their  lusts.     A  rank  soil  breedeth  weeds,  and  when  we  sail  with  a  full 
stream  we  are  apt  to  be  carried  away  with  it.     We  either  glut  our 
selves  with  the  pleasures  of  the  flesh,  or  grow  proud,  and  hanker  and 
linger  after  the  pomp  and  vanities  of  the  world,  and  neglect  God. 
And  therefore  God  is  fain  to  diet  us,  and  to  keep  us  bare  and  low  ;  as 
he  is  said  to  cut  Israel   short,  2  Kings  x.  32,  when   he  straitened 
their  coasts  and  borders.     So  for  our  cure  we  need  not  only  internal 
grace  to  abate  the  lust,  but  external  providence  to  catch  away  the 
prey  and  bait  by  which  it  is  fed.     The  wise  man  saith  not  only,  Give 
me  grace,  but  '  Give  me  neither  poverty  nor  riches/  Prov.  xxx.  8,  9  ; 
and  Gal.  vi.  14,  '  By  whom  the  world  is  crucified  to  me,  and  I  unto 
the  world.'    Both  parts  are  necessary.    Kiches  are  a  great  temptation; 
we  would  root  here,  and  grow  sensual,  worldly,  and  proud,  if  God  did 
not  snatch  our  comforts  from  us,  when  we  are  apt  to  surfeit  of  them. 
A  plentiful  portion  of  temporal  things  is  spiritually  dangerous. 

3.  That  they  may  be  more  sensible  of  his  displeasure  against  their 
sins  and  scandalous  carriage,  by  which  they  have  dishonoured  him  and 
provoked  the  pure  eyes  of  his  glory.     Never  have  scandals  fallen  out 
but  some  great  woe  followed  :  Mat.  xviii.  7,  '  Woe  to  the  world,  be 
cause  of  offences/     Therefore  God  hath  brought  his  people  low  that 
he  may  vindicate  his  name,  which  through  their  means  is  blasphemed, 
Kom.  ii.  24,  and  make  his  people  sensible  of  their  sin.    The  world  shall 
know  that  he  doth  allow  sin  no  more  in  them  than  in  others ;  and 
therefore,  though  they  were  as  the  signet  upon  his  finger,  he  will  pluck 
them  off,  and  make  them  feel  the  smart  of  their  wanderings  :  Amos 
Hi.  2,  '  You  only  have  I  known  of  all  the  families  of  the  earth,  there 
fore  I  will  punish  you  for  all  your  iniquities.'     They  that  have  been 
so  near  and  dear  to  him,  the  world  might  think  he  did  approve 
their  eins  if  he  did  not  manifest  his  displeasure  at  them.     Usually 
their  sins  go  nearest  his  heart,  and  meet  with  the  sorest  vengeance  : 
Deut.  xxxii.  19,  'When  the  Lord  saw  it,  he  abhorred  them,  because 
of  the  provokings  of  his  sons  and  of  his  daughters.'     Their  relation  to 
God,  their  privileges,  and  the  consequences  of  their  actions,  aggravate 
their  sins ;  and  therefore  God  is  most  quick  and  severe  in  punishing 


492  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CLVIIL 

their  sins.  We  complain  we  were  brought  low,  but  were  not  our  pro 
vocations  first  very  high?  The  most  religious  cannot  wipe  their 
mouths,  and  excuse  themselves  as  faultless.  Oh  !  what  a  sad  part 
hath  been  lately  acted  upon  the  public  stage  !  What  a  trade  have 
many  driven  for  themselves  under  a  mask  of  religion  !  What  breaches 
in  the  body  of  Christ,  uncharitable  divisions,  making  a  profession  of 
the  name  of  Christ  for  carnal  ends ! 

4.  That  we  may  learn  to  live  upon  the  promises,  and  learn  to  exer 
cise   suffering   graces ;   especially   dependence  upon   God,   who   can 
support  us  without  a  temporal  visible  interest.     Compare  Rev.  xii.  11, 
'  And  they  overcame  him  by  the  blood  of  the  Lamb,  and  by  the  word 
of  their  testimony  ;  and  they  loved  not  their  lives  to  the  death  ; '  Rev. 
xiii.  7,  '  And  it  was  given  unto  him  to  make  war  with  the  saints,  and 
to  overcome  them ;  and  power  was  given  him  over  all  kindreds  and 
tongues  and  nations.'     You  shall  see  how  the  enemies  overcome,  and 
the  saints  overcome ;   the  seed  of  the  woman  and  the  seed  of  the 
serpent.     The  beast  raiseth  the  world  against  the   saints,  and  pre- 
vaileth  over  their  bodies ;    he  overcomes  them  by  spoiling  them,  of 
liberty,  lives,  and  temporal  estate  ;  but  they  overcome  by  adhering  to- 
truth,  and  resisting  his  temptations  and  their  own  corruptions  even  in 
the  lowest  estate  by  suffering.     So  for  other  graces, — patience,  meek 
ness,  self-denial,  spiritual  comforts.    As  the  stars  in  their  order  fought 
against  Sisera,  so  all  graces  are  exercised  in  their  turn :  Rev.  xiii.  10r 
'Here  is  the  faith  and  patience  of  the  saints;'  that  is,  a  time  to  act 
these  graces.     A  full  third  of  the  scriptures  would  be  lost  which  con- 
taineth  comfort  for  afflicted  ones,  if  God  did  not  exercise  them  with 
temporal  afflictions. 

5.  That  God  may  convince  the  enemies  that  there  is  a  people  that 
do  sincerely  serve  him,  and  not  for  carnal  selfish  ends,  Job  i.     The 
carnal  world  suspects  private,  selfish,  worldly  aims  and  designs  in  all 
that  we  do,  and  attributes  all  our  duties  to  interest ;  being  themselves 
led  by  interest,  they  cannot  think  others  are  led  by  conscience.     Men 
are  apt  to  suspect  and  malign  what  they  will  not  imitate.     There  is 
sometimes  too  much  advantage  given  ;   many  are  mercenaries,  only 
esteem  the  ways  of  God  when  beneficial  to  them :  John  vi.  26,  '  Ye 
seek  me  not  because  ye  saw  the  miracles,  but  because  ye  did  eat  of 
the  loaves  and  were  filled.'     Therefore  it  is  needful  to  heighten  the 
price  of  religion  when  it  is  too  cheap  a  thing  to  be  a  Christian.     This 
God  doth  by  bringing  his  people  low,  that  the  world  may  see  some 
will  cleave  to  him  in  all  conditions  ;  not  only  when  his  ways  are  be 
friended,  but  when  frowned  upon.     God  will  glorify  himself  and  his 
truth  by  their  constancy. 

6.  That  his  glory  may  be  more  seen  in  their  deliverance ;  and  there 
fore  before  God  doth  appear  for  his  children,  he  bringeth  them  very 
low.     Thus  Paul,  2  Cor.  i.  9,  '  We  had  the  sentence  of  death  in  our 
selves,  that  we  should  not  trust  in  ourselves,  but  in  God,  which  raised 
the  dead  ;'  and  Ps.  cxxxvi.  23,  *  He  remembered  us  in  our  low  estate,, 
for  his  mercy  endureth  for  ever.'     His  mercy  and  power  is  the  more 
glorious  in  our  rescue. 

All  that  I  shall  say  by  way  of  use  on  this  point  is  this — 

1.  That  when  we  are  a  small  people,  and  persons  of  no  interest,  we 


VEK.  141.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  493 

have  a  liberty  to  use  it  to  God  ;  you  may  make  use  of  your  weak  and 


Ixix.  29,  '  But  I  am  poor  and  sorrowful ;  let  thy  salvation,  0  God,  set 
me  on  high.'  It  is  some  ease  to  acquaint  a  friend  with  our  griefs  that 
can  only  pity  us,  much  more  when  we  have  liberty  to  go  to  God,  who 
can  and  will  help  us,  and  will  allow  us  to  complain  to  him,  though  not 
of  him. 

2.  When  God's  ends  are  accomplished  there  is  hope :  Isa.  x.  12, 
'  When  the  Lord  hath  performed  his  whole  work  upon  Mount  Zion ; ' 
when  he  hath  chastised  his  people,  and  brought  them  to  his  purpose, 
then  he  will  reckon  with  his  enemies ;  when  heaven  is  minded  more, 
and  earth  less.  We  naturally  mind  earthly  things,  and  please  our 
selves  with  the  dreaming  of  a  happy  estate  in  the  world  ;  the  appetite 
of  temporal  dominion,  and  wealth,  and  honour,  and  peace  is  natural 
to  us,  and  very  hardly  subdued  ;  and  therefore  we  would  fain  flourish 
here,  and  do  not  comfort  ourselves  in  our  crosses  with  the  meditation 
of  the  glory  of  the  world  to  come,  but  are  always  feeding  ourselves 
with  desires  and  hopes  of  earthly  happiness,  and  of  turning  the  tide 
.and  current  of  affairs,  that  things  may  again  smile,  upon  us  ;  and 
when  frustrated  and  disappointed  of  this  hope,  our  soul  fainteth. 
Your  worldly  happiness  will  be  a  snare  to  you  while  you  are  thus 
affected,  Mat.  vi.  33.  Prepare  for  heaven,  and  God  will  give  you  so 
much  happiness  by  the  way  as  will  be  needful  and  fit  for  you.  Again, 
when  we  are  mortified,  and  the  cross  hath  purged  out  sin,  Isa.  xxvii.  9, 
the  cross  hath  done  its  work.  So  when  we  are  humble  :  Lev.  xxvi. 
41,  '  If  then  their  uncircumcised  hearts  be  humble,  and  they  accept  of 
the  punishment  of  their  iniquity.'  To  be  meek  in  spirit  and  to  trust 
in  the  Lord  is  a  forerunner  of  mercy  :  Zeph.  iii.  12,  '  I  will  also  leave 
in  the  midst  of  thee  an  afflicted  and  poor  people,  and  they  shall  trust 
in  the  name  of  the  Lord.'  When  you  bring  honour  to  God  by  your 
sufferings  :  James  i.  4, '  But  let  patience  have  its  perfect  work,  that  ye 
may  be  perfect  and  entire,  wanting  nothing.'  When  it  is  most  for 
God's  glory  to  do  it :  Deut.  xxxii.  36,  '  For  the  Lord  shall  judge  his 
people,  and  repent  himself  for  his  servants,  when  he  seeth  that  their 
power  is  gone,  and  there  is  none  shut  up  or  left/ 

Doct.  God's  people,  when  they  are  brought  low,  are  usually  a  very 
despised  people,  the  most  despised  people  under  heaven. 

Here  I  shall  show — 

1.  That  this  is  the  usual  lot  of  an  afflicted  people. 

2.  But  especially  of  the  people  of  God. 

3.  The  trial  is  very  grievous  to  them. 

1.  An  afflicted  people  are  usually  a  despised  people:  Ps.  cxxiii.  4, 
*  Our  soul  is  exceedingly  filled  with  the  scorning  of  those  that  are  at 
case,  and  with  the  contempt  of  the  proud.'  They  that  are  proud,  and 
have  all  things  flow  in  upon  them  according  to  their  own  will,  con 
temn  and  slight  others,  and  take  no  notice  of  their  burdens,  unless  it 
be  to  increase  them  ;  they  pour  vinegar  on  the  wound.  The  heathens 
had  a  reverence  for  places  stricken  with  thunder,  because  the  hand  of 
God  had  touched  them ;  but  here  it  is  not  so  :  Job  xii.  5,  *  He  that  is 


494  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SBB.  CLVIIL 

ready  to  slip  with  his  feet  is  as  a  lamp  despised  in  the  thoughts  of  him 
that  is  at  ease/  While  we  are  burning  lamps,  shining  in  riches  and 
greatness,  we  shall  have  enough  to  look  after  us  ;  but  a  poor,  broken, 
dying  lamp,  a  snuff,  that  is  ready  to  go  out,  everybody  holdeth  their 
nose  at  it.  Whilst  the  enemies  are  honourable,  great,  tumble  in 
wealth  and  the  excess  of  carnal  delights,  they  despise  those  that  are 
mean  and  low,  and  fallen  under  God's  hand. 

2.  The  people  of  God,  much  more  common  sufferers,  may  meet  with 
some  pity  in  their  calamity,  but  the  godly  are  subject  to  reproaches 
and  mockings  in  their  troubles ;  and  this  many  times  proveth  the 
heaviest  part  of  the  cross,  and  maketh  it  most  grievous  to  be  borne. 
It  is  so  partly  because  they  are  fallen  from  their  great  hopes,  carried 
on  in  a  way  of  religion.     Where  is  their  God,  their  fasting,  prayer  ? 
As  if  all  were  now  delusions  and  fantastical  impressions.     And  partly 
because  the  presence  of  God  is  sensibly  gone  from  them.    The  presence 
of  God  among  his  people  maketh  them  wise,  courageous,  prosperous. 
How  should  one  chase  a  hundred,  and  a  hundred  put  a  thousand  to 
flight  ?     But  when  God  leaveth  them,  they  grow  despicable  and  ridi 
culous  above  all  others :  Hosea  xiv.  1,  '  Return  to  the  Lord  thy  God, 
for  thou  hast  fallen  by  thine  iniquity.'     '  All  that  honoured  her  shall 
despise  her,  because  her  nakedness  is  seen/  Lam.  i.  8.     A  dispirited, 
judgment-blasted  people  shall  be  contemned.     And  partly  because  the 
cause  for  which  they  suffer  may  be  strangely  disguised  and  ill-repre 
sented  to  the  world.     Satan  was  first  a  liar  and  then  a  murderer,  John 
viii.  44.    Elijah  was  thought  the  troubler  of  Israel.    They  may  not  only 
persecute,  but  say  all  manner  of  evil  against  us  falsely  for  Christ's  sake, 
Mat.  xi.  19.     Christ  is  called  a  glutton,  a  wine-bibber ;  and  Stephen 
a  blasphemer.     And  partly  by  Satan's  instigation  ;  by  this  means  he 
maketh  the  despisers  increase  their  sin  and  hasten  their  judgment, 
and  so  he  dissuades  and  discourages  many  weak  Christians  from  own 
ing  the  despised  ways  of  Christ ;  yea,  it  taketh  off  much  of  the  cheer 
fulness  and  courage  of  the  strong  in  the  profession  of  godliness. 

3.  It  is  very  grievous.     Contempt  maketh  our  other  trials  more 
sharp.     Every  man  thinketh  himself  worthy  of  some  respect,  and  would 
be  somebody  in  the  world,  and  therefore,  when  we  are  laid  aside  as  if 
dead  and  useless,  the  temptation  is  the  greater.     Saul  could  better 
bear  death  than  contempt :  1  Sam.  xxxi.  4,  '  Draw  thy  sword  and 
thrust  me  through,  lest  the  uncircumcised  come  and  abuse  me.'    Zede- 
kiah  was  afraid  of  mocking :  Jer.  xxxviii.  19,  '  Lest  they  deliver  me 
into  the  hands  of  the  Chaldeans,  and  they  mock  me/     But  not  only 
as  we  are  men  is  it  grievous  to  us,  but  also  as  Christians ;  because 
this  contempt  reflecteth  upon  our  hopes  and  the  worship  of  God ;  it 
hindereth  our  service  :  while  we  were  esteemed  we  did  more  good,  and 
had  greater  advantages.     It  may  revive  the  sense  of  guilt.     God  saith, 
1  Sam.  ii.  30,  '  Them  that  honour  me  I  will  honour,  and  they  that 
despise  me  shall  be  lightly  esteemed/     We  have  made  God's  name  to 
be  reproached,  and  religion  to  be  lightly  esteemed ;  we  may  own  the 
justice  of  God  in  all  this. 

Use.  Oh !  then,  let  us  be  fore-armed  against  this  temptation,  that 
when  we  lose  esteem  with  wicked  men,  because  we  will  not  com 
ply  with  their  lusts,  we  may  bear  it  patiently.  Surely  we  stand  too 


VER.  141.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  495 

much  upon  honour  and  respect,  and  have  too  tender  a  sense  and  feeling 
of  contempt,  when  it  discourageth  us  in  the  ways  of  God.  A  Chris 
tian  should  seek  the  honour  that  cometh  from  God  only,  arid  be  content 
with  his  approbation.  I  know  it  is  a  blessing  to  have  respect  with 
men ;  it  is  said  of  our  Lord  Christ  that  he  grew  in  favour  with  God 
and  with  men,  Luke  ii.  52 ;  the  same  also  is  spoken  of  Samuel :  1 
Sam.  ii.  26,  '  And  the  child  grew,  and  was  in  favour  with  God  and 
with  men/  It  is  a  blessing  where  it  may  be  had  without  any  viola 
tion  of  duty.  When  God  blameth  us  not,  and  men  have  no  just  com 
plaint  against  us,  our  care  must  be  to  provide  things  honest  in  the  sight 
of  God  and  men,  Bom.  xii.  17 ;  to  take  away  all  cause  of  offence  both 
from  Jew  and  Gentile,  and  from  the  church  of  God,  1  Cor.  x.  32. 
But  if  men  will  not  be  pleased  but  with  the  offence  of  God,  we  should 
count  it  a  privilege  to  be  worthy  of  the  world's  hatred.  Gratias  ago 
Deo  meo,  quod  dignus  sum,  quern  mundus  oderit,  saith  Hierome ;  be 
not  discouraged  if  they  slight  you  that  slight  God  and  Christ  and  their 
own  salvation.  Our  self-love  is  too  great  when  so  tender  to  suffer  a 
little  disgrace  and  contempt  for  Christ,  who  hath  suffered  so  many  and 
and  so  great  indignities  for  us.  Therefore,  though  we  be  small  and 
despised,  let  our  affection  be  as  great  to  the  word  as  ever ;  say,  2  Sam. 
vi.  22,  '  I  will  yet  be  more  vile  than  this,  and  base  in  mine  own  sight.' 
Alas !  many  cannot  bear  contempt,  coguntur  esse  mali  ne  viles  habe- 
antur,  as  Salvian  complains  in  his  days.  As  we  should  not  forsake 
the  despised  ways  of  God,  so  not  be  dejected  and  troubled  at  it ;  better 
we  be  despised  than  God  dishonoured ;  therefore  let  us  purchase  the 
glory  of  God  with  our  disgrace.  To  animate  you — 

1.  Consider  it  is  the  usual  lot  and  portion  of  God's  children.    When 
God  meaneth  thoroughly  to  humble  his  children,  he  suffereth  them  to 
be  odious  in  the  eyes  of  the  people  where  they  live :  we  need  so  sharp 
a  means  to  do  us  good,  therefore  the  church  complaineth  of  contempt : 
Lam.  iii.  45,  '  Thou  hast  made  us  as  the  off-scouring  and  refuse  in  the 
midst  of  the  people.'     You  will  say  this  was  a  sinning  nation.     Nay, 
the  apostle  saith  the  same  thing  of  himself  and  other  apostles  :  1  Cor. 
iv.  13,  '  We  are  made  the  filth  of  the  world  and  the  off-scouring  of  all 
things;'  cast  out,  as  the  sweeping  of  the  city.     Yea,  Christ  himself 
complaineth,  Ps.  xxii.  6,  '  I  am  a  worm,  and  no  man  ;  a  reproach  of 
men,  and  despised  of  the  people ; '  as  if  he  were  but  as  a  worm  to  be 
trod  upon  in  respect  of  the  world.     Thou  canst  not  be  more  despised 
than  Christ  was.     So  Isa.  liii.  3,  '  He  is  despised  and  rejected  of  men  ; 
a  man  of  sorrows,  and  acquainted  with  grief ;  we  hid  our  faces  as  it 
were  from  him:  he  was  despised,  and  we  esteemed  him  not.'     Well, 
if  this  be  a  common  lot  and  portion  of  God's  people,  it  is  more  usual 
to  persecute  with  contempt  than  with  violence ;  men  are  kept  off  by 
the  restraint  of  laws. 

2.  Shall  we  not  suffer  a  little  for  Christ  who  suffered  so  much  for 
us  ?    He  hath  endured  greater  reproaches  for  our  sakes ;  and  what  are 
we  to  him  ?     If  he  endured  shame,  was  made  a  curse  for  us,  what  a 
softness  and  tenderness  have  we  for  our  interests  !     Mat.  x.  24,  *  The 
disciple  is  not  above  his  master,  nor  the  servant  above  his  lord,'  &c. 

3.  We  must  be  dead  to  esteem,  credit,  and  reputation,  as  well  as 
other  things,  or  else  we  are  incapable  of  the  kingdom  of  heaven :  John 


496  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SER.  CLVIII. 

v.  44,  '  How  can  ye  believe,  that  seek  honour  one  of  another,  and  seek 
not  the  honour  that  cometh  of  God  only  ?'  John  xii.  41,  42,  '  These 
things  said  Esaias,  when  he  saw  his  glory,  and  spake  of  him.  Never 
theless  among  the  chief  rulers  also  many  believed  on  him  ;  but  because 
of  the  Pharisees  they  did  not  confess  him,  lest  they  should  be  put  out 
of  the  synagogue.'  It  is  not  enough  to  deny  brutish  pleasures,  to 
escape  sordid  covetousness,  but  all  prizing  of  our  own  credit,  content 
to  be  nothing,  that  Christ  maybe  all  in  all,  or  else  there  is  some  affec 
tion  not  yet  subdued  to  Christ's  interest ;  any  interest  of  ours  that 
cometh  into  competition  with  Christ  must  be  denied. 

4.  This  is  the  true  fortitude.     We  all  affect  to  be  counted  men  of 
spirit  and  courage  ;  there  is  not  a  greater  evidence  of  it  than  when  we 
can  endure  contempt  for  Christ.     Military  valour  depends  upon  bodily 
spirits  ;  it  is  a  more  brutish  thing.     Peter,  that  ventured  upon  a  band 
of  men,  was  overcome  by  the  weak  blast  of  a  damsel's  question.     He 
that  can  in  a  generous  contempt  count  man's  day  nothing  :  1  Cor.  iv. 
3,  '  But  with  me  it  is  a  very  small  thing  that  I  should  be  judged  of 
you,  or  of  fnan's  judgment/  &c. 

5.  The  more  despised  in  the  world  for  righteousness'  sake,  the  more 
honourable  with  God.     If  they  could  hinder  your  esteem  with  him  it 
were  something,  2  Cor.  x.  18.     He  is  approved  whom  the  Lord  com- 
rnendeth.     They  will  ever  be  of  great  account  in  heaven  that  have 
washed  their  garments  in  the  blood  of  the  Lamb,  and  kept  themselves 
unspotted  from  the  world,  and  are  clothed  with  the  sun  and  have  the 
moon  under  their  feet,  Rev.  xii.  1.     The  true  and  afflicted  despised 
church  is  in  the  eyes  of  God  fair  as  the  sun,  pure  as  the  moon,  Cant. 
vi.  10.     You  are  an  elect  seed,  a  royal  priesthood,  1  Peter  ii.  9. 

6.  If  we  cannot  endure  a  little  disgrace  for  God,  what  shall  we  do 
when  called  to  resist  unto  blood  ?  Jer.  xii.  5,  '  If  thou  hast  run  with 
the  footmen,  and  they  have  wearied  thee,  how  canst  thou  contend  with 
horses  ? '     Scommata  nostraferre  non  potes,  &c. 

7.  God  hath  his  times  of  bringing  you  into  request  again :  Ps. 
xxxvii.  6,  '  He  shall  bring  forth  thy  righteousness  as  the  light,  and 
thy  judgment  as  the  noon-day  ;'  Zeph.  iii.  19,  '  Behold,  at  that  time 
I  will  undo  all  that  afflict  thee,  and  will  save  her  that  halteth,  and 
gather  her  that  was  driven  out,  and  I  will  get  them  praise  and  fame 
in  every  land  where  they  have  been  put  to  shame.'     All  God's  chil 
dren  were  despised  in  their  time,  and  yet  afterwards  were  honoured. 
There  is  a  resurrection  of  names  as  well  as  persons.     Abraham  gave 
Isaac  his  son  to  God  in  sacrifice,  and  received  him  again  ;  so  we  re 
ceive  our  names  from  reproach  and  contempt.    He  that  draweth  light 
out  of  darkness  is  able  to  revive  our  credit  and  esteem ;  if  not  in  this 
world,  yet  in  the  world  to  come  we  shall  be  glorious,  though  our  con 
dition  be  never  so  contemptible  here  ;  our  reward  is  not  in  this  life. 
When  he  dies,  the  beggar  is  carried  into  Abraham's  bosom.     Would 
you  be  in  the  condition  of  Dives  or  Lazarus  ?  to  wallow  in  ease  and 
plenty,  and  go  to  hell,  and  be  cast  out  with  {he  devil  and  damned 
spirits  ?  or  to  be  poor  and  despised  here,  to  be  carried  by  angels  into 
the  presence  of  God  hereafter  ?     So  at  the  day  of  judgment :  Mat.  x. 
32,  '  Whosoever  therefore  shall  confess  me  before  men,  him  will  I  con 
fess  also  before  my  Father  in  heaven  ; '  we  shall  be  publicly  owned. 


VER.  141.]  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  cxix.  497 

8.  Great  contempt  shall  be  poured  upon  those  that  now  contemn 
you.  When  Hanun  offered  injury  to  David's  servants,  he  took  severe 
revenge  of  it.  God  will  require  an  account  of  all  the  wrongs  and 
affronts  that  are  put  upon  his  servants.  The  wicked  shall  be  made 
the  scorn  of  good  men  and  angels  :  Ps.  Hi.  6,  7,  '  The  righteous  also 
shall  see  and  fear,  and  laugh  at  him.  Lo,  this  is  the  man  that  made 
not  God  his  strength,  but  trusted  in  the  abundance  of  his  riches,  and 
strengthened  himself  in  his  wickedness  ;  but  I  am  like  a  green  olive- 
tree,'  &c. 

Doct.  That  though  our  condition  be  small  and  despicable,  yet  we 
should  be  still  faithful  in  our  respects  to  God  and  his  word. 

1.  The  temptation  will  not  excuse  us.     Esse  bonum  facile  est,  ubi 
quod  vetat  esse  remotum  est.     Our  trial  is  expressly  mentioned  in  the 
promise,  as  necessary  for  our  crowning :  James  i.  12,  '  When  he  is 
tried  ; '  when  the  temptation  is  over,  the  trial  is  past.     It  is  no  praise 
for  a  woman  to  be  chaste  that  hath  no  suitors.   Adam  was  tempted  by 
Eve,  and  Eve  by  Satan,  yet  both  bore  their  burden.     Si  taceret  Deus 
et  loqueretur  Satan,  &c.     Why  should  we  hearken  to  Satan's  sugges 
tions  rather  than  God's  admonitions  ? 

2.  God  observeth  what  we  do  in  our  trouble  :  Ps.  xliv.  20,  21,  '  If 
we  have  forgotten  the  name  of  our  God,  or  stretched  out  our  hands  to 
.a  strange  god,  shall  not  God  search  out  this,  for  he  knoweth  the 
secrets  of  our  hearts  ? '    If  we  slacken  our  service  to  God,  or  fall  off 
to  any  degree  of  apostasy,  the  judge  of  hearts  knoweth  all ;  God 
knoweth  whether  we  have  or  wrould  deprave  and  corrupt  doctrine, 
worship,  or  ordinances,  or  whether  we  will  faithfully  adhere  to  him,  to 
his  word,  and  worship,  and  ordinances,  whatever  it  cost  us. 

3.  God  and  his  law  are  the  same,  and  therefore  though  our  condi 
tion  be  altered,  our  affection^  should  not.    If  we  love  the  word  of  God 
upon  intrinsic  reasons,  there  is  the  same  reason  we  should  adhere  to 
it  with  love  still,  as  to  embrace  it  out  of  love  :  ver.  142,  '  Thy  right 
eousness  is  an  everlasting  righteousness,  and  thy  law  is  the  truth/ 
Among  men,  that  may  be  just  to-day  which  is  not  so  to-morrow, 
because  they  and  their  laws  alter ;  but  God's  law  is  the  eternal  rule 
of  righteousness,  that  never  alters. 

4.  In  our  poor  and  despicable  condition,  we  see  more  cause  to  love 
the  word  than  we  did  before  ;  because  we  experiment  supports  and 
comforts  which  we  have  thereby  :  Kom.  v.  3,  '  Knowing  that  tribula 
tion  worketh  patience/  &c. ;  2  Cor.  i.  5,  '  For  as  the  sufferings  of 
Christ  abound  in  us,  so  our  consolation  also  aboundeth  by  Christ/ 
God  hath  special  consolations  for  his  afflicted  and  despised  people  ; 
and  makes  their  consolation  by  Christ  to  run  parallel  and  to  keep 
pace  with  their  sufferings  for  Christ. 

Use  1.  Carry  your  duty  still  in  remembrance.  The  first  step  of 
defection  is  to  forget  what  God  hath  commanded.  There  is  an 
oblivion,  and  a  darkness  for  the  present  on  the  mind,  so  that  a  man 
knoweth  not  what  he  knoweth  >  as  Hagar  saw  not  the  well  that  was 
before  her,  till  God  opened  her  eyes.  Therefore  revive  the  grounds  of 
your  adherence,  if  you  would  constantly  adhere  to  God.  ^The  temp 
tation  cometh  afresh  upon  you  every  day,  with  all  the  enticing  bland 
ishments  ;  so  should  the  reasons  of  your  duty.  It  helpeth  our 

VOL.  VIII.  2  I 


498  SERMONS  UPON  PSALM  CXIX.  [SfiR.  CLVIII. 

perseverance  to  consider  how  strong  and  cogent  they  are,  and  what 
wrong  we  should  do  to  God  and  religion  to  consent.  At  first  a  man 
beholds  temptations  with  horror;  but  being  familiarised,  our  thoughts 
are  more  reconciled  to  them ;  therefore  recollect  yourselves,  and 
remember  the  reasons  you  first  had  to  put  you  upon  your  duty  ;  and 
if  you  duly  consider  them,  they  will  be  strong  arid  cogent  to  repel  the 
temptation,  that  would  take  you  off  from  it. 

Use  2.  It  showeth  who  are  lovers  of  the  word  and  who  not.  On 
the  one  hand,  some  love  the  precepts  of  God  when  they  are  in  honour 
and  esteem,  have  many  to  join  with  them,  and  they  see  peace 
and  plenty  follow  the  profession  of  it ;  but  rather  than  they  will 
endure  trouble  and  contempt,  forsake  it.  The  Samaritans  would  be 
Jews  when  the  Jews  were  favoured ;  but  in  the  time  of  Antiochus 
Epiphanes,  when  the  Jews  were  in  trouble,  they  would  be  called 
Sidonians,  ovKtt?  w/JioXoyovv  TOV  ev  PapL^lv  vaov  TOV  /Jbeyia-rov  0eov, 
dedicating  their  temple  not  to  Jehovah  but  Jupiter  (Josephus). 
These  never  received  the  love  of  the  truth.  On  the  other  side,  when 
a  man  loveth  it  alike  in  all  times  and  in  all  conditions,  when  rich, 
when  poor,  in  liberty  and  in  bonds,  when  the  ways  of  God  are  counte 
nanced  or  when  despised,  it  is  all  one  to  him;  they  love  it  not  for  out 
ward  respects,  but  internal  reasons. 


THE  END  OF  VOL.  VIII. 


PRINTED  BY  BALLANTYNE  AND  COMPANY 
EDINBURGH  AND  LONDON 


\ 


'•  RUM  '•••' 


""" 
m